This is a modern-English version of Forty-one years in India: from subaltern to commander-in-chief, originally written by Roberts, Frederick Sleigh Roberts, Earl. It has been thoroughly updated, including changes to sentence structure, words, spelling, and grammar—to ensure clarity for contemporary readers, while preserving the original spirit and nuance. If you click on a paragraph, you will see the original text that we modified, and you can toggle between the two versions.

Scroll to the bottom of this page and you will find a free ePUB download link for this book.

Transcriber's Note: The Footnotes are linked to the text. Click the
'
' to read the Footnote.

Click the '
'  
return to the appropriate place in the text.








PUBLISHED JANUARY 4, 1897.


First Edition (before publication), two volumes, demy octavo, 36s. January 2, 1897.
Second Edition (before publication), two volumes, demy octavo, 36s. January 2, 1897.
United States Edition, two volumes, demy octavo, 12 dollars January 4, 1897.
Indian Edition, two volumes, demy octavo, 32 rupees January 4, 1897.
Third Edition, two volumes, demy octavo, 36s. January 4, 1897.
Fourth Edition, two volumes, demy octavo, 36s. January 4, 1897.
Fifth Edition, two volumes, demy octavo, 36s. January 14, 1897.
Sixth Edition, two volumes, demy octavo, 36s. January 16, 1897.
Seventh Edition, two volumes, demy octavo, 36s January 21, 1897.
Eighth Edition, two volumes, demy octavo, 36s. January 27, 1897.
Ninth Edition, two volumes, demy octavo, 36s. February 3, 1897.
Tenth Edition, two volumes, demy octavo, 36s. February 8, 1897.
Eleventh Edition, two volumes, demy octavo, 36s. February 12, 1897.
Twelfth Edition, two volumes, demy octavo, 36s. February 17, 1897.
Thirteenth Edition, two volumes, demy octavo, 36s. February 23, 1897.
Fourteenth, Edition, two volumes, demy octavo, 36s. February 26, 1897.
Fifteenth Edition, two volumes, demy octavo, 36s. March 8, 1897.
Sixteenth Edition, two volumes, demy octavo, 36s. March 18, 1897.
Seventeenth Edition, two volumes, demy octavo, 36s. April 6, 1897.
Eighteenth Edition, two volumes, demy octavo, 36s. April 28, 1897.
Nineteenth Edition, two volumes, demy octavo, 36s. May 31, 1897.
Twentieth Edition, two volumes, demy octavo, 36s. July 7, 1897.
Twenty-first Edition, two volumes, demy octavo, 36s. July 31, 1897.
Twenty-second Edition, two volumes, demy octavo, 36s. August 28, 1897.
Twenty-third Edition, two volumes, demy octavo, 36s. September 21, 1897.
Twenty-fourth Edition, two volumes, demy octavo, 36s. October 21, 1897.
Twenty-fifth Edition, two volumes, demy octavo, 36s. November 18, 1897.
Twenty-sixth Edition, two volumes, demy octavo, 36s. December 14,1897.
Twenty-seventh Edition, two volumes, demy octavo, 36s. January 4, 1898.
A Braille type edition for the blind (Nearly ready.)
Twenty-eighth edition, two volumes, demy octavo, 36s. May 11, 1898.
Twenty-ninth Edition, one volume, small demy octavo (Now ready.)




Frontispiece



Field-Marshal Lord Roberts of Kandahar

FIELD-MARSHAL LORD ROBERTS V.C.

From
a Photograph by Messrs. Bourne and Shepherd.

Field-Marshal Lord Roberts of Kandahar

FIELD-MARSHAL LORD ROBERTS V.C.

From
a Photograph by Bourne and Shepherd.







FORTY-ONE YEARS IN INDIA




FROM

Subaltern to Commander-in-Chief



BY

FIELD-MARSHAL

LORD ROBERTS OF KANDAHAR V.C., K.P., G.C.B., G.C.S.I., G.C.I.E.



seal

seal

FIRST EDITION IN ONE VOLUME



WITH FORTY ILLUSTRATIONS



LONDON
RICHARD BENTLEY AND SON
Publishers in Ordinary to Her Majesty the Queen
1898
All rights reserved



A NEW EDITION, BEING THE TWENTY-NINTH





TO THE COUNTRY TO WHICH I AM SO PROUD OF BELONGING,

TO THE ARMY TO WHICH I AM SO DEEPLY INDEBTED,

AND TO MY WIFE,

WITHOUT WHOSE LOVING HELP

MY 'FORTY-ONE YEARS IN INDIA'

COULD NOT BE THE HAPPY RETROSPECT IT IS,

I DEDICATE THIS BOOK
.

TO THE COUNTRY I AM SO PROUD TO CALL MY OWN,

TO THE ARMY I OWE SO MUCH,

AND TO MY WIFE,

WHOSE LOVING SUPPORT

HAS MADE MY 'FORTY-ONE YEARS IN INDIA'

THE HAPPY REFLECTION IT IS,

I DEDICATE THIS BOOK
.





PREFACE TO THE FIRST EDITION.


I would never have ventured to intrude upon the public with my personal reminiscences had I not been urged to do so by friends who, being interested themselves in what I was able to tell them of India as my father knew it, and as I found it and left it, persuaded me that my experiences of the many and various aspects under which I have known the wonderful land of my adoption and its interesting peoples would be useful to my countrymen. It was thought that I might thus contribute towards a more intimate knowledge of the glorious heritage our forefathers have bequeathed to us, than the greater number of them possess, and towards helping them to understand the characteristics and requirements of the numerous and widely different races by whom India is inhabited.

I never would have considered sharing my personal memories with the public if my friends hadn't encouraged me to do so. They were genuinely interested in what I had to say about India, as my father experienced it and as I discovered and left it. They convinced me that my experiences, which reflect the many different aspects of this amazing country and its fascinating people, could be valuable to my fellow citizens. It was believed that I could help contribute to a deeper understanding of the incredible legacy our ancestors have passed down to us, more so than most of them currently have, and assist them in grasping the characteristics and needs of the various and diverse groups that inhabit India.

It is difficult for people who know nothing of Natives to understand and appreciate the value they set on cherished customs, peculiar idiosyncrasies, and fixed prejudices, all of which must be carefully studied by those who are placed in the position of their Rulers, if the suzerain Power is to keep their respect and gain their gratitude and affection.

It’s hard for people who know nothing about Native cultures to understand and appreciate the importance they place on treasured traditions, unique quirks, and deep-seated beliefs. Those in positions of authority need to study these aspects carefully if they want to maintain respect and earn gratitude and affection from the community.

The Natives of India are particularly observant of character, and intelligent in gauging the capabilities of those who govern them; and it is because the English Government is trusted that a mere handful of Englishmen are able to direct the administration of a country with nearly three hundred millions of inhabitants, differing in race, religion, and manners of life. Throughout all the changes which India has [page viii] undergone, political and social, during the present century, this feeling has been maintained, and it will last so long as the services are filled by honourable men who sympathize with the Natives, respect their prejudices, and do not interfere unnecessarily with their habits and customs.

The people of India are very observant of character and are smart about judging the abilities of those who govern them. The reason a small number of Englishmen can manage the administration of a country with nearly three hundred million people, who vary in race, religion, and ways of life, is because the English Government is trusted. Throughout all the political and social changes India has gone through this century, this trust has remained, and it will continue as long as the services are filled by honorable individuals who empathize with the locals, respect their beliefs, and avoid interfering unnecessarily with their habits and customs.

My father and I spent between us nearly ninety years in India. The most wonderful of the many changes that took place during that time may be said to date from the Mutiny. I have endeavoured in the following pages to explain the causes which, I believe, brought about that terrible event—an event which for a while produced a much-to-be-regretted feeling of racial antagonism. Happily, this feeling did not last long; even when things looked blackest for us, it was softened by acts of kindness shown to Europeans in distress, and by the knowledge that, but for the assistance afforded by the Natives themselves, the restoration of order, and the suppression of a fierce military insurrection, would have been a far more arduous task. Delhi could not have been taken without Sikhs and Gurkhas; Lucknow could not have been defended without the Hindustani soldiers who so nobly responded to Sir Henry Lawrence's call; and nothing that Sir John Lawrence might have done could have prevented our losing, for a time, the whole of the country north of Calcutta, had not the men of the Punjab and the Derajat* remained true to our cause.

My father and I together spent almost ninety years in India. The most remarkable of the many changes that occurred during that time can be traced back to the Mutiny. In the following pages, I’ve tried to explain the reasons that I believe led to that terrible event—an event that temporarily created a regrettable sense of racial hostility. Fortunately, this feeling didn’t last long; even when things looked bleak for us, it was softened by acts of kindness shown to Europeans in distress, and by the understanding that without the help of the local people, restoring order and dealing with a fierce military uprising would have been much tougher. Delhi couldn’t have been captured without the Sikhs and Gurkhas; Lucknow couldn’t have been defended without the Hindustani soldiers who bravely answered Sir Henry Lawrence's call; and nothing that Sir John Lawrence could have done would have stopped us from temporarily losing all the land north of Calcutta if the men of the Punjab and the Derajat hadn’t remained loyal to our cause.

[Note *: Tracts beyond the Indus.]

[Note *: Tracts beyond the Indus.]

It has been suggested that all outward signs of the Mutiny should be obliterated, that the monument on the Ridge at Delhi should be levelled, and the picturesque Residency at Lucknow allowed to fall into decay. This view does not commend itself to me. These relics of that tremendous struggle are memorials of heroic services performed by Her Majesty's soldiers, Native as well as British; and by the civilians who shared the duties and dangers of the army. They are valuable as reminders that we must never again allow ourselves to be lulled into fancied security; and above all, they stand as warnings that we should never do anything that can possibly be interpreted by[page ix] the Natives into disregard for their various forms of religion.

It has been suggested that all signs of the Mutiny should be erased, that the monument on the Ridge at Delhi should be torn down, and the historic Residency at Lucknow should be allowed to decay. I don’t agree with this perspective. These remnants of that intense struggle are memorials to the brave actions taken by Her Majesty's soldiers, both Native and British; as well as by the civilians who faced the duties and dangers alongside the army. They are important as reminders that we should never again let ourselves feel falsely secure; and above all, they serve as warnings that we must never do anything that could be seen by the Natives as disrespecting their different forms of religion.

The Mutiny was not an unmitigated evil, for to it we owe the consolidation of our power in India, as it hastened on the construction of the roads, railways, and telegraphs, so wisely and thoughtfully planned by the Marquis of Dalhousie, and which have done more than anything to increase the prosperity of the people and preserve order throughout the country. It was the Mutiny which brought Lord Canning into closer communication with the Princes of India, and paved the way for Lord Lytton's brilliant conception of the Imperial Assemblage—a great political success which laid the foundation of that feeling of confidence which now, happily, exists between the Ruling Chiefs and the Queen-Empress. And it was the Mutiny which compelled us to reorganize our Indian Army and make it the admirable fighting machine it now is.

The Mutiny wasn't just a complete disaster; it actually helped solidify our power in India because it sped up the building of the roads, railways, and telegraphs that the Marquis of Dalhousie had wisely planned. These developments have greatly contributed to the prosperity of the people and maintained order throughout the country. The Mutiny also led to Lord Canning having closer interactions with the Indian Princes and set the stage for Lord Lytton's brilliant idea of the Imperial Assemblage—a significant political achievement that established the confidence that now exists between the Ruling Chiefs and the Queen-Empress. Furthermore, the Mutiny forced us to reorganize our Indian Army, transforming it into the impressive fighting force it is today.

In the account I have given of our relations with Afghanistan and the border tribes, I have endeavoured to bring before my readers the change of our position in India that has been the inevitable consequence of the propinquity upon our North-West Frontier of a first-class European Power. The change has come about so gradually, and has been so repeatedly pronounced to be chimerical by authorities in whom the people of Great Britain had every reason to feel confidence, that until recently it had attracted little public attention, and even now a great majority of my countrymen may scarcely have realized the probability of England and Russia ever being near enough to each other in Asia to come into actual conflict. I impute no blame to the Russians for their advance towards India. The force of circumstances—the inevitable result of the contact of civilization with barbarism—impelled them to cross the Jaxartes and extend their territories to the Khanates of Turkestan and the banks of the Oxus, just as the same uncontrollable force carried us across the Sutlej and extended our territories to the valley of the Indus. The object I have at heart is to make my fellow-subjects recognize that, under these altered conditions, Great Britain now occupies in Asia the position of a Continental Power, and that her[page x] interests in that part of the globe must be protected by Continental means of defence.

In the account I’ve provided about our relationships with Afghanistan and the border tribes, I’ve tried to show my readers how our position in India has changed due to the presence of a major European power on our North-West Frontier. This change has happened so gradually and has been declared unrealistic so many times by officials whom the people of Great Britain had every reason to trust, that until recently it received little public attention. Even now, a large number of my fellow citizens may hardly grasp the likelihood of England and Russia being close enough in Asia to actually come into conflict. I hold no resentment against the Russians for moving towards India. The force of circumstances—the inevitable outcome of civilization meeting barbarism—drove them to cross the Jaxartes and expand their territories to the Khanates of Turkestan and the banks of the Oxus, just as the same unavoidable force led us across the Sutlej and extended our territories to the valley of the Indus. My main goal is to encourage my fellow subjects to understand that, under these new conditions, Great Britain now holds the position of a Continental Power in Asia, and that our interests in that region must be protected by Continental defense strategies.

The few who have carefully and steadily watched the course of events, entertained no doubt from the first as to the soundness of these views; and their aim has always been, as mine is now, not to sound an alarm, but to give a warning, and to show the danger of shutting our eyes to plain facts and their probable consequences.

The few who have closely and consistently observed what’s been happening have never doubted the validity of these views from the beginning; their goal, like mine now, has been not to create panic, but to issue a warning and highlight the risks of ignoring obvious facts and their likely outcomes.

Whatever may be the future course of events, I have no fear of the result if we are only true to ourselves and to India. Thinking Natives thoroughly understand the situation; they believe that the time must come when the territories of Great Britain and Russia in their part of Asia will be separated only by a common boundary line, and they would consider that we were wanting in the most essential attributes of Rulers if we did not take all possible precautions, and make every possible preparation to meet such an eventuality.

Whatever the future holds, I’m not worried about the outcome if we stay true to ourselves and to India. Thoughtful locals fully grasp the situation; they think the time will come when Great Britain and Russia's territories in this part of Asia will be divided only by a shared border. They believe we would be lacking the most crucial qualities of leaders if we didn’t take every precaution and prepare as thoroughly as possible for such a scenario.

I send out this book in the earnest hope that the friendly anticipations of those who advised me to write it may not be seriously disappointed; and that those who care to read a plain, unvarnished tale of Indian life and adventure, will bear in mind that the writer is a soldier, not a man of letters, and will therefore forgive all faults of style or language.

I release this book with the genuine hope that the friendly expectations of those who encouraged me to write it won't be greatly let down; and that those who want to read a straightforward, unembellished story of Indian life and adventure will remember that the author is a soldier, not a writer, and will kindly overlook any flaws in style or language.

ROBERTS.

ROBERTS.

30th September, 1896.

September 30, 1896.





Kashmir Gate at Delhi.

KASHMIR GATE AT DELHI.

Kashmir Gate in Delhi.



CONTENTS

CHAPTER I

Voyage to India—Life in Calcutta—A destructive cyclone—Home-sickness

Voyage to India—Life in Kolkata—A devastating cyclone—Feeling homesick


PAGE
1
CHAPTER II

Bengal Horse Artillery—Incidents of the journey—New Friends

Bengal Horse Artillery—Events of the trip—New Friends


6
CHAPTER III

With my father at Peshawar—Peshawar in 1852—Excitements of a frontier station—A flogging parade—Mackeson's assassination—The Jowaki expedition—A strange dream—A typical frontier fight

With my dad in Peshawar—Peshawar in 1852—The thrills of a border station—A public flogging—Mackeson's assassination—The Jowaki campaign—A bizarre dream—A typical border battle


9
CHAPTER IV

A trip to Khagan—The Vale of Kashmir—With the Horse Artillery—My first visit to Simla—Life at Peshawar—A staff appointment—The bump of locality

A trip to Khagan—The Vale of Kashmir—With the Horse Artillery—My first visit to Simla—Life at Peshawar—A staff appointment—The sense of direction


19
CHAPTER V

Lord Dalhousie's Afghan policy—Treaty with Dost Mahomed—War with Persia—The advantage of the Amir's friendship—John Nicholson—'A pillar of strength on the frontier'

Lord Dalhousie's Afghan policy—Treaty with Dost Mahomed—War with Persia—The benefit of the Amir's friendship—John Nicholson—'A strong support on the frontier'


27
CHAPTER VI

First tidings of the mutiny—Prompt action at Peshawar—A bold policy—The Movable Column—An annoying occurrence—I leave Peshawar

First news of the mutiny—Quick response at Peshawar—A daring strategy—The Movable Column—A frustrating event—I depart from Peshawar


34
[page xii] CHAPTER VII

First symptoms of disaffection—Outbreak at Berhampur—Mangal Pandy—Court-Martial at Meerut—Mutiny at Meerut—The work of destruction—Want of energy—Hugh Gough's experiences—Nothing could arrest the mutiny

First signs of discontent—Outbreak at Berhampur—Mangal Pandy—Court-Martial at Meerut—Mutiny at Meerut—The wave of destruction—Lack of energy—Hugh Gough's experiences—Nothing could stop the mutiny.


40
CHAPTER VIII

General Anson—The news reaches Simla—Anson loses no time—A long list of troubles—John Lawrence —The Phulkian family—Death of General Anson

General Anson—The news gets to Simla—Anson acts quickly—A long list of problems—John Lawrence —The Phulkian family—Death of General Anson


50
CHAPTER IX

John Lawrence's wise measures—Disarmament at Peshawar—Salutary effect in the valley

John Lawrence's smart strategies—Disarmament at Peshawar—Positive impact in the valley


58
CHAPTER X

Neville Chamberlain's presence of mind—The command of the Column—Robert Montgomery—Disarmament at Mian Mir—A Drum-Head Court-Martial—Swift retribution

Neville Chamberlain's quick thinking—The leadership of the Column—Robert Montgomery—Disarmament at Mian Mir—A Drum-Head Court-Martial—Rapid punishment


62
CHAPTER XI

Ferozepore—Crawford Chamberlain at Multan—Chamberlain's masterly conduct—Nicholson succeeds Neville Chamberlain—Irresolution at Jullundur—General Mehtab Sing—Nicholson's soldierly instincts—More disarmaments

Ferozepore—Crawford Chamberlain at Multan—Chamberlain's skilled leadership—Nicholson takes over from Neville Chamberlain—Uncertainty at Jullundur—General Mehtab Sing—Nicholson's military instincts—More disarmaments


69
CHAPTER XII

George Ricketts at Ludhiana—Pushing on to Delhi—In the camp before Delhi

George Ricketts in Ludhiana—Heading to Delhi—At the camp near Delhi


78
CHAPTER XIII

The first victory—Enthusiasm amongst the troops—Barnard's success at Badli-ki-Serai—The Flagstaff Tower—Position on the Ridge—Quintin Battye—The gallant little Gurkhas—Proposed assault—The besiegers besieged—Hard fighting—The centenary of Plassy

The first victory—Enthusiasm among the troops—Barnard’s success at Badli-ki-Serai—The Flagstaff Tower—Position on the Ridge—Quintin Battye—The brave little Gurkhas—Proposed attack—The besiegers under siege—Intense fighting—The hundredth anniversary of Plassy


82
CHAPTER XIV

A new appointment

A new job offer


96
CHAPTER XV

Reinforcements begin to arrive—An assault again proposed—The attack on Alipur—Death of General Barnard—General Reed assumes command—Two V.C.'s—Treachery in camp—Fighting close up to the city walls—Sufferings of the sick and wounded—General Reed's health fails

Reinforcements start to show up—Another assault put forward—The attack on Alipur—Death of General Barnard—General Reed takes command—Two V.C.s—Betrayal in camp—Fighting right up to the city walls—Struggles of the sick and injured—General Reed's health deteriorates


97
[page xiii] CHAPTER XVI

Archdale Wilson assumes command—Enemy baffled in the Sabzi Mandi—Efforts to exterminate the Feringhis—A letter from General Havelock—News of Henry Lawrence's death—Arrival of the Movable Column—The 61st Foot at Najafgarh

Archdale Wilson takes command—Enemy confused in the Sabzi Mandi—Attempts to eliminate the Feringhis—A letter from General Havelock—News of Henry Lawrence's death—Arrival of the Movable Column—The 61st Foot at Najafgarh


108
CHAPTER XVII

Wilson's difficulties—Nicholson's resolve—Arrangements for the assault—Construction of breaching batteries—Nicholson expresses his satisfaction—Orders for the assault issued—Composition of the attacking columns

Wilson's challenges—Nicholson's determination—Plans for the attack—Building breaching batteries—Nicholson shares his approval—Orders for the attack released—Makeup of the attacking units


116
CHAPTER XVIII

Delhi stormed—The scene at the Kashmir Gate—Bold front by Artillery and Cavalry—Nicholson wounded—The last I saw of Nicholson—Wilson wavers—Holding on to the walls of Delhi

Delhi attacked—The scene at the Kashmir Gate—Strong front by Artillery and Cavalry—Nicholson injured—The last time I saw Nicholson—Wilson hesitates—Holding onto the walls of Delhi


125
CHAPTER XIX

Capture of the Burn bastion—The 60th Rifles storm the palace—Hodson captures the King of Delhi—Nicholson's death—Gallantry of the troops—Praise from Lord Canning

Capture of the Burn bastion—The 60th Rifles charge the palace—Hodson captures the King of Delhi—Nicholson's death—Bravery of the troops—Praise from Lord Canning


133
CHAPTER XX

Necessity for further action—Departure from Delhi—Action at Bulandshahr—Lieutenant Home's death—Knights-errant—Fight at Aligarh—Appeals from Agra—Collapse of the administration—Taken by surprise—The fight at Agra—An exciting chase—The Taj Mahal

Necessity for further action—Leaving Delhi—Action at Bulandshahr—Lieutenant Home's death—Modern knights—Battle at Aligarh—Requests from Agra—Breakdown of the administration—Caught off guard—The battle at Agra—An intense chase—The Taj Mahal


140
CHAPTER XXI

Infatuation of the authorities at Agra—A series of Mishaps—Result of indecision and incapacity

Infatuation of the authorities in Agra—A series of Mishaps—Result of indecision and incapacity


154
CHAPTER XXII

Advantage of being a good horseman—News from Lucknow—Cawnpore—Heart-rending scenes—Start for Lucknow—An exciting Adventure—Arrival of Sir Colin Campbell—Plans for the advance

Advantage of being a good horseman—News from Lucknow—Cawnpore—Heart-wrenching scenes—Departure for Lucknow—An exciting adventure—Arrival of Sir Colin Campbell—Plans for the advance


158
CHAPTER XXIII

Sir Colin's preparations—The Alambagh—The Dilkusha and Martinière—Mayne's death—A tall-talk story—Ammunition required—A night march—The advance on Lucknow—Sir Colin wounded—The attack on the Sikandarbagh—Heroic deeds—The 4th Punjab Infantry

Sir Colin's preparations—The Alambagh—The Dilkusha and Martinière—Mayne's death—A tall-talk story—Ammunition needed—A night march—The move towards Lucknow—Sir Colin injured—The assault on Sikandarbagh—Brave acts—The 4th Punjab Infantry


169
CHAPTER XXIV

Henry Norman—The Shah Najaf—The mess-house—Planting the flag—A memorable meeting—The Residency

Henry Norman—The Shah Najaf—The mess hall—Raising the flag—An unforgettable meeting—The Residency


183
[page xiv] CHAPTER XXV

Sir Colin's wise decision—Robert Napier—Impressions on visiting the Residency—Henry Lawrence—Lawrence as Statesman and Ruler—Lawrence's friendliness for Natives—A hazardous duty

Sir Colin's smart choice—Robert Napier—Thoughts on visiting the Residency—Henry Lawrence—Lawrence as a Leader and Governor—Lawrence's kindness towards Locals—A risky responsibility


190
CHAPTER XXVI

Death of General Havelock—Appeals from Cawnpore—General Windham—The passage of the Ganges

Death of General Havelock—Appeals from Cawnpore—General Windham—The crossing of the Ganges


198
CHAPTER XXVII

The fight at Cawnpore—Unexpected visitors—A long chase—Unjur Tiwari—Bithur—Windham at Cawnpore

The battle at Cawnpore—Surprising guests—An extended pursuit—Unjur Tiwari—Bithur—Windham at Cawnpore


204
CHAPTER XXVIII

The Fight at Khudaganj—A mêlée—Oudh or Rohilkand?

The Fight at Khudaganj—A brawl—Oudh or Rohilkand?


212
CHAPTER XXIX

Mianganj—Curious effect of a mirage—The Dilkusha revisited—Passage of the Gumti—Capture of the Chakar Kothi—Capture of the iron bridge—Hodson mortally wounded—Outram's soldierly instinct—A lost opportunity—Sam Browne—Start for England—Death of Sir William Peel

Mianganj—Interesting effect of a mirage—The Dilkusha revisited—Crossing the Gumti—Capture of the Chakar Kothi—Capture of the iron bridge—Hodson mortally wounded—Outram's soldierly instinct—A missed opportunity—Sam Browne—Departure for England—Death of Sir William Peel


216
CHAPTER XXX

What brought about the Mutiny?—Religious fears of the people—The land question—The annexation of Oudh—Fulfilment of Malcolm's prophecy—The Delhi royal family—The Nana Sahib—The Native army—Greased cartridges—Limited number of British troops—Objection to foreign service—Excessive age of the British officers

What caused the Mutiny?—People's religious fears—The land issue—The annexation of Oudh—The realization of Malcolm's prophecy—The Delhi royal family—The Nana Sahib—The Native army—Greased cartridges—Limited number of British troops—Opposition to foreign service—The advanced age of British officers


231
CHAPTER XXXI

Discontent of the Natives—Successful administrators—Paternal despotism—Money-lenders and the Press—Faddists—Cardinal points

Discontent among the Natives—Effective administrators—Paternal dictatorship—Moneylenders and the Media—Trenders—Key issues


245
CHAPTER XXXII

Home again—Back in India—Allahabad and Cawnpore—The Viceroy's camp—State entry into Lucknow—The Talukdars of Oudh—Loyalty of the Talukdars—Cawnpore and Fatehgarh—The Agra Durbar

Home again—Back in India—Allahabad and Cawnpore—The Viceroy's camp—Official entry into Lucknow—The Talukdars of Oudh—Loyalty of the Talukdars—Cawnpore and Fatehgarh—The Agra Durbar


251
CHAPTER XXXIII

Delhi under a different aspect—Lord Clyde—Umritsar and Lahore—The Lahore Durbar—Simla—Life at Simla

Delhi in a different light—Lord Clyde—Amritsar and Lahore—The Lahore Durbar—Shimla—Life in Shimla


262
[page xv] CHAPTER XXXIV

The Staff Corps—With the Viceroy's camp again—The marble rocks—Lady Canning's death—Pig-sticking at Jamu—Lord Canning—Another cold-weather march—Gwalior and Jhansi—Departmental promotion

The Staff Corps—With the Viceroy's camp again—The marble rocks—Lady Canning's death—Pig-sticking at Jamu—Lord Canning—Another cold-weather march—Gwalior and Jhansi—Departmental promotion


269
CHAPTER XXXV

The Umbeyla expedition—The Akhund of Swat—The 'Eagle's Nest' and 'Crag piquet'—The death of Lord Elgin—Loyalty of our Pathan soldiers—Bunerwals show signs of submission—The conical hill—Umbeyla in flames—Bunerwals agree to our terms—Malka destroyed

The Umbeyla expedition—The Akhund of Swat—The 'Eagle's Nest' and 'Crag piquet'—The death of Lord Elgin—Loyalty of our Pathan soldiers—Bunerwals show signs of submission—The conical hill—Umbeyla in flames—Bunerwals agree to our terms—Malka destroyed


280
CHAPTER XXXVI

A voyage round the Cape—Cholera camps—The Abyssinian expedition—Landed at Zula

A trip around the Cape—Cholera camps—The Abyssinian expedition—Arrived at Zula


293
CHAPTER XXXVII

Sir Robert Napier to command—Defective transport—King Theodore commits suicide—First A.Q.M.G.

Sir Robert Napier appointed as commander—Transport issues—King Theodore takes his own life—First Assistant Quartermaster General.


298
CHAPTER XXXVIII

Afzal Khan ousts Sher Ali—Sher Ali regains the Amirship—Foresight of Sir Henry Rawlinson—The Umballa Durbar

Afzal Khan removes Sher Ali—Sher Ali takes back the Amir position—Insight from Sir Henry Rawlinson—The Umballa Durbar


303
CHAPTER XXXIX

The Lushais—The Lushai expedition—Defective transport again—Practice versus theory—A severe march—Lushais foiled by Gurkhas—A successful turning movement—Murder of Lord Mayo

The Lushais—The Lushai expedition—Transport issues again—Practice versus theory—A tough march—Lushais outsmarted by Gurkhas—A successful maneuver—Murder of Lord Mayo


308
CHAPTER XL

Lord Napier's care for the soldier—Negotiations with Sher Ali renewed—Sher Ali's demands

Lord Napier's concern for the soldier—Negotiations with Sher Ali resumed—Sher Ali's demands


319
CHAPTER XLI

A trip in the Himalayas—The famine in Behar—The Prince of Wales in India—Farewell to Lord Napier

A trip in the Himalayas—The famine in Bihar—The Prince of Wales in India—Farewell to Lord Napier


323
CHAPTER XLII

Lord Lytton becomes Viceroy—Difficulties with Sher Ali—Imperial assemblage at Delhi—Reception of the Ruling Chiefs—Queen proclaimed Empress of India—Political importance of the assemblage—Sher Ali proclaims a 'Jahad'—A journey under difficulties

Lord Lytton takes office as Viceroy—Challenges with Sher Ali—Imperial gathering in Delhi—Welcome of the Ruling Chiefs—Queen declared Empress of India—Political significance of the gathering—Sher Ali announces a 'Jahad'—A challenging journey


328
CHAPTER XLIII

Object of the first Afghan war—Excitement caused by Russia's advances

Object of the first Afghan war—Excitement generated by Russia's progress


338
[page xvi] CHAPTER XLIV

Effect of the Berlin Treaty at Kabul—Sher Ali decides against England—A meeting of portentous moment—Preparations for war—Letter from Sher Ali

Effect of the Berlin Treaty in Kabul—Sher Ali chooses to oppose England—A meeting of significant importance—Preparations for war—Letter from Sher Ali


341
CHAPTER XLV

Shortcomings of my column—Attitude of the Border tribes

Shortcomings of my column—Attitude of the Border tribes


348
CHAPTER XLVI

The Kuram valley—Conflicting news of the enemy—An apparently impregnable position—Spingawi route decided on—Disposition of the force—A night attack—Advantages of a night attack—Devotion of my orderlies—Threatening the enemy's rear—The Peiwar Kotal

The Kuram valley—Mixed reports about the enemy—A seemingly unassailable position—Decision made on the Spingawi route—Troop deployment—A nighttime assault—Benefits of a night attack—Commitment of my orderlies—Flanking the enemy's rear—The Peiwar Kotal


351
CHAPTER XLVII

Alikhel—Treachery of the tribesmen—Transport difficulties—Sher Ali looks to Russia for aid—Khost—An attack on our camp—An unsuccessful experiment—An unpleasant incident—Punjab Chiefs' Contingent

Alikhel—Betrayal by the tribesmen—Transport issues—Sher Ali seeks help from Russia—Khost—An assault on our camp—A failed attempt—A troubling incident—Punjab Chiefs' Contingent


364
CHAPTER XLVIII

Sher Ali's death—Premature negotiations—The treaty of Gandamak—Making friends with the tribesmen—Gloomy forebodings—Good-bye to Cavagnari

Sher Ali's death—Early negotiations—The Treaty of Gandamak—Building relationships with the tribesmen—Dark omens—Farewell to Cavagnari


375
CHAPTER XLIX

Massacre of the Embassy—The Kabul Field Force—Lord Lytton's foresightedness—Start for Kabul—Letter to the Amir—Proclamation to the people of Kabul—Yakub Khan's agents—Reasons for remaining at Alikhel

Massacre of the Embassy—The Kabul Field Force—Lord Lytton's foresight—Departure for Kabul—Letter to the Amir—Message to the people of Kabul—Yakub Khan's agents—Reasons for staying in Alikhel


382
CHAPTER L

Hector Macdonald and Sher Mahomed—Yakub Khan—A Proclamation and an Order—The maliks of Logar—Attack on the Shutargardan—Reconnoitring roads leading to Kabul

Hector Macdonald and Sher Mahomed—Yakub Khan—A Proclamation and an Order—The maliks of Logar—Attack on the Shutargardan—Reconnoitering roads leading to Kabul


394
CHAPTER LI

The Afghan position—The fight at Charasia—Highlanders, Gurkhas, and Punjabis—Defeat of the Afghans—Kabul in sight—Deh-i-Mazang gorge—The enemy give us the slip

The Afghan position—The battle at Charasia—Highlanders, Gurkhas, and Punjabis—Defeating the Afghans—Kabul in view—Deh-i-Mazang gorge—The enemy slips away.


402
CHAPTER LII

Guiding instructions—Visit to the Bala Hissar—Yakub Khan abdicates—The Proclamation—Administrative measures—Explosions in the Bala Hissar

Guiding instructions—Visit to Bala Hissar—Yakub Khan steps down—The Announcement—Administrative actions—Explosions in Bala Hissar


410
[page xvii] CHAPTER LIII

Afghans afraid to befriend us—Kabul Russianized—Yakub Khan's abdication accepted—State treasury taken over

Afghans scared to become friends with us—Kabul became influenced by Russia—Yakub Khan's resignation accepted—State treasury seized


418
CHAPTER LIV

The amnesty Proclamation—Strength of the Kabul Field Force—Yakub Khan despatched to India

The amnesty proclamation—Strength of the Kabul Field Force—Yakub Khan sent to India


424
CHAPTER LV

Political situation at Kabul—Serious trouble ahead—Macpherson attacks the Kohistanis—Combined movements—The uncertainty of war—The fight in the Chardeh valley—Forced to retire—Padre Adams earns the V.C.—Macpherson's column arrives—The captured guns recovered—Melancholy reflections

Political situation in Kabul—Serious trouble ahead—Macpherson attacks the Kohistanis—Combined movements—The uncertainty of war—The fight in the Chardeh valley—Forced to retreat—Padre Adams earns the V.C.—Macpherson's column arrives—The captured guns recovered—Melancholy reflections


428
CHAPTER LVI

Attack on the Takht-i-Shah—City people join the tribesmen—Increasing numbers of the enemy—Loss of the conical hill—Captain Vousden's gallantry—The retirement to Sherpur

Attack on the Takht-i-Shah—City residents rally with the tribesmen—Growing enemy numbers—Loss of the conical hill—Captain Vousden's bravery—The retreat to Sherpur


441
CHAPTER LVII

Sherpur—Defence of Sherpur—Arrest of Daud Shah—Rumours of an assault—Attack and counter-attack—Communication with India re-opened—Sherpur made safe

Sherpur—Defense of Sherpur—Arrest of Daud Shah—Rumors of an attack—Attack and counter-attack—Communication with India reopened—Sherpur secured


448
CHAPTER LVIII

Two important questions—A Ruler required—News of Abdur Rahman Khan—Abdur Rahman in Afghan-Turkestan—Overtures made to Abdur Rahman

Two important questions—A Ruler needed—News about Abdur Rahman Khan—Abdur Rahman in Afghan-Turkestan—Attempts to reach out to Abdur Rahman


456
CHAPTER LIX

Jenkins attacked near Charasia—Sir Donald Stewart reaches Kabul—Difficulties with Abdur Rahman—Abdur Rahman proclaimed Amir

Jenkins was ambushed near Charasia—Sir Donald Stewart arrives in Kabul—Challenges with Abdur Rahman—Abdur Rahman is declared Amir


462
CHAPTER LX

Affairs at Kandahar—The Maiwand disaster—Relief from Kabul suggested—A force ordered from Kabul—Preparations for the march—The Kabul-Kandahar Field Force—Commissariat and Transport

Affairs at Kandahar—The Maiwand disaster—Relief from Kabul suggested—A force ordered from Kabul—Preparations for the march—The Kabul-Kandahar Field Force—Commissariat and Transport


468
CHAPTER LXI

The order of marching—Ghazni and Kelat-i-Ghilzai—Food required daily for the force—A letter from General Phayre—Kandahar—Reconnoitring the enemy's position—A turning movement

The order of marching—Ghazni and Kelat-i-Ghilzai—Food needed daily for the troops—A letter from General Phayre—Kandahar—Scouting the enemy's position—A flanking maneuver


478
[page xviii] CHAPTER LXII

Commencement of the fight—72nd Highlanders and 2nd Sikhs—92nd Highlanders and 2nd Gurkhas—Ayub Khan's camp—Difficulties about supplies—Parting with the troops—A pleasing memory

Commencement of the fight—72nd Highlanders and 2nd Sikhs—92nd Highlanders and 2nd Gurkhas—Ayub Khan's camp—Challenges with supplies—Saying goodbye to the troops—A fond memory


487
CHAPTER LXIII

Reception in England—A fruitless journey—Andaman Isles and Burma—The Madras Army—Measures for improving the Madras Army—Memories of Madras—An allegory

Reception in England—A pointless trip—Andaman Islands and Burma—The Madras Army—Steps to enhance the Madras Army—Memories of Madras—A metaphor


495
CHAPTER LXIV

Disturbing action of Russia—Abdur Rahman Khan
—The Rawal Pindi Durbar
—Unmistakable loyalty of the Natives

Disturbing actions by Russia—Abdur Rahman Khan
—The Rawalpindi Durbar
—Clear loyalty of the Natives


503
CHAPTER LXV

The Burma expedition—The Camp of Exercise at Delhi—Defence of the North-West Frontier—Quetta and Peshawar—Communications versus fortifications—Sir George Chesney

The Burma expedition—The Training Camp at Delhi—Defense of the North-West Frontier—Quetta and Peshawar—Communications vs. fortifications—Sir George Chesney


507
CHAPTER LXVI

Nursing for the soldier—Pacification of Burma considered—Measures recommended—The Buddhist priesthood—The Regimental Institute—The Army Temperance Association

Nursing for the soldier—Review of the situation in Burma considered—Recommended actions—The Buddhist priesthood—The Regimental Institute—The Army Temperance Association


514
CHAPTER LXVII

Defence and Mobilization Committees—The Transport Department—Utilization of Native States' armies—Marquis of Lansdowne becomes Viceroy—Rajputana and Kashmir—Musketry instruction—Artillery and Cavalry training

Defence and Mobilization Committees—The Transport Department—Using the armies of Native States—Marquis of Lansdowne becomes Viceroy—Rajputana and Kashmir—Rifle training—Artillery and Cavalry training


521
CHAPTER LXVIII

Extension of command—Efficiency of the Native Army—Concessions to the Native Army—Officering of the Native Army—The Hunza-Naga campaign—Visit to Nepal—A Nepalese entertainment—Proposed mission to the Amir—A last tour—Farewell entertainments—Last days in India

Extension of command—Efficiency of the Native Army—Concessions to the Native Army—Officering of the Native Army—The Hunza-Naga campaign—Visit to Nepal—A Nepalese entertainment—Proposed mission to the Amir—A final tour—Farewell entertainment—Last days in India


529
APPENDIX

544
INDEX
581





[plate 3] Piewar Kotal.

PIEWAR KOTAL.

PIEWAR KOTAL.









LIST OF ILLUSTRATIONS




I.  

PORTRAIT OF FIELD-MARSHAL LORD ROBERTS

(From a Photograph by Bourne and Shepherd, Simla, engraved upon wood by W. Cheshire)

(From a Photograph by Bourne and Shepherd, Simla, engraved on wood by W. Cheshire)


PAGE
Frontispiece
II.   THE KASHMIR GATE AT DELHI

Over List of Contents
III.   THE PEIWAR KOTAL

Over List of Illustrations
IV.   PORTRAIT OF GENERAL SIR ABRAHAM ROBERTS, G.C.B.

(From a Photograph, engraved upon wood by W. Cheshire)

(From a Photograph, engraved on wood by W. Cheshire)


To face page 10
V.   PORTRAIT OF BRIGADIER-GENERAL JOHN NICHOLSON, C.B.

(From a Painting by J.R. Dicksee in possession of the Rev. Canon Seymour, engraved upon wood by George Pearson)

(From a Painting by J.R. Dicksee in possession of Rev. Canon Seymour, engraved on wood by George Pearson)


To face page 32
VI.   PORTRAIT OF MAJOR-GENERAL SIR HARRY TOMBS, V.C., G.C.B.

(From a Photograph by Messrs. Grillet and Co., engraved upon wood by Swain)

(From a photo by Grillet and Co., engraved on wood by Swain)


To face page 84
VII.   PORTRAIT OF LIEUTENANT-GENERAL SIR JAMES HILLS-JOHNES, V.C., G.C.B.

(From a Photograph by Messrs. Bourne and Shepherd, engraved upon wood by George Pearson)

(From a photograph by Bourne and Shepherd, engraved on wood by George Pearson)


To face page 96
VIII.  [page xx] PORTRAIT OF FIELD-MARSHAL SIR DONALD MARTIN STEWART, BART., G.C.B., G.C.S.I., C.I.E.

(From a Photograph by Messrs. Elliott and Fry, engraved upon wood by George Pearson)

(From a Photograph by Elliott and Fry, engraved on wood by George Pearson)


To face page 98
IX.   PLAN OF THE ENGAGEMENT AT NAJAFGARH.

(From a Plan made by Lieutenant Geneste, by permission of Messrs. Wm. Blackwood and Sons)

(From a plan created by Lieutenant Geneste, with permission from Messrs. Wm. Blackwood and Sons)


To face page 116
X.   PLAN TO ILLUSTRATE THE SIEGE AND ATTACK OF DELHI, IN 1857

To face page 140
XI.   PORTRAITS OF GENERAL SIR COLIN CAMPBELL (LORD CLYDE) AND MAJOR-GENERAL SIR WILLIAM MANSFIELD (LORD SANDHURST).

(From a Photograph taken in India, engraved upon wood by George Pearson)

(From a Photograph taken in India, engraved on wood by George Pearson)


To face page 166
XII.   PORTRAIT OF MAJOR-GENERAL SIR JAMES OUTRAM, G.C.B.

(From a Painting by Thomas Brigstocke, R.A., engraved upon wood by George Pearson)

(From a Painting by Thomas Brigstocke, R.A., engraved on wood by George Pearson)


To face page 188
XIII.   PORTRAIT OF BRIGADIER-GENERAL SIR HENRY LAWRENCE, K.C.B.

(From a Photograph taken at Lucknow, engraved upon wood by Swain)

(From a photograph taken in Lucknow, engraved on wood by Swain)


To face page 194
XIV.   PLAN TO ILLUSTRATE THE RELIEF OF LUCKNOW, IN 1857

To face page 198
XV.   PLAN OF CAWNPORE

To face page 208
XVI.   PLAN OF THE ENGAGEMENT AT KHUDAGANJ

To face page 214
XVII.   PORTRAIT OF GENERAL SIR SAMUEL BROWNE, V.C., G.C.B., K.C.S.I.

(From a Photograph by Messrs. Elliott and Fry, engraved upon wood by George Pearson)

(From a photograph by Elliott and Fry, engraved on wood by George Pearson)


To face page 228
XVIII.   PLAN TO ILLUSTRATE THE SIEGE AND CAPTURE OF LUCKNOW, IN 1858

To face page 230
XIX.   PORTRAIT OF LADY ROBERTS (WIFE OF SIR ABRAHAM ROBERTS).

(From a Sketch by Carpenter, engraved upon wood by W. Cheshire)

(From a Sketch by Carpenter, engraved on wood by W. Cheshire)


To face page 252
XX.   PORTRAIT OF HIS EXCELLENCY EARL CANNING, K.G., G.C.B., G.M.S.I., VICEROY AND GOVERNOR-GENERAL OF INDIA.

(From a Photograph by Messrs. Mayall, engraved upon wood by Swain)

(From a Photograph by Messrs. Mayall, engraved on wood by Swain)


To face page 278
XXI.   THE STORMING OF THE CONICAL HILL AT UMBEYLA BY THE 101ST FOOT (BENGAL FUSILIERS).

(From a Sketch by General Sir John Adye, G.C.B., R.A., engraved upon wood by W. Cheshire)

(From a sketch by General Sir John Adye, G.C.B., R.A., engraved on wood by W. Cheshire)


To face page 288
XXII.   [page xxi] PORTRAIT OF FIELD-MARSHAL LORD NAPIER OF MAGDALA, G.C.B., G.C.S.I.

(From a Photograph by Messrs. Maull and Fox, engraved upon wood by W. Cheshire)

(From a Photograph by Maull and Fox, engraved on wood by W. Cheshire)


To face page 328
XXIII.   PORTRAIT OF HIS EXCELLENCY THE EARL OF LYTTON, G.C.B., G.M.S.I., G.M.I.E., VICEROY OF INDIA.

(From a Photograph by Messrs. Maull and Fox, engraved upon wood by George Pearson)

(From a Photograph by Maull and Fox, engraved on wood by George Pearson)


To face page 334
XXIV.   THE ATTACK ON THE PEIWAR KOTAL.

(From a Painting by Vereker Hamilton, engraved upon wood by George Pearson)

(From a Painting by Vereker Hamilton, engraved on wood by George Pearson)


To face page 356
XXV.   GENERAL ROBERTS'S GURKHA ORDERLIES.

(From a Water-colour Sketch by Colonel Woodthorpe, C.B., R.E., engraved upon wood by W. Cheshire

(From a Water-color Sketch by Colonel Woodthorpe, C.B., R.E., engraved on wood by W. Cheshire)


To face page 360
XXVI.   GENERAL ROBERTS'S SIKH ORDERLIES.

(From a Water-colour Sketch by Colonel Woodthorpe, C.B., R.E., engraved upon wood by W. Cheshire

(From a Water-colour Sketch by Colonel Woodthorpe, C.B., R.E., engraved on wood by W. Cheshire)


To face page 362
XXVII.   ONE OF GENERAL ROBERTS'S PATHAN ORDERLIES.

(From a Water-colour Sketch by Colonel Woodthorpe, C.B., R.E., engraved upon wood by W. Cheshire)

(From a Watercolor Sketch by Colonel Woodthorpe, C.B., R.E., engraved on wood by W. Cheshire)


To face page 364
XXVIII.   ONE OF GENERAL ROBERTS'S PATHAN ORDERLIES.

(From a Water-colour Sketch by Colonel Woodthorpe, C.B., R.E., engraved upon wood by W. Cheshire)

(From a Water-colour Sketch by Colonel Woodthorpe, C.B., R.E., engraved on wood by W. Cheshire)


To face page 366
XXIX.   THE ENTRANCE TO THE BALA HISSAR—THE LAHORE GATE AT KABUL.

(From a Photograph, engraved upon wood by W. Cheshire)

(From a Photograph, engraved on wood by W. Cheshire)


To face page 412
XXX.   SKETCH SHOWING THE OPERATIONS IN THE CHARDEH VALLEY ON DECEMBER 10TH AND 11TH, 1879

To face page 440
XXXI.   PLAN TO ILLUSTRATE THE DEFENCES OF SHERPUR AND THE OPERATIONS ROUND KABUL IN DECEMBER, 1879

To face page 454
XXXII.   CROSSING THE ZAMBURAK KOTAL.

(From a Painting by the Chevalier Desanges, engraved upon wood by W. Cheshire)

(From a painting by Chevalier Desanges, engraved on wood by W. Cheshire)


To face page 480
XXXIII.   PLAN OF THE ROUTE TAKEN FROM KABUL TO KANDAHAR

To face page 484
XXXIV.   SKETCH OF THE BATTLE-FIELD OF KANDAHAR

To face page 492
XXXV.  [page xxii] PORTRAITS OF THE THREE COMMANDERS-IN-CHIEF IN INDIA (SIR DONALD STEWART, SIR FREDERICK ROBERTS, AND SIR ARTHUR HARDINGE).

(From a Photograph, engraved upon wood by Swain)

(From a Photograph, engraved on wood by Swain)


To face page 500
XXXVI.   PORTRAIT OF HIS EXCELLENCY THE MARQUIS OF DUFFERIN AND AVA, K.P., G.C.B., G.C.M.G., G.M.S.I., G.M.I.E., F.R.S., VICEROY OF INDIA.

(From an engraving by the Fine Art Society of a portrait by the late Frank Holl, R.A., re-engraved upon wood by George Pearson)

(From an engraving by the Fine Art Society of a portrait by the late Frank Holl, R.A., re-engraved on wood by George Pearson)


To face page 502
XXXVII.   PORTRAIT OF HIS HIGHNESS ABDUR RAHMAN, AMIR OF AFGHANISTAN.

(From a Photograph, engraved upon wood by Swain)

(From a Photograph, engraved on wood by Swain)


To face page 504
XXXVIII.   MAP OF CENTRAL ASIA

To face page 506
XXXIX.   PORTRAIT OF LADY ROBERTS OF KANDAHAR.

(From a Photograph by Messrs. Johnson and Hoffmann, engraved upon wood by George Pearson)

(From a Photograph by Johnson and Hoffmann, engraved on wood by George Pearson)


To face page 514
XL.   PORTRAIT OF HIS EXCELLENCY THE MARQUESS OF LANSDOWNE, K.G., G.C.M.G., G.M.S.I., G.M.I.E., VICEROY OF INDIA.

(From a Photograph by Messrs. Cowell, Simla, engraved upon wood by Swain)

(From a photograph by Cowell, Simla, engraved on wood by Swain)


To face page 524
XLI.   PORTRAIT OF FIELD-MARSHAL LORD ROBERTS ON HIS ARAB CHARGER 'VONOLEL.'

(From an Oil-painting by Charles Furse, made from an Instantaneous Photograph, and engraved upon wood by E. Whymper)

(From an oil painting by Charles Furse, created from a snapshot, and engraved on wood by E. Whymper)


To face page 530







FORTY-ONE YEARS IN INDIA.






CHAPTER I.

Forty years ago the departure of a cadet for India was a much more1852 serious affair than it is at present. Under the regulations then in force, leave, except on medical certificate, could only be obtained once during the whole of an officer's service, and ten years had to be spent in India before that leave could be taken. Small wonder, then, that I felt as if I were bidding England farewell for ever when, on the 20th February, 1852, I set sail from Southampton with Calcutta for my destination. Steamers in those days ran to and from India but once a month, and the fleet employed was only capable of transporting some 2,400 passengers in the course of a year. This does not include the Cape route; but even taking that into consideration, I should doubt whether there were then as many travellers to India in a year as there are now in a fortnight at the busy season.

Forty years ago, leaving for India as a cadet was a much bigger deal than it is today. Back then, the rules stated that officers could only take leave once during their entire service, unless it was for medical reasons, and they had to spend ten years in India before they could take that leave. So, it’s no surprise that I felt like I was saying goodbye to England forever when I set sail from Southampton for Calcutta on February 20, 1852. Back then, steamers only traveled to and from India once a month, and the fleet could only carry about 2,400 passengers a year. This doesn’t even count the Cape route; but even with that in mind, I doubt there were as many travelers to India in a year then as there are now in just a couple of weeks during peak season.

My ship was the Peninsular and Oriental Company's steamer Ripon, commanded by Captain Moresby, an ex-officer of the Indian Navy, in which he had earned distinction by his survey of the Red Sea. A few Addiscombe friends were on board, leaving England under the same depressing circumstances as myself, and what with wind and weather, and the thought that at the best we were bidding farewell to home and relations for ten long years, we were anything but a cheerful party for the first few days of the voyage. Youth and high spirits had, however, re-asserted themselves long before Alexandria, which place we reached without incident beyond the customary halts for coaling at Gibraltar and Malta. At Alexandria we bade adieu to Captain Moresby, who had been most kind and attentive, and whose graphic accounts of the difficulties he had had to overcome whilst mastering the navigation of the Red Sea served to while away many a tedious hour.

My ship was the Peninsular and Oriental Company's steamer Ripon, captained by Captain Moresby, a former officer of the Indian Navy, where he gained recognition for his survey of the Red Sea. A few friends from Addiscombe were on board, leaving England under the same gloomy circumstances as I was, and with the wind and weather, along with the knowledge that we were saying goodbye to home and family for ten long years, we were definitely not a cheerful group during the first few days of the journey. However, youth and high spirits bounced back well before we reached Alexandria, which we arrived at without any incidents apart from the usual stops for coaling at Gibraltar and Malta. In Alexandria, we said our goodbyes to Captain Moresby, who had been very kind and attentive, and his vivid stories about the challenges he faced while navigating the Red Sea filled many boring hours.

On landing at Alexandria, we were hurried on board a large mast-less canal boat, shaped like a Nile dahabeah. In this we were towed[Page 2] up the Mahmoudieh canal for ten hours, until we arrived at Atfieh, on the Nile; thence we proceeded by steamer, reaching Cairo in about sixteen hours. Here we put up at Shepherd's Hotel for a couple of days, which were most enjoyable, especially to those of the party who, like myself, saw an eastern city and its picturesque and curious bazaars for the first time. From Cairo the route lay across the desert for ninety miles, the road being merely a cutting in the sand, quite undistinguishable at night. The journey was performed in a conveyance closely resembling a bathing-machine, which accommodated six people, and was drawn by four mules. My five fellow-travellers were all cadets, only one of whom (Colonel John Stewart, of Ardvorlich, Perthshire) is now alive. The transit took some eighteen hours, with an occasional halt for refreshments. Our baggage was carried on camels, as were the mails, cargo, and even the coal for the Red Sea steamers.

Upon arriving in Alexandria, we were quickly ushered onto a large canal boat without a mast, shaped like a Nile dahabeah. We were towed[Page 2] up the Mahmoudieh canal for ten hours until we reached Atfieh on the Nile. From there, we continued by steamer, arriving in Cairo in about sixteen hours. We stayed at Shepherd's Hotel for a couple of days, which was very enjoyable, especially for those in our group, like me, who were seeing an eastern city and its fascinating and vibrant bazaars for the first time. From Cairo, the route took us across the desert for ninety miles, with the road just a trench in the sand, barely visible at night. The journey was made in a vehicle resembling a bathing machine, which could fit six people and was pulled by four mules. My five fellow travelers were all cadets, and only one of them (Colonel John Stewart, from Ardvorlich, Perthshire) is still alive. The trip took about eighteen hours, with occasional breaks for refreshments. Our luggage was transported on camels, along with the mail, cargo, and even the coal for the Red Sea steamers.

On arrival at Suez we found awaiting us the Oriental, commanded by Captain Powell. A number of people met us there who had left England a month before we did; but their steamer having broken down, they had now to be accommodated on board ours. We were thus very inconveniently crowded until we arrived at Aden, where several of the passengers left us for Bombay. We were not, however, much inclined to complain, as some of our new associates proved themselves decided acquisitions. Amongst them was Mr. (afterwards Sir Barnes) Peacock, an immense favourite with all on board, and more particularly with us lads. He was full of fun, and although then forty-seven years old, and on his way to Calcutta to join the Governor-General's Council, he took part in our amusements as if he were of the same age as ourselves. His career in India was brilliant, and on the expiration of his term of office as member of Council he was made Chief Justice of Bengal. Another of the passengers was Colonel (afterwards Sir John Bloomfield) Gough, who died not long ago in Ireland, and was then on his way to take up his appointment as Quartermaster-General of Queen's troops. He had served in the 3rd Light Dragoons and on the staff of his cousin, Lord Gough, during the Sutlej and Punjab campaigns, and was naturally an object of the deepest veneration to all the youngsters on board.

Upon arriving in Suez, we found the Oriental, captained by Captain Powell, waiting for us. A group of people who had left England a month earlier were also there; however, since their steamer had broken down, they needed to be accommodated on our ship. This made things quite crowded for us until we reached Aden, where several passengers disembarked for Bombay. Yet, we weren't inclined to complain, as some of our new companions turned out to be great additions. Among them was Mr. (later Sir Barnes) Peacock, who was immensely popular with everyone on board, especially with us younger passengers. He was full of energy, and although he was forty-seven years old and heading to Calcutta to join the Governor-General's Council, he engaged in our activities as if he were our age. His career in India was remarkable, and after his term on the Council, he became Chief Justice of Bengal. Another passenger was Colonel (later Sir John Bloomfield) Gough, who just passed away not long ago in Ireland. At that time, he was on his way to start his role as Quartermaster-General of the Queen's troops. He had served in the 3rd Light Dragoons and was on the staff of his cousin, Lord Gough, during the Sutlej and Punjab campaigns, earning him deep respect from all the younger crew members on board.

At Madras we stopped to land passengers, and I took this opportunity of going on shore to see some old Addiscombe friends, most of whom were greatly excited at the prospect of a war in Burma. The transports were then actually lying in the Madras roads, and a few days later this portion of the expedition started for Rangoon.

At Madras, we stopped to let passengers off, and I took the chance to go ashore to visit some old friends from Addiscombe, most of whom were really excited about the possibility of a war in Burma. The transports were actually anchored in the Madras roads, and a few days later, this part of the expedition set off for Rangoon.

At last, on the 1st April, we reached Calcutta, and I had to say good-bye to the friends I had made during the six weeks' voyage, most of whom I was never to meet again.

At last, on April 1st, we arrived in Calcutta, and I had to say goodbye to the friends I had made during the six-week journey, most of whom I would never see again.

Life in Calcutta On landing, I received a letter from my father, who commanded the Lahore division, informing me that the proprietor of Spence's Hotel[Page 3] had been instructed to receive me, and that I had better put up there until I reported myself at the Head-Quarters of the Bengal Artillery at Dum-Dum. This was chilling news, for I was the only one of our party who had to go to a hotel on landing. The Infantry cadets had either been taken charge of by the Town Major, who provided them with quarters in Fort William, or had gone to stay with friends, and the only other Artilleryman (Stewart) went direct to Dum-Dum, where he had a brother, also a gunner, who, poor follow, was murdered with his young wife five years later by the mutineers at Gwalior. I was still more depressed later on by finding myself at dinner tête-à-tête with a first-class specimen of the results of an Indian climate. He belonged to my own regiment, and was going home on medical certificate, but did not look as if he could ever reach England. He gave me the not too pleasing news that by staying in that dreary hotel, instead of proceeding direct to Dum-Dum, I had lost a day's service and pay, so I took care to join early the following morning.

Life in Kolkata When I arrived, I got a letter from my father, who was in charge of the Lahore division, letting me know that the owner of Spence's Hotel[Page 3] was told to expect me, and that I should stay there until I checked in at the Bengal Artillery Headquarters in Dum-Dum. This news was unsettling because I was the only one in our group who had to go to a hotel upon arrival. The Infantry cadets were either taken care of by the Town Major, who set them up with lodgings in Fort William, or went to stay with friends, while the only other Artilleryman (Stewart) headed straight to Dum-Dum, where his brother, another gunner, tragically would be killed five years later along with his young wife by mutineers in Gwalior. I felt even more downcast later that night when I found myself having dinner alone with a prime example of the toll the Indian climate can take. He was from my regiment and was heading home on a medical certificate, but he looked like he might never make it back to England. He also informed me, which wasn't particularly encouraging, that by staying in that miserable hotel instead of going straight to Dum-Dum, I had lost a day's service and pay, so I made sure to join up early the next morning.

A few years before, Dum-Dum had been a large military station, but the annexation of the Punjab, and the necessity for maintaining a considerable force in northern India, had greatly reduced the garrison. Even the small force that remained had embarked for Burma before my arrival, so that, instead of a large, cheery mess party, to which I had been looking forward, I sat down to dinner with only one other subaltern.

A few years earlier, Dum-Dum had been a major military base, but the takeover of the Punjab and the need to keep a significant troop presence in northern India had cut the garrison down considerably. Even the small number of soldiers that stayed behind had left for Burma before I got there, so instead of the big, lively mess gathering I had been anticipating, I found myself having dinner with just one other junior officer.

No time was lost in appointing me to a Native Field Battery, and I was put through the usual laboratory course as a commencement to my duties. The life was dull in the extreme, the only variety being an occasional week in Fort William, where my sole duty was to superintend the firing of salutes. Nor was there much in my surroundings to compensate for the prosaic nature of my work. Fort William was not then what it has since become—one of the healthiest stations in India. Quite the contrary. The men were crowded into small badly-ventilated buildings, and the sanitary arrangements were as deplorable as the state of the water supply. The only efficient scavengers were the huge birds of prey called adjutants, and so great was the dependence placed upon the exertions of these unclean creatures, that the young cadets were warned that any injury done to them would be treated as gross misconduct. The inevitable result of this state of affairs was endemic sickness, and a death-rate of over ten per cent. per annum.1

No time was wasted in assigning me to a Native Field Battery, and I began the usual training as the start of my duties. The life was incredibly dull, with the only change being an occasional week at Fort William, where my only responsibility was to supervise the firing of salutes. There wasn't much in my surroundings to make up for the monotonous nature of my work. Fort William was not what it has become today—one of the healthiest stations in India. In fact, it was quite the opposite. The men were crammed into small, poorly-ventilated buildings, and the sanitary conditions were as bad as the state of the water supply. The only effective waste collectors were the large scavenger birds called adjutants, and there was such a reliance on these unclean creatures that young cadets were warned that any harm done to them would be treated as serious misconduct. The inevitable result of this situation was ongoing illness and a death rate of over ten percent per year.1

Calcutta outside the Fort was but a dreary place to fall back upon.[Page 4] It was wretchedly lighted by smoky oil-lamps set at very rare intervals. The slow and cumbrous palankin was the ordinary means of conveyance, and, as far as I was concerned, the vaunted hospitality of the Anglo-Indian was conspicuous by its absence.

Calcutta outside the Fort was just a dull place to retreat to.[Page 4] It was poorly lit by smoky oil lamps placed very infrequently. The slow and heavy palanquin was the usual way to get around, and, as far as I was concerned, the so-called hospitality of the Anglo-Indians was noticeably lacking.

I must confess I was disappointed at being left so completely to myself, especially by the senior military officers, many of whom were personally known to my father, who had, I was aware, written to some of them on my behalf. Under these circumstances, I think it is hardly to be wondered at that I became terribly home-sick, and convinced that I could never be happy in India. Worst of all, the prospects of promotion seemed absolutely hopeless; I was a supernumerary Second Lieutenant, and nearly every officer in the list of the Bengal Artillery had served over fifteen years as a subaltern. This stagnation extended to every branch of the Indian Army.

I have to admit I was really let down to be left all alone, especially by the senior military officers, many of whom personally knew my father, who, as I found out, had written to some of them on my behalf. Given these circumstances, it’s not surprising that I became incredibly homesick and convinced that I could never be happy in India. To make matters worse, the chances for promotion seemed completely hopeless; I was an extra Second Lieutenant, and nearly every officer in the Bengal Artillery had served over fifteen years as a junior officer. This stagnation was common across every branch of the Indian Army.

A destructive cyclone There were singularly few incidents to enliven this unpromising stage of my career. I do, however, remember one rather notable experience which came to me at that time, in the form of a bad cyclone. I was dining out on the night in question. Gradually the wind grew higher and higher, and it became evident that we were in for a storm of no ordinary kind. Consequently, I left my friend's house early. A Native servant, carrying a lantern, accompanied me to light me on my way. At an angle of the road a sudden gust of wind extinguished the light. The servant, who, like most Natives, was quite at home in the dark, walked on, believing that I was following in his wake. I shouted to him as loudly as I could, but the uproar was so terrific that he could not hear a word, and there was nothing for it but to try and make my own way home. The darkness was profound. As I was walking carefully along, I suddenly came in contact with an object, which a timely flash of lightning showed me was a column, standing in exactly the opposite direction from my own house. I could now locate myself correctly, and the lightning becoming every moment more vivid, I was enabled to grope my way by slow degrees to the mess, where I expected to find someone to show me my way home, but the servants, who knew from experience the probable effects of a cyclone, had already closed the outside Venetian shutters and barred all the doors. I could just see them through the cracks engaged in making everything fast. In vain I banged at the door and called at the top of my voice—they heard nothing. Reluctantly I became convinced that there was no alternative but to leave my shelter and face the rapidly increasing storm once more. My bungalow was not more than half a mile away, but it took me an age to accomplish this short distance, as I was only able to move a few steps at a time whenever[Page 5] the lightning showed me the way. It was necessary to be careful, as the road was raised, with a deep ditch on either side; several trees had already been blown down, and lay across it, and huge branches were being driven through the air like thistle-down. I found extreme difficulty in keeping my feet, especially at the cross-roads, where I was more than once all but blown over. At last I reached my house, but even then my struggles were not quite at an end. It was a very long time before I could gain admittance. The servant who had been carrying the lantern had arrived, and, missing me, imagined that I must have returned to the house at which I had dined. The men with whom I chummed, thinking it unlikely that I should make a second attempt to return home, had carefully fastened all the doors, momentarily expecting the roof of the house to be blown off. I had to continue hammering and shouting for a long time before they heard and admitted me, thankful to be comparatively safe inside a house.

A destructive hurricane There were very few events to spice up this dull period of my career. However, I do remember one pretty significant experience I had back then, involving a bad cyclone. I was out to dinner that night. Gradually, the wind started picking up, and it became clear that we were in for an extraordinary storm. So, I left my friend's house early. A local servant, holding a lantern, came with me to light my way. At a turn in the road, a sudden gust of wind blew out the light. The servant, like most locals, was used to the dark and continued walking, thinking I was right behind him. I yelled as loud as I could, but the noise was so overwhelming that he couldn't hear me, and I had no choice but to try to find my way home on my own. It was pitch black. As I carefully walked along, I unexpectedly bumped into something, which a flash of lightning revealed to be a pillar, pointing in the completely wrong direction from my house. Now I could get my bearings, and with the lightning becoming increasingly bright, I managed to slowly make my way to the mess, where I hoped to find someone who could help me get home, but the staff, knowing from experience what a cyclone could do, had already shut the outside shutters and locked all the doors. I could barely see them through the cracks as they were securing everything. I banged on the door and shouted at the top of my lungs, but they heard nothing. Reluctantly, I realized I had no choice but to leave my shelter and face the rapidly intensifying storm again. My bungalow was only half a mile away, but it took forever to cover that short distance, as I could only move a few steps at a time whenever the lightning lit the path. I had to be cautious because the road was elevated, with deep ditches on either side; several trees had already been knocked down, blocking the way, and huge branches were flying through the air like dandelion fluff. I struggled to stay on my feet, especially at the intersections, where I almost got knocked over more than once. Finally, I reached my house, but even then, my struggles weren’t quite over. It took a long time before I could get inside. The servant who had been carrying the lantern had returned and, not finding me, assumed I must have gone back to the house where I had eaten. The guys I hung out with, thinking it was unlikely I’d try to come back home again, had securely locked all the doors, expecting the roof to be blown off any minute. I kept pounding and shouting for a long time before they finally heard me and let me in, relieved to be relatively safe inside the house.

By morning the worst of the storm was over, but not before great damage had been done. The Native bazaar was completely wrecked, looking as if it had suffered a furious bombardment, and great havoc had been made amongst the European houses, not a single verandah or outside shutter being left in the station. As I walked to the mess, I found the road almost impassable from fallen trees; and dead birds, chiefly crows and kites, were so numerous that they had to be carried off in cartloads. How I had made my way to my bungalow without accident the night before was difficult to imagine. Even the column against which I had stumbled was levelled by the fury of the blast. This column had been raised a few years before to the memory of the officers and men of the 1st Troop, 1st Brigade, Bengal Horse Artillery, who were killed in the disastrous retreat from Kabul in 1841. It was afterwards rebuilt.

By morning, the worst of the storm had passed, but not before it caused significant damage. The Native bazaar was completely destroyed, looking like it had been hit by a fierce bombing, and there was major destruction among the European houses, with not a single verandah or outside shutter left intact in the station. As I walked to the mess, I found the road nearly blocked by fallen trees; dead birds, mainly crows and kites, were so numerous that they had to be removed in cartloads. It's hard to believe I made it to my bungalow without any accidents the night before. Even the column I had bumped into was knocked down by the force of the wind. This column had been erected a few years earlier in memory of the officers and men of the 1st Troop, 1st Brigade, Bengal Horse Artillery, who died during the disastrous retreat from Kabul in 1841. It was later rebuilt.

Dum-Dum in ruins was even more dreary than before the cyclone, and I felt as if I could not possibly continue to live there much longer. Accordingly I wrote to my father, begging him to try and get me sent to Burma; but he replied that he hoped soon to get command of the Peshawar division, and that he would then like me to join him. Thus, though my desire to quit Dum-Dum was not to be immediately gratified, I was buoyed up by the hope that a definite limit had now been placed to my service in that, to me, uninteresting part of India, and my restlessness and discontent disappeared as if by magic.

Dum-Dum in ruins was even more depressing than before the cyclone, and I felt like I couldn't possibly stay there much longer. So, I wrote to my dad, asking him to try and get me sent to Burma; but he replied that he hoped to soon be in charge of the Peshawar division, and he would like me to join him then. Even though I couldn't leave Dum-Dum right away, I was comforted by the thought that my time in that, to me, uninteresting part of India, would eventually come to an end, and my restlessness and discontent vanished as if by magic.

Home-sickness In time of peace, as in war, or during a cholera epidemic, a soldier's moral condition is infinitely more important than his physical surroundings, and it is in this respect, I think, that the subaltern of the present day has an advantage over the youngster of forty years ago. The life of a young officer during his first few months of exile, before he has fallen into the ways of his new life and made friends for himself, can never be very happy; but in these days he is encouraged by the feeling[Page 6] that, however distasteful, it need not necessarily last very long; and he can look forward to a rapid and easy return to England and friends at no very distant period. At the time I am writing of he could not but feel completely cut off from all that had hitherto formed his chief interests in life—his family and his friends—for ten years is an eternity to the young, and the feeling of loneliness and home-sickness was apt to become almost insupportable.

Homesickness In times of peace, just like in war or during a cholera outbreak, a soldier's mental state is far more significant than his physical environment. This is where today's junior officer has an edge over someone from forty years ago. The life of a young officer during his first few months away from home, before he adapts to his new lifestyle and makes friends, can be quite unhappy. However, nowadays he is reassured by the thought that, despite how unpleasant it is, it won't last long; he can look forward to a quick and easy return to England and his friends in the not-so-distant future. At the time I’m writing about, he felt entirely disconnected from what had previously been his main interests in life—his family and friends—because ten years feels like an eternity when you're young, and the sense of isolation and homesickness could become nearly unbearable.

The climate added its depressing influence; there was no going to the hills then, and as the weary months dragged on, the young stranger became more and more dispirited and hopeless. Such was my case. I had only been four months in India, but it seemed like four years. My joy, therefore, was unbounded when at last my marching orders arrived. Indeed, the idea that I was about to proceed to that grand field of soldierly activity, the North-West Frontier, and there join my father, almost reconciled me to the disappointment of losing my chance of field service in Burma. My arrangements were soon made, and early in August I bade a glad good-bye to Dum-Dum.

The weather really took a toll on everyone; there was no chance to escape to the hills, and as the long months dragged on, the young newcomer became increasingly downhearted and hopeless. That was me. I had only been in India for four months, but it felt like four years. So when my marching orders finally came, I was overjoyed. The thought of heading to that prime area for soldiers, the North-West Frontier, to join my father, almost made me forget the disappointment of missing out on field service in Burma. I quickly made my plans, and early in August, I happily said goodbye to Dum-Dum.






CHAPTER II.

When I went to India the mode of travelling was almost as primitive1852 as it had been a hundred, and probably five hundred, years before. Private individuals for the most part used palankins, while officers, regiments, and drafts were usually sent up country by the river route as far as Cawnpore. It was necessarily a slow mode of progression—how slow may be imagined from the fact that it took me nearly three months to get from Dum-Dum to Peshawar, a distance now traversed with the greatest ease and comfort in as many days. As far as Benares I travelled in a barge towed by a steamer—a performance which took the best part of a month to accomplish. From Benares to Allahabad it was a pleasant change to get upon wheels, a horse-dâk having been recently established between these two places. At Allahabad I was most kindly received by Mr. Lowther, the Commissioner, an old friend of my father's, in whose house I experienced for the first time that profuse hospitality for which Anglo-Indians are proverbial. I was much surprised and amused by the circumstance of my host smoking a hookah even at meals, for he was one of the few Englishmen who still indulged in that luxury, as it was then considered. The sole duty of one servant, called the hookah-bardar, was to prepare the pipe for his master, and to have it ready at all times.

When I traveled to India, the way people got around was almost as basic1852 as it had been a hundred, or even five hundred, years earlier. Most private individuals used palanquins, while officers, regiments, and drafts were usually sent upcountry via the river route as far as Cawnpore. This method of travel was necessarily slow—it's hard to imagine just how slow from the fact that it took me nearly three months to get from Dum-Dum to Peshawar, a distance that can now be covered with great ease and comfort in just a few days. Up to Benares, I traveled in a barge pulled by a steamer—a journey that took nearly a month to complete. From Benares to Allahabad, it was a nice change to get on wheels, as a horse-dâk had recently been established between these two locations. In Allahabad, I was warmly welcomed by Mr. Lowther, the Commissioner, who was an old friend of my father's, and in his home, I experienced the generous hospitality that Anglo-Indians are famous for. I was quite surprised and amused to see my host smoking a hookah even during meals, as he was one of the few Englishmen who still enjoyed that luxury at the time. One servant, known as the hookah-bardar, had the sole job of preparing the pipe for his master and keeping it ready at all times.

My next resting-place was Cawnpore, my birthplace, where I remained a few days. The Cawnpore division was at that time commanded by an officer of the name of Palmer, who had only recently[Page 7] attained the rank of Brigadier-General, though he could not have been less than sixty-eight years of age, being of the same standing as my father.

My next stop was Cawnpore, my birthplace, where I stayed for a few days. At that time, the Cawnpore division was led by an officer named Palmer, who had only recently[Page 7] achieved the rank of Brigadier-General, even though he must have been at least sixty-eight years old, the same age as my father.

Bengal Horse Artillery From Cawnpore I went to Meerut, and there came across, for the first time, the far-famed Bengal Horse Artillery, and made the acquaintance of a set of officers who more than realized my expectations regarding the wearers of the much-coveted jacket, association with whom created in me a fixed resolve to leave no stone unturned in the endeavour to become a horse gunner. Like the Cavalry and Infantry of the East India Company's service, the Artillery suffered somewhat from the employment of many of its best officers on the staff and in civil appointments; the officers selected were not seconded or replaced in their regiments. This was the case in a less degree, no doubt, in the Horse Artillery than in the other branches, for its esprit was great, and officers were proud to belong to this corps d'élite. It certainly was a splendid service; the men were the pick of those recruited by the East India Company, they were of magnificent physique, and their uniform was singularly handsome. The jacket was much the same as that now worn by the Royal Horse Artillery, but instead of the busby they had a brass helmet covered in front with leopard skin, surmounted by a long red plume which drooped over the back like that of a French Cuirassier. This, with white buckskin breeches and long boots, completed a uniform which was one of the most picturesque and effective I have ever seen on a parade-ground.

Bengal Horse Artillery From Cawnpore, I went to Meerut, where I encountered, for the first time, the famous Bengal Horse Artillery. I met a group of officers who exceeded my expectations about those who wore the highly coveted jacket, and my association with them solidified my determination to become a horse gunner. Like the Cavalry and Infantry of the East India Company's service, the Artillery faced challenges due to many of its best officers being assigned to staff and civil positions; the officers chosen were not replaced within their regiments. However, this issue was less pronounced in the Horse Artillery compared to the other branches, as its esprit de corps was strong and officers took pride in belonging to this elite unit. It truly was an outstanding service; the men were the finest recruited by the East India Company, boasting impressive physiques, and their uniforms were exceptionally attractive. The jacket was similar to what is now worn by the Royal Horse Artillery, but instead of a busby, they had a brass helmet adorned with leopard skin in front, topped with a long red plume that fell over the back like that of a French Cuirassier. This, combined with white buckskin breeches and long boots, created a uniform that was among the most striking and effective I have ever seen on a parade ground.

The metalled highway ended at Meerut, and I had to perform the remainder of my journey to Peshawar, a distance of 600 miles, in a palankin, or doolie.

The paved highway ended at Meerut, and I had to complete the rest of my journey to Peshawar, a distance of 600 miles, in a palanquin or doolie.

Incidents of the Journey This manner of travelling was tedious in the extreme. Starting after dinner, the victim was carried throughout the night by eight men, divided into reliefs of four. The whole of the eight were changed at stages averaging from ten to twelve miles apart. The baggage was also conveyed by coolies, who kept up an incessant chatter, and the procession was lighted on its way by a torch-bearer, whose torch consisted of bits of rag tied round the end of a stick, upon which he continually poured the most malodorous of oils. If the palankin-bearers were very good, they shuffled along at the rate of about three miles an hour, and if there were no delays, forty or forty-five miles could be accomplished before it became necessary to seek shelter from the sun in one of the dâk-bungalows, or rest-houses, erected by Government at convenient intervals along all the principal routes. In these bungalows a bath could be obtained, and sorely it was needed after a journey of thirteen or fourteen hours at a level of only a few inches above an exceedingly dusty road. As to food, the khansamah, like 'mine host' in the old country, declared himself at the outset prepared to provide everything the heart of man could desire; when, however, the traveller[Page 8] was safely cornered for the rest of the day, the menu invariably dwindled down to the elementary and universal 'sudden death,' which meant a wretchedly thin chicken, caught, decapitated, grilled, and served up within twenty minutes of the meal being ordered. At dinner a variety was made by the chicken being curried, accompanied by an unlimited supply of rice and chutney.

Journey Incidents Traveling this way was incredibly tedious. Starting after dinner, the traveler was carried throughout the night by eight men, divided into teams of four. All eight were switched out at stops that were about ten to twelve miles apart. Their luggage was also carried by porters, who kept up a constant chatter, while a torch-bearer lit the way with a torch made of rags tied to the end of a stick, which he continually soaked in a foul-smelling oil. If the palanquin bearers were really good, they shuffled along at around three miles an hour, and if there were no delays, they could cover forty or forty-five miles before needing to find shelter from the sun at one of the dâk-bungalows, or rest houses, built by the Government at convenient points along the main routes. In these bungalows, a bath could be taken, which was desperately needed after a journey of thirteen or fourteen hours just inches above an extremely dusty road. As for food, the khansamah, like 'mine host' back home, claimed from the start that he could provide anything one could desire; however, once the traveler was settled in for the day, the menu always shrank down to the basic and universal 'sudden death,' which meant a pitifully thin chicken, caught, beheaded, grilled, and served up within twenty minutes of ordering. At dinner, variety came from the chicken being curried, served with an endless supply of rice and chutney.

I was glad to be able to break the monotony of this long journey by a visit to a half-sister of mine, who was then living at the hill-station of Mussoorie. The change to the delightful freshness of a Himalayan climate after the Turkish-bath-like atmosphere of the plains in September was most grateful, and I thoroughly enjoyed the few days I spent in the midst of the lovely mountain scenery.

I was happy to break the monotony of this long journey by visiting my half-sister, who was living at the hill station of Mussoorie. The refreshing, crisp air of the Himalayas was such a welcome change from the sauna-like heat of the plains in September, and I truly enjoyed the few days I spent surrounded by the beautiful mountain scenery.

My next station was Umballa. There I fell in with two other troops of Horse Artillery, and became more than ever enamoured with the idea of belonging to so splendid a service. From Umballa it was a two nights' journey to Ludhiana, where I rested for the day, and there met a cousin in the Survey Department, who had been suddenly ordered to Lahore, so we agreed to travel together.

My next stop was Umballa. There, I met two other units of Horse Artillery and became even more captivated by the idea of being part of such an impressive service. From Umballa, it took two nights to reach Ludhiana, where I relaxed for the day and met a cousin who worked in the Survey Department. He had just received orders to go to Lahore, so we decided to travel together.

The next halting-place was Jullundur. To make a change, we hired a buggy at this place, in which to drive the first stage, sending our palankins on ahead; when we overtook them, we found, to our surprise, that their number had increased to six. We were preparing for a start, when it struck us that we ought to make some inquiries about the additional four, which, from the luggage lying about, we assumed to be occupied, but which appeared to be stranded for want of bearers to carry them on. The doors were carefully closed, and it was some time before we could get an answer to our offers of assistance. Eventually a lady looked out, and told us that she and a friend, each accompanied by two children and an ayah,1 were on their way to Lahore; that the bearers who had brought them so far had run away, and that they were absolutely in despair as to how they were to proceed. It turned out that the bearers, who had been engaged to carry the ladies on the second stage towards Lahore, found it more amusing to attend the ceremony of the installation of the Raja of Kaparthala, then going on, than to fulfil their engagement. After discussing the situation, the ladies were persuaded to get out of their palankins and into our buggy. We divided the baggage and six doolies between our sixteen bearers, and started off, my cousin, the ayahs, and I on foot. It was then 10 p.m. We hoped relays of bearers for the whole party would be forthcoming at the next stage, but we were doomed to disappointment. Our reliefs were present, but none for the ladies. We succeeded, however, in inducing our original bearers to come on a further stage, thus arranging for the carriage of the ayahs, while we two men trudged on beside the buggy for another ten or twelve miles.[Page 9] It was a heavy, sandy road, and three stages were about as much as the horse could manage.

The next stop was Jullundur. To mix things up, we rented a buggy here to drive the first part of the journey, sending our palankins ahead. When we caught up to them, we were surprised to find that their number had grown to six. We were getting ready to leave when it dawned on us that we should ask about the extra four, which we assumed were occupied because of the luggage scattered around, but they seemed stuck due to a lack of bearers to carry them on. The doors were tightly shut, and it took a while before we got a response to our offers to help. Finally, a lady peeked out and explained that she and a friend, each with two kids and an ayah, were headed to Lahore; the bearers who had brought them this far had run away, and they were completely at a loss about how to move forward. It turned out that the bearers, who were supposed to take the ladies on the next leg toward Lahore, found it more entertaining to attend the installation ceremony of the Raja of Kaparthala happening at that time than to honor their commitment. After talking it over, we convinced the ladies to get out of their palankins and into our buggy. We split the baggage and six doolies among our sixteen bearers and set off, my cousin, the ayahs, and I walking. It was then 10 p.m. We hoped we would find fresh bearers for the whole group at the next stop, but we were disappointed. Our reliefs showed up, but there were none for the ladies. However, we managed to persuade our original bearers to go on a bit further, arranging for the ayahs to ride while the two of us walked alongside the buggy for another ten or twelve miles.[Page 9] It was a tough, sandy road, and the horse could handle about three stages.

New Friends Soon after daybreak next morning we reached the Bias river. Crossing by a bridge of boats, we found on the other side a small one-roomed house with a verandah running round it, built for the use of the European overseer in charge of the road. On matters being explained, this man agreed to turn out. The ladies and children were put inside, and my cousin and I spent the day in the verandah; in the evening, with the assistance of the overseer, we were able to get a sufficient number of bearers to carry us all on to Mian Mir without further adventure. In the course of conversation we found that one of the ladies was the wife of Lieutenant Donald Stewart,2 of the 9th Bengal Infantry, and that she and her friend were returning to join their respective husbands after spending the summer months at Simla. This meeting was the beginning of a close friendship with Sir Donald and Lady Stewart, which has lasted to the present day.

Making Friends Soon after daybreak the next morning, we reached the Bias River. Crossing over a bridge made of boats, we found on the other side a small one-room house with a verandah all around it, built for the European overseer in charge of the road. After explaining our situation, this man agreed to leave. The ladies and children went inside, while my cousin and I spent the day on the verandah; in the evening, with the overseer's help, we were able to get enough bearers to take us all to Mian Mir without any more trouble. During our conversation, we discovered that one of the ladies was the wife of Lieutenant Donald Stewart,2 of the 9th Bengal Infantry, and that she and her friend were heading back to join their husbands after spending the summer months in Simla. This meeting marked the beginning of a close friendship with Sir Donald and Lady Stewart that has lasted to this day.

At Mian Mir (the military cantonment of Lahore) I stayed a few days with another half-sister, and from there, as the weather was beginning to get cooler, I travelled day and night. One evening about eight o'clock I was disappointed at not having come across the usual rest-house; lights could be seen, however, at no great distance, and I proceeded towards them; they turned out to be the camp fires of a Cavalry regiment which was halting there for the night. Being half famished, and fearing that my craving for food was not likely to be gratified unless someone in the camp would take pity upon my forlorn condition, I boldly presented myself at the first tent I came across. The occupant came out, and, on hearing the strait I was in, he with kindly courtesy invited me to enter the tent, saying, 'You are just in time to share our dinner.' My host turned out to be Major Crawford Chamberlain,3 commanding the 1st Irregular Cavalry, the famous Skinner's Horse, then on its way to Peshawar. A lady was sitting at the table—Mrs. Chamberlain—to whom I was introduced; I spent a very pleasant evening, and in this way commenced another equally agreeable and lasting friendship.

At Mian Mir (the military base in Lahore), I spent a few days with another half-sister, and as the weather started to cool down, I traveled day and night. One evening around eight o'clock, I was disappointed not to find the usual rest-house; however, I could see lights in the distance, so I headed towards them. They turned out to be the campfires of a Cavalry regiment stopping for the night. Starving and worried that I wouldn't get any food unless someone in the camp took pity on me, I boldly approached the first tent I saw. The person inside came out, and upon hearing about my situation, he kindly invited me to enter the tent, saying, "You arrived just in time to share our dinner." My host was Major Crawford Chamberlain,3 who was in charge of the 1st Irregular Cavalry, known as Skinner's Horse, which was then on its way to Peshawar. A lady was sitting at the table—Mrs. Chamberlain—whom I was introduced to; I had a very enjoyable evening, and this marked the beginning of another equally pleasant and lasting friendship.






CHAPTER III.

1852

Even the longest journey must come to an end at last, and early in November I reached Peshawar. My father, who was then in his sixty-ninth year, had just been appointed to command the division with the temporary rank of Major-General. Old as this may appear at a period[Page 10] when Colonels are superannuated at fifty-seven, and Major-Generals must retire at sixty-two, my father did not consider himself particularly unlucky. As for the authorities, they evidently thought they were to be congratulated on having so young and active an officer to place in a position of responsibility upon the North-West Frontier, for amongst my father's papers I found letters from the Adjutant-General and Quartermaster-General expressing high satisfaction at his appointment to this difficult command.

Even the longest journey eventually comes to an end, and early in November, I arrived in Peshawar. My father, who was then sixty-nine, had just been appointed to lead the division with the temporary rank of Major-General. Although this may seem old at a time[Page 10] when Colonels are retired at fifty-seven, and Major-Generals must step down by sixty-two, my father didn’t consider himself particularly unlucky. The authorities, on the other hand, clearly felt they were fortunate to have such a young and active officer in a position of responsibility on the North-West Frontier, as I found letters among my father's papers from the Adjutant-General and Quartermaster-General expressing their great satisfaction with his appointment to this challenging command.

With my Father at Peshawar It was a great advantage as well as a great pleasure to me to be with my father at this time. I had left India an infant, and I had no recollection of him until I was twelve years old, at which time he came home on leave. Even then I saw very little of him, as I was at school during the greater part of his sojourn in England, thus we met at Peshawar almost as strangers. We did not, however, long remain so; his affectionate greeting soon put an end to any feeling of shyness on my part, and the genial and kindly spirit which enabled him to enter into and sympathize with the feelings and aspirations of men younger than himself, rendered the year I spent with him at Peshawar one of the brightest and happiest of my early life. In one respect particularly I benefited by the intercourse and confidence of the year in question. My father spoke to me freely of his experiences in Afghanistan, where he commanded during the Afghan war first a brigade, and then Shah Shuja's contingent. The information I in this way gathered regarding the characteristics of that peculiar country, and the best means of dealing with its still more peculiar people, was invaluable to me when I, in my turn, twenty-five years later, found myself in command of an army in Afghanistan.

With my Dad in Peshawar It was both a great benefit and a huge joy for me to be with my dad at this time. I had left India as a baby and had no memory of him until I turned twelve, when he came home on leave. Even then, I didn't see much of him since I was at school most of the time he was in England, so when we met in Peshawar, we felt almost like strangers. However, that didn’t last long; his warm greeting quickly made me feel at ease, and his friendly nature, which allowed him to connect with and understand the feelings and dreams of younger people, made the year I spent with him at Peshawar one of the brightest and happiest of my early life. In one specific way, I greatly benefited from the conversations and the bond we formed during that year. My father shared openly about his experiences in Afghanistan, where he commanded a brigade during the Afghan war and later Shah Shuja's contingent. The insights I gained about the unique traits of that country and the best ways to engage with its even more unique people proved invaluable to me when I found myself commanding an army in Afghanistan twenty-five years later.

Eleven years only had elapsed since the first Afghan war, when my father went to Peshawar and found himself again associated with several Afghan friends; some had altogether settled in the Peshawar district, for nearly all of those who had assisted us, or shown any friendly feeling towards us, had been forced by Dost Mahomed Khan, on his return as Amir to Kabul, to seek refuge in India. One of the chief of these unfortunate refugees was Mahomed Usman Khan, Shah Shuja's Wazir, or Prime Minister. He had been very intimate with my father, so it was pleasant for them to meet again and talk over events in which they had both played such prominent parts. Usman Khan died some years ago; but visitors to India who travel as far as Peshawar may still meet his sons, one of whom is the Commandant of the Khyber Rifles, Lieutenant-Colonel Aslam Khan, C.I.E., a fine specimen of a Native soldier and gentleman, who has proved his loyalty and done excellent service to the State on many trying occasions.

Eleven years had passed since the first Afghan war when my father went to Peshawar and reconnected with several Afghan friends. Some had settled in the Peshawar area, as nearly all of those who had helped us or shown any goodwill had been forced by Dost Mahomed Khan, upon his return as Amir to Kabul, to seek refuge in India. One of the main unfortunate refugees was Mahomed Usman Khan, Shah Shuja's Wazir, or Prime Minister. He had been very close to my father, so it was nice for them to meet again and discuss the events in which they had both played such significant roles. Usman Khan died a few years ago, but visitors to India who travel as far as Peshawar may still meet his sons, one of whom is the Commandant of the Khyber Rifles, Lieutenant-Colonel Aslam Khan, C.I.E., a great example of a Native soldier and gentleman, who has shown his loyalty and provided excellent service to the State on many challenging occasions.



General Sir Abraham Roberts, G.C.B.

GENERAL SIR ABRAHAM ROBERTS, G.C.B.

From a Photograph.

General Sir Abraham Roberts, G.C.B.

GENERAL SIR ABRAHAM ROBERTS, G.C.B.

From a photo.



My father had also been on terms of intimacy with Dost Mahomed himself and many other men of influence in Kabul, from whom, while at Peshawar, he received most interesting letters, in which anxiety was[Page 11] often expressed as to whether the English were amicably disposed towards the Amir. To these communications my father was always careful to send courteous and conciliatory replies. The correspondence which took place confirmed him in his frequently expressed opinion that it would be greatly to the advantage of the Government, and obviate the necessity for keeping such large garrisons on the frontier, if friendly relations could be established with the Amir, and with the neighbouring tribes, who more or less looked to the Ruler of Kabul as their Chief. My father accordingly addressed the Secretary to the Government of India, and pointed out how successfully some of the most experienced Anglo-Indian officials had managed barbarous tribes by kindness and conciliation.

My father had also been friendly with Dost Mahomed and many other influential people in Kabul, from whom, while in Peshawar, he received very interesting letters, often expressing concern about whether the English were on good terms with the Amir. My father always made sure to send polite and conciliatory replies to these communications. The correspondence confirmed his often stated belief that it would greatly benefit the Government and eliminate the need for such large garrisons on the frontier if friendly relations could be built with the Amir and the neighboring tribes, who generally looked to the Ruler of Kabul as their Chief. Therefore, my father wrote to the Secretary of the Government of India, highlighting how effectively some of the most experienced Anglo-Indian officials had managed difficult tribes through kindness and diplomacy.

My father was prevented by ill-health from remaining long enough at Peshawar to see the result of his proposals, but it was a source of great satisfaction to him to learn before he left India1 that they were approved by Lord Dalhousie (the Governor-General), and that they were already bearing fruit. That the Amir was himself ready to respond to any overtures made to him was evident from a letter written by a brother of the Dost's, which was discovered amongst the papers of Colonel Mackeson (the Commissioner of Peshawar) after his death. It was still more gratifying to my father to find that the views of Mackeson's successor, Lieutenant-Colonel Herbert Edwardes, on this subject entirely coincided with his own. This distinguished officer and brilliant administrator zealously maintained this policy, and succeeded in establishing such a good understanding with the Ruler of Kabul that, when the Mutiny broke out, Afghanistan stood aloof, instead of, as might have been the case, turning the scale against us.

My father couldn't stay in Peshawar long enough because of his health issues to see the outcome of his suggestions, but he was very pleased to learn before he left India1 that they were approved by Lord Dalhousie (the Governor-General) and that they were already showing positive results. It was clear from a letter written by one of the Dost's brothers, found among Colonel Mackeson's papers after his death, that the Amir was willing to engage with any proposals. My father was even more pleased to discover that the views of Mackeson's successor, Lieutenant-Colonel Herbert Edwardes, aligned completely with his own. This distinguished officer and skilled administrator actively supported this policy and managed to establish such a strong relationship with the Ruler of Kabul that, when the Mutiny occurred, Afghanistan remained neutral instead of potentially tipping the scales against us.

Peshawar in 1852 The Peshawar division in 1852 was not only the most important, but the largest, in India. It included besides Attock, Rawal Pindi, and Jhelum, the hill-station of Murree, which had only been recently occupied. The cantonment of Peshawar had been laid out by Sir Colin Campbell (afterwards Lord Clyde), who commanded there when we first occupied that place in 1849. He crowded the troops, European and Native, into as small a space as possible in order that the station[Page 12] might be the more easily protected from the raids of the Afridis and other robber tribes, who had their homes in the neighbouring mountains, and constantly descended into the valley for the sake of plunder. To resist these marauders it was necessary to place guards all round the cantonment. The smaller the enclosure, the fewer guards would be required. From this point of view alone was Sir Colin's action excusable; but the result of this overcrowding was what it always is, especially in a tropical climate like that of India, and for long years Peshawar was a name of terror to the English soldier from its proverbial unhealthiness. The water-supply for the first five-and-twenty years of our occupation was extremely bad, and sanitary arrangements, particularly as regards Natives, were apparently considered unnecessary.

Peshawar in 1852 In 1852, the Peshawar division was not only the most significant but also the largest in India. It included Attock, Rawal Pindi, and Jhelum, as well as the recently occupied hill-station of Murree. The Peshawar cantonment was established by Sir Colin Campbell (later Lord Clyde), who commanded the area when we first took over in 1849. He packed both European and Native troops into a small area to make it easier to protect the station from raids by the Afridis and other bandit tribes living in the nearby mountains, who regularly invaded the valley to steal. To fend off these attackers, guards had to be placed all around the cantonment. The smaller the area, the fewer guards were needed. While Sir Colin's approach can be justified from that perspective, the consequence of this overcrowding is universally known, especially in a tropical climate like India's. For many years, Peshawar became a dreadfully unhealthy name for English soldiers due to its notorious unhealthiness. For the first twenty-five years of our presence, the water supply was extremely poor, and sanitary conditions, especially for Natives, seemed to be regarded as unnecessary.

In addition to the cordon of sentries round the cantonment, strong piquets were posted on all the principal roads leading towards the hills; and every house had to be guarded by a chokidar, or watchman, belonging to one of the robber tribes. The maintaining this watchman was a sort of blackmail, without consenting to which no one's horses or other property were safe. The watchmen were armed with all sorts of quaint old firearms, which, on an alarm being given, they discharged in the most reckless manner, making it quite a work of danger to pass along a Peshawar road after dark. No one was allowed to venture beyond the line of sentries when the sun had set, and even in broad daylight it was not safe to go any distance from the station.

Along with the line of guards around the base, strong posts were set up on all the main roads leading to the hills; and every house had to have a watchman, or chokidar, from one of the robber tribes. Paying for this watchman was like a kind of protection racket; without it, no one’s horses or belongings were safe. The watchmen carried various old firearms, which they fired off recklessly whenever there was an alarm, making it dangerous to walk along a Peshawar road after dark. No one was allowed to go past the line of guards after sunset, and even during the day, it wasn't safe to wander far from the base.

Excitements of a Frontier Station In the autumn of 1851 an officer—Captain Frank Grantham, of the 98th Foot—was riding with a young lady on the Michni road, not far from the Artillery quarter-guard, when he was attacked by five hill-men. Grantham was wounded so severely that he died in a few days, the horses were carried off, but the girl was allowed to escape. She ran as fast as she could to the nearest guard, and told her story; the alarm was given, and the wounded man was brought in. The young lady was called upon shortly afterwards to identify one of the supposed murderers, but she could not recognize the man as being of the party who made the attack; nevertheless, the murderer's friends were afraid of what she might remember, and made an attempt one night to carry her off. Fortunately, it was frustrated, but from that time, until she left Peshawar, it was considered necessary to keep a guard over the house in which she lived.

Excitement of a Frontier Station In the fall of 1851, an officer—Captain Frank Grantham of the 98th Foot—was riding with a young lady on the Michni road, not far from the Artillery quarter-guard, when he was attacked by five hillmen. Grantham was injured so badly that he died a few days later; the horses were taken, but the girl was allowed to escape. She ran as fast as she could to the nearest guard and told her story; the alarm was raised, and the injured man was brought in. The young lady was asked shortly afterward to identify one of the suspected attackers, but she couldn't recognize the man as part of the group that attacked them; however, the murderer's associates were worried about what she might remember and made an attempt to kidnap her one night. Fortunately, it was thwarted, but from that point until she left Peshawar, it was deemed necessary to keep a guard around the house where she lived.

From all this my readers may probably think that Peshawar, as I first knew it, was not a desirable place of residence; but I was very happy there. There was a good deal of excitement and adventure; I made many friends; and, above all, I had, to me, the novel pleasure of being with my father.

From all this, my readers might think that Peshawar, as I first experienced it, wasn’t a great place to live; but I was actually very happy there. There was plenty of excitement and adventure; I made a lot of friends; and, most importantly, I had, for me, the unique joy of being with my father.

1853
My Father's Staff
It was the custom in those days for the General commanding one of the larger divisions to have under him, and in charge of the Head-Quarter[Page 13] station, a senior officer styled Brigadier. Soon after I went to Peshawar, Sydney Cotton2 held this appointment, and remained in it for many years, making a great reputation for himself during the Mutiny, and being eventually appointed to the command of the division. The two senior officers on my father's staff were Lieutenant Norman3 and Lieutenant Lumsden,4 the former Deputy Assistant-Adjutant-General and the latter Deputy Assistant-Quartermaster-General. The high opinion of them which my father had formed was subsequently justified by their distinguished careers. Norman, with sixteen years' service, and at the age of thirty-four, became Adjutant-General of the Army in India, and a year or two later Secretary to Government in the Military Department. He finished his Indian service as Military Member of Council. Lumsden became Quartermaster-General, and afterwards Adjutant-General, the two highest positions on the Indian staff.

1853My Dad's Staff Back then, it was standard for the General in charge of one of the larger divisions to have a senior officer known as a Brigadier overseeing the Head-Quarter[Page 13] station. Not long after I arrived in Peshawar, Sydney Cotton2 held this position and stayed in it for many years, earning a strong reputation during the Mutiny and eventually being appointed to lead the division. The two most senior officers on my father's staff were Lieutenant Norman3 and Lieutenant Lumsden,4 with Norman serving as Deputy Assistant-Adjutant-General and Lumsden as Deputy Assistant-Quartermaster-General. My father’s high regard for them was later proven justified by their successful careers. After sixteen years of service, at just thirty-four, Norman became the Adjutant-General of the Army in India, and a year or two later served as Secretary to Government in the Military Department. He concluded his time in India as the Military Member of the Council. Lumsden rose to become Quartermaster-General and later Adjutant-General, the two top positions on the Indian staff.

There was a separate mess for all the staff officers, and I remember a curious circumstance in connexion with that mess which, unless the exception proves the rule, is strong evidence against the superstition that thirteen is an unlucky number to sit down to dinner. On the 1st January, 1853, thirteen of us dined together; eleven years after we were all alive, nearly the whole of the party having taken part in the suppression of the Mutiny, and five or six having been wounded.

There was a separate dining area for all the staff officers, and I recall an interesting situation related to that dining area which, unless the exception proves the rule, strongly challenges the belief that thirteen is an unlucky number to have at dinner. On January 1, 1853, thirteen of us dined together; eleven years later, we were all alive, with nearly everyone from that gathering having participated in putting down the Mutiny, and five or six having been injured.

From the time of my arrival until the autumn of 1853, nothing of much importance occurred. I lived with my father, and acted as his Aide-de-camp, while, at the same time, I did duty with the Artillery. The 2nd Company, 2nd Battalion, to which I belonged, was composed of a fine body of men, who had a grand reputation in the field, but, being somewhat troublesome in quarters, had acquired the nickname of 'The Devil's Own.' Because of the unusually good physique of the men, this company was selected for conversion into a Mountain Battery, which it was thought advisable to raise at that time. I was the only subaltern with this battery for several months, and though my commanding officer had no objection to my acting as A.D.C. to my father, he took good care that I did my regimental duty strictly and regularly.

From the time I arrived until the autumn of 1853, not much of significance happened. I lived with my father and served as his aide while also fulfilling my duties with the Artillery. The 2nd Company, 2nd Battalion, the one I was part of, consisted of a great group of men who had a solid reputation in the field, but since they were a bit difficult to manage in garrison, they earned the nickname 'The Devil's Own.' Because the men were in excellent shape, this company was chosen to be converted into a Mountain Battery, which was deemed necessary at that time. I was the only junior officer with this battery for several months, and while my commanding officer didn’t mind me acting as aide to my father, he made sure that I completed my regimental duties strictly and regularly.

A Flogging Parade One very painful circumstance stamped itself on my memory. I was obliged to be present at a flogging parade—the only one, I am glad to say, I have ever had to attend, although the barbarous and degrading custom of flogging in the army was not done away with until nearly thirty years later.5 A few years before I joined the service, the number of lashes which might be given was limited to[Page 14] fifty, but even under this restriction the sight was a horrible one to witness. The parade to which I refer was ordered for the punishment of two men who had been sentenced to fifty lashes each for selling their kits, and to a certain term of imprisonment in addition. They were fine, handsome young Horse Artillerymen, and it was hateful to see them thus treated. Besides, one felt it was productive of harm rather than good, for it tended to destroy the men's self-respect, and to make them completely reckless. In this instance, no sooner had the two men been released from prison than they committed the same offence again. They were a second time tried by Court-Martial, and sentenced as before. How I longed to have the power to remit the fifty lashes, for I felt that selling their kits on this occasion was their way of showing their resentment at the ignominious treatment they had been subjected to, and of proving that flogging was powerless to prevent their repeating the offence. A parade was ordered, as on the previous occasion. One man was stripped to the waist, and tied to the wheel of a gun. The finding and sentence of the Court-Martial were read out—a trumpeter standing ready the while to inflict the punishment—when the commanding officer, Major Robert Waller, instead of ordering him to begin, to the intense relief of, I believe, every officer present, addressed the prisoners, telling them of his distress at finding two soldiers belonging to his troop brought up for corporal punishment twice in a little more than six weeks, and adding that, however little they deserved such leniency, if they would promise not to commit the same offence again, and to behave better for the future, he would remit the flogging part of the sentence. If the prisoners were not happy, I was; but the clemency was evidently appreciated by them, for they promised, and kept their words. I did not lose sight of these two men for some years, and was always gratified to learn that their conduct was uniformly satisfactory, and that they had become good, steady soldiers.

A Whipping Parade One very painful experience stuck in my mind. I had to be present at a flogging parade—the only one, thankfully, I’ve ever had to attend, even though the brutal and humiliating practice of flogging in the army wasn't abolished until nearly thirty years later. A few years before I enlisted, the number of lashes allowed was capped at[Page 14] fifty, but even with this limit, the scene was horrific to witness. The parade I’m talking about was ordered to punish two men who had been sentenced to fifty lashes each for selling their kits, along with a term of imprisonment. They were fine, handsome young Horse Artillery soldiers, and it was disgusting to see them treated this way. Besides, it seemed counterproductive, as it only destroyed the men’s self-respect and made them completely reckless. In this case, as soon as the two men were released from prison, they committed the same offense again. They went through a second Court-Martial and were sentenced as before. I really wished I could have cancelled the fifty lashes because I felt that selling their kits this time was their way of expressing their anger at the disgraceful treatment they had endured, and it showed that flogging was ineffective at preventing them from repeating the offense. A parade was called, just like the last time. One man was stripped to the waist and tied to the wheel of a gun. The findings and sentence of the Court-Martial were read out—a trumpeter standing by ready to carry out the punishment—when the commanding officer, Major Robert Waller, instead of giving the order to begin, to the great relief of, I believe, every officer there, spoke to the prisoners. He expressed his distress at seeing two soldiers from his troop brought up for corporal punishment twice in just over six weeks and added that, no matter how little they deserved this leniency, if they promised not to commit the same offense again and to behave better in the future, he would cancel the flogging part of their sentence. If the prisoners weren’t happy, I was; but they clearly appreciated the mercy because they promised and kept their word. I didn’t lose track of these two men for several years and was always pleased to learn that their behavior was consistently good and that they had become reliable, steady soldiers.

The Commissioner, or chief civil authority, when I arrived at Peshawar, was Colonel Mackeson, a well-known frontier officer who had greatly distinguished himself during the first Afghan war by his work among the Afridis and other border tribes, by whom he was liked and respected as much as he was feared. During Shah Shuja's brief reign at Kabul, Mackeson was continually employed on political duty in the Khyber Pass and at Peshawar. On the breaking out of the insurrection at Kabul, he was indefatigable in forwarding supplies and money to Sir Robert Sale at Jalalabad, hastening up the reinforcements, and maintaining British influence in the Khyber, a task of no small magnitude when we remember that a religious war had been proclaimed, and all true believers had been called upon to exterminate the Feringhis. While at Peshawar, as Commissioner, his duties were arduous and his responsibilities heavy—the more so as at that time[Page 15] the Afghan inhabitants of the city were in a dangerous and excited state.

The Commissioner, or chief civil authority, when I arrived in Peshawar, was Colonel Mackeson, a well-known frontier officer who had earned great recognition during the first Afghan war through his work with the Afridis and other border tribes, who respected and feared him. During Shah Shuja's short reign in Kabul, Mackeson was constantly engaged in political duties in the Khyber Pass and at Peshawar. When the uprising in Kabul erupted, he tirelessly sent supplies and money to Sir Robert Sale at Jalalabad, rushed reinforcements, and upheld British influence in the Khyber, which was no small feat considering a religious war had been declared, with all true believers urged to eliminate the Feringhis. While at Peshawar, as Commissioner, his duties were demanding and his responsibilities significant—especially since at that time[Page 15] the Afghan residents of the city were in a volatile and agitated state.

Mackeson's Assassination On the 10th September, 1853, we were horrified to learn that Mackeson had been murdered by a religious fanatic. He was sitting in the verandah of his house listening to appeals from the decisions of his subordinates, when, towards evening, a man—who had been remarked by many during the day earnestly engaged in his devotions, his prayer-carpet being spread within sight of the house—came up and, making a low salaam to Mackeson, presented him with a paper. The Commissioner, supposing it to be a petition, stretched out his hand to take it, when the man instantly plunged a dagger into his breast. The noise consequent on the struggle attracted the attention of some of the domestic servants and one of the Native officials. The latter threw himself between Mackeson and the fanatic, and was himself slightly wounded in his efforts to rescue his Chief.

Mackeson's assassination On September 10, 1853, we were horrified to learn that Mackeson had been murdered by a religious fanatic. He was sitting on the porch of his house listening to appeals from his subordinates when, in the evening, a man—who had been noticed by many earlier in the day, deeply engaged in prayer with his prayer mat spread within view of the house—approached him, made a low bow to Mackeson, and handed him a paper. The Commissioner, thinking it was a petition, reached out to take it, when the man immediately plunged a dagger into his chest. The noise from the struggle caught the attention of some of the household staff and one of the Native officials. The official threw himself between Mackeson and the fanatic and was slightly injured in his attempts to save his Chief.

Mackeson lingered until the 14th September. His death caused considerable excitement in the city and along the border, increasing to an alarming extent when it became known that the murderer had been hanged and his body burnt. This mode of disposing of one of their dead is considered by Mahomedans as the greatest insult that can be offered to their religion, for in thus treating the corpse, as if it were that of (by them) a hated and despised Hindu, the dead man is supposed to be deprived of every chance of paradise. It was not without careful and deliberate consideration that this course was decided upon, and it was only adopted on account of the deterrent effect it would have upon fanatical Mahomedans, who count it all gain to sacrifice their lives by the murder of a heretic, and thereby secure, as they firmly believe, eternal happiness, but loathe the idea of being burned, which effectually prevents the murderer being raised to the dignity of a martyr, and revered as a saint ever after.

Mackeson stayed until September 14th. His death sparked a lot of excitement in the city and along the border, which grew alarmingly when word got out that the murderer had been hanged and his body burned. This method of dealing with the dead is seen by Muslims as the greatest insult to their faith because treating the corpse as if it were that of a despised Hindu means the deceased is thought to be denied any chance of paradise. It wasn’t decided lightly to take this route; it was chosen specifically for the deterrent impact it would have on fanatical Muslims who consider it a victory to sacrifice their lives by killing a heretic, believing it brings them eternal happiness. However, they detest the idea of being burned, as it stops the murderer from being honored as a martyr and revered as a saint afterward.

It being rumoured that the Pathans intended to retaliate by desecrating the late Commissioner's grave, it was arranged that he should be buried within cantonment limits. A monument was raised to his memory by public subscription, and his epitaph6 was written by the Governor-General himself.

It was rumored that the Pathans planned to take revenge by vandalizing the late Commissioner's grave, so it was decided that he should be buried within the cantonment limits. A monument was created in his memory through public donations, and his epitaph6 was written by the Governor-General himself.

Shortly before Mackeson's murder my father had found it necessary[Page 16] to go to the hill-station of Murree; the hot weather had tried him very much, and he required a change. He had scarcely arrived there, when he was startled by the news of the tragedy which had occurred, and at once determined to return, notwithstanding its being the most sickly season of the year at Peshawar, for he felt that at a time of such dangerous excitement it was his duty to be present. As a precautionary measure, he ordered the 22nd Foot from Rawal Pindi to Peshawar. This and other steps which he deemed prudent to take soon put an end to the disturbances.

Shortly before Mackeson's murder, my father felt it was necessary[Page 16] to go to the hill station of Murree; the hot weather had been really tough on him, and he needed a change. He had hardly arrived there when he was shocked by the news of the tragedy that had happened, and he immediately decided to return, even though it was the most unhealthy time of year in Peshawar. He believed that during such a dangerous and chaotic time, it was his responsibility to be there. As a precaution, he ordered the 22nd Foot from Rawal Pindi to Peshawar. This and other measures he thought were wise quickly put an end to the disturbances.

The Jowaki Expedition No sooner had matters quieted down at Peshawar than the Jowaki Afridis, who inhabit the country immediately to the east of the Kohat Pass, began to give trouble, and we went out into camp to select a site for a post which would serve to cover the northern entrance to the pass and keep the tribesmen under surveillance. The great change of temperature, from the intense heat he had undergone in the summer to the bitter cold of November nights in tents, was too severe a trial for my father. He was then close on seventy, and though apparently active as ever, he was far from well, consequently the doctors strongly urged him not to risk another hot weather in India. It was accordingly settled that he should return to England without delay.

The Jowaki Expedition As soon as things settled down in Peshawar, the Jowaki Afridis, who live just east of the Kohat Pass, started causing problems, so we went out to set up a camp and choose a location for a post that would guard the northern entrance to the pass and keep an eye on the tribesmen. The drastic change in temperature, from the intense summer heat to the biting cold of November nights in tents, was too much for my father. He was nearly seventy, and although he seemed just as active as ever, he wasn’t in great health, so the doctors strongly advised him not to endure another hot season in India. It was decided that he should return to England without delay.

A Strange Dream Shortly before his departure, an incident occurred which I will relate for the benefit of psychological students; they may, perhaps, be able to explain it, I never could. My father had some time before issued invitations for a dance which was to take place in two days' time—on Monday, the 17th October, 1853. On the Saturday morning he appeared disturbed and unhappy, and during breakfast he was silent and despondent—very different from his usual bright and cheery self. On my questioning him as to the cause, he told me he had had an unpleasant dream—one which he had dreamt several times before, and which had always been followed by the death of a near relation. As[Page 17] the day advanced, in spite of my efforts to cheer him, he became more and more depressed, and even said he should like to put off the dance. I dissuaded him from taking this step for the time being; but that night he had the same dream again, and the next morning he insisted on the dance being postponed. It seemed to me rather absurd to have to disappoint our friends because of a dream; there was, however, nothing for it but to carry out my father's wishes, and intimation was accordingly sent to the invited guests. The following morning the post brought news of the sudden death of the half-sister at Lahore with whom I had stayed on my way to Peshawar.

A Weird Dream Shortly before he left, something happened that I want to share for the interest of psychology students; they might be able to make sense of it, but I never could. My father had sent out invites for a dance scheduled for two days later—on Monday, October 17, 1853. On Saturday morning, he seemed disturbed and unhappy, and during breakfast, he was silent and downcast—very unlike his usual bright and cheerful self. When I asked him what was wrong, he said he had an unsettling dream—one he had experienced multiple times before, each time preceding the death of a close relative. As[Page 17] the day went on, despite my attempts to lift his spirits, he grew more and more despondent and even expressed a desire to postpone the dance. I talked him out of it for the moment, but that night he had the same dream again, and the next morning he insisted that we could not go ahead with the dance. I found it somewhat ridiculous that we would have to let our friends down because of a dream; however, we had no choice but to follow my father's wishes, so we sent a message to the invited guests. The next morning, we received news of the sudden death of my half-sister in Lahore, with whom I had stayed on my journey to Peshawar.

As my father was really very unwell, it was not thought advisable for him to travel alone, so it was arranged that I should accompany him to Rawal Pindi. We started from Peshawar on the 27th November, and drove as far as Nowshera. The next day we went on to Attock. I found the invalid had benefited so much by the change that it was quite safe for him to continue the journey alone, and I consented the more readily to leave him, as I was anxious to get back to my battery, which had been ordered on service, and was then with the force assembled at Bazidkhel for an expedition against the Bori villages of the Jowaki Afridis.

As my dad was really unwell, it didn't seem wise for him to travel alone, so it was arranged that I would go with him to Rawal Pindi. We left Peshawar on November 27th and drove as far as Nowshera. The next day, we continued on to Attock. I noticed that he had improved a lot from the change of scenery, so it was safe for him to travel on his own, and I agreed to leave him more readily since I was eager to get back to my unit, which had been ordered on service and was then with the force gathered at Bazidkhel for a mission against the Bori villages of the Jowaki Afridis.

A Typical Frontier Fight Having said farewell to my father, I started for Bazidkhel early on the 29th November. At that time there was no direct road to that place from Nowshera, nor was it considered safe to travel alone along the slopes of the lower Afridi hills. I had, therefore, to go all the way back to Peshawar to get to my destination. I rode as fast as relays of horses could carry me, in the hope that I should reach Bazidkhel in time for the fun; but soon after passing Nowshera I heard guns in the direction of the Kohat Pass, and realized that I should be too late. I was very disappointed at missing this, my first chance of active service, and not accompanying the newly raised Mountain Train (as it was then called) on the first occasion of its being employed in the field.

A Typical Frontier Battle After saying goodbye to my dad, I set off for Bazidkhel early on November 29th. Back then, there was no direct road to get there from Nowshera, and it wasn't safe to travel alone along the lower Afridi hills. So, I had to ride all the way back to Peshawar to reach my destination. I rode as fast as the changing horses could take me, hoping to get to Bazidkhel in time for the action, but shortly after passing Nowshera, I heard gunfire coming from the Kohat Pass and realized I would be too late. I was really disappointed to miss out on this, my first chance at active duty, and not being part of the newly formed Mountain Train (as it was called back then) during its first deployment in the field.

The object of this expedition was to punish the Jowaki section of the Afridis for their many delinquencies during the three previous years. Numerous murders and raids on the Kohat and Peshawar districts, the plunder of boats on the Indus, and the murder of a European apothecary, were all traced to this tribe. They had been blockaded, and their resort to the salt-mines near Bahadurkhel and to the markets of Kohat and Peshawar had been interdicted, but these measures produced no effect on the recalcitrant tribesmen. John (afterwards Lord) Lawrence, who had come to Peshawar for the purpose of taking over frontier affairs with Edwardes, the new Commissioner, held a conference with the maliks7 of the villages connected with the Jowaki Pass, and being anxious to avoid hostilities, offered to condone all past offences if the tribes would agree to certain conditions,[Page 18] which, briefly, were that no further crimes should be committed in British territory; that such criminals as had taken refuge in their villages should be given up; and that for the future criminals and outlaws flying from justice should not be afforded an asylum in Jowaki lands. To the second condition the whole tribe absolutely refused to agree. They stated, with truth, that from time immemorial it was their custom to afford an asylum to anyone demanding it, and that to surrender a man who had sought and found shelter with them would be a disgrace which they could not endure.

The goal of this expedition was to hold the Jowaki section of the Afridis accountable for their many offenses over the past three years. Numerous murders and raids in the Kohat and Peshawar areas, the theft of boats on the Indus, and the killing of a European apothecary were all linked to this tribe. They had been blockaded, and access to the salt mines near Bahadurkhel and the markets in Kohat and Peshawar had been restricted, but these actions had no effect on the rebellious tribesmen. John (later Lord) Lawrence, who had come to Peshawar to take over frontier affairs with Edwardes, the new Commissioner, held a meeting with the maliks7 of the villages connected to the Jowaki Pass. Wanting to avoid conflict, he offered to forgive all past offenses if the tribes agreed to certain conditions,[Page 18] which were essentially that no more crimes would be committed in British territory; that criminals who had sought refuge in their villages must be handed over; and that in the future, criminals and outlaws fleeing from justice would not be provided shelter in Jowaki lands. The entire tribe flatly rejected the second condition. They argued, truthfully, that it had always been their custom to offer sanctuary to anyone who requested it, and that turning over someone who had sought and found protection with them would be a dishonor they could not accept.

Afridis have curious ideas as to the laws of hospitality; it is no uncommon thing for them to murder their guests in cold blood, but it is contrary to their code of honour to surrender a fugitive who has claimed an asylum with them.

Afridis have strange beliefs about hospitality; it's not uncommon for them to kill their guests in cold blood, but it goes against their code of honor to hand over a fugitive who has sought refuge with them.

The sections of the tribe living nearest our territory agreed to the first and third of our conditions, no doubt because they felt they were in our power, and had suffered considerably from the blockade. But the Bori Afridis would make no atonement for the past and give no security for the future, although they admitted having robbed and murdered our subjects. There was nothing for it, therefore, but to send a force against them. This force consisted of rather more than 1,500 men, British and Native. The Afridis made no stand until we reached their main position, when they offered a stout resistance, which, however, proved of no avail against the gallantry of the Guides and 66th (now 1st) Gurkhas. The Bori villages were then destroyed, with a loss to us of eight men killed and thirty-one wounded.

The sections of the tribe closest to our territory agreed to the first and third of our conditions, likely because they felt we had the upper hand and had endured significant suffering from the blockade. However, the Bori Afridis refused to make amends for the past and wouldn’t provide any assurances for the future, even though they acknowledged having robbed and killed our people. As a result, we had no choice but to send a force against them. This force consisted of just over 1,500 men, both British and local. The Afridis didn't put up resistance until we reached their main position, where they offered fierce resistance. However, it was ultimately futile against the bravery of the Guides and 66th (now 1st) Gurkhas. The Bori villages were then destroyed, with a loss of eight men killed and thirty-one wounded on our side.

Sufficient punishment having been inflicted, our force retired. The rear-guard was hotly pressed, and it was late in the evening before the troops got clear of the hills.

Sufficient punishment having been inflicted, our force retired. The rear guard was under heavy pressure, and it was late in the evening before the troops made it clear of the hills.

The tribesmen with whom we had just made friends sat in hundreds on the ridges watching the progress of the fight. It was no doubt a great temptation to them to attack the 'infidels' while they were at their mercy, and considerable anxiety was felt by Lawrence and Edwardes as to the part which our new allies would play; their relief was proportionate when it was found they intended to maintain a neutral attitude.

The tribesmen we had just befriended sat in the hundreds on the ridges, watching the fight unfold. It was undoubtedly a huge temptation for them to strike at the 'unbelievers' while they were vulnerable, and both Lawrence and Edwardes felt a lot of anxiety about how our new allies would react; they were greatly relieved to find out that the tribesmen planned to stay neutral.

I shall not further describe the events of that day, more especially as I was not fortunate enough to be in time to take part in the proceedings. I have only referred to this expedition as being typical of many little frontier fights, and because I remember being much impressed at the time with the danger of trusting our communications in a difficult mountainous country to people closely allied to those against whom we were fighting. This over-confidence in the good faith of our frontier neighbours caused us serious embarrassments a few years later during the Umbeyla campaign.

I won't go into more detail about the events of that day, especially since I wasn't lucky enough to arrive in time to participate. I only mentioned this mission because it represents many small skirmishes on the frontier, and I remember being deeply struck by the risk of relying on our communications in a challenging mountainous area with people closely connected to those we were fighting against. This overconfidence in the honesty of our neighboring communities caused us significant problems a few years later during the Umbeyla campaign.

The force remained in camp for some time for the protection of the[Page 19] men employed in building the post, which was called Fort Mackeson, after the murdered Commissioner. When it was completed we returned to Peshawar.

The troops stayed at the camp for a while to protect the[Page 19]workers building the post, named Fort Mackeson, after the slain Commissioner. Once it was finished, we headed back to Peshawar.






CHAPTER IV.

1854
A Trip to Khagan

I had had a great deal of fever during my eighteen months' residence at Peshawar, and in April, 1854, I obtained six months' leave to Kashmir. I travelled viâ Murree to Abbottabad, along the route now well known as the 'Gullies.' Here I was joined by Lieutenant George Rodney Brown,1 a subaltern of Horse Artillery, with whom I chummed at Peshawar.

I had a lot of fever during my eighteen months living in Peshawar, and in April 1854, I got six months off to go to Kashmir. I traveled via Murree to Abbottabad, along the route now commonly known as the 'Gullies.' Here, I met up with Lieutenant George Rodney Brown,1 a junior officer in the Horse Artillery, with whom I hung out in Peshawar.

Abbottabad was a very small place in those days. It was named after its first Deputy-Commissioner, James Abbott,2 famous for his journey viâ Bokhara and Khiva to Russia in 1839, undertaken for the release of Russian prisoners who were kept as slaves by the Turkomans. He had just left, and had been succeeded as Deputy-Commissioner by a Captain Becher, who, fortunately for us, was away in the district. I say fortunately, because we were bent on visiting Khagan, and had obtained permission from the Commissioner of Peshawar to do so. He had told us to apply to Becher for assistance, but from what we heard of that officer, it did not seem likely he would help us. Khagan was beyond our border, and the inhabitants were said to be even more fanatical than the rest of the frontier tribes. The Commissioner, however, had given us leave, and as his Deputy appeared to be the kind of man to create obstacles, we made up our minds to slip away before he returned.

Abbottabad was a really small place back then. It was named after its first Deputy Commissioner, James Abbott, who was known for his journey via Bokhara and Khiva to Russia in 1839, which he undertook to free Russian prisoners held as slaves by the Turkomans. He had just left, and was replaced by Captain Becher, who, luckily for us, was out in the district. I say luckily because we wanted to visit Khagan and had gotten permission from the Commissioner of Peshawar to do so. He had told us to ask Becher for help, but from what we heard about him, it didn’t seem likely he would assist us. Khagan was beyond our border, and the locals were said to be even more fanatical than the other frontier tribes. However, the Commissioner had granted us permission, and since his Deputy appeared to be the type to create hurdles, we decided to sneak away before he returned.

We started on the 21st May, and marched to Habibula-Ki-Ghari. Here the road bifurcates, one branch leading to Kashmir, the other to Khagan. We took the latter, and proceeded to Balakot, twelve miles further on, which was then our frontier post. There we found a small guard of Frontier Police, two of whom we induced to accompany us on our onward journey for the purpose of assisting to look after the baggage and collecting coolies. Three days' more marching brought us to Khagan. The road almost the whole way from Balakot ran along a precipice overhanging the Nainsukh river, at that time of year a rushing torrent, owing to the melting of the snows on the higher ranges. The track was rough, steep, and in some places very narrow. We crossed and recrossed the river several times by means of snow-bridges, which, spanning the limpid, jade-coloured water, had a very pretty effect. At one point our shikarris3 stopped, and proudly told us that on that very spot their tribe had destroyed a Sikh army sent[Page 20] against them in the time of Runjit Sing. It certainly was a place well chosen for a stand, not more than fifty yards wide, with a perpendicular cliff on one side and a roaring torrent on the other.

We set out on May 21st and marched to Habibula-Ki-Ghari. Here, the road splits, one path leading to Kashmir, the other to Khagan. We took the second one and continued to Balakot, another twelve miles ahead, which was then our frontier post. We found a small group of Frontier Police there, and managed to persuade two of them to join us on our journey to help manage the baggage and gather coolies. After another three days of marching, we reached Khagan. The road from Balakot mostly ran along a cliff above the Nainsukh river, which was a rushing torrent at that time of year due to the melting snow from the higher ranges. The path was rough, steep, and in some spots very narrow. We crossed and recrossed the river multiple times using snow-bridges that spanned the clear, jade-colored water, creating a beautiful scene. At one point, our shikarris3 stopped and proudly told us that their tribe had defeated a Sikh army sent[Page 20] against them during the time of Runjit Sing. It was definitely a strategically chosen spot for a defense, barely fifty yards wide, with a sheer cliff on one side and a roaring torrent on the other.

The people apparently did not object to our being in their country, and treated us with much civility throughout our journey. We were enjoying ourselves immensely, so when an official cover reached us with the signature of the dreaded Deputy-Commissioner in the corner, we agreed that it would be unwise to open it just then.

The people clearly didn't mind us being in their country and treated us very nicely during our trip. We were having a great time, so when an official envelope arrived with the dreaded Deputy-Commissioner’s signature in the corner, we decided it would be wise to wait to open it.

Khagan was almost buried in snow. The scenery was magnificent, and became every moment more wonderful as we slowly climbed the steep ascent in front of us; range after range of snow-capped mountains disclosed themselves to our view, rising higher and higher into the air, until at last, towering above all, Nanga Parbat4 in all her spotless beauty was revealed to our astonished and delighted gaze.

Khagan was nearly buried in snow. The view was breathtaking and became more stunning with every moment as we slowly made our way up the steep climb ahead of us; ranges of snow-covered mountains appeared, rising higher and higher, until finally, standing above everything, Nanga Parbat4 revealed her pristine beauty to our amazed and delighted eyes.

We could not get beyond Khagan. Our coolies refused to go further, alleging as their reason the danger to be dreaded from avalanches in that month; but I suspect that fear of hostility from the tribes further north had more to do with their reluctance to proceed than dread of falling avalanches. We remained at Khagan for two or three days in the hope of being able to shoot an ibex, but we were disappointed; we never even saw one.

We couldn't get past Khagan. Our porters refused to go any further, claiming that the risk of avalanches during that month was too great; however, I think their hesitation was more about the fear of conflict with the tribes further north than the worry about avalanches. We stayed in Khagan for two or three days hoping to hunt an ibex, but we were let down; we didn't even catch a glimpse of one.

We retraced our steps with considerable regret, and reached Habibula-Ki-Ghari on the 31st May. Here we received a second official document from Abbottabad. It contained, like the previous letter, which we now looked at for the first time, orders for our immediate return, and warnings that we were on no account to go to Khagan. Since then Khagan has been more than once visited by British officers, and now a road is in course of construction along the route we travelled, as being a more direct line of communication with Gilghit than that viâ Kashmir.

We retraced our steps with a lot of regret and reached Habibula-Ki-Ghari on May 31st. Here, we received a second official document from Abbottabad. It contained, like the previous letter that we were now seeing for the first time, orders for our immediate return and warnings that we were not to go to Khagan under any circumstances. Since then, Khagan has been visited multiple times by British officers, and now a road is being built along the route we traveled, as it offers a more direct line of communication with Gilgit than the one via Kashmir.

We made no delay at Habibula-Ki-Ghari, but started at once for the lovely Vale of Kashmir, where we spent the summer, amusing ourselves by making excursions to all the places of interest and beauty we had so often heard of, and occasionally shooting a bear. The place which impressed me most was Martund,5 where stand the picturesque ruins of a once renowned Hindu temple. These noble ruins are the most striking in size and position of all the existing remains of the past glories of Kashmir.

We didn’t waste any time at Habibula-Ki-Ghari and headed straight for the beautiful Vale of Kashmir, where we spent the summer enjoying excursions to all the interesting and stunning spots we had often heard about, and sometimes went bear hunting. The place that left the biggest impression on me was Martund,5 where the picturesque ruins of a once-famous Hindu temple stand. These magnificent ruins are the most striking in size and location of all the remaining traces of Kashmir's past glory.

From Martund we made our way to Vernag, the celebrated spring which is supposed to be the source of the Jhelum river. The Moghul Emperor Akbar built there a summer palace, and the arches, on which it is said rested the private apartments of the lovely Nur Jehan, are still visible.

From Martund, we headed to Vernag, the famous spring that’s thought to be the source of the Jhelum River. The Mughal Emperor Akbar built a summer palace there, and the arches, which are said to have supported the private rooms of the beautiful Nur Jehan, are still visible.

The Vale of Kashmir We wandered over the beautiful and fertile Lolab valley, and pitched[Page 21] our little camp in the midst of groves of chunar, walnut, apple, cherry, and peach trees; and we marched up the Sind valley, and crossed the Zojji La Pass leading into Thibet. The scenery all along this route is extremely grand. On either side are lofty mountains, their peaks wrapped in snow, their sides clothed with pine, and their feet covered with forests, in which is to be found almost every kind of deciduous tree. From time to time we returned for a few days to Srinagar, the capital of Kashmir, to enjoy the pleasures of more civilized society. Srinagar is so well known nowadays, and has been so often described in poetry and prose, that it is needless for me to dwell at length upon its delights, which, I am inclined to think, are greater in imagination than in reality. It has been called the Venice of the East, and in some respects it certainly does remind one of the 'Bride of the Sea,' both in its picturesqueness and (when one gets into the small and tortuous canals) its unsavouriness. Even at the time of which I am writing it was dilapidated, and the houses looked exactly like those made by children out of a pack of cards, which a puff of wind might be expected to destroy. Of late years the greater part of the city has been injured by earthquakes, and Srinagar looks more than ever like a card city. The great beauty of the place in those days was the wooden bridges covered with creepers, and gay with booths and shops of all descriptions, which spanned the Jhelum at intervals for the three miles the river runs through the town—now, alas! for the artistic traveller, no more. Booths and shops have been swept away, and the creepers have disappeared—decidedly an advantage from a sanitary point of view, but destructive of the quaint picturesqueness of the town.

Kashmir Valley We explored the beautiful and fertile Lolab valley and set up[Page 21] our little camp among groves of chunar, walnut, apple, cherry, and peach trees. We then made our way up the Sind valley and crossed the Zojji La Pass into Tibet. The scenery along this route is incredibly stunning. Towering mountains rise on either side, their peaks covered in snow, their slopes draped in pine, and their bases blanketed with forests that host nearly every type of deciduous tree. Occasionally, we returned for a few days to Srinagar, the capital of Kashmir, to enjoy the comforts of a more civilized society. Srinagar is well-known today and has been often described in poetry and prose, so I won’t go on about its pleasures, which I think are greater in imagination than in reality. It has been dubbed the Venice of the East, and in some ways, it does remind one of the 'Bride of the Sea,' both in its beauty and (when navigating the small, winding canals) its unpleasantness. Even at the time I was writing, it was in disrepair, with houses resembling those built by children using a deck of cards, likely to be blown down by a gust of wind. In recent years, much of the city has been damaged by earthquakes, and Srinagar looks even more like a city made of cards. The great charm of the place back then was the wooden bridges covered in vines and bustling with booths and shops of all kinds, spanning the Jhelum at intervals for the three miles the river flows through town—now, sadly, this is no longer the case for the artistic traveler. The booths and shops have been removed, and the vines have disappeared—an improvement from a health perspective, but it has stripped the town of its charming uniqueness.

The floating gardens are a unique and very pretty characteristic of Srinagar. The lake is nowhere deeper than ten or twelve feet, and in some places much less. These gardens are made by driving stakes into the bed of the lake, long enough to project three or four feet above the surface of the water. These stakes are placed at intervals in an oblong form, and are bound together by reeds and rushes twined in and out and across, until a kind of stationary raft is made, on which earth and turf are piled. In this soil seeds are sown, and the crops of melons and other fruits raised in these fertile beds are extremely fine and abundant.

The floating gardens are a unique and beautiful feature of Srinagar. The lake never gets deeper than ten or twelve feet, and in some areas, it's much shallower. These gardens are created by driving stakes into the lakebed, tall enough to stick up three or four feet above the water's surface. The stakes are placed at intervals in an elongated shape and tied together with reeds and rushes woven in and out and across, forming a kind of stationary raft, which is then covered with soil and turf. In this soil, seeds are planted, and the melons and other fruits grown in these fertile beds are extremely impressive and plentiful.

The magnificent chunar-trees are another very beautiful feature of the country. They grow to a great height and girth, and so luxuriant and dense is their foliage that I have sat reading and writing for hours during heavy rain under one of these trees and kept perfectly dry.

The amazing chunar trees are another beautiful aspect of the country. They grow to great heights and widths, and their foliage is so lush and dense that I've spent hours reading and writing under one of these trees during heavy rain and stayed completely dry.

The immediate vicinity of Srinagar is very pretty, and the whole valley of Kashmir is lovely beyond description: surrounded by beautifully-wooded mountains, intersected with streams and lakes, and gay with flowers of every description, for in Kashmir many of the gorgeous eastern plants and the more simple but sweeter ones of[Page 22] England meet on common ground. To it may appropriately be applied the Persian couplet:

The area around Srinagar is really beautiful, and the entire Kashmir valley is stunning beyond words: surrounded by gorgeous, tree-covered mountains, crisscrossed with streams and lakes, and vibrant with flowers of all kinds. In Kashmir, many of the stunning eastern plants coexist with the simpler but sweeter ones from [Page 22] England. The Persian couplet fits quite well:

'Agar fardos baru-i zamin ast, hamin ast, hamin ast'
(If there be an Elysium on earth, it is this, it is this).

'Agar fardos baru-i zamin ast, hamin ast, hamin ast'
(If there is a paradise on earth, it's this, it's this).

The soil is extremely productive; anything will grow in it. Put a stick into the ground, and in an extraordinary short space of time it becomes a tree and bears fruit. What were we about, to sell such a country for three quarters of a million sterling? It would have made the most perfect sanatorium for our troops, and furnished an admirable field for British enterprise and colonization, its climate being as near perfection as anything can be.

The soil is incredibly fertile; anything can thrive in it. Stick a branch in the ground, and in a surprisingly short time, it turns into a tree that bears fruit. What were we thinking, selling such a country for three-quarters of a million pounds? It could have been the perfect place for our troops to rest and provided an excellent opportunity for British business and colonization, with a climate that’s as close to perfect as possible.

How sad it is that, in a country 'where every prospect pleases, only man' should be 'vile'! And man, as he existed in Kashmir, was vile—vile, because so miserable. The Mahomedan inhabitants were being ground down by Hindu rulers, who seized all their earnings, leaving them barely sufficient to keep body and soul together. What interest could such people have in cultivating their land, or doing any work beyond what was necessary to mere existence? However hard they might labour, their efforts would benefit neither themselves nor their children, and so their only thought was to get through life with as little exertion as possible—in the summer sitting in the sun absolutely idle the greater part of the day, and in the winter wrapped up in their blankets, under which were concealed curious little vessels called kangris, holding two or three bits of live charcoal. Every Kashmiri still carries one of these kangris, as the most economical way of keeping himself warm.

How sad it is that, in a country "where every prospect pleases, only man" should be "vile"! And man, as he was in Kashmir, was vile—vile because he was so miserable. The Muslim inhabitants were being crushed by Hindu rulers, who took all their earnings, leaving them with barely enough to survive. What interest could such people have in farming their land or doing any work beyond what was necessary for survival? No matter how hard they worked, their efforts wouldn’t benefit them or their children, so their only thought was to get through life with as little effort as possible—in the summer sitting outside doing nothing for most of the day, and in the winter wrapped up in their blankets, under which were hidden peculiar little pots called kangris, containing a few pieces of live charcoal. Every Kashmiri still carries one of these kangris as the most economical way to keep warm.

Early in September we said good-bye to the happy valley and returned to Peshawar, where I rejoined the Mountain Battery.

Early in September, we said goodbye to the happy valley and returned to Peshawar, where I rejoined the Mountain Battery.

In November, to my great delight, I was given my jacket. At first my happiness was somewhat damped by the fact that the troop to which I was posted was stationed at Umballa. I did not want to leave Peshawar, and in the end I had not to do so, as a vacancy most opportunely occurred in one of the troops of Horse Artillery at that station, which was given to me.

In November, I was really excited to receive my jacket. At first, my happiness was somewhat overshadowed by the fact that the unit I was assigned to was based in Umballa. I didn’t want to leave Peshawar, but luckily, I didn’t have to, as a spot opened up in one of the Horse Artillery troops at that location, and I was awarded it.

Life on the frontier in those days had a great charm for most young men; there was always something of interest going on; military expeditions were constantly taking place, or being speculated upon, and one lived in hope of being amongst those chosen for active service. Peshawar, too, notwithstanding its unhealthiness, was a favourite station with officers. To me it was particularly pleasant, for it had the largest force of Artillery of any station in India except Meerut; the mess was a good one, and was composed of as nice a set of fellows as were to be found in the army. In addition to the officers of the regiment, there were a certain number of honorary members; all the staff and civilians belonged to the Artillery mess, and on guest-nights[Page 23] we sat down as many as sixty to dinner. Another attraction was the 'coffee shop,' an institution which has now almost ceased to exist, at which we all congregated after morning parade and freely discussed the home and local news.

Life on the frontier back then was really appealing to most young men; there was always something exciting happening. Military expeditions were constantly underway or being talked about, and everyone hoped to be among those selected for active duty. Peshawar, despite its unhealthy conditions, was a popular posting for officers. I especially enjoyed it because it had the largest Artillery force of any station in India except Meerut; the mess was great and filled with some of the nicest guys you could find in the army. Along with the regiment's officers, there were several honorary members; all the staff and civilians were part of the Artillery mess, and on guest nights[Page 23] we had as many as sixty people for dinner. Another draw was the 'coffee shop,' a place that has nearly disappeared now, where we all gathered after the morning parade to freely chat about home and local news.

With the Horse Artillery The troop to which I was posted was composed of a magnificent body of men, nearly all Irishmen, most of whom could have lifted me up with one hand. They were fine riders, and needed to be so, for the stud-horses used for Artillery purposes at that time were not the quiet, well-broken animals of the present day. I used to try my hand at riding them all in turn, and thus learnt to understand and appreciate the amount of nerve, patience, and skill necessary to the making of a good Horse Artillery 'driver,' with the additional advantage that I was brought into constant contact with the men. It also qualified me to ride in the officers' team for the regimental brake. The brake, it must be understood, was drawn by six horses, each ridden postilion fashion by an officer.

With the Horse Artillery The troop I was assigned to was made up of an impressive group of men, mostly Irish, many of whom could have lifted me with one hand. They were great riders, and they had to be, because the horses used for artillery back then were not the calm, well-trained animals we have today. I tried riding each of them in turn, which helped me understand and appreciate the nerve, patience, and skill it takes to be a good Horse Artillery 'driver.' Plus, it allowed me to connect with the men regularly. It also gave me the chance to ride in the officers' team for the regimental brake. Just so you know, the brake was pulled by six horses, each ridden postilion style by an officer.

My troop was commanded by Captain Barr, a dear old fellow who had seen a good deal of service and was much liked by officers and men, but hardly the figure for a Horse Artilleryman, as he weighed about seventeen stone. On a troop parade Barr took up his position well in advance and made his own pace, but on brigade parades he had to conform to the movements of the other arms, and on these occasions he used to tell one of the subalterns as he galloped past him to come 'left about' at the right time without waiting for his order. This, of course, we were always careful to do, and by the time we had come into action Barr had caught us up and was at his post.

My troop was led by Captain Barr, a nice old guy who had done a lot of service and was well-liked by both the officers and the men, but he wasn't exactly built for a Horse Artilleryman, weighing about 238 pounds. During troop parades, Barr took his place well ahead and set his own pace, but during brigade parades, he had to follow the movements of the other units, and on those occasions, he would tell one of the junior officers as he rode past to come 'left about' at the right time without waiting for his command. We always made sure to do this, and by the time we were ready to engage, Barr had caught up with us and was at his position.

During the winter of 1854-55 I had several returns of Peshawar fever, and by the beginning of the spring I was so reduced that I was given eight months' leave on medical certificate, with orders to report myself at Mian Mir at its expiration, in view to my going through the riding course, there being no Riding-Master at Peshawar.

During the winter of 1854-55, I experienced several bouts of Peshawar fever, and by early spring, I was in such poor health that I was granted eight months of medical leave, with instructions to check in at Mian Mir when it was over, in preparation for the riding course, as there was no Riding Master in Peshawar.

I decided to return to Kashmir in the first instance, and thence to march across the Himalayas to Simla.

I decided to go back to Kashmir first, and then to travel across the Himalayas to Simla.

On my way into Kashmir I was fortunate enough to fall in with a very agreeable travelling companion—Lieutenant John Watson.6 He was then Adjutant of the 1st Punjab Cavalry, and was looked upon as one of the most promising officers of the Frontier Force. We spent a very enjoyable time in Kashmir, and early in August I started for Simla with two brother officers named Light and Mercer, whose acquaintance I had only recently made, but who turned out to be very pleasant fellow-travellers.

On my way to Kashmir, I was lucky to meet a really nice travel buddy—Lieutenant John Watson.6 He was the Adjutant of the 1st Punjab Cavalry at the time and was considered one of the most promising officers in the Frontier Force. We had a great time in Kashmir, and in early August, I left for Simla with two fellow officers named Light and Mercer, who I had only recently met but turned out to be really enjoyable travel companions.

We marched viâ Kishtwar, Chamba, and Dharmsala, a distance of1855 about 400 miles, through most beautiful scenery. At the last-named place I parted from my companions, who travelled onwards to Simla[Page 24] by the Kulu valley, while I took the shorter route viâ Bilaspur.

We traveled through Kishtwar, Chamba, and Dharmsala, covering about 400 miles through stunning scenery. At Dharmsala, I said goodbye to my companions, who continued on to Simla through the Kulu valley, while I took the shorter route via Bilaspur.

My First Visit to Simla The Simla of those days was not the busy and important place it has since become. The Governor-General seldom visited it, and the Commander-in-Chief only spent a summer there occasionally. When I arrived, Sir William Gomm, the Commander-in-Chief of that day, who had been spending the hot weather months there, was about to give up his command, and Colonel Grant,7 who had been his Adjutant-General, had left not long before.

My First Trip to Simla Back then, Simla wasn’t the busy and important place it is now. The Governor-General rarely came to visit, and the Commander-in-Chief only spent the summer there sometimes. When I arrived, Sir William Gomm, the Commander-in-Chief at that time, was about to hand over his command after spending the hot months there, and Colonel Grant,7 who had been his Adjutant-General, had left shortly before.

The only thing of interest to myself which occurred during the month I remained at Simla was that I lunched with Colonel Arthur Becher, the Quartermaster-General. I think I hear my reader say, 'Not a very remarkable event to chronicle.' But that lunch was a memorable one to me; indeed, it was the turning-point in my career, for my host was good enough to say he should like to have me in his department some day, and this meant a great deal to me. Joining a department at that time generally resulted in remaining in it for the greater part of one's service. There was then no limit to the tenure of staff appointments, and the object of every ambitious young officer was to get into one department or another—political, civil, or the army staff. My father had always impressed upon me that the political department was the one to aspire to, and failing that, the Quartermaster-General's, as in the latter there was the best chance of seeing service. I had cherished a sort of vague hope that I might some day be lucky enough to become a Deputy Assistant-Quartermaster-General, for although I fully recognized the advantages of a political career, I preferred being more closely associated with the army, and I had seen enough of staff work to satisfy myself that it would suit me; so the few words spoken to me by Colonel Becher made me supremely happy.

The only thing of interest to me during the month I spent in Simla was having lunch with Colonel Arthur Becher, the Quartermaster-General. I can almost hear you thinking, 'Not a very notable event to mention.' But that lunch was significant for me; in fact, it marked a turning point in my career, since my host expressed his desire to have me join his department someday, which meant a lot to me. Joining a department at that time usually led to staying in it for most of your career. There was then no limit to how long you could hold staff appointments, and every ambitious young officer aimed to get into one department or another—political, civil, or army staff. My father had always stressed that the political department was the one to aspire to, and if that didn't work out, the Quartermaster-General's was the next best option, as it offered the best chance of seeing service. I held onto a vague hope that I might eventually be lucky enough to become a Deputy Assistant-Quartermaster-General, because while I understood the benefits of a political career, I preferred being more closely connected to the army, and I had seen enough of staff work to be sure it would suit me. So, the few words from Colonel Becher made me extremely happy.

It never entered into my head that I should get an early appointment; the fact of the Quartermaster-General thinking of me as a possible recruit was quite enough for me. I was in no hurry to leave the Horse Artillery, to which I was proud of belonging, and in which I hoped to see service while still on the frontier. I left Simla very pleased with the result of my visit, and very grateful to Colonel Becher, who proved a good friend to me ever after, and I made my way to Mian Mir, where I went through the riding-school course, and then returned to Peshawar.

It never occurred to me that I would get an early appointment; just the fact that the Quartermaster-General considered me as a potential recruit was enough for me. I wasn’t in a rush to leave the Horse Artillery, which I was proud to be a part of, and where I hoped to serve while still on the frontier. I left Simla feeling very satisfied with the outcome of my visit and grateful to Colonel Becher, who became a good friend to me afterward, and I headed to Mian Mir, where I completed the riding-school course, then returned to Peshawar.

1856
Life at Peshawar
The winter of 1855-56 passed much as the cold weather generally does in the north of India. Our amusements consisted of an occasional race-meeting or cricket match. Polo was unknown in those days, and hunting the jackal, a sport which has been a source of so much recreation to the Peshawar garrison for thirty odd years, had not then been thought of. It was a pleasant change to visit the outposts, and whenever I got the chance I rode over to Mardan, where the Corps of Guides [Page 25] were stationed, commanded by that gallant soldier, Harry Lumsden,8 who had raised the corps in 1846 under the auspices of Henry Lawrence. Many were the good gallops I enjoyed with his hawks, hunting the aubara.9 Of work there was plenty at Peshawar, for the Brigadier, Sydney Cotton,10 kept us alive with field days, carefully instilling into us his idea that parade-grounds were simply useful for drill and preliminary instruction, and that as soon as the rudiments of a soldier's education had been learnt, the troops should leave their nursery, and try as far as possible to practise in peace what they would have to do in war. Sydney Cotton was never tired of explaining that the machinery of war, like all other machinery, should be kept, so to speak, oiled and ready for use.

1856 Life in Peshawar The winter of 1855-56 went by like most cold winters do in northern India. Our entertainment mainly consisted of occasional race meetings or cricket matches. Polo was not known back then, and hunting jackals, a sport that has provided a lot of fun to the Peshawar garrison for over thirty years, hadn’t been imagined yet. It was a nice change to visit the outposts, and whenever I could, I rode over to Mardan, where the Corps of Guides [Page 25] were stationed, led by the brave soldier, Harry Lumsden,8 who had established the corps in 1846 with the help of Henry Lawrence. I had many great rides with his hawks, hunting the aubara.9 There was plenty of work at Peshawar, as Brigadier Sydney Cotton,10 kept us busy with field days, making sure we understood his belief that parade grounds were mainly for drill and foundational training, and that once we learned the basics of a soldier’s education, the troops should move beyond their training grounds and practice, as much as possible, what they would do in actual combat. Sydney Cotton never tired of saying that the machinery of war, like all other machinery, should be kept well oiled and ready for action.

A Staff Appointment My dream of a staff appointment was realized more quickly than I had expected. In the early part of 1856 the Surveyor-General applied for the services of two or three experienced officers to assist in the survey of Kashmir. Lumsden, the D.A.Q.M.G., was one of those selected for the duty, and I was appointed to officiate for him. So delighted was I to get my foot on the lowest rung of the staff ladder, that I cheerfully agreed to the condition my Captain insisted upon, that I should perform my regimental duties in addition to the staff work. Things went merrily with me for a short time, when most unexpectedly my hopes of some day becoming Quartermaster-General of the Army in India were dashed to the ground by the Governor-General refusing to confirm my appointment, because I had not passed the prescribed examination in Hindustani. A rule existed requiring a language test, but it had seldom been enforced, certainly not in the case of 'acting appointments,' so that this refusal came as a great blow to me. It had, however, excellent results, for it made me determined to pass in Hindustani. It was then May, and in July the half-yearly examination was to be held. I forthwith engaged the best munshi11 at Peshawar, shut myself up, and studied Indian literature from morning till night, until I felt pretty confident of success.

A Staff Hire My dream of getting a staff appointment came true faster than I expected. In early 1856, the Surveyor-General requested a couple of experienced officers to help with the survey of Kashmir. Lumsden, the Deputy Assistant Quartermaster General, was among those chosen for the task, and I was appointed to fill in for him. I was so thrilled to take my first step on the staff ladder that I gladly accepted my Captain’s condition that I also perform my regimental duties along with the staff work. Things were going well for me for a little while, when, unexpectedly, my hopes of one day becoming Quartermaster-General of the Army in India were crushed when the Governor-General refused to confirm my appointment because I hadn’t passed the required exam in Hindustani. There was a rule that required a language test, but it had rarely been enforced, especially not for 'acting appointments,' so this refusal hit me hard. However, it had excellent outcomes because it motivated me to succeed in Hindustani. It was May at that time and the half-yearly exam was set for July. I immediately hired the best munshi11 in Peshawar, locked myself away, and studied Indian literature from morning until night, until I felt quite confident about passing.

Just before the examination took place, the officer who had stepped[Page 26] into my shoes when I was turned out (Lieutenant Mordaunt Fitz-Gerald, of my own regiment) was offered an appointment in the Punjab Frontier Force. He consulted me as to the advisability of accepting it, and I told him I thought he ought not to do so. I considered this most disinterested advice, for I had good reason to believe that I should be re-appointed to the staff, should the appointment again become vacant. Fortunately for me, Fitz-Gerald followed the usual procedure of those who delight in consulting their friends. He listened to my advice, and then decided not to follow it. Accordingly, he joined the Punjab Frontier Force, whilst I, having passed the examination, went back to the coveted appointment, and continued in the department, with the exception of one or two short intervals, until 1878, when I left it as Quartermaster-General.

Just before the exam happened, the officer who stepped[Page 26] into my position when I was let go (Lieutenant Mordaunt Fitz-Gerald, from my own regiment) was offered a job in the Punjab Frontier Force. He asked me whether he should take it, and I told him I thought he shouldn’t. I saw this as completely selfless advice since I had good reason to think I’d be re-appointed to the staff if the position became available again. Luckily for me, Fitz-Gerald followed the typical pattern of those who love asking their friends for advice. He listened to what I said, but then chose not to take it. So, he joined the Punjab Frontier Force, while I, having passed the exam, returned to the sought-after position and stayed in the department, except for a few short breaks, until 1878 when I left as Quartermaster-General.

The Bump of Locality The autumn of 1856 was a very sickly one at Peshawar; fever was rife amongst the troops, and in the hope of shaking it off Brigadier Cotton got permission to take a certain number into camp. It was September, and the sun was still very hot, so that it was necessary to begin the daily march long before dawn in order to reach the new camping ground while it was still tolerably cool. We crossed the Kabul river at Nowshera, which place was then being made into a station for troops, and marched about the Yusafzai plain for three weeks. The chief difficulty was the absence of water, and I had to prospect the country every afternoon for a sufficient supply, and to determine, with regard to this sine quâ non, where the camp should be pitched the next day. On one occasion the best place I could discover was between two and three miles off the main road. There was no difficulty in reaching it by day, but I was afraid of some mistake being made when we had to leave it in the small hours of the morning, few things being more bewildering than to find one's way in the dark from a camp pitched in the open country when once the tents have been struck. It was my duty to lead the column and see that it marched off in the right direction; knowing how anxious the Brigadier was that the new ground should be reached while it was cool, and the men be thus saved from exposure to the sun, I was careful to note my position with regard to the stars, and to explain to the officer who was in orders to command the advance guard the direction he must take. When the time came to start, and the Brigadier was about to order the bugler to sound the march, I saw that the advance guard was drawn up at right angles to the way in which we had to proceed. The officer commanding it was positive he was right, and in this he was supported by Brigadier Cotton and some of the other officers; I was equally positive that he was wrong, and that if we marched as he proposed, we should find ourselves several miles out of our course. The Brigadier settled the question by saying I was responsible for the troops going in the right direction, and ordering me to show the way. The country was perfectly bare, there[Page 27] was not a tree or object of any kind to guide me, and the distance seemed interminable. I heard opinions freely expressed that I was on the wrong road, and at last, when the Brigadier himself came up to me and said he thought I must have lost the way, I really began to waver in my conviction that I was right. At that moment my horse stumbled into a ditch, which proved to be the boundary of the main road. I was immensely relieved, the Brigadier was delighted, and from that moment I think he was satisfied that I had, what is so essential to a Quartermaster-General in the field, the bump of locality.

The Locality Bump The autumn of 1856 was quite unhealthy in Peshawar; fever was widespread among the troops, and in hopes of overcoming it, Brigadier Cotton got permission to take a certain number into camp. It was September, and the sun was still really hot, so we had to start the daily march long before dawn to reach the new campsite while it was still relatively cool. We crossed the Kabul River at Nowshera, which was then being developed into a military station, and marched around the Yusafzai plain for three weeks. The main challenge was the lack of water, so I had to scout the area every afternoon for a sufficient supply and decide where the camp should be set up the next day based on this sine quâ non. One time, the best spot I found was two to three miles off the main road. It was easy to get there during the day, but I was worried about getting lost when we had to leave in the early morning hours; it's confusing to navigate in the dark from a camp set up in the open once the tents are down. I was responsible for leading the column and ensuring it moved in the right direction; knowing how much the Brigadier wanted to reach the new area while it was cool to protect the men from sun exposure, I made sure to track my position using the stars and explained to the officer in charge of the advance guard which direction to take. When it was time to start, and the Brigadier was about to order the bugler to sound the march, I noticed that the advance guard was positioned at a right angle to our intended route. The officer commanding it was convinced he was correct, and Brigadier Cotton and some other officers backed him up; I was equally sure he was mistaken, and that following his route would take us several miles off course. The Brigadier resolved the issue by stating I was responsible for making sure the troops went in the right direction and ordered me to lead the way. The landscape was entirely flat; there wasn’t a tree or any landmark to guide me, and the distance felt endless. I heard people openly speculate that I was on the wrong path, and eventually, when the Brigadier himself approached and suggested I must have lost the way, I truly began to doubt my certainty. At that moment, my horse stumbled into a ditch, which turned out to be the edge of the main road. I felt an immense sense of relief, the Brigadier was thrilled, and from that point on, I think he was convinced I had, what is vital for a Quartermaster-General in the field, a good sense of direction.

In October the Artillery moved into the practice camp at Chamkanie, about five miles from Peshawar. It was intended that we should remain there for a couple of months, but before the end of that time I had to join the General at Rawal Pindi, where he had gone on a tour of inspection. Being anxious not to shirk my regimental duty, I did not leave Chamkanie until the last moment, and had but one day in which to reach Rawal Pindi, a distance of one hundred miles, which I accomplished on horseback between 7 a.m. and 6 p.m., only stopping at Attock a short time for refreshment.

In October, the Artillery moved to the practice camp at Chamkanie, about five miles from Peshawar. We were supposed to stay there for a couple of months, but before that time was up, I had to meet the General in Rawal Pindi, where he was on an inspection tour. Wanting to fulfill my regimental duty, I didn’t leave Chamkanie until the very last moment, and I only had one day to cover the one hundred miles to Rawal Pindi. I did this on horseback between 7 a.m. and 6 p.m., only stopping briefly at Attock for some refreshments.

This tour with General Reed ended my staff duties for a time, as the survey in Kashmir had come to an end and Lumsden rejoined his appointment before Christmas.

This tour with General Reed marked the end of my staff duties for a while since the survey in Kashmir was completed, and Lumsden returned to his position before Christmas.






CHAPTER V.

1856
Lord Dalhousie's Afghanistan Strategy

Towards the close of the year 1856, a rumour reached us that the Amir, Dost Mahomed Khan, was shortly expected to arrive at Peshawar to meet the Chief Commissioner, Sir John Lawrence, who had recently been made a K.C.B.

Towards the end of 1856, we heard a rumor that the Amir, Dost Mahomed Khan, was soon expected to arrive in Peshawar to meet the Chief Commissioner, Sir John Lawrence, who had recently been honored as a K.C.B.

Before describing the Amir's visit and its results, it seems desirable that I should briefly explain how and why the visit was brought about, and then endeavour to show what an important bearing its results had on the great crisis which occurred so unexpectedly a few months later.

Before discussing the Amir's visit and its outcomes, it’s important to briefly explain how and why the visit happened, and then try to show how significantly its results impacted the major crisis that arose unexpectedly a few months later.

It will be remembered that the murdered Mackeson was succeeded as Commissioner of Peshawar by Herbert Edwardes, one of the most remarkable men that the Indian army has ever produced, and who, as I have already mentioned, entirely concurred in my father's expressed opinion as to the great advantage it would be for the Government of India to enter into more friendly relations with the Ruler of Kabul. They both held that the constant troubles all along our frontier were in a great measure due to the Amir's hostility, and that such troubles would increase rather than diminish unless we could succeed in establishing an entente cordiale with Dost Mahomed.

It should be noted that the murdered Mackeson was succeeded as Commissioner of Peshawar by Herbert Edwardes, one of the most remarkable figures the Indian army has ever seen. As I’ve already mentioned, he completely agreed with my father's opinion on the significant benefits it would bring for the Government of India to build more friendly relations with the Ruler of Kabul. Both believed that the ongoing issues along our frontier were largely caused by the Amir's hostility and that these problems would only grow, not decrease, unless we managed to establish a cordial understanding with Dost Mahomed.

Treaty with Dost Mahomed In 1854 Edwardes had a correspondence with the Governor-General[Page 28] on the subject, and on one occasion expressed himself as follows: 'My own feeling is, that we have much injured Dost Mahomed, and may very well afford to let by-gones be by-gones. It would contribute much to the security of this frontier if open relations of goodwill were established at Kabul. There is a sullenness in our present relations, as if both parties were brooding over the past, and expecting an opportunity in the future. This keeps up excitement and unrest, and prevents our influence and institutions taking root. I should be very glad to see a new account opened on the basis of an open treaty of friendship and alliance.'

Treaty with Dost Mahomed In 1854, Edwardes communicated with the Governor-General[Page 28] about this topic, and at one point he stated: 'I truly believe that we've wronged Dost Mahomed and that we could easily move past it. Building open, friendly relations in Kabul would greatly enhance the security of our border. Right now, there’s a gloominess in how we relate, as if both sides are fixated on past grievances and waiting for a chance to act in the future. This keeps the tension and instability alive, hindering our influence and institutions from becoming established. I would be very pleased to start fresh based on a clear treaty of friendship and alliance.'

Lord Dalhousie was quite in accord with Edwardes. He thought it very desirable to be on better terms with Kabul, but believed this to be a result difficult to attain. 'I give you,' he said in a letter to Edwardes, carte blanche, and if you can only bring about such a result as you propose, it will be a new feather in your cap.'

Lord Dalhousie completely agreed with Edwardes. He thought it was very important to improve relations with Kabul, but believed that achieving this would be challenging. 'I give you,' he wrote to Edwardes, carte blanche, and if you can make the outcome you suggest happen, it will be another accomplishment for you.'

Lord Dalhousie was supported by the British Government in his opinion as to the desirability of coming to a better understanding with the Amir. War with Russia was then imminent, and the strained condition of European politics made it expedient that we should be on more amicable terms with Afghanistan.

Lord Dalhousie had the backing of the British Government regarding the need to reach a better understanding with the Amir. War with Russia was on the horizon, and the tense state of European politics made it necessary for us to maintain more friendly relations with Afghanistan.

The Governor-General thus wrote to Edwardes:

The Governor-General emailed Edwardes:

'Prospects of a war between Russia and Turkey are watched with interest by all.... In England they are fidgety regarding this border beyond all reason, and most anxious for that declared amity and that formal renewal of friendly relations which you advocate in your letter.'

'Everyone is keeping a close eye on the possibility of a war between Russia and Turkey.... In England, people are overly anxious about this border situation and are very eager for the amicable relations you mentioned in your letter to be reinstated formally.'

The balance of Indian opinion, however, was against our making overtures to Dost Mahomed. John Lawrence, at that time the great power in the Punjab, was altogether opposed to Edwardes's policy in this matter. He admitted that it might be wise to renew intercourse with the Kabul ruler if he first expressed his regret for previous misunderstandings; but later he wrote to Edwardes:

The general sentiment among Indians, however, was against us reaching out to Dost Mahomed. John Lawrence, who was the primary authority in the Punjab at the time, was completely opposed to Edwardes's approach in this situation. He acknowledged that it might be a good idea to reestablish relations with the ruler of Kabul if he first showed remorse for past misunderstandings; however, he later wrote to Edwardes:

'I dare say you are right; still, I cannot divest myself of the idea that it is a mistake, and will end in mixing us up in Afghan politics and affairs more than is desirable. The strength which a treaty can give us seems to be a delusion. It will be like the reed on which, if a man lean, it will break and pierce his hand.'

'I have to say you’re right; still, I can’t shake the idea that it’s a mistake, and it will end up involving us in Afghan politics and issues more than we want. The strength that a treaty can give us feels like an illusion. It will be like the reed that, if someone leans on it, will break and cut his hand.'

John Nicholson, Outram, and James Abbott agreed with Lawrence. They urged that any advance on our part would be looked upon as an indication of conscious weakness; and the probability was that an arrogant, irritated Mussulman ruler would regard an overture as a proof of our necessity, and would make our necessity his opportunity. But Lord Dalhousie, while anxious to avoid any communication being made which could be liable to misconstruction, saw neither objection nor risk in opening the door to reconciliation, provided no undue anxiety was displayed on our part. The Governor-General practically[Page 29] left the matter in the hands of Edwardes, who lost no time in trying to attain the desired object. The greatest forbearance and diplomatic skill were necessary to bring the negotiations to a satisfactory termination, but they were concluded at last, most successfully, and to Edwardes alone is due the credit. It is instructive to read the full record1 of this tedious and difficult piece of diplomacy, for it serves as an interesting example of Oriental subtlety and circumlocution, contrasted with the straightforward dealing of a high-minded Englishman.

John Nicholson, Outram, and James Abbott agreed with Lawrence. They argued that any move on our part would be seen as a sign of weakness; and it was likely that an arrogant, angry Muslim ruler would view an overture as evidence of our need, using our situation to his advantage. However, Lord Dalhousie, while eager to avoid any communication that could be misinterpreted, saw no problem or risk in opening the door to reconciliation as long as we didn't show excessive concern. The Governor-General essentially left the matter in Edwardes's hands, who wasted no time in working towards the goal. Great restraint and diplomatic skill were needed to bring the negotiations to a satisfactory conclusion, but they were ultimately successful, and Edwardes deserves all the credit. It’s enlightening to read the full record1 of this lengthy and challenging diplomatic effort, as it highlights the contrast between Oriental subtlety and the straightforward approach of an honorable Englishman.

The Amir wrote a letter to the Governor-General couched in most satisfactory terms, which he forwarded to Peshawar by the hand of his confidential secretary, and which received, as it deserved, a very friendly reply. This resulted in Dost Mahomed sending his son and heir-apparent, Sardar Ghulam Haidar Khan, to Peshawar, and deputing him to act as his Plenipotentiary in the negotiations. Ghulam Haidar Khan reached Peshawar in March, 1855, where he was met by the Chief Commissioner, and on the 30th of that month the treaty was concluded. 'It guaranteed that we should respect the Amir's possessions in Afghanistan, and never interfere with them; while the Amir engaged similarly to respect British territory, and to be the friend of our friends and the enemy of our enemies.'

The Amir wrote a letter to the Governor-General in very positive terms, which he sent to Peshawar through his trusted secretary, and it received, as expected, a very friendly response. This led to Dost Mahomed sending his son and heir, Sardar Ghulam Haidar Khan, to Peshawar and appointing him as his representative in the negotiations. Ghulam Haidar Khan arrived in Peshawar in March 1855, where he was welcomed by the Chief Commissioner, and on the 30th of that month, the treaty was finalized. It guaranteed that we would respect the Amir's possessions in Afghanistan and never interfere with them, while the Amir promised to respect British territory and to be friends with our allies and enemies with our foes.

The Governor-General had at first resolved to entrust to Edwardes the duty of meeting the expected Envoy from Kabul, and orders to that effect were issued. But Edwardes, more anxious for the success of the negotiations than for his own honour and glory, wrote to Lord Dalhousie suggesting that the Government of India should be represented by the Chief Commissioner of the Punjab, and promising to afford Sir John Lawrence all the assistance in his power. Edwardes believed that the importance of the treaty would be enhanced in the eyes of the Afghans by the presence of the higher official; and in this opinion the Governor-General concurred. On the conclusion of the treaty, Lord Dalhousie wrote to Edwardes: 'I congratulate you and myself and all else concerned on this successful issue of the negotiations, which have now lasted just a year.'

The Governor-General initially decided to assign Edwardes the responsibility of meeting the anticipated Envoy from Kabul, and orders were given accordingly. However, Edwardes, more focused on the success of the negotiations than his own reputation, wrote to Lord Dalhousie suggesting that the Government of India be represented by the Chief Commissioner of the Punjab, and he promised to provide Sir John Lawrence with all the help he could. Edwardes believed that the significance of the treaty would be viewed as greater by the Afghans if a higher official was present, and the Governor-General agreed with this view. After the treaty was finalized, Lord Dalhousie wrote to Edwardes: 'I congratulate you and myself and everyone else involved on the successful outcome of the negotiations, which have now lasted exactly a year.'

This treaty of March, 1855, was only preliminary to that for the ratification of which the Amir came in person to Peshawar the following year.

This treaty from March 1855 was just a preliminary step to the one that the Amir came in person to Peshawar to ratify the following year.

Towards the end of 1855 Dost Mahomed found himaelf in considerable difficulties, and appealed to us for assistance. A revolt had occurred at Herat, and a Persian army was preparing to besiege that fortress; the chiefs and people of Kandahar were disaffected; and the province of Balkh was threatened with invasion both by the King of Bokhara and by Turkoman hordes. The Amir looked upon Herat as an integral part of the Afghan dominions, and was very desirous of re-establishing[Page 30] his authority over that place and preventing its falling into the hands of the Persians; but he felt himself too weak to have any hope of success without help from us in men and money. It was, therefore, Dost Mahomed's interest to convince the British Government that the Shah had infringed the conditions of an engagement entered into with us in 1853, under which Persia abandoned all claim to Herat. The Amir thus hoped to establish a quarrel between England and Persia for his own benefit, and to secure our assistance against the latter power. To further this design, Dost Mahomed offered to come to Peshawar and consult with the British authorities. Edwardes was in favour of the proposed visit. John Lawrence was opposed to it, saying he did not think much good would result from such a meeting, because it could hardly be anticipated that the views of the Amir and the British Government would coincide, and if Dost Mahomed should fail to obtain what he wanted, his dissatisfaction would be a positive evil. The Governor-General admitted the force of these objections, but in the end considered that they should be set aside if the Amir was in earnest in desiring a consultation. 'A refusal or an evasion to comply with his wish,' Lord Dalhousie thought, 'might be misunderstood, and although a meeting might lead to disappointment and disagreement, it would, at any rate, put the relations of the British Government with the Amir, as regards Herat, upon a clear footing.'

Towards the end of 1855, Dost Mahomed found himself in significant trouble and asked us for help. A revolt had broken out in Herat, and a Persian army was gearing up to lay siege to that fortress; the leaders and people of Kandahar were unhappy; and the province of Balkh faced threats of invasion from both the King of Bokhara and Turkoman groups. The Amir saw Herat as a vital part of the Afghan territories and was eager to reassert his control over it to prevent it from falling into Persian hands. However, he felt too weak to succeed without our support in terms of soldiers and funds. Therefore, it was in Dost Mahomed's interest to persuade the British Government that the Shah had violated an agreement made with us in 1853, in which Persia renounced all claims to Herat. The Amir hoped to create a conflict between England and Persia for his own advantage and secure our help against the latter. To advance this plan, Dost Mahomed proposed to visit Peshawar and discuss matters with British officials. Edwardes supported the proposed visit, while John Lawrence opposed it, believing that little good would come from such a meeting, as it was unlikely that the Amir's and the British Government's views would align, and if Dost Mahomed did not get what he wanted, his discontent would be harmful. The Governor-General acknowledged the validity of these concerns, but ultimately felt they should be overlooked if the Amir genuinely wanted a consultation. "A refusal or avoidance of his request," Lord Dalhousie thought, "might be misinterpreted, and although a meeting could lead to disappointment and disagreement, it would at least clarify the relationship between the British Government and the Amir regarding Herat."

War with Persia While this discussion was going on, the advance of a Persian army for the purpose of besieging Herat, coupled with the insults offered to the British flag at Teheran, led to the declaration of war between England and Persia. The Chief Commissioner was therefore directed to tell the Amir that he would be paid a periodical subsidy to aid him in carrying on hostile operations against Persia, subject to certain conditions. On receiving these instructions, the Chief Commissioner directed Edwardes to invite the Amir to an interview. Dost Mahomed accepted the invitation, but before the auspicious meeting could take place Lord Dalhousie had left India, and Lord Canning reigned in his stead. Lord Dalhousie resigned on the 29th February, 1856, after having filled the arduous and responsible position of Governor-General for no less than eight years, adding year by year fresh lustre to his splendid reputation.

War with Persia During this discussion, the approach of a Persian army aiming to besiege Herat, along with the insults directed at the British flag in Teheran, led to the declaration of war between England and Persia. The Chief Commissioner was then instructed to inform the Amir that he would receive a regular subsidy to help him carry out military actions against Persia, under specific conditions. Upon receiving these instructions, the Chief Commissioner asked Edwardes to invite the Amir for a meeting. Dost Mahomed accepted the invitation, but before the important meeting could happen, Lord Dalhousie had left India, and Lord Canning took over as Governor-General. Lord Dalhousie resigned on February 29, 1856, after serving in the challenging and responsible role of Governor-General for eight years, adding to his already impressive reputation year after year.

1857 The first day of 1857 witnessed the meeting between the Amir of Kabul and the Chief Commissioner of the Punjab. The Amir's camp was pitched at the mouth of the Khyber Pass, and that of the Chief Commissioner on the plain near Jamrud. Barr's troop of Horse Artillery formed part of the escort, so I was in the midst of it all. On the occasion of the Amir's first visit to the English camp, there was a force present of upwards of 7,000 soldiers, including three regiments of British Infantry; the troops lined the road for more than a mile, and it was evident that their strength and soldierly appearance inspired the[Page 31] Amir and his followers with a very salutary feeling of awe and admiration.2

1857 On the first day of 1857, the Amir of Kabul met with the Chief Commissioner of the Punjab. The Amir set up his camp at the entrance of the Khyber Pass, while the Chief Commissioner's camp was located on the plain near Jamrud. Barr's troop of Horse Artillery was part of the escort, which placed me right in the center of everything. During the Amir's first visit to the English camp, there were over 7,000 soldiers present, including three regiments of British Infantry; the troops lined the road for more than a mile, and it was clear that their strength and soldierly appearance filled the Amir and his followers with a strong sense of awe and admiration.[Page 31]

The result of the conferences between these two great personages was an agreement confirming the treaty of the year before. In addition, the Amir bound himself to keep up a certain number of regular troops for the defence of Afghanistan, so long as the war with Persia continued, in consideration of a monthly subsidy of Rs. 100,000 and a gift of 4,000 muskets. He also engaged to communicate to the Government of India any overtures he might receive from Persia, and he consented to allow British officers to visit certain parts of his dominions, either for the purpose of assisting his subjects against Persia, or to ascertain that the subsidy was properly applied.

The outcome of the meetings between these two prominent figures was an agreement that upheld the treaty from the previous year. Additionally, the Amir committed to maintaining a certain number of regular troops for the defense of Afghanistan, as long as the war with Persia was ongoing, in exchange for a monthly payment of Rs. 100,000 and a gift of 4,000 muskets. He also agreed to inform the Government of India of any proposals he might receive from Persia and allowed British officers to visit specific areas of his territory, either to help his people against Persia or to ensure that the subsidy was used appropriately.

The Advantage of the Amir's Friendship I have dwelt at some length on this treaty with Afghanistan, first, because the policy of which this was the outcome was, as I have already shown, initiated by my father; and, secondly, because I do not think it is generally understood how important to us were its results. Not only did it heal the wounds left open from the first Afghan war, but it relieved England of a great anxiety at a time when throughout the length and breadth of India there was distress, revolt, bloodshed, and bitter distrust of our Native troops. Dost Mahomed loyally held to his engagements during the troublous days of the Mutiny which so quickly followed this alliance, when, had he turned against us, we should assuredly have lost the Punjab; Delhi could never have been taken; in fact, I do not see how any part of the country north of Bengal could have been saved. Dost Mahomed's own people could not understand his attitude. They frequently came to him during the Mutiny, throwing their turbans at his feet, and praying him as a Mahomedan to seize that opportunity for destroying the 'infidels.' 'Hear the news from Delhi,' they urged; 'see the difficulties the Feringhis are in. Why don't you lead us on to take advantage of their weakness, and win back Peshawar?'3

The Benefit of the Amir's Friendship I have spent quite a bit of time discussing this treaty with Afghanistan, first, because the policy that led to it was, as I mentioned before, started by my father; and, secondly, because I believe the significance of its outcomes is not widely appreciated. Not only did it close the wounds left from the first Afghan war, but it also relieved England of major concerns at a time when all across India there was turmoil, rebellion, violence, and deep mistrust of our Native troops. Dost Mahomed remained loyal to his commitments during the chaotic days of the Mutiny that followed this alliance so swiftly, and had he turned against us, we would surely have lost Punjab; Delhi would never have been captured; in fact, I can't see how any part of the region north of Bengal could have been saved. Dost Mahomed's own people struggled to grasp his position. They often approached him during the Mutiny, throwing their turbans at his feet, urging him as a Muslim to seize this chance to destroy the 'infidels.' 'Listen to the news from Delhi,' they pressed; 'look at the troubles the Feringhis are facing. Why don’t you lead us to exploit their weaknesses and reclaim Peshawar? ' 3

But I am anticipating, and must return to my narrative.

But I’m getting ahead of myself, and I need to get back to my story.

The clause of the treaty which interested me personally was that relating to British officers being allowed to visit Afghanistan, to give effect to which a Mission was despatched to Kandahar. It consisted of three officers, the brothers Harry and Peter Lumsden, and Dr. Bellew, together with two of Edwardes's trusted Native Chiefs. The selection of Peter Lumsden as a member of this Mission again left the Deputy Assistant-Quartermaster-Generalship vacant, and I was a second time appointed to officiate in his absence.

The part of the treaty that caught my attention was the section about British officers being allowed to visit Afghanistan. To make this happen, a mission was sent to Kandahar. It was made up of three officers, brothers Harry and Peter Lumsden, and Dr. Bellew, along with two trusted Native Chiefs from Edwardes. Picking Peter Lumsden for this mission left the Deputy Assistant-Quartermaster-General position open again, and I was appointed to fill in for him a second time.

Shortly afterwards the General of the division (General Reed) started on his tour of inspection, taking me with him as his staff officer. Jhelum was the first place we visited. Whether the sepoys had then any knowledge of what was so soon to happen is doubtful. If they[Page 32] had, there was no evidence that such was the case. Nothing could have been more proper or respectful than their behaviour; no crimes were reported, no complaints were made. The British officers, certainly, had not the slightest idea of the storm that was brewing, for they spoke in the warmest terms of their men.

Shortly after that, the General of the division (General Reed) began his inspection tour, taking me along as his staff officer. Jhelum was our first stop. It's unclear whether the sepoys had any idea of what was about to happen. If they did, there was no sign of it. Their behavior was perfectly proper and respectful; no crimes were reported, and no complaints were made. The British officers definitely had no clue about the storm that was brewing since they spoke very highly of their men.

From Jhelum we went to Rawal Pindi. John Lawrence happened to be in camp there at the time, and looked on at the General's inspection. At the conclusion of the parade he sent his secretary to ask me if I would like to be appointed to the Public Works Department. I respectfully declined the offer, though very grateful for its having been made. Some of my friends doubted the wisdom of my refusing a permanent civil appointment; but it meant having to give up soldiering, which I could not make up my mind to do, and though only officiating, I was already in the department to which of all others I wished to belong.

From Jhelum, we traveled to Rawal Pindi. John Lawrence was in camp there at the time and watched the General’s inspection. After the parade ended, he sent his secretary to ask me if I would like a position in the Public Works Department. I politely declined the offer, though I was very grateful that it was extended to me. Some of my friends questioned the wisdom of refusing a permanent civil position, but it meant I would have to give up being a soldier, which I couldn’t bring myself to do. Even though I was only officiating, I was already in the department I wanted to be in more than any other.

Nowshera was the last station we visited. It was the beginning of April, and getting rather hot for parading troops. I there met for the first time the present Commander-in-Chief in India, General Sir George White, who was then a subaltern in the 27th (Inniskilling) Regiment.

Nowshera was the last stop we made. It was early April, and it was getting pretty hot for marching troops. I met the current Commander-in-Chief in India, General Sir George White, for the first time there; he was a junior officer in the 27th (Inniskilling) Regiment at the time.

I recollect the commanding officer of the 55th, the Native Infantry corps at this station, who had served all his life with clean-looking, closely-shaven Hindustanis, pointing with a look of contempt, not to say disgust, to some Sikhs (a certain proportion of whom had been under recent orders enlisted in regiments of Native Infantry), and expressing his regret that he could not get them to shave their beards and cut their hair. 'They quite spoil the look of my regiment,' he said. In less than two months' time the Hindustanis, of whom the Colonel was so proud, had broken into open mutiny; the despised Sikhs were the only men of the regiment who remained faithful; and the commanding officer, a devoted soldier who lived for his regiment, and who implored that his men might not have their arms taken away, as he had 'implicit confidence' in them, and would 'stake his life on their fidelity,' had blown his brains out because he found that confidence misplaced.

I remember the commanding officer of the 55th Native Infantry at this station, who had spent his entire career with clean-cut, closely-shaved Hindustanis. He looked at some Sikhs—some of whom had recently been enlisted in Native Infantry regiments—with disdain and even disgust, wishing they would shave their beards and cut their hair. "They completely ruin the appearance of my regiment," he said. Less than two months later, the Hindustanis, who the Colonel was so proud of, had openly mutinied, while the Sikhs remained the only loyal soldiers in the regiment. The commanding officer, a dedicated soldier who lived for his regiment, pleaded that his men not have their weapons taken away because he had "implicit confidence" in them and would "bet his life on their loyalty." In the end, he took his own life when he realized that his trust had been misplaced.



Brigadier-General John Nicholson, C.B.

BRIGADIER-GENERAL JOHN NICHOLSON, C.B.

From
a painting by J.R. Dicksee
in
possession of the Rev. Canon Seymour.

Brigadier-General John Nicholson, C.B.

BRIGADIER-GENERAL JOHN NICHOLSON, C.B.

From
a painting by J.R. Dicksee
in
the collection of Rev. Canon Seymour.



John Nicholson
'A Pillar of Strength on the Frontier'
Towards the end of April I was ordered to report on the capabilities of Cherat (now well known to all who have been stationed at Peshawar) as a sanatorium for European soldiers. I spent two or three days surveying the hill and searching for water in the neighbourhood. It was not safe to remain on the top at night, so I used to return each evening to the plain below, where my tent was pitched. On one occasion I was surprised to find a camp had risen up during my absence quite close to my tent. I discovered that it belonged to Lieutenant-Colonel John Nicholson, the Deputy-Commissioner, who was on his tour of inspection, and very soon I received an invitation to dine with[Page 33] him, at which I was greatly pleased. John Nicholson was a name to conjure with in the Punjab. I had heard it mentioned with an amount of respect—indeed, awe—which no other name could excite, and I was all curiosity to see the man whose influence on the frontier was so great that his word was law to the refractory tribes amongst whom he lived. He had only lately arrived in Peshawar, having been transferred from Bannu, a difficult and troublesome district ruled by him as it had never been ruled before, and where he made such a reputation for himself that, while he was styled 'a pillar of strength on the frontier' by Lord Dalhousie, he was looked up to as a god by the Natives, who loved as much as they feared him. By some of them he was actually worshipped as a saint; they formed themselves into a sect, and called themselves 'Nicholseyns.' Nicholson impressed me more profoundly than any man I had ever met before, or have ever met since. I have never seen anyone like him. He was the beau-ideal of a soldier and a gentleman. His appearance was distinguished and commanding, with a sense of power about him which to my mind was the result of his having passed so much of his life amongst the wild and lawless tribesmen, with whom his authority was supreme. Intercourse with this man amongst men made me more eager than ever to remain on the frontier, and I was seized with ambition to follow in his footsteps. Had I never seen Nicholson again, I might have thought that the feelings with which he inspired me were to some extent the result of my imagination, excited by the astonishing stories I had heard of his power and influence; my admiration, however, for him was immeasurably strengthened when, a few weeks later, I served as his staff officer, and had opportunities of observing more closely his splendid soldierly qualities and the workings of his grand, simple mind.

John Nicholson
'A Pillar of Strength on the Frontier'
Towards the end of April, I was assigned to evaluate Cherat (now familiar to everyone stationed at Peshawar) as a sanatorium for European soldiers. I spent a couple of days checking out the hills and looking for water nearby. It wasn't safe to stay on the summit at night, so I returned each evening to the plain below where my tent was set up. One evening, I was surprised to find a camp had sprung up close to my tent during my absence. I found out it belonged to Lieutenant-Colonel John Nicholson, the Deputy-Commissioner, who was on an inspection tour, and I quickly received an invitation to dinner with him, which I was really pleased about. John Nicholson was a name that commanded respect in the Punjab. I had heard it mentioned with a level of respect—indeed, awe—because no other name inspired such feelings, and I was eager to meet the man whose influence on the frontier was so significant that his word was law to the unruly tribes around him. He had just arrived in Peshawar, having been transferred from Bannu, a challenging district that he managed like never before, earning a reputation so strong that while Lord Dalhousie referred to him as 'a pillar of strength on the frontier,' the Natives revered him almost like a god, loving him as much as they feared him. Some of them even worshipped him as a saint, forming a sect called 'Nicholseyns.' Nicholson left a deeper impression on me than anyone else I had ever met before or since. I’ve never encountered someone like him. He was the perfect example of a soldier and a gentleman. His presence was distinguished and commanding, with an aura of power that came from spending so much time among the wild and lawless tribesmen, whom he governed with absolute authority. Interacting with him among other men made me more eager than ever to stay on the frontier, igniting my ambition to follow in his footsteps. If I had never seen Nicholson again, I might have thought that the strong feelings he inspired in me were partly due to my imagination, fueled by the incredible stories I had heard about his power and influence; however, my admiration for him grew tremendously when, a few weeks later, I served as his staff officer and had the chance to closely observe his outstanding military qualities and the workings of his grand, straightforward mind.

It was the end of April when I returned to Peshawar from Cherat, and rapidly getting hot. On the strength of being a D.A.Q.M.G., I had moved into a better house than I had hitherto been able to afford, which I shared with Lieutenant Hovenden of the Engineers. We were just settling down and making ourselves comfortable for the long hot weather, when all our plans were upset by the breaking out of the Mutiny.

It was the end of April when I came back to Peshawar from Cherat, and it was getting hot quickly. Because I was a D.A.Q.M.G., I had moved into a better house than I could have afforded before, which I shared with Lieutenant Hovenden from the Engineers. We were just getting settled and making ourselves comfortable for the long, hot season when all our plans were thrown off by the outbreak of the Mutiny.






CHAPTER VI.

1857


First Tidings of the Mutiny
The first threatenings of coming trouble were heard in the early part of 1857. During the months of February, March, and April, rumours reached us at Peshawar of mysterious chupattis (unleavened cakes) being sent about the country with the object, it was alleged, of preparing the Natives for some forthcoming event. There was also an evident feeling of unrest and dissatisfaction in the minds of the sepoys. We heard that the 19th Native Infantry at Berhampur, a military station about 100 miles from Calcutta, had broken open the bells-of-arms,1 and forcibly taken possession of their muskets and ammunition; that a sepoy named Mangal Pandy,2 belonging to the 34th Native Infantry at Barrackpore, had attacked and severely wounded the Adjutant and Sergeant-Major of his regiment; that it was found necessary to disband the 19th on the 30th March, and the 34th on the 6th May; that bungalows had been burnt in several stations; and that the sepoys at the Schools of Musketry had objected to use the cartridges served out with the new rifles, because, it was asserted, they were greased with a mixture of cow's fat and lard, the one being as obnoxious to the prejudices of the Hindu as the other is to those of the Mussulman.

First News of the Mutiny The first signs of trouble appeared in early 1857. In February, March, and April, we received rumors in Peshawar about mysterious chupattis (unleavened cakes) being distributed across the country, supposedly to prepare the Natives for some upcoming event. There was also a clear sense of unrest and dissatisfaction among the sepoys. We learned that the 19th Native Infantry in Berhampur, a military station about 100 miles from Calcutta, had broken into the arms store and taken their muskets and ammunition by force; that a sepoy named Mangal Pandy,1 from the 34th Native Infantry at Barrackpore, had attacked and seriously injured the Adjutant and Sergeant-Major of his unit; that it was deemed necessary to disband the 19th on March 30th and the 34th on May 6th; that bungalows had been set on fire in several stations; and that the sepoys at the Schools of Musketry opposed using the cartridges supplied with the new rifles because, they claimed, they were greased with a mix of cow's fat and lard, which was offensive to the beliefs of Hindus and Muslims alike.

It seems strange on looking back that these many warnings should have passed almost unheeded, and that there should have been no suspicion amongst the officers serving with Native regiments that discontent was universal amongst the sepoys, and that a mutiny of the whole Bengal Army was imminent. But at that time the reliance on the fidelity of the Native troops was unbounded, and officers believed implicitly in the contentment and loyalty of their men. Their faith in them was extraordinary. Even after half the Native army had mutinied and many officers had been murdered, those belonging to the remaining regiments could not believe that their own particular men could be guilty of treachery.

It seems odd in retrospect that these numerous warnings went largely ignored, and that the officers serving with Native regiments had no suspicion that discontent was widespread among the sepoys, and that a mutiny across the entire Bengal Army was on the horizon. At that time, there was an unwavering trust in the loyalty of the Native troops, and officers had complete confidence in the satisfaction and allegiance of their men. Their faith in them was remarkable. Even after half of the Native army had rebelled and many officers had been killed, those in the remaining regiments couldn’t believe that their own men could betray them.

At Peshawar there was not the slightest suspicion of the extent to which the evil had spread, and we were quite thunderstruck when, on the evening of the 11th May, as we were sitting at mess, the telegraph signaller rushed in breathless with excitement, a telegram in his hand, which proved to be a message from Delhi 'to all stations in the Punjab,' conveying the startling intelligence that a very serious outbreak had occurred at Meerut the previous evening, that some of the troopers from there had already reached Delhi, that the Native soldiers at the latter place had joined the mutineers, and that many officers and[Page 35] residents at both stations had been killed.

At Peshawar, there was no hint of how widespread the issue really was, and we were completely shocked when, on the evening of May 11th, while we were having dinner, the telegraph operator burst in, breathless with excitement, holding a telegram. It was a message from Delhi "to all stations in the Punjab," sharing the shocking news that a serious uprising had taken place in Meerut the night before, that some of the soldiers from there had already arrived in Delhi, that the Native soldiers there had joined the mutineers, and that many officers and[Page 35] residents at both locations had been killed.

Prompt Action at Peshawar Lieutenant-Colonel Davidson, commanding the 16th Irregular Cavalry, who happened to be dining at mess that evening, was the first to recover from the state of consternation into which we were thrown by the reading of this telegram. He told us it was of the utmost importance that the Commissioner and the General should at once be put in possession of this astounding news, and at the same time impressed upon us the imperative necessity for keeping it secret.

Immediate Action at Peshawar Lieutenant-Colonel Davidson, in charge of the 16th Irregular Cavalry, who was having dinner at the mess that evening, was the first to snap out of the shock we all felt after hearing the telegram. He informed us that it was crucial for the Commissioner and the General to be informed of this surprising news immediately, while also stressing the urgent need to keep it confidential.

Davidson then hurried off to the Commissioner, who with his deputy, Nicholson, lived within a stone's-throw of the mess. Edwardes drove at once to the General's house, while Nicholson came to our mess. He too pointed out to us the importance of preventing the news from getting about and of keeping it as long as possible from the Native soldiers.

Davidson quickly went to see the Commissioner, who lived very close to the mess with his deputy, Nicholson. Edwardes went straight to the General's house, while Nicholson came to our mess. He also emphasized the importance of keeping the news from spreading and keeping it away from the Native soldiers for as long as possible.

We had at Peshawar three regiments of Native Cavalry and five of Native Infantry, not less than 5,000 men, while the strength of the two British regiments and the Artillery did not exceed 2,000. This European force was more than sufficient to cope with the eight Native corps, but in the event of any general disturbance amongst the Native troops, we had to calculate on the probability of their being joined by the 50,000 inhabitants of the city, and, indeed, by the entire population of the Peshawar valley; not to speak of the tribes all along the border, who were sure to rise.

We had three regiments of Native Cavalry and five of Native Infantry in Peshawar, totaling at least 5,000 men, while the two British regiments and the Artillery only added up to about 2,000. This European force was more than enough to handle the eight Native corps, but if there was any major unrest among the Native troops, we had to consider that they might be joined by the 50,000 people living in the city, as well as the whole population of the Peshawar valley, not to mention the tribes along the border who were likely to rebel.

It was an occasion for the gravest anxiety, and the delay of even a few hours in the sepoys becoming aware of the disastrous occurrences at Meerut and Delhi meant a great deal to us.

It was a moment of serious concern, and the delay of even a few hours before the soldiers found out about the disastrous events in Meerut and Delhi meant a lot to us.

Fortunately for India, there were good men and true at Peshawar in those days, when hesitation and irresolution would have been fatal, and it is worthy of note that they were comparatively young men—Edwardes was thirty-seven, Nicholson thirty-five; Neville Chamberlain, the distinguished Commandant of the Punjab Frontier Force (who was hastily summoned from Kohat, where he happened to be on his tour of inspection), was thirty-seven; and the Brigadier, Sydney Cotton, though much older, being sixty-five, was not only exceptionally young for his years and full of energy and intelligence, but actually much younger than the average of General officers commanding stations in India.

Fortunately for India, there were good and capable leaders in Peshawar at that time, when any delay or uncertainty could have been disastrous. It's worth noting that they were relatively young—Edwardes was thirty-seven, Nicholson was thirty-five; Neville Chamberlain, the well-respected Commandant of the Punjab Frontier Force (who was quickly called from Kohat, where he was on an inspection tour), was also thirty-seven; and Brigadier Sydney Cotton, while older at sixty-five, was still remarkably youthful for his age, full of energy and intelligence, and actually much younger than the average of General officers in charge of stations in India.

At once, on hearing of the Mutiny, Edwardes, acting in unison with Nicholson, sent to the post-office and laid hands on all Native correspondence; the letters they thus secured showed but too plainly how necessary was this precaution. The number of seditious papers seized was alarmingly great; they were for the most part couched in figurative and enigmatical language, but it was quite sufficiently clear from them that every Native regiment in the garrison was more or less implicated and prepared to join the rebel movement.

At the same time, when they heard about the Mutiny, Edwardes, working together with Nicholson, went to the post office and took control of all Native correspondence. The letters they collected clearly demonstrated how crucial this step was. The amount of seditious documents seized was shockingly high; they were mostly written in metaphorical and cryptic language, but it was pretty clear from them that every Native regiment in the garrison was at least somewhat involved and ready to support the rebel cause.

A strong interest attaches to these letters, for they brought to light[Page 36] the true feeling of the Natives towards us at the time, and it was evident from them that the sepoys had really been made to believe that we intended to destroy their caste by various unholy devices, of which the issue of contaminating cartridges was one. The seeds of disaffection had been sown by agitators, who thought they saw an opportunity for realizing their hope of overthrowing our rule, maintained as it was by a mere handful of Europeans in the midst of a vast population of Asiatics. This feeling of antagonism, only guessed at before, was plainly revealed in these letters, never intended to meet the European eye. Some corps did not appear to be quite so guilty as others, but there could now be no doubt that all were tainted with disloyalty, and that none of the Hindustani troops could any longer be trusted.

A strong interest surrounds these letters, as they revealed[Page 36] the true feelings of the Natives towards us at that time. It was clear from them that the sepoys genuinely believed we aimed to destroy their caste through various immoral means, one of which was the distribution of contaminated cartridges. The seeds of discontent had been planted by agitators who saw an opportunity to fulfill their desire to overthrow our rule, which was upheld by just a small group of Europeans amid a large population of Asiatics. This sense of hostility, previously only suspected, was made clear in these letters, which were never meant to be seen by European eyes. Some regiments seemed less culpable than others, but it was now undeniable that all were infected with disloyalty, and none of the Hindustani troops could be trusted any longer.

In the afternoon of Tuesday, the 12th May, I received a note from the General commanding the division directing me to present myself at his house the following morning, which I accordingly did. Besides General Reed I found there the Brigadier, Sydney Cotton; the Commissioner, Herbert Edwardes; the Deputy Commissioner, John Nicholson; Brigadier Neville Chamberlain, and Captain Wright, Deputy Assistant-Adjutant-General, who, like myself, had been summoned to record the decisions that might be arrived at.

On the afternoon of Tuesday, May 12th, I got a note from the General in charge of the division telling me to come to his house the next morning, which I did. In addition to General Reed, I found Brigadier Sydney Cotton there, along with Commissioner Herbert Edwardes, Deputy Commissioner John Nicholson, Brigadier Neville Chamberlain, and Captain Wright, the Deputy Assistant-Adjutant-General, who, like me, had been called in to record the decisions that might be made.

This meeting was a most momentous one, and I remember being greatly impressed with the calm and comprehensive view of the situation taken by Edwardes and Nicholson. They had already been in communication with the Chief Commissioner, and had, previous to the meeting, received a telegram from him approving generally of the several proposals they contemplated. John Lawrence also informed them that the authorities at Lahore had decided on disarming the Native troops at Mian Mir that very morning.

This meeting was very significant, and I remember being really impressed by the calm and thorough perspective on the situation presented by Edwardes and Nicholson. They had already been in touch with the Chief Commissioner and had received a telegram from him before the meeting, generally approving the various proposals they were considering. John Lawrence also informed them that the authorities in Lahore had decided to disarm the Native troops at Mian Mir that very morning.

The problem to be solved was how the Punjab could best be made secure with the small force of British troops available—all told not more than 15,000, with 84 guns—against upwards of 65,000 Natives (of whom 42,000 were Hindustanis), with 62 guns.3 In all stations Native troops preponderated, and in some there were no European[Page 37] soldiers at all.

The challenge was figuring out how to keep Punjab secure with the limited number of British troops available—only about 15,000 in total, equipped with 84 guns—facing over 65,000 locals (including 42,000 Hindustanis), who had 62 guns. In all the stations, Native troops were in the majority, and in some, there weren’t any European[Page 37] soldiers at all.

A Bold Policy Edwardes and Nicholson gave it as their opinion that the only chance of keeping the Punjab and the frontier quiet lay in trusting the Chiefs and people, and in endeavouring to induce them to side with us against the Hindustanis. They undertook to communicate, regarding the raising of levies and fresh troops, with their friends and acquaintances along the border, who had proved such staunch allies in 1848-49, when we were fighting with the Sikhs. How nobly these loyal men responded to the demand made upon them, and how splendidly the frontier and Punjab soldiers whom they brought to our assistance behaved, will be seen hereafter.

A Brave Policy Edwardes and Nicholson believed that the best way to keep the Punjab and the frontier peaceful was to trust the Chiefs and the people, and to encourage them to ally with us against the Hindustanis. They took on the task of reaching out to friends and contacts along the border about raising local forces and new troops, who had been such loyal allies in 1848-49 during our battles with the Sikhs. The incredible loyalty these men showed in response to our request, and the outstanding performance of the frontier and Punjab soldiers they brought to help us, will be detailed later.

The Movable Column Amongst other matters of importance, it was proposed by those two able soldier-civilians, Edwardes and Nicholson, that General Reed, as the senior officer in the Punjab, should join the Chief Commissioner at Rawal Pindi, leaving Brigadier Cotton in command at Peshawar; that a Movable Column, composed of reliable troops, should be organized at some convenient place in the Punjab,4 prepared to move in any direction where its services might be required; that the Hindustani regiments[Page 38] should be scattered as much as possible, in order to prevent dangerous combinations; that a detachment of Punjab Infantry from Kohat should replace the Hindustani sepoys in the fort of Attock, which was a very important position, as it contained a magazine, and covered the passage of the Indus; and that a small guard of Pathan levies, under a tried and trusty frontier Native officer, should be placed in charge of the Attock ferry.

The Mobile Column Among other important issues, two skilled soldier-civilians, Edwardes and Nicholson, suggested that General Reed, as the senior officer in the Punjab, should meet the Chief Commissioner in Rawal Pindi, leaving Brigadier Cotton in charge at Peshawar. They proposed organizing a Movable Column made up of dependable troops at a suitable location in the Punjab,4 ready to deploy in any direction where it might be needed. They also recommended that the Hindustani regiments[Page 38] should be dispersed as much as possible to prevent any dangerous groupings; a detachment of Punjab Infantry from Kohat should take over from the Hindustani sepoys in the fort of Attock, an essential location because it housed a magazine and oversaw the Indus passage; and a small guard of Pathan levies under a reliable frontier Native officer should be assigned to oversee the Attock ferry.

All these proposals were cordially and unanimously agreed to by the military authorities present.

All these proposals were warmly and unanimously accepted by the military officials present.

The question of the command of the Movable Column was then discussed. It was considered essential that the officer selected should, in addition to other necessary qualifications, have considerable experience of the country, and an intimate knowledge of Native soldiers. It was no ordinary command. On the action of the Movable Column would depend, to a great extent, the maintenance of peace and order throughout the Punjab, and it was felt that, at such a crisis, the best man must be selected, irrespective of seniority. It was a position for which Cotton and Nicholson would have given much, and for which they were well qualified, but there was important work for them to do at Peshawar. Neville Chamberlain was available, and there was a general consensus of opinion that he should be appointed. It was necessary, however, to refer the matter to the Chief Commissioner, with a request that he would submit it for the orders of the Commander-in-Chief. This course was adopted, and in a few hours a reply was received from General Anson nominating Chamberlain to the command. My anxiety as to the Commander-in-Chief's decision was very considerable; for Brigadier Chamberlain, to my infinite delight and astonishment, had offered, in the event of his being appointed, to take me with him as his staff officer—the most wonderful piece of good fortune that could have come to me; my readers must imagine my feelings, for it is impossible for me to describe them. My most sanguine hopes seemed about to be more than realized; for though the serious aspect of affairs seemed to promise the chance of active service, I little thought that I should be lucky enough to be employed as the staff officer of such a distinguished soldier as Neville Chamberlain.

The question of who should lead the Movable Column was discussed. It was deemed essential that the chosen officer not only possess other necessary skills but also have significant experience with the area and a deep understanding of Native soldiers. This was no ordinary command. The effectiveness of the Movable Column would greatly influence the stability of peace and order throughout the Punjab, and it was believed that, in such a critical situation, the best candidate should be selected, regardless of seniority. Cotton and Nicholson would have valued this position and were well-suited for it, but they had important responsibilities in Peshawar. Neville Chamberlain was available, and there was a general agreement that he should be appointed. However, it was necessary to refer the matter to the Chief Commissioner, requesting that he present it to the Commander-in-Chief for a decision. This was done, and within a few hours, a response was received from General Anson nominating Chamberlain for the command. I was very anxious about the Commander-in-Chief's decision; to my immense delight and surprise, Brigadier Chamberlain had offered, if appointed, to bring me along as his staff officer—the most incredible stroke of luck that could have come my way; my readers can only imagine how I felt, as it's impossible for me to fully convey it. My most optimistic hopes seemed on the verge of being exceeded; although the serious state of affairs hinted at the possibility of active service, I never imagined I would be fortunate enough to serve as the staff officer to such a distinguished soldier as Neville Chamberlain.

When the meeting was over I was ordered to take the several messages, which Wright and I had written out, to the telegraph office, and see them despatched myself; as they disclosed more or less the[Page 39] measures that had been decided upon, it was necessary to avoid any chance of their falling into the hands of Native clerks. One of the messages5 contained a summary of the proceedings of the council, and was addressed to the commanding officers of all stations in the Punjab, with the view of imparting confidence, and letting them know what steps were being taken for the protection of the British residents throughout the province. This duty having been carried out, I returned home in a not unpleasant frame of mind, for though the crisis was a grave one, the outlook gloomy, and the end doubtful, the excitement was great. There were stirring times in store for us, when every man's powers would be tested, and the hopefulness of youth inclined me to look only on the bright side of the situation.

When the meeting ended, I was instructed to take the various messages that Wright and I had written to the telegraph office and ensure they were sent myself; since they revealed some of the plans that had been decided, it was crucial to prevent them from getting into the hands of Native clerks. One of the messages5 included a summary of the council's proceedings and was addressed to the commanding officers of all stations in the Punjab, aimed at boosting their confidence and informing them of the measures being taken to protect British residents throughout the province. Having completed this task, I returned home feeling quite good, because although the crisis was serious, the outlook was bleak, and the resolution uncertain, the excitement was palpable. We were in for some intense times ahead, when everyone's abilities would be put to the test, and my youthful optimism led me to focus only on the positive aspects of the situation.

An Annoying Occurrence My equanimity was somewhat disturbed later in the day by an occurrence which caused me a good deal of annoyance at the time, though it soon passed away. Nicholson came to my house and told me that the proceedings at the meeting that morning had in some unaccountable manner become known; and he added, much to my disgust, that it was thought I might perhaps have been guilty of the indiscretion of divulging them. I was very angry, for I had appreciated as much as anyone the immense importance of keeping the decisions arrived at perfectly secret; and I could not help showing something of the indignation I felt at its having been thought possible that I could betray the confidence reposed in me. I denied most positively having done so; upon which Nicholson suggested that we should proceed together to the telegraph office and see whether the information could have leaked out from there. The signaller was a mere boy, and Nicholson's imposing presence and austere manner were quite too much for him; he was completely cowed, and, after a few hesitating denials, he admitted having satisfied the curiosity of a friend who had inquired[Page 40] of him how the authorities intended to deal with the crisis. This was enough, and I was cleared. The result to me of this unpleasant incident was a delightful increase of intimacy with the man for whom above all others I had the greatest admiration and most profound respect. As if to make up for his momentary injustice, Nicholson was kinder to me than ever, and I felt I had gained in him a firm and constant friend. So ended that eventful day.

A Frustrating Event Later in the day, my calm was a bit shaken by an incident that really annoyed me at the time, although it quickly faded. Nicholson came over and told me that what had happened at the meeting that morning had somehow gotten out; he added, to my dismay, that people thought I might have been careless enough to leak it. I was furious because I understood, better than anyone, the huge importance of keeping the decisions totally secret, and I couldn't help showing some of the anger I felt at the idea that anyone could think I would betray their trust. I firmly denied doing anything of the sort; then Nicholson suggested we go to the telegraph office together to check if the information had leaked from there. The telegraph operator was just a kid, and Nicholson's imposing presence and serious demeanor were too intimidating for him; he became completely nervous, and after a few hesitant denials, he admitted that he had satisfied the curiosity of a friend who had asked him how the authorities planned to handle the crisis. That was enough for me, and I was cleared. As a result of this unpleasant incident, my relationship with the man I admired and respected most deepened. To make up for his brief unfairness, Nicholson was nicer to me than ever, and I felt I had gained a loyal and steadfast friend. So ended that eventful day.

At that time it was the custom for a staff officer, who had charge of any Government property, to have a guard of Native soldiers in charge of his house. That night it happened that my guard was furnished by the 64th Native Infantry, a regiment with a particularly bad reputation, and which had, in order to give effect to the measures proposed at the morning's meeting, been ordered to leave Peshawar and proceed to the outposts. The intercepted letters showed that this regiment was on the point of mutinying, and I could not help feeling, as I lay down on my bed, which, as usual in the hot weather, was placed in the verandah for the sake of coolness, how completely I was at the mercy of the sentry who walked up and down within a few feet of me. Fortunately, he was not aware that his regiment was suspected, and could not know the reason for the sudden order to march, or my career might have been ended then and there.

At that time, it was common for a staff officer responsible for government property to have a guard of local soldiers at their home. That night, my guard was provided by the 64th Native Infantry, a regiment known for its bad reputation, which had been ordered to leave Peshawar and head to the outposts to implement the plans discussed in the morning meeting. Intercepted letters indicated that this regiment was on the verge of mutiny, and as I lay down on my bed, which was, as usual in the hot weather, placed in the verandah for some cool air, I couldn’t help but feel completely at the mercy of the sentry who walked back and forth just a few feet away from me. Luckily, he didn't realize that his regiment was under suspicion and didn't know the reason behind the sudden order to march, or else my life could have ended right then and there.

I Leave Peshawar Within a week from that time I had started for Rawal Pindi to be ready to join the Movable Column, which was to be formed at Wazirabad as soon as the troops could be got together. I took with me only just enough kit for a hot-weather march, and left everything standing in my house just as it was, little thinking that I should never return to it or be quartered in Peshawar again.

Leaving Peshawar Within a week from then, I set off for Rawalpindi to prepare to join the Movable Column, which was going to be assembled in Wazirabad as soon as the troops could be organized. I brought along just enough gear for a hot-weather march and left everything in my house exactly as it was, hardly realizing that I would never come back or be stationed in Peshawar again.






CHAPTER VII.

1857


First Symptoms of Disaffection
Before proceeding with the account of my experiences with the Movable Column, and the subsequent operations for the suppression of the rebellion, in which I was fortunate enough to take part, it will, I think, be advisable, for the better understanding of the whole situation, to devote a little time to the consideration of the progress of events from the first appearance of symptoms of disaffection in Lower Bengal, to the crisis I have just been describing, when Peshawar became involved in the general disturbance.

First Signs of Discontent Before I continue with my experiences with the Movable Column and the subsequent efforts to put down the rebellion, which I was lucky to be part of, I think it would be helpful to take a moment to look at the events leading up to this point—starting from the first signs of unrest in Lower Bengal up to the moment I just described, when Peshawar got caught up in the overall turmoil.

The substitution of a new rifle for the old musket with which the sepoys had hitherto been armed entailed a different kind of drill; and in order that this drill should be speedily learned by the whole Native army, depots were formed at convenient places for the instruction of[Page 41] selected men from every corps, who, on becoming proficient, were to return and instruct their own regiments. One of these depots was at Dum-Dum, and as early as the 24th January General Hearsay, commanding the Presidency division, reported to Head-Quarters that he perceived an 'unpleasant feeling' amongst the Native soldiers learning the new drill, caused by a belief instilled into them 'by designing persons, most likely Brahmins,' that they were to be forced to embrace Christianity, and that for the furtherance of this object the new ball-cartridges received from the arsenal at Fort William were greased with the fat of pigs and cows, with the intention of violating the religious prejudices and destroying the caste of those who would have to bite them.

The replacement of the old musket with a new rifle for the sepoys required a different type of training. To ensure that the entire Native army could quickly learn this training, depots were established at convenient locations to instruct selected men from each corps. Once these men became proficient, they would return to train their own regiments. One of these depots was in Dum-Dum, and as early as January 24th, General Hearsay, who was in charge of the Presidency division, reported to Headquarters that he noticed an 'unpleasant feeling' among the Native soldiers learning the new drill. This was due to a belief that was being spread by 'designing persons, most likely Brahmins,' that they would be forced to convert to Christianity. Furthermore, it was claimed that the new ball-cartridges received from the arsenal at Fort William were greased with the fat of pigs and cows, intending to undermine the soldiers' religious beliefs and disrupt their caste system by forcing them to bite them.

A little later various acts of incendiarism took place at other stations in the command, and Hearsay became more than ever convinced that there was grave dissatisfaction amongst the troops. He therefore ordered a Court of Inquiry to be held to enable him to ascertain the real cause of the ill-feeling which so evidently existed.

A little later, several acts of arson occurred at other stations in the command, and Hearsay became even more convinced there was serious discontent among the troops. He therefore ordered a Court of Inquiry to be held to help him find out the true cause of the evident ill-feeling.

In the General's opinion, the statements recorded in the proceedings of this Court clearly established the fact, that the Native officers and sepoys were undoubtedly imbued with the belief that an unholy mixture of cow's fat and lard had been used in the manufacture of the new cartridge, and he recommended that the rifle ammunition should in future be made up with the same description of paper that had always been used for the musket-cartridge, which, he conceived, would put an end to their suspicions and uneasiness.

In the General's view, the statements noted in the court proceedings clearly showed that the Native officers and soldiers were firmly convinced that an unholy mix of cow's fat and lard had been used to make the new cartridges. He suggested that future rifle ammunition should be made using the same type of paper that had always been used for musket cartridges, believing this would put an end to their suspicions and anxiety.

The General, however, was told in reply that it was impossible to use the old paper for the new cartridge, as the bore of the rifle being much smaller than that of the musket, thinner paper was indispensable; and he was directed to inform the sepoys that the new paper, though tougher and less bulky, was made of exactly the same material as the old. With respect to the lubricating mixture, he was to announce that the Government had authorized the preparation of a grease, composed of wax and oil, which was to be made up and applied to the cartridges by the men themselves. These orders were carefully explained to the Native troops, but without any good result. Their religious objection to the new cartridge was not removed, and they frankly acknowledged their fears.

The General was informed in response that it was impossible to use the old paper for the new cartridge because the rifle's bore was much smaller than that of the musket, making thinner paper essential; he was instructed to tell the sepoys that the new paper, while tougher and less bulky, was made from the exact same material as the old. Regarding the lubricating mixture, he was to announce that the Government had approved a grease made of wax and oil, which the men would prepare and apply to the cartridges themselves. These instructions were clearly explained to the Native troops, but with no positive outcome. Their religious objections to the new cartridge remained, and they openly expressed their concerns.

On the 6th February an officer of the 34th Native Infantry at Barrackpore was informed by a sepoy of his company that the four Native regiments at that station, fearing that they would be forced to destroy their caste and become Christians, had determined to rise against their officers, and when they had plundered and burned their bungalows, to proceed to Calcutta and try to seize Fort William, or, if that proved beyond their powers, to take possession of the treasury.

On February 6th, an officer of the 34th Native Infantry at Barrackpore was told by a sepoy in his company that the four Native regiments stationed there, worried that they would be forced to abandon their caste and convert to Christianity, had decided to revolt against their officers. After looting and burning their bungalows, they planned to head to Calcutta and attempt to seize Fort William, or if that was too difficult, to take control of the treasury.

This circumstance was reported to Government by General Hearsay[Page 42] on the 11th February. In the same letter he said, 'We have at Barrackpore been living upon a mine ready for explosion,' and he reported a story which had reached him from Dum-Dum of a sepoy, on his way to cook his food with his lota1 full of water, meeting a low-caste man belonging to the arsenal where the Enfield cartridges were being manufactured. This man, it was said, asked the sepoy to allow him to drink from his lota. The sepoy, a Brahmin, refused, saying: 'I have scoured my lota; you will defile it by your touch.' The low-caste man replied: 'You think much of your caste, but wait a little: the Sahib-logue2 will make you bite cartridges soaked in cow's fat, and then where will your caste be?' The sepoy no doubt believed the man, and told his comrades what was about to happen, and the report rapidly spread to other stations.

This situation was reported to the government by General Hearsay[Page 42] on February 11th. In the same letter, he said, 'We have been living on a powder keg at Barrackpore,' and he passed on a story he heard from Dum-Dum about a sepoy who was on his way to cook his food with his lota1 filled with water, when he encountered a low-caste man from the arsenal where the Enfield cartridges were being made. This man supposedly asked the sepoy if he could drink from his lota. The sepoy, who was a Brahmin, refused, saying: 'I've cleaned my lota; you’ll dirty it by touching it.' The low-caste man replied: 'You think highly of your caste, but just wait: the Sahib-logue2 will make you bite cartridges soaked in cow's fat, and then where will your caste be?' The sepoy surely believed the man and shared what was about to happen with his comrades, and the news quickly spread to other stations.

Outbreak at Berhampur Early in March several of the Hindu sepoys belonging to the Dum-Dum School of Musketry expressed their unwillingness to bite the new cartridge, and the Commandant proposed that the drill should be altered so as to admit of the cartridge being torn instead of bitten. Hearsay supported the proposal, remarking that the new mode of loading need not be made to appear as a concession to agitation, but as part of the drill for the new weapon. Events, however, moved so quickly that, before sanction could be received to this suggestion, the troops at Berhampur had broken into open mutiny. They refused to receive their ammunition, on the ground of its being polluted, even after it was explained to them that they were not being given the new cartridges, but those which had been made up in the regiment a year before. That night they broke open the bells-of-arms, and carried off their muskets.

Berhampur Outbreak In early March, several Hindu soldiers from the Dum-Dum School of Musketry showed they were unwilling to bite the new cartridges. The Commandant suggested changing the drill to allow the cartridges to be torn instead of bitten. Rumors backed this idea, saying that the new loading method shouldn’t look like a concession to unrest, but rather a standard part of the drill for the new weapon. However, events unfolded so rapidly that, before this suggestion could be approved, the troops at Berhampur had openly mutinied. They refused to accept their ammunition, claiming it was contaminated, even after being told they were not given the new cartridges, but those produced in the regiment a year earlier. That night, they broke open the arms storage and took their muskets.

The Government then became aware that prompt action was necessary. They decided that such open mutiny could not be excused on the grounds of religious scruples, and ordered the regiment to be disbanded. As Berhampur was somewhat isolated, and some distance from European troops, it was arranged that the disbandment should take place at the Head-Quarters of the Presidency division, and the 19th Native Infantry was accordingly ordered to march to Barrackpore.

The Government then realized that immediate action was needed. They concluded that such open rebellion could not be justified by religious beliefs and ordered the regiment to be disbanded. Since Berhampur was somewhat remote and far from European troops, it was decided that the disbandment would occur at the Headquarters of the Presidency division, and the 19th Native Infantry was ordered to march to Barrackpore.

The revolt of this regiment brought forcibly before Lord Canning and his advisers the perilous position of Lower Bengal, owing to the paucity of European troops. Well may the authorities have been startled, for between Calcutta and Meerut, a distance of 900 miles, there were only four regiments of British infantry and a few scattered Artillerymen, numbering in all less than 5,000, while the Native troops amounted to upwards of 55,000. One of the four Infantry regiments was at Fort William; but as only a portion of it could be spared for the disbandment[Page 43] of the 19th, a special steamer was despatched to Rangoon to bring over the 84th Foot. This regiment reached Calcutta on the 20th March, and on the 31st the disbandment of the mutinous Native Infantry regiment was carried out. The men were paid up and escorted across the river Hughly, whence they were allowed to proceed to their homes. They behaved in the most orderly manner on the march from Berhampur and throughout the proceedings, and as they left the parade-ground they cheered General Hearsay, and wished him a long life, apparently well pleased at being let off so easily.

The rebellion of this regiment highlighted to Lord Canning and his advisors the dangerous situation in Lower Bengal due to the lack of European troops. It’s no surprise the authorities were alarmed, as there were only four regiments of British infantry and a few scattered artillerymen, totaling less than 5,000 troops, between Calcutta and Meerut, a distance of 900 miles. In contrast, the native troops numbered over 55,000. One of the four infantry regiments was stationed at Fort William, but only part of it could be used for the disbandment of the 19th, so a special steamer was sent to Rangoon to bring over the 84th Foot. This regiment arrived in Calcutta on March 20th, and on the 31st, the disbandment of the mutinous native infantry regiment took place. The soldiers were paid and escorted across the river Hughly, where they were allowed to go home. They behaved very calmly during the march from Berhampur and throughout the whole process, and as they left the parade ground, they cheered General Hearsay and wished him a long life, clearly relieved to be let off so easily.

Mangal Pandy At Barrackpore itself an outbreak had occurred two days before in the 34th Native Infantry. As I have already related, the sepoy, Mangal Pandy, shot at the sergeant-major.3 The Adjutant, on hearing what had happened, galloped to the parade-ground. As he neared the quarter-guard he was fired at, and his horse shot by the mutineer, who then badly wounded him with a sword as he was trying to disentangle himself from the fallen animal. The General now appeared on the scene, and, instantly grasping the position of affairs, rode straight at Mangal Pandy, who stood at bay with his musket loaded, ready to receive him. There was a shot, the whistle of a bullet, and a man fell to the ground—but not the General; it was the fanatic sepoy himself, who at the last moment had discharged the contents of his musket into his own breast! The wretched man had been worked up to a pitch of madness by the sepoys of his regiment, who stood by while he attacked the Adjutant, and would have allowed him to kill their Commander, but they were too great cowards to back him up openly. Mangal Pandy was not dead. He was taken to the hospital, and eventually was tried by a Court-Martial composed of Native officers, sentenced to death, and hanged in the presence of all the troops at Barrackpore. The Native officer in command of the quarter-guard met the same fate, and the regiment was then disbanded.

Mangal Pandey At Barrackpore, an uprising had started two days earlier in the 34th Native Infantry. As I mentioned before, the sepoy, Mangal Pandy, shot at the sergeant-major.3 The Adjutant, upon hearing the news, rushed to the parade ground. As he got closer to the quarter-guard, he was shot at, and his horse was hit by the mutineer, who then severely wounded him with a sword while he tried to get free from the fallen horse. The General soon arrived, quickly understanding the situation, and rode directly at Mangal Pandy, who stood ready to confront him with his musket loaded. A shot rang out, a bullet whistled, and a man fell to the ground—but it wasn't the General; it was the troubled sepoy himself, who at the last moment had fired his musket into his own chest! The poor man had been driven to madness by the sepoys of his regiment, who stayed back while he attacked the Adjutant and would have let him kill their Commander, but they were too cowardly to support him openly. Mangal Pandy did not die instantly. He was taken to the hospital and ultimately put on trial by a Court-Martial made up of Native officers, where he was sentenced to death and hanged in front of all the troops at Barrackpore. The Native officer in charge of the quarter-guard faced the same fate, and the regiment was subsequently disbanded.

The orders for the disbandment of the 19th and 34th Native Infantry were directed to be read to every Native corps in the service, and it was hoped that the quick retribution which had overtaken these regiments would check the spirit of mutiny throughout the army. For a time this hope appeared to be justified. Satisfactory reports were received from different parts of Bengal, and anything like a serious or general outbreak was certainly not contemplated by the authorities. General Hearsay reported to Government that he had directed the European troops, temporarily located at Barrackpore, to return to their respective cantonments, as he did not think it probable that he would require their presence again. About the same time Sir John Lawrence, after visiting the Musketry School at Sialkot, wrote hopefully to the Governor-General of the aspect of affairs in the Punjab. Lord Canning[Page 44] and his advisers, owing to these favourable reports, were on the point of sending the 84th Foot back to Burma, when news reached them from Upper India of the calamitous occurrences at Meerut and Delhi.

The orders to disband the 19th and 34th Native Infantry were to be read to every Native corps in service, and it was hoped that the swift punishment that befell these regiments would deter any thoughts of mutiny in the army. For a while, this hope seemed justified. Satisfactory reports came in from various parts of Bengal, and the authorities didn't expect any serious or widespread uprising. General Hearsay reported to the Government that he had told the European troops, temporarily stationed at Barrackpore, to return to their own cantonments, as he didn’t think he would need them again. Around the same time, Sir John Lawrence, after visiting the Musketry School at Sialkot, wrote to the Governor-General with optimism about the situation in Punjab. Lord Canning[Page 44] and his advisers, encouraged by these positive reports, were about to send the 84th Foot back to Burma when they received news from Upper India about the disastrous events in Meerut and Delhi.

The Meerut division was commanded by Major-General Hewitt, an officer of fifty years' service, and the station of Meerut by Brigadier Archdale Wilson, Commandant of the Bengal Artillery. The garrison consisted of the 6th Dragoon Guards, a troop of Horse Artillery, a battery of Field Artillery, a company of Foot Artillery, the 1st Battalion 60th Rifles, and three Native corps—the 3rd Light Cavalry, and the 11th and 20th Native Infantry.

The Meerut division was led by Major-General Hewitt, an officer with fifty years of service, and the Meerut station was overseen by Brigadier Archdale Wilson, the Commandant of the Bengal Artillery. The garrison included the 6th Dragoon Guards, a troop of Horse Artillery, a battery of Field Artillery, a company of Foot Artillery, the 1st Battalion 60th Rifles, and three Native corps—the 3rd Light Cavalry, and the 11th and 20th Native Infantry.

Towards the end of April incendiary fires began to take place, and the Native soldiers evinced more or less disrespect in their manner towards their officers. These signs of disaffection were followed by the refusal of some of the troopers of the 3rd Light Cavalry to receive their cartridges, although the commanding officer carefully explained to them that they were not the new cartridges, but the very same they had always used, and that according to the new drill they were not required to bite them when loading their carbines.

Towards the end of April, fires started breaking out, and the Native soldiers showed varying degrees of disrespect towards their officers. These signs of discontent were followed by some of the troopers in the 3rd Light Cavalry refusing to accept their cartridges, even though the commanding officer explained to them that they were not new cartridges, but the same ones they had always used, and that according to the new drill, they didn't need to bite them when loading their carbines.

A Court of Inquiry was held to investigate the matter, composed entirely of Native officers, three of whom belonged to the offending regiment. The verdict of the Court was that no adequate cause could be assigned for the disobedience of orders in refusing to receive and use the cartridges that were served out. 'The only conclusion the Court can arrive at in regard to this point is that a report seems to have got abroad which in some vague form attaches suspicion of impurity to the materials used for making these cartridges, but the Court are unanimously of opinion that there is nothing whatever objectionable in the cartridges of the 3rd Regiment Light Cavalry, and that they may be freely received and used as heretofore without in the slightest degree affecting any religious scruple of either a Hindu or Mussulman, and if any pretence contrary to that is urged, that it must be false.' This opinion, it must be remembered, was the opinion of Natives, not Europeans, and was given only sixteen days before the outbreak occurred at Meerut.

A Court of Inquiry was held to look into the issue, made up entirely of Native officers, three of whom were from the regiment in question. The verdict of the Court was that there was no valid reason for the disobedience in refusing to accept and use the cartridges that were distributed. "The only conclusion the Court can reach regarding this matter is that there seems to be a rumor going around that vaguely suggests impurity in the materials used to make these cartridges. However, the Court is unanimously of the opinion that there is nothing wrong with the cartridges of the 3rd Regiment Light Cavalry, and they can be received and used as before without affecting the religious beliefs of either Hindus or Muslims. Any claims to the contrary must be false." It's important to remember that this opinion came from Natives, not Europeans, and was expressed just sixteen days before the outbreak in Meerut.

Court-Martial at Meerut After carefully reviewing the evidence brought before the Court, and considering the opinion expressed by the Native officers who composed it, the Commander-in-Chief decided to try the eighty-five men who had refused to receive the cartridges by a General Court-Martial composed entirely of their own countrymen. The Court was formed of six Mahomedans and nine Hindus, six Native officers being brought over from Delhi for the purpose.

Court-Martial in Meerut After thoroughly examining the evidence presented to the Court and taking into account the views expressed by the Native officers involved, the Commander-in-Chief decided to put the eighty-five men who had refused to accept the cartridges on trial by a General Court-Martial made up entirely of their fellow countrymen. The Court consisted of six Muslims and nine Hindus, with six Native officers brought in from Delhi for this purpose.

The prisoners were tried on the 8th May, found guilty, and sentenced to imprisonment with hard labour for ten years.

The prisoners were tried on May 8th, found guilty, and sentenced to ten years of hard labor.

The following morning there was a parade of the whole of the Meerut garrison, and the finding and sentence of the Court were read to the[Page 45] men. The eighty-five troopers were then stripped of their uniform and fetters were fastened on their ankles. As each culprit was marched forward, he called on his comrades to rescue him, but no response came from the ranks; and when the ceremony was finished the prisoners were marched down the line and escorted to the gaol. In his report of the parade to Army Head-Quarters, General Hewitt stated that 'the majority of the prisoners seemed to feel acutely the degradation to which their folly and insubordination had brought them. The remainder of the troops are behaving steady and soldier-like.'

The following morning, there was a parade for the entire Meerut garrison, and the findings and sentence from the Court were read to the[Page 45]men. The eighty-five troopers were then stripped of their uniforms, and shackles were placed on their ankles. As each offender was led forward, he begged his comrades to save him, but there was no reply from the ranks; and when the ceremony concluded, the prisoners were marched down the line and taken to jail. In his report of the parade to Army Headquarters, General Hewitt noted that "the majority of the prisoners appeared to feel deeply the humiliation that their foolishness and disobedience had caused them. The remaining troops are behaving steadily and like true soldiers."

The action of the Meerut authorities in putting the prisoners in irons on the parade-ground, in the presence of their regiment, before being made over to the civil power, met with the disapproval of the Commander-in-Chief and the Governor-General. The former expressed his regret at the unusual procedure. The latter was more pronounced, and thus expressed himself: 'The riveting of the men's fetters on parade, occupying, as it did, several hours, in the presence of many who were already ill-disposed and many who believed in the cartridge fable, must have stung the brigade to the quick. The consigning the eighty-five prisoners after such a ceremony to gaol with no other than a Native guard over them was folly that is inconceivable.'

The Meerut authorities' decision to chain the prisoners on the parade ground, in front of their regiment, before handing them over to the civil authorities, was condemned by both the Commander-in-Chief and the Governor-General. The Commander-in-Chief expressed regret over this unusual approach. The Governor-General was more outspoken, stating, "The chaining of the men during the parade, which took several hours and was witnessed by many who were already hostile and others who believed in the cartridge rumor, must have deeply angered the brigade. Sending the eighty-five prisoners to jail after such a display with only a Native guard to watch them was a completely irrational decision."

The procedure was no doubt unusual, and it certainly was most imprudent, under the circumstances, to trust the gaol to a Native guard. I think also, considering the number of the prisoners, and the length of time necessary for riveting the fetters, that it was not judicious to subject the troops to such a severe and protracted trial of their nerves and patience; but, before acquiescing in Lord Canning's sweeping condemnation, it should be considered that the object of the punishment was to produce a deterrent effect on those who were likely to follow the bad example that had been set them, and as the offence of the troopers had been public and ostentatious, General Hewitt no doubt thought it right to make the punishment as marked and public as possible.

The process was definitely out of the ordinary, and it was certainly unwise, given the situation, to trust the jail to a Native guard. I also think that, considering the number of prisoners and the time required to secure their fetters, it wasn’t smart to put the troops through such a tough and drawn-out test of their nerves and patience. However, before fully agreeing with Lord Canning's harsh criticism, it's important to remember that the goal of the punishment was to deter others who might be inspired by the bad behavior they had witnessed. Since the troopers' offense was public and blatant, General Hewitt likely believed it was necessary to make the punishment as noticeable and public as possible.

The next day was Sunday, and outwardly the cantonment of Meerut had assumed its usual appearance of Sabbath calm; but there was an undercurrent of unrest—there was considerable commotion in the Native bazaars, which were unusually crowded, and had not the European officers been blinded by over-confidence in their men, signs might have been perceived amongst the Native soldiers of preparation for some untoward event.

The next day was Sunday, and on the surface, the cantonment of Meerut looked like its typical calm self for the Sabbath; however, there was a sense of unrest beneath the surface—there was significant activity in the Native markets, which were more crowded than usual, and if the European officers hadn't been overly confident in their men, they might have noticed signs among the Native soldiers gearing up for some unexpected event.

Mutiny at Meerut It was late in the day before the storm burst. The Chaplain of Meerut tells us that he was about to start with his wife for evening service, when the Native nurse warned them of coming danger, beseeching her mistress to remain indoors, and, on being asked to explain, saying there would be a fight with the sepoys. The idea seemed incredible, and the Chaplain would have paid no attention to the warning had not his wife been greatly alarmed. At her earnest request[Page 46] he took his two children with them in the carriage, instead of leaving them in the house with the ayah, as had been intended. It was soon apparent that the ayah had not spoken without reason, for before the church was reached sounds of musketry were heard and columns of smoke were seen rising above the quarter occupied by the Native troops. As the Chaplain arrived at the church enclosure, the buglers of the 60th Rifles, who were drawn up ready to enter the church, sounded the 'alarm' and the 'assembly.' The parade was dismissed, and as the British soldiers rushed to the barracks for their arms and ammunition, the congregation rapidly dispersed, some to their homes, others to seek safety in the nearest quarter-guard.

Mutiny at Meerut It was late in the day when the storm finally hit. The Chaplain of Meerut says he was about to leave with his wife for evening service when the Native nurse warned them about impending danger, begging her to stay inside. When asked why, she said there would be a fight with the sepoys. The idea seemed unbelievable, and the Chaplain would have ignored the warning if his wife hadn’t been so worried. At her urgent request[Page 46], he took their two children with them in the carriage instead of leaving them at home with the ayah, as they had planned. It quickly became clear that the ayah had not spoken without good reason, for before they reached the church, they heard gunfire and saw columns of smoke rising from the area where the Native troops were stationed. When the Chaplain arrived at the church grounds, the buglers of the 60th Rifles, who were lined up ready to enter the church, sounded the 'alarm' and the 'assembly.' The parade was called off, and as the British soldiers hurried to the barracks for their weapons and ammunition, the congregation quickly scattered, some heading home, while others sought safety at the nearest quarter-guard.

It was the custom before the Mutiny for our soldiers to attend Divine Service unarmed, save with their side-arms. The Native soldiers were aware of this, and they no doubt calculated on the 60th Rifles being safe and almost defenceless inside the church as soon as the bells ceased tolling. What they were not aware of was the fact that, owing to the lengthening days and the increasing heat, the evening church parade had been ordered half an hour later than on the previous Sunday. The mutineers therefore showed their hand half an hour too soon, and as they galloped down the 60th Rifles lines they came upon the men fully armed and rapidly falling in. Being thus disappointed in their hope of surprising the white soldiers, the 3rd Cavalry proceeded without a moment's delay to the gaol, broke into the cells, and released their eighty-five comrades and all the other prisoners, about 1,200 in number.

It used to be a tradition before the Mutiny for our soldiers to attend church services unarmed, except for their sidearms. The Native soldiers knew this, and they probably expected the 60th Rifles to be safe and almost defenseless inside the church as soon as the bells stopped ringing. What they didn’t know was that, due to the longer days and rising temperatures, the evening church parade had been scheduled half an hour later than the previous Sunday. So, the mutineers revealed their plan half an hour too early, and when they charged through the 60th Rifles’ lines, they found the soldiers fully armed and quickly assembling. Disappointed in their attempt to catch the white soldiers by surprise, the 3rd Cavalry immediately headed to the jail, broke into the cells, and freed their eighty-five comrades along with all the other prisoners, totaling about 1,200 people.

The Work of Destruction While this was going on, the two Native Infantry regiments assembled on their respective parade-grounds in wild excitement, discharging their muskets at random, and setting fire to their own huts. The British officers, hearing the tumult, hastened to their lines and did their best to restore order, but in vain. The sepoys had gone too far, and were absolutely deaf to threats and entreaties. They did not attack their own officers, but warned them to get away, telling them the Company's 'raj'4 was at an end. Their clemency, however, did not extend to officers of other regiments.

The Art of Destruction While this was happening, the two Native Infantry regiments gathered at their parade grounds, full of wild excitement, firing their muskets randomly and setting their own huts on fire. The British officers, hearing the chaos, rushed to their lines and tried to restore order, but it was useless. The sepoys had gone too far and were completely unresponsive to threats and pleas. They didn’t attack their own officers but warned them to leave, declaring that the Company's 'raj'4 was over. However, their mercy didn’t extend to officers from other regiments.

Colonel Finnis, who had served forty years with the sepoys, and firmly believed in their loyalty, was the first victim; he fell riddled with bullets from a volley fired by the 20th, while exhorting the men of his own regiment (the 11th) to be true to their salt. The work of destruction then began in earnest, in which the population from the bazaars and the neighbouring villages eagerly joined, for (as the Commissioner reported) they were armed and ready for the onslaught before the sepoys commenced the attack, plainly showing how perfectly they were aware of what was about to happen. They poured forth in thousands from every direction, and in a surprisingly short time almost every bungalow belonging to a British officer serving with Native troops[Page 47] was gutted and burnt. Besides Colonel Finnis, seven officers, three officers' wives, two children, and every stray European man, woman and child in the outskirts of the cantonments were massacred.

Colonel Finnis, who had served forty years with the sepoys and strongly believed in their loyalty, was the first victim; he was shot multiple times by a volley fired by the 20th while urging the men of his own regiment (the 11th) to stay true to their commitments. The destruction then began in earnest, with the local population from the bazaars and nearby villages eagerly joining in, as the Commissioner reported that they were armed and ready for the attack long before the sepoys started, clearly showing they knew exactly what was about to happen. They surged out in the thousands from every direction, and in a surprisingly short time, nearly every bungalow belonging to a British officer serving with Native troops[Page 47] was looted and burned. In addition to Colonel Finnis, seven officers, three officers' wives, two children, and every random European man, woman, and child in the outskirts of the cantonments were killed.

It was now time for the sepoys to think of themselves. They had thrown off all allegiance to the Sarkar;5 they had been guilty of murder, robbery, and incendiarism, and they knew that retribution must speedily overtake them if they remained at Meerut; they therefore lost no time in making their escape towards Delhi. They had had ample opportunity for consultation with the Native officers from that station, who had come to Meerut as members of the Court-Martial on the men of the 3rd Light Cavalry, and they knew perfectly well that the troops at Delhi were prepared to help them to seize the magazine and resuscitate the old Moghul dynasty. 'To Delhi! To Delhi!' was their cry, and off they went, leaving naught behind them in their lines but the smouldering fires of their officers' houses and the lifeless bodies of their English victims.

It was now time for the sepoys to think about themselves. They had broken all allegiance to the Sarkar; they were guilty of murder, robbery, and arson, and they knew that punishment would soon catch up with them if they stayed in Meerut. So, they wasted no time in escaping toward Delhi. They had plenty of chances to talk with the Native officers from that station, who had come to Meerut as members of the Court-Martial judging the men of the 3rd Light Cavalry, and they were well aware that the troops in Delhi were ready to help them take the magazine and revive the old Mughal dynasty. "To Delhi! To Delhi!" was their rallying cry, and off they went, leaving nothing behind in their camps but the smoldering remains of their officers' homes and the lifeless bodies of their English victims.

Want of Energy But it will be asked, Where were the British troops? Where indeed? On the alarm being given, the British troops got under arms 'in an incredibly short time,' but there was unaccountable delay in marching them to the spot where their help was so greatly needed. The Carabineers occupied barracks within a few hundred yards of the Native Infantry lines, the 60th Rifles were only about a mile and a half away, and the Artillery lay just beyond the 60th. The Brigadier (Wilson) despatched one company of the Rifles to guard the treasury, another he left to protect the barracks, and with the remainder, accompanied by the Carabineers and Artillery, he leisurely proceeded towards the Native Infantry lines. It was almost dark when he arrived, but there was light enough to discern, from the ruined houses and the dead bodies of the murdered officers lying about, in what a merciless spirit the revolt had been perpetrated. A few shots were fired from behind the burning huts, but not a single living being was visible, except two or three Native troopers who were dimly perceptible in the distance coming from the direction of the gaol, and it was evident that the sepoys as a body had vanished. But whither? A lengthened discussion took place as to what was the best course to pursue, which only resulted in the troops being marched back to their own end of the cantonment and bivouacking on the mall for the night. The General and Brigadier, misled by the tumult in the city, which they could distinctly hear, came to the conclusion that the sepoys had congregated within its walls and might shortly be expected to attack that part of the station where the European residents chiefly lived. It was not discovered till the next morning that all three Native regiments had made for Delhi.

Low Energy But the question arises, where were the British troops? Indeed, where were they? When the alarm was raised, the British troops mobilized "in an incredibly short time," but there was an inexplicable delay in getting them to the area where their assistance was desperately needed. The Carabineers were stationed just a few hundred yards from the Native Infantry lines, the 60th Rifles were only about a mile and a half away, and the Artillery was just beyond the 60th. The Brigadier (Wilson) sent one company of the Rifles to guard the treasury, left another to protect the barracks, and with the rest, accompanied by the Carabineers and Artillery, he took his time heading toward the Native Infantry lines. It was almost dark when he arrived, but there was enough light to see the ruined houses and the dead bodies of the murdered officers scattered around, illustrating the brutal nature of the revolt. A few shots were fired from behind the burning huts, but not a single living person was in sight, except for two or three Native troopers who were faintly visible in the distance coming from the direction of the jail, indicating that the sepoys had effectively disappeared. But where did they go? A lengthy debate ensued about the best course of action, which ultimately led to the troops being marched back to their own section of the cantonment to camp on the mall for the night. The General and Brigadier, misled by the noise from the city, which they could hear clearly, concluded that the sepoys had gathered within its walls and could soon be expected to attack the part of the station where the European residents primarily lived. It wasn't until the next morning that it was discovered all three Native regiments had headed for Delhi.

It is easy to be wise after the event, but one cannot but feel that[Page 48] there was unaccountable, if not culpable, want of energy displayed by the Meerut authorities on this disastrous occasion. The officer in command was afterwards severely censured for not acting with sufficient promptitude on first hearing of the outbreak; for not trying to find out where the mutineers had gone; and for not endeavouring to overtake them before they reached Delhi. The Government of India finally signified their disapproval by removing General Hewitt from his command.

It’s easy to think you know better after something happens, but you can't help but feel that[Page 48] the Meerut authorities showed an inexplicable, if not blameworthy, lack of energy during this disastrous event. The commanding officer was later criticized harshly for not acting quickly enough when he first heard about the uprising, for not trying to find out where the mutineers had gone, and for not trying to catch up to them before they got to Delhi. The Government of India ultimately expressed their disapproval by removing General Hewitt from his command.

Wilson, the Brigadier, like everyone else at Meerut, appears to have been completely taken by surprise. But why this should have been the case, after the warning that had been given by the mutinous conduct of the 3rd Cavalry, and why no steps should have been taken after the exasperating parade on the 9th to guard against a possible, if not probable, outbreak, is difficult to understand; and can only be accounted for by that blind faith in the Native soldier, and disbelief in his intention or ability to revolt, which led to such unfortunate results all over India.

Wilson, the Brigadier, like everyone else at Meerut, seems to have been completely caught off guard. But it's hard to understand why this was the case after the warning signs from the rebellious behavior of the 3rd Cavalry. It's baffling why no precautions were taken after the frustrating parade on the 9th to prepare for a possible, if not likely, uprising. This can only be explained by a misplaced trust in the Native soldier and a disbelief in his desire or capability to rebel, which resulted in such unfortunate outcomes throughout India.

The following story will exemplify how completely the authorities at Meerut were blinded by this misplaced confidence. On the afternoon of the 9th the British officers of the 3rd Light Cavalry went to the gaol to pay up the prisoners belonging to their regiment. When Lieutenant Hugh Gough,6 who was one of these officers, returned to his house, a Hindu Native officer, belonging to the troop Gough was temporarily commanding, told him that the men had determined to rescue their comrades, and that the Native guard over the gaol had promised to help them. Gough went at once to his commanding officer, Lieutenant-Colonel Carmichael Smyth, and reported what he had heard, but the Colonel pooh-poohed the idea as ridiculous, and told Gough he must not give credence to anything so monstrous.

The following story will illustrate how completely the authorities in Meerut were misled by this misplaced confidence. On the afternoon of the 9th, the British officers of the 3rd Light Cavalry went to the jail to pay the prisoners belonging to their regiment. When Lieutenant Hugh Gough,6 one of these officers, returned home, a Hindu Native officer from the troop Gough was temporarily leading, informed him that the men had decided to rescue their comrades, and that the Native guard over the jail had promised to assist them. Gough immediately went to his commanding officer, Lieutenant-Colonel Carmichael Smyth, and reported what he had heard, but the Colonel dismissed the idea as ridiculous, telling Gough he should not believe something so outrageous.

Later in the day Gough met Brigadier Wilson and told him of the warning which had been given to him, without, however, producing any impression; the information was received with the same contemptuous disbelief displayed by Colonel Carmichael Smyth.

Later in the day, Gough met Brigadier Wilson and shared the warning he had received, but it didn’t seem to make any impact; the information was met with the same scornful disbelief shown by Colonel Carmichael Smyth.

The following day (Sunday), late in the afternoon, the same Native officer, attended by two troopers, galloped to Gough's house, shouting to him that the hala7 had begun, and that the Native Infantry were firing on their officers. Gough mounted his horse, and, accompanied by the three Cavalry soldiers, proceeded as quickly as possible to the Infantry parade-ground, where he arrived just as the wild scene of excitement and confusion I have before described was at its height. The sepoys, some in uniform, some in their own Native clothes, were rushing about in the maddest disorder, yelling, shouting, and dancing as if possessed, while the flames from the burning huts shed a lurid[Page 49] light on the demoniacal proceedings.

The next day (Sunday), later in the afternoon, the same Indigenous officer, along with two troopers, rode quickly to Gough's house, shouting at him that the hala7 had started, and the Native Infantry were firing on their officers. Gough got on his horse and, joined by the three Cavalry soldiers, rushed as fast as he could to the Infantry parade-ground, arriving just as the chaotic scene of excitement and confusion I described earlier reached its peak. The sepoys, some in uniform and others in their own Native clothes, were running around in total disarray, yelling, shouting, and dancing as if they were possessed, while the flames from the burning huts threw an eerie light on the frantic events.

Hugh Gough's Experiences When Gough's party appeared in sight, the sepoys called to the three troopers to get out of the way, as they wanted to shoot the sahib. No notice being taken of this warning, they fired straight at the whole party, but without hitting anyone. Gough, seeing things had gone too far for him to do any good, rode off with his little escort to his own lines, where he found the men busy saddling their horses, and helping themselves to ammunition from the regimental magazine, which they had broken open. He endeavoured in vain to allay the excitement; one or two shots were fired at him by recruits, but no determined attempt was made to take his life, and at last the Native officers combined to force him away, saying they could no longer answer for his safety.

Hugh Gough's Experiences When Gough's group came into view, the sepoys shouted at the three troopers to move aside because they wanted to shoot the sahib. Ignoring this warning, they fired directly at the entire party, but missed everyone. Realizing the situation had escalated too much for him to help, Gough rode off with his small escort to his own lines, where he found the men busy saddling their horses and taking ammunition from the regimental magazine they had broken into. He tried unsuccessfully to calm the situation; a couple of shots were fired at him by recruits, but no serious effort was made to kill him, and eventually, the Native officers banded together to compel him to leave, saying they could no longer guarantee his safety.

It was then all but dark. Gough rode off towards the European lines, still accompanied by his trusty Native escort, and on his way came upon an enormous crowd of people from the bazaar, armed with swords, sticks, and anything they could get hold of, who tried to stop him. Through these he charged, closely followed by the Native officer and two troopers, who did not leave him until he was within sight of the Artillery mess. Then they pulled up, and said they could go no further. Gough did all he could to persuade them to remain with him, but to no purpose. They told him it was impossible for them to separate themselves from their friends and relations, and making the officer they had so carefully protected a respectful salaam, they rode off to join their mutinous comrades. Gough never heard of them again, though he tried hard to trace what had become of the men who proved themselves such 'friends in need.'

It was almost dark. Gough rode off toward the European lines, still accompanied by his loyal Native escort. On his way, he encountered a huge crowd of people from the bazaar, armed with swords, sticks, and anything they could find, who tried to stop him. He charged through them, followed closely by the Native officer and two troopers, who didn’t leave his side until they reached the Artillery mess. Then they stopped and said they couldn’t go any further. Gough did everything he could to convince them to stay with him, but it was no use. They told him it was impossible to separate themselves from their friends and family, and after giving the officer they had protected a respectful salute, they rode off to join their rebellious comrades. Gough never heard from them again, despite his efforts to find out what happened to the men who had been such 'friends in need.'

However much the authorities at Meerut deserved to be censured for their dilatoriness in dealing with the revolt in the first instance, and their lack of energy in not trying to discover in what direction the mutineers had gone, I doubt whether anything would have been gained by following them up, or whether it would have been possible to overtake them before they reached Delhi. Only a very few European Cavalry were available for pursuit, for the Carabineers, having lately arrived in India, were composed mainly of recruits still in the riding-school, and their horses for the most part were quite unbroken. These few, with the six Horse Artillery guns, might have been despatched; but the mutineers had a considerable start, the Cavalry could not have been overtaken, and as soon as the Infantry became aware that they were being followed, they would have scattered themselves over the country, the features of which were familiar to them, and, favoured by the darkness, could have defied pursuit. Delhi is forty miles from Meerut, and it would not have been possible for the 60th Rifles, marching in the terrible heat of the month of May, to have reached that place before the next evening (the 11th), and, as was afterwards ascertained, the work of murder and devastation there began on the morning of that[Page 50] day. The three Native Infantry regiments and the battery of Artillery stationed at Delhi were prepared to join the insurgent troopers from Meerut directly they arrived. The magazine, with its vast stores of war material, was in the hands of the King, and the 150,000 inhabitants of the city were ready to assist in the massacre of the white men and women, and the destruction of their property.

However much the authorities in Meerut deserved criticism for their slow response to the revolt initially, and their lack of effort in trying to find out which way the mutineers had gone, I doubt it would have made any difference to pursue them, or whether it would have even been possible to catch up to them before they reached Delhi. Only a few European Cavalry were available for the chase since the Carabineers, who had just arrived in India, were mostly made up of recruits still training, and most of their horses were untrained. These few, along with the six Horse Artillery guns, could have been sent out, but the mutineers had a significant head start, the Cavalry wouldn't have been able to catch them, and as soon as the Infantry realized they were being pursued, they would have spread out over the familiar terrain, and, helped by the darkness, could have easily escaped. Delhi is forty miles from Meerut, and it would have been impossible for the 60th Rifles to march in the intense heat of May and reach that location before the following evening (the 11th). As later confirmed, the killings and destruction began that morning on that day. The three Native Infantry regiments and the artillery battery stationed in Delhi were ready to join the insurgent troops from Meerut as soon as they arrived. The magazine, with its vast supply of war materials, was under the control of the King, and the 150,000 residents of the city were prepared to help with the massacre of white men and women and the destruction of their property.

Nothing Could Arrest the Mutiny After careful consideration of all the circumstances of the revolt at Meerut, I have come to the conclusion that it would have been futile to have sent the small body of mounted troops available in pursuit of the mutineers on the night of the 10th May, and that, considering the state of feeling throughout the Native Army, no action, however prompt, on the part of the Meerut authorities could have arrested the Mutiny. The sepoys had determined to throw off their allegiance to the British Government, and the when and the how were merely questions of time and opportunity.

Nothing Could Stop the Mutiny After carefully considering all the circumstances of the revolt at Meerut, I have concluded that sending the small group of mounted troops available to chase the mutineers on the night of May 10th would have been pointless. Given the mood throughout the Native Army, no action, no matter how quick, from the Meerut authorities could have stopped the Mutiny. The sepoys had made up their minds to break away from their loyalty to the British Government; the timing and method were just a matter of time and opportunity.






CHAPTER VIII.

1857


General Anson
While the events I have recounted were taking place, the Commander-in-Chief and the Head-Quarters staff were on their way up country inspecting the troops at the various stations en route to Simla, at which place it had been arranged that the summer of 1857 was to be spent. The Commander-in-Chief in India at that time was General the Hon. George Anson, an officer of forty-three years' service, but without much Indian experience, having been only four years in the country. He was an able, intelligent man, an excellent judge of character, a great authority on whist and on horses, and he was well known in London society, which was somewhat surprised when he accepted an appointment in India—the command of the Meerut division. He did not, however, remain long in that position, for he was soon given the command of the Madras Army, and a year and a half later became Commander-in-Chief in India. General Anson was present at Waterloo as an Ensign, but had seen no service afterwards, and until he arrived in India had held no high appointment.

General Anson While the events I’ve described were happening, the Commander-in-Chief and the headquarters staff were traveling upcountry, inspecting the troops at various stops on their way to Simla, where it was planned that they would spend the summer of 1857. At that time, the Commander-in-Chief in India was General the Hon. George Anson, an officer with forty-three years of service, but he had not much experience in India, having spent only four years in the country. He was capable, smart, a great judge of character, very knowledgeable about whist and horses, and was well-known in London social circles, which were a bit surprised when he accepted a position in India—the command of the Meerut division. However, he didn’t stay in that role for long; he was soon given command of the Madras Army, and a year and a half later, he became Commander-in-Chief in India. General Anson was present at Waterloo as an ensign, but had not seen service afterward, and until he got to India, he held no high-ranking position.

When the Commander-in-Chief left Calcutta the previous autumn, all was apparently quiet in the Native army. He visited the principal military stations, amongst others Meerut and Delhi, and although reports of an uneasy feeling amongst the Native troops in the Presidency division had reached him from time to time, it was not until he arrived at Umballa, about the middle of March, that these reports were confirmed by personal communication with the sepoys attending the School of Musketry which had been formed at that station.

When the Commander-in-Chief left Calcutta the previous autumn, everything seemed calm in the Native army. He visited the main military stations, including Meerut and Delhi, and even though he had received occasional reports about some unease among the Native troops in the Presidency division, it wasn't until he got to Umballa around mid-March that these reports were confirmed through direct conversations with the sepoys at the School of Musketry established at that station.

On the occasion of the Commander-in-Chief's inspection of the School,[Page 51] he learnt from the men of the various regiments under instruction how strongly opposed they were to using a cartridge which they believed to be injurious to their caste. Anson listened attentively to all the sepoys had to say, and then explained to them in a manly, sensible speech, that the old cartridge was not suited to the rifle about to be introduced. A new cartridge had, therefore, to be made; but they must not listen to any foolish rumour as to its being designed to destroy their caste. He assured them, 'on the honour of a soldier like themselves,' that it had never been, and never could be, the policy of the British Government to coerce the religious feeling of either the military or the civil population of India, or to interfere in any way with their caste or customs. He told the Native officers to do all in their power to allay the men's unfounded fears, and called upon them to prove themselves worthy of the high character they had hitherto maintained; he concluded by warning all ranks that the Government were determined not to yield to insubordination, which would be visited with the severest punishment.

During the Commander-in-Chief's inspection of the School,[Page 51] he learned from the soldiers of the different regiments being trained how strongly they opposed using a cartridge that they believed would harm their caste. Anson listened carefully to everything the sepoys had to say and then explained in a straightforward, rational speech that the old cartridge didn’t work with the new rifle that was about to be introduced. Therefore, a new cartridge needed to be made, but they shouldn't pay attention to any silly rumors suggesting it was meant to harm their caste. He assured them, "on the honor of a soldier like you," that it had never been and could never be the policy of the British Government to force religious beliefs on either the military or civilian population of India, or to interfere with their caste or customs. He urged the Native officers to do everything they could to ease the men’s baseless fears and called on them to demonstrate that they were worthy of the high reputation they had maintained. He concluded by warning all ranks that the Government was determined not to tolerate disobedience, which would be met with the strictest punishment.

The demeanour of the sepoys was most respectful, and when the parade was over they expressed their high sense of the Commander-in-Chief's goodness. They declared that he had removed their own objections, but that the story was universally believed by their countrymen and relations, and if they were to use the cartridge they must become social outcasts.

The attitude of the soldiers was very respectful, and when the parade ended, they expressed their deep appreciation for the Commander-in-Chief's kindness. They said he had addressed their concerns, but the story was widely believed by their countrymen and families, and if they used the cartridge, they would be considered social outcasts.

General Anson, feeling that the doubts and anxieties of the men with regard to the use of the new cartridges were by no means imaginary, suspended their issue until a special report had been prepared as to the composition of the paper in which they were wrapped.1

General Anson, aware that the concerns and worries of the men about the new cartridges were very real, halted their distribution until a special report could be prepared regarding the makeup of the paper they were wrapped._1

Having thus done all that he could at the time to allay any feeling[Page 52] of uneasiness, and hoping that the news of the disbandment of the 19th Native Infantry would check the spirit of insubordination, General Anson continued his journey to Simla, that beautiful place in the Himalayas, 7,000 feet above the sea, which has since become the seat of the Government of India and Army Head-Quarters during the hot weather months.

Having done everything he could at the time to ease any feelings of uneasiness, and hoping that the news of the disbandment of the 19th Native Infantry would curb the spirit of rebellion, General Anson continued his journey to Simla, a beautiful place in the Himalayas, 7,000 feet above sea level, which has since become the seat of the Government of India and Army Headquarters during the hot weather months.

The News Reaches Simla The Commander-in-Chief had been at Simla rather more than a month, when, on the afternoon of Tuesday, the 12th May, an Aide-de-camp galloped in from Umballa (the Head-Quarters station of the Sirhind division), distant eighty miles, bringing with him a copy of the telegraphic message which had been despatched from Delhi the previous day to 'all stations in the Punjab,' and which had caused such consternation at Peshawar on the evening of the 11th May.

News Reaches Simla The Commander-in-Chief had been in Simla for just over a month when, on the afternoon of Tuesday, May 12th, an Aide-de-camp rode in from Umballa (the headquarters of the Sirhind division), which is eighty miles away. He brought with him a copy of the telegram that had been sent from Delhi the day before to 'all stations in the Punjab' and that had created such panic in Peshawar on the evening of May 11th.

Sir Henry Barnard, commanding the Sirhind division, desired the Aide-de-camp (his own son) to inform the Commander-in-Chief that the temper of the three Native regiments at Umballa was more than doubtful, and that it seemed advisable that the three regiments of British Infantry stationed in the hills near Simla should be ordered at once to Umballa. So urgent did this seem to Barnard, that, in anticipation of sanction from the Commander-in-Chief, he told his son to warn the 75th Foot as he passed through Kasauli to be prepared for an immediate move.

Sir Henry Barnard, in charge of the Sirhind division, asked his Aide-de-camp (his own son) to let the Commander-in-Chief know that the situation with the three Native regiments at Umballa was more than concerning, and that it would be wise to order the three regiments of British Infantry stationed in the hills near Simla to move to Umballa immediately. This seemed so urgent to Barnard that, expecting approval from the Commander-in-Chief, he instructed his son to alert the 75th Foot as he passed through Kasauli to get ready for an immediate move.

Anson Loses No Time General Anson at once saw the necessity for taking prompt action. That same afternoon he despatched an Aide-de-camp to Kasauli to order the 75th to proceed without delay to Umballa, and the 1st Bengal Fusiliers at Dagshai to follow the 75th as soon as carriage could be collected; also to warn the 2nd Bengal Fusiliers at Subathu to be ready to move. Expresses were sent at the same [time] to Ferozepore and Jullundur directing that a European guard should be placed in charge of the magazine at the former place, and a detachment of European Infantry thrown into the fort of Philour from the latter. The confidence reposed in the Native army before the Mutiny was so great that these two important magazines, like almost all the arsenals and magazines in India, were guarded by Native soldiers, and subsequent events proved that, but for General Anson's timely precautions, the mutineers must have obtained possession of the magazines at Ferozepore and Philour.2

Anson Doesn't Waste Time General Anson immediately recognized the need for quick action. That same afternoon, he sent an Aide-de-camp to Kasauli to instruct the 75th to head to Umballa without delay, and for the 1st Bengal Fusiliers at Dagshai to follow the 75th as soon as transport could be arranged. He also warned the 2nd Bengal Fusiliers at Subathu to be prepared to move. At the same time, messages were sent to Ferozepore and Jullundur, directing that a European guard be assigned to the magazine in Ferozepore, and a detachment of European Infantry be sent to the fort of Philour from Jullundur. The trust placed in the Native army before the Mutiny was so significant that these two essential magazines, like almost all the arsenals and magazines in India, were protected by Native soldiers. Subsequent events showed that if it weren't for General Anson's timely measures, the mutineers would have seized control of the magazines in Ferozepore and Philour.2

Anson had not long to wait before he received confirmation of the[Page 53] alarming news brought by General Barnard's son. The very next afternoon a letter arrived from Meerut giving an account of the outbreak on the 10th, and a few particulars of what had occurred at Delhi. The Commander-in-Chief immediately decided on proceeding to Umballa, to superintend personally the organization of the force which, as he rightly judged, would have to be sent to Delhi. There was no hesitation on General Anson's part, or delay in issuing the necessary orders.3 The 2nd Bengal Fusiliers were directed to march to Umballa, and an Artillery officer was sent express to Philour with instructions for a third-class siege-train to be got ready, and for reserve Artillery and Infantry ammunition to be despatched to Umballa. Orders were also issued for the Nasiri battalion, stationed at Jutog, near Simla, and for the company of Native Artillery at Kangra and Nurpur4 to march with all expedition to Philour, for the purpose of accompanying the siege-train; and for the Sirmur battalion of Gurkhas at Dehra Dun, and the Sappers and Miners at Rurki, to proceed to Meerut.

Anson didn't have to wait long before he got confirmation of the[Page 53] alarming news brought by General Barnard's son. The very next afternoon, a letter arrived from Meerut detailing the outbreak on the 10th and some specifics about what happened in Delhi. The Commander-in-Chief quickly decided to head to Umballa to personally oversee the organization of the force that, as he correctly guessed, would need to be sent to Delhi. General Anson wasted no time or delay in issuing the necessary orders.3 The 2nd Bengal Fusiliers were ordered to march to Umballa, and an Artillery officer was sent immediately to Philour with instructions to prepare a third-class siege train and to send reserve Artillery and Infantry ammunition to Umballa. Orders were also given for the Nasiri battalion, stationed at Jutog near Simla, and the Native Artillery company at Kangra and Nurpur4 to march as quickly as possible to Philour to accompany the siege train; as well as for the Sirmur battalion of Gurkhas at Dehra Dun and the Sappers and Miners at Rurki to proceed to Meerut.

Having thus pressed forward the measures for the suppression of the revolt which to him seemed most urgent, General Anson left Simla early on the 14th May, within forty-eight hours of the receipt of the first news of the outbreak, and reached Umballa the following morning. His last act at Simla was to draft a circular which he hoped would have the effect of allaying excitement in the Native army.

Having pushed forward the measures to suppress the revolt that he thought were most urgent, General Anson left Simla early on May 14th, just forty-eight hours after receiving the first news of the outbreak, and arrived in Umballa the next morning. His final action in Simla was to draft a circular that he hoped would help calm the excitement in the Native army.

The report which Sir Henry Barnard had to make to the Chief on his arrival at Umballa was not reassuring. The troops at that station consisted of Her Majesty's 9th Lancers, two troops of Horse Artillery, the 4th Bengal Light Cavalry, and two regiments of Native Infantry. The 75th Foot and 1st Bengal Fusiliers had just marched in with only thirty and seventy rounds of ammunition per man, respectively, and (from want of carriage) without tents or baggage. The Commissariat and Medical Departments were totally unprepared to meet the requirements of a force suddenly ordered to take the field; there were no doolies for the sick; supplies were difficult to collect, for the bazaars were partially deserted; there was a scarcity of contractors, and no[Page 54] ammunition was available nearer than Philour, eighty miles off.

The report that Sir Henry Barnard had to give to the Chief upon his arrival in Umballa was not encouraging. The troops stationed there included Her Majesty's 9th Lancers, two troops of Horse Artillery, the 4th Bengal Light Cavalry, and two regiments of Native Infantry. The 75th Foot and 1st Bengal Fusiliers had just arrived with only thirty and seventy rounds of ammunition per man, respectively, and (due to a lack of transportation) without tents or baggage. The Commissariat and Medical Departments were completely unprepared to handle the needs of a force that was suddenly ordered to deploy; there were no doolies for the sick; supplies were hard to gather since the bazaars were only partially open; there was a shortage of contractors, and no ammunition was available any closer than Philour, eighty miles away.

At Delhi all the Europeans who had not escaped had been massacred, and the city had been taken possession of by the Native garrison and the mutinous troops from Meerut in the name of the old King.

At Delhi, all the Europeans who hadn't escaped had been killed, and the city had been taken over by the local troops and the rebel soldiers from Meerut in the name of the former King.

At Meerut the European troops were entrenching themselves; the surrounding district was in the most complete disorder, and the civil courts powerless.

At Meerut, the European troops were digging in; the surrounding area was in total chaos, and the civil courts were ineffective.

At Umballa and Jullundur, although the presence of European troops had hitherto kept the Native regiments from open mutiny, it was evident that they were not in the least to be depended upon.

At Umballa and Jullundur, even though the presence of European troops had so far prevented the Native regiments from openly rebelling, it was clear that they couldn't be relied on at all.

At Ferozepore an aggravated revolt had occurred, and at Lahore it had been found necessary to disarm all the Native troops.

At Ferozepore, a serious uprising had taken place, and in Lahore, it became necessary to disarm all the local troops.

From below Meerut there was no intelligence whatever, but it seemed more than probable that the spirit of rebellion had broken out in many stations, and later this was known to be the case.

From below Meerut, there was no information at all, but it seemed highly likely that the spirit of rebellion had erupted in many stations, and later it was confirmed that this was true.

To add to the Commander-in-Chief's anxieties, it was reported that the Nasiri battalion at Jutog had got out of hand for a time and refused to march to Philour, while a detachment of the same corps at Kasauli plundered the treasury, rendering it necessary to send back 100 men of the 75th Foot to reinforce the depot at that place, where a large number of European soldiers' families were collected.

To make matters worse for the Commander-in-Chief, it was reported that the Nasiri battalion at Jutog had gone rogue for a while and refused to march to Philour. Meanwhile, a group from the same unit at Kasauli looted the treasury, making it necessary to send back 100 men from the 75th Foot to reinforce the depot there, where many families of European soldiers were gathered.

The behaviour of the Gurkhas gave rise to a panic at Simla, which, however, did not last long. Lord William Hay,5 who was Deputy-Commissioner at the time, induced most of the ladies, with their children, to seek a temporary asylum with the Raja of Kiunthal.6 Hay himself managed to keep Simla quiet, and the men of the Nasiri battalion coming to their senses, order was restored throughout the hills. The money taken from the Kasauli treasury was nearly all voluntarily given up, and before the year was out the battalion did us good service.

The behavior of the Gurkhas caused a panic in Simla, but it didn’t last long. Lord William Hay,5 who was the Deputy-Commissioner at the time, encouraged most of the women and their children to find temporary shelter with the Raja of Kiunthal.6 Hay himself managed to keep Simla calm, and the men of the Nasiri battalion soon regained their composure, restoring order throughout the hills. Almost all the money taken from the Kasauli treasury was voluntarily returned, and by the end of the year, the battalion provided us with valuable service.

A Long List of Troubles It was a long list of troubles that was placed before the Commander-in-Chief. Disturbing as they all were, each requiring prompt and special action, there was one amongst them which stood out in bold relief—the situation at Delhi; and to wrest that stronghold from the hands of the mutineers was, General Anson conceived, his most pressing obligation. But could it be done with the means at his disposal? He thought not; and in this opinion he was supported by the senior officers at Umballa, with whom the question was anxiously discussed at a conference held at Sir Henry Barnard's house on the 16th May.7 It was nevertheless determined to push on to Delhi, and General Hewitt[Page 55] was asked what force he could spare from Meerut to co-operate with the Umballa column. He was warned that time was an object, and that the 23rd May was the date on which his troops would probably be required to start. All details were carefully considered. The first difficulty to be overcome was the want of carriage. No organized system of transport—one of the most essential requirements of an efficient army—existed, and, owing to the restlessness and uncertainty which prevailed throughout the country, the civil authorities were unable to collect carts and camels with the usual rapidity.8

A Long List of Issues The Commander-in-Chief was presented with a long list of troubles. While all of them were concerning and needed immediate action, one issue stood out as the most urgent—the situation in Delhi. General Anson believed that his top priority was to take back that stronghold from the mutineers. But could he accomplish it with the resources he had? He didn't think so; and the senior officers in Umballa shared this view, discussing the matter anxiously at a conference held at Sir Henry Barnard's house on the 16th May. 7 Still, they decided to move forward to Delhi, and General Hewitt[Page 55] was asked how many troops he could spare from Meerut to assist the Umballa column. He was warned that time was critical, and that his troops would likely need to be ready to leave by the 23rd May. Every detail was carefully considered. The first challenge was a lack of transport. There was no organized transport system—one of the most essential needs of an effective army—and, due to the unrest and uncertainty across the country, the civil authorities were struggling to gather carts and camels as quickly as usual. rapidity.8

John Lawrence That afternoon General Anson received a letter from Sir John Lawrence urging the importance of an immediate advance on Delhi, and giving an outline of the measures he proposed to adopt in the Punjab. He asked the Commander-in-Chief to give a general sanction to the arrangements, and concluded with these words: "I consider this to be the greatest crisis which has ever occurred in India. Our European force is so small that, unless effectively handled in the outset, and brought to bear, it will prove unequal to the emergency. But with vigour and promptitude, under the blessing of God, it will prove irresistible."

John Lawrence That afternoon, General Anson received a letter from Sir John Lawrence stressing the need for an immediate move on Delhi and outlining the actions he planned to take in the Punjab. He requested that the Commander-in-Chief approve these arrangements and ended with these words: "I believe this is the greatest crisis that has ever taken place in India. Our European force is so small that, unless it is handled effectively from the beginning and put to use, it will not be able to meet the emergency. But with energy and promptness, with God's blessing, it will be unstoppable."

Anson naturally hesitated to advance with an inefficient and only partially equipped force against a strongly-fortified city with an immense armed population, defended by many thousand desperate mutineers, and in his reply (dated the 17th May) he put the case plainly before Sir John Lawrence. He pointed out that the Europeans were without tents; that there were no guns at Umballa or Meerut heavier than six or nine pounders with which to batter down the walls of Delhi; that the required amount of carriage could not be provided in less than sixteen or twenty days; and that the three Native corps at Umballa could not be depended upon. He asked Sir John whether he considered 'it would be prudent to risk the small European force we have here in an enterprise against Delhi,' and he wrote: 'My own view of the state of things now is, by carefully collecting our resources, having got rid of the bad materials which we cannot trust, and having supplied their places with others of a better sort, it would not be very long before we could proceed, without a chance of failure, in whatever direction we might please.' Adding, 'this is now the opinion of all here whom I have consulted—the Major-General and Brigadier, the Adjutant-General, Quartermaster-General and Commissary-General.' Anson concluded his letter with the following words: 'It would give me great satisfaction to have your views upon the present crisis, for I would[Page 56] trust to them more than to my experience.'

Anson naturally hesitated to move forward with an incomplete and only partially equipped force against a heavily fortified city with a massive armed population, defended by thousands of desperate mutineers. In his reply (dated May 17th), he laid the situation out clearly for Sir John Lawrence. He pointed out that the Europeans were without tents, that there were no guns at Umballa or Meerut heavier than six or nine pounders to breach the walls of Delhi, that the needed transportation couldn’t be arranged in less than sixteen to twenty days, and that the three Native corps at Umballa were unreliable. He asked Sir John if he thought it would be wise to risk the small European force they had in an operation against Delhi. He wrote: "My current assessment of the situation is that, by carefully gathering our resources, eliminating the untrustworthy elements, and replacing them with better options, it wouldn’t be long before we could advance in any direction we chose without a risk of failure." He added, "This is now the consensus of everyone I’ve consulted here—the Major-General and Brigadier, the Adjutant-General, Quartermaster-General, and Commissary-General." Anson ended his letter with: "I would greatly appreciate your thoughts on the current crisis, as I would trust them more than my own experience."

John Lawrence, who was straining every nerve to check the Mutiny and prevent a general rising of the population, was impatient at the idea of delay, and lost no time in giving Anson his opinion. He telegraphed it briefly on the 20th, and the following day he wrote to the effect that he knew Delhi well, having been stationed there for nearly thirteen years, and it seemed incredible to him that mutineers could hold and defend it; his belief was 'that, with good management on the part of the civil officers, it would open its gates on the approach of our troops.' He admitted that 'on military principles, in the present state of affairs, it may not be expedient to advance on Delhi until the Meerut force is prepared to act.' But he protested against European soldiers being 'cooped up in their cantonments, tamely awaiting the progress of events.' He went on to say: 'Pray only reflect on the whole history of India. Where have we failed when we acted vigorously? Where have we succeeded when guided by timid counsels? Clive with 1,200 men fought at Plassy, in opposition to the advice of his leading officers, beat 40,000 men, and conquered Bengal.'

John Lawrence, who was doing everything he could to stop the Mutiny and prevent a widespread uprising, was frustrated by any delays and quickly shared his thoughts with Anson. He sent a brief telegram on the 20th, and the next day he wrote that he was very familiar with Delhi, having been stationed there for nearly thirteen years. He found it hard to believe that the mutineers could hold and defend the city; he believed that "with good management from the civil officers, the city would open its gates when our troops approached." He acknowledged that "based on military principles, given the current situation, it might not be wise to advance on Delhi until the Meerut force is ready to act." However, he strongly opposed the idea of European soldiers being "trapped in their cantonments, passively waiting for events to unfold." He continued by saying: "Just think about the entire history of India. Where have we failed when we acted decisively? Where have we succeeded when we followed timid advice? Clive, with 1,200 men, fought at Plassy against the advice of his top officers, defeated 40,000 men, and conquered Bengal."

That Sir John Lawrence greatly under-estimated the difficulties which Anson had to overcome we now know. Delhi did not open its gates on our approach, but for more than three months defied all our efforts to capture it. And in his eagerness to get the Commander-in-Chief to think as he did, the resolute Chief Commissioner forgot that Clive—not with 1,200 men, but with 3,000 disciplined troops—had to deal in the open field with an enemy little better than a rabble; whereas Anson had to attack a strong fortress, amply supplied with stores and ammunition, possessing a powerful armament, and held by soldiers who were not only well trained and equipped, but were fighting for their lives, and animated by religious fanaticism.

That Sir John Lawrence seriously underestimated the challenges Anson faced is clear now. Delhi didn’t welcome us; instead, it resisted all our attempts to capture it for more than three months. In his eagerness to get the Commander-in-Chief to share his views, the determined Chief Commissioner forgot that Clive—who had 3,000 disciplined troops, not just 1,200—had to confront a foe that was barely more than a disorganized mob in open battle; while Anson had to assault a strong fortress, well-stocked with supplies and ammunition, armed with powerful weaponry, and defended by soldiers who were not only well-trained and equipped but were also fighting for their lives and driven by religious fervor.

Still, there can be no doubt that John Lawrence's views as to the necessity for Delhi being taken at all hazards were correct. The Governor-General held the same opinion, and strongly urged it upon Anson, who loyally responded, and during the short time he remained at Umballa strenuously exerted himself to equip the troops destined for the arduous task.

Still, there's no doubt that John Lawrence was right about the need to take Delhi at all costs. The Governor-General shared this view and strongly pushed Anson to act on it. Anson, in turn, affirmed this and worked hard during his brief stay in Umballa to prepare the troops for the challenging mission ahead.

While preparing for his advance on the Moghul capital, Anson did not neglect to provide, as far as lay in his power, for the safety of Umballa. The soldiers' wives and children were sent to Kasauli; a place of refuge was made for the non-combatants at the church, round which an entrenchment was thrown; a garrison, about 500 strong, was formed of the sick and weakly men of the several European regiments, assisted by some of the Patiala troops; and as an additional security half the Native corps were sent into the district, and the other half with the column to Delhi.

While getting ready for his advance on the Mughal capital, Anson made sure to take care of Umballa’s safety as much as he could. The soldiers' wives and kids were sent to Kasauli; a safe area was established for the non-combatants at the church, which was surrounded by a makeshift defense; a garrison of about 500 soldiers was formed from the sick and weaker men of the various European regiments, supported by some of the Patiala troops; and to add extra security, half of the Native corps were sent into the district, while the other half went with the column to Delhi.

The Phulkian Family John Lawrence had strongly advocated the policy of trusting the[Page 57] Maharaja of Patiala and the Rajas of Jhind and Nabha. The attitude of these Chiefs was of extreme importance, for if they had not been well disposed towards us, our communication with the Punjab would have been imperilled. There was therefore much anxiety at Umballa as to the course Patiala, Jhind, and Nabha (the three principal members of the great Phulkian family) would elect to take. Douglas Forsyth,9 Deputy-Commissioner of Umballa, who was a personal friend of the Maharaja of Patiala, at once sought an interview with him. He was beginning to explain to the Maharaja the difficulties of the situation, when he was interrupted by His Highness, who said he was aware of all that had happened; on which Forsyth asked if it was true that emissaries from the King of Delhi had come to Patiala. The Maharaja pointed to some men seated at a little distance, saying, 'There they are.' Forsyth then asked for a word in private. As soon as they were alone, he addressed the Maharaja thus: 'Maharaja sahib, answer me one question: Are you for us, or against us?' The Maharaja's reply was very hearty: 'As long as I live I am yours, but you know I have enemies in my own country; some of my relations are against me—my brother for one. What do you want done?' Forsyth then asked the Maharaja to send some of his troops towards Kurnal to keep open the Grand Trunk Road. The Maharaja agreed on the understanding that Europeans should soon be sent to support them—a very necessary condition, for he knew that his men could only be trusted so long as there was no doubt of our ultimate success.

The Phulkian Family John Lawrence had strongly supported the idea of trusting the [Page 57] Maharaja of Patiala and the Rajas of Jhind and Nabha. The attitude of these leaders was extremely important; if they hadn't been on our side, our communication with the Punjab would have been at risk. There was considerable concern in Umballa about what Patiala, Jhind, and Nabha (the three main members of the great Phulkian family) would decide to do. Douglas Forsyth, Deputy-Commissioner of Umballa and a personal friend of the Maharaja of Patiala, immediately sought a meeting with him. He was starting to explain the difficulties of the situation when he was interrupted by His Highness, who said he was aware of everything that had happened. Forsyth then asked if it was true that emissaries from the King of Delhi had come to Patiala. The Maharaja pointed to some men sitting a little way off and said, 'There they are.' Forsyth then requested a private conversation. Once they were alone, he asked the Maharaja, 'Maharaja sahib, can you answer one question: Are you for us, or against us?' The Maharaja's response was very warm: 'As long as I live, I am yours, but you know I have enemies in my own country; some of my relatives are against me—my brother, for instance. What do you want me to do?' Forsyth then asked the Maharaja to send some of his troops towards Kurnal to keep the Grand Trunk Road open. The Maharaja agreed, on the condition that Europeans would soon be sent to support them—a crucial condition, as he knew his men could only be relied upon as long as there was no doubt about our eventual success.

Patiala was true to his word, and throughout the Mutiny the Phulkian Chiefs remained perfectly loyal, and performed the important service of keeping open communication between Delhi and the Punjab.10

Patiala kept his promise, and during the Mutiny, the Phulkian Chiefs stayed completely loyal, handling the crucial task of maintaining communication between Delhi and the Punjab.10

On the 19th May General Anson was cheered by hearing from John Lawrence that the Corps of Guides and four trusty Punjab regiments were proceeding by forced marches to join him. On the 21st he received a message from the Governor-General informing him that European troops were coming from Madras, Bombay, and Ceylon. He also heard of the arrival of the siege-train at Umballa, and he had the satisfaction of telegraphing to the Chief Commissioner that the first detachment of the column destined for Delhi had started.

On May 19th, General Anson was pleased to hear from John Lawrence that the Corps of Guides and four reliable Punjab regiments were marching quickly to join him. On the 21st, he received a message from the Governor-General letting him know that European troops were on their way from Madras, Bombay, and Ceylon. He also learned about the arrival of the siege train in Umballa and was satisfied to send a telegram to the Chief Commissioner announcing that the first group of troops headed for Delhi had started out.

On the 23rd the Commander-in-Chief communicated his plan of operations to General Hewitt. It was as follows: Two brigades were to advance from Umballa, commanded by Brigadier Hallifax of the 75th Foot, and Colonel Jones of the 60th Rifles; and one brigade from Meerut, under the command of Brigadier Archdale Wilson. The two former were to be concentrated at Kurnal by the 30th May, and were then to advance, under General Anson, so as to arrive opposite Baghput on the 5th June, at which place they were to be joined by the Meerut[Page 58] brigade, and the united force was then to proceed to Delhi.

On the 23rd, the Commander-in-Chief shared his plan of operations with General Hewitt. It went like this: Two brigades were to move out from Umballa, led by Brigadier Hallifax of the 75th Foot and Colonel Jones of the 60th Rifles; and one brigade from Meerut, under Brigadier Archdale Wilson. The first two were to gather at Kurnal by May 30th, and then advance under General Anson to reach Baghput by June 5th, where they would meet the Meerut brigade, and the combined force would then head to Delhi.

Death of General Anson All his arrangements being now completed, Anson left Umballa on the 24th May, and reached Kurnal the following morning. On the 26th he was struck down by cholera, and in a few hours succumbed to that fatal disease. His last words expressed a hope that his country would do him justice, and it is grievous to feel that, in estimating his work and the difficulties he had to encounter, full justice has not been done him. Anson has been undeservedly blamed for vacillation and want of promptitude. He was told to 'make short work of Delhi,' but before Delhi could be taken more men had perished than his whole force at that time amounted to. The advice to march upon Delhi was sound, but had it been rashly followed disaster would have been the inevitable result. Had the Commander-in-Chief been goaded into advancing without spare ammunition and siege Artillery, or with an insufficient force, he must have been annihilated by the overwhelming masses of the mutineers—those mutineers, who, we shall see later, stoutly opposed Barnard's greatly augmented force at Badli-ki-Serai, would almost certainly have repulsed, if not destroyed, a smaller body of troops.

Death of General Anson After finishing all his arrangements, Anson left Umballa on May 24th and arrived in Kurnal the next morning. On the 26th, he was struck down by cholera and succumbed to the disease within hours. His last words expressed a hope that his country would recognize his efforts, and it’s painful to realize that, when considering his work and the challenges he faced, he hasn’t received the full recognition he deserves. Anson has been unfairly criticized for hesitation and a lack of urgency. He was instructed to 'make quick work of Delhi,' but by the time Delhi could be taken, more men had died than the entire number of his force at that time. The advice to advance on Delhi was sound, but if it had been followed recklessly, it would have led to disaster. Had the Commander-in-Chief been pushed to advance without enough ammunition and siege artillery, or with too few troops, he would likely have been overwhelmed by the massive forces of the mutineers—those same mutineers, who, as we will see later, successfully confronted Barnard's much larger force at Badli-ki-Serai, would almost certainly have repelled or even destroyed a smaller troop.

On the death of General Anson the command of the Field Force devolved on Major-General Sir Henry Barnard.

On the death of General Anson, command of the Field Force passed to Major-General Sir Henry Barnard.






CHAPTER IX.

1857

I will now continue my story from the time I left Peshawar to join the Movable Column.

I will now continue my story from the time I left Peshawar to join the Movable Column.

John Lawrence's Wise Measures On the 18th May Brigadier Chamberlain and I arrived at Rawal Pindi, where we joined the Chief Commissioner, who had got thus far on his way to his summer residence in the Murree Hills when tidings of the disaster reached him. One of Sir John Lawrence's first acts after talking over matters with Chamberlain was to summon Edwardes from Peshawar, for he wished to consult with him personally about the question of raising levies and enlisting more frontier men, the only one of Edwardes's and Nicholson's proposals regarding which the Chief Commissioner had any doubt; it appeared to him a somewhat risky step to take, and he desired to give the matter very careful consideration before coming to any decision. I remember being greatly struck with the weight given by Lawrence to Edwardes's opinion. He called him his Councillor, he eagerly sought his advice, and he evidently placed the utmost reliance on his judgment.

John Lawrence's Smart Strategies On May 18th, Brigadier Chamberlain and I arrived in Rawal Pindi, where we met up with the Chief Commissioner, who had gotten this far on his way to his summer home in the Murree Hills when news of the disaster reached him. One of Sir John Lawrence's first actions after discussing the situation with Chamberlain was to summon Edwardes from Peshawar because he wanted to consult with him in person about the issue of raising levies and recruiting more frontier men, which was the only part of Edwardes's and Nicholson's proposals that the Chief Commissioner had any doubts about; it seemed like a risky move to him, and he wanted to think it over very carefully before making a decision. I remember being really impressed by how much weight Lawrence gave to Edwardes's opinion. He referred to him as his Councillor, eagerly sought his advice, and clearly had complete trust in his judgment.

During the six days that we remained at Rawal Pindi waiting for the Movable Column to be assembled, I spent the greater part of my time[Page 59] in the Chief Commissioner's office, drafting or copying confidential letters and telegrams. I thus learned everything that was happening in the Punjab, and became aware of the magnitude of the crisis through which we were passing. This enabled me to appreciate the tremendous efforts required to cope with the danger, and to understand that the fate of Delhi and the lives of our countrymen and countrywomen in Upper India depended upon the action taken by the authorities in the Punjab. I realized that Sir John Lawrence thought of every detail, and how correct was his judgment as to which of his subordinates could, or could not, be trusted. The many European women and children scattered over the province caused him the greatest anxiety, and he wisely determined to collect them as much as possible at hill stations and the larger centres, where they would be under the protection of British troops; for this reason he ordered the families of the European soldiers at Sialkot (who were being withdrawn to join the Movable Column) to be sent to Lahore. But, notwithstanding all that had occurred, and was daily occurring, to demonstrate how universal was the spirit of disaffection throughout the Native Army, Brigadier Frederick Brind, who commanded at Sialkot, could not be brought to believe that the regiments serving under his command would ever prove disloyal, and he strongly objected to carry out an order which he denounced as 'showing a want of confidence in the sepoys.' John Lawrence, however, stood firm. Brind was ordered to despatch the soldiers' families without delay, and advised to urge the civilians and military officers to send away their families at the same time. A few of the ladies and children were sent off, but some were allowed to remain until the troops mutinied, when the Brigadier was one of the first to pay the penalty of his misplaced confidence, being shot down by one of his own orderlies.

During the six days we stayed in Rawal Pindi waiting for the Movable Column to be set up, I spent most of my time[Page 59] in the Chief Commissioner's office, writing or copying confidential letters and telegrams. This allowed me to learn everything happening in the Punjab and to understand the seriousness of the crisis we were facing. I came to see the massive efforts needed to deal with the danger and realized that the fate of Delhi and the lives of our fellow citizens in Upper India depended on the actions taken by the authorities in the Punjab. I recognized how Sir John Lawrence considered every detail and how accurate his judgment was regarding which of his subordinates could be trusted. The many European women and children spread throughout the province caused him a lot of concern, and he wisely decided to gather them as much as possible in hill stations and larger centers where they would be protected by British troops. For this reason, he ordered the families of the European soldiers in Sialkot (who were being pulled back to join the Movable Column) to be sent to Lahore. However, despite everything that had happened and was happening daily to show how widespread the discontent was in the Native Army, Brigadier Frederick Brind, who was in command at Sialkot, could not believe that the regiments under his command would ever turn disloyal, and he strongly resisted an order that he claimed showed a lack of trust in the sepoys. John Lawrence, however, remained resolute. Brind was ordered to send the soldiers' families away without delay and was advised to encourage the civilians and military officers to do the same with their families. A few ladies and children were sent off, but some were allowed to stay until the troops mutinied, when the Brigadier was one of the first to pay the price for his misplaced trust, being shot down by one of his own orderlies.

We had not been long at Rawal Pindi before we heard that the uneasiness at Peshawar was hourly increasing, and that the detachment of the 55th Native Infantry1 at Nowshera had mutinied and broken open the magazine. The military force in the Peshawar valley had been considerably weakened by the withdrawal of the 27th Foot and Corps of Guides; it was evident that disaffection was rapidly spreading, and what was still more alarming was the ominously restless feelings amongst the principal tribes on the frontier. Nicholson encountered considerable difficulty in raising local levies, and there was a general unwillingness to enlist. Our disasters in Kabul in 1841-42 had not been forgotten; our cause was considered desperate, and even Nicholson could not persuade men to join it. It was clear that this state of affairs must not be allowed to continue, and that some decisive measures must quickly be taken, or there would be a general rising[Page 60] along the frontier.

We had not been in Rawal Pindi for long before we heard that the unrest in Peshawar was growing by the hour, and that the detachment of the 55th Native Infantry1 at Nowshera had mutinied and broken into the magazine. The military presence in the Peshawar valley had been significantly weakened by the withdrawal of the 27th Foot and the Corps of Guides; it was clear that discontent was spreading quickly, and what was even more alarming was the increasingly restless sentiments among the main tribes on the frontier. Nicholson faced significant challenges in raising local forces, and there was a widespread reluctance to enlist. Our failures in Kabul in 1841-42 were still fresh in everyone's minds; our situation was seen as hopeless, and even Nicholson couldn't convince people to join our cause. It was obvious that this situation could not be allowed to persist, and that decisive action needed to be taken quickly, or there would be an uprising along the frontier. [Page 60]

Disarmament at Peshawar Matters seemed to be drawing to a head, when it was wisely determined to disarm the Native regiments at Peshawar without delay. This conclusion was come to at midnight on the 21st May, when the news of the unfortunate occurrences at Nowshera reached Edwardes, who had returned that morning from Rawal Pindi. He and Nicholson felt that no time was to be lost, for if the sepoys heard that the regiment at Nowshera had mutinied, it would be too late to attempt to disarm them. Going forthwith to the Brigadier's house, they communicated their views to Sydney Cotton, who thoroughly appreciated the urgency of the case, and, acting with the most praiseworthy decision, summoned the commanding officers of all the Native regiments to be at his house at daybreak.

Disarmament in Peshawar Things were escalating quickly when it was decided to disarm the Native regiments at Peshawar without delay. This decision was made at midnight on May 21st, when Edwardes, who had returned that morning from Rawal Pindi, received news of the unfortunate events at Nowshera. He and Nicholson realized that they needed to act fast; if the sepoys found out that the regiment at Nowshera had mutinied, it would be too late to disarm them. They immediately went to the Brigadier's house and shared their thoughts with Sydney Cotton, who fully understood the urgency of the situation. Acting decisively, he called on the commanding officers of all the Native regiments to meet at his house at dawn.

When they were assembled, the Brigadier carefully explained to the officers how matters stood. He pointed out to them that their regiments were known to be on the verge of mutiny, and that they must be disarmed forthwith, ending by expressing his great regret at having to take so serious a step.

When they were gathered, the Brigadier carefully explained to the officers what was going on. He informed them that their regiments were on the brink of mutiny and that they needed to be disarmed immediately, finishing by expressing his deep regret about having to take such a serious action.

The officers were quite aghast. They were persistent and almost insubordinate in expressing their conviction that the measure was wholly uncalled-for, that the sepoys were thoroughly loyal, and that, notwithstanding what had occurred in other places, they had perfect confidence in their men.

The officers were really shocked. They were determined and almost defiant in expressing their belief that the action was entirely unnecessary, that the sepoys were completely loyal, and that, despite what had happened elsewhere, they had complete trust in their men.

The Brigadier, who knew the officers well, felt that every allowance should be made for them, called upon as they were to disarm the men with whom they had been so long associated, and in whom they still implicitly believed. But although he regarded the officers' remonstrances as natural and excusable, Cotton never wavered in his decision, for he was experienced enough to see that the evil was widespread and deep-seated, and that any display of confidence or attempt at conciliation in dealing with the disaffected regiments would be worse than useless.

The Brigadier, who was well-acquainted with the officers, thought they should be given every consideration, especially since they were tasked with disarming the men they had worked with for so long and still believed in. However, while he understood the officers' complaints as understandable and justified, Cotton never changed his mind. He had enough experience to recognize that the problem was widespread and rooted deeply, and that showing any confidence or trying to make peace with the unhappy regiments would be counterproductive.

The parade, which was ordered for 7 a.m., was conducted with great judgment. The European troops were skilfully disposed so as to render resistance useless, and four out of the five regular Native regiments were called upon to lay down their arms. The fifth regiment—the 21st Native Infantry2—was exempted from this indignity, partly because it had shown no active symptoms of disaffection, was well commanded and had good officers, and partly because it would have been extremely difficult to carry on the military duties of the station without some Native Infantry.

The parade, scheduled for 7 a.m., was carried out with careful planning. The European troops were strategically positioned to make any resistance pointless, and four out of the five regular Native regiments were ordered to surrender their weapons. The fifth regiment—the 21st Native Infantry2—was spared this humiliation, partly because it had shown no clear signs of disloyalty, was well-led and had capable officers, and partly because it would have been very challenging to maintain the military operations at the station without some Native Infantry.

The two regiments of Irregular Cavalry were also spared the disgrace of being disarmed. It was hoped that the stake the Native officers and[Page 61] men had in the service (their horses and arms being their own property) would prevent them from taking an active part in the Mutiny, and it was believed that the British officers who served with them, and who for the most part were carefully selected, had sufficient influence over their men to keep them straight. This hope proved to be not altogether without foundation, for of the eighteen regiments of Irregular Cavalry which existed in May, 1857, eight are still borne on the strength of the Bengal Army; while of the ten regiments of Regular Cavalry and seventy-four of Infantry, none of the former, and only eleven of the latter, now remain.

The two regiments of Irregular Cavalry were also spared the dishonor of being disarmed. It was hoped that the stake the Native officers and[Page 61]men had in the service (since their horses and weapons were their own property) would keep them from actively participating in the Mutiny. It was also believed that the British officers who served alongside them, most of whom were carefully chosen, had enough influence over their men to keep them in line. This hope turned out to have some validity, as of the eighteen regiments of Irregular Cavalry that existed in May 1857, eight are still recognized as part of the Bengal Army; meanwhile, of the ten regiments of Regular Cavalry and seventy-four of Infantry, none of the former and only eleven of the latter remain today.

Salutary Effect in the Valley How immediate and salutary were the effects of the disarmament on the inhabitants of the Peshawar valley will be seen by the following account which Edwardes gave of it. 'As we rode down to the disarming a very few Chiefs and yeomen of the country attended us; and I remember judging from their faces that they came to see which way the tide would turn. As we rode back friends were as thick as summer flies, and levies began from that moment to come in.'

Positive Impact in the Valley The immediate and positive effects of the disarmament on the people of the Peshawar valley can be seen in Edwardes' account. "As we rode down for the disarmament, only a handful of Chiefs and local men joined us; and I could tell from their expressions they were there to see how things would unfold. But on the way back, friends were everywhere, and from that point, new recruits started arriving."

The Subadar-Major of the 51st—one of the four regiments disarmed—had a few days before written to the men of the 64th, who were divided amongst the outposts, calling upon them to return to Peshawar in time to join in the revolt fixed for the 22nd May. The letter ran; 'In whatever way you can manage it, come into Peshawar on the 21st instant. Thoroughly understand that point! In fact, eat there and drink here.' The rapidity with which the disarmament had been carried through spoilt the Subadar-Major's little game; he had, however, gone too far to draw back, and on the night of the 22nd he deserted, taking with him 250 men of the regiment. His hopes were a second time doomed to disappointment. However welcome 250 muskets might have been to the Afridis, 250 unarmed sepoys were no prize; and as our neighbours in the hills had evidently come to the conclusion that our raj was not in such a desperate state as they had imagined, and that their best policy was to side with us, they caught the deserters, with the assistance of the district police, and made them over to the authorities. The men were all tried by Court-Martial, and the Subadar-Major was hanged in the presence of the whole garrison.

The Subadar-Major of the 51st—one of the four regiments that were disarmed—had written a few days earlier to the men of the 64th, who were scattered among the outposts, urging them to return to Peshawar in time to take part in the revolt planned for May 22nd. The letter said, 'No matter how you manage it, get into Peshawar by the 21st. Make sure you understand that! Basically, eat there and drink here.' The speed with which the disarmament happened ruined the Subadar-Major's little scheme; however, he had already gone too far to back out, and on the night of the 22nd, he deserted, taking 250 men from the regiment with him. His hopes were again dashed. While 250 muskets would have been valuable to the Afridis, 250 unarmed sepoys were not a catch; and since our neighbors in the hills had clearly realized that our rule was not in as desperate a situation as they had thought, deciding that it was better to side with us, they captured the deserters, with help from the district police, and handed them over to the authorities. The men were all tried by Court-Martial, and the Subadar-Major was hanged in front of the entire garrison.

On the 23rd May, the day after the disarmament, news was received at Peshawar that the 55th Native Infantry had mutinied at Mardan, and that the 10th Irregular Cavalry, which was divided between Nowshera and Mardan, had turned against us. A force was at once despatched to restore order, and Nicholson accompanied it as political officer. No sooner did the mutineers, on the morning of the 25th, catch sight of the approaching column than they broke out of the fort and fled towards the Swat hills. Nicholson pursued with his levies and mounted police, and before night 120 fugitives were killed and as many[Page 62] more made prisoners. The remainder found no welcome among the hill tribes, and eventually became wanderers over the country until they died or were killed. Poor Spottiswoode, the Colonel, committed suicide shortly before the Peshawar troops reached Mardan.

On May 23rd, the day after the disarmament, news arrived in Peshawar that the 55th Native Infantry had revolted in Mardan, and the 10th Irregular Cavalry, split between Nowshera and Mardan, had turned against us. A force was immediately sent to restore order, and Nicholson joined as the political officer. As soon as the mutineers spotted the approaching column on the morning of the 25th, they rushed out of the fort and fled towards the Swat hills. Nicholson chased them with his troops and mounted police, and by nightfall, 120 fugitives had been killed and as many more captured. The rest found no refuge among the hill tribes and eventually roamed the country until they either died or were killed. Poor Spottiswoode, the Colonel, took his own life just before the Peshawar troops reached Mardan.






CHAPTER X.

1857

While I was employed in the Chief Commissioner's office at Rawal Pindi it became known that the Mutineers intended to make their stand at Delhi, and immediately urgent demands came from the Head-Quarters of the army for troops to be sent from the Punjab. Sir John Lawrence exerted himself to the uttermost, even to the extent of denuding his own province to a somewhat dangerous degree, and the Guides and 1st Punjab Infantry, which had been told off for the Movable Column, were ordered instead to proceed to Delhi.

While I was working in the Chief Commissioner's office in Rawal Pindi, it became clear that the rebels planned to make their stand in Delhi. Urgent requests came from the army headquarters for troops to be sent from Punjab. Sir John Lawrence did everything he could, even putting his own province at a somewhat risky disadvantage, and the Guides and 1st Punjab Infantry, which were originally assigned to the Movable Column, were ordered instead to head to Delhi.

The Guides, a corps second to none in Her Majesty's Indian Army, was commanded by Captain Daly,1 and consisted of three troops of Cavalry and six companies of Infantry. The regiment had got as far as Attock, when it received the order to proceed to Delhi, and pushed on at once by double marches. The 4th Sikhs, under Captain Rothney, and the 1st Punjab Infantry, under Major Coke,2 followed in quick succession, and later on the following troops belonging to the Punjab Frontier Force were despatched towards Delhi: a squadron of the 1st Punjab Cavalry, under Lieutenant John Watson (my companion in Kashmir); a squadron of the 2nd Punjab Cavalry, under Lieutenant Charles Nicholson3 (John Nicholson's brother); a squadron of the 5th Punjab Cavalry, under Lieutenant Younghusband; and the 2nd and 4th Punjab Infantry, commanded respectively by Captains G. Green4 and A. Wilde.5

The Guides, an unmatched unit in Her Majesty's Indian Army, was led by Captain Daly,1 and consisted of three troops of Cavalry and six companies of Infantry. The regiment had reached Attock when they got the order to head to Delhi, and they immediately moved out with double marches. The 4th Sikhs, commanded by Captain Rothney, and the 1st Punjab Infantry, led by Major Coke,2 followed closely behind, and soon after, the Punjab Frontier Force sent the following troops towards Delhi: a squadron of the 1st Punjab Cavalry, led by Lieutenant John Watson (my companion in Kashmir); a squadron of the 2nd Punjab Cavalry, commanded by Lieutenant Charles Nicholson3 (John Nicholson's brother); a squadron of the 5th Punjab Cavalry, under Lieutenant Younghusband; and the 2nd and 4th Punjab Infantry, commanded respectively by Captains G. Green4 and A. Wilde.5

Neville Chamberlain's Presence of Mind We (Brigadier Chamberlain and I) remained at Rawal Pindi until the 24th May to give our servants and horses time to reach Wazirabad, and then started on a mail-cart for the latter place, which we reached on the 27th. Lieutenant James Walker,6 of the Bombay Engineers, accompanied us as the Brigadier's orderly officer.

Neville Chamberlain's Quick Thinking Brigadier Chamberlain and I stayed in Rawal Pindi until May 24th to allow our staff and horses to get to Wazirabad. Then we set off in a mail cart for Wazirabad, arriving there on the 27th. Lieutenant James Walker, a member of the Bombay Engineers, joined us as the Brigadier's orderly officer.

The Grand Trunk Road, which runs in a direct line from Calcutta to[Page 63] Peshawar, was then in course of construction through the Punjab, and in places was in rather an elementary condition. The drivers of the mail-carts sent along their half-wild and entirely unbroken ponies at racing speed, regardless alike of obstacles and consequences. With an enterprising coachman the usual pace was about twelve miles an hour, including stoppages. As we were recklessly flying along, the Brigadier, who was sitting in front, perceived that one of the reins had become unbuckled, and warned Walker and me to look out for an upset. Had the coachman not discovered the state of his tackle all might have been well, for the ponies needed no guiding along the well-known road. Unfortunately, however, he became aware of what had happened, lost his head, and pulled the reins; the animals dashed off the road, there was a crash, and we found ourselves on the ground, scattered in different directions. No great damage was done, and in a few minutes we had righted the cart, re-harnessed the ponies, and were rushing along as before.

The Grand Trunk Road, which goes directly from Calcutta to[Page 63]Peshawar, was being built through the Punjab and was pretty rough in places. The drivers of the mail carts sent their wild and completely untrained ponies racing along at breakneck speed, ignoring obstacles and consequences. With an ambitious coachman, the typical speed was around twelve miles an hour, including stops. As we were careening along, the Brigadier, sitting in the front, noticed that one of the reins had come unbuckled and warned Walker and me to be on the lookout for a crash. If the coachman hadn’t realized what was wrong, everything might have been fine, since the ponies knew the way on the familiar road. Unfortunately, when he figured it out, he panicked and yanked on the reins; the ponies bolted off the road, there was a crash, and we found ourselves on the ground, scattered in different directions. Fortunately, no serious damage was done, and within a few minutes, we had righted the cart, re-harnessed the ponies, and were speeding along again as before.

An Intercepted Message In order that the authorities at Rawal Pindi might be able to communicate with the Movable Column while on the march and away from telegraph stations, which were few and far between in 1857, a signaller accompanied us, and travelled with his instruments on a second mail-cart, and wherever we halted for the day he attached his wire to the main line. He had just completed the attachment on our arrival at Wazirabad, when I observed that the instrument was working, and on drawing the signaller's attention to it, he read off a message which was at that moment being transmitted to the Chief Commissioner, informing him of the death of the Commander-in-Chief at Kurnal the previous day. This sad news did not directly affect the Movable Column, as it had been organized by, and was under the orders of, the Punjab Government, which for the time being had become responsible for the military, as well as the civil, administration in the north of India.

A Hacked Message To ensure that the authorities in Rawal Pindi could communicate with the Movable Column while on the move and away from the sparse telegraph stations of 1857, a signaller traveled with us, carrying his equipment on a second mail cart. Whenever we stopped for the day, he would connect his wire to the main line. He had just finished setting up the connection when we arrived in Wazirabad, and I noticed that the instrument was active. When I pointed it out to the signaller, he read off a message being sent to the Chief Commissioner, notifying him of the Commander-in-Chief's death at Kurnal the previous day. This unfortunate news did not directly impact the Movable Column, as it had been set up by and was operating under the orders of the Punjab Government, which had temporarily taken over responsibility for both military and civil administration in northern India.

The column had marched into Wazirabad the day before we arrived. It consisted of Major Dawes' troop of European Horse Artillery, a European battery of Field Artillery, commanded by Captain Bourchier,7 and Her Majesty's 52nd Light Infantry, commanded by Colonel George Campbell. In addition, and with a view to reducing the Native garrison of Sialkot, a wing of the 9th Bengal Light Cavalry and the 35th Native Infantry were attached to the column.

The column had entered Wazirabad the day before we got there. It included Major Dawes' troop of European Horse Artillery, a European battery of Field Artillery led by Captain Bourchier,7 and Her Majesty's 52nd Light Infantry, commanded by Colonel George Campbell. Additionally, to lessen the Native garrison in Sialkot, a wing of the 9th Bengal Light Cavalry and the 35th Native Infantry were added to the column.

The Command of the Column My first duty at Wazirabad was to call upon the senior officer, Colonel Campbell, and inform him that Brigadier Chamberlain had come to take over command of the Movable Column. I found the Colonel lying on his bed trying to make himself as comfortable as it was possible with the thermometer at 117° Fahrenheit. We had not[Page 64] met before, and he certainly received me in a very off-hand manner. He never moved from his recumbent position, and on my delivering my message, he told me he was not aware that the title of Brigadier carried military rank with it; that he understood Brigadier Chamberlain was only a Lieutenant-Colonel, whereas he held the rank of Colonel in Her Majesty's army; and that, under these circumstances, he must decline to acknowledge Brigadier Chamberlain as his senior officer. I replied that I would give his message to the Brigadier, and took my leave.

The Command of the Group My first task at Wazirabad was to report to the senior officer, Colonel Campbell, and let him know that Brigadier Chamberlain had arrived to take over command of the Movable Column. I found the Colonel lying on his bed, trying to get comfortable in the 117°F heat. We hadn't met before, and he definitely received me in a very casual way. He didn't get up from his lying position, and when I delivered my message, he told me he wasn’t aware that the title of Brigadier came with military rank; he believed Brigadier Chamberlain was just a Lieutenant-Colonel, while he held the rank of Colonel in Her Majesty’s army. Therefore, he said he couldn't recognize Brigadier Chamberlain as his senior officer. I replied that I would pass on his message to the Brigadier and took my leave.

When Chamberlain heard what had occurred, he desired me to return to Campbell and explain that he had no wish to dispute the question of relative seniority, and that in assuming command of the column he was only carrying out the orders of the Commander-in-Chief in India. Campbell, who technically speaking had the right on his side, was not to be appeased, and requested me to inform the Brigadier of his determination not to serve under an officer whom he considered to be his junior.

When Chamberlain found out what had happened, he wanted me to go back to Campbell and explain that he had no intention of arguing about who was senior. He was just following the orders of the Commander-in-Chief in India by taking charge of the column. Campbell, who technically was in the right, wasn't satisfied and asked me to tell the Brigadier that he refused to serve under an officer he considered to be his junior.

This was not a pleasant beginning to our duties with the column, and Chamberlain thought that we had better take our departure and leave Campbell in command until the question could be settled by superior authority. Campbell was accordingly asked to march the troops to Lahore, to which place we continued our journey by mail-cart.

This was not a great start to our tasks with the column, and Chamberlain believed it would be best for us to leave and let Campbell take charge until a higher authority could decide the matter. Campbell was then instructed to lead the troops to Lahore, while we continued our journey by mail-cart.

At the same time a reference was made to Sir John Lawrence and General Reed, which resulted in the decision that, under the peculiar circumstances of the case, it was essential that an officer of Indian experience should be in command of the column, and that Campbell, having only been a very short time in the country, did not fulfil this condition; but Campbell was told that, if he objected to serve under Chamberlain, he could remain at Lahore with the Head-Quarters of his regiment. Campbell, who at heart was really a very nice fellow and an excellent officer, would not be separated from the 52nd, and agreed to serve under the Brigadier, reserving to himself the right of protesting when the new Commander-in-Chief should arrive in India.

At the same time, there was a mention of Sir John Lawrence and General Reed, which led to the decision that, given the specific circumstances of the case, it was crucial for an officer with Indian experience to lead the column. Since Campbell had only been in the country for a short time, he didn’t meet this requirement. However, Campbell was informed that if he didn't want to serve under Chamberlain, he could stay in Lahore with the headquarters of his regiment. Campbell, who was genuinely a nice guy and a good officer at heart, didn’t want to be separated from the 52nd, so he agreed to serve under the Brigadier, while still claiming the right to protest when the new Commander-in-Chief arrived in India.

There was probably another reason for Campbell not wishing to serve under Chamberlain besides that of being senior to him in the army, in the fact that the Brigadier was a servant of 'John Company,' while Campbell belonged to the 'Queen's Service.' From the time of the establishment of a local army there had existed an absurd and unfortunate jealousy between the officers of the Queen's and Company's services, and one of the best results of the Mutiny was its gradual disappearance. This ill-feeling influenced not only fellow-countrymen, but relations, even brothers, if they belonged to the different services, and was distinctly prejudicial to the interests of the Government. It is difficult to understand how so puerile a sentiment could have been so long indulged in by officers who no doubt considered themselves sensible[Page 65] Englishmen.8

There was likely another reason for Campbell not wanting to serve under Chamberlain aside from being his senior in the army: the Brigadier was a member of 'John Company,' while Campbell was part of the 'Queen's Service.' Since the local army was established, there has been an absurd and unfortunate rivalry between the officers of the Queen's and Company's services, and one of the positive outcomes of the Mutiny was its gradual fading away. This resentment affected not just fellow countrymen, but even relatives, including brothers, if they were from different services, and it was clearly harmful to the Government's interests. It's hard to grasp how such a trivial sentiment could have persisted for so long among officers who surely saw themselves as sensible[Page 65] Englishmen.8

On the 31st May we arrived at Lahore, where we found everyone in a state of considerable excitement. Lahore was and is the great centre of the Punjab, and to it non-combatants and English ladies with their children were hurrying from all the outlying districts. In the city itself there was a mixed population of nearly 100,000, chiefly Sikhs and Mahomedans, many of the former old soldiers who had served in the Khalsa Army. The fort, which was within the walls of the city, was garrisoned by half a regiment of sepoys, one company of European Infantry, and a few European Artillerymen. Mian Mir, five miles off, was the Head-Quarters of the Lahore division; it was a long, straggling cantonment, laid out for a much larger force than it has ever been found necessary to place there, with the European Infantry at one end and the European Artillery at the other, separated by Native troops. This arrangement (which existed in almost every station in India) is another proof of the implicit confidence placed in the Native army—a confidence in mercenary soldiers of alien races which seems all the more surprising when we call to mind the warnings that for nearly a hundred years had been repeatedly given of the possibility of disaffection existing amongst Native troops.

On May 31st, we arrived in Lahore, where we found everyone in a state of significant excitement. Lahore was and is the main hub of Punjab, and non-combatants and English ladies with their children were rushing in from all the surrounding areas. The city itself had a diverse population of nearly 100,000, mainly Sikhs and Muslims, many of whom were former soldiers who had served in the Khalsa Army. The fort, located within the city walls, was manned by half a regiment of sepoys, one company of European Infantry, and a few European Artillerymen. Mian Mir, five miles away, was the Headquarters of the Lahore division; it was a long, sprawling cantonment, designed for a much larger force than was ever needed, with the European Infantry at one end and European Artillery at the other, separated by Native troops. This setup (which was common at almost every station in India) is further evidence of the deep trust placed in the Native army—a trust in mercenary soldiers from different backgrounds that seems even more surprising when we remember the warnings that had been repeatedly issued for nearly a hundred years about the potential for discontent among Native troops.

Robert Montgomery There were four Native regiments at Mian Mir, one of Cavalry and three of Infantry, while the European portion of the garrison consisted of one weak Infantry regiment, two troops of Horse Artillery, and four companies of Foot Artillery. This force was commanded by Brigadier Corbett, of the Bengal Army; he had been nearly forty years in the service, was mentally and physically vigorous, and had no fear of responsibility. Robert Montgomery9 was then chief civil officer at Lahore. He was of a most gentle and benevolent nature, with a rubicund countenance and a short, somewhat portly figure, which characteristics led to his being irreverently called 'Pickwick,' and probably if he had lived in less momentous times he would never have been credited with the great qualities which the crisis in the Punjab proved him to possess.

Robert Montgomery There were four Native regiments at Mian Mir: one Cavalry and three Infantry, while the European part of the garrison included one understrength Infantry regiment, two troops of Horse Artillery, and four companies of Foot Artillery. This force was led by Brigadier Corbett of the Bengal Army; he had served for nearly forty years, was both mentally and physically sharp, and had no fear of responsibility. Robert Montgomery9 was the chief civil officer in Lahore at the time. He had a very gentle and kind nature, with a rosy complexion and a short, somewhat stocky build, which earned him the playful nickname 'Pickwick.' It's likely that if he had lived in less significant times, he wouldn’t have been recognized for the great qualities that the crisis in Punjab revealed he possessed.

On receipt of the telegraphic news of the outbreaks at Meerut and Delhi, Montgomery felt that immediate action was necessary. He at once set to work to discover the temper of the Native troops at Mian Mir, and soon ascertained that they were disaffected to the core, and were only waiting to hear from their friends in the south to break into open mutiny. He thoroughly understood the Native character, and[Page 66] realized the danger to the whole province of there being anything in the shape of a serious disturbance at its capital; so after consulting his various officials, Montgomery decided to suggest to the Brigadier the advisability of disarming the sepoys, or, if that were considered too strong a measure, of taking their ammunition from them. Corbett met him quite half-way; he also saw that the danger was imminent, and that prompt action was necessary, but he not unnaturally shrank from taking the extreme step of disarming men whose loyalty had never until then been doubted—a step, moreover, which he knew would be keenly resented by all the regimental officers—he therefore at first only agreed to deprive the sepoys of their ammunition; later in the day, however, after thinking the matter over, he came to the conclusion that it would be better to adopt Montgomery's bolder proposal, and he informed him accordingly that he would 'go the whole hog.'

Upon receiving the telegraph about the uprisings in Meerut and Delhi, Montgomery realized that immediate action was crucial. He quickly set out to gauge the mood of the Native troops at Mian Mir and soon found out they were deeply discontented, just waiting for word from their allies in the south to start a full-blown mutiny. He completely understood the Native mindset and[Page 66] recognized the threat a serious disturbance in the capital posed to the entire province. After discussing with his officials, Montgomery decided to recommend to the Brigadier that they disarm the sepoys, or if that was deemed too drastic, at least take their ammunition away. Corbett was on the same page; he also recognized the imminent danger and the need for swift action, but understandably hesitated to disarm men whose loyalty had never before been questioned—a move he knew would be strongly opposed by all the regimental officers. Initially, he agreed only to take the sepoys' ammunition. However, later that day, after reflecting on the situation, he concluded that it would be wiser to follow Montgomery's more aggressive suggestion, and he informed him that he would ‘go the whole hog.’

I do not think that Corbett's action on this occasion has been sufficiently appreciated. That he decided rightly there can be no doubt, but very few officers holding commands in India at that time would have accepted such responsibility. His knowledge as to what had happened at Meerut and Delhi was based on one or two meagre telegrams, and the information Montgomery gave him as to the treacherous intentions of the sepoys at Mian Mir had been obtained by means of a spy, who, it was quite possible, might have been actuated by interested motives.

I don’t think Corbett’s actions this time have been appreciated enough. There’s no doubt he made the right decision, but very few officers in charge in India back then would have accepted that level of responsibility. His understanding of what happened in Meerut and Delhi was based on just a couple of sparse telegrams, and the information Montgomery provided about the deceitful plans of the sepoys at Mian Mir came from a spy who could very well have had his own motives.

Disarmament at Mian Mir Having made up his mind what should be done, Corbett had the good sense to understand that success depended on its being done quickly, and on the Native troops being kept absolutely in the dark as to what was about to take place. A general parade was ordered for the next morning, the 13th May, and it was wisely determined not to put off a ball which was being given that evening to the officers of the 81st Foot. The secret was confided to very few, and the great majority of those who were taking part in the entertainment were ignorant of the reason for a parade having been ordered the following morning—an unusual proceeding which caused a certain amount of grumbling.

Disarmament at Mian Mir Once he decided what needed to be done, Corbett wisely understood that success hinged on acting quickly and keeping the Native troops completely unaware of what was about to happen. A general parade was scheduled for the next morning, May 13th, and it was smartly decided not to cancel a ball that was being held that evening for the officers of the 81st Foot. The secret was shared with very few people, and the majority of those involved in the event had no idea why a parade had been ordered for the following morning—an unusual move that led to some complaints.

When the sepoys were drawn up, it was explained to them in their own language that they were about to be deprived of their arms, in order to put temptation out of their reach, and save them from the disgrace of being led away by the evil example of other corps. Whilst they were being thus addressed, the Horse Artillery and 81st Foot took up a second line immediately in rear of the Native regiments, the guns being quietly loaded with grape during the manœuvre. The regiments were then directed to change front to the rear, when they found themselves face to face with the British troops. The order was given to the sepoys to 'pile arms'; one of the regiments hesitated, but only for a moment; resistance was hopeless, and the word of command was[Page 67] sullenly obeyed.

When the sepoys were lined up, they were told in their own language that they were about to have their weapons taken away to keep temptation at bay and to save them from the shame of following the bad example of other units. While they were being spoken to, the Horse Artillery and the 81st Foot took up a second line right behind the Native regiments, with the guns quietly loaded with grape shot during the maneuver. The regiments were then ordered to turn around and face the rear, finding themselves looking directly at the British troops. The command was given to the sepoys to 'pile arms'; one of the regiments hesitated, but only briefly; resistance was pointless, and the order was[Page 67] obeyed reluctantly.

The same morning the fort of Lahore was secured. Three companies of the 81st marched into it at daylight, relieved the sepoys of their guards, and ordered them to lay down their arms. Another company of the same regiment travelled through the night in carriages to Umritsar, the holy city of the Sikhs, and occupied the fortress of Govindgarh. Montgomery had been very anxious about these two strongholds, and it was a great satisfaction to him to know that they were at length safely guarded by British bayonets.

The same morning, the fort of Lahore was secured. Three companies of the 81st marched in at dawn, relieved the sepoys of their guards, and ordered them to drop their weapons. Another company from the same regiment traveled through the night in vehicles to Amritsar, the holy city of the Sikhs, and took control of the fortress of Govindgarh. Montgomery had been very worried about these two strongholds, so it was a huge relief for him to know that they were finally protected by British forces.

Although, as I have said, we found Lahore in a state of considerable excitement, it was satisfactory to see how fully the situation had been grasped, and how everything that was possible had been done to maintain order, and show the people of the Punjab that we were prepared to hold our own. Montgomery's foresight and decision, and Corbett's hearty and willing co-operation, checked, if not altogether stopped, what, under less energetic management, would assuredly have resulted in very grievous trouble. Excitement was inevitable. There was a general stir throughout the province. Lahore was crowded with the families of European soldiers, and with ladies who had come there from various parts of the Punjab, all in terrible anxiety as to what might be the ultimate fate of their husbands and relatives; some of whom were with Native regiments, whose loyalty was more than doubtful; some with the Movable Column, the destination of which was uncertain; while others were already on their way to join the army hurrying to Delhi.

Although, as I mentioned, we found Lahore quite excited, it was reassuring to see how well the situation was understood and how everything possible was done to keep order and assure the people of Punjab that we were ready to stand our ground. Montgomery's foresight and decisiveness, along with Corbett's enthusiastic and willing support, managed to contain, if not completely prevent, what could have developed into serious trouble under less proactive leadership. Excitement was unavoidable. There was a general buzz across the province. Lahore was packed with the families of European soldiers and women who had come from various parts of Punjab, all in deep worry about what might ultimately happen to their husbands and relatives; some of whom were with Native regiments whose loyalty was very questionable; some with the Movable Column, whose destination was unclear; while others were already on their way to join the army rushing to Delhi.

The difficulty with Campbell having been settled, Chamberlain assumed the command of the Movable Column, the advent of which on the 2nd June was hailed with delight by all the Europeans at Lahore. A regiment of British Infantry and two batteries of Artillery afforded a much needed support to the handful of British soldiers keeping guard over the great capital of the Punjab, and gave confidence to the Sikhs and others disposed to be loyal, but who were doubtful as to the wisdom of siding with us.

The issue with Campbell was resolved, and Chamberlain took command of the Movable Column, which was welcomed with joy by all the Europeans in Lahore on June 2nd. A regiment of British infantry and two artillery batteries provided much-needed support to the small group of British soldiers guarding the capital of Punjab, boosting the confidence of the Sikhs and others who wanted to be loyal but were unsure about the wisdom of siding with us.

The disturbing element was the Native troops which accompanied the column. They had not shown openly that they contemplated mutiny, but we knew that they were not to be trusted, and were only watching for an opportunity to break out and escape to Delhi with their arms

The unsettling factor was the Native troops that were with the column. They hadn’t openly indicated that they were considering mutiny, but we knew they couldn’t be trusted and were just waiting for a chance to rebel and flee to Delhi with their weapons.

I was living with the Brigadier in a house only a few minutes' walk from the garden where the Native regiments were encamped, and the spies we were employing to watch them had orders to come to me whenever anything suspicious should occur. During the night of the 8th June one of these men awoke me with the news that the 35th Native Infantry intended to revolt at daybreak, and that some of them had already loaded their muskets. I awoke the Brigadier, who directed[Page 68] me to go at once to the British officers of the regiment, tell them what we had heard, and that he would be with them shortly. As soon as the Brigadier arrived the men were ordered to fall in, and on their arms being examined two of them were found to have been loaded. The sepoys to whom the muskets belonged were made prisoners, and I was ordered to see them lodged in the police-station.

I was living with the Brigadier in a house just a few minutes' walk from the garden where the Native regiments were camped, and the spies we had hired to keep an eye on them were instructed to come to me if anything suspicious happened. On the night of June 8th, one of these men woke me up with the news that the 35th Native Infantry was planning to revolt at dawn, and that some of them had already loaded their muskets. I woke the Brigadier, who told me to immediately go to the British officers of the regiment, inform them of what we had heard, and that he would join them soon. Once the Brigadier arrived, the men were ordered to assemble, and when their weapons were checked, two of them were found to be loaded. The sepoys who owned the muskets were taken into custody, and I was instructed to make sure they were secured in the police station.

A Drum-Head Court-Martial Chamberlain determined to lose no time in dealing with the case, and although Drum-Head Courts-Martial were then supposed to be obsolete, he decided to revive, for this occasion, that very useful means of disposing, in time of war, of grave cases of crime.

Drumhead Court-Martial Chamberlain decided to act quickly on the case, and even though Drum-Head Courts-Martial were considered outdated, he chose to bring back this effective method of handling serious crimes during wartime for this specific situation.

The Brigadier thought it desirable that the Court-Martial should be composed of Native, rather than British, officers, as being likely to be looked upon by the prisoners as a more impartial tribunal, under the peculiar circumstances in which we were placed. This was made possible by the arrival of the 1st Punjab Infantry—Coke's Rifles—a grand regiment under a grand Commander. Raised in 1849, composed chiefly of Sikhs and Pathans, and possessing Native officers of undoubted loyalty, the 1st Punjab Infantry had taken part in almost every frontier expedition during the previous eight years. Its history was a glorious record of faithful and devoted service, such as can only be rendered by brave men led by officers in whom they believe and trust.10 The Subadar-Major of the corps was a man called Mir Jaffir, a most gallant Afghan soldier, who entered the British service during the first Afghan war, and distinguished himself greatly in all the subsequent frontier fights. This Native officer was made president of the Court-Martial. The prisoners were found guilty of mutiny, and sentenced to death. Chamberlain decided that they should be blown away from guns, in the presence of their own comrades, as being the most awe-inspiring means of carrying the sentence into effect.11 A parade was at once ordered. The troops were drawn up so as to form three sides of a square; on the fourth side were two guns. As the prisoners were being brought to the parade, one of them asked me if they were going to be blown from guns. I said, 'Yes.' He made no further remark, and they both walked steadily on until they reached the guns, to which they were bound, when one of them requested that some rupees he had on his person might be saved for his relations. The Brigadier answered: 'It is too late!' The word of command was given; the guns went off simultaneously, and the two mutineers were[Page 69] launched into eternity.

The Brigadier believed it was important for the Court-Martial to be made up of Native officers instead of British ones, as they would likely be seen by the prisoners as a more impartial group given our unique situation. This became possible with the arrival of the 1st Punjab Infantry—Coke's Rifles—a remarkable regiment under an impressive Commander. Established in 1849 and mainly consisting of Sikhs and Pathans, with Native officers of unquestionable loyalty, the 1st Punjab Infantry had participated in nearly every frontier expedition over the past eight years. Its history was a proud account of loyal and dedicated service, achievable only by courageous men led by officers they respect and trust.10 The Subadar-Major of the regiment was a man named Mir Jaffir, a brave Afghan soldier who joined the British service during the first Afghan war and made a significant impact in all subsequent frontier battles. This Native officer was appointed president of the Court-Martial. The prisoners were found guilty of mutiny and sentenced to death. Chamberlain decided that they should be executed by cannon fire in front of their comrades, as it would be the most striking way to carry out the sentence effect.11 A parade was immediately organized. The troops were arranged to form three sides of a square; on the fourth side were two guns. While the prisoners were being taken to the parade, one of them asked me if they were going to be executed by cannon fire. I replied, 'Yes.' He didn’t say anything more, and they both walked steadily toward the guns, to which they were tied, when one of them asked if some rupees he had could be saved for his family. The Brigadier responded, 'It’s too late!' The command was given; the guns fired simultaneously, and the two mutineers were[Page 69] launched into eternity.

Swift Retribution It was a terrible sight, and one likely to haunt the beholder for many a long day; but that was what was intended. I carefully watched the sepoys' faces to see how it affected them. They were evidently startled at the swift retribution which had overtaken their guilty comrades, but looked more crest-fallen than shocked or horrified, and we soon learnt that their determination to mutiny, and make the best of their way to Delhi, was in nowise changed by the scene they had witnessed.

Quick Revenge It was a horrific sight, one that was sure to haunt anyone who saw it for a long time; but that was the point. I carefully observed the sepoys’ faces to see how they reacted. They seemed shocked by the quick punishment that had befallen their guilty comrades, but they looked more defeated than horrified or appalled, and we soon realized that their decision to mutiny and make their way to Delhi was completely unchanged by what they had just witnessed.






CHAPTER XI.

1857

For a few days after our arrival at Lahore nothing could be settled as to the further movements of the column. It was wanted in all parts of the Punjab: Ferozeporo, Multan, Jhelum, Sialkot, Umritsar, Jullundur, Philour, Ludhiana—all these places were more or less disturbed, and all were clamorous for help.

For a few days after we arrived in Lahore, we couldn’t figure out what to do next with the column. It was needed everywhere in Punjab: Ferozepur, Multan, Jhelum, Sialkot, Amritsar, Jullundur, Philour, Ludhiana—each of these places was somewhat troubled and all were urgently asking for assistance.

Ferozepore At Ferozepore the Native regiments1 broke out on the 13th May, when they made a daring, but unsuccessful effort to seize the arsenal, situated inside the fort and the largest in Upper India. Had that fallen into the hands of the rebels, Delhi could not have been captured without very considerable delay, for the besieging force depended mainly upon Ferozepore for the supply of munitions of war. The fort had been allowed to fall into bad repair, and the mutineers had no difficulty in forcing their way inside; there, fortunately, they were checked by the wall which surrounded the arsenal, and this obstacle, insignificant as it was, enabled the guard to hold its own. Originally this guard consisted entirely of Native soldiers, but, as I have already recorded, after the outbreak at Meerut, Europeans had been told off for the charge of this important post; so strong, however, here as elsewhere, was the belief in the loyalty of the sepoys, and so great was the reluctance to do anything which might hurt their feelings, that the Native guard was not withdrawn. This same guard, when the attack took place, did its best to assist the assailants, and even prepared scaling-ladders to enable the latter to gain access to the magazine enclosure. The Europeans, however, were equal to the emergency; they overpowered and disarmed their treacherous companions, and then succeeded in beating off and dispersing the attacking party.

Ferozepur At Ferozepore, the Native regiments1 rebelled on May 13th, attempting a bold but unsuccessful grab for the arsenal located within the fort, which was the largest in Upper India. If they had taken control of it, capturing Delhi would have faced significant delays, as the force laying siege relied heavily on Ferozepore for supplies of weapons. The fort had fallen into disrepair, making it easy for the mutineers to breach it; however, they were fortunately stopped by the wall surrounding the arsenal, which, despite being minor, allowed the guard to maintain their position. Initially, this guard was made up entirely of Native soldiers, but as I mentioned earlier, after the revolt in Meerut, Europeans were assigned to oversee this crucial area. Still, the belief in the loyalty of the sepoys was so strong that the Native guard remained in place to avoid offending them. When the attack occurred, this same guard attempted to help the attackers, even setting up scaling ladders for them to access the magazine area. However, the Europeans rose to the challenge; they overpowered and disarmed their treacherous allies and managed to drive off and scatter the assailants.

Being foiled in this attempt, the mutineers returned to the cantonment, set fire to the church and other buildings, and then started for Delhi. Ferozepore had a large European garrison, a regiment of Infantry, a battery of Field Artillery, and a company of Foot Artillery,[Page 70] and was supposed to be able to look after itself, although affairs had been greatly mismanaged.

Being unsuccessful in this attempt, the mutineers went back to the cantonment, set the church and other buildings on fire, and then headed for Delhi. Ferozepore had a large European garrison, a regiment of Infantry, a battery of Field Artillery, and a company of Foot Artillery,[Page 70] and it was believed to be capable of defending itself, even though things had been handled very poorly.

Crawford Chamberlain at Multan Multan had next to be considered. Matters at that station were very unsettled, and indeed were causing the authorities grave anxiety, but Multan was more fortunate than many places, in being in the hands of an unusually able, experienced officer, Major Crawford Chamberlain. Consequently, the Commander-in-Chief and Chief Commissioner agreed, while fully appreciating the great value of Multan, that the presence of British troops was less urgently needed there than elsewhere, and it was decided they could not be spared from the Punjab for its protection.

Crawford Chamberlain in Multan Next, we need to talk about Multan. The situation at that station was pretty unstable, causing serious concern for the authorities. However, Multan was luckier than many other places because it was under the command of a particularly skilled and experienced officer, Major Crawford Chamberlain. As a result, the Commander-in-Chief and Chief Commissioner recognized the importance of Multan but agreed that the presence of British troops wasn’t as urgently required there as it was in other areas, and decided that they couldn’t be spared from the Punjab for its protection.

The garrison at Multan consisted of a troop of Native Horse Artillery, two regiments of Native Infantry, and the 1st Irregular Cavalry, composed entirely of Hindustanis from the neighbourhood of Delhi; while in the old Sikh fort there were about fifty European Artillerymen, in charge of a small magazine. The station was nominally commanded by an officer who had been thirty-four years in the army, and had great experience amongst Natives; but he had fallen into such a bad state of health, that he was quite unfit to deal with the crisis which had now arrived. The command, therefore, was practically exercised by Chamberlain. Next to Delhi and Lahore, Multan was the most important place in Upper India, as our communication with the sea and southern India depended on its preservation.

The garrison at Multan included a unit of Native Horse Artillery, two regiments of Native Infantry, and the 1st Irregular Cavalry, made up entirely of locals from the Delhi area. In the old Sikh fort, there were about fifty European Artillerymen managing a small magazine. The station was officially led by an officer who had spent thirty-four years in the army and had extensive experience with locals, but his health had deteriorated to the point where he was completely unfit to handle the current crisis. As a result, Chamberlain effectively took control. After Delhi and Lahore, Multan was the most significant location in Upper India, as our connection to the sea and southern India relied on its security.

To Chamberlain's own personality and extraordinary influence over the men of the 1st Irregular Cavalry must be attributed his success. His relations with them were of a patriarchal nature, and perfect mutual confidence existed. He knew his hold over them was strong, and he determined to trust them. But in doing so he had really no alternative—had they not remained faithful, Multan must have been lost to us. One of his first acts was to call a meeting at his house of the Native officers of the Artillery, Infantry, and his own regiment, to discuss the situation. Taking for granted the absolute loyalty of these officers, he suggested that a written bond should be given, in which the seniors of each corps should guarantee the fidelity of their men. The officers of his regiment rose en masse, and placing their signet-rings on the table, said: 'Kabúl sir-o-chasm' ('Agreed to on our lives'). The Artillery Subadar declared that his men had no scruples, and would fire in whichever direction they were required; while the Infantry Native officers pleaded that they had no power over their men, and could give no guarantee. Thus, Chamberlain ascertained that the Cavalry were loyal, the Artillery doubtful, and the Infantry were only biding their time to mutiny.

Chamberlain's success can largely be credited to his unique personality and strong influence over the men of the 1st Irregular Cavalry. His relationship with them was like that of a father figure, built on complete trust. He recognized the power he had over them and decided to rely on that trust. However, he really didn’t have a choice—if they hadn’t stayed loyal, we would have lost Multan. One of his first actions was to hold a meeting at his home with the Native officers from the Artillery, Infantry, and his own regiment to discuss the situation. Assuming these officers were completely loyal, he proposed a written agreement where the leaders of each unit would guarantee the loyalty of their men. The officers from his regiment stood up collectively and placed their signet rings on the table, saying: 'Kabúl sir-o-chasm' ('Agreed to on our lives'). The Artillery Subadar claimed his men had no reservations and would fire in any direction needed, while the Infantry Native officers admitted they had no control over their men and couldn’t provide any guarantees. This way, Chamberlain discovered that the Cavalry was loyal, the Artillery was uncertain, and the Infantry was just waiting for the right moment to rebel.

Night after night sepoys, disguised beyond all recognition, attempted to tamper with the Irregular Cavalry. The Wurdi-Major,2 a particularly[Page 71] fine, handsome Ranagar,3 begged Chamberlain to hide himself in his house, that he might hear for himself the open proposals to mutiny, massacre, and rebellion that were made to him; and the promises that, if they succeeded in their designs, he (the Wurdi-Major) should be placed upon the gaddi4 of Multan for his reward. Chamberlain declined to put himself in such a position, fearing he might not be able to restrain himself.

Night after night, soldiers, completely disguised, tried to interfere with the Irregular Cavalry. The Wurdi-Major,2 a particularly[Page 71] attractive Ranagar,3 asked Chamberlain to hide in his house so he could hear the open discussions about mutiny, massacre, and rebellion that were being presented to him; and the promises that, if their plans succeeded, he (the Wurdi-Major) would be placed on the gaddi4 of Multan as his reward. Chamberlain refused to put himself in such a situation, worried he might not be able to control himself.

Chamberlain's Masterly Conduct Matters now came to a climax. A Mahomedan Subadar of one of the Native Infantry regiments laid a plot to murder Chamberlain and his family. The plot was discovered and frustrated by Chamberlain's own men, but it became apparent that the only remedy for the fast increasing evil was to disarm the two Native Infantry regiments. How was this to be accomplished with no Europeans save a few gunners anywhere near? Sir John Lawrence was most pressing that the step should be taken at once; he knew the danger of delay; at the same time, he thoroughly appreciated the difficulty of the task which he was urging Chamberlain to undertake, and he readily responded to the latter's request for a regiment of Punjab Infantry to be sent to him. The 2nd Punjab Infantry was, therefore, despatched from Dera Ghazi Khan, and at the same time the 1st Punjab Cavalry arrived from Asni,5 under Major Hughes,6 who, hearing of Chamberlain's troubles, had marched to Multan without waiting for orders from superior authority. The evening of the day on which these troops reached Multan, the British officers of the several regiments were directed to assemble at the Deputy-Commissioner's house, when Chamberlain told them of the communication he had received from Sir John Lawrence, adding that, having reliable information that the Native Infantry were about to mutiny, he had settled to disarm them the next morning.

Chamberlain's Skillful Leadership Things had reached a critical point. A Muslim Subadar from one of the Native Infantry regiments plotted to kill Chamberlain and his family. The scheme was uncovered and thwarted by Chamberlain's own men, but it became clear that the only solution to the growing threat was to disarm the two Native Infantry regiments. How could this be done with only a few European gunners nearby? Sir John Lawrence insisted that action be taken immediately; he understood the risks of waiting too long. At the same time, he clearly recognized the challenges of the mission he was asking Chamberlain to undertake, and he promptly agreed to Chamberlain's request for a regiment of Punjab Infantry to be sent to him. Thus, the 2nd Punjab Infantry was dispatched from Dera Ghazi Khan, while the 1st Punjab Cavalry arrived from Asni,5 under Major Hughes,6 who, upon hearing of Chamberlain's troubles, had marched to Multan without waiting for orders from higher authority. On the evening these troops reached Multan, the British officers from the various regiments were called to gather at the Deputy-Commissioner's house, where Chamberlain informed them about the message he had received from Sir John Lawrence. He added that, having credible information that the Native Infantry was about to mutiny, he had decided to disarm them the following morning.

It was midnight before the meeting broke up. At 4 a.m. the Horse[Page 72] Artillery troop and the two Native Infantry regiments were ordered to march as if to an ordinary parade. When they had gone about a quarter of a mile they were halted, and the Punjab troops moved quietly between them and their lines, thus cutting them off from their spare ammunition; at the same time the European Artillerymen took their places with the guns of the Horse Artillery troop, and a carefully selected body of Sikhs belonging to the 1st Punjab Cavalry, under Lieutenant John Watson, was told off to advance on the troop and cut down the gunners if they refused to assist the Europeans to work the guns.

It was midnight when the meeting ended. At 4 a.m., the Horse[Page 72] Artillery troop and the two Native Infantry regiments were ordered to march as if they were part of a regular parade. After they had traveled about a quarter of a mile, they were stopped, and the Punjab troops moved quietly between them and their lines, cutting them off from their extra ammunition. At the same time, the European Artillerymen took their positions alongside the Horse Artillery troop's guns, and a carefully chosen group of Sikhs from the 1st Punjab Cavalry, led by Lieutenant John Watson, was assigned to advance on the troop and take out the gunners if they refused to help the Europeans operate the guns.

Chamberlain then rode up to the Native Infantry regiments, and after explaining to them the reason for their being disarmed, he gave the word of command, 'Pile arms!' Thereupon a sepoy of the 62nd shouted: 'Don't give up your arms; fight for them!' Lieutenant Thomson, the Adjutant of the regiment, instantly seized him by the throat and threw him to the ground. The order was repeated, and, wonderful to relate, obeyed. The Native Infantry regiments were then marched back to their lines, while the Punjab troops and Chamberlain's Irregulars remained on the ground until the arms had been carted off to the fort.

Chamberlain then rode up to the Native Infantry regiments and, after explaining why they were being disarmed, he gave the command, "Pile arms!" Immediately, a sepoy from the 62nd shouted, "Don't give up your arms; fight for them!" Lieutenant Thomson, the Adjutant of the regiment, quickly grabbed him by the throat and threw him to the ground. The order was repeated and, remarkably, it was followed. The Native Infantry regiments were then marched back to their lines, while the Punjab troops and Chamberlain's Irregulars stayed on the field until the arms were loaded onto carts and taken to the fort.

It was a most critical time, and enough credit has never been given to Chamberlain. Considering the honours which were bestowed on others who took more or less conspicuous parts in the Mutiny, he was very insufficiently rewarded for this timely act of heroism. Had he not shown such undaunted courage and coolness, or had there been the smallest hesitation, Multan would certainly have gone. Chamberlain managed an extremely difficult business in a most masterly manner. His personal influence insured his own regiment continuing loyal throughout the Mutiny, and it has now the honour of being the 1st Regiment of Bengal Cavalry, and the distinction of wearing a different uniform from every other regiment in the service, being allowed to retain the bright yellow which the troopers wore when they were first raised by Colonel James Skinner, and in which they performed such loyal service.7

It was a really crucial time, and Chamberlain hasn’t received enough credit for his actions. Considering the honors given to others who played more visible roles in the Mutiny, he was not adequately rewarded for his timely act of bravery. If he hadn’t shown such fearless courage and composure, or if there had been even a slight hesitation, Multan would surely have fallen. Chamberlain handled an extremely challenging situation in an incredibly skillful way. His personal influence ensured that his own regiment remained loyal throughout the Mutiny, and now it has the honor of being the 1st Regiment of Bengal Cavalry, distinguished by wearing a different uniform from all other regiments in the service, allowed to keep the bright yellow that the troopers wore when they were first raised by Colonel James Skinner, and in which they performed such loyal service.7

At Jhelum and Sialkot it was decided that, as the Native troops had been considerably reduced in numbers, the danger was not so great as to require the presence of the Movable Column.

At Jhelum and Sialkot, it was decided that since the Native troops were significantly reduced in numbers, the risk wasn't serious enough to necessitate the presence of the Movable Column.

Umritsar had been made safe for the time, but it was a place the importance of which could not be over-estimated, and it was thought[Page 73] that keeping a strong column in its vicinity for a few days would materially strengthen our position there. Moreover, Umritsar lay in the direct route to Jullundur, where the military authorities had proved themselves quite unfitted to deal with the emergency. It was decided, therefore, that Umritsar should be our objective in the first instance. We marched from Lahore on the 10th June, and reached Umritsar the following morning.

Umritsar was secure for the moment, but its significance couldn't be overstated, and it was believed[Page 73] that maintaining a strong presence nearby for a few days would greatly enhance our position there. Additionally, Umritsar was on the direct route to Jullundur, where the military leadership had shown themselves quite unprepared to handle the crisis. Thus, it was decided that Umritsar would be our initial target. We set out from Lahore on June 10th and arrived in Umritsar the next morning.

Nicholson Succeeds
N. Chamberlain
News of a severe fight at Badli-ki-Serai had been received, which increased our anxiety to push on to Delhi, for we feared the place might be taken before we could get there. But to our mortification it was decided that the column could not be spared just then even for Delhi, as there was still work for it in the Punjab. To add to our disappointment, we had to give up our trusted Commander; for a few hours after our arrival at Umritsar a telegram came to Neville Chamberlain offering him the Adjutant-Generalship of the Army in succession to Colonel Chester, who had been killed at Badli-ki-Serai. He accepted the offer, and I made certain I should go with him. My chagrin, therefore, can easily be understood when he told me that I must remain with the column, as it would be unfair to his successor to take away the staff officer. We were now all anxiety to learn who that successor should be, and it was a satisfaction to hear that John Nicholson was the man.

Nicholson Takes Over
N. Chamberlain
We received news of a serious battle at Badli-ki-Serai, which made us more anxious to move on to Delhi, as we feared the place might be captured before we got there. To our dismay, however, it was decided that the column couldn't be spared for Delhi at that moment since there was still work to do in the Punjab. To make matters worse, we had to say goodbye to our trusted Commander; a few hours after we arrived in Umritsar, a telegram came for Neville Chamberlain offering him the Adjutant-General position of the Army, following Colonel Chester, who had been killed at Badli-ki-Serai. He accepted the position, and I was determined to go with him. So, you can imagine my frustration when he told me that I had to stay with the column because it wouldn't be fair to his successor to take away the staff officer. We were all eager to find out who that successor would be, and we were relieved to hear that John Nicholson was the one chosen.

Chamberlain left for Delhi on the 13th; but Nicholson could not join for a few days, and as troops were much needed at Jullundur, it was arranged that the column should move on to that place, under the temporary command of Campbell, and there await the arrival of the new Brigadier.

Chamberlain left for Delhi on the 13th, but Nicholson couldn't join for a few days. Since troops were urgently needed at Jullundur, it was decided that the column would move on to that location, under the temporary command of Campbell, and wait for the new Brigadier to arrive.

On my going to Campbell for orders, he informed me that he was no longer the senior officer with the column, as a Colonel Denniss, junior to him regimentally, but his senior in army rank, had just rejoined the 52nd. Accordingly I reported myself to Denniss, who, though an officer of many years' service, had never before held a command, not even that of a regiment; and, poor man! was considerably taken aback when he heard that he must be in charge of the column for some days. He practically left everything to me—a somewhat trying position for almost the youngest officer in the force. It was under these circumstances I found what an able man Colonel Campbell really was. He correctly gauged Denniss's fitness, or rather unfitness, for the command, and appreciating the awkwardness of my position, advised me so wisely that I had no difficulty in carrying on the work.

When I went to Campbell for orders, he told me that he was no longer the senior officer with the column because Colonel Denniss, who was junior to him in terms of the regiment but senior in army rank, had just rejoined the 52nd. I then reported to Denniss, who, despite his many years of service, had never held a command, not even over a regiment; and, poor man, he was quite surprised when he learned that he had to be in charge of the column for several days. He basically left everything to me—a bit challenging for someone who was one of the youngest officers in the group. It was under these circumstances that I realized how capable Colonel Campbell really was. He accurately assessed Denniss's ability, or rather inability, to lead, and recognizing the awkwardness of my situation, gave me such good advice that I had no trouble continuing the work.

We reached Jullundur on the 20th, Nicholson taking over command the same day. He had been given the rank of Brigadier-General, which removed all grounds for objection on the part of Campbell, and the two soon learnt to appreciate each other, and became fast friends.

We arrived in Jullundur on the 20th, with Nicholson taking command that same day. He had been promoted to Brigadier-General, which eliminated any objections from Campbell, and the two quickly grew to appreciate each other and became close friends.

Irresolution at Jullundur Jullundur was in a state of the greatest confusion. The Native troops, consisting of a regiment of Light Cavalry and two regiments of[Page 74] Native Infantry, began to show signs of disaffection soon after the outbreak at Meerut, and from that time until the 7th June, when they broke into open mutiny, incendiary fires were almost of daily occurrence. The want of resolution displayed in dealing with the crisis at Jullundur was one of the regrettable episodes of the Mutiny. The European garrison consisted of Her Majesty's 8th Foot and a troop of Horse Artillery. The military authorities had almost a whole month's warning of the mutinous intentions of the Native troops, but though they had before them the example of the prompt and successful measures adopted at Lahore and Peshawar, they failed to take any steps to prevent the outbreak.

Confusion in Jullundur Jullundur was in complete chaos. The Native troops, made up of a cavalry regiment and two infantry regiments, started to show signs of discontent shortly after the events in Meerut. From that moment until June 7th, when they openly mutinied, fires were almost a daily occurrence. The lack of decisive action in handling the crisis at Jullundur was one of the unfortunate moments of the Mutiny. The European garrison included Her Majesty's 8th Foot and a troop of Horse Artillery. The military authorities had nearly a month's warning about the Native troops' intentions to mutiny, yet despite seeing how quickly and effectively measures were taken in Lahore and Peshawar, they did nothing to stop the outbreak.

The Brigadier (Johnstone) was on leave at the commencement of the Mutiny, and during his absence the treasure was placed in charge of a European guard, in accordance with instructions from Sir John Lawrence. This measure was reversed as soon as the Brigadier rejoined, for fear of showing distrust of the sepoys, and another wise order of the watchful Chief Commissioner—to disarm the Native troops—was never carried out. The Commissioner, Major Edward Lake, one of Henry Lawrence's most capable assistants, had also repeatedly urged upon Johnstone the advisability of depriving the sepoys of their arms, but his advice remained unheeded. When the inevitable revolt took place European soldiers were allowed to be passive spectators while property was being destroyed, and sepoys to disappear in the darkness of the night carrying with them their muskets and all the treasure and plunder they could lay their hands on.

The Brigadier (Johnstone) was on leave when the Mutiny started, and while he was away, a European guard was put in charge of the treasure, following instructions from Sir John Lawrence. This decision was reversed as soon as the Brigadier returned, out of concern that it would show distrust in the sepoys, and another wise order from the vigilant Chief Commissioner—to disarm the Native troops—was never carried out. The Commissioner, Major Edward Lake, one of Henry Lawrence's most capable assistants, had also repeatedly advised Johnstone to take the weapons from the sepoys, but his advice was ignored. When the inevitable revolt happened, European soldiers were left as passive onlookers while property was being destroyed, and sepoys vanished into the night, taking their muskets and all the treasure and loot they could grab.

A futile attempt at pursuit was made the following morning, but, as will be seen, this was carried out in so half-hearted a manner, that the mutineers were able to get safely across the Sutlej with their loot, notwithstanding that the passage of this broad river had to be made by means of a ferry, where only very few boats were available. Having reached Philour, the British troops were ordered to push on to Delhi, and as Jullundur was thus left without protection, Lake gladly accepted the offer of the Raja of Kapurthala to garrison it with his own troops.

A pointless attempt to chase them was made the next morning, but, as will be seen, it was done so half-heartedly that the rebels were able to safely cross the Sutlej with their loot, even though they had to use a ferry where only a few boats were available. Once they reached Philour, the British troops were ordered to head to Delhi, and since Jullundur was left unprotected, Lake gladly accepted the Raja of Kapurthala's offer to station his own troops there.

There was no doubt as to the loyalty of the Raja himself, and his sincere desire to help us; but the mismanagement of affairs at Jullundur had done much to lower our prestige in the eyes of his people, and there was no mistaking the offensive demeanour of his troops. They evidently thought that British soldiers had gone never to return, and they swaggered about in swash-buckler fashion, as only Natives who think they have the upper hand can swagger.

There was no doubt about the Raja's loyalty and his genuine desire to help us; however, the mismanagement of affairs in Jullundur had significantly damaged our reputation in the eyes of his people, and it was clear that his troops were behaving offensively. They clearly believed that British soldiers were gone for good, and they strutted around with a swagger, like only those who think they have the advantage can do.

It was clearly Lake's policy to keep on good terms with the Kapurthala people. His position was much strengthened by the arrival of our column; but we were birds of passage, and might be off at any moment, so in order to pay a compliment to the officers and principal[Page 75] men with the Kapurthala troops, Lake asked Nicholson to meet them at his house. Nicholson consented, and a durbar was arranged. I was present on the occasion, and was witness of rather a curious scene, illustrative alike of Nicholson and Native character.

It was definitely Lake's strategy to maintain good relations with the Kapurthala people. His situation was greatly improved by the arrival of our group; however, we were just passing through and could leave at any time. To compliment the officers and key members of the Kapurthala troops, Lake invited Nicholson to meet them at his house. Nicholson agreed, and a durbar was set up. I was there that day and witnessed a rather interesting scene, reflecting both Nicholson's and the Native character.

General
Mehtab Sing
At the close of the ceremony Mehtab Sing, a general officer in the Kapurthala Army, took his leave, and, as the senior in rank at the durbar, was walking out of the room first, when I observed Nicholson stalk to the door, put himself in front of Mehtab Sing and, waving him back with an authoritative air, prevent him from leaving the room. The rest of the company then passed out, and when they had gone, Nicholson said to Lake: 'Do you see that General Mehtab Sing has his shoes on?'8 Lake replied that he had noticed the fact, but tried to excuse it. Nicholson, however, speaking in Hindustani, said: 'There is no possible excuse for such an act of gross impertinence. Mehtab Sing knows perfectly well that he would not venture to step on his own father's carpet save barefooted, and he has only committed this breach of etiquette to-day because he thinks we are not in a position to resent the insult, and that he can treat us as he would not have dared to do a month ago.' Mehtab Sing looked extremely foolish, and stammered some kind of apology; but Nicholson was not to be appeased, and continued: 'If I were the last Englishman left in Jullundur, you' (addressing Mehtab Sing) 'should not come into my room with your shoes on;' then, politely turning to Lake, he added, 'I hope the Commissioner will now allow me to order you to take your shoes off and carry them out in your own hands, so that your followers may witness your discomfiture.' Mehtab Sing, completely cowed, meekly did as he was told.

General Mehtab Singh At the end of the ceremony, Mehtab Sing, a general in the Kapurthala Army, was getting ready to leave. As the highest-ranking officer in the durbar, he was headed out first when I saw Nicholson stride to the door, step in front of Mehtab Sing, and, with an authoritative gesture, wave him back and stop him from leaving the room. The rest of the group then exited, and once they were gone, Nicholson said to Lake, 'Did you notice that General Mehtab Sing is wearing his shoes on?' Lake acknowledged he had seen that but tried to downplay it. Nicholson, however, spoke in Hindustani and said, 'There's no excuse for such an act of blatant disrespect. Mehtab Sing knows very well that he wouldn't dare step on his own father's carpet unless he was barefoot, and he's only broken this rule today because he thinks we're not in a position to respond to the insult, and that he can treat us however he likes, unlike a month ago.' Mehtab Sing looked really embarrassed and stuttered some kind of apology, but Nicholson wouldn't let it go, and continued, 'If I were the last Englishman left in Jullundur, you' (addressing Mehtab Sing) 'would not enter my room with your shoes on;' then, politely turning to Lake, he added, 'I hope the Commissioner will now let me instruct you to take your shoes off and carry them out yourself, so that your followers can see your embarrassment.' Completely subdued, Mehtab Sing quietly did as he was told.

Although in the kindness of his heart Lake had at first endeavoured to smooth matters over, he knew Natives well, and he readily admitted the wisdom of Nicholson's action. Indeed, Nicholson's uncompromising bearing on this occasion proved a great help to Lake, for it had the best possible effect upon the Kapurthala people; their manner at once changed, all disrespect vanished, and there was no more swaggering about as if they considered themselves masters of the situation.

Although Lake initially tried to ease the situation out of kindness, he knew the Natives well and quickly recognized the wisdom of Nicholson's approach. In fact, Nicholson's firm stance during this time was a huge help to Lake, as it had the best possible impact on the Kapurthala people; their attitude shifted immediately, all disrespect disappeared, and they no longer acted as if they were in control.

Five or six years after this occurrence I was one of a pig-sticking party at Kapurthala, given by the Raja in honour of the Commander-in-Chief, Sir Hugh Rose.9 When riding home in the evening I found myself close to the elephant on which our host and the Chief were sitting. The conversation happening to turn on the events of the Mutiny, I asked what had become of General Mehtab Sing. The Raja, pointing to an elephant a little distance off on which two Native gentlemen were riding, said, 'There he is.' I recognized the General,[Page 76] and making him a salaam, which he politely returned, I said to him, 'I have not had the pleasure of meeting you since those hot days in June, 1857, when I was at Jullundur.' The Raja then asked me if I knew Nicholson. On my telling him I had been his staff officer, and with him at the durbar at Lake Sahib's house, the Raja laughed heartily, and said, 'Oh! then you saw Mehtab Sing made to walk out of the room with his shoes in his hand? We often chaff him about that little affair, and tell him that he richly deserved the treatment he received from the great Nicholson Sahib.'

Five or six years after this event, I was part of a pig-sticking party in Kapurthala, hosted by the Raja to honor the Commander-in-Chief, Sir Hugh Rose.9 As I was riding home in the evening, I found myself near the elephant where our host and the Chief were sitting. The conversation turned to the events of the Mutiny, and I asked what had happened to General Mehtab Sing. The Raja pointed to an elephant a little way off, where two Native gentlemen were riding, and said, 'There he is.' I recognized the General,[Page 76] and after giving him a salute, which he politely returned, I said, 'I haven't had the pleasure of meeting you since those hot days in June 1857, when I was at Jullundur.' The Raja then asked me if I knew Nicholson. When I told him I had been his staff officer and had been with him at the durbar at Lake Sahib's house, the Raja laughed heartily and said, 'Oh! So you saw Mehtab Sing being made to walk out of the room with his shoes in his hand? We often tease him about that little incident and tell him that he really deserved the treatment he got from the great Nicholson Sahib.'

Sir Hugh Rose was greatly interested in the story, which he made me repeat to him as soon as we got back to camp, and he was as much struck as I was with this spontaneous testimony of a leading Native to the wisdom of Nicholson's procedure.

Sir Hugh Rose was really interested in the story, which he had me tell him again as soon as we got back to camp, and he was just as impressed as I was by this unprompted comment from a prominent Native about the wisdom of Nicholson's approach.

Nicholson's Soldierly Instincts On taking over command, Nicholson's first care was to establish an effective system of intelligence, by means of which he was kept informed of what was going on in the neighbouring districts; and, fully recognizing the necessity for rapid movement in the event of any sudden emergency, he organized a part of his force into a small flying column, the infantry portion of which was to be carried in ekkas.10 I was greatly impressed by Nicholson's knowledge of military affairs. He seemed always to know exactly what to do and the best way to do it. This was the more remarkable because, though a soldier by profession, his training had been chiefly that of a civilian—a civilian of the frontier, however, where his soldierly instincts had been fostered in his dealing with a lawless and unruly people, and where he had received a training which was now to stand him in good stead. Nicholson was a born Commander, and this was felt by every officer and man with the column before he had been amongst them many days.

Nicholson's Military Instincts When Nicholson took command, his first priority was to set up an effective intelligence system to keep him updated on what was happening in the nearby areas. Recognizing the need for quick action in case of an emergency, he organized part of his force into a small mobile unit, with the infantry transported in ekkas.10 I was really impressed by Nicholson's understanding of military matters. He always seemed to know exactly what to do and the best way to do it. This was especially impressive because, although he was a career soldier, his background was mostly that of a civilian—specifically, a civilian from the frontier, where he developed his military instincts while interacting with a lawless and unruly population, and where the training he received proved invaluable. Nicholson was a natural leader, and this was felt by every officer and soldier in the column well before he had been with them for many days.

More Disarmaments The Native troops with the column had given no trouble since we left Lahore. We were travelling in the direction they desired to go, which accounted for their remaining quiet; but Nicholson, realizing the danger of having them in our midst, and the probability of their refusing to turn away from Delhi in the event of our having to retrace our steps, resolved to disarm the 35th. The civil authorities in the district urged that the same course should be adopted with the 33rd, a Native Infantry regiment at Hoshiarpur, about twenty-seven miles from Jullundur, which it had been decided should join the column. The Native soldiers with the column already exceeded the Europeans in number, and as the addition of another regiment would make the odds against us very serious, it was arranged to disarm the 35th before the 33rd joined us.

More Disarmament The Native troops traveling with us had caused no issues since we left Lahore. We were heading in the direction they wanted to go, which is why they were quiet; however, Nicholson, aware of the risk of having them around and the likelihood that they would refuse to turn away from Delhi if we needed to go back, decided to disarm the 35th. The local authorities suggested that we also disarm the 33rd, a Native Infantry regiment in Hoshiarpur, about twenty-seven miles from Jullundur, which was set to join us. The Native soldiers with us already outnumbered the Europeans, and adding another regiment would severely tilt the odds against us, so it was decided to disarm the 35th before the 33rd arrived.

We left Jullundur on the 24th June, and that afternoon, accompanied by the Deputy-Commissioner of the district, I rode to Philour[Page 77] to choose a place for the disarming parade. The next morning we started early, the Europeans heading the column, and when they reached the ground we had selected they took up a position on the right of the road, the two batteries in the centre and the 52nd in wings on either flank. The guns were unlimbered and prepared for action. On the left of the road was a serai,11 behind which the officer commanding the 35th was told to take his regiment, and, as he cleared it, to wheel to the right, thus bringing his men in column of companies facing the line of Europeans. This manœuvre being accomplished, I was ordered to tell the commanding officer that the regiment was to be disarmed, and that the men were to pile arms and take off their belts. The sepoys and their British officers were equally taken aback; the latter had received no information of what was going to happen, while the former had cherished the hope that they would be able to cross the Sutlej, and thence slip off with their arms to Delhi.

We left Jullundur on June 24th, and that afternoon, with the Deputy Commissioner of the district, I rode to Philour[Page 77] to find a spot for the disarming parade. The next morning we left early, with the Europeans leading the column. When they arrived at the ground we had chosen, they took their position on the right side of the road, with the two batteries in the center and the 52nd on either flank. The guns were set up and ready for action. On the left side of the road was a serai,11 behind which the officer in charge of the 35th was instructed to position his regiment, and as he cleared it, to turn right, bringing his men into a column of companies facing the line of Europeans. Once this maneuver was completed, I was tasked with informing the commanding officer that the regiment was to be disarmed and that the soldiers needed to stack their arms and remove their belts. Both the sepoys and their British officers were equally surprised; the officers had received no advance notice of what was going to happen, while the sepoys had hoped they would be able to cross the Sutlej and sneak off with their weapons to Delhi.

I thought I could discover relief in the British officers' faces, certainly in that of Major Younghusband, the Commandant, and when I gave him the General's order, he murmured, 'Thank God!' He had been with the 35th for thirty-three years; he had served with it at the siege of Bhurtpore, throughout the first Afghan war, and in Sale's defence of Jalalabad; he had been proud of his old corps, but knowing probably that his men could no longer be trusted, he rejoiced to feel that they were not to be given the opportunity for further disgracing themselves.12 The sepoys obeyed the command without a word, and in a few minutes their muskets and belts were all packed in carts and taken off to the fort.

I thought I could see relief on the faces of the British officers, especially Major Younghusband, the Commandant. When I delivered the General's order to him, he murmured, "Thank God!" He had been with the 35th for thirty-three years, having served during the siege of Bhurtpore, throughout the first Afghan war, and in Sale's defense of Jalalabad. He had always been proud of his old regiment, but knowing that his men could no longer be trusted, he was glad that they wouldn't have the chance to further disgrace themselves.12 The sepoys followed the command without a word, and in a few minutes their muskets and belts were all packed into carts and taken off to the fort.

As the ceremony was completed, the 33rd arrived and was dealt with in a similar manner; but the British officers of this regiment did not take things so quietly—they still believed in their men, and the Colonel, Sandeman, trusted them to any extent. He had been with the regiment for more than two-and-thirty years, and had commanded it throughout the Sutlej campaign. On hearing the General's order, he exclaimed: 'What! disarm my regiment? I will answer with my life for the loyalty of every man!' On my repeating the order the poor old fellow burst into tears. His son, the late Sir Robert Sandeman, who was an Ensign in the regiment at the time, told me afterwards how terribly his father felt the disgrace inflicted upon the regiment of which he was so proud.

As the ceremony wrapped up, the 33rd was handled in the same way; however, the British officers of this regiment didn't accept it calmly—they still had faith in their men, and the Colonel, Sandeman, trusted them completely. He had been with the regiment for over thirty-two years and had led it throughout the Sutlej campaign. Upon hearing the General's order, he exclaimed, "What! Disarm my regiment? I would put my life on the line for the loyalty of every man!" When I repeated the order, the poor old guy broke down in tears. His son, the late Sir Robert Sandeman, who was an Ensign in the regiment at the time, later told me how deeply his father felt the disgrace that had been put upon the regiment he was so proud of.

It was known that the wing of the 9th Light Cavalry was in communication with the mutineers at Delhi, and that the men were only waiting their opportunity; so they would also certainly have been disarmed at this time, but for the idea that such a measure might have a[Page 78] bad effect on the other wing, which still remained at Sialkot. The turn of this regiment, however, came a few days later.

It was known that the 9th Light Cavalry was in contact with the mutineers in Delhi, and the soldiers were just waiting for their chance. They would have definitely been disarmed at this point, but there was concern that such an action might negatively impact the other wing, which was still stationed in Sialkot. However, this regiment's turn came a few days later.

Up till this time we all hoped that Delhi was our destination, but, greatly to our surprise and disappointment, orders came that morning directing the column to return to Umritsar; the state of the Punjab was causing considerable anxiety, as there were several stations at which Native corps still remained in possession of their arms.

Up until now, we all thought Delhi was our destination, but, to our surprise and disappointment, orders came that morning directing us to return to Amritsar; the situation in Punjab was causing a lot of worry, as there were several stations where Native troops still had their weapons.

The same afternoon I was in the Philour fort with Nicholson, when the telegraph-signaller gave him a copy of a message from Sir Henry Barnard to the authorities in the Punjab, begging that all Artillery officers not doing regimental duty might be sent to Delhi, where their services were urgently required. I at once felt that this message applied to me. I had been longing to find myself at Delhi, and lived in perpetual dread of its being captured before I could get there; now at last my hopes seemed about to be realized in a legitimate manner, but, on the other hand, I did not like the idea of leaving Nicholson—the more closely I was associated with him the more I was attracted by him—and I am always proud to remember that he did not wish to part with me. He agreed, however, that my first duty was to my regiment, and only stipulated that before leaving him I should find someone to take my place, as he did not know a single officer with the column. This I was able to arrange, and that evening Nicholson and I dined tête-à-tête. At dawn the next morning I left by mail-cart for Delhi, my only kit being a small bundle of bedding, saddle and bridle, my servants having orders to follow with my horses, tents, and other belongings.

The same afternoon, I was at the Philour fort with Nicholson when the telegraph signaller handed him a copy of a message from Sir Henry Barnard to the authorities in the Punjab, asking that all artillery officers not currently on regimental duty be sent to Delhi, where their help was urgently needed. I immediately felt this message was meant for me. I had been eager to get to Delhi and was constantly worried it would be captured before I arrived; now my hopes seemed about to come true in a proper way. On the other hand, I didn’t like the idea of leaving Nicholson— the closer I was to him, the more I was drawn to him—and I'm always proud to remember that he didn't want me to leave. He agreed, however, that my first duty was to my regiment and only asked that before I left, I should find someone to take my place since he didn’t know any officers with the column. I managed to arrange that, and that evening, Nicholson and I had dinner just the two of us. At dawn the next morning, I left by mail cart for Delhi, with only a small bundle of bedding, saddle, and bridle; my servants were instructed to follow with my horses, tents, and other belongings.






CHAPTER XII.

1857


George Ricketts at Ludhiana
The mail-cart rattled across the bridge of boats, and in less than an hour I found myself at Ludhiana, at the house of George Ricketts,1 the Deputy Commissioner. Ricketts's bungalow was a resting-place for everyone passing through en route to Delhi. In one room I found Lieutenant Williams of the 4th Sikhs, who had been dangerously wounded three weeks before, while assisting Ricketts to prevent the Jullundur mutineers from crossing the Sutlej.

George Ricketts in Ludhiana The mail cart clattered over the bridge of boats, and in under an hour, I arrived in Ludhiana at the home of George Ricketts, the Deputy Commissioner. Ricketts's bungalow was a stopover for everyone traveling to Delhi. In one room, I found Lieutenant Williams of the 4th Sikhs, who had been seriously injured three weeks earlier while helping Ricketts stop the Jullundur mutineers from crossing the Sutlej.

While I was eating my breakfast, Ricketts sat down by my side and recounted a stirring tale of all that had happened at Philour and Ludhiana consequent on the rising of the Native regiments at Jullundur. The mutineers had made, in the first instance, for Philour, a small cantonment, but important from the fact of its containing a fair-sized[Page 79] magazine, and from its situation, commanding the passage of the Sutlej. It was garrisoned by the 3rd Native Infantry, which furnished the sole guard over the magazine—a danger which, as I have mentioned, had fortunately been recognized by the Commander-in-Chief when he first heard of the outbreak at Meerut. The men of the 3rd remained quiet, and even did good service in helping to drag the guns of the siege-train across the river, and in guarding the treasury, until the mutineers from Jullundur arrived on the 8th June. They then gave their British officers warning to leave them, saying they did not mean to injure them or their property, but they had determined they would no longer serve the Sirkar. Twelve British officers (there could not have been more), confronted by 3,000 sepoys, felt themselves powerless, and retired to the fort.

While I was having breakfast, Ricketts sat down next to me and shared an intense story about everything that happened in Philour and Ludhiana after the Native regiments rose up at Jullundur. The mutineers initially headed for Philour, a small but significant cantonment due to its decent-sized [Page 79] magazine and its strategic location overseeing the Sutlej passage. It was held by the 3rd Native Infantry, which was the only guard over the magazine—a risk that, as I've already mentioned, the Commander-in-Chief recognized when he first learned about the outbreak in Meerut. The men of the 3rd stayed calm and even helped move the siege guns across the river and protected the treasury until the mutineers from Jullundur arrived on June 8th. They then warned their British officers to leave, stating they meant no harm to them or their belongings, but they had decided they would no longer serve the Sirkar. Twelve British officers (there couldn't have been more) faced with 3,000 sepoys felt helpless and retreated to the fort.

Ricketts had with him at that time an assistant named Thornton,2 who had gone to Philour to lodge some money in the treasury. This officer had started to ride back to Ludhiana, when he suddenly became aware of what had happened, and how perilous was the position. Had he consulted his own safety, he would have returned and taken refuge in the fort, instead of which he galloped on, having to pass close by the mutineers, until he reached the bridge of boats, which, with admirable coolness and presence of mind, he cut behind him, then, hurrying on, he informed Ricketts of what had taken place; and that the rebels might shortly be expected to attempt the passage of the river. Fortunately the 4th Sikhs from Abbottabad had that very morning marched into Ludhiana, and Ricketts hoped, with their assistance, to hold the sepoys in check until the arrival of the British troops, which he believed must have been despatched from Jullundur in pursuit of the mutineers.

Ricketts had an assistant named Thornton with him at that time, who had gone to Philour to deposit some money in the treasury. This officer started to ride back to Ludhiana when he suddenly realized what had happened and how dangerous the situation was. If he had prioritized his own safety, he would have turned back and taken refuge in the fort. Instead, he galloped on, having to pass close to the mutineers until he reached the bridge of boats. With impressive calm and quick thinking, he cut the ropes behind him, then hurried on to inform Ricketts of what had occurred and that the rebels might soon try to cross the river. Fortunately, the 4th Sikhs from Abbottabad had marched into Ludhiana that very morning, and Ricketts hoped that, with their help, he could hold the sepoys back until the British troops arrived, which he believed must have been sent from Jullundur in pursuit of the mutineers.

The garrison of Ludhiana consisted of a detachment of the 3rd Native Infantry, guarding the fort, in which was stored a large amount of powder. The detachment was commanded by Lieutenant Yorke, who, on hearing Thornton's story, went at once to the fort. He was much liked by his men, who received him quite civilly, but told him they knew that their regiment had joined the rebels from Jullundur, and that they themselves could no longer obey his orders. Ricketts then understood that he had but the 4th Sikhs and a small party of troops belonging to the Raja of Nabha to depend upon. There were only two officers with the 4th Sikhs—Captain Rothney, in command, and Lieutenant Williams, the Adjutant. Taking three companies of the regiment under Williams, and two guns of the Nabha Artillery, one dragged by camels, the other by horses, Ricketts started off towards the bridge of boats. Galloping on alone, he found that the gap in the bridge made by Thornton had not been repaired, which proved that the rebels had not crossed by that passage, at all events. He widened the[Page 80] gap by cutting adrift some more boats, and then had himself ferried across the river, in order to ascertain the exact state of affairs at Philour. He learnt that no tidings had been received of any British troops having been sent from Jullundur in pursuit of the mutineers, who, having failed to get across the bridge, owing to Thornton's timely action, had gone to a ferry reported to be three miles up the river.

The Ludhiana garrison was made up of a detachment from the 3rd Native Infantry, who were guarding a fort that had a large supply of gunpowder stored inside. This detachment was led by Lieutenant Yorke, who immediately went to the fort after hearing Thornton's story. He was well-liked by his men, who greeted him politely but informed him that they knew their regiment had joined the rebels from Jullundur, and they could no longer follow his orders. Ricketts then realized he could only count on the 4th Sikhs and a small group of soldiers from the Raja of Nabha. There were just two officers with the 4th Sikhs—Captain Rothney, in charge, and Lieutenant Williams, the Adjutant. Ricketts took three companies from the regiment under Williams's command, along with two guns from the Nabha Artillery, one pulled by camels and the other by horses, and set off toward the boat bridge. Riding ahead on his own, he discovered that the gap in the bridge created by Thornton had not been fixed, which indicated that the rebels had not crossed there. He enlarged the gap by cutting loose a few more boats, then had himself ferried across the river to find out the situation at Philour. He learned that there had been no news of any British troops being sent from Jullundur to pursue the mutineers, who, unable to cross the bridge due to Thornton's timely action, had headed to a ferry said to be three miles upstream.

Ricketts recrossed the river as quickly as he could, and joined Williams. It was then getting dark, but, hoping they might still be in time to check the rebels, they pushed on in the direction of the ferry, which proved to be nearer six than three miles away. The ground was rough and broken, as is always the case on the banks of Indian rivers, swollen as they often are by torrents from the hills, which leave behind boulders and debris of all kinds. They made but little way; one of the gun-camels fell lame, the guides disappeared, and they began to despair of reaching the ferry in time, when suddenly there was a challenge and they know they were too late. The sepoys had succeeded in crossing the river and were bivouacking immediately in front of them.

Ricketts hurried back across the river and joined Williams. It was starting to get dark, but hoping they could still catch the rebels, they continued toward the ferry, which turned out to be closer to six miles away than three. The ground was rough and uneven, as it usually is along Indian riverbanks, often swollen by torrents from the hills that leave behind boulders and debris of all kinds. They barely made any progress; one of the camels used for carrying goods went lame, the guides vanished, and they began to lose hope of reaching the ferry in time when suddenly they heard a challenge and realized they were too late. The sepoys had crossed the river and were camped right in front of them.

It was not a pleasant position, but it had to be made the best of; and both the civilian and the soldier agreed that their only chance was to fight. Williams opened fire with his Infantry, and Ricketts took command of the guns. At the first discharge the horses bolted with the limber, and never appeared again; almost at the same moment Williams fell, shot through the body. Ricketts continued the fight until his ammunition was completely expended, when he was reluctantly obliged to retire to a village in the neighbourhood, but not until he had killed, as he afterwards discovered, about fifty of the enemy.

It wasn’t a good situation, but they had to make the best of it; both the civilians and the soldiers agreed that their only chance was to fight. Williams opened fire with his infantry, and Ricketts took charge of the artillery. At the first shot, the horses bolted with the limber and never returned; almost immediately, Williams was shot through the body and fell. Ricketts kept fighting until he ran out of ammunition, at which point he had to reluctantly retreat to a nearby village, but not before he realized he had killed about fifty enemies.

Ricketts returned to Ludhiana early the next morning, and later in the day the mutineers passed through the city. They released some 500 prisoners who were in the gaol, and helped themselves to what food they wanted, but they did not enter the cantonment or the fort. The gallant little attempt to close the passage of the Sutlej was entirely frustrated, owing to the inconceivable want of energy displayed by the so-called 'pursuing force'; had it pushed on, the rebels must have been caught in the act of crossing the river, when Ricketts's small party might have afforded considerable help. The Europeans from Jullundur reached Philour before dark on the 8th; they heard the firing of Ricketts's guns, but no attempt was made by the officer in command to ascertain the cause, and they came leisurely on to Ludhiana the following day.

Ricketts returned to Ludhiana early the next morning, and later that day the mutineers passed through the city. They freed about 500 prisoners from the jail and took whatever food they wanted, but they didn’t enter the cantonment or the fort. The brave little effort to block the Sutlej River was completely thwarted due to the shocking lack of urgency shown by the so-called 'pursuing force'; if they had pushed forward, the rebels would have been caught while crossing the river, and Ricketts's small group could have provided significant support. The Europeans from Jullundur arrived in Philour before dark on the 8th; they heard the sound of Ricketts's guns, but the officer in charge made no effort to find out why, and they took their time getting to Ludhiana the following day.

Having listened with the greatest interest to Ricketts's story, and refreshed the inner man, I resumed my journey, and reached Umballa late in the afternoon of the 27th, not sorry to get under shelter, for the monsoon, which had been threatening for some days past, burst with great fury as I was leaving Ludhiana.

Having listened intently to Ricketts's story and taken a moment to refresh myself, I continued my journey and arrived in Umballa late in the afternoon on the 27th. I was glad to find shelter because the monsoon, which had been looming for several days, unleashed its full force just as I was leaving Ludhiana.

Pushing on to Delhi On driving to the dâk-bungalow I found it crowded with officers,[Page 81] some of whom had been waiting there for days for an opportunity to go on to Delhi; they laughed at me when I expressed my intention of proceeding at once, and told me that the seats on the mail-carts had to be engaged several days in advance, and that I might make up my mind to stay where I was for some time to come. I was not at all prepared for this, and I determined to get on by hook or by crook; as a preliminary measure, I made friends with the postmaster, from whose office the mail-carts started. From him I learnt that my only chance was to call upon the Deputy-Commissioner, by whose orders the seats were distributed. I took the postmaster's advice, and thus became acquainted with Douglas Forsyth, who in later years made a name for himself by his energetic attempts to establish commercial relations with Yarkand and Kashgar. Forsyth confirmed what I had already heard, but told me that an extra cart was to be despatched that night, laden with small-arm ammunition, on which I could, if I liked, get a seat, adding: 'Your kit must be of the smallest, as there will be no room for anything inside the cart.'

Going to Delhi When I drove to the dâk-bungalow, I found it packed with officers,[Page 81] some of whom had been waiting there for days for a chance to head to Delhi. They laughed when I said I wanted to leave right away, telling me that the seats on the mail-carts had to be booked several days in advance and that I should prepare to stay put for a while. I wasn’t ready for this, so I decided to find a way to get on anyway. As a first step, I befriended the postmaster, from whose office the mail-carts departed. He informed me that my only shot was to see the Deputy-Commissioner, who decided who got the seats. Following the postmaster’s advice, I met Douglas Forsyth, who later gained recognition for his vigorous efforts to establish trade ties with Yarkand and Kashgar. Forsyth confirmed what I had heard but mentioned that an extra cart carrying small-arm ammunition was leaving that night, and I could snag a seat if I wanted. He added, "Your luggage has to be minimal because there won’t be any space for anything else in the cart."

I returned to the dâk-bungalow, overjoyed at my success, to find myself quite an important personage, with everyone my friend, like the boy at school who is the lucky recipient of a hamper from home. 'Take me with you!' was the cry on all sides. Only two others besides the driver and myself could possibly go, and then only by carrying our kits in our laps. It was finally arranged that Captain Law and Lieutenant Packe should be my companions. Packe was lamed for life by a shot through his ankle before we had been forty-eight hours at Delhi, and Law was killed on the 23rd July, having greatly distinguished himself by his gallantry and coolness under fire during the short time he served with the force.

I returned to the dâk-bungalow, thrilled with my success, to find myself quite an important person, with everyone wanting to be my friend, like the kid at school who gets a care package from home. "Take me with you!" was the shout from all directions. Only two others besides the driver and me could possibly go, and that would mean carrying our gear in our laps. It was finally decided that Captain Law and Lieutenant Packe would be my companions. Packe was permanently injured by a gunshot to his ankle just forty-eight hours after we arrived in Delhi, and Law was killed on July 23rd, having distinguished himself with his bravery and composure under fire during the short time he was with the force.

We got to Kurnal soon after daybreak on the 28th. It was occupied by a few of the Raja of Jhind's troops, a Commissariat officer, and one or two civilians, who were trying to keep the country quiet and collect supplies. Before noon we passed through Panipat, where there was a strong force of Patiala and Jhind troops, and early in the afternoon we reached Alipur. Here our driver pulled up, declaring he would go no further. A few days before there had been a sharp fight on the road between Alipur and Delhi, not far from Badli-ki-Serai, where the battle of the 8th June had taken place, and as the enemy were constantly on the road threatening the rear of the besieging force, the driver did not consider it safe to go on. We could not, however, stop at Alipur, so after some consultation we settled to take the mail-cart ponies and ride on to camp. We could hear the boom of guns at intervals, and as we neared Delhi we came across several dead bodies of the enemy. It is a curious fact that most of these bodies were exactly like mummies; there was nothing disagreeable about them.

We arrived in Kurnal shortly after sunrise on the 28th. It was occupied by a few troops from the Raja of Jhind, a Commissariat officer, and a couple of civilians, who were trying to maintain order and gather supplies. By noon, we passed through Panipat, where there was a significant presence of Patiala and Jhind troops, and early in the afternoon we reached Alipur. Here, our driver stopped, saying he wouldn’t go any further. A few days earlier, there had been a fierce fight on the road between Alipur and Delhi, not far from Badli-ki-Serai, where the battle on June 8th occurred, and since the enemy was frequently threatening the rear of the besieging force, the driver felt it was unsafe to continue. However, we couldn’t stay in Alipur, so after discussing it, we decided to take the mail-cart ponies and ride on to camp. We could hear the sound of guns occasionally, and as we got closer to Delhi, we came across several dead enemy soldiers. Interestingly, most of these bodies looked just like mummies; there was nothing unpleasant about them.

Why this should have been the case I cannot say, but I often wished[Page 82] during the remainder of the campaign that the atmospheric influences, which, I presume, had produced this effect, could assert themselves more frequently.

Why this was the case, I can't say, but I often wished[Page 82] during the rest of the campaign that the atmospheric influences, which I assume caused this effect, could happen more often.

In the Camp before Delhi We stopped for a short time to look at the position occupied by the enemy at Badli-ki-Serai; but none of us were in the mood to enjoy sight-seeing. We had never been to Delhi before, and had but the vaguest notion where the Ridge (the position our force was holding) was, or how the city was situated with regard to our camp. The sound of heavy firing became louder and louder, and we knew that fighting must be going on. The driver had solemnly warned us of the risk we were running in continuing our journey, and when we came to the point where the Grand Trunk Road bifurcates, one branch going direct to the city and the other through the cantonment, we halted for a few minutes to discuss which we should take. Fortunately for us, we settled to follow that which led to the cantonment, and, as it was then getting dark, we pushed on as fast as our tired ponies could go. The relief to us when we found ourselves safe inside our own piquets may be imagined. My father's old staff-officer, Henry Norman, who was then Assistant-Adjutant-General at Head-Quarters, kindly asked me to share his tent until I could make other arrangements. He had no bed to offer me, but I required none, as I was thoroughly tired out, and all I wanted was a spot on which to throw myself down. A good night's rest quite set me up. I awoke early, scarcely able to believe in my good fortune. I was actually at Delhi, and the city was still in the possession of the mutineers.

In the camp outside Delhi We paused for a moment to check out the enemy's position at Badli-ki-Serai, but none of us were really in the mood for sightseeing. We had never been to Delhi before and only had a vague idea of where the Ridge (the position our force was holding) was or how the city was laid out in relation to our camp. The sound of heavy gunfire got louder and louder, and we knew that fighting must be happening. The driver had seriously warned us about the risks we were taking by continuing our journey, and when we reached the point where the Grand Trunk Road splits—one branch heading straight into the city and the other going through the cantonment—we paused for a few minutes to decide which way to go. Luckily, we chose the route through the cantonment, and as it was getting dark, we hurried on as fast as our exhausted ponies could manage. The relief we felt when we found ourselves safely inside our own pickets was immense. My father's former staff officer, Henry Norman, who was then the Assistant-Adjutant-General at Headquarters, kindly invited me to share his tent until I could sort out other arrangements. He had no bed to offer, but I didn’t need one, as I was completely worn out, and all I wanted was a place to collapse. A good night’s rest really recharged me. I woke up early, hardly able to believe my luck. I was actually in Delhi, and the city was still under the control of the mutineers.






CHAPTER XIII.

1857

Before entering on the narrative of what came under my own observation during the three months I was at Delhi, I will relate what took place after Sir Henry Barnard succeeded General Anson in command on the 26th May, and how the little British force maintained itself against almost overwhelming odds during the first three weeks of that memorable siege.

Before diving into the story of what I witnessed during the three months I spent in Delhi, I’ll share what happened after Sir Henry Barnard took over from General Anson on May 26, and how the small British force held its ground against nearly insurmountable challenges during the first three weeks of that unforgettable siege.

Barnard had served as Chief of the Staff in the Crimea, and had held various staff appointments in England; but he was an utter stranger to India, having only arrived in the country a few weeks before. He fully realized the difficulties of the position to which he had so unexpectedly succeeded, for he was aware how unjustly Anson was being judged by those who, knowing nothing of war, imagined he could have started to attack Delhi with scarcely more preparation than would have been necessary for a morning's parade. The officers of the column were complete strangers to him, and he to them, and he was[Page 83] ignorant of the characteristics and capabilities of the Native portion of his troops. It must, therefore, have been with an anxious heart that he took over the command.

Barnard had been the Chief of Staff in the Crimea and held various staff positions in England, but he was completely new to India, having only arrived a few weeks earlier. He understood the challenges of the role he had unexpectedly taken on, fully aware of how unfairly Anson was being judged by those who, lacking experience in warfare, thought he could have attacked Delhi with little more preparation than what would be needed for a morning parade. The officers in the column were total strangers to him, and vice versa, and he was[Page 83]unfamiliar with the traits and abilities of the Indian troops under his command. It must have been with a heavy heart that he assumed command.

One of Barnard's first acts was to get rid of the unreliable element which Anson had brought away from Umballa. The Infantry he sent to Rohtuk, where it shortly afterwards mutinied, and the Cavalry to Meerut. That these troops should have been allowed to retain their weapons is one of the mysteries of the Mutiny. For more than two months their insubordination had been apparent, incendiarism had occurred which had been clearly traced to them, and they had even gone so far as to fire at their officers; both John Lawrence and Robert Montgomery had pressed upon the Commander-in-Chief the advisability of disarming them; but General Anson, influenced by the regimental officers, who could not believe in the disaffection of their men, had not grasped the necessity for this precautionary measure. The European soldiers with the column, however, did not conceal their mistrust of these sepoys, and Barnard acted wisely in sending them away; but it was extraordinary that they should have been allowed to keep their arms.

One of Barnard's first actions was to get rid of the unreliable group that Anson had brought from Umballa. He sent the Infantry to Rohtuk, where they soon mutinied, and the Cavalry to Meerut. It's a mystery of the Mutiny that these troops were allowed to keep their weapons. For more than two months, their insubordination had been obvious, there had been arson clearly traced back to them, and they had even shot at their officers; both John Lawrence and Robert Montgomery had urged the Commander-in-Chief to disarm them, but General Anson, swayed by the regimental officers who couldn't believe their men would be disloyal, failed to see the need for this precaution. However, the European soldiers with the column didn't hide their distrust of these sepoys, and Barnard was wise to send them away; it was just surprising that they were allowed to keep their arms.

On the 5th June Barnard reached Alipur, within ten miles of Delhi, where he decided to await the arrival of the siege-train and the troops from Meerut.

On June 5th, Barnard arrived in Alipur, just ten miles from Delhi, where he chose to wait for the arrival of the siege train and the troops from Meerut.

The Meerut brigade, under Brigadier Wilson, had started on the 27th May. It consisted of two squadrons of the Carabineers, Tombs's1 troop of Horse Artillery, Scott's Field Battery and two 18-pounder guns, a wing of the 1st Battalion 60th Rifles, a few Native Sappers and Miners, and a detachment of Irregular Horse.

The Meerut brigade, led by Brigadier Wilson, began its journey on May 27th. It included two squadrons of the Carabineers, Tombs's troop of Horse Artillery, Scott's Field Battery, two 18-pounder guns, a wing of the 1st Battalion 60th Rifles, several Native Sappers and Miners, and a group of Irregular Horse.

The First Victory Early on the 30th the village of Ghazi-u-din-nagar (now known as Ghaziabad) close to the Hindun river, and about eleven miles from Delhi, was reached. Thence it was intended to make a reconnaissance towards Delhi, but about four o'clock in the afternoon a vedette reported that the enemy were approaching in strength. A very careless look-out had been kept, for almost simultaneously with the report a round shot came tumbling into camp. The troops fell in as quickly as possible, and the Artillery came into action. The Rifles crossed the Hindun suspension bridge, and, under cover of our guns, attacked the enemy, who were strongly posted in a village. From this position they were speedily dislodged, and the victory was complete. Seven hundred British soldiers defeated seven times their number, capturing five guns and a large quantity of ammunition and stores. Our loss was one officer and ten men killed, and one officer and eighteen men wounded.

The First Win Early on the 30th, the village of Ghazi-u-din-nagar (now known as Ghaziabad), located near the Hindun River and about eleven miles from Delhi, was reached. The plan was to reconnoiter towards Delhi, but around four o'clock in the afternoon, a lookout reported that the enemy was approaching in strong numbers. The watch had been quite careless, as almost immediately after the report, a cannonball came crashing into the camp. The troops assembled as quickly as possible, and the artillery went into action. The Rifles crossed the Hindun suspension bridge, and, with the cover of our guns, attacked the enemy, who were well-positioned in a village. They were quickly dislodged from this position, and the victory was complete. Seven hundred British soldiers defeated seven times their number, capturing five cannons and a large amount of ammunition and supplies. Our casualties included one officer and ten men killed, along with one officer and eighteen men wounded.



Major-General Sir Harry Tombs, V.C., G.C.B.

PORTRAIT OF MAJOR-GENERAL SIR HARRY TOMBS, V.C., G.C.B.

From
a Photograph by Messrs. Grillet and Co.

Major-General Sir Harry Tombs, V.C., G.C.B.

PORTRAIT OF MAJOR-GENERAL SIR HARRY TOMBS, V.C., G.C.B.

From
a photo by Messrs. Grillet and Co.



The following day (Sunday) the enemy reappeared about noon, but[Page 84] after two hours' fighting they were again routed, and on our troops occupying their position, they could be seen in full retreat towards Delhi. The rebels succeeded in taking their guns with them, for our men, prostrated by the intense heat and parched with thirst, were quite unable to pursue. We had one officer and eleven men killed, and two officers and ten men wounded. Among the latter was an ensign of the 60th Rifles, a boy named Napier, a most gallant young fellow, full of life and spirit, who had won the love as well as the admiration of his men. He was hit in the leg, and the moment he was brought into camp it had to be amputated. When the operation was over, Napier was heard to murmur, 'I shall never lead the Rifles again! I shall never lead the Rifles again!' His wound he thought little of. What grieved him was the idea of having to give up his career as a soldier, and to leave the regiment he was so proud of. Napier was taken to Meerut, where he died a few days afterwards.2

The next day (Sunday), the enemy returned around noon, but after two hours of fighting, they were routed again. As our troops took over their position, we could see the rebels retreating towards Delhi. The rebels managed to take their guns with them because our men, exhausted by the intense heat and dying of thirst, couldn’t pursue them. We lost one officer and eleven men killed, with two officers and ten men wounded. Among the wounded was an ensign of the 60th Rifles, a young man named Napier, who was a brave and spirited guy, admired and loved by his men. He was shot in the leg, and the moment he arrived in camp, it had to be amputated. Once the operation was done, Napier was heard to say, 'I will never lead the Rifles again! I will never lead the Rifles again!' He didn’t think much of his wound; what upset him was the thought of giving up his soldiering career and leaving the regiment he was so proud of. Napier was taken to Meerut, where he died a few days later.

On the 1st June Wilson's force was strengthened by the Sirmur battalion of Gurkhas,3 a regiment which later covered itself with glory, and gained an undying name by its gallantry during the siege of Delhi.

On June 1st, Wilson's force was bolstered by the Sirmur battalion of Gurkhas,3 a regiment that later made a name for itself and achieved lasting fame for its bravery during the siege of Delhi.

On the 7th June Wilson's brigade crossed the Jumna at Baghput, and at Alipur it joined Barnard's force, the men of which loudly cheered their Meerut comrades as they marched into camp with the captured guns. The siege-train had arrived the previous day, and Barnard was now ready for an advance. His force consisted of about 600 Cavalry and 2,400 Infantry, with 22 field-guns. There were besides 150 European Artillerymen, chiefly recruits, with the siege-train, which comprised eight 18-pounders, four 8-inch and twelve 5½ inch mortars. The guns, if not exactly obsolete, were quite unsuited for the work that had to be done, but they were the best procurable. George Campbell, in his 'Memoirs of my Indian Career,' thus describes the siege-train as he saw it passing through Kurnal: 'I could not help thinking that it looked a very trumpery affair with which to bombard and take a great fortified city;' and he expressed his 'strong belief that Delhi would never be taken by that battery.'

On June 7th, Wilson's brigade crossed the Jumna at Baghput and joined Barnard's force at Alipur. The men of Barnard's force cheered loudly for their Meerut comrades as they marched into camp with the captured guns. The siege train had arrived the day before, and Barnard was now ready to advance. His force included about 600 cavalry and 2,400 infantry, along with 22 field guns. Additionally, there were 150 European artillerymen, mostly recruits, with the siege train, which included eight 18-pounders, four 8-inch, and twelve 5½ inch mortars. The guns, though not completely outdated, were not suitable for the task at hand, but they were the best available. George Campbell, in his 'Memoirs of my Indian Career,' describes the siege train as he saw it passing through Kurnal: 'I couldn’t help thinking that it looked like a pretty shabby setup for bombarding and taking a major fortified city,’ and he expressed his 'strong belief that Delhi would never be taken by that battery.'

Barnard heard that the enemy intended to oppose his march to Delhi, and in order to ascertain their exact position he sent Lieutenant Hodson (who had previously done good service for the Commander-in-Chief by opening communication with Meerut) to reconnoitre the road. Hodson reported that the rebels were in force at Badli-ki-Serai a little more than halfway between Alipur and Delhi. Orders were accordingly issued for an advance at midnight on the 7th June.

Barnard learned that the enemy planned to block his march to Delhi, so he sent Lieutenant Hodson (who had previously helped the Commander-in-Chief by establishing communication with Meerut) to survey the area. Hodson reported that the rebels were positioned strongly at Badli-ki-Serai, just over halfway between Alipur and Delhi. As a result, orders were given to advance at midnight on June 7th.

Enthusiasm Amongst the Troops When it became known that a battle was imminent, there was great enthusiasm amongst the troops, who were burning to avenge the massacres of Meerut and Delhi. The sick in hospital declared they[Page 85] would remain there no longer, and many, quite unfit to walk, insisted on accompanying the attacking column, imploring their comrades not to mention that they were ill, for fear they should not be allowed to take part in the fight.4

Troop Enthusiasm When it became known that a battle was on the horizon, there was huge excitement among the troops, who were eager to avenge the massacres at Meerut and Delhi. The sick in the hospital insisted they would stay no longer, and many, who were barely able to walk, begged to join the attacking column, asking their comrades not to mention they were ill, fearing they wouldn’t be allowed to participate in the fight.4

The mutineers had selected an admirable position on both sides of the main road. To their right was a serai and a walled village capable of holding large numbers of Infantry, and protected by an impassable swamp. To their left, on some rising ground, a sand-bag battery for four heavy guns and an 8-inch mortar had been constructed. On both sides the ground was swampy and intersected by water-cuts, and about a mile to the enemy's left, and nearly parallel to the road, ran the Western Jumna Canal.

The mutineers had chosen an excellent position on both sides of the main road. To their right was an inn and a walled village that could accommodate a large number of infantry, protected by an impenetrable swamp. To their left, on some elevated land, was a sandbag battery for four heavy guns and an 8-inch mortar. The ground on both sides was marshy and crossed by water channels, and about a mile to the enemy's left, almost parallel to the road, flowed the Western Jumna Canal.

Barnard's Success at
Badli-ki-Serai
At the hour named, Brigadier Hope Grant,5 commanding the Cavalry, started with ten Horse Artillery guns, three squadrons of the 9th Lancers, and fifty Jhind horsemen under Lieutenant Hodson, with the object of turning the enemy's left flank. Shortly afterwards the main body marched along the road until the lights in the enemy's camp became visible. Colonel Showers, who had succeeded Hallifax in the command of the 1st Brigade,6 moved off to the right of the road, and Colonel Graves, who had taken Jones's place with the 2nd Brigade,7 to the left. The heavy guns remained on the road with a battery of Field Artillery on either flank. Just as day broke our guns advanced, but before they were in position the fight began by a cannonade from the rebel Artillery, which caused us severe loss. To this destructive fire no adequate reply could be made; our guns were too few and of too small calibre. To add to our difficulties, the Native bullock-drivers of our heavy guns went off with their cattle, and one of the waggons blew up. At this critical moment Barnard ordered Showers to charge the enemy's guns, a service which was performed with heroic gallantry by Her Majesty's 75th Foot, who carried the position at the point of the bayonet, with a loss of 19 officers and men killed and 43 wounded. Then, supported by the 1st Fusiliers, the same regiment dashed across the road and burst open the gates of the serai. A desperate fight ensued, but the sepoys were no match for British bayonets, and they now learnt that their misdeeds were not to be allowed to go unpunished. Graves's brigade, having passed round the jhil,8 appeared on the enemy's right rear, while Grant with his Cavalry and Horse Artillery threatened their left. The defeat was complete, and the rebels retreated hastily towards Delhi, leaving their guns on the ground.

Barnard's Success at Badli-ki-Serai At the scheduled time, Brigadier Hope Grant,5 leading the Cavalry, set off with ten Horse Artillery guns, three squadrons of the 9th Lancers, and fifty Jhind horsemen under Lieutenant Hodson, aiming to flank the enemy on their left side. Shortly after, the main force marched down the road until they could see the lights in the enemy's camp. Colonel Showers, who had taken over command of the 1st Brigade,6 moved to the right of the road, while Colonel Graves, who had replaced Jones in the 2nd Brigade,7 went to the left. The heavy artillery stayed on the road, with a field artillery battery positioned on both sides. Just as dawn broke, our guns moved forward, but before they could get into position, the fighting commenced with a cannon bombardment from the rebel artillery, which inflicted heavy casualties on us. We couldn't respond effectively to this devastating fire; we had too few guns and their caliber was insufficient. To increase our problems, the local bullock drivers for our heavy cannons ran off with their cattle, and one of the wagons exploded. In this critical moment, Barnard ordered Showers to charge the enemy's artillery, a task that was carried out with incredible bravery by Her Majesty's 75th Foot, who took the position at the point of the bayonet, suffering 19 officers and men killed and 43 wounded. Then, backed by the 1st Fusiliers, the same regiment rushed across the road and broke down the gates of the serai. A fierce battle followed, but the sepoys were no match for British bayonets, and they quickly learned that their actions would not go unpunished. Graves's brigade, having circled around the jhil,8 emerged on the enemy's right rear, while Grant and his Cavalry and Horse Artillery threatened their left flank. The defeat was total, and the rebels retreated rapidly towards Delhi, leaving their artillery behind.

Although the men were much exhausted, Barnard determined to[Page 86] push on, for he feared that if he delayed the rebels might rally, and occupy another strong position.

Although the men were very tired, Barnard decided to[Page 86] press on, because he was worried that if he took too long, the rebels might regroup and take another strong position.

From the cross-roads just beyond Badli-ki-Serai could be seen the Ridge on which the British force was to hold its own for more than three months during the heat of an Indian summer, and under the rain of an Indian monsoon. At this point two columns were formed, Barnard taking command of the one, which proceeded to the left towards the cantonment, and Wilson of the other, which moved along the city road. Wilson's column fought its way through gardens and enclosures until it reached the western extremity of the Ridge. Barnard, as he came under the fire of the enemy's guns, made a flank movement to the left, and then, wheeling to his right, swept along the Ridge from the Flagstaff Tower to Hindu Rao's house, where the two columns united, the rebels flying before them.

From the intersection just past Badli-ki-Serai, you could see the Ridge where the British forces would defend themselves for over three months during the heat of an Indian summer and the downpour of the Indian monsoon. At this point, two columns were formed: Barnard led one, which moved to the left towards the cantonment, while Wilson led the other along the city road. Wilson's column fought through gardens and enclosures until it reached the western end of the Ridge. As Barnard came under enemy fire, he made a flank move to the left, then, turning right, advanced along the Ridge from the Flagstaff Tower to Hindu Rao's house, where the two columns came together, with the rebels retreating before them.

Barnard had achieved a great success and with comparatively small loss, considering the formidable position occupied by the enemy, their great strength in Artillery, and their superiority in numbers.

Barnard had achieved significant success with relatively few losses, especially given the strong position of the enemy, their considerable artillery power, and their numerical advantage.

Our casualties were 51 killed and 131 wounded. Among the former was Colonel Chester, the Adjutant-General of the Army. Of the troops opposed to us it was reckoned that 1,000 never returned to Delhi; thirteen guns were captured, two of them being 24-pounders.

Our casualties were 51 dead and 131 injured. Among those killed was Colonel Chester, the Adjutant-General of the Army. It was estimated that 1,000 of the opposing troops never made it back to Delhi; we captured thirteen guns, two of which were 24-pounders.

I have frequently wandered over the Ridge since 1857, and thought how wonderfully we were aided by finding a ready-made position—not only a coign of vantage for attack, but a rampart of defence, as Forrest9 describes it. This Ridge, rising sixty feet above the city, covered the main line of communication to the Punjab, upon the retention of which our very existence as a force depended. Its left rested on the Jumna, unfordable from the time the snow on the higher ranges begins to melt until the rainy season is over, and of sufficient width to prevent our being enfiladed by field-guns; although, on the immediate right, bazaars, buildings, and garden-walls afforded cover to the enemy, the enclosed nature of the ground was so far advantageous that it embarrassed and impeded them in their attempts to organize an attack in force upon our flank or rear; and a further protection was afforded by the Najafgarh jhil, which during the rains submerges a vast area of land.

I have often wandered over the Ridge since 1857 and marveled at how fortunate we were to find such a well-positioned spot—not just a great place to attack, but also a defensive barrier, as Forrest9 puts it. This Ridge, which rises sixty feet above the city, covers the main route to the Punjab, on which our very survival as a force depended. Its left side is on the Jumna, which is impossible to cross from the time the snow on the higher ranges starts to melt until the rainy season is over, and it's wide enough to keep us safe from being targeted by field guns. However, on the immediate right, bazaars, buildings, and garden walls provided cover for the enemy. Yet, the enclosed nature of the area was somewhat beneficial as it complicated their efforts to organize a major attack on our side or rear, and additional protection was given by the Najafgarh jhil, which floods a large area of land during the rainy season.

The distance of the Ridge from the city walls varied considerably. On our right, where the memorial monument now stands, it was about 1,200 yards, at the Flagstaff Tower about a mile and a half, and at the end near the river nearly two miles and a half. This rendered our left comparatively safe, and it was behind the Ridge in this direction that the main part of our camp was pitched. The Flagstaff Tower in the centre was the general rendezvous for the non-combatants, and for those of the sick and wounded who were able to move about, as they[Page 87] could assemble there and hear the news from the front without much risk of injury from the enemy's fire.

The distance of the Ridge from the city walls varied a lot. On our right, where the memorial monument now stands, it was about 1,200 yards; at the Flagstaff Tower, about a mile and a half; and at the end near the river, nearly two and a half miles. This made our left side relatively safe, and it was behind the Ridge in this direction that the main part of our camp was set up. The Flagstaff Tower in the center was the main meeting point for non-combatants and for those who were sick or wounded but able to move around, as they could gather there and hear news from the front without much risk of getting hit by enemy fire.

The Flagstaff Tower The Flagstaff Tower is interesting from the fact that it was here the residents from the cantonment of Delhi assembled to make a stand, on hearing that the rebels from Meerut were murdering the British officers on duty within the city, that the three Native regiments and battery of Field Artillery had joined the mutineers, and that at any moment they themselves might expect to be attacked. The tower was 150 feet high, with a low parapet running round the top, approached by a narrow winding staircase. Here the men of the party proposed to await the attack. The ladies, who behaved with the utmost coolness and presence of mind, were, with the wives and children of the few European non-commissioned officers, placed for their greater safety on the stairs, where they were all but suffocated by the stifling heat in such a confined space. The little party on the roof consisted of some twenty British officers, the same number of half-caste buglers and drummers, and half a dozen European soldiers. Not a drop of water, not a particle of food, was to be had. No help appeared to be coming from Meerut, in the direction of which place many a longing and expectant glance had been cast during the anxious hours of that miserable 11th May. Constant and heavy firing was heard from the city and suburbs, and the Cavalry were reported to be advancing on the cantonment.

Flagstaff Tower The Flagstaff Tower is notable because it’s where the residents of the Delhi cantonment gathered to prepare for defense upon hearing that the rebels from Meerut were killing British officers on duty in the city. They learned that three Native regiments and a battery of Field Artillery had joined the mutineers, and that they could be attacked at any moment. The tower stood 150 feet high, with a low parapet around the top, accessed by a narrow winding staircase. The men in the group decided to wait for the attack there. The women, who displayed remarkable calm and presence of mind, along with the wives and children of a few European non-commissioned officers, were placed on the stairs for their safety, where they were nearly suffocated by the oppressive heat in such cramped quarters. The small group on the roof included about twenty British officers, an equal number of half-caste buglers and drummers, and half a dozen European soldiers. There was no water or food available. No assistance seemed to be coming from Meerut, in the direction of which many hopeful glances were cast during the tense hours of that dreadful 11th May. Constant and heavy gunfire was heard from the city and its outskirts, and the Cavalry was reported to be approaching the cantonment.

Before evening the weary watchers realized that their position was untenable, and that their only possible chance of escaping the fate which had befallen the officers within the city (whose dead bodies had been inhumanly sent in a cart to the Tower) lay in flight. Shortly before dark the move was made, the women and children were crowded into the few vehicles available, and accompanied by the men, some on foot and some on horseback, they got away by the road leading towards Umballa. They were only just in time, for before the last of the party were out of sight of the cantonment, crowds of Natives poured into it, burning, plundering, and destroying everything they could find.

Before evening, the exhausted watchers realized that their situation was hopeless and that their only chance to escape the fate that had befallen the officers in the city (whose lifeless bodies had been ruthlessly sent in a cart to the Tower) was to flee. Just before dark, the decision was made; the women and children were packed into the few available vehicles, and along with the men—some on foot and some on horseback—they left via the road leading to Umballa. They were barely in time, as before the last of the group was out of sight of the cantonment, crowds of locals surged in, burning, looting, and destroying everything in their path.

Amongst the fugitives from Delhi was Captain Tytler, of the 38th Native Infantry, who, after a variety of vicissitudes, reached Umballa safely with his wife and children. When Anson's force was being formed for the advance on Delhi, Tytler was placed in charge of the military treasure chest, and through some unaccountable negligence Mrs. Tytler was allowed to accompany him. I believe that, when Mrs. Tytler's presence became known to the authorities, she would have been sent out of camp to some safe place, but at that time she was not in a fit state to travel, and on the 21st June, a few days after the force took up its position under a heavy cannonade, she gave birth to a son in the waggon in which she was accommodated. The infant, who was[Page 88] christened Stanley Delhi Force, seems to have been looked upon by the soldiery with quite a superstitious feeling, for the father tells us that soon after its birth he overheard a soldier say; 'Now we shall get our reinforcements; this camp was formed to avenge the blood of innocents, and the first reinforcement sent to us is a new-born infant.' Reinforcements did actually arrive the next day.

Among the refugees from Delhi was Captain Tytler of the 38th Native Infantry, who, after various trials, made it safely to Umballa with his wife and kids. When Anson's force was being organized for the push toward Delhi, Tytler was put in charge of the military treasure chest, and due to some unexplained oversight, Mrs. Tytler was allowed to go with him. I think that once the authorities learned Mrs. Tytler was there, she would have been sent out of camp to a safer location, but at that moment, she wasn’t fit to travel. On June 21st, just a few days after the force positioned itself under heavy cannon fire, she gave birth to a son in the wagon they were provided. The baby, named Stanley Delhi Force, was viewed by the soldiers with a kind of superstitious reverence, as the father recounts that shortly after the birth, he overheard a soldier saying, “Now we’ll get our reinforcements; this camp was set up to avenge the blood of innocents, and the first reinforcement sent to us is a newborn baby.” Reinforcements indeed arrived the next day.

Position on the Ridge It was on the afternoon of the 8th June that the British force was placed in position on the Ridge. The main piquet was established at Hindu Rao's house, a large stone building, in former days the country residence of some Mahratta Chief. About one hundred and eighty yards further to the left was the observatory, near which our heavy gun battery was erected. Beyond the observatory was an old Pathan mosque, in which was placed an Infantry piquet with two field-guns. Still further to the left came the Flagstaff Tower, held by a party of Infantry with two more field-guns. At the extreme right of the Ridge, overlooking the trunk road, there was a strong piquet with a heavy battery.

Position on the Ridge On the afternoon of June 8th, the British force was positioned on the Ridge. The main picket was set up at Hindu Rao's house, a large stone building that used to be the country residence of a Mahratta Chief. About one hundred and eighty yards further to the left was the observatory, next to which our heavy gun battery was placed. Beyond the observatory stood an old Pathan mosque, which housed an Infantry picket with two field guns. Even further to the left was the Flagstaff Tower, manned by a group of Infantry with two additional field guns. At the far right of the Ridge, overlooking the main road, there was a strong picket with a heavy battery.

This was the weak point of our defence. To the right, and somewhat to the rear, was the suburb of Sabzi Mandi (vegetable market), a succession of houses and walled gardens, from which the rebels constantly threatened our flank. To protect this part of the position as much as possible, a battery of three 18-pounders and an Infantry piquet was placed on what was known as the General's Mound, with a Cavalry piquet and two Horse Artillery guns immediately below. In front of the Ridge the ground was covered with old buildings, enclosures, and clumps of trees, which afforded only too perfect shelter to the enemy when making their sorties.

This was the weak spot in our defense. To the right and a bit to the back was the neighborhood of Sabzi Mandi (vegetable market), a series of homes and walled gardens from which the rebels constantly threatened our flank. To secure this area as much as possible, a battery of three 18-pounders and an Infantry picket were placed on what was called the General's Mound, with a Cavalry picket and two Horse Artillery guns just below. In front of the Ridge, the ground was filled with old buildings, enclosures, and clusters of trees, which provided perfect cover for the enemy when they launched their attacks.

As described by the Commanding Engineer, 'the eastern face of Delhi rests on the Jumna, and at the season of the year during which our operations were carried on, the stream may be described as washing the face of the walls. The river front was therefore inaccessible to the besieging force, while at the same time the mutineers and the inhabitants of the city could communicate freely across the river by means of the bridge of boats and ferries. This rendered it impossible for us to invest Delhi, even if there had been a sufficient number of troops for the purpose. We were only able, indeed, to direct our attack against a small portion of the city wall, while throughout the siege the enemy could freely communicate with, and procure supplies from, the surrounding country.

As the Commanding Engineer described, 'the east side of Delhi sits on the Jumna River, and during the time of our operations, the river seemed to wash against the walls. This made the riverfront unreachable for the besieging force, while the mutineers and the city’s residents could easily communicate across the river using a bridge of boats and ferries. This made it impossible for us to completely surround Delhi, even if we had enough troops for it. We were only able to focus our attack on a small section of the city wall, while throughout the siege, the enemy could easily communicate with and get supplies from the surrounding area.

'On the river front the defences consisted of an irregular wall with occasional bastions and towers, and about one half of the length of this face was occupied by the palace of the King of Delhi and its outwork, the old Moghul fort of Selimgarh.

'Along the riverfront, the defenses were made up of an uneven wall with occasional bastions and towers, and about half of this wall was taken up by the palace of the King of Delhi and its outwork, the old Mughal fort of Selimgarh.'

'The remaining defences consisted of a succession of bastioned fronts, the connecting curtains being very long, and the outworks[Page 89] limited to one crown-work at the Ajmir gate, and Martello towers mounting a single gun, at the points where additional flanking fire to that given by the bastions themselves was required.'10

The remaining defenses included a series of bastioned fronts, with very long connecting walls, and the outworks[Page 89] limited to one crown-work at the Ajmir gate and Martello towers equipped with a single gun, placed where more flanking fire was needed. 10

The above description will give some idea of the strength of the great city which the British force had come to capture. For more than two months, however, our energies were devoted not to capturing the city, but to defending ourselves, having to be ever on the watch to guard our communication with the Punjab, and to repel the enemy's almost daily sorties.

The description above gives an idea of the strength of the great city that the British force aimed to capture. For over two months, though, we focused not on capturing the city but on defending ourselves, constantly on guard to protect our communication with the Punjab and to fend off the enemy's almost daily attacks.

The Defences of Delhi The defences of Delhi, which remain almost unaltered up to the present day, were modernized forms of the ancient works that existed when the city fell before Lord Lake's army in 1803. These works had been strengthened and improved some years before the Mutiny by Lieutenant Robert Napier.11 How thoroughly and effectually that talented and distinguished Engineer performed the duty entrusted to him, we who had to attack Delhi could testify to our cost.

The Defenses of Delhi The defenses of Delhi, which have remained mostly unchanged to this day, were modernized versions of the ancient structures that existed when the city was captured by Lord Lake's army in 1803. These structures had been reinforced and improved a few years before the Mutiny by Lieutenant Robert Napier.11 Those of us who had to attack Delhi can attest to how thoroughly and effectively that talented and distinguished engineer carried out the task assigned to him, and we felt the impact of his work.

Barnard was not left long in doubt as to the intentions of the rebels, who, the very afternoon on which he occupied the Ridge, attacked Hindu Rao's house, where the Sirmur battalion, two companies of the 60th Rifles, and two of Scott's guns had been placed. The enemy were driven off before dark. The following day they began to cannonade from the city walls, and in the afternoon repeated their attack.

Barnard didn't stay uncertain for long about the rebels' intentions. On the very afternoon he took over the Ridge, they attacked Hindu Rao's house, where the Sirmur battalion, two companies of the 60th Rifles, and two of Scott's guns were stationed. The enemy was pushed back before nightfall. The next day, they started bombarding from the city walls and, in the afternoon, launched another attack.

That same morning a welcome reinforcement reached camp, the famous Corps of Guides having arrived as fresh as if they had returned from an ordinary field day, instead of having come off a march of nearly 600 miles, accomplished in the incredibly short time of twenty-two days, at the most trying season of the year. The General, having inspected them, said a few words of encouragement to the men, who begged their gallant Commandant to say how proud they were to belong to the Delhi Force. Their usefulness was proved that same afternoon, when, in support of the piquets, they engaged the enemy in[Page 90] a hand-to-hand contest, and drove them back to the city.

That same morning, a much-needed reinforcement arrived at camp, with the famous Corps of Guides looking as fresh as if they had just come back from a regular training day, rather than having completed a nearly 600-mile march in just twenty-two days during one of the toughest times of the year. After inspecting them, the General offered a few words of encouragement to the men, who expressed to their brave Commandant how proud they were to be part of the Delhi Force. Their value was demonstrated that afternoon when, supporting the pickets, they engaged the enemy in a close fight and pushed them back to the city.

Quintin Battye It was close up to the walls that Quintin Battye, the dashing Commander of the Guides Cavalry, received his mortal wound. He was the brightest and cheeriest of companions, and although only a subaltern of eight years' service, he was a great loss. I spent a few hours with him on my way to Delhi, and I remember how his handsome face glowed when he talked of the opportunities for distinguishing themselves in store for the Guides. Proud of his regiment, and beloved by his men, who, grand fellows themselves, were captivated by his many soldierly qualities, he had every prospect before him of a splendid career, but he was destined to fall in his first fight. He was curiously fond of quotations, and the last words he uttered were 'Dulce et decorum est pro patriâ mori.'

Quintin Battye It was right up against the walls that Quintin Battye, the charismatic Commander of the Guides Cavalry, received his fatal wound. He was the most vibrant and cheerful of friends, and even though he had only been a subaltern for eight years, his loss was significant. I spent a few hours with him on my way to Delhi, and I remember how his handsome face lit up when he spoke about the chances for the Guides to stand out. He was proud of his regiment and adored by his men, who, being great guys themselves, were drawn to his numerous soldierly qualities. He had every opportunity ahead of him for a remarkable career, but he was destined to fall in his first battle. He had a peculiar fondness for quotes, and the last words he spoke were 'Dulce et decorum est pro patriâ mori'.

While our Infantry and Field Artillery were busily engaged with the enemy, the few heavy guns we had were put in position on the Ridge. Great things were hoped from them, but it was soon found that they were not powerful enough to silence the enemy's fire, and that our small supply of ammunition was being rapidly expended.12 The rebels' guns were superior in number and some in calibre to ours, and were well served by the Native Artillerymen whom we had been at such pains to teach. Barnard discovered, too, that his deficiencies in men and matériel prevented regular approaches being made. There were only 150 Native Sappers and Miners with our force, and Infantry could not be spared for working parties.

While our Infantry and Field Artillery were actively engaged with the enemy, the few heavy guns we had were positioned on the Ridge. We had high hopes for them, but it quickly became clear that they weren’t powerful enough to silence the enemy's fire, and our limited supply of ammunition was being rapidly used up.12 The rebels’ guns outnumbered ours and some had a larger caliber, and they were well operated by the Native Artillerymen we had worked hard to train. Barnard also realized that his lack of soldiers and equipment prevented us from making regular advances. There were only 150 Native Sappers and Miners with our force, and we couldn’t spare any Infantry for working parties.

The Gallant Little Gurkhas On the 10th June another determined attack was made on Hindu Rao's house, which was repulsed by the Sirmur battalion of Gurkhas under its distinguished Commandant, Major Reid.13 The mutineers quite hoped that the Gurkhas would join them, and as they were advancing they called out: 'We are not firing; we want to speak to you; we want you to join us.' The little Gurkhas replied, 'Oh yes; we are coming,' on which they advanced to within twenty paces of the rebels, and, firing a well-directed volley, killed nearly thirty of them.

The Brave Little Gurkhas On June 10th, another intense attack was launched on Hindu Rao's house, which was successfully defended by the Sirmur battalion of Gurkhas under the respected Commandant, Major Reid.13 The mutineers were hopeful that the Gurkhas would side with them, and as they approached, they shouted, "We’re not shooting; we want to talk to you; we want you to join us." The brave Gurkhas responded, "Oh yes; we're coming," and then moved within twenty paces of the rebels, firing a well-aimed volley that took down nearly thirty of them.

The next day the insurgents made a third attack, and were again repulsed with considerable loss. They knew that Hindu Rao's house was the key of our position, and throughout the siege they made the most desperate attempts to capture it. But Barnard had entrusted this post of danger to the Gurkhas, and all efforts to dislodge them were unavailing. At first Reid had at his command only his own battalion and two companies of the 60th Rifles; but on the arrival of the Guides their Infantry were also placed at his disposal, and whenever he[Page 91] sounded the alarm he was reinforced by two more companies of the 60th. Hindu Rao's house was within easy range of nearly all the enemy's heavy guns, and was riddled through and through with shot and shell. Reid never quitted the Ridge save to attack the enemy, and never once visited the camp until carried into it severely wounded on the day of the final assault. Hindu Rao's house was the little Gurkhas' hospital as well as their barrack, for their sick and wounded begged to be left with their comrades instead of being taken to camp.14

The next day, the insurgents launched a third attack and were once again pushed back with significant losses. They understood that Hindu Rao's house was crucial to our position, and throughout the siege, they made desperate attempts to capture it. However, Barnard had assigned this dangerous post to the Gurkhas, and all efforts to dislodge them failed. Initially, Reid had only his own battalion and two companies of the 60th Rifles at his disposal, but when the Guides arrived, their Infantry were also assigned to him. Whenever he sounded the alarm, he received reinforcements from two more companies of the 60th. Hindu Rao's house was within easy range of almost all the enemy's heavy guns and was completely riddled with shot and shell. Reid never left the Ridge except to attack the enemy, and he never visited the camp until he was brought in severely wounded on the day of the final assault. Hindu Rao's house served as both the hospital and barracks for the little Gurkhas, as their sick and wounded preferred to stay with their comrades rather than being taken to camp.

Failing in their attempts on the centre of the position, the mutineers soon after daylight on the 12th, having concealed themselves in the ravines adjoining Metcalfe House, attacked the Flagstaff Tower, the piquet of which was composed of two Horse Artillery guns and two companies of the 75th Foot, under the command of Captains Dunbar and Knox. A heavy fog and thick mist rolling up from the low ground near the Jumna completely enveloped the Ridge and the left front of our position, hiding everything in the immediate vicinity. The piquet was on the point of being relieved by a detachment of the 2nd Bengal Fusiliers, when a large body of the enemy, who had crept up unobserved, made a rush at the Flagstaff Tower, and as nearly as possible captured the guns. The piquet was hardly pressed, Knox and several men were killed, and but for the timely arrival of two companies of the 60th, the rebels would have gained the day.

Failing in their attempts on the center of the position, the mutineers soon after dawn on the 12th, having hidden themselves in the ravines near Metcalfe House, launched an attack on the Flagstaff Tower. The guard there consisted of two Horse Artillery guns and two companies of the 75th Foot, led by Captains Dunbar and Knox. A heavy fog and thick mist rolling in from the low ground by the Jumna completely shrouded the Ridge and the left front of our position, obscuring everything nearby. The guard was about to be relieved by a detachment of the 2nd Bengal Fusiliers when a large group of enemies, who had crept up undetected, charged at the Flagstaff Tower and nearly captured the guns. The guard was hard-pressed; Knox and several men were killed, and if it hadn’t been for the timely arrival of two companies of the 60th, the rebels would have won the day.

This engagement was scarcely over, when masses of insurgents advanced from the Sabzi Mandi upon Hindu Rao's house, and into the gardens on the right flank of the camp, threatening the Mound piquet. Reserves were called up, these attacks, in their turn, were repulsed and the rebels were pursued for some distance. It was most fortunate that both attacks did not take place simultaneously, as was the obvious intention of the enemy, for our strength would not have been sufficient to repel them both at the same moment.

This engagement had barely concluded when large groups of insurgents moved in from the Sabzi Mandi towards Hindu Rao's house, approaching the gardens on the right side of the camp and threatening the Mound piquet. Reserves were called up, these attacks were pushed back, and the rebels were chased for a distance. It was very fortunate that both attacks didn’t happen at the same time, which was clearly the enemy's intention, because our forces wouldn’t have been strong enough to handle them both simultaneously.

In order to prevent the mutineers from coming to such close quarters again, a piquet was placed in Metcalfe's House, and the Mound to the rear of the ridge facing the Sabzi Mandi was strengthened. These precautions ought to, and would, have been taken before, but for the want of men. Our soldiers were scarcely ever off duty, and this fresh demand made it impossible at times to provide a daily relief for the several piquets.

To stop the mutineers from getting so close again, a picket was set up in Metcalfe's House, and the Mound behind the ridge facing the Sabzi Mandi was reinforced. These measures should have been taken earlier, but there weren't enough men. Our soldiers were hardly ever off duty, and this new demand sometimes made it impossible to provide daily relief for the various pickets.

Our resources in siege guns and ammunition were so limited, daily sorties, disease, and heat were making such ravages amongst our small force, there was so little hope of receiving any considerable reinforcements, and it appeared to be of such paramount importance to capture Delhi without further delay, that Barnard agreed to a proposal for[Page 92] taking it by a coup de main.

Our supplies of siege weapons and ammunition were really limited, and daily attacks, disease, and the heat were taking a heavy toll on our small group. There seemed to be almost no chance of getting significant reinforcements, and it was crucial to capture Delhi without any more delays, so Barnard agreed to a plan for[Page 92] taking it by a coup de main.

Proposed Assault The particular details of the project and disposition of the troops were worked out by three young officers of Engineers, under the direct orders of the General, and were kept a profound secret; even the Commanding Engineer was not made acquainted with them. Secrecy was, of course, of vital importance, but that the officers who ought to have been chiefly concerned were kept in ignorance of the scheme, shows there was little of that confidence so essential to success existing between the Commander and those who were in the position of his principal advisers. Practically the whole force was to be engaged, divided into three columns—one to enter by the Kashmir gate, the second by the Lahore gate, and the third was to attempt an escalade. The three columns, if they succeeded in effecting an entrance, were to work their way to the centre of the city, and there unite.

Proposed Attack The specific details of the project and troop arrangements were planned by three young engineer officers, directly ordered by the General, and kept completely secret; even the Commanding Engineer was not informed about them. Secrecy was obviously crucial, but the fact that the officers who should have been primarily involved were kept in the dark about the plan indicates a lack of the essential trust needed for success between the Commander and those who were supposed to be his main advisers. Almost the entire force was to take part, divided into three groups—one entering through the Kashmir gate, the second through the Lahore gate, and the third attempting a climb. The three groups, if they managed to get inside, were to make their way to the center of the city and meet there.

It was intended that these columns should move off from camp so as to arrive at the walls just before daybreak; accordingly, at one o'clock on the morning of the 13th June the troops were suddenly paraded and ammunition served out, and then for the first time the Commanders of the three columns and the staff were made acquainted with the General's intentions. It so happened that the 75th Foot, which had followed the enemy into the grounds of Metcalfe House after the repulse on the Flagstaff Tower the previous morning, had through some oversight never been recalled; their absence was only discovered when the order was given for the regiment to turn out, and a considerable time was wasted in sending for it and bringing it back to camp. Day was breaking when this regiment received its ammunition, and all hope of an unperceived advance to the walls had to be given up. The troops were therefore dismissed, and allowed to turn in, having been uselessly disturbed from their much-needed rest.

It was planned for these columns to leave the camp to reach the walls just before dawn; so, at one o'clock on the morning of June 13th, the troops were suddenly assembled, and ammunition was distributed. For the first time, the Commanders of the three columns and the staff were informed of the General's plans. It turned out that the 75th Foot, which had pursued the enemy into the grounds of Metcalfe House after being pushed back from the Flagstaff Tower the day before, had not been recalled due to some oversight; their absence was only noticed when the order was given for the regiment to assemble, wasting a considerable amount of time while someone was sent to retrieve them and bring them back to camp. Day was breaking when this regiment finally received its ammunition, and any hope of advancing unnoticed to the walls had to be abandoned. The troops were then dismissed and allowed to return to their tents, having been needlessly disturbed from their much-needed rest.

The failure to give effect to the young Engineer officers' plan may be looked upon as a merciful dispensation of Providence, which saved us from what would almost certainly have been an irreparable disaster. When we think of the hard fighting encountered when the assault did take place under much more favourable circumstances, and how the columns at the end of that day were only just able to get inside the city, those who had practical knowledge of the siege can judge what chance there would have been of these smaller columns accomplishing their object, even if they had been able to take the enemy by surprise.

The failure to implement the young Engineer officers' plan can be seen as a fortunate act of Providence, which spared us from what would likely have been an irreversible disaster. Considering the intense fighting we faced when the assault eventually happened under much more favorable conditions, and how the forces could barely make it into the city by the end of the day, those with practical experience of the siege can understand how unlikely it would have been for these smaller groups to achieve their goal, even if they had managed to catch the enemy off guard.

The 13th and 14th passed in comparative quiet; but early on the 15th a strong force advanced from Delhi against the Metcalfe House piquet, with the object of turning our left flank, but it was driven back with considerable loss.

The 13th and 14th went by relatively quietly; but early on the 15th, a large group moved out from Delhi toward the Metcalfe House post, aiming to outflank us on the left, but they were pushed back with significant losses.

Hard Fighting On the 17th we were attacked from almost every direction—a manœuvre intended to prevent our observing a battery which was being constructed close to an Idgah,15 situated on a hill to our right,[Page 93] from which to enfilade our position on the Ridge. As it was very important to prevent the completion of this battery, Barnard ordered it to be attacked by two small columns, one commanded by Tombs, of the Bengal Horse Artillery, the other by Reid. Tombs, with 400 of the 60th Rifles and 1st Bengal Fusiliers, 30 of the Guides Cavalry, 20 Sappers and Miners, and his own troop of Horse Artillery, moved towards the enemy's left, while Reid, with four companies of the 60th and some of his own Gurkhas, advanced through Kishenganj against their right. Tombs drove the rebels through a succession of gardens till they reached the Idgah, where they made an obstinate but unavailing resistance. The gates of the mosque were blown open, and thirty-nine of its defenders were killed. Tombs himself was slightly wounded, and had two horses killed, making five which had been shot under this gallant soldier since the commencement of the campaign. Reid's attack was equally successful. He completely destroyed the battery, and inflicted heavy loss on the enemy.

Tough Struggle On the 17th, we were attacked from nearly every direction—a tactic meant to stop us from seeing a battery that was being built near an Idgah,15 located on a hill to our right,[Page 93] which would target our position on the Ridge. Since it was crucial to prevent the completion of this battery, Barnard ordered an assault by two small groups, one led by Tombs of the Bengal Horse Artillery, and the other by Reid. Tombs, accompanied by 400 troops from the 60th Rifles and 1st Bengal Fusiliers, 30 Guides Cavalry, 20 Sappers and Miners, and his own unit of Horse Artillery, moved toward the enemy's left flank, while Reid, with four companies of the 60th and some of his Gurkhas, advanced through Kishenganj against their right. Tombs pushed the rebels through a series of gardens until they reached the Idgah, where they put up a stubborn but ultimately futile fight. The mosque gates were blown open, and thirty-nine of its defenders were killed. Tombs himself suffered a slight wound and lost two horses, bringing the total to five that had been shot under this brave soldier since the start of the campaign. Reid's attack was just as successful. He completely destroyed the battery and inflicted significant losses on the enemy.

The Besiegers Besieged The next day but one the rebels issued from the city in great force, and threatened nearly every part of our position. The fighting was severe throughout the afternoon, the piquets having again and again to be reinforced. Towards evening, while nearly all the Infantry were thus engaged, a large party of the insurgents, passing unperceived through the suburbs and gardens on our right, reappeared about a mile and a half to our rear. Very few troops were left in camp, and all Hope Grant, who was in command at the time, could collect was four or five squadrons of Cavalry and twelve guns. He found the enemy in a strong position, against which his light guns could make but little impression, while their Artillery and well-placed Infantry did us considerable damage. Tombs's troop especially suffered, and at one time his guns were in imminent danger of being captured. Just at this moment some of the Guides Cavalry rode up. 'Daly, if you do not charge,' called out Tombs, 'my guns are taken.' Daly spurred into the bushes, followed by about a dozen of his gallant Guides. He returned with a bullet through his shoulder, but the momentary diversion saved the guns.16

The Surrounders Surrounded The day after next, the rebels came out of the city in large numbers and threatened almost every part of our position. The fighting was intense all afternoon, with the pickets needing reinforcement time and again. As evening approached, while nearly all the Infantry were engaged in combat, a large group of insurgents quietly moved through the suburbs and gardens on our right and appeared about a mile and a half behind us. Very few troops remained in camp, and all Hope Grant, who was in charge at the time, could gather was four or five squadrons of Cavalry and twelve guns. He found the enemy in a strong position, which his light guns could barely impact, while their Artillery and well-placed Infantry caused us significant damage. Tombs's troop, in particular, suffered greatly, and at one point, his guns were at serious risk of being captured. Just then, some of the Guides Cavalry arrived. 'Daly, if you don't charge,' Tombs shouted, 'my guns are gone.' Daly rushed into the bushes, followed by about a dozen of his brave Guides. He came back with a bullet in his shoulder, but the brief distraction saved the guns.16

As long as it was light the steady fire of the Artillery and the dashing charges of the Cavalry kept the rebels in check; but in the dusk of the evening their superior numbers told: they very nearly succeeded in turning our flank, and for some time the guns were again in great jeopardy; the 9th Lancers and Guides, bent on saving them at all hazards, charged the enemy; but, with a ditch and houses on each side, their action was paralyzed, and their loss severe. All was now in confusion, the disorder increasing as night advanced, when a small body of Infantry (about 300 of the 60th Rifles) came up, dashed forward, and,[Page 94] cutting a lane through the rebels, rescued the guns.17

As long as it was light, the constant fire from the artillery and the bold charges of the cavalry kept the rebels at bay. But as evening fell, their greater numbers made a difference: they almost succeeded in flanking us, putting the guns in serious danger again. The 9th Lancers and the Guides, determined to protect them at all costs, charged the enemy. However, with a ditch and houses blocking their path, their efforts were stifled, and they suffered heavy losses. Chaos ensued as night wore on, but then a small group of infantry (about 300 from the 60th Rifles) arrived, surged forward, and carved a path through the rebels, saving the guns.17

Our loss in this affair amounted to 3 officers and 17 men killed, and 7 officers and 70 men wounded. Among the latter was Hope Grant, who had his horse shot under him in a charge, and was saved by the devotion of two men of his own regiment (the 9th Lancers) and a Mahomedan sowar of the 4th Irregular Cavalry.

Our losses in this situation were 3 officers and 17 men killed, along with 7 officers and 70 men wounded. Among the wounded was Hope Grant, who had his horse shot out from under him during a charge, and was rescued by the bravery of two men from his own regiment (the 9th Lancers) and a Mahomedan soldier from the 4th Irregular Cavalry.

It was nearly midnight before the troops returned to camp. The enemy had been frustrated in their attempt to force our rear, but they had not been driven back; we had, indeed, been only just able to hold our own. The result of the day added considerably to the anxiety of the Commander. He saw that the rebels had discovered our weak point, and that if they managed to establish themselves in our rear, our communication with the Punjab would be cut off, our small force would be invested, and without supplies and reinforcements it would be impossible to maintain our position against the daily increasing strength of the insurgents. Great was the despondency in camp when the result of the day's fighting was known; but the fine spirit which animated the force throughout the siege soon asserted itself, and our men cheerfully looked forward to the next encounter with the enemy.

It was almost midnight when the troops got back to camp. The enemy had failed in their attempt to attack our rear, but they weren't pushed back; we had barely managed to hold our position. The outcome of the day added significantly to the Commander’s worries. He realized that the rebels had found our weak spot, and if they managed to position themselves behind us, it would cut off our connection to the Punjab. Our small force would be surrounded, and without supplies and reinforcements, it would be impossible to maintain our position against the ever-increasing strength of the insurgents. Morale was very low in the camp when the results of the day’s battle were revealed, but the strong spirit that kept the force motivated throughout the siege soon prevailed, and our men optimistically looked forward to the next clash with the enemy.

At daybreak Grant was again upon the ground, but found it abandoned. Many dead men and horses were lying about, and a 9-pounder gun, left by the enemy, was brought into camp.

At sunrise, Grant was back on the field but discovered it was deserted. Many dead soldiers and horses were scattered around, and a 9-pounder gun that the enemy had left behind was brought into camp.

The troops had scarcely got back, hoping for a little rest, when the enemy again resumed their attack on the rear, and opened fire at so short a distance that their shot came right through the camp. But on this occasion they made no stand, and retreated as soon as our troops showed themselves.

The troops had barely returned, hoping for some rest, when the enemy attacked again from behind, firing at such close range that their shots went right through the camp. However, this time they didn’t hold their ground and retreated as soon as our troops appeared.

In order to strengthen our position in rear a battery of two 18-pounders was constructed, supported by Cavalry and Infantry piquets, and most of the bridges over the drain from the Najafgarh jhil were destroyed.

To strengthen our position in the rear, we built a battery of two 18-pounders, supported by cavalry and infantry pickets, and most of the bridges over the drain from the Najafgarh jhil were destroyed.

For two days after the events I have just described the hard-worked little body of troops had comparative rest, but our spies informed us that the enemy were being largely reinforced, and that we might expect to be hotly attacked on the 23rd.

For two days after the events I’ve just described, the exhausted little group of soldiers got some much-needed rest, but our spies informed us that the enemy was being heavily reinforced, and we could expect a fierce attack on the 23rd.

The Centenary of Plassy For some time an idea had been prevalent amongst the Natives that the English raj was not destined to survive its hundredth year, and that the centenary of Clive's victory on the field of Plassy on the 23rd June, 1757, would see its downfall. This idea was strengthened in the Native mind by the fact that the 23rd June, 1857, was a date propitious alike for Hindus and Mahomedans; the Jattsa, a Hindu religious festival, was to take place on that day, and there was also to be a new moon, which the Mahomedans looked upon as a lucky omen; the[Page 95] astrologers, therefore, declared that the stars in their courses would fight for the mutineers. If, however, prophecies and omens alike appeared to favour the rebels, fortune was not altogether unkind to us, for on the 22nd a reinforcement reached Rhai, twenty-two miles from Delhi, consisting of six Horse Artillery guns, a small party of British Infantry, a squadron of the 2nd Punjab Cavalry, and the Head-Quarters of the 4th Sikhs, numbering in all about 850 men.

The Plassey Centenary For a while, there was a belief among the locals that the English rule wouldn’t last past its hundredth year, and that the centenary of Clive's victory at the Battle of Plassy on June 23, 1757, would mark its end. This belief was reinforced in the minds of the people by the fact that June 23, 1857, was a significant date for both Hindus and Muslims; it was the day of Jattsa, a Hindu religious festival, and it also coincided with a new moon, which Muslims viewed as a good sign. The astrologers claimed that the stars were aligned to support the rebels. However, while prophecies and omens seemed to favor the rebels, luck wasn’t entirely against us, as on the 22nd a reinforcement arrived in Rhai, twenty-two miles from Delhi, consisting of six Horse Artillery guns, a small group of British Infantry, a squadron of the 2nd Punjab Cavalry, and the headquarters of the 4th Sikhs, totaling about 850 men.

A staff officer was sent at once to Rhai to hurry on the force and tell them how urgently their assistance was required in camp; this appeal was responded to with the utmost alacrity, and early the next evening the welcome reinforcement made its appearance.

A staff officer was sent immediately to Rhai to speed up the troops and inform them how urgently their help was needed in the camp; this request was answered with great enthusiasm, and early the next evening, the much-anticipated reinforcements arrived.

It had scarcely arrived before the Artillery on the city walls opened fire, while guns, which had been brought into the suburbs, enfiladed our right and concentrated a heavy fire on Hindu Rao's house which the few guns we had in position were quite unable to silence. The rebel Infantry occupied Kishenganj and Sabzi Mandi in force, and threatened to advance on the Mound battery, while a constant musketry fire was maintained upon the Ridge. Reid reported that the mutineers made a desperate attack at about twelve o'clock, and that no men could have fought better; they charged the Rifles, the Guides, and the Gurkhas again and again. The cannonade raged fast and furious, and at one time it seemed as though the day must be lost. Thousands were brought against a mere handful of men; but Reid knew the importance of his position, and was determined at all hazards to hold it until reinforcements arrived.18

It had barely arrived before the artillery on the city walls started firing, while guns that had been brought into the suburbs targeted our right and unleashed heavy fire on Hindu Rao's house, which the few guns we had couldn’t silence. The rebel infantry took control of Kishenganj and Sabzi Mandi and threatened to advance on the Mound battery, while a constant musket fire continued on the Ridge. Reid reported that the mutineers launched a desperate attack around noon, and no soldiers could have fought harder; they charged the Rifles, the Guides, and the Gurkhas repeatedly. The cannon fire was intense, and at one point, it felt like the day was going to be lost. Thousands were against just a small group of men; but Reid understood the significance of his position and was determined to hold it until reinforcements arrived.18

The mutineers were checked, but not driven off. The first attempt from the Mound battery failed to repulse them, and Colonel Welchman, who was in command, was dangerously wounded. Every available man in camp had been engaged, and as a last resource the 2nd Fusiliers and the 4th Sikhs, who had just arrived from Rhai, were sent to the front. Showers was placed in command, and shortly before the day closed he succeeded in forcing the enemy to retire. So the anniversary of Plassy saw us, though hardly pressed, undefeated, and the enemy's hopes unfulfilled. They lost over 1,000 men. Our casualties were 1 officer and 38 men killed, and 3 officers and 118 men wounded. The heat all the while was terrific, and several of our men were knocked over by the sun.

The mutineers were held back, but not completely driven off. The first attempt from the Mound battery failed to push them back, and Colonel Welchman, who was in charge, was seriously injured. Every available person in camp was involved, and as a final option, the 2nd Fusiliers and the 4th Sikhs, who had just arrived from Rhai, were sent to the front. Showers was put in charge, and just before the day ended, he managed to force the enemy to retreat. So, on the anniversary of Plassy, we remained undefeated, despite being under pressure, and the enemy's hopes were dashed. They lost over 1,000 men. Our casualties included 1 officer and 38 men killed, along with 3 officers and 118 men wounded. The heat was intense the entire time, and several of our men were taken down by the sun.

The lesson taught us by this severe fighting was the importance of occupying the Sabzi Mandi, and thus preventing the enemy from approaching too close to the camp and enfilading the Ridge. This entailed more constant duty upon our already overworked soldiers, but Barnard felt that it would not do to run the risk of another such struggle.

The lesson we learned from this intense fighting was how crucial it was to take control of Sabzi Mandi to stop the enemy from getting too close to the camp and attacking the Ridge from the sides. This meant even more constant duty for our already exhausted soldiers, but Barnard believed we couldn't afford to face another fight like that.

A piquet of 180 Europeans was accordingly placed in the Sabzi Mandi,[Page 96] part in a serai on one side of the Grand Trunk Road, and the rest in a Hindu temple on the opposite side. These posts were connected by a line of breastworks with the Hindu Rao piquets, and added considerably to the strength of our position.

A group of 180 Europeans was set up in the Sabzi Mandi,[Page 96] part of them in a rest house on one side of the Grand Trunk Road, and the rest in a Hindu temple on the other side. These positions were linked by a line of barricades with the Hindu Rao posts, which significantly boosted the strength of our position.

After the 23rd there were real or threatened attacks daily; but we were left fairly undisturbed until the 27th June, when the Metcalfe and Sabzi Mandi piquets were assaulted, and also the batteries on the Ridge. These attempts were defeated without any very great loss, only 13 of our men being killed, and 1 officer and 48 men wounded.

After the 23rd, there were actual or threatened attacks every day; however, we were mostly left alone until June 27th, when the Metcalfe and Sabzi Mandi posts were attacked, along with the batteries on the Ridge. These attacks were repelled with relatively minor losses, with only 13 of our men killed, and 1 officer and 48 men wounded.






CHAPTER XIV.

1857

I will now continue my story from the 29th June, the morning after my arrival in camp, when I awoke full of excitement, and so eager to hear all my old friend Norman could tell me, that I am afraid he must have been considerably bored with my questions.

I will now continue my story from June 29th, the morning after I arrived at camp, when I woke up full of excitement and so eager to hear everything my old friend Norman could share that I’m afraid I must have bored him with my questions.

It is impossible for me to describe my pleasure at finding myself a member of a force which had already gained imperishable fame. I longed to meet and know the men whose names were in everyone's mouth. The hero of the day was Harry Tombs, of the Bengal Horse Artillery, an unusually handsome man and a thorough soldier. His gallantry in the attack on the Idgah, and wherever he had been engaged, was the general talk of the camp. I had always heard of Tombs as one of the best officers in the regiment, and it was with feelings of respectful admiration that I made his acquaintance a few days later.

It’s hard for me to express how delighted I was to be part of a group that had already earned lasting fame. I was eager to meet and get to know the men whose names everyone was talking about. The standout of the day was Harry Tombs from the Bengal Horse Artillery, a strikingly handsome man and a true soldier. His bravery during the attack on the Idgah, as well as in all his engagements, was the talk of the camp. I had always heard that Tombs was one of the best officers in the regiment, and I felt a sense of respectful admiration when I finally met him a few days later.

Jemmy Hills,1 one of the subalterns in Tombs's troop, was an old Addiscombe friend of mine; he delighted in talking of his Commander, in dilating on his merits as a soldier and his skill in handling each arm of the service. As a cool, bold leader of men Tombs was unsurpassed: no fire, however hot, and no crisis, however unexpected, could take him by surprise; he grasped the situation in a moment, and issued his orders without hesitation, inspiring all ranks with confidence in his power and capacity. He was somewhat of a martinet, and was more feared than liked by his men until they realized what a grand leader he was, when they gave him their entire confidence, and were ready to follow him anywhere and everywhere.

Jemmy Hills,1 one of the junior officers in Tombs's troop, was an old friend of mine from Addiscombe; he loved to talk about his Commander, praising his skills as a soldier and his ability to manage every branch of the military. As a calm, courageous leader, Tombs was unmatched: no fire was too intense, and no crisis too surprising for him; he assessed the situation instantly and gave orders without hesitation, instilling confidence in everyone about his capabilities. He could be a bit of a strict disciplinarian, and his men initially feared him more than they liked him until they recognized what an excellent leader he was. After that, they placed their full trust in him and were willing to follow him anywhere.



Lieutenant-General Sir James Hills-Johnes, V.C., G.C.B.

LIEUTENANT-GENERAL SIR JAMES HILLS-JOHNES, V.C., G.C.B.

From
a Photograph by Messrs. Bourne and Shepherd

Lieutenant-General Sir James Hills-Johnes, V.C., G.C.B.

LIEUTENANT-GENERAL SIR JAMES HILLS-JOHNES, V.C., G.C.B.

From
a Photograph by Bourne and Shepherd



Another very distinguished officer of my regiment, whom I now met for the first time, and for whom I ever afterwards entertained the warmest regard, was Edwin Johnson,2 Assistant-Adjutant-General of the Bengal Artillery, in which capacity he had accompanied Brigadier[Page 97] Wilson from Meerut. He had a peculiarly bright intellect—somewhat caustic, but always clever and amusing. He was a delightful companion, and invariably gained the confidence of those with whom he worked.

Another very distinguished officer in my regiment, whom I met for the first time and for whom I always had the highest regard, was Edwin Johnson, the Assistant-Adjutant-General of the Bengal Artillery. He had joined Brigadier[Page 97] Wilson from Meerut in this role. He had a uniquely sharp mind—somewhat sarcastic, but always smart and entertaining. He was a great companion and always earned the trust of those he worked with.

A New Appointment Johnson was the first person on whom I called to report my arrival and to find out with which troop or battery I was to do duty. He told me that the Quartermaster-General wished to keep me in his department. So, after visiting General Chamberlain,3 who I knew would be anxious to hear all that had been going on in the Movable Column since his departure, I made my way to Colonel Becher, whom I found suffering from the severe wound he had received a few days before, and asked him what was to be my fate. He replied that the question had been raised of appointing an officer to help the Assistant-Adjutant-General of the Delhi Field Force, who found it impossible to carry on the daily increasing work single-handed, and that Chamberlain had thought of me for this post. Had Chamberlain's wish been carried out my career might have been quite changed, but while he was discussing the question with Sir Henry Barnard, Donald Stewart unexpectedly arrived in camp.

A New Job Offer Johnson was the first person I went to see when I arrived, to report in and find out which troop or battery I would be assigned to. He told me that the Quartermaster-General wanted to keep me in his department. After visiting General Chamberlain,3 who I knew would want to hear everything that had happened in the Movable Column since he left, I headed over to Colonel Becher. I found him struggling with the serious wound he had sustained a few days earlier and asked him what my fate would be. He said there was a discussion about appointing an officer to assist the Assistant-Adjutant-General of the Delhi Field Force, who was finding it impossible to manage the ever-increasing workload alone, and that Chamberlain had thought of me for this position. If Chamberlain's suggestion had been acted on, my career could have taken a very different turn, but just as he was talking about it with Sir Henry Barnard, Donald Stewart unexpectedly arrived in camp.

I was waiting outside Sir Henry Barnard's tent, anxious to hear what decision had been come to, when two men rode up, both looking greatly fatigued and half starved; one of them being Stewart. He told me they had had a most adventurous ride; but before waiting to hear his story,4 I asked Norman to suggest Stewart for the new appointment—a case of one word for Stewart and two for myself, I am afraid, for I had set my heart on returning to the Quartermaster-General's department. And so it was settled, to our mutual satisfaction, Stewart becoming the D.A.A.G. of the Delhi Field Force, and I the D.A.Q.M.G. with the Artillery.

I was waiting outside Sir Henry Barnard's tent, anxious to hear what decision had been made when two men rode up, both looking extremely worn out and half-starved; one of them was Stewart. He told me they had had a really adventurous ride, but before I could hear his story,4 I asked Norman to recommend Stewart for the new position—a case of one word for Stewart and two for myself, I'm afraid, because I was determined to return to the Quartermaster-General's department. And so it was agreed, to our mutual satisfaction, with Stewart becoming the D.A.A.G. of the Delhi Field Force, and me the D.A.Q.M.G. with the Artillery.



FIELD-MARSHAL SIR DONALD MARTIN STEWART, BART., G.C.B., G.C.S.I., C.I.E.

FIELD-MARSHAL SIR DONALD MARTIN STEWART, BART.,
G.C.B., G.C.S.I., C.I.E.


From
a photograph by Messrs. Elliot and Fry.

FIELD-MARSHAL SIR DONALD MARTIN STEWART, BART., G.C.B., G.C.S.I., C.I.E.

FIELD-MARSHAL SIR DONALD MARTIN STEWART, BART.,
G.C.B., G.C.S.I., C.I.E.


From a photo by Elliot and Fry.








CHAPTER XV.

1857

That my readers may better understand our position at the time I joined the Delhi Field Force, I might, I think, quote with advantage from a letter1 written the very day of my arrival by General Barnard to Sir John Lawrence, in which he describes the difficulties of the situation, hitherto met by the troops with the most determined courage and endurance, but to which no end could be seen. When he took over the command, he wrote, he was expected to be able to silence at[Page 98] once the fire from the Mori and Kashmir bastions, and then to bring his heavy guns into play on the walls and open a way into the city, after which, it was supposed, all would be plain sailing. But this programme, so plausible in theory, was absolutely impossible to put into practice. In spite of every effort on our part, not a single one of the enemy's guns was silenced; they had four to our one, while the distance from the Ridge to the city walls was too great to allow of our comparatively light guns making any impression on them. Under these circumstances the only thing to be done was to construct batteries nearer to the city, but before these could be begun, entrenching tools, sandbags, and other necessary materials, of which the Engineers were almost entirely destitute, had to be collected. The troops were being worn out by constant sanguinary combats, and the attacks to which they were exposed required every soul in camp to repel them. It was never certain where the enemy intended to strike, and it was only by the most constant vigilance that their intentions could be ascertained, and the men were being incessantly withdrawn during the scorching heat of the day from one place to another. General Barnard concluded as follows: 'You may ask why we engage in these constant combats. The reason simply is that when attacked we must defend ourselves, and that to secure our camp, our hospitals, our stores, etc., every living being has to be employed. The whole thing is too gigantic for the force brought against it.'

To help my readers understand our situation when I joined the Delhi Field Force, I think it’s useful to quote from a letter1 written on the day I arrived by General Barnard to Sir John Lawrence. In it, he describes the challenges we faced, which the troops had been meeting with remarkable courage and endurance, but there seemed to be no end in sight. When he took command, he wrote that he was expected to quickly silence the enemy fire from the Mori and Kashmir bastions, and then use our heavy guns against the walls to create a path into the city, after which everything was expected to go smoothly. However, this plan, which sounded good in theory, turned out to be completely impractical. Despite our best efforts, none of the enemy's guns were silenced; they had four guns for every one of ours, and the distance from the Ridge to the city walls was too far for our relatively light guns to make any impact. Given these circumstances, the only option was to build batteries closer to the city, but before that could start, we needed to gather entrenching tools, sandbags, and other essential materials, which the Engineers were almost completely lacking. The troops were being exhausted by continuous bloody battles, and the attacks they faced required every single person in camp to defend against them. It was never clear where the enemy would strike next, and only through constant vigilance could we figure out their plans. The men were repeatedly moved around during the sweltering heat of the day from one location to another. General Barnard summed it up this way: 'You may wonder why we engage in these ongoing fights. The reason is simple: when attacked, we must defend ourselves, and to protect our camp, hospitals, stores, etc., everyone must be involved. The whole situation is far too massive for the force we have against it.'

Reinforcements Begin to Arrive Soon after Barnard wrote these lines reinforcements began to arrive, and our position was gradually improved. By the 3rd July the following troops had reached Delhi: four Horse Artillery guns (two British and two Native), a detachment of European Foot Artillery, the Head-Quarters of Her Majesty's 8th and 61st Foot, one squadron of the 5th Punjab Cavalry, the 1st Punjab Infantry, and some newly-raised Sikh Sappers and Artillery. The strength of the force was thus increased to nearly 6,600 men of all arms. The enemy's reinforcements, however, were out of all proportion to ours—mutineers from Jullundur, Nasirabad, Nimach, Kotah, Gwalior, Jhansi, and Rohilkand arrived about this time. Those from Rohilkand crossed by the bridge of boats and entered the city by the Calcutta gate; we could distinctly see them from the Ridge, marching in perfect formation, with their bands playing and colours flying. Indeed, throughout the siege the enemy's numbers were constantly being increased, while they had a practically unlimited number of guns, and the well-stocked magazine furnished them with an inexhaustible supply of ammunition.

Reinforcements Start to Arrive Soon after Barnard wrote these lines, reinforcements started to arrive, and our position gradually improved. By July 3rd, the following troops had reached Delhi: four Horse Artillery guns (two British and two Native), a detachment of European Foot Artillery, the Headquarters of Her Majesty's 8th and 61st Foot, one squadron of the 5th Punjab Cavalry, the 1st Punjab Infantry, and some newly-raised Sikh Sappers and Artillery. This increased the strength of our force to nearly 6,600 men across all units. However, the enemy's reinforcements were disproportionately larger than ours—mutineers from Jullundur, Nasirabad, Nimach, Kotah, Gwalior, Jhansi, and Rohilkand arrived around this time. Those from Rohilkand crossed via the bridge of boats and entered the city through the Calcutta gate; we could clearly see them from the Ridge, marching in perfect formation, with their bands playing and colors flying. Indeed, throughout the siege, the enemy's numbers were consistently growing, while they had an almost unlimited number of guns and a well-stocked magazine that provided them with a relentless supply of ammunition.

I found myself under fire for the first time on the 30th June, when an attack was made on the Sabzi Mandi piquet and Hindu Rao's house. Eight of our men were killed and thirty wounded; amongst the latter were Yorke and Packe, both attached to the 4th Sikhs. It appeared certain that these two officers were wounded by the Hindustanis of[Page 99] their own regiment; Packe, who was shot through the ankle, being so close up to the breastwork that it was scarcely possible for the bullet which hit him to have come from the front. Consequently all the Hindustanis in the 4th Sikhs were disarmed and turned out of camp, as it was manifestly undesirable to have any but the most loyal soldiers in our ranks.

I found myself under fire for the first time on June 30th when an attack was launched on the Sabzi Mandi post and Hindu Rao's house. Eight of our men were killed, and thirty were wounded; among the wounded were Yorke and Packe, both from the 4th Sikhs. It seemed clear that these two officers were injured by their fellow Hindustanis in their own regiment; Packe, who was shot in the ankle, was so close to the breastwork that it was almost impossible for the bullet that hit him to have come from the front. As a result, all the Hindustanis in the 4th Sikhs were disarmed and expelled from the camp, since it was clearly undesirable to have anyone but the most loyal soldiers in our ranks.

In the afternoon of the same day I was ordered to accompany a column under Brigadier Showers, sent on reconnoitring duty towards the Idgah, where we heard that the enemy were again constructing a battery. It had not been commenced, but the intention to build one was evident, for we found a number of entrenching tools, and a quantity of sandbags.

In the afternoon of the same day, I was instructed to join a group led by Brigadier Showers, sent on a scouting mission towards the Idgah, where we learned that the enemy was once again planning to build a battery. It hadn't started yet, but it was clear they intended to build one, as we discovered several digging tools and a stockpile of sandbags.

An Assault Again Proposed The question of attempting to take the city by a coup de main was now again discussed. It was urged that our numbers, already small, were being daily reduced by casualties and sickness; that the want of proper equipment rendered it impossible to undertake regular siege operations; and that a rising in the Punjab was imminent. The chances of success were certainly more favourable than they were on the 13th June. The force to be employed was stronger; all concerned—the staff, commanders, and troops—were fully apprised of what was intended, and of the part they would have to play; above all, the details of the scheme, which was drawn up on much the same lines as the former one, were carefully worked out by Lieutenant Alex. Taylor,2 who had recently come into camp, and was acting temporarily as Commanding Engineer.

Another Attack Suggested The idea of trying to take the city with a surprise attack was discussed again. It was pointed out that our numbers, already small, were shrinking daily due to injuries and illness; that the lack of proper equipment made it impossible to carry out regular siege operations; and that a revolt in the Punjab was on the horizon. The chances of success were certainly better than they had been on June 13th. The force to be used was stronger; everyone involved—the staff, commanders, and troops—was fully aware of what was intended and their roles in it; above all, the details of the plan, which was designed similarly to the previous one, were carefully developed by Lieutenant Alex. Taylor,2 who had recently joined the camp and was temporarily acting as Commanding Engineer.

Of the supreme importance of regaining possession of Delhi there can be no doubt whatever. But nevertheless the undertaking would, at that time, have been a most desperate one, and only to be justified by the critical position in which we were placed. In spite of the late reinforcements, we were a mere handful compared with the thousands within the walls. Success, therefore, depended on the completeness of the surprise; and, as we could make no movement without its being perceived by the enemy, surprise was impossible. Another strong reason against assaulting at that time was the doubtful attitude of some of the Hindustani Cavalry still with us; the whole of the effective troops, too, would have to be employed, and the sick and wounded—a large number—left to the mercy of the Native followers.

There’s no question about how crucial it was to regain control of Delhi. However, at that moment, the effort would have been incredibly risky and only justifiable given the critical situation we were in. Despite the recent reinforcements, we were just a small group compared to the thousands inside the walls. Therefore, our success relied entirely on the element of surprise, but since any movement we made would be visible to the enemy, surprise was not an option. Another significant reason against launching an attack at that time was the uncertain loyalty of some of the Hindustani Cavalry still with us; we would have to deploy all available troops, leaving the sick and wounded—a large number—at the mercy of the local supporters.

General Barnard carefully weighed all the arguments for and against the proposal, and at last reluctantly consented to the attack being made, but the discovery of a conspiracy amongst the Natives in camp caused it to be countermanded—a great disappointment to many, and there was much cavilling and discontent on the part of some, who could not have sufficiently appreciated the difficulties and risks of the[Page 100] undertaking, or the disastrous consequences of a repulse.

General Barnard carefully considered all the arguments for and against the proposal, and finally, with some hesitation, agreed to go ahead with the attack. However, the discovery of a conspiracy among the Natives in camp led to the plan being called off—a big disappointment for many. This caused a lot of complaints and dissatisfaction from some who likely didn't fully grasp the challenges and dangers of the undertaking, or the disastrous outcomes of a failure.

On the morning of the day on which it had been arranged that the assault should be made, the staff at Delhi received a most valuable addition in the person of Lieutenant-Colonel Baird-Smith, of the Bengal Engineers. Summoned from Rurki to take the place of the Chief Engineer, whose health had broken down, Baird-Smith was within sixty miles of Delhi on the 2nd July, when news of the intended movement reached him. He started at once, and arrived in camp early on the 3rd, but only to find that the assault had been postponed.

On the morning of the day planned for the attack, the Delhi staff got a significant boost with the arrival of Lieutenant-Colonel Baird-Smith from the Bengal Engineers. He was called from Rurki to fill in for the Chief Engineer, who was unwell. Baird-Smith was just sixty miles from Delhi on July 2nd when he heard about the upcoming operation. He set out immediately and got to camp early on the 3rd, only to learn that the assault had been delayed.

The Attack on Alipur On the afternoon of the 3rd July the enemy came out in force (5,000 or 6,000 strong with several guns), and occupied the suburbs to our right. The troops were turned out, but instead of attacking us and returning to the city as usual when it became dark, the rebels moved off in the direction of Alipur, where we had an outpost, which was held by Younghusband's squadron of the 5th Punjab Cavalry. They reached Alipur about midnight, and had they attacked the serai at once with Infantry, Younghusband and his men could hardly have escaped, but fortunately they opened upon it with Artillery. This gave the sowars time to mount and fall back on Rhai, the next post, ten miles to the rear, which was garrisoned by the friendly troops of the Jhind Raja. The sound of the guns being heard in camp, a column under the command of Major Coke was got ready to pursue should the insurgents push up the Trunk Road, or to cut them off should they try to make their way back to the city. Besides his own corps (the 1st Punjab Infantry), Coke was given a wing of the 61st Foot, six Horse and six Field Artillery guns, one squadron of the Carabineers, one squadron of the 9th Lancers, and the Guides Cavalry; in all about 800 Infantry, 300 Cavalry, and 12 guns, and I was sent with him as staff officer.

The Alipur Attack On the afternoon of July 3rd, the enemy emerged in full force (around 5,000 or 6,000 strong with several guns) and took over the suburbs on our right. Our troops were mobilized, but instead of launching an attack and retreating to the city as they typically did at night, the rebels headed towards Alipur, where we had an outpost held by Younghusband's squadron from the 5th Punjab Cavalry. They arrived in Alipur around midnight, and if they had attacked the serai right away with Infantry, Younghusband and his men would have likely been trapped. Luckily, they chose to bombard it with Artillery instead, giving the sowars time to mount up and retreat to Rhai, the next post, ten miles back, which was manned by the friendly troops of the Jhind Raja. Hearing the sound of gunfire in camp, Major Coke prepared a column to chase the insurgents if they advanced up the Trunk Road, or to intercept them if they tried to go back to the city. Along with his own unit (the 1st Punjab Infantry), Coke was assigned a wing of the 61st Foot, six Horse and six Field Artillery guns, one squadron of the Carabineers, one squadron of the 9th Lancers, and the Guides Cavalry; in total about 800 Infantry, 300 Cavalry, and 12 guns, and I was sent with him as a staff officer.

It was generally believed that the enemy were on the look-out for treasure coming from the Punjab, which was known to be under the charge of a Native guard, and we quite expected to have a long chase after them; we were, therefore, surprised to see them, as day broke, crossing our front on their way back to Delhi.

It was generally thought that the enemy was on the lookout for treasure coming from Punjab, which was known to be under the protection of a local guard, and we fully expected to have a long pursuit after them; we were, therefore, surprised to see them, as dawn broke, crossing our front on their way back to Delhi.

The rebels were moving on fairly high ground, but between us and them was a swamp rendered almost impassable by recent heavy rain. It extended a considerable distance on either side, and as there was no other way of getting at the rapidly retreating foe, it had to be crossed. Our Artillery opened fire, and Coke advanced with the Cavalry and Infantry. The swamp proved to be very difficult; in it men and horses floundered hopelessly, and before we were clear the enemy had got away with their guns; they were obliged, however, to leave behind all the plunder taken from Alipur, and a considerable quantity of ammunition. My share of the loot was a nice-looking, white, country-bred pony, which I found tied to a tree. I promptly annexed it, glad to save my own horse, and I congratulated myself on having made a[Page 101] most useful addition to my small stud. It did not, however, remain long in my possession, for a few days afterwards it was claimed by its rightful owner, Lieutenant Younghusband.

The rebels were moving on fairly high ground, but between us and them was a swamp made nearly impossible to cross due to the recent heavy rain. It stretched a long way on both sides, and since there was no other way to reach the quickly retreating enemy, we had to get through it. Our artillery started firing, and Coke led the cavalry and infantry forward. The swamp turned out to be extremely challenging; both men and horses struggled mightily, and by the time we got through, the enemy had escaped with their artillery. However, they had to leave behind all the loot taken from Alipur, along with a good amount of ammunition. I ended up getting a nice-looking, white pony that was raised locally, which I found tied to a tree. I quickly claimed it, happy to protect my own horse, and I felt proud of having made a[Page 101]great addition to my small group of horses. Unfortunately, it didn’t stay with me for long because a few days later, Lieutenant Younghusband came to claim it as his own.

The heat was great, and as the soldiers were much distressed, having been under arms for ten hours, Coke halted the Infantry portion on the banks of the Western Jumna Canal instead of returning direct to camp. While we were enjoying a much-needed rest we were unexpectedly attacked by some fresh troops (including about 800 Cavalry) which had hurried out from the city. I was startled from a sound sleep by heavy firing, and saw the enemy advancing within a few hundred yards of our halting-place. Coke formed his Infantry along the bank of the canal, and sent a mounted officer to recall the Cavalry and Artillery. The enemy came on very boldly at first, but the steady fire of our Infantry kept them at bay, and when the guns arrived we had no difficulty in driving them off. They left 80 dead on the field; we had on our side 3 killed and 23 wounded, besides losing several British soldiers from sunstroke.

The heat was intense, and the soldiers were really suffering after being on duty for ten hours. Instead of heading straight back to camp, Coke stopped the Infantry along the banks of the Western Jumna Canal to take a break. While we were finally getting some much-needed rest, we were unexpectedly attacked by fresh troops (including about 800 Cavalry) that had rushed out from the city. I woke up from a deep sleep to the sound of gunfire and saw the enemy advancing just a few hundred yards from where we were. Coke lined up his Infantry along the canal bank and sent a mounted officer to call back the Cavalry and Artillery. The enemy initially came at us aggressively, but our Infantry’s steady fire kept them at bay, and when the guns arrived, we easily drove them off. They left 80 dead on the field; we had 3 killed and 23 wounded, in addition to losing several British soldiers to sunstroke.

Major Coke was much grieved by the loss in this engagement of a Native friend of his, a Chief of the Kohat border, by name Mir Mubarak Shah. He was a grand specimen of a frontier Khan,3 and on hearing that the 1st Punjab Infantry was ordered to Delhi expressed his determination to accompany it. He got together a troop of eighty of his own followers, and leaving Kohat on the 1st June, overtook Coke at Kurnal on the 27th, a distance of nearly 600 miles. A day or two afterwards Coke's men were approached by the Hindustanis of the 2nd Punjab Cavalry, and some Native officers of the 9th Irregulars, who tried to induce them to join in the rebellion. Advances were made in the first instance to Mir Mubarak Shah and Mir Jaffir, the Subadar-Major of the 1st Punjab Infantry, who at once informed Coke of what was going on. As soon as the regiment reached Delhi the matter was investigated, and the Native officers who had endeavoured to tamper with the men were identified, tried, and executed.

Major Coke was very upset by the loss of a Native friend, a Chief from the Kohat border named Mir Mubarak Shah, during this battle. He was a remarkable example of a frontier Khan, and upon hearing that the 1st Punjab Infantry was being deployed to Delhi, he decided to join them. He gathered a group of eighty of his followers and left Kohat on June 1st, catching up with Coke in Kurnal on the 27th, covering nearly 600 miles. A day or two later, Coke's men were approached by the Hindustanis of the 2nd Punjab Cavalry and some Native officers of the 9th Irregulars, who attempted to persuade them to join the rebellion. The first overtures were made to Mir Mubarak Shah and Mir Jaffir, the Subadar-Major of the 1st Punjab Infantry, who immediately informed Coke about what was happening. Once the regiment arrived in Delhi, the situation was investigated, and the Native officers who tried to sway the men were identified, tried, and executed.

Death of General Barnard About noon on the 5th July we heard the woeful tidings that General Barnard was seized with cholera. The army had never been free from that terrible scourge since the Commander-in-Chief fell a victim to it on the 26th May, and now it had attacked his successor, who was carried off after a few hours' illness. The feeling of sadness amongst the troops at the loss of their General was universal. Throughout the six trying weeks he had been in command of the force he had never spared himself. At work from morning till night in and about the trenches, he personally attended to every detail, and had won the respect and regard of all in camp.

Death of General Barnard Around noon on July 5th, we received the tragic news that General Barnard had contracted cholera. The army had been plagued by this horrible disease since the Commander-in-Chief succumbed to it on May 26th, and now it had taken his successor, who passed away just a few hours after falling ill. The sorrow among the troops over the loss of their General was widespread. Throughout the six challenging weeks he led the force, he had never held back. He worked tirelessly from morning until night in and around the trenches, personally overseeing every detail, and had earned the respect and admiration of everyone in camp.

Few Commanders were ever placed in a more difficult position than[Page 102] Barnard. He arrived at Umballa when the Native troops, to whose characteristics and peculiarities (as I have already remarked) he was a complete stranger, were thoroughly disaffected, and within a week of his taking over the command of the Sirhind division the Mutiny broke out. Without any previous knowledge of Indian warfare, he found himself in front of Delhi with a force altogether too weak to effect the object for which it was intended and without any of the appliances to ensure success; while those who did not realize the extreme risk involved never ceased clamouring at a delay which was unavoidable, and urging the General to undertake a task which was impossible.

Few commanders have ever been in a more challenging position than[Page 102] Barnard. He arrived in Umballa when the local troops, whose traits and quirks (as I've mentioned before) he completely didn't understand, were deeply discontented. Just a week after he took command of the Sirhind division, the Mutiny erupted. Lacking any prior knowledge of Indian warfare, he found himself facing Delhi with a force that was far too small to achieve the intended goals and without any tools to guarantee success. Meanwhile, those who failed to grasp the serious risks involved kept insisting on addressing delays that were unavoidable and pushed the General to take on a task that was impossible.

Barnard has been blamed, and not unjustly, for mistrusting his own judgment and for depending upon others for advice about matters on which an experienced Commander ought to have been the best able to decide. But every allowance must be made for the position he was so unexpectedly called upon to fill and the peculiar nature of his surroundings. Failing health, too, probably weakened the self-reliance which a man who had satisfactorily performed the duties of Chief of the Staff in the Crimea must at one time have possessed.

Barnard has been criticized, and not without reason, for doubting his own judgment and seeking advice from others on issues that an experienced Commander should have been able to handle best. However, we need to consider the unexpected role he was forced to take on and the unusual circumstances around him. His declining health likely also undermined the self-confidence that a man who had successfully served as Chief of the Staff in the Crimea must have once had.

General Reed Assumes Command On the death of Sir Henry Barnard, General Reed assumed command. He had joined the force on the morning of the action of Badli-ki-Serai, but though senior to Barnard, he was too much knocked up by the intense heat of the long journey from Peshawar to take part in the action, and he had allowed Barnard to continue in command.

Gen. Reed Takes Command After Sir Henry Barnard passed away, General Reed took command. He had joined the unit on the morning of the battle at Badli-ki-Serai, but even though he outranked Barnard, he was too exhausted from the extreme heat of the long trip from Peshawar to participate in the battle, and he let Barnard remain in charge.

For the next few days we had a comparatively quiet time, of which advantage was taken to render our position more secure towards the rear. The secrecy and rapidity with which the enemy had made their way to Alipur warned the authorities how easily our communication with the Punjab might be cut off. Baird-Smith saw the necessity for remedying this, and, acting on his advice, Reed had all the bridges over the Western Jumna Canal destroyed for several miles, except one required for our own use. The Phulchudder aqueduct, which carried the canal water into the city, and along which horsemen could pass to the rear of our camp, was blown up, as was also the Bussye bridge over the drain from the Najafgarh jhil, about eight miles from camp.

For the next few days, things were relatively calm, and we took the opportunity to strengthen our position at the back. The stealth and speed with which the enemy reached Alipur alerted the authorities to how easily our connection with Punjab could be severed. Baird-Smith recognized the need to address this issue, and following his advice, Reed had all the bridges over the Western Jumna Canal destroyed for several miles, except for one that we needed for our own use. The Phulchudder aqueduct, which transported canal water into the city and allowed horsemen to move behind our camp, was blown up, along with the Bussye bridge over the drainage from the Najafgarh jhil, about eight miles from camp.

We were not left long in peace, for on the morning of the 9th July the enemy moved out of the city in great force, and for several hours kept up an incessant cannonade on our front and right flank.

We weren't at peace for long because on the morning of July 9th, the enemy came out of the city in full force and for several hours bombarded us with constant cannon fire on our front and right side.

Two V.C.'s The piquet below the General's Mound happened to be held this day by two guns of Tombs's troop, commanded by Second Lieutenant James Hills, and by thirty men of the Carabineers under Lieutenant Stillman. A little beyond, and to the right of this piquet, a Native officer's party of the 9th Irregular Cavalry had been placed to watch the Trunk Road. These men were still supposed to be loyal; the regiment to which they belonged had a good reputation, and as Christie's Horse had done excellent service in Afghanistan, where[Page 103] Neville and Crawford Chamberlain had served with it as subalterns. It was, therefore, believed at the Mound piquet that ample warning would be given of any enemy coming from the direction of the Trunk Road, so that the approach of some horsemen dressed like the men of the 9th Irregulars attracted little notice.

Two VCs The lookout below the General's Mound was manned that day by two guns from Tombs's troop, led by Second Lieutenant James Hills, along with thirty men from the Carabineers under Lieutenant Stillman. A bit further on, to the right of this lookout, a Native officer's group from the 9th Irregular Cavalry was stationed to keep an eye on the Trunk Road. These men were still thought to be loyal; their regiment had a good reputation, and Christie’s Horse had performed exceptionally well in Afghanistan, where Neville and Crawford Chamberlain had served as junior officers. Therefore, it was believed at the Mound lookout that there would be plenty of warning about any enemy approaching from the direction of the Trunk Road, which is why the arrival of some horsemen dressed like the men of the 9th Irregulars went largely unnoticed.

Stillman and Hills were breakfasting together, when a sowar from the Native officers' party rode up and reported that a body of the enemy's Cavalry were in sight. Hills told the man to gallop to Head-Quarters with the report, and to warn Tombs as he passed his tent. Hills and Stillman then mounted their men, neither of them having the remotest idea that the news of the enemy's advance had been purposely delayed until there was not time to turn out the troops. They imagined that the sowar was acting in good faith and had given them sufficient notice, and while Hills moved his guns towards the position from which he could command the Trunk Road, Stillman proceeded to the top of the Mound in order to get a better view of the ground over which the enemy were said to be advancing. The troop of the Carabineers was thus left by itself to receive the first rush of the rebel Cavalry; it was composed of young soldiers, some of them quite untrained, who turned and broke.

Stillman and Hills were having breakfast together when a sowar from the Native officers' party rode up and reported that enemy cavalry were in sight. Hills told the man to ride to Headquarters with the report and to warn Tombs as he passed his tent. Hills and Stillman then mounted their men, neither of them having the slightest idea that the news of the enemy's advance had been deliberately delayed until there was no time to get the troops ready. They thought the sowar was acting in good faith and had given them enough notice. While Hills moved his guns to a position where he could command the Trunk Road, Stillman went to the top of the Mound to get a better view of the ground over which the enemy was said to be advancing. The troop of the Carabineers was left by themselves to face the first rush of the rebel cavalry; it was made up of young soldiers, some of them quite untrained, who turned and broke.

The moment Hills saw the enemy he shouted, 'Action front!' and, in the hope of giving his men time to load and fire a round of grape, he gallantly charged the head of the column single-handed, cut down the leading man, struck the second, and then was then ridden down himself. It had been raining heavily, so Hills wore his cloak; which probably saved his life, for it was cut through in many places, as were his jacket and even his shirt.

The moment Hills saw the enemy, he shouted, 'Action front!' Hoping to give his men time to load and fire a round of grape, he bravely charged the front of the column alone, took down the leading man, hit the second, and then got run down himself. It had been raining heavily, so Hills wore his cloak, which probably saved his life; it was cut through in many places, as were his jacket and even his shirt.

As soon as the body of the enemy had passed on, Hills, extricating himself from his horse, got up and searched for his sword, which he had lost in the mêlée. He had just found it when he was attacked by three men, two of whom were mounted; he fired at and wounded the first man; then caught the lance of the second in his left hand, and ran him through the body with his sword. The first assailant coming on again, Hills cut him down, upon which he was attacked by the third man on foot, who succeeded in wrenching his sword from him. Hills fell in the struggle, and must have been killed, if Tombs, who had been duly warned by the sowar, and had hurried out to the piquet, had not come to the rescue and saved his plucky subaltern's life.4

As soon as the enemy's body passed by, Hills got off his horse and searched for his sword, which he had lost in the fight. He had just found it when three men attacked him, two of whom were on horseback; he shot and injured the first man. Then he caught the second man's lance in his left hand and stabbed him with his sword. The first attacker came at him again, and Hills took him down. Then the third attacker, who was on foot, managed to wrestle the sword away from him. Hills fell during the struggle and would have been killed if Tombs, who had been alerted by the sowar and rushed to the piquet, hadn't come to his rescue and saved his brave subaltern's life.4

Notwithstanding Hills's gallant attempt to stop the sowars, his men had not time to fire a single round before they were upon them. Their object, however, was not to capture these two guns, but to induce the Native Horse Artillery to join them, and galloping past the piquet, they made straight for the troop, and called upon the men to bring away[Page 104] their guns. The Native Artillerymen behaved admirably: they not only refused to respond to the call, but they begged the men of the European troop, which was unlimbered close by, to fire through them on the mutineers.

Despite Hills's brave effort to stop the sowars, his men didn’t have time to fire a single shot before the enemy was upon them. Their goal wasn’t to capture these two guns, but to get the Native Horse Artillery to join them. They galloped past the picket and headed straight for the troop, urging the men to take away[Page 104] their guns. The Native Artillerymen acted impressively: they not only refused to answer the call, but they also urged the men of the nearby European troop, which had their guns ready, to fire through them at the mutineers.

Knowing nothing of what was happening, I was standing by my tent, watching my horses, which had just arrived from Philour, as they crossed the bridge over the canal cut which ran at the rear of our camp, when the enemy's Cavalry galloped over the bridge, and for a few moments my animals seemed in considerable danger; the sowars, however, having lost more than one-third of their number, and having failed in their attempt to get hold of the Native Horse Artillery guns, were bent upon securing their retreat rather than upon plunder. My servants gave a wonderful account of the many perils they had encountered—somewhat exaggerated, I dare say—but they had done me a real good service, having marched 200 miles through a very disturbed country, and arriving with animals and baggage in good order. Indeed, throughout the Mutiny my servants behaved admirably. The khidmatgar (table attendant) never failed to bring me my food under the hottest fire, and the saices (grooms) were always present with the horses whenever they were required, apparently quite indifferent to the risks they often ran. Moreover, they became imbued with such a warlike spirit that, when I was invalided in April, 1858, four of them enlisted in a regiment of Bengal Cavalry. The khidmatgar died soon after the Mutiny, but two of his brothers were afterwards in my service; one, who was with me during the Lushai expedition and the whole of the Afghan war, never left me for more than twenty years, and we parted with mutual regret at Bombay on board the P. and O. steamer in which I took my final departure from India in April, 1893.

Knowing nothing of what was happening, I was standing by my tent, watching my horses, which had just arrived from Philour, as they crossed the bridge over the canal that ran behind our camp. Suddenly, the enemy's cavalry charged over the bridge, and for a moment, my horses seemed to be in real danger. However, since the sowars had lost more than a third of their troops and had failed to capture the Native Horse Artillery guns, they were more focused on retreating than looting. My servants shared an incredible account of the many dangers they faced—somewhat exaggerated, I must say—but they truly did me a great service, having marched 200 miles through a very unstable area and arriving with the animals and baggage in good shape. Indeed, throughout the Mutiny, my servants performed beautifully. The khidmatgar (table attendant) never failed to bring me my meals under heavy fire, and the saices (grooms) were always present with the horses whenever needed, seemingly indifferent to the risks they often took. They even became so inspired by the fighting spirit that, when I was sick in April 1858, four of them joined a Bengal Cavalry regiment. The khidmatgar died soon after the Mutiny, but two of his brothers later worked for me; one who was with me during the Lushai expedition and throughout the Afghan war never left my side for over twenty years. We parted with a sense of shared regret in Bombay on board the P. and O. steamer when I took my final departure from India in April 1893.

Mine was not a solitary instance; not only the officers' servants, but the followers belonging to European regiments, such as cook-boys, saices and bhisties (water-carriers), as a rule, behaved in the most praiseworthy manner, faithful and brave to a degree. So much was this the case, that when the troopers of the 9th Lancers were called upon to name the man they considered most worthy of the Victoria Cross, an honour which Sir Colin Campbell purposed to confer upon the regiment to mark his appreciation of the gallantry displayed by all ranks during the campaign, they unanimously chose the head bhistie! Considering the peculiar position we were in at the time, it is somewhat remarkable that the conduct of the Native servants should have been so generally satisfactory. It speaks as well, I think, for the masters as the servants, and proves (what I have sometimes heard denied) that Native servants are, as a rule, kindly and considerately treated by their European masters.

My experience wasn’t unique; not only the officers' servants, but also the helpers from European regiments, like kitchen boys, water carriers, and others, generally behaved in an admirable way—loyal and brave to a significant degree. So much so that when the troopers of the 9th Lancers were asked to name the person they thought was most deserving of the Victoria Cross, an honor that Sir Colin Campbell intended to award to the regiment to show his appreciation for the bravery shown by everyone during the campaign, they all chose the head water carrier! Given the unusual situation we were in at the time, it’s quite remarkable that the behavior of the local servants was so consistently commendable. This reflects well on both the masters and the servants, and it shows (despite some claims to the contrary) that local servants are generally treated kindly and thoughtfully by their European employers.

To return to my story. The cannonade from within and without the city continued unceasing, and the enemy had again to be driven out of[Page 105] the near suburbs. This duty was entrusted to General Chamberlain, whom I accompanied as one of his staff officers. His column consisted of about 800 Infantry and six guns, a few more men joining us as we passed the Ridge. This was the first occasion on which I had witnessed fighting in gardens and walled enclosures, and I realized how difficult it was to dislodge men who knew how to take advantage of the cover thus afforded. Our soldiers, as usual, fought well against very heavy odds, and before we were able to force the enemy back into the city we had lost 1 officer and 40 men killed, and 8 officers and 163 men wounded, besides 11 poor fellows missing: every one of whom must have been murdered. The enemy had nearly 500 men killed, and considerably more than that number wounded.

To get back to my story. The cannon fire from inside and outside the city kept going non-stop, and the enemy had to be pushed out of[Page 105] the nearby suburbs again. General Chamberlain was given this task, and I went along as one of his staff officers. His group had about 800 infantry and six guns, with a few more soldiers joining us as we crossed the Ridge. This was the first time I had seen fighting in gardens and walled areas, and I realized how tough it was to dislodge enemies who knew how to use the cover effectively. Our soldiers, as usual, fought bravely against overwhelming odds, and before we managed to push the enemy back into the city, we had lost 1 officer and 40 men killed, and 8 officers and 163 men wounded, along with 11 poor souls missing: every one of whom must have been killed. The enemy lost nearly 500 men killed and even more wounded.

Treachery in Camp The result of the day's experience was so far satisfactory that it determined General Reed to get rid of all the Hindustani soldiers still remaining in camp. It was clear that the Native officers' party near the Mound piquet had been treacherous; none of them were ever seen again, and it was generally believed that they had joined the enemy in their dash through the camp. The other Native soldiers did not hesitate to denounce their Hindustani comrades as traitors; the latter were consequently all sent away, except a few men of the 4th Irregular Cavalry who were deprived of their horses and employed solely as orderlies. It was also thought advisable to take the guns from the Native troop of Horse Artillery. A few of the younger men belonging to it deserted, but the older soldiers continued faithful, and did good work in the breaching batteries.

Betrayal in Camp The outcome of the day's events was satisfactory enough that General Reed decided to remove all the Hindustani soldiers still left in camp. It was evident that the Native officers' group near the Mound piquet had betrayed them; none of them were ever seen again, and it was widely believed they had joined the enemy during their attack on the camp. The other Native soldiers didn’t hesitate to call out their Hindustani comrades as traitors; as a result, all of them were sent away, except for a few men from the 4th Irregular Cavalry who were stripped of their horses and only used as orderlies. It was also deemed wise to take the guns from the Native troop of Horse Artillery. A few of the younger members deserted, but the older soldiers remained loyal and did excellent work in the breaching batteries.

There was a short lull after our fight on the 9th—a sure sign that the enemy's loss was heavier than they had calculated upon. When the mutineers received reinforcements we were certain to be attacked within a few hours, but if no fresh troops arrived on the scene we could generally depend upon a day or two's respite.

There was a brief pause after our fight on the 9th—a clear indication that the enemy's losses were greater than they had expected. When the rebels got reinforcements, we were sure we would be attacked within a few hours, but if no new troops showed up, we could usually count on a day or two of calm.

Our next fight was on the 14th July. The rebels came out on that morning in great numbers, attacking Hindu Rao's house and the Sabzi Mandi piquets, and supported by a continuous fire of Artillery from the walls. For some hours we remained on the defensive, but as the enemy's numbers increased, and we were greatly harassed by their fire, a column was formed to dislodge them. It was of about the usual strength, viz., 800 Infantry and six Horse Artillery guns, with the addition of a few of the Guides Cavalry and of Hodson's newly-raised Horse. The command was given to Brigadier Showers, and I was sent as his staff officer; Reid joined in at the foot of the Ridge with all the men that could be spared, and Brigadier-General Chamberlain also accompanied the column.

Our next fight was on July 14th. The rebels came out in large numbers that morning, attacking Hindu Rao's house and the Sabzi Mandi posts, supported by continuous artillery fire from the walls. We held our ground defensively for several hours, but as the enemy numbers grew and their fire became increasingly intense, we formed a column to push them back. It was about the usual size, with around 800 infantry and six horse artillery guns, along with a few cavalry from the Guides and Hodson's newly-raised horse unit. Brigadier Showers was in command, and I was sent as his staff officer; Reid arrived at the foot of the ridge with all the men he could spare, and Brigadier-General Chamberlain also joined the column.

We moved on under a very heavy fire until we reached an enclosure the wall of which was lined with the enemy. The troops stopped short, when Chamberlain, seeing that they hesitated, called upon them to[Page 106] follow him, and gave them a splendid example by jumping his horse over the wall. The men did follow him, and Chamberlain got a ball in his shoulder.

We pressed on through intense gunfire until we reached an area surrounded by a wall filled with enemy soldiers. The troops halted when Chamberlain, noticing their hesitation, urged them to[Page 106] follow him and set a great example by leaping his horse over the wall. The men did follow him, and Chamberlain was hit in the shoulder.

Fighting Close Up to the City Walls We had great difficulty in driving the enemy back; they contested every inch of the ground, the many serais and walled gardens affording them admirable cover; but our troops were not to be withstood; position after position was carried until we found ourselves in sight of the Lahore gate and close up to the walls of the city. In our eagerness to drive the enemy back we had, however, come too far. It was impossible to remain where we were. Musketry from the walls and grape from the heavy guns mounted on the Mori and other bastions committed terrible havoc. Men were falling on all sides, but the getting back was hazardous to the last degree. Numerous as the enemy were, they had not the courage to stand against us as long as we advanced, but the first sign of retreat was the signal for them to leave their shelter and press us the whole way to camp.

Fighting Near the City Walls We struggled to push the enemy back; they fought for every inch, using the many inns and walled gardens as great cover. But our troops wouldn’t be stopped; one position after another was taken until we found ourselves in sight of the Lahore gate and right up against the city walls. In our eagerness to push the enemy back, we had, however, gone too far. It was impossible to stay where we were. Gunfire from the walls and cannon shots from the Mori and other bastions caused terrible destruction. Soldiers were falling all around, but trying to retreat was extremely risky. Despite the enemy being numerous, they didn’t have the backbone to confront us as long as we kept advancing, but the moment we showed any sign of retreat, it was a signal for them to leave their hideouts and pursue us all the way back to camp.

When the retirement commenced I was with the two advanced guns in action on the Grand Trunk Road. The subaltern in charge was severely wounded, and almost at the same moment one of his sergeants, a smart, handsome fellow, fell, shot through the leg. Seeing some men carrying him into a hut at the side of the road, I shouted: 'Don't put him there; he will be left behind; get a doolie for him, or put him on the limber.' But what with the incessant fire from the enemy's guns, the bursting of shells, the crashing of shot through the branches of the trees, and all the din and hubbub of battle, I could not have been heard, for the poor fellow with another wounded man was left in the hut, and both were murdered by the mutineers. So many of the men with the two guns were hors de combat, and the horses were so unsteady (several of them being wounded), that there was great difficulty in limbering up, and I was helping the drivers to keep the horses quiet, when I suddenly felt a tremendous blow on my back which made me faint and sick, and I was afraid I should not be able to remain on my horse. The powerless feeling, however, passed off, and I managed to stick on until I got back to camp. I had been hit close to the spine by a bullet, and the wound would probably have been fatal but for the fact that a leather pouch for caps, which I usually wore in front near my pistol, had somehow slipped round to the back; the bullet passed through this before entering my body, and was thus prevented from penetrating very deep.

When the retirement started, I was with the two advanced guns on the Grand Trunk Road. The subaltern in charge was badly wounded, and at almost the same moment, one of his sergeants, a sharp-looking, handsome guy, got shot in the leg. I saw some men carrying him into a hut by the side of the road and shouted, "Don't put him there; he'll be left behind! Get a doolie for him, or put him on the limber!" But with the constant fire from the enemy's guns, the explosions of shells, the crashing shots through the tree branches, and all the chaos of battle, I don’t think I could be heard. Unfortunately, the poor guy, along with another wounded man, was left in the hut, and both were killed by the mutineers. Many of the men with the two guns were out of action, and the horses were so restless (some of them were wounded) that it was really difficult to limber up. I was helping the drivers keep the horses calm when suddenly, I felt a huge blow to my back that made me faint and sick, and I was worried I wouldn’t be able to stay on my horse. However, that weak feeling passed, and I managed to hold on until I got back to camp. I had been hit close to the spine by a bullet, and the wound might have been fatal if it weren’t for the fact that a leather pouch for caps, which I usually wore at the front near my pistol, had somehow slid around to my back; the bullet went through this before entering my body, preventing it from going in too deep.

The enemy followed us closely right up to our piquets, and but for the steadiness of the retirement our casualties must have been even more numerous than they were. As it was, they amounted to 15 men killed, 16 officers and 177 men wounded, and 2 men missing.

The enemy stayed right on our tail until we reached our pickets, and if it hadn't been for our steady retreat, we probably would have lost even more people. As it was, we had 15 men killed, 16 officers and 177 men wounded, and 2 men missing.

The enemy's loss was estimated at 1,000. For hours they were seen[Page 107] carrying the dead in carts back to the city.

The enemy's loss was estimated at 1,000. For hours, they were seen[Page 107] hauling the dead in carts back to the city.

My wound, though comparatively slight, kept me on the sick-list for a fortnight, and for more than a month I could not mount a horse or put on a sword-belt. I was lucky in that my tent was pitched close to that of John Campbell Brown, one of the medical officers attached to the Artillery. He had served during the first Afghan war, with Sale's force, at Jalalabad, and throughout both the campaigns in the Punjab, and had made a great reputation for himself as an army surgeon. He looked after me while I was laid up, and I could not have been in better hands.

My injury, though relatively minor, kept me off duty for two weeks, and for over a month I couldn’t ride a horse or wear a sword belt. I was fortunate that my tent was set up close to that of John Campbell Brown, one of the medical officers with the Artillery. He had served during the first Afghan war with Sale’s force at Jalalabad and had been through both campaigns in the Punjab, earning a great reputation as an army surgeon. He took care of me while I was recovering, and I couldn't have asked for better care.

Sufferings of the Sick and Wounded The Delhi Force was fortunate in its medical officers. Some of the best in the army were attached to it, and all that was possible to be done for the sick and wounded under the circumstances was done. But the poor fellows had a bad time of it. A few of the worst cases were accommodated in the two or three houses in the cantonment that had escaped destruction, but the great majority had to put up with such shelter from the burning heat and drenching rain as an ordinary soldiers' tent could provide. Those who could bear the journey and were not likely to be fit for duty for some time were sent away to Meerut and Umballa; but even with the relief thus afforded, the hospitals throughout the siege were terribly overcrowded. Anæsthetics were freely used, but antiseptics were practically unknown, consequently many of the severely wounded died, and few amputation cases survived.

Sufferings of the Sick and Injured The Delhi Force was lucky to have good medical officers. Some of the best in the army were assigned to it, and everything that could be done for the sick and wounded was done under the circumstances. But the poor guys had a rough time. A few of the worst cases were placed in a couple of houses in the cantonment that had escaped destruction, but most had to make do with whatever shelter an ordinary soldier's tent could offer from the scorching heat and heavy rain. Those who could handle the journey and weren't likely to be fit for duty for a while were sent away to Meerut and Umballa; however, even with this relief, hospitals throughout the siege were horrendously overcrowded. Anesthetics were widely used, but antiseptics were almost unknown, so many of the severely wounded died, and few amputation cases survived.

A great aggravation to the misery and discomfort in hospital was the plague of flies. Delhi is at all times noted for having more than its share of these drawbacks to life in the East, but during the siege they were a perfect pest, and for the short time I was laid up I fully realized the suffering which our sick and wounded soldiers had to endure. At night the inside of my tent was black with flies. At the first ray of light or the smallest shake to the ropes, they were all astir, and for the rest of the day there was no peace; it was even difficult to eat without swallowing one or more of the loathsome insects. I had to brush them away with one hand while I put the food into my mouth with the other, and more than once I had to rush from the table, a fly having eluded all my efforts to prevent his going down my throat.

A major annoyance to the misery and discomfort in the hospital was the invasion of flies. Delhi is always known for having more than its fair share of these pests, but during the siege, they were especially unbearable. In the short time I was bedridden, I fully understood the suffering our sick and wounded soldiers had to endure. At night, the inside of my tent was swarming with flies. At the first hint of light or the slightest movement of the ropes, they became active, and for the rest of the day, there was no relief; it was even hard to eat without accidentally swallowing one or more of those disgusting insects. I had to swat them away with one hand while trying to eat with the other, and more than once, I had to rush from the table because a fly had evaded all my attempts to keep it from flying down my throat.

As soon as I could get about a little, but before I was able to perform my legitimate work, I was employed in helping to look after the conservancy of the camp and its surroundings—an extremely disagreeable but most important duty, for an Indian army must always have a large following, for which sanitary arrangements are a difficulty. Then, large convoys of camels and bullock-carts arrived daily with supplies and stores, and a considerable number of transport animals had to be kept in readiness to follow up the enemy with a suitably sized force, whenever we could drive them out of the city. Without any shelter,[Page 108] and often with insufficient food, deaths amongst the animals were of constant occurrence, and, unless their carcases could at once be removed, the stench became intolerable. Every expedient was resorted to to get rid of this nuisance. Some of the carcases were dragged to a distance from camp, some were buried, and some were burnt, but, notwithstanding all our efforts, many remained to be gradually devoured by the jackals which prowled about the camp, and by the innumerable birds of prey which instinct had brought to Delhi from the remotest parts of India.5

As soon as I could move around a bit, but before I was able to do my actual work, I was tasked with helping to take care of the sanitation of the camp and its surroundings—an extremely unpleasant but crucial duty, since an Indian army always has a large following, which makes sanitary arrangements challenging. Then, large convoys of camels and bullock carts arrived daily with supplies and equipment, and a significant number of transport animals had to be kept ready to pursue the enemy with a properly sized force whenever we could drive them out of the city. Without any shelter, and often with inadequate food, animal deaths were a constant occurrence, and unless their carcasses could be removed immediately, the smell became unbearable. Every method was used to deal with this problem. Some carcasses were dragged away from the camp, some were buried, and some were burned, but despite all our efforts, many remained to be slowly consumed by the jackals roaming the camp and by the countless birds of prey that instinctively came to Delhi from the farthest parts of India.

General Reed's Health Fails At a time when the powers of each individual were taxed to the uttermost, the strain on the Commander of the force was terribly severe. Mind and body were incessantly at work. Twice in the short space of six weeks had the officer holding this responsible position succumbed, and now a third was on the point of breaking down. Major-General Reed's health, never very strong, completely failed, and on the 17th July, only twelve days after succeeding Sir Henry Barnard, he had to give up the command and leave the camp on sick certificate.

General Reed's Health Declines During a time when everyone's abilities were stretched to the limit, the pressure on the Commander of the force was extremely intense. Both mind and body were constantly engaged. In just six weeks, the officer in this crucial role had already collapsed twice, and now the third time was about to happen. Major-General Reed's health, which was never very robust, completely gave out, and on July 17th, just twelve days after taking over from Sir Henry Barnard, he had to step down from command and leave the camp due to illness.






CHAPTER XVI.

1857


Archdale Wilson Assumes Command
General Reed was succeeded by Brigadier Archdale Wilson, the officer who commanded the Meerut column at the beginning of the campaign, and who was so successful in the fights on the Hindun. Though a soldier of moderate capacity, Wilson was quite the best of the senior officers present, three of whom were superseded by his selection. Two of these, Congreve, Acting-Adjutant-General of Queen's troops, and Graves, who had been Brigadier at Delhi when the Mutiny broke out, left the camp on being passed over; the third, Longfield, took Wilson's place as Brigadier.

Archdale Wilson Takes Command General Reed was succeeded by Brigadier Archdale Wilson, the officer who led the Meerut column at the start of the campaign and who achieved notable success in the battles at Hindun. Although Wilson was a soldier of average ability, he was by far the best among the senior officers present, three of whom were replaced by his appointment. Two of these, Congreve, Acting-Adjutant-General of the Queen's troops, and Graves, who had served as Brigadier at Delhi when the Mutiny began, left the camp after being passed over; the third, Longfield, took Wilson's place as Brigadier.

Wilson's succession to the command gave great relief to the troops on account of the systematic manner in which he arranged for the various duties, and the order and method he introduced. The comparative rest to the troops, as well as the sanitary improvements he effected, did a good deal for the health of the force. Wilson also took advantage of the reinforcements we had received to strengthen our position. As far as possible he put a stop to the practice of following up the enemy close to the city walls when they were driven off after an attack (a practice which had cost us many valuable lives), contenting himself with preventing the rebels from remaining in the immediate vicinity of our advanced posts.

Wilson's taking charge brought a huge relief to the troops because of the organized way he handled all the various duties, along with the order and methods he introduced. The relative downtime for the troops, along with the health improvements he made, greatly benefited the well-being of the force. Wilson also used the reinforcements we received to strengthen our position. He did his best to stop the practice of pursuing the enemy closely to the city walls after they were driven off following an attack (a practice that had cost us many valuable lives), focusing instead on keeping the rebels from staying too close to our advanced posts.

Enemy Baffled in the Sabzi Mandi The day after Reed's departure another sharp and prolonged attack[Page 109] was made upon the Ridge batteries and Sabzi Mandi piquets, and in the afternoon a column was sent to drive the enemy away. It consisted of four Horse Artillery guns, 750 Infantry, and the Guides Cavalry. Lieutenant-Colonel Jones, of the 60th Rifles, commanded the column, and, having gained experience from the lesson we had received on the 14th, he took care not to approach too near to the city walls, but cleared the Sabzi Mandi, and took up a good position, where he remained for some little time. This unusual procedure seemed to disconcert the enemy, most of whom returned to the city, while those who remained to fight did not come to such close quarters as on previous occasions. Nevertheless, we had 1 officer and 12 men killed, 3 officers and 66 men wounded, and 2 men were missing.

Enemy Confused in the Vegetable Market The day after Reed left, another intense and extended attack[Page 109] took place on the Ridge batteries and Sabzi Mandi outposts. In the afternoon, a force was dispatched to push the enemy back. It included four Horse Artillery guns, 750 infantry soldiers, and the Guides Cavalry. Lieutenant Colonel Jones of the 60th Rifles led the column, and having learned from the mistake we made on the 14th, he avoided getting too close to the city walls, clearing the Sabzi Mandi instead and taking a solid position, where he stayed for a while. This unexpected tactic seemed to confuse the enemy; most of them went back to the city, while those who stayed to fight kept their distance compared to previous encounters. However, we still suffered 1 officer and 12 men killed, 3 officers and 66 men wounded, and 2 men were reported missing.

The four following days passed without any serious attack being made, but an unfortunate accident occurred about this time to a cousin of mine, Captain Greensill, of the 24th Foot. He was attached to the Engineer department, and was ordered to undertake some reconnoitring duty after dark. On nearing the enemy's position he halted his escort, in order not to attract attention, and proceeded alone to examine the ground. The signal which he had arranged to give on his return was apparently misunderstood, for as he approached the escort fired; he was mortally wounded, and died in great agony the next morning.

The next four days went by without any serious attacks, but during this time, a tragic incident happened involving my cousin, Captain Greensill, from the 24th Foot. He was part of the Engineering department and had been tasked with some reconnaissance duties at night. As he got close to the enemy's position, he stopped his escort to avoid drawing attention and went ahead alone to check out the area. The signal he had set up to indicate his return seemed to be misunderstood; as he got closer, the escort opened fire. He was fatally wounded and died in intense pain the following morning.

The last severe contest took place in the Sabzi Mandi on the 18th, for by this time the Engineers' incessant labour had resulted in the clearing away of the old serais and walled gardens for some distance round the posts held by our piquets in that suburb. The 'Sammy House' piquet, to the right front of Hindu Rao's house, was greatly strengthened, and cover was provided for the men occupying it—a very necessary measure, exposed as the piquet was to the guns on the Burn and Mori bastions, and within grape range of the latter, while the enemy's Infantry were enabled to creep close up to it unperceived.

The last major battle happened in Sabzi Mandi on the 18th. By this time, the Engineers' constant work had cleared away the old inns and walled gardens a good distance around the posts held by our outposts in that neighborhood. The 'Sammy House' outpost, positioned to the right front of Hindu Rao's house, was significantly reinforced, and shelter was provided for the men stationed there—an essential move, considering the outpost was exposed to the guns on the Burn and Mori bastions and within grape shot range of the latter, while the enemy's infantry could sneak up close without being noticed.

The improvements we had made in this part of our position were, no doubt, carefully watched and noted by the rebels, who, finding that all attempts to dislodge us on the right ended in their own discomfiture, determined to try whether our left was not more vulnerable than they had found it in the earlier days of the siege. Accordingly early on the 23rd they sallied forth from the Kashmir gate, and, occupying Ludlow Castle and its neighbourhood, shelled Metcalfe House, the stable piquet, and the mosque piquet on the Ridge. As all attempts to silence the enemy's guns with our Artillery proved unavailing, and it was feared that if not dislodged they would establish a battery at Ludlow Castle, a small column under Brigadier Showers moved out by a cutting through the Ridge on our left, its object being (in conjunction with the Metcalfe House piquets) to turn the enemy's right and capture their guns.

The improvements we made in this part of our position were definitely being closely observed and noted by the rebels. Realizing that all their efforts to push us out on the right ended in their own defeat, they decided to see if our left was any more vulnerable than it had been in the earlier days of the siege. So, early on the 23rd, they charged out from the Kashmir gate, took position at Ludlow Castle and nearby, and began shelling Metcalfe House, the stable piquet, and the mosque piquet on the Ridge. Since all attempts to silence the enemy's guns with our artillery were unsuccessful, and there was concern that if they weren't pushed back, they would set up a battery at Ludlow Castle, a small column under Brigadier Showers moved out through a cutting on our left. The goal was to work with the Metcalfe House piquets to flank the enemy's right and capture their guns.

The troops detailed for this duty consisted of six Horse Artillery[Page 110] guns, 400 British Infantry, 360 of the 1st Punjab Infantry, and a party of the Guides Cavalry, in addition to 250 men detached from the Metcalfe House piquets. The advance of the column up the road leading towards the Kashmir gate appeared to be unnoticed until it arrived close to the enemy, who then opened with grape. Our troops pressed on, and in their eagerness to capture the guns, which were being withdrawn, got too near the city walls. Here Showers was wounded, and the command devolved on Lieutenant-Colonel Jones, of the 60th, who skilfully conducted the retirement. Our loss was 1 officer and 11 men killed, 5 officers and 34 men wounded. Captain Law, one of my two companions on the mail-cart from Umballa, was the officer killed.

The troops assigned to this task included six Horse Artillery[Page 110] guns, 400 British Infantry, 360 from the 1st Punjab Infantry, and a group from the Guides Cavalry, along with 250 men detached from the Metcalfe House piquets. As the column advanced along the road toward the Kashmir gate, it seemed to go unnoticed until it got close to the enemy, who then opened fire with grapeshot. Our troops pushed forward, and in their eagerness to seize the guns that were being pulled back, they got too close to the city walls. Here, Showers was wounded, and command transferred to Lieutenant-Colonel Jones of the 60th, who skillfully managed the withdrawal. Our casualties included 1 officer and 11 men killed, along with 5 officers and 34 men wounded. Captain Law, one of my two companions on the mail-cart from Umballa, was the officer who was killed.

The enemy were fairly quiet between the 23rd and 31st July, on which date they moved out of the city in considerable strength, with the intention of making a temporary bridge across the cut in the swampy ground I have before described, and so threatening our rear. A column under Coke was sent to the other side of the cut to intercept the enemy should they succeed in getting across; this column was joined at Alipur by the Kumaon battalion (composed of Gurkhas and hill-men), about 400 strong, which had just arrived from the Punjab as escort to a large store of ammunition. The services of these troops were, however, not required, for the rain, which had been coming down in torrents for some hours, had caused such a rush of water that the bridge was carried away before it was completed. The enemy then retired towards the city. On reaching the suburbs they were reinforced by a large body of Infantry, and a most determined attack was made on the right of our position. This occurred about sunset, and all night the roar of musketry and artillery was kept up without a moment's cessation.

The enemy was fairly quiet between July 23rd and 31st, when they moved out of the city in significant numbers, intending to build a temporary bridge across the cut in the swampy ground I’ve described earlier, threatening our rear. A column under Coke was sent to the other side of the cut to intercept the enemy if they managed to get across; this column was joined at Alipur by the Kumaon battalion (made up of Gurkhas and hill-men), about 400 strong, which had just arrived from the Punjab as an escort for a large supply of ammunition. However, the services of these troops weren’t needed because the heavy rain that had been pouring down for hours caused such a surge of water that the bridge was swept away before it was completed. The enemy then retreated toward the city. Upon reaching the suburbs, they were reinforced by a large group of Infantry and launched a fierce attack on the right side of our position. This happened around sunset, and all night the sounds of gunfire and artillery continued without a moment's break.

Efforts to Exterminate the Feringhis The next day was the anniversary of a great Mahomedan festival, when it was the custom for the King to pray and make sacrifice at the Idgah, in commemoration of Abraham's intended offering up of Ishmail.1 On this particular occasion, however, the sacrifices were to be dispensed with in deference to Hindu prejudices,2 and in their stead a tremendous united effort was to be made by Hindus and Mussulmans to exterminate the Feringhis. All the morning of the 1st August mosques and Hindu temples were crowded with worshippers offering up prayers for the success of the great attempt, and in the afternoon the rebels, mad with excitement and fanaticism, issued in countless numbers from the city gates, and, shouting the Moslem battle-cry, advanced and threw themselves on our defences. They were driven back by our deadly volleys, but only for a moment; they quickly reformed and made a fresh attack, to be stopped again by our steady,[Page 111] uncompromising fire. Time after time they rallied and hurled themselves against our breastworks. All that night and well on into the next day the fight continued, and it was past noon before the devoted fanatics became convinced that their gods had deserted them, that victory was not for them, and that no effort, however heroic on their part, could drive us from the Ridge. The enemy's loss was heavy, ours trifling, for our men were admirably steady, well protected by breastworks, and never allowed to show themselves except when the assailants came close up. We had only 1 officer and 9 men killed and 36 men wounded.

Efforts to Eliminate the Feringhis The next day was the anniversary of a major Muslim festival, when it was customary for the King to pray and make sacrifices at the Idgah, in remembrance of Abraham's willingness to sacrifice Ishmail.1 On this particular occasion, however, the sacrifices were canceled out of respect for Hindu prejudices,2 and instead, a massive joint effort was made by Hindus and Muslims to wipe out the Feringhis. All morning on August 1st, mosques and Hindu temples were packed with worshippers offering prayers for the success of this significant effort, and in the afternoon, the rebels, fueled by excitement and fanaticism, poured out of the city gates, yelling the Muslim battle-cry, and charged at our defenses. They were pushed back by our deadly volleys, but only temporarily; they quickly regrouped and launched another attack, which was again halted by our steady,[Page 111] unwavering fire. Time and again, they rallied and launched themselves against our barricades. The battle raged on all night and into the next day, and it wasn't until after noon that the devoted fanatics realized their gods had abandoned them, that victory was unattainable, and that no amount of heroism on their part could dislodge us from the Ridge. The enemy suffered significant losses while ours were minimal, as our men remained admirably calm, well-protected by barricades, and only revealed themselves when the attackers got close. We lost only 1 officer and 9 men killed, and 36 men wounded.

The officer was Lieutenant Eaton Travers, of the 1st Punjab Infantry. He had been seven years with the regiment, and had been present with it in nearly all the many frontier fights in which it had been engaged. He was a bright, happy fellow, and a great friend of mine. As Major Coke, his commanding officer, published in regimental orders: 'This gallant soldier and true-hearted gentleman was beloved and respected by the officers and men of the regiment. His loss is an irreparable one.'

The officer was Lieutenant Eaton Travers of the 1st Punjab Infantry. He had been with the regiment for seven years and had participated in almost all the numerous frontier battles it had been involved in. He was a cheerful, upbeat guy and a good friend of mine. As Major Coke, his commanding officer, stated in the regimental orders: 'This brave soldier and genuine gentleman was cherished and respected by the officers and men of the regiment. His loss is a great one.'

The enemy were much depressed by the failure of the Bakhra Id attack, from which they had expected great things. They began to despair of being able to drive us from our position on the Ridge, which for seven weeks had been so hotly contested. They heard that Nicholson with his Movable Column was hastening to our assistance, and they felt that, unless they could gain some signal victory before reinforcements reached us, we should take our place as the besiegers, instead of being, as hitherto, the besieged. Disaffection within the city walls was on the increase; only the semblance of authority remained to the old and well-nigh impotent King, while some of his sons, recognizing their perilous position, endeavoured to open negotiations with us. Many of the sepoys were reported to be going off to their homes, sick and weary of a struggle the hopelessness of which they had begun to realize.

The enemy was feeling really down after the failure of the Bakhra Id attack, which they had expected to be a success. They started to lose hope that they could drive us from our position on the Ridge, which had been fiercely contested for seven weeks. They heard that Nicholson and his Movable Column were racing to help us, and they realized that unless they could achieve a significant victory before reinforcements arrived, we would take on the role of the attackers instead of remaining the attacked. Discontent was growing within the city walls; the old and nearly powerless King only held a façade of authority, while some of his sons, aware of their dangerous situation, tried to negotiate with us. Many of the sepoys were reported to be heading home, tired and disillusioned by a struggle they were starting to see as hopeless.

Our work, however, was far from being finished. Notwithstanding losses from death and desertion, the enemy still outnumbered us by about eight or nine to one.

Our work, however, was far from over. Despite losses from death and people leaving, the enemy still outnumbered us by about eight or nine to one.

All this time our communication with the Punjab was maintained, and we regularly received letters and newspapers from England by the northern route; but for several weeks we had had no news from the south. Rumours of disasters occasionally reached us, but it was not until the second week in July that we heard of the fight at Agra, the retirement of our troops, and the flight of all the residents into the fort.

All this time, we kept in touch with Punjab, and we regularly got letters and newspapers from England through the northern route; however, we hadn’t received any news from the south for several weeks. Occasionally, we heard rumors of disasters, but it wasn't until the second week of July that we learned about the battle at Agra, the withdrawal of our troops, and the evacuation of all the residents into the fort.

These scraps of intelligence, for they were mere scraps, written often in Greek character, some screwed into a quill, some sewn between the double soles of a man's shoe, and some twisted up in the messenger's[Page 112] hair, were eagerly looked for, and as eagerly deciphered when they came. It was cheering to learn that Allahabad was safe, that Lucknow was still holding out, that troops from Madras, Ceylon, and the Mauritius had reached Calcutta, and that Lord Elgin, taking a statesmanlike view of the situation, had diverted to India3 the force intended for the China expedition, and we fondly hoped that some of the six British regiments reported by one messenger to have arrived at Cawnpore would be sent to the assistance of the Delhi Force.

These bits of information, because they were just bits, often written in Greek characters, some hidden inside a quill, some sewn into the double soles of a man’s shoe, and some twisted up in the messenger’s[Page 112] hair, were eagerly sought after and just as eagerly decoded when they arrived. It was comforting to hear that Allahabad was secure, that Lucknow was still resisting, that troops from Madras, Ceylon, and Mauritius had reached Calcutta, and that Lord Elgin, taking a pragmatic look at the situation, had redirected the force planned for the China expedition to India3. We hoped with optimism that some of the six British regiments reported by one messenger to have arrived at Cawnpore would be sent to help the Delhi Force.

A Letter from General Havelock Strangely enough, we knew nothing of the death of Sir Henry Lawrence or General Wheeler, and had not even heard for certain that Cawnpore had fallen and that Lucknow was besieged, while there were constant reports that Wheeler was marching up the Trunk Road. Being most anxious to get some authentic intelligence, Norman4 on the 15th July wrote a letter in French addressed to General Wheeler at Cawnpore, or whoever might be in command between that place and Delhi, giving an account of our position at Delhi, and expressing a hope that troops would soon march to our assistance. The letter was entrusted to two sepoys of the Guides, who carried out their difficult task most faithfully, and on the 3rd August returned with the following reply from General Havelock, addressed to Major-General Reed:

A Letter from General Havelock Strangely enough, we had no idea about the deaths of Sir Henry Lawrence or General Wheeler, and we hadn't even confirmed that Cawnpore had fallen or that Lucknow was under siege, while there were ongoing reports that Wheeler was advancing along the Trunk Road. Eager to get some real information, Norman4 wrote a letter in French on July 15th addressed to General Wheeler at Cawnpore, or whoever was in charge between that location and Delhi, detailing our situation in Delhi and expressing a hope that troops would soon come to help us. The letter was given to two sepoys of the Guides, who faithfully completed their challenging task, and on August 3rd, they returned with the following reply from General Havelock, addressed to Major-General Reed:

'Cawnpore, left bank of the Ganges,         
'25th July, 1857.  

'Cawnpore, left bank of the Ganges,         
'25th July, 1857.  



'MY DEAR GENERAL,

Dear General,

    'Yesterday I saw Captain Norman's letter of the 15th instant from Delhi, addressed to Sir Hugh Wheeler. That gallant officer and the whole of his force were destroyed on the 27th June by a base act of treachery. Sir Henry Somerset is Commander-in-Chief in India and Sir Patrick Grant in Bengal. Under the orders of the supreme Government I have been sent to retrieve affairs here. I have specific instructions from which I cannot depart. I have sent a duplicate of your letter to Sir P. Grant. In truth, though most anxious to march on Delhi, I have peremptory orders to relieve Lucknow. I have, thank God, been very successful. I defeated the enemy at Futtehpore[Page 113] on the 12th, and Pandu Naddi on the 15th, and this place, which I recaptured on the 16th. On each occasion I took all the guns. Immense reinforcements are coming from England and China. Sir Patrick Grant will soon be in the field himself. Lucknow holds out. Agra is free for the present. I am sorry to hear you are not quite well. I beg that you will let me hear from you continually.'

'Yesterday I saw Captain Norman's letter from the 15th of this month from Delhi, addressed to Sir Hugh Wheeler. That brave officer and his entire force were destroyed on June 27th due to a treacherous act. Sir Henry Somerset is the Commander-in-Chief in India, and Sir Patrick Grant is in charge in Bengal. Under the orders of the supreme Government, I've been sent to sort things out here. I have specific instructions that I can't disregard. I've sent a copy of your letter to Sir P. Grant. Honestly, even though I'm eager to march on Delhi, I have strict orders to relieve Lucknow. Thank God I've been quite successful. I defeated the enemy at Futtehpore[Page 113] on the 12th, at Pandu Naddi on the 15th, and I recaptured this place on the 16th. Each time, I seized all the artillery. Huge reinforcements are arriving from England and China. Sir Patrick Grant will be in the field himself soon. Lucknow is holding out. Agra is secure for now. I'm sorry to hear you're not feeling well. Please keep me updated.'

Two days afterwards another letter was received; this time from Lieutenant-Colonel Fraser-Tytler, A.Q.M.G., with Havelock's force. It was addressed to Captain Earle, A.Q.M.G., Meerut, and ran as follows:

Two days later, another letter came in; this time from Lieutenant-Colonel Fraser-Tytler, A.Q.M.G., with Havelock's force. It was addressed to Captain Earle, A.Q.M.G., Meerut, and said the following:

'Cawnpore, July 27th.      

'Cawnpore, July 27.'



'General Havelock has crossed the river to relieve Lucknow, which will be effected four days hence. He has a strong force with him, and he has already thrashed the Nana and completely dispersed his force. We shall probably march to Delhi with four or five thousand Europeans and a heavy Artillery, in number, not in weight. The China force is in Calcutta, 5,000 men. More troops expected immediately. We shall soon be with you.'

'General Havelock has crossed the river to rescue Lucknow, which will be accomplished four days from now. He has a strong force with him and has already defeated the Nana and completely scattered his troops. We will likely march to Delhi with four or five thousand Europeans and a heavy number of artillery, not in weight. The China force is in Calcutta, 5,000 men. More troops are expected immediately. We will be with you soon.'

These sanguine expectations were never fulfilled! Instead of Lucknow being relieved in four days, it was nearly four months before that result was achieved, and instead of troops from Cawnpore coming to help us at Delhi, the troops from Delhi formed the chief part of the force which relieved Lucknow.

These optimistic expectations were never met! Instead of Lucknow being rescued in four days, it took nearly four months to achieve that outcome, and instead of troops from Cawnpore coming to assist us in Delhi, the troops from Delhi made up the bulk of the force that relieved Lucknow.

News of Henry Lawrence's Death While we were rejoicing at the prospect of being reinforced by a large number of British soldiers, a gloom was cast over the whole camp by the rumour that Sir Henry Lawrence was dead. As the first British Ruler of the Punjab, Henry Lawrence was known by reputation to, and respected by, every man belonging to the Delhi Force, and all realized what a serious loss his death would be to the beleaguered garrison of Lucknow. Much time, however, was not given us for lamentation, for at the end of the first week in August another attempt was made to drive us from the Metcalfe House piquets. Guns were again brought out through the Kashmir gate, and posted at Ludlow Castle and the Kudsiabagh; at the same time a number of Infantry skirmishers kept up an almost constant fire from the jungle in front of our position. The losses at the piquets themselves were not heavy, good cover having been provided; but the communications between the piquets and our main position were much exposed and extremely hazardous for the reliefs. It was felt that the enemy could not be allowed to remain in such close proximity to our outposts, and Showers (who had recovered from his slight wound) was again ordered to drive them off, for which purpose he was given a strong body of Infantry, composed of Europeans, Sikhs, and Gurkhas, a troop of Horse Artillery, a squadron of the 9th[Page 114] Lancers, and the Guides Cavalry. The result was a very brilliant little affair. The orders on this occasion were to 'move up silently and take the guns at Ludlow Castle.' The small column proceeded in the deepest silence, and the first sound heard at dawn on the 12th August was the challenge of the enemy's sentry, 'Ho come dar?' (Who comes there?). A bullet in his body was the reply. A volley of musketry followed, and effectually awoke the sleeping foe, who succeeded in letting off two of their guns as our men rushed on the battery. An Irish soldier, named Reegan, springing forward, prevented the discharge of the third gun. He bayoneted the gunner in the act of applying the port-fire, and was himself severely wounded. The rebel Artillerymen stood to their guns splendidly, and fought till they were all killed. The enemy's loss was severe; some 250 men were killed, and four guns were captured. On our side 1 officer and 19 men were killed, 7 officers and 85 men wounded, and 5 men missing. Amongst the wounded was the gallant Commander of the column, and that fine soldier, Major John Coke, the Commandant of the 1st Punjab Infantry. The return to camp was a stirring sight: the captured guns were brought home in triumph, pushed along by the soldiers, all madly cheering, and the horses ridden by men carrying their muskets with bayonets fixed.

Henry Lawrence's Death News While we were celebrating the prospect of being reinforced by a large number of British soldiers, a shadow fell over the entire camp with the rumor that Sir Henry Lawrence had died. As the first British Ruler of the Punjab, Henry Lawrence was well-respected by everyone in the Delhi Force, and everyone understood what a significant loss his death would be for the beleaguered garrison of Lucknow. However, we didn’t have much time to mourn, because at the end of the first week in August, another attempt was made to drive us from the Metcalfe House piquets. Guns were again brought through the Kashmir gate, positioned at Ludlow Castle and Kudsiabagh; at the same time, several Infantry skirmishers maintained almost constant fire from the jungle in front of our position. The losses at the piquets themselves were not heavy, thanks to good cover; however, the communications between the piquets and our main position were very exposed and extremely risky for the reliefs. It was recognized that the enemy could not be allowed to stay so close to our outposts, and Showers (who had recovered from his minor wound) was ordered to drive them off once more. For this mission, he was given a strong unit of Infantry made up of Europeans, Sikhs, and Gurkhas, a troop of Horse Artillery, a squadron of the 9th[Page 114] Lancers, and the Guides Cavalry. The outcome was an impressive little engagement. The orders this time were to "move up quietly and take the guns at Ludlow Castle." The small column advanced in complete silence, and the first sound heard at dawn on August 12th was the challenge from the enemy's sentry, 'Ho come dar?' (Who goes there?). A bullet in his body was the response. A volley of musketry followed, effectively waking the dozing foe, who managed to fire two of their guns as our men rushed toward the battery. An Irish soldier named Reegan jumped forward and stopped the third gun from being fired. He bayoneted the gunner just as he was about to apply the port-fire and was severely wounded himself. The rebel Artillerymen stood firm at their guns and fought until they were all killed. The enemy suffered heavy losses; about 250 men were killed, and four guns were captured. On our side, 1 officer and 19 men were killed, 7 officers and 85 men were wounded, and 5 men were missing. Among the wounded was the brave Commander of the column and that fine soldier, Major John Coke, the Commandant of the 1st Punjab Infantry. The return to camp was an inspiring sight: the captured guns were brought back in triumph, pushed along by the soldiers, all wildly cheering, with the horses ridden by men carrying their muskets with bayonets fixed.

Arrival of the Movable Column The following morning the Punjab Movable Column arrived. Nicholson had preceded it by a few days, and from him I heard all about his fight with the Sialkot mutineers at Trimmu Ghat and the various marches and counter-marches which he had made since I left him at Philour.

Arrival of the Mobile Unit The next morning, the Punjab Movable Column arrived. Nicholson had gotten there a few days earlier, and from him, I learned all about his battle with the Sialkot mutineers at Trimmu Ghat and the different marches and counter-marches he had made since I left him at Philour.

The column was a most welcome addition to our force. It now consisted of the 52nd Light Infantry, a wing of the 61st Foot, a Field Battery, a wing of the 1st Baluch Regiment, and the 2nd Punjab Infantry, beside 200 newly-raised Multani Cavalry and 400 military police. This brought up our effective force to about 8,000 rank and file of all arms.5 A more powerful siege-train than we had hitherto possessed was on its way from Ferozepore, and three companies of the 8th Foot, detachments of Artillery and the 60th Rifles, the 4th Punjab Infantry, and about 100 recruits for the 4th Sikhs were also marching towards Delhi. In addition, a small contingent from Kashmir and a few of the Jhind Raja's troops were shortly expected, after the arrival of which nothing in the shape of reinforcements could be looked for from the north.

The column was a very welcome addition to our force. It now included the 52nd Light Infantry, a wing of the 61st Foot, a Field Battery, a wing of the 1st Baluch Regiment, and the 2nd Punjab Infantry, along with 200 newly-formed Multani Cavalry and 400 military police. This brought our effective force to about 8,000 soldiers of all arms.5 A more powerful siege train than we had ever had before was on its way from Ferozepore, and three companies of the 8th Foot, along with detachments of Artillery and the 60th Rifles, the 4th Punjab Infantry, and about 100 recruits for the 4th Sikhs were also heading toward Delhi. Additionally, a small group from Kashmir and a few of the Jhind Raja's troops were expected soon, after which we couldn't anticipate any more reinforcements from the north.

Nor could we hope for any help from the south, for no definite news had been received from Havelock since his letter of the 25th of July, and rumours had reached us that, finding it impossible to force his way to Lucknow, he had been obliged to retire upon Cawnpore. It was felt, therefore, that if Delhi were to be taken at all, it must be taken[Page 115] quickly, before our augmented numbers should be again diminished by sickness and casualties.

Nor could we expect any help from the south, since we hadn’t received any solid news from Havelock since his letter dated July 25th. Rumors had reached us that, finding it impossible to push his way to Lucknow, he had to fall back to Cawnpore. It was understood, therefore, that if Delhi was going to be captured at all, it needed to happen[Page 115]fast, before our increased numbers were reduced again by illness and casualties.

The enemy knew our position as well as we did, and appreciating the great value the siege-train would be to us, they decided on making a supreme effort to intercept it. A few days before they had been foiled by Hodson in an attempt to cut off our communication with the Punjab, and were determined to ensure success on this occasion by employing a really formidable force. This force left Delhi on the 24th August, and proceeded in the direction of the Najafgarh jhil.

The enemy knew our location just as well as we did, and recognizing how valuable the siege-train would be for us, they decided to make a major effort to stop it. A few days earlier, they had failed in an attempt to cut off our communication with the Punjab, and they were determined to succeed this time by using a genuinely powerful force. This force left Delhi on August 24th and headed toward the Najafgarh jhil.

At daybreak the following morning Nicholson started with sixteen Horse Artillery guns, 1,600 Infantry and 450 Cavalry, his orders being to overtake the enemy and bring them to action. I hoped to have been of the party, but Nicholson's request to have me as his staff officer was refused, as I had not been taken off the sick-list, though I considered my wound was practically healed.

At dawn the next morning, Nicholson set out with sixteen Horse Artillery guns, 1,600 Infantry, and 450 Cavalry, with orders to catch up with the enemy and engage them. I wished I could join them, but Nicholson's request for me to be his staff officer was turned down because I hadn't been removed from the sick list, even though I thought my wound was almost healed.

It proved a most difficult march. The rain fell in torrents, and the roads were mere quagmires. In the first nine miles two swamps had to be got through, on crossing which Nicholson heard that the insurgents were at Najafgarh, twelve miles further off. He determined to push on, and at 4 p.m. he found them occupying a strong position about a mile and three-quarters in length. In front was an old serai which was held in force with four guns, and on either side and in rear of the serai was a village equally strongly held; while running round the enemy's right and rear was a huge drainage cut, swollen by the heavy rain. This cut, or nulla, was crossed by a bridge immediately behind the rebels' position. Nicholson advanced from a side-road, which brought him on their right with the nulla flowing between him and them. Even at the ford the water was breast-high, and it was with much difficulty and not without a good deal of delay that our troops crossed under a heavy fire from the serai. It was getting late, and Nicholson had only time to make a hasty reconnaissance. He decided to attack the serai, drive out the mutineers, and then, changing front to the left, to sweep down their line and get possession of the bridge.

It was a really tough march. The rain came down hard, and the roads were just mud pits. In the first nine miles, they had to get through two swamps, and while crossing them, Nicholson found out that the insurgents were at Najafgarh, twelve miles ahead. He decided to keep going, and at 4 p.m., he located them holding a strong position about a mile and three-quarters long. In front was an old serai, strongly defended with four guns, and on both sides and behind the serai was a village that was equally fortified; while surrounding the enemy's right and rear was a large drainage ditch, swollen from the heavy rain. This ditch, or nulla, had a bridge right behind the rebels' position. Nicholson approached from a side road, which brought him to their right with the nulla between them. Even at the crossing, the water was up to his chest, and it was very difficult and took quite a bit of time for our troops to cross under heavy fire from the serai. It was getting late, and Nicholson only had time for a quick reconnaissance. He decided to attack the serai, drive out the mutineers, and then, shifting to the left, move down their line to take control of the bridge.



SKETCH TO ILLUSTRATE THE ENGAGEMENT AT NAJAFGARH IN AUGUST, 1857.

SKETCH TO ILLUSTRATE THE ENGAGEMENT AT NAJAFGARH IN AUGUST, 1857.

SKETCH TO ILLUSTRATE THE ENGAGEMENT AT NAJAFGARH IN AUGUST, 1857.

SKETCH TO ILLUSTRATE THE ENGAGEMENT AT NAJAFGARH IN AUGUST, 1857.



The 61st Foot at Najafgarh As the Infantry were about to advance, Nicholson thus addressed them: 'Men of the 61st, remember what Sir Colin Campbell said at Chilianwala, and you have heard that he said the same to his gallant Highland Brigade at the Alma. I have the same request to make of you and the men of the 1st Bengal Fusiliers. Hold your fire until within twenty or thirty yards, then fire and charge, and the serai is yours.' Our brave soldiers followed these directions to the letter, and, under cover of Artillery fire, carried the serai. Front was then changed to the left as had been arranged, and the line swept along the enemy's defences, the rebels flying before them over the bridge. They confessed to a loss of more than 800 men, and they left in our hands[Page 116] thirteen field-pieces and a large quantity of ammunition, besides all their camp equipage, stores, camels, and horses. Our casualties were 2 officers and 23 men killed, and 3 officers and 68 men wounded—two of the officers mortally, the third dangerously.

The 61st Foot at Najafgarh As the Infantry were about to move forward, Nicholson addressed them: 'Men of the 61st, remember what Sir Colin Campbell said at Chilianwala, and you’ve heard he said the same to his brave Highland Brigade at the Alma. I ask the same of you and the men of the 1st Bengal Fusiliers. Hold your fire until you're within twenty or thirty yards, then shoot and charge, and the serai is yours.' Our courageous soldiers followed these instructions closely, and, under the cover of Artillery fire, took the serai. The front was then shifted to the left as planned, and the line advanced along the enemy's defenses, with the rebels fleeing before them over the bridge. They reported a loss of over 800 men and left us[Page 116] thirteen field guns and a large amount of ammunition, along with all their camp gear, supplies, camels, and horses. Our casualties were 2 officers and 23 soldiers killed, and 3 officers and 68 soldiers wounded—two officers mortally, and the third seriously.

The enemy in the city, imagining from the size of the force sent with Nicholson that we could not have many troops left in camp, attacked us in great strength on the following morning (26th), but were beaten off with a loss on our side of only 8 killed and 13 wounded.

The enemy in the city, thinking that we couldn't have many troops left in camp because of the size of the force sent with Nicholson, launched a strong attack on us the following morning (26th). However, they were pushed back, and we only suffered a loss of 8 killed and 13 wounded.






CHAPTER XVII.

1857

By the 6th September all the reinforcements that could be expected, including the siege train (consisting of thirty-two pieces of ordnance with ample ammunition) had arrived in camp, and the time had now come when it was necessary for Wilson to determine whether Delhi was to be assaulted, or whether the attempt must be given up. Long exposure to sun and rain began to tell terribly on the troops; sickness increased to an alarming extent, and on the 31st August there were 2,368 men in hospital—a number which, six days later, had risen to 2,977.

By September 6th, all the reinforcements that could be expected, including the siege train (made up of thirty-two pieces of artillery with plenty of ammunition), had arrived in the camp. It was now time for Wilson to decide whether to attack Delhi or to abandon the effort. Prolonged exposure to sun and rain was taking a serious toll on the troops; illness was rising sharply, and on August 31st, there were 2,368 men in the hospital—a number that had increased to 2,977 just six days later.

Norman, on whose figures implicit reliance can be placed, states that on this date the total number of effective rank and file of all arms, Artillery, Engineers, Cavalry, and Infantry, including gun-Lascars, Native drivers, newly-raised Sikh Pioneers, and recruits for the Punjab regiments, was 8,748.

Norman, whose numbers can be trusted, says that on this date the total effective personnel of all branches, including Artillery, Engineers, Cavalry, and Infantry, along with gun Lascars, Native drivers, newly-formed Sikh Pioneers, and recruits for the Punjab regiments, was 8,748.

The strength of the British troops was 3,217, composed of 580 Artillery, 443 Cavalry, and 2,294 Infantry. The Infantry corps were mere skeletons, the strongest being only 409 effective rank and file. The 52nd, which had arrived three weeks before with 600 healthy men, had already dwindled to 242 fit for duty.

The British troops had a total strength of 3,217, including 580 Artillery, 443 Cavalry, and 2,294 Infantry. The Infantry units were severely weakened, with the largest unit only having 409 effective soldiers. The 52nd, which had arrived three weeks earlier with 600 healthy troops, had already shrunk to 242 who were fit for duty.

The above numbers are exclusive of the Kashmir Contingent of 2,200 men and four guns, which had by this time reached Delhi; and several hundred men of the Jhind troops (previously most usefully employed in keeping open our communication with Kurnal) were, at the Raja's particular request, brought in to share in the glory of the capture of Delhi, the Raja himself accompanying them.

The numbers mentioned above don't include the Kashmir Contingent of 2,200 men and four guns, which had by then arrived in Delhi; and several hundred men from the Jhind troops (who had previously been very helpful in maintaining our communication with Kurnal) were, at the Raja's specific request, brought in to take part in the glory of capturing Delhi, with the Raja himself joining them.

Wilson's Difficulties No one was more alive than the Commander of the Delhi Field Force to the fact that no further aid could be expected, and no one realized more keenly than he did that the strength of the little army at his disposal was diminishing day by day. But Wilson had never been sanguine as to the possibility of capturing Delhi without aid from the south. In a letter to Baird-Smith dated the 20th August, he discussed[Page 117] at length his reasons for not being in a position to 'hold out any hope of being able to take the place until supported by the force from below.' He now was aware that no troops could be expected from the south, and Sir John Lawrence plainly told him that he had sent him the last man he could spare from the Punjab. On the 29th August Lawrence wrote to Wilson: 'There seem to be very strong reasons for assaulting as soon as practicable. Every day's delay is fraught with danger. Every day disaffection and mutiny spread. Every day adds to the danger of the Native Princes taking part against us.' But Wilson did not find it easy to make up his mind to assault. He was ill. Responsibility and anxiety had told upon him. He had grown nervous and hesitating, and the longer it was delayed the more difficult the task appeared to him.

Wilson's Struggles No one understood better than the Commander of the Delhi Field Force that no additional help could be anticipated, and no one recognized more clearly than he did that the strength of the small army at his disposal was fading each day. But Wilson had never been optimistic about the chances of capturing Delhi without support from the south. In a letter to Baird-Smith dated August 20th, he discussed[Page 117] at length his reasons for not being able to 'hold out any hope of taking the place until supported by the force from below.' He was now aware that no troops could be expected from the south, and Sir John Lawrence had made it clear to him that he had sent the last available man from the Punjab. On August 29th, Lawrence wrote to Wilson: 'There seem to be very strong reasons for assaulting as soon as practicable. Every day's delay poses dangers. Every day, disaffection and mutiny spread. Every day increases the risk of the Native Princes joining against us.' However, Wilson found it difficult to commit to an assault. He was unwell. The weight of responsibility and worry had taken its toll. He had become anxious and indecisive, and the longer the delay, the more daunting the task appeared to him.

Fortunately for the continuance of our rule in India, Wilson had about him men who understood, as he was unable to do, the impossibility of our remaining any longer as we were. They knew that Delhi must either be taken or the army before it withdrawn. The man to whom the Commander first looked for counsel under these conditions—Baird-Smith, of the Bengal Engineers—proved himself worthy of the high and responsible position in which he was placed. He too was ill. Naturally of a delicate constitution, the climate and exposure had told upon him severely, and the diseases from which he was suffering were aggravated by a wound he had received soon after his arrival in camp. He fully appreciated the tremendous risks which an assault involved, but, in his opinion, they were less than were those of delay. Whether convinced or not by his Chief Engineer's arguments, Wilson accepted his advice and directed him to prepare a plan of attack.

Fortunately for the continuation of our rule in India, Wilson had people around him who understood, even if he couldn't, that it was impossible for us to remain as we were. They realized that Delhi had to be taken or the army in front of it had to be withdrawn. The person the Commander first turned to for advice in this situation—Baird-Smith, from the Bengal Engineers—proved to be worthy of the high and responsible position he held. He was also ill. Naturally having a delicate constitution, the climate and exposure had taken a severe toll on him, and the illnesses he was suffering from were worsened by a wound he had received soon after arriving in camp. He fully recognized the huge risks that an assault would entail, but he believed they were less than the risks of delaying action. Whether persuaded or not by his Chief Engineer's arguments, Wilson accepted his advice and asked him to prepare a plan of attack.

Baird-Smith was strongly supported by Nicholson, Chamberlain, Daly, Norman, and Alex. Taylor. They were one and all in communication with the authorities in the Punjab, and they knew that if 'Delhi were not taken, and that speedily, there would be a struggle not only for European dominion, but even for European existence within the Punjab itself.'1

Baird-Smith had solid backing from Nicholson, Chamberlain, Daly, Norman, and Alex. Taylor. They were all in touch with the authorities in Punjab and understood that if 'Delhi wasn't captured quickly, there would be a fight not just for European control but even for European survival within the Punjab itself.'1

Our position in that province was, indeed, most critical. An attempted conspiracy of Mahomedan tribes in the Murree Hills, and an insurrection in the Gogaira district, had occurred. Both these affairs were simply attempts to throw off the British yoke, made in the belief that our last hour was come. The feeling that prompted them was not confined to the Mahomedans; amongst all classes and races in the Punjab a spirit of restlessness was on the increase; even the most loyally disposed were speculating on the chances of our being able to hold our own, and doubting the advisability of adhering to our cause.[Page 118] On the part of the Sikhs of the Manjha2 there was an unwillingness to enlist, and no good recruits of this class could be obtained until after Delhi had fallen.

Our situation in that region was, in fact, very critical. A conspiracy involving Muslim tribes in the Murree Hills and an uprising in the Gogaira district had taken place. Both incidents were just efforts to shake off British control, fueled by the belief that our time was running out. This sentiment wasn't limited to the Muslims; among all classes and ethnicities in Punjab, there was a rising sense of unrest. Even the most loyal individuals were questioning our ability to maintain our position and were uncertain about sticking with our cause.[Page 118] The Sikhs of the Manjha2 were hesitant to enlist, and no good recruits from this group could be found until after Delhi had fallen.

It was under these critical circumstances that a council of war was convened to decide definitely whether the assault should take place or not.

It was under these urgent circumstances that a war council was called to make a final decision on whether the attack should proceed or not.

Nicholson's Resolve Nicholson was not a man of many intimacies, but as his staff officer I had been fortunate enough to gain his friendship. I was constantly with him, and on this occasion I was sitting in his tent before he set out to attend the council. He had been talking to me in confidential terms of personal matters, and ended by telling me of his intention to take a very unusual step should the council fail to arrive at any fixed determination regarding the assault. 'Delhi must be taken,' he said, 'and it is absolutely essential that this should be done at once; and if Wilson hesitates longer, I intend to propose at to-day's meeting that he should be superseded.' I was greatly startled, and ventured to remark that, as Chamberlain was hors de combat from his wound, Wilson's removal would leave him, Nicholson, senior officer with the force. He smiled as he answered: 'I have not overlooked that fact. I shall make it perfectly clear that, under the circumstances, I could not possibly accept the command myself, and I shall propose that it be given to Campbell, of the 52nd; I am prepared to serve under him for the time being, so no one can ever accuse me of being influenced by personal motives.'

Nicholson's Determination Nicholson wasn't a man with many close relationships, but as his staff officer, I had the luck of gaining his friendship. I spent a lot of time with him, and on this occasion, I was in his tent before he left to attend the council. He had been sharing personal matters with me and concluded by telling me his plan to take a very unusual step if the council failed to reach a clear decision about the assault. 'Delhi must be taken,' he said, 'and it's absolutely essential that it happens right away; if Wilson hesitates any longer, I intend to suggest at today's meeting that he should be replaced.' I was quite shocked and pointed out that since Chamberlain was hors de combat due to his injury, Wilson's removal would leave him, Nicholson, as the senior officer with the force. He smiled and said, 'I haven't overlooked that fact. I will make it very clear that, given the circumstances, I couldn't possibly accept the command myself, and I will propose that it be given to Campbell of the 52nd; I'm willing to serve under him for now, so nobody can ever say I was motivated by personal interests.'

Happily, Nicholson was not called upon to take so unusual a step. I walked with him to the Head-Quarters camp, waited in great excitement until the council of war was over, and, when Nicholson issued from the General's tent, learnt, to my intense relief, that Wilson had agreed to the assault.

Happily, Nicholson wasn't asked to take such an unusual step. I walked with him to the Headquarters camp, waited in great excitement until the council of war was over, and when Nicholson came out of the General's tent, I learned, to my immense relief, that Wilson had agreed to the assault.

That Nicholson would have carried out his intention if the council had come to a different conclusion I have not the slightest doubt, and I quite believe that his masterful spirit would have effected its purpose and borne down all opposition. Whether his action would have been right or wrong is another question, and one on which there is always sure to be great difference of opinion. At the time it seemed to me that he was right. The circumstances were so exceptional—Wilson would have proved himself so manifestly unfit to cope with them had he decided on further delay—and the consequences of such delay would have been so calamitous and far-reaching, that even now, after many years have passed, and after having often thought over Nicholson's intended action and discussed the subject with other men, I have not changed my opinion.

That Nicholson would have gone through with his plan if the council had made a different decision is something I have no doubt about, and I truly believe that his strong will would have achieved its goal and overcome all opposition. Whether what he did would have been right or wrong is another matter, and one that will always spark a wide range of opinions. At the time, I felt he was right. The situation was so unique—Wilson would have clearly shown himself to be unfit to handle it if he had chosen to delay further—and the fallout from such a delay would have been so disastrous and far-reaching that even now, after many years have passed and after thinking a lot about Nicholson's intended action and discussing it with others, I haven't changed my mind.

Arrangements for the Assault In anticipation of an attack on Delhi, preparations had been commenced[Page 119] early in September, one of the first of these being to form a trench to the left of the 'Sammy House,' at the end of which a battery was constructed for four 9-pounders and two 24-pounder howitzers. The object of this battery was to prevent sorties from the Lahore or Kabul gates passing round the city wall to annoy our breaching batteries, and also to assist in keeping down the fire from the Mori bastion.3 This battery, moreover, led the enemy to believe that we should attack them from our right, whereas it had been resolved to push the main attack from our left, where we could approach nearer to the walls under cover, and where our flank was completely protected by the river. The Engineers had also employed themselves in getting ready 10,000 fascines, as many gabions, and 100,000 sand-bags, besides field-magazines, scaling-ladders, and spare platforms.

Attack Plans In preparation for an assault on Delhi, work began[Page 119] in early September. One of the first tasks was to dig a trench to the left of the 'Sammy House,' at the end of which a battery was set up for four 9-pounders and two 24-pounder howitzers. The purpose of this battery was to stop any attempts to break through from the Lahore or Kabul gates that could disrupt our breaching batteries, and also to help reduce the fire from the Mori bastion.3 This battery also misled the enemy into thinking we would attack them from our right, while the plan was to launch the main attack from our left, where we could get closer to the walls under cover, and where our side was fully protected by the river. The Engineers were also busy preparing 10,000 fascines, as many gabions, and 100,000 sandbags, along with field magazines, scaling ladders, and extra platforms.

On the 7th September Wilson issued an order informing the force that arrangements for the assault would be commenced at once. He dwelt upon the hardships and fatigue which had been cheerfully borne by officers and men, and expressed his hope that they would be rewarded for their past labours, 'and for a cheerful endurance of still greater fatigue and exposure.' He reminded the troops of the reasons for the deadly struggle in which they were engaged, and he called upon all ranks to co-operate heart and soul in the arduous work now before them.

On September 7th, Wilson issued an order informing the unit that preparations for the assault would begin immediately. He emphasized the hardships and fatigue that officers and soldiers had bravely endured and expressed his hope that they would be rewarded for their past efforts, "and for a cheerful endurance of even greater fatigue and exposure." He reminded the troops of the reasons for the intense struggle they were involved in, and he urged everyone to fully cooperate in the challenging work ahead of them.

Construction of Breaching Batteries Ground was broken that evening. Unfortunately Baird-Smith was not able to personally superintend the construction of the breaching batteries, but he had in his second-in-command, Alex. Taylor, a thoroughly practical Engineer, who not only knew how to work himself, but how to get work out of others. Ever alert and cheerful, he was trusted and looked up to by all his subordinates, and was of all others the very man to be placed in charge of such a difficult and dangerous duty.

Building Breaching Batteries They broke ground that evening. Unfortunately, Baird-Smith couldn't personally oversee the construction of the breaching batteries, but he had a capable second-in-command, Alex Taylor, who was a practical engineer. He not only knew how to do the work himself but also how to motivate others to get the job done. Always alert and cheerful, he earned the trust and respect of all his subordinates, making him the ideal person to take charge of such a challenging and risky task.

The first battery, known as No. 1, was traced out in two parts, about 700 yards from the Mori bastion, which the right half, with its five 18-pounders and one 8-inch howitzer, was intended to silence; while the left half, with its four 24-pounders, was to hold the Kashmir bastion in check.

The first battery, called No. 1, was laid out in two sections, about 700 yards from the Mori bastion. The right half, featuring five 18-pounders and one 8-inch howitzer, aimed to silence it, while the left half, equipped with four 24-pounders, was meant to keep the Kashmir bastion in check.

All night the Engineers worked at the battery, but although before day broke it was nearly finished and armed, it was not ready to open fire until close on sunrise. The enemy did not fail to take advantage of this chance. They poured in round after round of shot and grape, causing many casualties. Their fire slackened as our guns were gradually able to make themselves felt, and by the afternoon it was silenced. Nothing remained of the Mori bastion but a heap of ruins. No. 1 battery was commanded by Major James Brind,4 the bravest of the[Page 120] brave. It was said of him that he 'never slept'; and Reid (of 'Hindu Rao' fame) wrote of him: 'On all occasions the exertions of this noble officer were indefatigable. He was always to be found where his presence was most required; and the example he set to officers and men was beyond all praise.'

All night, the Engineers worked on the battery, and even though it was nearly finished and armed by dawn, it wasn’t ready to fire until just before sunrise. The enemy didn’t miss this opportunity. They bombarded us with shot and grape, causing many casualties. Their fire decreased as our guns gradually began to have an impact, and by the afternoon, it was silenced. Only a pile of rubble remained of the Mori bastion. Battery No. 1 was led by Major James Brind,4 the bravest of the brave. People said he 'never slept'; and Reid (of 'Hindu Rao' fame) wrote about him: 'On all occasions, the efforts of this noble officer were tireless. He was always where he was needed the most, and the example he set for both officers and men was beyond all praise.'

No. 2 battery was next taken in hand. This was erected in front of Ludlow Castle, and about 500 yards from the Kashmir gate. Like No. 1, it was formed in two parts, the right half being intended for seven heavy howitzers and two 18-pounders, and the left for nine 24-pounders, commanded respectively by Majors Kaye and Campbell. All these guns were intended to breach the Kashmir bastion, where the main assault was to be made.

No. 2 battery was next taken in hand. This was set up in front of Ludlow Castle, about 500 yards from the Kashmir gate. Like No. 1, it was divided into two parts, with the right side designated for seven heavy howitzers and two 18-pounders, and the left for nine 24-pounders, commanded by Majors Kaye and Campbell, respectively. All these guns were aimed at breaching the Kashmir bastion, where the main assault was planned to take place.

Up till this time the enemy had imagined that the attack would be delivered from our right, and they were quite taken by surprise when, on the evening of the 8th September, we occupied Ludlow Castle.

Up until now, the enemy had thought that the attack would come from our right, and they were completely caught off guard when, on the evening of September 8th, we took control of Ludlow Castle.

Baird-Smith showed his grasp of the situation in attacking from our left, notwithstanding the greater distance of this part of our position from the city wall. No counter-attack could be made on that flank, and the comparatively open ground between the Kashmir and Mori bastions would assist us in protecting the assaulting columns.

Baird-Smith demonstrated his understanding of the situation by launching an attack from our left, even though this area of our position was further away from the city wall. There couldn’t be any counter-attack on that side, and the relatively open space between the Kashmir and Mori bastions would help us defend the attacking units.

As soon as the enemy discovered their mistake, they did their utmost to prevent our batteries being constructed; but the Engineers were not to be deterred. By the morning of the 11th No. 2 battery was completed, armed, and unmasked, and No. 3 and No. 4 batteries were marked out in the Kudsiabagh. No. 3, commanded by Major Scott, was constructed for six 18-pounders, and twelve 5½ inch mortars under Captain Blunt. Norman in his narrative says: 'The establishment of Major Scott's battery within 180 yards of the wall, to arm which heavy guns had to be dragged from the rear under a constant fire of musketry, was an operation that could rarely have been equalled in war.' During the first night of its construction 89 men were killed and wounded; but with rare courage the workmen continued their task. They were merely unarmed pioneers; and with that passive bravery so characteristic of Natives, as man after man was knocked over, they would stop a moment, weep a little over a fallen friend, place his body in a row along with the rest, and then work on as before.5

As soon as the enemy realized their mistake, they did everything they could to stop our batteries from being built; but the Engineers wouldn’t be discouraged. By the morning of the 11th, Battery No. 2 was finished, armed, and ready to go, and Batteries No. 3 and No. 4 were laid out in Kudsiabagh. Battery No. 3, led by Major Scott, was designed for six 18-pounders and twelve 5½ inch mortars under Captain Blunt. In his account, Norman says: 'Establishing Major Scott's battery just 180 yards from the wall, requiring heavy guns to be pulled from the rear under constant musket fire, was an operation that was rarely matched in warfare.' During the first night of construction, 89 men were killed or wounded; but with extraordinary courage, the workers continued their task. They were simply unarmed pioneers, and with that profound bravery typical of the Natives, when one man was knocked down, they would pause for a moment, mourn for their fallen friend, lay his body in a line with the others, and then keep working as before.5

No. 4 battery, armed with ten heavy mortars, and commanded by Major Tombs, was placed under the shelter of an old building, about half-way between No. 2 and No. 3 batteries.6

No. 4 battery, equipped with ten heavy mortars and led by Major Tombs, was positioned under the cover of an old building, roughly halfway between No. 2 and No. 3 batteries.6

I was posted to the left half of No. 2 battery, and had charge of the[Page 121] two right guns. At eight o'clock on the morning of the 11th September we opened fire on the Kashmir bastion and the adjoining curtain, and as the shots told and the stones flew into the air and rattled down, a loud cheer burst from the Artillerymen and some of the men of the Carabineers and 9th Lancers who had volunteered to work in the batteries. The enemy had got our range with wonderful accuracy, and immediately on the screen in front of the right gun being removed, a round shot came through the embrasure, knocking two or three of us over. On regaining my feet, I found that the young Horse Artilleryman who was serving the vent while I was laying the gun had had his right arm taken off.

I was assigned to the left side of No. 2 battery and was in charge of the[Page 121] two right guns. At eight o'clock on the morning of September 11th, we started firing on the Kashmir bastion and the nearby curtain, and as the shots landed and the stones flew into the air and fell, a loud cheer erupted from the Artillerymen and some of the men from the Carabineers and 9th Lancers who had volunteered to help in the batteries. The enemy was remarkably accurate with their shots, and as soon as the screen in front of the right gun was removed, a cannonball came through the embrasure, knocking over two or three of us. When I got back on my feet, I realized that the young Horse Artilleryman who was loading the gun while I was aiming had lost his right arm.

In the evening of the same day, when, wearied with hard work and exhausted by the great heat, we were taking a short rest, trusting to the shelter of the battery for protection, a shower of grape came into us, severely wounding our commander, Campbell, whose place was taken by Edwin Johnson. We never left the battery until the day of the assault—the 14th—except to go by turns into Ludlow Castle for our meals. Night and day the overwhelming fire was continued, and the incessant boom and roar of guns and mortars, with the ceaseless rain of shot and shell on the city, warned the mutineers that their punishment was at hand. We were not, however, allowed to have it all our own way. Unable to fire a gun from any of the three bastions we were breaching, the enemy brought guns into the open and enfiladed our batteries. They sent rockets from their martello towers, and they maintained a perfect storm of musketry from their advanced trench and from the city walls. No part of the attack was left unsearched by their fire, and though three months' incessant practice had made our men skilful in using any cover they had, our losses were numerous, 327 officers and men being killed and wounded between the 7th and 14th September.

In the evening of the same day, after a long day of hard work and being worn out from the intense heat, we were resting briefly, relying on the battery for shelter. Suddenly, a barrage of grape shot hit us, seriously wounding our commander, Campbell, who was then replaced by Edwin Johnson. We stayed at the battery until the day of the assault on the 14th, only leaving in shifts to go to Ludlow Castle for our meals. The relentless bombardment continued day and night, with the persistent sound of guns and mortars and the constant rain of shot and shell on the city, signaling to the mutineers that their reckoning was coming. However, we didn’t have it easy. Unable to fire any guns from the three bastions we were breaching, the enemy set up their own guns in the open and targeted our batteries. They launched rockets from their martello towers and unleashed a constant storm of musket fire from their forward trench and the city walls. No part of our attack was safe from their fire, and despite three months of continuous practice making our men adept at using any cover they could find, we suffered heavy losses, with 327 officers and men killed or wounded between September 7th and 14th.

Nicholson Expresses his Satisfaction On the evening of the 13th September Nicholson came to see whether we gunners had done our work thoroughly enough to warrant the assault being made the next morning. He was evidently satisfied, for when he entered our battery he said: 'I must shake hands with you fellows; you have done your best to make my work easy to-morrow.'

Nicholson Shares his Satisfaction On the evening of September 13th, Nicholson came to check if we gunners had done our job well enough to justify the assault planned for the next morning. He seemed pleased because when he entered our battery, he said, "I have to shake hands with you guys; you’ve done your best to make my job easier tomorrow."

Nicholson was accompanied by Taylor, who had to make certain that the breaches were practicable, and for this purpose he detailed four subaltern officers of Engineers to go to the walls as soon as it was dark, and report upon the condition they were in. Greathed and Home were told off for the Water bastion breach, and Medley and Lang7 for that of the Kashmir bastion. Lang asked to be allowed to go while it was yet daylight; Taylor agreed, and with an escort of four men of the 60th Rifles he crept to the edge of the cover in the Kudsiabagh, and then, running up the glacis, sat on top of the counterscarp for[Page 122] a few seconds studying the ditch and the two breaches. On his return Lang reported the breaches to be practicable; as, however, it was desirable to ascertain whether ladders would be necessary, he was sent again after dark, in company with Medley. They took a ladder and a measuring-rod with them, and were escorted by an officer and twenty-four riflemen, of whom all but six were left under cover in the Kudsiabagh. Lang slipped into the ditch, which he found to be sixteen feet deep. Medley handed him the ladder and rod, and followed him with two riflemen, the other four remaining on the crest of the glacis to cover their retreat. With the help of the ladder they ascended the berm and measured the height of the wall. Two minutes more, and they would have reached the top of the breach, but, quiet as they had been, their movements had attracted attention, and several of the enemy were heard running towards the breach. The whole party reascended as rapidly as possible, and, throwing themselves on the grass, waited in breathless silence, hoping the sepoys would go away, and that they might be able to make another attempt to reach the top of the breach. The rebels, however, gave no signs of retiring, and as all needful information had been obtained, they determined to run for it. A volley was fired at the party as they dashed across the open, but no one was hit.

Nicholson was with Taylor, who needed to ensure that the breaches were usable. To do this, he sent four junior engineers to the walls as soon as it got dark to report on their condition. Greathed and Home were assigned to the Water bastion breach, while Medley and Lang7 took care of the Kashmir bastion breach. Lang requested to go while it was still daylight; Taylor agreed, and with four men from the 60th Rifles for support, he quietly made his way to the edge of cover in the Kudsiabagh. Then, hurrying up the glacis, he sat on top of the counterscarp for[Page 122] a few seconds to check out the ditch and the two breaches. When he got back, Lang reported that the breaches were usable. However, to find out if ladders would be necessary, he was sent again after dark, this time with Medley. They took a ladder and a measuring stick with them, accompanied by an officer and twenty-four riflemen, leaving all but six hidden in the Kudsiabagh. Lang slipped into the ditch, which was sixteen feet deep. Medley handed him the ladder and rod, followed by two riflemen, while the other four stayed on the crest of the glacis to cover their retreat. Using the ladder, they climbed the berm and measured the height of the wall. Just two minutes more, and they would have reached the top of the breach, but despite their quiet movements, they attracted attention, and several enemies were heard running toward them. The entire group quickly made their way back up and, throwing themselves on the grass, waited silently, hoping the sepoys would leave so they could try again to reach the top of the breach. However, the rebels showed no signs of backing off, and since they had gathered all necessary information, they decided to make a run for it. A volley was fired at them as they sprinted across the open area, but no one was hit.

Greathed and Home had been equally successful, and by midnight Baird-Smith was able to report to General Wilson that both breaches were practicable.

Greathed and Home had both been equally successful, and by midnight Baird-Smith was able to inform General Wilson that both breaches were feasible.

Baird-Smith urged the importance of attacking without delay. He pointed out the impossibility of continuing the high pressure at which nearly every man8 in the force had been working during the past few days; that the tension was becoming too severe to last; and that every hour[Page 123] that passed without assaulting was a loss to us and a gain to the enemy.

Baird-Smith stressed the need to attack immediately. He highlighted the challenge of maintaining the intense pressure that almost every man8 in the force had been under over the past few days; the strain was becoming unsustainable, and every hour[Page 123] that went by without an assault was a setback for us and an advantage for the enemy.

Orders for the Assault Issued Before Wilson and Baird-Smith separated, orders had been issued for the attack to be made at daybreak the next morning, the 14th.

Assault Orders Issued Before Wilson and Baird-Smith parted ways, orders had been given for the attack to take place at dawn the following morning, the 14th.

Composition of the Attacking Columns It was arranged that there were to be four assaulting columns and one reserve column.

Composition of the Attack Groups It was decided that there would be four assault columns and one reserve column.

The first, second and third columns, which were to operate on our left, were under the command of Brigadier-General Nicholson, who personally led No. 1 column. It consisted of:

The first, second, and third columns, which were set to operate on our left, were under the command of Brigadier-General Nicholson, who personally led Column No. 1. It consisted of:

  MEN.
Her Majesty's 75th Foot
1st Bengal Fusiliers
2nd Punjab Infantry
  300
  250
  450
——–
Total 1,000

and was meant to storm the breach near the Kashmir bastion.

and was supposed to charge the breach near the Kashmir stronghold.

[Note: I am indebted to the kindness of Mrs. Barter, the widow of my gallant friend and comrade. General Richard Barter, C.B., who served throughout the Mutiny with the 75th Foot, first as Adjutant and afterwards as Captain, for the above 'Daily State' and for the following extract from that officer's diary:

[Note: I am grateful for the kindness of Mrs. Barter, the widow of my brave friend and comrade, General Richard Barter, C.B., who served throughout the Mutiny with the 75th Foot, first as Adjutant and later as Captain, for the above 'Daily State' and for the following excerpt from that officer's diary:]

'In the evening the order was published for the storming of Delhi a little before daybreak the next morning, September 14, and we each of us looked carefully to the reloading of our pistols, filling of flasks, and getting as good protection as possible for our heads, which would be exposed so much going up the ladders. I wound two puggris or turbans round my old forage cap, with the last letter from the hills [Mrs. Barter was then at Kasauli, in the Himalayas] in the top, and committed myself to the care of Providence. There was not much sleep that night in our camp. I dropped off now and then, but never for long, and whenever I woke I could see that there was a light in more than one of the officers' tents, and talking was going on in a low tone amongst the men, the snapping of a lock or springing of a ramrod sounding far in the still air, telling of preparation for the coming strife. A little after midnight we fell in as quietly as possible, and by the light of a lantern the orders for the assault were then read to the men. They were to the following purport: Any officer or man who might be wounded was to be left where he fell; no one was to step from the ranks to help him, as there were no men to spare. If the assault were successful he would be taken away in the doolies, or litters, and carried to the rear, or wherever he could best receive medical assistance. If we failed, wounded and sound should be prepared to bear the worst. There was to be no plundering, but all prize taken was to be put into a common stock for fair division after all was over. No prisoners were to be made, as we had no one to guard them, and care was to be taken that no women or children were injured. To this the men answered at once, by "No fear, sir." The officers now pledged their honours on their swords to abide by these orders, and the men then promised to follow their example. At this moment, just as the regiment was about to march off, Father Bertrand came up in his vestments, and, addressing the Colonel, begged for permission to bless the regiment, saying: "We may differ some of us in matters of religion, but the blessing of an old man and a clergyman can do nothing but good." The Colonel at once assented, and Father Bertrand, lifting his hands to Heaven, blessed the regiment in a most impressive manner, offering up at the same time a prayer for our success and for mercy on the souls of those soon to die.']

In the evening, the order was issued for the assault on Delhi just before dawn the next morning, September 14. We each carefully reloaded our pistols, filled our flasks, and made sure we had the best head protection possible since our heads would be exposed while climbing the ladders. I wrapped two turbans around my old forage cap, placing the latest letter from the hills [Mrs. Barter was then in Kasauli, in the Himalayas] in the top, and left my safety in the hands of Providence. There wasn’t much sleep that night in our camp. I dozed off here and there, but never for long. Each time I woke up, I noticed lights in several of the officers' tents, and I could hear the men quietly talking. The sound of a lock clicking or a ramrod springing echoed through the still night, signaling preparations for the impending conflict. Shortly after midnight, we assembled as quietly as possible, and by lantern light, the orders for the assault were read to the men. They were as follows: any officer or soldier who got wounded would be left where he fell; no one was allowed to step out of line to help him, as we didn’t have spare men. If the assault succeeded, he would be taken away in litters and carried to the rear or wherever he could get medical help. If we failed, both the wounded and the uninjured should be ready to face the worst. There would be no looting; all spoils would go into a communal stock for fair distribution after everything was over. No prisoners were to be taken since we had no one to guard them, and we had to ensure that no women or children were harmed. The men immediately responded with “No fear, sir.” The officers pledged their honor on their swords to follow these orders, and then the men promised to do the same. At that moment, just as the regiment was about to march off, Father Bertrand approached in his vestments and asked the Colonel for permission to bless the regiment, saying, “We may have different religious beliefs, but the blessing of an old man and a clergyman can only be a good thing.” The Colonel agreed right away, and Father Bertrand raised his hands to Heaven, blessing the regiment in a very moving way while also praying for our success and for mercy on the souls of those who would soon die.

No. 2 column, under Brigadier Jones, of Her Majesty's 61st Foot,[Page 124] consisted of:

No. 2 column, under Brigadier Jones, of Her Majesty's 61st Foot,[Page 124] included:

  MEN.
Her Majesty's 8th Foot
2nd Bengal Fusiliers
4th Sikhs
 250
 250
 350
 —–
Total  850

and was intended for the storming of the breach near the Water bastion.

and was meant for the assault on the breach near the Water bastion.

No. 3 column, under Colonel Campbell, of Her Majesty's 52nd Light Infantry, consisted of:

No. 3 column, under Colonel Campbell, of Her Majesty's 52nd Light Infantry, consisted of:

  MEN.
Her Majesty's 52nd Light Infantry
Kumaon Battalion
1st Punjab Infantry
 200
 250
 500
 —–
Total  950

and was told off to enter the Kashmir gate after it had been blown in.

and was instructed to enter the Kashmir gate after it had been blown open.

No. 4 column was to operate on our right. It was commanded by Major Reid, of the Sirmur battalion, and was composed of that regiment, the Guides Infantry, and such men from the piquets (European and Native) as could be spared. Its strength was 860 men, besides 1,200 of the Kashmir Contingent, and its orders were to attack the suburbs of Kisenganj and Paharipur, and support the main attack by effecting an entrance at the Kabul gate..

No. 4 column was set to operate on our right. It was led by Major Reid of the Sirmur battalion and included that regiment, the Guides Infantry, and whatever soldiers from the posts (European and Native) could be spared. Its total strength was 860 men, in addition to 1,200 from the Kashmir Contingent. Its orders were to attack the suburbs of Kisenganj and Paharipur and support the main attack by making an entrance at the Kabul gate.

The Reserve column, under Brigadier Longfield, Her Majesty's 8th Foot, was told to await the result of the attack, and afford assistance wherever required. It consisted of:.

The Reserve column, led by Brigadier Longfield of Her Majesty's 8th Foot, was instructed to wait for the outcome of the attack and provide assistance wherever needed. It was made up of:

  MEN.
Her Majesty's 61st Foot
4th Punjab Infantry
Wing Baluch battalion
  250
  450
  300
——–
Total 1,000

with 300 of the Jhind Contingent..

with 300 members of the Jhind Contingent..

There were besides 200 of the 60th Rifles, who were to cover the advance of Nicholson's columns, and join the reserve as soon as the assaults had been carried out..

There were also 200 soldiers from the 60th Rifles, who were tasked with covering the advance of Nicholson's columns and would join the reserve as soon as the assaults were completed.

In order to provide these five columns, in all hardly 5,000 strong, the services of every man who could bear arms had to be put into requisition. Piquets were weakened to a dangerous extent, and many of the sick and wounded who ought to have been in hospital were utilized for the protection of the camp..

In order to provide these five columns, totaling around 5,000 troops, every man who could carry a weapon had to be called up. Piquets were reduced to a risky level, and many of the sick and injured who should have been in the hospital were used to guard the camp.

DAILY STATE
OF
H.M.'S 75TH REGIMENT
——–——–

DAILY STATUS
OF
H.M.'S 75TH REGIMENT
——–——–

Camp Delhi, 13th September, 1857.

Camp Delhi, September 13, 1857.

  Sergeants. Drummers. Rank and File.
Fit to turn out
On duty
  1
29
  5
  6
  37
361


True copy,
(Sd.) R. BARTER, Lieut.-Adj.,
75th Regiment.]
  (Sd.) E. COURTENAY,
Sergt.-Major,
75th Regt.





CHAPTER XVIII.

1857
Delhi Hit

It was intended, as I have before said, that the assault should be delivered at break of day, but many of the men belonging to the regiments of the storming force had been on piquet all night, and it took some time for them to rejoin their respective corps. A further delay was caused by our having to destroy the partial repairs to the breaches which the enemy had succeeded in effecting during the night, notwithstanding the steady fire we had kept up.

It was planned, as I mentioned earlier, that the attack would happen at dawn, but many of the soldiers from the assault units had been on guard all night, and it took a while for them to return to their units. We also faced a further delay because we had to undo the temporary repairs the enemy made to the breaches during the night, even though we maintained a constant fire against them.

While we were thus engaged, the Infantry were ordered to lie down under cover. Standing on the crenellated wall which separated Ludlow Castle from the road, I saw Nicholson at the head of his column, and wondered what was passing through his mind. Was he thinking of the future, or of the wonderful part he had played during the past four months? At Peshawar he had been Edwardes's right hand. At the head of the Movable Column he had been mainly instrumental in keeping the Punjab quiet, and at Delhi everyone felt that during the short time he had been with us he was our guiding star, and that but for his presence in the camp the assault which he was about to lead would probably never have come off. He was truly 'a tower of strength.' Any feeling of reluctance to serve under a Captain of the Company's army, which had at first been felt by some, had been completely overcome by his wonderful personality. Each man in the force, from the General in command to the last-joined private soldier, recognized that the man whom the wild people on the frontier had deified—the man of whom a little time before Edwardes had said to Lord Canning, 'You may rely upon this, that if ever there is a desperate deed to be done in India, John Nicholson is the man to do it'—was one who had proved himself beyond all doubt capable of grappling with the crisis through which we were passing—one to follow to the death. Faith in the Commander who had claimed and been given the post of honour was unbounded, and every man was prepared 'to do or die' for him.

While we were busy, the Infantry were told to lie down for cover. Standing on the crenellated wall that separated Ludlow Castle from the road, I saw Nicholson at the front of his column and wondered what was going through his mind. Was he thinking about the future, or about the amazing role he had played in the past four months? At Peshawar, he had been Edwardes's right-hand man. As the leader of the Movable Column, he played a key role in keeping the Punjab peaceful, and at Delhi, everyone felt that during the short time he had been with us, he was our guiding star. Without his presence in the camp, the assault he was about to lead probably wouldn't have happened. He was truly 'a tower of strength.' Any initial hesitation about serving under a Captain of the Company's army, which some had felt, had completely vanished due to his remarkable personality. Every member of the force, from the General in charge to the newest private soldier, recognized that the man whom the wild people on the frontier regarded as a deity—the man of whom Edwardes had recently told Lord Canning, 'You can count on this, if there’s ever a desperate job to be done in India, John Nicholson is the one to do it'—had undoubtedly proven himself capable of handling the crisis we were facing—someone worth following to the end. Faith in the Commander who had claimed and received the position of honor was boundless, and every man was ready 'to do or die' for him.

The sun had risen high in the heavens, when the breaching guns suddenly ceased, and each soldier felt he had but a brief moment in which to brace himself for the coming conflict. Nicholson gave the signal. The 60th Rifles with a loud cheer dashed to the front in skirmishing order, while at the same moment the heads of the first and second columns appeared from the Kudsiabagh and moved steadily towards the breaches.

The sun was high in the sky when the cannons suddenly stopped, and each soldier felt he had only a short moment to prepare for the upcoming battle. Nicholson signaled. The 60th Rifles charged to the front with a loud cheer, while at the same time, the heads of the first and second columns emerged from the Kudsiabagh and moved steadily toward the breaches.

No sooner were the front ranks seen by the rebels than a storm of bullets met them from every side, and officers and men fell thick on the crest of the glacis. Then, for a few seconds, amidst a blaze of musketry, the soldiers stood at the edge of the ditch, for only one or[Page 126] two of the ladders had come up, the rest having been dropped by their killed or wounded carriers. Dark figures crowded on the breach, hurling stones upon our men and daring them to come on. More ladders were brought up, they were thrown into the ditch, and our men, leaping into it, raised them against the escarp on the other side. Nicholson, at the head of a part of his column, was the first to ascend the breach in the curtain. The remainder of his troops diverged a little to the right to escalade the breach in the Kashmir bastion. Here Lieutenants Barter and Fitzgerald, of the 75th Foot, were the first to mount, and here the latter fell mortally wounded. The breaches were quickly filled with dead and dying, but the rebels were hurled back, and the ramparts which had so long resisted us were our own.

As soon as the rebels spotted the front ranks, a hail of bullets came at them from all directions, and officers and soldiers fell heavily on the edge of the glacis. For a few seconds, amidst a barrage of gunfire, the soldiers held their ground at the brink of the ditch, as only one or[Page 126] two of the ladders had made it up; the rest had been dropped by their fallen or injured carriers. Dark figures crowded the breach, throwing stones at our men and challenging them to advance. More ladders were brought up, tossed into the ditch, and our men jumped in to raise them against the slope on the other side. Nicholson, leading part of his column, was the first to climb the breach in the curtain. The rest of his troops shifted slightly to the right to scale the breach in the Kashmir bastion. Here, Lieutenants Barter and Fitzgerald of the 75th Foot were the first to ascend, and this was where Fitzgerald was mortally wounded. The breaches quickly filled with the dead and dying, but the rebels were pushed back, and the ramparts that had resisted us for so long were now ours.

The breach at the Water bastion was carried by No. 2 column. No sooner was its head seen emerging from the cover of the old Custom-house than it was met by a terrible discharge of musketry. Both the Engineer officers (Greathed and Hovenden) who were leading it fell severely wounded, and of the thirty-nine men who carried the ladders twenty-nine were killed or wounded in as many seconds. The ladders were immediately seized by their comrades, who, after one or two vain attempts, succeeded in placing them against the escarp. Then, amidst a shower of stones and bullets, the soldiers ascended, rushed the breach, and, slaying all before them, drove the rebels from the walls.

The breach at the Water bastion was made by No. 2 column. As soon as its leader came out from behind the old Custom-house, they were met with a deadly volley of gunfire. Both Engineer officers (Greathed and Hovenden), who were in charge, were seriously wounded, and out of the thirty-nine men carrying the ladders, twenty-nine were killed or injured in just a few seconds. The ladders were quickly grabbed by their teammates, who, after a couple of unsuccessful tries, managed to set them against the escarp. Then, amidst a barrage of stones and bullets, the soldiers climbed up, charged through the breach, and, killing everyone in their path, pushed the rebels off the walls.

The Scene at the Kashmir Gate No. 3 column had in the meanwhile advanced towards the Kashmir gate and halted. Lieutenants Home and Salkeld, with eight Sappers and Miners and a bugler of the 52nd Foot, went forward to blow the gate open. The enemy were apparently so astounded at the audacity of this proceeding that for a minute or two they offered but slight resistance. They soon, however, discovered how small the party was and the object for which it had come, and forthwith opened a deadly fire upon the gallant little band from the top of the gateway, from the city wall, and through the open wicket.

The Scene at the Kashmir Gate Column No. 3 had meanwhile moved toward the Kashmir gate and stopped. Lieutenants Home and Salkeld, along with eight Sappers and Miners and a bugler from the 52nd Foot, advanced to blow the gate open. The enemy seemed so shocked by the boldness of this action that for a minute or two they offered only weak resistance. However, they quickly realized how few the attackers were and what their goal was, and immediately opened up a fierce fire on the brave little group from the top of the gateway, from the city wall, and through the open wicket.

The bridge over the ditch in front of the gateway had been destroyed, and it was with some difficulty that the single beam which remained could be crossed. Home with the men carrying the powder-bags got over first. As the bags were being attached to the gate, Sergeant Carmichael was killed and Havildar Madhoo wounded; the rest then slipped into the ditch to allow the firing party which had come up under Salkeld to carry out its share of the duty.

The bridge over the ditch in front of the gateway had been destroyed, and it was a bit challenging to cross the single beam that was left. The team carrying the powder bags went over first. While the bags were being attached to the gate, Sergeant Carmichael was killed, and Havildar Madhoo was wounded; the others then jumped into the ditch to let the firing party that had come up under Salkeld do their part of the duty.

While endeavouring to fire the charge, Salkeld, being shot through the leg and arm, handed the slow-match to Corporal Burgess, who fell mortally wounded, but not until he had successfully performed his task.

While trying to ignite the charge, Salkeld, wounded in the leg and arm, passed the slow-match to Corporal Burgess, who fell fatally injured, but not before he completed his task successfully.

As soon as the explosion had taken place, Bugler Hawthorne sounded the regimental call of the 52nd. Meeting with no response, he sounded twice again. The noise of firing and shouting was so great that neither the sound of the bugle nor that of the explosion reached the column,[Page 127] but Campbell, after allowing the firing party what he thought was sufficient time, gave the order to advance. Captain Crosse, of the 52nd, was the first to reach the gate, followed closely by Corporal Taylor of his own company, and Captain Synge of the same regiment, who was Campbell's Brigade-Major. In single file along the narrow plank they crossed the ditch in which lay the shattered remnant of the gallant little band; they crept through the wicket, which was the only part blown in, and found the interior of the gateway blocked by an 18-pounder gun, under which were lying the scorched bodies of two or three sepoys, who had evidently been killed by the explosion. The rest of the column followed as rapidly as the precarious crossing would admit, and when Campbell got inside he found himself face to face with both Nicholson's and Jones's columns, which, after mounting the three breaches, poured in a mingled crowd into the open space between the Kashmir gate and the church.

As soon as the explosion happened, Bugler Hawthorne sounded the regimental call of the 52nd. When there was no response, he sounded it twice more. The noise of gunfire and shouting was so loud that neither the bugle nor the explosion was heard by the column,[Page 127] but Campbell, believing the firing party had enough time, ordered them to advance. Captain Crosse of the 52nd was the first to reach the gate, closely followed by Corporal Taylor from his company and Captain Synge of the same regiment, who was Campbell's Brigade-Major. They crossed the ditch in single file along the narrow plank, where the remains of the brave little band lay scattered. They crept through the gate, which was the only part blown in, and found the interior of the gateway blocked by an 18-pounder gun, underneath which lay the charred bodies of two or three sepoys, evidently killed by the explosion. The rest of the column followed as quickly as the shaky crossing allowed, and when Campbell got inside, he found himself face-to-face with both Nicholson's and Jones's columns, which, after scaling the three breaches, surged into the open space between the Kashmir gate and the church.

No. 4 column advanced from the Sabzi Mandi towards Kisenganj and Paharipur. Reid, the commander, was unfortunately wounded early in the day. Several other officers were either killed or wounded, and for a little time a certain amount of confusion existed owing to some misconception as to whether the command of the column should be exercised by the senior officer with the regular troops, or by the political officer with the Kashmir Contingent. The fighting was very severe. The enemy were in great numbers, and strongly posted on the banks of the canal—indeed, at one time there appeared to be a likelihood of their breaking into our weakly-guarded camp or turning the flank of our storming parties. The guns at Hindu Rao's house, however, prevented such a catastrophe by pouring shrapnel into the ranks of the rebels; and just at the critical moment Hope Grant brought up the Cavalry brigade, which had been covering the assaulting columns. The Horse Artillery dashed to the front and opened fire upon the enemy. From the gardens and houses of Kisenganj, only two or three hundred yards off, the mutineers poured a deadly fire of musketry on our men, and from the bastion near the Lahore gate showers of grape caused serious losses amongst them. Owing to the nature of the ground the Cavalry could not charge. Had they retired the guns would have been captured, and had the guns been withdrawn the position would have been lost. For two hours the troopers drawn up in battle array sat motionless, while their ranks were being cruelly raked. Not a man wavered. Hope Grant and four of his staff had their horses killed under them; two of them were wounded, and Hope Grant himself was hit by a spent shot. In Tombs's troop of Horse Artillery alone, 25 men out of 50 were wounded, and 17 horses either killed or wounded. The 9th Lancers had 38 casualties amongst the men, and lost 71 horses. 'Nothing daunted,' wrote Hope Grant, 'those gallant soldiers held their trying position with patient endurance; and on my[Page 128] praising them for their good behaviour, they declared their readiness to stand the fire as long as I chose. The behaviour of the Native Cavalry,' he added, 'was also admirable. Nothing could be steadier; nothing could be more soldierlike than their bearing.'

No. 4 column moved from the Sabzi Mandi toward Kisenganj and Paharipur. Unfortunately, Reid, the commander, was wounded early in the day. Several other officers were either killed or injured, and there was some confusion for a while about whether the senior officer with the regular troops or the political officer with the Kashmir Contingent should lead the column. The fighting was intense. The enemy was in large numbers and well-positioned along the canal banks—at one point, it looked like they might break into our poorly defended camp or flank our assault teams. However, the guns at Hindu Rao's house prevented this disaster by firing shrapnel into the rebel ranks; just at the crucial moment, Hope Grant brought in the Cavalry brigade that had been supporting the assaulting columns. The Horse Artillery charged forward and opened fire on the enemy. From the gardens and houses of Kisenganj, only two or three hundred yards away, the mutineers unleashed a deadly volley of musket fire on our troops, and from the bastion near the Lahore gate, showers of grape shot caused serious casualties among them. Due to the terrain, the Cavalry couldn't charge. If they had retreated, the guns would have been captured, and if the guns were withdrawn, the position would have been lost. For two hours, the troopers stood in formation, motionless, while their ranks were mercilessly attacked. Not a single man flinched. Hope Grant and four of his staff had their horses shot out from under them; two were injured, and Hope Grant himself was hit by a spent round. In Tombs's troop of Horse Artillery alone, 25 out of 50 men were injured, and 17 horses were either killed or wounded. The 9th Lancers suffered 38 casualties and lost 71 horses. "Undeterred," wrote Hope Grant, "those brave soldiers held their challenging position with remarkable perseverance; and when I praised them for their courage, they expressed their willingness to endure the fire for as long as I needed. The conduct of the Native Cavalry," he added, "was also excellent. Nothing was steadier; nothing could be more soldierly than their demeanor."

Bold Front by Artillery and Cavalry The bold front shown by the Horse Artillery and Cavalry enabled No. 4 column to retire in an orderly manner behind Hindu Rao's house, and also assisted the Kashmir Contingent in its retreat from the Idgah, where it was defeated with the loss of four guns. The repulse of this column added considerably to our difficulties by freeing many hundreds to take part in the fight which was being fiercely carried on within the city.

Bold Advance by Infantry and Cavalry The strong front displayed by the Horse Artillery and Cavalry allowed No. 4 column to retreat in an orderly fashion behind Hindu Rao's house and also helped the Kashmir Contingent in its withdrawal from the Idgah, where they were defeated and lost four guns. The setback of this column significantly increased our challenges by releasing many hundreds to join the intense fighting happening within the city.

Meanwhile the three assaulting columns had made good their lodgment on the walls. The guns in the Kashmir and Water bastions had been turned so as to allow of their being used against the foe, and preparations were made for the next move.

Meanwhile, the three attacking groups had secured their positions on the walls. The cannons in the Kashmir and Water bastions had been repositioned to be aimed at the enemy, and plans were being made for the next action.

Nicholson's orders were to push his way to the Ajmir gate, by the road running inside the city wall, and to clear the ramparts and bastions as he went. Jones was to make for the Kabul gate, and Campbell for the Jama Masjid.

Nicholson was instructed to fight his way to the Ajmir gate along the road inside the city wall, clearing the ramparts and bastions as he advanced. Jones was to head toward the Kabul gate, while Campbell was to go to the Jama Masjid.

These three columns reformed inside the Kashmir gate, from which point the first and second practically became one. Nicholson, being accidentally separated from his own column for a short time, pushed on with Campbell's past the church, in the direction of the Jama Masjid, while the amalgamated column under Jones's leadership took the rampart route past the Kabul gate (on the top of which Jones had planted a British flag), capturing as they advanced all the guns they found on the ramparts, and receiving no check until the Burn bastion was reached by some of the more adventurous spirits. Here the enemy, taking heart at seeing but a small number of opponents, made a stand. They brought up a gun, and, occupying all the buildings on the south side of the rampart with Infantry, they poured forth such a heavy fire that a retirement to the Kabul gate had to be effected.

These three columns came together inside the Kashmir Gate, where the first and second practically merged into one. Nicholson, who got accidentally separated from his own column for a brief moment, continued with Campbell's column past the church, heading toward the Jama Masjid. Meanwhile, the combined column led by Jones took the rampart route past the Kabul Gate (where Jones had planted a British flag), capturing all the guns they found along the way and facing no resistance until some of the bolder soldiers reached the Burn Bastion. Here, the enemy, encouraged by the sight of only a small number of opponents, decided to make a stand. They brought up a cannon and occupied all the buildings on the south side of the rampart with infantry, unleashing such a heavy barrage of fire that a withdrawal to the Kabul Gate had to be made.

It was at this point that Nicholson rejoined his own column. His haughty spirit could not brook the idea of a retirement; however slight the check might be, he knew that it would restore to the rebels the confidence of which our hitherto successful advance had deprived them, and, believing that there was nothing that brave men could not achieve, he determined to make a fresh attempt to seize the Burn bastion.

It was at this point that Nicholson rejoined his column. His proud spirit could not tolerate the idea of retreat; no matter how small the setback might be, he knew it would give the rebels back the confidence that our earlier successful advance had taken away from them. Believing that there was nothing brave men couldn’t accomplish, he decided to make another attempt to capture the Burn bastion.

The lane which was again to be traversed was about 200 yards long, with the city wall and rampart on the right, and on the left flat-roofed houses with parapets, affording convenient shelter for the enemy's sharp-shooters.

The lane that was to be crossed again was about 200 yards long, with the city wall and rampart on the right, and on the left, flat-roofed houses with parapets that provided easy cover for the enemy's sharpshooters.

Nicholson Wounded As the troops advanced up this lane the mutineers opened upon them a heavy and destructive fire. Again and again they were checked, and again and again they reformed and advanced. It was in this lane that[Page 129] Major Jacob, the gallant Commander of the 1st Bengal Fusiliers, fell, mortally wounded. His men wanted to carry him to the rear, but he would not allow them to remain behind for him, and refused their help, urging them to press forward against the foe. The officers, leading far ahead of their men, were shot down one after the other, and the men, seeing them fall, began to waver. Nicholson, on this, sprang forward, and called upon the soldiers to follow him. He was instantly shot through the chest.

Nicholson Injured As the troops moved up this lane, the rebels opened fire on them with heavy and deadly shots. They were stopped again and again, but each time they regrouped and pushed forward. It was in this lane that[Page 129] Major Jacob, the brave commander of the 1st Bengal Fusiliers, was mortally wounded. His men wanted to carry him to safety, but he wouldn’t let them stay behind for him and refused their help, urging them to continue pressing forward against the enemy. The officers, leading much ahead of their men, were shot down one by one, and when the soldiers saw them fall, they started to hesitate. At that moment, Nicholson rushed forward and called on the soldiers to follow him. He was instantly shot through the chest.

A second retirement to the Kabul gate was now inevitable, and there all that was left of the first and second columns remained for the night.

A second retreat to the Kabul gate was now unavoidable, and there all that was left of the first and second columns stayed for the night.

Campbell's column, guided by Sir Theophilus Metcalfe, who from his intimate acquaintance with the city as Magistrate and Collector of Delhi was able to conduct it by the route least exposed to the enemy's fire, forced its way to the vicinity of the Jama Masjid, where it remained for half an hour, hoping that the other columns would come to its assistance. They, however, as has been shown, had more than enough to do elsewhere, and Campbell (who was wounded), seeing no chance of being reinforced, and having no Artillery or powder-bags with which to blow in the gates of the Jama Masjid, fell back leisurely and in order on the church, where he touched what was left of the Reserve column, which had gradually been broken up to meet the demands of the assaulting force, until the 4th Punjab Infantry alone remained to represent it.

Campbell's column, led by Sir Theophilus Metcalfe, who knew the city well as the Magistrate and Collector of Delhi, took the route that was least likely to expose them to enemy fire. They made their way to the area near the Jama Masjid, where they stayed for half an hour, hoping the other columns would come to help. However, as noted, they had more than enough to handle elsewhere. Campbell, who had been wounded, seeing no chance of reinforcements and without any artillery or explosives to break down the gates of the Jama Masjid, withdrew calmly and in an organized manner to the church. There, he reached what remained of the Reserve column, which had been gradually disbanded to support the attacking force, until only the 4th Punjab Infantry was left to represent it.

While what I have just described was taking place, I myself was with General Wilson. Edwin Johnson and I, being no longer required with the breaching batteries, had been ordered to return to our staff duties, and we accordingly joined the General at Ludlow Castle, where he arrived shortly before the assaulting columns moved from the cover of the Kudsiabagh.

While what I just described was happening, I was with General Wilson. Edwin Johnson and I, no longer needed with the breaching batteries, had been told to return to our staff duties, so we joined the General at Ludlow Castle, where he arrived just before the attacking columns moved out from the cover of the Kudsiabagh.

Wilson watched the assault from the top of the house, and when he was satisfied that it had proved successful, he rode through the Kashmir gate to the church, where he remained for the rest of the day.

Wilson watched the attack from the top of the house, and when he was sure that it had been successful, he rode through the Kashmir gate to the church, where he stayed for the rest of the day.

He was ill and tired out, and as the day wore on and he received discouraging reports, he became more and more anxious and depressed. He heard of Reid's failure, and of Reid himself having been severely wounded; then came the disastrous news that Nicholson had fallen, and a report (happily false) that Hope Grant and Tombs were both killed. All this greatly agitated and distressed the General, until at last he began seriously to consider the advisability of leaving the city and falling back on the Ridge.

He was sick and exhausted, and as the day went on and he got discouraging updates, he became increasingly anxious and depressed. He heard about Reid's failure and that Reid himself had been seriously injured; then came the devastating news that Nicholson had been killed, along with a report (thankfully false) that Hope Grant and Tombs were both dead. All of this greatly upset and distressed the General, until he finally started to seriously think about the possibility of leaving the city and retreating to the Ridge.

I was ordered to go and find out the truth of these reports, and to ascertain exactly what had happened to No. 4 column and the Cavalry on our right.

I was told to go and find out the truth of these reports and to figure out exactly what happened to No. 4 column and the Cavalry on our right.

The Last I Saw of Nicholson Just after starting on my errand, while riding through the Kashmir[Page 130] gate, I observed by the side of the road a doolie, without bearers, and with evidently a wounded man inside. I dismounted to see if I could be of any use to the occupant, when I found, to my grief and consternation, that it was John Nicholson, with death written on his face. He told me that the bearers had put the doolie down and gone off to plunder; that he was in great pain, and wished to be taken to the hospital. He was lying on his back, no wound was visible, and but for the pallor of his face, always colourless, there was no sign of the agony he must have been enduring. On my expressing a hope that he was not seriously wounded, he said: 'I am dying; there is no chance for me.' The sight of that great man lying helpless and on the point of death was almost more than I could bear. Other men had daily died around me, friends and comrades had been killed beside me, but I never felt as I felt then—to lose Nicholson seemed to me at that moment to lose everything.

The Last Time I Saw Nicholson Just after I started my errand, while riding through the Kashmir[Page 130] gate, I noticed a doolie by the side of the road, with no bearers and clearly a wounded man inside. I got off my horse to see if I could help the occupant, and to my shock and sadness, I discovered it was John Nicholson, with death showing on his face. He told me that the bearers had set the doolie down and left to loot; that he was in severe pain and wanted to be taken to the hospital. He was lying on his back, with no visible wounds, and aside from the pallor of his usually colorless face, there was no indication of the agony he must have been feeling. When I expressed hope that he wasn't seriously hurt, he replied, 'I'm dying; I have no chance.' The sight of that great man lying there, helpless and nearing death, was almost too much for me to handle. Other men had died around me daily, friends and comrades had been killed at my side, but I had never felt as I did then—losing Nicholson at that moment felt like losing everything.

I searched about for the doolie-bearers, who, with other camp-followers, were busy ransacking the houses and shops in the neighbourhood, and carrying off everything of the slightest value they could lay their hands on. Having with difficulty collected four men, I put them in charge of a sergeant of the 61st Foot. Taking down his name, I told him who the wounded officer was, and ordered him to go direct to the field hospital.

I looked around for the people carrying supplies, who, along with other followers, were busy searching through the houses and shops in the area, grabbing anything of even the slightest value they could find. After some effort, I gathered four men and appointed a sergeant from the 61st Foot to oversee them. I noted his name, informed him who the injured officer was, and instructed him to head straight to the field hospital.

That was the last I saw of Nicholson. I found time to ride several times to the hospital to inquire after him, but I was never allowed to see him again.

That was the last time I saw Nicholson. I managed to visit the hospital several times to ask about him, but I was never allowed to see him again.

Continuing my ride, I soon came up with Hope Grant's brigade. It had shortly before been relieved from its perilous and unpleasant position as a target for the enemy by the timely arrival of the Guides Infantry and a detachment of the Baluch battalion. I was rejoiced to find Tombs alive and unhurt, and from him and other officers of my regiment I learnt the tremendous peppering they had undergone. Hodson was also there with his newly-raised regiment, some officers of the 9th Lancers, and Dighton Probyn, Watson, and Younghusband, of the Punjab Cavalry. Probyn was in great spirits, having fallen temporarily into the command of his squadron, owing to Charles Nicholson (John Nicholson's younger brother) having been selected to take Coke's place with the 1st Punjab Infantry. Probyn retained his command throughout the campaign, for Charles Nicholson was wounded that very morning while gallantly leading his regiment. His right arm was being amputated when his heroic brother was carried mortally wounded into the same hospital, and laid on the bed next to him.

Continuing my ride, I soon came across Hope Grant's brigade. It had just been rescued from its dangerous and uncomfortable position as a target for the enemy thanks to the timely arrival of the Guides Infantry and a detachment from the Baluch battalion. I was thrilled to find Tombs alive and uninjured, and from him and other officers in my regiment, I learned about the intense fire they had faced. Hodson was also there with his newly formed regiment, along with some officers from the 9th Lancers, and Dighton Probyn, Watson, and Younghusband from the Punjab Cavalry. Probyn was in high spirits, as he had temporarily taken command of his squadron because Charles Nicholson (John Nicholson's younger brother) had been chosen to replace Coke with the 1st Punjab Infantry. Probyn kept his command throughout the campaign since Charles Nicholson was wounded that very morning while bravely leading his regiment. His right arm was being amputated when his heroic brother was brought in mortally wounded and laid down on the bed next to him.

It seemed so important to acquaint the General without delay that Hope Grant and Tombs were both alive, that the Cavalry had been relieved from their exposed position, and that there was no need for[Page 131] further anxiety about Reid's column, that I galloped back to the church as quickly as possible.

It felt crucial to inform the General right away that Hope Grant and Tombs were both alive, that the Cavalry had been moved from their risky position, and that there was no reason to worry anymore about Reid's column, so I rode back to the church as fast as I could.

Wilson Wavers The news I was able to give for the moment somewhat cheered the General, but did not altogether dispel his gloomy forebodings; and the failure of Campbell's column (which just at that juncture returned to the church), the hopelessness of Nicholson's condition, and, above all, the heavy list of casualties he received later, appeared to crush all spirit and energy out of him. His dejection increased, and he became more than ever convinced that his wisest course was to withdraw from the city. He would, I think, have carried out this fatal measure, notwithstanding that every officer on his staff was utterly opposed to any retrograde movement, had it not been his good fortune to have beside him a man sufficiently bold and resolute to stimulate his flagging energies. Baird-Smith's indomitable courage and determined perseverance were never more conspicuous than at that critical moment, when, though suffering intense pain from his wound, and weakened by a wasting disease, he refused to be put upon the sick-list; and on Wilson appealing to him for advice as to whether he should or should not hold on to the position we had gained, the short but decisive answer, 'We must hold on,' was given in such a determined and uncompromising tone that it put an end to all discussion.

Wilson Hesitates The news I was able to share for the moment somewhat lifted the General's spirits but didn’t completely erase his dark fears; the failure of Campbell's column (which had just then returned to the church), the hopelessness of Nicholson's condition, and, most importantly, the long list of casualties he received later seemed to drain him of all spirit and energy. His sadness grew, and he became more convinced than ever that the best decision was to pull back from the city. I believe he would have gone through with this disastrous decision, despite every officer on his staff being completely against any backward movement, if he hadn’t been fortunate enough to have beside him someone brave and determined enough to revitalize his diminishing energy. Baird-Smith's unwavering courage and strong determination were never more evident than at that critical moment when, despite suffering severe pain from his wound and being weakened by a debilitating disease, he refused to be put on the sick-list. When Wilson asked him for advice on whether to hold onto the position we had secured, his short but decisive reply, 'We must hold on,' was delivered in such a firm and resolute tone that it ended any further debate.

Holding on to the Walls of Delhi Neville Chamberlain gave similar advice. Although still suffering from his wound, and only able to move about with difficulty, he had taken up his position at Hindu Rao's house, from which he exercised, as far as his physical condition would allow, a general supervision and control over the events that took place on the right of the Ridge. He was accompanied by Daly and a very distinguished Native officer of the Guides, named Khan Sing Rosa, both of whom, like Chamberlain, were incapacitated by wounds from active duty. From the top of Hindu Rao's house Chamberlain observed the first successes of the columns, and their subsequent checks and retirements, and it was while he was there that he received two notes from General Wilson. In the first, written after the failure of the attacks on the Jama Masjid and the Lahore gate, the General asked for the return of the Baluch battalion, which, at Chamberlain's request, had been sent to reinforce Reid's column, and in it he expressed the hope that 'we shall be able to hold what we have got.' In the second note, written at four o'clock in the afternoon, the General asked whether Chamberlain 'could do anything from Hindu Rao's house to assist,' adding, 'our numbers are frightfully reduced, and we have lost so many senior officers that the men are not under proper control; indeed, I doubt if they could be got to do anything dashing. I want your advice. If the Hindu Rao's piquet cannot be moved, I do not think we shall be strong enough to take the city.' Chamberlain understood General Wilson's second note to imply that he contemplated withdrawing the troops[Page 132] from the city, and he framed his reply accordingly. In it he urged the necessity for holding on to the last; he pointed out the advantages already gained, and the demoralization thereby inflicted upon the enemy. The dying Nicholson advocated the same course with almost his latest breath. So angry and excited was he when he was told of the General's suggestion to retire, that he exclaimed, 'Thank God I have strength yet to shoot him, if necessary.' There was no resisting such a consensus of responsible and reliable opinion, and Wilson gave up all idea of retreating.

Holding on to the Walls of Delhi Neville Chamberlain offered similar advice. Even though he was still recovering from his injury and could only move with difficulty, he took up his position at Hindu Rao's house. From there, he provided general oversight and control over the events happening on the right side of the Ridge, as much as his physical condition allowed. He was joined by Daly and a highly regarded Native officer of the Guides, Khan Sing Rosa, both of whom, like Chamberlain, were also unable to serve actively due to their wounds. From the rooftop of Hindu Rao's house, Chamberlain witnessed the initial successes of the columns, along with their subsequent setbacks and retreats. While he was there, he received two notes from General Wilson. In the first note, sent after the failed attacks on the Jama Masjid and the Lahore gate, the General requested the return of the Baluch battalion, which Chamberlain had asked to be sent to reinforce Reid's column. He expressed hope that “we will be able to hold what we have.” In the second note, sent at four o'clock in the afternoon, the General asked if Chamberlain “could do anything from Hindu Rao's house to help,” adding, “our numbers have been drastically reduced, and we’ve lost so many senior officers that the men aren’t under proper control; honestly, I doubt they could be motivated to do anything daring. I need your advice. If the Hindu Rao's piquet can’t be moved, I don’t think we’ll have enough strength to take the city.” Chamberlain interpreted General Wilson's second note as suggesting that he was considering withdrawing the troops from the city, and he crafted his response accordingly. In it, he emphasized the need to hold on as long as possible; he pointed out the benefits already gained and the demoralization inflicted on the enemy. The dying Nicholson advocated for the same course of action with almost his last breath. He was so angry and agitated when told of the General’s suggestion to retreat that he exclaimed, “Thank God I still have the strength to shoot him, if necessary.” There was no resisting such a strong consensus from responsible and trusted voices, and Wilson abandoned any thought of retreating.

During the afternoon of the 14th, Norman, Johnson, and I, at the General's desire and for his information, visited every position occupied by our troops within the city walls. In some places there was great confusion—men without their officers, and officers without their men—all without instructions, and not knowing what was going on in their immediate neighbourhood, the inevitable result of the rapid advance. We did what we could to remedy matters, and were able to report to Wilson that our troops were holding the wall from the Water bastion to the Kabul gate in sufficient strength. But this was all the comfort we could give him. The fact is, too much had been attempted on that eventful morning. We should have been satisfied with gaining possession of the Kashmir and Water bastions, and getting a lodgment within the city walls. This was as much as three such weak columns should have tried, or been asked to accomplish. No one who was present on that occasion, and experienced the difficulty, indeed impossibility, of keeping soldiers in hand while engaged in fighting along narrow streets and tortuous lanes, would ever again attempt what was expected of the assaulting columns.

On the afternoon of the 14th, Norman, Johnson, and I, at the General's request and for his information, visited every position held by our troops within the city walls. In some areas, there was a lot of confusion—men without their officers and officers without their men—all lacking instructions and unaware of what was happening nearby, a direct result of the rapid advance. We did what we could to fix the situation and were able to tell Wilson that our troops were holding the wall from the Water bastion to the Kabul gate in sufficient strength. But that was all the reassurance we could provide him. The truth is, too much had been attempted that memorable morning. We should have been satisfied with taking control of the Kashmir and Water bastions and establishing a presence within the city walls. This was as much as three such weak columns should have tried or been asked to achieve. No one who was there that day and experienced the difficulty—indeed, the impossibility—of managing soldiers while fighting through narrow streets and winding lanes would ever attempt what was expected of the assaulting columns again.

While engaged in this duty we (Norman, Johnson and I) were attacked by a party of the enemy who had been hiding in considerable numbers in a side-lane watching for a chance. A fight ensued; we had only a small guard with us, but, fortunately, the firing was heard by the men of a near piquet, some of whom came to our help. With their assistance we drove off the sepoys, but in the scrimmage my poor mare was shot. She was a very useful animal, and her death was a great loss to me at the time.

While we were doing this duty, Norman, Johnson, and I were attacked by a group of enemies who had been hiding in a side alley, waiting for a chance to strike. A fight broke out; we had only a small guard with us, but luckily, the sound of gunfire was heard by some men from a nearby picket, and a few of them came to help us. With their support, we managed to drive off the sepoys, but unfortunately, in the chaos, my poor mare was shot. She was a very useful animal, and her death was a big loss for me at that time.

At sunset on the 14th of September only a very small portion of the walls of Delhi was in our possession. The densely-populated city remained to be conquered. The magazine, the palace, and the Fort of Selimgarh, all strongly fortified, were still in the hands of the enemy. The narrow strip of ground we had gained had been won at severe loss. Three out of the four officers who commanded the assaulting columns had been disabled, and 66 officers and 1,104 men had been killed and wounded.

At sunset on September 14th, we only controlled a tiny part of the walls of Delhi. The heavily populated city was still not under our control. The magazine, the palace, and the Fort of Selimgarh, all heavily fortified, were still occupied by the enemy. The small area we had captured came at a great cost. Three out of the four officers leading the assaulting columns had been injured, and 66 officers and 1,104 soldiers had been killed or wounded.

'Cheer, Boys, Cheer!' The night of the 14th was spent by the General and staff in 'Skinner's house,'1 close to the church. Rest was badly needed, for[Page 133] almost everyone in the force, officers and men alike, had been hard at work, night and day, for a week. That night, luckily, we were allowed to be at peace, for whether it was that the rebels were as tired as we were, or that they were busy making preparations for further resistance, they did not disturb us; and when day broke we were all refreshed and ready to continue the struggle. At one time, indeed, early in the evening, the enemy appeared from their movements to be preparing to attack us, but just at that moment the band of the 4th Punjab Infantry struck up 'Cheer, Boys, Cheer!' upon which the men of the regiment did cheer, most lustily, and other regiments caught up and continued the inspiriting hurrahs, which apparently had the effect of disconcerting the mutineers and keeping them quiet.

'Go, Boys, Go!' On the night of the 14th, the General and his staff stayed in 'Skinner's house,'1 near the church. Rest was much needed because[Page 133] nearly everyone in the force, both officers and soldiers, had been working hard, day and night, for a week. Thankfully, that night we were allowed to relax, whether because the rebels were just as exhausted as we were or busy preparing for more resistance, they didn’t bother us. When morning came, we were all refreshed and ready to continue the fight. Early that evening, the enemy seemed to be getting ready to attack us, but just then, the band of the 4th Punjab Infantry started playing 'Cheer, Boys, Cheer!' which inspired the men of the regiment to cheer loudly. Other regiments joined in with their own cheers, and this seemed to disconcert the mutineers, keeping them quiet.






CHAPTER XIX.

1857

On the morning of the 15th the situation was reviewed, and preparations made for the conquest of the city. Order was restored amongst the troops, who, as I have shown, had become somewhat demoralized by the street fighting. Regiments and brigades were got together; raids were made on all the store shops within reach, and every bottle of beer and spirits was broken.1 Some of the liquor would doubtless have been of great use in the hospitals, but there was no means of removing it, and the General wisely determined that it was best to put temptation out of the men's way. Guns and mortars were placed into position for shelling the city and palace, and a few houses near, where[Page 134] the enemy's sharpshooters had established themselves, were seized and occupied. We soon, however, gave up attacking such positions, for we found that street fighting could not be continued without the loss of more men than we had to spare, and that the wisest plan would be to keep the soldiers under cover as much as possible while we sapped from house to house. A battery commanding Selimgarh and part of the palace was constructed in the college gardens, and a breach was made in the wall of the magazine, which was captured the next morning with but slight loss.

On the morning of the 15th, we assessed the situation and got ready to take the city. Order was restored among the troops, who, as I mentioned earlier, had become somewhat demoralized by the street fighting. Regiments and brigades were gathered; raids were conducted on all the nearby supply stores, and every bottle of beer and spirits was broken.1 Some of the alcohol would undoubtedly have been useful in the hospitals, but there was no way to transport it, and the General wisely decided it was best to remove temptation from the soldiers. Guns and mortars were set up to shell the city and palace, and a few houses nearby, where the enemy's sharpshooters had taken position, were seized and occupied. However, we soon stopped attacking such positions because we realized that street fighting couldn’t go on without losing more men than we could afford, and that the smartest plan was to keep the soldiers sheltered as much as possible while we advanced from house to house. A battery that overlooked Selimgarh and part of the palace was built in the college gardens, and a breach was made in the wall of the magazine, which was taken the next morning with minimal losses.

On the 16th, and again on the 18th, Chamberlain took command of the troops inside the city while the General rested for a few hours. He was, as he expressed himself in a note to Chamberlain, 'completely done.'

On the 16th, and again on the 18th, Chamberlain took charge of the troops inside the city while the General rested for a few hours. He was, as he wrote in a note to Chamberlain, 'completely exhausted.'

The enemy now began to draw in their line. The suburbs were evacuated, and riding through the Sabzi Mandi, Kisenganj and Paharipur, we gazed with wonder at the size and strength of the works raised against us by the mutineers, in attacking which we had experienced such heavy loss during the early days of the siege, and from which No. 4 column had been obliged to retire on the day of the assault.

The enemy started to pull back their forces. The suburbs were cleared, and as we rode through the Sabzi Mandi, Kisenganj, and Paharipur, we marveled at the size and strength of the defenses built against us by the mutineers. We had suffered significant losses when we initially attacked these positions during the early days of the siege, and on the day of the assault, No. 4 column had to pull back from them.

Capture of the Burn Bastion The smaller the position that had to be defended, the greater became the numbers concentrated in our immediate front, and every inch of our way through the city was stoutly disputed; but the advance, though slow, was steady, and considering the numbers of the insurgents, and the use they made at close quarters of their Field Artillery, our casualties were fewer than could have been expected.

Capture of the Burn Fortress The smaller the area we had to defend, the more enemy troops gathered in front of us, and we faced fierce resistance at every turn in the city. However, our progress, while slow, remained steady, and given the size of the insurgent forces and their effective use of Field Artillery in close combat, our casualties were fewer than expected.

Capture of the Lahore Gate I had been placed under the orders of Taylor, Baird-Smith's indefatigable Lieutenant, who directed the advance towards the Lahore gate. We worked through houses, courtyards, and lanes, until on the afternoon of the 19th we found ourselves in rear of the Burn bastion, the attempt to take which on the 14th had cost the life of the gallant Nicholson and so many other brave men. We had with us fifty European and fifty Native soldiers, the senior officer of the party being Captain Gordon, of the 75th Foot. A single door separated us from the lane which led to the Burn bastion. Lang, of the Engineers, burst this door open, and out dashed the party. Rushing across the lane and up the ramp, the guard was completely surprised, and the bastion was seized without our losing a man.

Capture of the Lahore Gate I had been assigned to Taylor, Baird-Smith's tireless Lieutenant, who led the advance toward the Lahore gate. We made our way through houses, courtyards, and streets until, on the afternoon of the 19th, we found ourselves behind the Burn bastion, which had cost the life of the brave Nicholson and many other fearless men during the attempt to take it on the 14th. We had with us fifty European soldiers and fifty Native soldiers, with Captain Gordon of the 75th Foot as the senior officer in our group. There was only one door separating us from the lane that led to the Burn bastion. Lang from the Engineers kicked this door open, and our team rushed out. We dashed across the lane and up the ramp, completely surprising the guard, and we took the bastion without losing a single man.

Early the next day we were still sapping our way towards the Lahore gate, when we suddenly found ourselves in a courtyard in which were huddled together some forty or fifty banias,2 who were evidently as much in terror of the sepoys as they were of us. The men of our party nearly made an end of these unfortunates before their officers could interfere, for to the troops (Native and European alike) every[Page 135] man inside the walls of Delhi was looked upon as a rebel, worthy of death. These people, however, were unarmed, and it did not require a very practised eye to see that they were inoffensive. We thought, however, that a good fright would do them no harm, and might possibly help us, so for a time we allowed them to believe that they were looked upon as traitors, but eventually told them their lives would be spared if they would take us in safety to some place from which we might observe how the Lahore gate was guarded. After considerable hesitation and consultation amongst themselves they agreed to two of their party guiding Lang and me, while the rest remained as hostages, with the understanding that, if we did not return within a given time, they would be shot.

Early the next day, we were still making our way toward the Lahore gate when we suddenly found ourselves in a courtyard filled with around forty or fifty banias, who were clearly just as terrified of the sepoys as they were of us. Our group nearly finished off these poor souls before their officers could step in, as every person inside the walls of Delhi was viewed as a rebel, deserving of death, by both the Native and European troops. However, these people were unarmed, and it wasn’t hard to see that they posed no threat. We thought, though, that giving them a good scare wouldn’t hurt and might even benefit us, so we allowed them to think they were considered traitors for a while, but eventually told them their lives would be spared if they took us safely to a spot where we could observe how the Lahore gate was guarded. After some hesitation and discussion among themselves, they agreed to have two of their group guide Lang and me, while the rest stayed behind as hostages, with the understanding that if we didn’t return within a set time, they would be shot.

Our trembling guides conducted us through houses, across courtyards, and along secluded alleys, without our meeting a living creature, until we found ourselves in an upper room of a house looking out on the Chandni Chauk,3 and within fifty yards of the Lahore gate.

Our nervous guides led us through homes, across courtyards, and down quiet alleys, without encountering a single living soul, until we reached an upper room of a house overlooking the Chandni Chauk,3 and within fifty yards of the Lahore gate.

From the window of this room we could see beneath us the sepoys lounging about, engaged in cleaning their muskets and other occupations, while some, in a lazy sort of fashion, were acting as sentries over the gateway and two guns, one of which pointed in the direction of the Sabzi Mandi, the other down the lane behind the ramparts leading to the Burn bastion and Kabul gate. I could see from the number on their caps that these sepoys belonged to the 5th Native Infantry.

From the window of this room, we could see the soldiers hanging out below, busy cleaning their rifles and doing other tasks, while some were lazily keeping watch over the gateway and two cannons—one aimed toward the Sabzi Mandi and the other down the lane behind the walls leading to the Burn bastion and Kabul gate. I noticed from the numbers on their caps that these soldiers were part of the 5th Native Infantry.

Having satisfied ourselves of the feasibility of taking the Lahore gate in rear, we retraced our steps.

Having confirmed that it was possible to take the Lahore gate from behind, we went back.

The two banias behaved well throughout, but were in such a terrible fright of anything happening to us that they would not allow us to leave the shelter of one house until they had carefully reconnoitred the way to the next, and made sure that it was clear of the enemy. This occasioned so much delay that our friends had almost given us up, and were on the point of requiring the hostages to pay the penalty for the supposed treachery of our guides, when we reappeared on the scene.

The two banias acted properly the whole time, but they were so scared something might happen to us that they wouldn’t let us leave the safety of one house until they had carefully checked the route to the next and confirmed it was safe from the enemy. This caused so much delay that our friends nearly lost hope and were about to make the hostages pay for what they thought was the betrayal of our guides when we finally showed up again.

We then discussed our next move, and it was decided to repeat the manœuvre which had been so successful at the Burn bastion. The troops were brought by the route we had just traversed, and drawn up behind a gateway next to the house in which we had been concealed. The gate was burst open, and rushing into the street, we captured the guns, and killed or put to flight the sepoys whom we had watched from our upper chamber a short time before, without losing a man ourselves.

We then talked about our next move, and it was decided to repeat the strategy that had worked so well at the Burn bastion. The troops were brought along the route we had just taken and assembled behind a gate next to the house where we had been hiding. The gate was broken open, and charging into the street, we captured the guns and either killed or chased off the sepoys we had observed from our upper room a little while earlier, all without losing a single man ourselves.

This was a great achievement, for we were now in possession of the main entrance to Delhi, and the street of the city leading direct from[Page 136] the Lahore gate to the palace and Jama Masjid. We proceeded up this street, at first cautiously, but on finding it absolutely empty, and the houses on either side abandoned, we pushed on until we reached the Delhi Bank. Here there was firing going on, and round shot flying about from a couple of guns placed just outside the palace. But this was evidently an expiring effort. The great Mahomedan mosque had just been occupied by a column under the command of Major James Brind; while Ensign McQueen,4 of the 4th Punjab Infantry, with one of his own men had pluckily reconnoitred up to the chief gateway of the palace, and reported that there were but few men left in the Moghul fort.

This was a significant accomplishment, as we had now gained control of the main entrance to Delhi, with the street leading directly from [Page 136] the Lahore gate to the palace and Jama Masjid. We moved along this street cautiously at first, but when we found it completely deserted and the houses on both sides abandoned, we continued on until we reached the Delhi Bank. There was gunfire happening, and cannonballs flying from a couple of guns positioned just outside the palace. But this was obviously a last-ditch effort. The massive Muslim mosque had just been taken by a unit under Major James Brind; meanwhile, Ensign McQueen,4 of the 4th Punjab Infantry, along with one of his men, bravely scouted up to the main gateway of the palace and reported that there were only a few men remaining in the Moghul fort.

The honour of storming this last stronghold was appropriately reserved for the 60th Rifles, the regiment which had been the first to engage the enemy on the banks of the Hindun, nearly four months before, and which throughout the siege had so greatly distinguished itself.

The honor of storming this last stronghold was appropriately given to the 60th Rifles, the regiment that had been the first to confront the enemy on the banks of the Hindun nearly four months earlier, and which had distinguished itself so greatly throughout the siege.

The 60th Rifles Storm the Palace Home, of the Engineers, the hero of the Kashmir gate exploit, first advanced with some Sappers and blew in the outer gate. At this, the last struggle for the capture of Delhi, I wished to be present, so attached myself for the occasion to a party of the 60th Rifles, under the command of Ensign Alfred Heathcote. As soon as the smoke of the explosion cleared away, the 60th, supported by the 4th Punjab Infantry, sprang through the gateway; but we did not get far, for there was a second door beyond, chained and barred, which was with difficulty forced open, when the whole party rushed in. The recesses in the long passage which led to the palace buildings were crowded with wounded men, but there was very little opposition, for only a few fanatics still held out. One of these—a Mahomedan sepoy in the uniform of a Grenadier of the 37th Native Infantry—stood quietly about thirty yards up the passage with his musket on his hip. As we approached he slowly raised his weapon and fired, sending the bullet through McQueen's helmet. The brave fellow then advanced at the charge, and was, of course, shot down. So ended the 20th September, a day I am never likely to forget.

The 60th Rifles Attack the Palace Home, of the Engineers, who was the hero of the Kashmir gate event, first moved forward with some Sappers and blew up the outer gate. During this final struggle for the capture of Delhi, I wanted to be there, so I joined a group from the 60th Rifles, led by Ensign Alfred Heathcote. As soon as the smoke from the explosion cleared, the 60th, backed by the 4th Punjab Infantry, rushed through the gateway; but we didn’t get far because there was a second door beyond that was chained and barred, which we managed to force open with difficulty, after which the whole group rushed in. The long passage leading to the palace buildings was filled with wounded men, but there wasn’t much resistance, as only a few fanatics still held out. One of them—a Muslim sepoy in the uniform of a Grenadier from the 37th Native Infantry—stood quietly about thirty yards up the passage with his musket resting on his hip. As we got closer, he slowly raised his weapon and fired, sending a bullet through McQueen's helmet. The brave man then charged forward and was quickly shot down. That was how the 20th of September ended, a day I’ll never forget.

At sunrise on the 21st a royal salute proclaimed that we were again masters in Delhi, and that for the second time in the century the great city had been captured by a British force.

At sunrise on the 21st, a royal salute announced that we were once again in control of Delhi, marking the second time this century that the great city had been taken by a British force.

Later in the day General Wilson established his Head-Quarters in the Dewan-i-khas (the King's private hall of audience), and, as was in accordance with the fitness of things, the 60th Rifles and the Sirmur battalion of Gurkhas5 were the first troops of Her Majesty's army to garrison the palace of the Moghuls, in which the traitorous and[Page 137] treacherous massacre of English men, women and children had been perpetrated.

Later in the day, General Wilson set up his headquarters in the Dewan-i-khas (the King's private audience hall), and, as was fitting, the 60th Rifles and the Sirmur battalion of Gurkhas5 were the first troops of Her Majesty's army to take over the palace of the Moghuls, where the treacherous massacre of English men, women, and children had occurred.

Hodson Captures the King of Delhi The importance of securing the principal members of the Royal Family was pressed upon the General by Chamberlain and Hodson, who both urged that the victory would be incomplete if the King and his male relatives were allowed to remain at large. Wilson would not consent to any force being sent after them, and it was with considerable reluctance that he agreed to Hodson going on this hazardous duty with some of his own men only. The last of the Moghul Emperors had taken refuge in Humayun's tomb, about seven miles from Delhi, where, on the afternoon of the 21st, he surrendered to Hodson on receiving a promise from that officer that his own life and the lives of his favourite wife and her son should be spared. Hodson brought them all into Delhi and placed them under a European guard in a house in the Chandni Chauk, thus adding one more to the many valuable services he had rendered throughout the siege.

Hodson Captures the King of Delhi The importance of capturing the key members of the Royal Family was emphasized to the General by Chamberlain and Hodson, who both insisted that the victory would be incomplete if the King and his male relatives were allowed to roam free. Wilson did not agree to send any force after them and only reluctantly gave in to Hodson's request to take on this dangerous task with just a few of his own men. The last of the Mughal Emperors had taken shelter in Humayun's tomb, about seven miles from Delhi, where, on the afternoon of the 21st, he surrendered to Hodson after getting a promise from him that his life, as well as the lives of his favorite wife and her son, would be spared. Hodson brought them all back to Delhi and placed them under European guard in a house in Chandni Chauk, thus adding yet another valuable service to the many he had provided during the siege.

I went with many others the next day to see the King; the old man looked most wretched, and as he evidently disliked intensely being stared at by Europeans, I quickly took my departure. On my way back I was rather startled to see the three lifeless bodies of the King's two sons and grandson lying exposed on the stone platform in front of the Kotwali. On enquiry I learnt that Hodson had gone a second time to Humayun's tomb that morning with the object of capturing these Princes, and on the way back to Delhi had shot them with his own hand—an act which, whether necessary or not, has undoubtedly cast a blot on his reputation. His own explanation of the circumstance was that he feared they would be rescued by the mob, who could easily have overpowered his small escort of 100 sowars, and it certainly would have been a misfortune had these men escaped. At the time a thirst for revenge on account of the atrocities committed within the walls of Delhi was so great that the shooting of the Princes seemed to the excited feelings of the army but an act of justice; and there were some men, whose opinions were entitled to the greatest respect, who considered the safety of the British force would have been endangered by the escape of the representatives of the house of Taimur, and that for this reason Hodson's act was justified.

I went with many others the next day to see the King; the old man looked really miserable, and since he obviously hated being stared at by Europeans, I quickly left. On my way back, I was quite shocked to see the three lifeless bodies of the King’s two sons and grandson lying out in the open on the stone platform in front of the Kotwali. When I asked about it, I learned that Hodson had gone back to Humayun's tomb that morning to capture these Princes, and on his way back to Delhi, he had shot them himself—an action that, whether necessary or not, has definitely hurt his reputation. His explanation was that he feared they would be rescued by the mob, who could easily have overwhelmed his small escort of 100 sowars, and it would have been a disaster if these men had gotten away. At the time, the desire for revenge due to the atrocities committed in Delhi was so intense that the shooting of the Princes felt like justice to the stirred emotions of the army; and some respected individuals believed that the safety of the British force would have been at risk if the representatives of the house of Taimur had escaped, making Hodson's act justifiable.

My own feeling on the subject is one of sorrow that such a brilliant soldier should have laid himself open to so much adverse criticism. Moreover, I do not think that, under any circumstances, he should have done the deed himself, or ordered it to be done in that summary manner, unless there had been evident signs of an attempt at a[Page 138] rescue.

My personal opinion on this matter is one of sadness that such an exceptional soldier has exposed himself to so much negative criticism. Furthermore, I believe that, under no circumstances, should he have done the act himself, or instructed it to be carried out so abruptly, unless there were clear signs of an attempt at a[Page 138] rescue.

But it must be understood that there was no breach of faith on Hodson's part, for he steadily refused to give any promise to the Princes that their lives should be spared; he did, however, undoubtedly by this act give colour to the accusations of blood-thirstiness which his detractors were not slow to make.

But it's important to understand that Hodson didn't break any trust, as he consistently refused to promise the Princes that their lives would be spared. However, by his actions, he certainly fueled the accusations of bloodthirstiness that his critics were quick to make.

Nicholson's Death The news that we had occupied the palace, and were in complete possession of the city of Delhi, consoled Nicholson on his deathbed. From the first there was little hope that this valuable life could be saved. He was taken into hospital in a fainting condition from internal hemorrhage, and he endured excruciating agony; but, wrote General Chamberlain, 'throughout those nine days of suffering he bore himself nobly; not a lament or sigh ever passed his lips.' His every thought was given to his country, and to the last he materially aided the military authorities by his clear-sighted, sound, and reliable advice. His intellect remained unclouded to the end. With his latest breath he sent messages of tender farewell to his mother, hoping she would be patient under his loss, and to his oldest and dearest friend, Herbert Edwardes. After his death some frontier Chiefs and Native officers of the Multani Horse were permitted to see him, and I was told that it was touching beyond expression to see these strong men shed tears as they looked on all that was left of the leader they so loved and honoured.

Nicholson's Passing The news that we had taken over the palace and fully controlled the city of Delhi brought some comfort to Nicholson on his deathbed. From the start, there was little hope of saving his valuable life. He was brought into the hospital in a faint from internal bleeding and suffered intense pain; however, General Chamberlain wrote, 'throughout those nine days of suffering he carried himself nobly; not a single lament or sigh escaped his lips.' His thoughts were focused entirely on his country, and until the very end, he significantly assisted the military leaders with his clear, sound, and trustworthy advice. His mind remained sharp to the very last moment. With his final breaths, he sent heartfelt farewell messages to his mother, hoping she would find patience in her grief, and to his oldest and dearest friend, Herbert Edwardes. After he passed away, some frontier chiefs and native officers of the Multani Horse were allowed to see him, and I was told it was profoundly moving to witness these strong men shed tears as they gazed upon all that remained of the leader they loved and respected so deeply.

°       °       °       °       °       °       °

°       °       °       °       °       °       °

Thus ended the great siege of Delhi, and to no one could the tidings of its fall have brought more intense relief and satisfaction than to the Chief Commissioner of the Punjab. Although in the first instance Sir John Lawrence certainly under-estimated the strength of the Delhi defences and the difficulties with which General Anson had to contend, he fully realized them later, and even at the risk of imperilling the safety of his own province by denuding it of troops, he provided the means for the capture of the rebel stronghold, and consequently the army of Delhi felt they owed him a deep debt of gratitude.

Thus ended the great siege of Delhi, and no one felt more intense relief and satisfaction at its fall than the Chief Commissioner of the Punjab. Although Sir John Lawrence initially underestimated the strength of Delhi's defenses and the challenges General Anson faced, he recognized them later. Even at the risk of jeopardizing the safety of his own province by removing troops, he ensured the resources needed to capture the rebel stronghold, and as a result, the army of Delhi felt a deep sense of gratitude toward him.

Gallantry of the Troops Like Norman when writing his narrative of the siege, I feel I cannot conclude my brief account of it without paying my small tribute of praise and admiration to the troops who bore themselves so nobly from the beginning to the end. Their behaviour throughout was beyond all praise, their constancy was unwearied, their gallantry most conspicuous; in thirty-two different fights they were victorious over long odds, being often exposed to an enemy ten times their number, who, moreover, had the advantage of ground and superior Artillery; they fought and worked as if each one felt that on his individual exertions alone depended the issue of the day; they willingly, nay, cheerfully, endured such trials as few armies have ever been exposed to for so long a time. For three months, day after day, and for the greater[Page 139] part of the day, every man had to be constantly under arms, exposed to a scorching Indian sun, which was almost as destructive as, and much harder to bear than, the enemy's never-ceasing fire. They saw their comrades struck down by cholera, sunstroke, and dysentery, more dispiriting a thousand times than the daily casualties in action. They beheld their enemies reinforced while their own numbers rapidly decreased. Yet they never lost heart, and at last, when it became evident that no hope of further reinforcements could be entertained, and that if Delhi were to be taken at all it must be taken at once, they advanced to the assault with as high a courage and as complete a confidence in the result, as if they were attacking in the first flush and exultation of troops at the commencement of a campaign, instead of being the remnant of a force worn out, by twelve long weeks of privation and suffering, by hope deferred (which truly 'maketh the heart sick'), and by weary waiting for the help which never came. Batteries were thrown up within easy range of the walls, than which a more heroic piece of work was never performed; and finally, these gallant few, of whom England should in very truth be everlastingly proud, stormed in the face of day a strong fortress defended by 30,000 desperate men, provided with everything necessary to defy assault.

Courage of the Troops Like Norman when he wrote about the siege, I feel I can't wrap up my brief account without giving a shout-out to the troops who conducted themselves so admirably from start to finish. Their behavior throughout was exceptional, their determination unwavering, and their bravery truly remarkable; in thirty-two different battles, they achieved victory against overwhelming odds, often facing an enemy ten times their size, who also had the advantage of higher ground and better artillery. They fought and worked as if each of them believed that the outcome of the day rested solely on their individual efforts; they willingly, even cheerfully, endured challenges that few armies have faced for such an extended period. For three months, day after day, and for most of each day, every soldier had to be ready for action, exposed to the relentless Indian sun, which was as damaging and far more difficult to endure than the enemy’s continuous gunfire. They witnessed their comrades falling victim to cholera, sunstroke, and dysentery, which was far more demoralizing than the daily losses in battle. They watched as their enemies received reinforcements while their own numbers rapidly dwindled. Yet, they never lost faith, and when it became clear that there was no hope of additional reinforcements, and that if Delhi was to be taken at all, it had to be done immediately, they charged into battle with as much courage and confidence in the outcome as if they were attacking at the very start of a campaign, instead of being the remnants of a force exhausted by twelve long weeks of hardship, by the disappointment of delayed hopes (which truly ‘makes the heart sick’), and by the exhausting wait for help that never arrived. They set up artillery within easy range of the walls, an act of extraordinary heroism, and ultimately, these brave few, of whom England should be eternally proud, stormed during the day a formidable fortress defended by 30,000 desperate men, equipped with everything needed to withstand an assault.

Praise from Lord Canning The list of killed and wounded bears witness to the gallantry of all arms of the service. The effective force at Delhi never amounted to 10,000 men. Of these 992 were killed and 2,845 wounded, besides hundreds who died of disease and exposure. Where all behaved nobly, it is difficult to particularize; but it will not, I hope, be considered invidious if I specially draw my readers' attention to the four corps most constantly engaged: the 60th Rifles, the Sirmur battalion of Gurkhas, the Guides, and the 1st Punjab Infantry. Placed in the very front of the position, they were incessantly under fire, and their losses in action testify to the nature of the service they performed. The 60th Rifles left Meerut with 440 of all ranks; a few days before the assault they received a reinforcement of nearly 200, making a total of 640; their casualties were 389. The Sirmur battalion began with 450 men, and were joined by a draft of 90, making a total of 540; their loss in killed and wounded amounted to 319. The strength of the Guides when they joined was 550 Cavalry and Infantry, and their casualties were 303. The 1st Punjab Infantry arrived in Delhi with 3 British officers and 664 Natives of all ranks. Two of the British officers were killed, and the third severely wounded, and of the Natives, 8 officers6 and 200 men were killed and wounded; while out of the British officers attached to the regiment during the siege 1 was[Page 140] killed and 4 wounded. Further, it is a great pleasure to me to dwell on the splendid service done by the Artillery and Engineers. The former, out of their small number, had 365 killed or disabled, and the latter two-thirds of their officers and 293 of their men. I cannot more appropriately conclude this chapter than by quoting the words of Lord Canning, who, as Governor-General of India, wrote as follows in giving publication to the Delhi despatches: 'In the name of outraged humanity, in memory of innocent blood ruthlessly shed, and in acknowledgment of the first signal vengeance inflicted on the foulest treason, the Governor-General in Council records his gratitude to Major-General Wilson and the brave army of Delhi. He does so in the sure conviction that a like tribute awaits them, not in England only, but wherever within the limits of civilization the news of their well-earned triumph shall reach.'

Praise from Lord Canning The list of those killed and wounded shows the bravery of everyone in the service. The effective force in Delhi never reached 10,000 men. Of these, 992 were killed and 2,845 were wounded, along with hundreds who died from illness and exposure. Since everyone acted heroically, it’s tough to single out anyone; however, I hope it's not inappropriate to highlight the four units that were most consistently involved: the 60th Rifles, the Sirmur battalion of Gurkhas, the Guides, and the 1st Punjab Infantry. Positioned at the front, they were constantly under fire, and their losses in battle reflect the nature of their service. The 60th Rifles left Meerut with 440 personnel; just days before the assault, they received nearly 200 reinforcements, totaling 640; their casualties were 389. The Sirmur battalion started with 450 soldiers and was joined by 90 more, for a total of 540; their killed and wounded numbered 319. The Guides had 550 Cavalry and Infantry when they joined, suffering 303 casualties. The 1st Punjab Infantry arrived in Delhi with 3 British officers and 664 Natives of all ranks. Two British officers were killed, and the third was severely injured; among the Natives, 8 officers6 and 200 men were killed and wounded; of the British officers attached to the regiment during the siege, 1 was killed and 4 were wounded. Additionally, I feel it’s important to acknowledge the remarkable contributions of the Artillery and Engineers. The Artillery, out of their small force, had 365 killed or disabled, while the Engineers lost two-thirds of their officers and 293 of their men. I can’t conclude this chapter better than by quoting Lord Canning, who, as Governor-General of India, stated in the publication of the Delhi dispatches: 'In the name of outraged humanity, in memory of innocent blood ruthlessly shed, and in recognition of the first significant revenge taken against the foulest treason, the Governor-General in Council expresses his gratitude to Major-General Wilson and the brave army of Delhi. He does this with the firm belief that a similar tribute will be paid to them not only in England but wherever the news of their well-deserved victory reaches within the bounds of civilization.'



Click on the map to zoom in (Use the Back button to return to the text).

A Plan to illustrate the Seige of Delhi, 1857.

A PLAN TO ILLUSTRATE THE SEIGE OF DELHI, 1857.

A Plan to illustrate the Seige of Delhi, 1857.

A PLAN TO SHOW THE SIEGE OF DELHI, 1857.






CHAPTER XX.

1857

The fall of Delhi was loudly proclaimed, and the glad tidings spread like wildfire throughout the length and breadth of India, bringing intense relief to Europeans everywhere, but more especially to those in the Punjab, who felt that far too great a strain was being put upon the loyalty of the people, and that failure at Delhi would probably mean a rising of the Sikhs and Punjabis. Salutes were fired in honour of the victory at all the principal stations, but the Native population of[Page 141] the Punjab could not at first be made to believe that the Moghul capital, with its hordes of defenders, could have been captured by the small English army they saw marching through their province a few months before. Even at that time it seemed all too small for the task before it, and since then they knew it had dwindled down to less than half its numbers. It was not, indeed, until they had ocular demonstration of our success, in the shape of the loot which some of the Native followers belonging to the besieging force took back to their homes, that they became convinced of the reality of our victory.

The fall of Delhi was announced loudly, and the good news spread rapidly across India, bringing immense relief to Europeans everywhere, especially to those in the Punjab, who felt that too much pressure was being placed on the loyalty of the people, and that a failure in Delhi would likely trigger a rebellion among the Sikhs and Punjabis. Salutes were fired in honor of the victory at all major stations, but the local population of[Page 141]the Punjab initially couldn’t believe that the Moghul capital, with its large number of defenders, could have been taken by the small English army they had seen marching through their region a few months earlier. Even at that time, it seemed far too small for the task ahead, and since then they knew it had shrunk to less than half its original size. It wasn’t until they saw clear proof of our success, in the form of the loot that some of the Native followers from the besieging force brought back to their homes, that they were convinced of our victory.

Necessity for Further Action Sir John Lawrence being painfully alive to the weakness of our position in the Punjab, as compared to the great strength of the Sikhs, on hearing the news of the capture of Delhi, begged General Wilson to send back at once a British regiment as a practical proof that our triumph was complete, and that he no longer needed so many troops. But though the city was in our possession, a great deal remained to be done before a single soldier could be spared. Above all things, it was necessary to open up communication with Cawnpore and Lucknow, in order to ascertain exactly the state of affairs in that part of the country. We had heard of the failure of Havelock's attempts to reach Lucknow, and of his having been obliged in the end to retire to Cawnpore and wait for reinforcements, but we had not been able to learn whether such reinforcements had reached him, or how long the beleaguered garrison of Lucknow was likely to hold out.

Need for More Action Sir John Lawrence, acutely aware of our vulnerable position in the Punjab compared to the strong Sikhs, asked General Wilson to immediately send back a British regiment as proof that our victory was complete and that fewer troops were needed. However, even though we had taken the city, there was still a lot to do before we could spare any soldiers. Most importantly, we needed to establish communication with Cawnpore and Lucknow to understand the situation in that area. We had heard about Havelock’s unsuccessful attempts to reach Lucknow and that he had to retreat to Cawnpore to wait for reinforcements, but we didn't know if those reinforcements had arrived or how long the surrounded garrison in Lucknow could hold out.

No time was wasted at Delhi. On the 21st September, the very day after the palace was occupied, it was decided to despatch a column to Cawnpore; but, on account of the weakened condition of the whole force, there was considerable difficulty in detailing the troops for its composition. The total strength of the corps1 eventually selected amounted to 750 British and 1,900 Native soldiers, with sixteen field-guns.

No time was wasted in Delhi. On September 21st, the very day after the palace was taken over, it was decided to send a unit to Cawnpore; however, due to the weakened state of the entire force, it was quite challenging to allocate the troops needed for it. The total strength of the corps1 eventually chosen was 750 British and 1,900 Native soldiers, along with sixteen field guns.

No officer of note or high rank being available, the command of the column should have been given to the senior regimental officer serving with it, viz., Colonel Hope Grant, of the 9th Lancers; but for some[Page 142] unexplained motive Lieutenant-Colonel Greathed, of the 8th Foot, was chosen by General Wilson. Captain Bannatyne, of the same regiment, was appointed his Brigade-Major, and I was sent with the column as Deputy Assistant-Quartermaster-General. On the fall of Delhi the whole of the Head-Quarters staff returned to Simla, except Henry Norman, whose soldierly instincts made him prefer accompanying the column, in order that he might be ready to join Sir Colin Campbell, the newly-appointed Commander-in-Chief, who had shortly before arrived in India.

No senior officer or high-ranking official was available, so the command of the column should have been given to the senior regimental officer with it, Colonel Hope Grant of the 9th Lancers. However, for some[Page 142] unexplained reason, General Wilson selected Lieutenant-Colonel Greathed of the 8th Foot instead. Captain Bannatyne, from the same regiment, was made his Brigade-Major, and I was assigned to the column as Deputy Assistant-Quartermaster-General. After the fall of Delhi, the entire Headquarters staff returned to Simla, except for Henry Norman, whose military instincts led him to prefer to stay with the column so he could be ready to join Sir Colin Campbell, the newly-appointed Commander-in-Chief who had arrived in India shortly before.

Departure from Delhi Nicholson's funeral was taking place as we marched out of Delhi, at daybreak on the morning of the 24th September. It was a matter of regret to me that I was unable to pay a last tribute of respect to my loved and honoured friend and Commander by following his body to the grave, but I could not leave the column. That march through Delhi in the early morning light was a gruesome proceeding. Our way from the Lahore gate by the Chandni Chauk led through a veritable city of the dead; not a sound was to be heard but the falling of our own footsteps; not a living creature was to be seen. Dead bodies were strewn about in all directions, in every attitude that the death-struggle had caused them to assume, and in every stage of decomposition. We marched in silence, or involuntarily spoke in whispers, as though fearing to disturb those ghastly remains of humanity. The sights we encountered were horrible and sickening to the last degree. Here a dog gnawed at an uncovered limb; there a vulture, disturbed by our approach from its loathsome meal, but too completely gorged to fly, fluttered away to a safer distance. In many instances the positions of the bodies were appallingly life-like. Some lay with their arms uplifted as if beckoning, and, indeed, the whole scene was weird and terrible beyond description. Our horses seemed to feel the horror of it as much as we did, for they shook and snorted in evident terror. The atmosphere was unimaginably disgusting, laden as it was with the most noxious and sickening odours.

Leaving Delhi Nicholson's funeral was happening as we marched out of Delhi at dawn on the morning of September 24th. I regretted that I couldn't pay my last respects to my dear friend and Commander by following his body to the grave, but I had to stay with the column. That march through Delhi in the early morning light was horrifying. Our route from the Lahore gate by Chandni Chauk took us through a true city of the dead; not a sound could be heard except for our own footsteps, and there was no sign of life anywhere. Dead bodies were scattered around in every direction, in every position that the death struggle had left them, and in various stages of decay. We marched in silence, or spoke in hushed tones, as if we were afraid to disturb those gruesome remains of humanity. The sights we encountered were horrifying and sickening. Here, a dog gnawed at a bare limb; there, a vulture, interrupted from its disgusting meal by our presence, but too full to fly, fluttered to a safer distance. In many cases, the positions of the bodies looked shockingly lifelike. Some lay with their arms raised as if beckoning, and the whole scene was eerie and terrible beyond description. Our horses seemed to sense the horror just as we did, as they shook and snorted in obvious fear. The air was unimaginably foul, heavy with the most toxic and nauseating smells.

It is impossible to describe the joy of breathing the pure air of the open country after such a horrible experience; but we had not escaped untainted. That night we had several cases of cholera, one of the victims being Captain Wilde, the Commandant of the 4th Punjab Infantry. He was sent back to Delhi in a hopeless condition, it was thought, but he recovered, and did excellent work at the head of his fine regiment during the latter part of the campaign.

It’s hard to express the joy of breathing the fresh air of the countryside after such a terrible experience; however, we hadn’t come away unscathed. That night, we had several cases of cholera, one of the victims being Captain Wilde, the Commandant of the 4th Punjab Infantry. He was sent back to Delhi in a desperate state, but he recovered and did great work leading his regiment during the later part of the campaign.

After a march of eleven miles we reached Ghazi-uddin nagar, to find the place deserted. We halted the next day. The baggage animals were out of condition after their long rest at Delhi; and it was necessary to overhaul their loads and get rid of the superfluous kit and plunder which the followers had brought away with them. We were accompanied on our march by a few enterprising civilians, who had[Page 143] found their way into Delhi the day after we took possession of the palace. Amongst them was Alfred Lyall,2 a schoolfellow of mine at Eton. He was on his way to take up the appointment of Assistant-Magistrate at Bulandshahr, where he was located when the Mutiny broke out. As we rode along he gave me a most interesting little history of his personal experiences during the early days of May, from the time when the first symptoms of the coming storm were felt, until that when the surrounding country rose en masse, and he and those with him had to seek shelter at Meerut. I should like to repeat his story for the benefit of my readers, but I refrain, as it would lose so much by my telling; and I hope that some day Sir Alfred Lyall may be induced to tell his own story in the picturesque and attractive language which is so well known and so much appreciated by the reading public.

After an eleven-mile march, we arrived at Ghazi-uddin Nagar, only to find the place empty. We stayed put the next day. The baggage animals weren't in good shape after their long rest in Delhi, so we needed to check their loads and get rid of the unnecessary gear and loot that our followers had brought along. A few adventurous civilians joined us on our march, having come to Delhi the day after we took over the palace. Among them was Alfred Lyall, a former classmate of mine from Eton. He was heading to his post as Assistant Magistrate in Bulandshahr, where he was stationed when the Mutiny began. As we rode, he shared a fascinating account of his personal experiences during the early days of May, from the first signs of the impending chaos to when the surrounding area rose up en masse, forcing him and his companions to seek refuge in Meerut. I would love to share his story for my readers, but I won't, as it would lose so much in my retelling; I hope that someday Sir Alfred Lyall will be inspired to share his own story in the vivid and engaging way that he is well-known for and appreciated by the reading public.

Early on the morning of the 28th, Norman, Lyall, and I, marching with Watson's Cavalry, two or three miles in advance of the column, arrived at cross-roads, one leading to Bulandshahr, the other to Malagarh, a fort belonging to a Mahomedan of the name of Walidad Khan, who, when the British rule was in abeyance, assumed authority over the district in the name of the Emperor of Delhi. We halted, and, having put out our piquets, lay down and waited for the dawn. From information obtained by the civil officers with the column, we suspected that large numbers of mutineers were collected in the neighbourhood.

Early on the morning of the 28th, Norman, Lyall, and I, marching with Watson's Cavalry, a couple of miles ahead of the column, reached a crossroads—one path led to Bulandshahr and the other to Malagarh, a fort owned by a Muslim named Walidad Khan, who, when British rule was on hold, took control of the area in the name of the Emperor of Delhi. We stopped, set up our sentries, and lay down to wait for dawn. Based on information from the civil officers with the column, we suspected that many mutineers were gathered nearby.

Action at Bulandshahr We were not left long in doubt as to the correctness of our surmisings, for we were soon rudely awakened by the rattle of shots exchanged between our vedettes and those of the enemy. Information was sent back at once to the advance guard and to our Commander, while we set to work to ascertain the enemy's exact position; this proved to be at Bulandshahr, and we were within a couple of miles of the main body.

Action in Bulandshahr We didn't have to wait long to find out if our guesses were right, as we were quickly jolted awake by the sound of gunfire between our lookout posts and the enemy's. A report was sent back immediately to the advance guard and our Commander, while we got to work figuring out the enemy's exact position; it turned out to be at Bulandshahr, and we were just a couple of miles from their main force.

As we advanced the rebel Cavalry fell back, and when we got under fire of their guns, our Horse Artillery came into action; our Infantry coming up, found the enemy occupying an extremely strong position, in the gaol and a walled serai at the entrance to the town, their left being covered by the enclosed gardens and ruined houses of the deserted civil station, within which they were collected in considerable force. From these points they were driven by the 75th Foot, who, in a most dashing manner, captured two 9-pounder guns, while a third was taken by the Cavalry. The rebels then began to retreat, and were followed up by a small body of Cavalry, under Drysdale,3 of the 9th Lancers, with whom were Sarel, of the same regiment, Augustus Anson of the[Page 144] 84th Foot, and myself. We soon became entangled in narrow streets, but at last found ourselves in a gateway leading out of the town, which was crowded with bullock-carts, flying townspeople, and a number of the enemy, some on horseback, some on foot. There we had hard fighting; Sarel was wounded in the act of running a sepoy through the body, the forefinger of his right hand being taken off by a bullet, which then passed through his left arm; Anson was surrounded by mutineers, and performed prodigies of valour, for which he was rewarded with the Victoria Cross. I was riding a Waziri horse, which had belonged to John Nicholson, and as it had been a great favourite of his, I had commissioned a friend to buy him for me at the sale of Nicholson's effects. He was naturally impetuous, and, being now greatly excited by the firing and confusion, plunged about a good deal. He certainly was not a comfortable mount on that day, but all the same he saved my life. In the midst of the mêlée I observed a sepoy taking deliberate aim at me, and tried to get at him, but the crowd between him and me prevented my reaching him. He fired; my frightened animal reared, and received in his head the bullet which was intended for me.4

As we moved forward, the rebel cavalry fell back, and when we came under fire from their guns, our horse artillery sprang into action. Our infantry, arriving shortly after, discovered the enemy occupying a very strong position in the jail and a fortified serai at the entrance to the town, with their left protected by the enclosed gardens and abandoned houses of the deserted civil station, where they had gathered in significant numbers. The 75th Foot drove them from these positions, dashing in and capturing two 9-pounder guns, while a third was taken by the cavalry. The rebels then began to retreat, pursued by a small group of cavalry led by Drysdale, 3 of the 9th Lancers, along with Sarel from the same regiment, Augustus Anson from the[Page 144] 84th Foot, and myself. We quickly got caught up in narrow streets but eventually found ourselves at a gateway leading out of the town, which was packed with bullock carts, fleeing townspeople, and some of the enemy, both on horseback and on foot. There we fought hard; Sarel was wounded while stabbing a sepoy, losing the tip of his right forefinger to a bullet that then went through his left arm; Anson was surrounded by mutineers and showed incredible bravery, for which he was awarded the Victoria Cross. I was riding a Waziri horse that had belonged to John Nicholson, and since it was one of his favorites, I had asked a friend to buy it for me at the sale of Nicholson's belongings. The horse was naturally spirited and, now stirred up by the gunfire and chaos, was quite restless. He certainly wasn't the most comfortable ride that day, but he ended up saving my life. In the midst of the chaos, I saw a sepoy aiming directly at me and tried to reach him, but the crowd between us blocked my way. He fired; my startled horse reared up, taking the bullet intended for me.4

The work fell chiefly on the Cavalry and Horse Artillery. Major Ouvry, who commanded them, must have been a proud man that day, for they behaved splendidly. Two of Blunt's guns also, under an old Addiscombe friend of mine named Cracklow, did excellent service. The 9th Lancers, under Drysdale, performed wonders; and the three squadrons of Punjab Cavalry, under their gallant young leaders, Probyn, Watson, and Younghusband, and the squadron of Hodson's Horse, under Hugh Gough, showed of what good stuff they were made. Our casualties were 6 men killed, 6 officers and 35 men wounded. The enemy's loss was 300. A large quantity of ammunition and baggage fell into our hands, including many articles plundered from European men and women.

The work mainly fell on the Cavalry and Horse Artillery. Major Ouvry, who was in charge, must have felt proud that day because they performed exceptionally well. Two of Blunt's guns, run by an old friend from Addiscombe named Cracklow, also did a fantastic job. The 9th Lancers, led by Drysdale, achieved incredible things; and the three squadrons of Punjab Cavalry, under their brave young leaders Probyn, Watson, and Younghusband, along with the squadron of Hodson's Horse, led by Hugh Gough, proved their worth. Our casualties were 6 men killed, 6 officers and 35 men wounded. The enemy's loss was 300. We captured a large amount of ammunition and baggage, including many items stolen from Europeans.

After the fight was over, the column passed through the town, and our camp was pitched about a mile beyond, on the banks of the Kali Naddi. The same afternoon Malagarh was reconnoitred, but was found to be deserted, a satisfactory result of the morning's action, for the fort, if defended, would have given us some trouble to take. Walidad Khan evidently hoped to become a power in the district, for he had begun to make gun-carriages, and we found roughly-cast guns on the lathes ready for boring out. It was decided that Malagarh Fort, which was full of articles of every description taken from the English residents, should be destroyed. Its demolition, however, took some time to effect, and as we could not move till transport came[Page 145] from Meerut to convey our wounded officers and men back to that place, the column halted at Bulandshahr for four days.

After the fight ended, the column went through the town, and our camp was set up about a mile further along, by the banks of the Kali Naddi. That same afternoon, we reconnoitered Malagarh, but it turned out to be empty, which was a good outcome from the morning's battle since the fort would have given us trouble if it had been defended. Walidad Khan clearly aimed to gain influence in the area, as he had started making gun carriages, and we discovered some roughly cast guns on the lathes ready to be bored out. We decided to destroy Malagarh Fort, which was filled with various items taken from the English residents. However, its demolition took some time, and since we could not move until transport arrived from Meerut to take our wounded officers and men back, the column stayed in Bulandshahr for four days.

Lieutenant Home's Death On the afternoon of the 1st October the fort was blown up, and most unfortunately, while superintending the operation, Lieutenant Home was killed.5 The mine had been laid and the slow-match lighted, but the explosion not following as quickly as was expected, Home thought the match must have gone out, and went forward again to relight it. At that moment the mine blew up. His death was greatly felt in camp, happening as it did when all the excitement of battle was over.

Lt. Home's Death On the afternoon of October 1st, the fort was blown up, and unfortunately, while overseeing the operation, Lieutenant Home was killed.5 The mine had been set, and the slow-match was lit, but when the explosion didn’t happen as quickly as expected, Home thought the match had gone out and went back to relight it. At that moment, the mine exploded. His death was deeply felt in camp, especially since it occurred after all the excitement of battle had ended.

We left Bulandshahr, and said good-bye to Lyall on the 3rd October, feeling that he was being placed in a position of considerable risk, thrown as he was on his own resources, with general instructions to re-establish the authority of the British Government. He was not, however, molested, and after two or three days he was joined by a small body of troops from Meerut. During the months that followed he and his escort had several alarms and some smart skirmishes; for Rohilkand, a large tract of country to the east of Bulandshahr, was held by the rebels until the following spring, and Lyall's district was constantly traversed by bodies of mutinous sepoys.

We left Bulandshahr and said goodbye to Lyall on October 3rd, feeling that he was in a risky situation, relying on his own resources with general instructions to restore the authority of the British Government. However, he wasn't bothered, and after a couple of days, he was joined by a small group of troops from Meerut. In the months that followed, he and his escort faced several scares and some intense skirmishes because Rohilkand, a large area east of Bulandshahr, was controlled by the rebels until the following spring, and Lyall's district was frequently crossed by groups of mutinous sepoys.

On the afternoon of the same day we reached Khurja, a fair-sized Mahomedan town, from which some of our Cavalry soldiers were recruited. The first thing that met our eyes on arrival at this place was a skeleton, ostentatiously placed against the side of a bridge leading to the encamping-ground; it was headless, and the bones were hacked and broken. It was pronounced by more than one doctor to be the skeleton of a European woman. This sight maddened the soldiery, who demanded vengeance, and at one time it seemed that the town of Khurja would have to pay the penalty for the supposed crime. The whole force was greatly excited. At length calmer counsels prevailed. The people of the town protested their innocence, and expressed their anxiety to be our humble servants; they were, as a whole, given the benefit of the doubt, but some soldiers found in the town, belonging to regiments which had mutinied, were tried, and hanged or acquitted according to the evidence given.

On the afternoon of the same day we arrived in Khurja, a fairly large Muslim town that some of our Cavalry soldiers came from. The first thing we noticed when we got there was a skeleton, conspicuously placed against the side of a bridge leading to our camp; it was headless, and the bones were chopped and broken. More than one doctor confirmed it was the skeleton of a European woman. This shocking sight enraged the soldiers, who demanded justice, and for a while, it seemed like the town of Khurja would have to suffer for the alleged crime. The entire force was highly agitated. Eventually, cooler heads prevailed. The townspeople claimed they were innocent and expressed their desire to serve us. Overall, they were given the benefit of the doubt, but some soldiers found in the town, who belonged to regiments that had mutinied, were put on trial and either hanged or acquitted based on the evidence presented.

Some excitement was caused on reaching camp by the appearance of a fakir seated under a tree close to where our tents were pitched. The man was evidently under a vow of silence, which Hindu devotees often make as a penance for sin, or to earn a title to more than a fair share of happiness in a future life. On our addressing him, the fakir pointed to a small wooden platter, making signs for us to examine it. The platter had been quite recently used for mixing food in, and at first there seemed to be nothing unusual about it. On closer inspection,[Page 146] however, we discovered that a detachable square of wood had been let in at the bottom, on removing which a hollow became visible, and in it lay a small folded paper, that proved to be a note from General Havelock, written in the Greek character, containing the information that he was on his way to the relief of the Lucknow garrison, and begging any Commander into whose hands the communication might fall to push on as fast as possible to his assistance, as he sorely needed reinforcements, having few men and no carriage to speak of. This decided Greathed to proceed with as little delay as might be to Cawnpore.

Some excitement was sparked when we reached camp by the sight of a fakir sitting under a tree near where our tents were set up. The man was clearly observing a vow of silence, which Hindu devotees often take as a form of penance for sin or to earn a claim to more happiness in the next life. When we spoke to him, the fakir pointed to a small wooden platter, signaling for us to check it out. The platter had clearly been used recently for mixing food, and at first, there didn't seem to be anything unusual about it. However, upon closer inspection,[Page 146] we found that a detachable square of wood had been inserted at the bottom. When we removed it, a hollow space was revealed, and inside was a small folded paper, which turned out to be a note from General Havelock, written in Greek characters. The note informed us that he was on his way to help the Lucknow garrison and urged any Commander who received the message to hurry to his assistance, as he desperately needed reinforcements, having very few men and hardly any transport. This led Greathed to decide to move toward Cawnpore without delay.

Knights-Errant Just before we left Bulandshahr, a spy reported to me that an English lady was a prisoner in a village some twenty miles off, and that she was anxious to be rescued. As on cross-examination, however, the story did not appear to me to be very reliable, I told the man he must bring me some proof of the presence of the lady in the village. Accordingly, on the arrival of the column at Khurja, he appeared with a piece of paper on which was written 'Miss Martindale.' This necessitated the matter being inquired into, and I obtained the Brigadier's permission to make a detour to the village in question. I started off, accompanied by Watson and Probyn, with their two squadrons of Cavalry. We timed our march so as to reach our destination just before dawn; the Cavalry surrounded the village, and with a small escort we three proceeded up the little street to the house where the guide told us the lady was confined. Not only was the house empty, but, with the exception of a few sick and bedridden old people, there was not a soul in the village. There had evidently been a hasty retreat, which puzzled me greatly, as I had taken every precaution to ensure secrecy, for I feared that if our intention to rescue the lady became known she would be carried off. As day broke we searched the surrounding crops, and found the villagers and some soldiers hidden amongst them. They one and all denied that there was the slightest truth in the story, and as it appeared a waste of time to further prosecute the fruitless search, we were on the point of starting to rejoin our camp, when there was a cry from our troopers of 'Mem sahib hai!' (Here is the lady), and presently an excessively dusky girl about sixteen years of age appeared, clad in Native dress. We had some difficulty in getting the young woman to tell us what had happened; but on assuring her that no harm should be done to those with whom she was living, she told us that she was the daughter of a clerk in the Commissioner's office at Sitapur; that all her family had been killed when the rising took place at that station, and that she had been carried off by a sowar to his home. We asked her if she wished to come away with us. After some hesitation she declined, saying the sowar had married her (after the Mahomedan fashion), and was kind to her, and she had no friends and relations to go to. On asking her why she had sent to let us know she was there, she replied that she thought[Page 147] she would like to join the British force, which she heard was in the neighbourhood, but on further reflection she had come to the conclusion it was best for her to remain where she was. After talking to her for some time, and making quite sure she was not likely to change her mind, we rode away, leaving her to her sowar, with whom she was apparently quite content.6 I need hardly say we got unmercifully chaffed on our return to camp, when the result of our expedition leaked out.

Knights-Errant Just before we left Bulandshahr, a spy informed me that an English woman was being held captive in a village about twenty miles away, and that she was eager to be rescued. However, after questioning him, I found his story to be quite dubious, so I told him he needed to provide proof of her existence in the village. When our convoy arrived at Khurja, he appeared with a piece of paper that simply said 'Miss Martindale.' This prompted us to investigate further, and I got permission from the Brigadier to take a detour to the village in question. I set off with Watson and Probyn, along with their two cavalry squadrons. We timed our march to arrive just before dawn; the cavalry surrounded the village while a small escort and I walked up the narrow street to the house the guide claimed the lady was held in. Not only was the house empty, but with the exception of a few sick and elderly people, there was no one else in the village. It was clear there had been a hasty retreat, which baffled me since I had taken every precaution to keep our plans secret, fearing that if anyone knew we intended to rescue her, she would be taken away. As day broke, we searched the nearby fields and found the villagers and some soldiers hiding among the crops. They all insisted there was no truth to the story, and as it seemed pointless to continue the search, we were about to head back to our camp when our troopers shouted, 'Mem sahib hai!' (Here is the lady), and soon a very dark-skinned girl around sixteen years old appeared, dressed in traditional attire. We had trouble getting the young woman to explain what had happened, but after assuring her that we wouldn't harm those she was with, she told us she was the daughter of a clerk in the Commissioner’s office at Sitapur; that her whole family had been killed during the uprising there, and she had been taken by a sowar to his home. We asked her if she wanted to come with us. After some hesitation, she declined, saying the sowar had married her (in the Muslim way), he was kind to her, and she had no friends or family to return to. When we asked her why she had sent for us, she mentioned that she thought she would like to join the British force she had heard was nearby, but after thinking it over, she decided it was better for her to stay where she was. After talking to her for a while and making sure she wouldn’t change her mind, we rode away, leaving her with her sowar, who she seemed quite content with. I need hardly say we faced a lot of teasing when we returned to camp and the results of our expedition became known.

Fight at Aligarh At Somna, where we halted for the night, we heard that the Mahomedan insurgents, the prisoners released from gaol, and the rebel Rajputs of the neighbourhood, were prepared to resist our advance on Aligarh, and that they expected to be aided by a large number of mutineers from Delhi. We came in sight of Aligarh shortly before daybreak on the 5th October. Our advance was stopped by a motley crowd drawn up before the walls, shouting, blowing horns, beating drums, and abusing the Feringhis in the choicest Hindustani; but, so far as we could see, there were no sepoys amongst them. The Horse Artillery coming up, these valiant defenders quickly fled inside the city and closed the gates, leaving two guns in our possession. Thinking we should be sure to attack and take the place, they rushed through it to the other side, and made for the open country. But we had had enough of street fighting at Delhi. Our Cavalry and Artillery were divided into two parties, which moved round the walls, one to the right and the other to the left, and united in pursuit of the fugitives at the further side. We followed them for several miles. Some had concealed themselves in the high crops, and were discovered by the Cavalry on their return march to camp. Ouvry formed a long line, and one by one the rebels, starting up as the troopers rode through the fields, were killed, while our loss was trifling.

Fight in Aligarh At Somna, where we stopped for the night, we heard that the Muslim insurgents, released prisoners, and the rebel Rajputs in the area were ready to resist our advance on Aligarh, expecting support from a large number of mutineers from Delhi. We caught sight of Aligarh shortly before dawn on October 5th. Our progress was halted by a mixed crowd gathered before the walls, shouting, honking horns, beating drums, and hurling insults at the foreigners in colorful Hindustani; but as far as we could tell, there were no soldiers among them. As the Horse Artillery arrived, these brave defenders quickly retreated inside the city and shut the gates, leaving behind two guns in our possession. Thinking we would surely attack and capture the place, they rushed through to the other side and fled to the open countryside. However, we had seen enough street fighting in Delhi. Our Cavalry and Artillery were split into two groups, moving around the walls, one to the right and the other to the left, and came together to chase the fleeing rebels on the other side. We pursued them for several miles. Some hid in the tall crops and were spotted by the Cavalry on their way back to camp. Ouvry formed a long line, and one by one the rebels, jumping up as the troopers rode through the fields, were killed, while our losses were minimal.

The inhabitants of Aligarh had apparently had a bad time of it under the rebel rule, for they expressed much joy at the result of the morning's work, and were eager in their proffers to bring in supplies for our troops and to otherwise help us.

The people of Aligarh must have struggled during the rebel rule, as they showed great relief at the outcome of the morning's events and were enthusiastic to bring in supplies for our troops and assist us in other ways.

Ill as we could afford to weaken our column, it was so necessary to keep the main line of communication open, and put a stop to the disorder into which the country had fallen, that it was decided to leave two companies of Punjabis at Aligarh, as a guard to the young civilian who was placed in charge of the district.

Ill as we could afford to weaken our column, it was so necessary to keep the main line of communication open, and put a stop to the disorder into which the country had fallen, that it was decided to leave two companies of Punjabis at Aligarh, as a guard to the young civilian who was placed in charge of the district.

Fourteen miles from Aligarh on the road to Cawnpore there lived two Rajputs, twin brothers, who had taken such a prominent part in the rebellion that a price had been put on their heads, and for the future peace of the district it was considered necessary to capture them.[Page 148] In order to surprise them the more completely, it was given out that the column was to march towards Agra, from which place disquieting news had been received, while secret orders were issued to proceed towards Cawnpore. The Cavalry went on in advance, and while it was still dark, succeeded in surrounding the village of Akrabad, where dwelt the brothers. In attempting to escape they were both killed, and three small guns were found in their house loaded and primed, but we had arrived too suddenly to admit of their being used against us. We discovered besides a quantity of articles which must have belonged to European ladies—dresses, books, photographs, and knick-knacks of every description—which made us feel that the twins had richly deserved their fate.

Fourteen miles from Aligarh on the way to Cawnpore, there lived two Rajputs, twin brothers, who played a significant role in the rebellion, leading to a bounty on their heads. To ensure the district's future peace, capturing them was deemed necessary.[Page 148] To catch them off guard, it was announced that the troops would march towards Agra, where unsettling news had come in, while secret orders were given to head to Cawnpore. The cavalry moved ahead, and while it was still dark, they managed to encircle the village of Akrabad, where the brothers lived. In their attempt to flee, both were killed, and three small cannons were discovered in their home, already loaded and ready to fire, but we had arrived too quickly for them to be used against us. We also found numerous items that clearly belonged to European women—dresses, books, photographs, and various trinkets—which made us feel that the twins had truly earned their fate.

We halted on the 7th, and on the 8th marched across country to Bryjgarh (a prettily situated village under a fortified hill), our object being to get nearer to Agra, the reports from which place had been causing us anxiety, and likewise to put ourselves in a position to intercept the Rohilkand mutineers, who we were told were on their way to Lucknow.

We stopped on the 7th, and on the 8th we marched across the countryside to Bryjgarh (a beautifully located village at the base of a fortified hill), aiming to get closer to Agra, as reports from there had been making us anxious, and also to position ourselves to intercept the Rohilkand mutineers, who we heard were heading to Lucknow.

Appeals from Agra No sooner had we got to Bryjgarh than we received information that the detachment we had left behind at Aligarh was not likely to be left undisturbed, and at the same time an urgent call for assistance came from Agra, where a combined attack by insurgents from Gwalior, Mhow, and Delhi was imminent. Fifty of Hodson's Horse, under a European officer, and a sufficient number of Infantry to make the detachment we had left there up to 200, were at once despatched to Aligarh. It was clear, too, that the appeal from Agra must be responded to, for it was an important place, the capital of the North-West Provinces; the troops and residents had been shut up in the fort for more than three months, and the letters, which followed each other in quick succession, showed that the authorities were considerably alarmed. It was felt, therefore, that it was imperative upon us to turn our steps towards Agra, but it entailed our marching forty-eight miles out of our way, and having to give up for the time any idea of aiding Havelock in the relief of Lucknow.

Appeals from Agra As soon as we arrived at Bryjgarh, we learned that the group we had left at Aligarh was unlikely to remain undisturbed, and at the same time, we received an urgent request for help from Agra, where a combined attack by insurgents from Gwalior, Mhow, and Delhi was about to happen. Fifty of Hodson's Horse, led by a European officer, along with enough Infantry to bring the detachment we had left there up to 200, were immediately sent to Aligarh. It was also clear that we needed to respond to the request from Agra since it was a significant location, the capital of the North-West Provinces; the troops and residents had been trapped in the fort for over three months, and the letters arriving in rapid succession indicated that the authorities were quite worried. Therefore, we felt that it was essential for us to head towards Agra, but this meant marching forty-eight miles out of our way and temporarily abandoning any plans to assist Havelock in the relief of Lucknow.

The column marched at midnight on the 8th October, the Horse Artillery and Cavalry, which I accompanied, pushing on as fast as possible. We had done thirty-six miles, when we were advised from Agra that there was no need for so much haste, as the enemy, having heard of our approach, were retiring; we accordingly halted, nothing loath, till the Infantry came up.

The column set off at midnight on October 8th, with the Horse Artillery and Cavalry, which I was part of, moving as quickly as we could. We had covered thirty-six miles when we received word from Agra that we didn't need to rush, as the enemy, having heard we were coming, were pulling back; so we paused, without any reluctance, until the Infantry arrived.

Early the next morning, the 10th October, we reached Agra. Crossing the Jumna by a bridge of boats, we passed under the walls of the picturesque old fort built by the Emperor Akbar nearly 300 years before.

Early the next morning, October 10th, we arrived in Agra. After crossing the Jumna via a bridge of boats, we went under the walls of the beautiful old fort that was built by Emperor Akbar nearly 300 years earlier.

The European residents who had been prisoners within the walls of[Page 149] the fort for so long streamed out to meet and welcome us, overjoyed at being free at last. We presented, I am afraid, but a sorry appearance, as compared to the neatly-dressed ladies and the spick-and-span troops who greeted us, for one of the fair sex was overheard to remark, 'Was ever such a dirty-looking lot seen?' Our clothes were, indeed, worn and soiled, and our faces so bronzed that the white soldiers were hardly to be distinguished from their Native comrades.

The European residents who had been stuck inside the fort's walls for so long rushed out to greet us, thrilled to finally be free. I’m afraid we looked pretty rough compared to the well-dressed ladies and the sharp-looking troops who welcomed us, as one woman was overheard saying, 'Have you ever seen such a dirty-looking group?' Our clothes were definitely worn and dirty, and our faces were so tanned that the white soldiers were barely distinguishable from their Native companions.

Our questions as to what had become of the enemy, who we had been informed had disappeared with such unaccountable celerity on hearing of the advance of the column, were answered by assurances that there was no need to concern ourselves about them, as they had fled across the Kari Naddi, a river thirteen miles away, and were in full retreat towards Gwalior. It was a little difficult to believe in the complete dispersion of the formidable rebel army, the mere rumoured approach of which had created such consternation in the minds of the Agra authorities, and had caused the many urgent messages imploring us to push on.

Our questions about what happened to the enemy, who we had been told vanished so quickly upon hearing about our column's advance, were answered with reassurances that we didn’t need to worry about them since they had fled across the Kari Naddi, a river thirteen miles away, and were fully retreating towards Gwalior. It was hard to believe that the once-formidable rebel army had completely scattered, especially since just the rumor of their approach had caused such panic among the Agra authorities and led to the numerous urgent messages begging us to move forward.

Our doubts, however, were met with the smile of superior knowledge. We were informed that the rebels had found it impossible to get their guns across to the Agra side of the stream, and that, feeling themselves powerless without them to resist our column, they had taken themselves off with the least possible delay. We were asked with some indignation, 'Had not the whole country round been scoured by thoroughly trustworthy men without a trace of the enemy being discovered?' And we were assured that we might take our much-needed rest in perfect confidence that we were not likely to be disturbed. We were further told by those who were responsible for the local Intelligence Department, and who were repeatedly questioned, that they had no doubt whatever their information was correct, and that there was no need to follow up the enemy until our troops were rested and refreshed.

Our doubts, however, were met with the confident smile of someone who knew better. We were told that the rebels had found it impossible to get their guns across to the Agra side of the stream, and that, realizing they were powerless to resist our forces without them, they had left as quickly as possible. We were asked with some annoyance, "Hadn't the entire area been thoroughly searched by reliable men without finding any trace of the enemy?" And we were assured that we could take our much-needed rest with complete confidence that we were unlikely to be disturbed. Those in charge of the local Intelligence Department, who were asked repeatedly, assured us that they were completely confident their information was accurate, and that there was no need to pursue the enemy until our troops were rested and refreshed.

Collapse of the Agra Administration We were then not aware of what soon became painfully apparent, that neither the information nor the opinions of the heads of the civil and military administration at Agra were to be relied upon. That administration had, indeed, completely collapsed; there was no controlling authority; the crisis had produced no one in any responsible position who understood the nature of the convulsion through which we were passing; and endless discussion had resulted (as must always be the case) in fatal indecision and timidity.

Fall of the Agra Administration At that time, we didn't realize what soon became painfully obvious, that we couldn't trust the information or opinions of the leaders of the civil and military administration in Agra. That administration had fully collapsed; there was no one in charge. The crisis had left no one in a responsible position who understood the nature of the upheaval we were going through, and endless discussions had led, as always happens, to harmful indecision and fearfulness.

We could hardly have been expected to know that the government of so great a province was in the hands of men who were utterly unfit to cope with the difficulties of an emergency such as had now arisen, although in quieter times they had filled their positions with credit to themselves and advantage to the State.

We could hardly have been expected to know that the government of such a large province was in the hands of people who were completely unqualified to handle the challenges of an emergency like the one we were facing now, even though in calmer times they had performed their roles well and benefited the State.

Taken by Surprise That this was the case can be proved beyond a doubt, but I do not[Page 150] give it as an excuse for our being caught napping by the enemy, which we certainly were. We ought, of course, to have reconnoitred the surrounding country for ourselves, and posted our piquets as usual; and we ought not to have been induced to neglect these essential military precautions by the confident assertion of the Agra authorities that the enemy were nowhere in our neighbourhood.

Caught by surprise This can be proven without a doubt, but I don’t[Page 150] use it as an excuse for getting blindsided by the enemy, which we definitely did. We should have checked out the surrounding area ourselves and set up our pickets as usual; and we shouldn’t have let the Agra authorities’ confident claims that the enemy was nowhere near us make us overlook these crucial military precautions.

The Brigadier gave orders for our camp to be pitched as soon as the tents should arrive, but he saw no necessity for posting piquets until the evening. Accordingly, I marked out the camp on the brigade parade-ground, which had been selected as best suited for the purpose—a grassy, level, open spot, a mile and a half from the fort. On the left and rear were the ruined lines of the two Native Infantry regiments which had been disarmed and sent to their homes, and the charred remains of the British officers' houses. To the right and front there was cultivation, and the high crops, almost ready to be reaped, shut out the view of the country beyond.

The Brigadier ordered our camp to be set up as soon as the tents arrived, but he didn’t see the need to post guards until the evening. So, I marked out the camp on the brigade parade ground, which was chosen as the best site—a grassy, level open area, a mile and a half from the fort. On the left and back were the ruined lines of the two Native Infantry regiments that had been disarmed and sent home, along with the burned remains of the British officers' houses. To the right and in front, there was farmland, and the tall crops, almost ready for harvest, blocked the view of the land beyond.

As the tents and baggage could not arrive for some time, I got leave to go with Norman, Watson, and a few others to breakfast in the fort. We had scarcely sat down, bent on enjoying such an unusual event as a meal in ladies' society, when we were startled by the report of a gun, then another and another. Springing to our feet, there was a general exclamation of, 'What can it mean? Not the enemy, surely!' But the enemy it was, as we were soon convinced by our host, who, having gone to a point from which he could get a view of the surrounding country, came back in hot haste, to tell us that an action was taking place.

As the tents and luggage wouldn’t arrive for a while, I got permission to go with Norman, Watson, and a few others to have breakfast in the fort. We had barely settled in, excited about having a meal in the company of ladies, when we were startled by the sound of a gunshot, followed by another and another. Jumping to our feet, we all exclaimed, “What could that mean? Surely it’s not the enemy!” But it was, as we quickly learned from our host, who had rushed to a lookout point to survey the area and returned in a hurry to tell us that a battle was underway.

We who belonged to the column hurried down the stairs, jumped on our horses, and galloped out of the fort and along the road in the direction of the firing. We had got but half-way to camp, when we were met and almost borne down by an enormous crowd, consisting of men, women, and children of every shade of colour, animals and baggage all mixed up in inextricable confusion. On they rushed, struggling and yelling as if pursued by demons.

We who were part of the column quickly rushed down the stairs, hopped on our horses, and raced out of the fort and along the road toward the sound of gunfire. We had barely made it halfway to camp when we were confronted and nearly trampled by a huge crowd made up of men, women, and children of every skin tone, along with animals and luggage all jumbled together in a chaotic mess. They charged forward, struggling and shouting as if being chased by demons.

The refugees from the fort, tired of their long imprisonment, had taken advantage of the security which they thought was assured by the arrival of the column to visit their deserted homes. Two-thirds of the 150,000 inhabitants of the city had also flocked out to see the troops who had taken part in the capture of Delhi (the report of which achievement was still universally disbelieved), to watch our camp being pitched, and to see what was going on generally. All this varied crowd, in terror at the first sound of firing, made for the fort and city, and were met in their flight by the heavy baggage of the column on its way to camp. Instantly, elephants, camels, led horses, doolie-bearers carrying the sick and wounded, bullocks yoked to heavily-laden carts, all becoming panic-stricken, turned round and joined in the stampede.[Page 151] Elephants, as terrified as their mahouts7, shuffled along, screaming and trumpeting; drivers twisted the tails of their long-suffering bullocks with more than usual energy and heartlessness, in the vain hope of goading them into a gallop; and camels had their nostrils rent asunder by the men in charge of them, in their unsuccessful endeavours to urge their phlegmatic animals into something faster than their ordinary stately pace.

The refugees from the fort, exhausted from their lengthy imprisonment, seized the chance they believed was provided by the arrival of the column to visit their abandoned homes. Two-thirds of the 150,000 residents of the city also rushed out to see the troops who participated in the capture of Delhi (a feat that was still widely doubted), to watch our camp being set up, and to see what was happening in general. This diverse crowd, frightened by the first sound of gunfire, fled towards the fort and city, only to be confronted by the heavy baggage of the column as it made its way to the camp. Instantly, elephants, camels, horses on leads, bearers carrying the sick and wounded, and bullocks tied to heavily loaded carts, all panicked, turned around, and joined in the chaos.[Page 151] Elephants, as scared as their mahouts7, shuffled forward, screaming and trumpeting; drivers twisted the tails of their overworked bullocks with more urgency and cruelty than usual, desperately trying to make them run; and camels had their nostrils roughly handled by their handlers in a futile attempt to push their slow-moving animals into something faster than their usual dignified stroll.

The Fight at Agra Into this surging multitude we rushed, but for a time our progress was completely checked. Eventually, however, by dint of blows, threats, and shouts, we managed to force our way through the motley crowd and reach the scene of action. What a sight was that we came upon! I seem to see it now as distinctly as I did then. Independent fights were going on all over the parade-ground. Here, a couple of Cavalry soldiers were charging each other. There, the game of bayonet versus sword was being carried on in real earnest. Further on, a party of the enemy's Cavalry were attacking one of Blunt's guns (which they succeeded in carrying off a short distance). Just in front, the 75th Foot (many of the men in their shirt-sleeves) were forming square to receive a body of the rebel horse. A little to the left of the 75th, Remmington's troop of Horse Artillery and Bourchier's battery had opened fire from the park without waiting to put on their accoutrements, while the horses were being hastily harnessed by the Native drivers and saices. Still further to the left, the 9th Lancers and Gough's squadron of Hodson's Horse were rapidly saddling and falling in. On the right the 8th Foot and the 2nd and 4th Punjab Infantry were busy getting under arms, while beyond, the three squadrons of Punjab Cavalry, under Probyn and Younghusband, were hurrying to get on the enemy's flank.

The Battle of Agra We charged into the chaotic crowd, but for a while, we couldn’t get through. Eventually, though, with some pushing, shouting, and threats, we forced our way to the action. What a scene we stumbled upon! I can still picture it clearly in my mind. Independent battles were happening all over the parade ground. Over here, a couple of Cavalry soldiers were charging at each other. Over there, it was bayonets against swords in a fierce struggle. Further along, some enemy Cavalry were assaulting one of Blunt's cannons (which they managed to drag away a short distance). Right in front, the 75th Foot (many of them in their shirt sleeves) were forming a square to face a group of rebel cavalry. A little to the left of the 75th, Remmington's Horse Artillery and Bourchier's battery were firing from the park without taking the time to equip themselves, while the Native drivers and saices were quickly harnessing the horses. Even further left, the 9th Lancers and Gough's squadron of Hodson's Horse were quickly saddling up and falling into formation. On the right, the 8th Foot and the 2nd and 4th Punjab Infantry were gearing up, while the three squadrons of Punjab Cavalry, led by Probyn and Younghusband, were rushing to flank the enemy.

Watson galloped off to take command of the Punjab Cavalry, and Norman and I rode in different directions to search for the Brigadier. While thus employed, I was stopped by a dismounted sowar, who danced about in front of me, waving his pagri8 before the eyes of my horse with one hand, and brandishing his sword with the other. I could not get the frightened animal near enough to use my sword, and my pistol (a Deane and Adams revolver), with which I tried to shoot my opponent, refused to go off, so I felt myself pretty well at his mercy, when, to my relief, I saw him fall, having been run through the body by a man of the 9th Lancers who had come to my rescue.

Watson rode off to take charge of the Punjab Cavalry, and Norman and I headed in different directions to look for the Brigadier. While I was busy with this, a dismounted sowar stopped me, hopping around in front of me, waving his pagri8 in front of my horse's eyes with one hand and swinging his sword with the other. I couldn’t get my scared horse close enough to use my sword, and my pistol (a Deane and Adams revolver), which I tried to fire at my attacker, wouldn’t go off, so I felt pretty helpless. To my relief, I saw him fall after getting stabbed through the body by a man from the 9th Lancers who came to save me.

Being unable to find the Brigadier, I attached myself to the next senior officer, Major Frank Turner, who commanded the Artillery. Gradually the enemy were beaten off, and the troops formed themselves up ready for pursuit, or whatever they might be called upon to do. At this juncture Greathed appeared on the ground.

Being unable to find the Brigadier, I joined the next senior officer, Major Frank Turner, who was in charge of the Artillery. Slowly, the enemy was pushed back, and the troops got themselves organized for a pursuit or whatever else they might need to do. At that moment, Greathed showed up on the scene.

With less experienced troops the surprise—and a thorough surprise[Page 152] it was—would in all probability have had serious results. Most of the men were asleep under the few tents which had already arrived, or such shelter as could be obtained near at hand, when first one round shot, then another, came right into their midst from a battery concealed in the high crops to our right front. At the same time half a dozen rebels, one of them playing the nagàra,9 rode quietly up to the Quarter-Guard of the 9th Lancers and cut down the sentry. Being dressed, like Probyn's men, in red, they were mistaken for them, and were thus enabled to get close to the guard. This act was quickly followed by a general rush of the enemy's Cavalry, which brought about the series of fights that were going on when we appeared on the scene. The Commander was not to be found; no one knew who was the senior officer present; consequently each regiment and battery had to act according to its own discretion. The troops got ready with incredible rapidity, and set to work to drive the enemy off the ground. The Artillery replied to the insurgents' guns; the Infantry did what they could, but were hampered by the fear of doing more injury to their friends than their foes, and thus the brunt of the work fell upon the Cavalry. The 9th Lancers made a succession of brilliant charges. One troop especially distinguished itself by recovering Blunt's captured gun; the Captain (French) was killed, and the subaltern (Jones), covered with wounds, was left on the ground for dead. Watson, Probyn, and Younghusband, with their three squadrons, cleared our right flank, capturing two guns and some standards; and Hugh Gough, with his squadron, performed a similar duty on the left.

With less experienced troops, the surprise—and it was a complete surprise[Page 152]—would likely have had serious consequences. Most of the men were asleep under the few tents that had arrived or whatever shelter they could find nearby, when suddenly one cannonball, then another, landed right in their midst from a battery hidden in the tall crops to our front right. At the same time, half a dozen rebels, one of them playing the nagàra,9 quietly approached the Quarter-Guard of the 9th Lancers and attacked the sentry. Dressed in red like Probyn's men, they were mistaken for them and managed to get close to the guard. This was quickly followed by a general charge from the enemy's Cavalry, which led to the series of battles that were happening when we arrived. The Commander was nowhere to be found; no one knew who was the senior officer present; as a result, each regiment and battery had to operate on its own judgment. The troops got ready with incredible speed and set out to drive the enemy off the ground. The Artillery returned fire at the insurgents' guns; the Infantry did their best, but were worried about causing more harm to their own men than to the enemy, so the main effort fell on the Cavalry. The 9th Lancers made a series of impressive charges. One troop stood out by reclaiming Blunt's captured gun; the Captain (French) was killed, and the junior officer (Jones), covered in wounds, was left behind for dead. Watson, Probyn, and Younghusband, with their three squadrons, cleared our right flank, capturing two guns and some flags; and Hugh Gough, with his squadron, carried out a similar mission on the left.

Probyn greatly distinguished himself on this occasion. In one of the charges he got separated from his men, and was for a time surrounded by the enemy, two of whom he slew. In another charge he captured a standard. For these and numerous acts of gallantry during the Mutiny, he was, to the great delight of his many friends in the column, awarded the Victoria Cross.

Probyn really stood out on this occasion. During one of the charges, he got separated from his men and was surrounded by the enemy for a while, taking down two of them. In another charge, he captured a flag. For these and many other brave actions during the Mutiny, he was awarded the Victoria Cross, much to the delight of his many friends in the unit.

When Greathed arrived, the order for a general advance was given, and we were just moving off in pursuit of the rebels, when the 3rd European Regiment and a battery of Field Artillery under Lieutenant-Colonel Cotton arrived from the fort. This officer, being senior to our Brigadier, took command of the force, and untimely delay was caused while he learnt the details of our position. Having satisfied himself that the enemy must be followed up, he endorsed Greathed's order, and off we again started.

When Greathed arrived, the order for a general advance was given, and we were just setting out to chase the rebels when the 3rd European Regiment and a battery of Field Artillery led by Lieutenant-Colonel Cotton arrived from the fort. Since this officer was senior to our Brigadier, he took command of the force, causing an unnecessary delay as he got up to speed on our situation. Once he was convinced that we needed to pursue the enemy, he approved Greathed's order, and we set off again.

We soon overtook the retreating foe, who every now and then turned and made an ineffectual stand. At the end of about four miles we came upon their camp; it covered a considerable space, and must have taken a long time to transport and pitch—a circumstance which made[Page 153] the ignorance on the part of the Agra authorities as to the close proximity of the enemy appear even more unaccountable than before.

We quickly caught up with the retreating enemy, who occasionally turned back to make a feeble stand. After about four miles, we discovered their camp; it was quite large and must have taken a long time to transport and set up—this made[Page 153] the ignorance of the Agra authorities regarding the enemy's close proximity seem even more baffling than before.

An Exciting Chase Our Infantry were now pretty well done up; they had been on the move, with one or two short intervals, for nearly sixty hours, and the 3rd Europeans were not in trim for a long and hot day's work after such a lengthened period of inactivity in the fort, and clad, as they were, in thick scarlet uniform. The enemy, however, could not be allowed to carry off their guns; so, leaving the Infantry to amuse themselves by making hay in the rebels' camp, we pushed forward with the Cavalry and Artillery. It was a most exciting chase. Property of all sorts and descriptions fell into our hands, and before we reached the Kari Naddi we had captured thirteen guns, some of them of large calibre, and a great quantity of ammunition. The enemy's loss on this occasion was not very great, owing to the extraordinary facility with which Native troops can break up and disappear, particularly when crops are on the ground.

An Exciting Pursuit Our infantry were pretty worn out; they had been moving, with only a couple of short breaks, for almost sixty hours, and the 3rd Europeans weren't ready for a long and hot day of work after such a long time of inactivity in the fort, especially dressed in heavy scarlet uniforms. However, we couldn’t let the enemy take their guns; so, while the infantry kept themselves busy in the rebels’ camp, we pushed ahead with the cavalry and artillery. It was a truly thrilling chase. All kinds of property fell into our hands, and before we reached the Kari Naddi, we had captured thirteen guns, some of them quite large, along with a significant amount of ammunition. The enemy didn’t suffer many losses this time, thanks to how quickly native troops can scatter and vanish, especially when crops are still standing.

While watching a few of the rebel Cavalry making their escape along the opposite bank of the Kari Naddi, I noticed about a dozen men belonging to the 2nd and 4th Punjab Infantry quenching their thirst in the stream. Carried away by excitement, they had managed to keep up with the pursuit, never thinking of the inevitable trudge back to Agra, which meant that, by the time they arrived there, they would have accomplished a march of not less than 70 miles without a halt, besides having had a severe fight with an enemy greatly superior in numbers.

While watching a few of the rebel cavalry escape along the opposite bank of the Kari Naddi, I noticed about twelve men from the 2nd and 4th Punjab Infantry drinking from the stream. Caught up in the excitement, they had managed to keep up with the chase, never considering the long walk back to Agra, which would mean that by the time they got there, they would have covered at least 70 miles without a break, in addition to having fought a tough battle against a much larger enemy.

Our casualties were slight: 12 officers and men were killed, 54 wounded, and 2 missing, besides some 20 camp-followers killed and wounded.

Our casualties were minimal: 12 officers and soldiers lost their lives, 54 were injured, and 2 are missing, along with about 20 camp-followers who were killed or wounded.

There is no doubt that the enemy were almost as much taken by surprise as we were. They knew that we were on our way from Aligarh, and had arranged (as we afterwards heard) with the people of the city to destroy the bridge of boats in time to prevent our crossing. But our movements were sufficiently rapid to prevent their carrying their intention into effect; and although the insurgents were informed that we had actually crossed the river they refused to believe the report, and, it was said, hanged the man who brought it. Their incredulity was strengthened by the small dimensions of the ground taken up for our camp, and the few tents which were pitched, and they made up their minds that these were only being prepared for the troops belonging to the Agra garrison, and so anticipated an easy victory. Their astonishment first became known when they were repulsed by the 75th Foot, and were heard to say to one another, 'Arrah bhai! ye Diliwhale hain!' (I say, brother! these are the fellows from Delhi!).

There’s no doubt that the enemy was almost as surprised as we were. They knew we were on our way from Aligarh and had arranged (as we later found out) with the people in the city to destroy the bridge of boats in time to stop us from crossing. But our movements were quick enough to prevent them from carrying out their plan, and even though the insurgents were told that we had actually crossed the river, they refused to believe it and, it was said, hanged the messenger who brought the news. Their disbelief was reinforced by the small area we occupied for our camp and the few tents that were set up, leading them to think these were only for the troops from the Agra garrison, so they expected an easy victory. Their shock first became apparent when they were pushed back by the 75th Foot, and they were heard saying to one another, 'Arrah bhai! ye Diliwhale hain!' (I say, brother! these are the guys from Delhi!).

We halted at Agra on the 11th, 12th, and 13th October, partly to rest the men and transport animals, but chiefly on account of the[Page 154] difficulty we had in getting out of the clutches of the North-West Provinces Government, the local authorities not caring to be left to their own resources. Our wounded were taken to the fort, and lodged in the Moti Masjid,10 which exquisite little building had been turned into a hospital. The men were well taken care of by the ladies, who seemed to think they could never do enough for the Delhi column.

We stopped in Agra on October 11th, 12th, and 13th, partly to give the men and transport animals a break, but mainly because we struggled to get away from the North-West Provinces Government, as the local authorities didn’t want to be left to manage on their own. Our injured were taken to the fort and housed in the Moti Masjid,10 which was a beautiful little building turned into a hospital. The men were well looked after by the ladies, who seemed to believe they could never do enough for the Delhi column.

The Taj Mahal I now for the first time saw the lovely Taj Mahal—that beautiful, world-famed memorial of a man's devotion to a woman, a husband's undying love for a dead wife. I will not attempt to describe the indescribable. Neither words nor pencil could give to the most imaginative reader the slightest idea of the all-satisfying beauty and purity of this glorious conception. To those who have not already seen it, I would say: 'Go to India. The Taj alone is well worth the journey.'

The Taj Mahal For the first time, I saw the stunning Taj Mahal—this beautiful, world-famous tribute to a man’s love for a woman, a husband’s enduring affection for his deceased wife. I won’t even try to describe what’s beyond description. Neither words nor drawings could capture the breathtaking beauty and elegance of this magnificent creation. To anyone who hasn't seen it yet, I would say: 'Travel to India. The Taj alone is worth the trip.'






CHAPTER XXI.

1857

The Authorities' Obsession in Agra

During our three days' halt at Agra we were told the story of all that had happened before we came, and a sad story it was of incapacity and neglected opportunity. The Lieutenant-Governor, an able, intelligent man under ordinary circumstances, had, unfortunately, no firmness of character, no self-reliance. Instead of acting on his own convictions, he allowed himself to be entirely led by men about him, who had not sufficient knowledge of Natives to enable them to grasp how completely the latter's attitude towards us had been changed by the loss of our military hold over the country.1

During our three-day stay in Agra, we heard the story of everything that had happened before we arrived, and it was a sad tale of incompetence and missed opportunities. The Lieutenant-Governor, a capable and smart man under normal circumstances, unfortunately lacked strength of character and self-reliance. Instead of following his own beliefs, he let himself be completely influenced by those around him, who didn’t have enough understanding of the locals to realize how much their attitude towards us had shifted due to the loss of our military control over the country.1

Deaf to warnings from those who did understand the magnitude of the danger, the Lieutenant-Governor refused to listen to the Maharaja Scindia, who, influenced by the wise counsels of his astute and enlightened minister, Dinkar Rao, told him that the whole Native army was disloyal, and that the men of his own (the Gwalior) Contingent2 were as bad as the rest. The authorities refused to allow the ladies and children at Gwalior to be sent into Agra for safety; they[Page 155] objected to arrangements being made for accommodating the non-combatants inside the walls of the fort, because, forsooth, such precautions would show a want of confidence in the Natives! and the sanction for supplies being stored in the fort was tardily and hesitatingly accorded. It was not, indeed, until the mutinous sepoys from Nimach and Nasirabad were within sixty miles of Agra that orders were given to put the fort in a state of defence and provision it, and it was not until they had reached Futtehpore Sikri, twenty-three miles from Agra, that the women and children were permitted to seek safety within the stronghold.3

Deaf to warnings from those who understood how serious the danger was, the Lieutenant-Governor refused to listen to Maharaja Scindia, who, guided by the wise advice of his sharp and enlightened minister, Dinkar Rao, told him that the entire Native army was disloyal, and that the men of his own (the Gwalior) Contingent2 were just as unreliable as the rest. The authorities would not allow the ladies and children in Gwalior to be sent to Agra for safety; they[Page 155] objected to making arrangements to accommodate the non-combatants inside the fort’s walls because, after all, such precautions would show a lack of confidence in the Natives! The approval for storing supplies in the fort was given slowly and with hesitation. It wasn't until the mutinous sepoys from Nimach and Nasirabad were just sixty miles from Agra that orders were issued to prepare the fort for defense and stock it with provisions, and it wasn't until they had reached Futtehpore Sikri, twenty-three miles from Agra, that the women and children were allowed to seek safety within the stronghold.3

Fortunately, however, notwithstanding the intermittent manner in which instructions were issued, there was no scarcity of supplies, for, owing to the foresight and energy of Lieutenant Henry Chalmers, the executive Commissariat officer, assisted by that prince of contractors, Lalla Joti Persâd, and ably supported by Mr. Reade, the civilian next in rank to the Lieutenant-Governor, food was stored in sufficient quantities, not only for the garrison, but for all the refugees from the surrounding districts.4

Fortunately, despite the inconsistent way instructions were given, there was no shortage of supplies. Thanks to the foresight and dedication of Lieutenant Henry Chalmers, the executive Commissariat officer, along with the exceptional contractor Lalla Joti Persâd, and the strong support from Mr. Reade, the civilian next in rank to the Lieutenant-Governor, food was stored in enough quantities not only for the garrison but also for all the refugees from the surrounding districts.4

Mr. Drummond, the magistrate of the district, who had from the first been the chief opponent of precautionary measures for the security of the residents, had the audacity to set the Lieutenant-Governor's order for victualling the fort at defiance. He forbad grain or provisions being sold to the Commissariat contractor, whose duty it was to collect supplies, and positively imprisoned one man for responding to the contractor's demands. It was at this official's instigation that the Native police force was largely increased, instead of being done away with altogether, as would have been the sensible course; and as there was an insufficiency of weapons wherewith to arm the augmentation, a volunteer corps of Christians, lately raised, was disbanded, and their arms distributed amongst the Mahomedan police. So far was this infatuated belief in the loyalty of the Natives carried that it was proposed to disarm the entire Christian population, on the pretext that their carrying weapons gave offence to the Mahomedans! It was only on the urgent remonstrance of some of the military officers that this preposterous scheme was abandoned.5 The two Native regiments stationed at Agra were not disarmed until one of the British officers with them had been killed and another wounded. The gaol, containing 5,000 prisoners, was left in charge of a Native guard, although the superintendent, having reliable information that the sepoys intended to mutiny, begged that it might be[Page 156] replaced by European soldiers. The Lieutenant-Governor gave his consent to this wise precaution, but afterwards not only allowed himself to be persuaded to let the Native guard remain, but authorized the removal of the European superintendent, on the plea of his being an alarmist.6

Mr. Drummond, the district magistrate, who had always been the main opponent of safety measures for the residents, had the nerve to ignore the Lieutenant-Governor's order to supply the fort. He prohibited the sale of grain or food to the contractor responsible for collecting supplies and even imprisoned one person for responding to the contractor's requests. It was at this official's urging that the Native police force was significantly increased instead of being completely disbanded, which would have made much more sense. Since there weren't enough weapons to equip the new recruits, a recently formed volunteer group of Christians was disbanded, and their arms were given to the Muslim police. The misguided belief in the loyalty of the Natives was so extreme that there was a proposal to disarm the entire Christian population, under the ridiculous notion that their carrying weapons offended the Muslims! It was only after strong objections from some military officers that this absurd plan was abandoned. The two Native regiments stationed at Agra weren't disarmed until one British officer with them was killed and another was wounded. The prison, holding 5,000 inmates, was left under the watch of a Native guard, even though the superintendent, having reliable information that the sepoys were planning to mutiny, requested that it be replaced by European soldiers. The Lieutenant-Governor initially agreed to this wise measure but was later persuaded to allow the Native guard to stay and even authorized the removal of the European superintendent, claiming he was an alarmist.

On the 4th July Mr. Colvin, the Lieutenant-Governor, whose health had been very indifferent for some time, was induced, much against his will, to retire to the fort, and for the time being the management of affairs passed into the hands of Brigadier Polwhele. There was little improvement—indecision reigned supreme. Notwithstanding that the gradual approach of the mutineers from Gwalior and Nasirabad was well known, no preparations were made, no plan of action decided upon. Polwhele, who was a brave old soldier, and had seen a great deal of service, had, indeed, wisely come to the conclusion that the rebels would never venture to attack a fort like Agra, and that, if left alone, they would in all probability continue their march towards Delhi. The available troops numbered less than 1,000 effective men, and Polwhele felt that, by going out to attack the enemy, there would be a grave risk of the seat of government falling into the hands of the disaffected police and city people.

On July 4th, Mr. Colvin, the Lieutenant-Governor, whose health had not been great for a while, was reluctantly persuaded to move to the fort, temporarily handing over control to Brigadier Polwhele. There was little improvement—indecision was everywhere. Even though it was clear that the mutineers from Gwalior and Nasirabad were getting closer, no preparations were made, and no action plan was put in place. Polwhele, a brave old soldier with a lot of experience, wisely believed that the rebels would never attack a fort like Agra and thought that if left alone, they would likely keep heading towards Delhi. The troops available numbered fewer than 1,000 effective men, and Polwhele worried that if he went out to confront the enemy, there was a serious risk that the government could fall into the hands of the disgruntled police and locals.

Unfortunately, however, the Brigadier allowed himself to be overruled, and when the mutineers were reported to have arrived at Shahganj, four miles from Agra, he gave way to the cry to 'Go out and do something!' and issued orders for the troops to fall in.

Unfortunately, the Brigadier let himself be overruled, and when it was reported that the mutineers had arrived in Shahganj, just four miles from Agra, he gave in to the demand to 'Go out and do something!' and issued orders for the troops to assemble.

A Series of Mishaps A series of mishaps then occurred. It was one o'clock in the afternoon of the 5th July before the column7 was ready to start; the men in their thick red uniform suffered greatly from the heat and thirst; the enemy, 9,000 strong, with twelve guns, instead of being at Shahganj, were found to be strongly entrenched at Sarsia, some distance farther off. A protracted engagement then took place, and our troops, having expended all their ammunition, were obliged to retreat, leaving many dead and a gun on the field.

A String of Misfortunes A series of mishaps then occurred. It was one o'clock in the afternoon of July 5th before the column7 was ready to start; the men in their thick red uniforms suffered greatly from the heat and thirst; instead of being at Shahganj, the enemy, 9,000 strong with twelve guns, was found to be deeply entrenched at Sarsia, some distance away. A long battle then took place, and our troops, having used all their ammunition, had to retreat, leaving many dead and a gun on the field.

Meanwhile the city and cantonment were in a state of uproar. The first gun was the signal for the guard at the gaol to release the 5,000 prisoners, who, as they appeared in the streets, still wearing their fetters, caused a perfect panic amongst the respectable inhabitants; while the evil-disposed made for the cantonment, to plunder, burn, and murder. Some of the residents who had not sought shelter in the fort, confident that our troops would gain an easy victory, on hearing of their defeat hurried with all speed to that place[Page 157] of refuge, and for the most part succeeded in reaching it; but a few were overtaken and killed by the mob, aided by the trusted police, who had early in the day broken into open mutiny.8

Meanwhile, the city and military camp were in chaos. The first gunshot was the signal for the guard at the jail to release the 5,000 prisoners, who, as they flooded the streets still in their chains, created complete panic among the respectable citizens. Meanwhile, those with bad intentions headed for the military camp to loot, burn, and kill. Some residents who hadn’t taken refuge in the fort, believing our troops would easily win, rushed to that safe place upon hearing about the defeat. Most of them managed to get there, but a few were caught and killed by the mob, which was supported by the trusted police who had revolted early in the day. [Page 157]

Result of Indecision and Incapacity With one or two exceptions the officials, military and civil alike, were utterly demoralized by all these disastrous occurrences, the result of their own imbecility. For two days no one was allowed to leave the fort or approach from the outside. Within was dire confusion; without, the mob had it all their own way.

Outcome of Uncertainty and Inaction With a couple of exceptions, the officials, both military and civilian, were completely demoralized by all these disastrous events, which were the result of their own incompetence. For two days, no one was allowed to leave the fort or come in from outside. Inside, there was chaos; outside, the mob was in complete control.

Early in August a despatch was received from the Governor-General acknowledging the receipt of the report on the fight of the 5th July, and directing that Brigadier Polwhele should be removed from the command of his brigade. On the 9th September Mr. Colvin died; he never recovered the shock of the Mutiny. As a Lieutenant-Governor in peace-time he was considered to have shown great ability in the management of his province, and he was highly respected for his uprightness of character. One cannot but feel that it was in a great measure due to his failing health that, when the time of trial came, he was unable to accept the responsibility of directing affairs himself, or to act with the promptitude and decision which were demanded from all those occupying prominent positions in 1857.

Early in August, a message was received from the Governor-General acknowledging the report on the battle of July 5th and ordering that Brigadier Polwhele be removed from commanding his brigade. On September 9th, Mr. Colvin passed away; he never fully recovered from the shock of the Mutiny. As a Lieutenant-Governor during peacetime, he was recognized for his strong skills in managing his province and was highly respected for his integrity. It’s clear that his declining health significantly impacted his ability to take on the responsibility of leading during the crisis or to respond with the urgency and decisiveness needed from all those in high positions in 1857.

Mr. Reade, the next senior civilian, assumed charge of the government on Mr. Colvin's death, until orders were received from the Government of India vesting the supreme authority in a military officer, and appointing Colonel Hugh Fraser, of the Bengal Engineers, to be Mr. Colvin's successor with the rank and position of a Chief Commissioner. Lord Canning was doubtless induced to make this selection in consequence of the courage and ability Colonel Fraser had displayed during the Burmese War, and also on account of the sound advice he had given to the Lieutenant-Governor in the early days of the outbreak—advice which unfortunately was ignored. Mr. Reade, who had proved himself worthy of his high position, gave Colonel Fraser his cordial and unqualified support, but that officer, like his predecessor, was in bad health, and found it difficult to exercise the much-needed control. A constant state of panic continued to exist, and no reliable information could be obtained of what was going on even in the immediate neighbourhood. The relief afforded by the news of the fall of Delhi was great, but short-lived, for it was quickly followed by a report that the whole rebel army had fled from Delhi and was hastening towards Agra, and that the mutineers from Gwalior and Central India were advancing to attack the fort. Again all was confusion. Reports as to the movements of the enemy were never the same for two days together; at last what appeared to be authentic intelligence was received: the Gwalior troops were said to be close at[Page 158] hand, and those urgent appeals for assistance which were sent to Greathed caused us to turn our steps towards Agra.

Mr. Reade, the next senior civilian, took over the government after Mr. Colvin's death, until orders came from the Government of India transferring the top authority to a military officer and appointing Colonel Hugh Fraser of the Bengal Engineers as Mr. Colvin's successor with the rank and position of Chief Commissioner. Lord Canning likely made this choice because of the courage and skill Colonel Fraser had shown during the Burmese War, as well as the wise advice he had given to the Lieutenant-Governor in the early days of the crisis—advice that, unfortunately, was ignored. Mr. Reade, who had proven himself worthy of his high position, gave Colonel Fraser his full and enthusiastic support, but that officer, like his predecessor, was in poor health and struggled to maintain the much-needed control. A constant state of panic persisted, and there was no reliable information about what was happening even in the immediate area. The relief brought by the news of Delhi's fall was significant but short-lived, quickly followed by reports that the entire rebel army had fled from Delhi and was rushing toward Agra, while the mutineers from Gwalior and Central India were advancing to attack the fort. Once again, everything was in disarray. Reports about the enemy's movements varied every couple of days; finally, what seemed to be credible information came in: the Gwalior troops were reportedly nearby, and those urgent requests for help that were sent to Greathed prompted us to head toward Agra.

Our object having been attained, we were all anxious to depart. The Chief Commissioner, however, was quite as anxious that we should remain; firmly believing that the Gwalior troops would reappear, he suggested that we should follow them up at least as far as Dholpur; but this proposal Greathed firmly refused to accede to. The orders he had received were to open up the country9 between the Jumna and the Ganges, and he had not forgotten the little note from Havelock discovered in the fakir's platter.

Our goal was achieved, and we were all eager to leave. However, the Chief Commissioner was just as eager for us to stay; he strongly believed that the Gwalior troops would come back. He suggested that we should track them at least as far as Dholpur, but Greathed firmly refused this proposal. The orders he received were to open up the country9 between the Jumna and the Ganges, and he hadn’t forgotten the little note from Havelock found in the fakir's platter.

At last the column was allowed to leave. The evening before our departure Norman and I called on the Chief Commissioner to say good-bye. We found Colonel Fraser greatly depressed, and inclined to take a most gloomy view of the situation, evidently thinking the restoration of our rule extremely doubtful. His last words to us were, 'We shall never meet again.'10 He looked extremely ill, and his state of health probably accounted for his gloomy forebodings. We, on the contrary, were full of health and hope. Having assisted at the capture of Delhi, the dispersion of the enemy who had attempted to oppose us on our way through the Doab, and the troops we were serving with having recently achieved a decisive victory at Agra over a foe four times their number, we never doubted that success would attend us in the future as in the past, and we were now only anxious to join hands with Havelock, and assist in the relief of the sufferers besieged in Lucknow.

At last, the group was allowed to leave. The night before our departure, Norman and I visited the Chief Commissioner to say goodbye. We found Colonel Fraser feeling very down and seemingly pessimistic about the situation, clearly believing that our rule’s restoration was highly uncertain. His last words to us were, 'We shall never meet again.'10 He looked very unwell, and his poor health likely contributed to his gloomy outlook. We, on the other hand, were full of health and optimism. Having taken part in the capture of Delhi, overcoming the enemies who tried to stop us in the Doab, and with the troops we were serving alongside having recently achieved a decisive victory at Agra against an opponent four times their size, we had no doubts that success would follow us in the future just as it had in the past. We were now eager to join forces with Havelock and help relieve those suffering in the siege of Lucknow.






CHAPTER XXII.

1857

On the 14th October we moved camp to the left bank of the Jumna, where we were joined by a small party of Artillerymen with two 18-pounder guns, and some convalescents belonging to the regiments with us, who had been left behind at Delhi—300 in all. Our camp was pitched in a pretty garden called the Rambagh, only a short distance from Agra, where we gave a picnic to the ladies who had been so kind to our wounded men—a rough sort of entertainment, as may be imagined, but much enjoyed by the easily-pleased people who had been prisoners for so long, to whom the mere getting away from the fort for a few hours was a relief.

On October 14th, we moved our camp to the left bank of the Jumna, where we were joined by a small group of artillerymen with two 18-pounder guns and some convalescents from the regiments with us, who had been left behind in Delhi—300 in total. Our camp was set up in a beautiful garden called the Rambagh, just a short distance from Agra, where we hosted a picnic for the ladies who had been so kind to our wounded men—a pretty casual affair, as you can imagine, but it was greatly enjoyed by the easily pleased folks who had been prisoners for so long, for whom getting out of the fort for a few hours was a relief.

On the morning of the 15th we commenced our march towards Mainpuri, a small station seventy miles from Agra, which we reached on the 18th. While on our way there, Hope Grant, Colonel of the[Page 159] 9th Lancers, arrived in camp to take over the command of the column. He had remained at Delhi when superseded by Greathed, and being naturally indignant at the treatment he had received, he protested against it, and succeeded in getting the order appointing Greathed to the command cancelled.

On the morning of the 15th, we started our march toward Mainpuri, a small station seventy miles from Agra, which we reached on the 18th. While we were on our way, Hope Grant, Colonel of the[Page 159] 9th Lancers, arrived in camp to take over the command of the column. He had stayed in Delhi when he was replaced by Greathed, and feeling justifiably upset about how he was treated, he voiced his objections and managed to get the order appointing Greathed to the command reversed.

Had an officer been specially selected on account of his possessing a more intimate acquaintance with Native soldiers and a longer experience of India, Hope Grant would no doubt have accepted the inevitable. But Greathed did not know as much of the country and Native troops as Hope Grant did; he had seen no service before he came to Delhi, and while there had no opportunity of showing that he possessed any particular qualification for command; he certainly did not exhibit any while in charge of the column, and everyone in the force was pleased to welcome Hope Grant as its leader.

If an officer had been specifically chosen because he had a better understanding of the local soldiers and more experience in India, Hope Grant would have certainly accepted the situation. However, Greathed didn't know as much about the country and local troops as Hope Grant did; he hadn't served anywhere before coming to Delhi, and while he was there, he didn't have the chance to prove he had any special qualifications for leadership. He definitely didn't show any while in command of the column, and everyone in the unit was happy to have Hope Grant as their leader.

The Raja of Mainpuri, who had openly joined the rebels, fled the day before we marched in, leaving behind him several guns and a quantity of powder. We halted on the 20th, blew up his fort and destroyed the powder. The European part of the station was in ruins, but a relation of the Raja had been able to prevent the Government treasury from being plundered, and he made over to us two and a half lakhs of rupees.

The Raja of Mainpuri, who had openly sided with the rebels, fled the day before we arrived, leaving behind several guns and a stash of gunpowder. We stopped on the 20th, blew up his fort, and destroyed the gunpowder. The European section of the station was in ruins, but a relative of the Raja managed to prevent the Government treasury from being looted, and he handed over two and a half lakhs of rupees to us.

Advantage of Being a Good Horseman The civilians of the Mainpuri district were amongst the refugees at Agra, and took advantage of our escort to return to their station. We had also been joined by some officers whom the mutiny of their regiments had left without employment; they were a welcome addition to our Punjab regiments, as the limited number of British officers attached to these corps had been considerably reduced by the constantly recurring casualties. One of these officers was a Captain Carey, whose story, as he told it to me, of his escape from the massacre at Cawnpore and his subsequent experiences is, I think, worth repeating.

Benefits of Being a Skilled Horseman The civilians from the Mainpuri district were among the refugees in Agra and took the opportunity provided by our escort to return to their station. We were also joined by some officers who had been left without positions due to the mutiny in their regiments; they were a welcome addition to our Punjab regiments since the small number of British officers assigned to these units had been significantly decreased by the ongoing casualties. One of these officers was Captain Carey, whose story of escaping the massacre at Cawnpore and his experiences afterward is, I believe, worth sharing.

In the month of May Carey went into Wheeler's entrenchment with the rest of the garrison; a few days before the investment, however, Sir Henry Lawrence sent his Military Secretary, Captain Fletcher Hayes, to Cawnpore, to report on what course events were taking at that place, and, if possible, to communicate with Delhi. His escort was the 2nd Oudh Irregular Cavalry. Hayes had already made Carey's acquaintance, and, on finding him at Cawnpore, asked him to accompany him to Delhi, which invitation Carey gladly accepted. When they got close to Bewar, where the road to Mainpuri branched off, Hayes, wishing to gain information from the civil authorities as to the state of the country through which their route to Delhi lay, rode off to the latter place with Carey, having first ordered the escort to proceed towards Delhi, and having arranged with the British officers to catch them up at the end of the next day's march. The following[Page 160] day, as the two friends approached the encamping ground where they were to overtake the escort, they beheld the regiment marching steadily along the road in regular formation; there was nothing to warn them that it had revolted, for as there were only three British officers with the corps, whose dress was almost the same as the men's, their absence was not noticed.

In May, Carey joined the rest of the garrison in Wheeler's fortification. However, a few days before the siege began, Sir Henry Lawrence sent his Military Secretary, Captain Fletcher Hayes, to Cawnpore to report on the situation there and, if possible, to communicate with Delhi. He was escorted by the 2nd Oudh Irregular Cavalry. Hayes had already met Carey, and when he found him in Cawnpore, he invited him to come along to Delhi, an invitation Carey happily accepted. As they approached Bewar, where the road to Mainpuri split off, Hayes wanted to gather information from the local authorities about the conditions they would encounter on their way to Delhi, so he rode off to the latter place with Carey, instructing the escort to continue toward Delhi and arranging with the British officers to join them at the end of the next day's march. The following[Page 160] day, as the two friends neared the campsite where they were set to meet the escort, they saw the regiment marching steadily along the road in organized formation; there was nothing to indicate that it had revolted, as there were only three British officers with the corps, and their uniforms were nearly identical to the men's, so their absence went unnoticed.

Suddenly, when they had got within two or three hundred yards of the regiment, the troopers with one accord broke into shouts and yells, and, brandishing their swords, galloped towards Hayes and Carey, who, turning their horses, made with all possible speed back towards Mainpuri. Hayes, who was an indifferent rider, was soon overtaken and cut to pieces, while Carey, one of the best horsemen in the army, and beautifully mounted, escaped; the sowars followed him for some distance, but a wide irrigation cut, which he alone was able to clear, put an end to the pursuit. Carey reached his destination in safety, and, with the other Europeans from Mainpuri, sought refuge in the Agra fort, where he spent the following five months. It was afterwards ascertained that the three British officers with the escort had been murdered by the sowars shortly before Hayes and Carey came in sight.

Suddenly, as they got within two or three hundred yards of the regiment, the troopers all began to shout and yell, waving their swords as they charged towards Hayes and Carey. The two quickly turned their horses and raced back towards Mainpuri as fast as they could. Hayes, who wasn't a great rider, was quickly caught and killed, while Carey, one of the best horsemen in the army and on a beautiful horse, managed to escape. The sowars chased him for a while, but a deep irrigation ditch that only he could jump over ended their pursuit. Carey reached his destination safely, and along with the other Europeans from Mainpuri, took refuge in the Agra fort, where he spent the next five months. It was later confirmed that the three British officers with the escort had been killed by the sowars just before Hayes and Carey appeared.

News from Lucknow On the 21st October we reached Bewar, the junction of the roads from Meerut, Agra, Fatehgarh, and Cawnpore, at which point the Brigadier received a communication from Sir James Outram, written in Greek character, from the Lucknow Residency, begging that aid might be sent as soon as possible, as provisions were running short.1 The note was rolled up inside a quill, which the Native messenger had cunningly concealed in the heart of his thick walking-stick. Outram's urgent summons determined the Brigadier to push on. So the next day we made a march of twenty-eight miles to Goorsahaigunj, and on the 23rd we reached Miran-ki-Serai, close to the ruined Hindu city of Kanoj.

Updates from Lucknow On October 21st, we arrived in Bewar, the junction of the roads from Meerut, Agra, Fatehgarh, and Cawnpore, where the Brigadier received a message from Sir James Outram, written in Greek characters, from the Lucknow Residency, urgently requesting that help be sent as soon as possible because provisions were running short.1 The note was rolled up inside a quill, cleverly hidden within the thick walking-stick of the Native messenger. Outram’s urgent call prompted the Brigadier to move forward. So the next day we marched twenty-eight miles to Goorsahaigunj, and on the 23rd, we reached Miran-ki-Serai, near the ruins of the Hindu city of Kanoj.

The same day I went on as usual with a small escort to reconnoitre, and had passed through the town, when I was fired upon by a party of[Page 161] the rebels, consisting of some 300 Cavalry, 500 Infantry, and four guns, who, having heard of the approach of the column, were trying to get away before it arrived. Their Cavalry and Infantry were on the opposite bank of a fairly wide stream, called the Kali Naddi, through which were being dragged some heavy pieces of cannon. I retired a short distance, and sent back word to the advance guard, which hastened to my assistance. A few rounds from our Artillery caused the enemy to abandon their guns, the Infantry dispersed and disappeared, the Cavalry fled, and we, crossing the stream, had a smart gallop after them for about four miles over a fine grassy plain. On we flew, Probyn's and Watson's squadrons leading the way in parallel lines, about a mile apart. I was with the latter, and we had a running fight till we reached the Ganges, into which plunged those of the sowars whom we had not been able to overtake; we reined up, and saw the unlucky fugitives struggling in the water, men and horses rolling over each other; they were gradually carried down by the swiftly running stream, and but a very few reached the opposite bank.

The same day, I went out as usual with a small group to scout and had passed through the town when I was fired upon by a group of[Page 161] rebels, consisting of around 300 cavalry, 500 infantry, and four cannons. They had heard about our column approaching and were trying to escape before we arrived. Their cavalry and infantry were on the other side of a fairly wide stream called the Kali Naddi, where they were dragging heavy cannons. I pulled back a short distance and sent a message to the advance guard, which quickly came to help me. A few rounds from our artillery made them abandon their cannons, the infantry scattered and vanished, the cavalry fled, and we crossed the stream, chasing them at a fast gallop for about four miles over a nice grassy plain. We raced on, with Probyn’s and Watson’s squadrons leading the way in parallel lines, about a mile apart. I was with Watson’s squadron, and we engaged in a running fight until we reached the Ganges, into which the cavalrymen we couldn't catch plunged. We slowed down and watched the unfortunate fugitives struggling in the water, men and horses tumbling over each other. They were slowly carried downstream by the fast-flowing current, and only a few made it to the opposite bank.

Our casualties were trifling, only some half-dozen men wounded, while my horse got a gash on his quarter from a sabre. Watson had the forefinger of his right hand badly cut in an encounter with a young sowar; I chaffed him at allowing himself to be nearly cut down by a mere boy, upon which he laughingly retorted: 'Well, boy or not, he was bigger than you.'

Our casualties were minimal, with only about six men injured, while my horse got a cut on its hind quarter from a saber. Watson had a deep cut on the forefinger of his right hand from a clash with a young sowar; I teased him for almost being taken down by just a kid, to which he laughed and replied, 'Well, kid or not, he was bigger than you.'

It was on this occasion that I first recognized the advantage of having the carbine slung on the trooper's back while in action, instead of being carried in the bucket, as is the custom with our British Cavalry. Several of the enemy's loose horses were going about with carbines on their saddles, while their dismounted riders were at an enormous disadvantage in trying to defend themselves from their mounted adversaries with only their swords. I saw, too, one of Watson's men saved from a fierce cut across the spine by having his carbine on his back. More recent experience has quite satisfied me that this is the only way this weapon should be carried when actual fighting is going on.

It was during this time that I first realized the benefit of having the carbine slung on the trooper's back while in action, instead of being stored in the bucket, which is the norm for our British Cavalry. Several enemy horses were wandering around with carbines on their saddles, while their dismounted riders were at a serious disadvantage trying to defend themselves against their mounted opponents with just their swords. I also saw one of Watson's men saved from a brutal cut across his spine thanks to having his carbine on his back. Recent experiences have confirmed for me that this is the best way to carry this weapon during actual combat.

Cawnpore Three more marches brought us to Cawnpore, where we arrived on the 26th October.

Kanpur Three more marches took us to Cawnpore, where we got there on October 26th.

Heart-rending Scenes We now for the first time heard the miserable 'story of Cawnpore.' We were told how, owing to Sir Hugh Wheeler's misplaced belief in the loyalty of the sepoys, with whom he had served for upwards of half a century, and to the confiding old soldier's trust in the friendship of the miscreant Nana, and in the latter's ability to defend him until succour should arrive, he had neglected to take precautionary measures for laying in supplies or for fortifying the two exposed barracks which, for some unaccountable reason, had been chosen as a place of refuge, instead of the easily defensible and well-stored magazine. Our visit to[Page 162] this scene of suffering and disaster was more harrowing than it is in the power of words to express; the sights which met our eyes, and the reflections they gave rise to, were quite maddening, and could not but increase tenfold the feelings of animosity and desire for vengeance which the disloyalty and barbarity of the mutineers in other places had aroused in the hearts of our British soldiers. Tresses of hair, pieces of ladies' dresses, books crumpled and torn, bits of work and scraps of music, just as they had been left by the wretched owners on the fatal morning of the 27th June, when they started for that terrible walk to the boats provided by the Nana as the bait to induce them to capitulate.2 One could not but picture to one's self the awful suffering those thousand Christian souls of both sexes and of all ages must have endured during twenty-one days of misery and anxiety, their numbers hourly diminished by disease, privation, the terrific rays of a June sun, and the storm of shot, shell, and bullets which never ceased to be poured into them. When one looked on the ruined, roofless barracks, with their hastily constructed parapet and ditch (a mere apology for a defence), one marvelled how 465 men, not more than half of them soldiers by profession, could have held out for three long weeks against the thousands of disciplined troops and hordes of armed retainers whom the Nana was able to bring to the attack.

Heartbreaking Scenes For the first time, we heard the tragic 'story of Cawnpore.' We learned how, due to Sir Hugh Wheeler's misplaced faith in the loyalty of the sepoys, with whom he had served for over fifty years, and the trusting old soldier's reliance on the treacherous Nana's promise to protect him until help arrived, he failed to take necessary precautions to stock supplies or to fortify the two unprotected barracks that, for some unknown reason, were selected as a refuge instead of the easily defensible and well-stocked magazine. Our visit to[Page 162] this site of suffering and disaster was more heartbreaking than words can convey; the sights we encountered and the thoughts they provoked were maddening and only intensified the feelings of hatred and desire for revenge stirred by the betrayal and brutality of the mutineers in other regions in the hearts of our British soldiers. Locks of hair, torn pieces of women’s dresses, crumpled books, bits of crafts, and scraps of music, just as they had been left by their unfortunate owners on that fateful morning of June 27th, when they began that dreadful journey to the boats provided by Nana as bait to lure them to capitulate.2 One couldn't help but imagine the unimaginable suffering those thousand Christian souls, both men and women of all ages, must have endured during twenty-one days of misery and anxiety, their numbers dwindling each hour due to illness, deprivation, the scorching rays of the June sun, and the relentless bombardment of shot, shell, and bullets. When we gazed at the ruined, roofless barracks, with their hastily built parapet and ditch (a mere excuse for a defense), we wondered how 465 men, barely half of whom were professional soldiers, could have held out for three long weeks against the thousands of disciplined troops and armed followers that the Nana could rally for the assault.

It is impossible to describe the feelings with which we looked on the Sati-Choura Ghat, where was perpetrated the basest of all the Nana's base acts of perfidy;3 or the intense sadness and indignation which overpowered us as we followed the road along which 121 women and[Page 163] children (many of them well born and delicately nurtured) wended their weary way, amidst jeers and insults, to meet the terrible fate awaiting them. After their husbands and protectors had been slain, the wretched company of widows and orphans were first taken to the Savada house, and then to the little Native hut, where they were doomed to live through two more weeks of intensest misery, until at length the end came, and the last scene in that long drama of foulest treachery and unequalled brutality was enacted. Our unfortunate countrywomen, with their little children, as my readers will remember, were murdered as the sound of Havelock's avenging guns was heard.

It’s hard to express the emotions we felt as we looked at the Sati-Choura Ghat, where the Nana committed his most despicable act of betrayal;3 or the deep sadness and anger that overwhelmed us as we followed the path where 121 women and[Page 163] children (many of them from good families and raised with care) made their painful journey, facing taunts and insults, towards the horrific fate that awaited them. After their husbands and protectors had been killed, the unfortunate group of widows and orphans were first taken to the Savada house, and then to a small Native hut, where they were forced to endure two more weeks of extreme suffering, until finally, the end came, and the final act in that long story of betrayal and unmatched brutality unfolded. Our unfortunate countrywomen, along with their little children, as my readers will remember, were killed just as the sound of Havelock's avenging guns could be heard.

We found at Cawnpore some men who had fought their way from Allahabad with Havelock's force, from whom we heard of the difficulties they had encountered on their way, and the subsequent hardships the gallant little force had to endure in its attempts to reach Lucknow. They also told us that Havelock and Outram, with only 3,179 men of all arms, and 14 guns, had succeeded in forcing their way through that great city with a loss of 700, but only to be themselves immediately surrounded by the vast multitude of the enemy, who for three whole months had vainly endeavoured to overpower the heroic defenders of the Residency.

We met some men in Cawnpore who had fought their way from Allahabad with Havelock's force. They shared the challenges they faced on their journey and the hardships the brave little group had to endure while trying to reach Lucknow. They also told us that Havelock and Outram, with just 3,179 soldiers and 14 cannons, managed to break through the city despite losing 700 men, only to find themselves immediately surrounded by the massive enemy force that had been trying for three months to overpower the heroic defenders of the Residency.

At Cawnpore there were very few troops. The Head-Quarters of the 64th Foot, under Colonel Wilson, and some recovered invalids belonging to regiments which had gone to Lucknow, had held it for more than a month, within an entrenchment thrown up on the river bank to protect the bridge of boats. Just before we arrived four companies of the 93rd Highlanders had marched in. It was the first time I had seen a Highland regiment, and I was duly impressed by their fine physique, and not a little also by their fine dress. They certainly looked splendid in their bonnets and kilts—a striking contrast to my war-worn, travel-stained comrades of the Movable Column. An[Page 164] avant courier of the Naval Brigade had also come in, sent on by Captain William Peel, of H.M.S. Shannon, to arrange for the rest of the blue-jackets who were about to arrive—the first naval officer, I imagine, who had ever been sent on duty so far up the country as Cawnpore.

At Cawnpore, there were only a few troops. The headquarters of the 64th Foot, led by Colonel Wilson, along with some recovered invalids from regiments that had gone to Lucknow, had held the position for over a month, inside an entrenchment built on the riverbank to protect the boats' bridge. Just before we arrived, four companies of the 93rd Highlanders marched in. It was the first time I had seen a Highland regiment, and I was genuinely impressed by their impressive build and their striking uniforms. They looked magnificent in their bonnets and kilts, a striking contrast to my battle-worn, travel-stained comrades from the Movable Column. An [Page 164] avant courier from the Naval Brigade had also arrived, sent by Captain William Peel of H.M.S. Shannon, to make arrangements for the rest of the blue jackets who were about to arrive—the first naval officer, I believe, ever sent on duty this far inland to Cawnpore.

Other troops were rapidly being pushed up, and officers who had been on leave to England were daily arriving, having hurried out to join their different regiments in various parts of India. Amongst these was an old friend and brother subaltern of mine, Augustus Otway Mayne, whom, greatly to my satisfaction, Hope Grant appointed D.A.Q.M.G. to help me, for there was now more work to be done than I could well get through.

Other troops were quickly being sent in, and officers who had been on leave in England were arriving daily, rushing back to rejoin their regiments in different parts of India. Among them was an old friend and fellow junior officer of mine, Augustus Otway Mayne, whom, much to my satisfaction, Hope Grant appointed as D.A.Q.M.G. to assist me, since there was now more work to handle than I could manage on my own.

The day after our arrival at Cawnpore we heard that the new Commander-in-Chief, Sir Colin Campbell, was to leave Calcutta that evening to take command of the force with which he hoped to effect the relief of the Lucknow garrison, and with this news came an order to Hope Grant from Sir Colin to get into communication with the Alambagh, a small garden-house not quite two miles from the city of Lucknow, built by one of the Begums of the ex-King of Oudh, in which the sick and wounded, tents and spare stores, had been left in charge of a small detachment, when Outram and Havelock advanced towards the Residency on the 25th September.

The day after we arrived in Cawnpore, we learned that the new Commander-in-Chief, Sir Colin Campbell, was set to leave Calcutta that evening to take command of the troops he hoped would relieve the garrison at Lucknow. Along with this news, Sir Colin sent an order to Hope Grant to get in touch with the Alambagh, a small garden house located just under two miles from the city of Lucknow. This place had been built by one of the Begums of the former King of Oudh, and it housed the sick and wounded, tents, and spare supplies, which had been left under the care of a small detachment when Outram and Havelock moved towards the Residency on September 25th.

Start for Lucknow On the 30th October we left Cawnpore, and crossed the Ganges into Oudh, taking with us the four companies of the 93rd Highlanders, and the men belonging to Havelock's force, whom I have mentioned as having been left behind on account of sickness.

Start for Lucknow. On October 30th, we left Cawnpore and crossed the Ganges into Oudh, bringing along the four companies of the 93rd Highlanders and the soldiers from Havelock's force who I mentioned were left behind due to illness.

On the 31st we were at Bani bridge, more than half-way to the Alambagh, when a telegram reached the Brigadier directing him to halt until Sir Colin Campbell (who had got as far as Cawnpore) should arrive.

On the 31st, we were at Bani bridge, more than halfway to Alambagh, when a telegram arrived for the Brigadier instructing him to stop until Sir Colin Campbell, who had made it as far as Cawnpore, would arrive.

Hope Grant did not think the ground we were on well adapted for a prolonged halt; that afternoon, therefore, I went off with Mayne to reconnoitre the country for a more suitable place. We fixed upon an open plain at the village of Bhantira, about three miles nearer Lucknow. We met with no opposition that day, but the country people in the neighbourhood had shown marked hostility by killing one or two soldiers and every camp-follower who had strayed from the main road; so we were careful to examine Bhantira and all the neighbouring villages, but were unable to discover the slightest sign of an enemy.

Hope Grant didn’t think the ground we were on was good for a long stop, so that afternoon, I went out with Mayne to scout for a better spot. We chose an open field near the village of Bhantira, about three miles closer to Lucknow. We faced no opposition that day, but the locals had shown clear hostility by killing one or two soldiers and every camp follower who wandered off the main road; so we made sure to check Bhantira and all the nearby villages, but we couldn’t find even the slightest sign of an enemy.

An Exciting Adventure As the next day's march was such a very short one, we did not start until 7 a.m., instead of before daybreak as usual. Mayne and I rode on ahead with a couple of sowars, and reached the site we had chosen for the camp without meeting a single suspicious-looking individual. We then sent back the escort to bring up the camp colour-men,[Page 165] and while waiting for them, we entered into conversation with some passing pilgrims, who told us they were on their way to Benares to procure holy water from the Ganges. Suddenly a bullet whizzed over our heads, fired from the direction from which we had just come. Looking back, to our amazement we saw a crowd of armed men at a distance of between three and four hundred yards, completely cutting us off from the column. The whole plain was alive with them. When they saw they were observed, they advanced towards us, shouting and firing. Fortunately for us, we had made ourselves perfectly acquainted with the country the previous day, and instantly realized that escape by our right (as we faced Lucknow) was impossible, because of a huge impassable jhil. There was another jhil to our left front, but at some little distance off, and our only chance seemed to be in riding hard enough to get round the enemy's flank before they could get close enough to this jhil to stop us.

An Exciting Adventure Since the next day's march was going to be quite short, we didn’t leave until 7 a.m., instead of before dawn like usual. Mayne and I took off ahead with a couple of sowars, reaching the camp site we’d chosen without encountering anyone suspicious. We then sent the escort back to bring up the camp color-men,[Page 165] and while we waited for them, we chatted with some pilgrims passing by, who said they were on their way to Benares to collect holy water from the Ganges. Out of nowhere, a bullet zipped past our heads, fired from the direction we had just come from. Looking back, we were shocked to see a crowd of armed men about three to four hundred yards away, completely cutting us off from the column. The entire plain was teeming with them. Once they realized we were watching, they charged toward us, shouting and shooting. Luckily, we had familiarized ourselves with the area the day before and quickly understood that escaping to our right (as we faced Lucknow) was impossible due to a large impassable jhil. There was another jhil to our left front, but it was a bit farther away, and our only chance was to ride fast enough to get around the enemy's flank before they got close enough to this jhil to block us.

Accordingly, we put spurs to our horses and galloped as fast as they could carry us to our left; the enemy turned in the same direction, and made for a village we must pass, and which we could see was already occupied. The firing got hotter and more uncomfortable as we neared this village, the walls of which we skirted at our best possible pace. We cleared the village, and hoped we had distanced the rebels, when suddenly we came upon a deep nulla. Mayne got safely to the other side, but my horse stumbled and rolled over with me into the water at the bottom. In the fall my hand was slightly cut by my sword, which I had drawn, thinking we might have to fight for our lives; the blood flowed freely, and made the reins so slippery when I tried to remount, that it was with considerable difficulty I got into the saddle. The enemy were already at the edge of the nulla, and preparing to fire, so there was no time to be lost. I struggled through the water and up the opposite bank, and ducking my head to avoid the shots, now coming thick and fast, galloped straight into some high cultivation in which Mayne had already sought shelter. Finally we succeeded in making our way to the main body of the force, where we found Hope Grant in great anxiety about us, as he had heard the firing and knew we were ahead. The dear old fellow evinced his satisfaction at our safe return by shaking each of us heartily by the hand, repeating over and over again in his quick, quaint way, 'Well, my boys, well, my boys, very glad to have you back! never thought to see you again.' The column now moved on, and we found ourselves opposed to a vast body of men, not soldiers, but country people, who in those days were all armed warriors, and who spent their time chiefly in fighting with each other. As we approached the crowd turned, opened out, and fled in every direction, spreading over the plain and concealing themselves in the long grass. We gave chase and killed many, but a large proportion escaped. Favoured by the high crops, they disappeared with that[Page 166] marvellous celerity with which Natives can almost instantly become invisible, leaving in our possession a 9-pounder brass gun. On this occasion we had thirty killed and wounded.

So, we urged our horses on and galloped as fast as they could go to our left; the enemy followed the same path and headed for a village we had to pass, which we could see was already occupied. The gunfire intensified and became more intense as we approached the village, and we hurried past its walls as quickly as possible. We got through the village and hoped we had lost the rebels when suddenly we encountered a deep nulla. Mayne made it safely to the other side, but my horse stumbled and threw me into the water at the bottom. I cut my hand slightly on my sword, which I had drawn thinking we might have to fight for our lives; blood flowed freely and made the reins slippery when I tried to get back on, so it was quite a struggle to get into the saddle. The enemy was already at the edge of the nulla, preparing to fire, so I had to act fast. I fought through the water and up the opposite bank, ducking my head to avoid the rapid shots, and galloped straight into some tall crops where Mayne was already hiding. Eventually, we managed to reach the main group of our force, where we found Hope Grant very worried about us, having heard the gunfire and knowing we were ahead. The dear old man expressed his relief at our safe return by shaking our hands enthusiastically, repeatedly saying in his quick, unique way, 'Well, my boys, well, my boys, very glad to have you back! never thought I’d see you again.' The column then moved on, and we found ourselves facing a huge crowd, not soldiers but local people, who at that time were all armed fighters and mostly fought each other. As we approached, the crowd turned, spread out, and fled in every direction, scattering across the field and hiding in the tall grass. We chased them down and killed many, but a lot managed to escape. Thanks to the tall crops, they vanished with that[Page 166] astonishing speed with which Natives can almost instantly become invisible, leaving us with a 9-pounder brass gun. On this occasion, we had thirty killed and wounded.

We could not at the time understand where the men had sprung from who so suddenly attacked us; but it afterwards transpired that some powerful zemindars4 in the neighbourhood had collected all the forces they could get together, and established them after dark in the very villages we had so carefully examined the previous afternoon and had found completely deserted, with the intention of falling upon the column as it passed in the early morning. The unusually late hour at which the march was made, however, disconcerted their little plan, and giving up all hope of the force coming that day, they consoled themselves by trying to get hold of Mayne and myself.

We couldn't understand at the time where the men who suddenly attacked us had come from; it later turned out that some powerful zemindars4 in the area had gathered all the forces they could find and positioned them, after dark, in the very villages we had thoroughly examined the afternoon before and found completely deserted. Their plan was to ambush our column as it passed in the early morning. However, the unusually late hour of our march disrupted their plan, and after giving up hope of encountering our force that day, they focused on trying to capture Mayne and me.

We halted on the 3rd and 4th November. On the 5th, Hope Grant sent a force to the Alambagh for the purpose of escorting a long line of carts and camels laden with provisions and ammunition, which the Commander-in-Chief was desirous of having near at hand, in case the relief of the Lucknow garrison should prove a more prolonged operation than he hoped or anticipated it was likely to be.

We stopped on November 3rd and 4th. On the 5th, Hope Grant sent a team to the Alambagh to escort a long line of carts and camels loaded with supplies and ammunition. The Commander-in-Chief wanted these to be nearby in case the effort to relieve the Lucknow garrison took longer than he expected.

As we neared the Alambagh the enemy's guns opened on us from our right, while their Cavalry threatened us on both flanks. They were easily disposed of, and we deposited the stores, receiving in exchange a number of sick and wounded who were to be sent back to Cawnpore.

As we got closer to Alambagh, the enemy's artillery fired at us from the right, while their cavalry menaced us on both sides. They were quickly dealt with, and we dropped off the supplies, receiving in return several sick and injured individuals who were to be sent back to Cawnpore.

A curious incident happened at the Alambagh. I was employed inside the enclosure, when all at once I heard a noise and commotion some little distance off. Getting on to the roof, I looked over the plain, and saw our troops flying in every direction; there was no firing, no enemy in sight, but evidently something was wrong; so I mounted my horse and rode to the scene of confusion, where I found that the ignominious flight of our troops was caused by infuriated bees which had been disturbed by an officer of the 9th Lancers thoughtlessly thrusting a lance into their nest. There were no serious consequences, but the Highlanders were heard to remark on the unsuitability of their dress for an encounter with an enemy of that description.

A strange incident happened at Alambagh. I was working inside the area when suddenly I heard noise and commotion a bit further away. I climbed up to the roof, looked out over the plain, and saw our troops running in all directions; there was no gunfire, no enemy in sight, but clearly something was wrong. So, I got on my horse and rode to where the chaos was happening, where I discovered that our troops were fleeing in disgrace because of angry bees that had been disturbed by an officer of the 9th Lancers who carelessly jabbed a lance into their nest. There were no serious consequences, but the Highlanders were heard saying that their uniforms were not suitable for dealing with an enemy like that.

Arrival of Sir Colin Campbell On the 9th November Sir Colin Campbell joined the column, accompanied by his Chief of the Staff, Brigadier-General Mansfield.5

Arrival of Sir Colin Campbell On November 9th, Sir Colin Campbell joined the column, along with his Chief of Staff, Brigadier-General Mansfield.5



LORDS CLYDE AND SANDHURST. (SIR COLIN CAMPBELL AND SIR WILLIAM MANSFIELD.)

LORDS CLYDE AND SANDHURST.
(SIR COLIN CAMPBELL AND SIR WILLIAM MANSFIELD.


From
a photograph taken in India.

LORDS CLYDE AND SANDHURST. (SIR COLIN CAMPBELL AND SIR WILLIAM MANSFIELD.)

LORDS CLYDE AND SANDHURST.
(SIR COLIN CAMPBELL AND SIR WILLIAM MANSFIELD.)


From a photo taken in India.



The following morning we were surprised to hear that a European from the Lucknow garrison had arrived in camp. All were keen to see him, and to hear how it was faring with those who had been shut up in the Residency for so long; but the new-comer was the bearer of very important information from Sir James Outram, and to prevent[Page 167] any chance of its getting about, the Commander-in-Chief kept the messenger, Mr. Kavanagh, a close prisoner in his own tent.

The next morning, we were surprised to hear that a European from the Lucknow garrison had arrived in camp. Everyone was eager to see him and find out how things were going for those who had been trapped in the Residency for so long; however, the newcomer was carrying very important information from Sir James Outram, so to prevent any chance of it getting out, the Commander-in-Chief kept the messenger, Mr. Kavanagh, confined to his own tent.

Plans for the Advance Outram, being anxious that the officer in command of the relieving force should not follow the same route taken by himself and Havelock, and wishing to communicate his ideas more at length than was possible in a note conveyed as usual by a spy, Kavanagh, a clerk in an office in Lucknow, pluckily volunteered to carry a letter. It was an offer which appealed to the heart of the 'Bayard of the East,' as Outram has been appropriately called, and just such an errand as he himself, had he been in a less responsible position, would have delighted to undertake. Outram thoroughly understood the risk of the enterprise, and placed it clearly before the brave volunteer, who, nothing daunted, expressed his readiness to start at once, and his confidence in being able to reach the British camp.

Plans for the Future Outram, concerned that the officer leading the relieving force should not take the same route he and Havelock had, wanted to share his thoughts in more detail than what could be done in a note typically sent via a spy. Kavanagh, a clerk from an office in Lucknow, bravely offered to deliver a letter. This offer deeply resonated with the heart of the 'Bayard of the East,' as Outram has been fittingly called, and it was exactly the kind of task he would have loved to take on himself if he weren't in a more responsible role. Outram fully grasped the risks of the mission and laid them out clearly for the courageous volunteer, who, undeterred, declared his readiness to set off immediately and was confident he could reach the British camp.

Disguised as a Native, and accompanied by a man of Oudh, on whose courage and loyalty he was convinced he could rely, Kavanagh left the Residency after dark on the 9th and got safely across the Gumti. He and his guide remained in the suburbs mixing with the people until the streets might be expected to be pretty well empty, when they re-crossed the river and got safely through the city. They were accosted more than once on their way, but were saved by the readiness of the Native, who it had been arranged should answer all inquiries, though Kavanagh, having been born and bred in the country, could himself speak the language fluently. On the morning of the 10th they made themselves known to a piquet of Punjab Cavalry on duty near the Alambagh.

Disguised as a local and accompanied by a man from Oudh, whom he trusted for his bravery and loyalty, Kavanagh left the Residency after dark on the 9th and safely crossed the Gumti River. He and his guide stayed in the suburbs, blending in with the locals until the streets were expected to be mostly empty, at which point they crossed the river again and made it through the city without incident. They were approached more than once along the way, but were saved by the quick thinking of the local, who was meant to handle all inquiries, although Kavanagh, having been born and raised in the area, could speak the language fluently. On the morning of the 10th, they identified themselves to a group of Punjab Cavalry on duty near the Alambagh.

Outram, profiting by his own experience, wished the relieving column to be spared having to fight its way through the streets of Lucknow. This was all the more necessary because the enemy, calculating on our following the same route as before, had destroyed the bridge over the canal and made extensive preparations to oppose our advance in that direction. Outram explained his views most clearly, and sent with his letter a plan on which the line he proposed we should take was plainly marked. He recommended that the advance should be made, by the Dilkusha6 and Martinière,7 and that the canal should be crossed by the bridge nearest the Gumti. Outram showed his[Page 168] military acumen in suggesting this route, as our right flank would be covered by the river, and therefore could only be molested by a comparatively distant fire. Sir Colin, appreciating all the advantages pointed out, readily accepted and strictly adhered to this plan of advance, except that, instead of crossing the canal by the bridge, we forded it a little nearer the river, a wise divergence from Outram's recommendation, and one which he would assuredly have advised had he been aware that the canal was fordable at this spot, as it kept us altogether clear of the streets.

Outram, drawing from his own experience, wanted to make sure the relieving column didn’t have to fight its way through the streets of Lucknow. This was especially important because the enemy, anticipating that we would take the same route as before, had destroyed the bridge over the canal and set up strong defenses to block our progress in that direction. Outram clearly laid out his thoughts and included a plan with his letter that showed the route he suggested we take. He recommended advancing via the Dilkusha6 and Martinière,7 and crossing the canal at the bridge closest to the Gumti. Outram demonstrated his military insight by proposing this route, as our right flank would be protected by the river and could only be affected by fire from a distance. Sir Colin, recognizing all the benefits he pointed out, quickly agreed to and closely followed this plan of advance, except instead of crossing the canal at the bridge, we forded it a bit closer to the river, which was a smart change from Outram's suggestion. He would have likely recommended this himself if he knew the canal was crossable at that spot, as it kept us completely away from the streets.

Outram did not touch in his despatch upon any question but the all-important one of how the junction between his own and the relieving forces could best be effected. Many other matters, however, claimed the earnest consideration of the Commander-in-Chief before he could proceed. He had to determine what was to be done to secure the safety of the women and children in the Residency, after the first most pressing duty of relieving the garrison had been accomplished. Cawnpore was again in great danger from the Gwalior mutineers, who, foiled at Agra, and finding that the Maharaja Sindhia would not espouse their cause, had placed themselves under the orders of the Rani of Jhansi and Tantia Topi, the vile Mahratta whom the Nana made use of to carry out the massacre of the Sati-Choura Ghat; led by this man the rebels were seriously threatening Cawnpore, and it was necessary to take steps for its security. Then again the city of Lucknow had to be thought of; its capture and the restoration of British authority were alike essential, but our Chief knew that he had neither the time nor the means at his disposal to undertake this important operation at once. He therefore made up his mind that so soon as the Residency had been relieved he would withdraw altogether from Lucknow, and place a force at the Cawnpore side of the city, to form the nucleus of the army with which he hoped later on to take the place, and to keep open communication with his Head-Quarters, while he himself should hurry back to Cawnpore, taking with him all the non-combatants and the sick and wounded.

Outram didn't address anything in his message except the crucial issue of how to best connect his forces with the relief troops. However, the Commander-in-Chief had to carefully consider many other important matters before moving forward. He needed to figure out what actions were necessary to ensure the safety of the women and children in the Residency once the primary responsibility of relieving the garrison was completed. Cawnpore was once again in serious danger due to the Gwalior mutineers, who, thwarted at Agra and realizing that Maharaja Sindhia wouldn't support them, had come under the orders of the Rani of Jhansi and Tantia Topi—the infamous Mahratta who the Nana used to carry out the massacre at Sati-Choura Ghat. Led by this man, the rebels posed a significant threat to Cawnpore, making it essential to implement security measures. Additionally, Lucknow had to be taken into account; capturing it and restoring British control were both crucial, but the Chief understood that he lacked the time and resources to tackle this significant operation immediately. He decided that as soon as the Residency was relieved, he would completely withdraw from Lucknow and position a force on the Cawnpore side of the city to form the core of the army he hoped to send back later to recapture it, while maintaining communication with his Headquarters. He would then return quickly to Cawnpore, taking along all non-combatants as well as the sick and wounded.






CHAPTER XXIII.

1857
The President

The next morning, the 11th, I had the honour of making the Commander-in-Chief's acquaintance. The manner of my introduction was peculiarly unceremonious. I had left my own tent to be repaired at Cawnpore, and was sharing one with Norman, who was well known to, and greatly believed in by, His Excellency, whose Brigade-Major he had been at Peshawar. Before we were out of bed we heard Sir Colin's voice outside. He had come to speak to Norman about his plans for the future, and as the conversation seemed likely to be of a very confidential nature, and it was too dark for him to see me, I asked Norman to make my presence known. Sir Colin said to Norman somewhat roughly, 'Who is he?' and on my name being mentioned, he asked if I were to be trusted. Norman having vouched for my discretion, the old Chief was apparently satisfied, and then ensued an intensely interesting discussion on Outram's letter, Kavanagh's description of the state of affairs in the Residency, and the manner in which it was best to carry out Outram's recommendations.

The next morning, the 11th, I had the honor of meeting the Commander-in-Chief. My introduction was quite casual. I had left my own tent to be repaired in Cawnpore and was sharing one with Norman, who was well known to, and highly regarded by, His Excellency, for whom he had been Brigade-Major at Peshawar. Before we were out of bed, we heard Sir Colin's voice outside. He had come to talk to Norman about his future plans, and since the conversation seemed likely to be very confidential and it was too dark for him to see me, I asked Norman to let him know I was there. Sir Colin asked Norman somewhat brusquely, 'Who is he?' and when my name was mentioned, he wanted to know if I could be trusted. Once Norman vouched for my discretion, the old Chief seemed satisfied, and then we had an incredibly interesting discussion about Outram's letter, Kavanagh's account of the situation in the Residency, and the best way to implement Outram's recommendations.

That same afternoon the Commander-in-Chief reviewed the column, which now amounted to about 600 Cavalry and 3,500 Infantry, with 42 guns.1 The parade was under the command of Hope Grant, who had been given the rank of Brigadier-General, and put in executive command of the whole force.

That same afternoon, the Commander-in-Chief inspected the unit, which now consisted of around 600 cavalry and 3,500 infantry, along with 42 guns.1 The parade was led by Hope Grant, who had been promoted to Brigadier-General and was in charge of the entire force.

Sir Colin spoke a few inspiriting words to each regiment and battery, being particularly appreciative and complimentary in his remarks to the Delhi troops, who certainly looked the picture of workmanlike[Page 170] soldiers; and, considering what they had accomplished, there was nothing invidious in the Chief's singling them out. The Bengal Artillery came in for a large share of praise; he had a strong liking for them, having been with them on service,2 and seen of what good stuff they were made. He recognized several old acquaintances amongst the officers, and freely expressed his satisfaction at having such reliable batteries to help him in the hazardous operation he was about to undertake. He was careful also to say a few words of commendation to the four squadrons of Punjab Cavalry, and the two regiments of Punjab Infantry, the only Native troops, except the Sappers, with the column.

Sir Colin spoke a few encouraging words to each regiment and battery, especially praising the Delhi troops, who definitely looked like capable soldiers; given what they had achieved, there was nothing inappropriate in the Chief highlighting them. The Bengal Artillery received a lot of praise; he had a strong affection for them, having served alongside them and seen what they were really made of. He recognized several old acquaintances among the officers and openly showed his satisfaction at having such dependable batteries to assist him in the risky operation he was about to undertake. He also made sure to say a few positive words about the four squadrons of Punjab Cavalry and the two regiments of Punjab Infantry, the only Native troops, aside from the Sappers, in the column.

Sir Colin's Preparations That evening orders were issued for a march to the Alambagh the following morning. It may perhaps seem as if Sir Colin was rather leisurely in his movements, but he had ascertained that the Lucknow garrison was in no immediate want of food, as had been reported, and he was determined to leave nothing undone to ensure the success of the undertaking. He personally attended to the smallest detail, and he had to arrange for the transport of the sick and wounded, and the women and children, shut up in the Residency, numbering in all not less than fifteen hundred souls.

Sir Colin's Plans That evening, orders were given for a march to the Alambagh the next morning. It might seem like Sir Colin was taking his time, but he had confirmed that the Lucknow garrison didn't urgently need food, as had been reported, and he was committed to making sure nothing was overlooked to ensure the success of the mission. He personally oversaw every detail, and he needed to arrange transportation for the sick and wounded, as well as the women and children, trapped in the Residency, totaling at least fifteen hundred people.

Everything being ready, we began our march towards Lucknow, one and all eager to have a share in the rescue of our suffering countrywomen and their children from a most perilous position, and in relieving soldiers who had so long and so nobly performed the most harassing duty, while they cheerfully endured the greatest privations.

Everything being ready, we started our march toward Lucknow, all of us eager to help rescue our suffering countrywomen and their children from a very dangerous situation and to support the soldiers who had so long and so nobly carried out the most grueling duty while cheerfully enduring the toughest hardships.

We had proceeded but a short distance, when the advance guard was fired upon by some guns in position on our right, near the old fort of Jalalabad. An extensive swamp protected the enemy's right flank, while on their left were a number of water-cuts and broken ground. The Infantry and Artillery wheeled round and attacked the battery in front, while Hugh Gough pushed on with his squadron of Cavalry to see if he could find a way through the apparently impassable swamp to the enemy's right and rear. Bourchier's battery coming up in the nick of time, the hostile guns were soon silenced, and Gough, having succeeded in getting through the jhil, made a most plucky charge, in which he captured two guns and killed a number of the enemy. For his gallant conduct on this occasion Gough was awarded the Victoria Cross, the second of two brothers to win this much-coveted distinction.

We had only gone a short distance when the advance guard came under fire from some guns positioned on our right, near the old fort of Jalalabad. An extensive swamp protected the enemy's right flank, while their left was marked by several water-cuts and uneven ground. The Infantry and Artillery turned around and attacked the battery head-on, while Hugh Gough pressed on with his cavalry squadron to see if he could find a way through the seemingly impassable swamp to the enemy's right and rear. Bourchier's battery arrived just in time, and the enemy's guns were soon silenced. Gough, having managed to get through the jhil, made a bold charge, capturing two guns and killing several enemy soldiers. For his brave actions during this event, Gough was awarded the Victoria Cross, making him the second of two brothers to receive this highly coveted honor.

The next morning Adrian Hope, who commanded a brigade, was ordered to seize the Jalalabad fort, but finding it evacuated, he blew up one of the walls, and so rendered it indefensible.

The next morning, Adrian Hope, who was in charge of a brigade, was ordered to take the Jalalabad fort. However, upon discovering it was abandoned, he blew up one of the walls, making it impossible to defend.

On the afternoon of the 13th I accompanied the Commander-in-Chief in a reconnaissance towards the Charbagh bridge and the left[Page 171] front of the Alambagh, a ruse to deceive the enemy as to the real line of our advance. When riding along he told me, to my infinite pride and delight, that I was to have the honour of conducting the force to the Dilkusha. The first thing I did on returning to camp was to find a good guide. We had only about five miles to go; but it was necessary to make sure that the direction taken avoided obstacles which might impede the passage of the Artillery. I was fortunate in finding a fairly intelligent Native, who, after a great deal of persuasion, agreed, for a reward, to take me by a track over which guns could travel. I never let this man out of my sight, and made him show me enough of the road to convince me he knew the way and meant fair dealing.

On the afternoon of the 13th, I joined the Commander-in-Chief for a reconnaissance mission toward the Charbagh bridge and the left[Page 171] front of the Alambagh, as a trick to mislead the enemy about our real advance route. While we were riding, he told me, to my immense pride and joy, that I would have the honor of leading the force to the Dilkusha. The first thing I did when I got back to camp was to find a good guide. We had only about five miles to cover, but it was crucial to ensure that the route we took avoided obstacles that could obstruct the movement of the artillery. Luckily, I found a reasonably intelligent local who, after a lot of persuasion, agreed to guide me along a path suitable for the guns in exchange for a reward. I kept a close eye on him and made sure he showed me enough of the route to prove he knew the way and was trustworthy.

The Alambagh The Alambagh now proved most useful; all our camp equipage was packed inside the enclosure, for we took no tents with us, and all our spare stores were left there. A rough description of semaphore, too, was constructed on the highest point of the building, by means of which we were able to communicate with the Residency. It was put in Orders that the troops were to breakfast early the next morning, and that they were to take three days' rations in their haversacks; while sufficient for fourteen days was to be carried by the Commissariat.

Alambagh The Alambagh turned out to be very useful; all our camping gear was packed inside the enclosure since we didn’t bring any tents, and we left all our extra supplies there. A basic semaphore system was built at the highest point of the building, which allowed us to communicate with the Residency. It was ordered that the troops would have breakfast early the next morning and that they should pack three days' worth of rations in their haversacks; meanwhile, enough supplies for fourteen days would be carried by the Commissariat.

Just before we started on the 14th November we were strengthened by the arrival of 200 of the Military Train equipped as Cavalry, two Madras Horse Artillery guns, and another company of Madras Sappers.

Just before we began on November 14th, we were boosted by the arrival of 200 soldiers from the Military Train equipped as Cavalry, two Madras Horse Artillery guns, and an additional company of Madras Sappers.

Captain Moir, of the Bengal Artillery, was placed in charge of the Alambagh, with a garrison consisting of the 75th Foot, 50 of the regiment of Ferozepore,3 and a few Artillerymen. The 75th was the first regiment to move down from the hills when the news of the outbreak at Meerut reached Head-Quarters; it had done grand service, had suffered heavily during the siege of Delhi, and had well earned, and badly needed, a rest. It was now only 300 strong, and had lost in six months 9 officers, in action and from disease, besides 12 wounded. The officers were all friends of mine, and I was very sorry to leave them behind, particularly Barter, the Adjutant, a jolly, good-hearted Irishman, and an excellent officer.

Captain Moir of the Bengal Artillery was in charge of the Alambagh, with a garrison made up of the 75th Foot, 50 soldiers from the Ferozepore,3 and a few artillerymen. The 75th was the first regiment to come down from the hills when news of the outbreak at Meerut reached headquarters; they had done remarkable service, suffered greatly during the siege of Delhi, and had rightfully earned, and urgently needed, a break. They were now only 300 strong and had lost 9 officers in six months, both in combat and due to illness, along with 12 wounded. The officers were all my friends, and I felt very upset to leave them behind, especially Barter, the Adjutant, a cheerful, kind-hearted Irishman, and an outstanding officer.

We marched at 9 a.m., keeping to the south of the Alambagh and the Jalalabad fort. We then struck across the fields to the ground now occupied by the Native Cavalry lines, and on to the open space upon which the present race-course is marked out. On reaching this point the Dilkusha came in sight about a mile in front. As we approached, a few shots were fired at us; but the enemy rapidly disappeared as the Cavalry and Horse Artillery, followed by the Infantry of the advance[Page 172] guard, in skirmishing order, passed through an opening which had been hastily made in the wall of the enclosure.

We started marching at 9 a.m., staying to the south of the Alambagh and the Jalalabad fort. Then we crossed the fields to the area now occupied by the Native Cavalry lines, and onto the open space where the current racecourse is located. When we got to this point, we spotted the Dilkusha about a mile ahead. As we got closer, some shots were fired at us, but the enemy quickly vanished as the Cavalry and Horse Artillery, followed by the Infantry of the advance[Page 172] guard in skirmish formation, moved through a gap that had been quickly created in the wall of the enclosure.

The Dilkusha and Martinière The gallop across the Dilkusha park was quite a pretty sight: deer, which had been quietly browsing, bounded away on all sides, frightened by our approach and the rattle of the guns; while the routed sepoys flew down the grassy slope leading to the Martinière. We reined up for a few seconds to look at the view which opened out before us. In front rose the fluted masonry column of the Martinière, 123 feet high; directly behind, the picturesque building itself, and in the distance the domes and minarets of the mosques and palaces within the city of Lucknow; all looked bright and fair in the morning sun.

The Dilkusha and Martinière Galloping through Dilkusha park was a beautiful sight: deer that had been quietly grazing leaped away in all directions, startled by our approach and the noise of the guns; meanwhile, the fleeing sepoys raced down the grassy slope toward the Martinière. We paused for a moment to take in the view laid out before us. In front stood the tall fluted masonry column of the Martinière, rising 123 feet; directly behind it was the charming building itself, and in the distance, the domes and minarets of the mosques and palaces in the city of Lucknow all looked bright and lovely in the morning sun.

We could see that the Martinière was occupied; a crowd of sepoys were collected round the building; and as we showed ourselves on the brow of the hill, a number of round shot came tumbling in amongst us.

We could see that the Martinière was occupied; a crowd of soldiers had gathered around the building; and as we appeared on the top of the hill, several cannonballs came crashing down around us.

Remmington's troop of Horse Artillery, Bourchier's battery, and a heavy howitzer brought up by Captain Hardy, now came into action, and under cover of their fire the 8th Foot and 1st battalion of Detachments attacked and drove the enemy out of the Martinière, while the Cavalry pursued them as far as the canal.

Remmington's troop of Horse Artillery, Bourchier's battery, and a heavy howitzer brought in by Captain Hardy, now came into action, and with their support, the 8th Foot and the 1st battalion of Detachments launched an attack and forced the enemy out of the Martinière, while the Cavalry chased them all the way to the canal.

On this occasion my friend Watson greatly distinguished himself. Entirely alone he attacked the enemy's Cavalry, and was at once engaged with its leader and six of the front men; he fought gallantly, but the unequal contest could not have lasted much longer had not Probyn, who, with his own and Watson's squadrons, was only about 300 yards off, become aware of his comrade's critical position, and dashed to his assistance. For this 'and gallantry on many other occasions,' Hope Grant recommended Watson for the Victoria Cross, which he duly received.4

On this occasion, my friend Watson really stood out. All by himself, he charged at the enemy's cavalry and quickly engaged their leader along with six of the front men. He fought bravely, but the unfair battle couldn't have gone on much longer if it hadn't been for Probyn, who, with his own squadron and Watson's, was only about 300 yards away. He noticed his comrade's dangerous situation and rushed in to help. For this and his bravery on many other occasions, Hope Grant recommended Watson for the Victoria Cross, which he duly received.4

By noon on the 14th we had occupied the Dilkusha and Martinière, and placed our outposts along the right bank of the canal from the river to the point immediately opposite Banks's house. The left bank was held in force by the rebels. Early in the afternoon I went with Hope Grant, accompanied by a small force of Cavalry, to ascertain whether it would be possible to ford the canal somewhere close to the river, and we succeeded in finding a place by which the whole force crossed two days later. Our movements were fortunately not noticed by the enemy, whose attention was concentrated on the roads leading direct to the city from the Dilkusha and Martinière, by which they expected our advance to be made.

By noon on the 14th, we had taken control of the Dilkusha and Martinière and positioned our outposts along the right bank of the canal from the river to the spot directly across from Banks's house. The left bank was strongly held by the rebels. Early in the afternoon, I went with Hope Grant, along with a small cavalry unit, to see if we could find a place to cross the canal near the river, and we managed to identify a spot that allowed the entire force to cross two days later. Luckily, our movements went unnoticed by the enemy, who were focused on the roads leading directly to the city from the Dilkusha and Martinière, expecting our advance to come that way.

Sir Colin, meanwhile, had fixed his Head-Quarters in the Martinière,[Page 173] on the topmost pinnacle of which he caused a semaphore to be erected for communication with Outram. From this post of vantage Kavanagh was able to point out to the Commander-in-Chief the different objects of most interest to him—the positions taken up by the enemy; the group of buildings, of which the Chatta Manzil5 was the most conspicuous, then occupied by the gallant troops led by Outram and Havelock, who, by overwhelming numbers alone, had been prevented from carrying their glorious enterprise to a successful issue; the Residency, where, thanks to Sir Henry Lawrence's foresight and admirable arrangements, a handful of heroic Britons had been able to defy the hordes of disciplined soldiers and armed men who, for nearly three months, day and night, had never ceased to attack the position; and the Kaisarbagh, that pretentious, garish palace of the Kings of Oudh, the centre of every kind of evil and debauchery.

Sir Colin had set up his headquarters in the Martinière,[Page 173] on the highest point where he had a semaphore installed to communicate with Outram. From this vantage point, Kavanagh was able to show the Commander-in-Chief various objects of interest: the enemy's positions, the group of buildings with the Chatta Manzil5 being the most noticeable, which was then occupied by the brave troops led by Outram and Havelock, who were held back from achieving their glorious mission solely by overwhelming numbers; the Residency, where, thanks to Sir Henry Lawrence's foresight and excellent organization, a small group of heroic Britons had managed to withstand the onslaught of disciplined soldiers and armed men who had relentlessly attacked for almost three months, day and night; and the Kaisarbagh, the flashy, ostentatious palace of the Kings of Oudh, which was the hub of all sorts of wickedness and debauchery.

Later in the day the enemy made a determined attack on our centre, which was checked by Brigadier Little advancing with the 9th Lancers and some guns. On a few rounds being fired, they retired from the immediate neighbourhood of the canal, and in the belief that there would be no further trouble that day, the Cavalry and Artillery returned to the Martinière; but the guns were hardly unlimbered before heavy firing was heard from the direction of Banks's house.

Later in the day, the enemy launched a strong attack on our center, which was halted by Brigadier Little advancing with the 9th Lancers and some artillery. After firing a few rounds, they pulled back from the area near the canal. Believing there would be no further trouble that day, the Cavalry and Artillery went back to the Martinière. But they had barely set up the guns when heavy gunfire was heard coming from the direction of Banks's house.

I galloped off with Mayne to ascertain the cause. Some little distance from the canal we separated, Mayne going to the left, I to the right. I found the piquets hotly engaged, and the officer in command begged me to get him some assistance. I returned to Hope Grant to report what was going on, but on the way I met the supports coming up, and presently they were followed by the remainder of Hope's and Russell's brigades. Russell had, early in the day, with soldierly instinct, seized two villages a little above the bridge to the north of Banks's house; this enabled him to bring a fire to bear upon the enemy as they advanced, and effectually prevented their turning our left. Hope opened fire with Remmington's troop, Bourchier's battery, and some of Peel's 24-pounders, and as soon as he found it had taken effect and the rebels were shaken, he proceeded to push them across the canal and finally drove them off with considerable loss.

I rode off with Mayne to find out what was happening. After a short distance from the canal, we split up, with Mayne going left and me going right. I found the guards heavily engaged, and the officer in charge asked me to get him some backup. I headed back to Hope Grant to report what was happening, but on my way, I ran into the reinforcements arriving, soon followed by the rest of Hope's and Russell's brigades. Earlier in the day, Russell had, with his military instinct, taken control of two villages just north of the bridge by Banks's house; this allowed him to fire at the enemy as they advanced and effectively stopped them from outflanking our left. Hope initiated fire with Remmington's troop, Bourchier's battery, and some of Peel's 24-pounders, and as soon as he saw it was having an impact and the rebels were rattled, he pushed them back across the canal and ultimately drove them off with significant losses.

Hope's and Russell's united action, by which our left flank was secured, was most timely, for had it been turned, our long line of camels, laden with ammunition, and the immense string of carts carrying supplies, would in all probability have been captured. As it was, the rear guard, under Lieutenant-Colonel Ewart,6 of the 93rd[Page 174] Highlanders, had a hot time of it; it was frequently attacked, and its progress was so slow that it was more than twenty-four hours between the Alambagh and the Dilkusha.

Hope's and Russell's combined efforts to secure our left flank came just in time. If it had been vulnerable, our long line of camels carrying ammunition and the huge convoy of carts with supplies would likely have been captured. As it turned out, the rear guard, led by Lieutenant-Colonel Ewart, 6 of the 93rd[Page 174] Highlanders, faced intense challenges; it was often attacked, and its movement was so slow that it took more than twenty-four hours to travel between the Alambagh and the Dilkusha.

Mayne's Death At the conclusion of the fight I heard, with great grief, that my poor friend Mayne had been killed, shot through the breast a few seconds after he had left me. He was seen to turn his horse, and, after going a short distance, fall to the ground; when picked up he was quite dead. This was all I could learn. No one was able to tell me where his body had been taken, and I looked for it myself all that evening in vain.

Mayne's Death At the end of the fight, I heard, with deep sadness, that my dear friend Mayne had been killed, shot in the chest just moments after he left my side. He was seen turning his horse, and after a short distance, he fell to the ground; when they picked him up, he was already dead. That was all I could find out. No one could tell me where his body had been taken, and I searched for it myself all that evening without success.

At daybreak the next morning, accompanied by Arthur Bunny, the cheery Adjutant of Horse Artillery, I began my search afresh, and at length we discovered the body inside a doolie under the wall of the Martinière. As there was no knowing how soon our services might be required, we decided to bury the poor fellow at once. I chose a spot close by for his grave, which was dug with the help of some gunners, and then Bunny and I, aided by two or three brother officers, laid our friend in it just as he was, in his blue frock-coat and long boots, his eyeglass in his eye, as he always carried it. The only thing I took away was his sword, which I eventually made over to his family. It was a sad little ceremony. Overhanging the grave was a young tree, upon which I cut the initials 'A.O.M.'—not very deep, for there was little time: they were quite distinct, however, and remained so long enough for the grave to be traced by Mayne's friends, who erected the stone now to be seen.

At dawn the next morning, along with Arthur Bunny, the friendly Adjutant of Horse Artillery, I started my search again, and eventually we found the body inside a doolie against the wall of the Martinière. Since we had no idea when we might need to act, we decided to bury the poor man right away. I picked a spot nearby for his grave, which was dug with the help of some gunners, and then Bunny and I, with the assistance of a couple of other officers, laid our friend to rest just as he was, in his blue frock coat and tall boots, with his eyeglass in his eye, as he always carried it. The only thing I took was his sword, which I later returned to his family. It was a somber little ceremony. A young tree leaned over the grave, and I carved the initials 'A.O.M.' into it—not very deep, since there was little time; however, they were clear enough to remain visible until Mayne's friends were able to mark the grave with the stone that can now be seen.

The whole of that day (the 15th) was spent in preparing for the advance. The Dilkusha was turned into a general depot, where the sick and wounded were placed, also the Ordnance park and stores of every description. A rough defence was thrown up round the building, and a garrison was left to protect it, consisting of five Field guns, half the 9th Lancers, the Military Train, a squadron of Punjab Cavalry, and the 8th Foot, the whole under the command of Little, the Brigadier of Cavalry.

The entire day (the 15th) was spent getting ready for the advance. The Dilkusha became a general depot where the sick and wounded were housed, along with the Ordnance park and all types of supplies. A makeshift defense was built around the building, and a garrison was left to guard it, made up of five Field guns, half of the 9th Lancers, the Military Train, a squadron of Punjab Cavalry, and the 8th Foot, all under the command of Little, the Brigadier of Cavalry.

In the afternoon Sir Colin made a feint to the left of our position for the purpose of diverting the attention of the enemy from the real line of advance. He massed the Artillery in this direction, and ordered a constant mortar fire to be kept up during the night on the Begum palace and the barracks. To further strengthen the belief that operations would be carried on from our left, some of the piquets on our right were drawn in; this induced the enemy to make a slight demonstration in that direction. They crossed the canal, but were speedily driven back by the Madras Horse Artillery guns. They then opened fire with a 12-pounder howitzer from the west side of the Gumti, when[Page 175] a really most extraordinary incident happened, which I am not sure I should have the courage to relate, were it not that Sir Dighton Probyn and Sir John Watson, who were close by and saw what took place, are able to vouch for the accuracy of my story.

In the afternoon, Sir Colin made a move to the left of our position to distract the enemy from our actual path of advance. He grouped the artillery in that direction and ordered continuous mortar fire throughout the night on the Begum palace and the barracks. To reinforce the idea that operations would proceed from our left, some of the pickets on our right were pulled back, which led the enemy to make a minor show of force in that direction. They crossed the canal but were quickly pushed back by the Madras Horse Artillery guns. Then they opened fire with a 12-pounder howitzer from the west side of the Gumti, when[Page 175] an incredibly strange incident occurred, which I wouldn’t have the courage to recount if it weren’t for Sir Dighton Probyn and Sir John Watson, who were nearby and can attest to the truth of my account.

A Tall-talk Story A shell, fortunately a blind one, from the enemy's howitzer came into Watson's squadron, which was drawn up under the bank of the Martinière tank; it struck a trooper's saddle in front, and must have lifted the man partly out of it, for it passed between his thigh and the horse, tearing the saddle7 to shreds, and sending one piece of it high into the air. The horse was knocked down, but not hurt; the man's thigh was only badly bruised, and he was able to ride again in a few days. One of Watson's officers, Captain Cosserat, having examined the man and horse, came up and reported their condition to Watson, who, of course, was expecting to be told they were both dead, and added: 'I think we had better not tell this story in England, for no one would believe it.' I myself was close to the squadron, and distinctly saw what happened.8

A Tall Tale Story A shell, fortunately a blind one, from the enemy's howitzer landed in Watson's squadron, which was lined up under the bank of the Martinière tank; it hit a trooper's saddle in front, likely lifting the man partly out of it, since it went between his thigh and the horse, ripping the saddle7 to pieces and sending one chunk flying into the air. The horse was knocked down but was unhurt; the man's thigh was badly bruised, and he was able to ride again in a few days. One of Watson's officers, Captain Cosserat, after checking on the man and horse, came over and reported their condition to Watson, who, of course, was expecting to hear that they were both dead, and added: 'I think we should probably not share this story in England, because no one would believe it.' I was nearby the squadron and clearly saw what happened.8

All that day (the 15th) I had been very hard at work, and was greatly looking forward to what I hoped would be a quiet night, when an Aide-de-camp appeared, who informed me that the Commander-in-Chief desired my presence at the Martinière.

All day long (the 15th) I had been working really hard, and I was looking forward to what I hoped would be a quiet night when an Aide-de-camp showed up and told me that the Commander-in-Chief wanted to see me at the Martinière.

Ammunition Required On reporting myself to His Excellency, he told me that he was not satisfied that a sufficient reserve of small-arm ammunition had been brought with the force, and that the only chance of getting more in time was to send back to the Alambagh for it that night, adding that he could neither afford the time nor spare the troops which would be required, were the business of fetching the additional supply to be postponed until the following day. Sir Colin then asked me if I thought I could find my way back to the Alambagh in the dark. I answered, 'I am sure I can.' I might have hesitated to speak so confidently had I not taken the precaution of placing the man who had acted as my guide on the 14th in charge of some Afghan chuprassies9 attached to the Quartermaster-General's department, with strict orders not to lose sight of him. I thought, therefore, I would have him to depend upon[Page 176] if my own memory failed me. The Commander-in-Chief impressed very strongly upon me the great necessity for caution, and told me I could take what escort I thought necessary, but that, whatever happened, I must be back by daybreak, as he had signalled to Outram that the force would advance on the morrow. Sir Colin desired that the Ordnance officer, whose fault it was that sufficient ammunition had not been brought, should go back with me and be left at the Alambagh.

Ammunition Needed When I reported to His Excellency, he mentioned that he was not happy with the amount of small-arms ammunition that had come with the force. He said that the only chance to get more in time was to send someone back to the Alambagh that night. He added that he couldn’t afford the time or spare the troops it would take if we waited until the next day to fetch the additional supply. Sir Colin then asked if I thought I could find my way back to the Alambagh in the dark. I replied, "I'm sure I can." I might have been less confident if I hadn’t made sure to put the man who guided me on the 14th in charge of some Afghan chuprassies9 from the Quartermaster-General's department, with strict orders to stay close to him. So, I felt I could rely on him if my own memory let me down. The Commander-in-Chief strongly emphasized the importance of caution and told me I could take any escort I thought necessary, but that no matter what, I had to return by daybreak since he had signaled to Outram that the force would advance the next day. Sir Colin also wanted the Ordnance officer, who was responsible for not bringing enough ammunition, to go back with me and be left at the Alambagh.

A Night March It was then dusk, and there was no time to be lost. In the first instance I went to my General, and reporting the orders I had received from the Commander-in-Chief, consulted him about my escort. Hope Grant strongly urged my taking with me a troop of the 9th Lancers, as well as some Native Cavalry, but for a night trip I thought it would be better to employ Natives only. I knew that my one chance of success depended on neither being seen nor heard, and Native Cavalry move more quietly than British, chiefly because their scabbards are of wood, instead of steel. I felt, too, that if we came across the enemy, which was not improbable, and got scattered, Natives would run less risk, and be better able to look after themselves. All this I explained to the General, but in the kindness of his heart he pressed me to take the Lancers, telling me he would feel happier about me if I had my own countrymen with me; but I stuck to my own opinion, and it was arranged that I was to be accompanied by Younghusband and Hugh Gough, with their respective squadrons of Native Cavalry. I took leave of my kind and considerate General, and hurried off first to warn the two Cavalry officers, then to the Dilkusha to tell Lieutenant Tod Brown, in charge of the Ordnance depot, that his assistant was to go with me, and lastly to arrange with the Commissariat officer for camels upon which to bring back the ammunition.

Night March It was dusk, and there was no time to waste. First, I went to my General and, after reporting the orders I had received from the Commander-in-Chief, I asked for his advice about my escort. Hope Grant strongly suggested that I take a troop of the 9th Lancers along with some Native Cavalry, but for a night operation, I thought it would be better to use only Natives. I knew that my chance of success depended on not being seen or heard, and Native Cavalry are quieter than British troops mainly because their scabbards are wooden instead of steel. I also felt that if we encountered the enemy, which was likely, and got scattered, Natives would be at less risk and better equipped to take care of themselves. I explained all this to the General, but out of kindness, he urged me to take the Lancers, saying he would feel better knowing I had fellow countrymen with me; however, I stuck to my plan, and it was decided that I would be accompanied by Younghusband and Hugh Gough, along with their respective squadrons of Native Cavalry. I said goodbye to my kind and thoughtful General, then hurried off first to inform the two Cavalry officers, then to the Dilkusha to tell Lieutenant Tod Brown, who was in charge of the Ordnance depot, that his assistant would be joining me, and finally to coordinate with the Commissariat officer for camels to bring back the ammunition.

It was quite dark before I got to the place where my servants had collected, and where I expected to find my guide. What was my horror to hear that he had disappeared! He had made his escape in the confusion consequent on the enemy's attacks the previous afternoon. What was to be done now? I was in despair—and became more and more doubtful of my ability to find the Alambagh in the dark. By daylight, and with the aid of a compass, which I always carried about me, I should have had little difficulty, even though the country we had to get over was intersected by ravines and water-courses, not to speak of the uncompromising jhil near the Jalalabad fort. However, go I must. I could not possibly tell the Commander-in-Chief that I was unable to carry out a duty for which he had selected me—there was nothing for it but to trust to my own recollection of the route and hope for the best.

It was pretty dark by the time I arrived where my servants had gathered, and I expected to find my guide there. To my horror, I found out that he had vanished! He had slipped away in the chaos following the enemy's attacks the day before. What was I supposed to do now? I was desperate—and I became more and more worried about my ability to find the Alambagh in the dark. During the day, with the help of a compass, which I always carried with me, I would have had little trouble, even though the terrain was filled with ravines and streams, not to mention the stubborn jhil near the Jalalabad fort. However, I had to go. I couldn't possibly tell the Commander-in-Chief that I was unable to perform a duty he had assigned to me—so I had no choice but to rely on my memory of the route and hope for the best.

Everything having been put in train, I returned to the Artillery bivouac, managed a hasty dinner, mounted a fresh horse, and, about 9 p.m., started off, accompanied by Younghusband, Hugh Gough, the[Page 177] unlucky Ordnance officer, two squadrons of Cavalry, and 150 camels.

Everything was set in motion, so I went back to the Artillery camp, quickly prepared dinner, got on a fresh horse, and around 9 p.m., we took off. I was joined by Younghusband, Hugh Gough, the[Page 177] unfortunate Ordnance officer, two squadrons of Cavalry, and 150 camels.

We got on well enough until we reached the broken ground near the present Native Cavalry lines, when we lost the road, or rather track, for road there was none. We could see nothing but the lights of the enemy's piquets at an uncomfortably short distance to our right. I struck a match, and made out from the compass the right direction; but that did not help us to clear the ravines, which, in our efforts to turn or get through them, made our way appear interminable. At length we found ourselves upon open ground; but, alas! having edged off too much to our right we were in close proximity to the enemy's piquets, and could distinctly hear their voices. We halted to collect the long string of camels, and as soon as they were got in order started off again. I led the way, every few minutes striking a light to see how the compass was pointing, and to take an anxious look at my watch, for I was beginning to fear I should not be able to accomplish my task by the given time. Our pace was necessarily slow, and our halts frequent, for the little party had to be carefully kept together.

We were doing alright until we reached the rough ground near the current Native Cavalry lines, when we lost the path, or rather the track, since there was no proper road. All we could see were the lights of the enemy's outposts uncomfortably close to our right. I lit a match and checked the compass for the right direction; however, that didn’t help us navigate the ravines, which made our journey seem endless as we tried to go around or through them. Eventually, we found ourselves on open ground; but sadly, we had veered too much to the right and were now very close to the enemy's outposts, hearing their voices clearly. We stopped to gather the long line of camels, and as soon as they were organized, we set off again. I led the way, lighting a match every few minutes to check the compass and anxiously glancing at my watch, as I was starting to worry I wouldn’t finish my task in time. Our pace had to be slow, and we stopped often, since I had to make sure our small group stayed together.

At last the Jalalabad fort was reached and passed. I then told Hugh Gough, whose squadron was in front, that we had better halt, for we could not be far from the Alambagh, and I was afraid that if we approached in a body we should be fired upon, in which case the camel-drivers would assuredly run away, there would be a stampede amongst the camels, and we might find it difficult to make ourselves known. I decided it would be best for me to go on alone, and arranged with Gough that he should remain where he was until I returned.

At last, we reached and passed the Jalalabad fort. I told Hugh Gough, whose squadron was in the lead, that we should probably stop, since we couldn't be far from the Alambagh. I was worried that if we approached together, we might get shot at. If that happened, the camel drivers would definitely run off, there'd be a stampede among the camels, and we could have trouble identifying ourselves. I thought it would be best for me to go ahead by myself, and I made plans with Gough for him to stay put until I came back.

The Alambagh proved to be farther off than I calculated, and I was beginning to fear I had lost my way, when all at once a great wall loomed in front of me, and I could just make out the figure of the sentry pacing up and down. I hailed him, and ordered him to ask the sergeant of the guard to summon the officer on duty. When the latter appeared, I explained to him my object in coming, and begged him to have the ammunition boxes ready for lading by the time I returned with the camels. I then rode back to where I had left Gough, and the whole procession proceeded to the Alambagh.

The Alambagh was farther away than I thought, and I started to worry that I had lost my way when suddenly a massive wall appeared in front of me, and I could just see the sentry walking back and forth. I called out to him and told him to ask the sergeant of the guard to get the officer on duty. When he arrived, I explained why I was there and asked him to have the ammunition boxes ready for loading by the time I got back with the camels. I then rode back to where I had left Gough, and the whole group headed to the Alambagh.

Already half the night was gone; but beyond the time required for loading the camels there was no delay; the utmost assistance was afforded us, and ere long we started on our return journey.

Already half the night was gone; but beyond the time needed to load the camels, there was no delay; we received all the help we could, and soon we started on our return journey.

Day had dawned before we came in sight of the Dilkusha, and by the time I had made the ammunition over to the Ordnance officer it was broad daylight. As I rode up to the Martinière I could see old Sir Colin, only partially dressed, standing on the steps in evident anxiety at my non-arrival.

Daylight had broken before we saw the Dilkusha, and by the time I handed over the ammunition to the Ordnance officer, it was fully light out. As I rode up to the Martinière, I could see old Sir Colin, only partly dressed, standing on the steps, clearly worried about my late arrival.

He was delighted when at last I appeared, expressed himself very pleased to see me, and, having made many kind and complimentary[Page 178] remarks as to the success of the little expedition, he told me to go off and get something to eat as quickly as possible, for we were to start directly the men had breakfasted. That was a very happy moment for me, feeling that I had earned my Chief's approbation and justified his selection of me. I went off to the Artillery camp, and refreshed the inner man with a steak cut off a gun bullock which had been killed by a round shot on the 14th.

He was thrilled when I finally showed up, expressed how glad he was to see me, and after sharing a bunch of kind and complimentary[Page 178] remarks about the success of the little expedition, he told me to go grab something to eat as fast as I could, since we were going to start as soon as the guys had breakfasted. That was a really happy moment for me, feeling like I had earned my Chief's approval and justified his choice of me. I headed over to the Artillery camp and refueled with a steak taken from a gun bullock that had been shot on the 14th.

The Advance on Lucknow At 8 a.m. the troops moved off. I was ordered to go with the advance guard.10 Hope's and Russell's brigades came next, with Travers's Heavy battery, Peel's Naval Brigade, and Middleton's Field battery.

The Push on Lucknow At 8 a.m., the troops set out. I was instructed to accompany the advance guard.10 Hope's and Russell's brigades followed, along with Travers's Heavy battery, Peel's Naval Brigade, and Middleton's Field battery.

Greathed's brigade (except the 8th Foot left at the Dilkusha), with Bourchier's battery, remained to guard our left flank until mid-day, when it was ordered to follow the column and form its rear guard.

Greathed's brigade (except for the 8th Foot, which stayed at the Dilkusha), along with Bourchier's battery, stayed to protect our left flank until noon, when they were ordered to follow the column and serve as its rear guard.

The offer of a Native who volunteered to guide us was accepted, and Sir Colin, who rode just behind the advance guard, had Kavanagh with him, whose local knowledge proved very valuable.

The offer from a local Native who volunteered to guide us was accepted, and Sir Colin, riding just behind the front line, had Kavanagh with him, whose knowledge of the area was incredibly useful.

The enemy had been so completely taken in by the previous day's reconnaissance that they had not the slightest suspicion we should advance from our right, the result being that we were allowed to cross the canal without opposition.11 We kept close along the river bank, our left being partially concealed by the high grass. About a mile beyond the canal we turned sharp to the left, and passed through the narrow street of a small village, coming immediately under fire from some houses on our right, and from the top of a high wall above and beyond them, which turned out to be the north-east corner of the Sikandarbagh.

The enemy had been so completely misled by the previous day's reconnaissance that they had no idea we would advance from our right. As a result, we were able to cross the canal without opposition.11 We stayed close to the riverbank, with our left side partly hidden by the tall grass. About a mile beyond the canal, we turned sharply left and went through the narrow street of a small village, immediately coming under fire from some houses on our right and from the top of a high wall above and beyond them, which turned out to be the northeast corner of Sikandarbagh.

The greatest confusion ensued, and for a time there was a complete block. The Cavalry in advance were checked by a fierce fire poured directly on them from the front: they were powerless, and the only thing for them to do was to force their way back, down the confined lane we had just passed up, which by this time was crammed with[Page 179] Infantry and Artillery, making 'confusion worse confounded.' As soon as the Cavalry had cleared out, the 53rd lined the bank which ran along the side of the lane nearest the Sikandarbagh, and by their fire caused all those of the rebels who had collected outside the walls to retire within the enclosure. This opened a road for Blunt, who, leading his guns up the bank with a splendid courage, unlimbered and opened fire within sixty yards of the building.

The greatest confusion broke out, and for a while, there was a total standstill. The Cavalry at the front were halted by a fierce barrage coming straight at them: they were powerless, and the only option left was to push back down the narrow lane we had just come up, which by now was packed with[Page 179] Infantry and Artillery, making the chaos even worse. Once the Cavalry had cleared out, the 53rd took position along the bank next to the lane by the Sikandarbagh, and their fire forced the rebels gathered outside the walls to retreat inside the enclosure. This created a path for Blunt, who, showing incredible courage, led his guns up the bank, unlimbered, and opened fire just sixty yards from the building.

Blunt found himself under a heavy fire from three different directions—on the right from the Sikandarbagh; on the left and left front from the barracks, some huts (not twenty yards off), and a serai; and in front from the mess-house, Kaisarbagh, and other buildings. In these three directions he pointed his guns, regardless of deadly fire, especially from the huts on the left.

Blunt found himself under intense fire from three different directions—on the right from the Sikandarbagh; on the left and front left from the barracks, some huts (not twenty yards away), and a serai; and straight ahead from the mess-house, Kaisarbagh, and other buildings. He aimed his guns in these three directions, despite the deadly fire, especially coming from the huts on the left.

It would, however, have been impossible for the advance guard to have held its ground much longer, so it was with a feeling of the utmost relief that I beheld Hope's brigade coming up the lane to our assistance. A company of the 53rd, in the most brilliant manner, forced the enemy from the position they held on our left front, and the Highlanders, without a moment's hesitation, climbed on to the huts—the point, as I have already said, from which the heaviest fire proceeded; they tore off the roofs, and, leaping into the houses, drove the enemy before them right through the serai and up to the barracks, which they seized, and for the remainder of the operations these barracks were held by the 93rd.

It would have been impossible for the advance guard to hold its ground much longer, so I felt an immense sense of relief when I saw Hope's brigade coming up the lane to help us. A company from the 53rd brilliantly pushed the enemy out of the position they held on our left front, and the Highlanders, without a moment's hesitation, climbed onto the huts—the point from which the heaviest fire was coming; they tore off the roofs and jumped into the houses, driving the enemy back through the serai and up to the barracks, which they captured. For the rest of the operation, the 93rd held those barracks.

This action on the part of the Highlanders was as serviceable as it was heroic, for it silenced the fire most destructive to the attacking force; but for all that, our position was extremely critical, and Sir Colin, perceiving the danger, at once decided that no further move could be attempted until we had gained possession of the Sikandarbagh. It was, indeed, a formidable-looking place to attack, about 130 yards square, surrounded by a thick brick wall twenty feet high, carefully loopholed, and flanked at the corners by circular bastions. There was only one entrance, a gateway on the south side, protected by a traverse of earth and masonry, over which was a double-storied guard-room. Close to the north side of the enclosure was a pavilion with a flat roof prepared for musketry, and from the whole place an incessant fire was being kept up.

This action by the Highlanders was as useful as it was brave, as it put out the most destructive fire aimed at the attacking force; however, our position was extremely critical, and Sir Colin, realizing the danger, immediately decided that we couldn't make any further moves until we took control of the Sikandarbagh. It was indeed a daunting place to attack, about 130 yards square, surrounded by a thick brick wall twenty feet high, carefully loopholed, and flanked at the corners by circular bastions. There was only one entrance, a gateway on the south side, protected by an earthen and masonry traverse, over which was a two-story guardroom. Near the north side of the enclosure was a pavilion with a flat roof prepared for musketry, and from the whole area, an unending fire was being maintained.

Sir Colin Wounded Sir Colin, in order to get a better view of the position, and thus be able to decide in what direction the attack could most advantageously be made, rode up the bank and placed himself close to one of Blunt's guns. Mansfield and Hope Grant were on either side, and Augustus Anson and I were directly behind, when I heard the Commander-in-Chief exclaim, 'I am hit.' Luckily it was only by a spent bullet, which had passed through a gunner (killing him on the spot) before it struck Sir Colin on the thigh, causing a severe contusion, but nothing[Page 180] more. It was a moment of acute anxiety until it was ascertained that no great damage had been done.

Sir Colin Injured Sir Colin, to get a better view of the situation and figure out where to launch the attack most effectively, rode up the bank and positioned himself near one of Blunt's guns. Mansfield and Hope Grant were on either side, and Augustus Anson and I were directly behind him when I heard the Commander-in-Chief shout, 'I've been hit.' Thankfully, it was just a spent bullet that had gone through a gunner (who died instantly) before hitting Sir Colin on the thigh, causing a serious bruise but nothing[Page 180] more. It was a tense moment until we confirmed that no serious harm had been done.

The Attack on the Sikandarbagh By this time one of Travers's guns and a howitzer, which with considerable difficulty had been dragged up the bank, opened fire on the point selected by Sir Colin for the breach—the south-east corner of the wall surrounding the Sikandarbagh.12 Instantly Hardy (Captain of the battery) was killed and the senior Subaltern wounded: Blunt's charger was shot, and of the few men under his command 14 Europeans and 6 Gun Lascars were killed or wounded; 20 of the troop-horses were also knocked over.13

The Sikandarbagh Attack By this time, one of Travers's guns and a howitzer, which had been dragged up the bank with great difficulty, opened fire on the spot chosen by Sir Colin for the breach—the south-east corner of the wall surrounding the Sikandarbagh.12 Immediately, Hardy (the Captain of the battery) was killed and the senior Subaltern was wounded. Blunt's horse was shot, and among the few men under his command, 14 Europeans and 6 Gun Lascars were killed or injured; 20 of the troop horses were also taken down over.13

While the heavy guns were at work on the breach, Adrian Hope, with the 53rd, cleared off a body of the enemy who had collected on our left front, and connected the barracks with the main attack by a line of skirmishers.

While the heavy guns were firing at the breach, Adrian Hope, with the 53rd, cleared out a group of enemies who had gathered in our left front and linked the barracks to the main attack with a line of skirmishers.

In less than half an hour an opening three feet square and three feet from the ground had been made in the wall. It would have been better had it been larger, but time was precious; Sir Colin would not wait, and ordered the assault to begin. The Infantry had been lying down, under such slight cover as was available, impatiently awaiting for this order. The moment it reached them, up they sprang with one accord, and with one voice uttered a shout which must have foreshadowed defeat to the defenders of the Sikandarbagh. The 93rd under Lieutenant-Colonel Ewart, and the 4th Punjab Infantry under Lieutenant Paul, led the way, closely followed by the 53rd under Lieutenant-Colonel Gordon14 of the 93rd Highlanders, and one of the battalions of Detachments under Major Roger Barnston.

In less than half an hour, an opening three feet square and three feet off the ground was made in the wall. It would have been better if it had been larger, but time was crucial; Sir Colin wouldn’t wait and ordered the assault to start. The Infantry had been lying down, using the little cover that was available, eagerly waiting for this command. As soon as it arrived, they sprang up in unison and shouted as one, a cry that must have signaled defeat to the defenders of Sikandarbagh. The 93rd under Lieutenant-Colonel Ewart, and the 4th Punjab Infantry under Lieutenant Paul, led the way, closely followed by the 53rd under Lieutenant-Colonel Gordon14 of the 93rd Highlanders, and one of the battalions of Detachments under Major Roger Barnston.

Heroic Deeds It was a magnificent sight, a sight never to be forgotten—that glorious[Page 181] struggle to be the first to enter the deadly breach, the prize to the winner of the race being certain death! Highlanders and Sikhs, Punjabi Mahomedans, Dogras15 and Pathans, all vied with each other in the generous competition.16

Heroic Acts It was an incredible sight, one that would never be forgotten—that glorious[Page 181] struggle to be the first to enter the deadly breach, with the prize for the winner being certain death! Highlanders and Sikhs, Punjabi Muslims, Dogras15 and Pathans, all competed with each other in this brave competition.16

A Highlander was the first to reach the goal, and was shot dead as he jumped into the enclosure; a man of the 4th Punjab Infantry came next, and met the same fate. Then followed Captain Burroughs and Lieutenant Cooper, of the 93rd, and immediately behind them their Colonel (Ewart), Captain Lumsden, of the 30th Bengal Infantry,17 and a number of Sikhs and Highlanders as fast as they could scramble through the opening. A drummer-boy of the 93rd must have been one of the first to pass that grim boundary between life and death, for when I got in I found him just inside the breach, lying on his back quite dead—a pretty, innocent-looking, fair-haired lad, not more than fourteen years of age.

A Highlander was the first to reach the goal and was shot dead as he jumped into the enclosure; a soldier from the 4th Punjab Infantry followed and met the same fate. Then came Captain Burroughs and Lieutenant Cooper of the 93rd, right behind them was their Colonel (Ewart), Captain Lumsden of the 30th Bengal Infantry,17 and a number of Sikhs and Highlanders as quickly as they could squeeze through the opening. A drummer-boy from the 93rd must have been one of the first to cross that grim boundary between life and death, because when I got in, I found him just inside the breach, lying on his back completely dead—a pretty, innocent-looking, fair-haired kid, no older than fourteen.

The crush now became so great in the men's eagerness to get through the opening and join the conflict within, that a regular block was the consequence, which every minute became more hopeless. One party made for the gateway and another for a barred window18 close by, determined to force an entrance by them. The traverse having been rushed by the 4th Punjab Infantry gallantly led by a Dogra Subadar,19 a Punjabi Mahomedan of this distinguished corps behaved with the most conspicuous bravery. The enemy, having been driven out of the earthwork, made for the gateway, the heavy doors of which were in the act of being closed, when the Mahomedan (Mukarrab Khan by name) pushed his left arm, on which he carried a shield, between them, thus preventing their being shut; on his hand being badly wounded by a sword-cut, he drew it out, instantly thrusting in the other arm, when the right hand was all but severed from the wrist.20 But he gained his object—the doors could not be closed, and were soon forced open[Page 182] altogether, upon which the 4th Punjab Infantry, the 53rd, 93rd, and some of the Detachments, swarmed in.

The crowd's eagerness to get through the entrance and join the fight inside grew so intense that it led to a complete block, which became more hopeless by the minute. One group rushed toward the gateway while another aimed for a nearby barred window18, determined to force their way through. The 4th Punjab Infantry, bravely led by a Dogra Subadar19, charged through. A Punjabi Muslim from this distinguished unit showed incredible bravery. After the enemy was pushed out of the earthwork, they made for the gateway, where the heavy doors were being closed. Just then, the Muslim, named Mukarrab Khan, pushed his left arm, carrying a shield, between them, stopping the doors from shutting. Though he was badly wounded by a sword cut on that arm, he pulled it out and quickly thrust in his other arm, which was nearly severed at the wrist20. But he achieved his goal—the doors couldn’t be closed and were soon forced open[Page 182], allowing the 4th Punjab Infantry, the 53rd, 93rd, and some of the detachments to rush in.

This devoted action of Mukarrab Khan I myself witnessed, for, with Augustus Anson, I got in immediately behind the storming party. As we reached the gateway, Anson was knocked off his horse by a bullet, which grazed the base of the skull just behind the right ear, and stunned him for a moment—the next, he was up and mounted again, but was hardly in the saddle when his horse was shot dead.

This committed act of Mukarrab Khan, I personally saw, because I followed Augustus Anson right behind the storming party. As we got to the gateway, a bullet struck Anson, knocking him off his horse and grazing the base of his skull just behind his right ear, which stunned him momentarily. The next moment, he was back up and on his horse again, but he had barely settled in the saddle when his horse was shot dead.

The scene that ensued requires the pen of a Zola to depict. The rebels, never dreaming that we should stop to attack such a formidable position, had collected in the Sikandarbagh to the number of upwards of 2,000, with the intention of falling upon our right flank so soon as we should become entangled amongst the streets and houses of the Hazratganj.21 They were now completely caught in a trap, the only outlets being by the gateway and the breach, through which our troops continued to pour. There could therefore be no thought of escape, and they fought with the desperation of men without hope of mercy, and determined to sell their lives as dearly as they could. Inch by inch they were forced back to the pavilion, and into the space between it and the north wall, where they were all shot or bayoneted. There they lay in a heap as high as my head, a heaving, surging mass of dead and dying inextricably entangled. It was a sickening sight, one of those which even in the excitement of battle and the flush of victory make one feel strongly what a horrible side there is to war. The wretched wounded men could not get clear of their dead comrades, however great their struggles, and those near the top of this ghastly pile of writhing humanity vented their rage and disappointment on every British officer who approached by showering upon him abuse of the grossest description.

The scene that followed needs the skill of a Zola to capture. The rebels, not expecting that we would attack such a strong position, had gathered in the Sikandarbagh, numbering over 2,000, planning to strike at our right flank as soon as we got caught up in the streets and houses of the Hazratganj.21 They were now completely trapped, with the only exits being the gateway and the breach, through which our troops kept pouring in. Escape was out of the question, and they fought with the desperation of men who had no hope of mercy, determined to make their lives count for something. Bit by bit, they were pushed back to the pavilion and into the space between it and the north wall, where they were all shot or bayoneted. They lay piled up in a heap as high as my head, a writhing, struggling mass of dead and dying, hopelessly tangled together. It was a gruesome sight, one of those moments that, even in the heat of battle and the thrill of victory, powerfully remind you of the horrific side of war. The poor wounded men couldn't escape from their dead comrades, no matter how hard they fought, and those at the top of this horrifying heap of struggling humanity unleashed their anger and frustration on every British officer who came near, showering him with the worst kind of insults.

The firing and fighting did not cease altogether for some time after the main body of the rebels were destroyed. A few got up into the guard-room above the gateway, and tried to barricade themselves in; others sought shelter in the bastions, but none escaped the vengeance of the soldiers. There were some deadly combats between the mutinous sepoys and the Sikhs. Eventually all the rebels were killed, save three or four who dropped over the wall on the city side. It is to be hoped they lived to tell the tale of the dauntless courage which carried everything before it.

The gunfire and fighting continued for a while even after most of the rebels were defeated. A few made it to the guard room above the gateway and tried to barricade themselves in; others took cover in the bastions, but none could escape the soldiers' revenge. There were intense battles between the rebellious sepoys and the Sikhs. In the end, all the rebels were killed, except for three or four who jumped over the wall on the city side. Hopefully, they survived to share the story of the fearless bravery that overcame everything.

Considering the tremendous odds which those who first entered through the breach were exposed to, and the desperate nature of the fighting, our losses were astonishingly small. The 93rd had 2 officers[Page 183] and 23 men (including the Sergeant-Major) killed, and 7 officers and 61 men wounded.

Considering the huge risks that those who first entered through the breach faced, and the intense fighting, our losses were surprisingly low. The 93rd had 2 officers[Page 183] and 23 men (including the Sergeant-Major) killed, and 7 officers and 61 men wounded.

The 4th Punjab Infantry The 4th Punjab Infantry went into action with four British officers, of whom two were killed and one was severely wounded. Sixty-nine of the Native officers and men were also killed or wounded.22

The 4th Punjab Regiment The 4th Punjab Infantry went into action with four British officers, of whom two were killed and one was severely injured. Sixty-nine of the Native officers and men were also killed or wounded.22






CHAPTER XXIV.

1857

The operation which I have tried to describe in the last chapter was not completed until well on in the afternoon, when the movement towards the Residency was at once proceeded with. To the left as we advanced the ground was fairly open (with the exception of quite a small village) for about 1,100 yards in the direction of the British Infantry mess-house. To the right also, for about 300 yards, there was a clear space, then a belt of jungle intersected by huts and small gardens extending for about 400 yards farther, as far as the Shah Najaf,1 a handsome white-domed tomb, surrounded by a court-yard, and enclosed by high masonry loopholed walls; and beyond the Shah Najaf rose the Kadam Rasul,2 another tomb standing on a slight eminence.

The operation I described in the last chapter wasn’t finished until later in the afternoon, when we immediately moved toward the Residency. To our left as we advanced, the ground was mostly clear (except for a small village) for about 1,100 yards toward the British Infantry mess-house. To our right, there was also an open area for about 300 yards, followed by a stretch of jungle crossed by huts and small gardens that extended for another 400 yards, reaching up to the Shah Najaf,1 a beautiful white-domed tomb surrounded by a courtyard and enclosed by tall masonry walls with slits for defense. Beyond the Shah Najaf, the Kadam Rasul,2 another tomb, stood on a slight rise.

But little opposition was experienced from the village, which was carried by the Infantry, while the Artillery were brought up to open fire on the Shah Najaf and Kadam Rasul. The latter was soon occupied by the 2nd Punjab Infantry, belonging to Greathed's brigade, which had by this time joined the main body; but the Shah Najaf proved a harder nut to crack. This building was almost concealed by dense jungle, and its great strength therefore remained unsuspected until we[Page 184] got quite close up to it.

But there was barely any resistance from the village, which was taken by the Infantry, while the Artillery was called in to fire on the Shah Najaf and Kadam Rasul. The latter was quickly taken by the 2nd Punjab Infantry from Greathed's brigade, which had by then joined the main group; however, the Shah Najaf turned out to be much tougher to handle. This building was almost hidden by thick jungle, so its significant strength went unnoticed until we[Page 184] got really close to it.

Henry Norman Barnston's battalion of Detachments advanced in skirmishing order, under cover of our guns. One of the shells most unfortunately burst prematurely, wounding Major Barnston so severely that he died soon afterwards. Whether it was that the men were depressed by the loss of their leader, or that they were not prepared for the very damaging fire which suddenly poured upon them, I know not, but certain it is that they wavered, and for a few minutes there was a slight panic. The Commander-in-Chief, with Hope Grant, Mansfield, Adrian Hope, and their respective staffs, were sitting on their horses anxiously awaiting the result of the attack, when all at once it became apparent that there was a retrograde movement on the part of some of the men, who were emerging from the belt of jungle and hastening towards us. Norman was the first to grasp the situation. Putting spurs to his horse, he galloped into their midst, and called on them to pull themselves together; the men rallied at once, and advanced into the cover from which they had for the moment retreated. I had many opportunities for noting Norman's coolness and presence of mind under fire. On this particular occasion these qualities were most marked, and his action was most timely.

Henry Norman Barnston's battalion of detachments moved forward in a skirmishing formation, shielded by our artillery. Unfortunately, one of the shells exploded too soon, wounding Major Barnston so badly that he died shortly after. I can't say for sure if the troops were demoralized by the loss of their leader or if they were caught off guard by the sudden and intense gunfire, but it's clear that they hesitated, and for a brief moment, there was a bit of panic. The Commander-in-Chief, along with Hope Grant, Mansfield, Adrian Hope, and their teams, were mounted on their horses, anxiously watching the outcome of the assault when it suddenly became obvious that some of the soldiers were retreating from the jungle, rushing back toward us. Norman was the first to understand what was happening. He spurred his horse into their midst and urged them to regroup. The men quickly rallied and moved back into the cover from which they had just pulled away. I had many chances to observe Norman's composure and quick thinking under fire. On this particular occasion, those traits stood out clearly, and his response was very timely.

More Infantry were brought up, but without avail. The enemy evidently were determined to prevent the capture of the Shah Najaf. Fire was now opened upon us from a heavy gun on the other side of the Gumti (the first shot from which blew up one of the ammunition waggons belonging to the Naval Brigade), and all the cannon that were collected at the Kaisarbagh and mess-house were brought to bear upon us. The musketry fire was incessant, and Peel's men suffered so severely that one of his guns could not be worked.

More infantry were brought in, but it didn't help. The enemy was clearly determined to stop the capture of Shah Najaf. We were now under fire from a heavy gun on the opposite side of the Gumti, and the first shot blew up one of the ammunition wagons belonging to the Naval Brigade. All the cannons gathered at the Kaisarbagh and mess-house were aimed at us. The musket fire was constant, and Peel's men took such heavy losses that one of his guns could not be operated.

Sir Colin was beginning to get extremely anxious, and no wonder—the position was most uncomfortable, and the prospect very gloomy. Three hours since the attack began! The day was rapidly drawing to a close, and we were no nearer our object; on the contrary, the opposition became every moment stronger, and the fire more deadly. A retreat was not to be thought of; indeed, our remaining so long stationary had been an encouragement to the enemy, and every one felt that the only chance for the little British army fighting against 30,000 desperate mutineers, with every advantage of position and intimate knowledge of locality in their favour, was to continue to advance at all hazards; and this our gallant old Chief decided to do. Placing himself at the head of the 93rd, he explained to the only too eager Highlanders the dangerous nature of the service, and called on them to follow him. There was no mistaking the response; cheer after cheer rent the air as they listened to the words of the Chief they knew so well, and believed in so thoroughly, assuring him of their readiness to follow whithersoever he should lead, do whatever he[Page 185] should direct. They moved off, followed by Peel's guns dragged by sailors and some of the Madras Fusiliers, the advance of the party being covered by Middleton's Field battery, which dashed to the front and opened with grape.

Sir Colin was getting really anxious, and it was understandable—the situation was very uncomfortable, and the outlook was quite grim. Three hours had passed since the attack started! The day was quickly coming to an end, and we were no closer to our goal; in fact, the opposition was getting stronger by the minute, and their fire was becoming more lethal. A retreat was out of the question; in fact, staying in one place for so long had only encouraged the enemy, and everyone knew that the only chance for the small British army battling against 30,000 desperate mutineers—who had the advantage of terrain and local knowledge—was to keep pushing forward at all costs. Our brave old Chief decided to do just that. Taking charge of the 93rd, he explained to the eager Highlanders how dangerous the mission was and called on them to follow him. There was no doubt about their response; cheers rang out as they listened to the familiar voice of the Chief they trusted completely, assuring him they were ready to follow him wherever he led and do whatever he instructed. They set off, with Peel's guns pulled by sailors and some of the Madras Fusiliers following, while Middleton's Field battery rushed to the front to provide cover with grape shots.

The Shah Najaf Almost instantaneously the narrow path along which we were proceeding was choked with wounded officers and dead and struggling horses. It was here that Sir Archibald Alison, Sir Colin's Aide-de-camp, lost his arm, and his brother (another Aide-de-camp) was wounded. Adrian Hope's horse was shot dead—indeed, very few escaped injury, either to themselves or their horses. I was one of the lucky few. On reaching the wall of the Shah Najaf enclosure, it was found to be twenty feet high, no entrance could be seen, and there were no scaling-ladders available, so there was nothing for it but to endeavour to breach the massive wall.3 The 24-pounders hammered away at it for some time, but proved quite unequal to the task; though only a few yards off, they made no impression whatever, and it seemed as if the attempt to take the position must be abandoned. Peel was, therefore, ordered to withdraw his guns under cover of some rockets, which were discharged into the enclosure, and Hope was directed to retire as soon as he could collect the killed and wounded.

The Shah Najaf Almost immediately, the narrow path we were following was clogged with injured officers, dead bodies, and struggling horses. It was here that Sir Archibald Alison, Sir Colin's Aide-de-camp, lost his arm, and his brother (another Aide-de-camp) was injured. Adrian Hope's horse was shot dead—indeed, very few emerged unscathed, either themselves or their horses. I was one of the lucky few. Upon reaching the wall of the Shah Najaf enclosure, we found it to be twenty feet high, with no visible entrance, and no scaling ladders available, so we had no choice but to try to breach the massive wall.3 The 24-pounders pounded away at it for a while but were completely ineffective; even though they were only a few yards away, they left no mark, and it seemed like we would have to abandon the attempt to take the position. Peel was, therefore, ordered to pull back his guns under the cover of some rockets that were fired into the enclosure, and Hope was instructed to retreat as soon as he could collect the dead and injured.

Captain Allgood, Sir Colin's trusted Assistant Quartermaster-General, was the bearer of the order. He and Hope, after consulting together, determined that before the latter obeyed they would try to discover if there did not exist an opening in some other part of the walls. Assisted by a sergeant of the 93rd, they set about their search, and actually did find a narrow gap, through which they could see that the enemy, terrified and thrown into confusion by the exploding rockets falling amongst them, were fast abandoning the building. The two friends helped each other through the gap, and, followed by some Highlanders, they proceeded across the now deserted enclosure to secure the only gateway, which was on the opposite side to that which we had attacked; and Allgood had the great pleasure of announcing to the Commander-in-Chief that there was no need to retire, for the formidable position was in our possession.

Captain Allgood, Sir Colin's trusted Assistant Quartermaster-General, was the one carrying the order. He and Hope decided that before Hope followed through, they would look for another opening in the walls. With the help of a sergeant from the 93rd, they began their search and actually found a narrow gap. Through it, they could see that the enemy, scared and thrown into chaos by the exploding rockets falling among them, were quickly abandoning the building. The two friends helped each other through the gap, and, followed by some Highlanders, they made their way across the now empty area to secure the only gateway, which was on the opposite side from where we had attacked. Allgood was thrilled to inform the Commander-in-Chief that there was no need to retreat, as the formidable position was now in our hands.

It was getting dark when at length we occupied the Shah Najaf; some of us got on to the top of the building to take a look round. There was just light enough to show us a sepoy sauntering unconcernedly up to the gate, evidently in happy ignorance of what had happened. He soon discovered that his comrades were no longer masters of the situation, and, letting his musket fall, he made all haste to the river, into which he dropped, and swam to the other[Page 186] side.

It was getting dark when we finally took control of the Shah Najaf; some of us climbed to the top of the building to look around. There was just enough light to see a soldier walking casually up to the gate, clearly unaware of what had happened. He quickly realized that his fellow soldiers were no longer in charge, and, letting his rifle drop, he rushed to the river, jumped in, and swam to the other[Page 186] side.

Sir Colin and my General took up their quarters in the Shah Najaf, but only nominally, for after a scratch dinner we all joined the troops, who bivouacked where they stood.

Sir Colin and my General settled in at the Shah Najaf, but it was just for show. After a quick dinner, we all joined the troops, who set up camp right where they were.

The force was disposed in a semicircle, extending from the Shah Najaf to the barracks. The wounded were placed in the huts near the Sikandarbagh, where they passed a most comfortless night, for when the sun set it rapidly got cold, and the hospital arrangements were necessarily on a very limited scale.

The troops were arranged in a semicircle, stretching from the Shah Najaf to the barracks. The injured were put in the huts close to the Sikandarbagh, where they spent a really uncomfortable night, as it got chilly quickly after sunset, and the hospital setup was necessarily very basic.

By this tune I was dead beat, having been for sixty hours continually in the saddle, except when I lay down for a short nap on the night of the 14th.

By this time, I was completely worn out, having spent sixty hours straight in the saddle, except for a brief nap on the night of the 14th.

We were not allowed, however, to have a very long night's rest. Hours before dawn on the 17th we were roused by the beating of drums and ringing of bells (an impotent attempt on the part of the rebel leaders to excite the enthusiasm of their followers), which caused the troops to prepare for an attack and stand to their arms. But the enemy were not in a mood to encounter us in the open, small as our numbers were; they had suffered heavily the day before, and they must have begun to realize that their strongest positions were inadequate against British pluck and determination.

We weren’t allowed to get a long night’s sleep, though. Hours before dawn on the 17th, we were woken up by the sounds of drums and bells (a futile attempt by the rebel leaders to fire up their followers), which made the troops get ready for an attack and grab their weapons. But the enemy didn’t want to face us openly, even with our small numbers; they had taken heavy losses the day before, and it must have started to sink in that their best positions weren’t enough against British courage and determination.

The
Mess-House
The mess-house was the next point to be carried, but the Commander-in-Chief thought it would be prudent to make our left quite secure in the first instance. The duty of occupying the houses and gardens situated between the barracks and Banks's house was entrusted to Brigadier Russell. Four bungalows,4 in which the officers of the 32nd Foot had lived, were first seized. Russell then pushed on towards Banks's house, which it was necessary to occupy, as it commanded the crossing over the canal, by which we communicated with the Dilkusha, and by which it was thought that the people rescued from the Residency would have to be brought away. Russell, avoiding the main road, advanced under cover of his Artillery, and forced the rebels to vacate this important position, and Banks's house was held during the remainder of the operations by 50 men of the 2nd Punjab Infantry, under Lieutenant F. Keen.5

The Mess Hall The mess-house was the next target to secure, but the Commander-in-Chief decided it was wise to first ensure our left flank was secure. Brigadier Russell was assigned the task of taking control of the houses and gardens located between the barracks and Banks's house. Four bungalows,4 where the officers of the 32nd Foot had lived, were the first to be taken. Russell then moved towards Banks's house, which needed to be captured because it overlooked the canal crossing, the route we used to communicate with the Dilkusha, and the path expected to be used for evacuating those rescued from the Residency. Russell bypassed the main road, moving under the cover of his artillery, and forced the rebels to abandon this crucial position. Banks's house was held for the rest of the operations by 50 men of the 2nd Punjab Infantry, led by Lieutenant F. Keen.5

In the meantime a heavy fire from Peel's guns had been opened on the mess-house—a double-storied building, situated on slightly rising ground, surrounded by a ditch 12 feet broad, and beyond that at some little distance by a loop-holed wall.

In the meantime, a heavy barrage from Peel's cannons had been unleashed on the mess house— a two-story building located on slightly elevated ground, surrounded by a 12-foot-wide ditch, and beyond that, at some distance, by a wall with gun holes.

Our losses on the previous day had been very severe, and Sir Colin, anxious to spare his men as much as possible, decided to batter the[Page 187] place freely with Artillery before permitting it to be attacked. Peel's guns and Longden's mortars were therefore brought to bear upon it, and kept up a continual fire until 3 p.m., when the enemy seemed to think they had had enough, their musketry fire slackened off, and the Commander-in-Chief, considering the assault might safely be made, gave the order to advance. The attacking party was commanded by Brevet-Major Wolseley,6 of the 90th Light Infantry, and consisted of a company of his own regiment, a piquet of the 53rd Foot under Captain Hopkins, and a few men of the 2nd Punjab Infantry under Captain Powlett, supported by Barnston's Detachments, under Captain Guise, of the 90th.

Our losses the day before had been quite heavy, and Sir Colin, wanting to protect his men as much as he could, decided to hit the place hard with artillery before allowing an attack. Peel's guns and Longden's mortars were aimed at it and maintained a steady fire until 3 p.m., when it seemed the enemy felt they had taken enough; their gunfire decreased, and the Commander-in-Chief, thinking an assault could be safely made, ordered the advance. The attacking force was led by Brevet-Major Wolseley of the 90th Light Infantry and included a company from his own regiment, a picket from the 53rd Foot under Captain Hopkins, and a few soldiers from the 2nd Punjab Infantry led by Captain Powlett, supported by Barnston's detachments under Captain Guise of the 90th.

The building and its many outhouses were carried with a rush, and the enemy, who hastily retreated to the Moti Mahal,7 were followed across the road, where our troops were stopped by the high wall which enclosed that building. Wolseley then sent for some Sappers, who quickly opened out a space through which they all passed. The Moti Mahal was hotly defended, but without avail, and ere the sun set the last position which separated the relieved from the relieving forces was in our possession.

The building and its many outbuildings were taken quickly, and the enemy, who hurriedly retreated to the Moti Mahal,7 were pursued across the road, but our troops were halted by the tall wall that surrounded that building. Wolseley then called for some Sappers, who swiftly created an opening for everyone to pass through. The Moti Mahal was fiercely defended, but it didn't help, and before sundown, the last position that separated the relieved forces from the rescuing forces was under our control.

Planting the Flag As the party moved off to attack the mess-house, Sir Colin, who, on his white horse, was interestedly watching the proceedings, ordered me to procure a regimental colour and place it on one of the turrets of the building, that Outram might be able to judge how far we had advanced. I rode off accordingly to the 2nd Punjab Infantry, standing close by, and requested the Commandant, Captain Green, to let me have one of his colours. He at once complied, and I galloped with it to the mess-house. As I entered, I was met by Sir David Baird (one of Sir Colin's Aides-de-camp), and Captain Hopkins, of the 53rd Foot, by both of whom I was assisted in getting the flag with its long staff up the inconveniently narrow staircase, and in planting it on the turret nearest the Kaisarbagh, which was about 850 yards off. No sooner did the enemy perceive what we were about, than shot after shot was aimed at the colour, and in a very few minutes it was knocked over, falling into the ditch below. I ran down, picked it up, and again placed it in position, only for it to be once more shot down and hurled into the ditch, just as Norman and Lennox (who had been sent by Sir Colin to report what was going on in the interior of the Kaisarbagh) appeared on the roof. Once more I picked up the colour, and found that this time the staff had been broken in two. Notwithstanding, I managed to prop it up a third time on the turret, and it was not again hit, though the enemy continued to fire at it for some time.

Planting the Flag As the group moved to attack the mess-house, Sir Colin, who was watching the events unfold from his white horse, instructed me to get a regimental flag and put it on one of the turrets of the building so that Outram could see how far we had advanced. I rode over to the 2nd Punjab Infantry nearby and asked Captain Green, the Commandant, for one of his flags. He immediately agreed, and I galloped back to the mess-house with it. Upon entering, I was met by Sir David Baird (one of Sir Colin's aides) and Captain Hopkins from the 53rd Foot, who helped me get the flag and its long staff up the awkwardly narrow staircase and plant it on the turret closest to Kaisarbagh, which was about 850 yards away. As soon as the enemy saw what we were doing, they started shooting at the flag, and within minutes it was shot down and fell into the ditch below. I ran down, picked it up, and put it back in place, only for it to be shot down again and thrown into the ditch just as Norman and Lennox (who had been sent by Sir Colin to report what was happening inside Kaisarbagh) showed up on the roof. Once again, I picked up the flag, but this time the staff was broken in half. Nevertheless, I managed to prop it up a third time on the turret, and it wasn’t hit again, even though the enemy kept firing at it for a while.

Outram, unwilling to risk unnecessary loss of men, did not greatly[Page 188] extend his position until he was sure we were close at hand, but he was not idle. While Sir Colin was slowly working his way towards him on the 16th, he had gradually occupied such buildings as lay in the direction of our advance. From the mess-house we could see the British flag flying on the top of the engine-house, only a short distance beyond the Moti Mahal, which satisfactory piece of intelligence Norman went down to report to Sir Colin, who, with his Chief of the Staff, had just arrived. I followed Norman, and we two made our way to the western wall of the Pearl Palace enclosure, outside which Outram and Havelock were standing together. They had run the gauntlet of the enemy's fire in coming from the engine house; Colonel Robert Napier and two other officers who accompanied them, having been wounded, had to be carried back. Some of Lennox's Sappers set to work, and soon made a hole in the wall8 large enough for these two distinguished men to pass through.

Outram, not wanting to risk unnecessary loss of soldiers, didn't extend his position much until he was sure we were nearby, but he wasn't idle. While Sir Colin was slowly making his way toward him on the 16th, he gradually took over buildings that were in the direction of our advance. From the mess-house, we could see the British flag flying on top of the engine-house, just a short distance past the Moti Mahal. This good news prompted Norman to report to Sir Colin, who had just arrived with his Chief of Staff. I followed Norman, and we made our way to the western wall of the Pearl Palace area, where Outram and Havelock were standing together. They had managed to dodge the enemy's fire while coming from the engine house; Colonel Robert Napier and two other officers who were with them were wounded and had to be carried back. Some of Lennox's Sappers got to work and quickly made a hole in the wall8 large enough for these two distinguished men to pass through.

A Memorable Meeting I had never before met either of them. In Afghanistan Outram had been a friend of my father, who had often spoken to me about him in terms of the warmest admiration, and his courage and chivalry were known and appreciated throughout India. It was therefore with feelings of the most lively interest that I beheld this man, whose character I so greatly admired. He was then fifty-four years of age, strong and broad-shouldered, in no way broken down by the heavy load of responsibility and anxiety he had had to bear, or the hardships he had gone through. Havelock, the hero of a hundred fights, on the contrary, looked ill, worn and depressed, but brightened up a little when Norman told him he had been made a K.C.B.

An Unforgettable Meeting I had never met either of them before. In Afghanistan, Outram had been a friend of my father, who often spoke of him with the highest admiration, and his bravery and honor were recognized and respected throughout India. So, it was with great interest that I saw this man, whose character I admired so much. At that time, he was fifty-four years old, strong and broad-shouldered, showing no signs of being overwhelmed by the heavy responsibilities and anxieties he had faced, nor by the hardships he had endured. Havelock, the hero of countless battles, on the other hand, appeared unwell, worn out, and downcast, but he perked up a bit when Norman told him he had been made a K.C.B.

Sir Colin waited to receive these two heroes on the ground sloping down from the mess-house, and it was there that the meeting between the three veterans took place. A most impressive and memorable scene was that meeting, which has been well depicted in the historical picture by Barker.

Sir Colin waited to greet these two heroes on the ground sloping down from the mess-house, and it was there that the meeting between the three veterans happened. It was a truly impressive and memorable scene, captured well in the historical painting by Barker.

As if to show the rage and disappointment of the enemy at this evidence of the success of our operations, every gun in the Kaisarbagh was turned upon us, and it was under a shower of shot and shell that the interview was held; it did not last long, for it was neither the time nor the place to discuss plans for the future. All Sir Colin could then say was that the troops should be removed outside Lucknow as soon as the women and children had been brought away, and he expressed his 'thankfulness that the relief of the garrison had been accomplished.'

As if to show the enemy's anger and disappointment at the proof of our success, every gun in the Kaisarbagh was aimed at us, and the meeting took place under a barrage of bullets and shells; it didn't last long because it wasn't the right time or place to discuss future plans. All Sir Colin could say was that the troops should move outside Lucknow as soon as the women and children were evacuated, and he expressed his gratitude that the garrison had been relieved.



MAJOR-GENERAL SIR JAMES OUTRAM, G.C.B.

MAJOR-GENERAL SIR JAMES OUTRAM, G.C.B.

From
a painting by Thomas Brigstocke, R.A.

MAJOR-GENERAL SIR JAMES OUTRAM, G.C.B.

MAJOR-GENERAL SIR JAMES OUTRAM, G.C.B.

From
a painting by Thomas Brigstocke, R.A.



The Residency Norman and I obtained permission to accompany Outram and Havelock back to the Residency. It was intensely but painfully interesting to visit this scene of so many acts of heroism, and of so much suffering endured with unexampled fortitude. We first went to the posts[Page 189] occupied by Havelock's force in the Chatta Manzil, and in other buildings which have long since disappeared. At one of these we stopped to watch the Artillery trying to silence the enemy's guns on the opposite side of the river. We talked to the men, who were keen to hear news from the outer world and the story of our advance. It was some little time before we discovered in one of them the Commander of the battery, Captain William Olpherts,9 for in his soiled and torn summer clothing, his face thin, worn, and begrimed with smoke, it was difficult to distinguish the officer from his men, and it was under these levelling circumstances that I had the honour of making the acquaintance of my distinguished brother officer, whose audacious courage on the occasion of Havelock's advance over the Charbagh bridge had won the admiration of everyone in the force, and gained for him the Victoria Cross.

The Residency Norman and I got permission to join Outram and Havelock as they returned to the Residency. It was both incredibly fascinating and painfully moving to visit this location, which witnessed so many heroic actions and immense suffering endured with unmatched bravery. We first went to the posts occupied by Havelock's troops in the Chatta Manzil and other buildings that have long since vanished. We paused at one of these spots to watch the Artillery attempting to silence the enemy's guns on the opposite side of the river. We chatted with the soldiers, who were eager to hear news from the outside world and the story of our advance. It took us a little while to realize that one of them was Captain William Olpherts, the Commander of the battery; his dirty and tattered summer clothes, along with his thin, worn face caked in smoke, made it hard to tell him apart from the other men. It was in this leveling moment that I had the honor of meeting my distinguished fellow officer, whose fearless courage during Havelock's advance over the Charbagh bridge had earned him the admiration of everyone in the force and the Victoria Cross.

We next came to the Bailey-guard; and as we looked at the battered walls and gateway, not an inch without a mark from a round shot or bullet, we marvelled that Aitken and Loughman could have managed to defend it for nearly five months. There was plenty of evidence on all the surrounding buildings of the dangerous nature of the service which they and their gallant Native comrades had so admirably performed. Although we were pressed for time, we could not resist stopping to speak to some of the Native officers and sepoys, whose magnificent loyalty throughout the siege was one of the most gratifying features of the Mutiny.

We next arrived at the Bailey-guard, and as we examined the damaged walls and gateway, covered in marks from cannonballs and bullets, we were amazed that Aitken and Loughman had managed to defend it for almost five months. There was plenty of evidence on all the buildings around us of how dangerous the work they and their brave Native comrades had done was. Even though we were short on time, we couldn’t help but stop to talk to some of the Native officers and sepoys, whose incredible loyalty throughout the siege was one of the most rewarding aspects of the Mutiny.

At length we came to the Residency itself, where we met a few old friends and acquaintances, who welcomed us with the most touching enthusiasm. Mrs. (afterwards Lady) Inglis and the Rev. J.P. Harris and his wife I had known at Peshawar; there were also Mrs. Fletcher Hayes, the widow of the poor fellow whose murder by the men of his own escort near Mainpuri I have related, and Mrs. Case, the widow of the brave Major of the 32nd, who lost his life at the affair of Chinhut. Mrs. Inglis showed us the tiny room which she and her children had shared with Mrs. Case all through the siege; but it was difficult to get any of them to speak of their miserable experiences, which were too sad and terrible, and too recent to be talked about, and they naturally preferred to dwell on their thankfulness for the relief that had come at last, and to listen to our account of what had happened in other places.

At last, we arrived at the Residency, where we met a few old friends and acquaintances who welcomed us with heartfelt enthusiasm. I had known Mrs. (later Lady) Inglis and the Rev. J.P. Harris and his wife back in Peshawar; there were also Mrs. Fletcher Hayes, the widow of the poor man who was murdered by his own escort near Mainpuri, and Mrs. Case, the widow of the brave Major of the 32nd, who lost his life during the Chinhut incident. Mrs. Inglis showed us the tiny room where she and her children had lived with Mrs. Case throughout the siege; however, it was hard to get any of them to talk about their horrific experiences, which were too sad and recent to discuss. They naturally preferred to focus on their gratitude for the relief that had finally arrived and to listen to our stories about what had happened elsewhere.

It was too late then to go round the position; that had to be left for another day; indeed, it was quite dark when we returned to Head-Quarters, established by our Chief in the open, his soldierly instincts prompting him to remain with his troops.

It was too late to go around the position; that would have to wait for another day; in fact, it was pretty dark by the time we got back to Headquarters, set up by our Chief in the open, his soldierly instincts telling him to stay with his troops.






CHAPTER XXV.

1857

The night of the 17th passed off quietly. Before daybreak the next morning the troops were under arms. Thousands of the enemy had collected in the Kaisarbagh, and for the protection of the mess-house, the Tara Koti, about 200 yards to the south-west, was seized and held, as from this position a flanking fire could be brought to bear upon any enemy advancing from the Kaisarbagh.

The night of the 17th went by quietly. Before dawn the next morning, the troops were ready. Thousands of the enemy had gathered in the Kaisarbagh, and to protect the mess-house, the Tara Koti, located about 200 yards to the southwest, was taken and held. From this spot, a flanking fire could target any enemy advancing from the Kaisarbagh.

The most difficult part of Sir Colin's task had yet to be accomplished—the bringing away of the women and children, and the sick and wounded, from the Residency—and the question of how this could best be done was one which caused the Commander-in-Chief much anxious thought. Many, amongst whom were Outram and Hope Grant, pressed him to attack the Kaisarbagh and capture the city in the first instance; but 45 officers and 496 men out of our small force had been killed or wounded; Sir Colin, therefore, decided that it would be to the last degree imprudent to attempt such an undertaking with his reduced numbers, and became more than ever determined to confine his operations to the relief of the garrison.

The toughest part of Sir Colin's mission was still ahead—getting the women, children, and the sick and wounded out of the Residency. Figuring out the best way to do this was a source of much concern for the Commander-in-Chief. Many, including Outram and Hope Grant, urged him to attack the Kaisarbagh and seize the city first; however, 45 officers and 496 men from their small force had either been killed or injured. Given this, Sir Colin decided it would be extremely unwise to try such an endeavor with his limited numbers, and he became even more determined to focus his efforts on relieving the garrison.

That the Chief was right there can be no room for doubt. This force was barely strong enough for the service it had to perform. Every man was on duty day and night; there was no reserve to fall back upon; and had he listened to these proposals, and allowed himself to be drawn into complications in the city, it is more than probable that those he had come to succour would have been sacrificed. The wisdom of his decision was fully proved by subsequent events, and unreservedly acknowledged by Hope Grant and others who at the time differed from him in their ideas of the course which should be adopted.

There’s no doubt that the Chief was right. This force was barely strong enough for the job it needed to do. Every person was on duty around the clock; there were no reserves to rely on; and if he had listened to those proposals and gotten involved in the city's issues, it’s very likely that the people he had come to help would have been put at risk. The wisdom of his decision was clearly shown by what happened later, and it was fully acknowledged by Hope Grant and others who initially disagreed with him about the best course of action.

From the Dilkusha to the Residency was not less than five miles; every yard of the way had to be guarded, and the garrison at the former place was so attenuated that it had to be reinforced by the withdrawal of part of the 75th Foot from the Alambagh. Fortunately this could be done without dangerously weakening that post, as it had been lately strengthened by the arrival of a small body of troops from Cawnpore.

From the Dilkusha to the Residency was no less than five miles; every yard of the route needed to be guarded, and the force at the former location was so diminished that it required reinforcement by taking part of the 75th Foot away from the Alambagh. Fortunately, this could be accomplished without putting that post at serious risk, as it had recently been bolstered by the arrival of a small group of soldiers from Cawnpore.

It had now to be settled whether the evacuation should be effected by the route we had ourselves followed, which was circuitous and in places difficult for the wheeled vehicles necessary for the conveyance of the sick and wounded, and the women and children; or by the way past the barracks and Banks's house, which was shorter and had the advantage of a metalled road throughout. But unless Russell, whose brigade was in position at the barracks, could make the latter line secure, it would be too hazardous to adopt, and up to the present the reports from Russell had not been very promising. He had been hardly pressed on the 17th, and had sent word that he could make no[Page 191] impression on the enemy without heavy guns. Colonel Biddulph, the Deputy-Quartermaster-General, was therefore ordered to proceed to the barracks to ascertain how guns could best be sent to Russell's assistance, and report to the Commander-in-Chief on the whole situation. I was told to go with him and bring back the required information.

It had to be decided whether the evacuation should happen via the route we had taken, which was roundabout and difficult in some places for the vehicles needed to transport the sick, wounded, women, and children; or through the route past the barracks and Banks's house, which was shorter and had the benefit of a paved road the entire way. However, unless Russell, whose brigade was positioned at the barracks, could secure the latter route, it would be too risky to choose that option, and so far, the reports from Russell had not been very encouraging. He had been under heavy pressure on the 17th and had communicated that he couldn't make any impact on the enemy without heavy artillery. Colonel Biddulph, the Deputy-Quartermaster-General, was therefore instructed to go to the barracks to find out how to send artillery to assist Russell and to update the Commander-in-Chief on the overall situation. I was told to accompany him and gather the necessary information.

We found Russell in a very uncomfortable position, exposed to a hot fire and closely surrounded by the enemy, who were holding the British Infantry hospital and other buildings within a few yards of him.

We found Russell in a really tough spot, exposed to a hot fire and closely surrounded by the enemy, who were occupying the British Infantry hospital and other buildings just a few yards away from him.

I remained with Russell while Biddulph reconnoitred the ground between the barracks, the canal, and the Sikandarbagh. It was found covered with villages and walled enclosures, but he discovered a path secure from the enemy's fire, along which he was able to bring to Russell's assistance a 9-pounder gun, a 24-pounder howitzer, and four 5½ inch mortars. As the 9-pounder was fired, a round shot from one of the enemy's 18-pounders struck the mud wall immediately in front of it, scattering great clods of earth, which knocked over Bourchier and another officer; the round shot then hit Brigadier Russell, just grazing the back of his neck, actually cutting his watch-chain in two, and causing partial paralysis of the lower limbs for some days.

I stayed with Russell while Biddulph surveyed the area between the barracks, the canal, and the Sikandarbagh. It was found to be filled with villages and walled enclosures, but he found a path that was safe from enemy fire, allowing him to bring Russell a 9-pounder gun, a 24-pounder howitzer, and four 5½ inch mortars. As the 9-pounder was fired, a round shot from one of the enemy's 18-pounders hit the mud wall right in front of it, sending big chunks of earth flying, which knocked over Bourchier and another officer; the round shot then grazed Brigadier Russell's neck, actually cutting his watch-chain in two and causing him partial paralysis in his lower limbs for a few days.

Russell being for the time hors de combat, Biddulph assumed command, and ordered me to return to Head-Quarters, report what had happened, and inform Sir Colin that he intended to attack the hospital and endeavour to drive the enemy out of his immediate neighbourhood.

Russell being temporarily hors de combat, Biddulph took command and told me to go back to Head-Quarters, explain what had happened, and let Sir Colin know that he planned to attack the hospital and try to push the enemy away from the area nearby.

I never saw Biddulph again. I had scarcely delivered my message to the Chief when heavy firing was heard from the direction of the barracks, and shortly afterwards a determined attack was made by the rebels on the piquets placed between the Sikandarbagh and the barracks, which was repulsed by Remmington's troop of Horse Artillery, with two companies of Infantry belonging to the 23rd and 53rd Foot, brought up by the Commander-in-Chief himself, who expressed to Remmington his warm approval of the brilliant manner in which his troop had come into action.

I never saw Biddulph again. I had just delivered my message to the Chief when we heard heavy gunfire coming from the direction of the barracks, and soon after, the rebels launched a strong attack on the outposts positioned between Sikandarbagh and the barracks. This was pushed back by Remmington's troop of Horse Artillery, along with two companies of Infantry from the 23rd and 53rd Foot, brought in by the Commander-in-Chief himself, who praised Remmington for the impressive way his troop had engaged in the fight.

Sir Colin's Wise Decision Sir Colin now received information that Biddulph was killed, and that Hale, who succeeded to the command of the brigade, had attacked and taken the hospital, but had been forced to abandon it, as the thatched roof had been set on fire by the shells showered upon it by the enemy, who were keeping our troops constantly on the alert. This decided Sir Colin to give up the idea of withdrawing the relieved garrison by Banks's house.

Sir Colin's Smart Choice Sir Colin received news that Biddulph was dead, and that Hale, who took over command of the brigade, had launched an attack and captured the hospital. However, he had to abandon it because the thatched roof was set on fire by shells raining down from the enemy, who were keeping our troops on high alert. This led Sir Colin to reconsider his plan of withdrawing the relieved garrison through Banks's house.

Early on the following morning, the 19th, I was sent by the Commander-in-Chief to the Residency with a note for Sir James Outram, containing the information that arrangements for the withdrawal were now complete, and that conveyances for the women, children, sick, and wounded would be sent as soon as they arrived[Page 192] from the Dilkusha.

Early the next morning, the 19th, I was sent by the Commander-in-Chief to the Residency with a note for Sir James Outram, letting him know that the arrangements for the withdrawal were now complete, and that transport for the women, children, sick, and wounded would be sent as soon as they arrived[Page 192] from the Dilkusha.

Robert Napier When he had read the note Sir James questioned me as to the road, and asked me particularly if I had noticed the openings made in the walls of houses and enclosures, and whether I thought they were large enough for the guns, carts, and carriages to get through. I replied that I had not observed them very particularly, but I was inclined to think some of them were certainly rather small. My answer, to my astonishment, roused the ire of a wounded officer lying on a couch at the end of the room, for he wrathfully asked me whether I had measured the openings, and on my saying I had not, he added: 'You had better wait to give your opinion until you know what you are talking about; those openings were made by my orders, and I am quite sure they are the necessary size.' The officer was no other than Colonel Robert Napier, who, as I have already stated, was badly wounded on the 17th. I felt myself considerably snubbed, but Sir James kindly came to the rescue, and explained that I had merely answered his question and had not offered any opinion of my own: Colonel Napier, however, was not to be appeased, and I could plainly see that I had incurred his displeasure, and that he thought me a very bumptious youngster. I do not know whether the Chief of the Staff1 ever heard of it, but it was some satisfaction to me to find afterwards that I was right in my estimation of the size of those apertures, some of which had to be enlarged before the guns and carriages could pass through.

Robert Napier After reading the note, Sir James asked me about the road and specifically whether I had noticed the openings in the walls of houses and enclosures, and if I thought they were large enough for the guns, carts, and carriages to fit through. I responded that I hadn't looked at them too closely, but I thought some were definitely on the smaller side. To my surprise, my answer angered a wounded officer lying on a couch at the end of the room, who asked me if I had measured the openings. When I said I hadn't, he retorted, "You should wait to share your opinion until you know what you're talking about; those openings were made by my orders, and I'm sure they're the right size." The officer was none other than Colonel Robert Napier, who, as I mentioned earlier, had been badly wounded on the 17th. I felt quite put in my place, but Sir James kindly intervened, explaining that I had just answered his question and hadn't given my own opinion. However, Colonel Napier was not appeased, and I could tell I had earned his disapproval and that he regarded me as a rather arrogant young man. I don’t know if the Chief of the Staff1 ever heard about it, but it was somewhat satisfying to later realize that I was right about the size of those openings; some of them did need to be enlarged for the guns and carriages to pass through.

By sunset that day the women and children had been brought away and collected in the Sikandarbagh. Not a very agreeable resting-place, for though the 2,000 dead mutineers had been got out of sight, they were merely slightly covered over in a ditch which they themselves had recently dug outside the north wall to strengthen the defences. The survivors of the siege, however, had become too inured to horrors of all kinds, and were too thankful for their deliverance from the fate which for months had constantly threatened them, to be over-sensitive.

By sunset that day, the women and children had been taken away and gathered in the Sikandarbagh. It wasn't a very pleasant place to rest, because although the 2,000 dead rebels had been hidden from view, they were just barely covered in a ditch that they had recently dug outside the north wall to reinforce the defenses. The survivors of the siege, however, had become so accustomed to all sorts of horrors that they were too grateful for their escape from the fate that had been looming over them for months to be overly sensitive.

It was a sad little assemblage; all were more or less broken down and out of health, while many were widows or orphans, having left their nearest and dearest in the Residency burial-ground. Officers and men accorded them a respectful welcome, and by their efforts to help them showed how deeply they felt for their forlorn condition, while our old Chief had a comfortable tea prepared for them. When night set in, the road having been carefully reconnoitred beforehand, the melancholy convoy with its guard of soldiers started for the Dilkusha, where it arrived in safety, and was warmly received by the officers of the 9th Lancers and the rest of the garrison, who did all that circumstances[Page 193] would allow to make the ladies and children comfortable.

It was a sad little group; all of them were more or less worn out and unwell, and many were widows or orphans, having left their loved ones in the burial ground of the Residency. Officers and soldiers greeted them with respect, and their efforts to assist these individuals showed how much they cared about their unfortunate situation, while our old Chief had a nice tea prepared for them. When night fell, after carefully scouting the road in advance, the sorrowful convoy with its guard of soldiers set off for the Dilkusha, where they arrived safely and were warmly welcomed by the officers of the 9th Lancers and the rest of the garrison, who did everything within their means to make the ladies and children comfortable.

During the 20th, 21st, and 22nd, everything that was worth removing and for which carriage could be provided was brought away. Such a miscellaneous collection it was—jewels and other valuables belonging to the ex-royal family, twenty-five lakhs of treasure, stores of all kinds, including grain, and as many of the 200 guns discovered in the palace as were considered likely to be of use.

During the 20th, 21st, and 22nd, everything worth taking and that could be transported was removed. It was quite a mixed bag—jewels and other valuables belonging to the former royal family, twenty-five lakhs of treasure, various supplies, including grain, and as many of the 200 guns found in the palace as were deemed potentially useful.

Impressions on Visiting the Residency The troops were not moved away from the Residency till midnight on the 22nd, and I had several opportunities before then of going over the position, to every point of which some thrilling story was attached, and of renewing acquaintance with many of the garrison whom I had known before. Amongst them was Sam Lawrence, of the 32nd Foot, a friend of Peshawar days, who, for his gallant defence of the Redan, was awarded the Victoria Cross. I was shown Innes's advanced post, named after McLeod Innes,2 a talented Engineer officer, who also subsequently gained that coveted reward; the Cawnpore battery, where so many valuable lives had been sacrificed, and the room where Sir Henry Lawrence received his mortal wound; then I climbed up to the tower, from which a good view of the city and the posts held by the enemy could be obtained.

Thoughts on Visiting the Residency The troops weren't moved away from the Residency until midnight on the 22nd, and I had several chances before that to check out the position, each spot tied to some exciting story, and to reconnect with many of the garrison I had known before. Among them was Sam Lawrence, of the 32nd Foot, a friend from Peshawar days, who earned the Victoria Cross for his brave defense of the Redan. I was shown Innes's advanced post, named after McLeod Innes,2, a talented Engineer officer who also later received that prestigious award; the Cawnpore battery, where so many precious lives were lost, and the room where Sir Henry Lawrence received his fatal wound; then I climbed up to the tower, which offered a great view of the city and the enemy-held posts.

The more I saw, the more I wondered at what had been achieved by such a mere handful of men against such vast numbers. It was specially pleasant to me to listen to the praises bestowed on the officers of my own regiment, of whom nine were present when the siege commenced, and only one escaped to the end unwounded, while five were killed or died of their injuries. Of the other three, one was wounded three different times, and both the others once.

The more I saw, the more I was amazed by what such a small group of men accomplished against such overwhelming odds. I especially enjoyed hearing the praises given to the officers of my own regiment, of whom nine were there when the siege started, and only one made it to the end without being injured, while five were killed or died from their wounds. Of the other three, one was injured three times, and the other two were injured once.

All were loud, too, in their praises of the Engineer officers. During the latter part of the siege the rebels, finding they could not carry the position by assault, tried hard to undermine the defences; but our Engineers were ever on the watch, and countermined so successfully that they were able to frustrate the enemy's designs on almost every occasion.

Everyone was also very vocal in their praise of the Engineer officers. Toward the end of the siege, the rebels, realizing they couldn't take the position by force, made significant efforts to dig beneath the defenses; but our Engineers were always alert and countermined so effectively that they were able to thwart the enemy's plans almost every time.

The wonderful manner in which the Hindustani soldiers held their ground, notwithstanding that they were incessantly taunted by their mutinous comrades for aiding the Feringhis against their own people, was also much dilated upon.

The impressive way the Hindustani soldiers stood their ground, even though they were constantly mocked by their rebellious comrades for supporting the Feringhis against their own people, was also widely discussed.

The casualties during the siege were extremely heavy. When it commenced on the 1st of July, the strength of the garrison was 927 Europeans and 765 Natives. Of the former, 163 were civilians—brave and useful, but untrained to arms; of the latter, 118 were pensioners, many of whom were old and decrepit. Up to the arrival of Outram and Havelock (a period of eighty-seven days), 350 Europeans[Page 194] and 133 natives were either killed or died of wounds and disease. Of the noble and unselfish conduct of the ladies and soldiers' wives, everyone spoke in the highest terms and with the warmest appreciation. They suffered, without a murmur, the most terrible hardships; they devoted themselves to the sick and wounded in the hospital, and were ever ready to help in any way that was useful. Two ladies were killed, and nine died, during the siege.

The casualties during the siege were extremely high. When it started on July 1st, the garrison consisted of 927 Europeans and 765 Natives. Out of the Europeans, 163 were civilians—brave and helpful, but untrained for combat; among the Natives, 118 were pensioners, many of whom were old and frail. Up until the arrival of Outram and Havelock (a period of eighty-seven days), 350 Europeans[Page 194] and 133 Natives were either killed or died from injuries and disease. Everyone spoke highly of the noble and selfless actions of the ladies and soldiers' wives, expressing their warm appreciation. They endured the most terrible hardships without complaint; they dedicated themselves to caring for the sick and wounded in the hospital and were always ready to help in any way they could. Two ladies were killed and nine died during the siege.

The contemplation of the defence of Lucknow, and the realization of the noble qualities it called forth in the defenders, cannot but excite in the breast of every British man and woman, as it did in mine, feelings of pride and admiration. But what impressed me more than even the glorious defence was the foresight and ability of the man who made that defence possible.

The reflection on the defense of Lucknow and the recognition of the remarkable qualities it brought out in the defenders can’t help but stir feelings of pride and admiration in every British man and woman, just as it did in me. But what struck me even more than the heroic defense was the foresight and skill of the man who made that defense possible.

Henry Lawrence Henry Lawrence was, apparently, the only European in India who, from the very first, formed an accurate estimate of the extent of the danger which threatened our rule in the early part of 1857, and who, notwithstanding his thorough appreciation of the many good qualities of Native soldiers, was not misled into a mistaken belief in the absolute loyalty of the Native army. Fourteen years before Lawrence had predicted the Mutiny3 and the course it would take, and when events shaped themselves as he had foreseen, he gave it as his opinion that the disaffection would be general and widespread. But while his intimate knowledge of Native character led him to this conviction, so great was his influence with Natives—perhaps by reason of that knowledge—that he was able to delay the actual outbreak at Lucknow until his measures for the defence of the Residency were completed, and he persuaded a considerable number of sepoys, not only to continue in their allegiance, but to share with their European comrades the dangers and privations of the siege—a priceless service, for without their aid the defence could not have been made.

Henry Lawrence Henry Lawrence was apparently the only European in India who, from the very start, accurately understood the extent of the threat to our rule in early 1857. Despite recognizing the many positive traits of Native soldiers, he wasn't fooled into thinking the Native army was completely loyal. Fourteen years earlier, Lawrence had predicted the Mutiny3 and how it would unfold, and when things happened as he had anticipated, he believed that the unrest would be widespread and general. His deep understanding of Native character led him to this conclusion, but his significant influence with Natives—probably because of that knowledge—allowed him to postpone the actual uprising in Lucknow until his defensive preparations for the Residency were finished. He managed to convince a substantial number of sepoys not only to remain loyal but also to face the dangers and hardships of the siege alongside their European comrades—a priceless contribution, as their support was essential for the defense.



BRIGADIER-GENERAL SIR HENRY LAWRENCE, K.C.B.

BRIGADIER-GENERAL SIR HENRY LAWRENCE, K.C.B.

From
a photograph taken at Lucknow.

BRIGADIER-GENERAL SIR HENRY LAWRENCE, K.C.B.

BRIGADIER-GENERAL SIR HENRY LAWRENCE, K.C.B.

From a photo taken in Lucknow.



Lawrence as Statesman and Ruler In no part of India was there greater need for the services of a[Page 195] strong, enlightened, and sympathetic Ruler and Statesman. Difficult as were the positions in which many men in authority were placed in 1857, none was more difficult than that in which Henry Lawrence found himself when he took over the Chief Commissionership of Oudh in the spring of that year. His colleagues in the administration were at feud with each other, and by their ignorance of the proper methods of dealing with the people they had succeeded in alienating all classes.

Lawrence as Leader and Ruler In no part of India was there a greater need for the services of a[Page 195] strong, enlightened, and compassionate ruler and statesman. While many officials faced tough challenges in 1857, none had a more difficult situation than Henry Lawrence when he became the Chief Commissioner of Oudh in the spring of that year. His fellow administrators were in conflict with one another, and their lack of understanding of how to properly engage with the people resulted in alienating all classes.

While Lawrence was engaged in pouring oil on these troubled waters, and in earning the gratitude of the people by modifying the previous year's undue assessment, signs appeared of the disaffection, which had begun amongst the troops at Barrackpore, having spread to the cantonments in Oudh. Sir Henry met this new trouble in the same intelligent and conciliatory spirit as that in which he had dealt with his civil difficulties. He summoned to a durbar some Native officers who had displayed a very proper feeling of loyalty by arresting several fanatics who had tried to tamper with the soldiery, and he liberally rewarded them, pointing out at the same time in forcible language the disgrace to a soldier of being faithless to his salt. But while doing everything in his power to keep the Natives loyal, and with a certain amount of success, he did not neglect to take every possible precaution.

While Lawrence was busy calming tensions and earning the people's gratitude by adjusting the previous year's unfair assessment, signs of discontent began to appear among the troops at Barrackpore and spread to the cantonments in Oudh. Sir Henry faced this new issue with the same thoughtful and accommodating approach he had shown in addressing his civil challenges. He called a meeting with some Native officers who had shown commendable loyalty by arresting several fanatics trying to influence the soldiers, and he generously rewarded them, emphasizing in strong terms the disgrace a soldier faces if he is unfaithful to his duty. While he did everything he could to maintain the Natives' loyalty, achieving some success, he also made sure to take every possible precaution.

When first he heard of the outbreak at Meerut, he telegraphed to the Governor-General advising him to send for British troops to China and Ceylon, and to call on the Nepalese to assist; at the same time he applied to Lord Canning for, and obtained, the rank of Brigadier-General, which gave him military as well as civil control—a very necessary measure, for none of the senior military officers in Oudh were men to be relied upon; indeed, as in so many other places, they had to be effaced when the troubles began.

When he first heard about the outbreak in Meerut, he sent a telegram to the Governor-General suggesting that he request British troops to be sent to China and Ceylon, and to ask the Nepalese for their support. At the same time, he applied to Lord Canning for and received the rank of Brigadier-General, which gave him both military and civil authority—a crucial step, since none of the senior military officers in Oudh were trustworthy; in fact, as happened in many other locations, they had to be dismissed when the troubles started.

Very early in the day Henry Lawrence commenced his preparations for the defence of the Residency; he cleared the ground of all cover in its immediate vicinity, as far as it was possible to do so; he fortified it, mounted guns, stored ammunition, powder, and firewood; arranged for a proper supply of water; collected food, which proved sufficient, not only for the original number of refugees, but for the 3,000 additional mouths belonging to Outram and Havelock's force; in fact, he did everything which forethought and ingenuity could suggest to enable the garrison to hold out in what he foresaw would be a long and deadly struggle against fearful odds. There was no fort, as there was at Agra, capable of sheltering every European in Oudh, and strong enough to defy any number of mutineers, nor was there, as at Cawnpore, a well-stocked and strongly-fortified magazine to depend upon. But Henry Lawrence was not cast down by the difficulties which surrounded him; he was fully alive to the danger, but he recognized that his best, indeed, his only, chance of delaying the inevitable rebellion until (as he hoped) assistance might arrive, was to show a[Page 196] bold front.

Very early in the day, Henry Lawrence started getting ready to defend the Residency. He cleared the area around it of all cover as much as he could, fortified the location, set up guns, and stored ammunition, gunpowder, and firewood. He organized a proper water supply and collected food, which was enough not just for the original group of refugees but also for the additional 3,000 people from Outram and Havelock's forces. Essentially, he did everything he could think of to ensure that the garrison could endure what he anticipated would be a long and brutal struggle against overwhelming odds. There was no fort like there was in Agra that could shelter all the Europeans in Oudh and withstand any number of mutineers, nor was there a well-stocked and strongly fortified magazine as in Cawnpore. However, Henry Lawrence wasn't discouraged by the difficulties surrounding him; he was fully aware of the danger but understood that his best, indeed his only, chance of delaying the inevitable rebellion until (as he hoped) help could arrive was to put on a brave front.

On the 27th May Lawrence wrote to Lord Canning as follows: 'Hitherto the country has been kept quiet, and we have played the Irregulars against the line regiments; but being constituted of exactly the same material, the taint is fast pervading them, and in a few weeks, if not days—unless Delhi be in the interim captured—there will be but one feeling throughout the army, a feeling that our prestige is gone, and that feeling will be more dangerous than any other. Religion, fear, hatred, one and all have their influence; but there is still a reverence for the Company's ikbâl4—when it is gone we shall have few friends indeed. The tone and talk of many have greatly altered during the last few days, and we are now asked, almost in terms of insolence, whether Delhi is captured, or when it will be. It was only just after the Kabul massacre, and when we hesitated to advance through the Khyber, that, in my memory, such a tone ever before prevailed.5

On May 27th, Lawrence wrote to Lord Canning as follows: 'So far, the country has remained calm, and we’ve used the Irregulars against the regular regiments; however, since they are made up of the same people, the negativity is quickly spreading among them. In just a few weeks, if not days—unless Delhi is captured in the meantime—there will be a widespread sentiment throughout the army that our reputation is lost, and that feeling will be more dangerous than anything else. Religion, fear, and hatred all have their effects, but there is still some respect for the Company's ikbâl4—once that is gone, we'll have very few allies left. The attitudes and conversations of many have changed significantly in the past few days, and we're now being asked, almost arrogantly, whether Delhi has been captured or when it will be. It's only been shortly since the Kabul massacre, and when we hesitated to move through the Khyber, that I can remember such a tone ever existing prevailed.5'

Feeling all this so strongly, it is the more remarkable that Henry Lawrence never lost heart, but struggled bravely on 'to preserve the soldiery to their duty and the people to their allegiance,' while at the same time he was, as I have shown, making every conceivable preparation to meet the outbreak whenever it should come.

Feeling all this so intensely, it’s even more impressive that Henry Lawrence never lost hope, but fought courageously "to keep the soldiers committed to their duty and the people loyal to their allegiance," while at the same time, as I’ve shown, he was making every possible preparation to handle the uprising whenever it should occur.

Lawrence's Friendliness for Natives There is no doubt that Henry Lawrence was a very remarkable man; his friendly feeling for Natives, and his extraordinary insight into their character, together with his military training and his varied political experience, peculiarly fitted him to be at the head of a Government at such a crisis.6

Lawrence's Kindness to Locals There’s no doubt that Henry Lawrence was an exceptional person; his friendliness towards Natives and his deep understanding of their character, along with his military training and diverse political experience, uniquely qualified him to lead a government during such a crisis.6

All this, however, is a digression from my narrative, to which I must now return.

All of this, though, is a sidetrack from my story, to which I must now return.

While the withdrawal was being effected, Peel's guns distracted the enemy's attention from the proceedings by keeping up a perpetual and destructive fire on the Kaisarbagh, thus leading the rebels to believe that our whole efforts were directed to taking that place. By the evening of the 22nd three large breaches had been made, and the enemy naturally expected an assault to take place the next morning. But the object of that heavy fire had already been accomplished; the women[Page 197] and children, the sick and wounded, were all safe in the Dilkusha; no one was left in the Residency but the garrison, on duty for the last time at the posts they had so long and so bravely defended, and they were to leave at midnight.

While the withdrawal was happening, Peel's artillery kept the enemy occupied by continuously firing on the Kaisarbagh, which made the rebels think that all our efforts were focused on capturing that area. By the evening of the 22nd, three large breaches had been created, and the enemy naturally expected an attack the next morning. But the goal of that heavy fire had already been achieved; the women, children, the sick and wounded were all safe in the Dilkusha; no one remained in the Residency except the garrison, on duty for the last time at the posts they had defended bravely for so long, and they were set to leave at midnight.

Evacuation of the Residency As the clock struck twelve, in the deepest silence and with the utmost caution, the gallant little band evacuated the place, and passed down the long line of posts, first those held by Outram's and Havelock's men, and then those occupied by the relieving force, until they reached the Martinière Park. As they moved on, Outram's and Havelock's troops fell in behind, and were followed by the relieving force, which brought up the rear. The scheme for this very delicate movement had been most carefully considered beforehand by General Mansfield, the clever Chief of the Staff, who clearly explained to all concerned the parts they had to play, and emphatically impressed upon them that success depended on his directions being followed to the letter, and on their being carried out without the slightest noise or confusion.

Evacuating the Residency As the clock struck midnight, in complete silence and with the utmost caution, the brave group evacuated the area and moved down the long line of outposts, first those held by Outram's and Havelock's troops, and then those occupied by the relieving force, until they reached Martinière Park. As they continued, Outram's and Havelock's soldiers fell in behind them, followed by the relieving force bringing up the rear. The plan for this very delicate operation had been meticulously prepared in advance by General Mansfield, the skilled Chief of the Staff, who clearly explained to everyone involved their roles and strongly emphasized that success relied on strictly following his instructions and executing them without any noise or confusion.

Sir Colin Campbell and Hope Grant, surrounded by their respective staffs, watched the movement from a position in front of the Sikandarbagh, where a body of Artillery and Infantry were held in readiness for any emergency. When the time arrived for the advanced piquets to be drawn in, the enemy seemed to have become suspicious, for they suddenly opened fire with guns and musketry from the Kaisarbagh, and for a moment we feared our plans had been discovered. Fortunately, one of Peel's rocket-carts was still in position beyond the Moti Mahal, and the celerity with which the officer in charge replied to this burst of fire apparently convinced the enemy we were holding our ground, for the firing soon ceased, and we breathed again.

Sir Colin Campbell and Hope Grant, along with their teams, watched the action from a spot in front of the Sikandarbagh, where a group of artillery and infantry stood ready for any emergency. When it was time to pull in the forward pickets, the enemy seemed to get suspicious, as they suddenly opened fire with guns and rifles from the Kaisarbagh, and for a moment, we feared our plans had been uncovered. Luckily, one of Peel's rocket-carts was still positioned beyond the Moti Mahal, and the quick response from the officer in charge to this barrage of fire apparently convinced the enemy that we were holding our position, as the shooting soon stopped, and we could relax again.

Mansfield had taken the precaution to have with him an officer from Hale's brigade, which was on the left rear of our line of posts, that he might go back and tell his Brigadier when the proper time came for the latter to move off in concert with the rest of the force; but this officer had not, apparently, understood that he would have to return in the dark, and when Mansfield directed him to carry out the duty for which he had been summoned, he replied that he did not think he could find his way. Mansfield was very angry, and with reason, for it was of supreme importance that the retirement should be simultaneous, and turning to me, he said: 'You have been to Hale's position: do you think you could find your way there now?' I answered: 'I think I can.' Upon which he told me to go at once, and ordered the officer belonging to the brigade to accompany me. I then asked the General whether he wished me to retire with Hale's party or return to him. He replied: 'Return to me here, that I may be sure the order has been received.'

Mansfield had taken the precaution of bringing along an officer from Hale's brigade, which was positioned at the left rear of our line of posts, so he could go back and inform his Brigadier when it was the right time for him to move with the rest of the force. However, this officer didn’t seem to understand that he would have to find his way back in the dark, and when Mansfield instructed him to carry out the duty for which he had been called, he replied that he didn’t think he could find his way. Mansfield was understandably very angry, as it was crucial that the retirement happen simultaneously. Turning to me, he said, "You've been to Hale's position: do you think you could find your way there now?" I said, "I think I can." He then told me to go immediately and ordered the brigade officer to accompany me. I then asked the General if he wanted me to retire with Hale's party or return to him. He replied, "Return to me here, so I can be sure the order has been received."

A Hazardous Duty I rode off with my companion, and soon found I had undertaken to perform a far from easy, and rather hazardous, duty. I had only been[Page 198] over the ground twice—going to and returning from the position on the 18th—and most of the villages then standing had since been burnt. There was no road, but any number of paths, which seemed to lead in every direction but the right one; at last, however, we arrived at our destination, I delivered the order to Colonel Hale, and set out on my return journey alone. My consternation was great on reaching the Sikandarbagh, where I had been ordered to report myself to Mansfield, to find it deserted by the Generals, their staffs, and the troops; not a creature was to be seen. I then began to understand what a long time it had taken me to carry out the errand upon which I had been sent, much longer, no doubt, than Mansfield thought possible. I could not help feeling that I was not in at all a pleasant position, for any moment the enemy might discover the force had departed, and come out in pursuit. As it turned out, however, happily for me, they remained for some hours in blissful ignorance of our successful retirement, and, instead of following in our wake, continued to keep up a heavy fire on the empty Residency and other abandoned posts. Turning my horse's head in the direction I knew the troops must have taken, I galloped as fast as he could carry me until I overtook the rear guard just as it was crossing the canal, along the right bank of which the greater part of the force had been placed in position. When I reported myself to Mansfield, he confessed that he had forgotten all about me, which somewhat surprised me, for I had frequently noticed how exactly he remembered the particulars of any order he gave, no matter how long a time it took to execute it.

A Dangerous Job I rode off with my companion and quickly realized that I had taken on a task that was quite challenging and somewhat dangerous. I had only been over the ground twice—going to and coming back from the position on the 18th—and most of the villages that were there before had since been burned down. There was no road, only a bunch of paths that seemed to lead in every direction except the right one; eventually, though, we reached our destination. I delivered the order to Colonel Hale and set out on my return journey alone. I was really worried when I arrived at Sikandarbagh, where I was supposed to report to Mansfield, only to find it completely deserted—no Generals, no staff, no troops; not a soul was to be seen. I started to realize just how long it took me to carry out the task I was sent on, much longer than Mansfield probably expected. I couldn’t shake the feeling that I was in a pretty bad spot, as the enemy could discover that our force had left at any moment and come after us. Fortunately for me, they remained blissfully unaware of our successful retreat for a few hours and, instead of following us, kept firing heavily at the empty Residency and other abandoned positions. Turning my horse in the direction I knew the troops must have gone, I galloped as fast as he could go until I caught up with the rear guard just as it crossed the canal, where most of our force had been positioned. When I reported to Mansfield, he admitted that he had completely forgotten about me, which surprised me a bit since I had often noticed how well he remembered the details of any order he gave, no matter how long it took to carry it out.






CHAPTER XXVI.

1857

The Relief of the Lucknow garrison was now accomplished—a grand achievement indeed, of which any Commander might well be proud, carried out as it had been in every particular as originally planned, thus demonstrating with what care each detail had been thought out, and how admirably movement after movement had been executed.

The relief of the Lucknow garrison has now been achieved—a remarkable accomplishment that any commander would be proud of, executed just as it was originally planned, showing how carefully every detail was considered and how perfectly each move was carried out.

November the 23rd was spent in arranging for the march to Cawnpore, and in organizing the division which was to be left in position, under Outram, in and about the Alambagh; it was to be strong enough to hold its own, and to keep open communication with Head-Quarters.

November 23rd was spent getting ready for the march to Cawnpore and organizing the division that would stay in place under Outram, in and around the Alambagh. It needed to be strong enough to defend itself and maintain communication with Headquarters.



Click Map to enlarge
THE RELIEF OF LUCKNOW, November, 1857

THE RELIEF OF LUCKNOW, November, 1857

Click Map to zoom in
THE RELIEF OF LUCKNOW, November, 1857

THE RELIEF OF LUCKNOW, November, 1857



My time was chiefly occupied in assisting in the distribution of transport, and in carrying out Hope Grant's directions as to the order in which the troops were to march. Round the Dilkusha the scene of confusion was bewildering in the extreme; women, children, sick and wounded men, elephants, camels, bullocks and bullock-carts, grass-cutters'[Page 199] ponies, and doolies with their innumerable bearers, all crowded together. To marshal these incongruous elements and get them started seemed at first to be an almost hopeless task. At last the families were got off in two bodies, each under a married officer whose wife was of the party, and through whom all possible arrangements for their comfort were to be made, and their place on the line of march, position in camp, etc., determined.

My time was mostly spent helping with the distribution of transport and following Hope Grant's orders on how the troops were supposed to march. Around the Dilkusha, the chaos was incredibly confusing; there were women, children, sick and wounded men, elephants, camels, oxen, and carts, grass-cutters' ponies, and doolies with their countless bearers all piled together. Organizing these mismatched elements and getting them moving appeared to be an almost impossible task at first. Eventually, the families were organized into two groups, each led by a married officer whose wife was with them, and through whom all possible arrangements for their comfort would be made, including their spot in the march line, position in camp, and so on.

In the afternoon the force was gratified by the issue of a General Order by the Commander-in-Chief thanking the troops for the manner in which the very difficult and harassing service of the Relief had been performed. Alluding to the withdrawal, he said it was a model of discipline and exactitude, the result of which was that the rebels were completely thrown off their guard, and the retirement had been successfully carried out in the face of 50,000 of the enemy along a most inconveniently narrow and tortuous lane—the only line of retreat open.

In the afternoon, the troops were pleased to receive a General Order from the Commander-in-Chief, thanking them for the way they handled the challenging and exhausting service of the Relief. He mentioned that the withdrawal was a perfect example of discipline and precision, which resulted in the rebels being completely caught off guard. The retreat was successfully executed in front of 50,000 enemies along a very narrow and winding path—the only route available for retreat.

Death of General Havelock The following morning Hope Grant's division marched to the Alambagh. On arrival there, our transport was sent back for Outram's division, which joined us the morning after, bringing with it General Havelock's dead body. He had died the previous day—'a martyr to duty,' as the Commander-in-Chief expressed it in his General Order. The brave old soldier, who had served with distinction in four campaigns before the Mutiny—Burma, Afghanistan, Gwalior, and the Sutlej—was buried inside the Alambagh enclosure, respected and honoured by the whole army, but more especially by those who had shared in his noble efforts to rescue the Lucknow garrison.

Death of General Havelock The next morning, Hope Grant's division marched to the Alambagh. When we got there, our transport was sent back for Outram's division, which joined us the following morning, bringing with it General Havelock's dead body. He had died the day before—“a martyr to duty,” as the Commander-in-Chief stated in his General Order. The brave old soldier, who had served with distinction in four campaigns before the Mutiny—Burma, Afghanistan, Gwalior, and the Sutlej—was buried inside the Alambagh enclosure, respected and honored by the whole army, especially by those who had shared in his noble efforts to rescue the Lucknow garrison.

A wash and change of clothes, in which we were now able to indulge, were much-appreciated luxuries. From the time we had left the Alambagh every officer and man had been on duty without cessation, and slept, if they slept at all, on the spot where the close of day found them fighting.

A wash and a change of clothes, which we could now enjoy, were greatly appreciated luxuries. Since leaving the Alambagh, every officer and soldier had been on duty nonstop and slept, if they actually slept, right where they were when the day ended and the fighting stopped.

It was a rough experience, but, notwithstanding the exposure, hard work, and a minimum of sleep, there was no great sickness amongst the troops. The personal interest which every man in the force felt in the rescue of his countrymen and countrywomen, in addition to the excitement at all times inseparable from war, was a stimulant which enabled all ranks to bear up in a marvellous manner against long-continued privations and hardships—for body and mind are equally affected by will—and there was no doubt about the will in this instance to endure anything that was necessary for the speedy achievement of the object in view. Personally, I was in the best of health, and though I almost lived on horseback, I never felt inconvenience or fatigue.

It was a tough experience, but despite the exposure, hard work, and lack of sleep, there wasn't a lot of serious illness among the troops. The personal commitment each person felt to save their fellow citizens, along with the excitement that always comes with war, was a motivation that helped everyone handle the long periods of deprivation and hardships remarkably well—both the body and mind are influenced by determination—and there was no doubt about the determination in this case to endure whatever was necessary to quickly achieve the goal. Personally, I was in great health, and even though I spent almost all my time on horseback, I never felt discomfort or tiredness.

The 25th and 26th were busy days, spent in allotting camp equipage and making the necessary arrangements for fitting out Outram's force—4,000[Page 200] strong, with 25 guns and howitzers and 10 mortars.

The 25th and 26th were hectic days, focused on distributing camp equipment and making the essential preparations for outfitting Outram's force—4,000[Page 200] strong, with 25 guns, howitzers, and 10 mortars.

At 11 a.m. on the 27th we started on our return march towards Cawnpore.1 It was a strange procession. Everything in the shape of wheeled carriage and laden animals had to keep to the road, which was narrow, and for the greater part of the way raised, for the country at that time of the year was partly under water, and jhils were numerous. Thus, the column was about twelve miles in length, so that the head had almost reached the end of the march before the rear could start. Delays were constant and unavoidable, and the time each day's journey occupied, as well as the mode of conveyance—country carts innocent of springs—must have been most trying to delicate women and wounded men. Fortunately there was no rain; but the sun was still hot in the daytime, causing greater sensitiveness to the bitter cold at night.

At 11 a.m. on the 27th, we began our return march to Cawnpore.1 It was a strange procession. Everything with wheels and pack animals had to stay on the road, which was narrow and mostly elevated because at that time of year, a lot of the area was underwater, and there were plenty of jhils. As a result, the column stretched about twelve miles long, so the front nearly reached the end of the march before the rear could even begin. Delays were frequent and unavoidable, and the time it took to complete each day's journey, along with the mode of transport—country carts without springs—must have been incredibly frustrating for sensitive women and injured men. Thankfully, it didn't rain; however, the sun was still very hot during the day, making the cold at night feel even harsher.

My place was with the advance guard, as I had to go on ahead to mark out the camp and have ramps got ready to enable the carts to be taken off the raised roads. Soon after leaving the Alambagh we heard the sound of guns from the direction of Cawnpore, and when we reached Bani bridge (about thirteen miles on, where a small post had been established) the officer in command told us that there had been heavy firing all that day and the day before.

My role was with the forward team, as I needed to move ahead to set up the camp and prepare ramps so that the carts could be taken off the elevated roads. Shortly after leaving the Alambagh, we heard gunfire coming from the direction of Cawnpore. When we arrived at Bani bridge (about thirteen miles ahead, where a small outpost had been established), the officer in charge informed us that there had been heavy firing all that day and the day before.

Camp was pitched about two miles further on late in the afternoon; but my work was not over till midnight, when the rear guard arrived, for it took all that time to form up the miscellaneous convoy.

Camp was set up about two miles farther along late in the afternoon; but my work wasn’t finished until midnight, when the rear guard arrived, since it took all that time to organize the mixed convoy.

Next morning we made an early start, in order to reach our destination, if possible, before dark. Having received no information from Cawnpore for more than ten days, the Commander-in-Chief was beginning to feel extremely anxious, and the firing we had heard the previous day had greatly increased his uneasiness, for there seemed little room for doubt that the Gwalior rebels were making an attack on that place. The probability that this would happen had been foreseen by Sir Colin, and was one of his reasons for determining to limit the operations at Lucknow to the withdrawal of the garrison.

The next morning, we got an early start to try to reach our destination before dark. After not hearing any updates from Cawnpore for over ten days, the Commander-in-Chief was growing quite anxious. The gunfire we had heard the day before added to his worry, as it seemed pretty clear that the Gwalior rebels were attacking that location. Sir Colin had anticipated this possibility, which was one of his reasons for deciding to focus the efforts at Lucknow on withdrawing the garrison.

Appeals from Cawnpore We had not proceeded far, when firing was again heard, and by noon[Page 201] all doubt as to its meaning was ended by a Native who brought a note marked 'Most urgent,' written in Greek character, and addressed to 'General Sir Colin Campbell, or any officer commanding troops on the Lucknow road.' This turned out to be a communication from General Windham, who had been placed in command at Cawnpore when the Commander-in-Chief left for Lucknow on the 9th of November. It was dated two days earlier, and told of an attack having been made, that there had been hard fighting, and that the troops were sorely pressed; in conclusion Windham earnestly besought the Chief to come to his assistance with the least possible delay.

Appeals from Kanpur We hadn't gone far when we started hearing gunfire again, and by noon[Page 201] all uncertainty about it was cleared up by a Native who brought a note marked 'Most urgent,' written in Greek characters and addressed to 'General Sir Colin Campbell, or any officer in charge of troops on the Lucknow road.' This turned out to be a message from General Windham, who was in command at Cawnpore after the Commander-in-Chief left for Lucknow on November 9th. It was dated two days earlier and described an attack that had taken place, mentioned that there had been fierce fighting, and noted that the troops were under severe pressure; Windham concluded by urgently requesting the Chief to come to his aid as quickly as possible.

Two other letters followed in quick succession, the last containing the disappointing and disheartening intelligence that Windham, with the greater part of his troops, had been driven into the entrenchment, plainly showing that the city and cantonment were in the possession of the enemy, and suggesting the possibility of the bridge of boats having been destroyed.

Two other letters came in quickly, the last one bringing the disappointing and upsetting news that Windham, along with most of his troops, had been pushed back into the entrenchment, clearly indicating that the city and the camp were in the hands of the enemy, and hinting that the bridge of boats might have been destroyed.

Sir Colin, becoming impatient to learn the exact state of the case, desired me to ride on as fast as I could to the river; and if I found the bridge broken, to return at once, but if it were still in existence to cross over, try and see the General, and bring back all the information I could obtain.

Sir Colin, getting impatient to find out the exact situation, asked me to ride as quickly as possible to the river. If I found the bridge broken, I was to come back immediately, but if it was still standing, I should cross over, try to see the General, and bring back as much information as I could gather.

I took a couple of sowars with me, and on reaching the river I found, under cover of a hastily-constructed tête-de-pont, a guard of British soldiers, under Lieutenant Budgen, of the 82nd Foot, whose delight at seeing me was most effusively expressed. He informed me that the bridge was still intact, but that it was unlikely it would long remain so, for Windham was surrounded except on the river side, and the garrison was 'at its last gasp.'

I brought a couple of sowars with me, and when I got to the river, I found a group of British soldiers taking cover under a quickly built tête-de-pont, led by Lieutenant Budgen of the 82nd Foot, who was extremely happy to see me. He told me that the bridge was still standing, but it probably wouldn't last much longer because Windham was surrounded except on the river side, and the garrison was 'at its last gasp.'

I pushed across and got into the entrenchment, which was situated on the river immediately below the bridge of boats. The confusion inside was great, and I could hardly force my way through the mass of men who thronged round my horse, eager to learn when help might be expected; they were evidently demoralized by the ill-success which had attended the previous days' operations, and it was not until I reassured them with the news that the Commander-in-Chief was close at hand that I managed to get through the crowd and deliver my message to the General.

I pushed through and got into the trench, which was located on the river just below the floating bridge. Inside was chaotic, and I could barely make my way through the crowd of men surrounding my horse, anxious to know when help would arrive; they were clearly demoralized by the failures of the previous day's operations. It wasn't until I reassured them with the news that the Commander-in-Chief was nearby that I was able to get through the crowd and deliver my message to the General.

General Windham The 'hero of the Redan,' whom I now saw for the first time, though the fame of his achievement had preceded him to India, was a handsome, cheery-looking man of about forty-eight years of age, who appeared, in contrast to the excited multitude I had passed, thoroughly calm and collected; and notwithstanding the bitter disappointment it must have been to him to be obliged to give up the city and retire with his wholly inadequate force into the entrenchment, he was not dispirited, and had all his wits about him. In a few words he told me what had[Page 202] happened, and desired me to explain to the Commander-in-Chief that, although the city and cantonment had to be abandoned, he was still holding the enemy in check round the assembly-rooms (which were situated outside and to the west front of the entrenchment), thus preventing their approaching the bridge of boats near enough to injure it.

General Windham The 'hero of the Redan,' whom I was now seeing for the first time, even though his fame had already reached India, was a handsome, cheerful-looking man about forty-eight years old. He seemed completely calm and collected, especially compared to the excited crowd I had just passed. Despite the bitter disappointment of having to abandon the city and retreat with his poorly equipped forces into the entrenchment, he wasn’t discouraged and was fully alert. In just a few words, he told me what had [Page 202] happened and asked me to explain to the Commander-in-Chief that, although they had to give up the city and cantonment, he was still holding the enemy at bay around the assembly-rooms (which were located outside and to the west of the entrenchment), preventing them from getting close enough to damage the bridge of boats.

I was about to start back to Head-Quarters, when suddenly loud cheers broke from the men, caused by the appearance in their midst of the Commander-in-Chief himself. After I had left him, Sir Colin became every minute more impatient and fidgety, and ere long started off after me, accompanied by Mansfield and some other staff officers. He was recognized by the soldiers, some of whom had known him in the Crimea, and they at once surrounded him, giving enthusiastic expression to their joy at seeing him again.

I was just about to head back to Headquarters when loud cheers erupted from the men, triggered by the arrival of the Commander-in-Chief himself. After I left him, Sir Colin grew more and more impatient and restless, and soon set off after me, joined by Mansfield and a few other staff officers. The soldiers recognized him, some of whom had known him from the Crimea, and they immediately gathered around him, expressing their excitement at seeing him again.

The Chief could now judge for himself as to how matters stood, so, as there was plenty of work in camp for me, I started back to rejoin my own General. On my way I stopped to speak to Budgen, whom I found in a most dejected frame of mind. Unfortunately for him, he had used exactly the same words in describing the situation at Cawnpore to Sir Colin as he had to me, which roused the old Chief's indignation, and he flew at the wretched man as he was sometimes apt to do when greatly put out, rating him soundly, and asking him how he dared to say of Her Majesty's troops that they were 'at their last gasp.'

The Chief could now see for himself how things were going, so since there was a lot of work for me in camp, I headed back to rejoin my General. On the way, I stopped to talk to Budgen, who I found in a really downcast mood. Unfortunately for him, he had used the exact same words to describe the situation at Cawnpore to Sir Colin as he had to me, which made the old Chief really angry. He went after the poor guy like he sometimes did when he was really upset, scolding him sternly and asking how he could say that Her Majesty's troops were 'at their last gasp.'

I found Hope Grant about four miles from the river bank, where the camp was being pitched. Sir Colin did not return till after dark, when we were told that the rest of Windham's troops had been driven inside the entrenchment, which only confirmed what we had suspected, for flames were seen mounting high into the air from the direction of the assembly-rooms, which, it now turned out, had been set on fire by the enemy—an unfortunate occurrence, as in them had been stored the camp equipage, kits, clothing, etc., belonging to most of the regiments which had crossed the Ganges into Oudh. But what was more serious still was the fact that the road was now open for the rebels' heavy guns, which might be brought to bear upon the bridge of boats at any moment.

I found Hope Grant about four miles from the riverbank, where the camp was being set up. Sir Colin didn't return until after dark, when we learned that the rest of Windham's troops had been forced inside the entrenchment, which confirmed our suspicions. Flames were seen rising high into the air from the direction of the assembly rooms, which, as it turned out, had been set on fire by the enemy—an unfortunate event since those rooms had stored the camp equipment, kits, clothing, and other belongings of most of the regiments that had crossed the Ganges into Oudh. But even more serious was the fact that the road was now open for the rebels' heavy guns, which could target the bridge of boats at any moment.

Owing to the length of the march (thirty-two or thirty-three miles), some of the carts and the heavy guns did not arrive till daybreak. Scarcely had the bullocks been unyoked, before the guns were ordered on to the river bank, where they formed up, and so effectually plied the enemy with shot and shell that the passage of the river was rendered comparatively safe for our troops.

Due to the long march (thirty-two or thirty-three miles), some of the carts and heavy artillery didn't arrive until dawn. Hardly had the oxen been unyoked before the guns were ordered to the riverbank, where they lined up and effectively bombarded the enemy with shots and shells, making the river crossing relatively safe for our troops.

When the men had breakfasted, the order was given to cross over. Sir Colin accompanied the column as far as the bridge, and then directed Hope Grant, with the Horse Artillery and most of the Cavalry, Bourchier's battery and Adrian Hope's brigade, to move to the south-east[Page 203] of the city and take up a position on the open ground which stretched from the river to the Grand Trunk Road, with the canal between us and the enemy. By this arrangement communication with Allahabad, which had been temporarily interrupted, was restored, a very necessary measure, for until the road was made safe, reinforcements, which on account of the paucity of transport had to be sent up in small detachments, could not reach us, nor could the families and sick soldiers be sent down country.

When the men finished breakfast, the order was given to cross over. Sir Colin went with the group to the bridge and then instructed Hope Grant, along with the Horse Artillery and most of the Cavalry, Bourchier's battery, and Adrian Hope's brigade, to move to the southeast[Page 203] of the city and set up a position on the open ground that stretched from the river to the Grand Trunk Road, with the canal separating us from the enemy. This arrangement restored communication with Allahabad, which had been temporarily cut off, a crucial step because until the road was secured, reinforcements, which due to limited transport had to be sent in small groups, couldn’t reach us, nor could the families and sick soldiers be evacuated.

The Passage of the Ganges The passage of the huge convoy over the bridge of boats, under the protection of Greathed's brigade, was a most tedious business, occupying thirty hours, from 3 p.m. on the 29th till about 9 p.m. on the 30th, when Inglis brought over the rear guard. During its transit the enemy fired occasionally on the bridge, and tried to destroy it by floating fire-rafts down the river; fortunately they did not succeed, and the convoy arrived without accident on the ground set apart for it in the rear of our camp.

The Journey of the Ganges The passage of the large convoy over the bridge of boats, under the protection of Greathed's brigade, was a very slow process, taking thirty hours, from 3 p.m. on the 29th until about 9 p.m. on the 30th, when Inglis brought over the rear guard. During this time, the enemy occasionally fired on the bridge and attempted to destroy it by sending fire-rafts down the river; luckily, they were unsuccessful, and the convoy arrived safely at the designated area behind our camp.

For the three first days of December I was chiefly employed in reconnoitring with the Native Cavalry the country to our left and rear, to make sure that the rebels had no intention of attempting to get round that flank, and in making arrangements for the despatch of the families, the sick, and the wounded, to Allahabad en route to Calcutta. We improvised covers for some of the carts, in which we placed the women and children and the worst cases amongst the men; but with all our efforts to render them less unfit for the purpose, these carts remained but rough and painful conveyances for delicate women and suffering men to travel in.

For the first three days of December, I mostly spent my time scouting with the Native Cavalry in the area to our left and behind us, to ensure that the rebels weren't planning to flank us, and organizing the transport of families, the sick, and the wounded to Allahabad on their way to Calcutta. We quickly put together some makeshift coverings for a few carts, placing women and children inside, along with the most critical cases among the men; however, despite our efforts to make them more suitable for travel, those carts remained uncomfortable and difficult for fragile women and suffering men to ride in.

We were not left altogether unmolested by the enemy during these days. Round shot kept continually falling in our midst, particularly in the neighbourhood of the Commander-in-Chief's tent, the exact position of which must have somehow been made known to the rebels, otherwise they could not have distinguished it from the rest of the camp, as it was an unpretentious hill tent, such as was then used by subaltern officers.

We weren't entirely left alone by the enemy during these days. Cannonballs kept falling around us, especially near the Commander-in-Chief's tent, which must have somehow been revealed to the rebels. Otherwise, they couldn't have singled it out from the rest of the camp since it was just a simple hill tent, like those used by junior officers at that time.

Until the women left camp on the night of the 3rd December, we were obliged to act on the defensive, and were not able to stop the enemy's fire completely, though we managed to keep it under control by occupying the point called Generalganj, and strengthening the piquets on our right and left flank. On the 4th a second unsuccessful attempt was made to destroy the bridge of boats by means of fire-rafts, and on the 5th there were several affairs at the outposts, all of which ended in the discomfiture of the rebels without any great loss to ourselves; Lieutenant-Colonel Ewart of the 93rd Highlanders, who lost his arm on the 1st, and Captain Crutchley of the same regiment, who was severely wounded, being the only casualties amongst the officers.

Until the women left camp on the night of December 3rd, we had to stay on the defensive and couldn’t completely stop the enemy's fire, though we managed to keep it under control by occupying the point called Generalganj and strengthening the outposts on our right and left flanks. On the 4th, there was a second unsuccessful attempt to destroy the bridge of boats using fire-rafts, and on the 5th, there were several skirmishes at the outposts, all of which ended in the defeat of the rebels with minimal losses on our side; Lieutenant-Colonel Ewart of the 93rd Highlanders, who lost his arm on the 1st, and Captain Crutchley of the same regiment, who was severely wounded, were the only officers affected.






CHAPTER XXVII.

1857-1858
The Battle of Cawnpore

The time had now arrived to give the Gwalior troops a repetition of the lesson taught them at Agra on the 10th October. They had had it all their own way since then; and having proved too strong for Windham, they misunderstood the Commander-in-Chief remaining for so long on the defensive, and attributed his inaction to fear of their superior prowess.

The time had come to teach the Gwalior troops again the lesson they learned at Agra on October 10th. They had been in control since then and, having proven too strong for Windham, misinterpreted the Commander-in-Chief's prolonged defensive stance as fear of their greater strength.

Sunday, the 6th December, was one of those glorious days in which the European in northern India revels for a great part of the winter, clear and cool, with a cloudless sky. I awoke refreshed after a good night's rest, and in high spirits at the prospect before us of a satisfactory day's work; for we hoped to drive the enemy from Cawnpore, and to convince those who had witnessed, if not taken part in, the horrible brutalities perpetrated there, that England's hour had come at last.

Sunday, December 6th, was one of those amazing days that Europeans in northern India enjoy throughout much of the winter—clear and cool, with a bright blue sky. I woke up feeling refreshed after a good night's sleep and was in great spirits about the day ahead of us; we were hopeful we could drive the enemy out of Cawnpore and show everyone who had seen, if not participated in, the terrible acts committed there, that England's time had finally arrived.

The 42nd Highlanders, a battery of Royal Artillery, and detachments of several different corps, had quite lately been added to the force, so that the Commander-in-Chief had now at his disposal about 5,000 Infantry, 600 Cavalry, and 35 guns. The Infantry were divided into four brigades, commanded respectively by Greathed, Adrian Hope, Inglis, and Walpole.1 The Cavalry brigade, consisting of the same regiments which had come with us from Delhi, was commanded by Brigadier Little, the Artillery2 by Major-General Dupuis, and the Engineers by Colonel Harness, General Windham being placed in charge of the entrenchments.

The 42nd Highlanders, a unit of the Royal Artillery, along with detachments from various other corps, had recently been added to the force. As a result, the Commander-in-Chief now had about 5,000 infantry, 600 cavalry, and 35 guns at his command. The infantry were organized into four brigades led by Greathed, Adrian Hope, Inglis, and Walpole.1 The cavalry brigade, made up of the same regiments that had joined us from Delhi, was commanded by Brigadier Little. The Artillery2 was led by Major-General Dupuis, and the engineers were under Colonel Harness, while General Windham was in charge of the entrenchments.

Opposed to this force there were 25,000 men, with 40 guns, not all disciplined soldiers, but all adepts in the use of arms, and accustomed to fighting. They were divided into two distinct bodies, one composed of the Gwalior Contingent, the Rani of Jhansi's followers, and the mutinous regiments which had been stationed in Bundelkand, Central India, and Rajputana, which occupied the right of the enemy's position, covering their line of retreat by the Kalpi road. The other consisted of the troops—regular and irregular—which had attached themselves to the Nana, and held the city and the ground which lay between it and the Ganges, their line of retreat being along the Grand Trunk Road to Bithur. Tantia Topi was in command of the whole[Page 205] force, while the Nana remained with his own people on the left flank.

Opposing this force were 25,000 men, equipped with 40 guns. They weren't all trained soldiers, but they were all skilled with weapons and used to combat. They were split into two distinct groups: one made up of the Gwalior Contingent, the followers of the Rani of Jhansi, and the mutinous regiments stationed in Bundelkand, Central India, and Rajputana, which occupied the right side of the enemy's position, protecting their retreat along the Kalpi road. The other group consisted of both regular and irregular troops that had allied with the Nana, controlling the city and the area between it and the Ganges, with their retreat route via the Grand Trunk Road to Bithur. Tantia Topi commanded the entire[Page 205]force, while the Nana stayed with his own men on the left flank.

On the centre and left the enemy were very strongly posted, and could only be approached through the city and by way of the difficult broken ground, covered with ruined houses, stretching along the river bank.

On the center and left, the enemy was very well entrenched and could only be reached through the city and across the tough, uneven terrain filled with ruined houses that ran along the riverbank.

While the men were eating their breakfasts, and the tents were being struck, packed, and sent to the rear, Sir Colin carefully explained his plan of operations to the Commanding officers and the staff; this plan was, to make a feint on the enemy's left and centre, but to direct the real attack on their right, hoping thus to be able to dispose of this portion of Tantia Topi's force, before assistance could be obtained from any other part of the line.

While the men were having their breakfasts and the tents were being taken down, packed up, and sent to the back, Sir Colin carefully explained his plan of action to the commanding officers and the staff. The plan was to create a distraction on the enemy's left and center, but to focus the real attack on their right, hoping to eliminate this part of Tantia Topi's force before they could get help from anywhere else along the line.

With this view Windham was ordered to open with every gun within the entrenchment at 9 a.m.; while Greathed, supported by Walpole, threatened the enemy's centre. Exactly at the hour named, the roar of Windham's Artillery was heard, followed a few minutes later by the rattle of Greathed's musketry along the bank of the canal. Meanwhile, Adrian Hope's brigade was drawn up in fighting formation behind the Cavalry stables on our side of the Trunk Road, and Inglis's brigade behind the racecourse on the other side. At eleven o'clock the order was given to advance. The Cavalry and Horse Artillery moved to the left with instructions to cross the canal by a bridge about two miles off, and to be ready to fall upon the enemy as they retreated along the Kalpi road. Walpole's brigade, covered by Smith's Field battery, crossed the canal by a bridge immediately to the left of Generalganj, cleared the canal bank, and, by hugging the wall of the city, effectually prevented reinforcements reaching the enemy's right.

With this plan, Windham was instructed to start firing every gun within the fortifications at 9 a.m.; while Greathed, backed by Walpole, threatened the enemy's center. Exactly at the appointed hour, the sound of Windham's artillery was heard, followed a few minutes later by the crack of Greathed's muskets along the bank of the canal. In the meantime, Adrian Hope's brigade was positioned in battle formation behind the cavalry stables on our side of the Trunk Road, while Inglis's brigade was positioned behind the racecourse on the opposite side. At eleven o'clock, the command was given to advance. The cavalry and horse artillery moved to the left with orders to cross the canal using a bridge about two miles away and to be ready to attack the enemy as they retreated along the Kalpi road. Walpole's brigade, shielded by Smith's Field battery, crossed the canal at a bridge just to the left of Generalganj, cleared the canal bank, and, by keeping close to the city wall, effectively blocked reinforcements from reaching the enemy's right.

Peel's and Longden's heavy guns, and Bourchier's and Middleton's Field batteries, now opened on some brick-kilns and mounds which the enemy were holding in strength on our side of the canal, and against which Adrian Hope's and Inglis's brigades advanced in parallel lines, covered by the 4th Punjab Infantry in skirmishing order

Peel's and Longden's heavy guns, along with Bourchier's and Middleton's Field batteries, now targeted some brick kilns and mounds that the enemy were strongly holding on our side of the canal. Adrian Hope's and Inglis's brigades advanced in parallel lines, covered by the 4th Punjab Infantry in skirmishing order.

It was a sight to be remembered, that advance, as we watched it from our position on horseback, grouped round the Commander-in-Chief. Before us stretched a fine open grassy plain; to the right the dark green of the Rifle Brigade battalions revealed where Walpole's brigade was crossing the canal. Nearer to us, the 53rd Foot, and the 42nd and 93rd Highlanders in their bonnets and kilts, marched as on parade, although the enemy's guns played upon them and every now and then a round shot plunged through their ranks or ricocheted over their heads; on they went without apparently being in the least disconcerted, and without the slightest confusion.

It was a moment to remember, watching the advance from our spot on horseback, gathered around the Commander-in-Chief. In front of us was a wide open grassy plain; to the right, the dark green of the Rifle Brigade battalions showed where Walpole's brigade was crossing the canal. Closer to us, the 53rd Foot, along with the 42nd and 93rd Highlanders in their bonnets and kilts, marched like it was a parade, even though the enemy's guns were firing at them and every so often a cannonball crashed through their ranks or bounced over their heads; they kept moving without seeming bothered at all, and without any confusion.

As the brick-kilns were neared, the 4th Punjab Infantry, supported by the 53rd Foot, charged the enemy in grand style, and drove them across the canal. Here there occurred a slight check. The rebels,[Page 206] having been reinforced, made a stand, and bringing guns to bear upon the bridge within grape range, they must have done us great damage but for the timely arrival of Peel and his sailors with a heavy gun. This put new life into the attacking party; with a loud cheer they dashed across the bridge, while Peel poured round after round from his 24-pounder on the insurgents with most salutary effect. The enemy faced about and retired with the utmost celerity, leaving a 9-pounder gun in our possession.

As the brick kilns came into view, the 4th Punjab Infantry, backed by the 53rd Foot, charged at the enemy in a bold move and pushed them across the canal. There was a brief halt here. The rebels, having received reinforcements, stood their ground and aimed their artillery at the bridge, which could have caused us significant damage if it weren't for the timely arrival of Peel and his sailors with a heavy gun. This energized the attacking force; with a loud cheer, they rushed across the bridge while Peel fired round after round from his 24-pounder at the insurgents, which had a very positive effect. The enemy quickly turned around and retreated, leaving a 9-pounder gun behind for us.

The whole of Hope's brigade, followed by Inglis's, now arrived on the scene and proceeded to cross the canal, some by the bridge, while others waded through the water. Having got to the other side, both brigades re-formed, and moved rapidly along the Kalpi road. We (the Commander-in-Chief, Hope Grant, and their respective staffs) accompanied this body of troops for about a mile and a half, when the rebels' camp came in sight. A few rounds were fired into it, and then it was rushed.

The entire Hope's brigade, followed by Inglis's, now reached the scene and started to cross the canal, some using the bridge while others waded through the water. Once they got to the other side, both brigades regrouped and swiftly moved along the Kalpi road. We (the Commander-in-Chief, Hope Grant, and their respective staffs) accompanied this group of troops for about a mile and a half until the rebels' camp came into view. A few rounds were fired into it, and then it was attacked.

Unexpected Visitors We were evidently unexpected visitors; wounded men were lying about in all directions, and many sepoys were surprised calmly cooking their frugal meal of unleavened bread. The tents were found to be full of property plundered from the city and cantonment of Cawnpore—soldiers' kits, bedding, clothing, and every description of miscellaneous articles; but to us the most valuable acquisition was a quantity of grain and a large number of fine bullocks, of which those best suited for Ordnance purposes were kept, and the rest were made over to the Commissariat.

Surprise Guests We were clearly unexpected visitors; injured men were lying around in every direction, and many soldiers were surprisingly cooking their simple meal of unleavened bread. The tents were filled with things stolen from the city and camp of Cawnpore—soldiers' gear, bedding, clothes, and all sorts of random items; but for us, the most valuable finds were a stash of grain and a large number of good bullocks, of which the ones best suited for Ordnance were kept, and the rest were handed over to the Commissariat.

That portion of the rebel force with which we had been engaged was now in full retreat, and Sir Colin wished to follow it up at once; but the Cavalry and Horse Artillery had not arrived, so that considerable delay occurred; while we were waiting the Chief arranged to send Mansfield with a small force3 round to the north of Cawnpore, and, by thus threatening the road along which the Nana's troops must retreat, compel them to evacuate the city. The 23rd Royal Welsh Fusiliers and a detachment of the 38th Foot were to be left to look after the deserted camp, and Inglis's brigade was to move along the Kalpi road in support of the Cavalry and Horse Artillery. But where were the much-needed and anxiously-expected mounted troops? It was not like them to be out of the way when their services were required; but it was now nearly two o'clock, they had not appeared, and the days were very short. What was to be done? The enemy could not be allowed to carry off their guns and escape punishment. Suddenly the old Chief announced that he had determined to follow them up himself with Bourchier's battery and his own escort.

That part of the rebel force we had been fighting was now in full retreat, and Sir Colin wanted to pursue them immediately; however, the Cavalry and Horse Artillery hadn't arrived yet, causing a significant delay. While we waited, the Chief decided to send Mansfield with a small force3 around to the north of Cawnpore, which would threaten the road that the Nana's troops had to retreat along and force them to leave the city. The 23rd Royal Welsh Fusiliers and a detachment of the 38th Foot would stay behind to secure the abandoned camp, while Inglis's brigade was to move along the Kalpi road to support the Cavalry and Horse Artillery. But where were the urgently needed mounted troops? It wasn’t usual for them to be absent when they were needed; however, it was nearly two o'clock, they still hadn’t shown up, and the days were getting shorter. What were we going to do? The enemy couldn’t be allowed to take their guns and escape unpunished. Suddenly, the old Chief declared that he had decided to pursue them himself with Bourchier's battery and his own escort.



Click map to enlarge
Engagement before CAWNPORE on the 6th. December 1857.

Engagement before CAWNPORE on the 6th. December 1857.

Click map to zoom in
Engagement before CAWNPORE on the 6th. December 1857.

Battle before Cawnpore on December 6, 1857.



A Long Chase What a chase we had! We went at a gallop, only pulling up[Page 207] occasionally for the battery to come into action, 'to clear our front and flanks.' We came up with a goodly number of stragglers, and captured several guns and carts laden with ammunition. But we were by this time overtaking large bodies of the rebels, and they were becoming too numerous for a single battery and a few staff officers to cope with. We had outstripped the Commander-in-Chief, and Hope Grant decided to halt, hoping that the missing Cavalry and Horse Artillery might soon turn up. We had not to wait long. In about a quarter of an hour they appeared among some trees to our left, even more put out than we were at their not having been to the front at such a time. Their guide had made too great a détour, but the sound of our guns showed them his mistake, and they at once altered their course and pushed on in the direction of the firing. Sir Colin had also come up, so off we started again, and never drew rein until we reached the Pandu Naddi, fourteen miles from Cawnpore. The rout was complete. Finding themselves pressed, the sepoys scattered over the country, throwing away their arms and divesting themselves of their uniform, that they might pass for harmless peasants. Nineteen guns, some of them of large calibre, were left in our hands. Our victory was particularly satisfactory in that it was achieved with but slight loss to ourselves, the casualties being 2 officers and 11 men killed, and 9 officers and 76 men wounded.

A Long Pursuit What a chase we had! We galloped along, only stopping[Page 207] now and then for the artillery to fire, "to clear our front and flanks." We caught up with quite a few stragglers and seized several guns and carts loaded with ammunition. But by this point, we were catching up to large groups of rebels, and they were becoming too numerous for a single battery and a few staff officers to handle. We had outpaced the Commander-in-Chief, and Hope Grant decided to pause, hoping that the missing Cavalry and Horse Artillery would soon arrive. We didn't have to wait long. In about fifteen minutes, they showed up among some trees to our left, looking even more flustered than we were about not being at the front at such a time. Their guide had taken too big a detour, but the sound of our guns revealed his error, and they quickly changed direction and moved toward the firing. Sir Colin had also joined us, so we took off again and didn’t stop until we reached the Pandu Naddi, fourteen miles from Cawnpore. The rout was complete. Feeling the pressure, the sepoys scattered across the countryside, throwing down their weapons and stripping off their uniforms so they could pass as harmless peasants. We ended up with nineteen guns, some of them large caliber. Our victory was especially satisfying because we achieved it with minimal loss on our side, with casualties totaling 2 officers and 11 men killed, and 9 officers and 76 men wounded.

Hope Grant now desired me to hurry back to Cawnpore before it got too dark, and select the ground for the night's bivouac. As there was some risk in going alone, Augustus Anson volunteered to accompany me. We had got about half-way, when we came across the dead body of Lieutenant Salmond, who had been acting Aide-de-camp to my General, and must have got separated from us in the pursuit. His throat was cut, and he had a severe wound on the face. Soon after we met Inglis's brigade, which, in accordance with my instructions, I turned back. On reaching the Gwalior Contingent camp, we heard that an attempt had been made to recapture it, which had been repulsed by the troops left in charge.

Hope Grant wanted me to get back to Cawnpore quickly before it got too dark and find a spot for our camp for the night. Since it was a bit risky to go alone, Augustus Anson volunteered to come with me. We were about halfway there when we stumbled upon the dead body of Lieutenant Salmond, who had been serving as Aide-de-camp to my General and must have gotten separated from us during the chase. His throat had been cut, and he had a serious wound on his face. Shortly after, we met Inglis's brigade, which I sent back as per my instructions. When we arrived at the Gwalior Contingent camp, we learned that there had been an attempt to retake it, but the troops left in charge had successfully pushed them back.

It was dusk by the time we reached the junction of the Kalpi and Grand Trunk roads, and we agreed that this would be a good place for a bivouac, the city being about a mile in front, and Mansfield's column less than two miles to the left. I marked out the ground, and showed each corps as it came up the position it was to occupy. When all this was over I was pretty well tired out and ravenously hungry; but food there was none, so I had made up my mind to lie down, famished as I was. Just then I came across some sleeping men, who to my joy turned out to be Dighton Probyn and the officers of the 2nd Punjab Cavalry, who were magnanimous enough to forgive the abrupt interruption to their slumbers, and to supply me with some cold mutton, bread, and a bottle of beer. Never was man more grateful for a meal, and never was a meal more thoroughly enjoyed. I lay down beside my[Page 208] friends and was soon fast asleep, in spite of the bitter cold and being much troubled about my horse; neither for him nor myself was there a vestige of covering to be found.

It was dusk by the time we got to the junction of the Kalpi and Grand Trunk roads, and we decided this would be a good spot to camp, with the city about a mile ahead and Mansfield’s column less than two miles to our left. I marked out the area and pointed out to each group where they were supposed to set up. Once that was done, I was pretty worn out and extremely hungry; but there was no food, so I had decided to lie down, even though I was starving. Just then, I stumbled upon some guys sleeping, who, to my delight, turned out to be Dighton Probyn and the officers of the 2nd Punjab Cavalry. They were generous enough to overlook the sudden interruption to their sleep and offered me some cold mutton, bread, and a bottle of beer. There’s never been a man more thankful for a meal, and I’ve never enjoyed a meal more. I lay down next to my[Page 208] friends and quickly fell asleep, despite the biting cold and my worries about my horse; there was no shelter for either of us to be found.

The next morning I was astir by cockcrow. Patrols who had been sent forward to ascertain the truth of a rumour which had reached the Commander-in-Chief the previous evening, to the effect that the city had been evacuated, returned with confirmation of the report; but the news in other respects was far from satisfactory. Mansfield's movement had caused the enemy to retire, but they had got away without loss, and had succeeded in carrying off all their guns; so that only one half of Tantia Topi's force had really been dealt with; the other half still remained to be disposed of, and to Hope Grant's great satisfaction and my delight, the duty of following them up was entrusted to him.

The next morning, I was up at dawn. Patrols sent out to confirm a rumor that had reached the Commander-in-Chief the night before—that the city had been evacuated—returned with confirmation of the report. However, the news in other respects was far from good. Mansfield's movement had forced the enemy to retreat, but they had managed to escape without losses and carried off all their guns. This meant that only half of Tantia Topi's force had actually been engaged; the other half still needed to be dealt with. To Hope Grant's great satisfaction and my delight, the responsibility of following them was given to him.

His orders were to go to Bithur, as it was thought likely that the Nana's troops would retire on that place. But as the news was not very reliable, Hope Grant was told to use his own discretion, and act according to circumstances.

His orders were to head to Bithur, since it was believed that the Nana's troops would withdraw there. However, as the information wasn't very trustworthy, Hope Grant was advised to use his own judgment and act based on the situation.

Unjur Tiwari For several days I had been trying unsuccessfully to get hold of some Natives upon whom I could rely to bring me trustworthy information as to the enemy's movements. It is always of the utmost importance that a Quartermaster-General on service should have the help of such men, and I was now more than ever in need of reliable intelligence. In this emergency I applied to Captain Bruce, the officer in charge of the Intelligence Department which had been established at Cawnpore for the purpose of tracing the whereabouts of those rebels who had taken a prominent part in the atrocities. I was at once supplied with a first-rate man, Unjur Tiwari by name,4 who from that moment until I left India for England in April, 1858, rendered me most valuable service.[Page 209] He was a Brahmin by caste, and belonged to the 1st Native Infantry. In a few words I explained what I required of him, and he started at once for Bithur, promising to meet me the next day on the line of march.

Unjur Tiwari For several days, I had been trying but failing to find some locals I could trust to provide reliable information about the enemy's movements. It's always crucial for a Quartermaster-General in the field to have the support of such people, and I was more than ever in need of dependable intelligence. In this urgent situation, I reached out to Captain Bruce, the officer overseeing the Intelligence Department set up in Cawnpore to track down the rebels who were involved in the atrocities. I was immediately provided with an excellent man named Unjur Tiwari, who from that moment until I left India for England in April 1858, offered me invaluable assistance.[Page 209] He was a Brahmin by caste and part of the 1st Native Infantry. I briefly explained what I needed from him, and he headed straight for Bithur, promising to meet me the next day along the route.

Early on the afternoon of the 8th we marched out of Cawnpore, and at sunset Unjur Tiwari, true to his promise, made his appearance at the point where the road turns off to Bithur. He told me that the Nana had slept at that place the night before, but hearing of our approach, had decamped with all his guns and most of his followers, and was now at a ferry some miles up the river, trying to get across and make his way to Oudh. We had come thirteen miles, and had as many more to go before we could get to the ferry, and as there was nothing to be gained by arriving there in the dark, a halt was ordered for rest and refreshment. At midnight we started again, and reached Sheorajpur (three miles from the ferry) at daybreak. Here we left our impedimenta, and proceeded by a cross-country road. Presently a couple of mounted men belonging to the enemy, not perceiving who we were, galloped straight into the escort. On discovering their mistake, they turned and tried to escape, but in vain; one was killed, the other captured, and from him we learnt that the rebels were only a short distance ahead. We pushed on, and soon came in sight of them and of the river; crowds were collected on the banks, and boats were being hurriedly laden, some of the guns having already been placed on board. Our troops were ordered to advance, but the ground along the river bank was treacherous and very heavy. Notwithstanding, the Artillery managed to struggle through, and when the batteries had got to within 1,000 yards of the ferry, the enemy appeared suddenly to discover our presence, and opened upon us with their Artillery. Our batteries galloped on, and got considerably nearer before they returned the fire; after a few rounds the rebels broke and fled. The ground was so unfavourable for pursuit, being full of holes and quicksands, that nearly all escaped, except a few cut up by the Cavalry. Fifteen guns were captured, with one single casualty on our side—the General himself—who was hit on the foot by a spent grape-shot, without, happily, being much hurt.

Early in the afternoon of the 8th, we marched out of Cawnpore, and at sunset, Unjur Tiwari, staying true to his word, showed up at the spot where the road branches off to Bithur. He informed me that the Nana had spent the night there but, upon hearing we were coming, had packed up and left with all his artillery and most of his followers. He was now at a ferry a few miles up the river, trying to cross and make his way to Oudh. We had covered thirteen miles and had another thirteen to go before reaching the ferry. Since there was no benefit in arriving there in the dark, we decided to take a break for rest and refreshments. We set out again at midnight and reached Sheorajpur (three miles from the ferry) by daybreak. Here, we left our excess baggage and continued on a cross-country route. Soon, a couple of enemy mounted soldiers, not realizing who we were, charged straight into our escort. When they realized their error, they tried to flee but couldn't escape; one was killed, and the other was captured. From him, we learned that the rebels were just a short distance ahead. We pressed on and quickly spotted them along with the river; crowds had gathered on the banks, and boats were being hastily loaded, with some of the artillery already aboard. Our troops were ordered to advance, but the ground along the riverbank was tricky and very heavy. Nevertheless, the Artillery managed to push through, and when the batteries got within 1,000 yards of the ferry, the enemy suddenly realized we were there and began firing on us with their own artillery. Our batteries rushed ahead and got much closer before returning fire; after a few rounds, the rebels broke and ran. The terrain was so unfavorable for a chase, filled with holes and quicksand, that nearly all escaped, except for a few taken down by the Cavalry. We captured fifteen guns, with only one casualty on our side—the General himself—who was grazed on the foot by a stray grape-shot but, fortunately, was not seriously injured.

Bithur Hope Grant's successful management of this little expedition considerably enhanced the high opinion the Commander-in-Chief had already formed of his ability. He was next ordered to proceed to Bithur and complete the destruction of that place, which had been begun by Havelock in July. We found the palace in good order—there[Page 210] was little evidence that it had been visited by an avenging force, and in one of the rooms which had been occupied by the treacherous Azimula Khan, I came across a number of letters, some unopened, and some extremely interesting, to which I shall have to refer later on.

Bithur Hope Grant's successful management of this little expedition significantly boosted the already high opinion the Commander-in-Chief had of his skills. He was then ordered to go to Bithur and finish the destruction of that place, which Havelock had started in July. We found the palace in good condition—there[Page 210] was little sign that it had been visited by an avenging force, and in one of the rooms that had been occupied by the treacherous Azimula Khan, I came across several letters, some unopened, and some very interesting, which I will need to refer to later.

We left Adrian Hope's brigade at Bithur to search for treasure reported to have been buried near the palace, and returned to Cawnpore, where we remained for about ten days, not at all sorry for the rest.

We left Adrian Hope's brigade at Bithur to look for treasure that was said to be buried near the palace and went back to Cawnpore, where we stayed for about ten days, not at all unhappy for the break.

Windham at Cornpore During this time of comparative idleness, I went over the ground where the troops under Windham had been engaged for three days, and heard many comments on the conduct of the operations. All spoke in high terms of Windham's dash and courage, but as a Commander he was generally considered to have failed.

Windham at Cornpore During this relatively quiet period, I walked over the area where Windham's troops had been active for three days and heard a lot of opinions on how the operations were handled. Everyone praised Windham's boldness and bravery, but as a commander, he was mostly seen as having failed.

Windham was without doubt placed in an extremely difficult position. The relief of the garrison at Lucknow was of such paramount importance that Sir Colin Campbell was obliged to take with him every available man,5 and found it necessary to order Windham to send all reinforcements after him as soon as they arrived, although it was recognized as probable that Tantia Topi, with the large force then assembled near Kalpi, would advance on Cawnpore as soon as the Commander-in-Chief was committed to his difficult undertaking. Windham's orders were to improve the defences of the entrenchment; to carefully watch the movements of the Gwalior army; and to make as much display as possible of the troops at his command by encamping them in a conspicuous position outside the city; but he was not on any account to move out to attack, unless compelled to do so in order to prevent the bombardment of the entrenchment. The safety of this entrenchment was of great importance, for it contained a number of guns, quantities of ammunition and other warlike stores, and it covered, as already shown, the bridge of boats over the Ganges.

Windham was definitely in a very tough spot. The relief of the garrison at Lucknow was so crucial that Sir Colin Campbell had to take with him every available man,5 and found it necessary to order Windham to send all reinforcements after him as soon as they arrived, even though it was likely that Tantia Topi, with the large force gathered near Kalpi, would move on Cawnpore as soon as the Commander-in-Chief was engaged in his challenging mission. Windham's orders were to strengthen the defenses of the entrenchment; to closely monitor the movements of the Gwalior army; and to showcase his troops by setting up camp in a visible location outside the city; but he was not to move out to attack unless absolutely necessary to prevent the bombardment of the entrenchment. The security of this entrenchment was very important because it housed several guns, large quantities of ammunition and other military supplies, and it protected, as mentioned earlier, the bridge of boats over the Ganges.

Windham loyally carried out his instructions, but he subsequently asked for and obtained leave to detain any troops arriving at Cawnpore after the 14th of November, as he did not feel himself strong enough, with the force at his disposal, to resist the enemy if attacked. But even after having received this sanction he twice despatched strong reinforcements to Lucknow, thus weakening himself considerably in order to give Sir Colin all possible help.

Windham faithfully followed his orders but later requested and received permission to stop any troops arriving in Cawnpore after November 14th, as he didn’t feel strong enough with the forces he had to withstand an enemy attack. However, even after getting this approval, he sent strong reinforcements to Lucknow twice, which significantly weakened his own position in order to assist Sir Colin as much as possible.

Windham eventually had at his disposal about 1,700 Infantry and[Page 211] eight guns, the greater part of which were encamped as directed, outside the city, close to the junction of the Delhi and Kalpi roads, while the rest were posted in and around the entrenchment. Meanwhile the rebels were slowly approaching Cawnpore in detachments, with the evident intention of surrounding the place. On the 17th two bodies of troops were pushed on to Shuli and Shirajpur, within fifteen miles of the city, and a little less than that distance from each other. Windham thought that if he could manage to surprise either of these, he could prevent the enemy from concentrating, and he drew up a scheme for giving effect to this plan, which he submitted for the approval of the Commander-in-Chief. No reply came, and after waiting a week he gave up all idea of attempting to surprise the detachments, and determined to try and arrest the rebels' advance by attacking the main body, still some distance off. Accordingly he broke up his camp, and marched six miles along the Kalpi road, on the same day that the Gwalior force moved some distance nearer to Cawnpore. The next morning, the 25th, the enemy advanced to Pandu Naddi, within three miles of Windham's camp.

Windham eventually had about 1,700 infantry and[Page 211] eight guns at his disposal, most of which were camped outside the city, near the junction of the Delhi and Kalpi roads, while the rest were stationed in and around the entrenchment. Meanwhile, the rebels were slowly approaching Cawnpore in groups, clearly intending to surround the area. On the 17th, two units of troops were sent to Shuli and Shirajpur, within fifteen miles of the city, and a little less than that apart from each other. Windham thought that if he could surprise either of these groups, he could prevent the enemy from concentrating, so he devised a plan to do this and submitted it for the Commander-in-Chief's approval. There was no response, and after waiting a week, he abandoned the idea of surprising the detachments and decided to try to stop the rebels' advance by attacking the main body, which was still some distance away. Therefore, he dismantled his camp and marched six miles along the Kalpi road on the same day that the Gwalior force moved a bit closer to Cawnpore. The next morning, the 25th, the enemy advanced to Pandu Naddi, within three miles of Windham's camp.

Windham now found himself in a very critical position. With only 1,200 Infantry6 and eight light guns, he was opposed to Tantia Topi with an army of 25,000 men and forty guns. He had to choose whether he would fight these enormous odds or retire: he decided that to fight was the least of the two evils, and he was so far successful that he drove back that portion of the opposing force immediately in his front, and captured three guns; but being unable to press his advantage on account of the paucity of men and the total absence of Cavalry, he had perforce to fall back—a grievous necessity. He was followed the whole way, insulted and jeered at, by the rebel horsemen. The result of the day was to give confidence to the wily Mahratta leader; he pushed on to Cawnpore, and attacked Windham with such vehemence that by nightfall on the 28th the British troops were driven inside the entrenchment, having had 315 men killed and wounded, and having lost all their baggage and camp equipage.

Windham now found himself in a very tough spot. With only 1,200 Infantry6 and eight light guns, he was facing Tantia Topi, who had an army of 25,000 men and forty guns. He had to decide whether to fight against these overwhelming odds or retreat; he chose to fight, considering it the lesser of two evils. He was initially successful, pushing back the portion of the enemy force directly in front of him and capturing three guns. However, unable to take advantage of his success due to a lack of men and the complete absence of cavalry, he had to retreat—a painful necessity. He was pursued the whole way, insulted and mocked by the rebel horsemen. The outcome of the day boosted the confidence of the cunning Mahratta leader; he pressed on to Cawnpore and attacked Windham with such intensity that by nightfall on the 28th, the British troops were driven inside their entrenchment, having suffered 315 casualties and lost all their baggage and camp equipment.

Windham undoubtedly laid himself open to censure. His defence was that, had he received the Commander-in-Chief's authority to carry out his plan for surprising the rebels, he would certainly have broken up their army, and the disaster could not have occurred. But surely when he decided that circumstances had so changed since Sir Colin's orders were given as to justify him in disregarding them, he should have acted on his own responsibility, and taken such steps as appeared to him best, instead of applying for sanction to a Commander far from[Page 212] the scene of action, and so entirely ignorant of the conditions under which the application was made, as to render it impossible for him to decide whether such sanction should be given. The march which Windham made towards the enemy on the 24th was quite as grave a disobedience of orders as would have been the surprise movement he contemplated on the 17th; but while the former placed him in a most dangerous position, and one from which it was impossible to deal the enemy a decisive blow, the latter, if successful, would have deserved, and doubtless would have received, the highest praise.

Windham definitely opened himself up to criticism. His defense was that if he had gotten the Commander-in-Chief's permission to execute his plan to surprise the rebels, he would have surely defeated their army, and the disaster wouldn't have happened. However, when he decided that the situation had changed enough since Sir Colin's orders were given to justify ignoring them, he should have taken responsibility and done what he thought was best, instead of seeking approval from a Commander who was far removed from the action and completely unaware of the circumstances surrounding his request, making it impossible for him to determine whether such approval should be granted. The movement Windham made toward the enemy on the 24th was just as serious a violation of orders as the surprise maneuver he had in mind on the 17th; but while the former put him in a very precarious situation, making it impossible to strike a decisive blow against the enemy, the latter, if it had succeeded, would have earned him, and likely would have received, the highest commendation.






CHAPTER XXVIII.

1857

Our stay at Cawnpore was more prolonged than the Commander-in-Chief intended or wished it to be, but want of transport made it impossible for us to move until the carts returned which had gone to Allahabad with the women and children and the sick soldiers. We were thus delayed until the 23rd December, on which date we commenced our march towards Fatehgarh.

Our time in Cawnpore ended up being longer than the Commander-in-Chief planned or wanted, but we couldn’t leave until the carts returned from Allahabad, where they had taken the women, children, and sick soldiers. As a result, we were stuck until December 23rd, when we finally began our march toward Fatehgarh.

At Chobipur, two marches from Cawnpore, where we spent Christmas Day, we were joined by the troops who had been left behind at Bithur; they had not succeeded in discovering any considerable quantity of treasure, some silver vessels of various kinds being the only result of their labours.

At Chobipur, two marches from Cawnpore, where we spent Christmas Day, we were joined by the troops who had been left behind at Bithur; they hadn’t managed to find any significant amount of treasure, with only some silver vessels of various kinds being the result of their efforts.

The Commander-in-Chief's object in moving on Fatehgarh was to restore order throughout the Doab and open communication between the Punjab and Bengal.

The Commander-in-Chief's goal in heading to Fatehgarh was to restore order across the Doab and to establish communication between Punjab and Bengal.

A brigade under Brigadier Walpole had been despatched on the 16th, with orders to clear the country along the left bank of the Jumna up to Mainpuri, where he was to be joined by Brigadier Seaton with a strong column from Delhi, and whence the united force was to advance on Fatehgarh.

A brigade led by Brigadier Walpole was sent out on the 16th, with instructions to clear the area along the left bank of the Jumna up to Mainpuri, where he would meet Brigadier Seaton with a strong unit from Delhi, and from there the combined force would move forward on Fatehgarh.

1858 We reached Gursahaiganj, where the road turns off to Fatehgarh, on the 31st, and here the main body of the army halted on New Year's Day, 1858; but information having been received that 5,000 rebels under the Nawab of Farakabad had partly destroyed the suspension bridge over the Kali Naddi, about five miles ahead, and had then gone off towards Fatehgarh, Adrian Hope's brigade was sent forward to repair the damage and watch the bridge.

1858 We arrived in Gursahaiganj, where the road heads to Fatehgarh, on the 31st, and the main part of the army stopped here on New Year's Day, 1858. However, after we learned that 5,000 rebels led by the Nawab of Farakabad had partially destroyed the suspension bridge over the Kali Naddi, about five miles ahead, and then moved toward Fatehgarh, Adrian Hope's brigade was sent ahead to fix the damage and monitor the bridge.

Early the following morning Sir Colin, with Mansfield and the rest of his staff, went on to inspect progress, leaving orders for the rest of the force to follow later in the day. Very soon, however, Hope Grant received an urgent message from the Chief of the Staff, telling him to push on the troops with all possible speed, as the enemy had returned,[Page 213] and were now in strength on the other side of the Kali Naddi.

Early the next morning, Sir Colin, along with Mansfield and the rest of his team, went to check on the progress, leaving instructions for the rest of the troops to follow later in the day. However, Hope Grant soon received an urgent message from the Chief of Staff, instructing him to move the troops as quickly as possible, as the enemy had returned, [Page 213] and was now strong on the other side of the Kali Naddi.

The Fight at Khudaganj We (Sir Hope and his staff) started off with the Horse Artillery and Cavalry, and found, on reaching the bridge, that the rebels were occupying the village of Khudaganj, just across the river, and only about 300 yards off, from which advantageous position they were pouring a heavy fire on Hope's brigade. Our piquets on the further side of the stream had been strengthened by a wing of the 53rd Foot, and a wing of the 93rd Highlanders had been placed in reserve behind the bridge on the nearer side, the rest of the regiment having been despatched to watch a ford some distance down the river, while a battery of Field Artillery had been brought into action in reply to the enemy's guns. Immediately on the arrival of the main body, three of Peel's guns, under Vaughan, his First Lieutenant, were pushed across the bridge to the further side, and getting under shelter of a convenient building, opened fire on the village, and on a toll-bar directly in its front, about which the enemy were collected in considerable numbers. Our Infantry now crossed over, followed by the Cavalry and Horse Artillery—a tedious operation, as there had not been time to fully repair the bridge, and in one place planks had only been laid for half its width, necessitating horses being led, and Infantry passing over in sections. Moreover, the enemy had got the exact range, and several casualties occurred at this spot; one round shot alone killed and wounded six men of the 8th Foot. Vaughan at last succeeded in silencing the gun which had troubled us most, and preparations were made for an attack on the village. While we were watching the proceedings, the Interpreter to the Naval Brigade, Henry Hamilton Maxwell, a brother officer of mine who had been standing close to me, was very badly wounded in the leg, and both Sir Colin and Sir Hope were hit by spent bullets, luckily without being much hurt.

The Battle of Khudaganj We (Sir Hope and his staff) set out with the Horse Artillery and Cavalry and discovered, upon reaching the bridge, that the rebels had taken over the village of Khudaganj, just across the river and about 300 yards away, from which they were heavily firing on Hope's brigade. Our pickets on the other side of the stream had been strengthened by a wing of the 53rd Foot, and a wing of the 93rd Highlanders was held in reserve behind the bridge on our side, while the rest of the regiment was sent to monitor a ford further down the river, and a battery of Field Artillery had been called in to respond to the enemy's guns. As soon as the main body arrived, three of Peel's guns, under his First Lieutenant Vaughan, were sent across the bridge to the other side. Taking cover behind a nearby building, they opened fire on the village and on a toll-bar directly in front of it, where the enemy was gathered in large numbers. Our Infantry then crossed over, followed by the Cavalry and Horse Artillery—a slow process, as the bridge hadn't been fully repaired, and in one section planks were only laid for half its width, requiring horses to be led and Infantry to cross in sections. Additionally, the enemy had figured out the exact range, resulting in several casualties at this location; one round shot alone killed and wounded six men of the 8th Foot. Vaughan finally managed to silence the gun that had been giving us the most trouble, and we prepared to attack the village. While we were observing the situation, the Interpreter for the Naval Brigade, Henry Hamilton Maxwell, a fellow officer who had been standing close to me, was severely wounded in the leg, and both Sir Colin and Sir Hope were struck by spent bullets, fortunately without serious injury.

There was a feeling throughout the army that Sir Colin was inclined to favour Highlanders unduly; and a rumour got about that the 93rd were to be allowed the honour of delivering the assault on Khudaganj, which was highly resented by the 53rd, and they determined that on this occasion, at any rate, the Highlanders should not have it all their own way. The 53rd was composed of a remarkably fine set of fellows, chiefly Irish, and it was Mansfield's own regiment; wishing, therefore, to do an old comrade a good turn, he had placed Major Payn,1 one of the senior officers, in command of the piquets. Payn was a fine dashing soldier, and a great favourite with the men, who calculated on his backing them up if they upset Sir Colin's little plan. Whether what happened was with or without Payn's permission, I cannot say, but we were all waiting near the bridge for the attacking party to form when suddenly the 'advance' was sounded, then the 'double,' followed[Page 214] by a tremendous cheer, and we saw the 53rd charge the enemy. Sir Colin was very angry, but the 53rd could not be brought back, and there was nothing for it but to support them. Hope's and Greathed's troops were instantly pushed on, and the Cavalry and Horse Artillery were ordered to mount.

There was a sense among the army that Sir Colin had a strong preference for Highlanders; and a rumor spread that the 93rd would be given the honor of leading the attack on Khudaganj, which the 53rd strongly resented. They were determined that, this time at least, the Highlanders wouldn’t get everything their way. The 53rd was made up of a particularly impressive group of guys, mainly Irish, and it was Mansfield’s own regiment. Wanting to do a favor for an old friend, he had put Major Payn,1 one of the senior officers, in charge of the pickets. Payn was a bold and charismatic soldier, and he was very popular with the men, who were counting on his support if they disrupted Sir Colin’s plan. Whether what happened was with or without Payn’s permission, I can’t say, but we were all waiting near the bridge for the attacking party to form when suddenly the ‘advance’ was called, then the ‘double,’ followed[Page 214] by a massive cheer, and we saw the 53rd charging at the enemy. Sir Colin was very upset, but the 53rd couldn’t be called back, and there was no choice but to support them. Hope’s and Greathed’s troops were immediately deployed, and the Cavalry and Horse Artillery were ordered to mount.

A Mêlée The ground gradually sloped upwards towards Khudaganj, and the regiments moving up to the attack made a fine picture. The 93rd followed the impulsive 53rd, while Greathed's brigade took a line to the left, and as they neared the village the rebels hastily limbered up their guns and retired. This was an opportunity for mounted troops such as does not often occur; it was instantly seized by Hope Grant, who rode to the Cavalry, drawn up behind some sand hills, and gave the word of command, 'Threes left, trot, march.' The words had hardly left his lips before we had started in pursuit of the enemy, by this time half a mile ahead, the 9th Lancers leading the way, followed by Younghusband's, Gough's, and Probyn's squadrons. When within 300 yards of the fugitives, the 'charge' was sounded, and in a few seconds we were in their midst. A regular mêlée ensued, a number of the rebels were killed, and seven guns captured in less than as many minutes. The General now formed the Cavalry into a long line, and, placing himself at the head of his own regiment (the 9th Lancers), followed up the flying foe. I rode a little to his left with Younghusband's squadron, and next to him came Tyrrell Ross, the doctor.2 As we galloped along, Younghusband drew my attention with great pride to the admirable manner in which his men kept their dressing.

A Brawl The ground gradually sloped up towards Khudaganj, and the regiments advancing for the attack looked impressive. The 93rd followed the eager 53rd, while Greathed's brigade veered to the left, and as they got closer to the village, the rebels quickly packed up their guns and retreated. This was a rare chance for mounted troops; it was quickly seized by Hope Grant, who rode over to the Cavalry, positioned behind some sand hills, and gave the command, 'Threes left, trot, march.' As soon as the words left his mouth, we took off in pursuit of the enemy, who by then were half a mile ahead, with the 9th Lancers leading, followed by Younghusband's, Gough's, and Probyn's squadrons. When we were within 300 yards of the fleeing rebels, the 'charge' was sounded, and within seconds we were among them. A full mêlée broke out, several rebels were killed, and seven guns were captured in just a few minutes. The General then lined up the Cavalry in a long formation and, positioning himself at the front of his own regiment (the 9th Lancers), pursued the retreating enemy. I rode a bit to his left with Younghusband's squadron, and beside him was Tyrrell Ross, the doctor.2 As we galloped along, Younghusband proudly pointed out how well his men maintained their formation.



Click map to enlarge
Plan of the Engagement on the Banks of the KALI NADI at KHUDAGANJ January 2nd. 1858.

Plan of the Engagement on the Banks of the KALI NADI at KHUDAGANJ January 2nd. 1858.

Click map to zoom in
Plan of the Engagement on the Banks of the KALI NADI at KHUDAGANJ January 2nd. 1858.

Plan of the Engagement on the Banks of the Kali River at Khudaganj January 2nd, 1858.



On the line thundered, overtaking groups of the enemy, who every now and then turned and fired into us before they could be cut down, or knelt to receive us on their bayonets before discharging their muskets. The chase continued for nearly five miles, until daylight began to fail and we appeared to have got to the end of the fugitives, when the order was given to wheel to the right and form up on the road. Before, however, this movement could be carried out, we overtook a batch of mutineers, who faced about and fired into the squadron at close quarters. I saw Younghusband fall, but I could not go to his assistance, as at that moment one of his sowars was in dire peril from a sepoy who was attacking him with his fixed bayonet, and had I not helped the man and disposed of his opponent, he must have been[Page 215] killed. The next moment I descried in the distance two sepoys making off with a standard, which I determined must be captured, so I rode after the rebels and overtook them, and while wrenching the staff out of the hands of one of them, whom I cut down, the other put his musket close to my body and fired; fortunately for me it missed fire, and I carried off the standard.3Awarded the Victoria Cross

On the line, we charged, catching up to groups of the enemy who occasionally turned and shot at us before they could be taken down or knelt to meet us with their bayonets before firing their muskets. The pursuit lasted for about five miles, until it started to get dark and we seemed to have reached the last of the fleeing troops, when we received the order to turn right and assemble on the road. However, before we could make that move, we ran into a group of mutineers who turned around and fired at our squadron from close range. I saw Younghusband fall, but I couldn’t help him because at that moment one of his sowars was in serious trouble, attacked by a sepoy with a fixed bayonet, and if I hadn’t stepped in and dealt with his attacker, he would have been[Page 215] killed. The next moment, I spotted two sepoys in the distance running off with a standard that I knew I had to capture, so I rode after the rebels and caught up to them. While I was pulling the staff from one of their hands, cutting him down in the process, the other sepoy aimed his musket at me and fired; luckily, it misfired, and I carried off the standard.3Received the Victoria Cross

Tyrrell Ross, attracted by a party of men in the rear of the squadron bending over the fallen Younghusband, now came up, and, to everyone's great grief, pronounced the wound to be mortal. From the day that I had annexed Younghusband's pony at the siege of Delhi we had been so much together, and had become such fast friends, that it was a great shock to me to be told that never again would my gallant comrade lead the men in whom he took such soldierly pride.4

Tyrrell Ross, drawn in by a group of men at the back of the squadron gathered around the fallen Younghusband, approached and, to everyone's deep sorrow, declared the wound to be fatal. Ever since I had taken Younghusband's pony during the siege of Delhi, we had spent so much time together and had become such close friends that it was a huge shock to hear that my brave comrade would never again lead the troops he was so proud of. pride.4

When the wounded had been attended to, we returned to camp, where we found Sir Colin waiting to welcome us, and we received quite an ovation from our comrades in the Infantry and Artillery. We must have presented a curious spectacle as we rode back, almost every man carrying some trophy of the day, for the enemy had abandoned everything in their flight, and we found the road strewn with laden carts and palankins, arms, Native clothing, etc. Our losses were surprisingly small—only 10 men killed, and 30 men and 2 officers wounded.

When the injured had been taken care of, we went back to camp, where we found Sir Colin waiting to welcome us, and we received quite a cheer from our fellow soldiers in the Infantry and Artillery. We must have looked quite the sight as we rode back, with nearly every man carrying some sort of trophy from the day, since the enemy had left behind everything in their escape, and we found the road littered with loaded carts, palanquins, weapons, native clothing, and more. Our losses were surprisingly low—only 10 men killed, and 30 men and 2 officers wounded.

The next day the column marched to Fatehgarh, which we found deserted. The rebels had fled so precipitately that they had left the bridge over the Ganges intact, and had not attempted to destroy the valuable gun-carriage factory in the fort, which was then placed in the charge of Captain H. Legeyt Bruce.5

The next day, the column marched to Fatehgarh, which we found empty. The rebels had run away so quickly that they left the bridge over the Ganges untouched and didn’t try to destroy the valuable gun-carriage factory in the fort, which was then under the supervision of Captain H. Legeyt Bruce.5

Oudh or Rohilkand? We remained a whole month at Fatehgarh, and loud were the complaints in camp at the unaccountable delay. It was the general opinion that we ought to move into Rohilkand, and settle that part of the country before returning to Lucknow; this view was very strongly held by Sir Colin Campbell, and those who accused him of "indecision, dilatoriness, and wasting the best of the cold weather" could not have known how little he deserved their censure. The truth was, that the Governor-General and the Commander-in-Chief were not in accord as to the order in which the several military operations should be taken[Page 216] in hand; the latter urged that Rohilkand should be dealt with first, and settled before the end of the cold weather; he thought that the troops would then be the better for a rest, and that Lucknow could very well wait till the following autumn. Lord Canning opined, on the other hand (and I entirely agree with him), that, while it was most desirable that order should be restored in Rohilkand, and indeed throughout the whole of the North-West Provinces, the possession of Lucknow was of 'far greater value.' 'Every eye,' Lord Canning wrote, 'is upon Oudh as it was upon Delhi: Oudh is not only the rallying-place of the sepoys, the place to which they all look, and by the doings in which their own hopes and prospects rise or fall; but it represents a dynasty; there is a king of Oudh "seeking his own."' He pointed out that there was an uneasy feeling amongst the Chiefs of Native States, who were intently watching our attitude with regard to Lucknow, and that even in 'far-off Burma' news from Lucknow was anxiously looked for. The Governor-General laid great stress also upon the advisability of employing as soon and as close to their own country as possible the troops from Nepal which, at Sir Henry Lawrence's suggestion, had been applied for to, and lent us by, the Nepalese Government.

Oudh or Rohilkhand? We spent a whole month at Fatehgarh, and there were loud complaints in camp about the unexplained delay. Most people believed we should move into Rohilkand and secure that area before heading back to Lucknow. This view was strongly supported by Sir Colin Campbell, and those who criticized him for "indecision, slowness, and wasting the best part of winter" clearly didn’t appreciate how little he deserved their criticism. The reality was that the Governor-General and the Commander-in-Chief disagreed on the order of military operations. The latter insisted that Rohilkand should be addressed first and settled before winter ended; he believed this would give the troops a chance to rest, and that Lucknow could easily wait until the next autumn. Lord Canning, however, felt (and I completely agree with him) that while it was certainly important to restore order in Rohilkand and throughout the entire North-West Provinces, holding onto Lucknow was far more valuable. "Every eye," Lord Canning wrote, "is on Oudh as it was on Delhi: Oudh is not only the rallying point for the sepoys, a place they all look to, and where their hopes and prospects rise or fall; it also represents a dynasty; there is a king of Oudh 'seeking his own.'" He noted the anxious feelings among the Chiefs of Native States, who were closely watching our stance on Lucknow, and that even in 'distant Burma,' news from Lucknow was eagerly anticipated. The Governor-General also emphasized the importance of using the troops from Nepal, which had been requested and lent to us by the Nepalese Government at the suggestion of Sir Henry Lawrence, as soon and as close to their home country as possible.

The visit of Jung Bahadur (the Prime Minister of Nepal) to England a few years before had opened his eyes to our latent power, and he had been able to convince his people that time alone was required for us to recover completely from the blow which had been dealt us by the Mutiny, and that it was therefore to their advantage to side with us. Lord Canning wisely judged, however, that it would be highly imprudent to allow the province immediately adjoining Nepal to continue in a state of revolt, and he felt that neither Jung Bahadur nor his Gurkhas would be satisfied unless they were allowed to take an active part in the campaign.

The visit of Jung Bahadur (the Prime Minister of Nepal) to England a few years earlier had opened his eyes to our hidden strengths, and he managed to persuade his people that we just needed time to fully recover from the impact of the Mutiny, making it beneficial for them to support us. Lord Canning wisely thought it would be very unwise to let the province next to Nepal stay in revolt, and he believed that neither Jung Bahadur nor his Gurkhas would be content unless they were allowed to join in on the campaign.






CHAPTER XXIX.

1858

Our prolonged stay at Fatehgarh was not altogether without advantage. Such a large force being concentrated in the neighbourhood secured the safety of the Doab for the time being, and as Fatehgarh was equally conveniently situated for an advance, either into Rohilkand or upon Lucknow, the rebels were kept in a state of uncertainty as to the direction of our next move.

Our extended stay at Fatehgarh had its benefits. With a large force gathered nearby, it ensured the safety of the Doab for the moment, and since Fatehgarh was conveniently located for an advance, whether into Rohilkand or towards Lucknow, it kept the rebels uncertain about our next move.

At length it was decided that Lucknow was to be our first objective, and Sir Colin at once communicated with Outram and Napier as to the best means of conducting the siege. Then, leaving Hope Grant to take the division across the Ganges, the Chief went to Allahabad, the temporary Head-Quarters of the supreme Government, to discuss the[Page 217] situation with the Governor-General.

At last, it was decided that Lucknow would be our first goal, and Sir Colin immediately got in touch with Outram and Napier about the best way to carry out the siege. After that, leaving Hope Grant to lead the division across the Ganges, the Chief went to Allahabad, the temporary headquarters of the supreme Government, to talk about the situation with the Governor-General.

We marched through Cawnpore, and on the 8th February reached Unao, where we found encamped the 7th Hussars, a troop of Royal Horse Artillery, the 38th Foot and the 79th Highlanders.

We marched through Cawnpore, and on February 8th we arrived at Unao, where we found the 7th Hussars, a unit of Royal Horse Artillery, the 38th Foot, and the 79th Highlanders camped out.

Sir Colin on his return from Allahabad on the 10th issued a General Order detailing the regiments, staff, and Commanders who were to take part in the 'Siege of Lucknow.'1 Hope Grant, who had been made a Major-General for the 'Relief of Lucknow,' was appointed to the command of the Cavalry division, and I remained with him as D.A.Q.M.G.

Sir Colin, upon returning from Allahabad on the 10th, issued a General Order outlining the regiments, staff, and Commanders who were going to participate in the 'Siege of Lucknow.'1 Hope Grant, who had been promoted to Major-General for the 'Relief of Lucknow,' was appointed to lead the Cavalry division, and I stayed with him as D.A.Q.M.G.

Mianganj Rumours had been flying about that the Nana was somewhere in the neighbourhood, but 'Wolf!' had been cried so often with regard to him, that but little notice was taken of the reports, until my faithful spy, Unjur Tiwari, brought me intelligence that the miscreant really was hiding in a small fort about twenty-five miles from our camp. Hope Grant started off at once, taking with him a compact little force, and reached the fort early next morning (17th February), just too late to catch the Nana, who, we were told, had fled precipitately before daybreak. We blew up the fort, and for the next few days moved by short marches towards Lucknow, clearing the country as we went of rebels, small parties of whom we frequently encountered. On the 23rd we reached Mianganj, a small fortified town on the old Cawnpore and Lucknow road, where some 2,000 of the enemy had ensconced themselves. Our advance guard having been fired upon as we approached, the column was halted and the baggage placed in safety, while Hope Grant reconnoitred the position in order to see where it could most advantageously be attacked. We found the town enclosed by a high loop-holed wall with circular bastions at the four corners and at regular[Page 218] intervals along the sides, the whole being surrounded by a wet ditch, while the gateways had been strengthened by palisades. Large bodies of the enemy's Cavalry hovered about our reconnoitring party, only to retire as we advanced, apparently not liking the look of the 7th Hussars and 9th Lancers, who formed the General's escort.

Mianganj Rumors had been swirling that the Nana was somewhere nearby, but “Wolf!” had been called so many times regarding him that not much attention was paid to the reports, until my loyal spy, Unjur Tiwari, informed me that the scoundrel was indeed hiding in a small fort about twenty-five miles from our camp. Hope Grant set off immediately with a small, efficient force and reached the fort early the next morning (17th February), just missing the Nana, who, we learned, had hastily fled before dawn. We blew up the fort and then moved by short marches towards Lucknow over the next few days, clearing the area of rebels, with whom we often had brief encounters. On the 23rd, we arrived at Mianganj, a small fortified town on the old Cawnpore and Lucknow road, where about 2,000 enemies had taken shelter. Our advance guard was fired upon as we got close, so the column was halted, and the baggage was secured while Hope Grant surveyed the position to determine the best way to attack. We found the town surrounded by a high, loop-holed wall with circular bastions at the four corners and at regular intervals along the sides, all encircled by a wet ditch, and the gateways reinforced with palisades. Large groups of the enemy's Cavalry circled around our reconnaissance party, retreating as we moved forward, apparently not wanting to confront the 7th Hussars and 9th Lancers, who were part of the General's escort.

After a careful inspection, Hope Grant decided to breach the north-west angle of the wall, as from a wood near the Infantry could keep down the fire of the enemy's sharpshooters, and the heavy guns would be in a measure protected while the walls were being bombarded. A sufficiently good breach was made in about two hours, and the 53rd Regiment, having been selected for the honour of leading the assault, was told to hold itself in readiness. Hope Grant then spoke a few words of encouragement to the men, and their Colonel (English) replied on their behalf that they might be depended upon to do their duty. The signal was given; the Horse Artillery, under Lieutenant-Colonel Frank Turner, galloped to within grape range of the town, and covered by their fire the 53rd marched in steadily until they got within 100 yards of the walls, when, with a ringing cheer, they dashed through the water in the ditch and entered the breach. Hopkins, the plucky Captain of the light company, was the first inside the walls, followed closely by Augustus Anson and an adventurous Post-Captain of the Royal Navy, who, being unemployed, came to see what 'a winter's campaign in India' was like.2 There was a good deal of hand-to-hand fighting, and the enemy lost about 500 men, those who tried to escape being cut down by the Cavalry outside the walls. We took about the same number of prisoners, but as none of these were soldiers, and vowed they had been forced to take up arms against us, the General, as much to their astonishment as to their delight, ordered them to be set free. Our losses were small.

After a thorough inspection, Hope Grant decided to break through the northwest corner of the wall, as someone in a nearby forest could keep the enemy's sharpshooters' fire under control, and the heavy artillery would be somewhat protected while the walls were being bombarded. A decent breach was created in about two hours, and the 53rd Regiment, chosen to lead the assault, was told to be ready. Hope Grant then gave a few words of encouragement to the troops, and their Colonel (English) replied on their behalf that they could be counted on to do their duty. The signal was given; the Horse Artillery, led by Lieutenant-Colonel Frank Turner, rode close enough to the town to be within grape shot range and provided covering fire as the 53rd marched steadily until they were 100 yards from the walls, when they let out a loud cheer, charged through the water in the ditch, and entered the breach. Captain Hopkins of the light company, known for his bravery, was the first inside the walls, closely followed by Augustus Anson and an adventurous Post-Captain from the Royal Navy, who had come to see what 'a winter's campaign in India' was like.2 There was quite a bit of close combat, and the enemy lost around 500 men, with those trying to escape being cut down by the Cavalry outside the walls. We also captured about the same number of prisoners, but since none of them were soldiers, and they claimed they had been forced to fight against us, the General, much to their astonishment and delight, ordered them to be released. Our losses were minimal.

Next day we halted while the walls were being destroyed and the place rendered indefensible. As I was superintending the work of destruction, the horrors of war were once more brought very forcibly before me by the appearance of an infirm old man, who besought me to spare his house, saying: 'Yesterday I was the happy father of five sons: three of them lie there' (pointing to a group of dead bodies); 'where the other two are, God only knows. I am old and a cripple, and if my house is burned there is nothing left for me but to die.' Of course I took care that his house and property were left untouched.

The next day we stopped while the walls were being torn down and the place made defenseless. As I oversaw the destruction, the brutal realities of war hit me hard when an elderly man approached me, pleading for me to spare his house. He said, "Yesterday I was the happy father of five sons; three of them are over there," pointing to a group of dead bodies. "Only God knows where the other two are. I am old and a cripple, and if my house is burned, there's nothing left for me but to die." Naturally, I made sure that his house and property were left unharmed.

On the 25th February we marched to Mohan, a picturesquely situated village on the bank of the Sai Naddi, which stream we crossed the next day and encamped on a fine grassy plain, there to remain until it should be time to join the army before Lucknow.

On February 25th, we marched to Mohan, a beautifully located village by the Sai Naddi river, which we crossed the next day and set up camp on a nice grassy plain, where we would stay until it was time to join the army in front of Lucknow.

Curious Effect of a Mirage While we were halting at this place, Watson and I had rather a[Page 219] curious adventure. During a morning's ride my greyhound put up a nilghai3 so close to us that Watson, aiming a blow at him with his sword, gashed his quarter. Off he started, and we after him at full speed; the chase continued for some miles without our getting much nearer, when, all at once, we beheld moving towards us from our right front a body of the enemy's Cavalry. We were in an awkward position; our horses were very nearly dead beat, and we could hardly hope to get away if pursued. We pulled up, turned round, and trotted back, very quietly at first, that our horses might recover their breath before the enemy got to closer quarters and we should have to ride for our lives. Every now and then we looked back to see whether they were gaining upon us, and at last we distinctly saw them open out and make as if to charge down upon us. We thought our last hour was come. We bade each other good-bye, agreeing that each must do his best to escape, and that neither was to wait for the other, when lo! as suddenly as they had appeared, the horsemen vanished, as though the ground had opened and swallowed them; there was nothing to be seen but the open plain, where a second before there had been a crowd of mounted men. We could hardly believe our eyes, or comprehend at first that what we had seen was simply a mirage, but so like reality that anyone must have been deceived. Our relief, on becoming convinced that we had been scared by a phantom enemy, was considerable; but the apparition had the good effect of making us realize the folly of having allowed ourselves to be tempted so far away from our camp without escort of any kind in an enemy's country, and we determined not to risk it again.4

Curious Effect of a Mirage While we were stopping at this spot, Watson and I had quite a[Page 219] strange adventure. During a morning ride, my greyhound startled a nilghai3 so close that Watson, trying to hit it with his sword, cut its flank. It took off, and we chased it at full speed; the pursuit went on for several miles without us getting much closer when suddenly, we saw a group of the enemy's cavalry moving toward us from our right. We were in a tough spot; our horses were nearly exhausted, and we could hardly expect to escape if they decided to follow. We slowed down, turned around, and trotted back, slowly at first so that our horses could catch their breath before the enemy got any closer and we had to run for our lives. Every few moments, we glanced back to see if they were gaining on us, and finally, we clearly saw them spread out and prepare to charge at us. We thought our end was near. We said our goodbyes, agreeing that each should do his best to escape and that neither should wait for the other, when suddenly! Just as quickly as they had appeared, the horsemen disappeared, as if the ground had opened up and swallowed them; there was nothing in sight but the open plain, where just a second before there had been a crowd of mounted men. We could hardly believe our eyes or understand at first that what we had seen was just a mirage, so real that anyone would have been fooled. Our relief, upon realizing that we had been frightened by a phantom enemy, was significant; but the experience made us acknowledge the foolishness of having let ourselves be tempted so far away from our camp without any escort in enemy territory, and we decided not to risk it again.4

While we were occupied in clearing the country to the north of the Cawnpore-Lucknow road, the main body of the army, with the siege-train, Engineer park, Naval Brigade,5 ammunition, and stores of all kinds, had gradually been collecting at Bhantira, to which place we were ordered to proceed on the 1st March. We had a troublesome march across country, and did not reach the Head-Quarters camp until close on midnight. There was much difficulty in getting the guns through the muddy nullas and up the steep banks, and but for the assistance of the elephants the task could hardly have been accomplished. It was most curious and interesting to see how these sagacious creatures watched for and seized the moment when their help was needed to get the guns up the steep inclines; they waited till the horses dragging the gun could do no more and were coming to a stand-still,[Page 220] when one of them would place his forehead against the muzzle and shove until the gun was safely landed on the top of the bank.

While we were busy clearing the area north of the Cawnpore-Lucknow road, the main army, along with the siege train, engineer park, naval Brigade,5 ammunition, and various supplies, gradually gathered at Bhantira, where we were ordered to head on March 1st. We had a challenging march through the countryside and didn’t arrive at the headquarters camp until nearly midnight. It was very difficult to get the guns through the muddy nullahs and up the steep banks, and without the help of the elephants, it would have been nearly impossible. It was fascinating to see how these intelligent animals waited for the right moment to assist in getting the guns up the steep slopes; they would hold back until the horses hauling the gun could go no further and were about to stop, at which point one of the elephants would press its forehead against the muzzle and push until the gun was safely on the top of the bank.

We started early on the morning of the 2nd for Lucknow, Hope Grant taking command of the Cavalry division for the first time.

We set out early on the morning of the 2nd for Lucknow, with Hope Grant taking charge of the Cavalry division for the first time.

The Dilkusha Revisited On nearing the Alambagh, we bore to our right past the Jalalabad fort, where Outram's Engineers were busily engaged in constructing fascines and gabions for the siege, and preparing spars and empty casks for bridging the Gumti. As we approached the Mahomedbagh we came under the fire of some of the enemy's guns placed in a grove of trees; but no sooner had the Artillery of our advance guard opened fire than the rebels retired, leaving a gun in our hands. We moved on to the Dilkusha, which we found unoccupied. The park had been greatly disfigured since our last visit, most of the finest trees having been cut down.

The Dilkusha Updated As we got closer to Alambagh, we turned right, passing by the Jalalabad fort, where Outram's Engineers were busy building fascines and gabions for the siege and getting spars and empty barrels ready for bridging the Gumti. When we got near the Mahomedbagh, we came under fire from some enemy guns hidden in a grove of trees; but as soon as our advance guard's artillery returned fire, the rebels pulled back, leaving a gun for us. We continued on to the Dilkusha, which we found unoccupied. The park looked very different since our last visit, with most of the best trees cut down.

My General was now placed in charge of the piquets, a position for which he was admirably fitted and in which he delighted. He rode well, without fatigue to himself or his horse, so that any duty entailing long hours in the saddle was particularly congenial to him. I invariably accompanied him in his rounds, and in after-years I often felt that I owed Hope Grant a debt of gratitude for the practical lessons he gave me in outpost duty.

My General was now in charge of the pickets, a role he was perfectly suited for and genuinely enjoyed. He rode well, causing no strain on himself or his horse, so any task requiring long hours in the saddle suited him perfectly. I always joined him on his rounds, and in later years, I often felt thankful to Hope Grant for the valuable lessons he taught me about outpost duty.

Strong piquets with heavy guns were placed in and around the Dilkusha, as well as in the Mahomedbagh. The main body of the army was encamped to the rear of the Dilkusha, its right almost on the Gumti, while its left stretched for two miles in the direction of the Alambagh. Hope Grant, wishing to be in a convenient position in case of an attack, spent the night in the Mahomedbagh piquet, and Anson, the D.A.A.G., and I kept him company.

Strong pickets with heavy artillery were stationed in and around the Dilkusha, as well as in the Mahomedbagh. The main part of the army was set up behind the Dilkusha, its right almost by the Gumti, while its left extended for two miles towards the Alambagh. Hope Grant, wanting to be in a good position in case of an attack, spent the night at the Mahomedbagh picket, and Anson, the D.A.A.G., and I kept him company.

On the 3rd some of the troops left at Bhantira came into camp, and on the 5th General Franks arrived. His division, together with the Nepalese Contingent, 9,000 strong, brought the numbers at the Commander-in-Chief's disposal up to nearly 31,000 men, with 164 guns;6 not a man too many for the capture of a city twenty miles in circumference, defended by 120,000 armed men, who for three months and a half had worked incessantly at strengthening the defences, which consisted of three lines, extending lengthwise from the Charbagh bridge to[Page 221] the Gumti, and in depth from the canal to the Kaisarbagh.

On the 3rd, some of the troops left at Bhantira came into camp, and on the 5th, General Franks arrived. His division, along with the Nepalese Contingent, which was 9,000 strong, brought the total number of forces at the Commander-in-Chief's disposal to nearly 31,000 men, with 164 guns;6 not a single extra person for the capture of a city that spanned twenty miles in circumference, defended by 120,000 armed men who had spent three and a half months tirelessly strengthening the defenses. These defenses consisted of three lines stretching from the Charbagh bridge to[Page 221] the Gumti, and in depth from the canal to the Kaisarbagh.

Passage of the Gumti In Napier's carefully prepared plan, which Sir Colin decided to adopt, it was shown that the attack should be made on the east, as that side offered the smallest front, it afforded ground for planting our Artillery, which the west side did not, and it was the shortest approach to the Kaisarbagh, a place to which the rebels attached the greatest importance; more than all, we knew the east side, and were little acquainted with the west. Napier further recommended that the attack should be accompanied by a flank movement on the north, with the object of taking in reverse the first and second lines of the enemy's defences.7 A division was accordingly sent across the Gumti for this purpose, and the movement, being entirely successful, materially aided in the capture of the city. The passage of the river was effected by means of two pontoon bridges made of empty barrels, and thrown across the stream a little below the Dilkusha. They were completed by midnight on the 5th March, and before day broke the troops detailed for this service had crossed over.

Gumti Crossing In Napier's carefully crafted plan, which Sir Colin decided to follow, it was indicated that the attack should happen on the east side since that area presented the smallest front, allowed for positioning our artillery, which the west side did not, and provided the shortest route to Kaisarbagh, a location that was extremely important to the rebels. Most importantly, we were familiar with the east side and knew little about the west. Napier also suggested that the attack should be supported by a flank movement to the north, aiming to take out the first and second lines of the enemy's defences.7 A division was therefore sent across the Gumti for this purpose, and the operation was completely successful, significantly contributing to the city's capture. The crossing of the river was achieved using two pontoon bridges made from empty barrels, set up just below the Dilkusha. They were finished by midnight on March 5th, and before dawn, the troops assigned for this task had crossed over.

Outram, who, since the 'Relief of Lucknow,' had been maintaining his high reputation by keeping the enemy in check before the Alambagh, commanded this division, with Hope Grant as his second in command. As soon as it was light we moved away from the river to be out of reach of the Martinière guns, and after marching for about two miles we came in view of the enemy; the Artillery of the advance guard got to within a thousand yards and opened fire, upon which the rebels broke and fled. The Bays pursued them for a short distance, but with very little result, the ground being intersected with nullas, and the enemy opening upon them with heavy guns, they had to retire precipitately, with the loss of their Major, Percy Smith, whose body, unhappily, had to be abandoned.

Outram, who had been maintaining his strong reputation since the 'Relief of Lucknow' by keeping the enemy in check at Alambagh, was in command of this division, with Hope Grant as his second in command. As soon as it got light, we moved away from the river to stay out of range of the Martinière guns, and after marching about two miles, we spotted the enemy. The artillery of the advance guard got within a thousand yards and opened fire, causing the rebels to break and flee. The Bays pursued them for a short distance, but with little success, as the ground was broken with nullas, and the enemy fired on them with heavy guns, forcing them to retreat quickly, unfortunately losing their Major, Percy Smith, whose body had to be left behind.

About noon we encamped close to Chinhut, and Hope Grant took special care that day to see the piquets were well placed, for the rebels were in great numbers, and we were surrounded by ravines and wooded enclosures. It was thought by some that he was unnecessarily anxious and careful, for he rode several times over the ground; but the next morning proved how right he was to leave nothing to chance.

About noon, we set up camp near Chinhut, and Hope Grant made sure that day that the sentries were positioned well because there were a lot of rebels around, and we were surrounded by ravines and wooded areas. Some people thought he was being overly cautious and worried since he rode over the area several times, but the next morning showed just how correct he was to not leave anything to chance.

While we were at breakfast, information was brought in that the enemy were advancing in force, and directly afterwards half a dozen round shot were sent into our camp; the troops fell in, the Infantry[Page 222] moved out, and Hope Grant took the Horse Artillery and Cavalry to our right flank, where the mutineers were collected in considerable numbers. In less than an hour we had driven them off, but we were not allowed to follow them up, as Outram did not wish to get entangled in the suburbs until heavy guns had arrived. The piquets were strengthened and pushed forward, affording another opportunity for a useful lesson in outpost duty.

While we were having breakfast, we got word that the enemy was advancing in force, and shortly after, about six cannonballs were fired into our camp. The troops quickly assembled, the Infantry[Page 222] moved out, and Hope Grant took the Horse Artillery and Cavalry to our right flank, where the mutineers had gathered in large numbers. In less than an hour, we had driven them off, but we weren't allowed to pursue them because Outram didn't want to get caught up in the suburbs until heavy artillery arrived. The pickets were strengthened and pushed forward, providing another chance for a valuable lesson in outpost duty.

All that day and the next I accompanied my General in his reconnaissance of the enemy's position, as well as of the ground near the Gumti, in order to determine where the heavy guns could best be placed, so as effectually to enfilade the enemy's first line of defences along the bank of the canal. On returning to report progress to Outram at mid-day on the 8th, we found Sir Colin Campbell and Mansfield with him, arranging for a joint attack the following day; after their consultation was over, they all rode with us to see the site Hope Grant had selected for the battery. It was a slightly elevated piece of ground about half a mile north of the Kokrel nulla, fairly concealed by a bend of the river; but before it could be made use of it was considered necessary to clear the rebels out of the position they were occupying between the nulla and the iron bridge, the key to which was the Chakar Kothi, and Outram was directed to attack this point the next morning.

All that day and the next, I accompanied my General in his reconnaissance of the enemy's position and the area near the Gumti to figure out where to best position the heavy guns to effectively target the enemy's first line of defenses along the bank of the canal. When we returned to report our progress to Outram at noon on the 8th, we found Sir Colin Campbell and Mansfield with him, planning a joint attack for the following day. After their meeting, they all rode with us to inspect the location Hope Grant had chosen for the battery. It was a slightly elevated area about half a mile north of the Kokrel nulla, somewhat hidden by a bend in the river; however, before it could be used, it was deemed necessary to clear the rebels from the position they were holding between the nulla and the iron bridge, which was key, with the Chakar Kothi being the main focus. Outram was instructed to attack this point the next morning.

At 2 a.m. on the 9th the heavy guns, escorted by the 1st Bengal Fusiliers, were sent forward to within 600 yards of the enemy. The troops then moved off in two parties, that on the right being commanded by Hope Grant. We marched along the Fyzabad road, the two Rifle Brigade battalions leading the way in skirmishing order, with the Cavalry well away to the right. The rebels retired as we advanced, and Walpole, commanding one of our brigades, by wheeling to his left on reaching the opposite bank of the nulla, was enabled to enfilade their position. The column was then halted, and I was sent to inform Outram as to our progress.

At 2 a.m. on the 9th, the heavy guns, accompanied by the 1st Bengal Fusiliers, were moved forward to within 600 yards of the enemy. The troops then split into two groups, with the one on the right led by Hope Grant. We marched along the Fyzabad road, with the two Rifle Brigade battalions in front in skirmishing formation, while the Cavalry stayed far to the right. The rebels pulled back as we advanced, and Walpole, who was in charge of one of our brigades, was able to flank their position by turning to his left upon reaching the opposite bank of the nulla. The column was then stopped, and I was sent to update Outram on our progress.

When I had delivered my message, and was about to return, Outram desired me to stay with him until the capture of the Chakar Kothi (which he was just about to attempt) should be accomplished, that I might then convey to Hope Grant his orders as to what further action would be required of him; meanwhile Outram sent a messenger to tell my General what he was about to do, in view of his co-operating on the right.8

When I finished delivering my message and was getting ready to leave, Outram asked me to stick around until they captured the Chakar Kothi, which he was about to try to take. He wanted me to then pass on to Hope Grant his instructions regarding what he should do next. In the meantime, Outram sent a messenger to inform my General of his plans so he could coordinate on the right.8

Capture of the Chakar Kothi The Chakar Kothi was attacked and taken, and the enemy, apparently[Page 223] having lost heart, fled precipitately. One of the 1st Bengal Fusiliers' colours was placed on the top of this three-storied building by Ensign Jervis to show the Commander-in-Chief that it was in our possession, and that the time had come for him to attack the first line of the enemy's defences. We then continued our advance to the river, where the parties united, and I rejoined Hope Grant.

Capture of the Chakar Kothi The Chakar Kothi was attacked and captured, and the enemy, seemingly having lost their nerve, fled in panic. Ensign Jervis placed one of the 1st Bengal Fusiliers' colors on top of this three-story building to signal to the Commander-in-Chief that it was under our control and that the time had come for him to attack the enemy's front line defenses. We then continued our advance to the river, where the groups joined, and I rejoined Hope Grant.

It was now only 2 p.m., and there was plenty of time to place the heavy guns in position before dark. Major Lothian Nicholson,9 Outram's Commanding Engineer, was superintending this operation, when he thought he perceived that the enemy had abandoned their first line, but he could not be quite sure. It was most necessary to ascertain for certain whether this was the case, as the Infantry of Hope's brigade, which had attacked and driven the rebels out of the Martinière, could be seen preparing to assault the works at the other side of the river. A discussion ensued as to how this knowledge could be obtained, and a young subaltern of the 1st Bengal Fusiliers, named Butler,10 offered to swim across the Gumti, and, if he found the enemy had retired, to communicate the fact to Hope's men. This feat was successfully accomplished by the plucky young volunteer; he found the enemy had retired, and, on giving the information to Hope, the brigade advanced, and before nightfall the whole of the enemy's first line was in our possession—a success which had been achieved with but slight loss to us, the chief casualty during the day being William Peel, the gallant Commander of the Naval Brigade, who had been seriously wounded while in command of a battery near the Dilkusha.

It was only 2 p.m., and there was still plenty of time to set up the heavy guns before dark. Major Lothian Nicholson, 9 Outram's Commanding Engineer, was overseeing this operation when he thought he noticed that the enemy had abandoned their first line, but he couldn't be completely sure. It was crucial to find out for certain whether this was true, as the infantry of Hope's brigade, which had attacked and pushed the rebels out of the Martinière, could be seen getting ready to assault the positions on the other side of the river. A discussion followed about how to confirm this information, and a young subaltern from the 1st Bengal Fusiliers, named Butler, 10 volunteered to swim across the Gumti and, if he found the enemy had retreated, to relay the information to Hope's men. The brave young volunteer successfully completed this task; he discovered that the enemy had fallen back and, upon informing Hope, the brigade advanced, and before nightfall, we had taken over the entire enemy's first line—a victory achieved with minimal losses on our side, the main casualty of the day being William Peel, the courageous Commander of the Naval Brigade, who had been seriously wounded while commanding a battery near the Dilkusha.

The next day, the 10th, Outram's camp was moved close up to the Gumti, and batteries were constructed from which fire could be poured on the mess-house and the Kaisarbagh. For the protection of these works, and to prevent an attack in force being made on the main part of the column, Hope Grant kept moving about with the Horse Artillery and Cavalry between the river and the Sitapur road, our reconnaissance extending beyond the old cantonment. We had several little fights, in one of which a very promising officer named Sandford, who had succeeded Younghusband in command of the 5th Punjab Cavalry squadron, was killed.

The next day, the 10th, Outram's camp was shifted closer to the Gumti, and they set up batteries that could target the mess-house and the Kaisarbagh. To protect these setups and to stop a large-scale attack on the main part of the column, Hope Grant kept moving around with the Horse Artillery and Cavalry between the river and the Sitapur road, extending our reconnaissance beyond the old cantonment. We had several small skirmishes, one of which resulted in the death of a promising officer named Sandford, who had taken over from Younghusband as the commander of the 5th Punjab Cavalry squadron.

Capture of the Iron Bridge At daybreak on the morning of the 11th the batteries opened fire on the enemy's second line of defence; at the same time Outram himself led a strong body of Infantry along the river with the object of securing the approaches to the bridges. On reaching the Fyzabad road, about half a mile from the iron bridge, Outram placed the 1st Bengal Fusiliers in a mosque, with orders to entrench themselves and hold the post, while he pushed on to the stone bridge about a mile away. Outram's[Page 224] advance was covered by Hope Grant's Horse Artillery and Cavalry, but we had to keep at some distance away to the right, in order to avoid houses and walled enclosures. Soon after crossing the Sitapur road we heard guns to our left, and proceeding at a smart trot, came up with Outram just as he was about to attack a large body of the rebels, who, finding themselves in an awkward position, with the river in their rear and their retreat by the iron bridge cut off, made but a feeble resistance before they broke and fled. Some few escaped by the stone bridge, but the greater number, including the whole of the mutinous 15th Irregular Cavalry, made for the old cantonment. We pursued with our Cavalry, and very few of them got away. A couple of guns and a quantity of plunder were left behind by the enemy, who evidently had not expected us and were quite unprepared for our attack. Outram pushed on to the stone bridge, but finding he was losing men from the fire poured upon us by the rebels from the opposite side of the river, he fell back to the mosque where he had left the Fusiliers.

Capture of the Iron Bridge At dawn on the 11th, the artillery opened fire on the enemy's second line of defense. At the same time, Outram personally led a strong group of infantry along the river to secure the approaches to the bridges. When they reached the Fyzabad road, about half a mile from the iron bridge, Outram positioned the 1st Bengal Fusiliers in a mosque, instructing them to dig in and hold the location while he moved on to the stone bridge, roughly a mile away. Outram's[Page 224] advance was shielded by Hope Grant's Horse Artillery and Cavalry, but we had to keep our distance to the right to avoid houses and walled areas. Shortly after crossing the Sitapur road, we heard gunfire to our left and, quickening our pace, caught up with Outram just as he was about to engage a large group of rebels. Finding themselves in a tough spot with the river behind them and their retreat blocked by the iron bridge, the rebels put up only weak resistance before breaking and fleeing. A few managed to escape via the stone bridge, but the majority, including all of the mutinous 15th Irregular Cavalry, ran toward the old cantonment. We chased them with our cavalry, and very few got away. The enemy left behind a couple of guns and a stash of loot, clearly unprepared for our attack. Outram continued to the stone bridge, but noticing that they were losing men to the enemy fire from across the river, he fell back to the mosque where he had left the Fusiliers.

That afternoon, as there was nothing particular for the Cavalry to do, the General, Anson, and I rode across the river to see how matters were progressing on the left of the attack. We reached the Head-Quarters camp just as Sir Colin was about to receive a visit of ceremony from the Nepalese General, the famous Jung Bahadur. Our old Chief, in honour of the occasion, had doffed his usual workman-like costume, and wore General's full-dress uniform, but he was quite thrown into the shade by the splendour of the Gurkha Prince, who was most gorgeously attired, with magnificent jewels in his turban, round his neck, and on his coat.

That afternoon, since the Cavalry had nothing specific to do, the General, Anson, and I rode across the river to check on how things were going on the left side of the attack. We arrived at the Headquarters camp just as Sir Colin was about to host a ceremonial visit from the Nepalese General, the renowned Jung Bahadur. Our old Chief, in honor of the occasion, had changed out of his usual work clothes and was wearing the full-dress uniform of a General, but he was completely overshadowed by the grandeur of the Gurkha Prince, who was dressed in a stunning outfit adorned with magnificent jewels in his turban, around his neck, and on his coat.

I looked at Jung Bahadur with no small interest, for his deeds of daring had made him conspicuous amongst probably the bravest race of men in the world, and the fact that a high-born Hindu, such as he was, should, fifty years ago, have so far risen superior to caste prejudice as to cross the sea and visit England, proved him to be a man of unusually strong and independent mind. He was about five feet eight inches high—tall for a Gurkha—with a well-knit, wiry figure, a keen, dauntless eye, and a firm, determined mouth—in every respect a typical, well-bred Nepalese. The interview did not last long, for Sir Colin disliked ceremonial, and, shortly after the Nepalese Prince had taken his seat, news was brought in that the assault on the Begum Kothi had been successfully completed, upon which Sir Colin made the necessity for attending to business an excuse for taking leave of his distinguished visitor, and the interview came to an end.

I watched Jung Bahadur with great interest because his brave actions had made him stand out among possibly the most courageous people in the world. The fact that he was a high-born Hindu who, fifty years ago, had overcome caste prejudices enough to travel across the sea to England showed that he was a man with a remarkably strong and independent mind. He stood about five feet eight inches tall—tall for a Gurkha—with a fit, muscular build, a sharp, fearless gaze, and a firm, determined mouth—in every way a typical, well-bred Nepalese. The meeting didn’t last long because Sir Colin wasn’t fond of formalities. Shortly after the Nepalese Prince had taken his seat, word came in that the assault on the Begum Kothi had been successfully completed, which prompted Sir Colin to use the need to attend to business as an excuse to end his meeting with the distinguished visitor.

Hodson Mortallly Wounded I then obtained leave to go to the scene of the recent fight, and, galloping across the canal by the bridge near Banks's house, soon found myself at the Begum Kothi. There I was obliged to dismount, for even on foot it was a difficult matter to scramble over the breach.[Page 225] The place was most formidable, and it was a marvel that it had been taken with comparatively so little loss on our side. The bodies of a number of Highlanders and Punjabis were lying about, and a good many wounded men were being attended to, but our casualties were nothing in proportion to those of the enemy, 600 or 700 of whom were buried the next day in the ditch they had themselves dug for their own protection. A very determined stand had been made by the sepoys when they found there was no chance of getting away. There were many tales of hair-breadth escapes and desperate struggles, and on all sides I hoard laments that Hodson should have been one of those dangerously, if not mortally, wounded in the strife. Hodson had been carried to Banks's house, and to the inquiry I made on my way back to camp, as to his condition, the answer was, 'Little, if any, hope.'

Hodson Fatally Wounded I then got permission to go to the site of the recent battle and, galloping across the canal by the bridge near Banks's house, quickly found myself at the Begum Kothi. There, I had to get off my horse because even on foot it was challenging to scramble over the breach.[Page 225] The place was quite imposing, and it was surprising that it had been taken with relatively so few losses on our side. The bodies of several Highlanders and Punjabis were scattered around, and many wounded men were being treated, but our casualties were nothing compared to those of the enemy, 600 or 700 of whom were buried the next day in the ditch they had dug for their own protection. The sepoys had made a very determined stand when they realized there was no chance of escape. There were many stories of narrow escapes and desperate fights, and everywhere I heard people mourning that Hodson was one of those dangerously, if not mortally, wounded in the conflict. Hodson had been taken to Banks's house, and when I inquired about his condition on my way back to camp, the response was, 'Little, if any, hope.'

A great stride in the advance had been made on this day. Outram had accomplished all that was expected of him, and he was now busy constructing additional batteries for the bombardment of the Kaisarbagh; while Lugard,11 from his newly-acquired position at the Begum Kothi, was also able to bring fire to bear upon that doomed palace.

A significant progress was made that day. Outram had achieved everything that was anticipated from him, and he was now focused on building extra batteries for the attack on the Kaisarbagh; while Lugard,11 from his newly gained position at the Begum Kothi, was also able to target that fated palace.

Hodson died the following day (the 12th). As a soldier, I had a very great admiration, for him, and, in common with the whole army, I mourned his early death.12

Hodson died the next day (the 12th). As a soldier, I greatly admired him, and like the rest of the army, I mourned his untimely death.12

On the 13th Lugard's division was relieved by Franks's, and to Jung Bahadur and his Gurkhas, only too eager for the fray, was entrusted the conduct of operations along the line of the canal between Banks's house and the Charbagh bridge. On our side of the river nothing of importance occurred.

On the 13th, Franks’s division took over from Lugard’s, and the task of managing operations along the canal between Banks’s house and the Charbagh bridge was given to Jung Bahadur and his Gurkhas, who were more than ready for a fight. On our side of the river, nothing significant happened.

The capture of the Imambara (a mosque situated between the Begum[Page 226] Kothi and the Kaisarbagh) was accomplished early next morning. The assault was led by Brasyer's Sikhs and a detachment of the 10th Foot, supported by the remainder of that regiment and the 90th Light Infantry. After a short but very severe struggle, the enemy were forced to retire, and were so closely pursued that the storming party suddenly found themselves in a building immediately overlooking the Kaisarbagh.

The capture of the Imambara (a mosque located between the Begum[Page 226] Kothi and the Kaisarbagh) was achieved early the next morning. The attack was led by Brasyer's Sikhs and a group from the 10th Foot, backed up by the rest of that regiment and the 90th Light Infantry. After a brief but intense fight, the enemy was forced to retreat and was chased so closely that the attacking party suddenly found themselves in a building right overlooking the Kaisarbagh.

It had not been intended to advance that day beyond the Imambara, but, recognizing the advantage of the position thus gained, and the demoralized condition of the rebels, Franks wisely determined to follow up his success. Reinforcements were hurried forward, the troops holding the Sikandarbagh and the Shah Najaf were ordered to act in concert, and before nightfall the Kaisarbagh, the mess-house, and the numerous buildings situated between those places and the Residency, were in our possession.

It wasn’t planned to move beyond the Imambara that day, but seeing the benefit of the position we had gained and the weakened state of the rebels, Franks wisely decided to capitalize on his victory. Reinforcements were sent quickly, and the troops at Sikandarbagh and Shah Najaf were instructed to work together. By nightfall, we had taken control of Kaisarbagh, the mess house, and the many buildings located between those areas and the Residency.

Outram's Soldierly Instinct

A Lost Opportunity
By means of the field telegraph, Outram was kept accurately informed as to the movements of Franks's division, and he could have afforded it valuable assistance had he been allowed to cross the Gumti with his three brigades of Infantry. Outram, with his soldierly instinct, felt that this was the proper course to pursue; but in reply to his request to be allowed to push over the river by the iron bridge, he received from the Commander-in-Chief through Mansfield the unaccountably strange order that he must not attempt it, if it would entail his losing 'a single man.' Thus a grand opportunity was lost. The bridge, no doubt, was strongly held, but with the numerous guns which Outram could have brought to bear upon its defenders its passage could have been forced without serious loss; the enemy's retreat would have been cut off, and Franks's victory would have been rendered complete, which it certainly was not, owing to Outram's hands having been so effectually tied.

Outram's Military Instinct

A Missed Opportunity
Using the field telegraph, Outram was kept accurately updated on the movements of Franks's division, and he could have provided valuable support had he been allowed to cross the Gumti with his three brigades of infantry. Outram, trusting his instincts as a soldier, believed this was the right move to make; however, in response to his request to cross the river at the iron bridge, he received an inexplicably odd order from the Commander-in-Chief through Mansfield stating he must not attempt it if it risked losing 'a single man.' Thus, a significant opportunity was wasted. The bridge was undoubtedly well-defended, but with the many guns Outram could have deployed against its defenders, the crossing could have been achieved with minimal loss; the enemy's retreat would have been blocked, and Franks's victory would have been complete, which it definitely was not, due to Outram's hands being so effectively tied.

Lucknow was practically in our hands on the evening of the 14th March, but the rebels escaped with comparatively slight punishment, and the campaign, which should have then come to an end, was protracted for nearly a year by the fugitives spreading themselves over Oudh, and occupying forts and other strong positions, from which they were able to offer resistance to our troops until towards the end of May, 1859, thus causing the needless loss of thousands of British soldiers.13 Sir Colin saw his mistake when too late. The next day orders were issued for the Cavalry to follow up the mutineers, who were understood to have fled in a northerly direction. One brigade under Campbell (the Colonel of the Bays) was directed to proceed to Sandila, and another, under Hope Grant, towards Sitapur. But the[Page 227] enemy was not seen by either. As usual, they had scattered themselves over the country and entirely disappeared, and many of the rebels who still remained in the city seized the opportunity of the Cavalry being absent to get away.

Lucknow was almost in our grasp on the evening of March 14th, but the rebels managed to escape with relatively little punishment. The campaign, which should have ended then, dragged on for nearly a year as the fugitives spread out across Oudh, taking over forts and other strongholds. They were able to resist our troops until late May 1859, resulting in the unnecessary loss of thousands of British soldiers.13 Sir Colin realized his mistake too late. The next day, orders were given for the Cavalry to pursue the mutineers, who were believed to have fled north. One brigade under Campbell (the Colonel of the Bays) was sent to Sandila, while another, led by Hope Grant, moved towards Sitapur. But neither brigade encountered the enemy. As usual, the rebels had scattered and vanished, and many of those still in the city took advantage of the Cavalry's absence to escape.

Outram's command on the left bank of the Gumti was now broken up, with the view to his completing the occupation of the city. Accordingly, on the 16th, he advanced from the Kaisarbagh with Douglas's brigade14 and Middleton's battery, supported by the 20th Foot and Brasyer's Sikhs, and occupied in quick succession, and with but slight resistance, the Residency, the Machi Bhawan, and the great Imambara, thus taking in reverse the defences which had been thrown up by the enemy for the protection of the two bridges. As Outram pushed on, the rebels retreated, some across the stone bridge towards Fyzabad, and some through the city towards the Musabagh. They made two attacks to cover their retirement, one on Walpole's piquets, which enabled a large number (20,000 it was said) to get away in the Fyzabad direction, and another on the Alambagh, which was much more serious, for the garrison had been reduced to less than a thousand men, and the rebels' force was considerable, consisting of Infantry, Cavalry and Artillery. They attacked with great determination, and fought for four hours and a half before they were driven off.

Outram's command on the left bank of the Gumti was now broken up, with the aim of completing his occupation of the city. So, on the 16th, he moved out from the Kaisarbagh with Douglas's brigade14 and Middleton's battery, backed by the 20th Foot and Brasyer's Sikhs, and quickly took control of the Residency, the Machi Bhawan, and the great Imambara with only minor resistance, effectively bypassing the defenses the enemy had set up to protect the two bridges. As Outram advanced, the rebels retreated, some fleeing across the stone bridge toward Fyzabad, while others moved through the city towards the Musabagh. They launched two attacks to cover their escape—one on Walpole's outposts, which allowed a significant number (reportedly 20,000) to escape toward Fyzabad, and another, much more serious assault on the Alambagh, where the garrison was down to fewer than a thousand men, facing a substantial rebel force made up of infantry, cavalry, and artillery. They attacked fiercely and fought for four and a half hours before being pushed back.

It was not a judicious move on Sir Colin's part to send the Cavalry miles away from Lucknow just when they could have been so usefully employed on the outskirts of the city. This was also appreciated when too late, and both brigades were ordered to return, which they did on the 17th. Even then the Cavalry were not made full use of, for instead of both brigades being collected on the Lucknow bank of the river, which was now the sole line of retreat left open to the enemy (the bridges being in our possession), one only (Campbell's) was sent there, Hope Grant being directed to take up his old position on the opposite side of the Gumti, from which we had the mortification of watching the rebels streaming into the open country from the Musabagh, without the smallest attempt being made by Campbell to stop or pursue them. His brigade had been placed on the enemy's line of retreat on purpose to intercept them, but he completely failed to do what was expected of him. We, on our side, could do nothing, for an unfordable river flowed between us and the escaping mutineers.15

It wasn't a smart decision by Sir Colin to send the Cavalry miles away from Lucknow just when they could have been really useful on the outskirts of the city. This realization came too late, and both brigades were ordered to head back, which they did on the 17th. Even then, the Cavalry weren't fully utilized because instead of bringing both brigades to the Lucknow side of the river—now the only escape route left for the enemy (since we had the bridges)—only one brigade (Campbell's) was sent there. Hope Grant was instructed to return to his old position on the opposite side of the Gumti, from where we had the frustrating sight of watching the rebels flood into the open country from the Musabagh without Campbell making any effort to stop or chase them. His brigade had been strategically placed on the enemy's escape route to intercept them, but he completely failed to do what was expected. We, on our side, could do nothing because an impassable river lay between us and the fleeing mutineers.15

There was one more fight in Lucknow. The Moulvie16 of Fyzabad[Page 228] (who from the first was one of the prominent leaders of the rebellion) had returned at the head of a considerable force, and had placed himself in a strongly-fortified position in the very centre of the city. It was not without a severe struggle that he was dislodged by the 93rd Highlanders and 4th Punjab Infantry under Lugard. The brunt of the fighting fell upon the last-named regiment, the gallant Commander (Wilde) of which, and his second in command,17 were severely wounded. The Moulvie made his escape, but his followers were pursued, and many of them were cut up. Thus at last the city was cleared of rebels, and we were once more masters in Lucknow.

There was one more fight in Lucknow. The Moulvie16 of Fyzabad[Page 228] (who had been one of the main leaders of the rebellion from the start) had returned with a considerable force and set himself up in a heavily fortified position right in the center of the city. It took a tough struggle for the 93rd Highlanders and the 4th Punjab Infantry under Lugard to dislodge him. The bulk of the fighting fell on the latter regiment, whose brave Commander (Wilde) and his second in command,17 were seriously wounded. The Moulvie managed to escape, but his followers were chased, and many were killed. Finally, the city was cleared of rebels, and we regained control of Lucknow.

On the 22nd March Hope Grant was ordered to proceed to Kursi, a small town about twenty-five miles off between the Sitapur and Fyzabad roads, reported to be occupied in force by the enemy.

On March 22, Hope Grant was instructed to head to Kursi, a small town around twenty-five miles away between the Sitapur and Fyzabad roads, which was reportedly heavily occupied by the enemy.

We started at midnight with a brigade of Infantry, 1,000 Cavalry, two troops of Horse Artillery, and eight heavy guns and mortars. We were delayed some hours by the heavy guns and their escort (the 53rd Foot) taking a wrong turn when leaving the city, which resulted in the enemy being warned of our approach in time to clear out before we arrived.

We began at midnight with a group of infantry, 1,000 cavalry, two units of horse artillery, and eight heavy guns and mortars. We were held up for several hours because the heavy guns and their escort (the 53rd Foot) took a wrong turn leaving the city, which gave the enemy enough time to be alerted to our approach and evacuate before we got there.

Death of MacDonnell

Sam Browne
On hearing they had gone, Hope Grant pushed on with the mounted portion of the force, and we soon came in sight of the enemy in full retreat. The Cavalry, commanded by Captain Browne,18 was ordered to pursue. It consisted of Browne's own regiment (the 2nd Punjab Cavalry), a squadron of the 1st Punjab Cavalry under Captain Cosserat, and three Horse Artillery guns. At the end of two miles, Browne came upon a body of the mutineers formed up on an open plain. The Cavalry charged through them three times, each time thinning their[Page 229] ranks considerably, but they never wavered, and in the final charge avenged themselves by killing Macdonnell (the Adjutant of the 2nd Punjab Cavalry), and mortally wounding Cosserat. I arrived on the ground with Hope Grant just in time to witness the last charge and the fall of these two officers, and deplorable as we felt their loss to be, it was impossible not to admire the gallantry and steadiness of the sepoys, every one of whom fought to the death.

Death of MacDonnell

Sam Browne
When Hope Grant heard they had left, he moved forward with the mounted part of the force, and we soon saw the enemy retreating. The Cavalry, led by Captain Browne,18 was told to chase them. It included Browne's own regiment (the 2nd Punjab Cavalry), a squadron from the 1st Punjab Cavalry under Captain Cosserat, and three Horse Artillery guns. After two miles, Browne encountered a group of mutineers set up on an open plain. The Cavalry charged through them three times, significantly reducing their numbers each time, but they never backed down. In the final charge, they got their revenge by killing Macdonnell (the Adjutant of the 2nd Punjab Cavalry) and seriously wounding Cosserat. I arrived on the scene with Hope Grant just in time to see the last charge and the fall of these two officers, and despite how heartbreaking their loss was, it was impossible not to admire the bravery and determination of the sepoys, each of whom fought to the end.



GENERAL SIR SAMUEL BROWNE, V.C., G.C.B., K.C.S.I.

GENERAL SIR SAMUEL BROWNE, V.C., G.C.B., K.C.S.I.

From
a photograph by Messrs. Elliot and Fry.

GENERAL SIR SAMUEL BROWNE, V.C., G.C.B., K.C.S.I.

GENERAL SIR SAMUEL BROWNE, V.C., G.C.B., K.C.S.I.

From a photo by Elliot and Fry.



As soon as Browne could got his men together, the pursuit of the enemy was continued; no further opposition was met with, and fourteen guns fell into our hands.

As soon as Browne gathered his men, they continued chasing the enemy; they faced no more resistance, and fourteen guns were captured.

On the 24th we retraced our steps, halting for the night at the old cantonment of Muriao, where we buried poor Macdonnell. On the 25th we crossed the Gumti, and pitched our camp near the Dilkusha.

On the 24th, we retraced our steps and stopped for the night at the old cantonnement of Muriao, where we buried poor Macdonnell. On the 25th, we crossed the Gumti and set up our camp near the Dilkusha.

Lucknow was now completely in our possession, and our success had been achieved with remarkably slight loss, a result which was chiefly due to the scientific manner in which the siege operations had been carried on under the direction of our talented Chief Engineer, Robert Napier, ably assisted by Colonel Harness; and also to the good use which Sir Colin Campbell made of his powerful force of Artillery. Our casualties during the siege amounted to only 16 British officers, 3 Native officers, and 108 men killed; 51 British officers, 4 Native officers, and 540 men wounded, while 13 men were unaccounted for.

Lucknow was now fully under our control, and we achieved this success with surprisingly low casualties, mostly due to the strategic way the siege was conducted under the leadership of our skilled Chief Engineer, Robert Napier, with strong support from Colonel Harness. Additionally, Sir Colin Campbell effectively utilized his formidable artillery force. Our total casualties during the siege were just 16 British officers, 3 Native officers, and 108 men killed; 51 British officers, 4 Native officers, and 540 men injured, while 13 men were unaccounted for.

The capture of Lucknow, though not of such supreme importance in its consequences as the taking of Delhi, must have convinced the rebels that their cause was now hopeless. It is true that Jhansi had not yet fallen, and that the rest of Oudh, Rohilkand, and the greater part of Central India remained to be conquered, but there was no very important city in the hands of the enemy, and the subjugation of the country was felt to be merely a matter of time. Sir Hugh Rose, after a brilliant campaign, had arrived before Jhansi, columns of our troops were traversing the country in every direction, and the British Army had been so largely increased that, on the 1st of April, 1858, there were 96,000 British soldiers in India, besides a large body of reliable Native troops, some of whom, although hurriedly raised, had already shown that they were capable of doing good service—a very different state of affairs from that which prevailed six months before.

The capture of Lucknow, while not as crucial in its consequences as taking Delhi, must have convinced the rebels that their cause was now hopeless. It's true that Jhansi had not yet fallen and that the rest of Oudh, Rohilkand, and most of Central India still had to be conquered, but there weren't any significant cities left in enemy hands, and subjugating the country felt like just a matter of time. Sir Hugh Rose, after a brilliant campaign, had arrived outside Jhansi, our troops were moving through the country in all directions, and the British Army had grown so much that, on April 1, 1858, there were 96,000 British soldiers in India, along with a large number of reliable Native troops. Some of these troops, though quickly assembled, had already shown they could be effective—a stark contrast to the situation six months earlier.

Start for England For some time I had been feeling the ill effects of exposure to the climate and hard work, and the doctor, Campbell Browne, had been urging me to go on the sick-list; that, of course, was out of the question until Lucknow had fallen. Now, however, I placed myself in Browne's hands, hoping that a change to the Hills was all that was needed to set me up; but the doctors insisted on a trip to England. It was a heavy blow to me to have to leave while there was still work to be done, but I had less hesitation than I should have had if most of my own immediate friends had not already gone. Several had been [Page 230] killed, others had left sick or wounded; Watson had gone to Lahore, busily engaged in raising a regiment of Cavalry;19 Probyn was on his way home, invalided; Hugh Gough had gone to the Hills to recover from his wounds; and Norman and Stewart were about to leave Lucknow with Army Head-Quarters.

Start for England. For a while, I had been feeling the negative effects of the weather and hard work, and Dr. Campbell Browne had been pushing me to take time off. That, of course, wasn’t an option until Lucknow had fallen. Now, though, I decided to trust Browne, hoping that a change of scenery to the Hills would be all I needed to feel better; but the doctors insisted I needed to go to England. It hit me hard to have to leave when there was still work to do, but I felt less hesitant than I might have if most of my immediate friends hadn’t already left. Several had been [Page 230] killed, others had departed sick or injured; Watson had gone to Lahore, busy with raising a regiment of Cavalry; 19 Probyn was on his way home, being invalided; Hugh Gough had gone to the Hills to recover from his wounds; and Norman and Stewart were about to leave Lucknow with Army Headquarters.

On the 1st April, the sixth anniversary of my arrival in India, I made over my office to Wolseley, who succeeded me as Deputy-Assistant-Quartermaster-General on Hope Grant's staff, and towards the middle of the month I left Lucknow.

On April 1st, the sixth anniversary of my arrival in India, I handed over my office to Wolseley, who took my place as Deputy-Assistant-Quartermaster-General on Hope Grant's staff, and around the middle of the month, I left Lucknow.

The Commander-in-Chief was most kind and complimentary when I took leave of him, and told me that, in consideration of my services, he would bestow upon me the first permanent vacancy in the Quartermaster-General's Department, and that he intended to recommend that I should be given the rank of Brevet-Major so soon as I should be qualified by becoming a regimental Captain. I was, of course, much gratified by his appreciative words and kindly manner; but the brevet seemed a long way off, for I had only been a First Lieutenant for less than a year, and there were more than a hundred officers in the Bengal Artillery senior to me in that rank!

The Commander-in-Chief was very kind and complimentary when I said goodbye to him. He told me that, considering my services, he would grant me the first permanent opening in the Quartermaster-General's Department and that he planned to recommend I receive the rank of Brevet-Major as soon as I qualified by becoming a regimental Captain. I was, of course, really pleased by his kind words and friendly attitude; however, the brevet felt far off since I had been a First Lieutenant for less than a year and there were over a hundred officers in the Bengal Artillery who were senior to me in that rank!

Death of Sir William Peel I marched to Cawnpore with Army Head-Quarters. Sir William Peel, who was slowly recovering from his wound, was of the party. We reached Cawnpore on the 17th, and the next day I said good-bye to my friends on the Chief's staff. Peel and I dined together on the 19th, when to all appearances he was perfectly well, but on going into his room the next morning I found he was in a high fever, and had some suspicious-looking spots about his face. I went off at once in search of a doctor, and soon returned with one of the surgeons of the 5th Fusiliers, who, to my horror—for I had observed that Peel was nervous about himself—exclaimed with brutal frankness the moment he entered the room, 'You have got small-pox.' It was only too true. On being convinced that this was the case, I went to the chaplain, the Rev. Thomas Moore, and told him of Peel's condition. Without an instant's hesitation, he decided the invalid must come to his house to be taken care of. That afternoon I had the poor fellow carried over, and there I left him in the kind hands of Mrs. Moore, the padre's wife, who had, as a special case, been allowed to accompany her husband to Cawnpore. Peel died on the 27th. On the 4th May I embarked at Calcutta in the P. and O. steamer Nubia, without, alas! the friend whose pleasant companionship I had hoped to have enjoyed on the voyage.

Death of Sir William Peel I traveled to Cawnpore with the Army Headquarters. Sir William Peel, who was slowly recovering from his injury, was part of the group. We arrived in Cawnpore on the 17th, and the next day I said goodbye to my friends on the Chief's staff. Peel and I had dinner together on the 19th, and he seemed perfectly fine, but when I went into his room the next morning, I found he had a high fever and some suspicious-looking spots on his face. I immediately went to find a doctor and soon returned with one of the surgeons from the 5th Fusiliers, who, to my horror—since I had noticed that Peel was anxious about his health—bluntly stated the moment he entered the room, 'You have small-pox.' Sadly, it was true. Once convinced of this, I went to the chaplain, Rev. Thomas Moore, and informed him about Peel's condition. Without hesitating, he decided that Peel should come to his house for care. That afternoon, I had the poor guy carried over, and I left him in the caring hands of Mrs. Moore, the chaplain's wife, who had been granted special permission to accompany her husband to Cawnpore. Peel died on the 27th. On May 4th, I boarded the P. and O. steamer Nubia in Calcutta, but sadly, without the friend whose enjoyable company I had looked forward to on the journey.



Click map to enlarge
THE SEIGE OF LUCKNOW, March, 1858

THE SEIGE OF LUCKNOW, March, 1858

Click map to zoom in
THE SEIGE OF LUCKNOW, March, 1858

THE SIEGE OF LUCKNOW, March, 1858








CHAPTER XXX.

What Caused the Mutiny?

'What brought about the Mutiny?' and 'Is there any chance of a similar rising occurring again?' are questions which are constantly being put to me; I will now endeavour to answer them, though it is not a very easy task—for I feel that my book will be rendered more interesting and complete to many if I endeavour to give them some idea of the circumstances which, in my opinion, led to that calamitous crisis in the history of our rule in India, and then try to show how I think a repetition of such a disaster may best be guarded against.

'What caused the Mutiny?' and 'Is there any chance of a similar uprising happening again?' are questions I get asked a lot; I will now try to answer them, even though it's not an easy task—for I believe that my book will be more engaging and complete for many if I provide some insight into the factors that, in my view, led to that disastrous turning point in our governance of India, and then discuss how I think we can best prevent such a tragedy from happening again.

The causes which brought about the Mutiny were so various, and some of them of such long standing, that it is difficult to point them out as concisely as I could wish; but I will be as brief as possible.

The reasons that led to the Mutiny were so diverse, and some of them had been around for so long, that it's hard to identify them as clearly as I'd like; but I'll keep it as brief as I can.

During the first years of our supremacy in India, Hindus and Mahomedans alike were disposed to acquiesce in our rule—the blessings of rest and peace after a long reign of strife and anarchy were too real not to be appreciated; but as time went by, a new generation sprang up by whom past miseries were forgotten, and those who had real grievances, or those who were causelessly discontented, were all ready to lay the blame for their real or fancied troubles on their foreign rulers. Mahomedans looked back to the days of their Empire in India, but failed to remember how completely, until we broke the Mahratta power, the Hindus had got the upper hand. Their Moulvies taught them that it was only lawful for true Mussulmans to submit to the rule of an infidel if there was no possibility of successful revolt, and they watched for the chance of again being able to make Islam supreme. The Hindus had not forgotten that they had ousted the Mahomedans, and they fancied that the fate of the British raj might also be at their mercy.

During the early years of our dominance in India, both Hindus and Muslims were generally willing to accept our rule—after a long period of conflict and chaos, the advantages of peace and stability were too significant to ignore. However, as time passed, a new generation emerged, one that had forgotten the hardships of the past. Those with genuine grievances or those who were simply discontented were quick to blame their foreign rulers for their real or imagined problems. Muslims looked back on the days of their empire in India but overlooked how completely, until we dismantled the Mahratta power, the Hindus had gained the upper hand. Their religious leaders taught them that it was only acceptable for true Muslims to accept the rule of a non-believer if there was no chance of successful rebellion, and they began to look for opportunities to restore Islamic dominance. The Hindus hadn't forgotten that they had removed the Muslims from power, and they believed that the fate of British rule might also be within their control.

The late Sir George Campbell, in his interesting memoirs, says: 'The Mutiny was a sepoy revolt, not a Hindu rebellion.' I do not altogether agree with him; for, although there was no general rising of the rural population, the revolt, in my judgment, would never have taken place had there not been a feeling of discontent and disquiet throughout that part of the country from which our Hindustani sepoys chiefly came, and had not certain influential people been thoroughly dissatisfied with our system of government. This discontent and dissatisfaction were produced by a policy which, in many instances, the Rulers of India were powerless to avoid or postpone, forced upon them as it was by the demands of civilization and the necessity for a more enlightened legislation. Intriguers took advantage of this state of affairs to further their own ends. Their plan of action was to alienate the Native army, and to increase the general feeling of uneasiness and suspicion, by spreading false reports as to the intentions of the authorities in regard to the various measures which had been adopted to promote the welfare[Page 232] and prosperity of the masses. It can hardly be questioned that these measures were right and proper in themselves, but they were on that account none the less obnoxious to the Brahmin priesthood, or distasteful to the Natives generally. In some cases also they were premature, and in others they were not carried out as judiciously as they might have been, or with sufficient regard to the feelings and prejudices of the people.

The late Sir George Campbell, in his engaging memoirs, states: 'The Mutiny was a sepoy revolt, not a Hindu rebellion.' I don't completely agree with him; because, while there wasn't a widespread uprising among the rural population, I believe the revolt wouldn't have happened if there hadn't been a sense of discontent and unrest in the area where our Hindustani sepoys largely came from, and if certain influential individuals hadn't been very unhappy with our system of government. This discontent and dissatisfaction were caused by a policy that, in many cases, the rulers of India were unable to avoid or delay, as it was driven by the demands of civilization and the need for more enlightened laws. Intriguers exploited this situation to advance their own agendas. Their plan was to create a divide in the Native army and heighten the overall sense of unease and distrust by spreading false information about the intentions of the authorities regarding the various measures aimed at promoting the welfare and prosperity of the people. It's hard to argue that these measures weren’t right and proper on their own, but they were nonetheless found objectionable by the Brahmin priesthood and generally unappealing to the Natives. In some cases, they were also implemented too soon, and in others, they weren't carried out as wisely as they could have been, or with enough consideration for the feelings and prejudices of the people.

The prohibition of sati (burning widows on the funeral pyres of their husbands); the putting a stop to female infanticide; the execution of Brahmins for capital offences; the efforts of missionaries and the protection of their converts; the removal of all legal obstacles to the remarriage of widows; the spread of western and secular education generally; and, more particularly, the attempt to introduce female education, were causes of alarm and disgust to the Brahmins, and to those Hindus of high caste whose social privileges were connected with the Brahminical religion. Those arbiters of fate, who were until then all-powerful to control every act of their co-religionists, social, religious or political, were quick to perceive that their influence was menaced, and that their sway would in time be wrested from them, unless they could devise some means for overthrowing our Government. They knew full well that the groundwork of this influence was ignorance and superstition, and they stood aghast at what they foresaw would be the inevitable result of enlightenment and progress. Railways and telegraphs were specially distasteful to the Brahmins: these evidences of ability and strength were too tangible to be pooh-poohed or explained away. Moreover, railways struck a direct blow at the system of caste, for on them people of every caste, high and low, were bound to travel together.

The ban on sati (burning widows on their husbands' funeral pyres); stopping female infanticide; executing Brahmins for serious crimes; the efforts of missionaries and their protection of converts; removing legal barriers to widows’ remarriage; spreading Western and secular education in general; and especially the push for female education were alarming and disgusting to the Brahmins and to high-caste Hindus whose social privileges were linked to the Brahminical religion. These gatekeepers of fate, who had been powerful enough to control every action of their fellow believers—socially, religiously, and politically—quickly realized that their influence was threatened and that their power would eventually be taken from them unless they found a way to overthrow our Government. They knew very well that the foundation of their influence was ignorance and superstition, and they were horrified by what they anticipated would be the unavoidable outcome of enlightenment and progress. Railways and telegraphs were particularly disliked by the Brahmins: these signs of capability and strength were too obvious to be dismissed or covered up. Furthermore, railways directly challenged the caste system, as they required people of all castes, high and low, to travel together.

The fears and antagonism of the Brahmins being thus aroused, it was natural that they should wish to see our rule upset, and they proceeded to poison the minds of the people with tales of the Government's determination to force Christianity upon them, and to make them believe that the continuance of our power meant the destruction of all they held most sacred.

The fears and hostility of the Brahmins were stirred up, so it was only natural for them to want to see our rule overturned. They began to spread rumors among the people, claiming that the Government was intent on imposing Christianity on them, and convincing them that our continued power would lead to the destruction of everything they held dear.

Religious Fears of the People Nor was opportunity wanting to confirm, apparently, the truth of their assertions. In the gaols a system of messing had been established which interfered with the time-honoured custom of every man being allowed to provide and cook his own food. This innovation was most properly introduced as a matter of gaol discipline, and due care was taken that the food of the Hindu prisoners should be prepared by cooks of the same or superior caste. Nevertheless, false reports were disseminated, and the credulous Hindu population was led to believe that the prisoners' food was in future to be prepared by men of inferior caste, with the object of defiling and degrading those for whom it was prepared. The news of what was supposed to have happened in the[Page 233] gaols spread from town to town and from village to village, the belief gradually gaining ground that the people were about to be forced to embrace Christianity.

Public Religious Fears There was also no shortage of opportunities to seemingly validate their claims. In the jails, a system was put in place that disrupted the long-standing tradition of allowing each person to provide and cook their own meals. This change was implemented primarily for jail discipline, and it was ensured that the food for Hindu prisoners was prepared by cooks of the same or higher caste. However, false reports were spread, and the gullible Hindu community came to believe that the prisoners' meals would now be cooked by people of a lower caste, with the intention of polluting and degrading those for whom the food was meant. The news of what was believed to have happened in the[Page 233]jails circulated from town to town and village to village, leading to a growing belief that the people would soon be forced to convert to Christianity.

As the promiscuous messing story did not greatly concern the Mahomedans, other cries were made use of to create suspicion and distrust amongst the followers of the Prophet. One of these, which equally affected the Hindu and Mahomedan, was the alleged unfairness of what was known in India as the land settlement, under which system the right and title of each landholder to his property was examined, and the amount of revenue to be paid by him to the paramount Power, as owner of the soil, was regulated.

As the scandalous rumors didn’t really bother the Muslims, other accusations were used to stir up suspicion and mistrust among the followers of the Prophet. One of these, which impacted both Hindus and Muslims, was the claimed unfairness of what was known in India as the land settlement. Under this system, the rights and titles of each landholder to their property were reviewed, and the amount of revenue they had to pay to the ruling authority, as the owner of the land, was determined.

The rapid acquisition of territory by the East India Company, and the establishment of its supremacy as the sovereign Power throughout India, were necessarily effected by military operations; but as peace and order were established, the system of land revenue, which had been enforced in an extremely oppressive and corrupt manner under successive Native Rulers and dynasties, had to be investigated and revised. With this object in view, surveys were made, and inquiries instituted into the rights of ownership and occupancy, the result being that in many cases it was found that families of position and influence had either appropriated the property of their humbler neighbours, or evaded an assessment proportionate to the value of their estates. Although these inquiries were carried out with the best intentions, they were extremely distasteful to the higher classes, while they failed to conciliate the masses. The ruling families deeply resented our endeavours to introduce an equitable determination of rights and assessment of land revenue. They saw that it would put an end to the system of pillage and extortion which had been practised from time immemorial; they felt that their authority was being diminished, and that they would no longer be permitted to govern their estates in the same despotic manner as formerly. On the other hand, although the agricultural population generally benefited materially by our rule, they could not realize the benevolent intentions of a Government which tried to elevate their position and improve their prospects. Moreover, there were no doubt mistakes made in the valuation of land, some of it being assessed at too high a rate, while the revenue was sometimes collected in too rigid a manner, sufficient allowance not being made for the failure of crops. Then the harsh law for the sale of proprietary rights in land to realize arrears of land-tax was often enforced by careless revenue authorities in far too summary a manner. The peasantry of India were, and still are, ignorant and apathetic. Accustomed from the earliest days to spoliation and oppression, and to a periodical change of masters, they had some reason to doubt whether the rule of the Feringhis would be more permanent than that of the Moghuls or the Mahrattas. Much as a just and tolerant Government would[Page 234] have been to their advantage, they were unable to appreciate it, and if they had appreciated it, they were too timid and too wanting in organization to give it their open support. Under these social and political conditions, the passive attitude of the rural population failed to counterbalance the active hostility of a large section of the upper classes, and of their predatory followers, who for centuries had lived by plunder and civil war.

The quick takeover of land by the East India Company and its rise to power as the governing authority in India were mainly achieved through military action. However, once peace and order were established, the corrupt and oppressive land revenue system enforced by previous Native Rulers had to be examined and revised. To achieve this, surveys were conducted, and inquiries into ownership and occupancy rights were initiated. It became clear that many influential families had either taken over property from their less fortunate neighbors or avoided paying a fair assessment based on their land's value. Although these investigations were carried out with good intentions, they were very unpopular with the higher classes and did not win over the masses. The ruling families were deeply upset by our efforts to create a fair system for determining rights and land revenue assessments. They realized this would end the long-standing practices of looting and extortion, which threatened their power and autonomy to govern their lands despotically. On the flip side, while the rural population generally benefitted materially from our rule, they couldn't grasp the good intentions of a government trying to improve their situation. Moreover, mistakes were made in valuing land, with some properties assessed too high and revenue collected too rigidly, without considering crop failures. Additionally, the harsh laws allowing for the sale of property rights to collect unpaid land taxes were often enforced too harshly by careless tax officials. The peasantry of India was, and still is, largely uninformed and indifferent. Having been exploited and oppressed for so long and used to frequent changes in leadership, they had reason to doubt whether British rule would be more stable than that of the Mughals or Marathas. Even though a fair and tolerant government would have greatly benefited them, they couldn’t appreciate it and lacked the courage and organization to openly support it. Given these social and political circumstances, the passive stance of the rural population was not enough to counter the active opposition from a significant portion of the upper classes and their followers, who had thrived on plunder and civil strife for centuries.

Another weighty cause of discontent, chiefly affecting the wealthy and influential classes, and giving colour to the Brahmins' accusation that we intended to upset the religion and violate the most cherished customs of the Hindus, was Lord Dalhousie's strict enforcement of the doctrine of the lapse of property in the absence of direct or collateral heirs, and the consequent appropriation of certain Native States, and the resumption of certain political pensions by the Government of India. This was condemned by the people of India as grasping, and as an unjustifiable interference with the institutions of the country, and undoubtedly made us many enemies.1

Another significant cause of discontent, mainly affecting the wealthy and powerful, and supporting the Brahmins' claim that we aimed to disrupt their religion and undermine their most cherished customs, was Lord Dalhousie's strict enforcement of the doctrine of the lapse of property when there were no direct or collateral heirs. This led to the takeover of certain Native States and the cancellation of some political pensions by the Government of India. People in India criticized this as greedy and an unjustifiable intrusion into their institutions, which certainly created many enemies.1

The Annexation of Oudh Later on, the annexation of Oudh, which was one of those measures forced on the Rulers of India in the interests of humanity and good government, and which could hardly have been longer delayed, created suspicion and apprehension amongst all the Native States. For more than sixty years Governor-General after Governor-General had pointed out the impossibility of a civilized Government tolerating in the midst of its possessions the misrule, disorder, and debauchery which were desolating one of the most fertile and thickly-populated districts in India.

The Annexation of Awadh Later, the annexation of Oudh, one of those actions imposed on the rulers of India for the sake of humanity and effective governance, which could hardly be postponed any longer, sparked suspicion and concern among all the Native States. For over sixty years, Governor-General after Governor-General had highlighted the impossibility of a civilized government tolerating the mismanagement, chaos, and corruption that were devastating one of the most fertile and densely populated regions in India.

As early as 1801 Lord Wellesley wrote: 'I am satisfied that no effectual security can be provided against the ruin of the province of Oudh until the exclusive management of the civil and military government of that country shall be transferred to the Company under[Page 235] suitable provisions for the Nawab and his family.'

As early as 1801, Lord Wellesley wrote: 'I am convinced that no effective security can be guaranteed against the downfall of the province of Oudh until the exclusive control of the civil and military government of that region is handed over to the Company with[Page 235] appropriate arrangements for the Nawab and his family.'

In 1831 Lord William Bentinck warned the King of Oudh that, unless he would consent to rule his territories in accordance with the principles of good government and the interest of the people, the East India Company would assume the entire administration of the province, and would make him a state prisoner.

In 1831, Lord William Bentinck warned the King of Oudh that unless he agreed to govern his territories according to the principles of good governance and the welfare of the people, the East India Company would take over the administration of the province entirely and would make him a state prisoner.

In 1847 Lord Hardinge went in person to Lucknow and solemnly reiterated the warning, giving the King two years to reform his administration.

In 1847, Lord Hardinge personally went to Lucknow and firmly repeated the warning, giving the King two years to improve his administration.

In 1851 Colonel Sleeman, the Resident at Lucknow, whose sympathy with the Rulers of Native States was thought to be even too great, and who was the last person to exaggerate the misrule existing in Oudh, reported to Lord Dalhousie that the state of things had become intolerable, and that, if our troops were withdrawn from Oudh, the landholders would in one month's time overrun the province and pillage Lucknow. It is true Sleeman, with his Native proclivities, did not contemplate annexation; his advice was to 'assume the administration,' but not to 'grasp the revenues of the country.' The same mode of procedure had been advocated by Henry Lawrence six years before in an article which appeared in the Calcutta Review. His words were: 'Let Oudh be at last governed, not for one man, the King, but for the King and his people. Let the administration of the country be Native; let not one rupee come into the Company's coffers.'

In 1851, Colonel Sleeman, the Resident at Lucknow, who was considered to have a strong sympathy for the leaders of Native States, and who was unlikely to exaggerate the misgovernance in Oudh, reported to Lord Dalhousie that the situation had become unbearable. He warned that if our troops were pulled out of Oudh, the landowners would take over the province and loot Lucknow within a month. It's true that Sleeman, being sympathetic to Native people, did not support annexation; instead, he recommended 'taking over the administration' without 'taking the revenues of the country.' This same approach had been suggested by Henry Lawrence six years earlier in an article published in the Calcutta Review. He stated: 'Let Oudh finally be governed, not just for one person, the King, but for the King and his people. Let the country's administration be Native; let not one rupee go into the Company's coffers.'

Sleeman was followed in 1854 by Colonel Outram, than whom he could not have had a more admirable successor, or one less likely to be unnecessarily hard upon a State which, with all its shortcomings, had been loyal to us for nearly a century. Colonel Outram, nevertheless, fully endorsed the views of his predecessor. General Low, the then Military Member of Council, who twenty years before, when Resident at Lucknow, had deprecated our assuming even temporarily the administration of Oudh, thinking our action would be misunderstood by the people, now also stated his conviction that 'it was the paramount duty of the British Government to interfere at once for the protection of the people of Oudh.'

Sleeman was succeeded in 1854 by Colonel Outram, who was an excellent successor and unlikely to be unnecessarily harsh on a State that, despite its flaws, had been loyal to us for nearly a century. Colonel Outram, however, completely supported the views of his predecessor. General Low, the Military Member of Council at the time, who twenty years earlier, when he was Resident in Lucknow, had opposed our taking over the administration of Oudh, believing our actions would be misunderstood by the people, now also expressed his belief that 'it was the primary duty of the British Government to intervene immediately for the protection of the people of Oudh.'

In summing up the case, Lord Dalhousie laid three possible courses of action before the authorities in England. The King of Oudh might be forced to abdicate, his province being incorporated in the British dominions; or he might be maintained in his royal state as a subsidized Prince, the actual government being permanently transferred to the East India Company; or the transfer of the government to the East India Company might be for a limited period only. The Governor-General recommended the second course, but the Court of Directors and Her Majesty's Ministers decided to adopt the first, and requested Lord Dalhousie to carry out the annexation before he resigned his office.

In wrapping up the case, Lord Dalhousie presented three potential actions to the authorities in England. The King of Oudh could be compelled to step down, with his territory becoming part of the British Empire; or he could be kept in his royal position as a subsidized Prince, while the actual governance would be permanently handed over to the East India Company; or the transfer of authority to the East India Company could be temporary. The Governor-General suggested the second option, but the Court of Directors and Her Majesty's Ministers chose the first option and asked Lord Dalhousie to complete the annexation before he left his position.

This measure, so long deferred and so carefully considered, could[Page 236] hardly, in my opinion, have been avoided by a civilized and civilizing Government. It was at last adopted with the utmost reluctance, and only after the experiment of administering a province for the benefit of the Natives, without annexing it, had been tried in the Punjab and had signally failed. To use Lord Dalhousie's words, it was amply justified on the ground that 'the British Government would be guilty in the sight of God and man if it were any longer to aid in sustaining by its countenance an administration fraught with suffering to millions.' But the Natives generally could not understand the necessity for the measure, or believe in the reasons which influenced us; many of them, therefore, considered it an unprovoked usurpation, and each Ruler of a Native State imagined that his turn might come next.

This decision, which had been delayed for a long time and carefully thought out, could[Page 236] hardly, in my view, have been avoided by a civilized and progressive Government. It was finally adopted with great reluctance, and only after the attempt to manage a province for the benefit of the Natives without making it a part of the Empire had been tried in the Punjab and had completely failed. To quote Lord Dalhousie, it was fully justified on the grounds that 'the British Government would be guilty in the sight of God and man if it were any longer to aid in sustaining by its support an administration causing suffering to millions.' However, the Natives generally struggled to understand the need for the decision or to believe in the reasons driving us; as a result, many viewed it as an unwarranted takeover, and each Ruler of a Native State feared that his turn might come next.

Fulfilment of Malcolm's Prophesy Thus, the annexation of Oudh in one sense augmented that weakness in our position as an eastern Power which, so to speak, had its source in our strength. So long as there was a balance of power between ourselves and Native States—Mahratta, Rajput, Sikh, or Mahomedan—they were prevented by their mutual jealousies and religious differences from combining against us; but when that balance was destroyed and we became the paramount Power in India, the period of danger to us began, as was prophesied by the far-seeing Malcolm in the early days of our first conquests. We had now become objects of suspicion and dread to all the lesser Powers, who were ready to sink their own disputes in the consideration of the best means to check the extension of our rule and overthrow our supremacy; while we, inflated by our power and satisfied with our apparent security, became more dogmatic and uncompromising in enforcing principles which, though sound and just in themselves, were antipathetic to Native ideas and traditions. By a great many acts and measures we made them feel how completely our ideas differed from theirs. They preferred their own, and strongly resented our increasing efforts to impose ours upon them. Even those amongst the Native Princes who were too enlightened to believe that we intended to force our religion upon them and change all their customs, felt that their power was now merely nominal, and that every substantial attribute of sovereignty would soon disappear if our notions of progress continued to be enforced.

Fulfillment of Malcolm's Prophecy In a way, the annexation of Oudh increased the weakness in our position as an eastern power, coming from the very strength we had. As long as there was a balance of power among us and the Native States—Mahratta, Rajput, Sikh, or Muslim—they were held back by their jealousy and religious differences, preventing them from uniting against us. But once that balance was upset and we became the dominant power in India, our period of danger began, just as the insightful Malcolm had predicted in the early days of our first conquests. We now became objects of suspicion and fear for all the smaller powers, who were willing to put aside their own conflicts to figure out how to stop our expansion and overthrow our dominance. Meanwhile, we, puffed up by our power and reassured by our apparent safety, became more dogmatic and inflexible in imposing our principles, which, although sound and just, clashed with Native ideas and traditions. Through numerous actions and policies, we made it clear just how different our views were from theirs. They preferred their own ways and strongly resented our growing attempts to impose ours. Even those Native Princes who were too enlightened to believe we intended to force our religion on them and change all their customs realized that their power was now only nominal and that every real aspect of sovereignty would soon fade away if our ideas of progress continued to be enforced.

At a time when throughout the country there existed these feelings of dissatisfaction and restless suspicion, it was not to be expected that the most discontented and unfriendly of the Native Rulers would not seize the opportunity to work us mischief. The most prominent of these amongst the Mahomedans were the royal family of Delhi and the ex-King of Oudh, and, amongst the Hindus, Dundu Pant, better known by English people as the 'Nana Sahib.'

At a time when there was widespread dissatisfaction and distrust across the country, it was predictable that the most disgruntled and hostile Native Rulers would take the chance to cause trouble for us. The most notable among the Muslims were the royal family of Delhi and the former King of Oudh, while among the Hindus, Dundu Pant, better known to English speakers as 'Nana Sahib.'

All three considered themselves badly treated, and no doubt, from their point of view, their grievances were not altogether groundless. The King of Oudh's I have already indicated, and when his province[Page 237] was annexed, he was removed to Calcutta. Having refused the yearly pension of twelve lakhs2 of rupees offered to him, and declined to sign the treaty by which his territory was made over to the British Government, he sent his mother, his son, and his brother to England to plead his cause for him.

All three of them felt they were treated unfairly, and it’s clear that, from their perspective, their complaints weren’t entirely baseless. I've already mentioned the King of Oudh; when his province[Page 237] was annexed, he was taken to Calcutta. He refused the annual pension of twelve lakhs2 rupees offered to him and declined to sign the treaty that handed his territory over to the British Government. Instead, he sent his mother, son, and brother to England to advocate for him.

The Delhi Royal Family The most influential of the three discontented Rulers, or, at all events, the one whom the rebellious of all castes and religions were most inclined to put forward as their nominal leader, was the head of the Delhi royal family, by name Bahadur Shah. He was eighty years old in 1857, and had been on the throne for twenty years. His particular grievance lay in the fact of our decision that on his death the title of King, which we had bestowed on the successors of the Moghul Emperor, should be abolished, and his family removed from Delhi.

The Delhi Royal Family The most influential of the three unhappy rulers, or at least the one that people from various castes and religions were most willing to accept as their figurehead, was Bahadur Shah, the leader of the Delhi royal family. He was eighty years old in 1857 and had been on the throne for twenty years. His main issue was our decision that after his death, the title of King, which we had given to the successors of the Moghul Emperor, would be eliminated, and his family would be removed from Delhi.

In the early part of the century Lord Wellesley pointed out the danger of allowing a Mahomedan Prince, with all the surroundings of royalty, to remain at the seat of the old Moghul government, but the question was allowed to remain in abeyance until 1849, when Lord Dalhousie reconsidered it, and obtained the sanction of the authorities in England to the removal of the Court from Delhi to a place about fourteen miles off, where the Kutub tower stands. At the same time the Heir Apparent was to be told that on his father's death the title of King of Delhi would cease.

In the early part of the century, Lord Wellesley warned about the risks of letting a Muslim prince, surrounded by royal luxury, stay in the heart of the old Mughal government. However, the issue was left unresolved until 1849, when Lord Dalhousie revisited it and got approval from the authorities in England to move the court from Delhi to a site about fourteen miles away, where the Qutub tower is located. At the same time, the Heir Apparent was informed that upon his father’s death, the title of King of Delhi would no longer exist.

Lord Dalhousie had been only a short time in India when he took up this question, and he could not properly have appreciated the estimation in which the Natives held the King of Delhi, for he wrote in support of his proposals 'that the Princes of India and its people had become entirely indifferent to the condition of the King or his position.' But when the decision of the British Government on the subject reached India, he had been more than two years in the country, and although his views as to the desirability of the measure remained unchanged, the experience he had gained enabled him to gauge more accurately the feelings of the people, and, with the advice of his Council, he came to the conclusion that it would be wiser to let affairs remain in statu quo during Bahadur Shah's lifetime. The royal family were informed accordingly, and an agreement was drawn up, signed, sealed, and witnessed, by which the Heir Apparent accepted the conditions to be imposed upon him on the death of his father, who was to be allowed to remain in Delhi during his lifetime, with all the paraphernalia of royalty.

Lord Dalhousie had been in India for only a short time when he addressed this issue, and he likely didn’t fully understand how the Natives viewed the King of Delhi, as he stated in support of his proposals that “the Princes of India and its people had become completely indifferent to the condition of the King or his position.” However, by the time the British Government made a decision on the matter, he had been in the country for over two years. Even though his opinion on the necessity of the measure was unchanged, his experiences allowed him to better understand the feelings of the people. With the guidance of his Council, he decided it would be wiser to keep things as they were during Bahadur Shah's lifetime. The royal family was informed, and an agreement was created, signed, sealed, and witnessed, wherein the Heir Apparent accepted the conditions that would be imposed on him after his father’s death, with the provision that his father would remain in Delhi during his lifetime, enjoying all the trappings of royalty.

However satisfactory this arrangement might be to the Government of India, to every member of the Delhi royal family it must have seemed oppressive and humiliating to the last degree. Outwardly they appeared to accept the inevitable quietly and submissively, but[Page 238] they were only biding their time, and longing for an opportunity to throw off the hated English yoke. The war with Persia in 1856 seemed to offer the chance they wanted. On the pretence that the independence of Herat was threatened by the Amir of Kabul, the Persians marched an army to besiege that place. As this act was a violation of our treaty with Persia made three years before, Her Majesty's Government directed that an army should be sent from India to the Persian Gulf. The troops had scarcely left Bombay before the Lieutenant-Governor of the North-West Provinces was warned by a Native correspondent that the King of Delhi was intriguing with the Shah of Persia. At the same time a proclamation was posted on the walls of the Jama Masjid (Shah Jehan's famous mosque at Delhi), to the effect that a Persian army was coming to relieve India from the presence of the English, and calling on all true believers to rise and fight against the heretics. Reports were also diligently circulated of our being defeated on the shores of the Persian Gulf, and the people were made to believe that their opportunity had arrived, and that the time was now favourable for a successful rebellion.

However satisfactory this arrangement might be for the Government of India, for every member of the Delhi royal family, it must have seemed extremely oppressive and humiliating. Outwardly, they appeared to accept the situation quietly and submissively, but[Page 238] they were just biding their time, waiting for a chance to shake off the hated English control. The war with Persia in 1856 seemed to offer the opportunity they were looking for. Under the pretense that the independence of Herat was threatened by the Amir of Kabul, the Persians sent an army to besiege the city. This action was a violation of our treaty with Persia made three years earlier, prompting Her Majesty's Government to order that an army be sent from India to the Persian Gulf. The troops had hardly left Bombay when the Lieutenant-Governor of the North-West Provinces was alerted by a Native correspondent that the King of Delhi was plotting with the Shah of Persia. At the same time, a proclamation was posted on the walls of the Jama Masjid (Shah Jehan's famous mosque in Delhi), stating that a Persian army was coming to free India from the English presence and urging all true believers to rise up and fight against the heretics. Reports were also actively spread about our defeat on the shores of the Persian Gulf, leading the people to believe that their moment had come and that the time was now right for a successful rebellion.

The Nana Sahib Of the three principal movers in the events which immediately preceded the Mutiny, the Nana Sahib was by far the most intelligent, and had mixed most with Europeans. He was the adopted son and heir of the last of the Peshwas, the Chiefs of the Mahratta confederacy. His cause of dissatisfaction was the discontinuance to him of a pension which, at the close of the Mahratta war in 1818, was granted to the Peshwa, on the clear understanding that it was to cease at his death. The Peshwa died in 1851, leaving the Nana an enormous fortune; but he was not content. The lapse of the pension, to which he was not entitled, rankled in his breast, and when all his efforts to get it restored to him proved of no avail, he became thoroughly disgusted and disaffected. After failing to obtain in India a reconsideration of the decision of the Government on the subject, he sent to England as confidential agent a Mahomedan of the name of Azimula Khan, who remained three years in Europe, residing for the most part in London; but he also visited Paris, Constantinople, and the Crimea, arriving at the latter place when we, in alliance with the French, were besieging Sebastopol. He was a man of no rank or position in his own country, a mere agent of the Nana's, but he was received into the best English society, was everywhere treated as a royal Prince, and became engaged to a young English girl, who agreed to follow him to India to be married. All this was revealed by the correspondence to which I have referred as having been found in the Nana's palace of Bithur. The greater number of these letters were from people in England—not a few from ladies of rank and position. One elderly dame called him her dear eastern son. There were numerous letters from his English fiancée, and two from a Frenchman of the name of Lafont,3 relating to some[Page 239] business with the French settlement of Chandernagore, with which he had been entrusted by Azimula Khan, acting for the Nana. Written, as these letters were, immediately before the Mutiny, in which the Nana was the leading spirit, it seems probable that 'les principales choses,' to which Lafont hopes to bring satisfactory answers, were invitations to the disaffected and disloyal in Calcutta, and perhaps the French settlers at Chandernagore, to assist in the effort about to be made to throw off the British yoke. A portion of the correspondence was unopened, and there were several letters in Azimula's own handwriting which had not been despatched. Two of these were to Omar Pasha at Constantinople, and told of the sepoys' discontent and the troubled state of India generally. That the Nana was intriguing with the King of Delhi, the Nawab of Oudh, and other great personages, has been proved beyond a doubt, although at the time he was looked upon by the British residents at Cawnpore as a perfectly harmless individual, in spite of its being known that he considered himself aggrieved on account of his having been refused the continuance of the[Page 240] pension, and because a salute of guns (such as it is the custom to give to Native Princes on entering British territory) had not been accorded to him.

The Nana Sahib Of the three main players in the events leading up to the Mutiny, the Nana Sahib was by far the smartest and had the most interaction with Europeans. He was the adopted son and heir of the last Peshwa, the leaders of the Mahratta confederacy. His dissatisfaction stemmed from the discontinuation of a pension that had been granted to the Peshwa at the end of the Mahratta war in 1818, with the clear understanding that it would stop upon his death. The Peshwa died in 1851, leaving the Nana an immense fortune; yet he was not satisfied. The ending of the pension, which he had no real claim to, deeply frustrated him. When all his attempts to have it reinstated failed, he grew thoroughly disillusioned and resentful. After failing to get the Government in India to reconsider their decision, he sent a Mahomedan named Azimula Khan as a confidential agent to England. Azimula spent three years in Europe, mostly in London, but he also traveled to Paris, Constantinople, and the Crimea, arriving there while we, allied with the French, were besieging Sebastopol. He held no rank or position in his own country—merely acting as the Nana's agent—but was welcomed into high society in England, treated like a royal prince, and became engaged to a young English woman who agreed to move to India to marry him. All of this was uncovered in the correspondence found in the Nana's palace at Bithur. Most of these letters were from people in England, including several from ladies of notable status. One older woman referred to him as her dear eastern son. There were many letters from his English fiancée, and two from a Frenchman named Lafont,3 about some[Page 239] business with the French settlement at Chandernagore, which he was tasked with handling for the Nana. Since these letters were written just before the Mutiny, of which the Nana was a central figure, it's likely that “les principales choses” that Lafont hoped to get answers for were invitations to the discontented and disloyal in Calcutta, and possibly the French settlers in Chandernagore, to join efforts to overthrow British rule. Some of the correspondence remained unopened, and several letters in Azimula's own handwriting had not been sent. Two of those were addressed to Omar Pasha in Constantinople and discussed the discontent among the sepoys and the overall unrest in India. It has been definitively proven that the Nana was conspiring with the King of Delhi, the Nawab of Oudh, and other significant figures, although at that time he was regarded by the British residents in Cawnpore as a completely harmless person, despite knowing he felt wronged due to the refusal of the[Page 240] pension and because he had not been given a salute of guns (which is customary for Native Princes entering British territory).

The Native Army While the spirit of rebellion was thus being fostered and stirred into active existence throughout the country, it was hardly to be hoped that the Native army would be allowed to remain unaffected by a movement which could not easily attain formidable proportions without the assistance of the Native soldiers, who themselves, moreover, had not remained unmoved spectators of all that had happened during the previous thirty or forty years. The great majority of the sepoys were drawn from the agricultural classes, especially in the province of Oudh, and were therefore directly interested in all questions connected with rights of property, tenure of land, etc.; and questions of religion and caste affected them equally with the rest of the population.

The Indigenous Army As the spirit of rebellion was being encouraged and ignited across the country, it was unlikely that the Native army would remain untouched by a movement that couldn’t easily gain strength without the support of the Native soldiers, who had also been affected by everything that took place over the last thirty or forty years. The vast majority of the sepoys came from farming backgrounds, especially in the province of Oudh, and were therefore directly concerned with issues related to property rights, land tenure, and so on; religious and caste issues impacted them just like the rest of the population.

Greased Cartridges Quietly, but surely, the instigators of rebellion were preparing the Native army for revolt. The greatest cunning and circumspection were, however, necessary to success. There were so many opposing interests to be dealt with, Mahomedans and Hindus being as violently hostile to each other, with regard to religion and customs, as they were to us. Soldiers, too, of all ranks had a great stake in their profession. Some had nearly served their time for their pensions, that greatest of all attractions to the Native to enter the army, for the youngest recruit feels that, if he serves long enough, he is sure of an income sufficient to enable him to sit in the sun and do nothing for the rest of his days—a Native's idea of supreme happiness. The enemies of our rule generally, and the fanatic in particular, were, however, equal to the occasion. They took advantage of the widespread discontent to establish the belief that a systematic attack was to be made on the faith and habits of the people, whether Hindu or Mahomedan, and, as a proof of the truth of their assertions, they alleged that the Enfield cartridges which had been recently issued to the army were greased with a mixture of cows' fat and lard, the one being as obnoxious to the Hindu as the other is to the Mahomedan. The news spread throughout the Bengal Presidency; the sepoys became alarmed, and determined to suffer any punishment rather than pollute themselves by biting the contaminating cartridge, as their doing so would involve loss of caste, which to the Hindu sepoy meant the loss of everything to him most dear and sacred in this world and the next. He and his family would become outcasts, his friends and relations would look on him with horror and disgust, while eternal misery, he believed, would be his doom in the world to come.

Lubricated Cartridges Quietly but surely, the instigators of rebellion were prepping the Native army for revolt. A lot of cunning and caution were necessary for success, though. There were numerous conflicting interests to navigate, with Mahomedans and Hindus being as hostile to each other regarding religion and customs as they were to us. Soldiers of all ranks had a significant stake in their profession. Many were close to finishing their service for their pensions, which was the biggest draw for the Natives to join the army. Younger recruits believed that if they served long enough, they would be guaranteed an income that would allow them to relax in the sun and do nothing for the rest of their lives—this was a Native's idea of ultimate happiness. However, the enemies of our rule, especially the fanatics, were equal to the task. They used the widespread discontent to promote the belief that there was a systematic attack on the faith and customs of the people, whether Hindu or Mahomedan. To back their claims, they said that the Enfield cartridges recently issued to the army were greased with a mixture of cow fat and lard, which was equally offensive to Hindus and Mahomedans. The news spread throughout the Bengal Presidency; the sepoys grew alarmed and decided they would rather face any punishment than risk polluting themselves by biting the contaminated cartridge, as doing so would mean losing their caste—a devastating loss for a Hindu sepoy, as it represented the loss of everything he held most dear and sacred in this life and the next. He and his family would become outcasts, his friends and relatives would look at him with horror and disgust, and he believed he would face eternal misery in the afterlife.

It has been made quite clear that a general belief existed amongst the Hindustani sepoys that the destruction of their caste and religion had been finally resolved upon by the English, as a means of forcing them to become Christians, and it seems extraordinary that the English officers with Native regiments were so little aware of the strength of this[Page 241] impression amongst their men.

It has become very clear that there was a widespread belief among the Hindustani soldiers that the English had decided to destroy their caste and religion as a way to force them to convert to Christianity. It’s surprising that the English officers with Native regiments were so unaware of how strong this impression was among their troops.[Page 241]

The recent researches of Mr. Forrest in the records of the Government of India prove that the lubricating mixture used in preparing the cartridges was actually composed of the objectionable ingredients, cows' fat and lard, and that incredible disregard of the soldiers' religious prejudices was displayed in the manufacture of these cartridges. When the sepoys complained that to bite them would destroy their caste, they were solemnly assured by their officers that they had been greased with a perfectly unobjectionable mixture. These officers, understanding, as all who have come in contact with Natives are supposed to understand, their intense abhorrence of touching the flesh or fat of the sacred cow or the unclean pig, did not believe it possible that the authorities could have been so regardless of the sepoys' feelings as to have allowed it to be used in preparing their ammunition: they therefore made this statement in perfect good faith. But nothing was easier than for the men belonging to the regiments quartered near Calcutta to ascertain, from the low-caste Native workmen employed in manufacturing the cartridges at the Fort William arsenal, that the assurances of their officers were not in accordance with facts, and they were thus prepared to credit the fables which the sedition-mongers so sedulously spread abroad, to the effect that the Government they served and the officers who commanded them had entered into a deliberate conspiracy to undermine their religion.

The recent research by Mr. Forrest in the records of the Government of India shows that the lubricating mixture used in making the cartridges actually contained the objectionable ingredients of cow's fat and lard. There was an incredible disregard for the soldiers' religious beliefs in the production of these cartridges. When the sepoys expressed that biting them would ruin their caste, their officers assured them that they had been greased with a completely acceptable mixture. These officers, who were expected to understand the sepoys' deep aversion to touching the flesh or fat of the sacred cow or the unclean pig, believed it was impossible that the authorities could have been so negligent of the sepoys' feelings as to allow those materials in their ammunition; they made this statement in complete good faith. However, it was easy for the soldiers in the regiments stationed near Calcutta to find out from the low-caste Native workers in the Fort William arsenal that their officers' assurances were not true. As a result, they were ready to believe the tales that the agitators eagerly spread—that the Government they served and the officers who led them were engaged in a deliberate conspiracy to undermine their religion.

Limited Number of British Troops Notwithstanding all the evil influence brought to bear on the Native army, I do not think that the sepoys would have proved such ready instruments in the hands of the civilian intriguers, had that army been organized, disciplined, and officered in a satisfactory manner, and had there been a sufficient proportion of British troops in India at the time. To the great preponderance of Native, as compared with British, troops may be attributed the fact that the sepoys dared to break into open mutiny. Moreover, the belief of the Natives in the invincibility of the British soldier, which formerly enabled small numbers of Europeans to gain victories over large Native armies, had been seriously weakened by the lamentable occurrences at Kabul during the first Afghan war, terminating in the disastrous retreat in the winter of 1841-42.

Small Number of British Troops Despite all the negative influences targeted at the Native army, I don't think the sepoys would have been so easily manipulated by the civilian schemers if that army had been organized, trained, and led properly, and if there had been enough British troops in India at that time. The large number of Native troops, compared to British ones, likely contributed to the sepoys feeling bold enough to rebel openly. Additionally, the confidence of the Natives in the superiority of the British soldier, which had previously allowed a small number of Europeans to defeat much larger Native armies, had been seriously undermined by the disastrous events at Kabul during the first Afghan war, culminating in the unfortunate retreat in the winter of 1841-42.

To add to the exalted idea the sepoys were beginning to entertain of their own importance, they were pampered by their officers and the civil Government to a most absurd extent, being treated under all circumstances with far greater consideration than the European soldiers. For instance, in the time of Lord William Bentinck flogging was abolished in the Native army,4 while still in full swing amongst British soldiers, and sepoys were actually allowed to witness the[Page 242] humiliation of their white comrades when this degrading form of punishment was inflicted upon them.

To add to the elevated view the sepoys were starting to have of their own significance, they were indulged by their officers and the civil government to an absurd degree, being treated with much more respect than the European soldiers in every situation. For example, during Lord William Bentinck's time, flogging was banned in the Native army,4 while it was still widely practiced among British soldiers, and sepoys were even allowed to witness the[Page 242] humiliation of their white peers when this degrading punishment was carried out on them.

In the early days of our connexion with India, we had no need for an army. Living, as we were, on sufferance in a foreign land for commercial purposes, armed men were only required to guard the factories. As these factories increased in size and importance, these armed men were given a semi-military organization, and in time they were formed into levies as a reserve to the few Europeans entertained by the merchants, to enable them to hold their own against the French, who were then beginning to dispute with us for supremacy in southern India. When employed in the field, the Native troops were associated with a varying proportion of British soldiers, but the number of the latter was limited by the expense of their maintenance, the difficulty of supplying them from England, and the unadvisability of locking up a part of the British army in distant stations, which at that time were very inaccessible and generally unhealthy. Native troops were therefore raised in continually increasing numbers, and after the battle of Plassey the Native army was rapidly augmented, especially in the Bengal Presidency; and, trained and led as it was by British officers, it achieved remarkable successes.

In the early days of our connection with India, we didn't need an army. Since we were just hanging out in a foreign land for business purposes, we only required armed guards for the factories. As these factories grew in size and importance, the guards started to adopt a semi-military structure, and eventually, they were organized into levies as a backup for the few Europeans employed by the merchants, allowing them to stand their ground against the French, who were just starting to compete with us for control in southern India. When in the field, the Native troops worked alongside a varying number of British soldiers, but the latter's numbers were limited due to the cost of maintaining them, the challenges of sending them from England, and the impracticality of stationing part of the British army in distant areas that were often hard to reach and generally unhealthy. Consequently, Native troops were raised in increasing numbers, and after the Battle of Plassey, the Native army expanded rapidly, especially in the Bengal Presidency; trained and led by British officers, it achieved remarkable successes.

During the thirteen years preceding the Mutiny, the Native army, numbering 217,000 men and 176 guns, was increased by 40,000 men and 40 guns, but no addition was made to the small British force of 38,000 until 1853, when one regiment was added to each Presidency, or less than 3,000 soldiers in all. This insignificant augmentation was subsequently more than neutralized by the withdrawal of six British regiments from India to meet the requirements of the Crimean and Persian wars. Lord Dalhousie, Governor-General in 1854, saw the danger of this great preponderance of Native troops. He represented that the annexations and conquests which had taken place during his tenure of office necessitated a proportional increase of British soldiers; he protested against the withdrawal of a single European regiment, either on account of the war with Russia or for operations in the Persian Gulf, and he solemnly warned Her Majesty's Government that the essential element of our strength in India was the presence of a large number of British troops.

During the thirteen years before the Mutiny, the Native army, which had 217,000 men and 176 guns, was increased by 40,000 men and 40 guns, but the small British force of 38,000 didn’t see any increase until 1853, when one regiment was added to each Presidency—totaling less than 3,000 soldiers. This minor boost was more than outweighed by the withdrawal of six British regiments from India to support the Crimean and Persian wars. Lord Dalhousie, the Governor-General in 1854, recognized the risk posed by this large number of Native troops. He argued that the annexations and conquests made during his time in office required a proportional increase in British soldiers; he objected to the withdrawal of any European regiment, whether due to the war with Russia or operations in the Persian Gulf, and he firmly warned Her Majesty's Government that a crucial aspect of our strength in India was having a substantial number of British troops present.

No attention, however, was paid to Lord Dalhousie's representations by the authorities in England, who doubtless thought they understood the requirements of India better than the Governor-General, with his more than six years' experience of the country. In spite of his remonstrances, two regiments were ordered to England, and four were sent later to the Persian Gulf, with the result which I have already stated.

No one, however, paid attention to Lord Dalhousie's concerns from the authorities in England, who probably thought they understood India's needs better than the Governor-General, despite his over six years of experience in the country. Despite his objections, two regiments were ordered to England, and four were later sent to the Persian Gulf, leading to the outcome I've already mentioned.

When the Mutiny broke out, the whole effective British force in India only amounted to 36,000 men, against 257,000 Native soldiers,5 [Page 243] a fact which was not likely to be overlooked by those who hoped and strived to gain to their own side this preponderance of numerical strength, and which was calculated to inflate the minds of the sepoys with a most undesirable sense of independence. An army of Asiatics, such as we maintain in India, is a faithful servant, but a treacherous master; powerfully influenced by social and religious prejudices with which we are imperfectly acquainted, it requires the most careful handling; above all, it must never be allowed to lose faith in the prestige or supremacy of the governing race. When mercenaries feel that they are indispensable to the maintenance of that authority which they have no patriotic interest in upholding, they begin to consider whether it would not be more to their advantage to aid in overthrowing that authority, and if they decide that it would be, they have little scruple in transferring their allegiance from the Government they never loved, and have ceased to fear, to the power more in accordance with their own ideas, and from which, they are easily persuaded, they will obtain unlimited benefits.

When the Mutiny broke out, the total effective British force in India was just 36,000 men, compared to 257,000 Native soldiers,5 [Page 243] This disparity was certainly noticed by those looking to gain the advantage of numbers, which likely inflated the sepoys' sense of independence. An army of Asiatics, like the one we have in India, can be a loyal servant but a dangerous master; deeply influenced by social and religious beliefs that we don't fully understand, it needs to be carefully managed. Above all, it must never lose faith in the prestige or authority of the ruling race. When mercenaries feel they're essential to maintaining an authority they have no patriotic interest in supporting, they start to consider if it would benefit them more to help overthrow that authority. If they conclude it would, they have no qualms about switching their loyalty from a Government they never respected and no longer fear, to a power that aligns more with their own beliefs, and from which they believe they'll gain significant rewards.

Objection to Foreign Service A fruitful cause of dissatisfaction in our Native army, and one which pressed more heavily upon it year by year, as our acquisitions of territory in northern India became more extended, was the sepoy's liability to service in distant parts of India, entailing upon him a life amongst strangers differing from him in religion and in all their customs, and far away from his home, his family, and his congenial surroundings—a liability which he had never contemplated except in the event of war, when extra pay, free rations and the possibility of loot, would go far to counterbalance the disadvantages of expatriation. Service in Burma, which entailed crossing the sea, and, to the Hindu, consequent loss of caste, was especially distasteful. So great an objection, indeed, had the sepoys to this so-called 'foreign service,' and so difficult did it become to find troops to relieve the regiments, in consequence of the bulk of the Bengal army not being available for service beyond the sea, that the Court of Directors sanctioned Lord Canning's proposal that, after the 1st September, 1856, 'no Native recruit shall be accepted who does not at the time of his enlistment undertake to serve beyond the sea whether within the territories of the Company or beyond them.' This order, though absolutely necessary, caused the greatest dissatisfaction amongst the Hindustani sepoys, who looked upon it as one of the measures introduced by the Sirkar for the forcible, or rather fraudulent, conversion of all the Natives to Christianity.6

Opposition to Foreign Service A major source of discontent in our Native army, which became more pronounced each year as we expanded our territories in northern India, was the sepoy's obligation to serve in distant parts of India. This meant a life among strangers who were different from him in religion and customs, far away from his home, family, and familiar environment—a responsibility he had only considered in the context of war, when extra pay, free rations, and the chance for loot would help offset the downsides of being away from home. Service in Burma, which required crossing the sea and led to loss of caste for Hindus, was particularly unappealing. The objections from sepoys to this so-called 'foreign service' were so significant that it became challenging to find troops to relieve the regiments since most of the Bengal army was not willing to serve overseas. As a result, the Court of Directors approved Lord Canning's proposal that starting from September 1, 1856, 'no Native recruit shall be accepted who does not at the time of his enlistment undertake to serve beyond the sea, whether within the territories of the Company or beyond them.' This order, while necessary, stirred deep dissatisfaction among the Hindustani sepoys, who viewed it as an attempt by the Sirkar to forcibly, or rather deceitfully, convert all Natives to Christianity.6

Excessive Age of the British Officers That the long-existing discontent and growing disloyalty in our[Page 244] Native army might have been discovered sooner, and grappled with in a sufficiently prompt and determined manner to put a stop to the Mutiny, had the senior regimental and staff officers been younger, more energetic, and intelligent, is an opinion to which I have always been strongly inclined. Their excessive age, due to a strict system of promotion by seniority which entailed the employment of Brigadiers of seventy, Colonels of sixty, and Captains of fifty, must necessarily have prevented them performing their military duties with the energy and activity which are more the attributes of younger men, and must have destroyed any enthusiasm about their regiments, in which there was so little hope of advancement or of individual merit being recognized. Officers who displayed any remarkable ability were allowed to be taken away from their own corps for the more attractive and better-paid appointments appertaining to civil employ or the Irregular service. It was, therefore, the object of every ambitious and capable young officer to secure one of these appointments, and escape as soon as possible from a service in which ability and professional zeal counted for nothing.7

Excessive Age of the British Officers The long-standing unrest and increasing disloyalty in our[Page 244] Native army might have been noticed earlier and addressed in a more timely and decisive way to prevent the Mutiny, if the senior regimental and staff officers had been younger, more energetic, and smarter. Their advanced ages, a result of a strict promotion system based on seniority that allowed Brigadiers to be seventy, Colonels to be sixty, and Captains to be fifty, likely hindered them from carrying out their military duties with the energy and vigor typical of younger individuals. This situation must have dampened any enthusiasm within their regiments, where there was little hope for advancement or recognition of individual merit. Officers who showed exceptional talent were often taken from their own units to fill more desirable and better-paid positions in civil roles or Irregular service. Consequently, every ambitious and capable young officer aimed to secure one of these positions and escape as quickly as possible from a service where ability and professional passion mattered for nothing.7

So far as I understand the causes which led to the rebellion of 1857, I have now answered the question, 'What brought about the Mutiny?' The reply to the second question, 'Is there any chance of a similar rising occurring again?' must be left to another chapter.

As far as I understand the reasons that led to the rebellion of 1857, I have now answered the question, 'What caused the Mutiny?' The answer to the second question, 'Is there a chance of a similar uprising happening again?' will have to be addressed in another chapter.






CHAPTER XXXI.

The India of to-day is altogether a different country from the India of 1857. Much has been done since then to improve the civil administration, and to meet the legitimate demands of the Native races. India is more tranquil, more prosperous, and more civilized than it was before the Mutiny, and the discipline, efficiency, and mobility of the Native army have been greatly improved. Much, however, still remains to be done, and a good deal might with advantage be undone, to secure the contentment of the Natives with our rule.

The India of today is completely different from the India of 1857. A lot has been accomplished since then to enhance civil administration and to address the rightful demands of the local populations. India is now more peaceful, more prosperous, and more developed than it was before the Mutiny, and the discipline, efficiency, and mobility of the local army have seen significant improvements. However, there is still much work to be done, and it might be beneficial to reverse some actions to ensure the satisfaction of the local people with our rule.

Our position has been materially strengthened by the provision of main and subsidiary lines of communication by road and railway; by the great network of telegraphs which now intersects the country; and by the construction of canals. These great public works have largely increased the area of land under cultivation, minimized the risk of famine, equalized the prices of agricultural produce, and developed a large and lucrative export trade. Above all, while our troops can now be assembled easily and rapidly at any centre of disturbance, the number of British soldiers has been more than doubled and the number of Native soldiers has been materially reduced. Moreover, as regards the Native equally with the British army of India, I believe that a better feeling never existed throughout all ranks than exists at present.

Our position has been significantly strengthened by the creation of main and secondary roads and railways; by the extensive telegraph network that now spans the country; and by the building of canals. These major public works have greatly expanded the amount of land available for farming, reduced the risk of famine, balanced the prices of agricultural products, and fostered a large and profitable export industry. Most importantly, while our troops can now be quickly and easily gathered at any area of unrest, the number of British soldiers has more than doubled, and the number of Native soldiers has been significantly decreased. Furthermore, in both the Native and British army of India, I believe that there is now a better sense of camaraderie across all ranks than ever before.

Discontent of the Natives Nevertheless, there are signs that the spirit of unrest and discontent which sowed the seeds of the Mutiny is being revived. To some extent this state of things is the natural result of our position in India, and is so far unavoidable, but it is also due to old faults reappearing—faults which require to be carefully watched and guarded against, for it is certain that, however well disposed as soldiers the men in our ranks may be, their attitude will inevitably be influenced by the feelings of the people generally, more especially should their hostility be aroused by any question connected with religion.

Native Discontent Still, there are signs that the unrest and dissatisfaction that sparked the Mutiny are coming back. To some extent, this is a natural consequence of our situation in India and is somewhat unavoidable, but it’s also a result of old issues resurfacing—issues that need to be carefully monitored and managed. It's clear that, no matter how well-intentioned our soldiers may be, their attitudes will inevitably be shaped by the feelings of the general population, especially if any conflict arises around religious matters.

For a considerable time after the Mutiny we became more cautious and conciliatory in administrative and legislative matters, more intent on doing what would keep the Chiefs and Rulers satisfied, the masses contented, and the country quiet, than on carrying out our own ideas. Gradually this wholesome caution is being disregarded. The Government has become more and more centralized, and the departmental spirit very strong. Each department, in its laudable wish for progress and advancement, is apt to push on measures which are obnoxious to the Natives, either from their not being properly understood, or from their being opposed to their traditions and habits of life, thus entailing the sacrifice of many cherished customs and privileges. Each department admits in theory the necessity for caution, but in practice presses for liberty of action to further its own particular schemes.

For a long time after the Mutiny, we became more careful and accommodating in administrative and legislative matters, focusing more on keeping the Chiefs and Rulers happy, the people satisfied, and the country peaceful, rather than pushing our own ideas. Gradually, this healthy caution is being overlooked. The Government has become more centralized, and the departmental mindset is very strong. Each department, in its commendable desire for progress and improvement, tends to push forward initiatives that upset the Natives, either because they are not fully understood or because they clash with their traditions and way of life, leading to the loss of many valued customs and rights. Each department acknowledges the need for caution in theory, but in practice, it seeks the freedom to act in order to advance its own specific plans.

Of late years, too, the tendency has been to increase the number of[Page 246] departments and of secretariat offices under the supreme Government, and this tendency, while causing more work to devolve on the supreme Government than it can efficiently perform, results in lessening the responsibility of provincial Governments by interference in the management of local concerns. It is obvious that in a country like India, composed as it is of great provinces and various races differing from one another in interests, customs, and religions, each with its own peculiar and distinct necessities, administrative details ought to be left to the people on the spot. The Government of India would then be free to exercise a firm and impartial control over the Empire and Imperial interests, while guiding into safe channels, without unduly restraining, intelligent progress.

In recent years, there has been a trend to increase the number of[Page 246] departments and secretariat offices under the central Government. This trend, while adding more work to the central Government than it can effectively handle, also reduces the responsibility of provincial Governments by interfering in local matters. It’s clear that in a country like India, which consists of large provinces and various races with different interests, customs, and religions—each having its own unique needs—administrative tasks should be left to the local people. This way, the Government of India would be able to maintain strong and fair control over the Empire and its interests, while encouraging smart progress in a manner that doesn’t overly restrict it.

Successful Administrators In times of peace the administration is apt to fall too exclusively into the hands of officials whose ability is of the doctrinaire type; they work hard, and can give logical and statistical reasons for the measures they propose, and are thus able to make them attractive to, and believed in by, the authorities. But they lack the more perfect knowledge of human nature, and the deeper insight into, and greater sympathy with, the feelings and prejudices of Asiatics, which those possessed in a remarkable degree who proved by their success that they had mastered the problem of the best form of government for India. I allude to men like Thomas Munro, Mountstuart Elphinstone, John Malcolm, Charles Metcalfe, George Clerk, Henry and John Lawrence, William Sleeman, James Outram, Herbert Edwardes, John Nicholson, and many others. These administrators, while fully recognizing the need for a gradual reform, understood the peculiarities of our position in the east, the necessity for extreme caution and toleration, and a 'live and let live' policy between us and the Natives. The sound and broad views of this class of public servant are not always appreciated either in India or England, and are too often put aside as unpractical, obstructive, and old-fashioned.

Successful Admins In peaceful times, administration tends to be dominated by officials who are more focused on theories; they work diligently and can provide logical and statistical justifications for their proposals, making them appealing and convincing to those in charge. However, they often lack a deeper understanding of human nature and the insight and empathy needed to connect with the feelings and prejudices of Asians. Those who successfully tackled the challenge of finding the best form of government for India had this profound insight. I'm referring to individuals like Thomas Munro, Mountstuart Elphinstone, John Malcolm, Charles Metcalfe, George Clerk, Henry and John Lawrence, William Sleeman, James Outram, Herbert Edwardes, John Nicholson, and many others. These administrators recognized the need for gradual reform while also understanding the unique challenges of our position in the East, the importance of caution and tolerance, and a 'live and let live' approach between us and the locals. The wise and expansive views of this type of public servant are often overlooked in both India and England and are too frequently dismissed as impractical, obstructive, and outdated.

Amongst the causes which have produced discontent of late years, I would mention our forest laws and sanitary regulations, our legislative and fiscal systems—measures so necessary that no one interested in the prosperity of India could cavil at their introduction, but which are so absolutely foreign to Native ideas, that it is essential they should be applied with the utmost gentleness and circumspection.

Among the reasons for recent discontent, I would highlight our forest laws and health regulations, along with our legislative and tax systems—these are important measures that no one who cares about the well-being of India could argue against. However, they are so entirely unfamiliar to local perspectives that it’s crucial they be implemented with great care and consideration.

I think, also, that the official idea of converting the young Princes and Nobles of India into English gentlemen by means of English tutors and English studies should be carried out with great care and caution. It has not hitherto invariably succeeded, and the feeling in many States is strongly opposed to it. The danger of failure lies in the wholesome restraint of the tutor being suddenly removed, and in the young Prince being left at too early an age to select his advisers and companions. The former, perhaps not unnaturally, are interested[Page 247] in proving that the training of their young Ruler by his European governor or tutor has not resulted in good either to himself or his people, while the latter are too often of the lowest class of European adventurers.

I also believe that the official plan to turn the young princes and nobles of India into English gentlemen through English tutors and studies should be approached very carefully. It hasn't always worked in the past, and many states strongly oppose it. The risk of failure comes from the sudden removal of the tutor's beneficial guidance, leaving the young prince too young to choose his advisors and friends. The former, perhaps understandably, want to show that the training their young ruler received from his European governor or tutor hasn't benefited either him or his people, while the latter are often the lowest class of European adventurers.

The proceedings and regulations of the Forest Department, desirable as they may be from a financial and agricultural point of view, have provoked very great irritation in many parts of India. People who have been accustomed from time immemorial to pick up sticks and graze their cattle on forest lands, cannot understand why they should now be forbidden to do so, nor can they realize the necessity for preserving the trees from the chance of being destroyed by fire, a risk to which they were frequently exposed from the Native custom of making use of their shelter while cooking, and of burning the undergrowth to enrich the grazing.

The rules and regulations of the Forest Department, while they may be beneficial financially and agriculturally, have caused significant frustration in many areas of India. People who have traditionally collected firewood and grazed their livestock on forest land can’t understand why they're now not allowed to do so. They also struggle to see the need to protect the trees from the risk of fire, which often occurred due to the local practice of using the forests for cooking and burning the underbrush to improve grazing conditions.

The action taken by the Government in sanitary matters has also aroused much ill-feeling and apprehension. Sanitary precautions are entirely ignored in eastern countries. The great majority of the people can see no good in them, and no harm in using the same tank for drinking purposes and for bathing and washing their clothes. The immediate surroundings of their towns and villages are most offensive, being used as the general receptacles for dead animals and all kinds of filth. Cholera, fever, and other diseases, which carry off hundreds of thousands every year, are looked upon as the visitation of God, from which it is impossible, even were it not impious to try, to escape; and the precautionary measures insisted upon by us in our cantonments, and at the fairs and places of pilgrimage, are viewed with aversion and indignation. Only those who have witnessed the personal discomfort and fatigue to which Natives of all ages and both sexes willingly submit in their struggle to reach some holy shrine on the occasion of a religious festival, while dragging their weary limbs for many hundreds of miles along a hot, dusty road, or being huddled for hours together in a crammed and stifling railway carriage, can have any idea of the bitter disappointment to the pilgrims caused by their being ordered to disperse when cholera breaks out at such gatherings, without being given the opportunity of performing their vows or bathing in the sacred waters.1

The actions taken by the government regarding health have sparked a lot of resentment and worry. Health measures are completely ignored in eastern countries. Most people see no benefit in them and don’t think there’s any issue with using the same tank for drinking, bathing, and washing clothes. The areas around their towns and villages are extremely unpleasant, serving as dumping grounds for dead animals and all sorts of waste. Cholera, fever, and other diseases, which kill hundreds of thousands every year, are seen as divine punishment that can’t be avoided, as trying to escape would be considered wrong. The health precautions we enforce in our military camps, at fairs, and pilgrimage sites are met with anger and hostility. Only those who have seen the discomfort and exhaustion that people of all ages and both genders willingly endure to reach a holy site during a religious festival, while dragging their tired bodies for hundreds of miles along a hot, dusty road or crammed together in a stuffy train carriage, can understand the deep disappointment faced by pilgrims when they are forced to disperse due to a cholera outbreak at these gatherings, without being able to fulfill their vows or bathe in the sacred waters.1

Paternal Despotism Further, our legislative system is based on western ideas, its object [Page 248] being to mete out equal justice to the rich and poor, to the Prince and peasant. But our methods of procedure do not commend themselves to the Indian peoples. Eastern races are accustomed to a paternal despotism, and they conceive it to be the proper function of the local representatives of the supreme Power to investigate and determine on the spot the various criminal and civil cases which come under the cognizance of the district officials. Legal technicalities and references to distant tribunals confuse and harass a population which, with comparatively few exceptions, is illiterate, credulous, and suspicious of underhand influence. An almost unlimited right of appeal from one court to another, in matters of even the most trivial importance, not only tends to impair the authority of the local magistrate, but gives an unfair advantage to the wealthy litigant whose means enable him to secure the services of the ablest pleader, and to purchase the most conclusive evidence in support of his claims. For it must be remembered than in India evidence on almost any subject can be had for the buying, and the difficulty, in the administration of justice, of discriminating between truth and falsehood is thereby greatly increased. Under our system a horde of unscrupulous pleaders has sprung up, and these men encourage useless litigation, thereby impoverishing their clients, and creating much ill-feeling against our laws and administration.

Parental Authority Additionally, our legal system is based on Western ideas, aiming to deliver equal justice to both the rich and poor, as well as the prince and the peasant. However, our procedures don't resonate with the Indian people. Eastern cultures are used to a paternal form of government, believing that local representatives of the highest authority should directly investigate and decide the various criminal and civil cases that fall under the district officials’ jurisdiction. Legal complexities and references to distant courts confuse and burden a largely illiterate, trusting, and suspicious population. The almost unlimited right to appeal from one court to another for even minor matters not only undermines the authority of local magistrates but also gives an unfair edge to wealthy litigants who can afford the best lawyers and buy more convincing evidence. It's important to keep in mind that in India, evidence on nearly any topic can be purchased, making it much harder to separate truth from falsehood in justice administration. Our system has led to a surge of unscrupulous lawyers who promote unnecessary lawsuits, which drains their clients' finances and breeds resentment towards our laws and governance.

Money-lenders and the Press Another point worthy of consideration is the extent to which, under the protection of our legal system, the peasant proprietors of India are being oppressed and ruined by village shop-keepers and money-lenders. These men advance money at a most exorbitant rate of interest, taking as security the crops and occupancy rights of the cultivators of the soil. The latter are ignorant, improvident, and in some matters, such as the marriage ceremonies of their families, inordinately extravagant. The result is that a small debt soon swells into a big one, and eventually the aid of the law courts is invoked to oust the cultivator from a holding which, in many cases, has been in the possession of his ancestors for hundreds of years. The money-lender has his accounts to produce, and these can hardly be disputed, the debtor as a rule being unable to keep accounts of his own, or, indeed, to read or write. Before the British dominion was established in India, the usurer no doubt existed, but his opportunities were fewer, his position more precarious, and his operations more under control than they are at present. The money-lender then knew that his life would not be safe if he exacted too high interest for the loans with which he accommodated his customers, and[Page 249] that if he became too rich, some charge or other would be trumped up against him, which would force him to surrender a large share of his wealth to the officials of the State in which he was living. I do not say that the rough-and-ready methods of Native justice in dealing with money-lenders were excusable or tolerable, but at the same time I am inclined to think that, in granting these men every legal facility for enforcing their demands and carrying on their traffic, we may have neglected the interests of the agriculturists, and that it might be desirable to establish some agency under the control of Government, which would enable the poorer landholders to obtain, at a moderate rate of interest, advances proportionate to the security they had to offer.2

Lenders and the Media Another important point to consider is how, under our legal system's protection, the peasant landowners in India are suffering and losing their livelihoods to village shopkeepers and money-lenders. These individuals lend money at ridiculously high interest rates, using the crops and land rights of the farmers as collateral. The farmers often lack knowledge and foresight, and in some cases, they are excessively extravagant when it comes to family events like weddings. This leads to small debts quickly becoming large ones, and eventually, the farmers have to turn to the courts to prevent being forced off land that has been in their families for generations. The money-lender presents his records, which are rarely disputed, as the borrower typically cannot keep track of their own finances or may not be able to read or write. Before British rule took hold in India, usurers existed but had fewer opportunities, lived in riskier situations, and operated under stricter controls than they do now. Back then, a money-lender knew his life could be at risk if he charged too high of an interest rate, and if he amassed too much wealth, he could be falsely accused of a crime, forcing him to relinquish a significant portion of his riches to local authorities. I’m not saying that the rough methods of local justice for dealing with money-lenders were right or acceptable, but I do believe that by granting these individuals full legal rights to enforce their claims and continue their practices, we may have overlooked the interests of farmers. It might be beneficial to create a government-controlled agency that helps poorer landowners secure loans at reasonable interest rates based on the assets they have to offer.2

Another danger to our supremacy in India is the license allowed to the Native press in vilifying the Government and its officials, and persistently misrepresenting the motives and policy of the ruling Power. In a free country, where the mass of the population is well educated, independent, and self-reliant, a free press is a most valuable institution, representing as it does the requirements and aspirations of important sections of the community, and bringing to light defects and abuses in the social and political system. In a country such as Great Britain, which is well advanced in the art of self-government, intolerant and indiscriminate abuse of public men defeats its own object, and misstatements of matters of fact can be at once exposed and refuted. Like most of the developments of civilization which are worth anything, the English press is a plant of indigenous growth, whereas in India the Native press is an exotic which, under existing conditions, supplies no general want, does nothing to refine, elevate, or instruct the people, and is used by its supporters and promoters—an infinitesimal part of the population—as a means of gaining its selfish ends, and of fostering sedition, and racial and religious animosities. There are, I am afraid, very few Native newspapers actuated by a friendly or impartial spirit towards the Government of India, and to Asiatics it seems incredible that we should permit such hostile publications to be scattered broadcast over the country, unless the assertions were too true to be disputed, or unless we were too weak to suppress them. We gain neither credit nor gratitude for our tolerant attitude towards the Native press—our forbearance is misunderstood; and while the well-disposed are amazed at our inaction, the disaffected rejoice at being allowed to promulgate baseless insinuations and misstatements which undermine our authority, and thwart our efforts to gain the[Page 250] goodwill and confidence of the Native population.

Another threat to our dominance in India is the freedom given to the Native press to criticize the Government and its officials, continuously misrepresenting the motives and policies of those in power. In a free country, where the majority of the population is well-educated, independent, and self-sufficient, a free press is a valuable institution, as it reflects the needs and aspirations of significant parts of the community, while exposing flaws and abuses in the social and political system. In a country like Great Britain, which has advanced in the practice of self-government, harsh and indiscriminate criticism of public leaders undermines its own purpose, and factual inaccuracies can be quickly challenged and disproved. Like many meaningful aspects of civilization, the English press is a native development, while in India, the Native press is foreign and, under current conditions, does not fulfill a general need, nor does it help to refine, uplift, or educate the people. Instead, it is utilized by a tiny segment of the population for their selfish agendas, fostering sedition and promoting racial and religious conflicts. Unfortunately, there are very few Native newspapers that show a friendly or impartial attitude towards the Government of India, and it seems unbelievable to Asiatics that we allow such hostile publications to spread across the country, unless the claims are too true to contest or we are too weak to control them. We earn neither respect nor appreciation for our tolerant stance towards the Native press—our restraint is misinterpreted; while the well-meaning are shocked by our inaction, the discontented take pleasure in being allowed to spread unfounded insinuations and falsehoods that weaken our authority and hinder our efforts to earn the goodwill and trust of the Native population.

Faddists Yet another danger to the permanence of our rule in India lies in the endeavours of well-intentioned faddists to regulate the customs and institutions of eastern races in accordance with their own ideas. The United Kingdom is a highly civilized country, and our habits and convictions have been gradually developed under the influences of our religion and our national surroundings. Fortunately for themselves, the people of Great Britain possess qualities which have made them masters of a vast and still expanding Empire. But these qualities have their defects as well as their merits, and one of the defects is a certain insularity of thought, or narrow-mindedness—a slowness to recognize that institutions which are perfectly suitable and right for us may be quite unsuited, if not injurious, to other races, and that what may not be right for us to do is not necessarily wrong for people of a different belief, and with absolutely different traditions and customs.

Trendy people Another threat to our lasting control in India comes from the efforts of well-meaning faddists who try to reshape the customs and traditions of Eastern cultures based on their own beliefs. The United Kingdom is a highly developed country, and our practices and beliefs have evolved over time under the influence of our religion and national environment. Fortunately, the people of Great Britain have qualities that have made them rulers of a vast and growing Empire. However, these qualities have both strengths and weaknesses, and one weakness is a certain insularity of thought, or narrow-mindedness—a reluctance to understand that institutions that work well for us may be completely inappropriate, if not harmful, to other cultures. What may not be right for us is not automatically wrong for people with different beliefs and entirely different traditions and customs.

Gradually the form of Government in the United Kingdom has become representative and democratic, and it is therefore assumed by some people, who have little, if any, experience of the east, that the Government of India should be guided by the utterances of self-appointed agitators who pose as the mouth-pieces of an oppressed population. Some of these men are almost as much aliens3 as ourselves, while others are representatives of a class which, though intellectually advanced, has no influence amongst the races in whom lies the real strength of India. Municipal self-government has been found to answer well in the United Kingdom, and it is held, therefore, that a similar system must be equally successful in India. We in England consume animal food and alcoholic liquors, but have no liking for opium; an effort has accordingly been made to deprive our Asiatic fellow-subjects, who, as a rule, are vegetarians, and either total abstainers or singularly abstemious in the matter of drink, of a small and inexpensive stimulant, which they find necessary to their health and comfort. British institutions and ideas are the embodiment of what long experience has proved to us to be best for ourselves; but suddenly to establish these institutions and enforce these ideas on a community which is not prepared for them, does not want them, and cannot understand them, must only lead to suspicion and discontent. The Government of India should, no doubt, be progressive in its policy, and in all things be guided by the immutable principles of right, truth, and justice; but these principles ought to be applied, not necessarily as we should apply them in England, but with due regard to the social peculiarities and religious prejudices of the people whom it ought to be our aim to make better and happier.

Gradually, the government in the United Kingdom has become representative and democratic. Because of this, some people with little to no experience of the East believe that the government of India should listen to self-appointed activists who claim to speak for an oppressed population. Some of these individuals are nearly as foreign as we are, while others represent a class that, despite being educated, hold no real influence among the groups that truly hold the strength of India. Municipal self-government has worked well in the UK, so it’s assumed a similar system would be just as successful in India. In England, we consume meat and alcohol but have no taste for opium; therefore, there has been an effort to deny our Asian fellow subjects—who are generally vegetarians and either completely abstain from or are very moderate with alcohol—a small, affordable stimulant that they find essential for their health and comfort. British institutions and ideas represent what long experience has taught us is best for ourselves; however, to suddenly impose these institutions and ideas on a community that isn’t prepared for them, doesn’t want them, and can’t comprehend them will only lead to distrust and discontent. The government of India should indeed adopt a forward-thinking policy, guided by unwavering principles of right, truth, and justice; however, these principles should be applied with careful consideration of the social peculiarities and religious beliefs of the people we aim to improve and make happier.

It will be gathered from what I have written that our administration,[Page 251] in my opinion, suffers from two main defects. First, it is internally too bureaucratic and centralizing in its tendencies; and, secondly, it is liable to be forced by the external pressure of well-meaning but irresponsible politicians and philanthropists to adopt measures which may be disapproved of by the authorities on the spot, and opposed to the wishes, requirements, and interests of the people. It seems to me that for many years to come the best form of government for India will be the intelligent and benevolent despotism which at present rules the country. On a small scale, and in matters of secondary importance, representative institutions cannot perhaps do much harm, though I am afraid they will effect but little good. On a large scale, however, such a system of government would be quite out of place in view of the fact that ninety-nine out of every hundred of the population are absolutely devoid of any idea of civil responsibility, and that the various races and religious sects possess no bond of national union.

It can be inferred from what I’ve written that our administration,[Page 251] in my view, has two major flaws. First, it is too bureaucratic and centralized; second, it tends to give in to the external pressure from well-meaning but irresponsible politicians and philanthropists, which leads to adopting measures that may not be supported by local authorities and that go against the wishes, needs, and interests of the people. I believe that for many years to come, the best form of government for India will be the wise and compassionate rule that currently governs the country. On a smaller scale, and in less critical matters, representative institutions might not cause much harm, although I fear they will do little good. However, on a larger scale, such a governance system would be completely inappropriate, considering that ninety-nine out of a hundred people lack any understanding of civic responsibility and that the different races and religious groups have no sense of national unity.

Cardinal Points In reply, then, to the question, 'Is there any chance of a Mutiny occurring again?' I would say that the best way of guarding against such a calamity is—

Cardinal Directions In response to the question, 'Is there any chance of a Mutiny happening again?' I would say that the best way to prevent such a disaster is—

By never allowing the present proportion of British to Native soldiers to be diminished or the discipline and efficiency of the Native army to become slack.

By always ensuring that the current ratio of British to Native soldiers never decreases and that the discipline and effectiveness of the Native army remains strong.

By taking care that men are selected for the higher civil and military posts whose self-reliance, activity, and resolution are not impaired by age, and who possess a knowledge of the country and the habits of the peoples.

By ensuring that individuals chosen for senior civil and military positions have their self-reliance, energy, and determination intact despite their age, and that they have a good understanding of the country and the ways of its people.

By recognizing and guarding against the dogmatism of theorists and the dangers of centralization.

By acknowledging and protecting against the rigid beliefs of theorists and the risks of centralization.

By rendering our administration on the one hand firm and strong, on the other hand tolerant and sympathetic; and last, but not least, by doing all in our power to gain the confidence of the various races, and by convincing them that we have not only the determination, but the ability to maintain our supremacy in India against all assailants.

By making our administration both strong and reliable while also being tolerant and understanding; and last but not least, by doing everything we can to earn the trust of the different races, and by proving to them that we not only have the resolve but also the capability to keep our dominance in India against any challengers.

If these cardinal points are never lost sight of, there is, I believe, little chance of any fresh outbreak disturbing the stability of our rule in India, or neutralizing our efforts to render that country prosperous, contented, and thoroughly loyal to the British Crown.

If we keep these key points in mind, I believe there's a good chance we won't face any new disruptions that could threaten our control in India or undermine our efforts to make the country prosperous, happy, and loyal to the British Crown.






CHAPTER XXXII.

1858
Back Home

I travelled home viâ Corfu, Trieste, Venice, and Switzerland, arriving in England towards the end of June. The intense delight of getting 'home' after one's first term of exile can hardly be exaggerated, and certainly cannot be realized, save by those who have gone through the[Page 252] exile, and been separated, as I had been for years, from all that made the happiness of my early life. Every English tree and flower one comes across on first landing is a distinct and lively pleasure, while the greenness and freshness are a delicious rest to the eye, wearied with the deadly whitey-brown sameness of dried-up sandy plains, or the all-too gorgeous colouring of eastern cities and pageants.

I traveled home via Corfu, Trieste, Venice, and Switzerland, arriving in England towards the end of June. The intense joy of getting 'home' after your first term of being away can hardly be overstated, and definitely can’t be understood except by those who have experienced the exile and been separated, as I had been for years, from everything that made my early life happy. Every English tree and flower you see when you first arrive is a distinct and vibrant pleasure, while the greenery and freshness are a wonderful relief for the eyes, tired from the dull white-brown sameness of dry sandy plains, or the overly bright colors of eastern cities and events.

My people were living in Ireland, in the county of Waterford, so after only a short sojourn in London, for the very necessary re-equipment of the outer man, I hastened over there. I found my father well and strong for a man of seventy-four, and to all appearance quite recovered from the effects of his fifty years of Indian service, and, to my great joy, my mother was looking almost as young, and quite as beautiful, as I had left her six years before. My little sister, too, always an invalid, was very much as when I had parted from her—full of loving-kindness for everyone, and, though unable to move without help, perfectly happy in the many resources she had within herself, and the good she was able to do in devoting those resources to the benefit of others.

My family was living in Ireland, in County Waterford, so after a brief stay in London to take care of my appearance, I quickly made my way there. I found my father healthy and strong for a seventy-four-year-old, and he seemed to have fully recovered from the effects of his fifty years of service in India. To my great delight, my mother looked almost as young and just as beautiful as she had six years earlier. My little sister, who had always been fragile, was much the same as when I had left her—full of love for everyone, and although she couldn't move without assistance, she was perfectly happy with the many inner resources she possessed and the good she could do by using those resources to help others.

There, too, I found my fate, in the shape of Nora Bews, a young lady living with a married sister not far from my father's place, who a few months later consented to accompany me on my return to India. The greater part of my leave was, therefore, spent in Ireland.

There, too, I found my destiny, in the form of Nora Bews, a young woman living with her married sister not far from my father's place, who a few months later agreed to join me on my return to India. So, I spent most of my leave in Ireland.

During the winter months I hunted with the Curraghmore hounds, and was out with them the day before Lord Waterford was killed. We had no run, and at the end of the day, when wishing us good-bye, he said: 'I hope, gentlemen, we shall have better luck next time.' 'Next time' there was 'better luck' as regarded the hunting, but the worst of all possible luck for Lord Waterford's numerous friends; in returning home after a good run, and having killed two foxes, his horse stumbled over quite a small ditch, throwing his rider on his head; the spinal cord was snapped and the fine sportsman breathed his last in a few moments.

During the winter months, I hunted with the Curraghmore hounds and was out with them the day before Lord Waterford was killed. We didn’t have a good run, and at the end of the day, when he said goodbye, he remarked, “I hope, gentlemen, we’ll have better luck next time.” The “next time” brought better luck in terms of hunting, but it was the worst possible luck for Lord Waterford’s many friends. On the way home after a good run, having killed two foxes, his horse stumbled over a small ditch, throwing him headfirst; his spinal cord was snapped, and the fine sportsman died within moments.

1859 I was married on the 17th May, 1859, in the parish church of Waterford. While on our wedding tour in Scotland, I received a command to be present on the 8th June at Buckingham Palace, when the Queen proposed to honour the recipients of the Victoria Cross by presenting the decoration with Her Majesty's own hands.

1859 I got married on May 17, 1859, in the parish church of Waterford. During our honeymoon in Scotland, I was told to be at Buckingham Palace on June 8, when the Queen planned to honor the recipients of the Victoria Cross by personally presenting the award.

Back in India Being anxious that my wife should be spared the great heat of a journey to India in July, the hottest month of the year in the Red Sea, and the doctors being very decided in their opinion that I should not return so soon, I had applied for a three months' extension of leave, and quite calculated on getting it, so our disappointment was great when the answer arrived and I found that, if I took the extension, I should lose my appointment in the Quartermaster-General's Department. This, we agreed, was not to be thought of, so there was nothing[Page 253] for it but to face the disagreeable necessity as cheerfully as we could. We made a dash over to Ireland, said good-bye to our relations, and started for India on the 27th June.

In India Worried that my wife would have to endure the intense heat of a trip to India in July—the hottest month of the year in the Red Sea—and since the doctors were very clear that I shouldn’t return so soon, I applied for a three-month extension of leave. I was pretty sure I would get it, so we were really disappointed when the reply came and I learned that if I took the extension, I would lose my position in the Quartermaster-General's Department. We agreed that this was not an option, so we had no choice but to face the unpleasant situation as positively as we could. We quickly traveled to Ireland, said goodbye to our family, and set off for India on June 27th.



LADY ROBERTS (WIFE OF SIR ABRAHAM ROBERTS)

LADY ROBERTS
(WIFE OF SIR ABRAHAM ROBERTS)


From
a sketch by Carpenter.

LADY ROBERTS (WIFE OF SIR ABRAHAM ROBERTS)

LADY ROBERTS
(Wife of Sir Abraham Roberts)


From a sketch by Carpenter.



The heat in the Red Sea proved even worse than I had anticipated. Our captain pronounced it the hottest trip he had ever made. Twice was the ship turned round to steam against the wind for a short time in order to revive some of the passengers, who were almost suffocated.

The heat in the Red Sea was even worse than I expected. Our captain said it was the hottest trip he had ever taken. The ship turned around twice to head against the wind for a short time to help some of the passengers, who were almost suffocating.

We passed the wreck of the Alma, a P. and O. vessel which had struck on a coral reef not far from Mocha. The wreck had happened in the dead of night, and there had been only time to get the passengers into the boats, in which they were rowed to another reef near at hand; there they had remained for eighty hours in their scanty night garments, and without the smallest shelter, until rescued by a friendly steamer. The officers and crew were still on the rock when we passed, endeavouring to get up the mails and the passengers' property. We supplied them with provisions and water, of which they were badly in need, and then had to leave them in their extremely uncomfortable position.

We passed the wreck of the Alma, a P. and O. ship that had hit a coral reef not far from Mocha. The wreck occurred in the middle of the night, leaving just enough time to get the passengers into the lifeboats, which took them to another nearby reef. They had to stay there for eighty hours in their minimal night clothes and without any shelter until a friendly steamer came to rescue them. The officers and crew were still on the rock when we passed by, trying to recover the mail and the passengers' belongings. We provided them with food and water, which they were desperately short of, and then unfortunately had to leave them in their very uncomfortable situation.

We could not complain of lack of air after we passed Aden, for we forthwith encountered the south-west monsoon, then at its height, and on entering the Bay of Bengal we experienced something very nearly akin to a cyclone. We broke our rudder; the lightships, on which a certain number of pilots were always to be found, had all been blown out to sea; and as we had only just sufficient coal to take us up the Hugli when the pilot should appear, we did not dare to keep up steam. Thus we had to remain at the mercy of the winds and waves for some days, until at length a brig with a pilot on board was sent to look for us, and eventually we arrived in Calcutta, in rather a dilapidated condition, on the 30th July.

We couldn’t complain about the lack of air after we passed Aden, because we immediately ran into the south-west monsoon, which was at its peak. Upon entering the Bay of Bengal, we faced conditions that were almost like a cyclone. We broke our rudder; the lightships, where you could usually find pilots, had all been blown out to sea; and since we only had just enough coal to take us up the Hugli when the pilot showed up, we couldn’t risk keeping up steam. So, we had to endure the mercy of the winds and waves for several days, until finally, a brig with a pilot aboard was sent to find us, and we made it to Calcutta, looking quite battered, on July 30th.

We were not cheered by the orders I found awaiting me, which were to proceed to Morar and join Brigadier-General Sir Robert Napier, then in command of the Gwalior district. Morar in the month of August is one of the hottest places in India, and my wife was considerably the worse for our experiences at sea. However, a Calcutta hotel never has many attractions, and at that time of year was depressing and uncomfortable to the last degree; in addition, I had rather a severe attack of my old enemy, Peshawar fever, so we started on our journey 'up country' with as little delay as possible.

We weren’t excited about the orders I found waiting for me, which were to head to Morar and join Brigadier-General Sir Robert Napier, who was then in charge of the Gwalior district. Morar in August is one of the hottest places in India, and my wife was feeling pretty unwell after our experiences at sea. However, a hotel in Calcutta doesn’t hold many attractions, and at that time of year, it was incredibly depressing and uncomfortable; on top of that, I was having a pretty bad flare-up of my old nemesis, Peshawar fever, so we set off on our journey 'up country' without wasting any time.

The railway at that time was not open further than Raniganj; thence we proceeded for a hundred miles in a 'dâk-ghari,' when, changing into doolies, we continued our journey to Hazaribagh, a little cantonment about twenty miles off the main road, where some relations of mine were living; but a day or two after our arrival at their hospitable house, I was ordered back to Calcutta.

The railway was only open as far as Raniganj at that time; from there, we traveled a hundred miles in a 'dâk-ghari,' and then switched to doolies to keep going to Hazaribagh, a small cantonment about twenty miles off the main road, where some relatives of mine were living. However, a day or two after arriving at their welcoming house, I was told to return to Calcutta.

I left my wife with our kind friends, and retraced my steps in considerable elation of spirits, for the China expedition was even then[Page 254] being talked about, and I hoped this sudden summons might possibly mean that I was to be sent with it in some capacity. On reaching Calcutta, however, I was told that I had been appointed to organize and take charge of the large camp to be formed for the triumphal progress which Lord Canning proposed to make through Oudh, the North-West Provinces, and the Punjab, with the view of meeting the principal feudatory Chiefs, and rewarding those who had been especially loyal during the rebellion. I was informed that the tents were in store in the arsenal at Allahabad, and that the camp must be ready at Cawnpore on the 15th October, on which date the Viceroy would arrive, and a day or two later commence his stately procession towards Lucknow.

I left my wife with our generous friends and made my way back feeling quite happy because people were already talking about the China expedition, and I hoped that this unexpected call meant I might be sent along in some way. However, when I got to Calcutta, I was told that I had been appointed to organize and oversee the large camp that would be set up for the celebratory journey that Lord Canning planned to take through Oudh, the North-West Provinces, and the Punjab, to meet the main local leaders and reward those who had been particularly loyal during the rebellion. I was informed that the tents were stored in the arsenal in Allahabad and that the camp needed to be ready in Cawnpore by October 15th, when the Viceroy would arrive, and a day or two later, he would start his grand procession toward Lucknow.

While I was in England a Royal Proclamation had announced to the people of India that the Queen had taken over the government of their country, which had hitherto been held in trust for Her Majesty by the Honourable East India Company. This fact had been publicly proclaimed, with befitting ceremony, throughout the length and breadth of the land, on the 1st November, 1858. At the same time it was announced that Her Majesty's representative in India was henceforth to be styled Viceroy and Governor-General of India, and it was with the object of emphasizing this Proclamation, and impressing the Native mind with the reality of Queen Victoria's power and authority, that Lord Canning decided on undertaking this grand tour.

While I was in England, a Royal Proclamation announced to the people of India that the Queen had taken over the government of their country, which had previously been managed for Her Majesty by the Honourable East India Company. This announcement was made publicly and with appropriate ceremony across the entire country on November 1, 1858. At the same time, it was stated that Her Majesty's representative in India would now be called the Viceroy and Governor-General of India. To reinforce this Proclamation and to make the Native population aware of Queen Victoria's power and authority, Lord Canning decided to undertake this grand tour.

While in Calcutta on this occasion, I was offered a post in the Revenue Survey Department. I refused it, for, although as a married man the higher pay was a tempting bait, the recollection of the excitement and variety of the year of the Mutiny was still fresh upon me, and I had no wish to leave the Quartermaster-General's Department. I therefore started for Allahabad, picking up my wife en route.

While in Calcutta this time, I was offered a position in the Revenue Survey Department. I turned it down because, although the higher salary was appealing as a married man, the memories of the excitement and variety from the year of the Mutiny were still fresh in my mind, and I didn't want to leave the Quartermaster-General's Department. So, I headed to Allahabad, picking up my wife along the way.

It was then the middle of the rains, and the bridge of boats over the Jumna had been taken down, so we had to cross in ferry-boats—dâk-gharis, horses, and all—rather a perilous-looking proceeding, for the river was running at a tremendous pace, and there was some difficulty in keeping the boat's head straight. At Allahabad we stayed with a brother officer of mine in the fort, while I was getting the camp equipage out of store, and the tents pitched for inspection. There had not been a large camp for many years, and everything in India deteriorates so rapidly, that I found most of the tents in such a state of mildew and decay as to render it necessary to renew them almost entirely before they could be used for such a splendid occasion as that of the first Viceroy's first march through the re-conquered country.

It was the middle of the rainy season, and the boat bridge over the Jumna had been taken down, so we had to cross in ferry boats—along with dâk-gharis, horses, and all—quite a risky situation, since the river was flowing really fast, and it was challenging to keep the boat steady. In Allahabad, we stayed with a fellow officer in the fort while I organized getting the camp gear out of storage and set up the tents for inspection. There hadn’t been a big camp for many years, and everything in India falls apart quickly, so I found most of the tents in such bad shape due to mold and decay that I had to replace them almost entirely before they could be used for such an important occasion as the first march of the first Viceroy through the re-conquered territory.

Allahabad and Cawnpore From Allahabad we proceeded to Cawnpore, where I had a busy time arranging for the multifarious requirements of such an enormous camp; and sometimes I despaired of its being completed by the appointed date. However, completed it was; and on the 15th October Lord and Lady Canning arrived, and expressed themselves so pleased with all the[Page 255] arrangements, and were so kindly appreciative of the exertions I had made to be ready for them by the appointed time, that I felt myself fully rewarded for all my trouble.

Prayagraj and Kanpur From Allahabad, we went to Cawnpore, where I was busy sorting out the many needs of such a large camp; there were times when I worried we wouldn't be ready by the deadline. But we pulled it off; on October 15th, Lord and Lady Canning arrived, and they expressed how pleased they were with all the[Page 255] arrangements. They were really appreciative of the work I had put in to be prepared for them on time, which made all my efforts feel worthwhile.

The next day I took my wife to call upon Lady Canning, whose unaffected and simple, yet perfectly dignified manner completely charmed her, and from that day she was devoted, in common with everyone who was at all intimately associated with Lady Canning, to the gentle, gracious lady, who was always kindness itself to her.

The next day I took my wife to visit Lady Canning, whose genuine and straightforward, yet perfectly dignified manner completely charmed her. From that day on, she became devoted, like everyone who was even a little close to Lady Canning, to the gentle, gracious lady, who was always incredibly kind to her.

On the 18th the Viceroy made his first march towards Lucknow. The camp equipage was in duplicate, so that everyone on arriving at the new halting-place found things exactly the same as in the tents they had left.

On the 18th, the Viceroy started his first march toward Lucknow. The camp equipment was duplicated, so everyone arriving at the new campsite found everything exactly the same as in the tents they had just left.

The Viceroy's Camp The camp occupied a considerable space; for, in addition to the Viceroy's large entourage, ground had to be provided for the Commander-in-Chief and the officers of Army Head-Quarters, who were marching with us; then there were the post-office, telegraph, workshops, toshikhana,1 commissariat, and a host of other offices to be accommodated, beside the escort, which consisted of a battery of Horse Artillery, a squadron of British Cavalry, a regiment of British Infantry, a regiment of Native Cavalry, a regiment of Native Infantry, and the Viceroy's Bodyguard. For the Viceroy, his staff, guests, and secretaries alone, 150 large tents were pitched in the main street, and when we came to a station the duplicate tents were also pitched. For the transport of this portion of the camp equipage 80 elephants and 500 camels were required.2

The Viceroy's Camp The camp took up a lot of space; besides the Viceroy's large entourage, there needed to be room for the Commander-in-Chief and the officers from Army Headquarters who were marching with us. We also required space for the post office, telegraph, workshops, toshikhana, 1 commissariat, and many other offices, as well as the escort, which included a battery of Horse Artillery, a squadron of British Cavalry, a regiment of British Infantry, a regiment of Native Cavalry, a regiment of Native Infantry, and the Viceroy's Bodyguard. For the Viceroy, his staff, guests, and secretaries alone, 150 large tents were set up along the main street, and when we arrived at a station, duplicate tents were also put up. To transport this part of the camp equipment, 80 elephants and 500 camels were required.2

It is very difficult to give any idea of the extraordinary spectacle a big camp like this presents on the line of march. The followers, as a rule, are accompanied by their wives and families, who are piled upon the summits of laden carts, or perched on the loads borne by the baggage animals. In the two camps marching together (Lord Canning's and Lord Clyde's) there could not have been less than 20,000 men, women, and children—a motley crowd streaming along about four-and-twenty miles of road, for the day's march was usually about twelve miles, and before every one had cleared out of the camp occupied the night before, the advance guard had begun to arrive on the ground to be occupied the next day. The strictest discipline had to be maintained,[Page 256] or this moving colony would have been a serious calamity to the peasantry, for the followers would have spread themselves over the country like a flight of locusts, and taken anything they could lay their hands on, representing themselves as Mulk-i-Lord-Sahib-Ke-Naukar,3 whom according to immemorial tradition it was death to resist. The poor, frightened country-people, therefore, hardly ventured to remonstrate at the mahouts walking off with great loads of their sugar-cane, or to object to the compulsory purchase of their farm produce for half its value. There was a great deal of this kind of raiding at the commencement of the march, and I was constantly having complaints made to me by the villagers; but after I had inflicted on the offenders a few summary and tolerably severe punishments, and made the peasants to understand it was not the Mulk-i-Lord-Sahib's wish that they should submit to such treatment from his servants, order was established, and I had very rarely any trouble.

It's really hard to convey the amazing sight a big camp like this offers on the march. Usually, the followers are accompanied by their wives and families, who are piled on top of loaded carts or perched on the baggage animals. In the two camps traveling together (Lord Canning's and Lord Clyde's), there were at least 20,000 men, women, and children—a diverse crowd streaming along about twenty-four miles of road, since the daily march was usually about twelve miles. By the time everyone left the camp they occupied the night before, the advance guard had often begun to set up at the next site. The strictest discipline had to be maintained,[Page 256] or this moving group would have been a serious problem for the local farmers, as they would have spread out over the countryside like a swarm of locusts, taking whatever they could grab, presenting themselves as Mulk-i-Lord-Sahib-Ke-Naukar,3 whom, according to long-standing tradition, it was considered deadly to resist. The poor, scared villagers hardly dared to protest when the mahouts walked off with huge loads of their sugar-cane or to refuse the forced sale of their farm goods for half their worth. There was a lot of this kind of looting at the start of the march, and villagers constantly complained to me; but after I imposed a few swift and pretty harsh punishments on the offenders and made it clear to the peasants that it wasn't the Mulk-i-Lord-Sahib's intention for them to endure such treatment from his servants, order was restored, and I rarely had any more trouble.

Our first halt was at Lucknow. Sir Hope Grant was commanding the division, and had established himself very comfortably in the Dilkusha. He had written asking me to bring my wife straight there and stay with him during the Viceroy's visit, as it was still very hot in tents during the day. An invitation which I gladly accepted, for it was pleasant to think of being with my old General again, and I wanted to introduce him to my wife.

Our first stop was in Lucknow. Sir Hope Grant was in charge of the division and had set up a very comfortable base at the Dilkusha. He had asked me to bring my wife directly there and stay with him during the Viceroy's visit since it was still really hot in the tents during the day. I happily accepted the invitation because it was nice to think about being with my old General again, and I wanted to introduce him to my wife.

The next day, the 22nd October, the state entry was made into Lucknow. It must have been an imposing sight, that long array of troops and guns, with Lord Canning in the centre, accompanied by the Commander-in-Chief, and surrounded by their respective staffs in full uniform. Lord Canning, though at that time not given to riding, looked remarkably well on horseback; for he had a fine head and shoulders, and sat his horse well; on foot, his height, not being quite in proportion, rather detracted from the dignity of his presence.

The next day, October 22nd, the official entry into Lucknow took place. It must have been an impressive sight, that long line of troops and artillery, with Lord Canning at the center, joined by the Commander-in-Chief and surrounded by their respective staffs in full uniform. Even though Lord Canning wasn’t much of a rider at that time, he looked quite good on horseback; he had a strong build and carried himself confidently in the saddle. However, on foot, his height, which wasn’t really proportionate, somewhat diminished the dignity of his presence.

State Entry into Lucknow I headed the procession, leading it across the Charbagh bridge, the scene of Havelock's fiercest encounter, past the Machi Bhawan, and the Residency, to the Kaisarbagh, in front of which were drawn up in a body the Talukdars of Oudh, who had with difficulty been persuaded to come and make their obeisance, for, guiltily conscious of their disloyalty during the rebellion, they did not feel at all sure that the rumours that it was intended to blow them all away from guns, or to otherwise summarily dispose of them, were not true. They salaamed respectfully as the Viceroy passed, and the cavalcade proceeded to the Martinière park, where the camp, which I had pitched the previous day, lay spread before us, in all the spotless purity of new white tents glistening in a flood of brilliant sunshine. The streets through which we passed were crowded with Natives, who—cowed, but not tamed—looked[Page 257] on in sullen defiance, very few showing any sign of respect for the Viceroy.

Arrival in Lucknow I led the procession, crossing the Charbagh bridge, the site of Havelock's fiercest battle, past the Machi Bhawan and the Residency, to Kaisarbagh, where the Talukdars of Oudh were gathered. They had been reluctantly convinced to come and pay their respects, as they were acutely aware of their disloyalty during the rebellion. They weren't sure whether the rumors about being executed or dealt with harshly were true. They bowed respectfully as the Viceroy passed, and the group moved on to Martinière park, where the camp I had set up the day before appeared before us in the pristine whiteness of new tents shining in the bright sunlight. The streets we traveled through were filled with locals who, although subdued, still looked on with defiance, very few displaying any respect for the Viceroy.

Sir William and Lady Mansfield, and several other people from our camp were also staying with Sir Hope Grant, and that evening the whole Dilkusha party went to a state dinner given by Lord and Lady Canning. The latter was a delightful hostess; the shyest person was set at ease by her kindly, sympathetic manner, and she had the happy knack of making her guests feel that her entertainments were a pleasure to herself—the surest way of rendering them enjoyable to those she entertained.

Sir William and Lady Mansfield, along with several others from our camp, were also staying with Sir Hope Grant. That evening, the entire Dilkusha group attended a formal dinner hosted by Lord and Lady Canning. Lady Canning was a wonderful hostess; her warm, understanding nature helped even the shyest individuals relax, and she had a great talent for making her guests feel that her gatherings were enjoyable for her—definitely the best way to make them enjoyable for everyone else.

I made use of the next week, which was for me a comparatively idle time, to take my wife over the ground by which we had advanced two years before, and explain to her the different positions held by the enemy. She was intensely interested in visiting the Sikandarbagh, the Shah Najaf, the mess-house, and, above all, that glorious memorial of almost superhuman courage and endurance, the Residency, ruined, roofless, and riddled by round shot and bullets. Very little had then been done towards opening out the city, and the surroundings of the Residency were much as they had been during the defence—a labyrinth of streets and lanes; it was therefore easier for the stranger to realize exactly what had taken place than it is now that the landmarks have been cleared away, and well-laid-out gardens and broad roads have taken the place of jungle and narrow alleys.

I took advantage of the next week, which was a relatively quiet time for me, to show my wife the areas we had advanced through two years earlier and explain the different positions held by the enemy. She was really interested in visiting the Sikandarbagh, the Shah Najaf, the mess-house, and especially that stunning memorial of incredible bravery and resilience, the Residency, which was ruined, roofless, and pockmarked with cannonballs and bullets. Very little had been done at that time to open up the city, and the area around the Residency was much like it had been during the defense—a maze of streets and alleys; so it was easier for someone unfamiliar to understand exactly what had happened than it is now that the landmarks have been cleared away and well-organized gardens and wide roads have replaced the jungle and narrow lanes.

On the 26th the Viceroy held a grand durbar for the reception of the Talukdars. It was the first function of the sort I had witnessed, and was an amusing novelty to my wife, who, with Lady Canning and some of the other ladies in camp, viewed the proceedings from behind a semi-transparent screen, it not being considered at that time the thing for ladies to appear at ceremonials when Natives were present. The whole scene was very impressive, though not as brilliant in colouring as it would have been in any other part of India, owing to the Chiefs of Oudh being clad in simple white, as is the custom amongst Rajputs.

On the 26th, the Viceroy hosted a grand durbar to welcome the Talukdars. It was the first event of its kind that I had seen, and it was a fun novelty for my wife, who, along with Lady Canning and some other ladies in camp, watched the proceedings from behind a semi-transparent screen, as it wasn't appropriate for ladies to be seen at ceremonies with Natives present at that time. The whole scene was quite impressive, although not as vibrant as it might have been elsewhere in India, since the Chiefs of Oudh were dressed in simple white, which is customary among Rajputs.

The Talukdars of Oudh The Talukdars, to the number of one hundred and sixty, were ushered to their places in strict order of seniority, the highest in rank being the last to arrive. They were arranged in a half semicircle on the right of the Viceroy's chair of state, while on the left the Europeans were seated according to their official rank. When all was ready, the words 'Attention! Royal salute! Present arms!' were heard without, warning those within of the Viceroy's approach, and, as the bugles sounded and the guns thundered forth their welcome, Lord Canning, accompanied by the Commander-in-Chief, and preceded by their staffs, entered the tent.

The Oudh Talukdars The Talukdars, numbering one hundred and sixty, were directed to their spots in strict order of seniority, with the highest-ranking individuals being the last to arrive. They were arranged in a semi-circle to the right of the Viceroy's chair, while on the left, the Europeans were seated according to their official ranks. Once everything was set, the command 'Attention! Royal salute! Present arms!' was heard from outside, signaling those inside of the Viceroy's approach. As the bugles played and the guns boomed in welcome, Lord Canning entered the tent, accompanied by the Commander-in-Chief and followed by their staffs.

Everyone rose, and remained standing until the great man took his seat, when the Foreign Secretary came forward, and, making a low [Page 258] bow, informed His Excellency that all who had been summoned to attend the durbar were present. The Chiefs were then brought up and introduced to the Viceroy one by one; each made a profound obeisance, and, as a token of allegiance, presented an offering of gold mohurs, which, according to etiquette, the Viceroy just touched by way of acknowledgment. The presents from the Government to the Chiefs were then handed in on trays, and placed on the ground in front of each, the value of the present being regulated according to the rank and position of the recipient. This part of the ceremony being over, the Viceroy rose and addressed the Talukdars.

Everyone stood up and stayed that way until the prominent figure took his seat. Then, the Foreign Secretary stepped forward, bowed deeply, and informed His Excellency that everyone invited to the durbar was present. The Chiefs were brought up and introduced to the Viceroy one by one; each made a deep bow and, as a sign of loyalty, presented an offering of gold mohurs, which the Viceroy just touched to acknowledge. The gifts from the Government to the Chiefs were then brought in on trays and placed on the ground in front of each, with the value of the gifts adjusted according to the rank and status of the recipient. Once this part of the ceremony was complete, the Viceroy stood up and addressed the Talukdars.

After expressing his pleasure at meeting them in their own country, he gave them an assurance that, so long as they remained faithful to the Government, they should receive every consideration; he told them that a new era had commenced in Oudh, and that henceforth they would be allowed to revert to the conditions under which they had held their estates prior to the annexation of the province. When Lord Canning had finished speaking, a translation of his address in Urdu was read to the Talukdars by Mr. Beadon, the Foreign Secretary; atar and pan4 were then handed round, and the Viceroy took his departure with the same formalities as those with which the durbar had been opened.

After expressing how happy he was to meet them in their own country, he assured them that as long as they remained loyal to the Government, they would receive full consideration. He told them that a new era had begun in Oudh and that from now on, they would be allowed to go back to the conditions they had under their estates before the province was annexed. Once Lord Canning finished speaking, Mr. Beadon, the Foreign Secretary, read a translation of his address in Urdu to the Talukdars; atar and pan4 were then passed around, and the Viceroy left with the same formalities that marked the opening of the durbar.

There is some excuse to be made for the attitude of the Talukdars, who, from their point of view, had little reason to be grateful to the British Government. These powerful Chiefs, whose individual revenues varied from £10,000 to £15,000 a year, and who, in their jungle fastnesses, often defied their sovereign's troops, had suddenly been deprived of all the authority which in the confusion attending a long period of misgovernment they had gradually usurped, as well as of a considerable proportion of the landed property which, from time to time, they had forcibly appropriated. The conversion of feudal Chiefs into ordinary law-abiding subjects is a process which, however beneficial to the many, is certain to be strenuously resisted by the few.

There’s some reason to understand the attitude of the Talukdars, who really had no cause to be thankful to the British Government. These powerful leaders, whose annual incomes ranged from £10,000 to £15,000, often challenged their ruler's troops from their remote jungle hideouts. They were suddenly stripped of all the power they had gradually taken on during a long period of poor governance, as well as a significant amount of the land they had forcefully claimed. Turning feudal leaders into regular law-abiding citizens is a change that, while beneficial for many, will definitely be fiercely opposed by a few.

In March, 1858, when Lucknow was captured, a Proclamation was issued by the Government of India confiscating the proprietary rights in the soil. The object in view was not merely to punish contumacious Chiefs, but also to enable the Government to establish the revenue system on a sounder and firmer footing. Talukdars who submitted were to receive their possessions as a free gift direct from the Government; while those who had done good service, whether men of Oudh or strangers, might be rewarded by grants of confiscated property.

In March 1858, when Lucknow was taken, the Government of India issued a Proclamation that confiscated property rights to the land. The aim was not just to punish rebellious chiefs, but also to allow the Government to set up a more secure and stable revenue system. Talukdars who cooperated would receive their land back as a gift from the Government, while those who had provided valuable service, whether from Oudh or elsewhere, could be rewarded with grants of confiscated property.

Loyalty of the Talukdars The Proclamation was considered in many influential quarters too arbitrary and sweeping a measure; Outram protested against it, and[Page 259] Lord Ellenborough (the President of the Board of Control) condemned it; but Lord Canning was backed up by the British public, and Lord Ellenborough resigned to save his Cabinet from being wrecked. That Outram and Ellenborough took the right view of the case is, I think, shown by the fact that Lord Canning cancelled the Proclamation on his first visit to Lucknow. By that time he had come to recognize that the Talukdars had reasonable grounds for their discontent, and he wisely determined to take a step which not only afforded them the greatest relief and satisfaction, but enlisted their interest on the side of Government. From that day to this, although, from time to time, subsequent legislation has been found necessary to save the peasantry from oppression, the Chiefs of Oudh have been amongst the most loyal of Her Majesty's Indian subjects.

Loyalty of the Talukdars The Proclamation was seen by many influential people as too extreme and overreaching; Outram opposed it, and[Page 259] Lord Ellenborough (the President of the Board of Control) criticized it; however, Lord Canning had the support of the British public, and Lord Ellenborough resigned to protect his Cabinet from collapse. I believe Outram and Ellenborough had the right perspective, as evidenced by the fact that Lord Canning revoked the Proclamation on his first visit to Lucknow. By that point, he had begun to understand that the Talukdars had valid reasons for their discontent, and he wisely decided to take an action that not only provided them with significant relief and satisfaction but also secured their loyalty to the Government. From that time onward, even though further legislation has occasionally been necessary to protect the peasantry from exploitation, the Chiefs of Oudh have remained among the most loyal subjects of Her Majesty in India.

We remained a few days longer at Lucknow. Lord and Lady Canning entertained all the residents, while a ball was given by the latter in the Chatta Manzil to the strangers in camp, and the city and principal buildings were illuminated in the Viceroy's honour with those curious little oil-lamps which are the most beautiful form of illumination, the delineation of every line, point, and pinnacle with myriads of minute lights producing a wonderfully pretty effect.

We stayed a few more days in Lucknow. Lord and Lady Canning hosted all the locals, while Lady Canning threw a ball at the Chatta Manzil for the newcomers in camp. The city and main buildings were lit up to honor the Viceroy with those unique little oil lamps, which are the most beautiful form of lighting. The way every line, point, and peak was highlighted by countless tiny lights created a wonderfully lovely effect.

On the 29th the first march was made on the return journey to Cawnpore. My duty was to go on ahead, select the best site for the next day's camping-ground, and make all necessary arrangements for supplies, etc. I waited till the Viceroy had given his orders, and then my wife and I started off, usually in the forenoon; sometimes we remained till later in the day, lunching with one or other of our friends in camp, and on very rare occasions, such as a dinner-party at the Viceroy's or the Commander-in-Chief's, we drove on after dinner by moonlight. But that was not until we had been on the march for some time and I felt that the head Native in charge of the camp was to be trusted to make no mistake. It was a life of much interest and variety, and my wife enjoyed the novelty of it all greatly.

On the 29th, we started our first march back to Cawnpore. My job was to head out ahead, find the best spot for the next day's campsite, and arrange for supplies and everything else we needed. I waited until the Viceroy gave his orders, and then my wife and I set off, usually in the morning; sometimes we stayed later in the day, having lunch with one of our friends in camp. On very rare occasions, like when we were invited to dinner at the Viceroy's or the Commander-in-Chief's, we'd drive on after dinner by moonlight. But that was only after we had been marching for some time and I felt confident that the head Native in charge of the camp wouldn’t make any mistakes. It was a life full of interest and variety, and my wife really enjoyed the excitement of it all.

Lord Canning held his second durbar at Cawnpore on the 3rd November, when he received the principal Chiefs of Bundelkand, the Maharaja of Rewa, the Maharaja of Benares, and a host of lesser dignitaries.

Lord Canning held his second durbar at Cawnpore on November 3rd, when he welcomed the main Chiefs of Bundelkand, the Maharaja of Rewa, the Maharaja of Benares, and many other notable figures.

It was on this occasion that, in accordance with the Proclamation which had already announced that the Queen had no desire to extend her territorial possessions, and that the estates of Native Princes were to be scrupulously respected, the Chiefs were informed that the right of adoption was conceded to them. This meant that, in default of male issue, they were to be allowed to adopt sons according to the Indian custom of adoption, and that the British Government would recognize the right of the chosen heir to succeed as Ruler of the State as well as to inherit the personal property of the Chief by whom he had been adopted. There had been no clear rule on this point previously,[Page 260] each case having been considered on its own merits, but the doctrine that adoption should not be recognized, and that, in default of natural heirs, the State should lapse and be annexed by the supreme Government, had been enforced in a good many instances. Lord Canning's announcement therefore caused the liveliest satisfaction to certain classes throughout India, and did more than any other measure to make the feudatory Princes believe in the sincerity of the amnesty Proclamation.5

On this occasion, following the announcement that the Queen had no interest in expanding her territory and that the lands of Indigenous Princes would be fully respected, the Chiefs were informed they had the right to adopt. This meant that if they didn't have male heirs, they could adopt sons according to Indian customs, and the British Government would recognize the adopted heir's right to become Ruler of the State and inherit the personal property of the Chief who adopted him. There wasn't a clear policy on this before, as each case was judged individually, but it had been enforced in many instances that adoption wouldn't be recognized, and without natural heirs, the State would be annexed by the central Government. Lord Canning's announcement brought great satisfaction to many across India and did more than anything else to convince the feudal Princes of the sincerity of the amnesty Proclamation.5

Cawnpore and Fatehgarh Our next move was to Fatehgarh, eight marches from Cawnpore, where, on the 15th November, a third durbar was held, at which was received, amongst other leading men of Rohilkand whose services were considered worthy of acknowledgment, the Nawab of Rampur, who had behaved with distinguished loyalty in our time of trouble. This Mahomedan Nobleman's conduct was the more meritorious in that the surrounding country swarmed with rebels, and was the home of numbers of the mutinous Irregular Cavalry, while the close proximity of Rampur to Delhi, whence threats of vengeance were hurled at the Nawab unless he espoused the King's cause, rendered his position extremely precarious.

Kanpur and Fatehgarh Our next destination was Fatehgarh, eight marches from Cawnpore, where, on November 15th, we held a third durbar. Among other prominent figures from Rohilkand who were recognized for their contributions, we honored the Nawab of Rampur, who had shown remarkable loyalty during our difficult times. This Muslim nobleman's actions were especially commendable given that the surrounding region was filled with rebels and was home to many of the mutinous Irregular Cavalry. Additionally, the close proximity of Rampur to Delhi, where threats of retribution were directed at the Nawab unless he supported the King’s cause, made his situation incredibly risky.

From Fatehgarh we proceeded to Agra, nine marches, only halting on Sundays, and consequently everyone appreciated being stationary there for a few days. The camp was pitched on the parade-ground, the scene of the fight of the 10th October, 1857. Here the Viceroy received some of the bigger potentates, who were accompanied by large[Page 261] retinues, and, as far as the spectacle went, it was one of the grandest and most curious gatherings we had yet witnessed.

From Fatehgarh, we made our way to Agra, covering nine stops and only taking breaks on Sundays. So, everyone really enjoyed staying put there for a few days. The camp was set up on the parade ground, the site of the battle on October 10, 1857. Here, the Viceroy welcomed some of the prominent rulers, who came with large entourages. In terms of the spectacle, it was one of the most impressive and intriguing gatherings we had seen so far.

The Agra Durbar The occasions are rare on which a Viceroy has the opportunity of receiving in durbar the great vassals of our Indian Empire, but when these assemblies can be arranged they have a very useful effect, and should not be looked upon as mere empty ceremonials. This was especially the case at a time when the country had so recently been convulsed by intestine war, and when the Native Princes were anxiously considering how their prospects would be affected by Her Majesty's assumption of the administration of India.

The Agra Durbar Opportunities for a Viceroy to hold a durbar with the major lords of our Indian Empire are rare, but when these gatherings happen, they have a significant impact and shouldn't be seen as just empty formalities. This was particularly true at a time when the country had recently experienced internal conflict, and the Native Princes were deeply concerned about how their future would be influenced by Her Majesty's takeover of India's administration.

The Chief of highest rank on this occasion was the Maharaja of Gwalior, who, as I have already stated, influenced by his courageous Minister, Dinkar Rao, had remained faithful to us. Like most Mahratta Princes of that time, he was very imperfectly educated. Moreover, he was possessed of a most wayward disposition, frequently threatening, when thwarted in any way, to throw up the reins of government, and take refuge in the jungle; manners he had none.

The highest-ranking chief on this occasion was the Maharaja of Gwalior, who, as I mentioned earlier, stayed loyal to us thanks to the influence of his brave Minister, Dinkar Rao. Like many Maratha princes of that era, his education was quite lacking. Additionally, he had a very unpredictable personality, often threatening to give up his responsibilities and escape into the jungle whenever he faced any opposition; he lacked social graces.

Next came the enlightened head of the Princely house of Jaipur, the second in importance of the great Chiefs of Rajputana.

Next came the enlightened leader of the royal family of Jaipur, the second most important of the major chiefs of Rajputana.

He was succeeded by the Karaoli Raja, whose following was the most quaint of all. Amongst the curious signs of his dignity he had on his escort four tigers, each chained on a separate car, and guarded by strange-looking men in brass helmets.

He was succeeded by the Karaoli Raja, whose entourage was the most unique of all. Among the odd symbols of his status, he had four tigers, each chained to a separate cart, and watched over by unusual-looking men in brass helmets.

The Maharao Raja of Ulwar was the next to arrive, seated on a superb elephant, eleven feet high, magnificently caparisoned with cloth-of-gold coverings, and chains and breastplates of gold. He was a promising-looking lad who had succeeded to his estate only two years before; but he soon fell into the hands of low intriguers, who plundered his dominions and so oppressed his people that the British Government had to take over the management of his State.

The Maharao Raja of Ulwar was the next to arrive, riding a stunning elephant that stood eleven feet tall, beautifully adorned with gold cloth, chains, and breastplates. He was a promising young man who had taken over his estate just two years earlier; however, he quickly became entangled with unscrupulous schemers who exploited his territory and oppressed his people so badly that the British Government had to step in and manage his State.

After Ulwar came the Nawab of Tonk, the descendant of an adventurer from Swat, on the Peshawar border, who had become possessed of considerable territory in Rajputana. The Nawab stood by us in the Mutiny, when his capital was plundered by Tantia Topi.

After Ulwar, the Nawab of Tonk arrived, a descendant of an adventurer from Swat, near the Peshawar border, who had acquired significant land in Rajputana. The Nawab supported us during the Mutiny, even when his capital was looted by Tantia Topi.

The sixth in rank was the Jât Ruler of Dholpur, a bluff, coarse-looking man, and a very rude specimen of his race.

The sixth in rank was the Jât Ruler of Dholpur, a stocky, rough-looking guy, and a quite uncouth example of his people.

Last of all arrived the Nawab of Jaora, a handsome, perfectly-dressed man of considerable refinement of manner, and with all the courtesy of a well-bred Mahomedan. Though a feudatory of the rebellious Holkar of Indore, he kept aloof from all Mahratta intrigues, and behaved well to us.

Last to arrive was the Nawab of Jaora, a handsome, well-dressed man with considerable refinement and the courtesy of a well-bred Muslim. Although he was a subordinate of the rebellious Holkar of Indore, he stayed clear of all Mahratta schemes and treated us well.

Some of the highest of the Rajput Chiefs declined to attend, alleging as an excuse the distance of their capitals from Agra; but the truth is that these Rulers, the best blood of India, had never bowed their heads to any Power, not even that of the Moghul, and they considered[Page 262] it would be derogatory to their dignity to obey the summons of the representative of a sovereign, of whom they considered themselves the allies and not the mere feudatories.6

Some of the top Rajput leaders chose not to attend, claiming that the distance of their capitals from Agra was the reason; however, the reality is that these rulers, the best blood of India, had never submitted to any power, not even the Mughal Empire. They felt it would be beneath their dignity to respond to the call of the representative of a sovereign they saw themselves allied with, not just mere vassals.

Those of the Chieftains attending this durbar who had shown conspicuous loyalty during the rebellion were not allowed to leave without receiving substantial rewards. Sindhia had territory bestowed on him to the value of £30,000 a year. Jaipur was given the confiscated property of Kôt Kāsim, yielding £5,000 a year, while others were recompensed according to the importance of the services rendered.

Those chieftains attending this durbar who had displayed notable loyalty during the rebellion couldn't leave without receiving significant rewards. Sindhia was granted territory worth £30,000 a year. Jaipur received the confiscated property of Kôt Kāsim, which produced £5,000 a year, while others were compensated based on the importance of their contributions.






CHAPTER XXXIII.

1859

We remained at Agra until the 9th December. There was so much of beauty and interest in and around the place, that Lady Canning found a wealth of subjects for her facile pencil, and was well content to remain there. There were the usual banquets to the residents, and entertainments given by the Agra people to those in camp, one of them being a party in the Taj gardens, to give us an opportunity of seeing the tomb by moonlight, when it certainly looks its loveliest. My wife was more delighted even than I had anticipated with the perfect beauty of the Taj and the exquisite little mosque in the fort, the Moti-Masjid. I greatly enjoyed showing her all that was worth seeing, and witnessing her pleasure on first viewing these wonderful works of art.

We stayed in Agra until December 9th. There was so much beauty and interest in and around the place that Lady Canning found plenty of subjects for her skilled drawing, and she was happy to stay there. There were the usual banquets for the residents and events put on by the Agra locals for those in camp, one of which was a gathering in the Taj gardens to give us a chance to see the tomb by moonlight, when it truly looks its best. My wife was even more thrilled than I expected by the incredible beauty of the Taj and the stunning little mosque in the fort, the Moti-Masjid. I really enjoyed showing her everything worth seeing and watching her joy as she first experienced these amazing works of art.

There was no halt again, except the usual one on Sunday, until we reached Meerut on the 21st December.

There was no stop again, except for the usual one on Sunday, until we got to Meerut on December 21st.

Three marches from Agra a fire broke out in Lady Canning's tent soon after she had retired for the night, caused by the iron pipe of the stove, which passed through the side of the tent, becoming over-heated. Lady Canning's tents were on one side of the big dining-tent, and the Viceroy's on the other. Immediately on perceiving the fire, Lady Canning ran across to awaken her husband, but the Native sentry, who did not know her or understand a word of what she was saying, would not let her in, and, in despair of being able to make anyone hear, she rushed off to the tent of Sir Edward Campbell, the Military Secretary, which was nearest her own. She succeeded in awaking him, and then flew back to try and save some of her own treasures. The first thing she thought of was her portfolio of drawings, which she dragged outside; but it had already been partially burned, and most of the valuable[Page 263] and characteristic sketches she had made at the different durbars were destroyed. She next tried to rescue her jewels, many of which she had worn the night before; her pearls were lying on the dressing-table, and she was only just in time to save them; one of the strings had caught fire, and several of the pearls were blackened. She swept them off the table into a towel, and threw them into a tub of water standing outside. Her wardrobe was completely destroyed. More damage would have been done had not the Private Secretary, Mr. Lewin Bowring, on the alarm being given, hurried to the dining-tent, and, with great presence of mind, ordered the Native Cavalry sentry to cut the ropes, causing it to fall at once, and preventing the fire from spreading. Some office boxes and records were destroyed, but nothing more. We were as usual in the advance camp, and did not hear what had happened until next morning, when Lady Canning arrived dressed in Lady Campbell's clothes; and as Lady Canning was tall, and Lady Campbell was short, the effect was rather funny.

Three marches from Agra, a fire broke out in Lady Canning's tent shortly after she went to bed, caused by the iron pipe of the stove that went through the side of the tent getting too hot. Lady Canning's tents were on one side of the big dining tent, and the Viceroy's were on the other. As soon as she saw the fire, Lady Canning ran over to wake her husband, but the Native sentry, who didn’t recognize her or understand what she was saying, wouldn’t let her in. Out of desperation, she rushed to the tent of Sir Edward Campbell, the Military Secretary, which was closest to hers. She managed to wake him up and then ran back to try to save some of her belongings. The first thing she thought of was her portfolio of drawings, which she pulled outside; but it had already been partially burned, and most of the valuable and unique sketches she had made at the different durbars were ruined. Next, she tried to save her jewelry, many of which she had worn the night before; her pearls were on the dressing table, and she just managed to save them in time; one of the strings had caught fire, and several of the pearls were scorched. She quickly gathered them off the table into a towel and tossed them into a tub of water outside. Her wardrobe was completely destroyed. More damage would have been done if it weren't for Mr. Lewin Bowring, the Private Secretary, who, upon hearing the alarm, rushed to the dining tent and, with great presence of mind, instructed the Native Cavalry sentry to cut the ropes, causing the tent to collapse immediately and stopping the fire from spreading. Some office boxes and records were lost, but nothing more. As usual, we were in the advance camp and didn’t hear what had happened until the next morning when Lady Canning showed up wearing Lady Campbell's clothes; and since Lady Canning was tall and Lady Campbell was short, it looked pretty amusing.

Christmas was spent at Meerut, where I met several of my brother officers, amongst others my particular friend Edwin Johnson, whom I had the great pleasure of introducing to my wife. With scarcely an exception, my friends became hers, and this added much to the happiness of our Indian life.

Christmas was spent in Meerut, where I met several of my brother officers, including my close friend Edwin Johnson, whom I was delighted to introduce to my wife. With hardly any exceptions, my friends became hers too, and this really added to the joy of our life in India.

Delhi under a different aspect Delhi, our next halting-place, was certainly not the least interesting in our tour. Lord Canning was anxious to understand all about the siege, and visited the different positions; the Ridge and its surroundings, the breaches, and the palace, were the chief points of interest. There were two 'Delhi men' besides myself to explain everything to him, Sir Edward Campbell, who was with the 60th Rifles throughout, and one of the best officers in the regiment, and Jemmy Hills, who had now become the Viceroy's Aide-de-camp; while in Lord Clyde's camp there were Norman, Stewart, and Becher.

Delhi from a new angle Delhi, our next stop, was definitely one of the most interesting places on our tour. Lord Canning was eager to learn all about the siege and visited various key locations; the Ridge and its surroundings, the breaches, and the palace were the main points of interest. Along with me, there were two locals to explain everything to him: Sir Edward Campbell, who had been with the 60th Rifles throughout, and was one of the top officers in the regiment, and Jemmy Hills, who had now become the Viceroy's Aide-de-camp; while in Lord Clyde's camp were Norman, Stewart, and Becher.

I had, of course, taken my wife to the scenes of the fights at Agra, Aligarh, and Bulandshahr, but Delhi had the greatest fascination for her. It is certainly an extraordinarily attractive place, setting aside the peculiar interest of the siege. For hundreds of years it had been the seat of Government under Rulers of various nationalities and religions; few cities have the remains of so much pomp and glory, and very few bear the traces of having been besieged so often, or could tell of so much blood spilt in their defence, or of such quantities of treasure looted from them. When Tamerlane captured Delhi in 1398 the city was given over to massacre for five days, 'some streets being rendered impassable by heaps of dead'; and in 1739 the Persian conqueror, Nadir Shah, after sacking the place for fifty-eight days and massacring thousands of its inhabitants, carried off thirty-two millions sterling of booty.

I had, of course, taken my wife to the places where the battles took place in Agra, Aligarh, and Bulandshahr, but Delhi fascinated her the most. It is definitely a stunning city, apart from the unique significance of the siege. For hundreds of years, it has been the center of Government under rulers from different nationalities and religions; few cities have remnants of such grandeur and splendor, and very few show signs of having been besieged so often, tell stories of so much blood shed in their defense, or have had so much treasure stolen from them. When Tamerlane captured Delhi in 1398, the city experienced five days of slaughter, with 'some streets being rendered impassable by heaps of dead'; and in 1739, the Persian conqueror, Nadir Shah, after pillaging the city for fifty-eight days and killing thousands of its residents, took away thirty-two million pounds in loot.

Although the fierce nature of the struggle that Delhi had gone [Page 264] through in 1857 was apparent everywhere, the inhabitants seemed now to have forgotten all about it. The city was as densely populated as it had ever been; the Chandni Chauk was gay as formerly with draperies of bright-coloured stuffs; jewellers and shawl-merchants carried on their trades as briskly as ever, and were just as eager in their endeavours to tempt the Sahib log to spend their money as if trade had never been interrupted; so quickly do Orientals recover from the effects of a devastating war.

Though the intense struggle Delhi went through in 1857 was obvious everywhere, its residents seemed to have completely forgotten about it. The city was as crowded as ever; Chandni Chauk was lively again with vibrant fabrics; jewellers and shawl merchants were conducting their business as energetically as before, just as eager to entice the Sahib log to spend their money as if trade had never been disrupted. It’s remarkable how quickly people in the East bounce back from the aftermath of a devastating war.

1860 We left Delhi on the 3rd January, 1860, marching viâ Karnal. When at this place my wife went to see Lady Canning, as she often did if we remained at all late in camp. On this particular occasion she found her busy with the English mail, which had just arrived, so she said she would not stay then, but would come next day instead. Lady Canning, however, would not let my wife go until she had read her part of a letter from Lady Waterford, which she thought would amuse her. It was in answer to one from Lady Canning, in which she had described the camp, and given her sister a list of all the people in it. Lady Waterford wrote: 'Your Quartermaster-General must be the son of General Roberts, who lives near Waterford; he came home on leave last year. I must tell you an amusing little anecdote about his father. One night, when the General was dining at Curraghmore, he found himself sitting next the Primate of Ireland, with whom he entered into conversation. After some time they discovered they had known each other in the days of their youth, but had never met since a certain morning on which they went out to fight a duel on account of some squabble at a mess; happily the quarrel was stopped without any harm being done, each feeling equally relieved at being prevented from trying to murder the other, as they had been persuaded they were in honour bound to do. The two old gentlemen made very merry over their reminiscences.'

1860 We left Delhi on January 3, 1860, marching via Karnal. While we were there, my wife went to see Lady Canning, as she often did if we stayed late in camp. On this occasion, she found Lady Canning busy with the English mail that had just arrived, so she decided to come back the next day instead. However, Lady Canning insisted that my wife stay until she read her part of a letter from Lady Waterford, which she thought would be entertaining. It was in response to one from Lady Canning, in which she described the camp and included a list of everyone in it. Lady Waterford wrote: 'Your Quartermaster-General must be the son of General Roberts, who lives near Waterford; he came home on leave last year. I have to tell you a funny little story about his father. One night, when the General was dining at Curraghmore, he found himself sitting next to the Primate of Ireland, with whom he struck up a conversation. After a while, they realized they had known each other in their youth but had never met since a certain morning when they were set to duel over a disagreement at a mess; fortunately, the quarrel was resolved without any harm, both feeling equally relieved to avoid trying to kill each other, as they had been convinced they were honor-bound to do so. The two old gentlemen had a good laugh over their shared memories.'

Lord Clyde For some time I had been indulging a hope that I might be sent to China with my old General, Hope Grant, who had been nominated to the command of the expedition which, in co-operation with the French, was being prepared to wipe out the disgrace of the repulse experienced early in the year, by the combined French and English naval squadrons in their attack on the Taku forts. My hope, however, was doomed to disappointment. Lord Clyde decided to send Lumsden and Allgood as A.Q.M.G.'s with the force, and I was feeling very low in consequence. A day or two afterwards we dined with the Cannings, and Lord Clyde took my wife in to dinner. His first remark to her was: 'I think I have earned your gratitude, if I have not managed to satisfy everyone by these China appointments.' On my wife asking for what she was expected to be grateful, he said: 'Why, for not sending your husband with the expedition, of course. I suppose you would rather not be left in a foreign country alone a few months after[Page 265] your marriage? If Roberts had not been a newly-married man, I would have sent him.' This was too much for my wife, who sympathized greatly with my disappointment, and she could not help retorting: 'I am afraid I cannot be very grateful to you for making my husband feel I am ruining his career by standing in the way of his being sent on service. You have done your best to make him regret his marriage.' The poor old Chief was greatly astonished, and burst out in his not too refined way: 'Well, I'll be hanged if I can understand you women! I have done the very thing I thought you would like, and have only succeeded in making you angry. I will never try to help a woman again.' My wife saw that he had meant to be kind, and that it was, as he said, only because he did not 'understand women' that he had made the mistake. She was soon appeased, and in the end she and Lord Clyde became great friends.

Lord Clyde For a while, I had been hoping that I'd be sent to China with my old General, Hope Grant, who had been given command of the expedition that was being organized with the French to make up for the embarrassment of the failed attack on the Taku forts earlier in the year by the combined French and English naval forces. However, my hope was crushed. Lord Clyde decided to send Lumsden and Allgood as A.Q.M.G.'s with the troops, leaving me feeling pretty down. A day or two later, we had dinner with the Cannings, and Lord Clyde escorted my wife to dinner. His first comment to her was, "I think I've earned your gratitude, even if I haven't pleased everyone with these China appointments." When my wife asked what she was supposed to be grateful for, he replied, "For not sending your husband with the expedition, of course. I assume you'd rather not be left alone in a foreign country just a few months after your marriage? If Roberts hadn't just gotten married, I would have sent him." This was too much for my wife, who felt empathetic toward my disappointment, and she couldn't help but fire back, "I’m afraid I can’t be very grateful to you for making my husband feel like I’m ruining his career by being an obstacle to him going into service. You’ve done your best to make him regret his marriage." The poor old Chief was taken aback and exclaimed, in his not-so-refined manner, "Well, I’ll be damned if I can understand you women! I've done exactly what I thought you'd like, and all I've done is make you mad. I’ll never try to help a woman again." My wife recognized that he meant well, and that it was simply because he didn’t "understand women" that he had messed up. She quickly calmed down, and in the end, she and Lord Clyde became great friends.

The middle of January found us at Umballa, where Lord Canning met in state all the Cis-Sutlej Sikh Chiefs. Fine, handsome men they most of them were, and magnificently attired. The beautifully delicate tints which the Sikhs are so fond of, the warlike costumes of some of the Sirdars, the quiet dignity of these high-born men who had rendered us such signal service in our hour of need, made the scene most picturesque and impressive. The place of honour was given to the Maharaja of Patiala (the grandfather of the present Maharaja), as the most powerful of the Phulkian Princes; and he was followed by his neighbours of Nabha and Jhind, all three splendid specimens of well-bred Sikhs, of stately presence and courtly manners. They were much gratified at having the right of adoption granted to their families, and at being given substantial rewards in the shape of extension of territory.

The middle of January found us in Umballa, where Lord Canning officially met with all the Cis-Sutlej Sikh Chiefs. Most of them were fine, handsome men, dressed magnificently. The beautifully delicate colors that Sikhs love, the warlike outfits of some of the Sirdars, and the quiet dignity of these noble men who had helped us greatly in our time of need made the scene both picturesque and impressive. The Maharaja of Patiala (the grandfather of the current Maharaja) was given the place of honor as the most powerful of the Phulkian Princes, followed by his neighbors from Nabha and Jhind, all three being splendid examples of well-bred Sikhs with a stately presence and courtly manners. They were very pleased to have the right of adoption granted to their families and to receive substantial rewards in the form of expanded territory.

The Sikh Chiefs were followed by Rajas of minor importance, chiefly from the neighbouring hills, whom the Viceroy had summoned in order to thank them for assistance rendered during the Mutiny. Many of them had grievances to be redressed; others had favours to ask; and the Viceroy was able to more or less satisfy them by judiciously yielding to reasonable demands, and by bestowing minor powers on those who were likely to use them well. The wisdom of this policy of concession on Lord Canning's part was proved in after years by its successful results.

The Sikh chiefs were followed by lesser rajas, mainly from the nearby hills, whom the Viceroy had invited to thank them for their help during the Mutiny. Many of them had issues they wanted resolved; others had requests to make. The Viceroy managed to mostly satisfy them by carefully agreeing to reasonable demands and granting minor powers to those who were likely to use them wisely. The effectiveness of Lord Canning's policy of concession was demonstrated in the years that followed by its successful outcomes.

On the 29th January the Raja of Kapurthala came out to meet the Viceroy one march from Jullundur. He had supplemented the valuable assistance rendered to Colonel Lake in the early days of the Mutiny by equipping and taking into Oudh a force of 2,000 men, which he personally commanded in six different actions. The Viceroy cordially thanked him for this timely service, and in recognition of it, and his continued and conspicuous loyalty, bestowed upon him large estates in Oudh, where he eventually became one of the chief Talukdars.[Page 266] This Raja was the grandfather of the enlightened nobleman who came to England three years ago.

On January 29th, the Raja of Kapurthala came out to meet the Viceroy one march from Jullundur. He had added valuable support to Colonel Lake in the early days of the Mutiny by equipping and leading a force of 2,000 men into Oudh, which he personally commanded in six different battles. The Viceroy warmly thanked him for this timely help, and in recognition of it, as well as his ongoing and prominent loyalty, gave him large estates in Oudh, where he eventually became one of the main Talukdars.[Page 266] This Raja was the grandfather of the enlightened nobleman who came to England three years ago.

Umritsar and Lahore After visiting Umritsar, gay with brilliant illuminations in honour of the Viceroy, and crowded with Sikhs come to welcome the Queen's representative to their sacred city, we arrived at Lahore on the 10th February.

Amritsar and Lahore After visiting Umritsar, lively with bright lights celebrating the Viceroy, and filled with Sikhs who came to greet the Queen's representative in their holy city, we reached Lahore on February 10th.

Early the following morning Lord Canning made his state entry. As we approached the citadel the long line of mounted Chiefs drawn up to receive the Viceroy came into view. A brilliant assemblage they formed, Sikh Sirdars, stately Hill Rajputs, wildly picturesque Multanis and Baluchis with their flowing locks floating behind them, sturdy Tawanas from the Salt range, all gorgeously arrayed in every colour of the rainbow, their jewels glittering in the morning sun, while their horses, magnificently caparisoned in cloth-of-gold saddle cloths, and gold and silver trappings, pranced and curvetted under pressure of their severe bits. As the procession appeared in sight they moved forward in one long dazzling cavalcade, each party of Chiefs being headed by the Commissioner of the district from which they came; they saluted as they approached the Viceroy, and then passing him fell in behind, between the Body Guard and the Artillery of the escort. A royal salute was fired from the fort as we passed under the city walls; we then wound through the civil station of Anárkáli, and on to camp where the garrison of Mian Mir, under the command of Major-General Sir Charles Windham, was drawn up to receive the Viceroy.

Early the next morning, Lord Canning made his official entrance. As we got closer to the citadel, we saw the long line of mounted Chiefs waiting to greet the Viceroy. They made a stunning sight—Sikh leaders, dignified Hill Rajputs, colorfully dressed Multanis and Baluchis with their long hair flowing behind them, and strong Tawanas from the Salt range, all decked out in every color imaginable, their jewels sparkling in the morning sun. Their horses, beautifully adorned with gold saddle cloths and shiny trappings, pranced and danced under the pressure of their tight reins. As the procession came into view, they moved forward in a long, dazzling line, each group of Chiefs led by the Commissioner from their district. They saluted the Viceroy as they approached, then passed him and took their place behind the Body Guard and the Artillery of the escort. A royal salute was fired from the fort as we went under the city walls; we then made our way through the civil station of Anárkáli, and on to the camp where the garrison of Mian Mir, led by Major-General Sir Charles Windham, was assembled to receive the Viceroy.

At nightfall there were illuminations and a procession of elephants; the Viceroy, seated in a superb howdah, led the way through the brilliantly lighted city. Suddenly a shower of rockets was discharged which resulted in a stampede of the elephants, who rushed through the narrow streets, and fled in every direction, to the imminent peril and great discomfort of the riders. In time they were quieted and brought back, only to become again unmanageable at a fresh volley of fireworks; a second time they were pacified, and as they seemed to be getting accustomed to the noise and lights, the procession proceeded to the garden of the old palace. Here the elephants were drawn up, when all at once a fresh discharge of rockets from every side drove them mad with fright, and off they bolted under the trees, through gates, and some of them could not be pulled up until they had gone far into the country. Howdahs were crushed, hats torn off, but, strange to say, there was only one serious casualty; an officer was swept out of his howdah by the branch of a tree, and falling to the ground, had his thigh broken. Lord Clyde declared that a general action was not half so dangerous, and he would much sooner have been in one!

At nightfall, there were lights and a parade of elephants; the Viceroy, sitting in a magnificent howdah, led the way through the brightly lit city. Suddenly, a burst of rockets went off, causing the elephants to panic and charge through the narrow streets, scattering in every direction, putting the riders in serious danger and causing them great discomfort. Eventually, they calmed down and were brought back, only to go wild again when another round of fireworks went off; they were calmed down again, and as they started getting used to the noise and lights, the procession continued to the garden of the old palace. Here, the elephants were lined up, but suddenly a fresh volley of rockets from all sides sent them into a frenzy, and they bolted under the trees, through gates, with some not stopping until they were far out in the countryside. Howdahs were crushed, hats were torn off, but strangely enough, there was only one serious injury; an officer was knocked out of his howdah by a tree branch and fell to the ground, breaking his thigh. Lord Clyde remarked that a full-on battle was nowhere near as dangerous, and he would much rather have been in one!

The Lahore Durbar The Lahore durbar, at which the Punjab Chiefs were received, surpassed[Page 267] any former ceremonials in point of numbers and splendour of effect. Many of Runjit Singh's Sirdars were present, and many who had fought against us in the Sutlej and Punjab campaigns, but had now become our fast friends. The Chiefs quite spontaneously prepared and presented Lord Canning with an address, and, in reply, his Excellency made an eloquent and telling speech, commenting in terms of the highest appreciation on the courage and loyalty displayed by the Nobles and people of the Punjab during the Mutiny.

The Lahore Court The Lahore Durbar, where the Punjab Chiefs were welcomed, surpassed[Page 267] all previous ceremonies in terms of attendance and impressive display. Many of Runjit Singh's Sirdars were there, along with several who had fought against us in the Sutlej and Punjab campaigns but had now become our close allies. The Chiefs spontaneously prepared and presented Lord Canning with an address, and in response, his Excellency delivered a powerful speech, expressing deep appreciation for the bravery and loyalty shown by the Nobles and people of the Punjab during the Mutiny.

While the camp was marching to Sialkot, where the Maharaja of Kashmir and some of the leading men of the Punjab were to be received, the Viceroy, accompanied by Lady Canning, Lord Clyde, and a small staff, went on a flying visit to Peshawar, with the object of satisfying himself, by personal examination of our position there, as to the advisability or otherwise of a retirement cis-Indus—a retrograde movement which John Lawrence was still in favour of. The visit, however, only served to strengthen Lord Canning in his preconceived opinion that Peshawar must be held on to as our frontier station.

While the camp was heading to Sialkot, where the Maharaja of Kashmir and some of the prominent leaders of Punjab were to be welcomed, the Viceroy, along with Lady Canning, Lord Clyde, and a small team, made a quick trip to Peshawar. Their goal was to assess the situation there personally and decide whether withdrawing across the Indus River was a good idea—a move that John Lawrence still supported. However, the visit only reinforced Lord Canning's existing belief that Peshawar needed to be maintained as our frontier post.

My wife remained at Mian Mir with our good friends Doctor and Mrs. Tyrrell Ross until it was time for her to go to Simla, and the kind thoughtfulness of Lord Canning, who told me the camp now worked so well that my presence was not always necessary, enabled me to be with her from time to time.

My wife stayed at Mian Mir with our good friends Dr. and Mrs. Tyrrell Ross until it was time for her to head to Simla. Thanks to the considerate Lord Canning, who informed me that the camp was running smoothly enough that I didn't always need to be there, I was able to spend some time with her.

Lord Canning's tour was now nearly over, and we marched without any halt of importance from Sialkot to Kalka at the foot of the hills, where, on the 9th April, the camp was broken up. It was high time to get into cooler regions, for the heat of the tents in the day had become very oppressive.

Lord Canning's tour was almost finished, and we traveled without any significant stops from Sialkot to Kalka at the base of the hills, where, on April 9th, the camp was dismantled. It was definitely time to move to cooler areas, as the heat in the tents during the day had become quite unbearable.

Thus ended a six months' march of over a thousand miles—a march never likely to be undertaken again by any other Viceroy of India, now that railway trains run from Calcutta to Peshawar, and saloon carriages have taken the place of big tents.

Thus ended a six-month journey of over a thousand miles—a journey unlikely to be repeated by any other Viceroy of India, now that trains run from Calcutta to Peshawar, and modern carriages have replaced large tents.

This progress through India had excellent results. The advantages of the representative of the Sovereign meeting face to face the principal feudatories and Chiefs of our great dependency were very considerable, and the opportunity afforded to the Viceroy of personally acknowledging and rewarding the services of those who had helped us, and of showing that he was not afraid to be lenient to those who had failed to do so, provided they should remain loyal in the future, had a very good effect over the whole of India. The wise concessions also announced at the different durbars as regards the adoption by Native Rulers of successors to their estates, and the grant to Native gentlemen of such a share as they were fitted for in the government of the country, were undoubtedly more appreciated than any other description of reward given for assistance in the Mutiny.

This trip through India had great results. The benefits of the Sovereign's representative meeting directly with the main feudal lords and Chiefs of our vast territory were significant. It gave the Viceroy a chance to personally recognize and reward those who supported us, and to demonstrate his willingness to be lenient towards those who hadn’t, as long as they promised loyalty in the future. This had a very positive impact across India. The wise concessions announced at the various durbars regarding the choice of successors by Native Rulers and allowing Native gentlemen to have a role in governing the country were definitely more valued than any other form of reward given for help during the Mutiny.

Simla My duty with the Viceroy being ended, I returned to Mian Mir to[Page 268] fetch my wife and the little daughter, who had made her appearance on the 10th March, and escort them both to Simla. The journey up the hill was a tedious one. Carriages were not then used as they are now, and my wife travelled in a jampan, a kind of open, half-reclining sedan chair, carried by relays of four men, while I rode or walked by her side. She had been greatly exhausted by the heat of the journey from Mian Mir, but as we ascended higher and higher up the mountain side, and the atmosphere became clearer and fresher, she began to revive. Four hours, however, of this unaccustomed mode of travelling in her weak state had completely tired her out, so on finding a fairly comfortable bungalow at the end of the first stage, I decided to remain there the next day. After that we went on, stage by stage, until we reached Simla. Our house, 'Mount Pleasant,' was on the very top of a hill; up and up we climbed through the rhododendron forest, along a path crimson with the fallen blossom, till we got to the top, when a glorious view opened out before our delighted eyes. The wooded hills of Jakho and Elysium in the foreground, Mahasu and the beautiful Shalli peaks in the middle distance, and beyond, towering above all, the everlasting snows glistening in the morning sun, formed a picture the beauty of which quite entranced us both. I could hardly persuade my wife to leave it and come into the house. Hunger and fatigue, however, at length triumphed. Our servants had arranged everything in our little abode most comfortably; bright fires were burning in the grates, a cosy breakfast was awaiting us, and the feeling that at last we had a home of our own was very pleasant.

Shimla Now that my duty with the Viceroy was done, I went back to Mian Mir to[Page 268] pick up my wife and our little daughter, who was born on March 10th, and take them to Simla. The journey up the hill was long and exhausting. Carriages weren’t used like they are today, so my wife traveled in a jampan, an open, semi-reclining sedan chair carried by teams of four men, while I either rode or walked alongside her. She was really worn out from the heat of the trip from Mian Mir, but as we climbed higher into the mountains and the air grew clearer and fresher, she started to feel better. However, after four hours of this unfamiliar way of traveling in her weak condition, she was completely drained. So, when we found a reasonably comfortable bungalow at the end of the first stage, I decided we should stay there the next day. After that, we moved on, stage by stage, until we finally reached Simla. Our house, 'Mount Pleasant,' was situated right at the top of a hill; we climbed and climbed through the rhododendron forest, along a path carpeted with fallen blossoms, until we reached the top, where an amazing view opened up before us. The wooded hills of Jakho and Elysium were in the foreground, Mahasu and the beautiful Shalli peaks appeared in the middle ground, and beyond them rose the eternal snows, shimmering in the morning sun, creating a scene that completely captivated us. I could barely convince my wife to leave it and go into the house. But eventually, hunger and exhaustion won out. Our servants had arranged everything in our cozy little home very nicely; bright fires were crackling in the hearths, a warm breakfast was ready for us, and the sense of finally having a place to call our own was really wonderful.

Lord Canning did not remain long at Simla. His Council in Calcutta was about to lose its President, Sir James Outram, who was leaving India on account of failing health; and as the suggestion to impose an income-tax was creating a good deal of agitation, the Viceroy hurried back to Calcutta, deeming it expedient to be on the spot.

Lord Canning didn't stay at Simla for long. His Council in Calcutta was about to lose its President, Sir James Outram, who was leaving India due to health issues; and since the proposal to implement an income tax was causing quite a stir, the Viceroy rushed back to Calcutta, thinking it was important to be there in person.

The measures necessary for the suppression of the Mutiny had emptied the Government coffers; and although a large loan had been raised, the local authorities found it impossible to cope with the increased expenditure. Lord Canning had, therefore, applied to the Government in England for the services of a trained financier; and Mr. Wilson, who had a great reputation in this respect, was sent out. He declared the only remedy to be an income-tax, and he was supported in this view by the merchants of Calcutta. Other Europeans, however, who were intimately acquainted with India, pointed out that it was not advisable to ignore the dislike of Natives to such direct taxation; and Sir Charles Trevelyan, Governor of Madras, argued well and wisely against the scheme. Instead, however, of confining his action in the matter to warning and advising the supreme Government, he publicly proclaimed his opposition, thus giving the signal for agitation to all the malcontents in India. Lord Elphinstone, the Governor of Bombay,[Page 269] followed Trevelyan's example, but in a less pronounced manner, and these attacks from the minor Presidencies proved a serious embarrassment to the action of the Government. In spite of all this antagonism, the income-tax was passed, and Sir Charles Trevelyan's unusual procedure led to his recall.

The measures needed to put down the Mutiny had drained the Government's funds, and even though a significant loan was raised, the local authorities struggled to manage the increased spending. Lord Canning then asked the Government in England for a trained financial expert, and Mr. Wilson, who had a great reputation in this field, was sent out. He stated that the only solution was to implement an income tax, and he was backed by the merchants of Calcutta. However, other Europeans, who knew India well, pointed out that it would be unwise to overlook the Native's aversion to such direct taxation; Sir Charles Trevelyan, the Governor of Madras, made a strong and sensible argument against the plan. Instead of just warning and advising the central Government, he publicly opposed it, which sparked agitation among all the discontented groups in India. Lord Elphinstone, the Governor of Bombay,[Page 269] followed Trevelyan's lead, but in a less noticeable way, and these criticisms from the minor Presidencies created significant difficulties for the Government's actions. Despite all this opposition, the income tax was enacted, and Sir Charles Trevelyan's unusual actions led to his recall.

Lord Canning left Simla for his long and trying journey in May, about the hottest time of the year. On my taking leave of him, he told me that Sir Hugh Rose, then commanding the Bombay army, had been appointed to succeed Lord Clyde, who had long been anxious to return to England, and that Sir Hugh, though he intended to go to Calcutta himself, wished the Head-Quarters of the Army to remain at Simla; a question about which we had been rather anxious, as it would have been an unpleasant breaking up of all our plans, had I been ordered to Calcutta.

Lord Canning left Simla for his long and challenging journey in May, which is one of the hottest times of the year. When I said goodbye to him, he mentioned that Sir Hugh Rose, who was in charge of the Bombay army, had been appointed to take over from Lord Clyde, who had been eager to return to England for some time. Sir Hugh, even though he planned to go to Calcutta himself, wanted the Army Headquarters to stay in Simla. This was something we were quite concerned about because it would have disrupted all our plans if I had been ordered to go to Calcutta.

Life at Simla Life at Simla was somewhat monotonous. The society was not very large in those days; but there were a certain number of people on leave from the plains, who then, as at present, had nothing to do but amuse themselves, consequently there was a good deal of gaiety in a small way; but we entered into it very little. My wife did not care much about it, and had been very ill for the greater part of the summer. She had made two or three kind friends, and was very happy in her mountain home, though at times, perhaps, a little lonely, as I had to be in office the greater part of each day.

Life in Simla Life at Simla was a bit dull. The society wasn’t very big back then; however, there were a few people on vacation from the plains who, like today, mainly had free time to enjoy themselves, which led to some small-scale festivities; but we didn’t participate much. My wife wasn't really interested in it and had been quite sick for most of the summer. She had made a few kind friends and was really happy in her mountain home, although at times she felt a bit lonely since I had to be at the office for most of the day.

In the autumn we made a trip into the interior of the hills, beyond Simla, which was a new and delightful experience for my wife. We usually started in the morning, sending our servants on about half way, when they prepared breakfast for us in some pretty, shady spot; there we remained, reading, writing, or resting, until after lunch, and it was time to move on, that we might get to our halting place for the night before dinner.

In the fall, we took a trip into the hills beyond Simla, which was a new and enjoyable experience for my wife. We usually set out in the morning, sending our helpers ahead about halfway, where they would prepare breakfast for us in a nice, shady spot. We would stay there, reading, writing, or relaxing, until after lunch, and then it was time to continue on, so we could reach our resting place for the night before dinner.

It was a lovely time of the year, when the autumn tints made the forest gorgeous, and the scarlet festoons of the Himalayan vine stood out in brilliant contrast to the dark green of the solemn deodar, amongst the branches of which it loves to twine itself.

It was a beautiful time of year when the fall colors made the forest stunning, and the red drapes of the Himalayan vine stood out in bright contrast to the dark green of the majestic deodar, among the branches where it loves to wrap itself.






CHAPTER XXXIV.

1860

In 1860 an important alteration was made in the organization of the army in India, by the passing of a Bill for the amalgamation of the local European Forces with the Royal Army.

In 1860, a significant change was made to the organization of the army in India through the passing of a Bill to merge the local European Forces with the Royal Army.

On the transfer of the administration of India from the Honourable East India Company to the Crown, a question arose as to the conditions under which the European soldiers had enlisted. The Government contended that the conditions were in no way affected by the abolition[Page 270] of the Company. The soldiers, on the other hand, claimed to be re-enlisted, and on this being refused they asked for their discharge. This was granted, and 10,000 out of the 16,000 men serving in the local army had to be sent to England. These men were replaced and the local Forces were kept up to strength by fresh drafts from England; but, from the date of the amalgamation, enlistment to serve solely in India was to cease.

On the transfer of control of India from the Honourable East India Company to the Crown, a question arose regarding the conditions under which European soldiers had joined. The Government argued that those conditions were not affected by the abolition[Page 270] of the Company. The soldiers, however, stated that they wanted to be re-enlisted, and when this request was denied, they asked to be discharged. This request was granted, and 10,000 out of the 16,000 men serving in the local army had to be sent back to England. These men were replaced, and the local Forces were maintained at full strength with new drafts from England; however, starting from the date of the merger, enlistment to serve exclusively in India was to end.

There was great difference of opinion as to the advisability of this measure; officers of the Queen's service for the most part, and notably Sir Hugh Rose, were in favour of it, but it was not generally popular in India. It was feared that the change would result in a great increase to the military charges which the Indian Government would be called upon to pay; that, notwithstanding such increase, there would be a serious diminution in the control exercised by that Government over the administration and organization of the British Army in India; and that, under the pressure of political emergency in Europe, troops might be withdrawn and Indian requirements disregarded. On the other hand, those in favour of the Bill thought that, after the transfer of India to the Crown, the maintenance of a separate Force uncontrolled by the Horse Guards would be an anomaly. There was, no doubt, much to be said on both sides of the question, but, although it has been proved that the fears of those opposed to the change were not altogether without foundation, in my opinion it was unavoidable, and has greatly benefited both services.

There was a significant difference of opinion about whether this measure was a good idea; most officers in the Queen's service, including Sir Hugh Rose, supported it, but it wasn't very popular in India. People worried that the change would lead to a big increase in military costs for the Indian Government and that, despite this increase, the Government would lose serious control over the administration and organization of the British Army in India. There was also concern that, due to political emergencies in Europe, troops might be pulled out and Indian needs overlooked. On the flip side, supporters of the Bill believed that after India was transferred to the Crown, having a separate Force not under the Horse Guards would be strange. There were definitely valid points on both sides of the debate, but even though the concerns of those against the change were not entirely unfounded, I believe it was inevitable and has been a great benefit to both services.

The amalgamation considerably accelerated my promotion, for, in order to place the Indian Ordnance Corps on the same footing as those of the Royal service, the rank of Second Captain had to be introduced into the former, a rank to which I attained in October, 1860, only, however, to hold it for one day, as the next my name appeared in the Gazette as a Brevet Major.

The merger really sped up my promotion because, to level the Indian Ordnance Corps with the Royal service, the rank of Second Captain had to be added. I reached that rank in October 1860, but only held it for one day, as the next day my name was published in the Gazette as a Brevet Major.

The Staff Corps The same year saw the introduction of the Staff Corps. This was the outcome of the disappearance during the Mutiny of nearly the whole of the Regular regiments of the Bengal Army, and their replacement by Irregular regiments. But, as under the Irregular system the number of British officers with each corps was too limited to admit of their promotion being carried on regimentally, as had been done under the Regular system,1 some organization had to be devised by which the pay and promotion of all officers joining the Indian Army in future[Page 271] could be arranged. Many schemes were put forward; eventually one formulated by Colonel Norman was, with certain modifications, accepted by the Secretary of State, the result being that all officers about to enter the Indian Army were to be placed on one list, in which they would be promoted after fixed periods of service;2 and all those officers who had been thrown out of employment by the disbandment of their regiments, or by the substitution of the Irregular for the Regular system, were to have the option of joining it. The term Staff Corps, however, was a misnomer, for the constitution of the Corps and the training of its officers had no special connection with staff requirements.

The Staff Corps That same year saw the creation of the Staff Corps. This was a result of nearly all the regular regiments of the Bengal Army disappearing during the Mutiny and being replaced by irregular regiments. However, since the irregular system meant there were too few British officers in each corps to allow for promotion as had been done under the regular system, some organization needed to be devised to manage the pay and promotion of all future officers joining the Indian Army[Page 271]. Many proposals were made; eventually, a plan put forward by Colonel Norman was accepted by the Secretary of State with some modifications. This meant that all officers entering the Indian Army would be placed on a single list, where they would be promoted after set periods of service;2 and those officers who lost their positions due to the disbandment of their regiments or the shift from the regular system to the irregular one would have the option to join it. However, calling it the Staff Corps was misleading because the structure of the Corps and the training of its officers had no specific link to staff needs.

With the Viceroy's Camp Again Towards the end of the summer the Viceroy announced his intention of making a march through Central India, and I was again ordered to take charge of his camp, which was to be formed at Benares. My wife and her baby remained at Simla with our friends the Donald Stewarts, and I left her feeling sure that with them she would be happy and well taken care of.

Back at the Viceroy's Camp Towards the end of summer, the Viceroy announced his plan to march through Central India, and I was once again tasked with overseeing his camp, which was to be set up in Benares. My wife and our baby stayed in Simla with our friends, the Donald Stewarts, and I left her confident that she would be happy and well looked after with them.

Sir Hugh Rose was at Allahabad, and as I passed through that place I availed myself of the opportunity to pay my respects to the new Chief, being anxious to meet an officer whom I had held in great admiration from the time when, as Chargé d'affaires at Constantinople, his pluck and foresight practically saved Turkey in her time of peril from Russia's threatened attack—admiration increased by the masterly manner in which he had conducted the Central India campaign, in spite of almost overwhelming difficulties from want of transport and other causes, and a severe attack of sunstroke, which would have incapacitated many men. Sir Hugh Rose, when I first met him at Allahabad, was fifty-nine years of age, tall, slight, with refined features, rather delicate-looking, and possessing a distinctly distinguished appearance. He received me most kindly, and told me that he wished me to return to Head-Quarters when the Viceroy could dispense with my services.

Sir Hugh Rose was in Allahabad, and when I passed through the area, I took the chance to pay my respects to the new Chief. I was eager to meet an officer I had admired greatly since he was the Chargé d'affaires in Constantinople. His courage and foresight had practically saved Turkey during its time of danger from Russia’s impending attack. My admiration grew even more due to the skillful way he led the Central India campaign, overcoming significant challenges like lack of transport and a serious case of sunstroke that could have sidelined many. When I first met Sir Hugh Rose in Allahabad, he was fifty-nine years old, tall, slim, with refined features that gave him a somewhat delicate look, and he had a distinctly distinguished presence. He greeted me warmly and expressed his desire for me to return to Head-Quarters when the Viceroy no longer needed my services.

The camp this year was by no means on so grand a scale as the preceding one. The escort was much smaller, and the Commander-in-Chief with Army Head-Quarters did not march with us as on the previous occasion.

The camp this year wasn't nearly as grand as last year's. The escort was much smaller, and the Commander-in-Chief with Army Headquarters didn't march with us like before.

Lord and Lady Canning arrived by steamer at Benares on the 6th November, and I went on board to meet them. Lord Canning was cordial and pleasant as usual, but I did not think he looked well. Lady[Page 272] Canning was charming as ever; she reproached me for not having brought my wife, but when I told her how ill she had been, she agreed that camp was not quite the place for her.

Lord and Lady Canning arrived by steamer in Benares on November 6th, and I went on board to greet them. Lord Canning was warm and friendly as always, but I thought he didn’t look well. Lady Canning was as charming as ever; she scolded me for not bringing my wife, but when I explained how sick she had been, she agreed that the camp wasn’t really the best place for her.

Benares, to my mind, is a most disappointing city; the streets are narrow and dirty, there are no fine buildings, and it is only interesting from its being held so sacred by the Hindus. The view of the city and burning ghâts from the river is picturesque and pretty, but there is nothing else worth seeing.

Benares, in my opinion, is a really disappointing city; the streets are narrow and dirty, there aren’t any impressive buildings, and it’s only interesting because of its sacred significance to Hindus. The view of the city and the burning ghâts from the river is charming and scenic, but there’s nothing else worth checking out.

Two days were occupied in getting the camp to Mirzarpur, on the opposite bank of the Ganges. There was no bridge, and everything had to be taken over in boats; 10,000 men, 1,000 horses, 2,000 camels, 2,000 bullocks, besides all the tents, carts, and baggage, had to be ferried across the great river. The 180 elephants swam over with their mahouts on their backs to keep their heads straight and urge them on; the stream was rapid, and it was a difficult business to land them safely at the other side, but at last it was accomplished, and our only casualty was one camel, which fell overboard.

Two days were spent getting the camp to Mirzarpur, on the other side of the Ganges. There was no bridge, so everything had to be transported by boat; 10,000 men, 1,000 horses, 2,000 camels, 2,000 bullocks, along with all the tents, carts, and luggage, had to be ferried across the massive river. The 180 elephants swam over with their handlers on their backs to keep them steady and encourage them; the current was strong, and it was challenging to get them safely to the other side, but eventually, it was done, and our only loss was one camel that fell overboard.

The march to Jubbulpur lay through very pretty scenery, low hills and beautiful jungle, ablaze with the flame-coloured blossom of the dhâk-tree. Game abounded, and an occasional tiger was killed. Lord Canning sometimes accompanied the shooting expeditions, but not often, for he was greatly engrossed in, and oppressed by, his work, which he appeared unable to throw off. Even during the morning's drive he was occupied with papers, and on reaching camp he went straight to his office tent, where he remained the whole day till dinner-time, returning to it directly the meal was over, unless there were strangers present with whom he wished to converse.

The journey to Jubbulpur went through really beautiful scenery, with low hills and lovely jungle, bright with the fiery blooms of the dhâk tree. Wildlife was abundant, and an occasional tiger was taken down. Lord Canning sometimes joined the hunting trips, but not often, because he was deeply absorbed in and weighed down by his work, which he seemed unable to shake off. Even during the morning drive, he was busy with paperwork, and when he reached camp, he headed straight to his office tent, where he stayed the whole day until dinner, returning immediately after the meal unless there were guests he wanted to talk to.

At Jubbulpur the Viceroy held a durbar for the Maharaja Tukaji Holkar of Indore, and some minor Chiefs of that part of the country. Holkar's conduct during the Mutiny was not altogether above suspicion, but, considering that the only troops at his disposal belonged to the mutinous Indore Contingent, which consisted mainly of Hindustanis enlisted by English officers, over whom he could not be expected to exercise much control, Lord Canning gave him the benefit of the doubt, and was willing to attribute his equivocal behaviour to want of ability and timidity, rather than to disloyalty, and therefore allowed him to come to the durbar.

At Jubbulpur, the Viceroy held a gathering for Maharaja Tukaji Holkar of Indore and some minor chiefs from that region. Holkar's actions during the Mutiny were somewhat suspicious, but since the only troops he had were from the mutinous Indore Contingent, mainly made up of Hindustanis recruited by British officers, it was unreasonable to expect him to have much control over them. Lord Canning decided to give him the benefit of the doubt and attributed his questionable behavior to a lack of ability and fearfulness rather than disloyalty, allowing him to attend the gathering.

Another potentate received at this time by the Viceroy was the Begum of Bhopal, who, being a powerful and skilful Ruler, and absolutely loyal to the British Government, had afforded us most valuable assistance during the rebellion. She was one of those women whom the East has occasionally produced, endowed with conspicuous talent and great strength of character, a quality which, from its rarity amongst Indian women, gives immense influence to those who possess it. Lord Canning congratulated the Begum on the success with which she had[Page 273] governed her country, thanked her for her timely help, and bestowed upon her a large tract of country as a reward. She was a determined-looking little woman, and spoke fluently in her own language; she personally managed the affairs of her State, and wrote a remarkably interesting account of her travelling experiences during a pilgrimage to Mecca.

Another leader welcomed by the Viceroy at this time was the Begum of Bhopal, who, as a powerful and skilled ruler, was completely loyal to the British Government and provided us with invaluable support during the rebellion. She was one of those remarkable women that the East has occasionally produced, gifted with notable talent and significant strength of character—a quality that, due to its rarity among Indian women, gives a lot of influence to those who have it. Lord Canning congratulated the Begum on the successful way she had[Page 273] governed her country, thanked her for her timely assistance, and awarded her a large area of land as a reward. She was a resolute-looking little woman who spoke fluently in her native language; she personally managed her State's affairs and wrote a very interesting account of her travel experiences during a pilgrimage to Mecca.

Just as the Begum took her departure, news was brought in of the presence of a tiger two or three miles from the cantonment, and as many of us as could get away started off in pursuit. Not considering myself a first-rate shot, I thought I should be best employed with the beaters, but, as good luck would have it, the tiger broke from the jungle within a few yards of my elephant: I could not resist having a shot, and was fortunate enough to knock him over.

Just as the Begum was leaving, we heard that a tiger was two or three miles from the base, and those of us who could leave quickly set off to track it down. Not seeing myself as a great shot, I figured I’d be more useful with the beaters. But, by good luck, the tiger burst out of the jungle just a few yards from my elephant: I couldn’t help but take a shot, and I was lucky enough to bring him down.

The Marble Rocks While at Jubbulpur, I visited the famous marble rocks on the Nerbudda. We rowed up the river for about a mile, when the stream began to narrow, and splendid masses of marble came into view. The cliffs rise to about a hundred feet in height, pure white below, gradually shading off to gray at the top. The water at their base is of a deep brown colour; perfectly transparent and smooth, in which the white rocks are reflected with the utmost distinctness. In the crevices hang numerous beehives, whose inmates one has to be careful not to disturb, for on the bank are the graves of two Englishmen who, having incautiously aroused the vicious little creatures, were attacked and drowned in diving under the water to escape from their stings.

The Marble Caves While I was in Jubbulpur, I checked out the famous marble rocks on the Nerbudda. We paddled up the river for about a mile, and then the stream started to narrow, revealing stunning masses of marble. The cliffs rise about a hundred feet high, pure white at the bottom and gradually turning gray at the top. The water at the base is a deep brown color; it’s perfectly clear and smooth, reflecting the white rocks incredibly clearly. In the crevices, there are lots of beehives, and you have to be careful not to disturb them because on the bank are the graves of two Englishmen who, having inadvertently provoked the aggressive little creatures, were attacked and drowned while diving underwater to escape their stings.

A few days later the Viceroy left camp, and proceeded to Lucknow, where he held another durbar for the Talukdars of Oudh. Lady Canning continued to march with us to Mirzapur, where I took her on board her barge, and bade her farewell—a last farewell, for I never saw this good, beautiful, and gifted woman again.

A few days later, the Viceroy left camp and went to Lucknow, where he held another meeting for the Talukdars of Oudh. Lady Canning continued traveling with us to Mirzapur, where I helped her onto her barge and said goodbye—a final goodbye, as I never saw this kind, beautiful, and talented woman again.

The camp being broken up, I returned towards the end of February to my work in the Quartermaster-General's Office at Simla. I found the place deep in snow; it looked very beautiful, but the change of temperature, from the great heat of Central India to several degrees of frost, was somewhat trying. My wife had benefited greatly from the fine bracing air, and both she and our baby appeared pictures of health; but a day or two after my arrival the little one was taken ill, and died within one week of her birthday—our first great sorrow.

The camp was packed up, and I went back to my job at the Quartermaster-General's Office in Simla toward the end of February. The place was covered in deep snow; it looked stunning, but the temperature shift from the intense heat of Central India to several degrees below freezing was a bit tough. My wife had really thrived in the fresh, crisp air, and both she and our baby seemed to be in perfect health. However, just a day or two after I got back, our little one fell ill and passed away a week before her birthday—our first big heartbreak.

We passed a very quiet, uneventful summer, and in the beginning of October we left Simla for Allahabad, where I had received instructions to prepare a camp for the Viceroy, who had arranged to hold an investiture of the Star of India, the new Order which was originally designed to honour the principal Chiefs of India who had done us good service, by associating them with some of the highest and most distinguished personages in England, and a few carefully selected Europeans in India. Lord Canning was the first Grand Master, and[Page 274] Sir Hugh Rose the first Knight.

We had a very quiet and uneventful summer, and at the beginning of October, we left Simla for Allahabad, where I was told to set up a camp for the Viceroy. He had planned to hold an investiture for the Star of India, the new Order created to honor the main Chiefs of India who had provided us with good service, connecting them with some of the highest and most distinguished figures in England, along with a few carefully selected Europeans in India. Lord Canning was the first Grand Master, and [Page 274] Sir Hugh Rose was the first Knight.

The durbar at which the Maharajas Sindhia and Patiala, the Begum of Bhopal, and the Nawab of Rampur were invested, was a most imposing ceremony. The Begum was the cynosure of all eyes—a female Knight was a novelty to Europeans as well as to Natives—and there was much curiosity as to how she would conduct herself; but no one could have behaved with greater dignity or more perfect decorum, and she made a pretty little speech in Urdu in reply to Lord Canning's complimentary address. She was dressed in cloth-of-gold, and wore magnificent jewels; but the effect of her rich costume was somewhat marred by a funny little wreath of artificial flowers, woollen mittens, and black worsted stockings with white tips. When my wife visited the Begum after the durbar, she showed her these curious appendages with great pride, saying she wore them because they were 'English fashion.' This was the first occasion on which ladies were admitted to a durbar, out of compliment to the Begum.

The durbar where Maharajas Sindhia and Patiala, the Begum of Bhopal, and the Nawab of Rampur were honored was a really impressive ceremony. The Begum was the center of attention—a female Knight was a novelty for both Europeans and Natives—and everyone was curious about how she would act; but no one could have shown more dignity or perfect decorum, and she delivered a charming little speech in Urdu in response to Lord Canning's complimentary address. She was dressed in gold fabric and wore stunning jewels; however, the look of her elaborate outfit was slightly diminished by a funny little wreath of fake flowers, wool mittens, and black worsted stockings with white tips. When my wife visited the Begum after the durbar, she proudly showed her these odd accessories, saying she wore them because they were 'English fashion.' This was the first time women were allowed into a durbar, as a compliment to the Begum.

That evening my wife was taken in to dinner by a man whose manner and appearance greatly impressed her, but she did not catch his name when he was introduced; she much enjoyed his conversation during dinner, which was not to be wondered at, for, before she left the table, he told her his name was Bartle Frere.3 She never saw him again, but she always says he interested her more than almost any of the many distinguished men she has since met.

That evening, my wife was taken to dinner by a man who made a strong impression on her with his demeanor and looks, but she didn’t catch his name when they were introduced. She really enjoyed their conversation during dinner, which wasn’t surprising, because before she left the table, he told her his name was Bartle Frere.3 She never saw him again, but she always says he intrigued her more than almost any of the many distinguished men she has met since.

From Allahabad the Viceroy again visited Lucknow, this time with the object of urging upon the Talukdars the suppression of the horrible custom of female infanticide, which had its origin in the combined pride and poverty of the Rajputs. In various parts of India attempts had been made, with more or less success, to put a stop to this inhuman practice. But not much impression had been made in Oudh, in consequence of the inordinately large dowries demanded from the Rajput fathers of marriageable daughters. Two hundred Talukdars attended Lord Canning's last durbar, and, in reply to his feeling and telling speech, declared their firm determination to do their best to discourage the evil.

From Allahabad, the Viceroy visited Lucknow again, this time to encourage the Talukdars to end the terrible practice of female infanticide, which stemmed from the combined pride and poverty of the Rajputs. Various parts of India had seen attempts, with varying degrees of success, to stop this inhumane practice. However, not much progress had been made in Oudh due to the excessively high dowries demanded from Rajput fathers of daughters eligible for marriage. Two hundred Talukdars attended Lord Canning's last durbar, and in response to his heartfelt speech, they expressed their strong commitment to do their best to discourage this evil.

Lady Canning's Death The Commander-in-Chief had decided to pass the winter in marching through the Punjab, and inspecting the different stations for troops in the north of India. The Head-Quarters camp had, therefore, been formed at Jullundur, and thither we proceeded when the gathering at Allahabad had dispersed. We had but just arrived, when we were shocked and grieved beyond measure to hear of Lady Canning's death. Instead of accompanying the Viceroy to Allahabad she had gone to Darjeeling, and on her return, anxious to make sketches of the beautiful jungle scenery, she arranged, alas! contrary to the advice of those with[Page 275] her, to spend one night in the terai,4 where she contracted jungle-fever, to which she succumbed ten days after her return to Calcutta. Her death was a real personal sorrow to all who had the privilege of knowing her; what must it have been to her husband, returning to England without the helpmate who had shared and lightened the burden of his anxieties, and gloried in the success which crowned his eventful career in India.

Lady Canning's Passing The Commander-in-Chief decided to spend the winter traveling through Punjab and checking out the various military stations in northern India. As a result, the Head-Quarters camp was set up in Jullundur, and we made our way there after the gathering in Allahabad had ended. We had just arrived when we were devastated to hear about Lady Canning's death. Instead of going to Allahabad with the Viceroy, she had gone to Darjeeling. On her way back, eager to draw the beautiful jungle scenery, she made the unfortunate decision, against the advice of those with her, to spend one night in the terai,4 where she caught jungle fever, which ultimately took her life ten days after returning to Calcutta. Her death was a deep personal loss for everyone who had the honor of knowing her; it must have been an even greater sorrow for her husband, who returned to England without the partner who had shared and eased his worries and celebrated the success that marked his remarkable journey in India.

The Commander-in-Chief arrived in the middle of November, and all the officers of the Head-Quarters camp went out to meet him. I was mounted on a spirited nutmeg-gray Arab, a present from Allgood. Sir Hugh greatly fancied Arabian horses, and immediately noticed mine. He called me up to him, and asked me where I got him, and of what caste he was. From that moment he never varied in the kindness and consideration with which he treated me, and I always fancied I owed his being well disposed towards me from the very first to the fact that I was riding my handsome little Arab that day; he loved a good horse, and liked his staff to be well mounted. A few days afterwards he told me he wished me to accompany him on the flying tours he proposed to make from time to time, in order to see more of the country and troops than would be possible if he marched altogether with the big camp.

The Commander-in-Chief arrived in mid-November, and all the officers at the Headquarters camp went out to greet him. I was riding a spirited nutmeg-gray Arabian horse, a gift from Allgood. Sir Hugh was really fond of Arabian horses and immediately noticed mine. He called me over and asked where I got him and what breed he was. From that moment on, he was consistently kind and considerate towards me, and I always thought his positive attitude towards me from the start was because I was riding my beautiful little Arabian that day; he appreciated a good horse and liked his staff to be well-mounted. A few days later, he told me he wanted me to join him on the flying tours he planned to take from time to time to see more of the country and troops than he could if he marched together with the main camp.

We went to Umritsar, Mian Mir, and Sialkot; at each place there were the usual inspections, mess dinners, and entertainments. The Chief's visit made a break in the ordinary life of a cantonment, and the residents were glad to take advantage of it to get up various festivities; Sir Hugh, too, was most hospitably inclined, so that there was always a great deal to do besides actual duty when we arrived at a station.

We went to Amritsar, Mian Mir, and Sialkot; at each location, there were the usual inspections, mess dinners, and entertainment. The Chief's visit brought some excitement to the regular life of the cantonment, and the locals were happy to seize the opportunity to organize various celebrations. Sir Hugh was also very welcoming, so there was always plenty to do besides our actual duties when we arrived at a station.

Pig-sticking at Jamu Jamu, where the Ruler of Kashmir resides during the winter, is not far from Sialkot, so Sir Hugh was tempted to accept an invitation from the Maharaja to pay him a visit and enjoy some good pig-sticking, to my mind the finest sport in the world. His Highness entertained us right royally, and gave us excellent sport, but our pleasure was marred by the Chief having a bad fall: he had got the first spear off a fine boar, who, feeling himself wounded, turned and charged, knocking over Sir Hugh's horse. All three lay in a heap together; the pig was dead, the horse was badly ripped up, and the Chief showed no signs of life. We carried him back to Jamu on a charpoy5 and when he regained consciousness we found that no great harm was done beyond a severely bruised face and a badly sprained leg, which, though still very painful two or three days later, did not prevent the plucky old fellow from riding over the battle-field of Chilianwalla.

Pig hunting at Jamu Jamu, where the Ruler of Kashmir stays in the winter, is not far from Sialkot, so Sir Hugh was tempted to accept an invitation from the Maharaja to visit him and enjoy some great pig-sticking, which I think is the best sport in the world. His Highness hosted us lavishly and provided us with excellent sport, but our enjoyment was spoiled when the Chief had a bad fall: he got the first spear into a fine boar, which, feeling itself wounded, turned and charged, knocking over Sir Hugh's horse. All three ended up in a tangled heap; the pig was dead, the horse was badly injured, and the Chief was unresponsive. We carried him back to Jamu on a charpoy5 and when he regained consciousness, we discovered that there was no major harm done, just a severely bruised face and a badly sprained leg, which, although still very painful two or three days later, didn’t stop the brave old guy from riding over the battlefield of Chilianwalla.

Very soon after this Norman, who was then Adjutant-General of the[Page 276] Army, left Head-Quarters to take up the appointment of Secretary to the Government of India in the Military Department. Before we parted he expressed a hope that I would soon follow him, as a vacancy in the Department was about to take place, which he said he was sure Lord Canning would allow him to offer to me. Norman was succeeded as Adjutant-General of the Indian Army by Edwin Johnson, the last officer who filled that post, as it was done away with when the amalgamation of the services was carried into effect.

Very soon after this, Norman, who was the Adjutant-General of the[Page 276] Army at the time, left Headquarters to become the Secretary to the Government of India in the Military Department. Before we parted, he expressed hope that I would join him soon, as a position in the Department was about to open up, which he was sure Lord Canning would let him offer to me. Norman was succeeded as Adjutant-General of the Indian Army by Edwin Johnson, the last officer to hold that position before it was eliminated with the merger of the services.

Two marches from Jhelum my wife was suddenly taken alarmingly ill, and had to remain behind when the camp moved on. Sir Hugh Rose most kindly insisted on leaving his doctor (Longhurst) in charge of her, and told me I must stay with her as long as was necessary. For three whole weeks we remained on the encamping ground of Sahawar; at the end of that time, thanks (humanly speaking) to the skill and care of our Doctor, she was sufficiently recovered to be put into a doolie and carried to Lahore, I riding a camel by her side, for my horses had gone on with the camp.

Two marches from Jhelum, my wife suddenly fell seriously ill and had to stay behind when the camp moved on. Sir Hugh Rose kindly insisted on leaving his doctor (Longhurst) to take care of her and told me I should stay with her as long as needed. We stayed at the encampment in Sahawar for three whole weeks; by the end of that time, thanks to the skill and care of our doctor, she was well enough to be placed in a doolie and transported to Lahore, while I rode a camel beside her, as my horses had already gone on with the camp.

While at Lahore I received a most kind letter from Norman, offering me the post in the Secretariat which he had already told me was about to become vacant. After some hesitation—for the Secretariat had its attractions, particularly as regarded pay—I decided to decline the proffered appointment, as my acceptance of it would have taken me away from purely military work and the chance of service in the field. I left my wife on the high-road to recovery, and hurried after the camp, overtaking it at Peshawar just in time to accompany the Commander-in-Chief on his ride along the Derajat frontier, a trip I should have been very sorry to have missed. We visited every station from Kohat to Rajanpur, a ride of about 440 miles. Brigadier-General Neville Chamberlain, who was still commanding the Punjab Frontier Force, met us at Kohat, and remained with us to the end. We did from twenty-five to forty miles a day, and our baggage and servants, carried on riding-camels, kept up with us.

While I was in Lahore, I received a very kind letter from Norman, offering me the position in the Secretariat that he had already mentioned would soon be vacant. After some thought—since the Secretariat had its perks, especially regarding pay—I decided to turn down the offered position because accepting it would have pulled me away from purely military work and the opportunity for service in the field. I left my wife on the mend and rushed after the camp, catching up with it at Peshawar just in time to join the Commander-in-Chief on his ride along the Derajat frontier, a trip I would have regretted missing. We visited every station from Kohat to Rajanpur, covering about 440 miles. Brigadier-General Neville Chamberlain, who was still in charge of the Punjab Frontier Force, met us at Kohat and stayed with us until the end. We traveled between twenty-five to forty miles a day, and our luggage and servants, carried on riding camels, kept pace with us.

This was my first experience of a part of India with which I had later so much to do, and which always interested me greatly. At the time of which I am writing it was a wild and lawless tract of country. As we left Kohat we met the bodies of four murdered men being carried in, but were told there was nothing unusual in such a sight. On one occasion General Chamberlain introduced to Sir Hugh Rose two young Khans, fine, handsome fellows, who were apparently on excellent terms. A few days later we were told that one of them had been murdered by his companion, there having been a blood-feud between their families for generations; although these two had been brought up together, and liked each other, the one whose clan had last lost a member by the feud felt himself in honour bound to sacrifice his friend.

This was my first experience in a part of India that I would later become closely involved with and that has always fascinated me. At the time I’m writing about, it was a rough and lawless area. As we were leaving Kohat, we saw the bodies of four murdered men being brought in, but we were told it was nothing out of the ordinary. On one occasion, General Chamberlain introduced two young Khans to Sir Hugh Rose; they were both fine-looking guys and seemed to get along well. A few days later, we learned that one of them had been killed by the other, as there had been a blood feud between their families for generations. Even though these two had grown up together and liked each other, the one whose family had recently lost a member felt obligated to kill his friend.

When I rejoined my wife at the end of the tour, I found her a great[Page 277] deal worse than her letters had led me to expect, but she had been much cheered by the arrival of a sister who had come out to pay us a visit, and who lived with us until she married an old friend and brother officer of mine named Sladen. We remained at Umballa till the end of March; the only noteworthy circumstance that occurred there was a parade for announcing to the troops that Earl Canning had departed, and that the Earl of Elgin and Kincardine was now Viceroy of India.

When I met up with my wife at the end of the tour, I found her in a much worse condition than her letters had led me to anticipate, but she was greatly uplifted by the arrival of her sister, who came to visit us and stayed until she married an old friend and fellow officer of mine named Sladen. We stayed in Umballa until the end of March; the only significant event that took place there was a parade to inform the troops that Earl Canning had left and that the Earl of Elgin and Kincardine was now the Viceroy of India.

Lord Canning There are few men whose conduct of affairs has been so severely criticized as Lord Canning's, but there are still fewer who, as Governors or Viceroys, have had to deal with such an overwhelming crisis as the Mutiny. While the want of appreciation Lord Canning at first displayed of the magnitude of that crisis may, with perfect justice, be attributed to the fact that most of his advisers had gained their experience only in Lower Bengal, and had therefore a very imperfect knowledge of popular feeling throughout India, the very large measure of success which attended his subsequent action was undoubtedly due to his own ability and sound judgment.

Lord Canning There are few people whose handling of affairs has been as harshly criticized as Lord Canning's, but even fewer who, as Governors or Viceroys, have faced such a massive crisis as the Mutiny. While the lack of understanding Lord Canning initially showed regarding the seriousness of that crisis can fairly be attributed to the fact that many of his advisors had only gained experience in Lower Bengal and therefore had a limited grasp of public sentiment across India, the significant success that followed his later actions was undoubtedly due to his own skill and good judgment.

That by none of Lord Canning's responsible councillors could the extent of the Mutiny, or the position in Upper India, have been grasped, was evident from the telegram6 sent from Calcutta to the Commander-in-Chief on the 31st May, three weeks after the revolt at Meerut had occurred; but from the time Lord Canning left Calcutta in January, 1858, and had the opportunity of seeing and judging for himself, all that he did was wise and vigorous.

That none of Lord Canning's responsible advisers could understand the scale of the Mutiny or the situation in Upper India was clear from the telegram6 sent from Calcutta to the Commander-in-Chief on May 31st, three weeks after the revolt in Meerut had taken place. However, after Lord Canning left Calcutta in January 1858 and had the chance to see and assess the situation for himself, everything he did was smart and proactive.

Outwardly Lord Canning was cold and reserved, the result, I think, of extreme sensitiveness; for he was without doubt very warm-hearted, and was greatly liked and respected by those about him, and there was universal regret throughout India when, three months after his departure, the news of his death was received.

Outwardly, Lord Canning seemed cold and distant, which I believe was due to his extreme sensitivity; he was undoubtedly very warm-hearted and was greatly liked and respected by those around him. There was widespread sorrow across India when, three months after his departure, the news of his death came.

Another Cold-Weather March We returned to Simla early in April. The season passed much as other seasons had passed, except that there was rather more gaiety. The new Viceroy remained in Calcutta; but Sir Hugh Rose had had quite enough of it the year before, so he came up to the Hills, and established himself at 'Barnes Court.' He was very hospitable, and having my sister-in-law to chaperon, my wife went out rather more than she had cared to do in previous years. We spent a good deal of our time also at Mashobra, a lovely place, in the heart of the Hills, about six miles from Simla, where the Chief had a house, which he was good enough to frequently place at our disposal, when not making use of it himself. It was an agreeable change, and one which we all greatly[Page 278] enjoyed. But at the best one gets very tired of the Hills by the close of the summer, and I was glad to start off towards the end of October with my wife and her sister for Agra, where this year the Head-Quarters camp was to be formed, as the Chief had settled the cold-weather tour was to begin with a march through Bundelkand and Central India, the theatre of his successful campaign.

Another Cold-Weather March We returned to Simla in early April. The season went by much like other seasons, but there was a bit more excitement this time. The new Viceroy stayed in Calcutta; however, Sir Hugh Rose had had enough of it the previous year, so he came up to the Hills and settled at 'Barnes Court.' He was very welcoming, and since my sister-in-law was there to chaperone, my wife went out more than she had in previous years. We also spent a lot of time at Mashobra, a beautiful spot in the heart of the Hills, about six miles from Simla, where the Chief had a house that he kindly let us use when he wasn’t using it himself. It was a nice change, and we all really enjoyed it. But by the end of summer, one can get pretty tired of the Hills, and I was happy to head off at the end of October with my wife and her sister to Agra, where the Head-Quarters camp was set to be established this year, as the Chief had organized the cold-weather tour to start with a march through Bundelkand and Central India, the site of his successful campaign.

The second march out we were startled by being told, when we awoke in the morning, that Colonel Gawler, the Deputy-Adjutant-General of Queen's troops, had been badly wounded in the night by a thief, who got into his tent with the object of stealing a large sum of money Gawler had received from the bank the previous day, and for greater safety had placed under his pillow when he went to bed. In the middle of the night his wife awoke him, saying there was someone in the tent, and by the dim light of a small oil-lamp he could just see a dark figure creeping along the floor. He sprang out of bed and seized the robber; but the latter, being perfectly naked and oiled all over, slipped through his hands and wriggled under the wall of the tent. Gawler caught him by the leg just as he was disappearing, and they struggled outside together. When despairing of being able to make his escape, the thief stabbed Gawler several times with a knife, which was tied by a string to his wrist. By this time Mrs. Gawler had been able to arouse two Kaffir servants, one of whom tried to seize the miscreant, but in his turn was stabbed. The second servant, however, was more wary, and succeeded in capturing the thief; Kaffir fashion, he knocked all the breath out of his body by running at him head down and butting him in the stomach, when it became easy to bind the miscreant hand and foot. It was a bad part of the country for thieves; and when some four weeks later I went off on a flying tour with the Commander-in-Chief, I did not leave my wife quite as happily as usual. But neither she nor her sister was afraid. Each night they sent everything at all valuable to be placed under the care of the guard, and having taken this precaution, were quite easy in their minds.

The second march out, we were shocked to hear when we woke up in the morning that Colonel Gawler, the Deputy-Adjutant-General of the Queen's troops, had been seriously injured during the night by a thief. The thief had entered his tent with the intent to steal a large amount of money Gawler had received from the bank the day before, which he had placed under his pillow for safety when going to bed. In the middle of the night, his wife woke him up, saying there was someone in the tent, and by the dim light of a small oil lamp, he could just make out a dark figure crawling along the floor. He jumped out of bed and grabbed the robber, but the thief, being completely naked and covered in oil, slipped out of his grasp and wriggled under the tent wall. Gawler managed to grab him by the leg just as he was getting away, and they struggled outside together. In a desperate attempt to escape, the thief stabbed Gawler several times with a knife that was tied to his wrist by a string. By this time, Mrs. Gawler had managed to wake up two Kaffir servants; one of them tried to catch the thief, but ended up getting stabbed himself. However, the second servant was smarter and successfully captured the thief; in traditional Kaffir style, he knocked the wind out of him by charging at him headfirst and butting him in the stomach, making it easy to tie him up. It was a dangerous area for thieves, and about four weeks later, when I went on a quick trip with the Commander-in-Chief, I didn’t leave my wife feeling quite as secure as usual. But neither she nor her sister were afraid. Every night, they sent anything valuable to be put under the guard's protection, and after taking that precaution, they felt pretty relaxed.



THE EARL CANNING, K.G., G.C.B., G.M.S.I.,VICEROY AND GOVERNOR-GENERAL OF INDIA

THE EARL CANNING, K.G., G.C.B., G.M.S.I.,
VICEROY AND GOVERNOR-GENERAL OF INDIA


From
a photograph by Messrs. Mayall.

THE EARL CANNING, K.G., G.C.B., G.M.S.I.,VICEROY AND GOVERNOR-GENERAL OF INDIA

THE EARL CANNING, K.G., G.C.B., G.M.S.I.,
Viceroy and Governor-General of India


From a photo by Mayall.



When the camp reached Gwalior, the Maharaja Sindhia seemed to think he could not do enough to show his gratitude to Sir Hugh Rose for his opportune help in June, 1858,7 when the Gwalior troops mutinied, and joined the rebel army under the Rani of Jhansi and Tantia Topi. The day after our arrival Sindhia held a grand review of[Page 279] his new army in honour of our Chief. The next day there was an open-air entertainment in the Phulbagh (garden of flowers); the third a picnic and elephant fight, which, by the way, was a very tame affair. We had nerved ourselves to see something rather terrific, instead of which the great creatures twisted their trunks about each other in quite a playful manner, and directly the play seemed to be turning into earnest they were separated by their mahouts, being much too valuable to be allowed to injure themselves. Each day there was some kind of entertainment: pig-sticking or shooting expeditions in the morning, and banquets, fireworks, and illuminations in the evening.

When the camp arrived in Gwalior, Maharaja Sindhia seemed eager to express his gratitude to Sir Hugh Rose for his timely assistance in June, 1858,7 when the Gwalior troops rebelled and joined the uprising led by the Rani of Jhansi and Tantia Topi. The day after we got there, Sindhia hosted a grand review of[Page 279] his new army in honor of our Chief. The following day, there was an outdoor event in the Phulbagh (garden of flowers); on the third day, a picnic and elephant fight, which, by the way, turned out to be quite mild. We had prepared ourselves for something intense, but instead, the massive animals playfully intertwined their trunks, and as soon as things looked like they might get serious, their mahouts intervened, as they were far too precious to risk injury. Each day featured some form of entertainment: pig-sticking or shooting trips in the morning, followed by banquets, fireworks, and light displays in the evening.

Gwalior and Jhansi Gwalior is an interesting place. The fort is picturesquely situated above a perpendicular cliff; the road up to it is very steep, and it must have been almost impregnable in former days. It was made doubly interesting to us by Sir Hugh Rose explaining how he attacked it, and pointing out the spot where the Rani of Jhansi was killed in a charge of the 8th Hussars.

Gwalior & Jhansi Gwalior is a fascinating place. The fort is beautifully located on top of a steep cliff; the path leading up to it is very steep, making it nearly impossible to conquer in the past. It became even more captivating for us when Sir Hugh Rose shared how he attacked it and pointed out the spot where the Rani of Jhansi was killed during a charge by the 8th Hussars.

Our next halt was Jhansi. Here also Sir Hugh had a thrilling tale to tell of its capture, and of his having to fight the battle of the Betwa against a large force brought to the assistance of the rebels by Tantia Topi, while the siege was actually being carried on.

Our next stop was Jhansi. Here, Sir Hugh had an exciting story to share about its capture and how he had to fight the battle of the Betwa against a large force that Tantia Topi brought in to help the rebels, all while the siege was still happening.

From Jhansi the big camp marched to Lucknow, viâ Cawnpore; while the Chief with a small staff (of which I was one) and light tents, made a detour by Saugor, Jubbulpur, and Allahabad. We travelled through pretty jungle for the most part, interspersed with low hills, and we had altogether a very enjoyable trip. Sir Hugh was justly proud of the splendid service the Central India Field Force had performed under his command; and, as we rode along, it delighted him to point out the various places where he had come in contact with the rebels.

From Jhansi, the large camp moved to Lucknow, via Cawnpore; while the Chief, accompanied by a small staff (including me) and light tents, took a detour through Saugor, Jubbulpur, and Allahabad. We traveled mostly through lovely jungle, mixed with low hills, and overall, we had a really enjoyable trip. Sir Hugh was justifiably proud of the outstanding work the Central India Field Force had done under his leadership; and as we rode along, he loved to highlight the different places where he had encountered the rebels.

While at Allahabad, on the 13th January—quite the coolest time of the year—I had a slight sunstroke, which it took me a very long time to get over completely. The sensible custom introduced by Lord Clyde, of wearing helmets, was not always adhered to, and Sir Hugh Rose was rather fond of cocked hats. On this occasion I was wearing this—for India—most unsuitable head-dress, and, as ill-luck would have it, the Chief kept me out rather late, going over the ground where the present cantonment stands. I did not feel anything at the time, but an hour later I was suddenly seized with giddiness and sickness, and for a short time I could neither see nor hear. Plentiful douches of cold water brought me round, and I was well enough in the afternoon to go with the Chief to inspect the fort; but for months afterwards I never lost the pain in my head, and for many years I was very susceptible to the evil influence of the sun's rays.

While in Allahabad on January 13th—definitely the coolest time of the year—I had a mild sunstroke that took me a long time to fully recover from. The sensible practice introduced by Lord Clyde of wearing helmets wasn't always followed, and Sir Hugh Rose had a bit of a thing for cocked hats. On this occasion, I was wearing this, for India, totally inappropriate headgear, and, as luck would have it, the Chief kept me out later than usual, touring the area where the current cantonment is located. I didn't feel anything at the time, but an hour later I suddenly got dizzy and felt sick, and for a brief moment, I couldn’t see or hear. A generous splash of cold water revived me, and I felt well enough in the afternoon to join the Chief for a fort inspection; however, for months afterward, I couldn't shake the pain in my head, and for many years, I was very sensitive to the harsh effects of the sun.

We reached Lucknow towards the middle of January. Here, as elsewhere, we had constant parades and inspections, for Sir Hugh carried out his duties in the most thorough manner, and spared himself[Page 280] no trouble to secure the efficiency and the well-being of the soldier. At the same time, he was careful not to neglect his social duties; he took a prominent part in all amusements, and it was mainly due to his liberal support that we were able to keep up a small pack of hounds with Head-Quarters, which afforded us much enjoyment during the winter months.

We arrived in Lucknow around the middle of January. Here, like everywhere else, we had regular parades and inspections because Sir Hugh took his responsibilities seriously and went to great lengths to ensure the efficiency and well-being of the soldiers. At the same time, he didn’t ignore his social obligations; he actively participated in all the activities, and it was largely thanks to his generous support that we were able to maintain a small pack of hounds at Headquarters, which gave us a lot of enjoyment during the winter months.

From Lucknow we marched through Bareilly, Meerut, and Umballa, and the 30th March saw us all settled at Simla for the season.

From Lucknow, we traveled through Bareilly, Meerut, and Umballa, and by March 30th, we were all settled in Simla for the season.

Early in April Lord Elgin arrived in Simla for the hot weather, and from that time to the present, Simla has continued to be the Head-Quarters of the Government during the summer months.

Early in April, Lord Elgin arrived in Simla for the hot weather, and from that point on, Simla has remained the headquarters of the government during the summer months.

Departmental Promotion About this time the changes necessitated by the amalgamation of the services took place in the army staff. Edwin Johnson lost his appointment in consequence, and Colonel Haythorne,8 Adjutant-General of Queen's troops, became Adjutant-General of the Army in India, with Donald Stewart as his deputy. The order limiting the tenure of employment on the staff in the same grade to five years was also now introduced, which entailed my good friend Arthur Becher vacating the Quartermaster-Generalship, after having held it for eleven years. He was succeeded by Colonel Paton, with Lumsden as his deputy, and Charles Johnson (brother of Edwin Johnson) and myself as assistants in the Department.

Department Promotion Around this time, the changes needed due to the merging of services occurred in the army staff. Edwin Johnson lost his position as a result, and Colonel Haythorne,_8 Adjutant-General of the Queen's troops, became the Adjutant-General of the Army in India, with Donald Stewart as his deputy. An order was also introduced that limited the time someone could hold a staff position at the same level to five years, which meant my good friend Arthur Becher had to step down from the Quartermaster-General role after eleven years in that position. He was succeeded by Colonel Paton, with Lumsden as his deputy, and Charles Johnson (Edwin Johnson's brother) and I as assistants in the Department.






CHAPTER XXXV.

1863

In the autumn of 1863, while we were preparing for the usual winter tour, Sir Hugh Rose, who had accompanied Lord Elgin on a trip through the hills, telegraphed to the Head-Quarters staff to join him at Mian Mir without delay.

In the fall of 1863, while we were getting ready for the usual winter tour, Sir Hugh Rose, who had traveled through the hills with Lord Elgin, sent a telegram to the Head-Quarters staff to meet him at Mian Mir as soon as possible.

The Umbeyla Expedition The news which greeted us on our arrival was indeed disturbing. Lord Elgin was at Dharmsala in a dying condition, and the Chief had been obliged to leave him and push on to Lahore, in consequence of unsatisfactory reports from Brigadier-General Chamberlain, who was just then commanding an expedition which had been sent into the mountains near Peshawar, and had met with unexpected opposition. The civil authorities on the spot reported that there existed a great deal of excitement all along the border, that the tribes were collecting in large numbers, that emissaries from Kabul had appeared amongst them, and that, unless reinforcements could be sent up at once, the Government would be involved in a war which must inevitably lead to the most serious complications, not only on the frontier, but with Afghanistan. In so grave a light did the Lieutenant-Governor, Sir[Page 281] Robert Montgomery, view the position, that he contemplated the force being withdrawn and the undertaking abandoned.

The Umbeyla Expedition The news we received upon our arrival was truly alarming. Lord Elgin was in Dharmsala, gravely ill, and the Chief had to leave him and head to Lahore due to concerning reports from Brigadier-General Chamberlain, who was in charge of an expedition sent into the mountains near Peshawar and was facing unexpected resistance. The local civil authorities reported significant unrest along the border, with tribes gathering in large numbers, emissaries from Kabul joining them, and that unless reinforcements were sent immediately, the Government would be dragged into a war likely to create severe complications, not just on the frontier but with Afghanistan. The Lieutenant-Governor, Sir[Page 281] Robert Montgomery, regarded the situation so seriously that he considered withdrawing the forces and abandoning the mission.

Sir Hugh had had nothing to do with the despatch of this expedition; it had been decided on by the Government of India in consultation with the Lieutenant-Governor of the Punjab. When the Commander-in-Chief was communicated with, he expressed himself adverse to the proposal, and placed his views at length before the Government, pointing out the inexpediency of entering a difficult and unknown country, unless the troops were properly equipped with transport, supplies, and reserve ammunition; that time did not permit of their being so equipped before the winter set in; and that, to provide a force of 5,000 men (the strength considered necessary by the Government), the frontier would have to be dangerously weakened. Moreover, he gave it as his opinion that it would be better to postpone operations until the spring, when everything could be perfectly arranged. Subsequent events proved how sound was this advice. But before proceeding with my narrative it will be as well to explain the circumstances with led the authorities to undertake this expedition.

Sir Hugh had nothing to do with sending out this expedition; it had been decided by the Government of India in consultation with the Lieutenant-Governor of the Punjab. When the Commander-in-Chief was contacted, he expressed his disapproval of the proposal and detailed his views to the Government, highlighting the impracticality of entering a challenging and uncharted territory without the troops being properly equipped with transport, supplies, and backup ammunition. He noted that there wasn’t enough time to get everything ready before winter set in, and that to provide a force of 5,000 men (the size deemed necessary by the Government), the frontier would have to be dangerously weakened. Additionally, he believed it would be better to delay operations until spring when everything could be adequately arranged. Subsequent events showed how solid this advice was. But before continuing with my story, it's important to explain the circumstances that led the authorities to undertake this expedition.

In 1857, when all our resources were required to quell internal tumult, the Hindustani fanatics1 took the opportunity to stir up disturbances all along the Yusafzai frontier of the Peshawar district, and, aided by the rebel sepoys who had fled to them for protection, they made raids upon our border, and committed all kinds of atrocities. We were obliged, therefore, to send an expedition against them in 1858, which resulted in their being driven from their stronghold, Sitana, and in the neighbouring tribes being bound down to prevent them reoccupying that place. Three years later the fanatics returned to their former haunts and built up a new settlement at Malka; the old troubles recommenced, and for two years they had been allowed to go on raiding, murdering, and attacking our outposts with impunity. It was, therefore, quite time that measures should be taken to effectually rid the frontier of these disturbers of the peace, provided such measures could have been decided upon early enough in the year to ensure success.

In 1857, when all our resources were needed to handle internal unrest, the Hindustani fanatics1 took the chance to create disturbances along the Yusafzai frontier of the Peshawar district. With the help of rebellious sepoys who sought refuge with them, they launched raids on our border and committed various atrocities. As a result, we had to send an expedition against them in 1858, which led to them being driven from their stronghold, Sitana, and the neighboring tribes being restrained to prevent their return to that area. Three years later, the fanatics came back to their old territories and established a new settlement at Malka; the old issues resurfaced, and for two years they operated freely, raiding, killing, and attacking our outposts without consequence. It was, therefore, high time to take effective measures to rid the frontier of these troublemakers, assuming such measures could be decided upon early enough in the year to guarantee success.

The Akhund of Swat The Punjab Government advocated the despatch of a very strong[Page 282] force. Accordingly, two columns were employed, the base of one being in the Peshawar valley, and that of the other in Hazara. The Peshawar column was to move by the Umbeyla Pass, the Buner frontier, and the Chamla valley, thus operating on the enemy's line of retreat. This route would not have been chosen, had not Chamberlain been assured by the civil authorities that no hostility need be feared from the Bunerwals, even if their country had to be entered, as they had given no trouble for fifteen years, and their spiritual head, the Akhund of Swat,2 had no sympathy with the fanatics. It was not, therefore, considered necessary to warn the Buner people of our approach until preparations were completed; indeed, it was thought unadvisable to do so, as it was important to keep the proposed line of advance secret. The strength of the force was 6,000 men, with 19 guns, but to make up these numbers the stations in Upper India had to be considerably weakened, and there was no reserve nearer than Lahore.

The Akhund of Swat The Punjab Government supported sending a very strong[Page 282] force. As a result, two groups were formed, one based in the Peshawar valley and the other in Hazara. The Peshawar group was to advance through the Umbeyla Pass, the Buner frontier, and the Chamla valley, effectively targeting the enemy's escape route. This path wouldn’t have been selected if Chamberlain hadn't been reassured by the civil authorities that there was no need to fear hostility from the Bunerwals, even if we had to enter their territory, since they hadn't caused any trouble for fifteen years and their spiritual leader, the Akhund of Swat,2 lacked any sympathy for the extremists. Therefore, it wasn't deemed necessary to notify the Buner people of our advance until preparations were complete; in fact, it was thought best not to do so, as maintaining the secrecy of the planned route was essential. The force consisted of 6,000 men and 19 guns, but to achieve these numbers, the stations in Upper India had to be significantly weakened, and there were no reserves closer than Lahore.

The Peshawar column3 being all ready for a start, a Proclamation was forwarded to the Buner and other neighbouring tribes, informing them of the object of the expedition, and stating that there was no intention of interfering with them or their possessions.

The Peshawar column3 was all set to begin, and a Proclamation was sent to the Buner and other nearby tribes, letting them know the purpose of the expedition and assuring them that there was no plan to interfere with them or their property.

On the following morning, the 20th October, the Umbeyla Pass was entered, and by noon the kotal4 was reached without any resistance to speak of; but, from information brought in, it was evident that any further advance would be stoutly opposed. The road turned out to be much more difficult than had been anticipated, and the hurriedly collected transport proved unequal to the strain. Not a single baggage animal, except the ammunition mules, got up that night; indeed, it was not until the morning of the 22nd—more than forty-eight hours after they started—that the rear guard reached the kotal, a distance of only six miles. As soon as it arrived Colonel Alex. Taylor, R.E., was sent off with a body of Cavalry, under Lieutenant-Colonel Probyn, to reconnoitre the road in front. The delay in reaching the top of the pass had given the tribes time to collect, and when the reconnoitring[Page 283] party entered the Chamla valley the Bunerwals could be seen about two miles and a half off, occupying in force the range which separates Buner and Chamla. Whatever may have been their first intention, they apparently could not resist the temptation to try and cut off this small body of Cavalry, for our horsemen on their return journey found a large number of the trusted Buner tribe attempting to block the mouth of the pass. A charge was made, but mounted men could not do much in such a hilly country; the proceedings of the Bunerwals, however, had been observed from the kotal, and Major Brownlow,5 with some of his own regiment (the 20th Punjab Infantry), was sent to the assistance of the party. A hand-to-hand fight ensued, and the enemy pressed our troops closely on their way back, coming right in amongst them with the utmost daring.

On the morning of October 20th, the Umbeyla Pass was entered, and by noon the kotal4 was reached without any significant resistance; however, information received indicated that any further advancement would be strongly opposed. The road turned out to be much more challenging than expected, and the hastily gathered transport couldn't handle the pressure. Not a single baggage animal, except for the ammunition mules, made it up that night; in fact, it wasn't until the morning of the 22nd—more than forty-eight hours after they began—that the rear guard reached the kotal, which was only six miles away. As soon as they arrived, Colonel Alex. Taylor, R.E., was sent off with a group of Cavalry, led by Lieutenant-Colonel Probyn, to scout the road ahead. The delay in reaching the top of the pass had given the tribes time to gather, and when the reconnaissance party entered the Chamla valley, the Bunerwals could be seen about two and a half miles away, strongly positioned on the range that separates Buner and Chamla. Whatever their initial intentions were, they apparently couldn't resist the temptation to try to cut off this small Cavalry unit, as our horsemen on their return found a large number of the trusted Buner tribe trying to block the mouth of the pass. A charge was made, but mounted troops couldn't do much in such hilly terrain; however, the Bunerwals' actions had been observed from the kotal, and Major Brownlow,5 with some of his own regiment (the 20th Punjab Infantry), was sent to assist the party. A hand-to-hand fight broke out, and the enemy pressed our troops closely on their way back, daringly coming right into their midst.

There was now brought in to the Commissioner by a spy the copy of a letter from the Hindustani fanatics, addressed to the Bunerwals, telling them not to be taken in by our assurances that our only object was to punish the fanatics, for our real intentions were to annex Chamla, Buner, and Swat. This letter no doubt aroused the suspicions of the tribes, and, encouraged by the slowness of our movements, they all joined against us from Buner, Mahaban, and the Black Mountain.

There was a spy who brought a copy of a letter from the Hindustani extremists to the Commissioner. This letter was addressed to the Bunerwals, warning them not to believe our claims that we only wanted to punish the extremists, as our true goal was to annex Chamla, Buner, and Swat. This letter certainly raised the tribes' suspicions, and seeing our slow progress, they all united against us from Buner, Mahaban, and the Black Mountain.

On the 23rd large bodies of men with numerous standards were to be seen approaching the mouth of the pass, and a day or two later a report was received that our foes were to have the support of the Akhund of Swat, which meant a most formidable accession of moral as well as material strength, and put a stop, for the time being, to any possibility of a successful advance being made with the force at Chamberlain's disposal.

On the 23rd, we saw large groups of men with many flags approaching the entrance of the pass. A day or two later, we received news that our enemies would have the backing of the Akhund of Swat, which meant a significant boost in both moral and physical strength. This effectively halted any chances of a successful advance with the forces Chamberlain had available for the time being.

The Eagle's Nest and 'Crag piquet' The position occupied by our troops was enclosed on the left (west) by the Guru Mountain, which separates Umbeyla from Buner, and on the right (east) by a range of hills, not quite so high. The main piquet on the Guru occupied a position upon some precipitous cliffs known as the Eagle's Nest, while that on the right was designated the 'Crag piquet.' The Eagle's Nest was only large enough to accommodate 110 men, so 120 more were placed under the shelter of some rocks at its base, and the remainder of the troops told off for the defence of the left piquet were drawn up on and about a rocky knoll, 400 feet west of the Eagle's Nest.

The Eagle's Nest and 'Crag piquet' Our troops were positioned with the Guru Mountain on the left (west), which separates Umbeyla from Buner, and a slightly lower range of hills on the right (east). The main outpost on the Guru was located on some steep cliffs known as the Eagle's Nest, while the one on the right was called the 'Crag piquet.' The Eagle's Nest could only hold 110 men, so an additional 120 were placed under some rocks at its base, and the rest of the troops assigned to defend the left outpost were stationed on and around a rocky knoll, 400 feet west of the Eagle's Nest.

Some 2,000 of the enemy occupied a breastwork on the crest of a spur of the Guru Mountain; and about noon on the 26th they moved down, and with loud shouts attacked the Eagle's Nest. Their matchlock men posted themselves to the greatest advantage in a wood, and opened a galling fire upon our defences, while their swordsmen made a determined advance. The nature of the ground prevented our guns[Page 284] from being brought to bear upon the assailants, and they were thus able to get across the open space in front of the piquet, and plant their standards close under its parapet. For some considerable time they remained in this position, all our efforts to dislodge them proving of no avail. Eventually, however, they were forced to give way, and were driven up the hill, leaving the ground covered with their dead, and a great many wounded, who were taken into our hospitals and carefully treated, while a still greater number were carried off by their friends. Our losses were, 2 British officers, 1 Native officer, and 26 men killed; and 2 British officers, 7 Native officers, and 86 men wounded.

About 2,000 enemy soldiers took position on a trench at the top of a ridge on Guru Mountain. Around noon on the 26th, they charged down and, shouting loudly, attacked the Eagle's Nest. Their matchlock soldiers positioned themselves advantageously in the woods and fired relentlessly at our defenses, while their swordsmen advanced decisively. The terrain prevented our artillery[Page 284] from effectively targeting the attackers, allowing them to cross the open area in front of our outpost and plant their flags right below our parapet. They held this position for quite a while, and despite our attempts to drive them out, we were unsuccessful. Eventually, they were forced to retreat up the hill, leaving the ground strewn with their dead and many wounded, who were taken into our hospitals for careful treatment, while even more were carried away by their comrades. Our casualties included 2 British officers, 1 Native officer, and 26 men killed; and 2 British officers, 7 Native officers, and 86 men wounded.

The day following the fight the Bunerwals were told they might carry away their dead, and we took advantage of their acceptance of this permission to reason with them as to the uselessness of an unnecessary sacrifice of their tribesmen, which would be the certain result of further opposition to us. Their demeanour was courteous, and they conversed freely with General Chamberlain and Colonel Reynell Taylor, the Commissioner, but they made it evident that they were determined not to give in.

The day after the fight, the Bunerwals were informed that they could take away their dead. We used this opportunity to reason with them about the pointless loss of their tribesmen, which would definitely happen if they continued to oppose us. They were polite and spoke openly with General Chamberlain and Colonel Reynell Taylor, the Commissioner, but it was clear that they were set on not backing down.

Our position had now become rather awkward; there was a combination against us of all the tribes between the Indus and the Kabul rivers, and their numbers could not be less than 15,000 armed men. Mutual animosities were for the time allowed to remain in abeyance, and the tribes all flocked to fight under the Akhund's standard in the interests of their common faith. Moreover, there was trouble in the rear from the people along the Yusafzai border, who assisted the enemy by worrying our lines of communication. Under these changed conditions, and with such an inadequate force, Chamberlain came to the conclusion that, for the moment, he could only remain on the defensive, and trust to time, to the discouragement which repeated unsuccessful attacks were sure to produce on the enemy, and to the gradual decrease of their numbers, to break up the combination against us; for, as these tribesmen only bring with them the quantity of food they are able to carry, as soon as it is finished they are bound to suspend operations till more can be procured.

Our situation had become pretty awkward; all the tribes between the Indus and Kabul rivers were teaming up against us, and their numbers were at least 15,000 armed men. Old grudges were put aside for the time being, and the tribes all rallied to fight under the Akhund's banner for their shared faith. Additionally, there was trouble from the people along the Yusafzai border, who were helping the enemy by disrupting our communication lines. Given these new circumstances and such a small force, Chamberlain concluded that, for now, he could only play defense, relying on time, the discouragement that would come from repeated unsuccessful attacks on the enemy, and the gradual decrease of their numbers to break up the alliance against us; since these tribesmen only brought the amount of food they could carry, once it ran out, they would have to pause operations until they could gather more.

For three weeks almost daily attacks were made on our position; the enemy fought magnificently, some of them being killed inside our batteries, and twice they gained possession of the 'Crag piquet,' the key of the position, which it was essential should be retaken at all hazards. On the second occasion General Chamberlain himself led the attacking party, and was so severely wounded that he was obliged to relinquish the command of the force.

For three weeks, there were almost daily attacks on our position; the enemy fought exceptionally well, with some of them getting killed inside our batteries. Twice, they managed to take control of the 'Crag piquet,' which was crucial for our position and needed to be retaken at all costs. On the second occasion, General Chamberlain led the assault himself and was so seriously injured that he had to give up command of the force.

The Lieutenant-Governor of the Punjab, being convinced that reinforcements were necessary, in consultation with Colonels Durand6 and Norman (the Foreign and Military Secretaries, who had come to[Page 285] Lahore to meet the Viceroy), and without waiting for the sanction of the Commander-in-Chief, ordered to the frontier the three regiments which had been detailed for the Viceroy's camp,7 as well as the 93rd Highlanders, then at Sialkot; and when Sir Hugh Rose on his arrival at Lahore heard of the heavy losses the expeditionary force had sustained, and of General Chamberlain being hors de combat from his wound, further reinforcements from every direction were hurried to the front. Subsequently, however, it became a question whether the troops should not be withdrawn altogether, and the punishment of the fanatics given up, the Government of India and the Punjab Government being completely in accord in favouring this view, while the Commissioner of Peshawar, Major James (who had succeeded Reynell Taylor),8 and Sir Hugh Rose were as strongly opposed to a retrograde movement. The Commander-in-Chief pointed out to the Government that the loss of prestige and power we must sustain by retiring from the Umbeyla Pass would be more disastrous, both from a military and political point of view, than anything that could happen save the destruction of the force itself, and that General Chamberlain, on whose sound judgment he could rely, was quite sure that a retirement was unnecessary.

The Lieutenant-Governor of Punjab, believing that reinforcements were needed, consulted with Colonels Durand6 and Norman (the Foreign and Military Secretaries, who had come to[Page 285] Lahore to meet the Viceroy) and, without waiting for the Commander-in-Chief's approval, sent three regiments that had been assigned to the Viceroy's camp,7 along with the 93rd Highlanders, who were in Sialkot, to the frontier. When Sir Hugh Rose arrived in Lahore and learned about the significant losses the expeditionary force had faced and that General Chamberlain was out of action due to his injury, further reinforcements were quickly sent to the front from all directions. However, it later became a matter of discussion whether the troops should be completely withdrawn and the punishment of the fanatics abandoned, with both the Government of India and the Punjab Government fully in agreement on this viewpoint. Meanwhile, the Commissioner of Peshawar, Major James (who had replaced Reynell Taylor),8 and Sir Hugh Rose were strongly against a retreat. The Commander-in-Chief informed the Government that the loss of prestige and power from pulling back from the Umbeyla Pass would be more damaging, both militarily and politically, than anything that could happen short of the destruction of the force itself, and he noted that General Chamberlain, whose judgment he trusted, believed that a retreat was unnecessary.

The death of Lord Elgin Unfortunately at this time the Viceroy died at Dharmsala, and the question remained in abeyance pending the arrival of Sir William Denison, Governor of Madras, who was coming round to take over the reins of Government until a successor to Lord Elgin should be sent from England.

The passing of Lord Elgin Unfortunately, at this time, the Viceroy passed away in Dharmsala, and the decision was put on hold until Sir William Denison, the Governor of Madras, arrived to take over the Government until a successor for Lord Elgin could be sent from England.

In the meantime Sir Hugh Rose was most anxious to obtain exact information respecting our position at Umbeyla, the means of operating from it, the nature of the ground—in fact, all details which could only be satisfactorily obtained by sending someone to report on the situation, with whom he had had personal communication regarding the points about which he required to be enlightened. He therefore determined to despatch two officers on special service, whose duty it would be to put the Commander-in-Chief in possession of all the facts of the case; accordingly, Colonel Adye9 (Deputy-Adjutant-General of Royal Artillery) and I were ordered to proceed to Umbeyla without delay.

In the meantime, Sir Hugh Rose was very eager to get accurate information about our situation at Umbeyla, the ways to operate from there, the type of terrain—basically, all the details that could only be properly gathered by sending someone to report on the situation, with whom he had personally talked about the points he needed clarification on. He decided to send two officers on special assignment, whose job would be to provide the Commander-in-Chief with all the relevant facts; as a result, Colonel Adye9 (Deputy-Adjutant-General of Royal Artillery) and I were ordered to head to Umbeyla without delay.

Adye proved a most charming travelling companion, clever and entertaining, and I think we both enjoyed our journey. We reached the pass on the 25th November.

Adye was a really charming travel buddy, smart and fun to be around, and I think we both enjoyed our trip. We got to the pass on November 25th.

Loyalty of our Pathan soldiers There had been no fighting for some days, and most of the wounded had been removed. Sir Neville Chamberlain was still in camp, and I was sorry to find him suffering greatly from his wound. We were much interested in going over the piquets and listening to the story of [Page 286] the different attacks made upon them, which had evidently been conducted by the enemy with as much skill as courage.10 The loyalty of our Native soldiers struck me as having been most remarkable. Not a single desertion had occurred, although all the Native regiments engaged, with the exception of the Gurkhas and Punjab Pioneers, had amongst them members of the several tribes we were fighting, and many of our soldiers were even closely related to some of the hostile tribesmen; on one occasion a young Buner sepoy actually recognized his own father amongst the enemy's dead when the fight was over.11

Loyalty of our Pathan troops There hadn’t been any fighting for a few days, and most of the wounded had been evacuated. Sir Neville Chamberlain was still in camp, and I was saddened to see him suffering so much from his injury. We were very interested in checking out the pickets and hearing about the different attacks against them, which had clearly been carried out by the enemy with as much skill as courage.10 The loyalty of our Native soldiers really impressed me. Not a single one had deserted, even though all the Native regiments involved, except for the Gurkhas and Punjab Pioneers, included members from the tribes we were fighting, and many of our soldiers were even closely related to some of the enemy tribesmen; once, a young Buner sepoy recognized his own father among the enemy's dead when the battle was over.11

We listened to many tales of the gallantry of the British officers. The names of Brownlow, Keyes,12 and Hughes13 were on everyone's lips, and Brownlow's defence of the Eagle's Nest on the 26th October, and of the 'Crag piquet' on the 12th November, spoke volumes for his coolness and pluck, and for the implicit faith reposed in him by the men of the 20th Punjab Infantry, the regiment he had raised in 1857 when but a subaltern. In his official report the General remarked that 'to Major Brownlow's determination and personal example he attributed the preservation of the "Crag piquet."' And Keyes's recapture of the same piquet was described by Sir Neville as 'a most brilliant exploit, stamping Major Keyes as an officer possessing some of the highest military qualifications.' Brownlow and Keyes were both recommended for the Victoria Cross.

We heard many stories about the bravery of the British officers. The names of Brownlow, Keyes,12 and Hughes13 were on everyone's lips, and Brownlow's defense of the Eagle's Nest on October 26th and of the 'Crag piquet' on November 12th really showed his calmness and courage, as well as the trust that the men of the 20th Punjab Infantry had in him, the regiment he founded in 1857 when he was just a subaltern. In his official report, the General noted that he credited 'Major Brownlow's determination and personal example' for the preservation of the "Crag piquet." Keyes's recapture of the same piquet was described by Sir Neville as 'a most brilliant exploit, marking Major Keyes as an officer with some of the highest military qualifications.' Both Brownlow and Keyes were recommended for the Victoria Cross.

The Enemy Disheartened We (Adye and I) had no difficulty in making up our minds as to[Page 287] the course which ought to be taken. The column was daily being strengthened by the arrival of reinforcements, and although the combination of the tribesmen was still formidable, the enemy were showing signs of being disheartened by their many losses, and of a wish to come to terms.

The Enemy Demoralized Adye and I had no trouble deciding on[Page 287] the right course of action. The column was getting stronger every day with the arrival of reinforcements, and even though the tribesmen were still a formidable force, the enemy was starting to show signs of discouragement due to their many losses and seemed eager to negotiate a settlement.

Having consulted the civil and military authorities on the spot, we informed the Commander-in-Chief that they were of opinion a withdrawal would be most unwise, and that it was hoped that on the arrival of General Garvock14 (Chamberlain's successor) an advance would be made into the Chamla valley, for there would then be a sufficient number of troops to undertake an onward move, as well as to hold the present position, which, as we told the Chief, was one of the strongest we had ever seen.

Having talked to the local civil and military authorities, we informed the Commander-in-Chief that they believed a withdrawal would be a bad idea. They hoped that when General Garvock14 (Chamberlain's successor) arrived, there would be an advance into the Chamla valley, as there would then be enough troops to make a move forward and also to secure the current position, which, as we mentioned to the Chief, was one of the strongest we had ever encountered.

Sir William Denison reached Calcutta on the 2nd December. A careful study of the correspondence in connexion with the Umbeyla expedition satisfied him that the Commander-in-Chief's views were correct, and that a retirement would be unwise.

Sir William Denison arrived in Calcutta on December 2nd. A thorough review of the correspondence related to the Umbeyla expedition convinced him that the Commander-in-Chief's opinions were accurate, and that a withdrawal would be unwise.

Sir Hugh Rose had previously requested to be allowed to personally conduct the operations, and in anticipation of the Government acceding to his request, he had sent a light camp to Hasan Abdal, from which place he intended to push on to Umbeyla; and with the object of collecting troops near the frontier, where they would be available as a reserve should the expedition not be soon and satisfactorily settled, he desired me to select an encamping-ground between Rawal Pindi and Attock suitable for 10,000 men.

Sir Hugh Rose had previously asked to be allowed to personally lead the operations, and in expectation of the Government agreeing to his request, he had sent a light camp to Hasan Abdal, where he planned to move on to Umbeyla. To gather troops near the border, making them available as a reserve in case the expedition wasn't resolved quickly and satisfactorily, he asked me to choose a campsite between Rawal Pindi and Attock suitable for 10,000 men.

Leaving Adye in the pass, I started for Attock, where I spent three days riding about in search of a promising site for the camp. I settled upon a place near Hasan Abdal, which, however, was not in the end made use of. The people of the country were very helpful to me; indeed, when they heard I had been a friend of John Nicholson, they seemed to think they could not do enough for me, and delighted in talking of their old leader, whom they declared to be the greatest man they had ever known.

Leaving Adye in the pass, I headed for Attock, where I spent three days riding around looking for a good spot for the camp. I chose a location near Hasan Abdal, which, in the end, wasn’t used. The locals were really helpful to me; when they found out I had been a friend of John Nicholson, they felt they couldn't do enough for me and loved sharing stories about their former leader, whom they claimed was the greatest person they had ever known.

Bunerwals show signs of submission On my return I marched up the pass with the Rev. W. G. Cowie15 and Probyn, who, with 400 Cavalry, had been ordered to the front to be in readiness for a move into the Chamla valley. James, the Commissioner, had been working to detach the Bunerwals from the combination against us, and on the afternoon of our arrival a deputation of their headmen arrived in camp, and before their departure the next morning they promised to accompany a force proceeding to destroy Malka, and to expel the Hindustani fanatics from the Buner country.

Bunerwals show signs of submission On my way back, I headed up the pass with Rev. W. G. Cowie15 and Probyn, who, along with 400 cavalry, had been sent to the front to be ready for a move into the Chamla Valley. James, the Commissioner, had been working to separate the Bunerwals from the coalition against us, and on the afternoon of our arrival, a delegation of their leaders came to our camp. Before leaving the next morning, they promised to join a force heading to take down Malka and to drive out the Hindustani fanatics from the Buner area.

Later, however, a messenger came in to say they could not fulfil their[Page 288] promise, being unable to resist the pressure brought to bear upon them by their co-religionists. The man further reported that large numbers of fresh tribesmen had appeared on the scene, and that it was intended to attack us on the 16th. He advised the Commissioner to take the initiative, and gave him to understand that if we advanced the Bunerwals would stand aloof.

Later, however, a messenger came in to say they could not fulfill their[Page 288] promise, as they couldn’t resist the pressure from their fellow believers. The man also reported that many new tribal members had shown up, and that they planned to attack us on the 16th. He advised the Commissioner to take the lead and made it clear that if we moved forward, the Bunerwals would stay out of it.

Sir Hugh Rose had been accorded permission to take command of the troops in the field, and had sent word to General Garvock not 'to attempt any operations until further orders.' James, however, thinking that the situation demanded immediate action, as disturbances had broken out in other parts of the Peshawar valley, deprecated delay, and pressed Garvock to advance, telling him that a successful fight would put matters straight. Garvock consented to follow the Commissioner's advice, and arranged to move on the following day.

Sir Hugh Rose had been given permission to take command of the troops in the field, and he instructed General Garvock not to start any operations until further notice. However, James believed the situation required immediate action since unrest had erupted in other areas of the Peshawar valley. He criticized the delay and urged Garvock to advance, telling him that a successful battle would resolve the issues. Garvock agreed to follow the Commissioner’s advice and planned to move the next day.

The force was divided into three columns. The first and second—consisting of about 4,800 men, and commanded respectively by Colonel W. Turner, C.B.,16 and Lieutenant-Colonel Wilde, C.B.—were to form the attacking party, while the third, about 3,000 strong, under the command of Lieutenant-Colonel Vaughan,17 was to be left for the protection of the camp.

The force was split into three groups. The first and second groups—made up of about 4,800 men and led by Colonel W. Turner, C.B.,16 and Lieutenant-Colonel Wilde, C.B.—were meant to be the attacking force, while the third group, around 3,000 strong, under the leadership of Lieutenant-Colonel Vaughan,17 was assigned to protect the camp.



THE STORMING OF THE CONICAL HILL AT UMBEYLA BY THE 101ST FOOT (BENGAL FUSILIERS)

THE STORMING OF THE CONICAL HILL AT UMBEYLA BY THE 101ST FOOT (BENGAL FUSILIERS)

From a sketch by General Sir John Adye, G.C.B., R.A.

THE STORMING OF THE CONICAL HILL AT UMBEYLA BY THE 101ST FOOT (BENGAL FUSILIERS)

THE STORMING OF THE CONICAL HILL AT UMBEYLA BY THE 101ST FOOT (BENGAL FUSILIERS)

Based on a sketch by General Sir John Adye, G.C.B., R.A.



The Conical Hill At daybreak, on the 15th, the troops for the advance, unencumbered by tents or baggage, and each man carrying two days' rations, assembled at the base of the 'Crag piquet.' Turner, an excellent officer, who during the short time he had been at Umbeyla had inspired great confidence by his soldierly qualities, had on the previous afternoon reconnoitred to the right of the camp, and had discovered that about 4,000 men were holding the village of Lalu, from which it was necessary to dislodge them before Umbeyla could be attacked. On being told to advance, therefore, Turner moved off in the direction of Lalu, and, driving the enemy's piquets before him, occupied the heights overlooking the valley, out of which rose, immediately in front about 200 yards off, a conical hill which hid Lalu from view. This hill, which was crowded with Hindustani fanatics and their Pathan allies, was a most formidable position; the sides were precipitous, and the summit was strengthened by sangars.18 No further move could be made until the enemy were dislodged, so Turner lined the heights all round with his Infantry, and opened fire with his Mountain guns. Meanwhile, Wilde's column had cleared off the enemy from the front of the camp, and formed up on Turner's left. On the advance being sounded, Turner's Infantry rushed down the slopes, and in ten minutes could be seen driving the enemy from the heights on his right; at the same time the 101st Fusiliers, the leading regiment of Wilde's column,[Page 289] made straight for the top of the conical hill, and, under cover of the fire from the Mountain guns of both columns, and supported by the Guides, 4th Gurkhas, and 23rd Pioneers, they climbed the almost perpendicular sides. When near the top a short halt was made to give the men time to get their breath; the signal being then given, amidst a shower of bullets and huge stones, the position was stormed, and carried at the point of the bayonet. It was a grand sight as Adye and I watched it from Hughes's battery; but we were considerably relieved when we perceived the enemy flying down the sides of the hill, and heard the cheers of the gallant Fusiliers as they stood victorious on the highest peak.

Conical Hill At dawn on the 15th, the troops for the advance, not weighed down by tents or luggage and each man carrying two days' worth of food, gathered at the base of the 'Crag piquet.' Turner, a skilled officer who had quickly earned a lot of trust during his short time at Umbeyla, had scouted to the right of the camp the day before and found that around 4,000 men were occupying the village of Lalu. They needed to be driven out before Umbeyla could be attacked. When told to advance, Turner headed towards Lalu and, pushing the enemy's outposts back, took the heights overlooking the valley, where a conical hill about 200 yards in front blocked the view of Lalu. This hill was filled with Hindustani extremists and their Pathan allies, making it a tough position to assault; its sides were steep, and its summit was fortified with sangars.18 No further action could be taken until the enemy was removed, so Turner positioned his Infantry along the heights and opened fire with his Mountain guns. Meanwhile, Wilde's column had cleared the enemy from in front of the camp and set up on Turner's left. When the advance was sounded, Turner's Infantry charged down the slopes and within ten minutes were seen pushing the enemy from the heights on his right; at the same time, the 101st Fusiliers, the leading regiment of Wilde's column,[Page 289] went straight for the top of the conical hill. They climbed the almost sheer sides, shielded by the gunfire from the Mountain guns of both columns and supported by the Guides, 4th Gurkhas, and 23rd Pioneers. Near the top, they paused briefly to catch their breath; once the signal was given, amidst a hail of bullets and heavy stones, they stormed the position and took it by bayonet. It was an impressive sight as Adye and I watched it from Hughes's battery, and we felt a great sense of relief when we saw the enemy fleeing down the sides of the hill and heard the cheers of the brave Fusiliers celebrating their victory on the highest peak.

Now that the enemy were on the run it was the time to press them, and this Turner did so effectually that the leading men of his column entered Lalu simultaneously with the last of the fugitives. The rapidity of this movement was so unexpected that it threw the enemy inside the walls into confusion; they made no stand, and were soon in full retreat towards Umbeyla and the passes leading into Buner.

Now that the enemy was on the run, it was the right time to chase them down, and Turner did this so effectively that the lead men in his group entered Lalu just as the last of the fugitives were leaving. The speed of this movement was so surprising that it threw the enemy inside the walls into chaos; they didn't put up a fight and quickly retreated toward Umbeyla and the routes leading into Buner.

While affairs were thus prospering on our right, the enemy, apparently imagining we were too busy to think of our left, came in large numbers from the village of Umbeyla, threatening the camp and the communications of the second column. Wilde, however, was prepared for them, and held his ground until reinforced by Turner, when he made a forward movement. The Guides, and detachments of the 5th Gurkhas and 3rd Sikhs, charged down one spur, and the 101st down another; the enemy were driven off with great slaughter, leaving a standard in the hands of the Gurkhas, and exposing themselves in their flight to Turner's guns. During the day they returned, and, gathering on the heights, made several unsuccessful attacks upon our camp. At last, about 2 p.m., Brownlow, who was in command of the right defences, assumed the offensive, and, aided by Keyes, moved out of the breastworks and, by a succession of well-executed charges, completely cleared the whole front of the position, and drove the tribesmen with great loss into the plain below.

While things were going well on our right, the enemy, thinking we were too busy to notice our left, came in large numbers from the village of Umbeyla, threatening the camp and the communications of the second column. Wilde, however, was ready for them and held his position until Turner arrived to reinforce him, at which point he moved forward. The Guides, along with detachments from the 5th Gurkhas and 3rd Sikhs, charged down one slope, while the 101st charged down another; the enemy was driven off with heavy casualties, leaving a standard in the hands of the Gurkhas and exposing themselves in their retreat to Turner's artillery. During the day, they came back and gathered on the heights, launching several unsuccessful attacks on our camp. Finally, around 2 p.m., Brownlow, who was in charge of the right defenses, took the initiative and, with help from Keyes, moved out of the breastworks and, through a series of well-executed charges, completely cleared the entire front of the position, pushing the tribesmen with significant losses into the plain below.

All opposition having now ceased, and the foe being in full retreat, the force bivouacked for the night. We had 16 killed and 67 wounded; while our opponents admitted to 400 killed and wounded.

All opposition has now stopped, and the enemy is in full retreat, so the troops set up camp for the night. We had 16 killed and 67 wounded, while our opponents reported 400 killed and wounded.

The next morning we were joined by Probyn with 200 sabres of the 11th Bengal Lancers and the same number of the Guides; and after a hasty breakfast the order was given to march into the Chamla valley. My duty was to accompany the Mountain batteries and show them the way. As we debouched into comparatively open country, the enemy appeared on a ridge which completely covered our approach to Umbeyla, and we could descry many standards flying on the most prominent points. The road was so extremely difficult that it was half-past two o'clock before the whole force was clear of the hills.

The next morning, Probyn joined us with 200 soldiers from the 11th Bengal Lancers and the same number from the Guides. After a quick breakfast, we received orders to march into the Chamla valley. My job was to guide the Mountain batteries and show them the way. As we moved into more open terrain, the enemy showed up on a ridge that completely blocked our approach to Umbeyla, and we could see many flags waving on the most noticeable spots. The road was so challenging that it was half-past two before the entire force was out of the hills.

General Garvock, having made a careful reconnaissance of the[Page 290] enemy's position, which was of great strength and peculiarly capable of defence, had decided to turn their right, a movement which was to be entrusted to the second column, and I was told to inform Turner that he must try and cut them off from the Buner Pass as they retreated. I found Turner close to Umbeyla and delivered my message. He moved forward at once with the 23rd Pioneers and a wing of the 32nd Pioneers in line, supported by the second wing, having in reserve a wing of the 7th Royal Fusiliers.

General Garvock, after carefully assessing the enemy's position, which was strong and well-defended, decided to flank their right. This task was assigned to the second column, and I was instructed to inform Turner that he needed to try to cut them off from the Buner Pass as they retreated. I found Turner near Umbeyla and delivered my message. He immediately advanced with the 23rd Pioneers and one wing of the 32nd Pioneers in line, supported by the second wing, while keeping a wing of the 7th Royal Fusiliers in reserve.

Umbeyla in Flames When we had passed the village of Umbeyla, which was in flames, having been set fire to by our Cavalry, the wing of the 32nd was brought up in prolongation of our line to the right. The advance was continued to within about 800 yards of the Buner Pass, when Turner, observing a large body of the enemy threatening his left flank, immediately sent two companies of the Royal Fusiliers in that direction. Just at that moment a band of Ghazis furiously attacked the left flank, which was at a disadvantage, having got into broken ground covered with low jungle. In a few seconds five of the Pioneer British officers were on the ground, one killed and four wounded; numbers of the men were knocked over, and the rest, staggered by the suddenness of the onslaught, fell back on their reserve, where they found the needed support, for the Fusiliers stood as firm as a rock. At the critical moment when the Ghazis made their charge, Wright, the Assistant-Adjutant-General, and I, being close by, rushed in amongst the Pioneers and called on them to follow us; as we were personally known to the men of both regiments, they quickly pulled themselves together and responded to our efforts to rally them. It was lucky they did so, for had there been any delay or hesitation, the enemy, who thronged the slopes above us, would certainly have come down in great numbers, and we should have had a most difficult task. As it was, we were entirely successful in repulsing the Ghazis, not a man of whom escaped. We counted 200 of the enemy killed; our losses were comparatively slight—8 killed and 80 wounded.

Umbeyla on Fire After we passed the village of Umbeyla, which was on fire, set ablaze by our Cavalry, the 32nd’s wing extended our line to the right. We advanced to about 800 yards from the Buner Pass when Turner noticed a large group of the enemy threatening his left flank and immediately sent two companies of the Royal Fusiliers in that direction. At that moment, a group of Ghazis launched a fierce attack on the left flank, which was at a disadvantage due to the broken ground covered in low jungle. Within seconds, five British Pioneer officers were down, with one killed and four wounded; many soldiers were knocked over, and the rest, shocked by the sudden attack, fell back to their reserve, where they found the much-needed support, as the Fusiliers stood firm. At the critical moment of the Ghazis charge, Wright, the Assistant-Adjutant-General, and I, being nearby, rushed in among the Pioneers and urged them to follow us; since we were personally known to the men from both regiments, they quickly regrouped and responded to our calls to rally. It was fortunate they did, because if there had been any delay or hesitation, the enemy, who crowded the slopes above us, would have certainly come down in large numbers, making our task incredibly difficult. As it turned out, we were completely successful in repelling the Ghazis, with none of them escaping. We counted 200 of the enemy killed; our losses were relatively light—8 killed and 80 wounded.

We bivouacked for the night near the village of Umbeyla, and the next morning the Bunerwals, who, true to their word, had taken no part in the fighting on the 15th or 16th, came in and made their submission.

We camped for the night near the village of Umbeyla, and the next morning the Bunerwals, staying true to their word, came in and submitted without participating in the fighting on the 15th or 16th.

Bunerwals agree to our terms The question which now had to be decided was, whether a force fully equipped and strong enough to overcome all opposition should be sent to destroy the fanatic settlement of Malka, or whether the work of annihilation should be entrusted to the Bunerwals, witnessed by British officers. The latter course was eventually adopted, chiefly on account of the delay which provisioning a brigade would entail—a delay which the Commissioner was anxious to avoid—for although for the present the combination had broken up, and most of the tribesmen were dispersing to their homes, the Akhund of Swat and[Page 291] his followers were still hovering about in the neighbourhood, and inaction on our part would in all probability have led to a fresh gathering and renewed hostilities.

Bunerwals accept our terms The question that needed to be decided was whether to send a fully equipped and strong enough force to eliminate the fanatic settlement of Malka, or to let the Bunerwals handle the destruction, overseen by British officers. The second option was eventually chosen, mainly because of the delays that would come with provisioning a brigade—delays that the Commissioner was eager to avoid—since although the coalition had broken up for now and most of the tribesmen were returning home, the Akhund of Swat and his followers were still lingering in the area, and doing nothing on our part would likely lead to them regrouping and starting hostilities again.

The terms which were drawn up, and to which the Bunerwals agreed, were:

The terms that were created and to which the Bunerwals agreed were:

The breaking-up of the tribal gathering in the Buner Pass.

The breakup of the tribal gathering in the Buner Pass.

The destruction of Malka; those carrying out the work to be accompanied by British officers and such escort as might be considered necessary by us.

The destruction of Malka; those involved in the task will be accompanied by British officers and any necessary escort deemed appropriate by us.

The expulsion of the Hindustanis from the Buner, Chamla, and Amazai countries.

The removal of the Hindustanis from the Buner, Chamla, and Amazai regions.

And, finally, it was stipulated that the headmen of their tribe should be left as hostages until such time as the requirements should have been fulfilled.

And, finally, it was agreed that the leaders of their tribe would be held as hostages until the requirements were satisfied.

On the afternoon of Saturday, the 19th December, the little party of British officers who were to witness the destruction of Malka assembled at Umbeyla. Its members were Reynell Taylor (who was in charge), Alex. Taylor (Commanding Engineer), two Survey officers, Wright, Adye, and myself. Twenty-five Cavalry and 4 companies of the Guides Infantry, under four officers, formed our escort, and it had been arranged that we were to be accompanied by four leading Buner Khans, with 2,000 followers, who would be responsible for our safety, and destroy the fanatics' stronghold in our presence. Rain was falling heavily, but as all our arrangements had been made, and delay was considered undesirable, it was settled that we should make a start. It was rough travelling, and it was almost dark when we reached Kuria, only eight miles on our way, where we halted for the night, and where we had to remain the next day, as the Bunerwals declared they could not continue the journey until they had come to an understanding with the Amazais, in whose territory Malka was situated.

On the afternoon of Saturday, December 19th, the small group of British officers who were set to witness the destruction of Malka gathered at Umbeyla. The group included Reynell Taylor (in charge), Alex. Taylor (Commanding Engineer), two Survey officers, Wright, Adye, and me. We were escorted by twenty-five Cavalry and four companies of the Guides Infantry, led by four officers. It had been arranged that we would be joined by four prominent Buner Khans and their 2,000 followers, who would ensure our safety and handle the destruction of the fanatics' stronghold in front of us. It was raining heavily, but since all our plans were in place and any delay was considered unwise, we decided to set off. The travel was tough, and it was nearly dark by the time we reached Kuria, just eight miles into our journey, where we stopped for the night. We would have to stay there the next day because the Bunerwals said they couldn’t proceed until they reached an agreement with the Amazais, whose territory included Malka.

We had noticed on leaving Umbeyla that, instead of 2,000 Bunerwals, there were only about sixty or seventy at the most, and in reply to our repeated questions as to what had become of the remainder, we were told they would join us later on. It soon became evident, however, that no more were coming, and that the Khans thought it wiser to trust to their own influence with the Amazais rather than to intimidation.

We noticed when we left Umbeyla that instead of 2,000 Bunerwals, there were only about sixty or seventy at most. When we repeatedly asked what happened to the rest, we were told they would join us later. However, it quickly became clear that no one else was coming, and the Khans believed it was smarter to rely on their own influence with the Amazais rather than resort to intimidation.

We made a fresh start on the morning of the 21st. Malka was only twelve miles off, but the way was so difficult, and our guides stopped so often to consult with the numerous bands of armed men we came across, that it was sunset before we arrived at our destination.

We started fresh on the morning of the 21st. Malka was only twelve miles away, but the route was really tough, and our guides kept stopping to check in with the many groups of armed men we encountered, so it was sunset by the time we reached our destination.

Malka was perched on a spur of the Mahabun mountain, some distance below its highest peak. It was a strong, well-built place, with accommodation for about 1,500 people. The Amazais did not attempt to disguise their disgust at our presence in their country, and [Page 292] they gathered in knots, scowling and pointing at us, evidently discussing whether we should or should not be allowed to return.

Malka was situated on a ridge of the Mahabun mountain, a bit below its highest point. It was a solid, well-constructed location, with space for around 1,500 people. The Amazais didn’t try to hide their disdain for our presence in their land, and [Page 292] they formed clusters, frowning and pointing at us, clearly debating whether we should be allowed to go back or not.

Malka Destroyed The next morning Malka was set on fire, and the huge column of smoke which ascended from the burning village, and was visible for miles round, did not tend to allay the ill-feeling so plainly displayed. The Native officers of the Guides warned us that delay was dangerous, as the people were becoming momentarily more excited, and were vowing we should never return. It was no use, however, to attempt to make a move without the consent of the tribesmen, for we were a mere handful compared to the thousands who had assembled around Malka, and we were separated from our camp by twenty miles of most difficult country. Our position was no doubt extremely critical, and it was well for us that we had at our head such a cool, determined leader as Reynell Taylor. I greatly admired the calm, quiet manner in which he went up and spoke to the headmen, telling them that, the object of our visit having been accomplished, we were ready to retrace our steps. At this the Amazais became still further excited. They talked in loud tones, and gesticulated in true Pathan fashion, thronging round Taylor, who stood quite alone and perfectly self-possessed in the midst of the angry and dangerous-looking multitude. At this crisis the Bunerwals came to our rescue. The most influential of the tribe, a grey-bearded warrior, who had lost an eye and an arm in some tribal contest, forced his way through the rapidly increasing crowd to Taylor's side, and, raising his one arm to enjoin silence, delivered himself as follows: 'You are hesitating whether you will allow these English to return unmolested. You can, of course, murder them and their escort; but if you do, you must kill us Bunerwals first, for we have sworn to protect them, and we will do so with our lives.' This plucky speech produced a quieting effect, and taking advantage of the lull in the storm, we set out on our return journey; but evidently the tribesmen did not consider the question finally or satisfactorily settled, for they followed us the whole way to Kuria. The slopes of the hills on both sides were covered with men. Several times we were stopped while stormy discussions took place, and once, as we were passing through a narrow defile, an armed Amazai, waving a standard above his head, rushed down towards us. Fortunately for us, he was stopped by some of those less inimically disposed; for if he had succeeded in inciting anyone to fire a single shot, the desire for blood would quickly have spread, and in all probability not one of our party would have escaped.

Malka was destroyed The next morning, Malka was set on fire, and the billowing column of smoke rising from the burning village was visible for miles, fueling the already evident hostility. The local officers of the Guides warned us that delaying our departure was risky, as the crowd was getting increasingly agitated and claiming we would never make it back. However, it was pointless to try to leave without the tribesmen's approval because we were just a small group compared to the thousands gathered around Malka, and we were twenty miles away from our camp in extremely tough terrain. Our situation was undoubtedly precarious, but we were fortunate to have a calm and determined leader like Reynell Taylor. I admired the composed way he approached the area leaders, informing them that, with our purpose achieved, we were ready to head back. This only stirred the Amazais further. They spoke loudly and gestured animatedly in true Pathan style, surrounding Taylor, who stood confidently and alone amid the angry crowd. At this critical moment, the Bunerwals came to our aid. The most influential member of their tribe, a gray-bearded warrior who had lost an eye and an arm in a tribal conflict, pushed through the growing crowd to Taylor's side. Raising his single arm to call for silence, he stated, "You are debating whether to let these English leave in peace. You can certainly attack them and their escort, but if you do, you must kill us Bunerwals first, as we have vowed to protect them, and we will do so with our lives." This brave declaration calmed the crowd slightly, and taking advantage of the pause, we began our return journey. Yet, it was clear the tribesmen didn't see the matter as resolved, as they followed us all the way to Kuria. The hillsides on both sides were filled with men. We were stopped several times for heated discussions, and once, while passing through a narrow pass, an armed Amazai charged toward us, brandishing a flag. Fortunately, he was halted by some of the less hostile members of the crowd; had he succeeded in provoking someone to fire a shot, the thirst for blood would have quickly spread, and likely no one in our party would have survived.

On the 23rd December we reached our camp in the Umbeyla Pass, when the force, which had only been kept there till our return, retired to the plains and was broken up.

On December 23rd, we arrived at our camp in the Umbeyla Pass, and the troops, which had only been stationed there until we got back, withdrew to the plains and were disbanded.

During my absence at Umbeyla my wife remained with friends at Mian Mir for some time, and then made her way to Peshawar, where [Page 293] I joined her on Christmas Day. She spent one night en route in Sir Hugh Rose's camp at Hasan Abdal, and found the Chief in great excitement and very angry at such a small party having been sent to Malka, and placed at the mercy of the tribes. He did not know that my wife had arrived, and in passing her tent she heard him say: 'It was madness, and not one of them will ever come back alive.' She was of course dreadfully frightened. As soon as Sir Hugh heard she was in camp, he went to see her, and tried to soften down what he knew she must have heard; but he could not conceal his apprehension; and my poor wife's anxiety was terrible, for she did not hear another word till the morning of the day I returned to her.

During my time away at Umbeyla, my wife stayed with friends at Mian Mir for a while before making her way to Peshawar, where [Page 293] I joined her on Christmas Day. She spent one night on the way at Sir Hugh Rose's camp in Hasan Abdal and found the Chief very excited and quite angry that such a small group had been sent to Malka, leaving them at the mercy of the tribes. He was unaware that my wife had arrived, and as she passed by her tent, she heard him say, "It was madness, and not one of them will ever come back alive." Naturally, she was extremely frightened. As soon as Sir Hugh found out she was in camp, he went to see her and tried to downplay what he knew she must have heard; however, he couldn’t hide his concern, and my poor wife's anxiety was overwhelming, as she didn’t hear another word until the morning of the day I returned to her.






CHAPTER XXXVI.

1864

Early in the New Year (1864) Sir Hugh Rose, with the Head-Quarters camp, marched into Peshawar, where we remained until the middle of February. The time was chiefly spent in inspections, parades, and field-days, varied by an occasional run with the hounds. The hunting about Peshawar was very fair, and we all, the Chief included, got a great deal of fun out of our small pack.

Early in the New Year (1864), Sir Hugh Rose and the Headquarters camp marched into Peshawar, where we stayed until the middle of February. We mostly spent our time on inspections, parades, and field days, mixed in with the occasional hunt with the dogs. The hunting around Peshawar was quite good, and we all, including the Chief, had a lot of fun with our small pack.

On the 25th January a full-dress parade was held to announce to the garrison that Sir John Lawrence had been appointed Viceroy of India, and soon afterwards we left Peshawar and began our return march to Simla.

On January 25th, a formal parade took place to inform the garrison that Sir John Lawrence had been appointed Viceroy of India, and shortly after that, we left Peshawar and started our journey back to Simla.

We changed our house this year and took one close to the Stewarts, an arrangement for which I was very thankful later, when my wife had a great sorrow in the death of her sister, Mrs. Sladen, at Peshawar. It was everything for her at such a time to have a kind and sympathizing friend close at hand, when I was engaged with my work and could be very little with her during the day. At this time, as at all others, Sir Hugh Rose was a most considerate friend to us; he placed his house at Mashobra at my wife's disposal, thus providing her with a quiet resort which she frequently made use of and which she learned to love so much that, when I returned to Simla as Commander-in-Chief, her first thought was to secure this lovely 'Retreat' as a refuge from the (sometimes) slightly trying gaiety of Simla.

We moved to a new house this year, one near the Stewarts, which I was really grateful for later when my wife experienced great sadness over the death of her sister, Mrs. Sladen, in Peshawar. It meant everything for her to have a kind and supportive friend nearby during that time, especially since I was busy with work and couldn’t be with her much during the day. Throughout this period, as always, Sir Hugh Rose was incredibly thoughtful; he offered his house in Mashobra to my wife, giving her a quiet place to retreat to, which she often used and grew to love so much that when I returned to Simla as Commander-in-Chief, her first thought was to secure that beautiful 'Retreat' as an escape from the sometimes overwhelming social scene in Simla.

The Commander-in-Chief was good enough to send in my name for a brevet for the Umbeyla expedition, but the Viceroy refused to forward the recommendation, for the reason that I was 'too junior to be made a Lieutenant-Colonel.' I was then thirty-two!

The Commander-in-Chief was kind enough to submit my name for a brevet for the Umbeyla expedition, but the Viceroy declined to forward the recommendation because I was 'too junior to be promoted to Lieutenant-Colonel.' I was thirty-two at the time!

A Voyage Round the Cape Throughout the whole of 1864 I was more or less ill; the office work (which never suited me quite as well as more active employment)[Page 294] was excessive, for, in addition to the ordinary routine, I had undertaken to revise the 'Bengal Route-Book,' which had become quite obsolete, having been compiled in 1837, when Kurnal was our frontier station. A voyage round the Cape was still considered the panacea for all Indian ailments, and the doctors strongly advised my taking leave to England, and travelling by that route.

A Journey Around the Cape Throughout 1864, I was mostly unwell; the office work (which never suited me quite as well as more active jobs) [Page 294] was overwhelming, as I had taken on the task of updating the 'Bengal Route-Book,' which had become quite outdated, having been put together in 1837, when Kurnal was our border station. A voyage around the Cape was still seen as the cure-all for various ailments in India, and the doctors strongly recommended that I take leave to go to England and travel that way.

We left Simla towards the end of October, and, after spending the next three months in Calcutta, where I was chiefly employed in taking up transports and superintending the embarkation of troops returning to England, I was given the command of a batch of 300 time-expired men on board the Renown, one of Green's frigate-built ships which was chartered for their conveyance. Two hundred of the men belonged to the 2nd and 3rd Battalions of the Rifle Brigade, the remainder to the Artillery and various other corps; they had all been twelve years in the army, and most of them were decorated for service in the Crimea and Indian Mutiny.

We left Simla towards the end of October, and after spending the next three months in Calcutta, where I mainly focused on arranging transports and overseeing the embarkation of troops returning to England, I was put in charge of a group of 300 soldiers whose service time had ended, on board the Renown, one of Green's frigate-built ships that was hired for their transport. Two hundred of the soldiers were from the 2nd and 3rd Battalions of the Rifle Brigade, while the rest came from the Artillery and various other units; they had all served for twelve years in the army, and most of them had been awarded medals for their service in the Crimea and Indian Mutiny.

1865 At the inspection parade before we embarked, a certain number of men were brought up for punishment for various offences committed on the way down country; none of the misdemeanours appeared to me very serious, so I determined to let the culprits off. I told the men that we had now met for the first time and I was unwilling to commence our acquaintance by awarding punishments; we had to spend three or four months together, and I hoped they would show, by their good behaviour while under my command, that I had not made a mistake in condoning their transgressions. The officers seemed somewhat surprised at my action in this matter, but I think it was proved by the men's subsequent conduct that I had not judged them incorrectly, for they all behaved in quite an exemplary manner throughout the voyage.

1865 At the inspection parade before we boarded, a number of men were called out for punishment for various offenses committed on the way down country; none of the misbehavior seemed serious to me, so I decided to let the offenders go. I told the men that we were meeting for the first time and I didn't want to start our relationship by giving out punishments; we would be together for three or four months, and I hoped they would demonstrate through their good behavior under my command that I hadn’t made a mistake in forgiving their wrongdoings. The officers looked a bit surprised by my decision, but I think it was shown by the men's behavior afterward that I hadn't misjudged them, because they all acted in a completely exemplary manner throughout the journey.

We had been on board more than six weeks, when one of the crew was attacked by small pox—an untoward circumstance in a crowded ship. The sailor was placed in a boat which was hung over the ship's side, and a cabin-boy, the marks on whose face plainly showed that he had already suffered badly from the disease, was told off to look after him. The man recovered, and there was no other case. Shortly before we reached St. Helena, scurvy appeared amongst the troops, necessitating lime-juice being given in larger quantities, but what proved a more effectual remedy was water-cress, many sacks of which were laid in before we left the island.

We had been on board for more than six weeks when one of the crew came down with smallpox—an unfortunate situation on a crowded ship. The sailor was placed in a lifeboat hanging over the side of the ship, and a cabin boy, whose face clearly showed he had previously suffered from the disease, was assigned to take care of him. The man recovered, and there were no other cases. Just before we reached St. Helena, scurvy broke out among the troops, which meant we had to give them lime juice in larger quantities, but what turned out to be a more effective remedy was watercress; many sacks of it were stocked up before we left the island.

On the 29th May, 1865, we sighted the 'Lizard,' and took a pilot on board, who brought with him a few newspapers, which confirmed the tidings signalled to us by an American ship that the war between the Federals and Confederates was at an end. How eagerly we scanned the journals, after having heard nothing from home for four months, but the only piece of news we found of personal interest to ourselves[Page 295] was that my father had been made a K.C.B.

On May 29, 1865, we spotted the 'Lizard' and took on a pilot who brought a few newspapers. They confirmed the news signaled to us by an American ship that the war between the Federals and Confederates had ended. We eagerly checked the papers after not hearing anything from home for four months, but the only personal news of interest we found[Page 295] was that my father had been made a K.C.B.

On the 30th May we reached Portsmouth, and landed between two showers of snow! I had a final parade of the men before leaving the ship, and I was quite sorry to say good-bye to them; some of the poor fellows were already beginning to be anxious about their future, and to regret that their time with the colours was over.

On May 30th, we arrived in Portsmouth and landed between two snow showers! I had a final parade with the men before leaving the ship, and I was pretty sad to say goodbye to them; some of the poor guys were already starting to worry about their future and regretting that their time in the service was over.

My father, mother, and sister came up to London to meet us, very little changed since I had left them six years before. I remained in England till March, 1866, when I returned to India, leaving my wife1866 behind to follow in the autumn.

My dad, mom, and sister came to London to meet us, not much changed since I had left them six years earlier. I stayed in England until March 1866, when I went back to India, leaving my wife1866 behind to come over in the autumn.

Cholera Camps While I was at home, Sir Hugh Rose's term of the chief command in India came to an end, and his place had been taken by Sir William Mansfield. On my arrival in Calcutta, I received orders to join the Allahabad division, and thither I proceeded. In October I went to Calcutta to meet my wife and take her to Allahabad, where we remained for nearly a year, her first experience of a hot season in the plains, and a very bad one it was. Cholera was rife; the troops had to be sent away into camps, more or less distant from the station, all of which had to be visited once, if not twice, daily; this kept me pretty well on the move from morning till night. It was a sad time for everyone. People we had seen alive and well one day were dead and buried the next; and in the midst of all this sorrow and tragedy the most irksome—because such an incongruous—part of our experience was that we had constantly to get up entertainments, penny readings, and the like, to amuse the men and keep their minds occupied, for if once soldiers begin to think of the terrors of cholera they are seized with panic, and many get the disease from pure fright.

Cholera Treatment Centers While I was home, Sir Hugh Rose's time as the chief commander in India ended, and Sir William Mansfield took over. When I arrived in Calcutta, I got orders to join the Allahabad division, so I headed there. In October, I went back to Calcutta to meet my wife and take her to Allahabad, where we stayed for almost a year. It was her first experience of a hot season in the plains, and it was a particularly rough one. Cholera was widespread; the troops had to be moved to camps that were sometimes far from the station, all of which I had to visit once or twice a day. This kept me busy from morning till night. It was a tough time for everyone. People we had seen alive one day were dead and buried the next; amid all this sadness and tragedy, the most frustrating—because it felt so out of place—part of our situation was that we constantly had to put together entertainments, penny readings, and similar activities to distract the men and keep their minds engaged. Once soldiers start thinking about the horrors of cholera, they panic, and many end up getting the disease from sheer fear.

My wife usually accompanied me to the cholera camps, preferring to do this rather than be left alone at home. On one occasion, I had just got into our carriage after going round the hospital, when a young officer ran after us to tell me a corporal in whom I had been much interested was dead. The poor fellow's face was blue; the cholera panic had evidently seized him, and I said to my wife, 'He will be the next.' I had no sooner reached home than I received a report of his having been seized.

My wife usually came with me to the cholera camps because she preferred that over staying home alone. One time, I had just gotten into our carriage after visiting the hospital when a young officer ran after us to tell me that a corporal I had been very interested in was dead. The poor guy’s face was blue; it was clear that the cholera panic had hit him, and I said to my wife, 'He will be the next.' No sooner had I gotten home than I received a report that he had been struck down.

We were fortunate in having at Allahabad as Chaplain the present Bishop of Lahore, who, with his wife, had only lately come to India; they never wearied in doing all that was possible for the soldiers. Bishop Matthew is still one of our closest friends; his good, charming and accomplished wife, alas! died some years ago.

We were lucky to have the current Bishop of Lahore serve as Chaplain in Allahabad. He and his wife had just arrived in India and were tireless in their efforts to support the soldiers. Bishop Matthew remains one of our closest friends; unfortunately, his wonderful, kind, and talented wife passed away a few years ago.

The Abyssinian Expedition We remained at Allahabad until August, 1867, when we heard that a brigade from Bengal was likely to be required to take part in an expedition which would probably be sent from Bombay to Abyssinia for the relief of some Europeans whom the King, Theodore, had imprisoned, and that the Mountain battery, on the strength of which[Page 296] my name was still borne, would in such case be employed. I therefore thought I had better go to Simla, see the authorities, and arrange for rejoining my battery, if the rumour turned out to be true. The cholera had now disappeared, so I was at liberty to take leave, and we both looked forward to a cooler climate and a change to brighter scenes after the wretched experience we had been through. On my arrival at Simla I called upon the Commander-in-Chief and told him that, if my battery was sent on service, I wished to join it and was quite ready to resign my staff appointment.

The Abyssinian Mission We stayed in Allahabad until August 1867, when we learned that a brigade from Bengal might be needed for an expedition likely to be launched from Bombay to Abyssinia to rescue some Europeans imprisoned by King Theodore. I heard that the Mountain battery, which still had my name listed, would be involved in that case. So, I decided it would be best to go to Simla, meet with the authorities, and arrange to rejoin my battery if the rumor turned out to be true. The cholera had now passed, so I was free to take leave, and we both looked forward to a cooler climate and a change to brighter experiences after the terrible time we had gone through. Upon arriving in Simla, I met with the Commander-in-Chief and told him that if my battery was deployed, I wanted to join it and was fully prepared to resign my staff position.

Sir William Mansfield was particularly kind in his reception of me, from which I augured well; but I could learn nothing definite, and it was not until quite the end of September that it was announced that Colonel Donald Stewart was to have command of the Bengal Brigade with the Abyssinian Force, and that I was to be his Assistant-Quartermaster-General. We at once hastened back to Allahabad, where we only remained long enough to pack up what we wanted to take with us, and arrange for the disposal of our property; thence we proceeded to Calcutta, where, for the next two months, I had a busy time taking up transports and superintending the equipment of the force.

Sir William Mansfield was really welcoming when I arrived, which gave me a good feeling about things; however, I couldn’t get any clear information. It wasn't until late September that it was announced that Colonel Donald Stewart would be in charge of the Bengal Brigade with the Abyssinian Force, and I would serve as his Assistant-Quartermaster-General. We quickly returned to Allahabad, where we stayed just long enough to pack what we needed and make arrangements for our belongings; then we headed to Calcutta, where I spent the next two months busy organizing transports and overseeing the equipment of the force.

I had often read and heard of the difficulties and delays experienced by troops landing in a foreign country, in consequence of their requirements not being all shipped in the same vessels with themselves—men in one ship, camp equipage in another, transport and field hospital in a third, or perhaps the mules in one and their pack-saddles in another; and I determined to try and prevent these mistakes upon this occasion. With Stewart's approval, I arranged that each detachment should embark complete in every detail, which resulted in the troops being landed and marched off without the least delay as each vessel reached its destination.1

I had often read and heard about the challenges and delays troops face when landing in a foreign country because their supplies aren’t all shipped on the same vessels—soldiers in one ship, camping gear in another, transport and field hospital in a third, or maybe the mules on one and their pack-saddles on another. I decided to try to avoid these issues this time. With Stewart's approval, I made sure that each group would board fully equipped, which allowed the troops to disembark and move out without any delays as each ship reached its destination.1

We were living with the Stewarts in the Commander-in-Chief's[Page 297] quarters in Fort William, which His Excellency had placed at our disposal for the time being. On the 1st November Calcutta was visited by the second cyclone within my experience. We had arranged to go to the opera that evening, but when it was time to start the wind was so high that there seemed every chance of the carriage being blown over before we could get there, so we decided not to attempt it. It was well we did, for the few adventurous spirits who struggled through the storm had the greatest difficulty in getting back to their homes. The opera-house was unroofed before the performance was half over, and very little of the building remained standing the next day. At bedtime we still thought it was only a bad storm, but towards midnight the wind increased to an alarming extent, and my wife awoke me, and begged me to get up, as the windows were being burst open and deluges of rain coming in. Stewart and I tried to reclose the windows, but the thick iron bars had been bent in two and forced out of their sockets; a heavy oak plate-chest and boxes, which we with much difficulty dragged across the windows, were blown into the middle of the dining-room, like so much cardboard, and the whole place was gradually flooded. We were driven out of each room in turn, till at length we all took refuge in a small box room, about ten feet wide, right in the middle of the house, where we remained the rest of the night and 'hoped for the day.'

We were staying with the Stewarts in the Commander-in-Chief's[Page 297] quarters in Fort William, which His Excellency had made available to us for the time being. On November 1st, Calcutta faced its second cyclone during my lifetime. We had planned to go to the opera that evening, but by the time we were set to leave, the wind was so strong that it felt like the carriage could be blown over before we even arrived, so we chose not to go. It turned out to be a good decision, as those few brave souls who ventured out in the storm struggled to get back home. The opera house was left without a roof before the show was halfway through, and by the next day, barely any of the building was still standing. When we went to bed, we still thought it was just a bad storm, but around midnight, the wind picked up to a frightening level. My wife woke me up and urged me to get up because the windows were bursting open, letting in torrents of rain. Stewart and I tried to close the windows again, but the heavy iron bars had been bent and forced out of their sockets; a hefty oak plate-chest and some boxes that we managed to drag across the windows were blown into the middle of the dining room, as if they were made of cardboard, and the whole place was slowly flooding. We were forced out of each room in turn, until finally, we all took refuge in a small ten-foot-wide box room in the center of the house, where we stayed for the rest of the night, “hoping for the day.”

Towards morning the wind abated, but what a scene of desolation was that upon which we emerged! The rooms looked as if they could never be made habitable again, and much of our property was floating about in a foot of water.

Towards morning the wind died down, but what a scene of desolation we came out to! The rooms looked like they could never be lived in again, and a lot of our stuff was floating in a foot of water.

My first thought was for the shipping, and I hurried down to the river to see how my transports had fared. Things were much better than I expected to find them—only two had been damaged. Most fortunately the cyclone, having come from a different direction, was not accompanied by a storm-wave such as that which worked so much mischief amongst the shipping on a former occasion, but the destruction on land was even greater: all the finest trees were torn up by the roots, a great part of the Native bazaar was levelled, and lay from two to three feet deep in water, while many houses were wholly or partly demolished. We came across most curious sights when driving round Calcutta in the evening; some of the houses were divided clean down the centre, one half crumbled into a heap of ruins, the other half still standing and displaying, as in a doll's house, the furniture in the different stories.

My first thought was about the shipping, so I rushed down to the river to check on how my transports had fared. Things were much better than I expected—only two had been damaged. Thankfully, the cyclone came from a different direction and didn’t bring a storm wave like the one that caused so much trouble for shipping before. However, the destruction on land was even worse: all the best trees were uprooted, a large part of the Native bazaar was flattened and sat two to three feet deep in water, and many houses were completely or partially destroyed. As we drove around Calcutta in the evening, we saw some really strange sights; some houses were split right down the middle, with one half a pile of rubble while the other half stood intact, almost like a dollhouse displaying the furniture in the different floors.

The work of filling up and loading the vessels was greatly retarded, owing to a large number of cargo boats having been sunk, consequently it was the 5th December before the first transport got off; from that date the others started in quick succession, and on the 9th January, 1868, Stewart and his staff left Calcutta in the P. and O. 1868[Page 298] steamer Golconda. The officers and men of the Mountain battery were also on board, Captain Bogle in command, my friend Jemmy Hills in my place as second Captain, and Collen2 and Disney as subalterns. Mrs. Stewart and my wife accompanied us as far as Aden, where they were left to the kind care of Major-General Russell,3 commanding there at the time, until the arrival of the mail-steamer in which they were to proceed to England.

The process of filling and loading the ships was significantly delayed because many cargo boats had sunk. As a result, the first transport finally set off on December 5th. After that, the others left in quick succession, and on January 9, 1868, Stewart and his team departed from Calcutta on the P. and O. 1868[Page 298] steamer Golconda. The officers and crew of the Mountain battery were also aboard, with Captain Bogle in command, my friend Jemmy Hills taking my place as second Captain, and Collen2 and Disney as junior officers. Mrs. Stewart and my wife traveled with us as far as Aden, where they were left in the caring hands of Major-General Russell,3 who was in charge there at the time, until the arrival of the mail steamer that would take them to England.

Landed at Zula On the 3rd February we anchored in Annesley Bay and landed at Zula.

Arrived at Zula On February 3rd, we dropped anchor in Annesley Bay and went ashore at Zula.






CHAPTER XXXVII.

1868

It will, perhaps, be as well to recall to the reader's mind that the object of the expedition in which we were taking part was to rescue some sixty Europeans, who, from one cause or another, had found their way to Abyssinia, and been made prisoners by the King of that country. Amongst these were four English officials, Mr. Rassam, and Captain Cameron, who had at different times been the bearers of letters from Queen Victoria to King Theodore, and Lieutenant Prideaux and Dr. Blanc of the Bombay Army; the rest were chiefly French and German missionaries, and artisans, with their wives and children. The prisoners were confined in a fort built on the Magdāla plateau, 9,150 feet above sea-level, and 379 miles inland from Annesley Bay.

It might be helpful to remind the reader that the goal of the expedition we were part of was to rescue around sixty Europeans who had ended up in Abyssinia for various reasons and had been taken captive by the King there. Among them were four British officials: Mr. Rassam and Captain Cameron, who had both delivered letters from Queen Victoria to King Theodore at different times, along with Lieutenant Prideaux and Dr. Blanc from the Bombay Army. The rest were mostly French and German missionaries and workers, along with their families. The prisoners were held in a fort constructed on the Magdāla plateau, which is 9,150 feet above sea level and 379 miles inland from Annesley Bay.

The repeated demands of the British Government for the restoration of the prisoners having been treated with contemptuous silence by the King, Colonel Merewether, the Political Agent at Aden, who in July, 1867, had been directed to proceed to Massowa and endeavour to obtain the release of the captives, and to make inquiries and collect information in case of an expedition having to be sent, reported to the Secretary of State that he had failed to communicate with the King, and urged the advisability of immediate measures being taken to prepare a force in India for the punishment of Theodore and the rescue of the prisoners. Colonel Merewether added that in Abyssinia the opinion had become very general that England knew herself to be too weak to resent insult, and that amongst the peoples of the neighbouring countries, even so far as Aden, there was a feeling of contemptuous surprise at the continued long-suffering endurance of the British Government.

The repeated requests from the British Government for the release of the prisoners had been met with a dismissive silence from the King. Colonel Merewether, the Political Agent in Aden, who had been sent in July 1867 to Massowa to try to secure the captives' release and gather information in case an expedition was necessary, reported to the Secretary of State that he had not been able to get in touch with the King. He recommended that immediate steps be taken to prepare a force in India to punish Theodore and rescue the prisoners. Colonel Merewether also noted that in Abyssinia, it had become widely believed that England felt too weak to respond to insults, and there was a growing sense of disdain among the neighboring peoples, even as far as Aden, at the British Government's prolonged tolerance.

Sir Robert Napier to Command On receipt of this communication, Her Majesty's Government, having exhausted all their resources for the preservation of peace,[Page 299] decided to send an expedition from India under the command of Lieutenant-General Sir Robert Napier, the Commander-in-Chief of the Bombay Army. After carefully considering the distance along which operations would have to be prosecuted, and the necessity for holding a number of detached posts, Napier gave it as his opinion that the force should consist of not less than 12,000 men.1

Sir Robert Napier in Charge Upon receiving this message, Her Majesty's Government, after using all their options to maintain peace,[Page 299] decided to send an expedition from India led by Lieutenant-General Sir Robert Napier, the Commander-in-Chief of the Bombay Army. After carefully considering the distance over which the operations would need to take place and the need to maintain several separate posts, Napier stated that the force should include at least 12,000 men.1

Profiting by the experience of the Crimean War, the Government was determined that the mobility of the force should not be hampered by want of food and clothing. Stores of all descriptions were despatched in unstinted quantities from England, and three of the steamers in which they were conveyed were fitted up as hospital ships. But food, clothing, and stores, however liberally supplied, would not take the army to Magdāla without transport.

Learning from the experiences of the Crimean War, the Government was set on ensuring that the army's mobility wouldn't be held back by a lack of food and clothing. Supplies of all kinds were sent in abundant amounts from England, and three of the steamers used for transport were converted into hospital ships. However, even with generous supplies of food, clothing, and equipment, the army couldn't reach Magdāla without transportation.

The question as to the most suitable organization for the Land Transport Corps occupied a good deal of Sir Robert Napier's attention while the expedition was being fitted out, and caused a considerable amount of correspondence between him and the Bombay Government. The Commissary-General wished to keep the corps under his own orders, and objected to its being given an entirely military organization. Sir Robert Napier preferred to establish the corps on an independent basis, but was at first overruled by the Bombay Government. While acting in accordance with their orders, the Commander-in-Chief wrote: 'I believe that the success of systems depends more on the men who work them than on the systems themselves; but I cannot accept without protest a decision to throw such a body of men as the drivers of our transport animals will be (if we get them) on an expedition in a foreign country without a very complete organization to secure order and discipline.' Eventually Sir Robert got his own way, but much valuable time had been lost, and the corps was organized on too small a scale;2 the officers and non-commissioned officers were not sent to Zula in sufficient time or in sufficient numbers to take charge of the transport animals as they arrived.

The question of the best organization for the Land Transport Corps took up a lot of Sir Robert Napier's attention while they were preparing for the expedition, leading to a significant amount of correspondence between him and the Bombay Government. The Commissary-General wanted to keep the corps under his command and opposed giving it a strictly military structure. Sir Robert Napier preferred to establish the corps independently, but initially, the Bombay Government overruled him. While following their orders, the Commander-in-Chief wrote: 'I believe that the success of systems relies more on the people who implement them than on the systems themselves; however, I cannot agree without objection to a decision that would send a group of men like the drivers for our transport animals (if we are able to get them) on an expedition in a foreign land without a comprehensive organization to ensure order and discipline.' In the end, Sir Robert got his way, but a lot of valuable time was wasted, and the corps was set up on too small a scale;2 the officers and non-commissioned officers were not sent to Zula in enough time or in sufficient numbers to manage the transport animals as they arrived.

Defective Transport A compact, properly-supervised train of 2,600 mules, with serviceable, well-fitting pack-saddles, was sent from the Punjab; and from Bombay came 1,400 mules and ponies and 5,600 bullocks, but these numbers proving altogether inadequate to the needs of the expedition, they were supplemented by animals purchased in Persia, Egypt, and on the shores of the Mediterranean. The men to look after them were[Page 300] supplied from the same sources, but their number, even if they had been efficient, was insufficient, and they were a most unruly and unmanageable lot. They demanded double the pay for which they had enlisted, and struck work in a body because their demand was not at once complied with. They refused to take charge of the five mules each man was hired to look after, and when that number was reduced to three, they insisted that one should be used as a mount for the driver. But the worst part of the whole organization, or, rather, want of organization, was that there had been no attempt to fit the animals with pack-saddles, some of which were sent from England, some from India, and had to be adjusted to the mules after they had been landed in Abyssinia, where there was not an establishment to make the necessary alterations. The consequence was that the wretched animals became cruelly galled, and in a few weeks a large percentage were unfit for work, and had to be sent to the sick depot.

Faulty Transport A compact, well-managed train of 2,600 mules, equipped with good, fitting pack-saddles, was sent from Punjab; from Bombay came 1,400 mules and ponies and 5,600 bullocks. However, these numbers proved entirely insufficient for the needs of the expedition, so they were supplemented by animals purchased in Persia, Egypt, and along the shores of the Mediterranean. The caretakers for these animals were[Page 300] sourced from the same locations, but even if they had been competent, their numbers were not enough, and they were a very unruly and difficult group. They demanded double the pay they had signed up for and went on strike as a group because their demands were not immediately met. They refused to take care of the five mules each man was supposed to manage, and when that number was reduced to three, they insisted that one should be used as a mount for the driver. But the worst part of the entire organization—or rather, the lack of organization—was that no attempt was made to fit the animals with pack-saddles. Some saddles came from England, some from India, and they had to be adjusted to the mules after they arrived in Abyssinia, where there was no facility to make the necessary changes. As a result, the poor animals suffered severe galls, and within a few weeks, a large percentage were unfit for work and had to be sent to the sick depot.

Other results of having no properly arranged transport train, and no supervision or discipline, were that mules were lost or stolen, starved for want of food, or famished from want of water. The condition of the unfortunate animals was such that, though they had been but a few weeks in the country, when they were required to proceed to Senafe, only sixty-seven miles distant, a very small proportion were able to accomplish the march; hundreds died on the way, and their carcases, quickly decomposing in the hot sun, became a fruitful source of dangerous disease to the force.

Other consequences of not having a properly organized transport system, along with a lack of oversight and discipline, included mules getting lost or stolen, starving due to lack of food, or dying of thirst. The situation for these poor animals was so dire that although they had only been in the country for a few weeks, when it was time to head to Senafe, just sixty-seven miles away, only a small number were able to make the journey; hundreds died along the way, and their bodies, quickly rotting in the hot sun, became a significant source of dangerous disease for the force.

On arrival at Zula, we were told that Sir Robert Napier was at Senafe, the first station in the Hills, and the advanced depot for supplies. We of the Bengal brigade were somewhat disconcerted at the orders which awaited us, from which we learned that our brigade was to be broken up; the troops were to proceed to the front; while Stewart was to take command at Senafe, and I myself was to remain at Zula, as senior staff officer. The disappointment was great, but, being the last-comer, I had no unfairness to complain of, and I had plenty to do. I spent the greater part of each day amongst the shipping, superintending the embarkation and disembarkation of men, animals, and stores.

On arriving at Zula, we were informed that Sir Robert Napier was at Senafe, the first station in the Hills, and the main supply depot. We in the Bengal brigade were a bit unsettled by the orders waiting for us, which told us that our brigade would be split up; the troops were to head to the front; Stewart was to take command at Senafe, and I was to stay at Zula as the senior staff officer. The disappointment was significant, but since I was the newest member, I had no reason to feel treated unfairly, and I had plenty to keep me busy. I spent most of each day overseeing the loading and unloading of men, animals, and supplies.

Zula was not an attractive place of residence. The heat was intense—117° in the daytime in my tent. The allowance of fresh water was extremely limited,3 while the number of scorpions was quite the reverse, and the food, at the best, was not appetizing. Few who remained there as long as I did escaped scurvy and horrible boils or sores. I was fortunate, however, in finding in charge of the transport arrangements afloat, my old friend and Eton schoolfellow, George[Page 301] Tryon,4 to whom I owed many a good dinner, and, what I appreciated even more, many a refreshing bath on board the Euphrates, a transport belonging to the British India Steam Navigation Company which had been fitted up for Captain Tryon and his staff. Indeed, all the officers of the Royal Navy were most helpful and kind, and I have a very pleasant recollection of the hospitality I received from Commodore Heath5 and those serving under him.

Zula was not a great place to live. The heat was unbearable—117° in my tent during the day. The supply of fresh water was extremely limited,3 while the number of scorpions was just the opposite, and the food was, at best, unappetizing. Few who stayed there as long as I did escaped scurvy and awful boils or sores. However, I was lucky to have my old friend and Eton classmate, George[Page 301] Tryon,4 in charge of the transport arrangements on the boat. I owed him many good dinners and, even more, many refreshing baths on board the Euphrates, a transport ship owned by the British India Steam Navigation Company, which had been set up for Captain Tryon and his team. In fact, all the officers of the Royal Navy were very helpful and kind, and I have fond memories of the hospitality I received from Commodore Heath5 and his crew.

During the four months I remained at Zula, Tryon and I were constantly together, and I had plenty of opportunity for observing the masterly manner in which he could grasp a situation, his intimate knowledge of detail, and the strong hold he had over all those working with him, not only the officers of the Royal Navy, but also the commanders of the merchant vessels taken up as transports, and lying in Annesley Bay.

During the four months I stayed at Zula, Tryon and I were always together, and I had plenty of chances to see how expertly he could assess a situation, his deep understanding of details, and the strong influence he had over everyone working with him—not just the officers of the Royal Navy, but also the captains of the merchant ships converted into transports, anchored in Annesley Bay.

King Theodore Commits Suicide On the 17th April news reached us that four days before Sir Robert Napier had successfully attacked Magdāla and released the prisoners, having experienced but very slight opposition; and that King Theodore, deserted by his army, which had apparently become tired of his brutalities, had committed suicide.6 A few days later Major-General Russell, who had come from Aden to take over the command at Zula, received orders to prepare for the embarkation of the force. Arrangements were accordingly made to enable regiments and batteries to be embarked on board the transports told off for them directly they arrived from the front—a matter of the utmost importance, both on account of the fearful heat at Zula, and the absence of a sufficient water-supply.

King Theodore Takes His Life On April 17th, we learned that four days earlier, Sir Robert Napier had successfully attacked Magdāla and freed the prisoners, facing very little resistance. It was reported that King Theodore, abandoned by his army, which seemed to have grown weary of his brutality, had committed suicide.6 A few days later, Major-General Russell, who had arrived from Aden to take charge at Zula, received orders to prepare for the deployment of the troops. Plans were made to ensure that regiments and batteries could board the transports designated for them as soon as they arrived from the front—this was critical due to the extreme heat in Zula and the lack of adequate water supply.

On the 2nd June the Commander-in-Chief returned to Zula, and on the 10th he embarked on board the old Indian marine steamer Feroze for Suez. Sir Robert was good enough to ask me to accompany him, as he wished to make me the bearer of his final despatches. My work was ended, the troops had all left, and as I was pretty well knocked up, I felt extremely grateful for the offer, and very proud of the great honour the Chief proposed to confer upon me.

On June 2nd, the Commander-in-Chief returned to Zula, and on the 10th, he boarded the old Indian marine steamer Feroze bound for Suez. Sir Robert kindly invited me to join him, as he wanted me to deliver his final messages. My job was done, the troops had all left, and since I was pretty exhausted, I felt really thankful for the offer and very proud of the great honor the Chief wanted to bestow upon me.

We reached Alexandria on the 20th June, and the next day I started in the mail-steamer for Brindisi, arriving in London on the evening of Sunday, the 28th. I received a note at my club from Edwin Johnson (who was at that time Assistant Military Secretary to H.R.H. the Duke of Cambridge), directing me to take the despatches without delay to the Secretary of State for India. I found Sir Stafford and Lady Northcote at dinner; Sir Stafford looked through the despatches, and when he had finished reading them, he asked me to take them[Page 302] without delay to the Commander-in-Chief, as he knew the Duke was most anxious to see them. There was a dinner-party, however, that night at Gloucester House, and the servant told me it was quite impossible to disturb His Royal Highness; so, placing my card on the top of the despatches, I told the man to deliver them at once, and went back to my club. I had scarcely reached it when the Duke's Aide-de-camp made his appearance and told me that he had been ordered to find me and take me back with him. The Commander-in-Chief received me very kindly, expressing regret that I had been sent away in the first instance; and Their Royal Highnesses the Prince and Princess of Wales, who were present, were most gracious, and asked many questions about the Abyssinian Expedition.

We arrived in Alexandria on June 20th, and the next day I boarded the mail steamer to Brindisi, arriving in London on the evening of Sunday, the 28th. I received a note at my club from Edwin Johnson (who was then the Assistant Military Secretary to H.R.H. the Duke of Cambridge), instructing me to take the dispatches to the Secretary of State for India without delay. I found Sir Stafford and Lady Northcote having dinner; Sir Stafford reviewed the dispatches, and once he finished reading them, he asked me to take them[Page 302] immediately to the Commander-in-Chief, knowing the Duke was eager to see them. However, there was a dinner party that night at Gloucester House, and the servant informed me that it was impossible to disturb His Royal Highness. So, I placed my card on top of the dispatches, instructed the man to deliver them right away, and went back to my club. I had barely arrived when the Duke's Aide-de-camp showed up and told me he had been directed to find me and take me back with him. The Commander-in-Chief welcomed me warmly, expressing regret that I had been sent away initially; Their Royal Highnesses the Prince and Princess of Wales, who were present, were very gracious and asked numerous questions about the Abyssinian Expedition.

The next day I joined my wife, who was staying with my people at Clifton, and on the 14th August, when the rewards for the Abyssinian Expedition were published, my name appeared for a brevet Lieutenant-Colonelcy.

The next day I joined my wife, who was staying with my family at Clifton, and on August 14th, when the rewards for the Abyssinian Expedition were announced, my name was listed for a brevet Lieutenant-Colonelcy.

First A.Q.M.G. I was now anxious to ascertain in what manner I was to be employed. My five years as A.Q.M.G. were about to expire, and I thought I should like to go back to my regiment for a time. I therefore applied for the command of a battery of Horse Artillery. I was told, in answer to my application, that it was not the custom to appoint an officer who had been in staff employment for some time to the mounted branch, but that, in consideration of my services, the Duke of Cambridge was pleased to make an exception in my favour. I was posted to a battery at Meerut, and warned to be ready to start in an early troopship. Before the time for our departure arrived, however, I received a letter from Lumsden, who had now become Quartermaster-General, informing me that the Commander-in-Chief had recommended, and the Government had approved of, the formation of a fresh grade—that of First A.Q.M.G.—and that he was directed by Sir William Mansfield to offer the new appointment to me—an offer which I gratefully accepted; for though the command of a Horse Artillery battery would have been most congenial, this unexpected chance of five years' further staff employ was too good to be refused.

First A.Q.M.G. I was now eager to find out how I would be used. My five years as A.Q.M.G. were about to end, and I thought I might like to return to my regiment for a while. So, I applied for the command of a Horse Artillery battery. In response to my application, I was informed that it wasn't common to appoint an officer who had been in staff roles for some time to the mounted branch, but that, considering my service, the Duke of Cambridge was pleased to make an exception for me. I was assigned to a battery at Meerut and told to be ready to leave on an early troopship. However, before our departure time arrived, I received a letter from Lumsden, who had now become Quartermaster-General, informing me that the Commander-in-Chief had recommended, and the Government had approved, the creation of a new role—First A.Q.M.G.—and that he was directed by Sir William Mansfield to offer me the new position—an offer I gladly accepted; because while commanding a Horse Artillery battery would have been very enjoyable, this unexpected opportunity for another five years in a staff role was too good to turn down.

1869 On the 4th January, 1869, having said good-bye to those dear to us, two of whom I was never to see again, my wife and I, with a baby girl who was born the previous July, embarked at Portsmouth on board the s.s. Helvetia, which had been taken up for the conveyance of troops to Bombay, the vessel of the Royal Navy in which we were to have sailed having suddenly broken down. The Helvetia proved most unsuitable as a transport, and uncomfortable to the last degree for passengers, besides which it blew a gale the whole way to Alexandria. We were all horribly ill, and our child caught a fatal cold. We thoroughly appreciated a change at Suez to the Indian trooper, the Malabar, where everything possible was done for our comfort by our[Page 303] kind captain (Rich, R.N.), and, indeed, by everyone on board; but, alas! our beautiful little girl never recovered the cruel experience of the Helvetia, and we had the terrible grief of losing her soon after we passed Aden. She was buried at sea.

1869 On January 4th, 1869, after saying goodbye to our loved ones, two of whom I would never see again, my wife and I, along with our baby girl who had been born the previous July, boarded the s.s. Helvetia in Portsmouth. This ship was chartered to transport troops to Bombay since the Royal Navy ship we were supposed to travel on had suddenly broken down. The Helvetia turned out to be completely unsuitable as a transport and incredibly uncomfortable for passengers, plus we faced a storm the entire journey to Alexandria. We were all extremely sick, and our child caught a serious cold. We really welcomed the change to the Indian troopship, the Malabar, where our kind captain (Rich, R.N.) and everyone on board did everything they could to make us comfortable; but, unfortunately, our precious little girl never recovered from the harsh experience on the Helvetia, and we had the heartbreaking loss of her shortly after we passed Aden. She was buried at sea.

It was a very sad journey after that. There were several nice, kind people amongst our fellow-passengers; but life on board ship at such a time, surrounded by absolute strangers, was a terrible trial to us both, and, what with the effects of the voyage and the anxiety and sorrow she had gone through, my wife was thoroughly ill when we arrived at Simla towards the end of February.

It was a really sad journey after that. There were several nice, kind people among our fellow passengers; but life on the ship during that time, surrounded by total strangers, was a terrible struggle for both of us. With the toll of the voyage and the anxiety and sorrow she had experienced, my wife was completely ill when we arrived in Simla near the end of February.






CHAPTER XXXVIII.

1869


Lord Mayo Becomes Viceroy
In January, 1869, Sir John Lawrence, after a career which was altogether unique, he having risen from the junior grades of the Bengal Civil Service to the almost regal position of Governor-General,1 left India for good. He was succeeded as Viceroy by Lord Mayo, one of whose first official acts was to hold a durbar at Umballa for the reception of the Amir Sher Ali, who, after five years of civil war, had succeeded in establishing himself on the throne of Afghanistan, to which he had been nominated by his father, Dost Mahomed Khan.2

Lord Mayo Becomes Governor-General In January 1869, Sir John Lawrence, after a truly unique career, having progressed from the junior ranks of the Bengal Civil Service to the almost royal position of Governor-General, left India for good. He was succeeded as Viceroy by Lord Mayo, one of whose first official acts was to hold a durbar at Umballa to welcome Amir Sher Ali, who, after five years of civil war, had managed to secure his throne in Afghanistan, to which he had been appointed by his father, Dost Mahomed Khan.

Sher Ali had passed through a stormy time between the death of the Dost, in June, 1863, and September, 1868. He had been acknowledged as the rightful heir by the Government of India, and for the first three years he held the Amirship in a precarious sort of way. His two elder brothers, Afzal and Azim, and his nephew, Abdur Rahman (the present Ruler of Afghanistan), were in rebellion against him. The death of his favourite son and heir-apparent, Ali Khan, in action near Khelat-i-Ghilzai, in 1865, grieved him so sorely that for[Page 304] a time his reason was affected. In May, 1866, he was defeated near Ghazni (mainly owing to the treachery of his own troops) by Abdur Rahman, who, releasing his father, Afzal, from the prison into which he had been cast by Sher Ali, led him in triumph to Kabul, and proclaimed him Amir of Afghanistan.

Sher Ali went through a tumultuous period between the death of the Dost in June 1863 and September 1868. The Government of India recognized him as the rightful heir, but for the first three years, his rule as Amir was unstable. His two older brothers, Afzal and Azim, along with his nephew Abdur Rahman (the current ruler of Afghanistan), were in revolt against him. The death of his beloved son and heir, Ali Khan, in battle near Khelat-i-Ghilzai in 1865, affected him so deeply that it impacted his mental state for a while. In May 1866, he faced defeat near Ghazni, largely due to the betrayal of his own soldiers, by Abdur Rahman, who freed his father, Afzal, from the prison where Sher Ali had put him, leading him in triumph to Kabul and declaring him Amir of Afghanistan.

Afzal Khan ousts Sher Ali The new Amir, Afzal, at once wrote to the Government of India detailing what had occurred, and expressing a hope that the friendship of the British, which he so greatly valued, would be extended to him. He was told, in reply, that the Government recognized him as Ruler of Kabul, but that, as Sher Ali still held Kandahar and Herat, existing engagements with the latter could not be broken off. The evident preference thus displayed for Sher Ali caused the greatest vexation to the brothers Afzal and Azim, who showed their resentment by directing an Envoy who had come from Swat to pay his respects to the new Amir to return to his own country and set on foot a holy war against the English; the Waziri maliks3 in attendance at the court were dismissed with presents and directions to harass the British frontier, while an emissary was despatched on a secret mission to the Russians.

Afzal Khan overthrows Sher Ali The new Amir, Afzal, immediately wrote to the Government of India outlining what had happened and hoping that the friendship of the British, which he valued highly, would be extended to him. In response, he was informed that the Government recognized him as the Ruler of Kabul, but since Sher Ali still controlled Kandahar and Herat, existing agreements with him couldn't be broken. The clear support shown for Sher Ali really upset the brothers Afzal and Azim, who expressed their anger by telling an Envoy from Swat, who came to pay his respects to the new Amir, to go back home and start a holy war against the English. The Waziri maliks3 present at the court were sent away with gifts and orders to attack the British frontier, while a secret envoy was sent on a mission to the Russians.

After his defeat near Ghazni, Sher Ali fled to Kandahar, and in the January of the following year (again owing to treachery in his army) he met with a second defeat near Khelat-i-Ghilzai, and lost Kandahar.

After his defeat near Ghazni, Sher Ali escaped to Kandahar, and in January of the following year (again due to betrayal in his army) he faced another defeat near Khelat-i-Ghilzai and lost Kandahar.

On this fact being communicated to the Government of India, Afzal Khan was in his turn recognized as Amir of Kabul and Kandahar. But he was at the same time informed that the British Government intended to maintain a strict neutrality between the contending parties in Afghanistan. John Lawrence, in his letter of the 20th of February, said that 'neither men, nor arms, nor money, nor assistance of any kind, have ever been supplied by my Government to Amir Sher Ali. Your Highness and he, both equally unaided by me, have fought out the battle, each upon your own resources. I purpose to continue the same policy for the future. If, unhappily, the struggle for supremacy in Afghanistan has not yet been brought to a close, and hostilities are again renewed, I shall still side with neither party.'

On learning this fact, the Government of India recognized Afzal Khan as the Amir of Kabul and Kandahar. However, he was also told that the British Government planned to stay completely neutral between the competing groups in Afghanistan. In a letter dated February 20th, John Lawrence stated that "neither men, nor arms, nor money, nor assistance of any kind, have ever been provided by my Government to Amir Sher Ali. Your Highness and he, both equally unsupported by me, have fought the battle using your own resources. I intend to continue this same policy in the future. If, sadly, the struggle for power in Afghanistan is not yet resolved and fighting resumes, I will still not support either side."

This reply altogether failed to satisfy Afzal and Azim. They answered it civilly, but at the same time they sent a copy of it to General Romanofski, the Russian Governor of Tashkent, who was informed by the new Amir that he had no confidence in the 'Lord sahib's fine professions of friendship, and that he was disgusted with the British Government for the ingratitude and ill-treatment shown towards his brother Azim.4 He looked upon the Russians as his real and only friends, hoped soon to send a regular Ambassador to the[Page 305] Russian camp, and would at all times do his utmost to protect and encourage Russian trade.'

This reply completely failed to satisfy Afzal and Azim. They responded politely, but at the same time, they sent a copy of it to General Romanofski, the Russian Governor of Tashkent. The new Amir informed him that he had no faith in the "Lord sahib's" claims of friendship and that he was appalled by the British Government for the ingratitude and mistreatment shown towards his brother Azim.4 He considered the Russians to be his true and only friends, hoped to soon send a formal Ambassador to the [Page 305] Russian camp, and was committed to doing everything he could to protect and promote Russian trade.

In October of this year (1867) Afzal Khan died, and his brother Azim, hastening to Kabul, took upon himself the Amirship. Abdur Rahman had hoped to have succeeded his father, but his uncle having forestalled him, he thought it politic to give in his allegiance to him, which he did by presenting his dead father's sword, in durbar, to the new Amir, who, like his predecessor, was now acknowledged by the Government of India as Ruler of Kabul and Kandahar.

In October of this year (1867), Afzal Khan passed away, and his brother Azim quickly went to Kabul to take on the role of Amir. Abdur Rahman had hoped to succeed his father, but since his uncle got there first, he decided it was smart to pledge his loyalty to him. He did this by presenting his late father's sword during the durbar to the new Amir, who, just like his predecessor, was now recognized by the Government of India as the Ruler of Kabul and Kandahar.

The tide, however, was beginning to turn in favour of Sher Ali. Azim and Abdur Rahman quarrelled, and the former, by his extortions and cruelties, made himself detested by the people generally.

The tide, however, was beginning to turn in favor of Sher Ali. Azim and Abdur Rahman argued, and Azim, through his exploitation and harshness, made himself hated by the people overall.

Sher Ali regains the Amirship In March, 1868, Sher Ali's eldest son, Yakub Khan, regained possession of Kandahar for his father. In July father and son found themselves strong enough to move towards Ghazni, where Azim Khan's army was assembled. The latter, gradually deserted by his soldiers, took to flight, upon which Sher Ali, after an absence of forty months, entered Kabul on the 8th of September, and re-possessed himself of all his dominions, with the exception of Balkh, where Azim and Abdur Rahman (now reconciled to each other) still flew the flag of rebellion.

Sher Ali Reclaims the Amirship In March 1868, Sher Ali's oldest son, Yakub Khan, took back Kandahar for his father. By July, both father and son felt strong enough to head towards Ghazni, where Azim Khan's army was gathered. The latter, slowly abandoned by his soldiers, fled. As a result, Sher Ali, after being away for forty months, entered Kabul on September 8 and reclaimed all his territories, except for Balkh, where Azim and Abdur Rahman (now on good terms) still raised the flag of rebellion.

One of the newly-installed Amir's first acts was to inform the Viceroy of his return to Kabul, and of the recovery of his kingdom. He announced his desire to send some trusted representatives, or else proceed himself in person, to Calcutta, 'for the purpose of showing his sincerity and firm attachment to the British Government, and making known his real wants.'

One of the new Amir's first actions was to let the Viceroy know about his return to Kabul and the restoration of his kingdom. He expressed his intention to send some trusted representatives, or even go himself, to Calcutta, "to demonstrate his sincerity and strong loyalty to the British Government, and to communicate his true needs."

Sir John Lawrence, in his congratulatory reply, showed that a change had come over his policy of non-interference in the internal affairs of Afghanistan, for he stated that he was 'prepared, not only to maintain the bonds of amity and goodwill which were established between Dost Mahomed and the British Government, but, so far as may be practicable, to strengthen those bonds'; and, as a substantial proof of his goodwill, the Viceroy sent Sher Ali £60,000, aid which arrived at a most opportune moment, and gave the Amir that advantage over his opponents which is of incalculable value in Afghan civil war, namely, funds wherewith to pay the army and bribe the opposite side.

Sir John Lawrence, in his congratulatory reply, indicated that he was changing his approach of non-interference in Afghanistan's internal affairs. He stated that he was 'ready not only to maintain the friendly relationships established between Dost Mahomed and the British Government, but also, as much as possible, to strengthen those ties.' As a clear sign of his goodwill, the Viceroy sent Sher Ali £60,000, aid that arrived at a crucial time, providing the Amir with an invaluable advantage in the Afghan civil war—namely, funds to pay the army and bribe the opposing side.

The energetic and capable Abdur Rahman Khan had in the meantime collected a sufficient number of troops in Turkestan to enable him to move towards Kabul with his uncle Azim. On nearing Ghazni, he found himself confronted by Sher Ali; the opposing forces were about equal in strength, and on both sides there was the same scarcity of ready money. Suddenly the report was received that money was being sent from India to Sher Ali, and this turned the scale in his favour. Abdur Rahman's men deserted in considerable numbers, and[Page 306] a battle fought on the 3rd January, 1869, resulted in the total defeat of uncle and nephew, and in the firmer consolidation of Sher Ali's supremacy.

The energetic and capable Abdur Rahman Khan had gathered enough troops in Turkestan to advance toward Kabul with his uncle Azim. As they approached Ghazni, he found himself facing Sher Ali; both forces were roughly equal in size, and both sides were low on cash. Then, they received word that money was being sent from India to Sher Ali, which tipped the balance in his favor. Many of Abdur Rahman's men deserted, and a battle fought on January 3, 1869, led to the complete defeat of uncle and nephew, further solidifying Sher Ali's power.

Foresight of Sir Henry Rawlinson The change in policy which induced the Government of India to assist a struggling Amir with money, after its repeated and emphatic declarations that interference was impossible, was undoubtedly brought about by an able and elaborate memorandum written by the late Sir Henry Rawlinson on the 28th July, 1868. In this paper Rawlinson pointed out that, notwithstanding promises to the contrary, Russia was steadily advancing towards Afghanistan. He referred to the increased facilities of communication which would be the result of the recent proposal to bring Turkestan into direct communication, viâ the Caspian, with the Caucasus and St. Petersburg. He dwelt at length upon the effect which the advanced position of Russia in Central Asia would have upon Afghanistan and India. He explained that by the occupation of Bokhara Russia would gain a pretext for interfering in Afghan politics, and 'that if Russia once assumes a position which, in virtue either of an imposing military force on the Oxus, or of a dominant political influence in Afghanistan, entitles her, in Native estimation, to challenge our Asiatic supremacy, the disquieting effect will be prodigious.'

Vision of Sir Henry Rawlinson The shift in policy that led the Government of India to support a struggling Amir financially, despite their earlier strong statements that interference was not an option, was definitely influenced by a detailed memorandum written by the late Sir Henry Rawlinson on July 28, 1868. In this document, Rawlinson highlighted that, despite promises to the contrary, Russia was continually moving closer to Afghanistan. He mentioned the improved communication routes that would result from the recent proposal to connect Turkestan directly, via the Caspian, with the Caucasus and St. Petersburg. He elaborated on how Russia's stronger position in Central Asia would impact Afghanistan and India. He explained that by occupying Bokhara, Russia would have a reason to get involved in Afghan politics, and 'that if Russia establishes a position that, whether through a significant military presence on the Oxus or through dominant political influence in Afghanistan, gives her the ability to challenge our Asian supremacy in the eyes of the locals, the unsettling effect would be enormous.'

'With this prospect before us,' Sir Henry asked, 'are we justified in maintaining what has been sarcastically, though perhaps unfairly, called Sir John Lawrence's policy of "masterly inaction"? Are we justified in allowing Russia to work her way to Kabul unopposed, and there to establish herself as a friendly power prepared to protect the Afghans against the English?' He argued that it was contrary to our interests to permit anarchy to reign in Afghanistan; that Lord Auckland's famous doctrine of 'establishing a strong and friendly Power on our North-West Frontier' was the right policy for India, 'that Dost Mahomed's successful management of his country was in a great measure due to our aid, and that, if we had helped the son as we had helped the father, Sher Ali would have summarily suppressed the opposition of his brothers and nephews.' Rawlinson then added: 'Another opportunity now presents itself. The fortunes of Sher Ali are again in the ascendant; he should be secured in our interests without delay.'

'With this situation in front of us,' Sir Henry asked, 'are we justified in sticking with what has been sarcastically, though maybe unfairly, labeled as Sir John Lawrence's policy of "masterly inaction"? Are we justified in allowing Russia to make its way to Kabul without any opposition, and there to set itself up as a friendly power ready to protect the Afghans from the British?' He argued that it went against our interests to let chaos continue in Afghanistan; that Lord Auckland's well-known idea of 'establishing a strong and friendly Power on our North-West Frontier' was the right approach for India, 'that Dost Mahomed's successful rule over his country was largely due to our support, and that, if we had assisted the son as we assisted the father, Sher Ali would have swiftly dealt with the rebellion from his brothers and nephews.' Rawlinson then added: 'Another opportunity has now come up. Sher Ali's fortunes are on the rise again; we should secure him for our interests without delay.'

Rawlinson's suggestions were not at the time supposed to commend themselves to the Government of India. In the despatch in which they were answered,5 the Viceroy and his Councillors stated that they still objected to any active interference in the affairs of Afghanistan; they foresaw no limits to the expenditure which such a move would entail, and they believed that the objects that they had at heart might be[Page 307] attained by an attitude of readiness and firmness on the frontier. It is worthy of note, however, that, after Sir Henry Rawlinson's memorandum had been received by the Indian Government, and notwithstanding these protests, the sum of £60,000 was sent to Sher Ali, that Sir John Lawrence invited him 'to come to some place in British territory for a personal meeting in order to discuss the best manner in which a limited support might be accorded,' and that five days from the time of writing the above-mentioned despatch, John Lawrence sent a farewell letter to Sher Ali, expressing the earnest hope of the British Government that His Highness's authority would be established on a solid and permanent basis, and informing him that a further sum of £60,000 would be supplied to him during the next few months, and that future Viceroys would consider, from time to time, what amount of practical assistance in the shape of money or war materials should periodically be made over to him as a testimony of their friendly feeling, and to the furtherance of his legitimate authority and influence.

Rawlinson's suggestions weren't exactly well-received by the Government of India at that time. In the response to them, the Viceroy and his Councillors stated that they still opposed any active interference in Afghanistan's affairs; they foresaw no limit to the spending that such an action would require, and they believed they could achieve their goals through a stance of readiness and firmness along the frontier. However, it's worth noting that after Sir Henry Rawlinson's memorandum was received by the Indian Government, and despite their objections, £60,000 was sent to Sher Ali. Sir John Lawrence even invited him 'to meet in a British territory to discuss how limited support could be provided.' Just five days after sending that response, John Lawrence sent a farewell letter to Sher Ali, expressing the British Government's sincere hope that His Highness’s authority would be established on a solid and lasting foundation. He also informed him that an additional £60,000 would be provided to him in the coming months, and that future Viceroys would consider what financial assistance or war materials could periodically be given to him as a sign of their goodwill and to support his legitimate authority and influence.

The Umballa Durbar Sher Ali expressed himself as most grateful, and came to Umballa full of hope and apparently thoroughly well disposed towards the British Government. He was received with great state and ceremony, and Lord Mayo was most careful to demonstrate that he was treating with an independent, and not a feudatory, Prince.

The Umballa Durbar Sher Ali showed his deep gratitude and arrived in Umballa full of hope, seemingly very favorable towards the British Government. He was welcomed with grand formalities, and Lord Mayo made sure to convey that he was engaging with an independent prince, not a subordinate one.

At this conference Sher Ali began by unburdening himself of his grievances, complaining to Lord Mayo of the manner in which his two elder brothers had each in his turn been recognized as Amir, and dwelling on the one-sided nature of the treaty made with his father, by which the British Government only bound itself to abstain from interfering with Afghanistan, while the Amir was to be 'the friend of the friends and the enemy of the enemies of the Honourable East India Company.' His Highness then proceeded to make known his wants, which were that he and his lineal descendants on the throne that he had won 'by his own good sword' should be acknowledged as the de jure sovereigns of Afghanistan; that a treaty offensive and defensive should be made with him; and that he should be given a fixed subsidy in the form of an annual payment.

At this conference, Sher Ali started by sharing his complaints, expressing to Lord Mayo his frustrations about how each of his two older brothers had been recognized as Amir in turn. He emphasized the unfair nature of the treaty made with his father, which only obliged the British Government to refrain from interfering with Afghanistan, while the Amir was supposed to be 'the friend of the friends and the enemy of the enemies of the Honourable East India Company.' His Highness then outlined his demands, stating that he and his direct heirs on the throne he had won 'by his own good sword' should be acknowledged as the de jure sovereigns of Afghanistan; that a treaty for mutual defense should be established with him; and that he should receive a guaranteed subsidy through an annual payment.

It was in regard to the first of these three demands that Sher Ali was most persistent. He explained repeatedly and at some length that to acknowledge the Ruler pro tempore and de facto was to invite competition for a throne, and excite the hopes of all sorts of candidates; but that if the British Government would recognize him and his dynasty, there was nothing he would not do in order to evince his gratitude.

It was regarding the first of these three demands that Sher Ali was the most insistent. He explained multiple times and in detail that recognizing the Leader pro tempore and de facto would only create competition for the throne and raise the hopes of various candidates. However, he said that if the British Government acknowledged him and his dynasty, there was nothing he wouldn't do to show his gratitude.

These requests, the Amir was informed, were inadmissible. There could be no treaty, no fixed subsidy, no dynastic pledges. He was further told that we were prepared to discourage his rivals, to give him warm countenance and support, and such material assistance as we[Page 308] considered absolutely necessary for his immediate wants, if he, on his part, would undertake to do all he could to maintain peace on our frontier and to comply with our wishes in matters connected with trade.

These requests, the Amir was informed, were not acceptable. There could be no treaty, no fixed subsidy, and no dynastic promises. He was also told that we were ready to deter his rivals, to offer him our support and backing, and any material help that we[Page 308] deemed absolutely necessary for his immediate needs, if he, in turn, would commit to doing everything possible to maintain peace on our border and to follow our wishes regarding trade matters.

As an earnest of our goodwill, the Amir was given the second £60,000 promised him by Sir John Lawrence, besides a considerable supply of arms and ammunition,6 and was made happy by a promise that European officers should not be required to reside in any of his cities. Before the conference took place, Lord Mayo had contemplated British agents being sent to Kabul in order to obtain accurate information regarding events in Central Asia, but on discovering how vehemently opposed Sher Ali was to such an arrangement, he gave him this promise. Saiyad Nur Mahomed, the Minister who accompanied the Amir, though equally averse to European agents, admitted that 'the day might come when the Russians would arrive, and the Amir would be glad, not only of British officers as agents, but of arms and troops to back them.'

As a sign of our goodwill, the Amir was given the second £60,000 that Sir John Lawrence had promised him, along with a significant supply of arms and ammunition,6 and was pleased by the assurance that European officers wouldn’t need to live in any of his cities. Before the conference happened, Lord Mayo had considered sending British agents to Kabul to gather accurate information about events in Central Asia, but after realizing how strongly Sher Ali opposed such a plan, he made this promise. Saiyad Nur Mahomed, the Minister who accompanied the Amir, although also opposed to European agents, acknowledged that 'the day might come when the Russians would arrive, and the Amir would be glad, not only for British officers as agents, but for arms and troops to support them.'

One request which the Amir made towards the close of the meeting the Viceroy agreed to, which was that we should call Persia to account for her alleged encroachments on the debatable ground of Sistan. This, which seemed but an unimportant matter at the time, was one of the chief causes of Sher Ali's subsequent estrangement; for the committee of arbitration which inquired into it decided against the Amir, who never forgave what he considered our unfriendly action in discountenancing his claims.

One request that the Amir made toward the end of the meeting was agreed to by the Viceroy: we should hold Persia accountable for its supposed encroachments on the disputed land of Sistan. At the time, this seemed like a minor issue, but it ended up being one of the main reasons for Sher Ali's later estrangement. The arbitration committee that looked into it ruled against the Amir, who never forgave what he saw as our unfriendly action in dismissing his claims.

The Umballa conference was, on the whole, successful, in that Sher Ali returned to his own country much gratified at the splendour of his reception, and a firm personal friend of Lord Mayo, whose fine presence and genial manner had quite won the Amir's heart, although he had not succeeded in getting from him everything he had demanded.

The Umballa conference was generally successful, as Sher Ali returned to his country feeling quite pleased with the grandeur of his welcome and having formed a solid personal friendship with Lord Mayo. The Amir was truly charmed by Lord Mayo's impressive presence and friendly demeanor, even though he didn’t manage to get everything he had requested from him.






CHAPTER XXXIX.

1869

We spent a very quiet year at Simla. My wife was far from strong, and we had another great sorrow in the death of a baby boy three weeks after his birth.

We had a really quiet year in Simla. My wife was in poor health, and we faced another deep sadness with the loss of our baby boy, just three weeks after he was born.

That winter I was left in charge of the Quartermaster-General's office, and we moved into 'Ellerslie,' a larger and warmer house than[Page 309] that in which we had lived during the summer.

That winter, I was put in charge of the Quartermaster-General's office, and we moved into 'Ellerslie,' which was a bigger and warmer house than[Page 309] the one we had lived in during the summer.

Winter at Simla Simla in the winter, after a fresh fall of snow, is particularly beautiful. Range after range of hills clothed in their spotless garments stretch away as far as the eye can reach, relieved in the foreground by masses of reddish-brown perpendicular cliffs and dark-green ilex and deodar trees, each bearing its pure white burden, and decked with glistening fringes of icicles. Towards evening the scene changes, and the snow takes the most gorgeous colouring from the descending rays of the brilliant eastern sun—brilliant even in mid-winter—turning opal, pink, scarlet, and crimson; gradually, as the light wanes, fading into delicate lilacs and grays, which slowly mount upwards, till at last even the highest pinnacle loses the life-giving tints, and the whole snowy range itself turns cold and white and dead against a background of deepest sapphire blue. The spectator shivers, folds himself more closely in his wraps, and retreats indoors, glad to be greeted by a blazing log-fire and a hot cup of tea.

Winter in Simla Simla in the winter, right after a fresh snowfall, is especially beautiful. Hills covered in their pure white coats stretch as far as the eye can see, contrasted by reddish-brown cliffs and dark-green ilex and deodar trees, each layered with a blanket of snow and adorned with glistening icicles. As evening sets in, the scene transforms, and the snow takes on stunning colors from the sinking rays of the bright eastern sun—bright even in mid-winter—changing to opal, pink, scarlet, and crimson; as the light fades, it transitions into soft lilacs and grays that gradually rise, until even the tallest peak loses its vibrant hues and the entire snowy range appears cold, white, and lifeless against a deep sapphire blue background. The viewer shivers, wraps themselves tighter in their layers, and heads indoors, relieved to be welcomed by a crackling fire and a steaming cup of tea.

1870 In the spring of the next year (1870) Sir William Mansfield's term of command came to an end, and he was succeeded by Lord Napier of Magdāla. The selection of this distinguished officer for the highest military position in India was greatly appreciated by the Indian army, as no officer of that army had held it since the days of Lord Clive.

1870 In the spring of the next year (1870), Sir William Mansfield's time in command ended, and he was succeeded by Lord Napier of Magdāla. The choice of this respected officer for the top military role in India was widely welcomed by the Indian army, as no officer from that army had held the position since the era of Lord Clive.

In September a daughter was born, and that winter we again remained at Simla. I amused myself by going through a course of electric telegraphy, which may seem rather like a work of supererogation; but during the Umbeyla campaign, when the telegraph office had to be closed in consequence of all the clerks being laid up with fever, and we could neither read nor send messages, I determined that I would on the first opportunity learn electric signalling, in order that I might be able to decipher and send telegrams should I ever again find myself in a similar position.

In September, a daughter was born, and that winter we stayed in Simla again. I kept myself busy by taking a course in electric telegraphy, which might seem like an unnecessary task; however, during the Umbeyla campaign, when the telegraph office had to shut down because all the clerks were out sick with fever, and we couldn't read or send messages, I decided that I would learn electric signaling at the first chance I got. This way, I would be able to understand and send telegrams if I ever found myself in a similar situation again.

In May my wife and I went for a march across the hills to Chakrata, and thence to Mussoorie and back by way of Dehra Dun and the plains. The object of this trip was to settle the boundary of Chakrata, and my wife took the opportunity of my being ordered on this duty to get away from Simla, as we had now been there for more than two years, and were consequently rather longing for a change. Our route lay through most beautiful scenery, and notwithstanding that the trip was a little hurried, and that some of the marches were therefore rather long, we enjoyed it immensely. When passing along the ridge of a very high hill one afternoon, we witnessed rather a curious sight—a violent thunderstorm was going on in the valley below us, while we ourselves remained in the mildest, most serene atmosphere, enjoying bright sunshine and a blue sky. Dense black clouds filled up the valley a thousand feet beneath us, the thunder roared, the lightning flashed, and soon we could hear the rush of waters in the streams[Page 310] below from the torrents of rain which the clouds were discharging; but it was not until we had crossed over the mountain, and descended to a low level on the other side, that we fully realized the effects of the heavy storm.

In May, my wife and I went for a hike across the hills to Chakrata, then to Mussoorie before heading back through Dehra Dun and the plains. The purpose of this trip was to finalize the boundary of Chakrata, and my wife seized the chance of my assignment to escape from Simla. We had been there for over two years, and we were really craving a change. Our route took us through stunning scenery, and even though the trip was a bit rushed and some of the hikes were quite long, we had an amazing time. One afternoon, as we were walking along the ridge of a very high hill, we saw something pretty unusual—a violent thunderstorm was raging in the valley below us, while we enjoyed calm, sunny weather with a clear blue sky. Thick black clouds filled the valley a thousand feet beneath us, thunder boomed, lightning flashed, and soon we could hear the rushing water in the streams below from the heavy rain the clouds were dumping. However, it wasn't until we crossed over the mountain and descended to a lower elevation on the other side that we truly understood the impact of the severe storm.

On our return to Simla we had the pleasure of a visit from Major-General Donald Stewart, who had come up to receive Lord Mayo's instructions before taking over his appointment as Superintendent of the Andaman Islands. In September he and I travelled together to Calcutta, to which place I was directed to proceed in order to make arrangements for a military expedition into the country of the Lushais, having been appointed senior staff officer to the force.

On our way back to Simla, we were pleased to host Major-General Donald Stewart, who had come to get instructions from Lord Mayo before beginning his role as Superintendent of the Andaman Islands. In September, he and I traveled together to Calcutta, where I was assigned to go to make arrangements for a military expedition into the Lushai region, having been appointed senior staff officer for the operation.

The Lushais Lushai, situated between south-eastern Bengal and Burma, was a terra incognita to me, and I had only heard of it in connexion with the raids made by its inhabitants upon the tea-gardens in its vicinity, which had now spread too far away from Cachar for the garrison of that small military station to afford them protection. From time to time the Lushais had done the planters much damage, and carried off several prisoners, and various attempts had been made in the shape of small military expeditions to punish the tribesmen and rescue the captives; but from want of proper organization, and from not choosing the right time of the year, these attempts had hitherto been unsuccessful, and our failures had the inevitable result of making the Lushais bolder. Raids became more frequent and more destructive; until at last a little European girl, named Mary Winchester, was carried off, and kept by them as a prisoner; on this the Lieutenant-Governor of Bengal declared that a punitive expedition was 'absolutely necessary for the future security of the British subjects residing on the Cachar and Chittagong frontiers.'

The Lushai people Lushai, located between southeastern Bengal and Burma, was unfamiliar to me, and I had only heard about it in relation to the raids conducted by its residents on the nearby tea gardens. These gardens had now extended too far from Cachar for the garrison at that small military station to protect them. Occasionally, the Lushais caused significant damage to the planters and took several prisoners. Various small military expeditions were attempted to punish the tribesmen and rescue the captives; however, due to a lack of proper organization and poor timing throughout the year, these efforts had failed so far, and our defeats only made the Lushais more daring. The raids became more frequent and destructive until a little European girl named Mary Winchester was kidnapped and held as a prisoner. Following this incident, the Lieutenant-Governor of Bengal stated that a punitive expedition was "absolutely necessary for the future security of British subjects residing on the Cachar and Chittagong frontiers."

The Lushai Expedition The despatch of a force was therefore decided upon; it was to consist of two small columns1—one having its base at Cachar, the other at Chittagong—commanded respectively by Brigadier-Generals Bourchier, C.B., and C. Brownlow, C.B., supreme political power being also vested in these two officers. Long experience had taught Lord Napier the wisdom of having only one head in time of war, and he impressed upon the Government his opinion that the civil officers, while acting as advisers and as the channels of communication with the tribes, should be subordinate to the control of the two Commanders, who, after having been put in possession of the views and wishes of the Government, should be held responsible for carrying them out loyally[Page 311] so far as circumstances and the safety of the force would permit.

The Lushai Expedition It was decided to send a military force; it would be made up of two small columns1—one based in Cachar and the other in Chittagong—led by Brigadier-Generals Bourchier, C.B., and C. Brownlow, C.B., with both officers holding supreme political authority. Lord Napier, drawing from his extensive experience, understood the importance of having a single leader during wartime and conveyed to the Government that civil officers, while serving as advisors and points of contact with the tribes, should answer to the two Commanders. After being informed of the Government's views and expectations, these Commanders would be responsible for implementing them faithfully, as much as circumstances and the safety of the force allowed. [Page 311]

As the existence of the tea industry was at stake, the Lushais having established a perfect terror on all the estates within their reach, it was essential that they should be given a severe lesson, and this could only be done by their principal villages, which lay at some considerable distance from the base of operations, being visited in force. The difficult country and the paucity of transport necessitated the columns being lightly equipped; no tents were to be allowed, and baggage and followers were to be reduced to a minimum. My instructions were to fit out and despatch the two columns, and then join Brigadier-General Bourchier at Cachar.

As the survival of the tea industry was at risk, and the Lushais had created a real sense of fear across all the estates within their reach, it was crucial to teach them a harsh lesson. This could only be achieved by sending a strong force to their main villages, which were quite far from our base of operations. The tough terrain and limited transport options meant that the troops had to travel light; no tents were allowed, and we needed to keep baggage and personnel to a minimum. My orders were to prepare and send off the two units, and then meet up with Brigadier-General Bourchier at Cachar.

I was kept in Calcutta all October—not a pleasant month, the climate then being very muggy and unhealthy. Everyone who could get away had gone to the Hills or out to sea; and the offices being closed for the Hindu holidays of the Durga Puja, it was extremely difficult to get work done. Everything for the Chittagong column had to be sent by sea. The shipping of the elephants was rather interesting: they clung desperately to the ground, trying hard to prevent themselves being lifted from it; and when at last, in spite of all their struggles, they were hoisted into the air, the helpless appearance of the huge animals and their despairing little cries and whines were quite pathetic. I found it trying work being on the river all day; my eyes suffered from the glare, and I became so reduced that before I left Calcutta I weighed scarcely over eight stone—rather too fine a condition in which to enter on a campaign in a mountainous country, so thickly covered with jungle as to make riding out of the question.

I spent all of October in Calcutta—not a fun month, since the weather was really humid and unhealthy. Everyone who could escape had gone to the Hills or out to sea; and with the offices closed for the Hindu holidays of the Durga Puja, it was really tough to get work done. Everything for the Chittagong column had to be shipped by sea. The shipping of the elephants was pretty interesting: they clung to the ground, desperately trying to avoid being lifted off it; and when they were finally hoisted into the air despite all their struggles, the sight of these massive animals looking helpless and their sad little cries were quite heartbreaking. I found being on the river all day challenging; my eyes ached from the glare, and I got so worn down that by the time I left Calcutta, I barely weighed over eight stone—a bit too lightweight for starting a campaign in a mountainous area that's so thick with jungle that riding isn't an option.

By the 3rd November the equipment and stores for both columns had been despatched, and on the 16th I joined General Bourchier at the house of that most hospitable of hosts, Mr. Edgar,2 Deputy-Commissioner of Cachar, who accompanied the left column as civil officer.

By November 3rd, the equipment and supplies for both columns had been sent out, and on the 16th, I met General Bourchier at the home of the incredibly welcoming Mr. Edgar,2 Deputy-Commissioner of Cachar, who was with the left column as the civil officer.

1871 We left Cachar on the 23rd, and from the outset we had to make our own roads, a labour which never ceased until the end of January, by which date 110 miles had been completed. There was not the vestige of a track to direct us; but I got hold of some people of the country, with whom I made friends, and induced them to act as guides. Many a long and weary reconnaissance had to be executed, however, before the line of advance could be decided upon. The troops worked with a will, and, notwithstanding the vapour-bath-like atmosphere of the valleys and the difficult nature of the country, which was a succession of hill-ranges covered with jungle forests, made almost impenetrable from the huge creepers, and intersected by rivers and watercourses, a good road, from six to eight feet wide, was constructed,[Page 312] with a sufficiently easy gradient for laden elephants to travel over. Cutting one's way day after day through these dense, gloomy forests, through which hardly a ray of light penetrates, was most stifling and depressing. One could hardly breathe, and was quite unable to enjoy the beauty of the magnificent trees, the graceful bamboos and canes, and the wonderful creepers, which abounded, and under other circumstances would have been a source of pleasure; the difficulties we encountered, and the consequent delay in our progress, quite prevented me from being in a frame of mind to appreciate my picturesque surroundings.

1871 We left Cachar on the 23rd, and right from the start, we had to create our own paths, a task that continued until the end of January, by which time we had completed 110 miles. There was no trace of a path to guide us; however, I managed to connect with some locals, made friends, and convinced them to be our guides. Many long and exhausting explorations had to be carried out before we could decide on a route. The troops worked enthusiastically, and despite the humid, sauna-like atmosphere in the valleys and the challenging landscape, which was a series of hill ranges covered in dense jungle, nearly impenetrable from the massive vines, and crisscrossed by rivers and streams, we built a decent road, six to eight feet wide, with a gentle enough slope for loaded elephants to travel. Cutting through these thick, dark forests day after day, where hardly a beam of light could break through, was incredibly stifling and disheartening. It was hard to breathe, and I couldn’t enjoy the beauty of the magnificent trees, the elegant bamboos and canes, and the amazing vines, which would normally bring joy; the challenges we faced and the resulting delays in our progress kept me from appreciating the picturesque surroundings.

Defective transport again It became evident from the first that our onward movements would be greatly impeded by want of transport. Notwithstanding the experience which ought to have been gained in many small mountain wars, the Government had not been taught that a properly organized transport corps was an absolute necessity, and that it was a mere waste of money to collect a number of men and animals without providing trained supervision. Fourteen hundred of our coolies were attached to the Commissariat Department without anyone to look after them, consequently officers and non-commissioned officers, who could ill be spared from their regimental duties, had to be told off to organize and work them.

Broken transport again It became clear from the start that our progress would be seriously hampered by a lack of transport. Despite the lessons that should have been learned from many small mountain conflicts, the Government had not realized that having a well-organized transport unit was absolutely essential, and that it was a complete waste of resources to gather a group of people and animals without providing trained oversight. Fourteen hundred of our coolies were assigned to the Commissariat Department without anyone to manage them, so officers and non-commissioned officers, who could hardly be spared from their regimental duties, had to be assigned to organize and supervise them.

To add to our troubles, cholera broke out amongst some Nepalese coolies on their way to join us; out of 840, 251 died in a few days, and a number deserted panic-stricken, while the rest were so weakened and shaken that, notwithstanding the care bestowed upon them by their able and energetic Commandant, Major H. Moore, only 387 joined the column. We were not much better off in the matter of elephants, which had been so carelessly selected that only 33 out of the 157 sent with our column were of any use. All this resulted in our being obliged to still further reduce our already small kits. Officers were allowed only forty pounds of baggage, and soldiers twenty-four pounds, limits within which it was rather difficult to keep. A couple of blankets were essential, as we should have to operate over mountains five and six thousand feet high; so was a waterproof sheet, for even if we should be lucky enough to escape rain, the dew is so heavy in those parts that it wets one just as thoroughly as a shower of rain. These three items with my cloak and cork mattress—which is also a very necessary adjunct in such a damp climate—amounted to thirty-one pounds, leaving only nine pounds for a change of clothes, plate, knife, fork, etc.—not too much for a four months' campaign. However, 'needs must,' and it is surprising how many things one considers absolute necessities under ordinary circumstances turn out to have been luxuries when we are obliged to dispense with them.

To make things worse, cholera broke out among some Nepalese coolies on their way to join us; out of 840, 251 died in just a few days, and many panicked and deserted, while the rest were so weakened and shaken that, despite the care given to them by our capable and energetic Commandant, Major H. Moore, only 387 managed to join the column. We weren’t in much better shape regarding elephants, which were chosen so carelessly that only 33 out of the 157 sent with our column were actually useful. As a result, we had to further reduce our already small kits. Officers were allowed only forty pounds of baggage, and soldiers twenty-four pounds, limits that were quite difficult to stick to. A couple of blankets were essential since we would have to operate over mountains five and six thousand feet high; a waterproof sheet was also necessary because even if we were lucky enough to dodge rain, the dew is so heavy in those areas that it soaks you just like a rain shower. These three items, along with my cloak and cork mattress—which is also very important in such a damp climate—added up to thirty-one pounds, leaving only nine pounds for a change of clothes, plate, knife, fork, etc.—not exactly enough for a four-month campaign. However, 'needs must,' and it’s surprising how many items we think are absolute necessities under normal circumstances turn out to be luxuries when we have to do without them.

Practice Versus Theory The advance portion of the column did not arrive at Tipai Mukh, only eighty-four miles from Cachar, until the 9th December, which will[Page 313] give an idea of the enforced slowness of our progress. Tipai Mukh proved a very suitable place for our depot: it was situated at the junction of two rivers, the Tipai and the Barak; thickly-wooded hills rose precipitously on all sides, but on the right bank of the Barak there was sufficient level space for all our requirements. With the help of local coolies, the little Gurkhas were not long in running up hospitals and storesheds; bamboo, the one material used in Lushailand for every conceivable purpose, whether it be a house, a drinking vessel, a bridge, a woman's ear-ring, or a musical instrument, grew in profusion on the hillside. A trestle bridge was thrown across the Tipai in a few hours, and about that bridge I have rather an amusing story to relate. On my telling the young Engineer officer in charge of the Sapper company that a bridge was required to be constructed with the least possible delay, he replied that it should be done, but that it was necessary to calculate the force of the current, the weight to be borne, and the consequent strength of the timber required. Off he went, urged by me to be as quick as he could. Some hours elapsed, and nothing was seen of the Engineer, so I sent for him and asked him when the bridge was to be begun. He answered that his plans were nearly completed, and that he would soon be able to commence work. In the meantime, however, and while these scientific calculations were being made, the headman of the local coolies had come to me and said, if the order were given, he would throw a good bridge over the river in no time. I agreed, knowing how clever Natives often are at this kind of work, and thinking I might just as well have two strings to this particular bow. Immediately, numbers of men were to be seen felling the bamboos on the hillside a short distance above the stream: these were thrown into the river, and as they came floating down they were caught by men standing up to their necks in water, who cut them to the required length, stuck the uprights into the river-bed, and attached them to each other by pieces laid laterally and longitudinally; the flooring was then formed also of bamboo, the whole structure was firmly bound together by strips of cane, and the bridge was pronounced ready. Having tested its strength by marching a large number of men across it, I sent for my Engineer friend. His astonishment on seeing a bridge finished ready for use was great, and became still greater when he found how admirably the practical woodmen had done their work; from that time, being assured of their ability to assist him, he wisely availed himself when difficulties arose of their useful, if unscientific, method of engineering.

Practice vs Theory The advance party of the column didn't reach Tipai Mukh, just eighty-four miles from Cachar, until December 9th, which shows how slowly we were forced to move. Tipai Mukh turned out to be an ideal spot for our depot: it was located at the point where two rivers, the Tipai and the Barak, met; steep, wooded hills rose sharply around us, but there was enough flat land on the right bank of the Barak for everything we needed. With the help of local laborers, the little Gurkhas quickly set up hospitals and storage sheds; bamboo, which is used for nearly everything in Lushailand—be it a house, a drinking cup, a bridge, a woman's earring, or a musical instrument—grew abundantly on the hillside. A trestle bridge was built across the Tipai in just a few hours, and I have a rather funny story about that bridge. When I told the young Engineer officer in charge of the Sapper company that we needed a bridge made as quickly as possible, he said it would be done, but first he needed to calculate the current's force, the weight it needed to support, and the appropriate strength of the timber. He headed off, and I urged him to hurry. After a few hours passed without any sign of him, I called him over to ask when the bridge would be started. He told me his plans were almost ready and that he would be able to start work soon. In the meantime, while those scientific calculations were being made, the local coolies' headman approached me and said that if I gave the go-ahead, he could build a solid bridge over the river in no time. I agreed, knowing how skilled the locals can be at this sort of thing, and thinking it wouldn't hurt to have two options. Immediately, I saw many men chopping bamboo on the hillside a bit upstream: they tossed the bamboo into the river, and as it floated down, men standing neck-deep in water caught it, trimmed it to size, secured the uprights in the riverbed, and connected them with other pieces laid across and along the structure; the flooring was also made of bamboo, all tied together firmly with strips of cane, and soon the bridge was ready. After testing its strength by marching a large number of men across it, I called for my Engineer friend. His surprise at finding a finished bridge ready for use was immense, and it grew even more when he realized just how well the practical woodworkers had done their job; from that point on, assured of their skills, he wisely took advantage of their helpful, albeit unscientific, approach to engineering whenever challenges arose.

By the 14th December matters had so far progressed as to warrant an advance. As our route now lay away from the river, scarcity of water entailed greater care being taken in the selection of encamping grounds, so on arriving at our halting-place each day I had to reconnoitre ahead for a suitable site for our next resting-ground, a considerable[Page 314] addition to the day's work. Road-making for the passage of the elephants became more difficult, and transport was so deficient that the troops could only be brought up very gradually. Thus, it was the 22nd of the month before we reached the Tuibum river, only twenty miles from Tipai Mukh. On our way we were met by some scouts from the villages ahead of us, who implored of us to advance no further, saying, if we would only halt, their headmen would come in and submit to whatever terms we chose to make. The villagers were informed in reply that our quarrel was not with them, and so long as we remained unmolested, not the slightest injury should be done to them, their villages, or their crops; but that we were determined to reach the country of Lalbura, the Chief who had been the ringleader in the raids upon the tea-gardens.

By December 14th, things had progressed enough to justify moving forward. Since our route was now away from the river, the lack of water meant we had to be more careful in choosing our camping spots. Each day, when we reached our stopping place, I had to scout ahead for a suitable site for our next resting ground, which added significantly to our daily workload. Making a path for the elephants became more challenging, and transportation was so limited that the troops could only be brought up very slowly. As a result, it was the 22nd before we reached the Tuibum River, just twenty miles from Tipai Mukh. On our way, we were approached by some scouts from the villages ahead, who begged us not to move any further, saying that if we would just stop, their leaders would come and accept whatever terms we set. In response, the villagers were told that our conflict wasn't with them, and as long as we were left alone, they and their villages wouldn't be harmed in any way; however, we were determined to reach the land of Lalbura, the Chief who had led the raids on the tea gardens.

We pushed on as fast as the dense undergrowth would permit until within about a mile of the river, where we found the road blocked by a curious erection in the form of a gallows, from which hung two grotesque figures, made of bamboo. A little further on it was a felled tree which stopped us; this tree was studded all over with knife-like pieces of bamboo, and from the incisions into which these were stuck exuded a red juice, exactly the colour of blood. This was the Lushai mode of warning us what would be our fate if we ventured further. We, however, proceeded on our way, bivouacked for the night, and early the next morning started off in the direction of some villages which we understood lay in the road to our destination.

We kept moving as quickly as the thick underbrush allowed until we were about a mile from the river, where we came across a strange structure resembling a gallows, from which hung two bizarre figures made of bamboo. A little further, we encountered a fallen tree that blocked our path; this tree was covered with sharp pieces of bamboo, and from the cuts where these were inserted oozed a red liquid, exactly the color of blood. This was the Lushai's way of warning us of what would happen if we went any further. Nonetheless, we continued on our journey, set up camp for the night, and early the next morning resumed our trek toward some villages that we believed were along the way to our destination.

A severe march For the first thousand feet the ascent was very steep, and the path so narrow that we could only march in single file. Suddenly we entered upon a piece of ground cleared for cultivation, and as we emerged from the forest we were received by a volley from a position about sixty yards off. A young police orderly, who was acting as our guide, was knocked over by my side, and a second volley wounded one of the sepoys, on which we charged and the enemy retired up the hill. We came across a large number of these jooms (clearings), and at each there was a like effort to oppose us, always with the same result. After advancing in this way for the greater part of the day, alternately through dense jungle and open spaces, and occasionally passing by scattered cottages, we sighted a good-sized village, where it was decided we should remain for the night. The day's march had been very severe, the village being 4,000 feet above the river; and the troops were so worn out with their exertions that it was with difficulty the piquets could be got to construct proper shelter for themselves out of the plentiful supply of trees and underwood ready at hand. Throughout the night the enemy's sharpshooters kept up an annoying fire under cover of the forest which surrounded the village, and so as soon as day dawned a party moved out to clear the ground all round.

A challenging hike For the first thousand feet, the climb was very steep, and the path was so narrow that we could only move in a single line. Suddenly, we stepped into an area cleared for farming, and as we came out of the forest, we were met with gunfire from a position about sixty yards away. A young police orderly, who was acting as our guide, was struck down next to me, and a second round injured one of the sepoys, prompting us to charge and the enemy retreated up the hill. We encountered a lot of these jooms (clearings), and at each one, the enemy tried to resist us, always with the same outcome. After pushing through dense jungle and open areas for most of the day, occasionally passing scattered cottages, we spotted a decent-sized village where we decided to stay for the night. The day’s march had been extremely tough, with the village sitting at 4,000 feet above the river, and the troops were so exhausted from their efforts that it was difficult to get the pickets to build proper shelters for themselves from the abundant trees and underbrush available. Throughout the night, the enemy's sharpshooters maintained a frustrating fire from the cover of the forest surrounding the village, so as soon as dawn broke, a group moved out to clear the area all around.

Lushais foiled by Gurkhas It was most aggravating to find from the view we got of the country[Page 315] from this elevated position that the previous day's harassing march had been an absolutely useless performance and an unnecessary waste of time and strength. We could now distinctly see that this village did not lead to Lalbura's country, as we had been led to believe it would, and that there was no alternative but to retrace our steps as far as the river. The men and animals were too tired to march that day, and the next being Christmas, we made another halt, and commenced our retirement on the 26th. This was an extremely nasty business, and had to be carried out with very great caution. The ground, as I said before, necessitated our proceeding in single file, and with only 250 fighting men (all that our deficient transport admitted of being brought on to this point) it was difficult to guard the long line of sick, wounded, and coolies. As soon as we began to draw in our piquets, the Lushais, who had never ceased their fire, perceiving we were about to retire, came down in force, and entered one end of the village, yelling and screaming like demons, before we had got out at the other. The whole way down the hill they pressed us hard, endeavouring to get amongst the baggage, but were invariably baffled by the Gurkhas, who, extending rapidly whenever the ground was favourable, retired through their supports in admirable order, and did not once give the enemy the chance of passing them. We had 3 men killed and 8 wounded during the march, but the Lushais confessed afterwards to a loss of between 50 and 60.

Lushais defeated by Gurkhas It was incredibly frustrating to see from our vantage point[Page 315] that the grueling march the day before had been completely pointless and a waste of time and energy. We now clearly realized that this village didn’t lead to Lalbura's territory, as we had been told, and that we had no choice but to backtrack to the river. The men and animals were too exhausted to move that day, and since the next day was Christmas, we decided to take another break and started our retreat on the 26th. This was a really tricky situation, requiring extreme caution. The terrain, as I mentioned earlier, forced us to move in single file, and with only 250 combat-ready men (the maximum our limited transport could bring to this point), it was challenging to protect the long line of sick, wounded, and porters. As soon as we started withdrawing our pickets, the Lushais, who had been firing continuously, realized we were retreating and charged in large numbers, entering one end of the village while we were still exiting from the other. All the way down the hill, they pressed us hard, trying to get among the supplies, but were consistently thwarted by the Gurkhas, who quickly spread out whenever the terrain allowed, retired through their supports in excellent formation, and never allowed the enemy a chance to slip past them. We lost 3 men and had 8 wounded during the march, but the Lushais later admitted to losing between 50 and 60.

As we were given to understand that our short retrograde movement had been interpreted into a defeat by the Lushais, the General wisely determined to pay the village of Kholel another visit. Our doing so had the best possible effect. A slight resistance was offered at the first clearance, but by the time the ridge was reached the Chief, having become convinced of the uselessness of further opposition, submitted, and engaged to give hostages and keep open communication with our depot at Tipai Mukh, a promise which he most faithfully performed.

As we understood that our brief retreat was seen as a defeat by the Lushais, the General wisely decided to visit the village of Kholel again. This had a very positive effect. There was some resistance at the first clearing, but by the time we reached the ridge, the Chief, realizing that further opposition was pointless, surrendered and agreed to provide hostages and maintain communication with our depot at Tipai Mukh, a promise he kept very faithfully.

1872 1872 opened auspiciously for me. On New Year's Day I was agreeably surprised by a communication from the Quartermaster-General informing me that, a vacancy having unexpectedly occurred, Lord Napier had appointed me Deputy-Quartermaster-General. This was an important step in my department, and I was proportionately elated.

1872 1872 started off well for me. On New Year's Day, I was pleasantly surprised to receive a message from the Quartermaster-General informing me that, due to an unexpected vacancy, Lord Napier had appointed me Deputy-Quartermaster-General. This was a significant advancement in my department, and I was correspondingly thrilled.

A few days later I received the good news of the birth of a son at Umballa on the 8th.

A few days later, I got the good news that a son was born in Umballa on the 8th.

Paucity of transport and difficulty about supplies kept us stationary on the Tuibum for some time, after which we moved on as before, the Lushais retiring in front of us until the 25th, when they attacked us while we were moving along a narrow ravine, with a stream at the bottom and steep hills on either side. The first volley wounded the General in the arm and hand, and killed his orderly. The enemy's[Page 316] intention was evidently to push past the weak column along the hillside and get amongst the coolies; but this attempt was again foiled by the Gurkhas, who, flinging off their great-coats, rushed into the stream and engaged the Lushais before they could get at the baggage, pressing them up the mountain, rising 2,500 feet above us, as fast as the precipitous nature of the ascent would allow. On the crest we found the enemy occupying a good-sized village, out of which we cleared them and took possession of it ourselves. On this occasion we had only 4 killed and 8 wounded, including the General, while the enemy lost about 60. In one place we found a heap of headless bodies. The Lushais, if unable to remove their dead, invariably decapitate them to prevent their adversaries from carrying off the heads, their own mode of dealing with a slain enemy, as they believe that whoever is in possession of the head will have the man to whom it belonged as a slave in the next world.

A lack of transportation and difficulties with supplies kept us stuck on the Tuibum for a while, after which we moved on as usual, with the Lushais retreating ahead of us until the 25th, when they attacked us while we were moving through a narrow ravine that had a stream at the bottom and steep hills on either side. The first shot hit the General in the arm and hand, and his orderly was killed. The enemy clearly intended to push past our weak column along the hillside and get into the coolies, but the Gurkhas thwarted this attempt again. They threw off their heavy coats, jumped into the stream, and engaged the Lushais before they could reach the baggage, pushing them up the mountain, which rose 2,500 feet above us, as quickly as the steep terrain would allow. At the top, we found the enemy occupying a sizable village, which we cleared out and took for ourselves. On this occasion, we had only 4 killed and 8 wounded, including the General, while the enemy lost about 60. In one spot, we discovered a pile of headless bodies. The Lushais, if they can't remove their dead, always decapitate them to stop their enemies from taking the heads, which is their way of handling slain foes, as they believe that whoever has the head will have the man’s soul as a slave in the afterlife.

A successful turning movement To complete the success we had gained, the General sent me the next day with a small party to burn the village of Taikum, belonging to the people who had attacked us. It was past noon before we could make a start, owing to the non-arrival of the elephants with the guns. When they did come in, the poor huge creatures were so fatigued by their climb that it was considered advisable to transfer their loads to coolies, particularly as the route we had to traverse was reported to be even more difficult than anything we had yet encountered. When we had proceeded a short distance, we perceived that our way was blocked a mile ahead by a most formidable-looking stockade, on one side of which rose perpendicular cliffs, while on the other was a rocky ravine. As the nature of the ground did not admit of my approaching near enough to discover whether the Artillery could be placed so as to cover the Infantry advance, and being anxious to avoid losing many of my small party, I settled to turn the stockade by a detour up the hillside. This manœuvre took some time, owing to the uncompromising nature of the country; but it was successful, for when we struck the track, we found ourselves about a mile on the other side of the stockade. The Lushais, on realizing what we were about, retired to Taikum, which place came into view at 5 p.m. It was situated on the summit of a hill 1,200 yards in front, and was crowded with men. The guns were brought at once into action, and while Captain Blackwood3 was preparing his fuses, I advanced towards the village with the Infantry. The first shell burst a little beyond the village, the second was lodged in its very centre, for a time completely paralyzing the Lushais. On recovering from the shock, they took to their heels and scampered off in every direction, the last man leaving the village just as we entered[Page 317] it. The houses, as usual, were made of bamboo, and after it had been ascertained that there was no living creature inside any of them, the place was set on fire, and we began our return journey. There was a bright moon, but even aided by its light we did not reach our bivouac until midnight. This ended the campaign so far as opposition was concerned, for not another shot was fired either by us or against us during the remaining six weeks we continued in the country.

A successful U-turn To follow up on our earlier success, the General sent me out the next day with a small team to burn the village of Taikum, which belonged to the people who had attacked us. It was past noon before we could get going, due to the elephants with the guns not arriving on time. When they finally showed up, the poor giant animals were so worn out from their climb that we decided it was best to transfer their loads to porters, especially since the path ahead was said to be even tougher than what we had faced so far. After we had gone a short distance, we realized our way was blocked about a mile ahead by a very imposing stockade, with steep cliffs on one side and a rocky ravine on the other. Since the ground didn't allow me to get close enough to see if the artillery could be set up to support the infantry's advance, and wanting to avoid risking too many of my small team, I decided to bypass the stockade by taking a detour up the hillside. This maneuver took a while because of the rough terrain, but it worked out, as we ended up about a mile on the other side of the stockade. When the Lushais saw what we were doing, they retreated to Taikum, which we spotted at 5 p.m. It was perched on top of a hill 1,200 yards away, bustling with people. The guns were immediately put into action, and while Captain Blackwood3 was getting his fuses ready, I moved toward the village with the infantry. The first shell exploded just beyond the village, and the second landed right in the center, temporarily stunning the Lushais. Once they recovered from the shock, they panicked and ran off in every direction, with the last person leaving the village just as we entered[Page 317] it. The houses, as usual, were made of bamboo, and after confirming that there were no living beings inside any of them, we set the place on fire and started our journey back. It was a bright moonlit night, but even with its light, we didn’t reach our camp until midnight. This concluded the campaign, as we faced no further opposition; neither we nor the enemy fired a shot during the remaining six weeks we stayed in the area.

Lalbura's Village Soon after this we heard that some of the captives we had come to relieve had been given up to the Chittagong column, and that Mary Winchester was safe in General Brownlow's hands—very satisfactory intelligence, showing as it did that the Lushais were beginning to understand the advisability of acceding to our demands. The work of our column, however, was not over, for although, from the information we received of his whereabouts, we had given up hope of joining hands with Brownlow, Bourchier determined that Lalbura's country must be reached; he (Lalbura) being the chief offender, it would never have done to let him think his stronghold lay beyond our power.

Lalbura Village Soon after this, we learned that some of the captives we came to rescue had been handed over to the Chittagong column, and that Mary Winchester was safe in General Brownlow's care—which was very good news, indicating that the Lushais were starting to see the benefits of meeting our demands. However, our column's mission wasn’t finished yet, because despite the information we got about his location, we had given up on the hope of joining forces with Brownlow. Bourchier was determined that we had to reach Lalbura's territory; since he was the main troublemaker, we couldn’t let him believe that his stronghold was out of our reach.

In order that we might be well out of Lushailand before the rains, which usually begin in that part of the world about the middle of March, and are extremely heavy, it was decided not to wait until a road could be made for elephants, but to trust to coolie-carriage alone, and to push on rapidly as soon as supplies sufficient for twelve days could be collected. Kits were still further reduced, officers and soldiers alike being only allowed a couple of blankets and one or two cooking utensils.

In order to get out of Lushailand before the rains, which typically start around mid-March and can be very heavy, we decided not to wait for a road to be made for the elephants. Instead, we would rely solely on coolie-carriage and move quickly as soon as we gathered enough supplies for twelve days. We also reduced our gear even more, allowing officers and soldiers only a couple of blankets and one or two cooking utensils.

We resumed our march on the 12th February; the route in many places was strongly and skilfully stockaded, but the tidings of our successes had preceded us, and our advance was unopposed. In five days we reached the Chamfai valley, at the end of which, on a high hill, Lalbura's village was situated.4 Although Lalbura's father, Vonolel, had been dead some years, the people still called the place Vonolel's country. Vonolel had been a famous warrior, and they were evidently very proud of his reputation. We were shown his tomb, which, like that of all great Lushai braves, was decorated with the heads of human beings (his slaves in paradise) and those of animals, besides drinking-vessels and various kinds of utensils for his use in another life.

We continued our march on February 12th; in many places, the path was well-defended and expertly built up, but news of our victories had spread ahead of us, and our progress was without any opposition. In five days, we reached the Chamfai valley, where, on a high hill, Lalbura's village was situated.4 Even though Lalbura's father, Vonolel, had passed away several years ago, the locals still referred to the area as Vonolel's country. Vonolel had been a renowned warrior, and they clearly took pride in his legacy. We were shown his tomb, which, like those of all great Lushai heroes, was adorned with the heads of human beings (his slaves in paradise) and animals, along with drinking vessels and various kinds of utensils for his use in the afterlife.

Lalbura had taken himself off; but his headmen submitted to us and accepted our terms. We remained at this place till the 21st, in accordance with an agreement we had made with Brownlow to send up signals on the night of the 20th in case his column should be anywhere in the neighbourhood. During the three days we stayed amongst them we mixed freely with the Lushais, who were greatly delighted[Page 318] and astonished with all we had to show them. The telescope and the burning-glass amused them greatly; our revolvers excited their envy; and for the little Mountain guns they displayed the highest veneration. But what seemed to astonish them more than anything was the whiteness of our skins, particularly when on closer inspection they discovered that our arms and bodies were even fairer than our faces and hands, which to our eyes had become from long exposure so bronzed as to make us almost unrecognizable as Europeans.

Lalbura had left, but his leaders agreed to our terms. We stayed at this location until the 21st, as per an agreement we made with Brownlow to send up signals on the night of the 20th if his group was anywhere nearby. During the three days we spent with them, we interacted freely with the Lushais, who were very pleased and amazed by everything we had to show them. The telescope and the magnifying glass entertained them, our revolvers sparked their envy, and they held a deep respect for the little Mountain guns. However, what seemed to astonish them the most was the paleness of our skin, especially when they saw up close that our arms and bodies were even fairer than our faces and hands, which to us had become so bronzed from long exposure that we were almost unrecognizable as Europeans.

Murder of Lord Mayo We were all glad that the duty entrusted to us had been satisfactorily ended, and we were hoping that the Viceroy, who had taken a keen personal interest in our proceedings, would be satisfied with the result, when we were shocked and startled beyond measure by hearing that Lord Mayo had been murdered by a convict while visiting the Andaman Islands. The disastrous news arrived as we were in the midst of firing signal-rockets, burning blue-lights, and lighting bonfires to attract the attention of the Chittagong column. I could not help thinking of the heavy loss India had sustained, for the manly, open-hearted Governor-General had impressed the Native Chiefs in quite an exceptional manner, and he was liked as well as respected by all classes of Europeans and Natives. I felt also much for Donald Stewart, to whom, I knew, such a terrible tragedy, happening while he was Superintendent at Port Blair, would be a heavy blow.

Murder of Lord Mayo We were all relieved that the task we were given had been completed successfully, and we hoped that the Viceroy, who had taken a strong personal interest in our efforts, would be pleased with the outcome. However, we were shocked and deeply unsettled to hear that Lord Mayo had been murdered by a convict while visiting the Andaman Islands. The devastating news came just as we were firing signal rockets, burning blue lights, and lighting bonfires to catch the attention of the Chittagong column. I couldn't help but think about the significant loss India had suffered, because the brave, open-hearted Governor-General had made an exceptional impression on the Native Chiefs, and he was both liked and respected by all groups of Europeans and Natives. I also felt a lot for Donald Stewart, as I knew that such a terrible tragedy, happening while he was the Superintendent at Port Blair, would be a heavy blow for him.

On the 6th March we reached Tipai Mukh, where we bade farewell to our Lushai friends, numbers of whom accompanied us to get possession of the empty tins, bags, and casks which were got rid of at every stage. The hostages and those who had assisted us were liberally rewarded, and we parted on the best of terms, with promises on their part of future good behaviour—promises which were kept for nearly twenty years.

On March 6th, we arrived at Tipai Mukh, where we said goodbye to our Lushai friends, many of whom came along to collect the empty tins, bags, and barrels we discarded at each stop. The hostages and those who helped us were generously rewarded, and we parted on friendly terms, with their promises of good behavior in the future—promises they kept for almost twenty years.

No one was sorry that the marching was at an end, and that the rest of the journey back was to be performed in boats. Constant hard work and exposure in a peculiarly malarious and relaxing climate had told upon the whole force; while our having to depend for so long on tinned meats, which were not always good, and consisted chiefly of pork, with an occasional ration of mutton and salt beef, had been very trying to the officers. One and all were 'completely worn out,' as the principal medical officer reported; two out of our small number died, and the General's condition gave cause for grave anxiety. For myself, having a perfect horror of pork, I think I should have starved outright but for the extraordinary culinary talent of Mr. Edgar, who disguised the presence of the unclean animal in such a wonderful way in soups, stews, etc., that I frequently partook of it without knowing what I was eating. My wife and some anonymous kind friend sent by post small tins of Liebig's extract, which were highly appreciated.

No one was sad that the marching was over and that the rest of the journey back would be by boat. Constant hard work and exposure to a particularly unhealthy and relaxing climate had taken a toll on everyone; relying for so long on canned meats, which weren't always good and mainly consisted of pork, with an occasional ration of mutton and corned beef, had been very tough on the officers. Everyone was "completely worn out," as the chief medical officer reported; two out of our small group died, and the General's condition was a serious concern. Personally, since I have a strong aversion to pork, I thought I would have gone hungry if it weren't for the amazing cooking skills of Mr. Edgar, who managed to hide the presence of that unclean meat so well in soups, stews, etc., that I often ate it without realizing what it was. My wife and a kind friend sent small tins of Liebig's extract by mail, which were greatly appreciated.

Cholera pursued us up to and beyond Cachar; the wretched coolies[Page 319] suffered most, and it is a disease to which Gurkhas are peculiarly susceptible, while a feast on a village pig from time to time probably helped to make matters worse for them. Many of these grand little soldiers and some of the Sikhs also fell victims to the scourge. My orderly, a very smart young Gurkha, to my great regret, was seized with it the day after I reached Cachar, and died next morning.

Cholera followed us to and beyond Cachar; the unfortunate coolies[Page 319] suffered the most, and it’s a disease that Gurkhas are particularly vulnerable to, while feasting on a village pig from time to time likely made things worse for them. Many of these brave soldiers, along with some Sikhs, also fell prey to the epidemic. My orderly, a very sharp young Gurkha, regrettably contracted it the day after I arrived in Cachar, and died the next morning.

On my way to Simla, I spent a few days with Norman at Calcutta. The whole place was in mourning on account of the terrible catastrophe which had happened at Port Blair.

On my way to Simla, I spent a few days with Norman in Calcutta. The entire place was in mourning because of the terrible disaster that had occurred at Port Blair.






CHAPTER XL.

1872

Lord Napier of Murchiston, the Governor of Madras, had been summoned to Calcutta to act as Viceroy until Lord Northbrook, Lord Mayo's successor, should arrive. He seemed interested in what I had to tell him about Lushai, and Lord Napier of Magdāla spoke in laudatory terms of the manner in which the expedition had been carried out.

Lord Napier of Murchiston, the Governor of Madras, was called to Calcutta to serve as Viceroy until Lord Northbrook, Lord Mayo's successor, arrived. He seemed engaged in what I had to share about Lushai, and Lord Napier of Magdāla spoke highly of how the expedition had been conducted.

I reached Simla on the 1st of April, the twentieth anniversary of my arrival in India. I found my wife, with the two children, settled in Snowdon,1 a house I had recently purchased. She had had much trouble in my absence, having been at death's door herself, and having very nearly lost our little son at Umballa three weeks after his birth from a Native wet-nurse having tried to kill him. The English nurse's suspicions had been aroused by one day finding a live coal in the cradle, but she did not mention this discovery at the time for fear of frightening my wife; but she determined to watch. A few days later, while with our little girl in the next room, she heard the baby boy choking, and rushed in to find, to her horror, blood on his lips, and that he was struggling violently, as if to get rid of something in his throat! She pushed down her finger and pulled out a sharp piece of cane about two inches long; but other pieces had evidently gone down, for the poor little fellow was in terrible agony for many days. It turned out that the wretched woman hated the unwonted confinement of her new life, and was determined to get away, but was too much afraid of her husband to say so. He wanted her to remain for the sake of the high pay this class of servant receives, so it appeared to the woman that her only chance of freedom was to get rid of the child, and to carry out her purpose she first attempted to set fire to the cradle, and finding this did not succeed, she pulled some pieces of[Page 320] cane off the chair upon which she was sitting, and shoved them down the child's throat. She was, as my wife described her, a pretty, innocent, timid-looking creature, to whom no one would ever have dreamt of attributing such an atrocity. The boy was made extremely delicate for several months by this misadventure, as his digestion had been ruined for the time being, but eventually he completely recovered from its effects.

I arrived in Simla on April 1st, the twentieth anniversary of my arrival in India. I found my wife and our two kids settled in Snowdon, a house I had recently bought. She had gone through a lot while I was away, nearly dying herself, and almost losing our little son in Umballa just three weeks after his birth because a Native wet-nurse tried to harm him. The English nurse became suspicious when she found a live coal in the cradle one day but didn’t mention it at the time for fear of scaring my wife. Instead, she decided to keep an eye on things. A few days later, while taking care of our little girl in the next room, she heard the baby boy choking. She rushed in and was horrified to see blood on his lips and him struggling violently as if something was stuck in his throat! She managed to stick her finger down and pulled out a sharp piece of cane about two inches long, but it was clear that other pieces had gone down, leaving the poor little guy in terrible pain for many days. It turned out that the unfortunate woman hated being confined to her new life and wanted to escape but was too scared of her husband to say anything. He wanted her to stay for the high pay that came with being a servant, so she felt that her only chance to be free was to get rid of the child. To carry out her plan, she first tried to set fire to the cradle, and when that didn’t work, she pulled some pieces of cane off the chair she was sitting on and shoved them down the baby’s throat. As my wife described her, she was a pretty, innocent-looking, timid creature whom no one would have imagined capable of such an act. The boy became extremely delicate for several months due to this incident, as his digestion had been ruined for the time being, but he eventually made a full recovery.

In September the C.B. was conferred upon me for the Lushai Expedition. Lord Napier informed me of the fact in a particularly kind little note. I was very proud of being a member of the Bath, although at the time a brevet would have been a more useful reward, as want of rank was the reason Lord Napier had given for not allowing me to act as Quartermaster-General, on Lumsden being temporarily appointed Resident at Hyderabad.

In September, I was awarded the C.B. for the Lushai Expedition. Lord Napier informed me in a really thoughtful note. I felt very proud to be part of the Bath, even though at that moment, a brevet would have been a more practical reward, since Lord Napier had mentioned my lack of rank as the reason he didn’t allow me to serve as Quartermaster-General while Lumsden was temporarily appointed Resident at Hyderabad.

We began our usual winter tour in the middle of October. At Mian Mir I made the acquaintance of the Adjutant of the 37th Foot, the late Sir Herbert Stewart, who was then a smart, good-looking subaltern, and I recollect his bemoaning bitterly his bad luck in never having had a chance of seeing service. How little at that time could it have been anticipated that within twelve years he would see hard fighting in Africa, and be killed as a Major-General in command of a column!

We started our regular winter tour in mid-October. At Mian Mir, I met the Adjutant of the 37th Foot, the late Sir Herbert Stewart, who was then a sharp, handsome young officer. I remember him lamenting his bad luck for never getting a chance to see action. It's hard to believe that just twelve years later, he would face tough battles in Africa and be killed as a Major-General leading a column!

We visited several of the stations in the Punjab, and spent a few days at Jamu as guest of the Maharaja of Kashmir, who treated us royally, and gave us some excellent pig-sticking; and on the 21st December we joined Head-Quarters at Lawrencepur for a large Camp of Exercise, to be held on the identical ground which I had selected for the camp which Sir Hugh Rose proposed to have eleven years before.

We visited several stations in Punjab and spent a few days in Jamu as guests of the Maharaja of Kashmir, who treated us like royalty and organized some great pig-sticking events. On December 21st, we joined Headquarters at Lawrencepur for a large training camp, held on the same ground I had chosen for the camp Sir Hugh Rose planned to set up eleven years earlier.

Lord Napier's care for the soldier Lord Napier of Magdāla did much to improve the efficiency of the army by means of Camps of Exercise. He held one at Delhi in the winter of 1871-72, and the Camp of which I am writing was most successful and instructive. No Commander-in-Chief ever carried out inspections with more thoroughness than did Lord Napier of Magdāla. He spared himself no trouble. On the hottest day he would toil through barrack after barrack to satisfy himself that the soldiers were properly cared for; Europeans and Natives were equally attended to, and many measures conducive to the men's comfort date from the time he was in command in India.

Lord Napier's concern for the soldier Lord Napier of Magdala made significant improvements to the army's efficiency through Camps of Exercise. He held one in Delhi during the winter of 1871-72, and the Camp I'm discussing was very successful and educational. No Commander-in-Chief conducted inspections with the same level of thoroughness as Lord Napier of Magdala. He put in a tremendous effort. On the hottest days, he would go through barrack after barrack to ensure that the soldiers were being well taken care of; both Europeans and Natives received equal attention, and many measures aimed at enhancing the men’s comfort originated during his command in India.

1873 At the close of this camp Lumsden, who had returned to his appointment from Hyderabad, gave up the Quartermaster-Generalship for good. We had been greatly thrown together during the twenty-one years I had been in India, and my wife and I were very sorry to bid farewell to him and Mrs. Lumsden. He was succeeded by Edwin Johnson, pending whose arrival I was now allowed to officiate.

1873 At the end of this camp, Lumsden, who had come back to his position from Hyderabad, officially stepped down from the role of Quartermaster-General. During the twenty-one years I had spent in India, we had been very close, and my wife and I were sad to say goodbye to him and Mrs. Lumsden. Edwin Johnson was set to take over, and until he arrived, I was allowed to fill in for him.

From Lawrencepur I went with the Commander-in-Chief to Calcutta. Soon after we arrived there I was asked by Sir Douglas Forsyth[Page 321] to accompany him on his Mission to Yarkand and Kashgar. I should have much liked to have done so, for the idea of a trip to these, at that time unknown, regions possessed great fascinations for me. I was therefore well pleased when Lord Napier told me he would not stand in the way of my going, and proportionately disappointed when, the next day, His Excellency said that on consideration he did not think I could be spared just then, for the Quartermaster-General would be new to the work at first, and he thought he would need my assistance.

From Lawrencepur, I traveled with the Commander-in-Chief to Calcutta. Shortly after we arrived, Sir Douglas Forsyth[Page 321] asked me to join him on his mission to Yarkand and Kashgar. I would have loved to go, as the thought of visiting those relatively unknown areas was really intriguing to me. So, I was quite pleased when Lord Napier told me he wouldn't block my chance to go. However, I was really disappointed when, the next day, His Excellency said he had reconsidered and felt I couldn't be spared at that moment since the Quartermaster-General would be new to the job and would likely need my help.

The end of April saw us back in Simla, and in July Edwin Johnson arrived.

The end of April found us back in Simla, and in July, Edwin Johnson showed up.

Negotiations with Sher Ali renewed During the summer of 1873 important events occurred which had much to do with our subsequent relations with Afghanistan. The inquiries which Sher Ali had begged Lord Mayo to make about Persian encroachments in Sistan, had resulted in General Goldsmid2 and Colonel Pollock3 being deputed in 1871 to proceed to Sistan to decide the question. The settlement arrived at by these officers, which assigned to Afghanistan the country up to the right bank of the Helmand, but nothing beyond, satisfied neither the Shah nor the Amir, and the latter sent his confidential Minister, Saiyad Nur Mahomed, the Afghan Commissioner in the Sistan arbitration, to meet Lord Northbrook on his arrival in Bombay for the purpose of appealing to him against the decision. It could not, however, be reversed; but in a subsequent interview which the new Viceroy accorded the Envoy, the latter was told that as soon as Persia and Afghanistan had signified their acceptance of the settlement, the Government of India would present the Amir with five lakhs of rupees as compensation for the ceded territory which had for a time belonged to Afghanistan.

Negotiations with Sher Ali resumed In the summer of 1873, significant events took place that greatly impacted our future relations with Afghanistan. The inquiries that Sher Ali had asked Lord Mayo to make regarding Persian encroachments in Sistan led to General Goldsmid2 and Colonel Pollock3 being sent in 1871 to Sistan to resolve the issue. The outcome reached by these officers, which allocated the land up to the right bank of the Helmand to Afghanistan but no further, did not satisfy either the Shah or the Amir. Consequently, the Amir sent his trusted Minister, Saiyad Nur Mahomed, the Afghan Commissioner in the Sistan arbitration, to meet Lord Northbrook upon his arrival in Bombay to appeal against the decision. However, it could not be overturned; but in a later meeting that the new Viceroy held with the Envoy, he was informed that as soon as Persia and Afghanistan accepted the settlement, the Government of India would grant the Amir five lakhs of rupees as compensation for the territory that had temporarily belonged to Afghanistan.

The action of Her Majesty's Ministers in communication with Russia regarding the northern boundary of Afghanistan was another matter about which the Amir was greatly exercised; and Lord Northbrook, thinking that all such vexed questions could be more satisfactorily explained by personal communication than by letter, proposed to the Amir that His Highness should consent to receive at Kabul a British officer 'of high rank and dignity, in whom I have full confidence' (Mr. Macnabb),4 'who will also explain to Your Highness,' wrote the Viceroy, 'the negotiations which have now been satisfactorily concluded with the Government of His Majesty the Emperor of Russia, whereby the Russian Government have agreed to recognize and respect the integrity and independence of the territories now in Your Highness's possession.'

The actions of Her Majesty's Ministers in discussing the northern boundary of Afghanistan with Russia were a major concern for the Amir. Lord Northbrook believed that personal discussions would clarify these complicated issues better than letters, so he suggested to the Amir that His Highness agree to meet with a British officer 'of high rank and dignity, in whom I have full confidence' (Mr. Macnabb),4 'who will also explain to Your Highness,' wrote the Viceroy, 'the negotiations that have now been successfully concluded with the Government of His Majesty the Emperor of Russia, in which the Russian Government agreed to acknowledge and respect the integrity and independence of the territories currently held by Your Highness.'

Sher Ali's demands To this request Sher Ali replied that he considered it advisable that one of his agents should first wait on the Viceroy to ascertain the real[Page 322] views of the British Government on these important matters. This was agreed to, and Saiyad Nur Mahomed was again selected to represent the Amir. He reached Simla towards the end of June. On being informed that Persia had unreservedly accepted the decision as to the Sistan question, the Envoy declared that, whatever opinion the Amir might hold as to his rights, His Highness would also scrupulously respect that decision. With regard to the northern frontier, the Envoy begged it to be clearly understood that the Afghan Government wished to be allowed to make their own laws and follow their own customs within their territories; that the internal affairs of the country should be free from interference; and that the acknowledgment by Russia of the Amir's claim to land south of the Oxus should be confirmed by Bokhara. He further requested 'that the British Government would distinctly promise that, in the event of any aggression on the Amir's territories, they would consider the perpetrator of such aggression as their own enemy.' It was explained to the Saiyad that the British Government did not share the Amir's apprehension of Russia; that under such circumstances as he contemplated, it would be the duty of the Amir to refer to the British Government, who would decide whether it was an occasion for assistance to be rendered by them, and what the nature and extent of the assistance should be; moreover, that their help must be conditional upon the Amir himself abstaining from aggression, and on his unreserved acceptance of the advice of the British Government in regard to his external relations.

Sher Ali's requests In response to this request, Sher Ali said he thought it would be best for one of his representatives to meet with the Viceroy first to find out the actual[Page 322] views of the British Government on these important issues. This was agreed upon, and Saiyad Nur Mahomed was chosen again to represent the Amir. He arrived in Simla toward the end of June. When informed that Persia had fully accepted the decision regarding the Sistan issue, the Envoy stated that, regardless of the Amir's opinion on his rights, His Highness would also carefully respect that decision. Regarding the northern frontier, the Envoy insisted it should be clearly understood that the Afghan Government wanted to be able to create their own laws and follow their customs within their territory; that the internal affairs of the country should not be interfered with; and that Russia's acknowledgment of the Amir's claim to land south of the Oxus should be confirmed by Bokhara. He also asked that the British Government clearly promise that, if there were any aggression against the Amir's territories, they would view the aggressor as their own enemy. It was explained to the Saiyad that the British Government didn’t share the Amir's concerns about Russia; that in the situations he was considering, it would be the Amir's responsibility to consult the British Government, who would then decide if it was a situation that warranted their assistance and what kind of help might be given; furthermore, that their support would depend on the Amir himself refraining from aggression and fully accepting the British Government's advice regarding his foreign relations.

Two other questions were discussed:

Two other questions were raised:

(1) The location in certain towns in Afghanistan of British officers as representatives of the British Government.

(1) The presence of British officers as representatives of the British Government in certain towns in Afghanistan.

(2) The present assistance to be rendered to the Amir for the purpose of strengthening his country against foreign aggression.

(2) The current support being provided to the Amir to help strengthen his country against foreign attacks.

On the first point the Envoy said he had no instructions, but that, in his opinion, to ask Sher Ali to allow British officers to be located in Afghanistan would give rise to mistrust and apprehension. He recommended that a letter should be addressed to the Amir, pointing out the desirability of a British officer being sent to inspect the western and northern boundaries of Afghanistan, proceeding viâ Kandahar and returning viâ Kabul, where he might confer personally with His Highness. This suggestion was carried out.

On the first point, the Envoy said he had no instructions, but in his opinion, asking Sher Ali to allow British officers to be stationed in Afghanistan would create mistrust and concern. He suggested that a letter be sent to the Amir, highlighting the importance of sending a British officer to inspect the western and northern borders of Afghanistan, traveling through Kandahar and returning through Kabul, where he could meet with His Highness in person. This suggestion was implemented.

With regard to the second point under discussion, the Envoy stated that 20,000 stand-of-arms were desired, laying very particular stress on 5,000 Sniders being included in this number, and that hopes were entertained by the Amir that he would be largely assisted with money. In answer to this, the Saiyad was told that there was not then a sufficient reserve supply of Sniders for the English troops in India, and that it was impossible to spare more than 5,000 Enfields; that this number should at once be placed at the Amir's disposal, and that[Page 323] the remainder should be forwarded as soon as they were received from England. He was further informed that five lakhs of rupees (exclusive of the five lakhs promised the year before, as indemnification for the loss of territory) would be given to Sher Ali.

Regarding the second point being discussed, the Envoy mentioned that there was a need for 20,000 weapons, specifically highlighting that 5,000 Snider rifles should be part of that total. The Amir hoped for significant financial support as well. In response, the Saiyad was informed that there currently wasn't enough reserve stock of Sniders for the English troops in India, and that it would be impossible to provide more than 5,000 Enfield rifles. This amount would be made available to the Amir immediately, and the rest would be sent as soon as they arrived from England. He was also told that five lakhs of rupees (in addition to the five lakhs promised the previous year as compensation for the loss of territory) would be given to Sher Ali.

A final letter from the Viceroy was sent to the Amir through Saiyad Nur Mahomed, dated 6th September, 1873, summing up the result of the conference. His Highness was told, with reference to a fear expressed by the Envoy lest Russia should press for the establishment of a Russian Mission and agents in Afghanistan, that Prince Gortschakoff had officially intimated that, while he saw no objection to British officers going to Kabul, he engaged that Russian agents should abstain from doing so, and that, far from apprehending a Russian invasion of Afghanistan, the British Government believed that the effect of the recent arrangements had been to render the occurrence of such a contingency more remote than ever. At the same time, being desirous of seeing the Amir strong and his rule firmly established, the Government were prepared to give him any reasonable assistance.

A final letter from the Viceroy was sent to the Amir through Saiyad Nur Mahomed, dated September 6, 1873, summarizing the outcome of the conference. His Highness was informed, regarding a concern raised by the Envoy about the possibility of Russia pushing for a Russian Mission and agents in Afghanistan, that Prince Gortschakoff had officially communicated that, while he had no objections to British officers traveling to Kabul, he assured that Russian agents would avoid doing so. Furthermore, rather than fearing a Russian invasion of Afghanistan, the British Government believed that the recent arrangements had made such a scenario less likely than ever. At the same time, wishing to see the Amir strong and his rule firmly established, the Government was ready to offer him any reasonable assistance.

Sher Ali was greatly annoyed and disappointed at the result of his Envoy's visit to Simla. He was of a very impulsive, passionate disposition; his reply to the Viceroy's letter was discourteous and sarcastic; he declined to receive a British officer at Kabul, and although he condescended to accept the arms presented to him, he left the ten lakhs of rupees untouched in the Peshawar treasury. Colonel Valentine Baker, who was at that time travelling through Central Asia, was forbidden by the Amir to pass through Afghanistan on his way to India; and a few months later he refused to allow Sir Douglas Forsyth's Mission to return to India by way of Afghanistan.

Sher Ali was really annoyed and disappointed with the outcome of his envoy's visit to Simla. He had a very impulsive and passionate nature; his response to the Viceroy's letter was rude and sarcastic. He refused to accept a British officer in Kabul, and while he agreed to take the weapons offered to him, he left the ten lakhs of rupees untouched in the Peshawar treasury. Colonel Valentine Baker, who was traveling through Central Asia at that time, was not allowed by the Amir to go through Afghanistan on his way to India; and a few months later, he also prevented Sir Douglas Forsyth's Mission from returning to India via Afghanistan.






CHAPTER XLI.

1873


A Trip in the Himalayas
In the beginning of October my wife and I started for a fortnight's trip to the top of the Chor, a fine mountain sixty-two miles from Simla, and close on 12,000 feet high. We were accompanied by a very dear friend of ours—now no more—Colonel Baigrie, who was soon afterwards made Quartermaster-General in Bombay. He was a talented artist and delightful companion, and notwithstanding the old adage that two are company and three none, we three enjoyed our holiday immensely.

Himalayan Adventure At the start of October, my wife and I set out for a two-week trip to the summit of the Chor, a stunning mountain sixty-two miles from Simla and nearly 12,000 feet high. We were joined by a dear friend of ours—who is sadly no longer with us—Colonel Baigrie, who was soon afterwards appointed Quartermaster-General in Bombay. He was a talented artist and a great companion, and even though there's an old saying that two's company and three's a crowd, the three of us enjoyed our holiday immensely.

After crossing a stream called the Ghiri, below Fagu, the road passes through beautiful forest and cliff scenery, and for the most part was fairly easy, until the foot of the mountain was reached about six miles from the top, when it became very precipitous and difficult.[Page 324] We were the whole day doing this march, breakfasting in one place and lunching in another higher up. There was a good deal of snow in the shady spots. A few days before we had noticed that the top of the mountain was white, but the sun was still too strong in the daytime for the snow to lie long in exposed parts. The way being too steep for my wife to ride or go in a dandy, we all three walked, or rather climbed, up to the shoulder where our tents were pitched, about a mile from the summit.

After crossing a stream called the Ghiri, below Fagu, the road goes through beautiful forests and cliff scenery, and for the most part, it was pretty easy, until we reached the foot of the mountain about six miles from the top, when it got very steep and difficult.[Page 324] We spent the whole day on this trek, having breakfast in one spot and lunching at a higher location. There was quite a bit of snow in the shady areas. A few days earlier, we had noticed that the top of the mountain was covered in white, but the sun was still too strong during the day for the snow to last long in exposed areas. Since the path was too steep for my wife to ride or use a dandy, the three of us walked, or rather climbed, up to the shoulder where our tents were set up, about a mile from the summit.

The forest through which we passed was very beautiful, commencing with dark-green ilex, glistening holly, and sombre brown oak, interspersed with groups of the dainty, graceful, white-stemmed birch, and wreathed with festoons of the scarlet Himalayan vine. As we mounted higher, trees became fewer and the foliage less luxuriant, till at length only oaks were to be seen, their branches twisted into all sorts of weird, fantastic shapes from the strength of the south-west monsoon. Huge rocks became more frequent, covered with lichens and mosses of every shade, from dark-green to brilliant crimson. At length trees and shrubs were left behind, except the red-berried juniper, which grows at a higher elevation here than any other bush, and flourishes in the clefts of the rocks, where nothing else will exist. We got up in time to see the most glorious sunset; the colours were more wonderful than anything I had ever seen before, even in India. My wife urged Baigrie to make a rough sketch, and note the tints, that he might paint a picture of it later. He made the sketch, saying: 'If I attempted to represent truly what we see before us, the painting would be rejected by the good people at home as absurdly unreal, or as the work of a hopeless lunatic.' There was such a high wind that our small tents had a narrow escape of being blown away. That night the water was frozen in our jugs, and it was quite impossible to keep warm.

The forest we passed through was stunning, starting with dark-green holly, sleek ilex, and deep brown oak, mixed with clusters of delicate, elegant white-stemmed birch, and draped with vibrant red Himalayan vine. As we climbed higher, the trees grew sparse and the foliage less lush until only oaks remained, their branches twisted into all sorts of strange, fantastical shapes from the force of the south-west monsoon. Huge rocks became more common, covered in lichens and moss in every shade, from dark green to bright crimson. Eventually, only the red-berried juniper was left, which grows at a higher elevation than any other bush, thriving in the crevices of the rocks where nothing else can survive. We made it in time to witness the most breathtaking sunset; the colors were more incredible than anything I had ever seen, even in India. My wife encouraged Baigrie to do a rough sketch and note the shades so he could paint it later. He made the sketch, saying, "If I tried to depict what we see accurately, the painting would be dismissed by the good folks back home as ridiculously unrealistic or the work of a hopeless lunatic." A strong wind nearly blew our small tents away. That night, the water in our jugs froze, and it was impossible to stay warm.

We were up betimes the next morning, and climbed to the highest peak, where we found breakfast awaiting us and a magnificent view of the Himalayan ranges, right down to the plains on one side and up to the perpetual snows on the other. We descended to the foot of the mountain in the afternoon, and then returned, march by march, to Simla.

We woke up early the next morning and hiked to the highest peak, where breakfast was ready for us and we were treated to a stunning view of the Himalayan ranges, stretching down to the plains on one side and up to the eternal snow on the other. In the afternoon, we made our way down to the base of the mountain and then returned, step by step, to Simla.

Towards the end of the month Lord Napier began his winter tour, visiting the hill stations first. At Chakrata I made the acquaintance of the 92nd Highlanders, that distinguished corps which stood me in such good stead a few years later in Afghanistan. At the end of November we found ourselves at Lucknow, in time to take part in Lord Northbrook's state entry, and be present at a fête given to the Viceroy in the Wingfield Park by Sir George Cooper, the Chief Commissioner.

Towards the end of the month, Lord Napier started his winter tour, visiting the hill stations first. At Chakrata, I met the 92nd Highlanders, that distinguished unit which proved to be very helpful for me a few years later in Afghanistan. By the end of November, we arrived in Lucknow, in time to participate in Lord Northbrook's formal entry and attend a celebration organized for the Viceroy in Wingfield Park by Sir George Cooper, the Chief Commissioner.

From Lucknow we went for a brief visit to a small Camp of Exercise[Page 325] near Rurki, where Lord Napier left the Adjutant-General, Thesiger,1 in command, while he himself proceeded to visit some of the stations in the Madras Presidency, and I returned for a short time to Simla.

From Lucknow, we took a quick trip to a small training camp near Rurki, where Lord Napier left the Adjutant-General, Thesiger, in charge while he went to visit some stations in the Madras Presidency, and I went back to Simla for a little while.

While riding up the hill from Kalka, I had a novel experience. One of those tremendous thunder-storms which are not uncommon in the Himalayas came on; the rain was blinding and incessant, and the peals of thunder were simultaneous with the lightning. At last there was a tremendous crash; a flash, more vivid than the rest, passed right in front of my horse's head, accompanied by a whizzing noise and a sulphurous smell, completely blinding me for a second. Two Natives travelling a few yards ahead of me fell flat on their faces, and I thought they were killed, but it turned out they were only knocked over and very much frightened.

While riding up the hill from Kalka, I had a unique experience. One of those intense thunderstorms that aren't rare in the Himalayas hit; the rain was blinding and nonstop, and the thunderclaps came at the same time as the lightning. Finally, there was a massive crash; a flash, brighter than the others, passed right in front of my horse's head, accompanied by a whizzing sound and a sulfurous smell, completely dazzling me for a moment. Two locals traveling a few yards ahead of me fell flat on their faces, and I thought they were dead, but it turned out they were just knocked down and really scared.

1874 Early in January, 1874, we received by telegram the infinitely sad news of my father's death. We ought, I suppose, to have been prepared for such an event, seeing that he was within a few months of his ninetieth birthday; but he was so well and active, and took such a keen interest in all that was going on, especially anything connected with India, that we hardly realized his great age, and always hoped we might see him once more. He had received the G.C.B. from Her Majesty's hands at Windsor on the 8th December, and two days afterwards he wrote me an account of the ceremony, and expressed himself much pleased and gratified at the Queen's gracious manner to him. He said nothing about his health, but we heard later that he had taken cold in the train on his way home, and never recovered from the effects; he died on the 30th of December. His love for India had not been weakened by his twenty years' absence from the country, and he never wearied of being told of the wonderful changes which had taken place since his day—changes which, for the most part, dated from the Mutiny, for up till 1857 life in India was much the same as when my father first landed in the beginning of the century.

1874 In early January 1874, we received the incredibly sad news of my father's death via telegram. I guess we should have been prepared for this, considering he was just months away from his ninetieth birthday. However, he was so healthy and active, and he took such a strong interest in everything happening, especially anything related to India, that we hardly recognized his advanced age and always hoped to see him one more time. He had received the G.C.B. from Her Majesty at Windsor on December 8th, and two days later he wrote to me about the ceremony, expressing how pleased and honored he was by the Queen's graciousness toward him. He didn't mention his health, but we later learned that he had caught a cold on the train ride home and never recovered; he passed away on December 30th. His love for India hadn’t diminished even after twenty years away, and he never tired of hearing about the amazing changes that had occurred since his time—changes that mostly began after the Mutiny, since life in India had been pretty much the same as when my father first arrived at the start of the century.

The Famine in Behar A continued drought in Behar was at this time causing grave fears of a famine, such as from time to time had desolated various parts of India. Nine years before such a drought, and the absence of means of communication, which prevented grain being thrown into the famine-stricken districts in sufficient quantities, resulted in one-fourth of the population of Orissa being carried off by starvation, or disease consequent on starvation. So on this occasion Lord Northbrook was determined, at all costs, to ward off such a calamity. He sent Sir Richard Temple to Behar in the confident hope that his unbounded resource and energy would enable him to cope with the difficulties of the situation, a hope that was fully realized. Relief works were at once commenced; a transport train was quickly improvised, worked[Page 326] chiefly by military and police officers; and one million tons of rice were distributed amongst the people. Not a life was lost, but the cost to the State was enormous—six millions and a half sterling.

The Behar Famine At this time, a prolonged drought in Behar was raising serious concerns about a famine, like those that had periodically ravaged different parts of India. Nine years earlier, a similar drought, along with a lack of communication that made it impossible to deliver grain to the famine-hit areas in adequate amounts, led to a quarter of Orissa's population dying from starvation or diseases related to starvation. Therefore, on this occasion, Lord Northbrook was determined to prevent such a disaster at any cost. He sent Sir Richard Temple to Behar, confident that his vast resources and energy would help him tackle the challenges at hand, a hope that proved to be well-founded. Relief efforts began immediately; a transport system was quickly set up, primarily run by military and police officers, and one million tons of rice were distributed to the people. Not a single life was lost, but the financial burden on the State was immense—six and a half million sterling.

In the beginning of February I was ordered by Government to proceed to the famine districts to help Temple. I started at once; but I had not been long in Behar before I was required to join the Commander-in-Chief in Calcutta, His Excellency having determined to nominate me Quartermaster-General, in succession to Johnson, who was about to become Adjutant-General. Being only a Lieutenant-Colonel in the army, I could not, according to the rules, be put at once permanently into the appointment, which carried with it the rank of Major-General. The difficulty was overcome, however, by my being allowed to officiate till the following January, when, in the ordinary course of promotion, I should become a Colonel.

In early February, the government ordered me to go to the famine areas to assist Temple. I set out immediately, but I hadn’t been in Behar for long before I was called to join the Commander-in-Chief in Calcutta. His Excellency decided to appoint me as Quartermaster-General, succeeding Johnson, who was about to become Adjutant-General. Since I was only a Lieutenant-Colonel in the army, I couldn’t be permanently assigned to that position right away because it came with the rank of Major-General. However, the issue was resolved by allowing me to serve in the role temporarily until the following January, when, through the normal promotion process, I would become a Colonel.

Lord Northbrook spent the summer of 1874 in Calcutta, in consequence of the famine necessities having to be met; and as the Commander-in-Chief determined to follow his example, I took a house in Calcutta, and my wife joined me in the middle of March—rather a bad time of year to come down to the plains after spending the winter amongst the snows of Simla. But she did not fancy Simla in the season as a grass-widow, and had had quite enough of being alone.

Lord Northbrook spent the summer of 1874 in Calcutta to address the needs created by the famine. Since the Commander-in-Chief decided to do the same, I rented a house in Calcutta, and my wife joined me in the middle of March—a pretty tough time to arrive in the plains after spending the winter in the snowy conditions of Simla. However, she didn’t enjoy Simla during the season as a grass-widow and had gotten pretty tired of being alone.

We continued in Calcutta until August, when the Head-Quarters returned to Simla, where we remained till November.

We stayed in Calcutta until August, when the headquarters returned to Simla, where we stayed until November.

1875 We had a standing camp at Umballa during the winter of 1874-75, doing our inspections from there, and returning to the camp at intervals. There was the usual visit to Calcutta in March, towards the end of which month another daughter was born.

1875 We set up a permanent camp in Umballa during the winter of 1874-75, handling our inspections from there and coming back to the camp periodically. As usual, we visited Calcutta in March, and towards the end of that month, another daughter was born.

The Prince of Wales in India In October, 1875, I spent some time at Delhi, arranging for the Camp of Exercise to be held there in January for His Royal Highness the Prince of Wales. The camp was formed in the beginning of December, and consisted of 17,000 men, in four divisions, commanded by Major-Generals Sir Charles Reid, Macdonnell, the Hon. Arthur Hardinge, and Donald Stewart.

The Prince of Wales in India In October 1875, I spent some time in Delhi, getting ready for the Camp of Exercise scheduled for January for His Royal Highness the Prince of Wales. The camp was set up in early December and included 17,000 men, divided into four divisions, led by Major-Generals Sir Charles Reid, Macdonnell, the Hon. Arthur Hardinge, and Donald Stewart.

The country round Delhi is particularly well suited for extended manœuvres, and full advantage was taken of the facilities it afforded during the two months the Camp of Exercise lasted. The Prince of Wales landed at Calcutta on the 23rd December; and Lord Napier with his staff went down to meet His Royal Highness, whose reception was loyal and hearty to a degree. As the Serapis, with the Prince on board, steamed slowly up the Hughli, salutes were fired from Fort William and three ships of the Royal Navy. All the vessels in the river were gay with flags, their yards were manned, and good hearty English cheers resounded from stem to stern of each ship as the Indian troopship, carrying the heir to England's throne, came in sight. As soon as the Serapis was moored, the Viceroy went on board to greet[Page 327] the Prince and conduct His Royal Highness to the gaily-decorated landing-stage, where the principal officials, Native Princes, and chief inhabitants of Calcutta were assembled. Troops lined the road from the river to Government House, and the maidan (the great open space in front) was thronged with a dense crowd of Natives in their most brilliant gala attire, eager to catch a glimpse of the son of the great Queen of England.

The area around Delhi is especially suitable for extensive military exercises, and the opportunities it provided were fully utilized during the two months of the Camp of Exercise. The Prince of Wales arrived in Calcutta on December 23rd, and Lord Napier and his team went to greet His Royal Highness, who received a warm and enthusiastic welcome. As the Serapis, with the Prince on board, slowly made its way up the Hughli River, salutes were fired from Fort William and three ships of the Royal Navy. All the vessels in the river were decorated with flags, their crews lined the decks, and cheerful English cheers echoed from one end to the other as the Indian troopship, carrying the heir to the British throne, came into view. Once the Serapis was docked, the Viceroy boarded to welcome the Prince and escort Him to the festively decorated landing stage, where the main officials, Native Princes, and prominent residents of Calcutta were gathered. Troops lined the route from the river to Government House, and the maidan (the large open area in front) was packed with a large crowd of locals in their most colorful gala outfits, eager to catch a glimpse of the son of the great Queen of England.

1876 That evening Lord Northbrook gave a State banquet. The next day there was a reception of the Princes and Chiefs, followed by a levée, and after dark the whole place was most beautifully illuminated. The week that followed was taken up with entertainments of various kinds—balls, races, and garden-parties, interspersed with official visits—which I am afraid the Prince could not have found amusing—and on New Year's Day, 1876, His Royal Highness held a Chapter of the Order of the Star of India, after which the Commander-in-Chief returned to Delhi to arrange to receive the Prince in that historical city on the 11th January.

1876 That evening, Lord Northbrook hosted a state banquet. The next day, there was a reception for the princes and chiefs, followed by a levee, and after dark, the entire area was beautifully lit up. The following week was filled with various events—balls, races, and garden parties, along with official visits—which I fear the Prince might not have found entertaining. On New Year's Day, 1876, His Royal Highness held a meeting of the Order of the Star of India, after which the Commander-in-Chief returned to Delhi to prepare for receiving the Prince in that historic city on January 11th.

His Royal Highness's camp, and that of the Commander-in-Chief, were pitched on the ground occupied by the British army during the siege. The road, five miles in length, from the station to the camp was lined with troops, and on the Ridge itself were placed six Rifle corps, three of which had taken part in the siege.2 The 2nd Gurkhas were very appropriately drawn up immediately under Hindu Rao's house, and when this point was reached, the Prince stopped and warmly complimented the men on the distinguished service the regiment had performed.

His Royal Highness's camp and that of the Commander-in-Chief were set up on the land where the British army was stationed during the siege. The road, five miles long, from the station to the camp was lined with troops, and on the Ridge itself were six Rifle corps, three of which had participated in the siege.2 The 2nd Gurkhas were fittingly arranged right under Hindu Rao's house, and when they reached that point, the Prince stopped and praised the soldiers for the outstanding service the regiment had provided.

The next day there was a parade of all the troops in review order for the inspection of the Prince, who was pleased to express his complete satisfaction and approval of 'the steadiness under arms, soldier-like bearing, and precision of movement, which distinguish the corps of the three armies assembled at the camp at Delhi.'

The next day, there was a parade of all the troops lined up for inspection by the Prince, who happily expressed his full satisfaction and approval of "the steadiness under arms, soldier-like bearing, and precision of movement that characterize the troops of the three armies gathered at the camp in Delhi."

That evening the Prince was present at a ball in the diwan-i-khas (private audience hall) in the palace, given in His Royal Highness's honour by the officers of the army.

That evening, the Prince attended a ball in the diwan-i-khas (private audience hall) in the palace, hosted in His Royal Highness's honor by the army officers.

The next few days were taken up with manœuvres, which the Prince attended, accompanied by Lumsden3 and myself. The defence was commanded by Reid, the attack by Hardinge, the latter's object being to gain possession of the Ridge, with a view to future operations against the city on the arrival of the main army from the Punjab. But the attack did not meet with the success which attended Barnard in 1857, while the Commander of the defence proved himself as skilful in protecting the Ridge against an enemy advancing from the north as[Page 328] he had been, twenty years before, in repulsing one coming from the opposite direction.

The next few days were filled with maneuvers that the Prince attended, along with Lumsden3 and me. Reid was in charge of the defense, while Hardinge led the attack, aiming to take control of the Ridge to prepare for future operations against the city when the main army arrived from the Punjab. However, the attack wasn't as successful as Barnard's in 1857, and the Commander of the defense proved to be just as skilled at protecting the Ridge against an enemy coming from the north as he had been twenty years earlier in repelling one from the opposite direction.

The Prince of Wales held another investiture of the Star of India on the 7th of March at Allahabad, which Lord Napier and the staff attended. At its close we took our leave of His Royal Highness, who started that night for England.

The Prince of Wales held another investiture of the Star of India on March 7th in Allahabad, which Lord Napier and the staff attended. At the end, we said our goodbyes to His Royal Highness, who left that night for England.

Farewell to Lord Napier In less than a fortnight our dear old Chief followed, and I saw him off from Bombay on the 10th April. I was very low at parting with him, for though in the earlier days of our acquaintance I used to think he was not very favourably disposed towards me, when I became more intimately associated with him nothing could exceed his kindness. He was universally regretted by Europeans and Natives alike. The soldiers recognized that he had carefully guarded their interests and worked for their welfare, and the Native Princes and people felt that he was in sympathy with them, and to this day they speak of Lat Napier Sahib with the deepest respect and affection.

Goodbye to Lord Napier In less than two weeks, our beloved old Chief passed away, and I saw him off from Bombay on April 10th. I was really downhearted at saying goodbye to him because, although I initially thought he didn’t think highly of me, as I got to know him better, his kindness was overwhelming. He was deeply missed by both Europeans and Natives. The soldiers recognized that he had carefully protected their interests and worked for their well-being, while the Native Princes and the people felt his genuine sympathy. Even today, they speak of Lat Napier Sahib with profound respect and affection.

Lord Napier was succeeded in the command by Sir Frederick Haines.

Lord Napier was succeeded in command by Sir Frederick Haines.






CHAPTER XLII.

1876


Lord Lytton becomes Viceroy
With a new Commander-in-Chief came a new Viceroy, and it was while we were in Bombay seeing the last of Lord Napier that the Orontes steamed into the harbour with Lord Lytton on board. Little did I imagine when making Lord Lytton's acquaintance how much he would have to say to my future career.

Lord Lytton is now Viceroy With a new Commander-in-Chief came a new Viceroy, and it was while we were in Bombay saying goodbye to Lord Napier that the Orontes arrived in the harbor with Lord Lytton on board. I had no idea when I first met Lord Lytton how much influence he would have on my future career.

His Excellency received me very kindly, telling me he felt that I was not altogether a stranger, as he had been reading during the voyage a paper I had written for Lord Napier, a year or two before, on our military position in India, and the arrangements that would be necessary in the event of Russia attempting to continue her advance south of the Oxus. Lord Napier had sent a copy of this memorandum to Lord Beaconsfield, by whom it had been given to Lord Lytton.

His Excellency welcomed me warmly, saying he felt I wasn’t entirely a stranger since he had been reading a paper I wrote for Lord Napier a year or two earlier about our military situation in India and what would need to be done if Russia tried to extend its reach south of the Oxus. Lord Napier had sent a copy of this memorandum to Lord Beaconsfield, who then passed it on to Lord Lytton.



FIELD-MARSHAL LORD NAPIER OF MAGDALA, G.C.B., G.C.S.I.

FIELD-MARSHAL LORD NAPIER OF MAGDALA, G.C.B., G.C.S.I.

From
a photograph by Messrs. Maull and Fox.

FIELD-MARSHAL LORD NAPIER OF MAGDALA, G.C.B., G.C.S.I.

FIELD-MARSHAL LORD NAPIER OF MAGDALA, G.C.B., G.C.S.I.

From
a photo by Maull and Fox.



During the summer of 1876 our frontier policy was frequently under discussion. Sir Bartle Frere wrote two very strong letters after the Conservative Government came into power in 1874, drawing attention to the danger of our being satisfied with a policy of aloofness, and pointing out the necessity for coming into closer relations with the Amir of Afghanistan and the Khan of Khelat. Soon afterwards the Secretary of State communicated with the Government of India as to the advisability of establishing British agents in Afghanistan,[Page 329] and of persuading the Amir to receive a temporary Embassy at Kabul, as had originally been proposed by Lord Northbrook.

During the summer of 1876, our frontier policy was often a topic of discussion. Sir Bartle Frere wrote two detailed letters after the Conservative Government took office in 1874, highlighting the risk of being content with a detached approach and emphasizing the need to strengthen ties with the Amir of Afghanistan and the Khan of Khelat. Shortly after, the Secretary of State reached out to the Government of India about the idea of establishing British agents in Afghanistan,[Page 329] and persuading the Amir to accept a temporary Embassy in Kabul, as initially suggested by Lord Northbrook.

The members of Lord Northbrook's Council were unanimously opposed to both these proposals, but they did not succeed in convincing Lord Salisbury that the measures were undesirable; and on the resignation of Lord Northbrook, the new Viceroy was furnished with special instructions as to the action which Her Majesty's Government considered necessary in consequence of the activity of Russia in Central Asia, and the impossibility of obtaining accurate information of what was going on in and beyond Afghanistan.

The members of Lord Northbrook's Council were completely against both of these proposals, but they couldn't persuade Lord Salisbury that the measures were a bad idea. When Lord Northbrook resigned, the new Viceroy received specific instructions about what Her Majesty's Government thought was necessary due to Russia's actions in Central Asia and the difficulty of getting accurate information about the situation in and outside of Afghanistan.

The question of the Embassy was dealt with at once; Lord Lytton directed a letter to be sent to the Amir announcing his assumption of the Viceroyalty, and his intention to depute Sir Lewis Pelly to proceed to Kabul for the purpose of discussing certain matters with His Highness.

The issue regarding the Embassy was addressed immediately; Lord Lytton ordered a letter to be sent to the Amir announcing that he was taking over the Viceroyalty, and he planned to send Sir Lewis Pelly to Kabul to discuss some matters with His Highness.

Difficulties with Sher Ali To this communication a most unsatisfactory reply was received, and a second letter was addressed to the Amir, in which he was informed that, should he still decline to receive the Viceroy's Envoy after deliberately weighing all the considerations commended to his serious attention, the responsibility of the result would rest entirely on the Government of Afghanistan, which would thus alienate itself from the alliance of that Power which was most disposed and best able to befriend it.

Problems with Sher Ali A very unsatisfactory response was received to this communication, prompting a second letter to be sent to the Amir, where he was informed that if he continued to refuse to meet the Viceroy's Envoy after carefully considering all the important points raised, the responsibility for the outcome would fall solely on the Government of Afghanistan, effectively distancing itself from the support of the Power that was most willing and capable of helping it.

This letter was the cause of considerable excitement in Kabul, excitement which ran so high that the necessity for proclaiming a religious war was mooted; and, to complicate matters, the Amir at this time received overtures from General Kauffmann, the Russian Governor-General in Turkestan.

This letter caused a lot of excitement in Kabul, so much so that the idea of declaring a religious war was brought up; and, to make things more complicated, the Amir also got offers from General Kauffmann, the Russian Governor-General in Turkestan.

A delay of six weeks occurred before Sher Ali replied to Lord Lytton's letter, and then he altogether ignored the Viceroy's proposal to send a Mission to Kabul, merely suggesting that the British Government should receive an Envoy from him, or that representatives from both countries should meet and hold a conference on the border, or, as another alternative, that the British Native Agent at Kabul should return and discuss affairs with the Viceroy.

A six-week delay happened before Sher Ali responded to Lord Lytton's letter, and then he completely ignored the Viceroy’s proposal to send a mission to Kabul. Instead, he suggested that the British government should accept an envoy from him, or that representatives from both countries should meet for a conference at the border. Another option he proposed was for the British Native Agent in Kabul to return and discuss matters with the Viceroy.

The last suggestion was accepted by the Government of India, and the agent (Nawab Ata Mahomed Khan) arrived in Simla early in October. The Nawab gave it as his opinion that the Amir's attitude of estrangement was due to an accumulation of grievances, the chief of which were—the unfavourable arbitration in the Sistan dispute; the want of success of Saiyad Nur Mahomed's mission to India in 1873, when it was the desire of the Amir's heart to enter into an offensive and defensive alliance with the British Government; the interposition of Lord Northbrook's Government on behalf of Yakub Khan;1 the recent proceedings in Khelat,2 which the Amir thought[Page 330] were bringing us objectionably near Kandahar; the transmission of presents through Afghanistan, to his vassal, the Mir of Wakhan, without the Amir's permission;3 and, above all, the conviction that our policy was exclusively directed to the furtherance of British interests without any thought for those of Afghanistan.

The last suggestion was accepted by the Government of India, and the agent (Nawab Ata Mahomed Khan) arrived in Simla early in October. The Nawab believed that the Amir's sense of isolation was due to a buildup of grievances, the main ones being: the unfavorable decision in the Sistan dispute; the failure of Saiyad Nur Mahomed's mission to India in 1873, when the Amir really wanted to form an offensive and defensive alliance with the British Government; the interference of Lord Northbrook's Government on behalf of Yakub Khan; the recent events in Khelat, which the Amir felt were drawing us uncomfortably close to Kandahar; the sending of gifts through Afghanistan to his vassal, the Mir of Wakhan, without the Amir's permission; and, most importantly, the belief that our policy was solely focused on promoting British interests, with no regard for those of Afghanistan.

As regarded the proposed Mission to Kabul, the Envoy said that His Highness objected to it for many reasons. Owing to local fanaticism, he could not insure its safety, and it seemed probable that, though of a temporary nature to begin with, it might only be the thin end of the wedge, ending in the establishment of a permanent Resident, as at the courts of the Native Rulers in India. Furthermore, the Amir conceived that, if he consented to this Mission, the Russians would insist upon their right to send a similar one, and finally, he feared a British Envoy might bring his influence to bear in favour of the release of his son, Yakub Khan, with whom his relations were as strained as ever.

Regarding the proposed mission to Kabul, the Envoy mentioned that His Highness had objections for several reasons. Due to local extremism, he couldn’t guarantee its safety, and it seemed likely that, although it would start as a temporary measure, it could lead to establishing a permanent representative, similar to what exists at the courts of Native Rulers in India. Additionally, the Amir believed that if he agreed to this mission, the Russians would demand their right to send a similar representative, and ultimately, he was concerned that a British Envoy might influence the release of his son, Yakub Khan, with whom he had a strained relationship.

In answer, the Viceroy enumerated the concessions he was prepared to make, and the conditions upon which alone he would consent to them; and this answer the agent was directed to communicate to the Amir.

In response, the Viceroy listed the concessions he was willing to make, along with the conditions under which he would agree to them; and the agent was instructed to relay this response to the Amir.

The concessions were as follows:

The concessions were as listed:

(1) That the friends and enemies of either State should be those of the other.

(1) That the allies and opponents of one state should also be the allies and opponents of the other.

(2) That, in the event of unprovoked aggression upon Afghanistan from without, assistance should be afforded in men, money, and arms; and also that to strengthen the Amir against such aggression, the British Government was willing to fortify Herat and other points on the frontier, and, if desired, to lend officers to discipline the army.

(2) In the case of unprovoked attacks on Afghanistan from outside, support should be provided in terms of soldiers, funding, and weapons; and to bolster the Amir against such attacks, the British Government was prepared to strengthen Herat and other locations along the border, and, if requested, to provide officers to train the army.

(3) That Abdulla Jan should be recognized as the Amir's successor to the exclusion of any other aspirant; and that the question of material aid in support of such recognition should be discussed by the Plenipotentiaries.

(3) Abdulla Jan should be acknowledged as the Amir's successor, without considering any other candidates; and the issue of financial support for this acknowledgment should be discussed by the Plenipotentiaries.

(4) That a yearly subsidy should be paid to the Amir on the following conditions:

(4) That an annual payment should be made to the Amir under the following conditions:

That he should refrain from external aggression or provocation of his neighbours, and from entering into external relations without our knowledge.

That he should avoid being aggressive or provoking his neighbors and should not engage in external relations without our awareness.

That he should decline all communication with Russia, and refer[Page 331] her agents to us.

That he should stop all communication with Russia and refer her agents to us.

That British agents should reside at Herat and elsewhere on the frontier.

That British agents should live in Herat and other places along the border.

That a mixed commission of British and Afghan officers should determine and demarcate the Amir's frontier.

That a mixed commission of British and Afghan officers should decide and mark the Amir's border.

That arrangements should be made, by allowances or otherwise, for free circulation of trade on the principal trade routes.

That arrangements should be made, through allowances or other means, for the free flow of trade on the main trade routes.

That similar arrangements should be made for a line of telegraph, the direction of which was to be subsequently determined.

That similar arrangements should be made for a telegraph line, the direction of which would be decided later.

That Afghanistan should be freely opened to Englishmen, official and non-official, and arrangements made by the Amir, as far as practicable, for their safety, though His Highness would not be absolutely held responsible for isolated accidents.

That Afghanistan should be fully accessible to Englishmen, both official and unofficial, and that the Amir should make arrangements for their safety as much as possible, although His Highness would not be completely responsible for any isolated incidents.

The Viceroy concluded by suggesting that, if the Amir agreed to these proposals, a treaty might be arranged between the agents of the respective Governments, and ratified either at Peshawar, by the Amir meeting Lord Lytton there, or at Delhi if the Amir accepted His Excellency's invitation to be present at the Imperial Assemblage.

The Viceroy wrapped up by suggesting that if the Amir accepted these proposals, a treaty could be set up between the representatives of the two governments, and confirmed either in Peshawar, where the Amir would meet Lord Lytton, or in Delhi if the Amir decided to accept His Excellency's invitation to attend the Imperial Assemblage.

The Amir at the time vouchsafed no reply whatever to these proposals or to the invitation to come to Delhi.

The Amir at the time gave no response at all to these proposals or to the invitation to come to Delhi.

Imperial Assemblage at Delhi In the autumn of 1876 preparations were commenced for the 'Imperial Assemblage,' which it was announced by the Viceroy would be held at Delhi on the first day of January, 1877, for the purpose of proclaiming to the Queen's subjects throughout India the assumption by Her Majesty of the title of 'Empress of India.' To this Assemblage Lord Lytton further announced that he proposed 'to invite the Governors, Lieutenant-Governors, and Heads of Administration from all parts of the Queen's Indian dominions, as well as the Princes, Chiefs, and Nobles in whose persons the antiquity of the past is associated with the prosperity of the present, and who so worthily contribute to the splendour and stability of this great Empire.'

Imperial Gathering in Delhi In the autumn of 1876, preparations began for the 'Imperial Assemblage,' which the Viceroy announced would take place in Delhi on January 1, 1877, to proclaim to the Queen's subjects across India that Her Majesty was taking on the title of 'Empress of India.' Lord Lytton also stated that he planned to invite the Governors, Lieutenant-Governors, and Heads of Administration from all parts of the Queen's Indian territories, as well as the Princes, Chiefs, and Nobles whose historical significance is connected to the current prosperity and who significantly contribute to the grandeur and stability of this great Empire.

Delhi was selected as the place where the meeting between the Queen's representative and the great nobles of India could most appropriately be held, and a committee was appointed to make the necessary arrangements. As a member of the committee I was deputed to proceed to Delhi, settle about the sites for the camps, and carry out all details in communication with the local authorities. The Viceroy impressed upon me that the Assemblage was intended to emphasize the Proclamation Lord Canning issued eighteen years before, by which the Queen assumed the direct sovereignty of her eastern possessions, and that he wished no trouble or expense to be spared in making the ceremony altogether worthy of such a great historical event.

Delhi was chosen as the ideal location for the meeting between the Queen's representative and the prominent leaders of India, and a committee was formed to handle the necessary arrangements. As a member of that committee, I was assigned to go to Delhi, decide on the locations for the camps, and manage all details in coordination with the local authorities. The Viceroy stressed that the gathering was meant to highlight the Proclamation issued by Lord Canning eighteen years earlier, in which the Queen took direct control of her eastern territories, and he wanted to ensure that no effort or expense was spared in making the ceremony truly worthy of such an important historical occasion.

I returned to Simla in October, when my wife and I accompanied the Commander-in-Chief on a very delightful march over the Jalauri[Page 332] Pass through the Kulu valley, then over the Bubbu Pass and through the Kangra valley to Chamba and Dalhousie. Our party consisted of the Chief, his Doctor (Bradshaw), Persian interpreter (Moore), General and Mrs. Lumsden, and ourselves. The first slight shower of snow had just fallen on the Jalauri Pass, and as we crossed over we disturbed a number of beautiful snow-pheasants and minals busily engaged in scratching it away to get at their food. The scenery on this march is very fine and varied; for the most part the timber and foliage are superb, and the valleys are very fertile and pretty, lying close under the snow-capped mountains.

I went back to Simla in October, when my wife and I joined the Commander-in-Chief on a really enjoyable hike over the Jalauri Pass through the Kulu valley, then over the Bubbu Pass and through the Kangra valley to Chamba and Dalhousie. Our group included the Chief, his doctor (Bradshaw), a Persian interpreter (Moore), General and Mrs. Lumsden, and us. The first light snowfall had just happened on the Jalauri Pass, and as we crossed over, we startled several beautiful snow-pheasants and minals busy scratching in the snow for food. The scenery on this hike is stunning and diverse; mostly the trees and plants are magnificent, and the valleys are very fertile and lovely, nestled right under the snow-capped mountains.

Having inspected the 'Hill stations,' we proceeded to Peshawar, where the Viceroy had arranged to hold a conference with the Lieutenant-Governor of the Punjab and the Commissioner of Peshawar about frontier affairs.

Having checked out the 'Hill stations,' we moved on to Peshawar, where the Viceroy had set up a meeting with the Lieutenant-Governor of the Punjab and the Commissioner of Peshawar to discuss border issues.

Early in December I was back again at Delhi, where I found the arrangements for the several camps progressing most satisfactorily, and canvas cities rising up in every direction, I had previously chosen the site of the old cantonment for the camps of the Viceroy, the Commander-in-Chief, and the principal officials, while for the Assemblage itself I had selected ground about three miles off.

Early in December, I was back in Delhi, where I found the preparations for the various camps going very well, with tent cities popping up in every direction. I had previously chosen the location of the old cantonment for the camps of the Viceroy, the Commander-in-Chief, and the main officials, while for the Assemblage itself, I had picked a site about three miles away.

The Chiefs and Princes were all settled in their several camps ready to meet the Viceroy, who, on his arrival, in a few graceful words welcomed them to Delhi, and thanked them for responding to his invitation. He then mounted, with Lady Lytton, on a state elephant, and a procession was formed, which, I fancy, was about the most gorgeous and picturesque which has ever been seen even in the East. The magnificence of the Native Princes' retinues can hardly be described; their elephant-housings were of cloth of gold, or scarlet-and-blue cloths embroidered in gold and silver. The howdahs were veritable thrones of the precious metals, shaded by the most brilliant canopies, and the war-elephants belonging to some of the Central India and Rajputana Chiefs formed a very curious and interesting feature. Their tusks were tipped with steel; they wore shields on their fore-heads, and breastplates of flashing steel; chain-mail armour hung down over their trunks and covered their backs and sides; and they were mounted by warriors clad in chain-mail, and armed to the teeth. Delhi must have witnessed many splendid pageants, when the Rajput, the Moghul, and the Mahratta dynasties, each in its turn, was at the height of its glory; but never before had Princes and Chiefs of every race and creed come from all parts of Hindustan, vying with each other as to the magnificence of their entourage, and met together with the same object—that of acknowledging and doing homage to one supreme Ruler.

The Chiefs and Princes were all settled in their respective camps, ready to meet the Viceroy, who, upon arrival, warmly welcomed them to Delhi and expressed his gratitude for their attendance. He then got on a ceremonial elephant with Lady Lytton, and a procession was formed that was probably one of the most stunning and visually striking ever seen in the East. The grandeur of the Native Princes' entourages is hard to describe; their elephants were adorned with gold fabric or scarlet-and-blue cloths embroidered with gold and silver. The howdahs were true thrones made of precious metals, shaded by the most vibrant canopies. The war-elephants belonging to some of the Central Indian and Rajputana Chiefs were particularly fascinating. Their tusks were tipped with steel, they wore shields on their foreheads, and their breastplates shone with steel; chain-mail armor hung over their trunks and covered their backs and sides, and they were ridden by warriors dressed in chain-mail and heavily armed. Delhi must have seen many magnificent parades during the heights of the Rajput, Moghul, and Mahratta dynasties, but never before had Princes and Chiefs of every race and faith gathered from all over Hindustan, competing with each other in the splendor of their entourage and coming together for the same purpose—to pay tribute and show respect to one supreme Ruler.

Reception of the Ruling Chiefs The next few days were spent by Lord Lytton in receiving the sixty-three4 Ruling Princes of India according to the strictest etiquette.[Page 333] Each Prince, with his suite, was met at the entrance to the camp, and conducted up the street to the durbar tent by mounted officers, the salute to which he was entitled being fired while the procession moved on. He was then presented by the Foreign Secretary to the Viceroy, who placed him on a chair on his right, immediately below a full-length portrait of Her Majesty. A satin banner, richly embroidered with the Chief's armorial bearings, surmounted by the Imperial crown, was next brought in by Highland soldiers and planted in front of the throne, when the Viceroy, leading the particular Chief towards it, thus addressed him: 'I present Your Highness with this banner as a personal gift from Her Majesty the Queen, in commemoration of her assumption of the title of Empress of India. Her Majesty trusts that it may never be unfurled without reminding you not only of the close union between the throne of England and your loyal and princely house, but also of the earnest desire of the paramount power to see your dynasty strong, prosperous, and permanent.'

Meeting with the Ruling Chiefs Lord Lytton spent the next few days welcoming the sixty-three4 Ruling Princes of India with the utmost formality.[Page 333] Each Prince, along with his entourage, was greeted at the camp entrance and escorted up the street to the durbar tent by mounted officers, with a salute being fired as they proceeded. The Foreign Secretary introduced each Prince to the Viceroy, who seated him in a chair on his right, right beneath a full-length portrait of Her Majesty. A satin banner, lavishly embroidered with the Chief's coat of arms and topped with the Imperial crown, was then brought in by Highland soldiers and placed in front of the throne. The Viceroy then led the respective Chief towards it and said: 'I present Your Highness with this banner as a personal gift from Her Majesty the Queen, in honor of her becoming Empress of India. Her Majesty hopes that it will never be displayed without reminding you not only of the strong connection between the throne of England and your loyal noble house but also of the paramount power's sincere desire to see your dynasty strong, prosperous, and enduring.'

His Excellency then placed round the Chief's neck a crimson ribbon, to which was attached a very handsome gold medal5 with the Queen's head engraved on it, adding: 'I further decorate you, by command of Her Majesty. May this medal be long worn by yourself, and long kept as an heirloom in your family in remembrance of the auspicious date it bears.'

His Excellency then put a red ribbon around the Chief's neck, to which a beautiful gold medal5 featuring the Queen's head was attached. He added, "In addition, I honor you, by order of Her Majesty. May you wear this medal for many years and keep it as a family heirloom to remember this important date."

1877
Queen proclaimed Empress of India
The 1st January, 1877, saw the Queen proclaimed Empress of India, The ceremony was most imposing, and in every way successful. Three tented pavilions had been constructed on an open plain. The throne-pavilion in the centre was a very graceful erection, brilliant in hangings and banners of red, blue, and white satin magnificently embroidered in gold, with appropriate emblems. It was hexagonal in shape, and rather more than 200 feet in circumference. In front of this was the pavilion for the Ruling Chiefs and high European officials, in the form of a semicircle 800 feet long. The canopy was of Star of India blue-and-white satin embroidered in gold, each pillar being surmounted by an Imperial crown. Behind the throne was the stand for the spectators, also in the form of a semicircle divided in the middle, and likewise canopied in brilliant colours. Between these two blocks was the entrance to the area.

1877
Queen declared Empress of India
On January 1, 1877, the Queen was proclaimed Empress of India. The ceremony was grand and successful in every way. Three tented pavilions were set up on an open plain. The throne pavilion in the center was elegantly designed, adorned with red, blue, and white satin hangings and banners, beautifully embroidered in gold with fitting emblems. It had a hexagonal shape and measured just over 200 feet around. In front of this was the pavilion for the Ruling Chiefs and high European officials, shaped like a semicircle 800 feet long. The canopy was made of Star of India blue-and-white satin embroidered in gold, with each pillar topped by an Imperial crown. Behind the throne was the stand for the spectators, also in a semicircle divided in the middle, and it was canopied in vibrant colors. Between these two sections was the entrance to the area.

Each Chief and high official sat beneath his own banner, which was planted immediately behind his chair, and they were all mixed up as much as possible to avoid questions of precedence, the result being the[Page 334] most wonderful mass of colour, produced from the intermingling of British uniforms and plumes with gorgeous eastern costumes, set off by a blaze of diamonds and other precious stones.

Each chief and high official sat under their own banner, which was placed right behind their chair, and they were all arranged in a way that mixed them up as much as possible to avoid any issues with rank. The result was the[Page 334] most amazing array of colors, created by the blending of British uniforms and plumes with beautiful Eastern outfits, highlighted by a sparkle of diamonds and other gemstones.

All the British troops brought to Delhi for the occasion were paraded to the north, and the troops and retainers belonging to the Native Chiefs to the south, of the pavilion. Guards of Honour were drawn up on either side of the throne and at each opening by which the Ruling Chiefs were to enter the pavilion.

All the British soldiers brought to Delhi for the event were lined up to the north, while the soldiers and attendants of the Native Chiefs were positioned to the south of the pavilion. Honor Guards were set up on both sides of the throne and at each entrance where the Ruling Chiefs were to enter the pavilion.

The guests being all seated, a flourish of trumpets by the heralds exactly at noon announced the arrival of the Viceroy. The military bands played a march, and Lord Lytton, accompanied by Lady Lytton, their daughters, and his staff, proceeded to the pavilion. His Excellency took his seat upon the throne, arrayed in his robes as Grand Master of the Star of India, the National Anthem was played, the Guards of Honour presented arms, while the whole of the vast assemblage rose as one man. The Chief Herald was then commanded to read the Proclamation. A flourish of trumpets was again sounded, and Her Majesty was proclaimed Empress of India.

The guests were all seated when a fanfare of trumpets from the heralds at noon announced the arrival of the Viceroy. The military bands started playing a march, and Lord Lytton, along with Lady Lytton, their daughters, and his staff, made their way to the pavilion. His Excellency took his place on the throne, dressed in his robes as Grand Master of the Star of India. The National Anthem was played, the Guards of Honour stood at attention, and the entire crowd stood up together. The Chief Herald was then ordered to read the Proclamation. Another fanfare of trumpets sounded, and Her Majesty was declared Empress of India.

When the Chief Herald had ceased reading, the Royal Standard was hoisted, and a salute of 101 salvoes of artillery was fired, with a feu de joie from the long line of troops. This was too much for the elephants. As the feu de joie approached nearer and nearer to them they became more and more alarmed, and at last scampered off, dispersing the crowd in every direction. When it ceased they were quieted and brought back by their mahouts, only to start off again when the firing recommenced; but, as it was a perfectly bare plain, without anything for the great creatures to come in contact with, there was no harm done beyond a severe shaking to their riders. As the sound of the last salvo died away the Viceroy addressed the assemblage. When he had ceased speaking, the assembly again rose en masse and joined the troops in giving several ringing cheers.

When the Chief Herald finished reading, the Royal Standard was raised, and a salute of 101 rounds of artillery was fired, along with a celebratory gunfire from the long line of troops. This was too much for the elephants. As the gunfire got closer, they became increasingly frightened and finally bolted, scattering the crowd in all directions. Once the noise stopped, they were calmed down and brought back by their handlers, only to run off again when the firing started up again. However, since it was a completely open plain with nothing for the large animals to bump into, the only damage was a good shaking for their riders. As the last shot faded away, the Viceroy spoke to the crowd. After he finished, the assembly stood up as one and joined the troops in giving several loud cheers.

His Highness the Maharaja Sindhia then spoke as follows: 'Shah in Shah Padishah. May God bless you. The Princes of India bless you, and pray that your sovereignty and power may remain steadfast for ever.'

His Highness the Maharaja Sindhia then said: 'Shah in Shah Padishah. May God bless you. The Princes of India support you and hope that your rule and strength remain strong forever.'

Sir Salar Jung rose on behalf of the boy Nizam, and said: 'I am desired by His Highness the Nizam to request your Excellency to convey to Her Majesty, on the part of himself and the Chiefs of India, the expression of their hearty congratulations on the assumption of the title of Empress of India, and to assure the Queen that they pray for her, and for the enduring prosperity of her Empire, both in India and England.'

Sir Salar Jung stood for the boy Nizam and said: 'His Highness, the Nizam, has asked me to request your Excellency to convey to Her Majesty, on behalf of himself and the Chiefs of India, their warm congratulations on her becoming the Empress of India. They want to assure the Queen that they pray for her and for the lasting prosperity of her Empire, both in India and England.'



THE EARL OF LYTTON, G.C.B., G.M.S.I., G.M.I.E., VICEROY of INDIA.

THE EARL OF LYTTON, G.C.B., G.M.S.I., G.M.I.E.,
VICEROY OF INDIA.


From a photograph by Messrs. Maull and Fox.

THE EARL OF LYTTON, G.C.B., G.M.S.I., G.M.I.E., VICEROY of INDIA.

THE EARL OF LYTTON, G.C.B., G.M.S.I., G.M.I.E.,
Governor-General of India.


From a photograph by Maull and Fox.



The Maharajas of Udaipur and Jaipur, in the name of the united Chiefs of Rajputana, begged that a telegram might be sent to the Queen, conveying their dutiful and loyal congratulations; and the[Page 335] Maharaja of Kashmir expressed his gratification at the tenor of the Viceroy's speech, and declared that he should henceforth consider himself secure under the shadow of Her Majesty's protecting care.6

The Maharajas of Udaipur and Jaipur, representing the united Chiefs of Rajputana, requested that a telegram be sent to the Queen, conveying their respectful and loyal congratulations; and the Maharaja of Kashmir expressed his happiness with the Viceroy's speech, stating that he would now feel secure under Her Majesty's protective care.6

Political importance of the assemblage It is difficult to overrate the political importance of this great gathering. It was looked upon by most of the Ruling Chiefs as the result of the Prince of Wales's visit, and rejoiced in as an evidence of Her Majesty's increased interest in, and appreciation of, the vast Empire of India with its many different races and peoples.

Significance of the gathering It's hard to overstate how politically significant this major gathering was. Most of the Ruling Chiefs viewed it as a direct outcome of the Prince of Wales's visit and celebrated it as proof of Her Majesty's growing interest in and appreciation for the vast Empire of India, with all its diverse races and cultures.

I visited all the camps, and conversed with every one of the Princes and Nobles, and each in turn expressed the same intense gratification at the Viceroy's reception of him, the same fervent loyalty to the Empress, and the same satisfaction that the new title should have been announced with such appropriate splendour and publicity.

I visited all the camps and talked with each of the Princes and Nobles, and they all expressed the same deep satisfaction with the Viceroy's welcome, the same strong loyalty to the Empress, and the same happiness that the new title had been announced with such fitting grandeur and publicity.

General rejoicings in honour of the occasion took place all over India, in Native States as well as British cantonments. School-houses, town halls, hospitals, and dispensaries were founded, large numbers of prisoners were released, substantial additions were made to the pay of all ranks in the Native Army, as well as a considerable increase in numbers to the Order of British India; and the amnesty granted in 1859 was extended to all but murderers and leaders in the Mutiny.

General celebrations in honor of the occasion took place all over India, in both Native States and British military bases. New schools, town halls, hospitals, and clinics were established, a large number of prisoners were released, significant raises were given to all ranks in the Native Army, along with a notable increase in the membership of the Order of British India; and the amnesty granted in 1859 was extended to everyone except murderers and the leaders of the Mutiny.

When the Assemblage broke up, I started with Sir Frederick Haines for a tour along the Derajat frontier. We visited Kohat, Bannu, Dera Ismail Khan, and Multan; proceeded by steamer down the Indus to Sukkur, and thence rode to Jacobabad. Then on to Kotri, from which place we went to see the battle-field of Miani, where Sir Charles Napier defeated the Amirs of Sind in 1843. From Kotri we travelled to Simla viâ Karachi and Bombay, where we were most hospitably entertained by the Commander-in-Chief of Bombay (Sir Charles Stavely) and his wife.

When the Assemblage broke up, I set off with Sir Frederick Haines for a trip along the Derajat frontier. We stopped at Kohat, Bannu, Dera Ismail Khan, and Multan; then took a steamer down the Indus to Sukkur, and from there rode to Jacobabad. Next, we headed to Kotri, from where we went to visit the battlefield of Miani, where Sir Charles Napier defeated the Amirs of Sind in 1843. From Kotri, we traveled to Simla via Karachi and Bombay, where we were warmly hosted by the Commander-in-Chief of Bombay (Sir Charles Stavely) and his wife.

Afghan affairs were this year again giving the Viceroy a great deal of anxiety. The Amir had eventually agreed to a discussion of Lord Lytton's proposals being held, and for this purpose Saiyad Nur Mahomed and Sir Lewis Pelly had met at Peshawar in January, 1877. The meeting, unfortunately, ended in a rupture, owing to Sher Ali's agent pronouncing the location of European officers in any part of Afghanistan an impossibility; and what at this crisis complicated matters to a most regrettable extent was the death of Saiyad Nur Mahomed, who had been in failing health for some time.

Afghan issues were once again causing the Viceroy a lot of stress this year. The Amir had finally agreed to discuss Lord Lytton's proposals, and for that reason, Saiyad Nur Mahomed and Sir Lewis Pelly met in Peshawar in January 1877. Unfortunately, the meeting ended in a breakdown because Sher Ali's representative declared that having European officers anywhere in Afghanistan was impossible. Compounding the problem in a highly regrettable way was the death of Saiyad Nur Mahomed, who had been in poor health for a while.

Sher Ali proclaims a 'Jahad' On learning the death of his most trusted Minister, and the failure of the negotiations, Sher Ali broke into a violent fit of passion, giving vent to his fury in threatenings and invectives against the British Government. He declared it was not possible to come to terms, and that there[Page 336] was nothing left for him but to fight; that he had seven crores of rupees, every one of which he would hurl at the heads of the English, and he ended by giving orders for a jahad (a religious war) to be proclaimed.

Sher Ali declares a 'Jihad' After hearing about the death of his most trusted Minister and the failed negotiations, Sher Ali erupted in a furious rage, expressing his anger through threats and insults aimed at the British Government. He stated that it was impossible to reach an agreement and that he had no choice but to fight; that he had seven crores of rupees, each one of which he would throw at the heads of the English. He concluded by ordering that a jihad (a holy war) be declared.

For the time being nothing more could be done with Afghanistan, and the Viceroy was able to turn his attention to the following important questions: the transfer of Sind from Bombay to the Punjab, a measure which had been unanimously agreed to by Lord Northbrook's Government; the removal from the Punjab government of the trans-Indus tract of country, and the formation of the latter into a separate district under the control of a Chief Commissioner, who would be responsible to the Government of India alone for frontier administration and trans-frontier relations. This post Lord Lytton told me, as much to my surprise as to my gratification, that he meant to offer to me, if his views were accepted by the Secretary of State. It was above all others the appointment I should have liked. I delighted in frontier life and frontier men, who, with all their faults, are men, and grand men, too. I had felt for years what an important factor the trans-Indus tribes are in the defence of India, and how desirable it was that we should be on better terms with them than was possible so long as our policy consisted in keeping them at arm's length, and our only intercourse with them was confined to punitive expeditions or the visits of their head-men to our hard-worked officials, whose whole time was occupied in writing long reports, or in settling troublesome disputes to the satisfaction of no one.

For now, nothing more could be done with Afghanistan, and the Viceroy was able to focus on the following important issues: transferring Sind from Bombay to the Punjab, a decision that had been unanimously agreed upon by Lord Northbrook's Government; removing the trans-Indus area from the Punjab government and establishing it as a separate district under a Chief Commissioner, who would be accountable to the Government of India solely for managing the frontier and cross-border relations. Lord Lytton surprised and pleased me by saying that he intended to offer this position to me if his ideas were approved by the Secretary of State. It was the one appointment I would have loved. I enjoyed frontier life and the frontier people, who, despite their flaws, are genuine and remarkable individuals. For years, I recognized how crucial the trans-Indus tribes are for India's defense and how necessary it was for us to have better relations with them than was possible as long as our approach involved keeping them at a distance, with our only interactions limited to punitive actions or the visits of their leaders to our overworked officials, whose time was consumed with writing lengthy reports or resolving disputes that satisfied no one.

I now hoped to be able to put a stop to the futile blockades and inconclusive reprisals which had been carried on for nearly thirty years with such unsatisfactory results, and I looked forward to turning the wild tribesmen from enemies into friends, a strength instead of a weakness, to our Government, and to bringing them by degrees within the pale of civilization. My wife quite shared my feelings, and we were both eager to begin our frontier life.

I hoped to finally put an end to the pointless blockades and inconclusive retaliations that had been ongoing for nearly thirty years with so little success. I looked forward to transforming the wild tribesmen from enemies into allies, turning what was seen as a weakness into a strength for our Government, and gradually bringing them into the fold of civilization. My wife felt the same way, and we were both excited to start our life on the frontier.

As a preliminary to my engaging in this congenial employment, Lord Lytton proposed that I should take up the command of the Punjab Frontier Force. I gladly acquiesced; for I had been a long time on the staff, and had had three years of the Quartermaster-Generalship. My friends expressed surprise at my accepting the position of Brigadier-General, after having filled an appointment carrying with it the rank of Major-General; but this was not my view. I longed for a command, and the Frontier Force offered opportunities for active service afforded by no other post.

As a first step before I took on this enjoyable job, Lord Lytton suggested I take command of the Punjab Frontier Force. I happily agreed because I had spent a long time on the staff and had three years of experience as the Quartermaster-General. My friends were surprised that I accepted the role of Brigadier-General after holding a position that came with the rank of Major-General, but I didn’t see it that way. I was eager for a command, and the Frontier Force provided chances for active service that no other position could offer.

1878 We were in Calcutta when the question was decided, and started very soon afterwards to make our arrangements for the breaking up of our home at Simla. I took over the command of the Force on the 15th March, 1878. My wife accompanied me to Abbottabad—the[Page 337] pretty, quiet little place in Hazara, about 4,000 feet above the sea, which was to be henceforth our winter head-quarters. For the summer months we were to be located in the higher hills, and my wife was anxious to see the house which I had purchased from my predecessor, General Keyes, at Natiagali. So off we set, nothing daunted by being told that we were likely to find snow still deep in places.

1878 We were in Calcutta when the decision was made and soon after began arranging to move out of our home in Simla. I took command of the Force on March 15, 1878. My wife traveled with me to Abbottabad—the[Page 337] lovely, quiet little spot in Hazara, about 4,000 feet above sea level, which would be our winter headquarters from then on. During the summer months, we were set to stay in the higher hills, and my wife was eager to see the house I bought from my predecessor, General Keyes, in Natiagali. So off we went, undeterred by the warning that we might still encounter deep snow in some areas.

A journey under Difficulties For the first part of the way we got on well enough, my wife in a dandy, I riding, and thirteen miles were accomplished without much difficulty. Suddenly the road took a bend, and we found ourselves in deep snow. Riding soon proved to be impossible, and the dandy-bearers could not carry my wife further; so there was nothing for it but to walk. We were seven miles from our destination, and at each step we sank into the snow, which became deeper and deeper the higher we ascended. On we trudged, till my wife declared she could go no further, and sat down to rest, feeling so drowsy that she entreated me to let her stay where she was. Fortunately I had a small flask with me filled with brandy. I poured a little into the cup, mixed it with snow, and administered it as a stimulant. This restored her somewhat, and roused her from the state of lethargy into which she had fallen. Again we struggled on. Soon it became dark, except for such light as the stars, aided by the snow, afforded. More than once I despaired of reaching the end of our journey; but, just as I had become quite hopeless, we saw lights on the hill above us, and heard our servants, who had preceded us, shouting to attract our attention. I answered, and presently they came to our assistance. Half carrying, half dragging her, we got my wife up the steep mountain-side; and at length, about 9 p.m., we arrived at the little house buried in snow, into which we crept through a hole dug in the snow wall, which encircled it. We were welcomed by a blazing wood-fire and a most cheering odour of dinner, to which we did full justice, after having got rid of our saturated garments. Next morning we started on our return journey at daybreak, for it was necessary to get over the worst part of the road before the sun had had time to soften the snow, which the night's frost had so thoroughly hardened that we slipped over it without the least difficulty.

A journey through challenges At first, we were doing fine—my wife in a carriage and me riding—covering thirteen miles without much trouble. Suddenly, the road curved, and we found ourselves in deep snow. Riding became impossible, and the carriage bearers couldn’t carry my wife any further, so we had no choice but to walk. We were seven miles from our destination, and with each step, we sank deeper into the snow, which got thicker the higher we climbed. We kept trudging along until my wife said she couldn’t go any farther and sat down to rest, feeling so drowsy that she begged me to let her stay there. Luckily, I had a small flask of brandy with me. I poured a little into a cup, mixed it with snow, and gave it to her to wake her up. This perked her up a bit and pulled her out of her stupor. We struggled onward again. Soon it was dark, except for the light from the stars and the reflection off the snow. More than once, I lost hope of reaching our destination; but just when I was completely despondent, we saw lights on the hill above us and heard our servants, who had gone ahead, shouting to get our attention. I called back, and soon they came to help us. Half carrying, half dragging her, we got my wife up the steep mountainside; and finally, around 9 p.m., we arrived at the little house buried in the snow, where we crawled in through a hole dug in the snow wall surrounding it. We were greeted by a roaring fire and a delicious smell of dinner, which we thoroughly enjoyed after getting out of our drenched clothes. The next morning, we set out for our return journey at daybreak, since we needed to get over the toughest part of the road before the sun softened the snow, which had frozen so solidly overnight that we slipped over it without any trouble.

This was our only visit to our new possession, for very soon afterwards I was informed that Lord Lytton wished me to spend the summer at Simla, as the Lieutenant-Governor of the Punjab would be there, and His Excellency was anxious to discuss the details of the proposed Chief Commissionership. My wife, therefore, returned to Simla at once, and I joined her at the end of May, having in the meanwhile inspected every regiment and visited every post held by the Frontier Force between Sind and Hazara—a most interesting experience, which I thoroughly enjoyed.

This was our only trip to our new property, because soon after, I was told that Lord Lytton wanted me to spend the summer in Simla, as the Lieutenant-Governor of the Punjab would be there. His Excellency was eager to talk about the details of the proposed Chief Commissionership. So, my wife went back to Simla right away, and I joined her at the end of May. In the meantime, I inspected every regiment and visited every post held by the Frontier Force between Sind and Hazara—a really interesting experience that I enjoyed a lot.






CHAPTER XLIII.

1878

Before continuing my story, it will, I think, be as well to recall to the minds of my readers the train of events which led to England and Russia becoming at the same moment solicitous for the Amir's friendship, for it was this rivalry which was the immediate cause of the second Afghan war.

Before I continue my story, I think it’s a good idea to remind my readers of the events that led to both England and Russia simultaneously seeking the Amir's friendship, as this competition was the direct cause of the second Afghan war.

Less than two hundred years ago the British Empire in the East and Russia were separated from each other by a distance of 4,000 miles. Russia's most advanced posts were at Orenburg and Petropaulovsk, while England had obtained but an uncertain footing on the seaboard of southern India. The French were our only European rivals in India, and the advance of Russia towards the Oxus was as little anticipated as was England's advance towards the Indus.

Less than two hundred years ago, the British Empire in the East and Russia were 4,000 miles apart. Russia's most advanced outposts were in Orenburg and Petropavlovsk, while England had only a shaky presence on the southern Indian coastline. The French were our only European competitors in India, and the Russian push toward the Oxus was as unpredicted as England's move toward the Indus.

Thirty years later Russia began to absorb the hordes of the Kirghiz steppes, which gave her occupation for more than a hundred years, during which time England was far from idle. Bengal was conquered, or ceded to us, the Madras Presidency established, and Bombay had become an important settlement, with the result that, in the early part of this century, the distance between the Russian and English possessions had been diminished to less than 2,000 miles.

Thirty years later, Russia started to take over the hordes of the Kirghiz steppes, which kept her busy for over a hundred years, during which England was far from inactive. Bengal was conquered or handed over to us, the Madras Presidency was established, and Bombay became an important settlement. As a result, by the early part of this century, the gap between Russian and English territories shrank to less than 2,000 miles.

Our progress was now more rapid. While Russia was laboriously crossing a barren desert, the North-West Provinces, the Carnatic, the territories of the Peshwa, Sind, and the Punjab, successively came under our rule, and by 1850 we had extended our dominions to the foot of the mountains beyond the Indus.

Our progress was now much faster. While Russia was struggling to cross an empty desert, the North-West Provinces, the Carnatic, the territories of the Peshwa, Sind, and the Punjab, gradually came under our control, and by 1850 we had expanded our territories to the base of the mountains beyond the Indus.

Russia by this time, having overcome the difficulties of the desert, had established herself at Aralsk, near the junction of the Syr Daria with the waters of Lake Aral; so that in fifty years the distance between the outposts of the two advancing Powers in Asia had been reduced to about 1,000 miles.

Russia, by this time, having dealt with the challenges of the desert, had set up base at Aralsk, close to where the Syr Daria River meets Lake Aral; so in fifty years, the distance between the outposts of the two expanding Powers in Asia had shrunk to about 1,000 miles.

Repeated successful wars with Persia, and our desertion of that Power owing to the conviction that we could no longer defend her against the Russians, had practically placed her at their mercy, and they had induced Persia, in 1837, to undertake the siege of Herat. At the same time, the Russian Ambassador at Teheran had despatched Captain Vitkievitch to Kabul with letters from himself and from the Czar to the Amir, in the hope of getting Dost Mahomed Khan to join the Russians and Persians in their alliance against the English.

Repeated successful wars with Persia, and our abandonment of that power because we believed we could no longer protect her from the Russians, had basically left her vulnerable to their control. In 1837, they convinced Persia to lay siege to Herat. Meanwhile, the Russian Ambassador in Teheran sent Captain Vitkievitch to Kabul with letters from himself and the Czar to the Amir, hoping to persuade Dost Mahomed Khan to ally with the Russians and Persians against the English.

Vitkievitch's arrival at Kabul towards the end of 1837 had been anticipated by Captain (afterwards Sir Alexander) Burnes, who had been sent three months before by Lord Auckland on a Mission to the Amir, ostensibly to improve our commercial relations with the Afghans, but in reality to prevent them from joining the Russo-Persian alliance.

Vitkievitch's arrival in Kabul towards the end of 1837 was expected by Captain (later Sir Alexander) Burnes, who had been sent three months earlier by Lord Auckland on a mission to the Amir. Officially, the purpose was to enhance our trade relations with the Afghans, but the true aim was to stop them from joining the Russo-Persian alliance.

Burnes had been most cordially received by Dost Mahomed, who[Page 339] hoped, with the help of the Indian Government, to recover the district of Peshawar, which had been wrested from him by the Sikhs. Vitkievitch's reception was proportionately discouraging, and for some weeks he could not obtain an interview with the Amir.

Burnes was warmly welcomed by Dost Mahomed, who[Page 339] was hopeful, with the support of the Indian Government, to regain the district of Peshawar, which had been taken from him by the Sikhs. Vitkievitch's reception was much less encouraging, and for several weeks he couldn’t secure a meeting with the Amir.

The Dost's hopes, however, were not fulfilled. We declined to give him any assistance towards regaining possession of Peshawar or defending his dominions, should his refusal to join with Persia and Russia draw down upon him the enmity of those Powers.

The Dost's hopes, however, were not realized. We refused to provide him any help in reclaiming Peshawar or defending his territory if his refusal to ally with Persia and Russia led to conflict with those Powers.

Vitkievitch, who had been patiently biding his time, was now taken into favour by the Amir, who accorded him a reception which fully compensated for the neglect with which he had previously been treated.

Vitkievitch, who had been patiently waiting for his moment, was now favored by the Amir, who gave him a welcome that completely made up for the neglect he had faced before.

Burnes remained at Kabul until the spring of 1838, and then returned to India to report that Dost Mahomed had thrown himself heart and soul into the Russo-Persian alliance.

Burnes stayed in Kabul until the spring of 1838, and then went back to India to report that Dost Mahomed had fully committed to the Russo-Persian alliance.

Object of the First Afghan War Under pressure from the English Ministry the Governor-General of India determined to take the extreme measure of deposing an Amir who had shown himself so hostilely inclined, and of placing on the throne of Kabul a Ruler who, it was hoped, would feel that it was to his interest to keep on good terms with us. It was for this object that the first Afghan war1 was undertaken, which ended in the murder of our nominee, Shah Shuja, and the triumphant return of Dost Mahomed. The disastrous failure of our action in this matter taught the British Government that our frontier on the Sutlej was too far removed for us to think of exercising any real influence in Afghanistan, and that the time had not arrived to warrant our interfering in Afghan affairs.

Goal of the First Afghan War Under pressure from the British government, the Governor-General of India decided to take the drastic step of removing an Amir who had become increasingly hostile and to install a ruler in Kabul who, it was hoped, would recognize the benefits of maintaining good relations with us. This was the purpose behind the first Afghan war1, which ultimately resulted in the assassination of our chosen leader, Shah Shuja, and the successful return of Dost Mahomed. The disastrous outcome of this situation made it clear to the British Government that our position on the Sutlej River was too far from Afghanistan for us to exert any real influence and that it wasn't the right time for us to get involved in Afghan affairs.

After this came our war with the Sikhs, resulting in our conquest of the Punjab, and our frontier becoming conterminous with that of Afghanistan on the banks of the Indus.

After this, we fought the Sikhs, which led to us conquering the Punjab and our border becoming adjacent to Afghanistan along the banks of the Indus.

There was a lull in the movements of Russia in Central Asia until after the Crimean War of 1854-56, which, while temporarily checking the designs of Russia in Europe, seems to have stimulated her progress in the East. After the passage of the great desert, Russia found herself in the midst of fertile and settled countries, whose provinces fell under her control as rapidly as those of India had fallen under ours, until in 1864 Chimkent was occupied, the point beyond which Prince Gortchakoff stated that there was no intention on the part of Russia to make further advances.

There was a break in Russia's activities in Central Asia until after the Crimean War of 1854-56. While this conflict briefly slowed down Russia's plans in Europe, it appears to have spurred their expansion in the East. After crossing the vast desert, Russia found itself surrounded by fertile and established regions, with provinces coming under its control as quickly as those in India had fallen to us. By 1864, Chimkent was occupied, and Prince Gortchakoff declared that Russia had no plans to push further beyond that point.

Notwithstanding these assurances, Tashkent was captured on the 29th June of the following year. In 1866 Khojent was successfully assaulted. Tisakh fell on the 30th October; and in the spring of 1867 the[Page 340] fort of Yani-Kargan in the Nurata mountains was seized and occupied.

Notwithstanding these assurances, Tashkent was captured on June 29th of the following year. In 1866, Khojent was successfully attacked. Tisakh fell on October 30th; and in the spring of 1867, the[Page 340] fort of Yani-Kargan in the Nurata mountains was taken and occupied.

Bokhara alone remained unconquered, but the Ruler of that State, after vainly endeavouring to gain assistance from Afghanistan and to enlist the sympathies of the Indian Government, was compelled to sue for peace.

Bokhara was the only place that stayed unconquered, but the ruler of that state, after unsuccessfully trying to get help from Afghanistan and win the support of the Indian government, had no choice but to ask for peace.

Important as these acquisitions were, they attracted but little attention in England, owing partly to the policy of non-interference which had been adopted as regards Central Asian affairs, and partly to the British public being absorbed in European politics, until 1868, when the occupation of Samarkand by Russia caused considerable excitement, not to say consternation, amongst the authorities in England.

Important as these acquisitions were, they received little attention in England, partly due to the non-interference policy in Central Asian affairs and partly because the British public was focused on European politics. This changed in 1868, when Russia's occupation of Samarkand created significant excitement, if not alarm, among the authorities in England.

Conferences took place in the spring of 1870 between Lord Clarendon, the Secretary of State for Foreign Affairs, and Baron Brunow, the Russian Ambassador, with the object of determining a neutral zone, which should be the limit of the possessions of England and Russia in Central Asia. For nearly three years, Russia was persistent in her endeavours to have Afghanistan placed outside the pale of British influence; but the Indian Government were equally persistent in pointing out the danger of agreeing to such an arrangement, and it was not until the 31st January, 1873, that the boundary, which neither England nor Russia might cross, was finally agreed upon.

Conferences were held in the spring of 1870 between Lord Clarendon, the Secretary of State for Foreign Affairs, and Baron Brunow, the Russian Ambassador, to establish a neutral zone that would define the limits of British and Russian territories in Central Asia. For almost three years, Russia was determined to push for Afghanistan to be outside British influence, but the Indian Government was equally determined to highlight the risks of agreeing to such a deal. It wasn't until January 31, 1873, that the boundary neither England nor Russia could cross was finally settled.

Six months later the conquest of Khiva by Russia was effected. It was at first given out that the expedition was to punish acts of brigandage, and to rescue fifty Russian prisoners, but was on no account to lead to a prolonged occupancy of the Khanate. Count Schouvaloff, the Russian Statesman who was deputed to communicate the object of the expedition to the British Government, declared that a positive promise to this effect might be given to the British public, as a proof of the friendly and pacific intentions of his master the Czar; but, notwithstanding these assurances, the Russians never left Khiva, and it has been a Russian possession from that time.

Six months later, Russia conquered Khiva. Initially, it was stated that the mission aimed to punish acts of banditry and rescue fifty Russian prisoners, but it was not meant to result in a long-term occupation of the Khanate. Count Schouvaloff, the Russian statesman tasked with explaining the mission to the British Government, insisted that a definite promise could be made to the British public as evidence of his master the Czar's friendly and peaceful intentions. However, despite these reassurances, the Russians never left Khiva, and it has remained a Russian territory ever since.

Excitement caused by Russia's advances Thus, in a little more than twenty years, Russia had made a stride of 600 miles towards India, leaving but 400 miles between her outposts and those of Great Britain. Russia's southern boundary was now, in fact, almost conterminous with the northern boundary of Afghanistan, near enough to cause the Ruler of that country considerable anxiety, and make him feel that Russia had become a dreaded neighbour, and that the integrity of his kingdom could not be maintained save by the aid of one of the two great Powers between whose fire he now found himself.

Excitement from Russia's advances In just over twenty years, Russia had moved 600 miles closer to India, leaving only 400 miles between its outposts and those of Great Britain. Russia's southern border was now nearly adjacent to the northern border of Afghanistan, which created significant worry for the ruler of that country, making him realize that Russia had become a feared neighbor. He felt that the stability of his kingdom could only be preserved with the support of one of the two major powers between which he now found himself caught.

I have endeavoured to show how it was that Sher Ali, notwithstanding his soreness and disappointment at the many rebuffs he had received from us in the earlier part of his career, gratefully remembered the timely aid afforded him by Sir John Lawrence, and the princely reception accorded to him by Lord Mayo, and was still quite[Page 341] prepared in 1873 to enter into friendly relations with us, provided we would recognize his favourite son as his heir, and give a direct promise of aid in the event of Russian aggression. Our refusal to accede to these terms, added to our adverse decision in regard to the Sistan boundary, turned Sher Ali from a friend into an enemy, and he decided, as his father had done forty years before, to throw in his lot with Russia.

I’ve tried to show how Sher Ali, despite his frustration and disappointment from the many setbacks he faced from us early in his career, still remembered with gratitude the timely support he received from Sir John Lawrence and the royal welcome given to him by Lord Mayo. In 1873, he was still open to building friendly relations with us, as long as we acknowledged his favorite son as his heir and promised direct assistance if Russia threatened. Our refusal to accept these conditions, along with our unfavorable ruling on the Sistan boundary, turned Sher Ali from an ally into an adversary, and he decided, just like his father did forty years earlier, to align himself with Russia.






CHAPTER XLIV.

1878

In 1877 Russia declared war with Turkey; for more than a year fighting had been going on between the two countries, and as it seemed possible to the British Government that England might in the end be drawn into the contest, it was deemed expedient to obtain help from India, and a force of about 5,000 Native soldiers was despatched from Bombay to Malta in response to the demand from home.

In 1877, Russia declared war on Turkey. For over a year, fighting had been happening between the two countries, and since it seemed likely that England might eventually get involved, the British Government decided it was wise to seek assistance from India. A force of about 5,000 Native soldiers was sent from Bombay to Malta in response to the request from home.

Russia answered this move on our part by increased activity in Central Asia; and in June, 1878, it was reported by Major Cavagnari, Deputy-Commissioner of Peshawar, that a Russian Envoy of the same rank as the Governor-General of Tashkent was about to visit Kabul, and that General Kauffmann had written to the Amir that the Envoy must be received as an Ambassador deputed by the Czar himself. A few days later further reports were received of Russian troops being mobilized, and of the intention of Russia to establish cantonments on the ferries of Kilif and Kerki on the Oxus.

Russia responded to our actions with increased activity in Central Asia; and in June 1878, Major Cavagnari, Deputy-Commissioner of Peshawar, reported that a Russian Envoy of the same rank as the Governor-General of Tashkent was set to visit Kabul, and that General Kauffmann had informed the Amir that the Envoy should be treated as an Ambassador sent by the Czar himself. A few days later, more reports came in about Russian troops being mobilized and Russia's plans to set up cantonments at the ferries of Kilif and Kerki on the Oxus.

The Amir, it was said, summoned a council of the leading Chiefs, to discuss the question whether it would be most advantageous for Afghanistan at this juncture to side with Russia or with England; it was decided apparently in favour of the former, for from the moment General Stolietoff's Mission set foot on Afghan territory it met with an enthusiastic reception. Five miles from the capital Stolietoff and his companions were welcomed by the Foreign Secretary. They were then mounted on richly-caparisoned elephants, and escorted by a large body of troops to the Bala Hissar, where the following morning they were received in state by Sher Ali, and the nobles of highest degree in his kingdom.1

The Amir, it was said, called together a council of the top Chiefs to discuss whether it would be more beneficial for Afghanistan at this time to align with Russia or with England. It seems they decided on the former, because from the moment General Stolietoff's Mission arrived on Afghan soil, it was met with enthusiastic support. Five miles from the capital, Stolietoff and his team were greeted by the Foreign Secretary. They were then placed on richly decorated elephants and escorted by a large group of troops to the Bala Hissar, where the following morning they were ceremoniously welcomed by Sher Ali and the highest-ranking nobles in his kingdom.1

Effect of the Berlin Treaty at Kabul On the eve of the day that the Mission entered Kabul, Stolietoff[Page 342] received a despatch from General Kauffmann giving him the heads of the Berlin Treaty, with the following commentary in the handwriting of the Governor-General himself: 'If the news be true, it is indeed melancholy;' adding, however, that the Congress had finished its sittings, and that, therefore, the Envoy in his negotiations with the Amir had better refrain from arranging any distinct measures, or making any positive promises, and 'not go generally as far as would have been advisable if war with England had been threatened.' Evidently these instructions greatly modified the basis of Stolietoff's negotiations with Sher Ali; for, although the Russians deny that an offensive and defensive alliance with the Afghan Ruler was contemplated, it seems probable, from the tone of Kauffmann's despatch, that the Envoy's instructions were elastic enough to admit of such an arrangement had the circumstances of the case made it desirable—e.g., had the Berlin Congress failed to establish peace in Europe.

Impact of the Berlin Treaty in Kabul On the day before the mission arrived in Kabul, Stolietoff[Page 342] received a message from General Kauffmann outlining the key points of the Berlin Treaty, along with the following remark in the Governor-General's own handwriting: 'If the news is true, it's truly disappointing;' however, he added that the Congress had completed its sessions, so the Envoy in his talks with the Amir should avoid making any specific arrangements or giving any definite promises, and 'not go as far as would have been advisable if war with England had been a threat.' Clearly, these instructions significantly changed the foundations of Stolietoff's negotiations with Sher Ali; because, while the Russians claim that a military alliance with the Afghan Ruler was not intended, it seems likely, based on Kauffmann's message, that the Envoy's instructions were flexible enough to allow for such an arrangement if the situation called for it—e.g., had the Berlin Congress failed to achieve peace in Europe.

In telegraphing to the Secretary of State an account of these proceedings at Kabul, the Viceroy requested explicit instructions from Her Majesty's Government as to whether this conduct on the part of Russia and Afghanistan was to be left to the Government of India to deal with as a matter between it and the Amir, or whether, having regard to Russia's formal promises, it would be treated as an Imperial question. 'In the former case,' he concluded, 'I shall propose, with your approval, to insist on an immediate suitable reception of a British Mission.'

In sending a message to the Secretary of State about what happened in Kabul, the Viceroy asked for clear instructions from Her Majesty's Government on whether Russia and Afghanistan's actions should be handled by the Government of India as an issue between them and the Amir, or if it should be considered an Imperial matter due to Russia's official promises. 'If it's the first option,' he concluded, 'I will propose, with your approval, to demand an immediate and appropriate reception for a British Mission.'

Lord Lytton's proposition was approved of by Her Majesty's Ministers, and a letter2 was at once written by the Viceroy to the Amir, announcing that a Mission would shortly be despatched to[Page 343] Kabul with General Sir Neville Chamberlain, at that time Commander-in-Chief in Madras, as its responsible head.

Lord Lytton's proposal was approved by Her Majesty's Ministers, and a letter2 was immediately sent by the Viceroy to the Amir, informing him that a Mission would soon be sent to[Page 343] Kabul with General Sir Neville Chamberlain, who was then the Commander-in-Chief in Madras, as its responsible leader.

Major Cavagnari was at the same time directed to inform the authorities at Kabul that the object of the Mission was altogether friendly, and that a refusal to grant it a free passage and safe conduct, such as had been accorded to the Russian Envoy, would be considered as an act of open hostility.

Major Cavagnari was also instructed to inform the authorities in Kabul that the purpose of the Mission was entirely friendly, and that denying it free passage and safe conduct, similar to what was granted to the Russian Envoy, would be seen as an act of open hostility.

Sher Ali Decides Against England Intimation of the Viceroy's intentions reached Kabul on the 17th August, the day on which the Amir's favourite son, Abdulla Jan, died. This untoward event was taken advantage of to delay answering the Viceroy's letter, but it was not allowed in any way to interfere with the progress of the negotiations with Russia. When these were completed, Stolietoff inquired from Sher Ali whether he meant to receive the English Mission, whereupon the Amir asked for the General's advice in the matter. Stolietoff, while replying somewhat evasively, gave Sher Ali to understand that the simultaneous presence of Embassies from two countries in almost hostile relations with each other would not be quite convenient, upon which His Highness decided not to allow the British Mission to enter Afghanistan. This decision, however, was not communicated to the Viceroy, and on the 21st September the Mission3 marched out of Peshawar and encamped at Jamrud, three miles short of the Kyber Pass.

Sher Ali Chooses Not to Engage with England News of the Viceroy's plans reached Kabul on August 17th, the same day Amir's favorite son, Abdulla Jan, passed away. This unfortunate event was used as an excuse to delay responding to the Viceroy's letter, but it didn't interfere with the ongoing negotiations with Russia. Once those negotiations were finished, Stolietoff asked Sher Ali if he intended to welcome the English Mission, to which the Amir sought the General's advice on the issue. Stolietoff, responding somewhat vaguely, implied that having embassies from two countries that were almost hostile to each other present at the same time would not be ideal, leading His Highness to decide against allowing the British Mission to enter Afghanistan. However, this decision was not communicated to the Viceroy, and on September 21st the Mission3 marched out of Peshawar and set up camp at Jamrud, three miles before the Khyber Pass.

In consequence of the extremely hostile attitude of the Amir, and the[Page 344] very unsatisfactory reply received from General Faiz Mahomed Khan, commanding the Afghan troops in the Kyber Pass, to a letter4 he had written a few days before, Sir Neville Chamberlain suspected that the advance of the Mission would be opposed, and, in order 'to reduce to a minimum any indignity that might be offered to our Government,' he deputed Major Cavagnari to ride on with a few sowars to Ali Masjid, a fort ten miles beyond the mouth of the Pass, and demand leave for the Mission to proceed.

Due to the extremely hostile attitude of the Amir and the very unsatisfactory response received from General Faiz Mahomed Khan, who was in charge of the Afghan troops in the Kyber Pass, to a letter4 he had sent a few days earlier, Sir Neville Chamberlain suspected that the Mission's advance would face opposition. To minimize any potential disrespect towards our Government, he sent Major Cavagnari to ride ahead with a few soldiers to Ali Masjid, a fort ten miles beyond the mouth of the Pass, to request permission for the Mission to proceed.

When within a mile of the fort, Cavagnari was met by a body of[Page 345] Afridis, who warned him that the road ahead was blocked by Afghans, and that if he ventured further he would be fired upon. On this Cavagnari halted, and while in the act of writing a letter to Faiz Mahomed, complaining of the treatment he had met with, and informing him that he and his companions intended to proceed until fired upon, an act the responsibility for which would rest with the Amir's representatives, a message was brought him from Faiz Mahomed to the effect that he was coming to meet him, and would hear anything he had to communicate.

When Cavagnari was about a mile from the fort, a group of Afridis approached him and warned that the road ahead was blocked by Afghans, and that if he continued, he would be shot at. Cavagnari paused, and while he was writing a letter to Faiz Mahomed to complain about how he had been treated and to let him know that he and his companions planned to move forward until they were fired upon—a decision for which the Amir's representatives would be responsible—he received a message from Faiz Mahomed saying that he was coming to meet him and would listen to anything he had to share.

A meeting of Portentous Moment The interview took place near a water-mill on the right bank of the stream which flows under Ali Masjid. I have several times since ridden past the spot and pictured to myself the meeting between the British political officer and the Afghan General. It was a meeting of most portentous moment, for its result would mean peace or war.

A significant meeting The interview took place near a water mill on the right side of the stream that flows under Ali Masjid. I've ridden past that spot several times since and imagined the meeting between the British political officer and the Afghan General. It was a meeting of great significance because the outcome would determine whether there would be peace or war.

Faiz Mahomed's bearing was perfectly courteous, but he made it clear that he did not intend to permit the Mission to pass, explaining that he was only acting as a sentry under instructions from Kabul, and that he was bound to resist the entrance of the Mission into Afghan territory with all the force at his disposal. He spoke with considerable warmth, and told Cavagnari that but for their personal friendship he would, in obedience to the Amir's orders, have shot down him and his escort.

Faiz Mahomed was very polite, but he made it clear that he wouldn’t allow the Mission to go through. He explained that he was just following orders from Kabul and was required to stop the Mission from entering Afghan territory with all the force he had. He spoke passionately and told Cavagnari that if it weren't for their personal friendship, he would have had to obey the Amir's orders and shoot him and his escort.

Faiz Mahomed's followers were not so respectful in their bearing as their Chief, and their manner warned Cavagnari that it was unadvisable to prolong the conversation; he, therefore, took leave of the Afghan General, and returned to Jamrud. The Mission was dissolved,5 our Agent at Kabul was ordered to return to India, and Cavagnari was instructed to remain at Peshawar and arrange for alienating the Afridis in the Khyber from the Amir's interests.

Faiz Mahomed's followers were not as respectful in their demeanor as their leader, and their behavior signaled to Cavagnari that it wasn't wise to continue the conversation. He consequently said goodbye to the Afghan General and went back to Jamrud. The Mission was dissolved,5 our Agent in Kabul was ordered to return to India, and Cavagnari was directed to stay in Peshawar and work on turning the Afridis in the Khyber against the Amir's interests.

In reporting these circumstances to the Secretary of State, the Government of India expressed their regret that this final endeavour on their part to arrive at some definite understanding with the Amir of Kabul should have been thus met with repudiation and affront, and concluded their despatch in the following words: 'The repulse of Sir Neville Chamberlain by Sher Ali at his frontier while the Russian emissaries are still at his capital has proved the inutility of diplomatic[Page 346] expedients, and has deprived the Amir of all claim upon our further forbearance.'

In informing the Secretary of State about these events, the Government of India expressed their disappointment that their final effort to reach a clear agreement with the Amir of Kabul was met with rejection and disrespect. They concluded their message with these words: 'Sher Ali's dismissal of Sir Neville Chamberlain at his border, while Russian envoys are still in his capital, has shown the uselessness of diplomatic[Page 346] efforts and has taken away the Amir's right to expect any further patience from us.'

Preparations for War It had been arranged that, if it were unfortunately found to be necessary to support political efforts by military measures, two columns should be mobilized, one at Sukkur on the Indus, for an advance in the direction of Kandahar, the other at Kohat for operations in the Kuram valley, and that I was to have command of the latter. As soon, therefore, as the tidings of Sir Neville's repulse was received, I started from Simla to be on the spot in case the proposal to employ force should be sanctioned by the authorities in England.

War Preparations It had been planned that if it was unfortunately deemed necessary to back political efforts with military action, two units would be mobilized: one at Sukkur on the Indus to advance toward Kandahar, and the other at Kohat for operations in the Kuram Valley, with me in command of the latter. So, as soon as we received the news of Sir Neville's defeat, I left Simla to be on-site in case the authorities in England approved the use of force.

Between the time of my leaving Simla and my arrival at Kohat on the 9th October, it was decided to employ a third column to make a demonstration in the direction of the Khyber for the purpose of clearing the Amir's troops out of the pass.6

Between the time I left Simla and arrived at Kohat on October 9th, it was decided to use a third column to create a show of force toward the Khyber to push the Amir's troops out of the pass.6

The formation of this column was no doubt a wise move, as the Afghans were holding Ali Masjid, the spot on which the insult had been offered to our Envoy, and the presence of a force on this line would tend to relieve the pressure against my column; but looked at from my point of view, this third column was not quite so desirable, as it involved the withdrawal of three of my most efficient regiments, and the transfer of a large number of my transport animals to the Khyber for its use. There was some consolation, however, in the fact that my old friend Major-General Sir Samuel Browne, who had been named for the command in the Khyber, was to be the gainer by my loss.

The creation of this column was definitely a smart decision, as the Afghans were holding Ali Masjid, the place where our Envoy had been insulted, and having a force in this area would help ease the pressure on my column. However, from my perspective, this third column wasn’t as favorable, since it required pulling three of my most effective regiments and moving a large number of my transport animals to the Khyber for its use. There was some comfort, though, in knowing that my old friend Major-General Sir Samuel Browne, who had been appointed to command in the Khyber, would benefit from my loss.

Major-General Donald Stewart, who was in England, was telegraphed for to command the Kandahar column, the advanced portion of which, it was intended, should push on under Major-General Biddulph to strengthen Quetta.

Major-General Donald Stewart, who was in England, was contacted via telegraph to lead the Kandahar column, the front part of which was supposed to move forward under Major-General Biddulph to reinforce Quetta.

Letter from Sher Ali The long-expected reply7 from the Amir to the Viceroy's letter of the 14th August was received at Simla on the 19th October. Its tone[Page 347] was considered extremely discourteous; it contained no apology for the public affront offered to the British Government, and indicated no desire for improved relations.

Sher Ali's Letter The long-awaited reply7 from the Amir to the Viceroy's letter of the 14th of August was received in Simla on October 19th. Its tone[Page 347] was deemed very disrespectful; it lacked any apology for the public insult directed at the British Government and showed no interest in bettering relations.

The reply was at once communicated to the Secretary of State, who was further informed that the Government of India proposed the following measures:—

The response was immediately relayed to the Secretary of State, who was also informed that the Government of India suggested the following actions:—

The immediate issue of a manifesto which should define the cause of offence, declare a friendly disposition towards the Afghan people and reluctance to interfere in their internal affairs, and should fix the whole responsibility of what might happen upon the Amir.

The urgent need for a manifesto that clearly outlines the reason for the offense, expresses goodwill toward the Afghan people, shows hesitation to meddle in their domestic issues, and places full responsibility for any potential outcomes on the Amir.

An advance into the Kuram valley as soon as the force at Kohat was ready to move.

An advance into the Kuram Valley as soon as the troops at Kohat were ready to move.

The expulsion of the Afghan troops holding the Khyber Pass.

The removal of the Afghan troops controlling the Khyber Pass.

An advance from Quetta into Pishin, or, if necessary, to Kandahar.

An advance from Quetta to Pishin, or, if needed, to Kandahar.

Lord Cranbrook (who had succeeded the Marquis of Salisbury as Secretary of State for India) replied8 that he did not consider matters to be at present ripe for taking the extreme measures recommended by the Government of India, and that, before crossing the frontiers of Afghanistan, a letter should be addressed to the Amir demanding, in temperate language, an apology, and the acceptance of a permanent Mission within Afghan limits; that sufficient time should be given for the receipt of a reply to this letter (the text of which was to be telegraphed[Page 348] to Lord Cranbrook for approval before despatch), and that meanwhile the massing of troops should be continued, and adequate forces assembled at the various points where the frontier would be crossed if war were declared. The Secretary of State went on to say: 'There must be no mistake as to our show of power to enforce what we require; this locus penitentiæ should be allowed before hostile acts are committed against the Amir.'

Lord Cranbrook (who had taken over from the Marquis of Salisbury as Secretary of State for India) replied8 that he didn’t think the situation was ready for the drastic actions suggested by the Government of India. He stated that, before entering Afghanistan, a letter should be sent to the Amir requesting, in calm language, an apology and the acceptance of a permanent mission within Afghanistan. He emphasized that enough time should be given to receive a response to this letter (the text of which was to be sent via telegram to Lord Cranbrook for approval before it was sent out), and that in the meantime, troop mobilization should continue, with adequate forces gathered at various points along the frontier where troops might cross if war were declared. The Secretary of State added: 'We must clearly demonstrate our power to enforce our demands; this locus penitentiæ should be allowed before any hostile actions are taken against the Amir.'

These instructions were carried out, and on the 30th October the ultimatum was despatched to Sher Ali, informing him that, unless his acceptance of the conditions were received by the Viceroy not later than the 20th November, he would be treated by the British Government as a declared enemy.

These instructions were followed, and on October 30th, the ultimatum was sent to Sher Ali, informing him that unless the Viceroy received his acceptance of the conditions by November 20th, the British Government would consider him a declared enemy.






CHAPTER XLV.

1878

It was a proud, albeit a most anxious, moment for me when I assumed command of the Kuram Field Force; though a local Major-General, I was only a Major in my regiment, and save for a short experience on one occasion in Lushai, I had never had an opportunity of commanding troops in the field. Earnestly longing for success, I was intensely interested in ascertaining the qualities of those who were to aid me in achieving it. To this end I lost no time in taking stock of the several officers and corps who were to be associated with me, some of whom were personally known to me, while others I had never met before; and in endeavouring to satisfy myself as to their qualifications and fitness for their several posts, I could not help feeling that they must be equally anxious as to my capability for command, and that the inspection must be of nearly as great moment to them as to me.

It was a proud, yet really anxious moment for me when I took charge of the Kuram Field Force; even though I was a local Major-General, I was just a Major in my regiment, and aside from a brief experience once in Lushai, I had never really commanded troops in the field. Eager for success, I was deeply interested in figuring out the qualities of those who would help me achieve it. So, I quickly started assessing the different officers and units that were going to work with me, some of whom I knew personally while others I had never met before; and as I tried to gauge their qualifications and suitability for their roles, I couldn't shake the feeling that they must be just as concerned about my ability to lead, and that the inspection was probably as significant to them as it was to me.

The results of a very close investigation were tolerably satisfactory, but there were weak points in my armour which gave me grave cause for anxiety.

The results of a detailed investigation were fairly satisfactory, but there were vulnerabilities in my defense that caused me serious concern.

Shortcomings of my Column I came to the conclusion that the force was not numerically strong enough for the very difficult task before it—in the first instance, the occupation of the Kuram valley and the expulsion of all Afghan garrisons south of the Shutargardan Pass, and in the second, as opportunity might offer, the pushing my reconnaissances into the Khost valley, and, if military considerations would admit, the dislodging the Amir's administration from that tract of country, so as to prevent the Kabul Government drawing supplies from it. Finally, I was directed to explore the roads leading to the unknown region beyond Khost.

My Column's Shortcomings I concluded that the force wasn't strong enough to handle the tough job ahead—first, occupying the Kuram valley and driving out all Afghan troops south of the Shutargardan Pass, and second, if possible, extending my reconnaissance into the Khost valley, and if military factors allowed, removing the Amir's administration from that area to stop the Kabul Government from getting supplies from there. Finally, I was tasked with exploring the roads leading to the unknown region beyond Khost.

The Shutargardan was not less than 180 miles from Kohat, the garrison of which station would, on my departure, be reduced to a minimum, and Rawal Pindi, the nearest place from which aid could[Page 349] be procured, was 130 miles still further off, separated from Kohat by an execrable road and the swiftly-flowing river Indus, crossed by a precarious bridge of boats. It had to be taken into account also that the various Afridi tribes were watching their opportunity, and at the first favourable moment, in common with the tribesmen nearer Kuram, they might be expected to take advantage of our weakness and attack our convoys and the small posts which had necessarily to be established along our line of communication.

The Shutargardan was no less than 180 miles from Kohat, and by the time I left, the garrison there would be reduced to a minimum. Rawal Pindi, the closest place from which we could get help, was another 130 miles further away, separated from Kohat by a terrible road and the fast-flowing Indus River, which could only be crossed by a shaky bridge of boats. It was also important to consider that the various Afridi tribes were watching for their chance, and at the first opportunity, along with the tribesmen near Kuram, they could be expected to exploit our weakness and attack our convoys and the small stations we had to set up along our communication line.

The attitude of the Mahomedan sepoys, of whom there were large numbers in four out of my six Native Infantry regiments, was also a cause of considerable anxiety; for I was aware that they were not altogether happy at the prospect of taking part in a war against their co-religionist, the Ruler of Afghanistan, and that the mullas were already urging them to desert our cause.

The attitude of the Muslim soldiers, of whom there were many in four out of my six Native Infantry regiments, was also a major concern; I knew they weren't entirely comfortable with the idea of fighting against their fellow Muslim, the ruler of Afghanistan, and that the religious leaders were already encouraging them to abandon our cause.

Furthermore, I discovered that my only British Infantry Regiment, the 2nd Battalion of the 8th Foot, was sickly to a degree, and therefore in an unserviceable condition. It was largely composed of quite young, unacclimatized soldiers, peculiarly susceptible to fever—that terrible scourge which fills the hospitals of our Punjab stations in the autumn of each year. I rode out to meet the battalion on its way into Kohat, and was horrified to see the long line of doolies and ambulance-carts by which it was accompanied.

Furthermore, I found out that my only British Infantry Regiment, the 2nd Battalion of the 8th Foot, was in really bad shape and unfit for service. It mostly included young soldiers who weren't used to the area and were particularly prone to fever—that awful illness that fills the hospitals at our Punjab stations each autumn. I rode out to meet the battalion as it was coming into Kohat, and I was shocked to see the long line of litters and ambulance carts that were with it.

The inefficient state of the transport added to my anxieties. Notwithstanding the difficulties experienced in former campaigns from the same cause, the Government had neglected to take any steps for the organization of a proper transport service while we were at peace; consequently, when everything should have been ready for a start, confusion reigned supreme in this all-important department. Large numbers of camels, mules, and bullocks arrived daily, picked up at exorbitant prices from anyone who would supply them; but most of these animals were quite unfit to enter upon the hard work of a campaign, and with a totally inexperienced and quite insufficient staff of officers to supervise them, it was evident that the majority must succumb at an early date.

The poor state of transportation only added to my worries. Despite the issues faced in previous campaigns for the same reason, the Government failed to organize a proper transport service while we were at peace. As a result, when everything should have been ready to go, total chaos ruled this crucial department. Large numbers of camels, mules, and bullocks arrived every day, picked up at outrageous prices from anyone who would sell them; however, most of these animals were not fit for the tough work of a campaign, and with a completely inexperienced and insufficient staff of officers to manage them, it was clear that most would not last long.

Hardly had I realized these shortcomings in the constitution and equipment of my column than I received intelligence which led me to believe that the Afghans would hold the Peiwar Kotal (the pass leading into Afghanistan over the range of mountains bounding the Kuram valley) in great strength, and were determined to oppose our advance at this point. Under these circumstances I felt myself justified in representing to the powers at Simla that I considered the number of troops at my disposal inadequate for the task they were expected to perform, which representation resulted in the 23rd Pioneers, whose transfer to the Khyber column had been under consideration, being left with me, and the 72nd Highlanders, a battery of Field Artillery,[Page 350] and the 28th Punjab Infantry, being sent to Kohat. Of these, however, I was allowed to take on with me only one wing of the 72nd, half the battery, and the 28th Punjab Infantry; and the last-named regiment I could hardly consider as part of my force, for when we should arrive at Thal, our furthest frontier post, it would have to be dropped, with a wing of the 5th Punjab Cavalry and No. 2 Mountain Battery, to garrison that place.

As soon as I became aware of the issues with my team’s organization and resources, I received word that the Afghans would strongly occupy the Peiwar Kotal (the pass into Afghanistan over the mountains bordering the Kurram valley) and were set on blocking our progress there. Given this situation, I felt it was reasonable to inform the authorities in Simla that I thought the number of troops I had was insufficient for the job they were expected to do. This led to the decision that the 23rd Pioneers, originally planned to be moved to the Khyber column, would stay with me, while the 72nd Highlanders, a battery of Field Artillery,[Page 350] and the 28th Punjab Infantry would be sent to Kohat. However, I was only permitted to take one wing of the 72nd, half the artillery battery, and the 28th Punjab Infantry with me; yet I could hardly consider the last regiment as part of my force because, when we reached Thal, our farthest frontier post, it would need to be left behind along with a wing of the 5th Punjab Cavalry and No. 2 Mountain Battery to secure that location.

This small reinforcement was not given to me without considerable demur on the part of the military authorities, who had made up their minds that the Kuram column would meet with slight, if any, opposition, and that the chief stand would be made in the Khyber. Lord Lytton, however, supported my appeal, as did Sir Neville Chamberlain, who was then acting as Military Member of Council, and who had personal knowledge of the great natural strength of the Peiwar Kotal position.

This small reinforcement wasn't provided to me without significant hesitation from the military leaders, who believed that the Kuram column would face little to no resistance and that the main opposition would be in the Khyber. However, Lord Lytton backed my request, along with Sir Neville Chamberlain, who was serving as the Military Member of Council at the time and knew firsthand about the strong natural defenses of the Peiwar Kotal position.

I next turned my attention to the transport, and endeavoured by all the means I could think of to render it more efficient. A certain portion of it I placed in regimental charge; I had the men instructed in loading and unloading, and I took great care that the animals were not overladen.

I then focused on the transport and tried every way I could think of to make it more efficient. I assigned some of it to a specific regiment; I trained the men on how to load and unload, and I made sure that the animals weren’t overloaded.

Happily, I had a very able staff. Major Galbraith, the Assistant-Adjutant-General, though new to the work, proved exceptionally good, and Captain Badcock, the chief Commissariat officer, and Major Collett and Captain 'Dick' Kennedy, officers of the Quartermaster-General's department, whom I had myself selected, I could thoroughly depend upon.

Happily, I had a highly capable team. Major Galbraith, the Assistant-Adjutant-General, although new to the role, turned out to be excellent, and Captain Badcock, the chief Commissariat officer, along with Major Collett and Captain 'Dick' Kennedy from the Quartermaster-General's department, whom I personally chose, were completely dependable.

As regards my own personal staff I was equally lucky, Captain Pretyman of the R.A. being my A.D.C., and Lieutenant Neville Chamberlain, of the Central India Horse, and Lieutenant-Colonel George Villiers, of the Grenadier Guards, my Orderly officers.

As for my personal staff, I was just as fortunate, with Captain Pretyman of the R.A. serving as my A.D.C., and Lieutenant Neville Chamberlain of the Central India Horse, along with Lieutenant-Colonel George Villiers of the Grenadier Guards, acting as my Orderly officers.

As political adviser I had with me an old friend and schoolfellow, Colonel Garrow Waterfield, Commissioner of Peshawar, who brought with him a large following of Native gentlemen connected with the frontier, by whom he thought our intercourse with the tribesmen would be assisted. With scarcely an exception they proved loyal, and throughout the campaign helped me materially.

As a political advisor, I was accompanied by an old friend from school, Colonel Garrow Waterfield, the Commissioner of Peshawar, who brought along a group of local gentlemen associated with the frontier, believing that they would help us engage with the tribesmen. Almost all of them were loyal and significantly supported me throughout the campaign.

Attitude of the Border Tribes Knowing how important it was to secure the interest of the Chiefs and Khans of the border on our side, especially those who had influence in the Kuram valley, we lost no opportunity of becoming acquainted with them while we were at Kohat. They were friendly and full of promises, but it was clear that the amount of assistance to be given by them depended on whether or not our occupation of Kuram was to be permanent, and on this important point I solicited definite instructions. I reported to the Commander-in-Chief that, from all I had learnt, the advent of a British force would be welcomed[Page 351] by the people, provided they understood that it was the forerunner of annexation; that in this case we should be regarded as deliverers, and all the resources of the country would be placed at our disposal; but if the people were led to believe that the force would be withdrawn when our work was finished, and that they would be again handed over to the tender mercies of the Kabul Government, we must expect no aid from them, as they would naturally dread the resentment of their Afghan rulers.

Border Tribes' Attitude Understanding how crucial it was to win the support of the Chiefs and Khans along the border, especially those with influence in the Kuram valley, we took every chance to get to know them while we were in Kohat. They were friendly and made many promises, but it was clear that the level of assistance they would provide depended on whether our presence in Kuram would be permanent. I sought clear instructions on this critical issue. I informed the Commander-in-Chief that, based on everything I had learned, the arrival of a British force would be welcomed by the people, as long as they understood it signaled annexation. In that case, we would be seen as liberators, and all the resources of the region would be at our disposal. However, if the people were led to believe that the force would leave once our mission was complete, and that they would then be returned to the control of the Kabul Government, we could expect no support from them, as they would naturally fear the anger of their Afghan rulers.

In reply, I was informed that I could assure the people of Kuram that our occupation would be permanent; and my being enabled to make this promise was undoubtedly the explanation of the friendly reception we met with on entering the valley, and the cause of my receiving at the same time a letter from the Chief of the Turis (the inhabitants of the Kuram valley), inquiring when we might be expected, as they were suffering greatly from the tyranny of the Afghan Government, and were anxiously waiting the arrival of the British.

In response, I was told that I could guarantee the people of Kuram that our presence would be indefinite; and my ability to make this promise was clearly why we were welcomed so warmly upon arriving in the valley. It also explained why I received a letter from the Chief of the Turis (the locals of the Kuram valley), asking when we would arrive, as they were enduring significant suffering under the Afghan Government's oppression and were eagerly anticipating the British coming.






CHAPTER XLVI.

1878

By the 15th November my column1 (consisting of 1,345 British and 3,990 Native soldiers, with 13 guns) was concentrated at Thal, and on the 20th—the limit of time given to the Amir—no reply having been vouchsafed to the Viceroy's ultimatum, orders were issued to the three columns to advance the next day.2

By November 15th, my column1 (made up of 1,345 British and 3,990 Native soldiers, along with 13 guns) was gathered at Thal, and on the 20th—the deadline set for the Amir—since there was no response to the Viceroy's ultimatum, orders were given for the three columns to move forward the following day.2

The Kuram Valley The Kuram valley, from which my force received its designation, is[Page 352] about 60 miles long, and from 3 to 10 miles wide. On every side rise high and magnificently-wooded mountains, those on the north and east being the most lofty and precipitous, while on the north-west projects the spur which runs down from Sika Bam, the highest peak of the Sufed Koh range, upwards of 14,000 feet high. This spur forms the[Page 353] boundary between Kuram and Afghanistan, and is crossed by the Peiwar Kotal. A river, which varies from 100 to 500 yards in width, flows through the valley, and the road, or, rather, track, which existed in 1878, ran for the most part along its rocky bed. In the winter months the depth of the water nowhere exceeded three feet, except after heavy rain, and although the stream was rather swift, it could usually be forded with very little risk. The valley itself had a bleak and deserted appearance, save in the immediate vicinity of the few and widely-scattered villages, around which were clustered fruit trees and patches of cultivation.

Kuram Valley The Kuram Valley, which gave my force its name, is[Page 352] about 60 miles long and between 3 to 10 miles wide. High and beautifully wooded mountains rise on all sides, with the tallest and steepest on the north and east, while the northwest features a spur running down from Sika Bam, the highest peak of the Sufed Koh range, standing over 14,000 feet tall. This spur marks the[Page 353] boundary between Kuram and Afghanistan and is crossed by the Peiwar Kotal. A river, varying from 100 to 500 yards in width, flows through the valley, and the path that existed in 1878 mostly followed its rocky bed. During the winter months, the water depth never exceeded three feet, except after heavy rain, and although the current was fairly swift, it could usually be crossed with little risk. The valley had a harsh and abandoned look, except near the few scattered villages, where fruit trees and patches of cultivated land clustered around.

For six weeks the thoughts of every one in the force had been turned towards Kuram, consequently there was considerable excitement when at 3 a.m. on the 21st November the leading troops crossed the river into Afghan territory and encamped eight miles from Thal. The next morning we marched fifteen miles farther up the valley to Hazir Pir, where we halted for one day to improve the road (in some places impracticable for guns and transport) and to allow of the rear part of the column closing up. As we proceeded on our way, the headmen from the different villages came out to welcome us, and on arriving at Hazir Pir we found a plentiful repast awaiting us spread under the shade of some trees. Knives and forks were evidently considered unnecessary adjuncts by our entertainers, so I unhesitatingly took my first lesson in eating roast kid and pillaued chicken without their aid.

For six weeks, everyone in the force had been focused on Kuram, so there was a lot of excitement when, at 3 a.m. on November 21st, the leading troops crossed the river into Afghan territory and set up camp eight miles from Thal. The next morning, we marched another fifteen miles up the valley to Hazir Pir, where we stopped for a day to improve the road (which was, in some places, impossible for guns and transport) and allow the back part of the column to catch up. As we continued on our way, the headmen from various villages came out to greet us, and upon reaching Hazir Pir, we found a generous meal prepared for us under the shade of some trees. Knives and forks clearly weren't deemed necessary by our hosts, so I eagerly took my first lesson in eating roast kid and pilaf chicken without them.

On the 24th we marched to the Darwazai defile, and the next day proceeded through it to Kuram, forty-eight miles from Thal. We found the fort evacuated by the Afghans, who had left behind one 6-pounder gun.

On the 24th, we marched to the Darwazai pass, and the next day we went through it to Kuram, which is forty-eight miles from Thal. We discovered that the Afghans had evacuated the fort, leaving behind one 6-pounder gun.

Conflicting News of the Enemy Notwithstanding the proffers of assistance I had received, I could get no reliable information as to the whereabouts of the enemy; from one account I was led to believe that they were in full retreat, from another that they were being strongly reinforced. So, to find out the truth, I reconnoitred as far as the cantonment of Habib Kila, fifteen miles ahead, and there ascertained that the Afghan army, consisting (it was[Page 354] said) of 18,000 men and eleven guns, had left the place only a short time before, and was then moving into position on the Peiwar Kotal.

Conflicting Reports on the Enemy Despite the offers of help I had received, I couldn't find any reliable information about where the enemy was. One source made me think they were in full retreat, while another said they were being heavily reinforced. So, to get the truth, I scouted as far as the base at Habib Kila, fifteen miles ahead, and there I found out that the Afghan army, said to consist of 18,000 men and eleven guns, had left the area only a short while before and was then moving into position on the Peiwar Kotal.

Depot hospitals were formed at Kuram, and all our surplus stores and baggage were left there with the following garrison: Two guns of F/A, Royal Horse Artillery, half of G/3, R.A., the squadron 10th Hussars, one squadron 12th Bengal Cavalry, and the company of Bengal Sappers and Miners, besides all the sick and weakly men of the column.

Depot hospitals were set up at Kuram, and we left all our extra supplies and baggage there with the following garrison: Two guns from the Royal Horse Artillery, half of G/3, R.A., one squadron of the 10th Hussars, one squadron of the 12th Bengal Cavalry, and a company of Bengal Sappers and Miners, along with all the sick and weak men from the column.

At 5 a.m. on the 28th the remainder of the force, with the exception of the troops who had been dropped at the several halting-places to keep open our line of communication, marched towards the Peiwar.

At 5 a.m. on the 28th, the rest of the force, except for the troops who had been deployed at various stopping points to maintain our line of communication, marched toward the Peiwar.

The stars were still shining when we started, but it was very dark, and we were chilled to the bone by a breeze blowing straight off the snows of the Sufed Koh; towards sunrise it died away, and was followed by oppressive heat and clouds of dust. Our progress was slow, for the banks of the numerous nullas which intersect the valleys had to be ramped before the guns and baggage could pass over them.

The stars were still shining when we started, but it was really dark, and we were freezing from a breeze coming straight off the snow of the Sufed Koh; as the sun began to rise, the breeze faded away and was replaced by stifling heat and clouds of dust. Our progress was slow because we had to build ramps over the banks of the many nullas that cut through the valleys before the guns and baggage could pass.

On reaching Habib Kila, intelligence was again brought that the Amir's troops were in disorderly retreat, and had abandoned their guns at the foot of the pass. I at once pushed a reconnaissance in force up the south-eastern slopes of the mountain under the command of Colonel Gordon,3 of the 29th Punjab Infantry, who discovered that, so far from the enemy having abandoned their guns, they had taken up an extremely strong position on the pass, from which they fired on the reconnaissance party as it advanced, wounding one British, one Native officer4 and nine men.

On reaching Habib Kila, we received additional intel that the Amir's troops were retreating in disarray and had left their artillery at the base of the pass. I immediately sent a reconnaissance team to the southeastern slopes of the mountain led by Colonel Gordon,3 of the 29th Punjab Infantry. They found that, rather than abandoning their guns, the enemy had actually taken a very strong position at the pass and opened fire on the reconnaissance party as they advanced, injuring one British officer, one Native officer4 and nine men.

As the Afghans seemed inclined to press Gordon, two guns were brought into action, and, to cover his retirement, I sent out the 5th Gurkhas, under Lieutenant-Colonel Fitz-Hugh, who skilfully effected this object with the loss of only one Gurkha wounded.

As the Afghans appeared ready to engage Gordon, two cannons were deployed, and to ensure his safe withdrawal, I dispatched the 5th Gurkhas, led by Lieutenant-Colonel Fitz-Hugh, who expertly accomplished this with just one Gurkha sustaining a wound.

Gordon brought me back the valuable piece of information that no further advance in that direction was possible, save in single file—valuable because, had I attempted a front attack, the sacrifice of life must have been enormous, even if the attack had proved successful, the[Page 355] possibility of which I still greatly doubt.

Gordon returned with the important news that no further progress could be made in that direction except in single file—this was crucial because if I had tried a frontal assault, the loss of life would have been huge, even if the attack had been successful, the possibility of which I still seriously doubt.

Our tents not having arrived, the force prepared to bivouac; but our position proving untenable, from being within range of the Afghan shells, we moved a mile to the rear. Strong piquets were posted on the neighbouring heights, and the night passed without further interruption.

Our tents hadn't arrived, so the troops got ready to camp out; however, our position was unsuitable because we were within range of Afghan shells, so we moved a mile back. Strong sentries were set up on the nearby hills, and the night went by without any more disturbances.

We halted the two following days. Men and cattle were exhausted from their fatiguing marches, and supplies had to be brought up before we could advance further; besides, I required time to look about me before making up my mind how the Peiwar Kotal could most advantageously be attacked.

We stopped for the next two days. Both the men and the cattle were worn out from their tiring marches, and we needed to restock our supplies before moving forward. Plus, I needed some time to assess the situation before deciding the best way to attack the Peiwar Kotal.

It was, indeed, a formidable position—a great deal more formidable than I had expected—on the summit of a mountain rising abruptly 2,000 feet above us, and only approachable by a narrow, steep, and rugged path, flanked on either side by precipitous spurs jutting out like huge bastions, from which an overwhelming fire could be brought to bear on the assailants. The mountain on the enemy's right did not look much more promising for moving troops, and I could only hope that a way might be found on their left by which their flank could be turned. The country, however, in that direction was screened from view by spurs covered with dense forests of deodar.

It was definitely a tough position—much tougher than I had anticipated—at the top of a mountain that shot up 2,000 feet above us, and could only be reached by a narrow, steep, and rugged path, with steep spurs on both sides jutting out like massive walls, from which intense fire could be aimed at any attackers. The mountain on the enemy's right didn’t look any better for moving troops, and I could only hope a route could be found on their left that would allow us to outflank them. However, the area in that direction was hidden from view by spurs covered in dense deodar forests.

An Apparently Impregnable Position I confess to a feeling very nearly akin to despair when I gazed at the apparently impregnable position towering above us, occupied, as I could discern through my telescope, by crowds of soldiers and a large number of guns.

An Apparently Unassailable Position I admit that I felt close to despair when I looked at the seemingly unbeatable position towering over us, which, as I could see through my telescope, was filled with crowds of soldiers and a lot of guns.

My Chief Engineer, Colonel Perkins,5 made a reconnaissance, which only too surely confirmed Gordon's opinion; and he further ascertained that a deep ravine lay between the ground occupied by our piquets on the north and the kotal, so that an attack on the enemy's immediate left seemed as hopeless as on his right, or to his front.

My Chief Engineer, Colonel Perkins,5 conducted a reconnaissance that clearly confirmed Gordon's opinion. He also found out that a deep ravine separated our forward positions on the north from the kotal, making an attack on the enemy's immediate left just as unlikely as on his right or in front.

On the afternoon of the 29th I sent my Quartermaster-General, Major Collett, with his assistant, Captain Carr, and a small escort, to the top of a hill, which lay to the right rear of our camp, from which they were able to get a fairly good view of the surrounding country. Collett reported that, so far as he could judge, it seemed likely that, as I had hoped, the enemy's left might be turned by a route over what was known as the Spingawi Kotal, where it had been ascertained that some Afghan troops were posted. This was encouraging, but before I could finally decide on adopting this line of attack, it was expedient to find out whether it was practicable for troops, and whether the kotal itself was held in great strength. Accordingly, early next morning, Collett was again despatched to make a closer reconnaissance of the Spingawi approaches.

On the afternoon of the 29th, I sent my Quartermaster-General, Major Collett, along with his assistant, Captain Carr, and a small escort, to the top of a hill behind our camp where they could get a pretty good view of the surrounding area. Collett reported that, as far as he could tell, it seemed possible that, as I had hoped, we could outflank the enemy's left by taking a route over what was known as the Spingawi Kotal, where we knew some Afghan troops were stationed. This was promising, but before I could make a final decision on this approach, it was necessary to determine if it was feasible for troops to use and whether the kotal itself was heavily defended. So, early the next morning, Collett was sent back to conduct a closer reconnaissance of the Spingawi routes.

While all this was going on, I did everything I could think of to[Page 356] prevent what was in my mind being suspected by the enemy or, indeed, by my own troops. Each day more than once, accompanied by an imposing number of officers and a considerable escort, I climbed the lofty spur by which a direct attack would have to be covered, and everyone in camp was made to believe that an attack in this direction was being prepared for. I was particularly careful to have this idea impressed on the Turis and the Afghan camel-drivers, by whom the enemy were pretty sure to be informed of what was going on; and also on the Mahomedan sepoys, whom I suspected of being half-hearted. I confided my real plan to only three people, my two senior staff-officers, Galbraith and Collett, and my A.D.C., Pretyman, for I knew, from the nature of the country, that, under the most favourable circumstances, the way must be difficult and circuitous, and its passage must occupy several hours; and that if the Afghans got wind of the contemplated movement, and should attack my small force while on the march and divided, defeat if not annihilation would be inevitable, for the surrounding tribes would be certain to join against us if once they believed us to be in difficulties.

While all this was happening, I did everything I could think of to[Page 356] prevent the enemy or even my own troops from suspecting what was on my mind. Every day, more than once, I climbed the high spur that a direct attack would need to cover, accompanied by a large number of officers and a significant escort, and I made sure everyone in camp believed that we were preparing for an attack in that direction. I was especially careful to impress this idea on the Turis and the Afghan camel-drivers, who the enemy would likely hear about what was going on; and also on the Mahomedan sepoys, whom I suspected were not fully committed. I only shared my actual plan with three people: my two senior staff officers, Galbraith and Collett, and my A.D.C., Pretyman, because I knew that given the terrain, even under the best circumstances, the route would be difficult and indirect, taking several hours to cross. If the Afghans caught wind of our planned movement and attacked my small force while we were on the move and divided, defeat, if not destruction, would be unavoidable, as the surrounding tribes would surely join against us if they thought we were in trouble.

I had heard that the smallness of the column was being freely commented on and discussed; indeed, people in Kuram did not care to disguise their belief that we were hastening to our destruction. Even the women taunted us. When they saw the little Gurkhas for the first time, they exclaimed: 'Is it possible that these beardless boys think they can fight Afghan warriors?' They little suspected that the brave spirits which animated those small forms made them more than a match for the most stalwart Afghan. There was no hiding from ourselves, however, that the force was terribly inadequate for the work to be done. But done it must be. A retirement was not to be thought of, and delay would only add to our difficulties, as the Afghans were daily being reinforced from Kabul, and we heard of still further additions of both Artillery and Infantry being on their way.

I had heard that people were openly discussing the smallness of our column; in fact, folks in Kuram didn’t hide their belief that we were rushing towards our doom. Even the women mocked us. When they saw the tiny Gurkhas for the first time, they exclaimed, "Can these beardless boys really think they can fight Afghan warriors?" They didn’t realize that the brave spirits inside those small bodies made them more than capable of facing even the strongest Afghan. Still, we couldn’t ignore the fact that our force was seriously lacking for the task ahead. But it had to be done. We couldn’t think about retreating, and any delay would only make things worse, as the Afghans were being reinforced daily from Kabul, and we heard that even more Artillery and Infantry were on their way.

Spingawi Route Decided On Collett returned soon after noon on the 30th; he had done admirably and brought me most useful information, the result of which was that I determined to adopt the Spingawi route. The nights were long, and I calculated that by starting at 10 p.m., and allowing for unforeseen delays, we should reach the foot of the pass while it was still dark.

Spingawi Route Chosen Collett came back shortly after noon on the 30th; he had done an excellent job and provided me with very helpful information, which led me to decide on the Spingawi route. The nights were long, and I figured that by starting at 10 p.m. and accounting for unexpected delays, we could reach the base of the pass while it was still dark.



THE ATTACK ON THE PEIWAR KOTAL.

THE ATTACK ON THE PEIWAR KOTAL.

From
a painting by Vereker Hamilton.

THE ATTACK ON THE PEIWAR KOTAL.

THE ATTACK ON THE PEIWAR KOTAL.

From a painting by Vereker Hamilton.



Fresh efforts were now made to distract the enemy's attention from the real point of attack. In addition to the reconnoitring parties which were ostentatiously moved towards the Peiwar, batteries were marked out at points commanding the kotal, and a great display was made of the arrival of the two Horse and three Field Artillery guns, which I had left at Kuram till the last moment on account of scarcity of forage at the front, and of the two squadrons of Bengal Cavalry, which for the same reason I had sent back to Habib Kila. Even with these additions the total strength of the force in camp, including British[Page 357] officers, amounted to only 889 Europeans and 2,415 Natives, with 13 guns.

New efforts were made to shift the enemy's focus away from the actual point of attack. Along with the reconnaissance teams that were conspicuously sent toward the Peiwar, artillery positions were set up at locations overlooking the kotal, and there was a significant show made of the arrival of the two Horse and three Field Artillery guns, which I had kept at Kuram until the last moment due to a lack of fodder at the front, and the two squadrons of Bengal Cavalry, which I had sent back to Habib Kila for the same reason. Even with these additions, the total strength of the force in camp, including British[Page 357] officers, was only 889 Europeans and 2,415 Natives, with 13 guns.

These attempts to mislead the enemy were entirely successful, for the Afghans shelled the working parties in the batteries, and placed additional guns in position on the south side of the pass, showing distinctly that they were preparing for a front attack, while in our camp also it was generally believed that this was the movement which would be carried out the next morning.

These efforts to deceive the enemy worked completely, as the Afghans bombarded the crews in the batteries and set up more guns on the south side of the pass, clearly indicating that they were getting ready for a frontal assault. In our camp, it was widely thought that this would be the operation carried out the next morning.

When it became sufficiently dark to conceal our proceedings, all the commanding and staff officers assembled in my tent, and I disclosed to them my scheme for the attack, impressing upon them that success depended upon our being able to surprise the enemy, and begging of them not even to whisper the word 'Spingawi' to each other.

When it got dark enough to hide what we were doing, all the commanding and staff officers gathered in my tent, and I shared my plan for the attack, stressing that our success relied on surprising the enemy. I asked them not to even mention the word 'Spingawi' to one another.

I had had sufficient time since I took over the command to test the capabilities of the officers and regiments upon whom I had to depend, so that I had now no difficulty in disposing the troops in the manner most likely to ensure success.

I had enough time since I took command to assess the capabilities of the officers and regiments I relied on, so I had no trouble arranging the troops in a way that would most likely lead to success.

For the turning movement I selected:

For the turning movement I chose:

4 guns F/A, R.H.A.,
The wing 72nd Highlanders,
No 1 Mountain Battery (4 guns),
2nd and 29th Punjab Infantry,
5th Gurkhas,
23rd Pioneers—
Total strength 2,263 men with 8 guns;

4 guns F/A, R.H.A.,
The wing 72nd Highlanders,
No 1 Mountain Battery (4 guns),
2nd and 29th Punjab Infantry,
5th Gurkhas,
23rd Pioneers—
Total strength 2,263 men with 8 guns;

and I determined to command the attack myself, with Brigadier-General Thelwall as second in command.

and I decided to lead the attack myself, with Brigadier-General Thelwall as my second in command.

For the feint and for the defence of our camp I left under the command of Brigadier-General Cobbe:

For the distraction and for the protection of our camp, I placed Brigadier-General Cobbe in charge:

2 guns F/A, R.H.A.,
3 guns G/3, R.A.,
2nd Battalion 8th Foot,6
12th Bengal Cavalry,
5th Punjab Infantry.

2 F/A guns, R.H.A.,
3 G/3 guns, R.A.,
2nd Battalion 8th Foot,6
12th Bengal Cavalry,
5th Punjab Infantry.

In all, a little more than 1,000 men with 5 guns.

In total, just over 1,000 men with 5 guns.

At 10 p.m. on Sunday, the 1st December, the little column fell in, in absolute silence, and began its hazardous march. Tents were left standing and camp-fires burning; and so noiselessly were orders carried out that our departure remained unsuspected even by those of our own people who were left in camp.

At 10 p.m. on Sunday, December 1st, the small group fell in, completely silently, and started its risky journey. Tents were left up and campfires still burning; and orders were carried out so quietly that our departure went unnoticed even by those of our own people who stayed behind at the camp.

The track (for there was no road) led for two miles due east, and then, turning sharp to the north, entered a wide gorge and ran along the bed of a mountain stream. The moonlight lit up the cliffs on the[Page 358] eastern side of the ravine, but made the darkness only the more dense in the shadow of the steep hills on the west, underneath which our path lay, over piles of stones and heaps of glacier débris. A bitterly cold wind rushed down the gorge, extremely trying to all, lightly clad as we were in anticipation of the climb before us. Onward and upwards we slowly toiled, stumbling over great boulders of rock, dropping into old water-channels, splashing through icy streams, and halting frequently to allow the troops in the rear to close up.

The path (since there was no road) stretched for two miles due east, then turned sharply north, entering a wide gorge and following the bed of a mountain stream. The moonlight illuminated the cliffs on the[Page 358]eastern side of the ravine, but deepened the darkness in the shadows of the steep hills to the west, where our path lay, over piles of stones and heaps of glacial debris. A bitterly cold wind rushed down the gorge, making it very challenging for us, lightly dressed as we were for the climb ahead. Slowly, we trudged onward and upward, stumbling over large boulders, dropping into old water channels, splashing through icy streams, and frequently stopping to let the troops behind us catch up.

In spite of the danger incurred, I was obliged every now and then to strike a match and look at my watch to see how the time was going. I had calculated that, by starting as early as ten o'clock, there would be an hour or two to spare for rest. The distance, however, proved rather greater than was expected and the road much rougher, but these facts were, to my mind, not sufficient to account for the slowness of our progress, and I proceeded to the head of the column, anxious to discover the true cause of the delay.

In spite of the danger involved, I had to occasionally light a match to check my watch and see how much time had passed. I thought that by starting as early as ten o'clock, I would have an hour or two to rest. However, the distance turned out to be greater than expected and the road much tougher, but I didn’t think those reasons were enough to explain how slow we were moving. So, I went to the front of the group, eager to find out the real reason for the delay.

I had chosen the 29th Punjab Infantry to lead the way, on account of the high reputation of Colonel John Gordon, who commanded it, and because of the excellent character the regiment had always borne; but on overtaking it my suspicions were excited by the unnecessarily straggling manner in which the men were marching, and to which I called Gordon's attention. No sooner had I done so than a shot was fired from one of the Pathan companies, followed in a few seconds by another. The Sikh companies of the regiment immediately closed up, and Gordon's Sikh orderly whispered in his ear that there was treachery amongst the Pathans.

I had picked the 29th Punjab Infantry to lead because of the strong reputation of Colonel John Gordon, who was in charge, and the great reputation the regiment had always held. But when I caught up with them, I became suspicious of the way the men were straggling as they marched, and I pointed it out to Gordon. No sooner had I said this than a shot rang out from one of the Pathan companies, followed shortly by another. The Sikh companies of the regiment immediately tightened their formation, and Gordon's Sikh orderly whispered in his ear that there was treachery among the Pathans.

It was a moment of intense anxiety, for it was impossible to tell how far we were from the Spingawi Kotal, or whether the shots could be heard by the enemy; it was equally impossible to discover by whom the shots had been fired without delaying the advance, and this I was loath to risk. So, grieved though I was to take any steps likely to discredit a regiment with such admirable traditions, I decided to change the order of the march by bringing one company of the 72nd Highlanders and the 5th Gurkhas to the front, and I warned Lieutenant-Colonel Brownlow, in command of the 72nd, to keep a watch over the Pathans with his three remaining companies, for I felt that our enterprise had already been sufficiently imperilled by the Pathans, and that hesitation would be culpable; for, unless we could reach the kotal while our approach was still concealed by the darkness, the turning movement would in all probability end in disaster.

It was a moment of intense anxiety because it was impossible to tell how far we were from the Spingawi Kotal or whether the enemy could hear the shots. It was also impossible to find out who fired the shots without delaying our advance, and I didn’t want to risk that. So, even though I felt sad to take any steps that might discredit a regiment with such great traditions, I decided to change the order of the march by bringing one company of the 72nd Highlanders and the 5th Gurkhas to the front. I warned Lieutenant-Colonel Brownlow, who was in charge of the 72nd, to keep an eye on the Pathans with his three remaining companies because I felt that our mission had already been significantly jeopardized by the Pathans, and any hesitation would be irresponsible. Unless we could reach the kotal while the darkness still concealed us, the turning movement would likely end in disaster.

On the Gurkhas coming up, I told Major Fitz-Hugh, who commanded them, that the moment he reached the foot of the kotal, he must front form company, fix bayonets, and charge up the slope without waiting for further orders.

On the Gurkhas approaching, I told Major Fitz-Hugh, who was in charge of them, that as soon as he got to the foot of the hill, he needed to form the company, fix bayonets, and charge up the slope without waiting for any more orders.

A Night Attack Soon afterwards, and just as the first streak of dawn proclaimed the[Page 359] approach of day, the enemy became aware of our presence, and fired into us, when instantly I heard Fitz-Hugh give the word to charge. Brownlow, at the head of his Highlanders, dashed forward in support, and two guns of the Mountain battery coming up at the moment, I ordered its Commandant, Captain Kelso, to come into action as soon as he could find a position.

Night Raid Soon after that, just as the first light of dawn announced the[Page 359] arrival of day, the enemy noticed we were there and opened fire on us. Right away, I heard Fitz-Hugh shout the command to charge. Brownlow, leading his Highlanders, rushed forward to support us, and as two guns from the Mountain battery arrived at that moment, I told its Commander, Captain Kelso, to get into action as soon as he found a good spot.

I was struck by the smile of satisfied pride and pleasure with which he received the order. He was delighted, no doubt, that the opportunity had arrived to prove what the battery—to perfect which he had spared neither time nor labour—could do; but it was the last time that gallant soldier smiled, for a few seconds later he was shot dead.

I was taken aback by the smile of satisfied pride and joy with which he accepted the order. He was thrilled, without a doubt, that the chance had come to show what the battery—he had put so much time and effort into perfecting—could accomplish; but that was the last time that brave soldier smiled, because a few seconds later he was shot dead.

The Gurkhas, forgetting their fatigue, rapidly climbed the steep side of the mountain, and, swarming into the first entrenchment, quickly cleared it of the enemy; then, guided by the flashes of the Afghan rifles, they pressed on, and, being joined by the leading company of the 72nd, took possession of a second and larger entrenchment 200 yards higher up. Without a perceptible pause, the Highlanders and Gurkhas together rushed a third position, the most important of all, as it commanded the head of the pass.

The Gurkhas, shaking off their exhaustion, quickly scaled the steep mountain side and burst into the first trench, swiftly clearing it of the enemy. Then, following the flashes from the Afghan rifles, they pressed forward and, joined by the leading company of the 72nd, took control of a second and larger trench 200 yards higher up. Without missing a beat, the Highlanders and Gurkhas together charged a third position, the most crucial one, as it overlooked the entrance to the pass.

The Spingawi Kotal was won; but we were surrounded by woods, which were crowded with Afghans, some 400 of whom made a dashing but ineffectual attempt to carry off their guns, left behind in the first scare of our sudden attack. These men were dressed so exactly like some of our own Native soldiers that they were not recognized until they got within 100 yards of the entrenchment, and they would doubtless have succeeded in accomplishing their purpose—as the Highlanders and Gurkhas were busy pursuing the fugitives—had not Galbraith, whom I had sent with an order to the front, hurriedly collected a certain number of stragglers and met the Afghans with such a murderous fire that they broke and fled, leaving seventy dead in a space of about fifty yards square.

The Spingawi Kotal was won; but we were surrounded by woods filled with Afghans, around 400 of whom made a bold but ineffective attempt to retrieve their guns, which they had left behind during the initial panic of our surprise attack. These men looked so much like some of our own Native soldiers that they weren’t recognized until they were within 100 yards of the entrenchment. They probably would have succeeded in their goal—since the Highlanders and Gurkhas were busy chasing the fleeing troops—if Galbraith, whom I had sent with an order to the front, hadn’t quickly gathered a group of stragglers and met the Afghans with such intense gunfire that they broke and ran, leaving seventy dead in an area of about fifty yards square.

As the rising sun lighted up the scene of the conflict, the advantages of a night attack became more apparent. The pass lay across the shoulder of a mountain (9,400 feet above the sea), and through a magnificent pine forest. Its approaches were commanded by precipitous heights, defended by breastworks of felled trees, which completely screened the defenders, who were quite comfortably placed in wide ditches, from which they could fire deadly volleys without being in the least exposed themselves. Had we not been able to surprise the enemy before the day dawned, I doubt whether, any of us could have reached the first entrenchment. As it was, the regiment holding it fled in such a hurry that a sheepskin coat and from sixty to a hundred rounds of ammunition were left behind on the spot where each man had lain.

As the rising sun illuminated the scene of the conflict, the advantages of a night attack became clearer. The pass was situated on the shoulder of a mountain (9,400 feet above sea level) and ran through a stunning pine forest. Its approaches were controlled by steep heights, protected by barricades of fallen trees, which completely concealed the defenders, who were comfortably positioned in wide ditches from where they could fire deadly volleys without exposing themselves at all. If we hadn’t been able to surprise the enemy before dawn, I doubt any of us could have reached the first fortification. As it was, the regiment holding it fled so quickly that a sheepskin coat and between sixty to a hundred rounds of ammunition were left behind where each man had been.

We had gained our object so far, but we were still a considerable distance [Page 360] from the body of the Afghan army on the Peiwar Kotal.

We had achieved our goal up to this point, but we were still quite far [Page 360] from the main part of the Afghan army at Peiwar Kotal.

Immediately in rear of the last of the three positions on the Spingawi Kotal was a murg, or open grassy plateau, upon which I re-formed the troops who had carried the assault. The 2nd Punjab Infantry, the 23rd Pioneers, and the battery of Royal Horse Artillery were still behind; but as the guns were being transported on elephants, I knew the progress of this part of the force must be slow, and thinking it unwise to allow the Afghans time to recover from their defeat, I determined to push on with the troops at hand.

Immediately behind the last of the three positions on the Spingawi Kotal was a murg, or open grassy plateau, where I regrouped the troops who had taken part in the assault. The 2nd Punjab Infantry, the 23rd Pioneers, and the Royal Horse Artillery battery were still behind; but since the guns were being moved by elephants, I knew this part of the force would be slow to advance. Not wanting to give the Afghans a chance to recover from their defeat, I decided to push forward with the troops I had available.

A field hospital was formed on the murg, and placed under a guard, ammunition-pouches were re-filled, and off we started again, choosing as our route the left of two hog-backed, thickly-wooded heights running almost longitudinally in the direction of the Peiwar Kotal, in the hope that from this route communication might be established with our camp below. I was not disappointed, for very soon Captain Wynne, in charge of the signalling, was able to inform Brigadier-General Cobbe of our progress, and convey to him the order to co-operate with me so far as his very limited numbers would permit.

A field hospital was set up on the murg and secured with a guard. We refilled our ammunition pouches and started off again, choosing the left of two ridge lines that were thickly wooded and ran almost parallel to the Peiwar Kotal, hoping that this route would allow us to communicate with our camp below. I was pleased, because soon after, Captain Wynne, who was in charge of signaling, was able to update Brigadier-General Cobbe on our progress and pass on the order for him to collaborate with me as much as his limited forces allowed.

Our advance was at first unopposed, but very slow, owing to the density of the forest, which prevented our seeing any distance, and made it difficult to keep the troops together.

Our progress was initially unopposed but very slow due to the thick forest, which blocked our view and made it hard to keep the troops organized.

At the end of two hours we arrived at the edge of a deep hollow, on the further side of which, 150 yards off, the enemy were strongly posted, and they at once opened fire upon us.

At the end of two hours, we reached the edge of a deep ravine, where, 150 yards away on the other side, the enemy had taken up strong positions, and they immediately began firing at us.

Fancy my dismay at this critical moment on discovering that the Highlanders, Gurkhas, and the Mountain battery, had not come up! They had evidently taken a wrong turn in the almost impenetrable forest, and I found myself alone with the 29th Punjab Infantry. Knowing that the missing troops could not be far off, I hoped that they would hear the firing, which was each moment becoming heavier; but some time passed, and there were no signs of their approach. I sent staff officer after staff officer to search for them, until one only remained, the Rev. J.W. Adams, who had begged to be allowed to accompany me as Aide-de-camp for this occasion, and him I also despatched in quest of the missing troops. After some time, which seemed to me an age, he returned to report that no trace could he find of them; so again I started him off in another direction. Feeling the situation was becoming serious, and expecting that the Afghans, encouraged by our inaction, would certainly attack us, I thought it advisable to make a forward movement; but the attitude of the 29th was not encouraging. I addressed them, and expressed a hope that they would now by their behaviour wipe out the slur of disloyalty which the firing of the signal shots had cast upon the regiment, upon which Captain Channer,7 who was just then in command, stepped[Page 361] forward, and said he would answer for the Sikhs; but amongst the Pathans there was an ominous silence, and Channer agreed with me that they did not intend to fight. I therefore ordered Channer and his subaltern, Picot, to advance cautiously down the slope with the Sikhs of the regiment, following myself near enough to keep the party in sight. I had not gone far, however, before I found that the enemy were much too strongly placed to be attacked successfully by so few men; accordingly I recalled Channer, and we returned to the position at the top of the hill.

Imagine my dismay at this critical moment when I discovered that the Highlanders, Gurkhas, and the Mountain battery hadn’t arrived! They must have taken a wrong turn in the nearly impenetrable forest, and I found myself alone with the 29th Punjab Infantry. Knowing the missing troops couldn’t be far off, I hoped they would hear the gunfire, which grew heavier by the moment; but after a while, there were no signs of them coming. I sent one staff officer after another to look for them until only one remained, the Rev. J.W. Adams, who had asked to come with me as Aide-de-camp for this occasion, and I sent him off to search for the missing troops. After some time, which felt like an eternity, he returned to report that he couldn’t find any trace of them; so I sent him off again in another direction. Realizing the situation was getting serious, and expecting the Afghans, encouraged by our inaction, to attack us, I thought it best to make a forward movement; but the attitude of the 29th wasn’t encouraging. I addressed them and expressed hope that they would now prove their loyalty and erase the stain of disloyalty that the signal shots had cast on the regiment. At this, Captain Channer,7 who was in command at that moment, stepped forward and said he would guarantee the Sikhs' loyalty; but among the Pathans, there was an ominous silence, and Channer agreed with me that they didn’t intend to fight. I then ordered Channer and his second-in-command, Picot, to advance cautiously down the slope with the Sikhs of the regiment, while I followed close enough to keep them in sight. However, I hadn’t gone far before I realized the enemy was positioned too strongly for us to attack with so few men; accordingly, I recalled Channer, and we returned to our position at the top of the hill.



MY GURKHA ORDERLIES.

MY GURKHA ORDERLIES.

From
a water colour sketch by Colonel Woodthorpe, C.B., R. E.

MY GURKHA ORDERLIES.

MY GURKHA ORDERLIES.

From a watercolor sketch by Colonel Woodthorpe, C.B., R.E.



Devotion of my Orderlies My orderlies8 during this little episode displayed such touching devotion that it is with feelings of the most profound admiration and gratitude I call to mind their self-sacrificing courage. On this (as on many other occasions) they kept close round me, determined that no shot should reach me if they could prevent it; and on my being hit in the hand by a spent bullet, and turning to look round in the direction it came from, I beheld one of the Sikhs standing with his arms stretched out trying to screen me from the enemy, which he could easily do, for he was a grand specimen of a man, a head and shoulders taller than myself.

Devotion of my Assistants My orderlies8 during this little episode showed such incredible devotion that I remember their selfless courage with overwhelming admiration and gratitude. Like on many other occasions, they stayed close to me, determined to protect me from enemy fire. When I got hit in the hand by a spent bullet and turned to see where it came from, I saw one of the Sikhs standing there with his arms outstretched, trying to shield me from the enemy. He could easily do it, as he was a magnificent figure, a head and shoulders taller than me.



MY SIKH ORDERLIES.

MY SIKH ORDERLIES.

From
a water colour sketch by Colonel Woodthorpe, C.B., R. E.

MY SIKH ORDERLIES.

MY SIKH ORDERLIES.

Based on a watercolor sketch by Colonel Woodthorpe, C.B., R. E.



To my great relief, on my return to the edge of the hollow, Adams met me with the good tidings that he had found not only the lost troops, but the Native Infantry of the rear portion of the column, and had ascertained that the elephants with the guns were close at hand.

To my great relief, when I returned to the edge of the hollow, Adams met me with the good news that he had found not only the lost troops but also the Native Infantry from the back of the column, and he had confirmed that the elephants with the guns were nearby.

Their arrival was most opportune, for the enemy had been reinforced, and, having discovered our numerical weakness, were becoming bolder; they charged down the hill, and were now trying to force their way up to our position, but our Mountain guns were quickly brought into action, and under their cover another attempt was made to drive the Afghans from their position. The 23rd Pioneers, under the command of Colonel Currie, the two front companies led by Captain Anderson, moved down the slope, and were soon lost to view in the thick wood at the bottom of the dell; when they reappeared it was, to my great disappointment, on the wrong side of the hollow: they had failed in the attack, and Anderson and some men had been killed. The[Page 362] enemy's position, it was found, could only be reached by a narrow causeway, which was swept by direct and cross fires, and obstructed by trunks of trees and a series of barricades.

Their arrival was very timely because the enemy had gained reinforcements and, realizing our smaller numbers, were becoming more aggressive. They charged down the hill and were now trying to push their way up to our position, but our mountain guns were quickly put into action, and under their cover, another attempt was made to drive the Afghans from their position. The 23rd Pioneers, led by Colonel Currie and with the two front companies commanded by Captain Anderson, moved down the slope and quickly disappeared into the thick woods at the bottom of the valley. When they reemerged, to my great disappointment, it was on the wrong side of the hollow: they had failed in the attack, and Anderson and some men had been killed. The[Page 362] enemy's position turned out to be accessible only by a narrow causeway, which was hit by both direct and crossfire, and blocked by tree trunks and a series of barricades.

It was evident to me that under these circumstances the enemy could not be cleared out of their entrenchment by direct attack without entailing heavy loss, which I could ill afford and was most anxious to avoid. I therefore reconnoitred both flanks to find, if possible, a way round the hill. On our left front was a sheer precipice; on the right, however, I discovered, to my infinite satisfaction, that we could not only avoid the hill which had defeated us, but could get almost in rear of the Peiwar Kotal itself, and threaten the enemy's retreat from that position.

It was clear to me that given the situation, we couldn't drive the enemy out of their fortifications with a direct attack without suffering heavy losses, which I was eager to avoid. So, I checked both flanks to see if we could find a way around the hill. On our left, there was a steep cliff; on the right, however, I found, to my great relief, that we could not only bypass the hill that had thwarted us but could also position ourselves nearly behind the Peiwar Kotal itself, threatening the enemy's retreat from that spot.

At this juncture I was further cheered by the arrival of Lieutenant-Colonel Perkins and Major McQueen, who, with the 5th Punjab Infantry, had worked their way up the steep mountain-side, in the hope of getting near to the Peiwar Kotal and co-operating with me. They were, however, checked by the deep ravine I have before described, and, guided by the sound of firing, pushed higher up the hill. They brought me word that the Artillery left in camp had opened fire on the kotal soon after daybreak, and had succeeded in silencing two of the enemy's guns; that our Infantry had crept up within 1,400 yards of the kotal, but were met by such a destructive fire that they could not advance further; that Brigadier-General Cobbe had been severely wounded, and that Colonel Barry Drew had assumed the command. Perkins also gave me the useful information that he had observed on his way up a spur from which the kotal position could be fired upon at a distance of 1,100 yards. To this spot I ordered Lieutenant Sherries, who had succeeded poor Kelso in command of the Mountain battery, to take his guns, and I asked Perkins to return and tell Drew to press on to the kotal, in the hope that Sherries's fire and the turning movement I was about, to make would cause the enemy to retreat.

At this point, I was further encouraged by the arrival of Lieutenant-Colonel Perkins and Major McQueen, who, along with the 5th Punjab Infantry, had climbed the steep mountain side in hopes of getting closer to the Peiwar Kotal and working with me. However, they were stopped by the deep ravine I described earlier and, following the sound of gunfire, moved higher up the hill. They informed me that the artillery left in camp had started firing on the kotal soon after dawn and had managed to silence two of the enemy's guns; our infantry had moved within 1,400 yards of the kotal but faced such heavy fire that they couldn't move any closer; Brigadier-General Cobbe had been seriously wounded, and Colonel Barry Drew had taken command. Perkins also shared that he had noticed a spur on his way up from which the kotal position could be targeted from 1,100 yards away. I directed Lieutenant Sherries, who had taken over from poor Kelso in command of the mountain battery, to take his guns to that spot, and I asked Perkins to go back and tell Drew to push on to the kotal, hoping that Sherries's fire and the flanking maneuver I was about to execute would force the enemy to pull back.

I sent the 29th Punjab Infantry back to the Spingawi to protect the wounded. I left the 2nd Punjab Infantry in the position we had up till now been occupying, and I took McQueen's regiment with me.

I sent the 29th Punjab Infantry back to Spingawi to guard the wounded. I left the 2nd Punjab Infantry in the position we had been holding until now, and I took McQueen's regiment with me.

A few rounds from the Mountain battery, and the fact that their rear was threatened and their retreat about to be cut off, soon produced signs of wavering amongst the Afghans. Their Artillery fire slackened, their Infantry broke, and about 2 p.m. Drew and Hugh Gough found it possible to make a move towards the Peiwar Kotal. Gough was the first to reach the crest, closely followed by Lieutenant Brabazon, his orderly officer, and a fine plucky Dogra named Birbul. They were soon joined by some hundreds of Turi levies collected by Waterfield and by the 8th Foot. Another body of levies under Major Palmer,9 who had done good service by making a feint on the right of the[Page 363] Afghan position, arrived about the same time. Plunder was of course the sole object of the Turis, but their co-operation at the moment was useful, and helped to swell our small numbers. The enemy having evacuated their stronghold and retreated by the Alikhel road, abandoning in their headlong flight guns, waggons, and baggage, were pursued by Hugh Gough, whose Cavalry had by this time come up.

A few rounds from the Mountain battery, along with the threat to their rear and the imminent cut-off of their retreat, quickly showed signs of hesitation among the Afghans. Their artillery fire weakened, their infantry broke, and around 2 p.m. Drew and Hugh Gough found it possible to advance toward the Peiwar Kotal. Gough was the first to reach the crest, closely followed by Lieutenant Brabazon, his orderly officer, and a brave Dogra named Birbul. They were soon joined by hundreds of Turi levies gathered by Waterfield and by the 8th Foot. Another group of levies under Major Palmer,9 who had done good work by feigning an attack on the right of the[Page 363] Afghan position, arrived around the same time. Plunder was the only goal of the Turis, but their help at that moment was valuable and boosted our small numbers. The enemy had evacuated their stronghold and retreated via the Alikhel road, abandoning guns, wagons, and baggage in their frantic flight, and were pursued by Hugh Gough, whose cavalry had arrived by then.

The Peiwar Kotal was not visible from the route we had taken, but just before daylight had quite gone I could make out with the aid of my telescope a large body of Afghans moving towards the Shutargardan, which made me feel quite satisfied that the enemy's position was in our possession.

The Peiwar Kotal wasn’t visible from the path we took, but just before it got completely dark, I could see with my telescope a large group of Afghans heading toward the Shutargardan, which made me feel pretty sure that we had control of the enemy's position.

Night overtook us before we could reach the kotal, and as everyone was thoroughly tired out, having been hard at work since 10 p.m. the night before, with but little food, I thought it better to bivouac where we were, on the southern slope of the Sika Ram mountain. It was hardly a pleasant experience lying on the ground without even cloaks at an elevation of 9,000 feet, and with the thermometer marking twenty degrees of frost; but spite of cold and hunger, thoroughly content with the day's work, and with my mind at rest, I slept as soundly as I had ever done in the most luxurious quarters, and I think others did the same. At any rate, no one that I could hear of suffered from that night's exposure.

Night fell before we could reach the pass, and since everyone was completely exhausted after working since 10 p.m. the night before with very little food, I decided it was best to camp where we were, on the southern slope of the Sika Ram mountain. It wasn’t exactly comfortable lying on the ground without even blankets at an altitude of 9,000 feet, with the thermometer reading twenty degrees below zero. But despite the cold and hunger, I felt really satisfied with the day’s work and with my mind at ease, I slept as well as I ever had in the most comfortable accommodations, and I think others did too. At least, no one I heard of seemed to be bothered by that night’s exposure.

We continued our march at daybreak, and reached the kotal in an hour.

We continued our march at dawn and reached the pass in an hour.

The Peiwar Kotal The examination of the enemy's position was very interesting. It was of enormous natural strength, the dispositions made for its defence were most complete and judicious, and the impossibility of taking it by other than a turning movement was proved beyond a doubt; it extended from the Spingawi to some commanding heights nearly a mile south of the Peiwar Kotal; thus having a front of about four miles facing due east. From right to left the position ran along a lofty and rugged range of mountains, clothed with dense pine-forests. Towards the eastern side the range was precipitous, but descended on the west by a succession of upland meadows to the valley of the Hariab; it was crossed by only two roads, viz., the Peiwar and Spingawi Kotals; at a few other points there were paths, but too narrow and precipitous for the passage of troops.

The Peiwar Pass Examining the enemy’s position was very interesting. It had immense natural strength, the defenses were complete and well thought out, and it was clear that the only way to take it was through a flanking movement; it stretched from the Spingawi to some high ground nearly a mile south of the Peiwar Kotal, giving it about four miles facing directly east. The position ran from right to left along a tall and rugged mountain range, covered in dense pine forests. On the eastern side, the range was steep, but it sloped down on the west into a series of upland meadows leading to the Hariab valley; it was crossed by only two roads, the Peiwar and Spingawi Kotals; at a few other points, there were paths, but they were too narrow and steep for troop movement.

The Peiwar Kotal is a narrow depression in the ridge, commanded on each side by high pine-clad mountains. The approach to it from the Kuram valley was up a steep, narrow, zigzag path, commanded throughout its entire length from the adjacent heights, and difficult to ascend on account of the extreme roughness of the road, which was covered with large fragments of rocks and boulders. Every point of the ascent was exposed to fire from both guns and rifles, securely placed behind breastworks constructed of pine-logs and stones. At the top of[Page 364] the path was a narrow plateau, which was again commanded from the thickly-wooded heights on each side, rising to an elevation of 500 feet.

The Peiwar Kotal is a narrow dip in the ridge, flanked by tall mountains covered in pine trees on either side. The way to it from the Kuram valley was a steep, narrow, zigzag trail that was overlooked along its entire length by the surrounding heights, making it tough to climb due to the roughness of the path, which was littered with large rocks and boulders. Every part of the climb was vulnerable to fire from both cannons and rifles, which were securely positioned behind barricades made of pine logs and stones. At the top of[Page 364] the path was a narrow plateau, again overlooked by the densely wooded heights on both sides, rising to a height of 500 feet.

The Afghan Commander had been quite confident of success, and was only waiting for reinforcements to attack our camp; but these reinforcements did not arrive until the afternoon of the 1st December, just too late for him to carry out his intention. He had under his command eight Regular regiments of the Afghan army, and eighteen guns; while these numbers were augmented by hordes of neighbouring tribesmen, who were only too glad to respond to the cry of a jahad against the infidel, firmly believing that as true believers their cause would be victorious.

The Afghan Commander was pretty confident he would succeed and was just waiting for reinforcements to attack our camp; however, these reinforcements didn't show up until the afternoon of December 1st, which was unfortunately too late for him to act on his plan. He commanded eight regular regiments of the Afghan army and eighteen artillery pieces, and these numbers were boosted by groups of nearby tribesmen, who were eager to answer the call of a jahad against the infidel, truly believing that as devout followers, their cause would win.

Our loss at the Peiwar was not great—2 officers and 18 men killed, and 3 officers and 75 men wounded. The Afghans suffered much more severely, besides leaving in our possession all their guns, with quantities of ammunition and other warlike stores.

Our loss at the Peiwar wasn’t significant—2 officers and 18 men were killed, and 3 officers and 75 men were wounded. The Afghans faced much heavier losses and left us with all their guns, along with a lot of ammunition and other military supplies.



ONE OF MY PATHAN ORDERLIES.

ONE OF MY PATHAN ORDERLIES.

From
a water colour sketch by Colonel Woodthorpe, C.B., R. E.

ONE OF MY PATHAN ORDERLIES.

ONE OF MY PATHAN ORDERLIES.

From a watercolor sketch by Colonel Woodthorpe, C.B., R. E.








CHAPTER XLVII.

1878

Perceiving that further pursuit of the enemy would be useless, I decided to halt a few days to admit of our overtaxed transport bringing up supplies and tents, and to arrange for the occupation of the Peiwar position during the winter months. But I considered that my work would be incomplete if we stopped short of the Shutargardan Pass. Moreover, it was very desirable that we should investigate this route, and, if possible, get into friendly communication with some of the sections of the Ghilzai tribe. The Jajis, through whose territory the first part of the road ran, now showed themselves to be as well disposed as the Turis; they readily brought in supplies, and volunteered to labour for us, and from the information obtained by the political officers, the inhabitants of the Hariab valley seemed equally anxious to be friendly. The dislodgment of the Afghan army by a much smaller force, from a position they had themselves chosen, had evidently had a salutary effect.

Realizing that chasing after the enemy was pointless, I decided to take a few days to allow our exhausted transport to bring up supplies and tents, and to prepare for occupying the Peiwar position during the winter months. However, I felt my mission would be incomplete if we didn’t reach the Shutargardan Pass. Additionally, it was important for us to explore this route and, if possible, establish friendly communication with some groups from the Ghilzai tribe. The Jajis, through whose territory the initial part of the road passed, now appeared to be as friendly as the Turis; they quickly provided supplies and offered to help us with labor. Based on the information gathered by the political officers, the people in the Hariab valley also seemed eager to be on good terms with us. The removal of the Afghan army by a much smaller force from a position they had chosen themselves clearly had a positive impact.

As soon as I had leisure, I inquired from Colonel Gordon whether he had been able to discover the men who had fired the signal shots on the night of the 2nd, and whether he did not think that the Pathan Native officers ought to be able to point out the offenders. Gordon replied that he suspected the Jemadar of the Pathan company knew who the culprits were, and that one soldier had confessed to firing the second shot; moreover, he told me that eighteen Pathans had left the regiment during the fight. On receiving this unpleasant information, I assembled a Court of Inquiry, with orders to have the proceedings[Page 365] ready for my consideration by the time I returned from the Shutargardan.

As soon as I had some free time, I asked Colonel Gordon if he had figured out who fired the signal shots on the night of the 2nd, and if he thought the Pathan Native officers should be able to identify the wrongdoers. Gordon replied that he suspected the Jemadar of the Pathan company knew who was responsible, and that one soldier had admitted to firing the second shot. Additionally, he mentioned that eighteen Pathans had left the regiment during the fight. After receiving this troubling news, I gathered a Court of Inquiry, instructing them to have the proceedings[Page 365] ready for me to review when I returned from the Shutargardan.

Alikhel Having despatched the sick and wounded to Kuram and made all necessary arrangements, I marched on the 6th December to Alikhel, twelve miles on the road to the Shutargardan. Before starting, I issued an order thanking the troops for the efforts they had made to ensure success, and I had the honour of communicating to them at the same time a congratulatory message from the Queen.1

Alikhel After sending the sick and injured to Kuram and taking care of all the necessary arrangements, I headed out on December 6th to Alikhel, which is twelve miles along the road to Shutargardan. Before setting off, I issued an order thanking the troops for their hard work in achieving success, and I had the honor of relaying a congratulatory message from the Queen. 1

We reached the foot of the Shutargardan on the 8th, and reconnoitred to the top of the pass the next morning. This point was 11,000 feet above the sea, commanded a fine view of the Logar valley, and I discovered from it that there was nothing between us and the immediate vicinity of Kabul to prevent a force moving rapidly on that place.

We got to the base of Shutargardan on the 8th and checked out the top of the pass the next morning. This spot was 11,000 feet above sea level and offered a great view of the Logar valley. From there, I realized that there was nothing in the way between us and the area around Kabul that could stop a force from moving quickly toward the city.

We returned to Alikhel on the 10th, and, as it was important to retain control of this advanced post, I decided to leave Captain Rennick in political charge, a duty for which his nerve and determination of character eminently fitted him. Colonel Waterfield, as a temporary arrangement, remained there also with a battery of Artillery and two regiments of Punjab Infantry, for the purpose of establishing friendly relations with the neighbouring tribesmen.

We returned to Alikhel on the 10th, and since it was crucial to maintain control of this forward post, I chose to leave Captain Rennick in charge of political matters, a role that suited his courage and strong character perfectly. Colonel Waterfield, for the time being, also stayed there with a battery of artillery and two regiments of Punjab infantry to help foster good relations with the nearby tribesmen.

From Alikhel there were said to be two roads leading to Kuram, besides the difficult path over the Peiwar Kotal; and as it was of great importance to gain a knowledge of an alternative line of communication, in view of further trouble, I determined to explore one of them, choosing that which appeared to be the shortest, and which I heard had been used some time before by an Afghan Mountain battery. This route was described as practicable for camels, and ran through lands belonging to tribes whose headmen were with me, a fact which should, I thought, ensure our being free from attack.

From Alikhel, there were said to be two roads leading to Kuram, besides the challenging path over the Peiwar Kotal. Since it was really important to know about an alternative way of getting through in case of future issues, I decided to check one of them out, picking the one that seemed to be the shortest and which I heard had been used by an Afghan Mountain battery not too long ago. This route was said to be passable for camels and went through lands owned by the tribes whose leaders were with me, which I figured would help keep us safe from any attacks.



ONE OF MY PATHAN ORDERLIES.

ONE OF MY PATHAN ORDERLIES.

From
a water colour sketch by Colonel Woodthorpe, C.B., R. E.

ONE OF MY PATHAN ORDERLIES.

ONE OF MY PATHAN ORDERLIES.

From a watercolor sketch by Colonel Woodthorpe, C.B., R.E.



I left Alikhel on the 12th December, taking with me No. 1 Mountain Battery, a wing 72nd Highlanders, the 5th Gurkhas, and the 23rd Pioneers. The route lay for four miles along the banks of the Hariab stream, a tributary of the Kuram river, through a valley which gradually narrowed into a thickly-wooded ravine, three miles long: at the end of this ravine the road, turning sharply to the left, ascended[Page 366] till it reached an open grassy plateau, on which stood the hamlet of Sapari. The inhabitants turned out to welcome us, bringing supplies, and appearing so friendly that I settled to halt there for the night. I had been warned, however, by the maliks of some of the villages we had passed through in the morning, that we should probably be attacked on the march the next day, and that a defile which lay at the other side of a mountain over which we had to cross would be particularly dangerous to us. I determined, therefore, to send on troops that evening to occupy the pass over this mountain, and to start the baggage off long before daybreak, so that it should be out of the way of the main body, which would also have to march at an early hour in order to reach the kotal before the tribesmen had time to collect.

I left Alikhel on December 12th, taking with me No. 1 Mountain Battery, a wing of the 72nd Highlanders, the 5th Gurkhas, and the 23rd Pioneers. The route went for four miles along the banks of the Hariab stream, a tributary of the Kuram river, through a valley that gradually narrowed into a wooded ravine, three miles long. At the end of this ravine, the road turned sharply left and ascended[Page 366] until it reached an open grassy plateau where the hamlet of Sapari was located. The locals came out to welcome us, bringing supplies and seeming so friendly that I decided to stay there for the night. However, I had been warned by the maliks of some villages we passed through in the morning that we might be attacked during the march the next day and that a narrow pass on the other side of the mountain we needed to cross could be particularly dangerous. So, I decided to send troops ahead that evening to secure the pass over the mountain and to send the baggage off long before dawn, ensuring it would be out of the way of the main group, which would also need to march early to reach the kotal before the tribesmen had a chance to gather.

Treachery of the tribesmen This could have been accomplished without difficulty, but for the machinations of our false friends in the village, who directed on to the precipitous path we had to ascend a stream of water which soon turned into a sheet of ice, and when I arrived on the spot I found the road blocked by fallen animals vainly struggling to regain their footing. This caused so much delay that it was nearly noon before the last camel had got over the pass.

Betrayal of the tribe This could have been done easily, if not for the schemes of our fake friends in the village, who led us onto a steep path where a stream of water quickly froze into a solid sheet of ice. When I got to the spot, I found the road blocked by fallen animals desperately trying to get back on their feet. This caused so much delay that it was almost noon by the time the last camel made it over the pass.

The descent on the other side was scarcely less difficult, though free from ice. We dropped 3,000 feet in the first two miles, down a way which can only be described as a ruined staircase, with the steps missing at intervals, ending in the defile against the dangers of which we had been warned. This defile was certainly a nasty place to be caught in, being five miles long, and so narrow that the camels' loads struck against the rocks on either side; and it was impossible to move flanking parties along the cliffs above, as they were intersected by wide chasms running back for long distances.

The descent on the other side was almost as challenging, even though it was free of ice. We dropped 3,000 feet in the first two miles, down a path that could only be described as a broken staircase, with steps missing at intervals, leading into the narrow pass we had been warned about. This pass was definitely a dangerous place to be stuck in, stretching five miles long and so narrow that the camels' loads scraped against the rocks on either side. It was impossible to move flanking teams along the cliffs above, as they were interrupted by wide chasms that extended far back.

It was important to secure the exit from this gorge without delay, and for this purpose I pushed on four companies of the 23rd Pioneers, and in support, when the ravine began to widen out a little, I hurried on the Highlanders and the Mountain battery, leaving the Gurkhas to protect the baggage and bring up the rear.

It was crucial to secure the exit from this gorge quickly, so I sent four companies of the 23rd Pioneers ahead, and as the ravine started to widen a bit, I rushed the Highlanders and the Mountain battery for support, leaving the Gurkhas to guard the baggage and cover the rear.

We only got possession of the exit just in time. The Pioneers, by occupying commanding positions on either side of the opening, effectually checkmated several large bodies of armed men who were approaching from different directions, and whose leaders now declared they had only come to help us! Later on we discovered still more formidable gatherings, which doubtless would have all combined to attack us, had they been in time to catch us in the ravine.

We managed to secure the exit just in time. The Pioneers, by taking strategic positions on either side of the opening, successfully blocked several large armed groups that were approaching from different directions, with their leaders claiming they had come to assist us! Later, we uncovered even larger gatherings that likely would have banded together to attack us if they had arrived in time to catch us in the ravine.

The tail of the column was followed and much harassed by the enemy; but they were kept at bay by the steadiness of the gallant Gurkhas, and so successful were they in safe-guarding the baggage, that, although many of the drivers ran away at the first shot, leaving the soldiers to lead the animals as well as defend them, not a single[Page 367] article fell into the hands of the tribesmen. The regiment lost three men killed, and Captain Powell and eleven men wounded. Captain Goad, of the Transport Department, was also badly hurt.2

The rear of the column was pursued and pressured by the enemy; however, they were held off by the bravery of the Gurkhas. They were so effective at protecting the baggage that, even though many of the drivers fled at the first gunfire, leaving the soldiers to both lead the animals and defend them, not a single[Page 367] item was captured by the tribesmen. The regiment lost three men killed, and Captain Powell along with eleven men were wounded. Captain Goad from the Transport Department was also seriously hurt.2

On Goad being knocked over, Sergeant Greer, of the 72nd Highlanders, assisted by three privates, picked him up, and having placed him under cover of a rock, they turned their attention to the enemy. They were only four against large numbers, but by their cool and steady use of the Martini-Henry rifle, which had shortly before been issued to the British soldiers in India, they were enabled to hold their ground until help arrived, when they succeeded in carrying the wounded officer away.

On Goad getting knocked over, Sergeant Greer of the 72nd Highlanders, along with three privates, lifted him up and got him sheltered behind a rock. They then focused on the enemy. They were just four against a lot of foes, but with their calm and steady use of the Martini-Henry rifle, which had just been given to British soldiers in India, they managed to hold their position until help arrived, allowing them to carry the injured officer away.

Gallantry of Sergeant Greer I had observed in the advance on the Peiwar Kotal the skill and gallantry displayed by Sergeant Greer, and noted him as a man fitted for promotion. His distinguished conduct in rescuing and defending Goad confirmed me in my opinion, and I accordingly recommended him for a commission, which, to my great gratification, Her Majesty was graciously pleased to bestow upon him.

Heroism of Sergeant Greer I had noticed during the advance on the Peiwar Kotal the skill and bravery displayed by Sergeant Greer, and I recognized him as someone deserving of promotion. His remarkable actions in rescuing and defending Goad reinforced my view, so I recommended him for a commission, which, to my great satisfaction, Her Majesty graciously granted him.

That night we halted at the village of Keria; thence the route was easy enough, so, leaving the troops to rest and recover from the last hard march, I rode on to Kuram, where there was much to be done.

That night we stopped at the village of Keria; after that, the path was pretty straightforward, so I left the troops to rest and recover from the last tough march and rode on to Kuram, where there was a lot to take care of.

The ejectment of the Afghan ruler of Khost and the exploration of that valley formed, it will be remembered, part of the programme given to me to carry through, and it was very desirable that this service should be completed before the winter rains set in. Peace and order now reigned in Upper Kuram and in the neighbourhood of the Peiwar; but there was a good deal of excitement in the lower part of the valley and in Khost, our line of communication was constantly harassed by raiders, convoys were continually threatened, outposts fired into, and telegraph-wires cut. The smallness of my force made it difficult for me to deal with these troubles, so I applied to the Commander-in-Chief for the wing of the 72nd Highlanders left at Kohat, and the 5th Punjab Cavalry at Thal to be ordered to join me at Kuram. At the same time I moved up No. 2 Mountain Battery and the 28th Punjab Infantry, sending the 29th Punjab Infantry to take the place of the 28th at Thal.

The removal of the Afghan ruler of Khost and the exploration of that valley were part of the mission I was assigned to complete, and it was important to finish this task before the winter rains started. Peace and order had returned to Upper Kuram and the area around the Peiwar; however, there was still a lot of unrest in the lower part of the valley and in Khost. Our supply route was frequently attacked by raiders, convoys were constantly at risk, outposts were being shot at, and telegraph lines were cut. The small size of my force made it hard to manage these issues, so I requested the Commander-in-Chief to send the remaining wing of the 72nd Highlanders from Kohat and the 5th Punjab Cavalry from Thal to assist me in Kuram. At the same time, I moved the No. 2 Mountain Battery and the 28th Punjab Infantry forward, sending the 29th Punjab Infantry to take over the position of the 28th at Thal.

Transport Difficulties I was greatly hampered by want of transport. Arrangements had to be made for sending the sick and wounded, as well as the captured guns, to Kohat (the sight of the latter, I fancied, would have a good effect on the tribes in our rear); but hard work, scarcity of forage, and absence of supervision, had told, as was to be expected, on animals in bad condition at the outset. Mules and camels died daily, reducing our all too small numbers to such an extent that it was with considerable difficulty the convoy was at last despatched.

Transport Issues I was really held back by a lack of transportation. We needed to arrange for getting the sick and injured, along with the captured guns, to Kohat (I thought seeing the latter would have a positive impact on the tribes behind us); but hard work, a shortage of food for the animals, and a lack of oversight took their toll, as expected, on the animals that were already in poor condition. Mules and camels were dying every day, which reduced our already limited numbers to the point where it took significant effort to finally send off the convoy.

From the first I foresaw that want of transport would be our greatest[Page 368] difficulty, and so it proved; very few supplies could be obtained in the vicinity of Kuram; the troops at Kohat had been drawing on the adjacent districts ever since October, so that the purchasing agents had every day to go further away to procure necessaries, and consequently an increased number of animals were required for their conveyance. My Commissary-General reported to me that only a few days' provisions for the troops remained in hand, and that it was impossible to lay in any reserve unless more transport could be provided. About this reserve I was very anxious, for the roads might soon become temporarily impassable from the rising of the rivers after the heavy rain to be expected about Christmas. Contractors were despatched to all parts of the country to procure camels, and I suggested to Government that pack-bullocks should be bought at Mirzapur, and railed up country, which suggestion being acted upon, the danger of the troops having to go hungry was warded off.

From the start, I knew that our biggest challenge would be a lack of transportation, and that turned out to be true. Very few supplies could be found near Kuram; the troops in Kohat had been relying on nearby areas since October, so the purchasing agents had to travel farther each day to get essentials, which meant we needed more animals to carry them. My Commissary-General told me that we only had a few days' worth of provisions left for the troops and that we couldn't stock up on any reserves unless we could get more transport. I was really concerned about this reserve, as the roads could quickly become impassable due to rising rivers after the heavy rain expected around Christmas. We sent contractors to various parts of the country to find camels, and I suggested to the Government that we should buy pack-bullocks in Mirzapur and send them up by train. This suggestion was put into action, which helped us avoid the risk of the troops going hungry.

The treacherous soldiers of the 29th Punjab Infantry had now to be dealt with—a necessary, but most unpleasant, duty. A perusal of the proceedings of the Court of Inquiry satisfied me that the two men who discharged their rifles during the night-march, the Jemadar of their company who failed to report their criminal action, and the eighteen who deserted their colours during the engagement, should all be tried by Court-Martial.

The deceitful soldiers of the 29th Punjab Infantry now had to be dealt with—a necessary but very unpleasant task. After reviewing the findings of the Court of Inquiry, I was convinced that the two men who fired their rifles during the night march, the Jemadar of their company who didn’t report their wrongdoing, and the eighteen who deserted their unit during the fight should all face a Court-Martial.

The prisoners were found guilty. The sepoy who fired the first shot was sentenced to death, and the one who discharged the second to two years' imprisonment with hard labour; the court, recognizing a possibility that the latter, being a young soldier, might have loaded and fired without intending treachery, gave him the benefit of the doubt. The Jemadar was awarded seven years' transportation, and the eighteen deserters terms varying from ten years to one year.

The prisoners were found guilty. The soldier who fired the first shot was sentenced to death, and the one who fired the second shot received two years in prison with hard labor; the court considered that the latter, being a young soldier, might have loaded and fired without intending any betrayal, so they decided to give him the benefit of the doubt. The supervisor was given seven years of transportation, and the eighteen deserters received sentences ranging from ten years to one year.

It was with deep regret that I confirmed these several sentences, but it was necessary that a deterrent example should be made. Treachery was altogether too grave a crime to be lightly dealt with, and desertions amongst the Pathans were becoming of much too frequent occurrence, particularly as the deserters invariably carried away with them their rifles and ammunition.

It was with great regret that I confirmed these sentences, but it was necessary to set a strong example. Treachery was a serious crime that couldn't be taken lightly, and desertions among the Pathans were happening far too often, especially since the deserters always took their rifles and ammunition with them.

The effect of these sentences was most salutary; there was not a single desertion subsequent to the Court-Martial for more than a year, although during that time the Mahomedan portion of my force were severely tried by appeals from their co-religionists.

The impact of these sentences was very positive; there wasn't a single desertion after the Court-Martial for over a year, even though during that time the Muslim part of my force faced heavy pressure from their fellow believers.

On Christmas Eve authentic intelligence was brought to me that, on hearing of the defeat of the Afghan army, Sher Ali, with the members of the Russian Mission then at Kabul, had fled to Turkestan, and that his son, Yakub Khan, had been released from prison, and had assumed the reins of Government.

On Christmas Eve, I received genuine information that, upon hearing about the defeat of the Afghan army, Sher Ali, along with the members of the Russian Mission who were in Kabul at the time, had escaped to Turkestan. Meanwhile, his son, Yakub Khan, had been freed from prison and taken over the government.

Sher Ali Looks to Russia for Aid About this time, also, Sir Samuel Browne, who was at Jalalabad,[Page 369] received a letter3 from the Amir, in which he announced his intention of proceeding to St. Petersburg to lay his case before the Czar and obtain the aid of Russia.

Sher Ali Seeks Assistance from Russia Around this time, Sir Samuel Browne, who was in Jalalabad,[Page 369] received a letter3 from the Amir, in which he stated his plan to go to St. Petersburg to present his situation to the Czar and seek assistance from Russia.

Sher Ali's disappearance and Yakub Khan's assumption of authority suggested new possibilities to the Viceroy, who at once instructed Major Cavagnari, the political officer with the Khyber column, to communicate, if possible, with Yakub Khan, and explain to him that our quarrel was with Sher Ali alone, that he might rest assured of the friendly disposition of the British Government towards him personally, and that, unless he took the initiative, hostilities would not be resumed.

Sher Ali's disappearance and Yakub Khan taking over suggested new possibilities to the Viceroy, who immediately instructed Major Cavagnari, the political officer with the Khyber column, to reach out to Yakub Khan if possible. He was to explain that our conflict was with Sher Ali alone, reassure him of the British Government's friendly stance towards him personally, and make it clear that unless he acted first, hostilities would not begin again.

Before proceeding to Kuram, I invited all the Turis and Jajis who had afforded us assistance to meet me in durbar that they might be suitably rewarded. A goodly number responded to the invitation, and were told, in accordance with the instructions I had received from the Government of India, that they would henceforth be under British protection; that no Amir of Afghanistan should ever again be permitted to tyrannize over them; that while they would be expected to live peaceably, neither their religion nor their customs would be interfered with; that roads would be made and markets established, and that whatever supplies they could provide for the use of the troops would be liberally paid for.

Before heading to Kuram, I invited all the Turis and Jajis who had helped us to meet with me in a public gathering so that they could be properly rewarded. A good number accepted the invitation and were informed, following the instructions I received from the Government of India, that they would now be under British protection; that no Amir of Afghanistan would ever be allowed to oppress them again; that while they were expected to live peacefully, neither their religion nor their customs would be interfered with; that roads would be constructed and markets set up, and that any supplies they could provide for the troops would be generously compensated.

1879
Khost
After this I started for Khost, accompanied by Colonel Waterfield,[Page 370] the political officer.

1879
Khost
After this, I headed to Khost, joined by Colonel Waterfield,[Page 370] the political officer.

The column I took with me consisted of the squadron of the 10th Hussars, 200 of the 72nd Highlanders, a wing of the 5th Punjab Cavalry, the 21st and 28th Punjab Infantry, and Nos. 1 and 2 Mountain Batteries. The corps were so weak that their total strength only amounted to 2,000 men.

The column I took with me included the squadron of the 10th Hussars, 200 members of the 72nd Highlanders, a wing of the 5th Punjab Cavalry, the 21st and 28th Punjab Infantry, and Nos. 1 and 2 Mountain Batteries. The corps were so small that their total strength was only about 2,000 men.

We reached Matun, the name given to some three villages grouped round a small fort in the centre of the valley, on the 6th January, 1879. The Afghan Governor, with whom I had been in communication, met me and arranged to surrender the fort, on condition that his personal safety should be guaranteed, and that he should be allowed to go either to Kabul or India, as he might desire.

We arrived at Matun, the name for three villages clustered around a small fort in the middle of the valley, on January 6, 1879. The Afghan Governor, who I had been in touch with, met me and agreed to hand over the fort, on the condition that his personal safety would be assured, and that he would be permitted to go to either Kabul or India, depending on his preference.

About half a mile from the fort I halted the column, and taking a small escort of the 10th Hussars, I rode on with the Governor, who invited me with my staff into his house. While tea was being handed round, the Governor (Akram Khan by name) warned me that we should be attacked, and that he could do nothing to prevent it, having only some 200 local militia and no regular troops. He further said that the inhabitants of the valley were not directly opposed to the British Government, and, if left to themselves, would give no trouble; but he doubted their being able to resist the pressure put upon them by a large number of tribesmen who had collected from the adjacent districts, attracted by the smallness of the force, which they believed 'had been delivered into their hands.'

About half a mile from the fort, I stopped the column and, with a small escort from the 10th Hussars, rode on with the Governor, who invited me and my staff into his house. While we were having tea, the Governor (whose name was Akram Khan) warned me that we would likely be attacked and that he couldn't do anything to stop it, as he only had about 200 local militia and no regular troops. He also mentioned that the people in the valley weren't directly against the British Government and, if left alone, would not cause any trouble; however, he doubted their ability to resist the pressure from a large group of tribesmen who had gathered from neighboring areas, drawn in by the small size of the force, which they believed "had been delivered into their hands."

This intelligence showed me I must be prepared for a scrimmage, so I ordered the camp to be pitched in the form of a square as compactly as possible, with the transport animals and impedimenta in the centre, and strong piquets at the four angles. Cavalry patrols were sent out as far as the broken and hilly nature of the ground would permit, and every endeavour was made to ascertain the strength and whereabouts of the enemy, but to no purpose: the enemy were invisible, and the patrols reported that they had come across numbers of peaceable-looking husbandmen, but no one else.

This information made it clear that I needed to get ready for a fight, so I had the camp set up in a compact square shape, placing the transport animals and equipment in the center, with strong guards at each of the four corners. Cavalry patrols were dispatched as far as the rough and hilly terrain allowed, and we did everything we could to find out the enemy's strength and location, but it was all in vain: the enemy was nowhere to be seen, and the patrols reported encountering a lot of peaceful-looking farmers, but no one else.

The night passed off quietly, but when advancing day made them visible, multitudes of tribesmen were descried collecting on the slopes of the neighbouring hills. Some friendly Natives were sent to ascertain their intentions, followed by a Cavalry reconnoitring party, when suddenly a number of camel-drivers and mule-men, who had gone to the nearest village to procure fodder for their animals, came rushing back to camp in the wildest terror and excitement, declaring that the enemy seemed to rise as if by magic out of the ground, and that several thousands were already in the village. No doubt some of these were 'the peaceable-looking husbandmen' the patrols had encountered the previous day. I now became somewhat anxious, not only for the safety of the reconnoitring party, which appeared to be in danger of[Page 371] being cut off, but for that of the whole force; such a mere handful as we were compared to the numbers arrayed against us.

The night passed quietly, but as day broke and things became visible, we spotted a large number of tribesmen gathering on the nearby hillsides. Some friendly locals were sent to find out their intentions, followed by a Cavalry scouting party. Suddenly, a group of camel-drivers and mule-men, who had gone to the nearest village to get food for their animals, raced back to camp in a panic, saying that the enemy seemed to appear out of nowhere and that several thousand were already in the village. No doubt some of these were the "peaceful-looking farmers" the patrols had seen the day before. I started to feel a bit anxious, not only for the safety of the scouting party, which seemed at risk of being cut off, but also for the entire force; we were such a small group compared to the numbers lined up against us.

Vigorous action was evidently necessary. Accordingly, I ordered all the available Cavalry (only 70 men of the 10th Hussars, and 155 of the 5th Punjab Cavalry), under Colonel Hugh Gough, to follow the reconnoitring party in case of their being so hard pressed as to have to retire, and Captain Swinley's Mountain battery, with six companies of the 28th Punjab Infantry, under Colonel Hudson,4 to move out in support. Colonel Drew I left in charge of the camp, with 200 Highlanders, the 21st Punjab Infantry, and a Mountain battery. I myself joined Gough, who, by dismounted fire and several bold charges, notwithstanding the difficult nature of the ground, succeeded in driving the enemy to the highest ridges, over which Swinley's well-directed fire eventually forced them to retreat.

Vigorous action was clearly needed. So, I ordered all the available Cavalry (only 70 men from the 10th Hussars and 155 from the 5th Punjab Cavalry), led by Colonel Hugh Gough, to follow the reconnoitering team in case they were pressured enough to retreat. Captain Swinley's Mountain battery, along with six companies of the 28th Punjab Infantry, under Colonel Hudson,4 was instructed to move out in support. I left Colonel Drew in charge of the camp with 200 Highlanders, the 21st Punjab Infantry, and a Mountain battery. I joined Gough, who, through dismounted fire and several bold charges, managed to push the enemy back to the highest ridges, which Swinley's well-aimed fire eventually forced them to retreat from.

An Attack on our Camp Heavy firing was now heard in the direction of our camp, and I hurried back, taking with me a troop of the 5th Punjab Cavalry. I found that during my absence Drew had been attacked on two sides; he had been able to prevent the enemy from coming to close quarters, but they were still hovering about at no great distance, and I thought it advisable to clear them away by moving out against them with all the troops at my disposal. As we approached, they disappeared with their usual rapidity; the 5th Punjab Cavalry, however, got in amongst some of them, and we returned to camp with 100 prisoners, 500 head of cattle, some sheep, and a large quantity of grain.

An Attack on Our Camp We could hear heavy gunfire coming from the direction of our camp, so I rushed back with a group from the 5th Punjab Cavalry. When I got there, I found that Drew had been attacked on two fronts; he had managed to keep the enemy from getting too close, but they were still lingering nearby. I decided it would be best to push them back by sending all the troops I had against them. As we got closer, they vanished as usual, but the 5th Punjab Cavalry managed to catch some of them. We returned to camp with 100 prisoners, 500 head of cattle, some sheep, and a large amount of grain.

The tribesmen, however, had not been sufficiently punished to prevent a repetition of the attack, probably with largely increased numbers; so I ordered the destruction of the hamlets nearest us, in which they had been sheltered and some of our camp followers had been murdered.

The tribesmen, however, hadn't been punished enough to stop them from attacking again, likely with even more people; so I ordered the destruction of the nearby hamlets where they had taken refuge and where some of our camp followers had been killed.

The next night a most unfortunate occurrence took place, resulting in the death of six of our prisoners; but it was just one of those things which could hardly have been foreseen or guarded against, and for which, however lamentable, no one was to blame. The headmen of the particular Waziri tribe to which the captives belonged had been summoned during the day, and told that the men would be released on payment of a sum of fifty rupees each. The money was paid down at once for a certain number, who were immediately set free; but there was not quite enough for all, and the headmen went off to procure what was required for the ransom of the remainder. Soon after dark, however, some of the enemy5 were discovered creeping up the banks of a nulla at the back of the camp, where the unransomed men were detained under a guard; the nearest sentry instantly fired,[Page 372] and the piquets all round took up the firing, thinking that another attack on the camp had commenced. At the sound of the first shot the prisoners all jumped to their feet, and calling to each other to escape, attempted to seize the rifles belonging to the guard, upon which the Native officer in command (a Pathan like themselves) told them that if they persisted in trying to escape, they would be shot. His words had no effect, and to prevent his men being overpowered, he gave the order to fire. Six of the prisoners were killed and thirteen wounded. It was a most regrettable affair, but a Court of Inquiry decided that the Native officer had no option, and completely exonerated the guard from acting with undue severity. The wounded were, of course, taken to our hospital, and well cared for by our Doctors.6

The next night, an unfortunate incident occurred that resulted in the deaths of six of our prisoners. It was one of those things that could hardly have been predicted or prevented, and, though it's tragic, no one was to blame. The leaders of the Waziri tribe to which the captives belonged had been called during the day and informed that the men would be released after a payment of fifty rupees each. The money was immediately provided for a certain number of men, who were then set free; however, there wasn't quite enough for all of them, so the leaders went off to gather the remaining amount for the ransom. Soon after dark, some of the enemy5 were found sneaking up the banks of a stream behind the camp, where the remaining prisoners were being held under guard. The nearest sentry fired immediately, and the guards around the camp began firing as well, thinking there was another attack. At the sound of the first shot, all the prisoners jumped up and yelled to each other to escape, trying to grab the rifles from the guards. The Native officer in charge (a Pathan like them) warned them that if they kept trying to escape, they would be shot. His warning had no effect, and to stop his men from being overpowered, he ordered them to fire. Six prisoners were killed, and thirteen were injured. It was a regrettable situation, but a Court of Inquiry concluded that the Native officer had no choice and fully cleared the guard of any excessive force. The injured were taken to our hospital and received good care from our Doctors.6

The remainder of our sojourn in Khost was not marked by any incident of particular interest. We marched to the end of the valley, and made a careful survey of it and of the surrounding hills.

The rest of our time in Khost was pretty uneventful. We walked to the end of the valley and carefully examined it and the nearby hills.

An Unsuccessful Experiment The instructions I received with regard to Khost were, to occupy the valley and dislodge the Afghan administration therefrom. To my great chagrin, the smallness of my force made it impossible for me to give effect to these instructions as I could have wished. To have remained in Khost under the circumstances would have been to court disaster; the numbers of the enemy were daily increasing, and it would have been impossible to hold our own. It was, however, of great importance, if practicable, to retain some control over the valley, a peculiarly productive district, which, if left alone by us, I feared would become a centre of dangerous intrigue against any settled government in Kuram. Accordingly I determined to try how placing Khost in charge of one of our own Native officials would answer, and I selected for the position Shahzada Sultan Jan, a Saddozai gentleman of good birth, and a Sunni Mahomedan in religion, who, I thought, would be a persona grata to the Khostwals, and, if supported by some Native levies, and associated in his administrative duties with the chief maliks of Khost, would be more likely to hold his own than anyone else I could place there. This was, however, a mere experiment, and I did not disguise from myself that its success was very doubtful; but it was the only way in which I could attempt to carry out the orders of Government, my hands being so completely tied by paucity of troops. I had no fear for the Shahzada's personal safety,[Page 373] and I felt that, if in the end I should be obliged to abandon Khost altogether for the present, it could later, if necessary, be easily re-occupied with a somewhat larger force.

A Failed Experiment The orders I received about Khost were to take control of the valley and remove the Afghan administration from there. Unfortunately, the small size of my force made it impossible to carry out these orders as I had hoped. Staying in Khost under these conditions would have invited disaster; the enemy's numbers were increasing daily, and we would have been unable to defend ourselves. However, it was crucial, if possible, to maintain some control over the valley, which was a particularly productive area. I feared that if we abandoned it, it would become a hotspot for dangerous scheming against any stable government in Kuram. Therefore, I decided to see if putting one of our own local officials in charge of Khost would work, and I chose Shahzada Sultan Jan, a Saddozai gentleman from a respectable background and a Sunni Muslim. I believed he would be liked by the Khostwals and, if supported by some local troops and working alongside the main leaders of Khost, would be better positioned to manage the situation than anyone else I could assign there. This was just an experiment, and I fully recognized that its success was quite uncertain; however, it was the only way I could attempt to follow the government’s orders, given my severe troop shortages. I wasn’t worried about Shahzada's personal safety,[Page 373] and I felt that if I eventually had to give up Khost entirely for now, it could be easily recaptured later with a larger force if necessary.

Having decided on the course to be adopted, I held a durbar, which was numerously attended, and addressed the people of Khost in much the same way I had spoken to the Turis in Kuram, expressing a hope that they would support the Shahzada's authority until a more permanent form of government could be established.

Having decided on the approach to take, I held a gathering, which was well-attended, and spoke to the people of Khost in a similar manner as I had addressed the Turis in Kuram, expressing hope that they would back the Shahzada's authority until a more permanent form of government could be set up.

On the 27th January we left Khost and made one march; the next day I halted, so as to be near the Shahzada in case of need. The intelligence brought to me that evening satisfied me that my experiment would not answer, and that without troops (which I could not spare) to support the newly-established authority at first starting off, we could not hope to maintain any hold over the country; for though the Khostwals themselves were perfectly content with the arrangements I had made, they could not resist the tribesmen, who directly our backs were turned began to show their teeth. Accordingly, I decided to bring the Shahzada away while I could do so without trouble. I marched back to Matun the next morning with 1,000 men (Cavalry and Infantry) and four Mountain guns. We found Sultan Jan in anything but a happy frame of mind, and quite ready to come away. So having formally made the place over to the maliks, we started on our return journey. As we departed, a collection of our tribal enemies (about 3,000) who had been watching the proceedings took the opportunity to attack us; but two weak squadrons of Cavalry, skilfully handled by Hugh Gough, kept them in check, and we reached camp without further molestation.

On January 27th, we left Khost and made one march; the next day I stopped to be close to the Shahzada if needed. The information I received that evening convinced me that my plan wouldn’t work, and that without troops (which I couldn’t spare) to support the newly-established authority right at the beginning, we couldn’t expect to maintain any control over the country. Although the Khostwals were completely satisfied with the arrangements I’d made, they couldn’t stand up to the tribesmen, who began to show their aggression as soon as we turned our backs. So, I decided to take the Shahzada away while it was still easy. The next morning, I marched back to Matun with 1,000 men (Cavalry and Infantry) and four Mountain guns. We found Sultan Jan in a bad mood and ready to leave. After officially handing over the place to the maliks, we started our return journey. As we left, a group of our tribal enemies (about 3,000) who had been observing the situation took the chance to attack us; however, two small groups of Cavalry, skillfully led by Hugh Gough, held them off, and we reached camp without any further issues.

The next day, the last of January, we returned to Hazir Pir in Kuram. There I received a visit from Sirdar Wali Mahomed Khan, brother of Sher Ali, who was accompanied by several leading men of the Logar valley, some of whom were of great assistance to me a few months later. Wali Mahomed was a man of about fifty years of age; he had a pleasing countenance, of the same Jewish type as the majority of the Afghan nation, but he had a weak face and was evidently wanting in character. He told me that he had fled from Kabul to escape the vengeance of his nephew, Yakub Khan, who attributed his long imprisonment by his father to the Sirdar's influence. Sir Samuel Browne and Major Cavagnari, on the Khyber line, were conducting all political negotiations with the Afghans, so I passed Wali Mahomed Khan on to them.

The next day, at the end of January, we went back to Hazir Pir in Kuram. There, I was visited by Sirdar Wali Mahomed Khan, the brother of Sher Ali, who was with several influential people from the Logar valley, some of whom would be very helpful to me a few months later. Wali Mahomed was around fifty years old; he had a pleasant face, reflecting the common Jewish features found among many in the Afghan nation, but he had a weak expression and clearly lacked strong character. He told me he had fled from Kabul to escape the wrath of his nephew, Yakub Khan, who blamed him for his long imprisonment caused by his father. Sir Samuel Browne and Major Cavagnari were managing all political discussions with the Afghans on the Khyber line, so I passed Wali Mahomed Khan on to them.

An Unpleasant incident During the month of February my time was chiefly employed in inspecting the roads and the defensive posts which my talented and indefatigable Chief Engineer was constructing, examining the arrangements for housing the troops, and looking after the transport animals and Commissariat depots. No more military demonstrations were[Page 374] necessary, for the people were quietly settling down under British rule. Convoys were no longer molested nor telegraph wires cut; but I had one rather unpleasant incident with regard to a war Correspondent, which, until the true facts of the case were understood, brought me into disrepute with one of the leading London newspapers, the representative of which I felt myself compelled to dismiss from the Kuram Field Force.

A bad incident During February, I mostly spent my time checking the roads and the defensive positions that my skilled and tireless Chief Engineer was building, reviewing the arrangements for housing the troops, and overseeing the transport animals and supply depots. No further military displays were needed; the people were settling down comfortably under British rule. Convoys were no longer disturbed, and telegraph wires weren't cut. However, I did have one rather unpleasant situation involving a war correspondent, which, until the actual facts were understood, damaged my reputation with one of the major London newspapers. This led me to feel I needed to dismiss their representative from the Kuram Field Force.

Judging from his telegrams, which he brought to me to sign, the nerves of the Correspondent in question must have been somewhat shaken by the few and very distant shots fired at us on the 28th November. These telegrams being in many instances absolutely incorrect and of the most alarming nature, were of course not allowed to be despatched until they had been revised in accordance with truth; but one, evidently altered and added to after I had countersigned it, was brought to me by the telegraph master. I sent for the Correspondent, who confessed to having made the alterations, not apparently realizing that he had done anything at all reprehensible, but he promised that he would never do such a thing again. This promise was not kept; telegrams appeared in his paper which I had not seen before despatch, and which were most misleading to the British public. Moreover, his letters, over which I could have no control, and which I heard of for the first time when the copies of his paper arrived in Kuram, were most subversive of the truth. It was on the receipt of these letters that I felt it to be my duty to send the too imaginative author to the rear.

Based on his telegrams, which he brought to me for approval, the nerves of the Correspondent must have been a bit rattled by the few distant shots fired at us on November 28th. Many of these telegrams were completely inaccurate and alarmingly exaggerated, so they couldn't be sent out until they were corrected to reflect the truth. However, one telegram, clearly modified and added to after I had signed it, was brought to me by the telegraph master. I called in the Correspondent, who admitted to making the changes, seemingly unaware that he had done anything wrong, but he promised he wouldn’t do it again. That promise was broken; misleading telegrams appeared in his paper that I hadn’t seen before they were sent out, which confused the British public. Additionally, his letters, over which I had no control and which I learned about for the first time when the copies of his paper arrived in Kuram, were incredibly misleading. It was upon receiving those letters that I felt it was my duty to send the overly imaginative writer to the rear.

No one could be more anxious than I was to have all details of the campaign made public. I considered it due to the people of Great Britain that the press Correspondents should have every opportunity for giving the fullest and most faithful accounts of what might happen while the army was in the field, and I took special pains from the first to treat the Correspondents with confidence, and give them such information as it was in my power to afford. All I required from them in return was that the operations should be truthfully reported, and that any Correspondent who did not confine himself to the recording of facts, and felt himself competent to criticize the conduct of the campaign, should be careful to acquaint himself with the many and varied reasons which a Commander must always have to consider before deciding on any line of action.

No one was more eager than I was to get all the details of the campaign out to the public. I believed it was my duty to the people of Great Britain to ensure that the press correspondents had every chance to provide the fullest and most accurate accounts of what might happen while the army was in the field. From the very beginning, I made it a point to treat the correspondents with trust and share as much information as I could. All I asked in return was that they report the operations truthfully, and if any correspondent felt able to critique the campaign's conduct instead of just reporting the facts, they should make sure to understand the various reasons a Commander must consider before deciding on any course of action.

What to my mind was so reprehensible in this Correspondent's conduct was the publication, in time of war, and consequent excitement and anxiety at home, of incorrect and sensational statements, founded on information derived from irresponsible and uninformed sources, and the alteration of telegrams after they had been countersigned by the recognized authority, the result of which could only be to keep the public in a state of apprehension regarding the force in the field, and, what is even more to be deprecated, to weaken the confidence of the[Page 375] troops in their Commander. It was satisfactory to me that my action in the matter met with the fullest approval of the Viceroy.

What I found so unacceptable about this Correspondent's behavior was the publication, during wartime, of false and sensational claims, based on information from unreliable and uninformed sources, and the alteration of telegrams after they had been validated by the proper authority. This could only serve to keep the public worried about the forces in the field and, even worse, undermine the troops' trust in their Commander. I was pleased that my actions in this matter received the complete approval of the Viceroy.

Punjab Chiefs' Contingent About this time my column was strengthened by the arrival of the Contingent provided by the Punjab Chiefs, under the command of Brigadier General John Watson, my comrade of the Mutiny days. The Contingent consisted of 868 Cavalry, and 2,685 Infantry with 13 guns, which were placed in position along the line of communication, and proved of great use in relieving the Regular army of escort duty. The senior Native officer with the Punjabis was Bakshi Ganda Sing, Commander-in-Chief of the Patiala army, a particularly handsome, gentlemanly Sikh, with whom I have ever since been on terms of friendly intercourse.

Punjab Chiefs' Team Around this time, my column got a boost with the arrival of the Contingent provided by the Punjab Chiefs, led by Brigadier General John Watson, my colleague from the Mutiny days. The Contingent included 868 cavalry and 2,685 infantry, along with 13 guns, which were strategically positioned along the line of communication. They were incredibly helpful in freeing up the Regular army from escort duties. The senior Native officer with the Punjabis was Bakshi Ganda Sing, Commander-in-Chief of the Patiala army, a particularly handsome and gentlemanly Sikh. I've been on friendly terms with him ever since.

Towards the end of February I paid a visit to Kohat, where my wife met me; we spent a week together, and I had the pleasure of welcoming to the frontier that grand regiment, the 92nd Highlanders, which had been sent up to be in readiness to join my column in the event of an advance on Kabul becoming necessary.

Towards the end of February, I visited Kohat, where my wife met me. We spent a week together, and I had the pleasure of welcoming to the frontier that great regiment, the 92nd Highlanders, which had been sent up to be ready to join my unit if we needed to advance on Kabul.






CHAPTER XLVIII.

1879

I was informed by the Viceroy's Private Secretary in the beginning of March that, unless satisfactory arrangements could soon be come to with Yakub Khan, an onward move would have to be made. Accordingly I now set about preparing for such a contingency.

I was told by the Viceroy's Private Secretary at the beginning of March that, unless we could quickly come to satisfactory arrangements with Yakub Khan, we would have to make a move forward. So, I started to prepare for that possibility.

Sher Ali had died in Afghan Turkestan on the 21st February, and, in communicating the event to the Viceroy, Yakub Khan wrote that he was anxious matters might be so arranged that 'the friendship of this God-granted State with the illustrious British Government may remain constant and firm.'

Sher Ali died in Afghan Turkestan on February 21st, and in informing the Viceroy about it, Yakub Khan expressed his concern that arrangements be made so that 'the friendship of this God-granted State with the esteemed British Government may stay strong and steady.'

The new Amir was told in reply that Lord Lytton was prepared to enter into negotiations for the conclusion of peace, and for the restoration of a friendly alliance between the two Governments, provided that His Highness renounced all claim to authority over the Khyber and Michni Passes, and the independent tribes inhabiting the territory directly connected with the main routes leading to India; that the district of Kuram from Thal to the crest of the Shutargardan Pass, and the districts of Pishin and Sibi, should remain under the control of the British Government; that the foreign relations of Afghanistan should be conducted in accordance with the advice and wishes of the British Government; and that British officers should be accredited to the Kabul Government, and permitted to reside at such places as might hereafter be decided upon.

The new Amir was informed that Lord Lytton was ready to negotiate for peace and to restore a friendly alliance between the two governments, as long as His Highness gave up any claims to authority over the Khyber and Michni Passes, as well as the independent tribes in the area directly connected to the main routes leading to India. Additionally, the district of Kuram from Thal to the top of the Shutargardan Pass, along with the districts of Pishin and Sibi, would remain under British control. Afghanistan's foreign relations would need to align with the advice and wishes of the British Government, and British officers would be accredited to the Kabul Government and allowed to stay at locations to be decided later.

Yakub Khan's reply was not altogether satisfactory. He agreed to[Page 376] British officers being deputed to Afghanistan on the understanding that they should reside in Kabul, and abstain from interference in State affairs; but he declined to renounce his authority over the Khyber and Michni Passes and the tribes in their vicinity, and refused to consent to Kuram, Pishin, and Sibi being placed under British protection.

Yakub Khan's response was not entirely satisfactory. He agreed to[Page 376] British officers being sent to Afghanistan on the condition that they would live in Kabul and not interfere in State matters; however, he refused to give up his control over the Khyber and Michni Passes and the tribes around them, and he also would not agree to place Kuram, Pishin, and Sibi under British protection.

The Viceroy now determined to try what a personal conference between the Amir and Cavagnari could effect towards a settlement of these vexed questions, so in answering the Amir Cavagnari was directed to convey a hint that an invitation to him to visit Kabul might be productive of good results, and to point out that the places we desired to occupy were looked upon as essential to the permanent security of the Indian frontier. The Amir replied, expressing his readiness to receive Cavagnari in his capital, and laying stress on his determination to regulate his future conduct in strict conformity with his professions of loyalty, but begged that he might not be called upon to cede any portion of his territory.

The Viceroy decided to see if a personal meeting between the Amir and Cavagnari could help settle these ongoing issues. So, when replying to the Amir, Cavagnari was instructed to suggest that an invitation for him to visit Kabul could lead to positive outcomes, and to emphasize that the areas we wanted to occupy were viewed as crucial for the long-term security of the Indian frontier. The Amir responded, stating he was ready to welcome Cavagnari in his capital and emphasized his commitment to act in line with his promises of loyalty, but he requested not to be asked to give up any part of his territory.

Hardly had this letter, dated the 29th March, been received, than a proclamation addressed by Yakub to the Khagianis, a tribe which had been giving much trouble, was intercepted and brought to Cavagnari; in it the Amir praised and complimented the Khagianis for their religious zeal and fidelity to himself. He exhorted them to have no fear of the infidels, against whom he was about to launch an irresistible force of troops and Ghazis, and wound up as follows: 'By the favour of God, and in accordance with the verse "Verily God has destroyed the powerful ones," the whole of them will go to the fire of hell for evermore. Therefore kill them to the extent of your ability.' A curious commentary this on the Amir's protestation of loyalty.

Hardly had this letter, dated March 29th, been received when a proclamation from Yakub to the Khagianis, a tribe that had been causing a lot of trouble, was intercepted and brought to Cavagnari. In it, the Amir praised and complimented the Khagianis for their religious zeal and loyalty to him. He encouraged them not to be afraid of the infidels, against whom he was about to unleash a powerful force of troops and Ghazis, and concluded with the following: 'By God’s grace, and in line with the verse "Truly God has destroyed the mighty," they will all be cast into hell forever. So, kill them as much as you can.' A strange commentary on the Amir's claims of loyalty.

Notwithstanding this piece of treachery, it was decided not to break off negotiations, and Yakub Khan was informed by Cavagnari that a Mission would proceed to Kabul so soon as the necessary arrangements could be made for its reception. At the same time Lord Lytton himself wrote to the Amir, telling him that, as he was willing to receive an Envoy, Cavagnari would be deputed to visit Kabul, and communicate unreservedly with him upon the questions at issue between the two States.

Despite this act of betrayal, it was decided not to halt negotiations, and Yakub Khan was informed by Cavagnari that a mission would go to Kabul as soon as the necessary arrangements could be made for its reception. At the same time, Lord Lytton himself wrote to the Amir, telling him that since he was willing to receive an Envoy, Cavagnari would be sent to visit Kabul and discuss openly the issues between the two states.

I, personally, was not at all satisfied that the time had come for negotiation, for I felt that the Afghans had not had the sense of defeat sufficiently driven into them to convince them of our strength and ability to punish breach of treaty, and, therefore, that a peace made now, before they had been thoroughly beaten, would not be a lasting one, and would only end in worse trouble in the near future. The Afghans are an essentially arrogant and conceited people; they had not forgotten our disastrous retreat from Kabul, nor the annihilation of our array in the Khurd Kabul and Jagdalak Passes in 1842, and[Page 377] believed themselves to be quite capable of resisting our advance on Kabul. No great battle had as yet been fought; though Ali Masjid and the Peiwar Kotal had been taken, a small force of the enemy had been beaten by Charles Gough's brigade, near Jalalabad, and a successful Cavalry skirmish had occurred near Kandahar, the Afghans had nowhere suffered serious loss, and it was not to be wondered at if the fighting men in distant villages, and in and around Kabul, Ghazni, Herat, Balkh, and other places, still considered themselves undefeated and capable of defying us. They and their leaders had to depend for information as to recent events upon the garbled accounts of those who had fought against us, and it was unlikely they would be shaken in their belief in their superiority by such one-sided versions of what had occurred. On many occasions I had been amused, in listening to Afghan conversation, to find that, while they appeared thoroughly conversant with and frequently alluded to their triumphs over us, they seemed to know nothing, or had no recollection, of Sale's successful defence of Jalalabad, or of Pollock's victorious march through the Khyber Pass and the destruction by him of the chief bazaar in Kabul.

I wasn't at all satisfied that it was time to negotiate because I felt the Afghans hadn't fully absorbed their sense of defeat to understand our strength and ability to enforce the treaty. So, I believed that making peace now, before they had been thoroughly beaten, wouldn’t last and would lead to worse issues soon. The Afghans are basically an arrogant and proud people; they hadn’t forgotten our disastrous retreat from Kabul or the complete destruction of our forces in the Khurd Kabul and Jagdalak Passes in 1842, and they thought they were capable of resisting our advance on Kabul. No significant battle had been fought yet; although we had taken Ali Masjid and the Peiwar Kotal, a small enemy force was defeated by Charles Gough's brigade near Jalalabad, and there had been a successful cavalry skirmish near Kandahar, the Afghans hadn’t suffered any serious losses. It was no surprise that the fighters in remote villages, and those in and around Kabul, Ghazni, Herat, Balkh, and other areas, still felt undefeated and confident in defying us. They and their leaders had to rely on distorted accounts from those who had fought against us for information about recent events, and it was unlikely they would change their belief in their superiority based on such biased stories. I was often amused listening to Afghan conversations, as they seemed very familiar with and often mentioned their victories over us, yet they appeared to know nothing or had no memory of Sale's successful defense of Jalalabad or Pollock's victorious march through the Khyber Pass and the destruction he brought to the main bazaar in Kabul.

Premature Negotiations My ideas about the negotiations being premature were freely expressed to Colonel Colley,1 Lord Lytton's Private Secretary, who paid me a visit in Kuram at this time, and had been a constant correspondent of mine from the commencement of the war. Colley, however, explained to me that, right or wrong, the Viceroy had no option in the matter; that there was the strongest feeling in England against the continuance of the war; and that, unless the new Amir proved actively hostile, peace must be signed. He expressed himself sanguine that the terms of the treaty which Cavagnari hoped to conclude with Yakub Khan would give us an improved frontier, and a permanent paramount influence at Kabul, the two points about which he said the Viceroy was most anxious, and to which he assigned the first place in his political programme. Lord Lytton foresaw that, whatever might be the future policy of the two European Powers concerned, the contact of the frontiers of Great Britain and Russia in Asia was only a matter of time, and his aim was to make sure that the conterminous line, whenever it might be reached, should be of our choosing, and not one depending on the exigencies of the moment, or on the demands of Russia.

Early Negotiations I openly shared my thoughts with Colonel Colley, Lord Lytton's Private Secretary, during his visit to me in Kuram at this time. He had been in regular contact with me since the war started. Colley, however, explained that, right or wrong, the Viceroy had no choice in the matter; there was a strong sentiment in England against continuing the war, and unless the new Amir was openly hostile, peace had to be established. He was optimistic that the treaty Cavagnari hoped to finalize with Yakub Khan would lead to a better frontier for us and a lasting significant influence in Kabul. These were the two main points he said the Viceroy cared about most and prioritized in his political agenda. Lord Lytton anticipated that, regardless of the future strategies of the two involved European Powers, the borders of Great Britain and Russia in Asia would eventually meet; his goal was to ensure that, whenever that happened, the boundary would be one of our choosing, not dictated by immediate circumstances or Russia's demands.

The Native agent (Bukhtiar Khan), who was the bearer of the Viceroy's and Cavagnari's letters to the Amir, reached Kabul at the moment when the Afghan officials who had accompanied Sher Ali in his flight returned to that place from Turkestan. Counsel was held with these men as to the manner of receiving the British Mission; but there was an influential military party averse to peace, and the Amir[Page 378] was strongly advised to abandon the English alliance and trust to Russia. Upon hearing this, our agent became alarmed for the safety of the Mission, and being apprehensive that Yakub Khan would not have the power to protect its members from insult, he suggested to the Amir that he should visit our camp instead of the British Mission coming to Kabul, a suggestion which was ultimately adopted, the Viceroy considering that it was infinitely the best arrangement that could be made.

The local agent (Bukhtiar Khan), who carried the letters from the Viceroy and Cavagnari to the Amir, arrived in Kabul just as the Afghan officials who had followed Sher Ali in his escape returned from Turkestan. They discussed how to welcome the British Mission, but there was a strong military faction opposed to peace, and the Amir[Page 378] was strongly advised to ditch the English alliance and side with Russia. Upon hearing this, our agent grew worried for the safety of the Mission, fearing that Yakub Khan wouldn't be able to protect its members from potential harm. He suggested to the Amir that he should come to our camp instead of having the British Mission come to Kabul, a suggestion that was eventually accepted, as the Viceroy felt it was by far the best option available.

The treaty of Gandamak On the 8th May the Amir arrived in Sir Samuel Browne's camp at Gandamak, thirty miles on the Kabul side of Jalalabad, and on the 26th, owing to the tact and diplomatic skill of Louis Cavagnari, the Treaty of Gandamak was signed, and so ended the first phase of the second Afghan war.

The Gandamak Treaty On May 8th, the Amir arrived at Sir Samuel Browne's camp in Gandamak, thirty miles from Kabul towards Jalalabad, and on the 26th, thanks to the tact and diplomatic skill of Louis Cavagnari, the Treaty of Gandamak was signed, marking the end of the first phase of the second Afghan war.

Under the terms of the treaty, Yakub Khan agreed to the cession of territory considered necessary by us, and bound himself to conduct his foreign policy in accordance with the advice of the British Government; while, on our side, we promised to support him against external aggression. It was further arranged that a British representative, with a suitable escort, should reside at Kabul;2 that the Amir should in like manner (if he desired it) depute an agent to the Viceregal Court; that British agents with sufficient escorts should be at liberty to visit the Afghan frontiers whenever, in the interests of both countries, it was considered necessary by the British Government; that there should be no hindrance to British subjects trading peaceably within the Amir's dominions; that traders should be protected, the transit of merchandise facilitated, and roads kept in good order; that a line of telegraph should be constructed from India to Kabul, at the expense of the British, but under the protection of the Afghan Government; and that an annual subsidy of six lakhs of rupees should be paid to the Amir and his successors.

Under the treaty, Yakub Khan agreed to give up territory that we deemed necessary and promised to follow the British Government's advice on his foreign policy. In return, we committed to support him against outside attacks. It was also decided that a British representative, with a proper escort, would stay in Kabul;2 and that the Amir could appoint an agent to the Viceregal Court if he wished. British agents would be allowed to visit the Afghan borders with enough escorts whenever the British Government thought it was necessary for the interests of both countries. There would be no barriers for British citizens trading peacefully within the Amir's territory; traders would be protected, the movement of goods would be made easier, and roads would be kept in good condition. A telegraph line would be built from India to Kabul, funded by the British but safeguarded by the Afghan Government, and an annual payment of six lakhs of rupees would be given to the Amir and his successors.

The Khyber column was now withdrawn, with the exception of two brigades, and orders were sent to the Kandahar column to prepare to withdraw on the 1st September, the earliest date at which the troops could safely march through the Bolan Pass. I was told to stay where I was, as Kuram, by the treaty conditions, was to remain under our control and be administered by the British Government.

The Khyber column was now pulled back, except for two brigades, and orders were sent to the Kandahar column to get ready to withdraw on September 1st, the earliest date when the troops could safely move through the Bolan Pass. I was told to stay put, as Kuram, according to the treaty terms, was to stay under our control and be managed by the British Government.

On the 24th May I held a parade in honour of the Queen's birthday, at which 6,450 officers and men were present.3 They were thoroughly fit and workmanlike, and being anxious that the tribesmen should see[Page 379] what grand soldiers I had at hand should an advance be necessary, I invited all the neighbouring clans to witness the display. The Afghans were seated in picturesque groups round the flag-staff, when suddenly, as the first round of the feu-de-joie was fired, they started to their feet, thinking that treachery was intended, and that they were caught in a trap: they took to their heels, and we had considerable difficulty in bringing them back, and in making them understand that the firing which had so upset their equanimity was only a sign of rejoicing on that auspicious anniversary. By degrees they became assured that there was no thought of taking an unfair advantage of them, and at the conclusion of the ceremony they were made happy by a present of sheep. In the afternoon an impromptu rifle meeting was got up. The matchlock men could not hold their own against our good shots armed with Martini-Henry rifles, a fact which evidently greatly impressed the tribesmen, some of whom then and there came forward and promised that if I should be required to advance on Kabul they would not oppose me.

On May 24th, I held a parade to celebrate the Queen's birthday, with 6,450 officers and men in attendance. They were all in great shape and eager to show the tribesmen what excellent soldiers I had ready in case we needed to advance. I invited all the nearby clans to come and see the display. The Afghans were gathered in picturesque groups around the flagpole when, suddenly, as the first round of the feu-de-joie was fired, they jumped to their feet, thinking we were planning something treacherous and that they were caught in a trap. They ran away, and we had a hard time getting them back and making them understand that the firing, which had startled them so much, was just a celebration of that special day. Gradually, they became reassured that we meant no harm, and by the end of the ceremony, they were pleased to receive a gift of sheep. In the afternoon, we organized an impromptu rifle competition. The matchlock shooters couldn't compete with our skilled marksmen armed with Martini-Henry rifles, which clearly impressed the tribesmen. Some of them even came forward and promised that if I needed to advance on Kabul, they wouldn't try to stop me.

Making Friends with the Tribesmen I took advantage of our improved relations with the Afghans, consequent on the ratification of the treaty, to enlarge our geographical knowledge of the passes which lead from Kuram towards Kabul, and the independent territories in the neighbourhood. The presence of the troops, no doubt, had something to say to the cheerful acquiescence of the tribesmen in these explorations, which they appeared to look upon as the result of a wish to make ourselves acquainted with the country assigned to us by the treaty, and having, to use their own expression, lifted for us the purdah (curtain) of their country, they became most friendly, and took a curious pleasure in pointing out to us the points of defence at which they would have opposed us, had we been advancing as enemies.

Making Friends with the Locals I took advantage of our better relationship with the Afghans after the treaty was ratified to expand our understanding of the routes that lead from Kuram to Kabul and the nearby independent territories. The presence of our troops likely contributed to the tribesmen's willingness to participate in these explorations, which they seemed to view as our effort to get to know the land assigned to us by the treaty. Having, as they put it, lifted the purdah (curtain) of their country, they became very friendly and showed a genuine interest in pointing out the defensive positions they would have used against us if we had come as enemies.

Towards the end of June I heard from Lord Lytton that he wished me to be one of the military members of a Commission of Inquiry into army expenditure and organization which was about to be convened at Simla, if I thought I could be spared from my post at Kuram. The people of the valley had by this time settled down so contentedly, and the tribesmen showed themselves so peacefully disposed, that I thought I could safely leave my post for a time, before returning to take up my abode in the neighbourhood for some years, as I hoped to do, when my appointment as Frontier Commissioner should have received the sanction of the authorities in England.

Towards the end of June, I heard from Lord Lytton that he wanted me to be one of the military members of a Commission of Inquiry into army spending and organization that was about to be set up in Simla, if I thought I could be spared from my position at Kuram. By this time, the people in the valley had settled down so comfortably, and the tribesmen seemed so peaceful, that I felt I could safely leave my post for a while, before returning to live in the area for a few years, as I hoped to do, once my appointment as Frontier Commissioner had been approved by the authorities in England.

Meanwhile, however, some temporary arrangement was necessary[Page 380] for the administration of Kuram, and I wrote to the Foreign Secretary (Alfred Lyall), pointing out my views upon the subject.

Meanwhile, though, some temporary arrangement was needed[Page 380] for managing Kuram, so I contacted the Foreign Secretary (Alfred Lyall) to share my thoughts on the matter.

Seeing how much could be done with these wild people by personal influence, and how ready they were to submit to my decisions when disputes arose amongst them—decisions at times literally given from the saddle—I was very adverse to their being handed over to some official who, from his training, would not be able to understand dealing out the rough-and-ready justice which alone was suited to these lawless beings, and who could not imagine any question being properly settled without its having undergone the tedious process of passing through the law courts. Such a rule would, I knew, disgust a people accustomed to decide their quarrels at the point of the sword—a people to whom law and order had been hitherto unknown, and must be distasteful, until they had had time to realize their beneficial effects. Profitable employment and judicious management would in time, no doubt, turn them into peaceful subjects. Friendly intercourse had already done much towards this end, and tribes who for generations had been at feud with each other now met, when visiting our camp, on common ground, without (much I think to their own astonishment) wanting to cut each other's throats. What was further required, I conceived, was the opening up of the country by means of roads, which would facilitate intercommunication and give remunerative employment to thousands who had hitherto lived by plunder and bloodshed.

Seeing how much could be accomplished with these wild people through personal influence, and how willing they were to accept my decisions when conflicts arose among them—decisions that were sometimes literally given from the saddle—I was very opposed to them being handed over to some official who, due to his training, wouldn’t understand how to deliver the rough-and-ready justice that was suited to these lawless individuals, and who wouldn’t imagine that any issue could be properly resolved without going through the tedious process of the courts. Such a rule would, I knew, frustrate a people accustomed to settling their disputes at the point of a sword—a group to whom law and order had so far been foreign and would likely be off-putting until they realized the benefits it could bring. With the right opportunities and careful management, I was confident they could become peaceful subjects over time. Friendly interactions had already made significant progress toward this goal, and tribes that had been feuding for generations now met, during visits to our camp, on common ground, surprisingly not wanting to harm each other. What I believed was still needed was to open up the country by building roads, which would enhance communication and provide paying jobs to thousands who had previously survived through plunder and violence.

In answering my letter, the Foreign Secretary informed me that the future of Kuram would be settled when I reached Simla, whither I was to proceed so soon as I had seen the British Mission across the frontier.

In response to my letter, the Foreign Secretary told me that the future of Kuram would be decided when I arrived in Simla, where I was to go as soon as I had seen the British Mission across the border.

Gloomy Forebodings On the 15th July Major Cavagnari, who had been selected as 'the Envoy and Plenipotentiary to His Highness the Amir of Kabul,' arrived in Kuram, accompanied by Mr. William Jenkins, C.I.E., of the Civil Service, and Lieutenant Hamilton, V.C., Surgeon-Major Kelly, 25 Cavalry and 50 Infantry of the Guides Corps. I, with some fifty officers who were anxious to do honour to the Envoy and see the country beyond Kuram, marched with Cavagnari to within five miles of the crest of the Shutargardan Pass, where we encamped, and my staff and I dined that evening with the Mission. After dinner I was asked to propose the health of Cavagnari and those with him, but somehow I did not feel equal to the task; I was so thoroughly depressed, and my mind was filled with such gloomy forebodings as to the fate of these fine fellows, that I could not utter a word. Like many others, I thought that peace had been signed too quickly, before, in fact, we had instilled that awe of us into the Afghan nation which would have been the only reliable guarantee for the safety of the Mission. Had we shown our strength by marching to Kabul in the first instance, whether opposed or not, and there dictated the terms of the treaty, there would have been some assurance for its being adhered[Page 381] to; as it was, I could not help feeling there was none, and that the chances were against the Mission ever coming back.

Bad Feelings On July 15th, Major Cavagnari, chosen as 'the Envoy and Plenipotentiary to His Highness the Amir of Kabul,' arrived in Kuram, joined by Mr. William Jenkins, C.I.E., from the Civil Service, and Lieutenant Hamilton, V.C., along with Surgeon-Major Kelly, 25 Cavalry, and 50 Infantry from the Guides Corps. I, along with about fifty officers eager to honor the Envoy and explore beyond Kuram, marched with Cavagnari to just five miles from the top of the Shutargardan Pass, where we set up camp. My staff and I shared dinner that evening with the Mission. After dinner, I was asked to toast to Cavagnari and his team, but I didn't feel up to it; I was overwhelmed with a sense of dread, filled with such dark premonitions about the fate of these brave men that I couldn't find the words. Like many others, I believed that peace had been established too hastily, before we had truly instilled a sense of respect in the Afghan nation, which would have been the only real assurance for the safety of the Mission. If we had demonstrated our strength by marching to Kabul initially, whether we faced opposition or not, and dictated the terms of the treaty there, it would have provided some guarantee that it would be honored; as it was, I couldn't shake the feeling that there was none, and that the likelihood of the Mission returning was slim.

Cavagnari, however, showed no sign of sharing my forebodings; he and his companions were in the best of spirits; he spoke most hopefully of the future, and talked of a tour he hoped to make with me in the cold weather along the northern and western frontiers of Afghanistan. Other matters of intense interest to us both were discussed, and before separating for the night it was arranged that Mrs. Cavagnari should either join him in Kabul the following spring, or come and stay with my wife and me in Kuram, where I had already laid the foundations of a house near the beautifully situated village of Shalufzan.

Cavagnari, on the other hand, showed no signs of sharing my worries; he and his friends were in great spirits. He spoke very positively about the future and mentioned a trip he hoped to take with me during the colder months along the northern and western borders of Afghanistan. We discussed other matters of great interest to both of us, and before we parted for the night, it was decided that Mrs. Cavagnari would either join him in Kabul the following spring or come to stay with my wife and me in Kuram, where I had already started building a house near the beautifully located village of Shalufzan.

Early next morning the Sirdar, who had been deputed by the Amir to receive the Mission, came into camp, and soon we all started for the top of the pass. We had gone about a mile, when we were joined by an escort of Afghan Cavalry, dressed something like British Dragoons, with the exception of their head-gear, which consisted of the discarded helmets of the old Bengal Horse Artillery. They were mounted on small, useful-looking horses, and were armed with smooth-bore carbines and tulwars (Native swords).

Early the next morning, the Sirdar, who had been sent by the Amir to greet the Mission, arrived at our camp, and soon we all set off for the top of the pass. We had covered about a mile when we were joined by a group of Afghan Cavalry, dressed somewhat like British Dragoons, except for their helmets, which were the old styles from the Bengal Horse Artillery. They rode small, sturdy-looking horses and were equipped with smooth-bore carbines and tulwars (native swords).

As we ascended, curiously enough, we came across a solitary magpie, which I should not have noticed had not Cavagnari pointed it out and begged me not to mention the fact of his having seen it to his wife, as she would be sure to consider it an unlucky omen.

As we climbed higher, we surprisingly spotted a lone magpie, which I probably wouldn't have noticed if Cavagnari hadn't pointed it out and asked me not to tell his wife he saw it, since she would definitely think it was a bad omen.

On reaching the Afghan camp, we were received in a large, tastefully decorated tent, where tea was served, and we were afterwards conducted to the top of the mountain, where carpets were spread and more tea passed round, while we gazed on the fine view of the Logar valley which stretched out beneath us.

On arriving at the Afghan camp, we were welcomed into a spacious, nicely decorated tent, where tea was served. Afterwards, we were taken to the mountain top, where carpets were laid out and more tea was offered, as we admired the beautiful view of the Logar valley stretching out below us.

On descending to the camp, we were invited to partake of dinner, served in Oriental fashion on a carpet spread on the ground. Everything was done most lavishly and gracefully, and nothing was omitted that was calculated to do us honour. Nevertheless, I could not feel happy as to the prospects of the Mission, and my heart sank as I wished Cavagnari good-bye. When we had proceeded a few yards in our different directions, we both turned round, retraced our steps, shook hands once more, and parted for ever.

On our way down to the camp, we were invited to join for dinner, served in an Eastern style on a carpet laid out on the ground. Everything was done lavishly and elegantly, and nothing was left out that was meant to honor us. Still, I couldn't shake my unease about the future of the Mission, and my heart sank as I said goodbye to Cavagnari. After we had walked a few steps in our separate ways, we both turned back, retraced our steps, shook hands one last time, and parted forever.

I did not delay at Kuram; there was nothing to keep me there, and the prospect of getting back to my belongings and to civilization, now that all active work was at an end, was too alluring to be withstood. My wife met me at the foot of the Hills, and we drove up to Simla together. I was greeted by Lord Lytton and many kind friends most warmly, and had the gratification of hearing that I had been made a K.C.B., and that I had been accorded the thanks of both Houses of Parliament.

I didn’t hang around in Kuram; there was nothing to hold me there, and the idea of returning to my stuff and to civilization, now that all the active work was over, was too tempting to ignore. My wife met me at the foot of the Hills, and we drove up to Simla together. I was warmly welcomed by Lord Lytton and many kind friends, and I was pleased to hear that I had been made a K.C.B. and received thanks from both Houses of Parliament.

I was soon deep in the work of the Army Commission, which met[Page 382] for the first time under the presidency of the Hon. Sir Ashley Eden,4 K.C.S.I., on the 1st August. The heavy loss to the revenues of India, consequent on the unfavourable rate of exchange, rendered extensive reductions in public expenditure imperative, and the object of this Commission was to find out how the cost of the army could be reduced without impairing its efficiency.

I quickly became involved in the work of the Army Commission, which convened[Page 382] for the first time under the leadership of the Hon. Sir Ashley Eden,4 K.C.S.I., on August 1st. The significant loss to India's revenue, due to the unfavorable exchange rate, made it necessary to implement major cuts in public spending, and the goal of this Commission was to determine how to reduce the army's costs without compromising its effectiveness.

Very little was done at the first meeting, and at its close Eden confessed to me that he did not at all see his way, and that he was somewhat aghast at the difficulties of the task before the Commission. To me it seemed clear that the maintenance of a separate army for each presidency, Bengal, Bombay, and Madras, was at the root of the evils it was our duty to consider and try to reform; and I promised the President that, before the Commission again assembled, I would prepare a scheme which might form a basis for them to work upon.

Very little was accomplished at the first meeting, and at the end, Eden admitted to me that he didn’t really see a clear path forward and was somewhat overwhelmed by the challenges facing the Commission. It seemed obvious to me that having separate armies for each presidency—Bengal, Bombay, and Madras—was at the core of the issues we needed to address and try to fix. I promised the President that before the Commission met again, I would develop a proposal that could serve as a foundation for their work.

I considered it an anachronism, since railways and telegraphs had annihilated distance, to keep up three Commanders-in-Chief, and separate departments, each having an independent head, in the three different presidencies. I put my ideas on paper, and Eden announced himself in favour of my scheme, which substituted for the three presidential armies four army corps, all subordinate to the Commander-in-Chief in India. Portions of my recommendation began to be carried into effect directly they had received the sanction of the authorities in England—such as the amalgamation of the Commissariat, Pay, Ordnance, and Stud departments—but it was not until April, 1895, sixteen years after the proposal had been recommended by the Government of India, and although, during that period, four successive Viceroys, each backed up by a unanimous Council, had declared themselves strongly in favour of the change, that the finishing touch was given to the new organization, by the abolition of the offices of Commanders-in-Chief of Madras and Bombay, and the creation of four Army Corps, namely, the Punjab, the Bengal, the Madras, and the Bombay, each commanded by a Lieutenant-General.

I saw it as outdated to have three Commanders-in-Chief and separate departments, each with its own leader, across three different presidencies, especially since railways and telegraphs had made distances irrelevant. I wrote down my ideas, and Eden expressed his support for my plan, which replaced the three presidential armies with four army corps, all reporting to the Commander-in-Chief in India. Some of my recommendations started to be implemented as soon as they received approval from the authorities in England—like merging the Commissariat, Pay, Ordnance, and Stud departments—but it wasn't until April 1895, sixteen years after the Government of India first proposed the changes, that the final steps were taken to reorganize, which included eliminating the offices of Commanders-in-Chief of Madras and Bombay and establishing four Army Corps: the Punjab, Bengal, Madras, and Bombay, each led by a Lieutenant-General.






CHAPTER XLIX.

1879

My wife and I thought and talked much over our new life on the frontier, to which we both looked forward with great interest and pleasure, but, before entering upon it, we settled to go home for a time to place our boy at school and see our friends, and we were arranging our plans accordingly, when suddenly our 'castles in the air' were dashed to the ground by a ruthless blow from the hand of Fate, and[Page 383] the whole of India, the whole of the civilized world, was struck with grief, horror, and indignation at the awful news of the massacre at Kabul of Cavagnari and his gallant companions.

My wife and I talked a lot about our new life on the frontier, which we were both really looking forward to with excitement and happiness. But before we jumped into it, we decided to head home for a while to get our son into school and catch up with our friends. We were making our plans when suddenly our dreams were shattered by a cruel twist of fate, and[Page 383] all of India, along with the civilized world, was filled with grief, horror, and anger over the terrible news of the massacre of Cavagnari and his brave companions in Kabul.

Throughout the month of August telegrams and letters constantly came from Cavagnari (now a Lieutenant-Colonel and a K.C.B.) to the Viceroy, the Foreign Secretary, and myself, in which he always expressed himself in such a manner as to lead to the belief that he was perfectly content with his position, and felt himself quite secure; and in his very last letter, dated the 30th August, received after his death, he wrote: 'I personally believe that Yakub Khan will turn out to be a very good ally, and that we shall be able to keep him to his engagements.' His last telegram to the Viceroy, dated the 2nd September, concluded with the words, 'All well.' Cavagnari mentioned in one of his letters that the Afghan soldiers were inclined to be mutinous, and in another that a dispute had arisen in the bazaar between them and the men of the British escort, but at the same time he expressed his confidence in the Amir's ability and determination to maintain order; I could not, however, help being anxious about Cavagnari, or divest myself of the feeling that he might be over-estimating Yakub Khan's power, even if His Highness had the will, to protect the Mission.

Throughout August, telegrams and letters constantly arrived from Cavagnari (now a Lieutenant-Colonel and a K.C.B.) to the Viceroy, the Foreign Secretary, and me, in which he always seemed to indicate that he was completely satisfied with his position and felt safe. In his very last letter, dated August 30 and received after his death, he wrote, "I personally believe that Yakub Khan will turn out to be a very good ally, and that we shall be able to keep him to his engagements." His final telegram to the Viceroy, dated September 2, ended with the words, "All well." Cavagnari noted in one of his letters that the Afghan soldiers were showing signs of mutiny, and in another that a dispute had occurred in the bazaar between them and the British escort, but he also expressed confidence in the Amir's ability and determination to maintain order. I couldn't help but feel anxious about Cavagnari or shake off the impression that he might be overestimating Yakub Khan's power, even if His Highness had the will to protect the Mission.

Between one and two o'clock on the morning of the 5th September, I was awakened by my wife telling me that a telegraph man had been wandering round the house and calling for some time, but that no one had answered him.1 I got up, went downstairs, and, taking the telegram from the man, brought it up to my dressing-room, and opened it; it proved to be from Captain Conolly, Political Officer at Alikhel, dated the 4th September. The contents told me that my worst fears—fears I had hardly acknowledged to myself—had been only too fully realized. The telegram ran:

Between 1 and 2 AM on September 5th, I was woken up by my wife telling me that a telegram guy had been wandering around the house and calling for a while, but no one had responded to him. I got up, went downstairs, and took the telegram from the man, bringing it up to my dressing room to open it. It was from Captain Conolly, the Political Officer at Alikhel, dated September 4th. The message confirmed my worst fears—fears I had barely admitted to myself—had unfortunately come true. The telegram read:

'One Jelaladin Ghilzai, who says he is in Sir Louis Cavagnari's secret service, has arrived in hot haste from Kabul, and solemnly states that yesterday morning the Residency was attacked by three regiments who had mutinied for their pay, they having guns, and being joined by a portion of six other regiments. The Embassy and escort were defending themselves when he left about noon yesterday. I hope to receive further news.'

'One Jelaladin Ghilzai, claiming to be in Sir Louis Cavagnari's secret service, has rushed in from Kabul and states that yesterday morning the Residency was attacked by three regiments that had mutinied over their pay. They were armed and joined by parts of six other regiments. The Embassy and its escort were fighting back when he left around noon yesterday. I hope to get more updates soon.'

I was paralyzed for the moment, but was roused by my wife calling out, 'What is it? Is it bad news from Kabul?' She had divined my fears about Cavagnari, and had been as anxious about him as I had been myself. I replied, 'Yes, very bad, if true. I hope it is not.' But I felt it was. I woke my A.D.C., and sent him off at once to the Viceroy with the telegram. The evil tidings spread rapidly. I was no sooner dressed than Mr. Alfred Lyall arrived. We talked matters[Page 384] over, I despatched a telegram2 to Captain Conolly, and we then went off to Lord Lytton.

I froze for a moment, but my wife snapped me out of it by asking, 'What’s wrong? Is it bad news from Kabul?' She had sensed my worries about Cavagnari and was just as concerned as I was. I replied, 'Yes, really bad if it's true. I hope it's not.' But deep down, I felt it was. I woke my A.D.C. and sent him right away to the Viceroy with the telegram. The bad news spread quickly. As soon as I was dressed, Mr. Alfred Lyall showed up. We discussed things[Page 384], I sent a telegram2 to Captain Conolly, and then we headed to see Lord Lytton.

Early as it was, I found the Council assembled. The gravity of the situation was thoroughly appreciated, and it was unanimously decided that, should the disastrous report prove to be true, troops must proceed to Kabul with the least possible delay to avenge or, if happily incorrect or exaggerated, to support the Mission.

Early as it was, I found the Council gathered. Everyone understood the seriousness of the situation, and it was agreed that if the alarming report turned out to be true, troops should head to Kabul as quickly as possible to seek revenge or, if by some chance it was incorrect or exaggerated, to provide support for the Mission.

Sir Samuel Browne's force had been broken up, Sir Donald Stewart was in far off Kandahar, and his troops had, all but a small number, left on their return march to India; the Kuram force was, therefore, the only one in a position to reach Kabul quickly, and I was ordered to proceed at once to Kuram and resume my command.

Sir Samuel Browne's unit had been disbanded, Sir Donald Stewart was all the way in Kandahar, and his soldiers had mostly headed back to India; the Kuram unit was, therefore, the only one that could get to Kabul quickly, and I was ordered to head to Kuram immediately and take back my command.

As a preliminary measure, Brigadier-General Massy, who had been placed in temporary command during my absence, was directed to move troops to the Shutargardan, where they were to entrench themselves and await orders, while Stewart was directed to stop all regiments on their way back to India, and himself hold fast at Kandahar.

As a first step, Brigadier-General Massy, who had been put in temporary command while I was away, was instructed to send troops to Shutargardan, where they would set up defenses and wait for further orders, while Stewart was told to halt all regiments returning to India and stay put in Kandahar.

Massacre of the Embassy During the day further telegrams were received confirming the truth of the first report, and telling of the Mission having been overwhelmed and every member of it cruelly massacred; and later Captain Conolly telegraphed that messengers had arrived from the Amir bringing two letters addressed to me giving his version of what had occurred.

Embassy Massacre During the day, more telegrams came in confirming the initial report, stating that the Mission had been overwhelmed and every member brutally killed; later, Captain Conolly sent a telegram saying that messengers had arrived from the Amir with two letters addressed to me, providing his account of what happened.

The Kabul Field Force During the few hours I remained at Simla I was busily engaged in discussing with Sir Frederick Haines the formation of the Kabul Field Force,3 as my new command was designated, and the many important matters which had to be considered. More troops had to[Page 385] be hurried up, for it would be necessary to hold Kuram in strength while I moved on to Kabul, and, as communication by the Shutargardan could not be depended upon after December, on account of snow, the Khyber route would have to be opened out.

Kabul Field Force During the few hours I spent in Simla, I was busy discussing with Sir Frederick Haines the formation of the Kabul Field Force,3 which was my new command, and the numerous important issues that needed attention. We needed to rush in more troops because it was essential to maintain a strong presence in Kuram while I advanced to Kabul. Since communication through the Shutargardan wouldn't be reliable after December due to snow, we would have to open up the Khyber route.

At the commencement of the last year's campaign my anxiety had been so largely increased by having been given officers totally inexperienced in war to fill the higher posts in the Kuram column, that I did not hesitate to press upon the Commander-in-Chief, now that I had a far more difficult operation to carry through, the importance of my senior officers being tried men on whom I could implicitly rely; and I succeeded in getting for the command of my two Infantry brigades Herbert Macpherson4 and T. D. Baker,5 the Viceroy's Military Secretary, both of whom had seen a good deal of service, while the former had already commanded a brigade in the field.

At the start of last year's campaign, my anxiety had significantly increased because I was given officers who were completely inexperienced in war to fill the higher positions in the Kuram column. I didn’t hesitate to emphasize to the Commander-in-Chief, especially since I had a much more challenging operation ahead, the importance of having senior officers who were seasoned veterans I could fully depend on. I managed to secure Herbert Macpherson4 and T. D. Baker5, the Viceroy's Military Secretary, to command my two Infantry brigades. Both of them had extensive service experience, and the former had already led a brigade in the field.

To the command of the Artillery and Cavalry, Lieutenant-Colonel B. Gordon and Brigadier-General Massy were appointed, neither of whom had much experience of war. Gordon had served in Central India during the Mutiny, and Massy by his pluck as a subaltern of Infantry in the Crimea had gained for himself the sobriquet of 'Redan' Massy.[Page 386] But he had not served with Cavalry in the field, and from my slight acquaintance with him I could not say whether he possessed the very exceptional qualities required in a Cavalry Commander.

To lead the Artillery and Cavalry, Lieutenant-Colonel B. Gordon and Brigadier-General Massy were assigned, neither of whom had much military experience. Gordon had served in Central India during the Mutiny, and Massy earned the nickname 'Redan' Massy for his bravery as an Infantry subaltern in the Crimea. [Page 386] However, he had not fought with Cavalry in the field, and from my limited interaction with him, I couldn’t determine if he had the exceptional qualities needed in a Cavalry Commander.

My staff had proved themselves so capable and reliable that I had no wish to make any change; it was, however, materially strengthened by the addition of Colonel MacGregor,6 as 'Chief of the Staff,' with Captain Combe,7 10th Hussars, and Lieutenant Manners Smith8 as Deputy-Assistant Quartermaster-Generals.

My team had proven to be so capable and reliable that I didn't want to make any changes; however, it was significantly strengthened by the addition of Colonel MacGregor,6 as 'Chief of Staff,' along with Captain Combe,7 10th Hussars, and Lieutenant Manners Smith8 as Deputy-Assistant Quartermaster-Generals.

Mr. H.M. Durand9 was attached to me as Political Secretary, and Major Hastings as Political Officer, in place of Colonel Waterfield, who was hors de combat from a broken leg. Hugh Gough, with the rank of Brigadier-General, and Major Mark Heathcote as his assistant, were placed in charge of the lines of communication.

Mr. H.M. Durand9 was assigned to me as Political Secretary, and Major Hastings served as Political Officer, replacing Colonel Waterfield, who was out of action due to a broken leg. Hugh Gough, holding the rank of Brigadier-General, and Major Mark Heathcote as his assistant, were put in charge of the lines of communication.

Lord Lytton's Foresightedness Before leaving Simla I paid a farewell visit to Lord Lytton. I found him in a state of deep distress and depression. To a man of his affectionate disposition, the fate of Cavagnari, for whom he had a great personal regard, was a real grief. But on public grounds he felt still more strongly the collapse of the Mission and the consequent heavy blow to the policy he had so much at heart, viz., the rectification of our defective frontier, and the rendering India secure against foreign aggression—a policy which, though scouted at the time by a party which later became all-powerful, has since been justified by the action of successive Governments, Liberal and Conservative alike, until at the present moment our frontier is gradually becoming what Lord Lytton, with his clear foresightedness and intelligent appreciation of our responsibilities and India's requirements, would then have made it.

Lord Lytton's Insight Before leaving Simla, I paid a farewell visit to Lord Lytton. I found him in deep distress and depression. For someone as caring as he was, the fate of Cavagnari, whom he held in high regard, was a real sorrow. However, he felt even more strongly about the failure of the Mission and the significant setback to the policy he valued so much: the correction of our flawed frontier and ensuring India was protected against foreign threats—a policy that was ridiculed at the time by a party that later gained significant power, yet it has since been validated by the actions of successive Governments, both Liberal and Conservative. Now, our frontier is slowly becoming what Lord Lytton, with his sharp foresight and understanding of our responsibilities and India’s needs, would have envisioned.

In answer to my request for instructions as to the line I should take about our future relations with the Afghans, Lord Lytton said: 'You can tell them we shall never again altogether withdraw from Afghanistan, and that those who help you will be befriended and protected by the British Government.'

In response to my request for guidance on how to handle our future relations with the Afghans, Lord Lytton said: 'You can inform them that we will never completely pull out of Afghanistan again, and that those who assist you will be supported and protected by the British Government.'

While I was with Lord Lytton, a telegram10 was brought in from Captain Conolly, reporting the details of the attack upon the Embassy,[Page 387] as given to him by the messenger who had been entrusted by the Amir to deliver the two letters addressed to me. In this telegram Conolly solicited instructions as to what he was to communicate to the Amir in reply to His Highness's request for aid, and inquired whether he was at liberty to make terms with one Badshah Khan, an influential Ghilzai Chief, who had come to Alikhel to offer his services.

While I was with Lord Lytton, a telegram10 came in from Captain Conolly, detailing the attack on the Embassy,[Page 387] as relayed to him by the messenger the Amir had sent to deliver two letters addressed to me. In this telegram, Conolly asked for instructions on what to communicate to the Amir in response to His Highness's request for help, and he also wondered if he could negotiate with a certain Badshah Khan, an influential Ghilzai Chief, who had arrived in Alikhel to offer his support.

The following telegram was sent in reply by the Foreign Secretary:

The following telegram was sent in response by the Foreign Secretary:

'Your telegram 6th. Reply to the Amir at once from the Viceroy that a strong British force under General Roberts will march speedily on Kabul to his relief, from the Shutargardan, and that he should use all his resources to co-operate with, and facilitate, the advance of the troops through his country. Your proposal to subsidize Badshah Khan and accept his services is approved. Roberts will send detailed instructions.'

'Your telegram from the 6th. Reply to the Amir immediately from the Viceroy that a strong British force led by General Roberts will quickly march on Kabul to assist him, coming from the Shutargardan, and that he should use all his resources to help and facilitate the movement of the troops through his territory. Your suggestion to support Badshah Khan and enlist his services is approved. Roberts will provide detailed instructions.'

Start for Kabul Late in the afternoon of the same day (September 6th) I left Simla, accompanied by my wife as far as Umballa, where I found my staff waiting for me. She saw us off in the train, bidding us a cheery good-bye and good luck, but I am afraid the return journey must have been a sad one for her.

Departing for Kabul Later that afternoon (September 6th), I left Simla with my wife, who accompanied me to Umballa, where my team was waiting for me. She saw us off at the train, cheerfully saying goodbye and wishing us good luck, but I worry that her trip back was a difficult one.

Thought for the immediate future filled my mind as we sped on our way to the front, and not a few difficulties connected with the proposed advance on Kabul presented themselves to me. My chief causes for anxiety were the insufficiency of transport, and the great extent of the lines of communication which would have to be guarded. It would be necessary to hold the country in strength from Thal to the Shutargardan, a distance of 115 miles, until such time as the Khyber route could be opened, and I felt that the force at my disposal (7,500 men and 22 guns) was none too large for the work before it, considering that I should have to provide a garrison for the Shutargardan, if not[Page 388] for other posts between that place and Kabul.

Thoughts about the immediate future filled my mind as we rushed toward the front, and I faced several challenges related to the planned advance on Kabul. My main worries were the lack of transport and the extensive lines of communication that would need to be secured. It would be necessary to maintain a strong presence from Thal to the Shutargardan, a distance of 115 miles, until the Khyber route could be opened. I felt that the force available to me (7,500 men and 22 guns) was barely enough for the task ahead, especially since I would need to provide a garrison for Shutargardan, if not for other posts between there and Kabul.

My Commissariat arrangements, too, caused me many misgivings, increased by the fact that Major Badcock, my chief Commissariat Officer, and Major Collett, my Assistant Quartermaster-General, who had afforded such valuable aid in Kuram, thinking the war was at an end, had taken leave to England. My doubts vanished, however, and my spirits rose at the sight of my brave troops, and the enthusiastic welcome they gave me as I rode through Kuram on the 12th September on my way to Alikhel. A splendid spirit pervaded the whole force; the men's hearts were on fire with eager desire to press on to Kabul, and be led against the miscreants who had foully massacred our countrymen, and I felt assured that whatever it was possible for dauntless courage, unselfish devotion, and firm determination to achieve, would be achieved by my gallant soldiers.

My Commissariat arrangements also made me feel uneasy, especially since Major Badcock, my main Commissariat Officer, and Major Collett, my Assistant Quartermaster-General, who had provided such valuable support in Kuram, thought the war was over and had left for England. However, my doubts faded and my spirits lifted when I saw my brave troops and the enthusiastic welcome they gave me as I rode through Kuram on September 12th on my way to Alikhel. A fantastic energy filled the entire force; the men were fired up with a strong desire to push on to Kabul and confront the criminals who had brutally massacred our fellow countrymen. I was confident that whatever could be accomplished through fearless courage, selfless dedication, and firm resolve would be achieved by my courageous soldiers.

Letter to the Amir On reaching Alikhel, Captain Conolly handed to me the Amir's letters,11 to which I replied at once, and the next day, under instructions from the Government of India, I wrote to His Highness that, in conformity[Page 389] with his own special request that an English officer should be deputed as Envoy to his Court, and on condition that he would himself be responsible for the protection and honourable treatment of such an Envoy, Major Cavagnari and three British officers had been allowed to go to Kabul, all of whom within six weeks had been ruthlessly murdered by his troops and subjects; that his inability to carry out the treaty engagements, and his powerlessness to establish his authority, even in his own capital, having thus become apparent, an English army would now advance on Kabul with the double object of consolidating his Government, should he himself loyally do his best to fulfil the terms of the treaty, and of exacting retribution from the murderers of the British Mission. But that, although His Highness laid great stress in his letter of the 4th September on the sincerity of his friendship, my Government had been informed that emissaries had been despatched from Kabul to rouse the country people and tribes against us, and as this action appeared inconsistent with friendly intentions, I considered it necessary for His Highness to send a confidential representative to confer with me and explain his object.

Letter to the Emir When we arrived in Alikhel, Captain Conolly gave me the Amir's letters. I replied immediately, and the next day, following instructions from the Government of India, I wrote to His Highness that, in line with his specific request for an English officer to be sent as Envoy to his Court, and provided he would take responsibility for the protection and respectful treatment of such an Envoy, Major Cavagnari and three British officers had been permitted to go to Kabul, all of whom had been brutally murdered by his troops and subjects within six weeks. It had become clear that his inability to uphold the treaty agreements and his powerlessness to maintain authority, even in his own capital, had become evident; therefore, an English army would now advance on Kabul with the dual purpose of supporting his Government, should he genuinely strive to meet the terms of the treaty, and seeking justice for the murderers of the British Mission. However, despite His Highness emphasizing in his letter dated September 4th the authenticity of his friendship, my Government had been informed that envoys had been sent from Kabul to incite the local population and tribes against us, and as this action seemed incompatible with friendly intentions, I deemed it necessary for His Highness to send a confidential representative to meet with me and explain his intentions.

I had little doubt as to the truth of the report that the Amir was using every effort to incite the Ghilzais and other tribes to oppose us, and I was confirmed in my conviction by a Native gentleman, Nawab Ghulam Hussein Khan,12 at one time our agent at Kabul, who told me that, although he did not believe that Yakub Khan had actually planned the massacre of the Embassy, he had certainly taken no steps to prevent it, and that he, Ghulam Hussein Khan, was convinced that the Amir was now playing us false. It was, therefore, a relief to find awaiting me at Alikhel several of the leading men from the neighbouring districts, to whom I had telegraphed, before leaving Simla, asking them to meet me.

I had little doubt about the truth of the report that the Amir was doing everything he could to stir up the Ghilzais and other tribes against us. My belief was reinforced by a local gentleman, Nawab Ghulam Hussein Khan, who had once been our agent in Kabul. He told me that, although he didn’t think Yakub Khan had actually planned the massacre of the Embassy, he definitely hadn’t taken any action to stop it, and that he, Ghulam Hussein Khan, was convinced the Amir was deceiving us. So, it was a relief to find several of the leading men from the neighboring districts waiting for me in Alikhel, to whom I had sent a telegram before leaving Simla, asking them to meet me.

These men were profuse in their proffers of assistance, and, although I did not place a great deal of faith in their promises, I came to the conclusion that, notwithstanding Yakub Khan's treacherous efforts to stir up the tribes, if I could only push on rapidly with a fairly strong force, I need not anticipate any opposition that I could not overcome. Everything depended on speed, but rapidity of movement depended on the condition of the transport service, and my inspection of the animals, as I passed through Kuram, was not calculated to raise hopes of being able to make a very quick advance; for, owing to continuous hard work and the want of a staff of trained transport attendants, the numbers of animals had steadily diminished, and those that remained[Page 390] were for the most part sickly and out of condition.

These men were eager to offer help, and while I didn't entirely trust their promises, I figured that despite Yakub Khan's sneaky attempts to rally the tribes, if I could just move quickly with a decent force, I shouldn’t expect any resistance that I couldn't handle. Everything hinged on speed, but how fast we could move relied on the state of the transport service. As I looked over the animals while passing through Kuram, it didn’t inspire much hope for a rapid advance. Due to ongoing hard work and a lack of trained transport staff, the number of animals had steadily gone down, and those left[Page 390] were mostly sickly and in poor condition.

Proclamation to the People of Kabul On the 16th of September I issued a Proclamation,13 copies of which I caused to be sent to the people of Kabul, Ghazni, and all the neighbouring tribes; this, I hoped, would facilitate our advance, and reassure those who had taken no part in the attack on the Residency. I also wrote a letter14 to the maliks of the Logar valley, whose territory we must enter directly we had crossed the Shutargardan, and whose co-operation[Page 391] I was most anxious to obtain. On the 18th I again wrote15 to the Amir, enclosing copies of these two documents, and informing him that I was still awaiting a reply to my first letter and the arrival of His Highness's confidential representative; that I hoped he would soon issue the necessary orders for the furtherance of our plans and that he might rest assured of the support of the British Government.

Announcement to the People of Kabul On September 16th, I issued a Proclamation,13 copies of which I had sent to the people of Kabul, Ghazni, and all the nearby tribes; I hoped this would make our progress easier and reassure those who hadn’t participated in the attack on the Residency. I also wrote a letter14 to the maliks of the Logar valley, whose territory we needed to enter as soon as we crossed the Shutargardan, and I was very eager to get their cooperation[Page 391]. On the 18th, I wrote again to the Amir,15 including copies of these two documents and letting him know that I was still waiting for a reply to my first letter and the arrival of His Highness's confidential representative; I expressed my hope that he would soon give the necessary orders to support our plans and reassured him of the backing of the British Government.

On the 19th September matters had so far progressed that I was able to tell the Viceroy that Brigadier-General Baker was entrenched with his brigade on the Shutargardan, and engaged in improving the road to Kushi, the first halting-place in the Logar valley; that supplies were being collected by means of local transport; that I was bringing up reserve ammunition and treasure from the rear on Artillery waggons; and that every possible effort was being made to render the force mobile.

On September 19th, things had progressed enough for me to inform the Viceroy that Brigadier-General Baker was set up with his brigade at Shutargardan and was working on improving the road to Kushi, the first stop in the Logar valley. Supplies were being gathered through local transport, and I was bringing up reserve ammunition and treasure from the rear on artillery wagons. Every possible effort was being made to keep the force mobile.

Yakub Khan's Agents On the 20th I received the Amir's reply. He expressed regret that he was unable to come to Alikhel himself, but intimated that he was sending two confidential agents, his Mustaufi (Finance Minister), Habibulla Khan, and his Wazir (Prime Minister), Shah Mahomed Khan, who accordingly arrived the next day.

Yakub Khan's Agents On the 20th, I received the Amir's response. He expressed his regret for not being able to come to Alikhel himself but mentioned that he was sending two trusted agents: his Mustaufi (Finance Minister), Habibulla Khan, and his Wazir (Prime Minister), Shah Mahomed Khan, who arrived the following day.

At each interview I had with these gentlemen during the three days they remained in my camp, they impressed upon me that the Amir was inclined to be most friendly, and that his only wish was to be guided by the advice of the British Government. But, notwithstanding these plausible assurances, I soon discovered that Yakub Khan's real object in sending these two high officials was to stop the advance of the force, and induce me to leave the punishment of the troops who had committed the massacre in the hands of the Afghan authorities, or else to delay us long enough to give time for the whole country to rise against us.

During the three days these gentlemen stayed in my camp, they repeatedly told me that the Amir was very friendly and only wanted to be guided by the advice of the British Government. However, despite these convincing assurances, I quickly realized that Yakub Khan actually sent these two high officials to prevent our advance and to persuade me to let the Afghan authorities handle the punishment of the troops responsible for the massacre. Their plan was to delay us long enough to allow the entire country to rise against us.

As the conversations which were carried on at the meetings with the Afghan agents are interesting, and have an important bearing on the subsequent proceedings, I give in the Appendix the notes taken at the time by my Political Secretary.

As the discussions held during the meetings with the Afghan agents are intriguing and significantly impact the later actions, I’m including in the Appendix the notes that my Political Secretary took at that time.

I was anxious to keep one of the Amir's representatives with me, but neither of them was willing to remain, so I felt bound to let them[Page 392] both depart, taking with them the following letter to the Amir:

I was eager to have one of the Amir's representatives stay with me, but neither of them was willing to stick around, so I felt I had no choice but to let them[Page 392] both leave, carrying the following letter to the Amir:

TO HIS HIGHNESS THE AMIR OF KABUL.

TO HIS HIGHNESS THE AMIR OF KABUL.

Camp, Alikhel, 25th September, 1879.

Camp, Alikhel, September 25, 1879.

(After compliments.) I have received Your Highness's two letters of the 19th and 20th September (1st and 2nd Shawal), delivered to me by the hands of Your Highness's two confidential representatives, Mustaufi Habibulla Khan and Wazir Shah Mahomed.

(After compliments.) I have received your Highness's two letters dated September 19th and 20th (1st and 2nd Shawal), delivered to me by your Highness's two trusted representatives, Mustaufi Habibulla Khan and Wazir Shah Mahomed.

I am much obliged to Your Highness for sending me two such well-known men, and of such character as the Mustaufi and the Wazir. They have informed me of Your Highness's wishes, and I quite understand all they have told me. It is unfortunate that the season is so late, and that winter will soon be here; but there is yet time for a British army to reach Kabul before the great cold sets in.

I really appreciate Your Highness for sending me two such prominent figures, like the Mustaufi and the Wazir. They’ve shared Your Highness's wishes with me, and I completely understand everything they’ve conveyed. It’s unfortunate that the season is so late and that winter is approaching; however, there’s still time for a British army to arrive in Kabul before the severe cold begins.

The Viceroy of India is much concerned that there should have been any delay in promptly acceding to Your Highness's request for advice and assistance, as conveyed in Your Highness's letters of the 3rd and 4th instant. It was His Excellency's earnest wish that troops should march on Kabul at once, so as to ensure Your Highness's personal safety and aid Your Highness in restoring peace and order at your capital.

The Viceroy of India is very concerned that there has been any delay in responding quickly to Your Highness's request for advice and assistance, as mentioned in Your Highness's letters from the 3rd and 4th of this month. His Excellency really hoped that troops would move on Kabul right away, to ensure Your Highness's personal safety and help restore peace and order in your capital.

Unfortunately, the want of transport, and the necessity for collecting a certain amount of supplies, have caused a few weeks' delay; it is, however, a source of gratification and happiness to the Viceroy to learn that Your Highness's safety is not at present endangered, and His Excellency trusts Your Highness will be able to keep everything quiet in your kingdom, until such time as British troops may reach Kabul.

Unfortunately, the lack of transportation and the need to gather a certain amount of supplies have caused a few weeks' delay; however, it brings the Viceroy great satisfaction and happiness to learn that Your Highness's safety is currently not at risk, and His Excellency hopes that Your Highness can keep everything calm in your kingdom until British troops arrive in Kabul.

I am glad to be able to inform Your Highness that news reached me yesterday of the departure of a considerable force from Kandahar under the command of a brave and distinguished officer, and that a large body of troops, under command of General Bright, were advancing rapidly from Peshawar to Jalalabad and onwards viâ Gandamak to Kabul. My own force will, I hope, be in a state to march before long. As Your Highness is aware, the Shutargardan has been occupied for some days. Meanwhile regiments of Cavalry and Infantry and batteries of Artillery have reached Kuram to replace those I am taking on with me, and to reinforce my own column should a necessity for more troops arise—a contingency I do not in the least expect.

I’m happy to let Your Highness know that I received news yesterday about a substantial force leaving Kandahar, led by a brave and respected officer. A large group of troops, under General Bright, is quickly moving from Peshawar to Jalalabad and then via Gandamak to Kabul. I hope my own force will be ready to march soon. As Your Highness knows, the Shutargardan has been occupied for several days. In the meantime, regiments of cavalry and infantry, along with artillery batteries, have arrived in Kuram to replace those I'm taking with me and to reinforce my own column if more troops are needed—which I don’t expect at all.

The Viceroy of India, in His Excellency's anxiety for Your Highness's welfare and safety, issued orders that each of the three armies, now advancing from Kandahar, Kuram, and the Khyber, should be strong enough to overcome any opposition Your Highness's enemies could possibly offer. That each is strong enough there can be no doubt.

The Viceroy of India, concerned for Your Highness's welfare and safety, ordered that each of the three armies advancing from Kandahar, Kuram, and the Khyber be powerful enough to handle any resistance Your Highness's enemies might put up. There is no doubt that each is strong enough.

I understand that there is no one at Kelat-i-Ghilzai or Ghazni to stop the progress of the troops en route from Kandahar. There is no reason, therefore, why they should not reach Kabul in a very short time.

I understand that there’s no one at Kelat-i-Ghilzai or Ghazni to halt the advance of the troops en route from Kandahar. There’s no reason, therefore, why they shouldn’t reach Kabul in no time.

The Khyber tribes, having understood and appreciated the Treaty of peace made by Your Highness with the British Government in May last, have unanimously agreed to assist the troops from Peshawar in every way, and are now eager to keep the road through the Khyber safe, and to place all their transport animals at the disposal of the British Commander, who will thus be enabled to concentrate his force rapidly at Kabul. Through the kindness of Your Highness I have experienced much less difficulty than I could have expected, and I may now reasonably hope to be with Your Highness at least as soon as either the Kandahar or Khyber column. I look forward with great pleasure to the meeting with Your Highness,[Page 393] and trust that you will continue your kind assistance to obtain for me supplies and transport.

The Khyber tribes, having recognized and valued the peace treaty made by Your Highness with the British Government last May, have all come together to support the troops from Peshawar in every way possible. They are now eager to keep the road through the Khyber secure and offer all their transport animals to the British Commander, allowing him to quickly gather his forces in Kabul. Thanks to Your Highness's generosity, I've faced much less difficulty than I anticipated, and I can now reasonably expect to be with Your Highness at least as soon as either the Kandahar or Khyber column. I look forward to meeting with Your Highness with great pleasure,[Page 393] and I hope you will continue your kind help in securing supplies and transport for me.

I have carefully considered Your Highness's proposal that you yourself should be permitted to administer just punishment to the mutinous troops and others who shared in the treacherous and cruel attack on the British Envoy and his small escort, and thus save Her Majesty's troops the trouble, hardship, and privation which must necessarily be encountered by an advance on Kabul at this season of the year. I thank Your Highness most cordially, on the part of the Viceroy and Government of India, for this further proof of Your Highness's friendly feelings. Under ordinary circumstances such an offer would be gratefully and willingly accepted, but after what has recently occurred, I feel sure that the great British nation would not rest satisfied unless a British army marched to Kabul and there assisted Your Highness to inflict such punishments as so terrible and dastardly an act deserves.

I have carefully considered Your Highness's suggestion that you take it upon yourself to deliver proper punishment to the rebellious troops and others involved in the brutal attack on the British Envoy and his small escort. This would spare Her Majesty's troops the trouble, hardships, and sufferings that would come with moving on Kabul at this time of year. I sincerely thank Your Highness, on behalf of the Viceroy and the Government of India, for this further demonstration of Your Highness's goodwill. Under normal circumstances, such an offer would be gratefully accepted, but given recent events, I’m certain that the great British nation would not feel satisfied unless a British army marched to Kabul to help Your Highness carry out the punishments that such a horrific and cowardly act warrants.

I have forwarded Your Highness's letters in original to the Viceroy; a copy of this, my reply, will be submitted by to-day's post for His Excellency's consideration. Meanwhile I have permitted Mustaufi Habibulla Khan and Wazir Shah Mahomed to take their leave and rejoin Your Highness.

I have sent Your Highness's original letters to the Viceroy; a copy of my reply will be submitted by today's mail for His Excellency's review. In the meantime, I have allowed Mustaufi Habibulla Khan and Wazir Shah Mahomed to take their leave and return to Your Highness.

Reasons for Remaining a Alikhel I delayed my own departure from Alikhel until a sufficiency of supplies had been collected at Kushi, and everything was ready for as rapid an advance on Kabul as my limited transport would admit of; for, so long as I remained behind, the people of Afghanistan could not be sure of my intentions, and no doubt hoped that the Amir's remonstrances would have the desired effect, and prevent our doing more than occupying the Shutargardan, or making a demonstration toward Kushi. My crossing the pass would, I knew, be the signal for all those determined on opposition to assemble; it was politic, therefore, to remain behind until the last moment.

Reasons to Stay in Alikhel I postponed my own departure from Alikhel until enough supplies were gathered at Kushi, and everything was set for as quick an advance on Kabul as my limited transport would allow; because, as long as I stayed behind, the people of Afghanistan couldn’t be sure of my intentions, and they probably hoped that the Amir's protests would have the intended effect and keep us from doing more than occupying the Shutargardan or making a show toward Kushi. I knew that my crossing the pass would signal all those determined to resist to gather; therefore, it was wise to wait until the last moment.

When all arrangements were complete, so far as was possible with the means at my disposal, I issued the following Field Force Order:

When everything was set up as much as I could manage with the resources I had, I issued the following Field Force Order:

'The Government of India having decided that a force shall proceed with all possible despatch to Kabul, in response to His Highness the Amir's appeal for aid, and with the object of avenging the dastardly murder of the British representative and his escort, Sir Frederick Roberts feels sure that the troops under his command will respond to the call with a determination to prove themselves worthy of the high reputation they have maintained during the recent campaign.

The Government of India has decided to send a force to Kabul as quickly as possible, in response to His Highness the Amir's request for help, and to avenge the brutal murder of the British representative and his escort. Sir Frederick Roberts is confident that the troops under his command will answer the call with a commitment to uphold the strong reputation they have built during the recent campaign.

'The Major-General need address no words of exhortation to soldiers whose courage and fortitude have been so well proved. The Afghan tribes are numerous, but without organization; the regular army is undisciplined, and whatever may be the disparity in numbers, such foes can never be formidable to British troops. The dictates of humanity require that a distinction should be made between the peaceable inhabitants of Afghanistan and the treacherous murderers for whom a just retribution is in store, and Sir Frederick Roberts desires to impress upon all ranks the necessity for treating the unoffending population with justice, forbearance, and clemency.

'The Major-General doesn’t need to say anything to soldiers whose bravery and resilience have already been proven. The Afghan tribes are many, but disorganized; the regular army lacks discipline, and regardless of the numerical disadvantage, these opponents can never be a serious threat to British forces. We must recognize the difference between the peaceful residents of Afghanistan and the deceitful killers who deserve to be punished, and Sir Frederick Roberts wants to stress to everyone the importance of treating the innocent population with fairness, patience, and compassion.'

'The future comfort and well-being of the force depend largely on the friendliness of our relations with the districts from which supplies must be drawn; prompt payment is enjoined for all articles purchased by departments and individuals, and all disputes must be at once referred to a political officer for decision.

'The future comfort and well-being of the team rely heavily on the friendliness of our relationships with the districts from which we get supplies; timely payment is required for all items bought by departments and individuals, and all disputes should be referred immediately to a political officer for resolution.'

'The Major-General confidently looks forward to the successful accomplishment[Page 394] of the object of the expedition, and the establishment of order and a settled Government in Afghanistan.'

'The Major-General confidently anticipates the successful completion[Page 394] of the mission and the creation of order and a stable government in Afghanistan.'






CHAPTER L.

1879

On the 27th September I made over the Kuram command to Brigadier-General T. Gordon, and set out for Kushi, where Baker was now encamped.

On September 27th, I handed over the Kuram command to Brigadier General T. Gordon and headed for Kushi, where Baker was now camped.

Just before I started I had the pleasure of welcoming my old friend and brother officer, Major-General J. Hills, V.C., C.B., who had been with Sir Donald Stewart as Assistant Adjutant-General from the beginning of the campaign, and who had, the moment he heard there was to be an advance on Kabul, come with all speed to place his services at my disposal. Although I had no employment for Hills at the time, there would be plenty for all to do at Kabul, and I was delighted to have so good a soldier with me.

Just before I started, I was happy to welcome my old friend and fellow officer, Major-General J. Hills, V.C., C.B. He had been with Sir Donald Stewart as Assistant Adjutant-General since the beginning of the campaign, and as soon as he learned there was going to be an advance on Kabul, he rushed over to offer his services. Although I didn't have any tasks for Hills at that moment, there would be plenty for everyone to do in Kabul, and I was thrilled to have such a skilled soldier by my side.

My escort consisted of the Head-Quarters of the Cavalry brigade, one squadron 9th Lancers, 5th Punjab Cavalry, and detachments of the 5th and 28th Punjab Infantry. We had only gone about halfway through the pass when I pushed on with the Cavalry, in the hope of reaching the camp on the top before dark, and was very soon met by twenty-five men of the 92nd Highlanders, who brought me a note from Colonel Perkins, R.E., in command on the Shutargardan, warning me that we were sure to be attacked. We had not proceeded far, when at the narrowest part of the defile we found the passage blocked by some 2,000 Afghans, and as we approached a volley was fired from a party concealed by some rocks on our left. I was told afterwards that it was intended for me, but I remained unscathed, and the principal medical officer, Dr. Townsend, who was riding on my right, and to whom I was talking at the moment, was severely wounded. The Highlanders, supported by some dismounted Cavalry, cleared away the enemy to the north, but as they clung to the precipitous hills on the south, we had to wait till the main body of the escort came up, when they were speedily dispersed.

My escort included the headquarters of the Cavalry brigade, one squadron of the 9th Lancers, the 5th Punjab Cavalry, and detachments from the 5th and 28th Punjab Infantry. We had only made it about halfway through the pass when I advanced with the Cavalry, hoping to reach the camp at the top before dark, and I soon encountered twenty-five men from the 92nd Highlanders, who delivered a note from Colonel Perkins, R.E., in charge at Shutargardan, warning me that we were likely to be attacked. We hadn't gone far when, at the narrowest part of the pass, we found the route blocked by about 2,000 Afghans. As we got closer, a volley was fired from a group hidden behind some rocks on our left. I was later told that it was aimed at me, but I came out unharmed, while the chief medical officer, Dr. Townsend, who was riding next to me and to whom I was speaking at that moment, was seriously injured. The Highlanders, backed by some dismounted Cavalry, pushed the enemy away to the north, but since they held onto the steep hills to the south, we had to wait for the main body of the escort to arrive before they were quickly scattered.

Hector MacDonald and Sher Mahomed Meanwhile, a sharp little engagement had taken place further up the gorge, and as we advanced we could see the enemy retiring before a detachment of the 92nd Highlanders, under Colour-Sergeant Hector Macdonald, and of the 3rd Sikhs, under Jemadar Sher Mahomed, a Native of Kabul. The manner in which the Colour-Sergeant and the Native officer handled their men gave me a high opinion of them both.1

Hector MacDonald and Sher Mahomed Meanwhile, a quick little skirmish had occurred further up the gorge, and as we moved forward, we could see the enemy retreating before a unit of the 92nd Highlanders, led by Colour-Sergeant Hector Macdonald, and the 3rd Sikhs, commanded by Jemadar Sher Mahomed, who was from Kabul. The way the Colour-Sergeant and the local officer managed their troops really impressed me with their skills both.1

On the top of the Shutargardan Pass that evening I received the[Page 395] Amir's reply2 to my last letter, in which he expressed his gratitude for the sympathy and support afforded him by the British Government, and informed me that he had given orders to the Governor of Jalalabad that the Khyber column should not meet with any opposition. I was also given a letter from Sirdar Wali Mahomed Khan, and several other Sirdars, professing loyalty to the British Government, and expressing pleasure at my approach. And at the same time the rather embarrassing information reached me that the Amir, desiring personal communication with me, had already arrived in Baker's camp at Kushi, attended by his son Musa Khan, a lad about seven years old, his father-in-law, and the Commander-in-Chief of the Afghan army (Daud Shah), with a suite of 45 members and an escort of 200 men.

On the evening at the top of the Shutargardan Pass, I received the[Page 395] Amir's reply2 to my last letter, where he thanked me for the sympathy and support from the British Government and let me know that he had instructed the Governor of Jalalabad that the Khyber column should face no opposition. I also got a letter from Sirdar Wali Mahomed Khan and several other Sirdars, declaring their loyalty to the British Government and expressing their happiness about my arrival. At the same time, I received the somewhat awkward news that the Amir wanted to speak with me in person and had already arrived at Baker's camp in Kushi, accompanied by his son Musa Khan, a boy around seven years old, his father-in-law, and the Commander-in-Chief of the Afghan army (Daud Shah), along with a party of 45 and an escort of 200 men.

Although I had met with but slight opposition hitherto, it was evident from the secret information I received that the Ghilzais were inclined to be hostile, and intended to oppose us, and as it was important to keep open communication with Alikhel through their country, I arranged for the Shutargardan to be held by a Mountain battery, the 3rd Sikhs, and the 21st Punjab Infantry, under the command of Lieutenant-Colonel G.N. Money, an officer on whose judgment and coolness I knew I could rely.

Although I had faced only minimal resistance so far, it was clear from the confidential information I received that the Ghilzais were likely to be unfriendly and planned to oppose us. Since it was crucial to maintain open communication with Alikhel through their territory, I organized for the Shutargardan to be held by a Mountain battery, the 3rd Sikhs, and the 21st Punjab Infantry, under the command of Lieutenant-Colonel G.N. Money, an officer whose judgment and composure I knew I could trust.

The next morning I rode to Kushi, where my first interview with the Amir of Afghanistan took place.

The next morning, I rode to Kushi for my first interview with the Amir of Afghanistan.

I cannot say that I was favourably impressed by his appearance. He was an insignificant-looking man, about thirty-two years of age, with a receding forehead, a conical-shaped head, and no chin to speak of, and he gave me the idea of being entirely wanting in that force of[Page 396] character without which no one could hope to govern or hold in check the warlike and turbulent people of Afghanistan. He was possessed, moreover, of a very shifty eye, he could not look one straight in the face, and from the first I felt that his appearance tallied exactly with the double-dealing that had been imputed to him. His presence in my camp was a source of the gravest anxiety to me. He was constantly receiving and sending messages, and was no doubt giving his friends at Kabul all the information he could collect as to our resources and intentions. He had, however, come ostensibly as our ally, seeking refuge from his mutinous soldiers, and whatever suspicions I might secretly entertain, I could only treat him as an honoured guest, so long as there was nothing proved against him.

I can't say I was impressed by his appearance. He was an unremarkable-looking man, around thirty-two years old, with a receding hairline, a cone-shaped head, and hardly any chin. He gave me the impression of lacking the strong character necessary to govern or control the fierce and unruly people of Afghanistan. Additionally, he had a very shifty eye; he couldn't look anyone straight in the face, and from the start, I felt his look matched perfectly with the deceitful behavior that had been attributed to him. His presence in my camp was a significant source of concern for me. He was constantly sending and receiving messages, likely passing information to his friends in Kabul about our resources and plans. However, he had come under the pretense of being our ally, seeking refuge from his rebellious soldiers, and despite any doubts I may have had, I could only treat him as an honored guest as long as nothing concrete was proven against him.

My first visit to Yakub Khan was of a formal character. Nevertheless, he seized the opportunity to urge strongly upon me the advisability of delaying my advance, that he might have time, he said, to restore order amongst his troops, and to punish those who had participated in the attack on the Embassy. I replied that my orders were peremptory, and that it was my duty, as it was my determination, to press on to Kabul with all possible speed. Finding that his arguments had no effect, he changed his tactics, and declared that he was much alarmed for the safety of his family, whom he had left in the Bala Hissar; that he had only one regiment on which he could depend; that he feared when the others should hear of our approach they would break out and attack the citadel; and that the innocent people in Kabul, not considering it possible that a British force could get there so quickly, had made no arrangements to convey their families away.

My first visit to Yakub Khan was quite formal. Still, he took the chance to strongly advise me to delay my advance so he could restore order among his troops and punish those involved in the attack on the Embassy. I told him that my orders were strict and that it was my duty, as well as my decision, to proceed to Kabul as quickly as possible. Seeing that his arguments had no effect, he changed his approach and said he was very worried about the safety of his family, who he had left in the Bala Hissar; that he could only rely on one regiment; that he feared the others would hear of our approach and rebel, attacking the citadel; and that the innocent people in Kabul, not believing a British force could arrive so soon, hadn't made any plans to get their families out.

Feeling that anxiety for the safety of the families was not the true cause for the Amir's efforts to delay us, and that his sole object was to gain time for the development of plans for opposing our advance—which subsequent events proved had been made with great care—I told him it was impossible to accede to his wishes, but that time would be given for all women and children to clear out of the city if it should prove necessary to attack it. This necessity, however, I was most anxious to avoid, and earnestly hoped that our fighting would be over before we entered Kabul, for I had not forgotten Delhi, and I dreaded the idea of the troops having to force their way through narrow streets and crowded bazaars.

Feeling that the Amir's concerns for the safety of families weren't the real reason behind his attempts to delay us, and believing his main goal was just to buy time to plan against our advance—which later events showed he had done very carefully—I told him it was impossible to meet his demands. However, I assured him that we would allow enough time for all women and children to leave the city if we needed to attack. Still, I was very eager to avoid that necessity and sincerely hoped that our fighting would be over before we entered Kabul, as I hadn’t forgotten Delhi, and I feared the idea of our troops having to push through narrow streets and crowded markets.

Yakub Khan was evidently much chagrined at my decision. He had left Kabul hurriedly, his movements probably being hastened by hearing that his uncle, Wali Mahomed Khan, and several other Sirdars with whom he was at enmity, were on their way to join me. He had not even brought a tent with him, and, had he succeeded in inducing me to delay our advance, he would without doubt have returned to Kabul at once. As it was, he was accommodated with a tent in the centre of the camp, and the best arrangements possible, under the[Page 397] circumstances, made for his entertainment.

Yakub Khan was clearly very upset about my decision. He had left Kabul in a rush, probably because he heard that his uncle, Wali Mahomed Khan, and several other leaders he was feuding with were on their way to join me. He didn’t even bring a tent with him, and if he had managed to convince me to delay our move, he would have definitely gone back to Kabul immediately. Instead, he was given a tent in the middle of the camp, and the best accommodations possible, given the[Page 397] circumstances, were made for his comfort.

When his own tents arrived, he asked leave to have them pitched outside camp limits. To this I consented, at the same time ordering that a guard of the same strength as my own should be detailed as his escort, ostensibly to do him honour, but in reality that I might be kept informed as to his movements. Unwelcome guest as he was, I thought the least of two evils was to keep him now that we had got him, as his presence in Kabul would be sure to increase the opposition I felt certain we should encounter.

When his tents arrived, he requested permission to set them up outside the camp limits. I agreed, but also ordered that a guard equal in size to my own be assigned as his escort. This was meant to honor him, but really it was to keep me updated on his movements. Even though he was an unwelcome guest, I figured that keeping him close now that we had him was the lesser of two evils, since having him in Kabul would definitely increase the opposition I was sure we would face.

In response to the fears expressed by the Amir as to the safety of the non-combatants, I issued the following Proclamation to the people of Kabul:

In response to the Amir's concerns about the safety of non-combatants, I issued the following Proclamation to the people of Kabul:

A Proclamation and an Order 'Be it known to all that the British Army is advancing on Kabul to take possession of the city. If it be allowed to do so peacefully, well and good; if not, the city will be seized by force. Therefore, all well-disposed persons, who have taken no part in the dastardly murder of the British Envoy, or in the plunder of the Residency, are warned that, if they are unable to prevent resistance being offered to the entrance of the British army, and the authority of His Highness the Amir, they should make immediate arrangements for their own safety, either by coming to the British camp, or by such other measures as may seem fit to them. And as the British Government does not make war on women and children, warning is given that all women and children should be removed from the city beyond the reach of harm. The British Government desires to treat all classes with justice, and to respect their religion, feelings, and customs, while exacting full retribution from offenders. Every effort will, therefore, be made to prevent the innocent suffering with the guilty, but it is necessary that the utmost precaution should be taken against useless opposition.

A Declaration and an Order 'Everyone should know that the British Army is moving towards Kabul to take control of the city. If this can happen peacefully, that’s great; if not, the city will be taken by force. Therefore, all reasonable people who have not been involved in the cowardly murder of the British Envoy or the looting of the Residency are warned that if they cannot prevent resistance to the entry of the British army and the authority of His Highness the Amir, they should take immediate steps for their own safety, whether that means coming to the British camp or any other measures they find appropriate. And since the British Government does not wage war on women and children, it is advised that all women and children should leave the city to avoid any harm. The British Government aims to treat everyone fairly and respect their religion, feelings, and customs while ensuring full punishment for wrongdoers. Therefore, every effort will be made to prevent innocent people from suffering alongside the guilty, but it is crucial to take extreme precautions against unnecessary resistance.'

'After receipt of this Proclamation, therefore, all persons found armed in or about Kabul will be treated as enemies of the British Government; and, further, it must be distinctly understood that, if the entry of the British force is resisted, I cannot hold myself responsible for any accidental injury which may be done to the persons or property of even well-disposed people, who may have neglected this warning.'

'After receiving this Proclamation, all individuals found armed in or around Kabul will be considered enemies of the British Government. Additionally, it must be clearly understood that if the British forces are met with resistance, I cannot be held responsible for any unintentional harm that may occur to the people or property of those who, despite being well-meaning, have disregarded this warning.'

At the same time, the matter having been brought to my notice by Lord Lytton, and bearing in my mind that my father had told me one of the chief causes of the outbreak in Kabul in 1841 was the Afghans' jealousy of their women, and resentment at the European soldiers' intimacy with them, I thought it well to impress upon all the necessity for caution in this respect by publishing the following Order:

At the same time, since Lord Lytton brought this issue to my attention, and remembering that my father mentioned one of the main reasons for the outbreak in Kabul in 1841 was the Afghans' jealousy of their women and their resentment toward the European soldiers' closeness with them, I felt it necessary to emphasize the importance of caution in this matter by publishing the following Order:

'Sir Frederick Roberts desires General officers, and officers commanding corps, to impress upon all officers under their command the necessity for constant vigilance in preventing irregularities likely to arouse the personal jealousies of the people of Kabul, who are, of all races, most susceptible as regards their women.

'Sir Frederick Roberts wants General officers and corps commanders to make sure that all officers under their supervision understand the importance of being constantly vigilant in preventing any irregularities that could provoke personal jealousy among the people of Kabul, who are, more than any other race, particularly sensitive when it comes to their women.'

'The deep-seated animosity of the Afghans towards the English has been mainly ascribed to indiscretions committed during the first occupation of Kabul, and the Major-General trusts that the same excellent discipline so long exhibited by the troops under his command will remove the prejudices[Page 398] of past years, and cause the British name to be as highly respected in Afghanistan as it is throughout the civilized world.3

The long-standing resentment of the Afghans towards the British is largely attributed to the mistakes made during the initial occupation of Kabul. The Major-General hopes that the same outstanding discipline shown by the troops under his command will help dispel the biases of the past and ensure that the British name is as well-respected in Afghanistan as it is in the rest of the civilized world.3

On the 30th September (my forty-seventh birthday), all arrangements which it was possible for me to make having been completed, the Cavalry brigade marched eight miles to Zargunshahr, the first halting-place on the way to Kabul. I accompanied it, for I was informed that Wali Mahomed Khan and the Sirdars had arrived so far, and I could not let them come on to my camp so long as the Amir was still in it. I wished, also, to interview the Logar maliks and ascertain whether I could procure supplies from their valley. There was bread-stuff with the force sufficient for fourteen days, but for the transport of so much grain a large number of animals was required, which could ill be spared, for carriage was so short that I could only move a little more than half the troops at one time, and instead of being able to march direct on Kabul with 6,000 men, a halt would have to be made every other day to admit of the animals going back to bring up the rear brigade, which practically meant my only having at my disposal rather more than half that number at any one time. How fervently I wished that those in authority, who never can see the necessity for maintaining transport in time of peace, could be made to realize the result of their short-sightedness—the danger of having to divide a none too large force in an enemy's country, the consequent risk of failure, the enormous increase of anxiety to the Commander, the delay in achieving the object of the campaign, and the additional labour to all concerned in an undertaking, arduous enough under the most favourable circumstances, in a difficult country, and under a burning eastern sun, even if possessed of good and sufficient transport.

On September 30th (my forty-seventh birthday), after I had completed all possible arrangements, the Cavalry brigade marched eight miles to Zargunshahr, the first stop on the way to Kabul. I joined them because I was told that Wali Mahomed Khan and the Sirdars had gotten this far, and I couldn't let them come to my camp while the Amir was still there. I also wanted to meet with the Logar maliks to see if I could get supplies from their valley. There was enough food with the force for fourteen days, but transporting that much grain required a lot of animals, which were in short supply. I could only move a little over half of the troops at a time, so instead of marching directly to Kabul with 6,000 men, we would have to stop every other day to send the animals back to bring up the rear brigade. Essentially, this meant I would have just over half that number available at any one time. How desperately I wished that those in charge, who never see the need to maintain transport during peacetime, could understand the consequences of their shortsightedness—the danger of having to divide a not-so-large force in enemy territory, the increased risk of failure, the immense anxiety it placed on the Commander, the delay in achieving the campaign's goals, and the extra work for everyone involved in what was already a challenging undertaking, especially in tough terrain and under a scorching eastern sun, even with good and sufficient transport.

Stores had been collected at Kushi partly by means of local carriage, and partly by our own animals doing the journey twice over from Alikhel, a distance of thirty-six miles. So hard pressed was I for transport that I had to make the Cavalry soldiers march on foot and lead their horses laden with grain—an unusual piece of duty, which was, however, performed with the cheerful alacrity which the troops of the Kabul Field Force always displayed.

Stores had been gathered at Kushi partly through local transport and partly by our own animals making the round trip from Alikhel, which was thirty-six miles away. I was so short on transport that I had to make the Cavalry soldiers march on foot while leading their horses loaded with grain—a rare task, but they carried it out with the enthusiastic readiness that the troops of the Kabul Field Force always showed.

The maliks of Logar But all this is a digression. To return to my story. The maliks of Logar, greatly to my relief, agreed to bring a certain amount of supplies; while Wali Mahomed Khan and the other Sirdars were full of protestations of loyalty and devotion. Most of them remained with me all the time I was in Kabul, and some of them afforded me considerable assistance. The Sirdars warned me to place no trust in the Amir, and enlarged on the treachery of his conduct, but as I knew[Page 399] they looked upon Yakub Khan as their own deadly enemy, I accepted their counsel with some reservation. I was not, however, able to feel quite at ease about the proceedings of my Royal guest, so I returned to Kushi that same evening.

The chieftains of Logar But all this is a sidetrack. Back to my story. The maliks of Logar, much to my relief, agreed to provide a certain amount of supplies; while Wali Mahomed Khan and the other Sirdars were full of assurances of loyalty and devotion. Most of them stayed with me during my time in Kabul, and some offered me significant help. The Sirdars warned me not to trust the Amir and elaborated on his treacherous behavior, but since I knew they viewed Yakub Khan as their own bitter enemy, I took their advice with some caution. Nevertheless, I wasn't completely at ease about the actions of my Royal guest, so I went back to Kushi that same evening.

On the 1st October the whole of the Kabul Field Force was assembled in the Logar valley.4

On October 1st, the entire Kabul Field Force gathered in the Logar valley.4

I waited at Kushi with the last of the Infantry until the morning of the 2nd. Just as I was leaving camp, I became aware that firing was going on in the direction of the Shutargardan, and later in the day I received a report from Colonel Money as to what had happened there.

I waited at Kushi with the last of the Infantry until the morning of the 2nd. Just as I was about to leave camp, I noticed that shots were being fired in the direction of the Shutargardan, and later in the day I got a report from Colonel Money about what had happened there.

Attack on the Shutargardan The enemy, emboldened by the diminished numbers of the garrison, and undervaluing what might be accomplished by a small number of good soldiers, had assembled in force, and occupied the crest of the mountain, the only place from which heliographic communication with me could be kept up. Money very properly decided that this could not be permitted, and considered it best to take the initiative before the enemy should become still stronger, so ordered an advance. Under cover of the Mountain battery's fire, Major Griffiths, of the 3rd Sikhs, with 200 of his own men and 50 of the 21st Punjab Infantry, supported by 150 rifles of the latter corps, stormed the Afghans' position. The assault, delivered in a most spirited manner, was perfectly successful.

Attack on the Shutargardan The enemy, encouraged by the reduced size of the garrison and underestimating what a small group of skilled soldiers could achieve, gathered in strength and took control of the mountain's peak, the only spot that allowed for communication with me via heliograph. Money rightly decided that this couldn't be allowed and thought it was best to take action before the enemy grew even stronger, so he ordered an advance. Under the cover of the Mountain battery's fire, Major Griffiths from the 3rd Sikhs, with 200 of his own troops and 50 from the 21st Punjab Infantry, backed by 150 rifles from the latter corps, charged the Afghan position. The assault, carried out with great enthusiasm, was completely successful.

Major Griffiths, however, was wounded, also a signalling sergeant of [Page 400] the 67th Foot and five men of the 3rd Sikhs, while the enemy left thirty dead on the ground, and were pursued down the slope of the hill without making any attempt to rally.

Major Griffiths was injured, along with a signaling sergeant from [Page 400] the 67th Foot and five men from the 3rd Sikhs. Meanwhile, the enemy left thirty dead behind and were chased down the slope of the hill without trying to regroup.

On the 3rd we marched fifteen miles to Zahidabad, where we first came in sight of the fortified hill above Kabul. The rear guard was fired into on the way, and we had considerable difficulty in crossing the Logar river, as the water from a large irrigation cut had been directed back into the stream just above the ford. Our only casualty on this day was Captain 'Dick' Kennedy, who was wounded in the hand.

On the 3rd, we marched fifteen miles to Zahidabad, where we first saw the fortified hill above Kabul. The rear guard was shot at along the way, and we had significant trouble crossing the Logar River, as water from a large irrigation ditch had been redirected into the stream just above the crossing. Our only casualty that day was Captain 'Dick' Kennedy, who was injured in the hand.

It was plain from these occurrences, and from the attack on the Shutargardan, that the people generally were not disposed to be friendly. From the Amir I could extract no information on this head, although he must have been fully aware of the feelings and intentions of his subjects. He was in constant communication with Kabul, and was frequently being met by mounted messengers, who, from the haste with which they travelled, as evidenced by the exhausted state of their horses and the eagerness with which the Amir read the letters they brought, appeared to be the bearers of important tidings.

It was clear from these events, and from the attack on the Shutargardan, that the people overall were not inclined to be friendly. I couldn't get any information from the Amir about this, even though he must have known how his subjects felt and what they intended. He was in constant contact with Kabul and often met by mounted messengers, who, judging by how quickly they traveled—as shown by their tired horses and the urgency with which the Amir read the letters they brought—seemed to be delivering important news.

It may be imagined how irritating and embarrassing was Yakub Khan's presence, since his position in my camp enabled him to give the leaders at Kabul accurate information as to our numbers and movements. That he felt pretty sure of our discomfiture was apparent from his change of manner, which, from being at first a mixture of extreme cordiality and cringing servility, became as we neared Kabul distant, and even haughty.

It’s easy to see how annoying and embarrassing Yakub Khan’s presence was, since being in my camp allowed him to provide the leaders in Kabul with accurate details about our numbers and movements. It was clear that he was quite confident we would be defeated, as his demeanor changed from initially being overly friendly and submissive to becoming distant and even arrogant as we got closer to Kabul.

On the 5th October, one month from the receipt at Simla of the evil tidings of the fate of the British Embassy, we reached the pretty little village of Charasia, nestling in orchards and gardens, with a rugged range of hills towering above it about a mile away. This range descended abruptly on the right to permit the exit of the Logar river, and rose again on its other side in precipitous cliffs, forming a fine gorge5 about halfway between our camp and Kabul city, now only from ten to twelve miles distant.

On October 5th, a month after we received the terrible news about the British Embassy in Simla, we arrived at the charming little village of Charasia, surrounded by orchards and gardens, with a rugged mountain range rising about a mile away. This range dropped steeply on the right to allow the Logar River to flow out, and it rose again on the other side in dramatic cliffs, creating a beautiful gorge5 about halfway between our camp and Kabul city, which was now only ten to twelve miles away.

An uncle of the Amir (Sirdar Nek Mahomed Khan), and a General in the Afghan army, came out to meet Yakub Khan at this place; he remained some time in earnest conversation with his nephew, and, as he was about to remount his horse, called out in so loud a tone that it was evidently meant for us all to hear, that he was 'now going to disperse the troops.'6 Very different, however, was the story brought to me by an escaped Native servant of Cavagnari's, who came into[Page 401] our camp later in the day. This man declared that preparations for fighting were steadily being carried on; that the soldiers and townspeople were streaming into the arsenal and supplying themselves with cartridges; that large bodies of troops were moving out in our direction; and that, when we advanced next day, we should certainly be opposed by a formidable force. The Amir, on having this intelligence communicated to him, pretended to disbelieve it utterly, and assured me that all was at peace in the city, that Nek Mahomed would keep the troops quiet, and that I should have no trouble; but I was not taken in by his specious assurances.

An uncle of the Amir (Sirdar Nek Mahomed Khan), who was a General in the Afghan army, came out to meet Yakub Khan at this place. He had a serious conversation with his nephew for a while, and as he was about to get back on his horse, he shouted loudly enough for all of us to hear that he was "now going to disperse the troops." However, the escaped Native servant of Cavagnari's, who arrived in our camp later that day, told me a very different story. This man said that preparations for battle were ongoing, that soldiers and townspeople were flocking to the arsenal to get cartridges, that large groups of troops were moving toward us, and that when we advanced the next day, we would definitely face a strong force. When the Amir heard this information, he pretended to disbelieve it completely. He assured me that everything was peaceful in the city, that Nek Mahomed would keep the troops calm, and that I wouldn't have any trouble; but I wasn’t fooled by his misleading reassurances.

Reconnoitring Roads leading to Kabul Now more than ever I felt the want of sufficient transport! Had it been possible to have the whole of my force with me, I should have advanced at once, and have occupied that evening the range of hills I have described; but Macpherson's brigade was still a march behind, and all I could do was, immediately on arrival, to send back every available transport animal to bring it up. I pushed forward Cavalry patrols along the three roads leading to Kabul, and rode out myself to reconnoitre the position in front. It was sufficiently strong to make me wish I had a larger force. Towards evening groups of men appeared on the skyline all round, giving unmistakable warning that the tribes were gathering in large numbers.

Scouting Routes to Kabul Now more than ever, I felt the need for enough transport! If I could have had my entire force with me, I would have moved forward right away and taken over the hills I mentioned earlier that evening; but Macpherson's brigade was still a march behind, so all I could do was immediately send back every available transport animal to bring it up. I sent Cavalry patrols forward along the three roads leading to Kabul and went out myself to scout the position ahead. It was strong enough to make me wish I had a larger force. Towards evening, groups of men showed up on the skyline all around, clearly indicating that the tribes were gathering in large numbers.

From the information brought me by the Cavalry, and from my own examination of the ground, I decided to advance along the left bank of the river: and to facilitate this movement I determined to seize the heights on either side of the gorge at daybreak, whether Macpherson's brigade had arrived or not. That night strong piquets were thrown out round the camp, and Cavalry patrols were ordered to proceed at dawn to feel for the enemy. L'homme propose, mais Dieu dispose.

From the information provided by the Cavalry and my own assessment of the area, I decided to move along the left bank of the river. To support this movement, I planned to take control of the high ground on both sides of the gorge at dawn, regardless of whether Macpherson's brigade had arrived. That night, we set up strong pickets around the camp, and Cavalry patrols were instructed to head out at dawn to scout for the enemy. L'homme propose, mais Dieu dispose.






CHAPTER LI.

1879


The Afghan Position
The Cavalry having reported that the road through the sang-i-nawishta gorge was impassable, I started off a party1 before it was fully light on the 6th, to work at it and make it practicable for guns. I was preparing to follow with an escort of Cavalry to examine the pass and the ground beyond, when the growing daylight discovered large numbers of Afghan troops in regular formation crowning the hills that I ought to have been in a position to occupy the preceding evening. No hurry, no confusion was apparent in their movements; positions were taken up and guns placed with such coolness and deliberation that it was evident regularly trained troops were employed. Very soon I received reports of our Cavalry patrols having been fired upon, and of their having been obliged to retire.

The Afghan Situation The Cavalry reported that the road through the sang-i-nawishta gorge was impassable, so I set off a party1 before it was fully light on the 6th to work on it and make it passable for the guns. I was getting ready to follow with a Cavalry escort to check the pass and the area beyond when the growing daylight revealed large numbers of Afghan troops in formation on the hills that I should have occupied the night before. There was no rush or confusion in their movements; they took up positions and placed their guns with such calm and carefulness that it was clear they were regularly trained troops. Soon after, I received reports that our Cavalry patrols had come under fire and had to fall back.

Immediate action was imperatively necessary; the Afghans had to be dislodged from their strong position at any cost, or we should have been surrounded by overwhelming numbers. Their occupation of the heights was, I felt, a warning that must not be disregarded, and a menace that could not be brooked.

Immediate action was absolutely necessary; we had to force the Afghans out of their stronghold at all costs, or we would be overwhelmed by their numbers. Their control of the heights, I believed, was a warning that we couldn't ignore, and a threat that we couldn't tolerate.

Behind this range of hills lay the densely-crowded city of Kabul, with the scarcely less crowded suburbs of Chardeh, Deh-i-Afghan, and numberless villages thickly studded over the Kabul valley, all of which were contributing their quota of warriors to assist the Regular troops in disputing the advance of the British. It did not require much experience of Asiatics to understand that, if the enemy were allowed to remain undisturbed for a single night in the position they had taken up, their numbers would increase to an extraordinary extent.

Behind this range of hills was the crowded city of Kabul, with the almost as densely populated suburbs of Chardeh, Deh-i-Afghan, and countless villages scattered throughout the Kabul valley, all of which were sending their share of fighters to help the Regular troops resist the British advance. It didn’t take much experience with Asians to realize that if the enemy were allowed to stay undisturbed for even one night in the position they had occupied, their numbers would grow dramatically.

I now received a report from the rear that the road was blocked, and that the progress of Macpherson's brigade would certainly be opposed; while, on the crests of the hills to the right and left of my camp, bodies of men began to assemble, who, I surmised (which surmise I afterwards learnt was correct), were only waiting for the sun to go down to make a general attack upon the camp under cover of dusk.

I just got a report from the back that the road was blocked, and that Macpherson's brigade would definitely face resistance. Meanwhile, on the hills to the right and left of my camp, groups of men started to gather. I guessed (and later confirmed) that they were just waiting for sunset to launch a full attack on the camp under the cover of darkness.

The situation was one of great anxiety. The whole force with me was not more than 4,000 men and eighteen guns. The treacherous Amir and his equally treacherous Ministers had, of course, kept the Afghan Commander fully informed as to the manner in which my troops were perforce divided; the position of every man and every gun with me was known; and I feared that, as soon as we were engaged with the enemy, the opportunity would be taken to attack my weakly-defended[Page 403] camp and to engage Macpherson's small brigade, encumbered as it was with its large convoy of stores and ammunition.

The situation was incredibly tense. The entire force with me consisted of no more than 4,000 soldiers and eighteen cannons. The deceitful Amir and his equally deceitful Ministers had, of course, kept the Afghan Commander fully updated on how my troops were necessarily split up; the location of every soldier and every cannon with me was known; and I was worried that, as soon as we were in a fight with the enemy, they would seize the chance to attack my poorly defended[Page 403] camp and target Macpherson's small brigade, which was burdened with a large convoy of supplies and ammunition.

The numbers of the enemy were momentarily increasing, so delay would assuredly make matters worse; the only chance of success, therefore, was to take the initiative, and attack the Afghan main position at once. Accordingly, I sent an officer with orders to the troops who were moving towards the gorge not to commence work, but to take up a defensive position until my plans were further developed. I sent another messenger to Macpherson, informing him of my intention to take immediate action, and telling him to keep a good look-out, and push on to Charasia with all possible speed, and at the same time I reinforced him by a squadron of Cavalry.

The enemy's numbers were quickly increasing, so any delay would definitely make things worse; the only chance for success was to take the initiative and attack the main Afghan position right away. So, I sent an officer with orders to the troops heading toward the gorge not to start working but to take up a defensive position until I had more developed plans. I sent another message to Macpherson, letting him know I intended to take immediate action and telling him to stay alert and move to Charasia as quickly as possible, while also reinforcing him with a squadron of cavalry.

The Afghan position formed the arc of a circle, extending from the sang-i-nawishta gorge to the heights above Chardeh. Both sides of the gorge were occupied by the enemy, as was a semi-detached hill to the south of it, and sixteen guns were observed in position. The line they had taken up occupied nearly three miles of country; and their main position was the ridge, which, close to the gorge, rose 1,000 feet above the plain, running up at its western extremity to a peak 2,200 feet high. Thence the line stretched along the edge of some lower heights to a rugged hill, the summit of which was about 1,800 feet above Charasia. In front of this formidable position were a succession of sandy hills, forming a series of easily defensible posts, and at the foot of these hills ran a bare stony belt, sloping down to the cultivated land surrounding Charasia and the hamlet of Khairabad.

The Afghan position formed a circular shape, stretching from the sang-i-nawishta gorge to the heights above Chardeh. The enemy occupied both sides of the gorge, as well as a semi-detached hill to the south, and sixteen guns were in place. Their line extended over nearly three miles of terrain, with their main stronghold being the ridge that rose 1,000 feet above the plain near the gorge, peaking at 2,200 feet on its western end. From there, the line continued along the edge of some lower heights to a rugged hill, whose summit was about 1,800 feet above Charasia. In front of this strong position were a series of sandy hills that created easily defensible posts, and at the base of these hills was a bare, stony belt that sloped down to the cultivated land around Charasia and the village of Khairabad.

My movements and reconnaissances up till now having led the enemy to believe that I intended to deliver my attack on their left at the sang-i-nawishta, they were seen to be concentrating their forces in that direction. But this position could only have been carried with such damaging loss to us that I determined to make the real attack by an outflanking movement to their right.

My movements and scouting up to this point made the enemy think I was planning to attack their left at the sang-i-nawishta, so they focused their forces that way. However, taking that position would have resulted in significant losses for us, so I decided to actually launch the main attack by flanking their right.

The men having made a hasty breakfast, I despatched General Baker in this direction, and placing at his disposal the troops noted below,2 I entrusted to him the difficult task of dislodging the enemy, while I continued to distract their attention towards the gorge by making a feint to their left.

The men quickly had breakfast, and I sent General Baker in this direction, giving him the troops mentioned below,2. I assigned him the challenging task of driving the enemy away while I kept their attention focused on the gorge by making a fake move to their left.

Baker's little column assembled in a wooded enclosure close to Charasia, where he left his field hospital and reserve ammunition, for the safe guarding of which I sent him the 5th Punjab Infantry, while he was further reinforced by 450 men of the 23rd Pioneers and three Field Artillery guns. I was thus left with only six Horse Artillery guns, 450 Cavalry, and between 600 and 700 Infantry for the[Page 404] protection of the camp, where I was still handicapped by the presence of the Amir and his untrustworthy following.

Baker's small group set up in a wooded area near Charasia, where he left his field hospital and reserve ammunition. I sent him the 5th Punjab Infantry to help protect it, and he was also supported by 450 men from the 23rd Pioneers and three Field Artillery guns. This left me with just six Horse Artillery guns, 450 Cavalry, and between 600 and 700 Infantry for the[Page 404] defense of the camp, where I was still dealing with the complications of the Amir and his unreliable followers.

While Baker advanced to the left, the party near the sang-i-nawishta gorge, commanded by Major White, of the 92nd Highlanders, was ordered to threaten the pass and to prevent the enemy occupying any portion of the Charasia village, to advance within Artillery range of the enemy's main position above the gorge, and when the outflanking movement had been thoroughly developed and the enemy were in full retreat, but not before, to push the Cavalry through the gorge and pursue.

While Baker moved to the left, the group near the sang-i-nawishta gorge, led by Major White of the 92nd Highlanders, was instructed to threaten the pass and stop the enemy from taking any part of Charasia village. They were to advance within artillery range of the enemy's main position above the gorge, and only after the outflanking maneuver had been fully executed and the enemy was in full retreat, were they to send the cavalry through the gorge to pursue.

At about 11.30 a.m. Baker's leading troops emerged into the open, and were immediately engaged with a crowd of armed Afghans, supported by a considerable body of Regular troops. The General now sent one company of the 72nd, under Captain Hunt, to turn the Afghans off a succession of peaks situated at right angles to the ridge they were occupying on their extreme right. Running along this ridge, and stretching across the Indiki road to the sandhills, the Afghan right wing held a line considerably in advance of their left on the hill above the sang-i-nawishta gorge, and one which could not easily be turned, for the peaks the 72nd were sent to occupy were almost inaccessible, and the fire from them swept the slopes up which our troops must advance. These peaks, therefore, formed the key of the position, and their defenders had to be dislodged from them at all hazards before anything else could be attempted. The company of the 72nd with much difficulty fought their way up, and gained a footing on the first peak, where they were obliged to pause, until reinforced by two companies of the 5th Gurkhas under Captain Cook, V.C., when they advanced all together, clearing the enemy from each successive point, while the remainder of the 72nd breasted the hill, and, under cover of the Mountain guns, attacked the position in front. But the enemy were obstinate, and the extremely difficult nature of the ground somewhat checked the gallant Highlanders. Seeing their dilemma, Baker despatched two companies of the 5th Gurkhas, under Lieutenant-Colonel Fitz-Hugh, and 200 men of the 5th Punjab Infantry, under Captain Hall, to their assistance; while the 23rd Pioneers were brought up on the right, in support, and a detachment of the 5th Punjab Infantry echeloned in rear, on the left of the line.

At around 11:30 a.m., Baker's leading troops came out into the open and quickly engaged with a group of armed Afghans, backed by a significant force of regular troops. The General then sent one company of the 72nd, led by Captain Hunt, to push the Afghans off a series of peaks that were at right angles to the ridge they occupied on their far right. This ridge stretched along the Indiki road to the sandhills, and the Afghan right wing held a line far ahead of their left on the hill above the sang-i-nawishta gorge, which was difficult to flank because the peaks the 72nd were supposed to take were nearly inaccessible. The fire from these peaks targeted the slopes that our troops needed to advance up. Therefore, taking these peaks was crucial, and their defenders had to be removed at all costs before proceeding with anything else. The company of the 72nd struggled but fought their way up and secured a position on the first peak, where they had to wait until reinforced by two companies of the 5th Gurkhas under Captain Cook, V.C. They then advanced together, clearing the enemy from each point in succession while the rest of the 72nd climbed the hill and, under cover from the mountain guns, attacked the enemy's position directly. However, the enemy put up fierce resistance, and the very tough terrain slowed the brave Highlanders down. Recognizing their predicament, Baker sent two companies of the 5th Gurkhas, led by Lieutenant-Colonel Fitz-Hugh, and 200 soldiers from the 5th Punjab Infantry, led by Captain Hall, to help them out. Meanwhile, the 23rd Pioneers were moved up on the right for support, and a detachment of the 5th Punjab Infantry was positioned in the rear, on the left side of the line.

The engagement now became hot, and the firing fast and furious. My readers will, I am sure, be able to realize with what intense excitement and anxiety I watched the proceedings. It was evident to me that little progress could be made so long as the enemy retained possession of the ridge, which the Afghan Commander apparently had just begun to appreciate was the real point of attack, for his troops could now be seen hurrying to this point, and it became more urgently necessary than ever to carry the position before it could be reinforced.[Page 405] At 2 p.m. it was seized; the Highlanders and Gurkhas could no longer be resisted; the Afghans wavered, and then began to retreat, exposed to a cross-fire that effectually prevented their rallying.

The battle heated up, with gunfire coming fast and furious. I’m sure my readers can imagine the intense excitement and anxiety I felt as I watched everything unfold. It was clear to me that we wouldn’t make much progress as long as the enemy held the ridge, which the Afghan Commander seemed to finally realize was the main target. I could see his troops rushing to this location, making it more urgent than ever to take the position before they could reinforce it.[Page 405] At 2 p.m., we took it; the Highlanders and Gurkhas were unstoppable. The Afghans faltered and then started to retreat, caught in a cross-fire that effectively stopped them from regrouping.

The brunt of this affair was borne by the 72nd, admirably led by their company officers, under the skilful direction of Lieutenant-Colonel Clarke and his Adjutant, Lieutenant Murray. I closely watched their movements, and particularly observed one man pushing up the precipitous hillside considerably in advance of everyone else, and apparently utterly regardless of the shower of bullets falling round him. I inquired about him later on, and found that he was a young Irish private of the 72nd, named MacMahon, to whose coolness and daring was in a great measure due the capture of this very strong post. Her Majesty, I am glad to be able to relate, subsequently rewarded this intrepid soldier by bestowing on him the Victoria Cross.

The main burden of this situation was carried by the

Highlanders, Gurkhas, and Punjabis The general advance was now sounded, and gallantly was it responded to. The main position was stormed by the Highlanders, Gurkhas, and Punjab Infantry, each trying hard to be the first to close with its defenders. The enemy fought desperately, charging down on the Gurkhas, by whom, under the leadership of Lieutenant-Colonel Fitz-Hugh and his Adjutant, Lieutenant Martin, they were repulsed and driven over the crest with heavy loss.

Highlanders, Gurkhas, and Punjabis The general advance was now announced, and it was met with courageous response. The main position was attacked by the Highlanders, Gurkhas, and Punjab Infantry, all eager to be the first to confront its defenders. The enemy fought fiercely, charging at the Gurkhas, who, led by Lieutenant-Colonel Fitz-Hugh and his Adjutant, Lieutenant Martin, pushed them back and drove them over the ridge with heavy losses.

The Afghans now took up a position some 600 yards in the rear of that from which they had just been dislodged, where they made an obstinate stand for half an hour, but they were again forced back on the attacking party being strengthened by the arrival of two companies of the 92nd Highlanders, sent to their assistance by Major White, who had already successfully engaged the Afghan left above the sang-i-nawishta gorge. As the enemy's advanced posts on the hill to the south, and directly in front of the gorge, prevented our guns from coming within range of their position on the heights above, these posts had to be disposed of as a preliminary to effective co-operation with Baker; accordingly, about noon the hill was captured by two companies of the 92nd, under Captain Cotton, and half a battery of Field Artillery was advanced to a point whence Major Parry was able to engage the Afghan guns posted above the gorge.

The Afghans took a position about 600 yards behind where they had just been pushed back, making a stubborn stand for half an hour. However, they were forced back again as they faced stronger opposition from the attacking forces, bolstered by the arrival of two companies of the 92nd Highlanders, sent to help by Major White, who had already successfully engaged the Afghan left above the sang-i-nawishta gorge. Because the enemy's forward posts on the hill to the south, directly in front of the gorge, kept our guns from reaching their position on the heights above, those posts had to be dealt with before we could effectively cooperate with Baker. So, around noon, two companies of the 92nd, under Captain Cotton, captured the hill, and half a battery of Field Artillery was moved up to a point where Major Parry could engage the Afghan guns positioned above the gorge.

It was at this juncture, when Baker's troops, having carried the main position, were proceeding to attack that to which the enemy had retreated, that White despatched two companies of the 92nd, under Captain Oxley, by whose timely aid the determined foe were at length driven from this point of vantage also. The troops followed up their success and advanced at the double, while our guns shelled the shaken masses.

It was at this point, when Baker's troops, having taken the main position, were moving to attack the enemy's retreating forces, that White sent two companies of the 92nd, led by Captain Oxley. With their timely support, the determined enemy was finally pushed back from this stronghold as well. The troops pressed on with their success and advanced quickly, while our artillery bombarded the disoriented masses.

Defeat of the Afghans The Afghan right and centre now gave way completely; the enemy broke, and fled down the slopes on the further side in a[Page 406] north-westerly direction, eventually taking refuge in the Chardeh villages.

Afghan defeat The Afghan right and center completely gave way; the enemy broke and fled down the slopes on the other side in a[Page 406] north-west direction, eventually taking refuge in the Chardeh villages.

By 3.45 we were in possession of the whole of the main ridge. The first objective having been thus gained, the troops, pivoting on their right, brought round their left and advanced against the now exposed flanks of the enemy's left wing, and simultaneously with this movement White advanced from his position by the hill in front of the gorge, and a little after four o'clock had gained possession of the pass and twelve Afghan guns.

By 3:45, we had taken control of the entire main ridge. With the first goal achieved, the troops turned on their right, brought their left around, and moved against the now vulnerable sides of the enemy's left flank. At the same time, White moved from his position by the hill in front of the gorge and, shortly after four o'clock, secured the pass along with twelve Afghan guns.

Completely outflanked and enfiladed by Baker's fire, the left wing of the Afghan force made but little resistance; they rapidly abandoned the height, and retired across the river toward the north-east, pursued by the small body of Cavalry attached to White's force, under Major Hammond, and a party of the 92nd, under Major Hay.

Completely outflanked and attacked from the side by Baker's fire, the left wing of the Afghan force offered little resistance; they quickly left the high ground and retreated across the river to the northeast, chased by a small group of cavalry from White's force, led by Major Hammond, and a team from the 92nd, under Major Hay.

Baker now paused to allow of the Infantry's ammunition being replenished, and then advanced along the ridge towards the pass, which he reached in time to help the Cavalry who were engaged with the enemy's rear guard at the river; the latter were driven off and forced to retreat; but by this time the growing darkness made further pursuit impossible. We were therefore compelled to rest satisfied with holding the ground in advance by piquets and occupying both ends of the sang-i-nawishta defile, where the troops bivouacked for the night. I was able to supply them with food from Charasia, and they were made as comfortable as they could be under the circumstances.

Baker paused to let the Infantry restock their ammunition, then moved along the ridge toward the pass, arriving just in time to assist the Cavalry, who were in a skirmish with the enemy's rear guard by the river. The enemy was pushed back and forced to retreat; however, by then, the increasing darkness made any further pursuit impossible. Therefore, we had to settle for securing the area ahead with pickets and occupying both ends of the sang-i-nawishta defile, where the troops camped for the night. I was able to provide them with food from Charasia, ensuring they were as comfortable as possible given the circumstances.

While the fighting was taking place on the heights in front of Charasia, the hills on both flanks of my camp were crowded with the enemy, anxiously watching the result; they did not approach within the Cavalry patrols, but one party caused so much annoyance to a picquet by firing into it that it became necessary to dislodge it, a service which was performed in a very daring manner by a few of the 92nd, under Lieutenant Grant and Colour-Sergeant Hector Macdonald, the same non-commissioned officer who had a few days before so distinguished himself in the Hazardarakht defile.

While the fighting was happening on the heights in front of Charasia, the hills on both sides of my camp were filled with the enemy, nervously watching the outcome; they didn’t get close to the Cavalry patrols, but one group created so much trouble for a picket by shooting at it that we had to drive them away. This was done in a very bold way by a few members of the 92nd, led by Lieutenant Grant and Colour-Sergeant Hector Macdonald, the same non-commissioned officer who had distinguished himself just a few days earlier in the Hazardarakht defile.

Our casualties were wonderfully few, only 18 killed and 70 wounded,3 while the enemy left 300 dead behind them, and as they succeeded in carrying numbers of their killed and wounded off the field, their loss must have been heavy. I subsequently ascertained that we had opposed to us, besides thirteen Regular regiments, between eight and[Page 407] ten thousand Afghans. Ghilzais from Tezin and Hisarak had hurried up in large numbers to join the enemy, but, luckily for us, arrived too late. Of these some returned to their homes when they found the Afghan army had been beaten, but the greater number waited about Kabul to assist in any further stand that might be made by the Regular troops.

Our casualties were impressively low, with only 18 killed and 70 wounded, while the enemy left behind 300 dead. Since they managed to carry some of their killed and wounded off the field, their losses must have been significant. I later found out that we faced not only thirteen Regular regiments but also between eight and [Page 407] ten thousand Afghans. Ghilzais from Tezin and Hisarak rushed in large numbers to join the enemy, but fortunately for us, they arrived too late. Some of them went back home when they realized the Afghan army had been defeated, but most stayed around Kabul to help if the Regular troops made any further attempts to stand their ground.

The heliograph, worked by Captain Stratton, of the 22nd Foot, had been of the greatest use during the day, and kept me fully informed of all details. The last message as the sun was sinking behind the hills, confirming my own observations, was a most satisfactory one, to the effect that the whole of the enemy's position was in our possession, and that our victory was complete.

The heliograph, operated by Captain Stratton of the 22nd Foot, had been extremely helpful throughout the day and kept me updated on all the details. The last message as the sun was setting behind the hills confirmed what I had observed, and it was very satisfying to know that we had taken control of the entire enemy position and that our victory was complete.

Throughout the day my friend (!) the Amir, surrounded by his Sirdars, remained seated on a knoll in the centre of the camp watching the progress of the fight with intense eagerness, and questioning everyone who appeared as to his interpretation of what he had observed. So soon as I felt absolutely assured of our victory, I sent an Aide-de-camp to His Highness to convey the joyful intelligence of our success. It was, without doubt, a trying moment for him, and a terrible disappointment after the plans which I subsequently ascertained he and his adherents at Kabul had carefully laid for our annihilation. But he received the news with Asiatic calmness, and without the smallest sign of mortification, merely requesting my Aide-de-camp to assure me that, as my enemies were his enemies, he rejoiced at my victory.

Throughout the day, my friend the Amir, surrounded by his Sirdars, stayed seated on a hill in the center of the camp, watching the fight unfold with keen interest and asking everyone who came by for their take on what they saw. Once I was completely sure of our victory, I sent an Aide-de-camp to His Highness to share the good news of our success. It was undoubtedly a tough moment for him, a huge disappointment after the plans that I later discovered he and his supporters in Kabul had carefully made for our destruction. But he took the news with an Asian calmness, showing no signs of disappointment, simply asking my Aide-de-camp to assure me that, since my enemies were also his enemies, he was happy about my victory.

Macpherson's brigade, with its impedimenta, arrived before it was quite dark, so altogether I had reason to feel satisfied with the day's results. But the fact still remained that not more than twelve miles beyond stood the city of Kabul, with its armed thousands ready to oppose us should an assault prove necessary. I had besides received information of a further gathering of Ghilzais bent upon another attack on the Shutargardan, and that reinforcements of Regular troops and guns were hastening to Kabul from Ghazni. Prompt action was the one and only means of meeting these threatened difficulties. My troops had had more than enough for one day, and required rest, but needs must when the devil (in the shape of Afghan hordes) drives. I resolved to push on, and issued orders for tents to be struck at once and an advance to be made at break of day.

Macpherson's brigade, along with its supplies, arrived just before it got completely dark, so overall I felt good about the day's outcomes. However, the fact remained that the city of Kabul was only about twelve miles ahead, with thousands of armed soldiers ready to fight us if we needed to attack. I also received word that more Ghilzais were gathering to launch another assault on the Shutargardan and that reinforcements of regular troops and artillery were rushing to Kabul from Ghazni. Taking quick action was the only way to handle these looming challenges. My troops had already done enough for one day and needed rest, but sometimes you have to act when the situation demands it (especially with the Afghan hordes coming). I decided to move forward and gave orders for the tents to be taken down immediately and for us to advance at dawn.

At the first streak of dawn on the 7th I started, leaving Macpherson to come on with the heavy baggage as quickly as he could. I marched by the sang-i-nawishta defile, where Major White met me and explained to me his part in the victory of the previous day. From my inspection of the ground, I had no difficulty in coming to the conclusion that much of the success which attended the operations on this side was due to White's military instincts and, at one supreme moment, his extreme personal gallantry. It afforded me, therefore, very great[Page 408] pleasure to recommend this officer for the Victoria Cross, an honour of which more than one incident in his subsequent career proved him to be well worthy.

At the first light of dawn on the 7th, I set off, leaving Macpherson to bring along the heavy baggage as fast as he could. I marched by the sang-i-nawishta defile, where Major White joined me and explained his role in the victory from the day before. From my assessment of the area, I quickly realized that a lot of the success of the operations on this side was due to White's military instincts and, at one crucial moment, his incredible personal bravery. Therefore, it gave me great[Page 408] pleasure to recommend this officer for the Victoria Cross, an honor that several incidents in his later career showed he truly deserved.

Kabul in Sight Our rapid advance, following on the defeat of the previous day, had the effect I hoped it would have. On arriving at Beni Hissar, a considerable village, surrounded by orchards and gardens, only two miles south of the far-famed citadel of the Bala Hissar, I sent out Cavalry patrols to reconnoitre, who brought me the pleasing news that the Bala Hissar had been evacuated, and the only part of the city visible seemed to be deserted.

Kabul in View Our quick progress, after the victory of the day before, had the impact I expected. When we reached Beni Hissar, a sizable village surrounded by orchards and gardens, just two miles south of the famous Bala Hissar citadel, I dispatched Cavalry patrols to scout the area. They returned with the encouraging news that the Bala Hissar had been abandoned, and the only part of the city we could see appeared to be deserted.

During the day I received visits from some of the chief merchants of Kabul, who each told a different tale regarding the movements of the defeated Afghan army and the intentions of the Afghan Commander. From their conflicting accounts, however, I gathered that, fresh troops having arrived from Kohistan, the remnants of the Charasia army had joined them, and that the combined forces were then occupying the range of hills immediately above Kabul, to the west, and had determined to make another stand.

During the day, I had visits from several of the main merchants of Kabul, each sharing a different story about the activities of the defeated Afghan army and the plans of the Afghan Commander. From their conflicting reports, though, I learned that new troops had arrived from Kohistan, the remnants of the Charasia army had joined them, and that the combined forces were now positioned in the hills right above Kabul to the west, planning to make another stand.

Having received intelligence that the enemy, if again defeated, intended to retire towards Turkestan, I directed Brigadier-General Massy, on the morning of the 8th October, to move out with the Cavalry brigade and place himself across their line of retreat.4 The brigade started at 11 a.m., and, in order to avoid the city and adjacent heights, made a considerable detour by Siah Sang and Sherpur, the new Afghan cantonment. On reaching the latter place, Massy heliographed to me that he had found it deserted, the magazine blown up, and seventy-five guns5 abandoned inside the enclosure, and that the enemy were now occupying a ridge6 which seemed to him to be a prolongation of the Shahr-i-Darwaza range above Kabul; then, continuing his march, he crossed a depression in this ridge called the Nanachi Kotal, and wheeling to his left, and skirting the Asmai heights on the western side, he soon came in sight of the Afghan camp, pitched on the slope of the hills about a mile from Deh-i-Mazang.

After receiving word that the enemy planned to retreat to Turkestan if defeated again, I instructed Brigadier-General Massy, on the morning of October 8th, to move out with the Cavalry brigade and position himself across their line of retreat.4 The brigade set off at 11 a.m. and, to steer clear of the city and nearby heights, took a significant detour through Siah Sang and Sherpur, the new Afghan cantonment. Upon arriving at Sherpur, Massy sent me a heliograph message reporting that the area was deserted, the magazine had been blown up, and seventy-five guns5 were left abandoned within the enclosure. He noted that the enemy was now positioned on a ridge6 which appeared to extend from the Shahr-i-Darwaza range above Kabul. Continuing his march, he crossed a dip in this ridge known as the Nanachi Kotal, then turned left and followed the Asmai heights on the western side, soon spotting the Afghan camp set up on the hillside about a mile from Deh-i-Mazang.

Brigadier-General Massy was informed, in reply to his heliogram, that Baker would be despatched at once to drive the enemy from their position and force them to fall back upon the Cavalry, upon which Massy immediately made the arrangements which appeared to him most advisable for blocking, with the limited number of sabres at his[Page 409] disposal, the several roads by which the enemy might attempt to escape.

Brigadier-General Massy was informed in response to his message that Baker would be sent immediately to drive the enemy from their position and force them to retreat towards the Cavalry. Massy then quickly made the arrangements he thought were best to block, with the limited number of sabers he had available, the various roads the enemy might try to escape from.

Deh-i-Mazang Gorge I could only spare to Baker a very small force (1,044 rifles, two Mountain guns and one Gatling), for Macpherson's and White's troops had not yet come up. He started off without a moment's delay, and, driving the enemy's scouts before him, worked his way along the Shahr-i-Darwaza heights to the west; but his progress was very slow, owing to the extreme difficulty of the ground, and the day was far spent before he found himself near enough to the enemy to use his Artillery. To his delight, Baker perceived that he commanded the Afghan camp and the rear of their main position; but his satisfaction was considerably allayed when he discovered that between him and them lay a deep gorge7 with precipitous sides, through which ran the Kabul river, and that before he could attack he would have to descend 1,600 feet, and then climb up the opposite side, which was nearly as high and quite as steep.

Deh-i-Mazang Canyon I could only send Baker a very small force (1,044 rifles, two mountain guns, and one Gatling gun), since Macpherson's and White's troops hadn't arrived yet. He set off immediately, pushing the enemy's scouts ahead of him as he made his way along the Shahr-i-Darwaza heights to the west. However, his progress was very slow due to the challenging terrain, and it was late in the day before he got close enough to the enemy to use his artillery. To his relief, Baker realized he could see the Afghan camp and the rear of their main position, but his satisfaction was significantly dampened when he saw that a deep gorge7 with steep sides lay between him and them, through which the Kabul river flowed. He realized that before he could attack, he would need to descend 1,600 feet and then climb up the opposite side, which was almost as high and just as steep.

The enemy give us the slip Anxious as Baker was that there should be no delay in delivering the assault, by the time his dispositions were made it had become too dark to attempt it, and most reluctantly he had to postpone the movement till daybreak the next day. He had ascertained that the Kabul river was not fordable for Infantry except at a point which was commanded by the enemy's camp, and was too far from support to warrant piquets being pushed across at night. Nothing whatever could be seen, but a very slight noise as of stealthy movement in the Afghan camp was heard, and the fear seized Baker that the enemy might escape him. Soon after 11 p.m., therefore, when the rising moon began in a measure to dispel the darkness, Baker sent a strong patrol under a British officer to feel for the enemy. The patrol came into contact with the Afghan scouts on the river-bank, from some of whom, taken prisoners in the struggle, they learned that the enemy had crept away under cover of the night, and the greater number had dispersed to their own homes; but about 800, mounted on Artillery horses, were reported to have accompanied their Commander, Mahomed Jan, and to have escaped in the direction of Bamian.

The enemy got away. As anxious as Baker was to launch the attack without delay, by the time he had everything ready, it was too dark to proceed, and he reluctantly had to put off the movement until dawn the next day. He confirmed that the Kabul River was uncrossable for infantry except at a spot that was under the watch of the enemy's camp and was too far from reinforcements to risk sending out piquets at night. Nothing could be seen, but faint noises suggesting quiet movements from the Afghan camp were heard, leading Baker to worry that the enemy might escape. So, shortly after 11 p.m., as the moon began to lighten the darkness, Baker sent a strong patrol led by a British officer to scout for the enemy. The patrol encountered Afghan scouts by the riverbank, and from some captured during the conflict, they learned that the enemy had slipped away under cover of night, with many dispersing to their homes. However, about 800, mounted on artillery horses, were reported to have fled with their leader, Mahomed Jan, toward Bamian.

Meanwhile, Brigadier-General Massy, from his point of observation beneath the Asmai heights, had perceived that it was impossible for Baker to carry the enemy's main position by daylight; he tried to communicate with Baker and ascertain his plans, but the party despatched on this service were unable to get through the villages and woods, which were all held by the enemy, and returned unsuccessful. Massy then collected his scattered squadrons and bivouacked for the night, being anxious that his men and horses should have food and rest, and it not having struck him that the enemy might attempt to escape[Page 410] during the hours of darkness.

Meanwhile, Brigadier-General Massy, from his lookout point beneath the Asmai heights, realized that it was impossible for Baker to capture the enemy's main position during daylight. He tried to contact Baker to find out his plans, but the group sent to do that couldn’t get through the villages and woods, which were all occupied by the enemy, and returned without success. Massy then gathered his scattered troops and set up camp for the night, wanting to ensure that his men and horses had food and rest, without considering that the enemy might try to escape during the dark hours[Page 410].

The information that in very truth they had escaped was brought to Baker at 4.30 a.m. He at once communicated it to Massy, telling him at the same time that any movement the Cavalry might make in pursuit would be supported by the troops under his immediate command, and also by a brigade under Brigadier-General Macpherson, which I had despatched to reinforce Baker; Macpherson and White, with their respective troops, having arrived at Beni Hissar shortly after Baker had started.

The news that they had truly escaped reached Baker at 4:30 a.m. He immediately informed Massy, also letting him know that any movement the Cavalry made in pursuit would be backed by the troops under his direct command, as well as by a brigade led by Brigadier-General Macpherson, which I had sent to reinforce Baker. Macpherson and White, with their respective troops, had arrived at Beni Hissar shortly after Baker had set out.

I joined Baker at this time, and great was my disappointment at being told that the Afghans had given us the slip. I went carefully over the ground, however, and satisfied myself that Baker had done all that was possible under the circumstances, and that the enemy having eluded us could not in any way be attributed to want of care or skill on his part.

I joined Baker at this time, and I was really disappointed to hear that the Afghans had gotten away from us. I went over the area carefully, though, and I convinced myself that Baker had done everything he could under the circumstances, and that the enemy escaping us couldn't be blamed on any lack of attention or skill on his part.

Massy scoured the country until nightfall on the 9th, but with very little success, only one small party of fugitives being overtaken about four-and-twenty miles on the road to Ghazni. Numbers, doubtless, found shelter in the city of Kabul, others in the numerous villages with which the richly-cultivated Chardeh valley was thickly studded, and whose inhabitants were hostile to a man; others escaped to the hills; and the remainder, having had ten hours' start, could not be overtaken.

Massy searched the country until nightfall on the 9th, but he had very little success, only catching one small group of fugitives about twenty-four miles on the road to Ghazni. Many likely found refuge in the city of Kabul, others in the many villages scattered throughout the fertile Chardeh valley, where the locals were all hostile; some escaped to the hills, and the rest, having had a ten-hour head start, could not be caught.

The enemy's camp was left standing, and twelve guns, some elephants, camels, mules, and ponies, fell into our possession.

The enemy's camp was still intact, and we captured twelve cannons, along with some elephants, camels, mules, and ponies.

During that day our camp was moved nearer the city to Siah Sang, a commanding plateau between the Kabul and Logar rivers, close to their confluence, and less than a mile east of the Bala Hissar. The 5th Gurkhas and two Mountain guns were left to hold the heights on which Brigadier-General Baker had been operating, and the rest of the force was concentrated on Siah Sang.

During that day, our camp was moved closer to the city to Siah Sang, a dominant plateau between the Kabul and Logar rivers, near where they meet, and less than a mile east of the Bala Hissar. The 5th Gurkhas and two mountain guns were left to secure the heights where Brigadier-General Baker had been working, while the rest of the force was gathered at Siah Sang.






CHAPTER LII.

1879

At last I was at Kabul, the place I had heard so much of from my boy-hood, and had so often wished to see! The city lay beneath me, with its mud-coloured buildings and its 50,000 inhabitants, covering a considerable extent of ground. To the south-east corner of the city appeared the Bala Hissar, picturesquely perched on a saddle just beneath the Shahr-i-Darwaza heights, along the top of which ran a fortified wall, enclosing the upper portion of the citadel and extending to the Deh-i-Mazang gorge.

At last, I was in Kabul, the place I had heard so much about since childhood and had often wanted to see! The city lay below me, with its mud-colored buildings and 50,000 residents, spreading over a large area. In the southeast corner of the city was the Bala Hissar, beautifully situated on a saddle just below the Shahr-i-Darwaza heights, where a fortified wall ran along the top, enclosing the upper part of the citadel and extending to the Deh-i-Mazang gorge.

Kabul was reported to be perfectly quiet, and numbers of traders[Page 411] came into our camp to dispose of their wares; but I forbade anyone to enter the city until I had been able to decide upon the best means of maintaining order amongst a population for the most part extremely fanatical, treacherous, and vindictive.

Kabul was said to be completely quiet, and a lot of traders[Page 411] came to our camp to sell their goods; but I ordered that no one could go into the city until I figured out the best way to keep order among a population that was mostly very fanatical, untrustworthy, and vengeful.

So far our success had been complete: all opposition had been overcome, Kabul was at our mercy, the Amir was in my camp ready to agree to whatever I might propose, and it had been all done with extraordinarily little loss to ourselves. Nevertheless, I felt my difficulties were very far from being at an end—indeed, the part of my duty still remaining to be accomplished was surrounded with far greater difficulty, and was a source of much more anxiety to me than the military task I had undertaken; for, with regard to the latter, I possessed confidence in myself and my ability to perform it, whereas, with respect to the political and diplomatic side of the question, actual personal experience I had none, and I could only hope that common-sense and a sense of justice would carry me through.

So far, our success had been complete: we had overcome all opposition, Kabul was under our control, the Amir was in my camp ready to agree to whatever I proposed, and we had managed this with very little loss on our side. However, I felt my challenges were far from over—in fact, the remaining part of my duty was much more difficult and a source of greater anxiety for me than the military task I had taken on. With the military aspect, I had confidence in myself and my ability to handle it, but regarding the political and diplomatic side, I had no personal experience. I could only hope that common sense and a sense of justice would see me through.

Guiding Instructions The instructions I had received from the Government of India were very general in their character, for the Viceroy felt that any proceedings must necessarily depend on the state of affairs obtaining at Kabul, the acts and attitude of the Amir and his people, and the various conditions impossible to foresee when the Foreign Office letter was written to me on the 29th September. But, though general, they were very comprehensive.

Guiding Instructions The instructions I got from the Government of India were quite general because the Viceroy believed that any actions would depend on the situation in Kabul, the behavior and stance of the Amir and his people, and the many factors that couldn’t be predicted when the Foreign Office letter was sent to me on September 29th. However, even though they were general, they were very thorough.

The troops were to be placed in strong and secure positions, such as would give me complete control over the Amir's capital; any Afghan soldiers remaining at Kabul, and the whole of the city population, were to be disarmed; supplies were to be collected in sufficient quantities to render my force independent in case of interruption along the line of communication; Yakub Khan's personal safety was to be secured, and adequate supervision maintained over his movements and actions; a close investigation was to be instituted into all the causes and circumstances connected with the 'totally unprovoked and most barbarous attack by the Amir's soldiery and the people of his capital upon the representative of an allied State, who was residing under the Amir's protection in the Amir's fortress, in very close proximity to the Amir himself, and whose personal safety and honourable treatment had been solemnly guaranteed by the Ruler of Afghanistan.'

The troops were to be positioned in strong and secure locations to give me complete control over the Amir's capital. Any Afghan soldiers still in Kabul and the entire city population were to be disarmed. Supplies needed to be gathered in enough quantities to make my force self-sufficient in case there were interruptions along the communication line. Yakub Khan's personal safety was to be ensured, with proper oversight maintained over his movements and actions. A thorough investigation was to be carried out into all the causes and circumstances related to the "totally unprovoked and most barbaric attack by the Amir's soldiers and the residents of his capital on the representative of an allied State, who was living under the Amir's protection in the Amir's fortress, very close to the Amir himself, and whose personal safety and honorable treatment had been solemnly promised by the Ruler of Afghanistan."

The retribution to be exacted was to be adapted to the twofold character of the offence, and was to be imposed upon the Afghan nation in proportion as the offence was proved to be national, and as the responsibility should be brought home to any particular community. Further, the imposition of a fine, it was suggested upon the city of Kabul 'would be in accordance with justice and precedent,' and the demolition of fortifications and removal of buildings within range of my defences, or which might interfere with my control over[Page 412] the city, might be 'necessary as a military precaution.'

The punishment to be enforced was to be tailored to the dual nature of the offense, and would be applied to the Afghan nation based on how national the offense was shown to be, and how the responsibility could be traced back to any specific community. Additionally, it was suggested that imposing a fine on the city of Kabul "would align with justice and precedent," and that tearing down fortifications and removing buildings within range of my defenses, or that could disrupt my control over[Page 412] the city, could be "necessary as a military precaution."

In forming my plans for the removal of obstructive buildings, I was to consider 'whether they can be combined with any measures compatible with justice and humanity for leaving a memorial of the retribution exacted from the city in some manner and by some mark that will not be easily obliterated.'

In planning to take down the obstructive buildings, I needed to think about 'whether they can be integrated with any actions that align with justice and humanity to leave some kind of memorial of the consequences faced by the city in a way that won’t be easily erased.'

I was told that 'in regard to the punishment of individuals, it should be swift, stern, and impressive, without being indiscriminate or immoderate; its infliction must not be delegated to subordinate officers of minor responsibility acting independently of your instructions or supervision; and you cannot too vigilantly maintain the discipline of the troops under your orders, or superintend their treatment of the unarmed population, so long as your orders are obeyed and your authority is unresisted. You will deal summarily in the majority of cases with persons whose share in the murder of anyone belonging to the British Embassy shall have been proved by your investigations, but while the execution of justice should be as public and striking as possible, it should be completed with all possible expedition, since the indefinite prolongation of your proceedings might spread abroad unfounded alarm.'

I was told that when it comes to punishing individuals, it should be quick, severe, and impactful, without being random or excessive; you shouldn't delegate this responsibility to lower-ranking officers acting independently of your guidance or oversight; and you must consistently uphold the discipline of the troops under your command and oversee how they treat the unarmed population, as long as your orders are followed and your authority is respected. You will primarily deal directly with those whose involvement in the murder of anyone from the British Embassy has been confirmed by your investigations, but while justice should be carried out as publicly and as noticeably as possible, it should also be done as quickly as possible, since stretching out your actions could create unnecessary panic.

The despatch concluded with the words: 'It will probably be essential, not only for the protection of your own camp from annoyance, but also for the security of the well-affected population and for the general maintenance of order, that you should assume and exercise supreme authority in Kabul, since events have unfortunately proved that the Amir has lost that authority, or that he has conspicuously failed to make use of it.'

The message ended with the words: 'It will likely be crucial, not just for keeping your own camp safe from disruptions, but also for ensuring the safety of the loyal population and for maintaining overall order, that you take on and exercise supreme authority in Kabul, since events have sadly shown that the Amir has lost that authority, or he has clearly failed to use it effectively.'

Visit to the Bala Hissar On the 10th I visited Sherpur, and the next day I went to the Bala Hissar, and wandered over the scene of the Embassy's brave defence and cruel end. The walls of the Residency, closely pitted with bullet-holes, gave proof of the determined nature of the attack and the length of the resistance. The floors were covered with blood-stains, and amidst the embers of a fire were found a heap of human bones. It may be imagined how British soldiers' hearts burned within them at such a sight, and how difficult it was to suppress feelings of hatred and animosity towards the perpetrators of such a dastardly crime. I had a careful but unsuccessful search made for the bodies of our ill-fated friends.

Visit to Bala Hissar On the 10th, I visited Sherpur, and the next day I went to the Bala Hissar, exploring the area where the Embassy's brave defense took place and met a tragic end. The walls of the Residency were heavily marked with bullet holes, showing the fierce nature of the attack and the length of the resistance. The floors were stained with blood, and among the ashes of a fire, we discovered a pile of human bones. One can imagine how the hearts of British soldiers were filled with anger at such a sight, and how hard it was to hold back feelings of hatred towards those responsible for such a terrible act. I arranged a careful search for the bodies of our unfortunate friends, but it was unsuccessful.



ENTRANCE TO THE BALA HISSAR, KABUL.

ENTRANCE TO THE BALA HISSAR, KABUL.

From a photograph.

ENTRANCE TO THE BALA HISSAR, KABUL.

ENTRANCE TO THE BALA HISSAR, KABUL.

From a photo.



The Bala Hissar, at one time of great strength, was now in a somewhat dilapidated condition. It contained eighty-five guns, mortars and howitzers, some of them of English manufacture, upwards of 250 tons of gunpowder, stowed away in earthen vessels, many millions of Enfield and Snider cartridges, and a large number of arms, besides quantities of saddlery, clothing for troops, musical instruments, shot, shell, caps, and accoutrements, and a vast amount of lead, copper and[Page 413] tin. It would not have given us much trouble to storm the Bala Hissar, had we been obliged to do so, for Artillery could have opened on it within easy range, and there was cover for Infantry close up to the walls.

The Bala Hissar, once a stronghold, was now in pretty rough shape. It held eighty-five guns, mortars, and howitzers, some of which were made in England, over 250 tons of gunpowder stored in clay containers, millions of Enfield and Snider cartridges, and a large stock of weapons, along with loads of saddlery, troop clothing, musical instruments, shot, shells, caps, and gear, plus a huge amount of lead, copper, and [Page 413] tin. Storming the Bala Hissar wouldn't have been too difficult for us if it came to that, as our artillery could have targeted it from a comfortable range, and there was cover for infantry right up to the walls.

The reading of the Proclamation announcing the intentions of the British Government with regard to the punishment of the city was to take place in the Bala Hissar next day. The Amir had agreed to accompany me. The leading people were invited to attend, and I had given orders that all the troops were to take part in the procession, so as to render as impressive as possible the ceremony, at which were to be made known to the inhabitants of Kabul the terms imposed upon them by the British Government. The object of my visit was to decide how the troops might best be disposed so as to make the most imposing display on the occasion.

The reading of the Proclamation announcing the British Government's intentions regarding the city's punishment was set to happen in the Bala Hissar the next day. The Amir had agreed to join me. The key figures were invited to attend, and I had instructed that all the troops participate in the procession to make the ceremony as impressive as possible, where the terms imposed on the people of Kabul by the British Government would be unveiled. My goal for the visit was to determine the best way to position the troops to create the most striking display for the event.

I decided to detain in custody two Sirdars, Yahia Khan1 and his brother Zakariah Khan, the Mustaufi, and the Wazir, as these four were Yakub Khan's principal advisers, and I was satisfied that their influence was being used against us, and that so long as they were at large a mine might be sprung upon me at any moment.

I decided to hold two leaders, Yahia Khan1 and his brother Zakariah Khan, the Mustaufi, and the Wazir in custody, as these four were Yakub Khan's main advisers. I was sure their influence was being used against us, and as long as they were free, I could be ambushed at any moment.

The Commander-in-Chief, Daud Shah, was also in the Amir's confidence; but I determined to leave him at liberty, for, from what I could learn, he had made an effort (not a very strong one, perhaps) to help our unfortunate countrymen, and he had on several occasions since he had been in my camp given me useful information; moreover, I hoped to obtain further help from him, in which hope I was not altogether disappointed.

The Commander-in-Chief, Daud Shah, was also trusted by the Amir; however, I decided to let him go free because, from what I gathered, he had made an attempt (although not a very strong one) to assist our unfortunate countrymen. He had provided me with useful information several times since he joined my camp, and I also hoped to gain more support from him, a hope that turned out to be somewhat fulfilled.

As to what I ought to do with the Amir I was considerably puzzled. Lord Lytton had urged upon me the necessity for weighing well the advisability of prematurely breaking with him, as it was very possible he might become a useful instrument in our hands, an eventuality which I thoroughly understood; but I was not at all sure that Yakub Khan would not break with me when he learnt my decision with regard to his Ministers, and I had received more than one warning that, if he failed to keep me from entering Kabul, he contemplated flight and a supreme effort to raise the country against me.

As for what I should do about the Amir, I was quite confused. Lord Lytton had emphasized the importance of carefully considering whether to end our relationship with him too soon, since he could potentially become a valuable ally, which I fully recognized. However, I wasn’t at all certain that Yakub Khan wouldn’t sever ties with me once he found out my decision regarding his Ministers. I had received multiple warnings that if he couldn’t stop me from entering Kabul, he was thinking about fleeing and making a major effort to rally the country against me.

Yakub Khan certainly did not deserve much consideration from us; for, though no absolute proof was forthcoming of his having instigated the attack upon the Embassy, he most certainly made not the slightest effort to stop it or to save the lives of those entrusted to his care, and throughout that terrible day showed himself to be, if not a deliberate traitor, a despicable coward. Again, his endeavours to delay the march of my force for the sole purpose of gaining sufficient time to organize the destruction of the army to whose protection he had appealed[Page 414] deprived him, to my mind, of the smallest claim to be treated as an honourable ally.

Yakub Khan definitely didn't deserve much consideration from us; although there was no solid proof that he had instigated the attack on the Embassy, he certainly made no effort to stop it or save the lives of those he was supposed to protect. Throughout that awful day, he revealed himself to be, if not a deliberate traitor, at least a disgraceful coward. Moreover, his attempts to delay my force's march solely to buy time to set up the army's destruction—an army he had asked for protection—left him with no grounds to be seen as an honorable ally.[Page 414]

My doubts as to what policy I ought to pursue with regard to Yakub Khan were all solved by his own action on the morning of the 12th October. He came to my tent before I was dressed, and asked for an interview, which was, of course, accorded. The only chair I possessed I offered to my Royal visitor, who seated himself, and then and there announced that he had come to resign the Amirship, and that he was only carrying out a determination made before he came to Kushi; he had then allowed himself to be over-persuaded, but now his resolution was fixed. His life, he said, had been most miserable, and he would rather be a grass-cutter in the English camp than Ruler of Afghanistan; he concluded by entreating me to allow his tent to be pitched close to mine until he could go to India, to London, or wherever the Viceroy might desire to send him. I placed a tent at his disposal, ordered breakfast to be prepared for him, and begged him not to decide at once, but think the matter over for some hours, adding that I would see him again at ten o'clock, the hour appointed for him to accompany me to the Bala Hissar in order that he might be present at the reading of the Proclamation. At this time, it must be remembered, the Amir did not know what the terms of the Proclamation were, and was entirely ignorant of my intentions regarding his Ministers.

My doubts about what approach I should take regarding Yakub Khan were completely resolved by his actions on the morning of October 12th. He came to my tent before I was dressed and requested a meeting, which I, of course, granted. I offered my only chair to my royal visitor, who sat down and announced that he had come to resign the Amirship. He said he was merely following through on a decision he had made before arriving in Kushi; he had allowed himself to be persuaded otherwise back then, but now he was determined. He expressed that his life had been very miserable, and he would rather be a grass-cutter in the English camp than the Ruler of Afghanistan. He ended by asking me to let his tent be set up close to mine until he could go to India, London, or wherever the Viceroy wanted to send him. I arranged for a tent for him, ordered breakfast be prepared, and urged him not to make a hasty decision, suggesting he think it over for a few hours. I also mentioned that I would see him again at ten o'clock, the time set for him to accompany me to the Bala Hissar to be present at the reading of the Proclamation. At this moment, it’s important to note that the Amir was unaware of the terms of the Proclamation and had no idea about my plans concerning his Ministers.

As arranged, I had another interview with Yakub Khan at ten o'clock, when I found him unshaken in his resolve to abdicate, and unwilling, under the circumstances, to be present at the ceremony which was about to take place. He said, however, that he would send his eldest son, and that all his Ministers should attend me. I begged him again to reconsider the decision he had come to, and to think well over the results to himself; but finding that he had finally2 made up his mind, I told His Highness I would telegraph his determination to the Viceroy and ask for instructions; that he would not, of course, be [Page 415] forced to continue to reign at Kabul against his will, but that I would ask him to retain his title until I could receive a reply from Simla.

As planned, I had another meeting with Yakub Khan at ten o'clock, where I found him firm in his decision to step down and unwilling to attend the ceremony that was about to happen. He mentioned, though, that he would send his oldest son and that all his ministers would meet with me. I urged him once more to reconsider his choice and think carefully about the consequences for himself; but seeing that he had finally2 made up his mind, I informed His Highness that I would send a telegram about his decision to the Viceroy and ask for guidance; that he wouldn’t, of course, be forced to remain in power at Kabul against his will, but I would request that he keep his title until I could get a response from Simla.

At noon I proceeded to the Bala Hissar, accompanied by my staff, the Heir-Apparent, the Ministers, and a large gathering of the chief Sirdars of Kabul. Both sides of the road were lined with troops, of whom I felt not a little proud that day. Notwithstanding that the duty required of them had been severe and continuous, now that they were required to take part in a ceremonial parade, they turned out as clean and smart as one could wish to see them.

At noon, I made my way to the Bala Hissar, joined by my staff, the Heir-Apparent, the Ministers, and a large crowd of the main leaders of Kabul. Both sides of the road were filled with troops, and I felt quite proud of them that day. Even though their duties had been tough and ongoing, when it came time for the ceremonial parade, they showed up looking as clean and sharp as anyone could hope for.

As the head of the procession entered the main gateway, the British flag was run up, the bands played the National Anthem, and a salute of thirty-one guns was fired.

As the leader of the procession walked through the main gate, the British flag was raised, the bands played the National Anthem, and thirty-one guns fired as a salute.

On arriving at the public Hall of Audience, I dismounted, and ascending the steps leading to it, I addressed the assembled multitude, and read to them the following Proclamation, containing the orders of the British Government:

On arriving at the public Hall of Audience, I got off my horse, and climbing the steps leading to it, I spoke to the gathered crowd and read to them the following Proclamation, which included the orders of the British Government:

The Proclamation 'In my Proclamation dated the 3rd October, I informed the people of Kabul that a British army was advancing to take possession of the city, and I warned them against offering any resistance to the entry of the troops and the authority of His Highness the Amir. That warning has been disregarded. The force under my command has now reached Kabul and occupied the Bala Hissar, but its advance has been pertinaciously opposed, and the inhabitants of the city have taken a conspicuous part in the opposition offered. They have therefore become rebels against His Highness the Amir, and have added to the guilt already incurred by them in abetting the murder of the British Envoy and his companions—a treacherous and cowardly crime which has brought indelible disgrace upon the Afghan people. It would be but a just and fitting reward for such misdeeds if the city of Kabul were now totally destroyed and its very name blotted out; but the great British Government ever desires to temper justice with mercy, and I now announce to the inhabitants of Kabul that the full retribution for their offence will not be exacted, and that the city will be spared.

The Announcement 'In my Proclamation dated October 3rd, I informed the people of Kabul that a British army was on its way to take control of the city, and I warned them not to resist the entry of the troops and the authority of His Highness the Amir. That warning has been ignored. The force under my command has now reached Kabul and occupied the Bala Hissar, but its advance has faced stiff opposition, and the city's residents have played a prominent role in that resistance. They have therefore become rebels against His Highness the Amir and have further compounded their guilt by supporting the murder of the British Envoy and his companions—a treacherous and cowardly act that has brought lasting shame upon the Afghan people. It would be a just and fitting response to such actions if the city of Kabul were completely destroyed and its name forgotten; however, the great British Government always aims to balance justice with mercy, and I now announce to the residents of Kabul that the full consequences for their offense will not be enforced, and that the city will be spared.'

'Nevertheless, it is necessary that they should not escape all penalty, and, further, that the punishment inflicted should be such as will be felt and remembered. Therefore, such portions of the city buildings as now interfere with the proper military occupation of the Bala Hissar, and the safety and comfort of the British troops to be quartered in it, will be at once levelled with the ground; and, further, a heavy fine, the amount of which will be notified hereafter, will be imposed upon the inhabitants of Kabul, to be paid according to their several capacities. I further give notice to all, that, in order to provide for the restoration and maintenance of order, the city of Kabul and the surrounding country, to a distance of ten miles, are placed under martial law. With the consent of His Highness the Amir, a military Governor of Kabul will be appointed, to administer justice and punish with a strong hand all evil-doers. The inhabitants of Kabul and of the neighbouring villages are hereby warned to submit to his authority.

'However, it's essential that they don't get away without facing any consequences, and that the punishment they receive is something they will truly feel and remember. As a result, parts of the city buildings that currently obstruct the proper military use of the Bala Hissar, as well as the safety and comfort of the British troops stationed there, will be immediately demolished. Additionally, a significant fine— the amount of which will be announced later— will be imposed on the residents of Kabul, to be paid according to their financial ability. I also want to inform everyone that, to ensure order is restored and maintained, the city of Kabul and the surrounding area, up to a distance of ten miles, will be under martial law. With the approval of His Highness the Amir, a military Governor of Kabul will be appointed to enforce justice and firmly punish all wrongdoers. The people of Kabul and the nearby villages are hereby warned to accept his authority.'

'This punishment, inflicted upon the whole city, will not, of course, absolve from further penalties those whose individual guilt may be hereafter proved. A full and searching inquiry into the circumstances of the late outbreak will be held, and all persons convicted of having taken part in it will be dealt[Page 416] with according to their deserts.

'This punishment, imposed on the entire city, will not absolve anyone from further penalties if their individual guilt is proven later. A thorough investigation into the circumstances of the recent outbreak will take place, and anyone found guilty of participating will face consequences based on their actions.[Page 416]

'With the view of providing effectually for the prevention of crime and disorder, and the safety of all well-disposed persons in Kabul, it is hereby notified that for the future the carrying of dangerous weapons, whether swords, knives, or firearms, within the streets of the city or within a distance of five miles from the city gates, is forbidden. After a week from the date of this Proclamation, any person found armed within those limits will be liable to the penalty of death. Persons having in their possession any articles whatsoever which formerly belonged to members of the British Embassy are required to bring them forthwith to the British camp. Anyone neglecting this warning will, if found hereafter in possession of any such articles, be subject to the severest penalties.

'To effectively prevent crime and disorder and ensure the safety of all law-abiding individuals in Kabul, it is hereby announced that from now on, carrying dangerous weapons, including swords, knives, or firearms, in the streets of the city or within five miles of the city gates is not allowed. One week from the date of this Proclamation, anyone found armed within those limits will face the death penalty. Individuals holding any items that once belonged to members of the British Embassy must return them immediately to the British camp. Anyone who ignores this warning and is later found with such items will face severe penalties.'

'Further, all persons who may have in their possession any firearms or ammunition formerly issued to or seized by the Afghan troops, are required to produce them. For every country-made rifle, whether breech or muzzle loading, the sum of Rs. 3 will be given on delivery, and for every rifle of European manufacture Rs. 5. Anyone found hereafter in possession of such weapons will be severely punished. Finally, I notify that I will give a reward of Rs. 50 for the surrender of any person, whether soldier or civilian, concerned in the attack on the British Embassy, or for such information as may lead directly to his capture. A similar sum will be given in the case of any person who may have fought against the British troops since the 3rd September (Shawal) last, and therefore become a rebel against His Highness the Amir. If any such person so surrendered or captured be a captain or subaltern officer of the Afghan army, the reward will be increased to Rs. 75, and if a field officer to Rs. 120.'

'Furthermore, anyone who has firearms or ammunition that were previously issued to or seized from the Afghan troops must hand them in. For each homemade rifle, whether it’s breech or muzzle-loading, you will receive Rs. 3 upon delivery, and for each European-made rifle, you will get Rs. 5. Anyone found with these weapons in the future will face serious consequences. Lastly, I am offering a reward of Rs. 50 for the capture or information leading to the capture of anyone, soldier or civilian, involved in the attack on the British Embassy. The same amount will be given for information on anyone who has fought against British troops since September 3rd (Shawal) and has therefore become a rebel against His Highness the Amir. If the person surrendered or captured is a captain or subordinate officer of the Afghan army, the reward will increase to Rs. 75, and if they are a field officer, it will be Rs. 120.'

The Afghans were evidently much relieved at the leniency of the Proclamation, to which they listened with the greatest attention. When I had finished reading it, I dismissed the assembly, with the exception of the Ministers whom I had decided to make prisoners. To them I explained that I felt it to be my duty to place them under restraint, pending investigation into the part they had taken in the massacre of the Embassy.

The Afghans seemed really relieved by the leniency of the Proclamation, which they listened to very closely. Once I finished reading it, I let everyone go except for the Ministers whom I decided to take prisoner. I explained to them that I felt it was my duty to keep them under restraint while we looked into their involvement in the massacre of the Embassy.

The following day I made a formal entry into the city, traversing all its main streets, that the people might understand that it and they were at our mercy. The Cavalry brigade headed the procession; I followed with my staff and escort, and five battalions of Infantry brought up the rear; there were no Artillery, for in some places the streets were so narrow and tortuous that two men could hardly ride abreast.

The next day, I made an official entry into the city, going through all its main streets so that the people would realize that it and they were at our mercy. The Cavalry brigade led the procession; I followed with my staff and escort, and five battalions of Infantry brought up the rear; there was no Artillery because in some places the streets were so narrow and winding that two people could barely ride side by side.

It was scarcely to be expected the citizens would give us a warm welcome; but they were perfectly respectful, and I hoped the martial and workmanlike appearance of the troops would have a salutary effect.

It was hardly surprising that the citizens didn't give us a warm welcome; but they were completely respectful, and I hoped the military and professional look of the troops would have a positive effect.

Administrative Measures I now appointed Major-General James Hills, V.C., to be Governor of Kabul for the time being, associating with him the able and respected Mahomedan gentleman, Nawab Ghulam Hussein Khan, as the most likely means of securing for the present order and good government in the city. I further instituted two Courts—one political,[Page 417] consisting of Colonel Macgregor, Surgeon-Major Bellew,3 and Mahomed Hyat Khan, a Mahomedan member of the Punjab Commission, and an excellent Persian and Pushtu scholar, to inquire into the complicated circumstances which led to the attack on the Residency, and to ascertain, if possible, how far the Amir and his Ministers were implicated. The other, a military Court, with Brigadier-General Massy as president, for the trial of those Chiefs and soldiers accused of having taken part in the actual massacre.4

Admin Policies I have now appointed Major-General James Hills, V.C., as the temporary Governor of Kabul, teaming him up with the capable and respected Muslim gentleman, Nawab Ghulam Hussein Khan, to ensure order and good governance in the city for the time being. I also established two courts—one political, [Page 417] composed of Colonel Macgregor, Surgeon-Major Bellew and Mahomed Hyat Khan, a Muslim member of the Punjab Commission and an excellent scholar of Persian and Pushtu, to investigate the complex circumstances leading to the attack on the Residency and to find out, if possible, how much the Amir and his Ministers were involved. The other court is a military court, with Brigadier-General Massy as the president, to trial those chiefs and soldiers accused of participating in the actual massacre.

Up to this time (the middle of October) communication with India had been kept up by way of the Shutargardan, and I had heard nothing of the approach of the Khyber column. It was so very necessary to open up the Khyber route, in view of early snow on the Shutargardan, that I arranged to send a small force towards Jalalabad, and to move the Shutargardan garrison to Kabul, thus breaking off communication with Kuram.

Up until now (the middle of October), we had been communicating with India through Shutargardan, and I hadn't heard anything about the Khyber column's approach. It was crucial to open up the Khyber route, considering the early snow on Shutargardan, so I decided to send a small force toward Jalalabad and relocate the Shutargardan garrison to Kabul, thereby cutting off communication with Kuram.

Colonel Money had beaten off another attack made by the tribesmen on his position, but as they still threatened him in considerable numbers, I despatched Brigadier-General Hugh Gough with some troops to enable him to withdraw. This reinforcement arrived at a most opportune moment, when the augmented tribal combination, imagining that the garrison was completely at its mercy, had sent a message to Money offering to spare their lives if they laid down their arms! So sure were the Afghans of their triumph that they had brought 200 of their women to witness it. On Gough's arrival, Money dispersed the gathering, and his force left the Shutargardan, together with the Head-Quarters and two squadrons of the 9th Lancers, which had been ordered to join me from Sialkot, and afterwards proved a most valuable addition to the Kabul Field Force.

Colonel Money had fended off another attack from the tribesmen on his position, but since they still posed a threat in significant numbers, I sent Brigadier-General Hugh Gough with some troops to help him withdraw. This reinforcement arrived at a perfect time when the larger tribal coalition, thinking the garrison was completely at their mercy, sent a message to Money offering to spare their lives if they surrendered their weapons! The Afghans were so confident of their victory that they had brought 200 of their women to witness it. When Gough arrived, Money broke up the gathering, and his troops left the Shutargardan along with the Headquarters and two squadrons of the 9th Lancers, which had been ordered to join me from Sialkot and later became a crucial addition to the Kabul Field Force.

Explosions in the Bala Hissar I was sitting in my tent on the morning of the 16th October, when I was startled by a most terrific explosion in the upper part of the Bala Hissar, which was occupied by the 5th Gurkhas, while the 67th Foot were pitched in the garden below. The gunpowder, stored in a detached building, had somehow—we never could discover how—become ignited, and I trembled at the thought of what would be the consequences if the main magazine caught fire, which, with its 250[Page 418] tons of gunpowder, was dangerously near to the scene of the explosion. I at once sent orders to the Gurkhas and the 67th to clear out, and not to wait even to bring away their tents, or anything but their ammunition, and I did not breathe freely till they were all safe on Siah Sang. The results of this disaster, as it was, were bad enough, for Captain Shafto, R.A. (a very promising officer), a private of the 67th, the Subadar-Major of the 5th Gurkhas, and nineteen Natives, most of them soldiers, lost their lives.

Explosions in Bala Hissar I was sitting in my tent on the morning of October 16th when I was jolted by a huge explosion in the upper part of the Bala Hissar, where the 5th Gurkhas were stationed, while the 67th Foot were camped in the garden below. Somehow, the gunpowder stored in a separate building had ignited—we never figured out how—and I was anxious about what would happen if the main magazine caught fire, especially considering it held 250[Page 418] tons of gunpowder and was dangerously close to the explosion site. I immediately ordered the Gurkhas and the 67th to evacuate, instructing them not to wait to grab their tents or anything else except their ammunition, and I didn't relax until they were all safely at Siah Sang. The aftermath of this disaster was quite tragic, as Captain Shafto, R.A. (a very promising officer), a private from the 67th, the Subadar-Major of the 5th Gurkhas, and nineteen locals, most of whom were soldiers, lost their lives.

A second and more violent explosion took place two hours and a half after the first, but there was no loss of life amongst the troops, though several Afghans were killed at a distance of 400 yards from the fort.

A second and more violent explosion happened two and a half hours after the first, but there were no casualties among the troops, although several Afghans were killed about 400 yards away from the fort.

There was given on this occasion a very practical exemplification of the good feeling existing between the European soldiers and the Gurkhas. The 72nd and the 5th Gurkhas had been much associated from the commencement of the campaign, and a spirit of camaraderie had sprung up between them, resulting in the Highlanders now coming forward and insisting on making over their greatcoats to the little Gurkhas for the night—a very strong proof of their friendship, for at Kabul in October the nights are bitterly cold.

On this occasion, there was a clear example of the strong bond between the European soldiers and the Gurkhas. The 72nd and the 5th Gurkhas had been closely connected since the start of the campaign, and a spirit of camaraderie had developed between them. The Highlanders stepped up and insisted on giving their greatcoats to the small Gurkhas for the night—a strong sign of their friendship, especially since nights in Kabul in October are extremely cold.

Two telegrams received about this time caused the greatest gratification throughout the force. One was from the Commander-in-Chief, conveying Her Majesty's expression of 'warm satisfaction' at the conduct of the troops; the other was from the Viceroy, expressing his 'cordial congratulations' and His Excellency's 'high appreciation of the ability with which the action was directed, and the courage with which it was so successfully carried out.' I was informed at the same time by Lord Lytton that, on the recommendation of the Commander-in-Chief, I was given the local rank of Lieutenant-General, to enable me to be placed in command of all the troops in eastern Afghanistan, a force of 20,000 men and 46 guns, in two divisions. The first division remained under my own immediate command, and Major-General R. O. Bright, C.B.,5 was appointed to the command of the other. I was, of course very much pleased at this proof of the confidence reposed in me.

Two telegrams received around this time brought great joy to the entire force. One was from the Commander-in-Chief, expressing Her Majesty's "warm satisfaction" with the troops' performance; the other was from the Viceroy, offering his "cordial congratulations" and His Excellency's "high appreciation of the skill with which the operation was directed, and the bravery with which it was successfully executed." I was also informed by Lord Lytton that, on the Commander-in-Chief's recommendation, I was given the local rank of Lieutenant-General to enable me to command all the troops in eastern Afghanistan, a force of 20,000 men and 46 guns, across two divisions. The first division stayed under my direct command, while Major-General R. O. Bright, C.B.,5 was appointed to lead the other. I was, of course, very pleased with this demonstration of the confidence placed in me.






CHAPTER LIII.

1879

I had given much thought to the question of housing the troops during the winter, which was now fast approaching. Some of the senior officers were in favour of quartering them in the Bala Hissar, as being the place with most prestige attached to it; but the fact that there was not accommodation in it for the whole force, and that, therefore, the[Page 419] troops would have to be separated, as well as the dangerous proximity of the huge store of gunpowder, which could only be got rid of by degrees, decided me to occupy in preference the partly-fortified cantonment of Sherpur, about a mile north-east of the city, and close to the ruins of the old British entrenchment. It was enclosed on three sides by a high and massive loop-holed wall, and on the fourth by the Bimaru heights, while it possessed the advantage of having within its walls sufficient shelter in long ranges of brick buildings for the British troops, and good hospital accommodation, and there was ample space for the erection of huts for the Native soldiers.

I had thought a lot about where to house the troops during the winter, which was quickly approaching. Some senior officers preferred to quarter them in the Bala Hissar because of its prestige; however, since it couldn't accommodate the entire force and would require separating the troops, plus the dangerous closeness of a large stockpile of gunpowder that could only be slowly disposed of, I decided to choose the partially fortified cantonment of Sherpur instead. It was located about a mile northeast of the city, near the ruins of the old British entrenchment. The cantonment was surrounded on three sides by a tall, sturdy wall with loopholes, and on the fourth side by the Bimaru heights. It also had the advantage of offering enough shelter in long brick buildings for the British troops, good hospital facilities, and ample space for building huts for the Native soldiers.

The drawback was that the great extent of its perimeter, more than four and a half miles, made it a very difficult place to defend; but, remembering the grievous results of General Elphinstone's force being scattered in 1841, I thought the advantage of being able to keep my troops together outweighed the disadvantage of having to defend so long a line.

The downside was that its perimeter, over four and a half miles, made it really hard to defend. However, keeping in mind the terrible outcomes when General Elphinstone's force was spread out in 1841, I believed the benefit of keeping my troops together was more significant than the challenge of defending such a long line.

Materials for the Native soldiers' huts were brought from the Bala Hissar, the demolition of which, as an act of retributive justice, I had recommended to the Government of India, as it appeared to me that the destruction of the fortified palace in which the massacre had taken place, and which was the symbol of the power of the Afghans and their boasted military strength, would be a more fitting punishment for treachery and insult than any other we could inflict, and a more lasting memorial of our ability to avenge our countrymen than any we could raise. The tidings that their ancient citadel had been levelled to the ground would, I felt sure, spread throughout the length and breadth of Afghanistan, bearing with them a political significance that could hardly be over-estimated.

Materials for the huts of the Native soldiers were brought from the Bala Hissar. I had recommended the demolition of this site to the Government of India as a form of retributive justice. It seemed to me that destroying the fortified palace where the massacre occurred, which symbolized Afghan power and their claimed military strength, would serve as a more appropriate punishment for their treachery and insult than any other action we could take. It would also create a more lasting reminder of our capability to avenge our countrymen than anything we could build. I was confident that news of their ancient citadel being brought to the ground would spread throughout Afghanistan, carrying a political significance that could hardly be overstated.

Afghans Afraid to Befriend us I now set to work to collect supplies for the winter. A1 khalsa, or State grain, we took as our right, the justice of this being recognized both by the Amir and the people, but what was the property of private individuals was purchased at a price the avaricious Afghan could not resist. There had been a good harvest, and supplies were abundant; but the people from the outlying districts were chary of assisting us, for they knew from experience that all who befriended the British would be sure to suffer when we took our departure.

Afghans scared to befriend us I started gathering supplies for the winter. We took the State grain, known as khalsa, as our right, which both the Amir and the people acknowledged was fair. However, the property of private individuals was bought at a price that greedy Afghans couldn't resist. The harvest had been good, so there was plenty of supply; but the people from the surrounding areas were hesitant to help us, as they knew from experience that anyone who befriended the British would definitely suffer when we left.

I had repeated complaints brought to me of the harshness and injustice with which those who had shown themselves well disposed towards us were treated by the Amir on his return from signing the Treaty at Gandamak, and most of the Afghans were so afraid of the Amir's vengeance when they should again be left to his tender mercies, that they held aloof, except those who, like Wali Mahomed Khan and his following, were in open opposition to Yakub Khan, and some few who were still smarting from recent injury and oppression.

I received multiple complaints about the harsh treatment and unfairness towards those who had been supportive of us after the Amir returned from signing the Treaty at Gandamak. Most Afghans were so scared of the Amir's revenge when they found themselves back in his hands that they kept their distance, except for a few like Wali Mahomed Khan and his group, who openly opposed Yakub Khan, and some others who were still hurting from recent injuries and oppression.

I was frequently asked by the Afghans, when requiring some service[Page 420] to be rendered, 'Are you going to remain?' Could I have replied in the affirmative, or could I have said that we should continue to exercise sufficient control over the Government of the country to prevent their being punished for helping us, they would have served us willingly. Not that I could flatter myself they altogether liked us, but they would have felt it wise in their own interests to meet our requirements; and, besides, the great mass of the people were heartily sick and tired of a long continuance of oppression and misrule, and were ready to submit (for a time, at least) to any strong and just Government.

I was often asked by the Afghans, when they needed a service[Page 420] done, "Are you going to stay?" If I could have answered yes, or if I could have said that we would maintain enough control over the government to keep them from being punished for helping us, they would have willingly assisted us. I didn’t really think they liked us all that much, but it would have been smart for them to meet our needs. Plus, the majority of the people were genuinely fed up with the ongoing oppression and misrule, and they were ready to accept (at least temporarily) any strong and fair government.

Lord Lytton, in the hope of saving from the resentment of the Amir those who had been of use to us in the early part of the war, had expressly stipulated in Article II. of the Gandamak Treaty that 'a full and complete amnesty should be published, absolving all Afghans from any responsibility on account of intercourse with the British Forces during the campaign, and that the Amir should guarantee to protect all persons, of whatever degree, from punishment or molestation on that account.'

Lord Lytton, hoping to shield those who had helped us in the early stages of the war from the Amir's anger, specifically stated in Article II of the Gandamak Treaty that "a full and complete amnesty should be announced, freeing all Afghans from any responsibility for their interactions with the British Forces during the campaign, and that the Amir should ensure the protection of all individuals, regardless of status, from punishment or harassment for that reason."

But this stipulation was not adhered to. Yakub Khan more than once spoke to me about it, and declared that it was impossible to control the turbulent spirits in Afghanistan without being supreme, and that this amnesty, had it been published, would have tied his hands with regard to those who had proved themselves his enemies.

But this condition was not followed. Yakub Khan talked to me about it more than once and said that it was impossible to manage the restless spirits in Afghanistan without being in complete control, and that this amnesty, if it had been announced, would have restricted his actions regarding those who had shown themselves to be his enemies.

His neglect to carry out this Article of the treaty added considerably to my difficulty, as will be seen from the following letter from Asmatula Khan, a Ghilzai Chief, to whom I wrote, asking him to meet me at Kabul.

His failure to follow through on this Article of the treaty made my situation much more complicated, as will be evident from the following letter from Asmatula Khan, a Ghilzai Chief, to whom I wrote, asking him to meet me in Kabul.

'I received your kind letter on the 8th of Shawal [28th September], and understood its contents, and also those of the enclosed Proclamation to the people of Kabul. I informed all whom I thought fit of the contents of the Proclamation.

'I received your thoughtful letter on the 8th of Shawal [28th September], and understood its contents, as well as the enclosed Proclamation to the people of Kabul. I informed everyone I thought appropriate about the contents of the Proclamation.'

'Some time ago I went to Gandamak to Major Cavagnari. He instructed me to obey the orders of the Amir, and made me over to His Highness. When Major Cavagnari returned to India, the Amir's officials confiscated my property, and gave the Chiefship to my cousin1 [or enemy], Bakram Khan.

'Some time ago, I went to Gandamak to see Major Cavagnari. He told me to follow the orders of the Amir and handed me over to His Highness. When Major Cavagnari returned to India, the Amir's officials took my property and gave the Chief position to my cousin1 [or rival], Bakram Khan.'

'The oppression I suffered on your account is beyond description. They ruined and disgraced every friend and adherent of mine. On the return of Major Cavagnari to Kabul, I sent my Naib [deputy] to him, who informed him of my state. Major Cavagnari sent a message to me to the effect that I should recover my property by force if I could, otherwise I should go to the hills, and not come to Kabul until I heard from him. In the meantime I received news of the murder of the Envoy, and I am still in the hills.'

'The oppression I faced because of you is unimaginable. They destroyed the reputation and standing of every friend and supporter I had. When Major Cavagnari returned to Kabul, I sent my deputy to him, who informed him about my situation. Major Cavagnari messaged me saying I should reclaim my property by force if possible; otherwise, I should head to the hills and not return to Kabul until I heard from him. In the meantime, I learned about the murder of the Envoy, and I’m still in the hills.'

The thought of what might be in store for those who were now[Page 421] aiding me troubled me a good deal. No doubt their help was not disinterested, but they were 'friends in need,' and I could not be quite indifferent to their future.

The idea of what could happen to those who were now[Page 421] helping me worried me a lot. Sure, their support wasn’t purely selfless, but they were 'friends in need,' and I couldn't just ignore their future.

I had several interesting conversations with Yakub Khan, and in discussing with him Sher Ali's reasons for breaking with us, he dwelt on the fact that his father, although he did not get all he wished out of Lord Mayo, was fairly satisfied and content with what had been done for him, but when Saiyad Nur Mahomed returned from Simla in 1873, he became thoroughly disgusted, and at once made overtures to the Russians, with whom constant intercourse had since been kept up.

I had several intriguing conversations with Yakub Khan, and when we talked about Sher Ali's reasons for leaving us, he emphasized that his father, although he didn't get everything he wanted from Lord Mayo, was fairly satisfied and content with what had been done for him. However, when Saiyad Nur Mahomed came back from Simla in 1873, he became completely disillusioned and immediately reached out to the Russians, with whom he has since maintained constant contact.

Kabul Russianized Yakub Khan's statements were verified by the fact that we found Kabul much more Russian than English. The Afghan Sirdars and officers were arrayed in Russian pattern uniforms, Russian money was found in the treasury, Russian wares were sold in the bazaars, and although the roads leading to Central Asia were certainly no better than those leading to India, Russia had taken more advantage of them than we had to carry on commercial dealings with Afghanistan.2

Kabul's Russian influence Yakub Khan's claims were supported by the fact that we found Kabul to be much more influenced by Russia than by England. The Afghan leaders and officers were dressed in Russian-style uniforms, Russian currency was discovered in the treasury, Russian goods were sold in the markets, and even though the roads leading to Central Asia were definitely no better than those to India, Russia had made better use of them than we had for trade with Afghanistan.2

When I inquired of Yakub Khan what had become of the correspondence which must have been carried on between his father and the Russians, he declared that he had destroyed it all when on his way to Gandamak; nevertheless, a certain number of letters3 from Generals Kauffmann and Stoliatoff came into my possession, and a draft of the treaty the latter officer brought from Tashkent was made for me from memory by the man who had copied it for Sher Ali, aided by the Afghan official who was told off to be in attendance on Stoliatoff, and[Page 422] who had frequently read the treaty.

When I asked Yakub Khan what happened to the correspondence that must have taken place between his father and the Russians, he said he had destroyed all of it on his way to Gandamak. However, I managed to get a few letters3 from Generals Kauffmann and Stoliatoff. Additionally, a draft of the treaty that the latter officer brought from Tashkent was recreated for me from memory by the guy who had copied it for Sher Ali, with help from the Afghan official assigned to assist Stoliatoff, who had often read the treaty. [Page 422]

In one of my last conversations with Yakub Khan, he advised me 'not to lose sight of Herat and Turkestan.' On my asking him whether he had any reason to suppose that his representatives in those places meant to give trouble, he replied: 'I cannot say what they may do; but, remember, I have warned you.' He, no doubt, knew more than he told me, and I think it quite possible that he had some inkling of his brother's4 (Ayub Khan's) intentions, in regard to Kandahar, and he probably foresaw that Abdur Rahman Khan would appear on the scene from the direction of Turkestan.

In one of my last chats with Yakub Khan, he told me 'not to lose sight of Herat and Turkestan.' When I asked him if he had any reason to think that his representatives in those areas would cause trouble, he responded, 'I can't say what they might do; just remember, I’ve warned you.' He definitely knew more than he let on, and I think it’s quite possible that he had some idea about his brother's4 (Ayub Khan's) plans for Kandahar, and he probably anticipated that Abdur Rahman Khan would show up from the direction of Turkestan.

Yakub Khan's abdication accepted I duly received an answer to my telegram regarding the abdication of Yakub Khan, in which I was informed that His Highness's resignation was accepted by Her Majesty's Government, and I was directed to announce the fact to the people of Afghanistan in the following terms:

Yakub Khan's resignation accepted I received a response to my telegram about Yakub Khan's abdication, informing me that Her Majesty's Government accepted His Highness's resignation, and I was instructed to announce this to the people of Afghanistan in the following terms:

'I, General Roberts, on behalf of the British Government, hereby proclaim that the Amir, having by his own free will abdicated, has left Afghanistan without a Government. In consequence of the shameful outrage upon its Envoy and suite, the British Government has been compelled to occupy by force of arms Kabul, the capital, and to take military possession of other parts of Afghanistan.

'I, General Roberts, on behalf of the British Government, hereby announce that the Amir, having voluntarily stepped down, has left Afghanistan without a government. As a result of the disgraceful attack on its envoy and team, the British Government has been forced to take military control of Kabul, the capital, and to occupy other areas of Afghanistan.'

'The British Government now commands that all Afghan authorities, Chiefs, and Sirdars do continue their functions in maintaining order, referring to me whenever necessary.

'The British Government now requires that all Afghan authorities, chiefs, and sirdars continue their duties in keeping order, reaching out to me whenever needed.

'The British Government desire that the people shall be treated with justice and benevolence, and that their religious feelings and customs be respected.

The British Government wants the people to be treated with fairness and kindness, and for their religious beliefs and customs to be respected.

'The services of such Sirdars and Chiefs as assist in preserving order will be duly recognized, but all disturbers of the peace and persons concerned in attacks upon the British authority will meet with condign punishment.

'The services of Sirdars and Chiefs who help maintain order will be properly acknowledged, but anyone who disrupts the peace or is involved in attacks against British authority will face severe consequences.'

'The British Government, after consultation with the principal Sirdars, tribal Chiefs, and others representing the interests and wishes of the various provinces and cities, will declare its will as to the future permanent arrangements to be made for the good government of the people.'

'The British Government, after talking with the main Sirdars, tribal Chiefs, and others who represent the interests and wishes of the different provinces and cities, will announce its plans for the future permanent arrangements to ensure good governance for the people.'

This manifesto was issued on the 28th October, and the same day I informed Yakub Khan that his abdication had been accepted, and acquainted him with the orders passed by the British Government in connexion with this fact.5

This manifesto was released on October 28th, and on the same day, I informed Yakub Khan that his resignation had been accepted and updated him on the orders issued by the British Government regarding this fact.5

Yakub Khan showed no interest either in the Proclamation, a Persian translation of which was read to him, or the Government's decision as to himself, and made no comment beyond a formal 'bisyar khub' ('very good') and an inclination of the head.

Yakub Khan showed no interest in the Proclamation, a Persian translation of which was read to him, or in the Government's decision regarding him, and made no comment other than a formal 'bisyar khub' ('very good') and a nod of the head.

State Treasury Taken Over I then told Yakub Khan that, as I was now charged with the government of the country, it was necessary that I should take possession of[Page 423] the treasury and all moneys therein. He signified his assent, but demurred to certain sums being considered as public property, contending that they formed part of his father's wealth, and that the British Government might as well take from him his choga,6 this also having come from the pockets of the people. 'My father was Padishah,' he said; 'there was no distinction between public and private money. However,' he went on, 'I have given up the crown, and I am not going to dispute about rupees. You may take all I have, down to my clothes; but the money was my father's, and is mine by right.'

State Treasury Acquired I then told Yakub Khan that, since I was now in charge of the government, I needed to take control of[Page 423] the treasury and all the money it contained. He agreed but hesitated about certain amounts being labeled as public funds, arguing that they were part of his father's wealth and that the British Government might as well take his choga,6 since that also came from the people's pockets. 'My father was Padishah,' he said; 'there was no difference between public and private money. Nonetheless,' he continued, 'I've given up the crown, and I’m not going to argue over rupees. You can take everything I have, even my clothes; but the money belonged to my father, and it is rightfully mine.'

I replied that it was necessary that all money in his possession should be given up, but that his private effects should not be touched; that he would be given a receipt for the money, and that, if the Government of India decided it to be his personal property, it should be returned to him.

I said that he needed to hand over all the money he had, but that his personal belongings should remain untouched; he would get a receipt for the money, and if the Government of India determined that it was his personal property, it would be returned to him.

This Yakub Khan at first declined to accept, with some show of temper. Eventually he came round, and said, 'Yes, give me a receipt, so that no one may say hereafter that I carried off State money to which I had no right. It can be easily made sure that I have no money when I go.'7

This Yakub Khan initially refused to accept it, showing some annoyance. Eventually, he changed his mind and said, 'Yes, give me a receipt so that no one can claim later that I took State money that I wasn't entitled to. It's easy to confirm that I have no money when I go.'7

Spite of all his shortcomings, I could not help feeling sorry for the self-deposed Ruler, and before leaving him I explained that he would be treated with the same consideration that had always been accorded to him, that Nawab Sir Ghulam Hussein Khan8 should have a tent next to his, and that it should be the Nawab's care to look after his comfort in every way, and that I should be glad to see him whenever he wished for an interview. That same day, under instructions, I issued the following further manifesto:

Despite all his flaws, I couldn’t help but feel sorry for the self-deposed Ruler. Before I left him, I explained that he would receive the same respect that he had always had. Nawab Sir Ghulam Hussein Khan8 would have a tent next to his, and it would be the Nawab's responsibility to ensure his comfort in every way. I also mentioned that I would be happy to meet with him whenever he wanted. That same day, following orders, I issued the following additional manifesto:

'In my Proclamation of yesterday I announced that His Highness the Amir had of his own free will abdicated, and that for the present the government of Afghanistan would be carried on under my supervision. I now proclaim that, in order to provide for the cost of administration, I have taken possession of the State treasury, and that, until the British Government shall declare its will as to the permanent arrangements to be made for the future good government of the country, the collection of revenue and the expenditure of public money will be regulated by me. All persons concerned are hereby informed that they must obey without dispute or delay such[Page 424] orders as may be issued by me in regard to the payment of taxes and other connected matters; and I give plain warning that anyone resisting or obstructing the execution of such orders will be treated with the utmost severity as an enemy to the British Government.'

'In my announcement yesterday, I stated that His Highness the Amir has voluntarily stepped down, and that for now, the government of Afghanistan will operate under my oversight. I now declare that, to cover the costs of administration, I have taken control of the State treasury, and until the British Government specifies its plans for the future governance of the country, I will manage the collection of revenue and the spending of public funds. Everyone involved is hereby informed that they must comply without question or delay with any orders I issue regarding tax payments and related issues; I warn clearly that anyone who resists or obstructs the implementation of these orders will face serious consequences as an enemy of the British Government.'






CHAPTER LIV.

1879

On the 1st November my Head-Quarters and the 1st division moved into Sherpur, which the Engineers had prepared for winter quarters, and where stores of provisions and forage were assuming satisfactory proportions. The same day Brigadier-General Macpherson left Kabul with a brigade of about 1,800 men and four guns to join hands with the troops which I had lately heard were advancing from the Khyber, and had reached Gandamak. I joined Macpherson the following morning at Butkhak, about eleven miles from Kabul, where our first post towards the Khyber had already been established. It was very important that our communication with India should be by a route good enough for wheeled carriages; I was therefore anxious to see for myself if it were not possible to avoid the Khurd-Kabul Pass, which was said to be very difficult. I had, besides, a strong wish to visit this pass, as being the scene of Sir Robert Sale's fight with the tribesmen in 1841, and of the beginning of the massacre of General Elphinstone's unfortunate troops in 1842.1 The Afghan Commander-in-Chief, Daud Shah, and several Ghilzai Chiefs, accompanied me; from them I learned that an easier road did exist, running more to the east, and crossing over the Lataband mountain. Personal inspection of the two lines proved that Daud Shah's estimate of their respective difficulties was correct; the Lataband route was comparatively easy, there was no defile as on the Khurd-Kabul side, and the kotal, 8,000 feet above the sea, was reached by a gradual ascent from Butkhak. However, I found the Khurd-Kabul much less difficult than I had imagined it to be; it might have been made passable for carts, but there was no object in using it, as the Lataband route possessed the additional advantage of being some miles shorter; accordingly I decided upon adopting the latter as the line of communication with India.

On November 1st, my headquarters and the 1st division moved into Sherpur, which the engineers had prepared for winter quarters, and where supplies of food and forage were becoming quite satisfactory. That same day, Brigadier-General Macpherson left Kabul with a brigade of around 1,800 men and four guns to meet up with the troops that I had recently heard were advancing from the Khyber and had reached Gandamak. I joined Macpherson the following morning at Butkhak, about eleven miles from Kabul, where our first post towards the Khyber had already been set up. It was very important that our communication with India was via a route suitable for wheeled vehicles; I was therefore eager to see if it was possible to bypass the Khurd-Kabul Pass, which was said to be very challenging. Additionally, I had a strong desire to visit this pass, as it was the site of Sir Robert Sale's battle with the tribesmen in 1841 and the beginning of the massacre of General Elphinstone’s unfortunate troops in 1842.1 The Afghan Commander-in-Chief, Daud Shah, and several Ghilzai Chiefs accompanied me; from them, I learned that an easier road did exist, running more to the east and crossing over the Lataband mountain. A personal inspection of the two routes confirmed that Daud Shah's assessment of their respective difficulties was accurate; the Lataband route was comparatively easy, there was no narrow pass as on the Khurd-Kabul side, and the kotal, 8,000 feet above sea level, was reached by a gradual climb from Butkhak. However, I found the Khurd-Kabul much less difficult than I had anticipated; it could have been made passable for carts, but there was no reason to use it, as the Lataband route had the added advantage of being a few miles shorter; consequently, I decided to adopt the latter as the route of communication with India.

Macpherson reported that the country beyond Khurd-Kabul was fairly settled, and that, on the 7th, he had been able to open communication with Brigadier-General Charles Gough, commanding Bright's leading brigade. I was thus again brought into communication with India, and in a position to clear my hospitals of those amongst the sick and wounded who were not progressing favourably,[Page 425] and could not soon be fit for duty.

Macpherson reported that the area beyond Khurd-Kabul was relatively stable, and that, on the 7th, he was able to communicate with Brigadier-General Charles Gough, who was in charge of Bright's leading brigade. As a result, I was once again in touch with India and could start clearing my hospitals of those among the sick and wounded who were not improving well enough and wouldn’t be ready for duty anytime soon.[Page 425]

By this time the Inquiry Commission had completed its difficult task of trying to sift the truth concerning the fate of Cavagnari and his companions from the mass of falsehood with which it was enveloped. The progress had been slow, particularly when examination touched on the part Yakub Khan had played in the tragedy; witnesses were afraid to give evidence openly until they were convinced that he would not be re-established in a position to avenge himself. The whole matter had been gone into most fully, and a careful perusal of the proceedings satisfied me that the Amir could not have been ignorant that an attack on the Residency was contemplated. He may not have foreseen or desired the massacre of the Embassy, but there was no room for doubt as to his having connived at a demonstration against it, which, had it not ended so fatally, might have served him in good stead as a proof of his inability to guarantee the safety of foreigners, and thus obtain the withdrawal of the Mission.

By this time, the Inquiry Commission had finished its challenging task of trying to separate the truth about what happened to Cavagnari and his companions from the overwhelming amount of lies surrounding it. Progress had been slow, especially when it came to examining Yakub Khan's involvement in the tragedy; witnesses were hesitant to provide testimony openly until they were sure he would not be put back in a position to seek revenge. The entire issue had been thoroughly explored, and a careful review of the proceedings made it clear to me that the Amir could not have been unaware that an attack on the Residency was being planned. While he may not have anticipated or wanted the massacre of the Embassy, there was no doubt that he had allowed a demonstration against it, which, had it not ended so tragically, could have served him well as proof of his inability to ensure the safety of foreigners, potentially leading to the withdrawal of the Mission.

The Amnesty Proclamation It was impossible, under these circumstances, that Yakub Khan could ever be reinstated as Ruler of Kabul, and his remaining in his present equivocal position was irksome to himself and most embarrassing to me. I therefore recommended that he should be deported to India, to be dealt with as the Government might decide after reviewing the information elicited by the political Court of Inquiry, which to me appeared to tell so weightily against the ex-Amir, that, in my opinion, I was no longer justified in treating as rebels to his authority Afghans who, it was now evident, had only carried out his secret, if not his expressed, wishes when opposing our advance on Kabul. I decided, therefore, to proclaim a free and complete amnesty2 to all persons not concerned, directly or indirectly, in the attack on[Page 426] the Residency, or who were not found hereafter in possession of property belonging to our countrymen or their escort, on the condition that they surrendered their arms and returned to their homes.

The Amnesty Proclamation Given the situation, it was clear that Yakub Khan could never be restored as the Ruler of Kabul, and his continued ambiguous status was uncomfortable for him and especially awkward for me. I therefore suggested that he be deported to India to be handled as the Government saw fit after considering the information gathered by the political Court of Inquiry, which, in my opinion, strongly indicated that the ex-Amir was at fault. It was now obvious that many Afghans, who I had previously considered rebels to his authority, had only acted on his secret, if not stated, wishes when opposing our advance on Kabul. I decided to announce a full and complete amnesty2 for all individuals not directly or indirectly involved in the attack on[Page 426] the Residency, or who were not found subsequently in possession of property belonging to our citizens or their escorts, provided they surrendered their weapons and returned home.

Strength of the Kabul Field Force At Daud Shah's suggestion, I sent three influential Sirdars to the Logar, Kohistan, and Maidan valleys, to superintend the collection of the amount of forage which was to be levied from those districts; and in order to lessen the consumption at Kabul, I sent away all elephants,3 spare bullocks, and sick transport animals. In furtherance of the same object, as soon as Macpherson returned, I sent Baker with a brigade into the Maidan district, about twenty miles from Kabul, on the Ghazni road, where the troops could more easily be fed, as it was the district from which a large proportion of our supplies was expected, and I also despatched to India all time-expired men and invalids who were no longer fit for service.4

Strength of the Kabul Field Force At Daud Shah's suggestion, I sent three influential leaders to the Logar, Kohistan, and Maidan valleys to oversee the collection of forage that was to be taken from those areas. To reduce consumption in Kabul, I also sent away all elephants, spare bullocks, and sick transport animals. To further this goal, as soon as Macpherson returned, I sent Baker with a brigade to the Maidan district, about twenty miles from Kabul on the Ghazni road, where it would be easier to feed the troops, since a large portion of our supplies was expected from that district. I also dispatched all time-expired men and invalids who were no longer fit for service.

Towards the end of November, Mr. Luke, the officer in charge of the telegraph department, who had done admirable work throughout the campaign, reported that communication was established with India. As, however, cutting the telegraph-wires was a favourite amusement of the tribesmen, a heliograph was arranged at suitable stations between Landi Kotal and Kabul, which was worked with fair success to the end of the war. Had we then possessed the more perfect heliographic apparatus which is now available, it would have made us, in that land of bright sun, almost independent of the telegraph,[Page 427] so far as connexion with Landi Kotal was concerned.

Towards the end of November, Mr. Luke, the officer in charge of the telegraph department, who had done an excellent job throughout the campaign, reported that communication with India was established. However, since cutting the telegraph wires was a favorite pastime of the tribesmen, a heliograph was set up at strategic locations between Landi Kotal and Kabul, which worked fairly well until the end of the war. If we had then had the more advanced heliographic equipment available today, it would have made us nearly independent of the telegraph in that sunlit land, at least in terms of connection with Landi Kotal.[Page 427]

Hearing that Baker was experiencing difficulty in collecting his supplies, I joined him at Maidan to satisfy myself how matters stood. The headmen in the neighbourhood refused to deliver the khalsa grain they had been ordered to furnish, and, assisted by a body of Ghilzais from Ghazni and Wardak, they attacked our Cavalry charged with collecting it, and murdered our agent, Sirdar Mahomed Hussein Khan. For these offences I destroyed the chief malik's fort and confiscated his store of grain, after which there was no more trouble, and supplies came in freely. I returned to Kabul, and Baker, with his brigade, followed me on the 1st December.

Hearing that Baker was having trouble collecting his supplies, I went to Maidan to see how things were going. The local headmen refused to deliver the khalsa grain they were supposed to provide, and, with help from a group of Ghilzais from Ghazni and Wardak, they attacked our cavalry that was tasked with collecting it and killed our agent, Sirdar Mahomed Hussein Khan. In response to these actions, I destroyed the chief malik's fort and confiscated his grain supplies. After that, there was no more trouble, and supplies started coming in easily. I returned to Kabul, and Baker and his brigade followed me on December 1st.

Yakub Khan Despatched to India That same day Yakub Khan was despatched by double marches to India, careful precautions having been taken to prevent his being rescued on the way. When saying good-bye to him, he thanked me warmly for the kindness and consideration he had received, and assured me that he left his wives and children in my hands in the fullest confidence that they would be well treated and cared for.

Yakub Khan Deported to India That same day, Yakub Khan was sent to India with extra precautions taken to ensure he wouldn’t be rescued along the way. When saying goodbye, he thanked me sincerely for the kindness and consideration he had received and told me that he was leaving his wives and children in my care, fully confident that they would be treated well and looked after.

A week later I sent off the two Sirdars, Yahia Khan and Zakariah Khan, as well as the Wazir, whose guilt had been clearly proved, and whose powerful influence, I had every reason to believe, was being used to stir up the country against us. The Mustaufi I allowed to remain; he had been less prominent than the others in opposing us, and, besides, I had an idea that he might prove useful to me in the administration of the country.

A week later, I sent off the two leaders, Yahia Khan and Zakariah Khan, along with the Wazir, whose guilt was clearly established, and whose significant influence I believed was being used to incite the country against us. I decided to keep the Mustaufi; he had been less vocal than the others in opposing us, and I thought he might be useful to me in running the country.






CHAPTER LV.

1879


Political Situation at Kabul
The general political situation, as it developed itself in the early part of December, and the causes which appeared to me to have contributed to produce it, may be briefly summarized as follows. After the outbreak in the previous September and the massacre of our Envoy, the advance of the British force was too rapid to give the Afghans, as a nation, time to oppose us. At Charasia, the troops, aided by large numbers of the disaffected townspeople, were conspicuously beaten in the open field; their organization as an armed body was at an end, and their leaders all sought personal safety in flight.

Kabul's Political Situation The overall political situation that unfolded in early December, along with the reasons I believe contributed to it, can be summarized as follows. After the uprising in September and the assassination of our Envoy, the advance of the British forces was too swift for the Afghans, as a nation, to effectively resist us. At Charasia, the troops, supported by many dissatisfied locals, suffered a clear defeat in the open field; their ability to organize as an armed group was finished, and their leaders all fled in search of safety.

It appears probable that at this period the general expectation amongst the Afghans was that the British Government would exact a heavy retribution from the nation and city, and that, after vengeance had been satisfied, the army would be withdrawn.

It seems likely that at this time, the general expectation among the Afghans was that the British Government would impose a severe punishment on the nation and city, and that once revenge had been taken, the army would be pulled out.

Thirty-seven years before, a British massacre had been followed by a temporary occupation of the city of Kabul, and just as the troops of Pollock and Nott, on that occasion, had sacked and destroyed the great bazaar and then retired, so in 1879 the people believed that some signal punishment would again be succeeded by the withdrawal of our troops. Thus a period of doubt and expectation ensued after the battle of Charasia; the Afghans were waiting on events, and the time had not arrived for a general movement.

Thirty-seven years earlier, a British massacre had led to a short-term occupation of the city of Kabul. Just like the troops of Pollock and Nott had looted and destroyed the big bazaar before pulling back, in 1879, the people believed that some kind of punishment would be followed by our troops leaving again. This created a time of uncertainty and anticipation after the battle of Charasia; the Afghans were waiting for what would happen next, and the moment for a broader action hadn't come yet.

This pause, however, was marked by certain occurrences which doubtless touched the national pride to the quick, and which were also susceptible of being used by the enemies of the British Government to excite into vivid fanaticism the religious sentiment, which has ever formed a prominent trait in the Afghan character.

This break, however, was highlighted by certain events that surely struck a nerve with national pride and could also be exploited by the foes of the British Government to stir up intense fanaticism in the religious sentiment that has always been a key aspect of the Afghan character.

The prolonged occupation by foreign troops of the fortified cantonment which had been prepared by the late Amir Sher Ali for his own army; the capture of the large park of Artillery, and of the vast munitions of war, which had raised the military strength of the Afghans to a standard unequalled among Asiatic nations; the destruction of their historic fortress, the residence of their Kings; and, lastly, the deportation to India of their Amir and his principal Ministers, were all circumstances which united to increase to a high pitch the antipathy naturally felt towards a foreign invader.

The extended presence of foreign troops in the fortified settlement that the late Amir Sher Ali had built for his army; the seizure of the large artillery park and the massive stockpile of weapons that had elevated the Afghan military power to an unmatched level among Asian nations; the destruction of their historic fortress, the home of their Kings; and finally, the forced relocation to India of their Amir and his top Ministers, all contributed to heightening the hostility that was naturally felt towards a foreign invader.

The temper of the people being in this inflammable condition, it was clear that only disunion and jealousy amongst their Chiefs prevented their combining against us, and that if any impetus could be given to their religious sentiment strong enough to unite the discordant elements in a common cause, a powerful movement would be initiated, having for its object our annihilation or expulsion from their country.

The mood of the people was so tense that it was obvious only the division and jealousy among their leaders stopped them from coming together against us. If we could spark a strong enough religious sentiment to unite these conflicting elements for a common cause, we would see a powerful movement aimed at our destruction or removal from their land.

Such an impetus was supplied by the fervent preaching of the aged[Page 429] mulla Mushk-i-Alam,1 who denounced the English in every mosque throughout the country. The people were further incited to rise by the appeals of the ladies of Yakub Khan's family to popular sympathy, and bribed to do so by the distribution of the concealed treasure at their command.

Such motivation came from the passionate sermons of the elderly[Page 429] mulla Mushk-i-Alam,1 who condemned the English in every mosque across the nation. The people were also stirred to act by the appeals of the women in Yakub Khan's family for public support, and they were incentivized to join in by the distribution of the hidden treasure at their disposal.

The mullas, in short, became masters of the situation, and, having once succeeded in subordinating private quarrels to hatred of the common foe, the movement rapidly assumed the aspect of a religious war. The Afghan successes of 1841-42 were cited as examples of what might happen again, and the people were assured that, if they would only act simultaneously, the small British army in Sherpur would be overwhelmed, and the plunder of our camp would be part of their reward.

The mullas basically took control of the situation, and once they managed to turn personal conflicts into a common hatred for the enemy, the movement quickly turned into a religious war. The Afghan victories of 1841-42 were used as examples of what could happen again, and people were told that if they all acted at the same time, the small British army in Sherpur would be defeated, and the loot from our camp would be their reward.

From time to time reports reached me of what was going on, and, from the information supplied to me, I gathered that the Afghans intended to gain possession of the city, and, after occupying the numerous forts and villages in the neighbourhood of Sherpur, to surround the cantonment.

From time to time, I received updates about what was happening, and from the information provided to me, I understood that the Afghans planned to take control of the city and, after capturing the many forts and villages around Sherpur, to encircle the cantonment.

It was under the stimulating influences of religious enthusiasm, patriotic and military ardour, the prestige of former success, and the hope of remuneration and plunder, that the Afghans took the field against us early in December.

It was under the motivating effects of religious passion, patriotic and military zeal, the reputation of past victories, and the expectation of rewards and loot that the Afghans went into battle against us in early December.

Serious Trouble Ahead It was arranged that the forces from the south2 should seize the range of hills extending from Charasia to the Shahr-i-Darwaza heights, including the fortifications of the upper Bala Hissar and the high conical peak called the Takht-i-Shah; that those from the north3 should occupy the Asmai heights and hills to the north of Kabul; and those from the west4 should make direct for the city.

Serious Trouble Coming Up It was decided that the forces from the south2 would take control of the hills from Charasia to the Shahr-i-Darwaza heights, including the fortifications of the upper Bala Hissar and the tall conical peak known as Takht-i-Shah; that those from the north3 would secure the Asmai heights and the hills north of Kabul; and that those from the west4 would head straight for the city.

As it was evident to me that these several bodies, when once concentrated at Kabul, would be joined by the thousands in the city, and the inhabitants of the adjoining villages, I determined to try and deal with the advancing forces in detail, and disperse them, if possible, before the concentration could be effected. I had, however, but a very imperfect idea of the extent of the combination, or of the enormous numbers arrayed against us. My intelligence was most defective; neither the nature of the country nor the attitude of the people admitted of extended reconnaissances, and I was almost entirely dependent for information on Afghan sources. Some of the Afghan soldiers in our ranks aided me to the best of their ability, but by the Sirdars, notably Wali Mahomed Khan, I was, either wilfully or from ignorance, grossly misinformed as to the formidable character of the[Page 430] rising. But that there was serious trouble ahead was plain enough when the conflicting reports had been carefully sifted, and I therefore thought it only prudent to telegraph to General Bright at Jalalabad to push on the Guide Corps, although I was very much averse to augmenting the Sherpur garrison, and thereby increasing the drain on our supplies.

It was clear to me that once these various groups gathered in Kabul, they would be joined by the thousands already in the city and the locals from nearby villages. I decided to try to deal with the advancing forces individually and scatter them, if possible, before they could fully unite. However, I had only a limited understanding of the scale of the alliance or the huge numbers against us. My intelligence was very poor; the landscape and the people's behavior didn't allow for extensive reconnaissance, and I relied almost entirely on Afghan sources for information. Some Afghan soldiers in our ranks did their best to help me, but the Sirdars, especially Wali Mahomed Khan, either misled me on purpose or were simply ignorant about the serious nature of the uprising. It was clear enough that trouble was brewing when I carefully sorted through the conflicting reports, so I thought it wise to send a message to General Bright at Jalalabad to speed up the deployment of the Guide Corps, even though I was quite reluctant to strengthen the Sherpur garrison and further strain our supplies.

In the meantime immediate action was necessary to carry out my idea of preventing the different sections of the enemy concentrating at Kabul. I accordingly prepared two columns: one under Macpherson, whose orders were to attack the tribesmen coming from the north before they could join those advancing from the west; the other under Baker, who was instructed to place himself across the line by which the enemy would have to retreat when beaten, as I hoped they would be, by Macpherson.

In the meantime, action was urgently needed to implement my plan to prevent the various enemy groups from gathering in Kabul. I set up two teams: one led by Macpherson, whose task was to attack the tribesmen coming from the north before they could join those advancing from the west; the other led by Baker, who was directed to position himself across the route the enemy would take to retreat when they were defeated, as I expected they would be, by Macpherson.

Macpherson5 started on the 8th towards Kila Aushar, about three miles from Sherpur, en route to Arghandeh. And on the following morning Baker, with a small force,6 proceeded to Chihal Dukhteran, giving out that his destination was the Logar valley, and that he would march by Charasia, as I had directed him to make a feint in that direction, and then to turn to the west, and place himself between Arghandeh and Maidan, on the Ghazni road.

Macpherson5 set out on the 8th towards Kila Aushar, which is about three miles from Sherpur, on the way to Arghandeh. The next morning, Baker, with a small force,6 continued to Chihal Dukhteran, claiming that he was heading for the Logar valley and would march via Charasia, as I had instructed him to pretend to head in that direction before turning west to position himself between Arghandeh and Maidan, along the Ghazni road.

To give Baker time to carry out this movement, I halted Macpherson at Kila Aushar on the 9th, whence he sent out two reconnoitring parties —one in the direction of Kohistan, the other, in charge of Lieutenant-Colonel Lockhart,7 A.Q.M.G., towards Arghandeh.

To give Baker time to execute this movement, I stopped Macpherson at Kila Aushar on the 9th, from where he sent out two reconnaissance teams—one towards Kohistan and the other, led by Lieutenant-Colonel Lockhart,7 A.Q.M.G., towards Arghandeh.

The intelligence brought in induced me to change my orders to Macpherson. The first party reported that a very considerable force of Kohistanis had collected at Karez-i-Mir, about ten miles north of Kila Aushar, while Lockhart had discovered large numbers of the enemy moving from Arghandeh and Paghman towards Kohistan. Accordingly, I directed Macpherson to attack the Kohistanis, in the hope of being able to disperse them before the people from Ghazni could join them; and, as the part of the country through which he had to move was unsuited to Horse Artillery and Cavalry, I ordered him to leave the mounted portion of his column, except one squadron of Cavalry, at Kila Aushar.

The information I received made me change my orders to Macpherson. The first group reported that a significant number of Kohistanis had gathered at Karez-i-Mir, about ten miles north of Kila Aushar, while Lockhart had found large numbers of the enemy moving from Arghandeh and Paghman toward Kohistan. So, I told Macpherson to attack the Kohistanis, hoping to scatter them before the people from Ghazni could join them. Since the area he needed to move through wasn't suitable for Horse Artillery and Cavalry, I instructed him to leave the mounted part of his column, except for one squadron of Cavalry, at Kila Aushar.

Macpherson made a rapid advance on the morning of the 10th December, skirting the fringe of low hills which intervenes between[Page 431] Kohistan and the Chardeh valley. He reached the Surkh Kotal—which divides western Kohistan from the Arghandeh valley—without opposition. From this point, however, the Kohistanis were sighted, occupying a position about two miles to his right front, their centre on a steep, conical, isolated hill, at the base of which lay the village of Karez-i-Mir.

Macpherson made a quick advance on the morning of December 10th, staying close to the low hills that separate[Page 431] Kohistan from the Chardeh valley. He reached the Surkh Kotal—which separates western Kohistan from the Arghandeh valley—without any resistance. However, from this point, the Kohistanis were spotted, positioned about two miles to his right front, with their center on a steep, conical, isolated hill, at the base of which was the village of Karez-i-Mir.

Macpherson was now able to obtain a good view of the Paghman and Chardeh valleys on his left and left rear, and the numerous standards planted on the different knolls near the villages of Paghman gave ample evidence of the presence of the enemy discovered by Lockhart the previous day, and showed him that, unless he could quickly succeed in scattering the Kohistanis, he would find himself attacked by an enemy in his rear, in fact, between two fires.

Macpherson could now get a clear view of the Paghman and Chardeh valleys to his left and behind him, and the many flags planted on the hills near the villages of Paghman clearly indicated the presence of the enemy that Lockhart had identified the day before. It showed him that unless he quickly managed to disperse the Kohistanis, he would be caught in a situation where he was being attacked from both sides.

Macpherson attacks the Kohistanis Macpherson made his disposition for an attack with skill and rapidity. Leaving Lieutenant-Colonel Money with one company of the 67th, five companies of the 3rd Sikhs, and two guns, to hold the ridge, he sent the remainder of the Sikhs to harass the enemy's left flank and support the Cavalry, who were ordered to hover about and threaten the line of retreat, while Macpherson himself went forward with the rest of the force.

Macpherson attacks the Kohistanis. Macpherson quickly and skillfully prepared for the attack. He left Lieutenant-Colonel Money with one company of the 67th, five companies of the 3rd Sikhs, and two guns to hold the ridge. He sent the remaining Sikhs to annoy the enemy's left flank and support the Cavalry, who were instructed to stay nearby and threaten the line of retreat, while Macpherson himself moved forward with the rest of the troops.

The Kohistanis retreated rapidly before our skirmishers, and the attacking party, protected by a well-directed fire from Morgan's guns, advanced with such promptitude that the enemy made no attempt to rally until they reached the conical hill, where they made a stubborn resistance. The hill was carried by assault, its defenders were driven off, leaving seven standards on the field, and Morgan, bringing up his Artillery, inflicted severe loss on the flying Kohistanis. On this occasion Major Cook, V.C., of the 5th Gurkhas, was again noticed for his conspicuous gallantry, and Major Griffiths, of the 3rd Sikhs, greatly distinguished himself. Our casualties were one officer (Lieutenant-Colonel Fitz-Hugh) and six men wounded.

The Kohistanis quickly fell back in front of our skirmishers, and the attacking group, shielded by precise fire from Morgan's guns, moved forward so swiftly that the enemy didn’t try to regroup until they reached the conical hill, where they put up a fierce fight. The hill was taken by assault, its defenders were pushed back, leaving seven flags on the ground, and Morgan, bringing up his artillery, caused significant losses to the retreating Kohistanis. During this engagement, Major Cook, V.C., of the 5th Gurkhas, was again recognized for his outstanding bravery, and Major Griffiths, of the 3rd Sikhs, made a notable impact. Our losses included one officer (Lieutenant-Colonel Fitz-Hugh) and six wounded soldiers.

It was evident that the tribesmen from the directions of Arghandeh and Paghman intended to ascend the Surkh Kotal, but suddenly they appeared to change their minds, on discovering, probably, that our troops held all the commanding positions and that their allies were in full flight.

It was clear that the tribesmen from the areas of Arghandeh and Paghman planned to climb Surkh Kotal, but suddenly they seemed to change their minds, likely realizing that our troops held all the key positions and that their allies were retreating.

Soon after noon on the 10th I received the report of Macpherson's success and the enemy's retirement towards Arghandeh. I at once sent off Lieutenant-Colonel B. Gordon, R.H.A., with orders to intercept them with the Horse Artillery and Cavalry at Aushar; but when I rode over myself later in the day to that place, I was much disappointed to find that Gordon had not been able to give effect to my instructions, as the enemy, on perceiving his troops, dispersed and took shelter in the surrounding villages and on the slopes of the hills.

Soon after noon on the 10th, I got the report about Macpherson's success and the enemy retreating towards Arghandeh. I immediately sent Lieutenant-Colonel B. Gordon, R.H.A., with orders to intercept them with the Horse Artillery and Cavalry at Aushar. However, when I went there myself later in the day, I was really disappointed to find that Gordon hadn’t been able to follow my instructions. The enemy had seen his troops and scattered, taking cover in the nearby villages and on the hillsides

Macpherson encamped for the night between the Surkh Kotal and[Page 432] Karez-i-Mir, and Baker, who had steadily pursued his march along a very difficult road, halted a short distance west of Maidan and eight miles only from Arghandeh.

Macpherson set up camp for the night between Surkh Kotal and[Page 432]Karez-i-Mir, while Baker, who had been steadily advancing along a very challenging road, stopped a short distance west of Maidan and just eight miles from Arghandeh.

Combined Movements To Macpherson I sent orders to march very early the next morning—the 11th—through Paghman towards Arghandeh and in Baker's direction; at the same time I informed him that Massy, whom I had placed in command of the troops at Aushar, would, according to directions from me, leave that place at nine o'clock to co-operate with him, viâ the Arghandeh and Ghazni road. That evening Massy came to my room, and I carefully explained to him his part in the next day's proceedings; I told him that he was to advance cautiously and quietly by the road leading directly from the city of Kabul towards Arghandeh, feeling for the enemy; that he was to communicate with Macpherson and act in conformity with that officer's movements; and I impressed upon him that he was on no account to commit himself to an action until Macpherson had engaged the enemy.

Combined Moves I sent Macpherson orders to march very early the next morning—the 11th—through Paghman toward Arghandeh and in Baker's direction; at the same time, I informed him that Massy, who I had put in charge of the troops at Aushar, would, per my instructions, leave that location at nine o'clock to work with him, via the Arghandeh and Ghazni road. That evening, Massy came to my room, and I carefully explained his role in the next day's plans; I told him he was to move cautiously and quietly along the road directly from the city of Kabul to Arghandeh, scouting for the enemy; that he was to stay in touch with Macpherson and coordinate with that officer's movements; and I stressed that he should not engage in any action until Macpherson had made contact with the enemy.

Up to this time the combination of tribesmen, which later proved so formidable, had not been effected; Macpherson for the time being had dispersed the Kohistanis and checked the force advancing from Ghazni under the leadership of Mahomed Jan; the Logaris and Ghilzais were merely watching events, and waiting to see how it fared with the Kohistani and Ghazni factions, before committing themselves to hostilities; they had but recently witnessed our successful advance through their country; they knew that their homes and property would be at our mercy should we be victorious, and they were uncertain as to Baker's movements.

Up until now, the alliance of tribesmen that would later become so powerful hadn’t formed yet; for the moment, Macpherson had scattered the Kohistanis and halted the troops coming from Ghazni led by Mahomed Jan. The Logaris and Ghilzais were simply observing and waiting to see what would happen with the Kohistani and Ghazni groups before deciding to join the fight. They had just seen our successful push through their territory; they understood that their homes and possessions would be at our mercy if we won, and they were unsure about Baker's plans.

On the morning of the 11th December,8 therefore, only one section was actually in opposition to us, that led by Mahomed Jan, who during the night of the 10th had taken up a position near the group of villages known as Kila Kazi.

On the morning of December 11th, December, 8 only one group was actually against us, led by Mahomed Jan, who during the night of the 10th had positioned himself near the cluster of villages known as Kila Kazi.

Further, I felt that Mahomed Jan must be disheartened at our recent success, and at his failure to induce the Logaris to join him, and doubtless[Page 433] felt that a movement towards Kabul would expose his left flank to Macpherson, while his rear would be threatened by Baker.

Further, I thought that Mahomed Jan must be feeling down about our recent success and his inability to get the Logaris to join him. He probably[Page 433] realized that moving toward Kabul would leave his left flank vulnerable to Macpherson, while Baker would be a threat from behind.

The uncertainty of war The strength of Baker's and Macpherson's columns had been carefully considered, as well as the routes they were to take. I was thoroughly well acquainted with the ground comprised in the theatre of the proposed operations, having frequently ridden over it during the preceding two months; I was thus able to calculate to a nicety the difficulties each column would have to encounter and the distances they would have to cover, and arrange with the utmost precision the hour at which each Commander should move off to insure a timely junction. So that when I left Sherpur at ten o'clock on the 11th December to take command of Macpherson's and Massy's columns as soon as they should unite, I had no misgivings, and was sanguine that my carefully arranged programme would result in the discomfiture of Mahomed Jan; but the events which followed on that day afforded a striking exemplification of the uncertainty of war, and of how even a very slight divergence from a General's orders may upset plans made with the greatest care and thought, and lead to disastrous results.

The unpredictability of war The strength of Baker's and Macpherson's groups had been carefully thought out, along with the routes they would take. I was very familiar with the terrain where the operations were planned, having frequently ridden over it in the two months leading up to this. This allowed me to accurately predict the challenges each group would face and the distances they would need to cover, and to precisely schedule when each Commander should set off to ensure they joined up in time. So when I left Sherpur at ten o'clock on December 11th to take command of Macpherson's and Massy's groups as soon as they united, I had no doubts and was confident that my well-organized plan would lead to Mahomed Jan's defeat; however, the events that unfolded that day clearly demonstrated the unpredictability of war, and how even a small deviation from a General's orders can disrupt plans made with the utmost care and lead to disastrous outcomes.

Massy could not have clearly understood the part he was meant to take in co-operation with Macpherson, for instead of following the route I had directed him to take, he marched straight across country to the Ghazni road, which brought him face to face with the enemy before he could be joined by Macpherson. In his explanatory report Massy stated that he had been misled by a memorandum9 which he received from the Assistant Adjutant-General after his interview with me (although this memorandum contained nothing contradictory of the orders I had given him); that he understood from it that his business was to reach the Ghazni road at its nearest point in the direction of Arghandeh, and that he thought it better, with a thirty miles' march in prospect, to take the most direct line in order to save his horses, to economize time in a short December day, and to keep as near as he could to the column with which he was to co-operate; further, he stated that he was under the impression there was little likelihood of his meeting with any of the enemy nearer than Arghandeh.

Massy couldn't have fully understood his role in cooperating with Macpherson, because instead of following the route I directed him to take, he went straight across the countryside to the Ghazni road, which brought him face to face with the enemy before he could get joined up with Macpherson. In his explanatory report, Massy said he had been misled by a memorandum9 he received from the Assistant Adjutant-General after his meeting with me (even though this memorandum didn't contradict the orders I had given him); he believed his task was to reach the Ghazni road at the nearest point towards Arghandeh, and he thought it would be better, with a thirty-mile march ahead, to take the most direct route to save his horses, save time during a short December day, and stay as close as possible to the column he was supposed to cooperate with; furthermore, he stated that he thought it was unlikely he would encounter any enemy closer than Arghandeh.

On starting from Aushar Massy detached a troop of the 9th Lancers to communicate with Macpherson. This reduced his column to 247 British and 44 Native Cavalry, with 4 Horse Artillery guns.

On starting from Aushar, Massy sent a group from the 9th Lancers to get in touch with Macpherson. This brought his column down to 247 British and 44 Native Cavalry, along with 4 Horse Artillery guns.

The Fight in the Chardeh Valley As the party moved along the Chardeh valley, a loud beating of drums was heard, and Captain Bloomfield Gough, 9th Lancers, commanding[Page 434] the advance guard, perceived when he had moved to about a mile north of Kila Kazi, that the enemy were occupying hills on both sides of the Ghazni road, about two miles to his left front, and sent back word to that effect. Massy, not believing that the Afghans had collected in any considerable numbers, continued to advance; but he was soon undeceived by the crowds of men and waving standards which shortly came into view moving towards Kila Kazi. He then ordered Major Smith-Wyndham to open fire, but the range, 2,900 yards, being considered by Colonel Gordon, the senior Artillery officer, too far for his six-pounders, after a few rounds the guns were moved across the Ghazni road, and again brought into action at 2,500 yards; as this distance was still found to be too great, they were moved to 2,000 yards. The enemy now pressed forward on Massy's left flank, which was also his line of retreat, and the guns had to be retired about a mile, covered on the right and left by the 9th Lancers and the 14th Bengal Lancers respectively, and followed so closely by the Afghans that when fire was next opened they were only 1,700 yards distant. Four Horse Artillery guns could do nothing against such numbers attacking without any regular formation, and when the leading men came within carbine range, Massy tried to stop them by dismounting thirty of the 9th Lancers; but their fire 'had no appreciable effect.'

The Battle in the Chardeh Valley As the group moved through the Chardeh Valley, they heard loud drumming. Captain Bloomfield Gough of the 9th Lancers, who was in charge of the advance guard, noticed that about a mile north of Kila Kazi, the enemy had taken positions on the hills flanking the Ghazni road, roughly two miles to his left front, and he sent this information back. Massy, doubting that the Afghans had gathered in any significant numbers, continued to move forward; however, he quickly changed his mind when he saw large groups of men and waving flags heading toward Kila Kazi. He then ordered Major Smith-Wyndham to open fire, but Colonel Gordon, the senior Artillery officer, deemed the range of 2,900 yards too far for his six-pounders. After a few rounds, the guns were repositioned across the Ghazni road and put back into action at 2,500 yards; since this distance was still too great, they were moved again to 2,000 yards. The enemy began to advance on Massy's left flank, which was also his escape route, forcing the guns to be pulled back about a mile, shielded on the right by the 9th Lancers and on the left by the 14th Bengal Lancers. The Afghans followed closely, and when fire was resumed, they were only 1,700 yards away. Four Horse Artillery guns were ineffective against such a large number of attackers coming without any standard formation, and when the leading soldiers got within carbine range, Massy attempted to halt them by dismounting thirty of the 9th Lancers; however, their fire had 'no appreciable effect.'

It was at this critical moment that I appeared on the scene. Warned by the firing that an engagement was taking place, I galloped across the Chardeh valley as fast as my horse could carry me, and on gaining the open ground beyond Bhagwana, an extraordinary spectacle was presented to my view. An unbroken line, extending for about two miles, and formed of not less than between 9,000 and 10,000 men, was moving rapidly towards me, all on foot save a small body of Cavalry on their left flank—in fact, the greater part of Mahomed Jan's army. To meet this formidable array, instead of Macpherson's and Massy's forces, which I hoped I should have found combined, there were but 4 guns, 198 of the 9th Lancers under Lieutenant-Colonel Cleland, 40 of the 14th Bengal Lancers under Captain Philip Neville, and at some little distance Gough's troop of the 9th Lancers, who were engaged in watching the enemy's Cavalry.

It was at this critical moment that I showed up. Noticing the gunfire signaling that a battle was happening, I rode through the Chardeh valley as fast as my horse could go. Once I reached the open ground past Bhagwana, an incredible sight came into view. An unbroken line of about 9,000 to 10,000 men was moving quickly toward me, mostly on foot except for a small group of cavalry on their left flank—essentially, the bulk of Mahomed Jan's army. To face this impressive force, instead of the combined troops of Macpherson and Massy that I had hoped to find, there were only 4 artillery pieces, 198 soldiers from the 9th Lancers led by Lieutenant-Colonel Cleland, 40 from the 14th Bengal Lancers under Captain Philip Neville, and at a bit of a distance, Gough's troop from the 9th Lancers, who were busy watching the enemy's cavalry.

The inequality of the opposing forces was but too painfully apparent. The first glance at the situation showed me the hopelessness of continuing the struggle without Infantry. Up to that moment our casualties had not been many, as Afghans seldom play at long bowls, it being necessary for them to husband their ammunition, and when, as in the present instance, they outnumber their adversaries by forty to one, they universally try to come to close quarters and use their knives.

The imbalance of the opposing forces was painfully obvious. A quick look at the situation made it clear that continuing the fight without infantry was hopeless. Until that point, we hadn't taken many casualties since the Afghans usually don't engage in long-range fighting, needing to conserve their ammunition. And when, as was the case now, they outnumber their opponents by forty to one, they typically try to close in and use their knives.

Forced to Retire My first thought was how to secure the best and shortest line of retreat; it lay by Deh-i-Mazang, but in order to use it, the gorge close [Page 435] by that village had to be held; for if the enemy reached it first they would have no difficulty in gaining the heights above Kabul, which would practically place the city at their mercy.

Laid off early My first thought was how to secure the best and quickest escape route; it went through Deh-i-Mazang, but to use it, we had to control the gorge near [Page 435] that village. If the enemy got there first, they would easily take the high ground above Kabul, which would essentially put the city at their mercy.

I was very anxious also to prevent any panic or disturbance taking place in Kabul. I therefore told General Hills, who just then opportunely joined me, to gallop to Sherpur, explain to Brigadier-General Hugh Gough, who had been placed in temporary command of that place, how matters stood, and order 200 of the 72nd Highlanders to come to Deh-i-Mazang with the least possible delay. I directed Hills, after having delivered this message, to make for the city, shut the gates, and do all in his power to keep the people quiet, while warning the Kizilbashes10 to be prepared to defend their quarter. I then despatched my nephew and A.D.C., Lieutenant John Sherston, to Macpherson to inform him of what had happened, and desire him to push on with the utmost speed.

I was also really anxious to prevent any panic or disruption in Kabul. So, I told General Hills, who conveniently arrived at that moment, to ride quickly to Sherpur, explain the situation to Brigadier-General Hugh Gough, who was temporarily in charge there, and order 200 of the 72nd Highlanders to come to Deh-i-Mazang as fast as possible. I instructed Hills, after delivering this message, to head for the city, close the gates, and do everything he could to keep the people calm while warning the Kizilbashes10 to be ready to defend their area. I then sent my nephew and A.D.C., Lieutenant John Sherston, to Macpherson to inform him of what had happened and urge him to move forward with all possible speed.

Having taken these precautionary measures, I sent another A.D.C., Captain Pole Carew, to Brigadier-General Massy to direct him to try and find a way by which the guns could retire in case of a necessity, which appeared to me to be only too probable.

Having taken these precautions, I sent another A.D.C., Captain Pole Carew, to Brigadier-General Massy to instruct him to look for a way for the guns to retreat if necessary, which seemed to me to be quite likely.

The engagement had now become a question of time. If Mahomed Jan could close with and overwhelm our small force, Kabul would be his; but if, by any possibility, his advance could be retarded until Macpherson should come up, we might hope to retain possession of the city. It was, therefore, to the Afghan leader's interest to press on, while it was to ours to delay him as long as we possibly could.

The engagement had now turned into a matter of time. If Mahomed Jan could confront and overpower our small force, Kabul would be his; but if, by some chance, we could slow his advance until Macpherson arrived, we might still be able to keep control of the city. Therefore, it was in the Afghan leader's best interest to push forward, while it was in ours to delay him for as long as we could.

Pole Carew presently returned with a message from Massy that the enemy were close upon him, and that he could not keep them in check. I desired Pole Carew to go back, order Massy to retire the guns, and cover the movement by a charge of Cavalry.

Pole Carew came back with a message from Massy that the enemy was approaching quickly and that he couldn't hold them off. I instructed Pole Carew to return, tell Massy to pull back the guns, and support the movement with a cavalry charge.

The charge was led by Lieutenant-Colonel Cleland and Captain Neville, the former of whom fell dangerously wounded; but the ground, terraced for irrigation purposes and intersected by nullas, so impeded our Cavalry that the charge, heroic as it was, made little or no impression upon the overwhelming numbers of the enemy, now flushed with the triumph of having forced our guns to retire. The effort, however, was worthy of the best traditions of our British and Indian Cavalry, and that it failed in its object was no fault of our gallant soldiers. To assist them in their extremity, I ordered two of Smyth-Windham's four guns to halt and come into action while the other two continued to retire, but these had not gone far before they got into such difficult ground that one had to be spiked and abandoned in a water-cut, where[Page 436] Smyth-Windham found it when he came up after having fired a few rounds at the fast advancing foe. I now ordered Smyth-Windham to make for the village of Bhagwana with his three remaining guns, as the only chance left of saving them. This he did, and having reached the village, he again opened fire from behind a low wall which enclosed the houses; but the ammunition being nearly expended, and the enemy close at hand, there was nothing for it but to limber up again and continue the retirement through the village. At the further side, however, and forming part of its defences, was a formidable obstacle in the shape of a ditch fully twelve feet deep, narrowing towards the bottom; across this Smyth-Windham tried to take his guns, and the leading horses had just begun to scramble up the further bank, when one of the wheelers stumbled and fell, with the result that the shafts broke and the gun stuck fast, blocking the only point at which there was any possibility of getting the others across.

The charge was led by Lieutenant-Colonel Cleland and Captain Neville, with Cleland getting seriously injured. However, the ground, which was terraced for irrigation and cut by dry riverbeds, slowed down our Cavalry so much that, despite their heroic effort, it hardly affected the overwhelming enemy forces, who were now emboldened by pushing our guns back. Still, the attempt was in line with the finest traditions of our British and Indian Cavalry, and the fact that it didn’t succeed wasn’t due to our brave soldiers. To help them in this difficult situation, I ordered two of Smyth-Windham's four guns to stop and engage while the other two continued their retreat. But they hadn’t gone far before they hit such tough ground that one gun had to be spiked and left behind in a water-cut, where Smyth-Windham found it after firing a few rounds at the rapidly approaching enemy. I then instructed Smyth-Windham to head for the village of Bhagwana with his three remaining guns, as it was the last chance to save them. He followed this order and, upon reaching the village, opened fire again from behind a low wall that surrounded the houses. However, with ammunition nearly gone and the enemy close, the only option was to pack up and keep retreating through the village. On the far side, though, there was a serious obstacle: a ditch about twelve feet deep that got narrower at the bottom. Smyth-Windham attempted to get his guns across this ditch, and just as the leading horses started to scramble up the other side, one of the wheelers stumbled and fell, causing the shafts to break and the gun to get stuck, blocking the only spot where the other guns could cross.

With a faint hope of saving the guns, I directed Captain Stewart-Mackenzie, who had assumed command of the 9th Lancers on Cleland being disabled, to make a second charge, which he executed with the utmost gallantry,11 but to no purpose; and in the meanwhile Smyth-Windham had given the order to unhook and spike the guns.

With a slim chance of saving the guns, I told Captain Stewart-Mackenzie, who had taken charge of the 9th Lancers after Cleland was injured, to make a second charge, which he carried out with the utmost gallantry,11 but it was in vain; meanwhile, Smyth-Windham had ordered to unhitch and disable the guns.

Padre Adams earns the V.C. By this time the enemy were within a few hundred yards of Bhagwana, and the inhabitants had begun to fire at us from the roofs of their houses. I was endeavouring to help some men out of the ditch, when the headman of the village rushed at me with his knife, seeing which, a Mahomedan12 of the 1st Bengal Cavalry, who was following me on foot, having just had his horse shot under him, sprang at my assailant, and, seizing him round the waist, threw him to the bottom of the ditch, thereby saving my life.13

Father Adams earns the V.C. By this time, the enemy was only a few hundred yards from Bhagwana, and the locals had started shooting at us from their rooftops. I was trying to help some men out of the ditch when the village headman charged at me with his knife. Seeing this, a Muslim soldier from the 1st Bengal Cavalry, who had just lost his horse, rushed to my aid, grabbed the headman around the waist, and tossed him to the bottom of the ditch, thus saving my life.13

Suddenly the Afghans stayed their advance for a few minutes,[Page 437] thinking, as I afterwards learnt, that our Infantry were in the village—a pause which allowed many of our Cavalry who had lost their horses to escape.14

Suddenly, the Afghans paused their advance for a few minutes,[Page 437] thinking, as I later found out, that our Infantry were in the village. This break gave many of our Cavalry who had lost their horses a chance to escape.14

Directly we had got clear of the village the Cavalry reformed, and retired slowly by alternate squadrons, in a manner which excited my highest admiration, and reflected the greatest credit on the soldierly qualities of Stewart-Mackenzie and Neville. From Bhagwana, Deh-i-Mazang was three miles distant, and it was of vital importance to keep the enemy back in order to give the Highlanders from Sherpur time to reach the gorge.

As soon as we cleared the village, the Cavalry regrouped and slowly retreated in alternating squadrons, which filled me with admiration and highlighted the impressive military skills of Stewart-Mackenzie and Neville. Deh-i-Mazang was three miles away from Bhagwana, and it was crucial to hold off the enemy to give the Highlanders from Sherpur enough time to reach the gorge.

MacPherson's Column Arrives For a time the Afghans continued to press on as before, but after a while their advance gradually became slower and their numbers somewhat decreased. This change in Mahomed Jan's tactics, it afterwards turned out, was caused by Macpherson's advance guard coming into collision with the rear portion of his army; it was of the greatest advantage to us, as it enabled the 72nd to arrive in time to bar the enemy's passage through the gorge. My relief was great when I beheld them, headed by their eager Commander, Brownlow, doubling through the gap and occupying the village of Deh-i-Mazang and the heights on either side. The Cavalry greeted them with hearty cheers, and the volleys delivered by the Highlanders from the roofs of the houses in the village soon checked the Afghans, some of whom turned back, while others made for Indiki and the slopes of the Takht-i-Shah. For a time, at any rate, their hopes of getting possession of Kabul had been frustrated.

MacPherson's Column Has Arrived At first, the Afghans kept pushing forward as they had before, but eventually their advance slowed down and their numbers began to dwindle. It turned out that this shift in Mahomed Jan's strategy was due to Macpherson's advance guard encountering the rear part of his army; this was a huge advantage for us, as it allowed the 72nd to arrive in time to block the enemy's path through the gorge. I felt a surge of relief when I saw them, led by their eager Commander, Brownlow, rushing through the gap and taking over the village of Deh-i-Mazang and the heights on either side. The Cavalry welcomed them with enthusiastic cheers, and the volleys fired by the Highlanders from the rooftops in the village quickly halted the Afghans, some of whom turned back while others headed for Indiki and the slopes of the Takht-i-Shah. For a while, at least, their hopes of capturing Kabul were dashed.

It will be remembered that the orders I sent to Macpherson on the 10th were that he was to march very early the next morning, as Massy with the Horse Artillery and Cavalry would leave Aushar at 9 a.m., and that he must join him on the Arghandeh road. Macpherson did [Page 438] not make so early a start as I had intended; from one cause or another, he said, he was not able to leave Karez-i-Mir before eight o'clock. On reaching the Surkh Kotal he observed dense bodies of the enemy hurrying from the Paghman and Arghandeh directions towards Kila Kazi, and he pushed on, hoping to be able to deal with them individually before they had time to concentrate. For the first three miles from the foot of the pass the view was obstructed by a range of hills, and nothing could be seen of the Horse Artillery and Cavalry; but soon after 10 a.m. the booming of guns warned Macpherson that fighting was going on, but he could not tell whether it was Baker's or Massy's troops which were engaged. He was, however, not left long in doubt, for Lieutenant Neville Chamberlain, attached to Macpherson as political officer, and who had gone on with his advance guard, sent back word that he could distinguish British Cavalry charging the Afghans, and as Baker had only Native Cavalry with him, Macpherson knew at once that the action was being fought by Massy. Suddenly the firing ceased, and he was informed that the enemy were advancing on Kabul, and that their vanguard had already reached the belt of orchards and enclosures, on the further fringe of which the smoke from our guns and the charge of our Cavalry had been seen.

It should be noted that the instructions I sent to Macpherson on the 10th were for him to march very early the next morning, as Massy with the Horse Artillery and Cavalry would leave Aushar at 9 a.m., and he needed to join him on the Arghandeh road. Macpherson didn’t start as early as I had planned; for various reasons, he said he couldn’t leave Karez-i-Mir before eight o’clock. Upon reaching Surkh Kotal, he saw large groups of the enemy rushing from the Paghman and Arghandeh directions toward Kila Kazi, and he moved forward, hoping to tackle them one by one before they could gather together. For the first three miles from the base of the pass, the view was blocked by a range of hills, and he couldn’t see the Horse Artillery and Cavalry; but shortly after 10 a.m., the sound of cannon fire alerted Macpherson that fighting was happening, though he couldn't tell whether it was Baker’s or Massy’s troops that were involved. However, he was soon informed by Lieutenant Neville Chamberlain, who was with Macpherson as a political officer and had gone ahead with the advance guard, that he could see British Cavalry charging the Afghans. Since Baker had only Native Cavalry with him, Macpherson immediately realized that the action was being fought by Massy. Suddenly, the firing stopped, and he learned that the enemy were advancing on Kabul, with their vanguard already reaching the area of orchards and enclosures, beyond which the smoke from our guns and the charge of our Cavalry could be seen.

Macpherson, feeling that something serious had occurred, called on his men to make a further effort. At 12.30 p.m., less than an hour after we had begun to retire, he reached the ground where the fight had taken place. The dead bodies of our officers and men, stripped and horribly mutilated, proved how fierce had been the struggle, and the dropping shots which came from the fortified villages in the neighbourhood and from the ravines, warned the Brigadier-General that some of the enemy were still in the neighbourhood. But these men, so bold in the confidence of overwhelming numbers when attacking Massy's Cavalry, were not prepared to withstand Macpherson's Infantry; after a brief resistance they broke and fled in confusion, some to Indiki, but the greater number to the shelter of the hills south of Kila Kazi, to which place Macpherson followed them, intending to halt there for the night. This I did not allow him to do, for, seeing the heavy odds we had opposed to us, and that the enemy were already in possession of the Takht-i-Shah, thus being in a position to threaten the Bala Hissar, I sent orders to him to fall back upon Deh-i-Mazang, where he arrived about 7 p.m.

Macpherson, sensing that something serious had happened, urged his men to make another push. At 12:30 p.m., less than an hour after we started to retreat, he reached the spot where the battle had occurred. The dead bodies of our officers and men, stripped and brutally mutilated, showed how fierce the fight had been. The sporadic shots coming from the fortified villages nearby and from the ravines warned the Brigadier-General that some enemies were still around. But these men, so confident in their overwhelming numbers when attacking Massy's Cavalry, weren't ready to face Macpherson's Infantry; after a brief fight, they broke and ran in confusion—some heading to Indiki, but most seeking refuge in the hills south of Kila Kazi, where Macpherson followed them, planning to stay for the night. I did not let him do that, as I saw the heavy odds against us and that the enemy were already in control of the Takht-i-Shah, putting them in a position to threaten the Bala Hissar. I sent orders for him to fall back to Deh-i-Mazang, where he arrived around 7 p.m.

Meanwhile, Macpherson's baggage, with a guard of the 5th Gurkhas, commanded by Major Cook, V.C., was attacked by some Afghans, who had remained concealed in the Paghman villages, and it would probably have fallen into their hands, as the Gurkhas were enormously outnumbered, but for the timely arrival of four companies of the 3rd Sikhs, under Major Griffiths, who had been left by Macpherson to see everything safely down the pass. Cook himself was knocked over and [Page 439] stunned by a blow, while his brother in the 3rd Sikhs received a severe bullet-wound close to his heart.

Meanwhile, Macpherson's baggage, guarded by the 5th Gurkhas, led by Major Cook, V.C., was attacked by some Afghans who had been hiding in the Paghman villages. It probably would have been taken by them since the Gurkhas were greatly outnumbered, but for the timely arrival of four companies of the 3rd Sikhs, under Major Griffiths, who had been assigned by Macpherson to ensure everything got safely down the pass. Cook himself was knocked down and [Page 439] stunned by a blow, while his brother in the 3rd Sikhs was seriously wounded by a bullet near his heart.

The Captured Guns Recovered During the retirement from Bhagwana, Macgregor, my Chief of the Staff, Durand, Badcock, and one or two other staff officers, got separated from me and were presently overtaken by an officer (Captain Gerald Martin), sent by Macpherson to tell Massy he was coming to his assistance as fast as his Infantry could travel; Martin informed Macgregor that as he rode by Bhagwana he had come across our abandoned guns, and that there was no enemy anywhere near them. On hearing this, Macgregor retraced his steps, and, assisted by the staff officers with him and a few Horse Artillerymen and Lancers, and some Gurkhas of Macpherson's baggage guard picked up on the way, he managed to rescue the guns and bring them into Sherpur that night. They had been stripped of all their movable parts, and the ammunition-boxes had been emptied; otherwise they were intact, and were fit for use the next day.

The Recovered Captured Guns During the withdrawal from Bhagwana, Macgregor, my Chief of Staff, along with Durand, Badcock, and a couple of other staff officers, got separated from me. They were soon caught up by an officer, Captain Gerald Martin, who was sent by Macpherson to inform Massy that he was coming to help as quickly as his infantry could move. Martin told Macgregor that as he passed Bhagwana, he found our abandoned guns and noted that there were no enemies nearby. Upon hearing this, Macgregor went back and, with the help of the staff officers with him, some Horse Artillerymen and Lancers, and a few Gurkhas from Macpherson's baggage guard they encountered along the way, managed to recover the guns and brought them into Sherpur that night. They had been stripped of all their movable parts, and the ammunition boxes had been emptied; otherwise, they were intact and ready for use the next day.

I found assembled at Deh-i-Mazang Wali Mahomed and other Sirdars, who had been watching with considerable anxiety the issue of the fight, for they knew if the Afghans succeeded in their endeavours to enter Kabul, all property belonging to people supposed to be friendly to us would be plundered and their houses destroyed. I severely upbraided these men for having misled me as to the strength and movements of Mahomed Jan's army, and with having failed to fulfil their engagement to keep me in communication with Baker. They declared they had been misinformed themselves, and were powerless in the matter. It was difficult to believe that this was the case, and I was unwillingly forced to the conclusion that not a single Afghan could be trusted, however profuse he might be in his assurances of fidelity, and that we must depend entirely on our own resources for intelligence.

I found Wali Mahomed and other leaders gathered at Deh-i-Mazang, watching the outcome of the battle with great concern. They knew that if the Afghans succeeded in their efforts to enter Kabul, all property belonging to those thought to be friendly to us would be looted and their homes destroyed. I severely reprimanded these men for misleading me about the strength and movements of Mahomed Jan's army and for failing to keep me in contact with Baker as they had promised. They insisted they had been misinformed themselves and were helpless in the situation. It was hard to believe that this was true, and I reluctantly came to the conclusion that not a single Afghan could be trusted, no matter how sincere he seemed in his promises of loyalty, and that we had to rely solely on our own resources for information.

I waited at Deh-i-Mazang until Macpherson arrived, and thus did not get back to Sherpur till after dark. I was gratified on my arrival there to find that Hugh Gough had made every arrangement that could be desired for the defence of the cantonment, and that by his own cool and confident bearing he had kept the troops calm and steady, notwithstanding the untoward appearance of some fugitives from the field of battle, whose only too evident state of alarm might otherwise have caused a panic.

I waited at Deh-i-Mazang until Macpherson showed up, so I didn't get back to Sherpur until after dark. I was pleased when I arrived there to see that Hugh Gough had taken every possible measure to defend the cantonment, and by staying calm and confident himself, he had kept the troops composed and steady, even though some frightened escapees from the battlefield had arrived, whose obvious fear could have led to a panic.

For the safety of Sherpur I never for one moment had the smallest apprehension during that eventful day. It was, I believe, thought by some that if Mahomed Jan, instead of trying for the city, had made for the cantonment, it would have fallen into his hands; but they were altogether wrong, for there were a sufficient number of men within the walls to have prevented such a catastrophe had Mahomed Jan been in a position to make an attack; but this, with Macpherson's brigade [Page 440] immediately in his rear, he could never have dreamt of attempting.

For the safety of Sherpur, I never had the slightest worry during that eventful day. Some believed that if Mahomed Jan had aimed for the cantonment instead of the city, he could have taken it; however, they were completely mistaken. There were enough people inside the walls to stop such a disaster, even if Mahomed Jan had been able to launch an attack. But with Macpherson's brigade [Page 440] right behind him, he would never have considered trying.

The city of Kabul remained perfectly quiet while all the excitement I have described was going on outside. Hills, with a few Sikhs, patrolled the principal streets, and even when the Afghan standard appeared on the Takht-i-Shah there was no sign of disturbance. Nevertheless, I thought it would be wise to withdraw from the city; I could not tell how long the people would remain well disposed, or whether they would assist us to keep the enemy out. I therefore directed Hills to come away and make over his charge to an influential Kizilbash named Futteh Khan. I also telegraphed to General Bright at Jalalabad to reinforce Gandamak by a sufficient number of troops to hold that post in case it should be necessary to order Brigadier-General Charles Gough, who was then occupying it, to move his brigade nearer to Kabul; for I felt sure that, unless I could succeed in driving Mahomed Jan out of the neighbourhood of Kabul, excitement would certainly spread along my line of communication. I concluded my message to Bright thus: 'If the wire should be cut, consider it a bad sign, and push on to Gandamak, sending Gough's Brigade towards Kabul.'

The city of Kabul was completely quiet while all the excitement I described was happening outside. Hills, along with a few Sikhs, patrolled the main streets, and even when the Afghan flag was raised on the Takht-i-Shah, there was no sign of unrest. Still, I thought it would be smart to leave the city; I couldn’t predict how long the people would stay friendly or whether they would help us keep the enemy out. So, I instructed Hills to leave and hand over his responsibilities to an influential Kizilbash named Futteh Khan. I also sent a telegram to General Bright in Jalalabad to reinforce Gandamak with enough troops to secure that post in case I needed to order Brigadier-General Charles Gough, who was stationed there, to move his brigade closer to Kabul. I was certain that unless I could succeed in driving Mahomed Jan out of the Kabul area, unrest would definitely spread along my line of communication. I ended my message to Bright with this: ‘If the wire gets cut, take it as a bad sign, and move towards Gandamak, sending Gough's Brigade towards Kabul.’

Melancholy Reflections I could not help feeling somewhat depressed at the turn things had taken. I had no news from Baker, and we had undoubtedly suffered a reverse, which I knew only too well would give confidence to the Afghans, who, from the footing they had now gained on the heights above Kabul, threatened the Bala Hissar, which place, stored as it was with powder and other material of war, I had found it necessary to continue to occupy. Nevertheless, reviewing the incidents of the 11th December, as I have frequently done since, with all the concomitant circumstances deeply impressed on my memory, I have failed to discover that any disposition of my force different from that I made could have had better results, or that what did occur could have been averted by greater forethought or more careful calculation on my part. Two deviations from my programme (which probably at the time appeared unimportant to the Commanders in question) were the principal factors in bringing about the unfortunate occurrences of that day. Had Macpherson marched at 7 a.m. instead of 8, and had Massy followed the route I had arranged for him to take, Mahomed Jan must have fallen into the trap I had prepared for him.

Sad Thoughts I couldn’t help but feel a bit down about how things had turned out. I hadn’t heard from Baker, and we had definitely faced a setback, which I knew would boost the confidence of the Afghans. They were now in a strong position on the heights above Kabul and were threatening the Bala Hissar, a place I had to keep occupied since it was stocked with gunpowder and other war materials. However, when I reflect on the events of December 11th, as I often do, with all the details still fresh in my mind, I haven’t been able to find a way my forces could have been arranged differently that would have led to better outcomes, nor do I think that what happened could have been avoided with more foresight or careful planning on my part. Two deviations from my plan (which probably seemed minor to the Commanders involved at the time) were the key factors in the unfortunate events of that day. If Macpherson had marched at 7 a.m. instead of 8, and if Massy had taken the route I had assigned him, Mahomed Jan would have surely fallen into the trap I had set for him.

Our casualties on the 11th were—killed, 4 British officers, 16 British and 9 Native rank and file; wounded, 4 British officers, 1 Native officer, 20 British and 10 Native rank and file.

Our casualties on the 11th were—killed, 4 British officers, 16 British soldiers, and 9 Native soldiers; wounded, 4 British officers, 1 Native officer, 20 British soldiers, and 10 Native soldiers.



Click map to enlarge
Map of the Chardeh Valley, Kabul, and the Bala Hissar.

Map of the CHARDEH VALLEY, KABUL, and the BALA HISSAR.

From a drawing by C.H.Manners Smith, Lieut. D.A.Q.M.G.

Click map to zoom in
Map of the Chardeh Valley, Kabul, and the Bala Hissar.

Map of the CharDeh Valley, Kabul, and the Bala Hissar.

From a drawing by C.H. Manners Smith, Lieutenant D.A.Q.M.G.








CHAPTER LVI.

1879

On the morning of the 12th I was cheered by hearing that the Guides had arrived during the night under the command of Colonel P. Jenkins—a most welcome reinforcement, for I knew how thoroughly to be depended upon was every man in that distinguished corps.

On the morning of the 12th, I was happy to hear that the Guides had arrived overnight under Colonel P. Jenkins' command—a very welcome addition, as I knew I could rely completely on every member of that distinguished group.

Attack on the Takht-i-Shah The first thing now to be done was to endeavour to drive the Afghans from the crest of the Takht-i-Shah; and I directed Macpherson, as soon as his men had breakfasted, to attack the position from Deh-i-Mazang. Just then my mind was considerably relieved by a heliogram from Baker informing me that he was on his way back to Kabul. The message was despatched from near Kila Kazi, within four miles of which place Baker had encamped on the afternoon of the previous day.

Attack on the Takht-i-Shah The first thing we needed to do was try to drive the Afghans off the top of the Takht-i-Shah. I instructed Macpherson to attack the position from Deh-i-Mazang as soon as his men finished breakfast. Just then, I felt a lot better when I received a heliogram from Baker letting me know he was on his way back to Kabul. This message was sent from near Kila Kazi, where Baker had set up camp the afternoon before, only about four miles away.

Macpherson deputed the task of trying to dislodge the enemy to Lieutenant-Colonel Money, of the 3rd Sikhs, with a detachment consisting of 2 Mountain guns and 560 British and Native Infantry.

Macpherson assigned the task of trying to push back the enemy to Lieutenant-Colonel Money of the 3rd Sikhs, with a group made up of 2 Mountain guns and 560 British and Native Infantry.

It was a most formidable position to attack. The slopes leading up to it were covered with huge masses of jagged rock, intersected by perpendicular cliffs, and its natural great strength was increased by breastworks, and stockades thrown up at different points.

It was a very tough position to attack. The slopes leading up to it were filled with large chunks of sharp rock, cut through by steep cliffs, and its natural strength was made even greater by barriers and stockades built at various points.

After a gallant and persistent attempt had been made, I ordered the assault to be deferred; for I perceived that the enemy were being reinforced from their rear, and to ensure success without great loss, it would be necessary to attack them in rear as well as in the front. The arrival of Baker's brigade made it possible to do this. I therefore ordered Macpherson to hold the ground of which he had gained possession until Baker could co-operate with him next morning from the Beni Hissar side.

After a brave and determined attempt had been made, I decided to postpone the attack; I noticed that the enemy was getting reinforcements from behind, and to ensure our success without heavy losses, we needed to strike them from both the front and the back. The arrival of Baker's brigade made this possible. I then instructed Macpherson to hold the ground he had taken until Baker could work with him the next morning from the Beni Hissar side.

During the night Mahomed Jan, who had been joined by several thousands from Logar and Wardak, occupied the villages situated between Beni Hissar and the Bala Hissar and along the sang-i-nawishta road. Baker, who started at 8 a.m. on the 13th,1 had, therefore, in the first place, to gain the high ground above these villages, and, while holding the point over-looking Beni Hissar, to wheel to his right and move towards the Takht-i-Shah.

During the night, Mahomed Jan, joined by several thousand from Logar and Wardak, took control of the villages between Beni Hissar and the Bala Hissar, along the sang-i-nawishta road. Baker, who set out at 8 a.m. on the 13th,1 had to first secure the high ground above these villages and, while holding the vantage point overlooking Beni Hissar, turn to his right and move toward the Takht-i-Shah.

When he had proceeded some little distance, his advance guard reported that large bodies of the enemy were moving up the slope of the ridge from the villages near Beni Hissar. To check this movement, and prevent the already very difficult Afghan position being still further strengthened, Major White, who was in command of the leading portion of the attacking party, turned and made for the nearest point[Page 442] on the ridge. It was now a race between the Highlanders and the Afghans as to who should gain the crest of the ridge first. The Artillery came into action at a range of 1,200 yards, and under cover of their fire the 92nd, supported by the Guides, rushed up the steep slopes. They were met by a furious onslaught, and a desperate conflict took place. The leading officer, Lieutenant Forbes, a lad of great promise, was killed, and Colour-Sergeant Drummond fell by his side. For a moment even the brave Highlanders were staggered by the numbers and fury of their antagonists, but only for a moment. Lieutenant Dick Cunyngham2 sprang forward to cheer them on, and confidence was restored. With a wild shout the Highlanders threw themselves on the Afghans, and quickly succeeded in driving them down the further side of the ridge.

When he had moved a little way along, his advance guard reported that large groups of the enemy were advancing up the slope of the ridge from the villages near Beni Hissar. To stop this movement and prevent the already difficult Afghan position from becoming even stronger, Major White, who was in charge of the leading part of the attacking force, turned and headed for the nearest point[Page 442] on the ridge. It was now a race between the Highlanders and the Afghans to see who would reach the top of the ridge first. The artillery opened fire at a range of 1,200 yards, and under the protection of their fire, the 92nd, supported by the Guides, charged up the steep slopes. They faced a fierce attack, and a desperate battle ensued. The leading officer, Lieutenant Forbes, a promising young man, was killed, and Colour-Sergeant Drummond fell beside him. For a moment, even the courageous Highlanders were taken aback by the numbers and intensity of their opponents, but only for a moment. Lieutenant Dick Cunyngham2 sprang forward to rally them, and their confidence was restored. With a loud shout, the Highlanders launched themselves at the Afghans and quickly managed to drive them down the other side of the ridge.

By this successful movement the enemy's line was cut in two, and while the Cavalry and a party of the 3rd Sikhs prevented their rallying in the direction of Beni Hissar, the 92nd and Guides, protected by the Mountain guns, which had been got on to the ridge, and the Field Artillery from below, advanced towards the Takht-i-Shah. The Afghans disputed every inch of the way, but by 11.30 a.m. White's men had reached the foot of the craggy eminence which formed the enemy's main position. They were here joined by some of the 72nd Highlanders, 3rd Sikhs, and 5th Gurkhas, under the command of Lieutenant-Colonel Money, who had fought their way from the upper Bala Hissar.

By this successful movement, the enemy's line was split in two, and while the Cavalry and a group from the 3rd Sikhs prevented them from regrouping towards Beni Hissar, the 92nd and Guides, covered by the Mountain guns that had been moved up to the ridge, along with the Field Artillery below, advanced toward the Takht-i-Shah. The Afghans fought for every inch of ground, but by 11:30 a.m., White's troops had reached the base of the rocky height that was the enemy's main position. They were joined there by some of the 72nd Highlanders, 3rd Sikhs, and 5th Gurkhas, under the command of Lieutenant-Colonel Money, who had fought their way down from the upper Bala Hissar.

A brilliant charge by the combined troops now took place, the two Highlands corps vying with each other for the honour of reaching the summit first. It fell to the 72nd, Colour-Sergeant Yule3 of that regiment being the foremost man on the top. The enemy made a most determined stand, and it was only after a severe struggle and heavy loss that they were driven off the heights.

A brilliant charge by the combined troops took place, with the two Highland corps competing for the honor of reaching the summit first. The 72nd took the lead, with Colour-Sergeant Yule3 of that regiment as the first man to reach the top. The enemy put up a tough fight, and it was only after a fierce struggle and significant losses that they were pushed off the heights.

City people join the tribesmen From my position at Sherpur I had the satisfaction of witnessing this success. This satisfaction, however, was short-lived, for almost immediately I received a report from the city that the inhabitants had joined the tribesmen, and that the cantonment was being threatened; indeed, I could see large bodies of armed men emerging from the city and moving towards Siah Sang, whence the road between the Bala Hissar and Sherpur would be commanded.

City folks join the tribesmen From my vantage point at Sherpur, I was pleased to see this success. However, that satisfaction didn't last long, as I soon got a report from the city that the residents had teamed up with the tribesmen and that the cantonment was under threat; in fact, I could see large groups of armed men coming out of the city and heading towards Siah Sang, from where they would control the road between the Bala Hissar and Sherpur.

Having only too evidently lost control over the city, the value of Deh-i-Mazang was gone, so I ordered Macpherson to abandon it and move to the Shahr-i-Darwaza heights, taking with him six companies of the 67th Foot for the protection of the Bala Hissar, to which it was desirable to hold on as long as possible. The remainder of his troops[Page 443] I ordered to be sent to Sherpur. To Baker I signalled to leave a party on the Takht-i-Shah under Lieutenant-Colonel Money, and to move himself towards the cantonment with the rest of his troops, driving the enemy off the Siah Sang on the way.

Having clearly lost control over the city, the value of Deh-i-Mazang was gone, so I ordered Macpherson to abandon it and move to the Shahr-i-Darwaza heights, taking with him six companies of the 67th Foot to protect the Bala Hissar, which we wanted to hold onto for as long as possible. I ordered the rest of his troops[Page 443] to be sent to Sherpur. I signaled to Baker to leave a team on the Takht-i-Shah under Lieutenant-Colonel Money and to move himself toward the cantonment with the rest of his troops, pushing the enemy off the Siah Sang along the way.

But from his point of vantage on the heights Baker could see, what I could not, that the Afghans had occupied two strongly fortified villages between Siah Sang and the Bala Hissar, from which it was necessary to dislodge them in the first instance, and for this service he detached the 5th Punjab Infantry and a battery of Artillery. It was carried out in a masterly manner by Major Pratt, who soon gained possession of one village. The other, however, was resolutely held, and the Artillery failing to effect a breach, the gates were set on fire; but even then a satisfactory opening was not made, and the place was eventually captured by means of scaling-ladders hastily made of poles tied together with the Native soldiers' turbans.

But from his position on the heights, Baker could see what I couldn’t: the Afghans had taken over two heavily fortified villages between Siah Sang and the Bala Hissar, and we needed to drive them out first. To do this, he sent the 5th Punjab Infantry and an artillery battery. Major Pratt executed the plan skillfully and soon took one of the villages. However, the other was held firmly by the defenders, and when the artillery failed to break through, they set the gates on fire. Even then, it didn’t create a satisfactory opening, and the place was eventually captured using makeshift scaling ladders made from poles tied together with the Native soldiers’ turbans.

Capture of Siah Sang Baker was now able to turn his attention to Siah Sang, so I despatched the Cavalry under Massy, to act with him when a signal success was achieved. The enemy fought stubbornly, but were at last driven off. The 5th Punjab Cavalry, led by Lieutenant-Colonel Williams and Major Hammond, greatly distinguished themselves, and a grand charge was made by the Guides and 9th Lancers, in which Captain Butson, of the latter regiment, was killed, also the troop Sergeant-Major and 3 men; and Captain Chisholme,4 Lieutenant Trower, and 8 men were wounded.

Capture of Siah Sang Baker was now able to focus on Siah Sang, so I sent out the Cavalry under Massy to assist him when a major victory was achieved. The enemy fought hard but were eventually pushed back. The 5th Punjab Cavalry, led by Lieutenant-Colonel Williams and Major Hammond, performed exceptionally well, and a spectacular charge was made by the Guides and 9th Lancers, in which Captain Butson from the latter regiment was killed, along with the troop Sergeant-Major and 3 men; Captain Chisholme, Lieutenant Trower, and 8 men were injured.

This ended the operations on the 13th. Our losses during the day were: killed, 2 British officers and 12 men; wounded, 2 British officers and 43 men, British and Native.

This concluded the operations on the 13th. Our losses for the day were: killed, 2 British officers and 12 men; wounded, 2 British officers and 43 men, both British and Native.

I was in great hopes that our successes and the heavy losses the enemy had sustained would result in the breaking up of the combination against us; but in case these hopes should not be realized, I decided to do away with some of the smaller posts on the line of communication, and order up more troops. Accordingly, I telegraphed to General Bright to send on Charles Gough's brigade, and I directed the detachment at Butkhak to return to Kabul, and that at Seh Baba to fall back on Lataband. Having great confidence in its Commander, Colonel Hudson, I determined to hold on to Lataband for a time, though by so doing the numbers I might otherwise have had at Sherpur were considerably diminished. Lataband was the most important link in the chain of communication between Kabul and Jalalabad; it was in direct heliographic connexion with Kabul; it had sufficient ammunition and supplies to last over the date on which Gough should arrive at Sherpur, and its being held would be a check on the Ghilzais, and prevent his encountering any serious opposition.[Page 444] At the same time, I could not disguise from myself that there was a certain amount of risk attached to leaving so small a garrison in this somewhat isolated position.

I was really hopeful that our victories and the heavy losses the enemy suffered would lead to the collapse of their alliance against us; however, in case those hopes didn't come true, I decided to remove some of the smaller outposts along the supply line and request additional troops. So, I sent a message to General Bright asking him to send Charles Gough's brigade, and I instructed the detachment at Butkhak to return to Kabul, while the one at Seh Baba was to fall back to Lataband. Having a lot of faith in Colonel Hudson, its Commander, I decided to keep Lataband for a while, even though this meant significantly reducing the numbers I could have at Sherpur. Lataband was the most critical link in the communication chain between Kabul and Jalalabad; it was directly connected to Kabul through heliographic signals; it had enough ammunition and supplies to last until Gough arrived at Sherpur, and holding it would keep the Ghilzais in check and prevent him from facing serious opposition.[Page 444] At the same time, I couldn't ignore the fact that there was some risk in leaving such a small garrison in this fairly isolated position.

The night of the 13th passed quietly, but when day dawned on the 14th crowds of armed men, with numerous standards, could be seen occupying a hill on the Kohistan road; and as day advanced they proceeded in vast numbers to the Asmai heights, where they were joined by swarms from the city and the Chardeh valley. It then became apparent that the combination was much more formidable than I had imagined, and that the numbers of the enemy now in opposition to us were far greater than I had dreamt was possible. Foiled in their attempt to close in upon us from the south and west, the tribesmen had concentrated to the north, and it was evident they were preparing to deliver an attack in great strength from that quarter. I quickly decided to drive the enemy off the Asmai heights, to cut their communication with Kohistan, and to operate towards the north, much as I had operated the previous day to the south of Sherpur.

The night of the 13th went by quietly, but when morning came on the 14th, crowds of armed men with many flags were seen occupying a hill on the Kohistan road. As the day went on, they moved in large numbers to the Asmai heights, where they were joined by many more from the city and the Chardeh valley. It became clear that their combined forces were much more powerful than I had expected, and the number of enemies now facing us was far greater than I had thought possible. After failing to surround us from the south and west, the tribesmen gathered in the north, and it was obvious they were gearing up for a strong attack from that direction. I quickly decided to push the enemy off the Asmai heights, cut their communication with Kohistan, and move north, just as I had done the previous day to the south of Sherpur.

At 9 a.m. I despatched Brigadier General Baker to the eastern slope of the Asmai range with the following troops: 4 guns, Field Artillery; 4 guns, Mountain Artillery; 14th Bengal Lancers; 72nd Highlanders (192 rifles); 92nd Highlanders (100 rifles); Guides Infantry (460 rifles); and 5th Punjab Infantry (470 rifles).

At 9 a.m., I sent Brigadier General Baker to the eastern slope of the Asmai range with the following troops: 4 guns, Field Artillery; 4 guns, Mountain Artillery; 14th Bengal Lancers; 72nd Highlanders (192 rifles); 92nd Highlanders (100 rifles); Guides Infantry (460 rifles); and 5th Punjab Infantry (470 rifles).

Covered by the fire of his Artillery, Baker seized the conical hill which formed the northern boundary of the Aliabad Kotal, thus placing himself on the enemy's line of communication, and preventing them from being reinforced. He then proceeded to attack the Asmai heights, leaving 2 Mountain guns, 64 men of the 72nd, and 60 Guides, under the command of Lieutenant-Colonel W.H. Clarke, to hold the hill.

Covered by the fire of his artillery, Baker took control of the conical hill that marked the northern edge of the Aliabad Kotal, cutting off the enemy's lines of communication and stopping them from getting reinforcements. He then moved on to attack the Asmai heights, leaving 2 mountain guns, 64 men from the 72nd, and 60 Guides under the command of Lieutenant-Colonel W.H. Clarke to hold the hill.

To aid Baker in his difficult task, I brought four guns into action near the north-west corner of the cantonment, and I signalled to Macpherson to give him every possible assistance. Macpherson at once sent the 67th across the Kabul river to threaten the enemy's left rear; while the marksmen of the regiment and the Mountain guns opened fire from the northern slope of the Bala Hissar heights.

To help Baker with his tough job, I deployed four guns near the northwest corner of the camp and signaled to Macpherson to provide him with all the help he could. Macpherson immediately sent the 67th across the Kabul River to threaten the enemy's left flank, while the regiment's sharpshooters and the mountain guns began firing from the northern slope of the Bala Hissar heights.

The enemy fought with the greatest obstinacy, but eventually our troops reached the top of the hill, where, on the highest point, a number of ghazis had taken their stand, determined to sell their lives dearly.

The enemy fought with incredible stubbornness, but eventually our troops made it to the top of the hill, where, at the highest point, several ghazis stood their ground, ready to defend their lives fiercely.

All this I eagerly watched from my place of observation. There was a fierce struggle, and then, to my intense relief, I saw our men on the topmost pinnacle, and I knew the position was gained.

All of this I eagerly watched from my viewpoint. It was a fierce struggle, and then, to my great relief, I saw our guys at the highest point, and I knew we had secured the position.

Increasing numbers of the enemy It was now a little past noon, and I was becoming anxious about the party left on the conical hill, as Macpherson had heliographed that very large bodies of Afghans were moving northwards from Indiki,[Page 445] with the intention, apparently, of effecting a junction with the tribesmen who were occupying the hills in the Kohistan direction. I therefore signalled to Baker to leave the 67th in charge of the Asmai heights, and himself return to the lower ridge, giving him my reasons.

Growing enemy numbers It was just past noon, and I was starting to worry about the group left on the conical hill, as Macpherson had signaled that large groups of Afghans were moving north from Indiki,[Page 445] apparently planning to join the tribesmen who were in the hills headed toward Kohistan. So, I signaled to Baker to leave the 67th in charge of the Asmai heights and come back to the lower ridge, explaining my reasons to him.

Baker at once despatched a detachment of the 5th Punjab Infantry, under Captain Hall, to reinforce Clarke, who I could see might soon be hard pressed, and I sent 200 rifles of the 3rd Sikhs (the only troops available at the moment) to his assistance.

Baker immediately sent a unit of the 5th Punjab Infantry, led by Captain Hall, to support Clarke, who I could tell might soon be in a tough spot, and I dispatched 200 rifles from the 3rd Sikhs (the only soldiers available at that time) to help him out.

Loss of the Conical Hill I watched what was taking place on the conical hill through my telescope, and was startled to perceive that the enemy were, unnoticed by him, creeping close up to Clarke's position. I could just see a long Afghan knife appear above the ridge, steadily mounting higher and higher, the bearer of which was being concealed by the contour of the hill, and I knew it was only one of the many weapons which were being carried by our enemies to the attack. The reinforcements were still some distance off, and my heart sank within me, for I felt convinced that after our recent victories the Afghans would never venture to cross the open and attack British soldiers unless an overwhelming superiority of numbers made success appear to them a certainty. Next I heard the boom of guns and the rattle of musketry, and a minute or two later (which, in my anxiety, seemed an eternity to me), I only too plainly saw our men retreating down the hill, closely followed by the enemy. The retirement was being conducted steadily and slowly, but from that moment I realized, what is hard for a British soldier, how much harder for a British commander, to realize, that we were over-matched, and that we could not hold our ground.

Loss of Conical Hill I watched what was happening on the conical hill through my telescope and was shocked to see that the enemy was, unnoticed by him, sneaking up close to Clarke's position. I could just make out a long Afghan knife rising above the ridge, steadily climbing higher, with the person carrying it hidden by the hill's shape. I knew it was just one of many weapons our enemies were bringing into the attack. The reinforcements were still far away, and I felt my heart sink because I was convinced that after our recent victories, the Afghans would never dare to cross the open ground and attack British soldiers unless they were overwhelmingly outnumbered and believed victory was certain. Next, I heard the sound of guns booming and muskets firing, and a minute or two later (which, in my anxiety, felt like an eternity), I saw our men clearly retreating down the hill, closely followed by the enemy. The retirement was being carried out steadily and slowly, but from that moment, I understood, which is difficult for a British soldier and even harder for a British commander, that we were outmatched and could not hold our ground.

Clarke,5 as well as every man with him, fought splendidly; the Afghans by force of numbers alone made themselves masters of the position and captured two guns.6

Clarke,5 and every man with him fought incredibly well; the Afghans, relying solely on their numbers, took control of the position and captured two guns.6

While all that I have described was going on, the enemy began to [Page 446] collect again on Siah Sang, and to make their way round the eastern flank of the cantonment towards Kohistan.

While all that I described was happening, the enemy started to [Page 446] gather again at Siah Sang and make their way around the eastern side of the cantonment towards Kohistan.

Captain Vousden's Gallantry I had sent orders in the morning to Lieutenant-Colonel Williams, who was quartered with his regiment (the 5th Punjab Cavalry) in the King's Garden, between Sherpur and the city, to be on the look-out, and not to allow any of the enemy to pass in that direction. About 1 p.m. some 400 Afghans were observed moving along the left bank of the river: these were met by Captain Vousden of the same regiment, who with one troop was employed in reconnoitring; he most gallantly charged in amongst them with only twelve of his men, the remainder being effectually stopped by a heavy fire opened upon them from behind a low wall. Vousden succeeded in dispersing these heavy odds, and in inflicting severe loss upon them—a very brilliant service, for which he received the Victoria Cross.

Captain Vousden's Bravery I had sent orders in the morning to Lieutenant-Colonel Williams, who was stationed with his regiment (the 5th Punjab Cavalry) in the King's Garden, between Sherpur and the city, to be on alert and not let any enemy troops pass in that direction. Around 1 p.m., about 400 Afghans were seen moving along the left bank of the river. They were confronted by Captain Vousden of the same regiment, who, along with one troop, was scouting the area. He bravely charged into the group with only twelve of his men, while the rest were effectively held back by heavy fire coming from behind a low wall. Vousden managed to disperse these heavy odds and caused significant losses to them—a truly remarkable achievement, for which he was awarded the Victoria Cross.

My object throughout these operations had been, as I hope I have made clear, to break up the combination by dealing with the enemy in detail, and preventing them getting possession of the city and the Bala Hissar.

My goal during these operations, as I hope I've made clear, was to disrupt the alliance by confronting the enemy piece by piece and stopping them from taking control of the city and the Bala Hissar.

Up till noon on the 14th I had no idea of the extraordinary numbers they were able to bring together, and I had no reason to believe that it would be possible for them to cope with disciplined troops; but the manner in which the conical hill had been retaken gave me a more correct idea of their strength and determination, and shook my confidence in the ability of my comparatively small force to resist the ever-increasing hordes, on ground which gave every advantage to numerical superiority. It was a bitter thought that it might be my duty to retire for a time within the defences of Sherpur, a measure which would involve the abandonment of the city and the Bala Hissar, and which I knew, moreover, would give heart to the tribesmen.

Up until noon on the 14th, I had no idea of the impressive numbers they could gather, and I didn’t think they’d be able to handle organized troops. However, the way they took back the conical hill gave me a clearer understanding of their strength and determination, and it shook my confidence in my relatively small force's ability to withstand the ever-growing hordes on ground that favored their numerical advantage. It was a tough realization that I might have to retreat behind the defenses of Sherpur for a while, which would mean abandoning the city and the Bala Hissar, and I knew that, in addition, it would embolden the tribesmen.

I had to decide at once on the course I ought to pursue, for, if I continued to act on the defensive, food and ammunition must be sent before dark to Macpherson's brigade, occupying the hills above the city, and arrangements must be made for Baker's retention of the Asmai heights. I heliographed to Macpherson to inquire the direction in which the enemy were moving, and whether their numbers were still increasing. He replied that large masses were steadily advancing from north, south, and west, and that their numbers were momentarily becoming greater, to which the young officer in charge of the signalling station added, 'The crowds of Afghans in the Chardeh valley remind me of Epsom on the Derby day.'

I had to quickly decide what to do next because if I kept playing defense, we needed to send food and ammo to Macpherson's brigade on the hills above the city before dark, and we had to make plans for Baker to hold the Asmai heights. I sent a message to Macpherson asking about the enemy's movements and whether their numbers were still increasing. He responded that large groups were moving in steadily from the north, south, and west, and that their numbers were quickly growing. The young officer in charge of the signaling station added, 'The crowds of Afghans in the Chardeh valley remind me of Epsom on Derby day.'

The retirement to Sherpur This decided me; I determined to withdraw from all isolated positions, and concentrate my force at Sherpur, thereby securing the safety of the cantonment and avoiding what had now become a useless sacrifice of life. I only too thoroughly recognized the evils of the measure, but I considered that no other course would be justifiable,[Page 447] and that I must act for the present entirely on the defensive, and wait until the growing confidence of the enemy should afford me a favourable opportunity for attacking them, or until reinforcements could arrive.

The move to Sherpur This made up my mind; I decided to pull back from all isolated positions and focus my forces at Sherpur, ensuring the safety of the cantonment and avoiding what had become an unnecessary loss of life. I fully understood the drawbacks of this decision, but I felt that no other option would be acceptable,[Page 447] and that I needed to adopt a completely defensive stance for now, waiting until the enemy's growing confidence gave me a good chance to attack or until reinforcements arrived.

The inevitable order reached the two Generals at 2 p.m., and the retirement was begun at once. The Afghans speedily discovered the retrograde movement, and no sooner had each post in its turn been evacuated than it was occupied by the enemy, who pressed our troops the whole way back to the cantonment. There was hand-to-hand fighting, and many splendid acts of courage were performed, Major Hammond, of the Guides, earning the Victoria Cross; but throughout there was no hurry or confusion, all was conducted with admirable coolness and skill, and shortly after dark the troops and baggage were safe inside Sherpur. That night the Afghans occupied the city and the Bala Hissar.

The inevitable order reached the two Generals at 2 p.m., and they immediately began the retreat. The Afghans quickly noticed the withdrawal, and as soon as each post was evacuated, it was taken over by the enemy, who pushed our troops all the way back to the cantonment. There was close-quarters fighting, and many acts of bravery were displayed, with Major Hammond of the Guides earning the Victoria Cross; but throughout the situation, there was no rush or chaos; everything was handled with remarkable calmness and skill, and shortly after dark, the troops and their supplies were safely inside Sherpur. That night, the Afghans took control of the city and the Bala Hissar.

It is comparatively easy for a small body of well-trained soldiers, such as those of which the army in India is composed, to act on the offensive against Asiatics, however powerful they may be in point of numbers. There is something in the determined advance of a compact, disciplined body of troops which they can seldom resist. But a retirement is a different matter. They become full of confidence and valour the moment they see any signs of their opponents being unable to resist them, and if there is the smallest symptom of unsteadiness, wavering, or confusion, a disaster is certain to occur. It may be imagined, therefore, with what intense anxiety I watched for hours the withdrawal. The ground was all in favour of the Afghans, who, unimpeded by impedimenta of any kind, swarmed down upon the mere handful of men retreating before them, shouting cries of victory and brandishing their long knives; but our brave men, inspired by the undaunted bearing of their officers, were absolutely steady. They took up position after position with perfect coolness; every movement was carried out with as much precision as if they were manœuvring on an ordinary field-day; and the killed and wounded were brought away without the slightest hurry or confusion. In fact, the whole of the hazardous operation was most successfully and admirably carried out; and as each regiment and detachment filed through the Head-Quarters gateway I was able to offer my warm congratulations and heartfelt thanks to my gallant comrades.

It’s relatively easy for a small group of well-trained soldiers, like those in the army in India, to take the offensive against Asians, no matter how large their numbers. There’s something about the determined advance of a compact, disciplined force that they usually can’t resist. But retreating is a different story. They become full of confidence and bravery the moment they see any signs that their opponents can’t stand against them, and if there’s even a hint of unsteadiness, wavering, or confusion, a disaster is inevitable. So, you can imagine how anxiously I watched the withdrawal for hours. The terrain favored the Afghans, who, unhindered by anything, rushed down upon the small group of men retreating before them, shouting victory cries and brandishing their long knives; but our brave soldiers, inspired by the fearless demeanor of their officers, remained completely steady. They took up position after position with perfect composure; every move was executed as precisely as if they were maneuvering on a regular training day, and the killed and wounded were evacuated without any rush or confusion. In fact, the entire risky operation was carried out successfully and admirably; and as each regiment and unit passed through the headquarters gateway, I was able to offer my heartfelt congratulations and thanks to my courageous comrades.

Our losses during the day were: 19 killed, including Captain Spens and Lieutenant Gaisford, 72nd Highlanders, and 88 wounded, amongst whom were Captain Gordon, 92nd Highlanders, Lieutenant Egerton, 72nd Highlanders, and Captain Battye, of the Guides.7

Our losses throughout the day included 19 dead, among them Captain Spens and Lieutenant Gaisford from the 72nd Highlanders, and 88 injured, including Captain Gordon from the 92nd Highlanders, Lieutenant Egerton from the 72nd Highlanders, and Captain Battye from the Guides.7






CHAPTER LVII.

1879

The moment the gates were closed I telegraphed the result of the day's operations to the Viceroy and Commander-in-Chief, for I knew that the enemy's first thought would be to stop communication with India by cutting the telegraph-wires. I reported that I had ordered Brigadier-General Charles Gough's brigade to push on from Gandamak as fast as possible; and I recommended that General Bright should have more troops sent up to him, to allow of his keeping open the route to Kabul, and of his reinforcing me should I find it impossible to clear the country with the force at my disposal. It was a satisfaction to be able to assure the authorities in these, to me, otherwise painful telegrams, that there was no cause for anxiety as to the safety of the troops; that sufficient supplies for men were stored in Sherpur for nearly four months, and for animals for six weeks; that there was abundance of firewood, medicines, and hospital comforts, and sufficient ammunition both for guns and rifles to admit of an active resistance being carried on for between three and four months.

The moment the gates closed, I sent a message about the day’s operations to the Viceroy and Commander-in-Chief, knowing the enemy would likely try to cut off communication with India by severing the telegraph wires. I reported that I had instructed Brigadier-General Charles Gough's brigade to advance from Gandamak as quickly as possible. I suggested that General Bright should receive more troops to maintain the route to Kabul and to support me if I found it impossible to secure the area with the forces I had available. It was reassuring to be able to tell the authorities in these otherwise troubling messages that there was no need to worry about the safety of the troops; that there were enough supplies for the men stored in Sherpur for nearly four months, and for the animals for six weeks; that there was plenty of firewood, medicine, and hospital supplies, as well as enough ammunition for both guns and rifles to conduct active resistance for three to four months.

It was fortunate there was no lack of provisions, for our numbers were considerably increased by the presence of Wali Mahomed Khan and many other Sirdars, who begged for shelter in Sherpur, on the plea that their lives would not be safe were they to return to the city. They were far from being welcome guests, for I could not trust them; ostensibly, however, they were our friends, and I could not refuse their petition. I therefore admitted them, on condition that each Sirdar should only be accompanied by a specified number of followers.

It was a good thing we had plenty of supplies, as our group had grown significantly with the arrival of Wali Mahomed Khan and several other leaders, who asked for refuge in Sherpur, claiming their lives would be in danger if they went back to the city. They were hardly welcomed guests since I didn’t trust them; however, they pretended to be our allies, and I couldn’t deny their request. So, I let them in, but only on the condition that each leader could bring a limited number of followers.

The stormy occurrences of the 14th were succeeded by a period of comparative calm, during which the entrenchments were strengthened, and the heavy guns found in the Kabul arsenal were prepared for service.

The stormy events of the 14th were followed by a time of relative calm, during which the fortifications were reinforced, and the heavy artillery discovered in the Kabul arsenal was readied for use.

Sherpur The great drawback to Sherpur, as I have already mentioned, was its extent and the impossibility of reducing the line of defences owing to the length of the Bimaru ridge. The cantonment was in the form of a parallelogram, with the Bimaru heights running along, and protecting, the northern side. Between this range and the hills, which form the southern boundary of Kohistan, lay a lake, or rather jhil, a barrier between which and the commanding Bimaru ridge no enemy would dare to advance.

Sherpur The main issue with Sherpur, as I've mentioned before, was its size and the inability to shorten the defense line because of the length of the Bimaru ridge. The military area was shaped like a parallelogram, with the Bimaru heights running alongside and protecting the northern side. Between this range and the hills that make up the southern boundary of Kohistan, there was a lake, or rather a jhil, acting as a barrier that no enemy would risk crossing to approach the commanding Bimaru ridge.

The massive wall on the south and west faces was twenty feet high, covered at a distance of thirty feet by a lower wall fifteen feet high; the southern wall was pierced at intervals of about 700 yards by gateways, three in number, protected by lofty circular bastions, and between[Page 449] these and at the four corners were a series of low bastions which gave an admirable flanking fire. The wall on the western flank was of similar construction, but had been considerably damaged at the northern end, evidently by an explosion of gunpowder.

The huge wall on the south and west sides was twenty feet tall, and a lower wall fifteen feet high covered it from a distance of thirty feet. The southern wall had three gateways spaced about 700 yards apart, each protected by tall circular bastions. Between these and at the four corners were a series of low bastions that provided great flanking fire. The wall on the western side was built similarly but showed significant damage at the northern end, clearly from an explosion of gunpowder.

The weak part of our defence was on the eastern face, where the wall, which had never been completed, was only seven feet high, and did not extend for more than 700 yards from the south-east corner; the line then ran to the north-west, and, skirting the village of Bimaru, ended at the foot of the ridge.

The vulnerable part of our defense was along the eastern side, where the wall, which was never finished, was just seven feet high and only stretched for about 700 yards from the southeast corner; the line then went northwest, passing by the village of Bimaru, and ended at the base of the ridge.

From this description it will be seen that, though the perimeter1 of Sherpur was rather too large for a force of 7,000 effective men to defend, its powers of resistance, both natural and artificial, were considerable. It was absolutely necessary to hold the Bimaru ridge for its entire length; to have given up any part of it would have been to repeat the mistake which proved so disastrous to Elphinstone's army in 1841. In fact, the Bimaru heights were at once the strength and the weakness of the position. So long as we could hold the heights we were safe from attack from the north; but if we had been forced, either from the weakness of our own garrison, or from any other cause, to relinquish the command of this natural barrier, the whole of the cantonment must have lain open to the enemy, and must forthwith have become untenable.

From this description, it's clear that although the perimeter1 of Sherpur was a bit too large for a force of 7,000 effective men to defend, its ability to resist, both naturally and artificially, was significant. It was absolutely essential to hold the Bimaru ridge along its entire length; abandoning any part of it would have repeated the mistake that was so disastrous for Elphinstone's army in 1841. In fact, the Bimaru heights were both the strength and the weakness of the position. As long as we could maintain control of the heights, we were safe from attacks from the north; but if we were forced, either due to the weakness of our own garrison or any other reason, to give up this natural barrier, the entire cantonment would have been exposed to the enemy and would quickly have become untenable.

Defence of Sherpur The question of how Sherpur could best be defended had been carefully considered by a committee,2 assembled by my orders soon after our arrival in Kabul; and a scheme had been drawn up detailing the measures which should be adopted in case of attack.

Defense of Sherpur The issue of how to best defend Sherpur was thoroughly discussed by a committee,2 created by my orders shortly after we arrived in Kabul; and a plan was established outlining the actions that should be taken in the event of an attack.

On the recommendation of this committee six towers had been constructed on the Bimaru heights, and shelter trenches and gunpits made at the points where Infantry and Artillery fire could be used with the greatest advantage. These trenches were now deepened and prolonged, so as to form one continuous line of defence, protected by an abattis; and the defences in the depression between the heights were so arranged that fire could be brought to bear on an enemy advancing from the north. To strengthen the north-east corner, a battery was thrown up on the slope of the ridge, which was connected with the tower above and the village below. The village itself was loop-holed, the outlying buildings to the front made defensible, and the open space to the north-east secured by abattis and wire entanglements. The Native Field Hospital was strengthened in like manner, and sand-bag parapets were piled upon the roof, which was somewhat exposed.

On the committee's recommendation, six towers were built on the Bimaru heights, and shelter trenches and gunpits were created at points where Infantry and Artillery fire could be most effective. These trenches were deepened and extended to form a continuous line of defense, protected by an abattis; and the defenses in the dip between the heights were arranged so that fire could be directed towards any enemy advancing from the north. To reinforce the north-east corner, a battery was constructed on the slope of the ridge, linking the tower above with the village below. The village itself was fitted with loopholes, the outlying buildings in front were made defensible, and the open area to the north-east was secured with abattis and wire entanglements. The Native Field Hospital was similarly fortified, with sandbag parapets added to the roof, which was somewhat exposed.

The unfinished wall on the eastern face was raised by logs of wood,[Page 450] and abattis and wire entanglements were placed in front. In the open space lying between the Bimaru ridge and the north-west circular bastion, a defence on the laager system was constructed out of gun-carriages and limbers captured from the enemy; while the village of Ghulam Hasan Khan, which formed an excellent flanking defence along the northern and western faces, was held as an independent post.

The unfinished wall on the east side was built with logs, [Page 450] and barricades and barbed wire were set up in front. In the open area between the Bimaru ridge and the northwest circular bastion, a defense following the laager system was created using gun carriages and limbers taken from the enemy; meanwhile, the village of Ghulam Hasan Khan, which provided a great flanking defense along the north and west sides, was maintained as a separate post.

I divided the whole of the defences into five sections, under the superintendence of five different commanders: Brigadier-General Macpherson, Colonel Jenkins, Brigadier-General Hugh Gough, Major-General Hills, and Colonel Brownlow. Brigadier-General Massy was given the centre of the cantonment, where were collected the forage and firewood; and Brigadier-General Baker commanded the reserve, which was formed up at the depression in the Bimaru heights mentioned above, that he might be able to move rapidly to either end of the ridge, the weakest points in our defences.

I divided the entire defense system into five sections, each managed by a different commander: Brigadier-General Macpherson, Colonel Jenkins, Brigadier-General Hugh Gough, Major-General Hills, and Colonel Brownlow. Brigadier-General Massy was assigned to the center of the camp, where the forage and firewood were stored, while Brigadier-General Baker led the reserve, positioned at the dip in the Bimaru heights mentioned earlier, so he could quickly move to either end of the ridge, which were the weakest points in our defenses.

The several sections were connected with each other and with my Head-Quarters by a telegraph-wire, and visual signalling was established at all important points.

The various sections were linked to each other and to my headquarters via a telegraph wire, and visual signaling was set up at all key locations.

In my arrangements for the defence of Sherpur I relied to a great extent on the advice of my accomplished Chief Engineer, Colonel Æneas Perkins, and it was mainly owing to him, and to the exertions of his competent staff, that the work was carried on as rapidly and satisfactorily as it was.

In my planning for the defense of Sherpur, I relied heavily on the advice of my skilled Chief Engineer, Colonel Æneas Perkins. It was primarily due to him and the efforts of his capable team that the work progressed as quickly and efficiently as it did.

During these days of preparation the enemy remained comparatively inactive, being chiefly employed in looting the city and emptying the Amir's arsenal. The gunpowder had been destroyed as far as possible; but a great deal still remained, and many tons of it were carried off by the army of Mahomed Jan, who had now become the practical leader of the Afghan combination, and had lately proclaimed Yakub Khan's eldest son, Musa Khan, Amir.

During this time of preparation, the enemy stayed mostly inactive, focused mainly on looting the city and emptying the Amir's arsenal. The gunpowder had been destroyed as much as possible, but a lot still remained, and many tons of it were taken by Mahomed Jan's army, who had now become the main leader of the Afghan coalition and had recently declared Yakub Khan's eldest son, Musa Khan, as Amir.

On the afternoon of the 16th I received the welcome news that Colonel Hudson had successfully resisted an attack on his position by the Ghilzais—welcome because I could now feel assured that Lataband could be depended upon to hold its own.

On the afternoon of the 16th, I got the good news that Colonel Hudson had successfully defended his position against an attack by the Ghilzais—good news because I could now be sure that Lataband could hold its own.

For the next five days nothing of much importance was done on either side. The enemy took up positions daily in the neighbouring forts and gardens, causing a few casualties, and some of our troops moved out to dislodge them from those places from which they could specially annoy us. I destroyed some of the forts, and removed other cover in the immediate vicinity of the walls; but I did not undertake any large sorties, for to have attempted to drive the enemy out of the outlying posts, which I could not then have held, would have been a useless waste of strength.

For the next five days, not much of significance happened on either side. The enemy positioned themselves daily in the nearby forts and gardens, causing a few casualties, while some of our troops moved out to push them out of places that could particularly trouble us. I destroyed some of the forts and removed other cover near the walls, but I didn't launch any major attacks, because trying to force the enemy out of the outer posts—which I couldn't hold at that time—would have been a pointless waste of resources.

My chief trouble at this time was the presence of the Afghan Sirdars [Page 451] within the cantonment. I had good reason to believe that some of them, though full of protestations of friendship, had been in communication with Mahomed Jan, the high-priest Mushk-i-Alam, and other Afghan leaders, so that I felt sure that neither they nor their followers were to be depended upon. I was also somewhat anxious about the Pathan soldiers in our ranks, a feeling which I was unwilling to acknowledge even to myself, for they had hitherto behaved with marked loyalty, and done splendid service; but they were now being exposed to a most severe trial, in that they were, as I knew, being constantly appealed to by their co-religionists to join in the jahad against us, and bitterly reproached for serving their infidel masters. Whether they would be strong enough to resist such appeals, it was impossible to tell; but it would have been most unwise, as well as most painful to me, to show the slightest suspicion of these fine soldiers. It happened that the Corps of Guides and 5th Punjab Infantry, which had of all regiments the largest number of Mahomedans amongst them, were located at the two extremities of the Bimaru range, the points most likely to be attacked; to have made any change in the disposition would have been to show that they were suspected, so I determined (after taking their commanding officers, Colonels Jenkins and McQueen, into my confidence) to leave them where they were, and merely to strengthen each post by a couple of companies of Highlanders.

My main issue at this time was the presence of the Afghan leaders [Page 451] within the military camp. I had good reason to think that some of them, despite their claims of friendship, had been in contact with Mahomed Jan, the high priest Mushk-i-Alam, and other Afghan leaders. Therefore, I felt certain that neither they nor their followers could be trusted. I was also somewhat worried about the Pathan soldiers in our ranks, a feeling I was reluctant to admit even to myself. They had previously shown notable loyalty and had done an excellent job; however, they were now facing a serious challenge as they were, I knew, being constantly urged by their fellow Muslims to join in the jihad against us and were being harshly criticized for serving their infidel masters. It was impossible to predict whether they would be strong enough to resist such temptations, but it would have been both unwise and distressing for me to show even the slightest doubt about these capable soldiers. The Corps of Guides and the 5th Punjab Infantry, which had the highest number of Muslims among all regiments, were stationed at the two ends of the Bimaru range, the most likely targets for an attack. Changing their positions would have implied suspicion, so I decided (after confiding in their commanding officers, Colonels Jenkins and McQueen) to keep them where they were and simply reinforce each post with a couple of companies of Highlanders.

I was also considerably exercised about the safety of the large stacks of firewood, grain, and forage, for if anything had happened to them we could not have continued to hold Sherpur. There were not enough British soldiers to furnish guards for these stacks, so I was obliged to have them watched for a time by officers; an opportune fall of snow, however, on the night of the 18th, rendered incendiarism impossible.

I was also quite concerned about the safety of the large piles of firewood, grain, and forage, because if anything happened to them, we wouldn’t be able to hold Sherpur. There weren’t enough British soldiers to provide guards for these stacks, so I had to have them monitored for a while by officers; fortunately, a timely snowfall on the night of the 18th made it impossible for anyone to start a fire.

Arrest of Daud Shah One other extremely unpleasant precaution I felt it my duty to take was the placing of Daud Shah, Yakub Khan's Commander-in-Chief, under arrest. I liked the man, and he had mixed freely with us all for more than two months. He was not, however, absolutely above suspicion: some of his near relatives were the most prominent amongst our enemies; and I had been struck by a change in his manner towards me of late. In trusting him to the extent I had done, I acted against the opinion of almost everyone about me, and now that I had a doubt myself, I felt I was not justified in leaving him at liberty, for if he were disposed to make use of his opportunities to our disadvantage, his unrestrained freedom of movement and observation would be certainly a source of great danger.

Arrest of Daud Shah One other really unpleasant step I felt I had to take was to put Daud Shah, Yakub Khan's Commander-in-Chief, under arrest. I liked him, and he had mingled freely with all of us for over two months. However, he wasn’t completely above suspicion: some of his close relatives were among our most notable enemies, and I had noticed a shift in his behavior towards me lately. In trusting him as much as I did, I went against the views of almost everyone around me, and now that I had my own doubts, I felt it wasn’t right to leave him free. If he were planning to use his position against us, his unrestricted movement and ability to observe could present a significant threat.

For three or four days cloudy weather prevented heliograph communication with Lataband, and messengers sent by Hudson had failed to reach Sherpur, so that we were without any news from the outer world; but on the afternoon of the 18th I received a letter from [Page 452] Brigadier-General Charles Gough, conveying the disappointing intelligence that he had only got as far as Jagdalak, twenty-one miles from Gandamak, and that he did not consider himself strong enough to advance on Kabul.

For three or four days, cloudy weather blocked heliograph communication with Lataband, and messengers sent by Hudson couldn't reach Sherpur, leaving us without any updates from the outside world. However, on the afternoon of the 18th, I received a letter from [Page 452] Brigadier-General Charles Gough, sharing the disappointing news that he had only made it to Jagdalak, twenty-one miles from Gandamak, and that he didn't feel strong enough to move forward toward Kabul.

Gough no doubt felt himself in an awkward position. The line to his rear was weakly held, the telegraph-wire on both sides of him was cut, his rear guard had been attacked near Jagdalak, there was a considerable collection of men on the hills to his front, and, as he reported, 'the whole country was up.' Moreover, Major-General Bright, under whom Gough was immediately serving, shared his opinion that it would be wiser for him to wait until reinforcements came up from the rear.

Gough definitely felt like he was in a tough spot. The line behind him was weakly defended, the telegraph wires on both sides were cut, his rear guard had been attacked near Jagdalak, there were a lot of men positioned on the hills in front of him, and, as he reported, 'the whole country was up.' Furthermore, Major-General Bright, under whom Gough was directly serving, agreed that it would be smarter for him to hold off until reinforcements arrived from behind.

Gough, however, had with him 4 Mountain guns and 125 Artillerymen, 73 Sappers and Miners, 222 Native Cavalry, 487 British Infantry, and 474 Gurkhas; in all, 1,381 men, besides 36 officers—not a very large force, but composed of excellent material, and large enough, I considered, augmented, as it would be, by the Lataband detachment, to move safely on Kabul. I had no hesitation, therefore, in sending Gough peremptory orders to advance without delay, thus relieving him of all responsibility in the event of anything unexpected occurring.

Gough, however, had with him 4 mountain guns and 125 artillerymen, 73 sappers and miners, 222 native cavalry, 487 British infantry, and 474 Gurkhas; in total, 1,381 men, plus 36 officers—not a very large force, but made up of excellent troops, and I believed it was large enough, especially with the Lataband detachment joining, to move safely on Kabul. I had no hesitation, therefore, in sending Gough strict orders to advance without delay, relieving him of all responsibility if anything unexpected happened.

Hudson, at Lataband, as has already been recorded, was only victualled until the 23rd, before which date I had calculated that Gough would surely have relieved the garrison and brought the troops away. But now all was uncertain, and it was incumbent upon me to send them food. The difficulty as to how to get supplies to Lataband was solved by some Hazaras, who had been working in our camp for several weeks, volunteering to convey what was necessary, and it was arranged that the provisions should be sent with two parties, one on the 19th, the other on the 20th. The first got through safely, but the second almost entirely fell into the hands of the enemy.

Hudson, at Lataband, as has already been noted, was only supplied with food until the 23rd, by which date I had expected that Gough would definitely have come to relieve the garrison and take the troops away. But now everything was uncertain, and it was up to me to send them food. The problem of how to get supplies to Lataband was handled by some Hazaras, who had been working in our camp for a few weeks, volunteering to deliver what was needed. It was arranged for the provisions to be sent with two groups, one on the 19th and the other on the 20th. The first group got through safely, but the second almost completely fell into the hands of the enemy.

On the 21st a heliogram from Hudson informed me that Gough's brigade was expected the next day; but as it had been found necessary to drop his Cavalry at the several posts he passed on the way for their better protection, I deemed it expedient to send him the 12th Bengal Cavalry, for he had to pass through some fairly open country near Butkhak, where they might possibly be of use to him. Accordingly, they started at 3 a.m. on the 22nd, with instructions to halt at Butkhak should that post be unoccupied, otherwise to push on to Lataband.

On the 21st, I received a message from Hudson saying that Gough's brigade was expected the next day. However, since it was necessary to leave his Cavalry at various posts along the way for better protection, I thought it would be wise to send him the 12th Bengal Cavalry, as he would need to cross some fairly open areas near Butkhak, where they might be helpful. They left at 3 a.m. on the 22nd, with instructions to stop at Butkhak if that post was unoccupied; otherwise, they were to continue on to Lataband.

Finding the former place in possession of the Afghans, Major Green, who was in command of the regiment, made for the further post, where he arrived with the loss of only three men killed and three wounded.

Finding the old location held by the Afghans, Major Green, who commanded the regiment, headed for the next post, where he arrived having lost only three men killed and three wounded.

Rumours of an assault It was not easy to get reliable information as to the movements or intentions of the enemy while we were surrounded in Sherpur; but [Page 453] from spies who managed to pass to and from the city under cover of night, I gathered that plans were being made to attack us.

Assault rumors It was tough to get trustworthy info about the enemy's movements or plans while we were surrounded in Sherpur; but [Page 453] from spies who were able to come and go from the city under the cover of night, I learned that they were making plans to attack us.

It was not, however, until the 21st that there were any very great signs of activity. On that and the following day the several posts to the east of the cantonment were occupied preparatory to an attack from that quarter; and I was told that numbers of scaling-ladders were being constructed. This looked like business. Next, information was brought in that, in all the mosques, mullas were making frantic appeals to the people to unite in one final effort to exterminate the infidel; and that the aged Mushk-i-Alam was doing all in his power to fan the flame of fanaticism, promising to light with his own hand at dawn on the 23rd (the last day of the Moharram, when religious exaltation amongst Mahomedans is at its height) the beacon-fire which was to be the signal for assault.

It wasn’t until the 21st that there were any significant signs of activity. On that day and the one after, various posts to the east of the camp were occupied in preparation for an attack from that direction, and I was informed that many scaling ladders were being built. This seemed serious. Soon after, news came in that in all the mosques, religious leaders were urgently calling on people to unite in one last effort to eliminate the infidels; and that the elderly Mushk-i-Alam was doing everything he could to stoke the fire of fanaticism, promising to light the beacon fire at dawn on the 23rd (the last day of the Moharram, when religious fervor among Muslims is at its peak) to signal the assault.

The night of the 22nd was undisturbed, save by the songs and cries of the Afghans outside the walls, but just before day the flames of the signal-fire, shooting upwards from the topmost crag of the Asmai range, were plainly to be seen, followed on the instant by a burst of firing.

The night of the 22nd was quiet, except for the songs and cries of the Afghans outside the walls, but just before dawn, the flames of the signal fire shot up from the highest peak of the Asmai range, clearly visible, followed immediately by a burst of gunfire.

Our troops were already under arms and at their posts, waiting for the assault, which commenced with heavy firing against the eastern and southern faces. The most determined attack was directed against the two sections commanded by Brigadier-General Hugh Gough and Colonel Jenkins, who by their able dispositions proved themselves worthy of the confidence I had reposed in them.

Our troops were already armed and at their positions, waiting for the attack, which started with heavy gunfire on the eastern and southern sides. The fiercest assault was aimed at the two sections led by Brigadier-General Hugh Gough and Colonel Jenkins, who, by their effective strategies, demonstrated they were deserving of the trust I had placed in them.

It was too dark at first to see anything in front of the walls, and orders were given to reserve fire until the advancing masses of the assailants could be clearly made out. Gough's Mountain guns, under Lieutenant Sherries, then fired star-shells, which disclosed the attacking force up to a thousand yards off. The 28th Punjab Infantry were the first to open fire; then the Guides, the 67th, and 92nd, each in their turn, greeted by their volleys the ghazis who approached close to the walls. Guns from every battery opened on the foe moving forward to the attack, and from 7 to 10 a.m. the fight was carried on. Repeated attempts were made to scale the south-eastern wall, and many times the enemy got up as far as the abattis, but were repulsed, heaps of dead marking the spots where these attempts had been most persistent.3

It was too dark at first to see anything in front of the walls, and orders were given to hold fire until the advancing masses of attackers could be clearly identified. Gough's Mountain guns, led by Lieutenant Sherries, then fired star-shells, revealing the attacking force up to a thousand yards away. The 28th Punjab Infantry were the first to open fire; then the Guides, the 67th, and the 92nd followed in turn, firing volleys at the ghazis who got close to the walls. Guns from every battery targeted the enemy advancing for the attack, and the fight continued from 7 to 10 a.m. There were repeated attempts to scale the southeastern wall, and many times the enemy managed to get as far as the abattis, but they were pushed back, with piles of dead marking the spots where these efforts had been most persistent.3

Attack and counter-attack Soon after 10 a.m. there was a slight lull in the fighting, leading us [Page 454] to believe that the Afghans were recoiling before the breechloaders. An hour later, however, the assault grew hot as ever, and finding we could not drive the enemy back by any fire which could be brought against them from the defences, I resolved to attack them in flank. Accordingly, I directed Major Craster, with four Field Artillery guns, and Lieutenant-Colonel Williams, with the 5th Punjab Cavalry, to move out over the hollow in the Bimaru range and open fire on a body of the enemy collected in and around the village of Kurja Kila. This fire had the desired effect; the Afghans wavered and broke.

Attack and counterattack Soon after 10 a.m., there was a brief pause in the fighting, which made us [Page 454] think that the Afghans were pulling back in response to the breechloaders. An hour later, though, the assault intensified just as before, and since we couldn’t push the enemy back with any fire from our defenses, I decided to attack them from the side. So, I instructed Major Craster, with four Field Artillery guns, and Lieutenant-Colonel Williams, with the 5th Punjab Cavalry, to move out across the hollow in the Bimaru range and open fire on a group of the enemy gathered in and around the village of Kurja Kila. This fire had the intended effect; the Afghans faltered and retreated.

From that moment the attacking force appeared to lose heart, the assault was no longer prosecuted with the same vigour, and by 1 p.m. it had ceased altogether, and the enemy were in full flight.

From that moment, the attacking force seemed to lose their motivation; the assault was no longer carried out with the same energy, and by 1 p.m. it had stopped completely, with the enemy in full retreat.

This was the Cavalry's opportunity. I ordered Massy to follow in pursuit with every available man, and before nightfall all the open ground in the neighbourhood of Sherpur was cleared of the enemy. Simultaneously with the movement of the Cavalry, a party was despatched to destroy some villages near the southern wall which had caused us much trouble, and whence it was necessary the enemy should be driven, to facilitate the entrance of Brigadier-General Charles Gough the next day, for that officer had arrived with his brigade within about six miles of Sherpur, where I could see his tents, and gathered from the fact of his pitching them that he meant to halt there for the night. The villages were found to be occupied by ghazis, who refused to surrender, preferring to remain and perish in the buildings, which were then blown up. Two gallant Engineer officers (Captain Dundas, V.C., and Lieutenant C. Nugent) were most unfortunately killed in carrying out this duty.

This was the Cavalry's chance. I ordered Massy to chase after the enemy with all the available men, and by nightfall, all the open land around Sherpur was cleared of them. At the same time as the Cavalry moved, a group was sent to destroy some villages near the southern wall that had caused us a lot of trouble. We needed to drive the enemy out of there to help Brigadier-General Charles Gough enter the next day. He had arrived with his brigade about six miles from Sherpur, where I could see his tents and figured he planned to stay there for the night. The villages were occupied by ghazis, who refused to surrender and chose instead to stay and die in the buildings, which were then blown up. Two brave Engineer officers (Captain Dundas, V.C., and Lieutenant C. Nugent) were tragically killed while carrying out this mission.

The relief I felt when I had gathered my force inside the walls of Sherpur on the evening of the 14th December was small compared to that which I experienced on the morning of the 24th, when I realized that not only had the assault been abandoned, but that the great tribal combination had dissolved, and that not a man of the many thousands who had been opposed to us the previous day remained in any of the villages, or on the surrounding hills. It was difficult to form an accurate estimate of the numbers opposed to us. As the Contingent from the more distant districts advanced, they received accessions from every place they passed, and as they neared Kabul they were joined by the inhabitants of the numerous villages, and by the disaffected in the city. It was calculated by those best able to judge that the combined forces exceeded 100,000, and I myself do not think that an excessive computation.

The relief I felt when I had gathered my troops inside the walls of Sherpur on the evening of December 14th was minor compared to what I felt on the morning of the 24th, when I realized that not only had the attack been called off, but that the massive tribal alliance had fallen apart. Not a single person from the thousands who had opposed us the day before was left in any of the villages or on the surrounding hills. It was hard to accurately estimate the number of opponents we faced. As the Contingent from the more distant areas moved forward, they picked up new recruits from every place they passed, and as they got closer to Kabul, they were joined by the residents of numerous villages and by the discontented people in the city. Those who were best positioned to assess the situation estimated that the combined forces exceeded 100,000, and I myself don't think that's an overestimation.



Click map to enlarge
Defences of Sherpur

PLAN TO ILLUSTRATE THE DEFENCES OF SHERPUR AND THE OPERATIONS ROUND KABUL
12th to 23rd December, 1879.


Click map to zoom in
Defences of Sherpur

PLAN TO SHOW THE DEFENSES OF SHERPUR AND THE OPERATIONS AROUND KABUL
December 12 to 23, 1879.




Our casualties between the 15th and the 23rd were remarkably few: [Page 455] 2 officers, 9 men, and 7 followers killed, and 5 officers, 41 men, and 22 followers wounded; while the enemy lost not less than 3,000.

Our losses between the 15th and the 23rd were very low: [Page 455] 2 officers, 9 men, and 7 supporters killed, and 5 officers, 41 men, and 22 supporters wounded; while the enemy lost at least 3,000.

I think I had great reason to be proud of my force. All night and every night, the ground covered with snow and the thermometer marking sixteen degrees of frost, officers and men were at their posts, and each day every available man had to be hard at work strengthening the defences. Native and European soldiers alike bore the hardships and exposure with the utmost cheerfulness, and in perfect confidence that, when the assault should take place, victory would be ours.

I believe I had every reason to be proud of my troops. Every night, with the ground covered in snow and the thermometer hitting sixteen degrees below zero, both officers and soldiers stood at their posts. Each day, all the available personnel worked hard to strengthen the defenses. Local and European soldiers faced the hardships and harsh conditions with incredible positivity, fully confident that when the attack came, victory would be ours.

Early on the 24th the fort of Mahomed Sharif was occupied, and a force moved out to escort Charles Gough's brigade into Sherpur, a precaution which, however, was hardly necessary, as there was no enemy to be seen.

Early on the 24th, the fort of Mahomed Sharif was taken over, and a team went out to guide Charles Gough's brigade into Sherpur, a precaution that really wasn't needed since there was no enemy in sight.

Communication with India Re-opened I next set to work to re-open communication with India, Butkhak was re-occupied, and the relaying of the telegraph was taken in hand. General Hills resumed his position as military Governor of Kabul; the dispensary and hospital were re-established in the city under the energetic and intelligent guidance of Surgeon-Captain Owen;4 and in the hope of reassuring the people, I issued the following Proclamation:

Communication with India Resumed I then got to work on re-establishing communication with India. Butkhak was back under control, and the telegraph was being repaired. General Hills resumed his role as military Governor of Kabul; the dispensary and hospital were set up again in the city under the proactive and capable leadership of Surgeon-Captain Owen;4 and to help reassure the people, I issued the following Proclamation:

'At the instigation of some seditious men, the ignorant people, generally not considering the result, raised a rebellion. Now many of the insurgents have received their reward, and as subjects are a trust from God, the British Government, which is just and merciful, as well as strong, has forgiven their guilt. It is now proclaimed that all who come in without delay will be pardoned, excepting only Mahomed Jan of Wardak, Mir Bacha of Kohistan, Samandar Khan of Logar, Ghulam Hyder of Chardeh, and the murderers of Sirdar Mahomed Hassan Khan. Come and make your submission without fear, of whatsoever tribe you may be. You can then remain in your houses in comfort and safety, and no harm will befall you. The British Government has no enmity towards the people. Anyone who rebels again will, of course, be punished. This condition is necessary. But all who come in without delay need have no fear or suspicion. The British Government speaks only that which is in its heart.'

'Encouraged by some troublemakers, the uninformed people, generally not thinking about the consequences, started a rebellion. Now many of the rebels have faced the consequences, and as subjects are a responsibility from God, the British Government, which is just and kind, as well as powerful, has forgiven their wrongdoing. It is now announced that all who come in immediately will be pardoned, except for Mahomed Jan of Wardak, Mir Bacha of Kohistan, Samandar Khan of Logar, Ghulam Hyder of Chardeh, and the murderers of Sirdar Mahomed Hassan Khan. Come and submit without fear, regardless of your tribe. You can then stay in your homes in comfort and safety, and nothing will happen to you. The British Government holds no hostility towards the people. Anyone who rebels again will undeniably face punishment. This condition is necessary. But all who come in promptly need not fear or doubt. The British Government speaks only what is in its heart.'

The effect of this Proclamation was most satisfactory: the city and the surrounding country quieted rapidly, shops were re-opened, and before the close of the year the bazaars were as densely thronged as ever. Most of the principal men of Logar and Kohistan came to pay their respects to me; they were treated with due consideration, and the political officers did all they could to find out what they really wanted, so that some basis of an arrangement for the peaceful administration[Page 456] of the country might be arrived at.

The impact of this Proclamation was very positive: the city and the surrounding areas settled down quickly, shops reopened, and by the end of the year, the markets were as crowded as ever. Most of the key figures from Logar and Kohistan came to express their respect, and they were treated with proper consideration. The political officers did everything they could to understand what they truly wanted, so that a basis for a peaceful administration of the country could be established.

While taking these measures, which I thought would create confidence in our clemency and justice, I endeavoured in other ways to prevent a repetition of further serious troubles. Snow was still deep on the ground, but I did not let it prevent my sending General Baker to destroy a fort about twenty miles off, where dwelt an influential malik, who was one of the chief ringleaders in the revolt. All walled enclosures within 1,000 yards of the cantonment were razed to the ground, roads fit for guns were made all round the outside walls and towards the several gates of the city and Siah Sang, while two bridges, strong enough for Artillery to pass over, were thrown across the Kabul River.

While taking these actions, which I believed would build trust in our mercy and fairness, I also worked in other ways to prevent more serious issues from happening again. The snow was still deep on the ground, but I didn’t let that stop me from sending General Baker to destroy a fort about twenty miles away, where an influential malik, who was one of the main leaders of the uprising, lived. All walled areas within 1,000 yards of the cantonment were flattened, roads suitable for guns were created all around the outer walls and towards the various gates of the city and Siah Sang, and two bridges, strong enough for artillery to cross, were built over the Kabul River.

The increased numbers to be accommodated on the arrival of Gough's brigade necessitated the re-occupation of the Bala Hissar, the defences of which were reconstructed so as to give a continuous line of fire, and admit of free circulation round the walls; roads were made through the lower Bala Hissar, and redoubts and towers were built on the Shahr-i-Darwaza range.

The larger number of people arriving with Gough's brigade required the re-occupation of the Bala Hissar, whose defenses were updated to provide a continuous line of fire and allow for easy movement around the walls. Roads were constructed through the lower Bala Hissar, and redoubts and towers were built on the Shahr-i-Darwaza range.

A strong fort—Fort Roberts—was constructed on the south-west point of Siah Sang, which commanded the Bala Hissar and the city; a smaller one was built at the crossing of the river; and as these two forts were not within sight of each other, a tower to connect them was constructed at the north-west extremity of Siah Sang.

A strong fort—Fort Roberts—was built at the southwest point of Siah Sang, which overlooked the Bala Hissar and the city. A smaller fort was constructed at the river crossing, and since these two forts were out of sight from one another, a tower was erected at the northwest edge of Siah Sang to connect them.

Sherpur made safe Sherpur was thus made safe; but for the absolute protection of the city against an enemy operating from the Chardeh direction, a third fort was erected on the Asmai heights, which completed a formidable line of defences most skilfully carried out by Colonel Perkins and his staff.

Sherpur is safe now Sherpur was secured; however, to fully protect the city from an enemy attacking from the Chardeh direction, a third fort was built on the Asmai heights, which rounded out a strong line of defenses expertly constructed by Colonel Perkins and his team.






CHAPTER LVIII.

1880

The outlook in Afghanistan on the 1st January, 1880, was fairly satisfactory; the tidings of the defeat and dispersion of the tribesmen had spread far and wide, and had apparently had the effect of tranquillizing the country even in remote Kandahar, where the people had been greatly excited by the news of our retiring from Sherpur, and by the exaggerated reports of their countrymen's success. No complications now existed anywhere, and preparations were commenced for Sir Donald Stewart's force in southern Afghanistan to move towards Ghazni, in anticipation of the carrying out of a complete and connected scheme1 for the pacification of the country, and an early withdrawal from northern Afghanistan. No withdrawal, however, would be[Page 457] possible until durable foundations had been laid for the future safety of the Indian frontier, and reliable guarantees given for the continued good behaviour of India's Afghan neighbours.

The situation in Afghanistan on January 1, 1880, was pretty positive; news of the defeat and scattering of the tribesmen had spread widely and seemed to have calmed the country, even in remote Kandahar, where people had been highly agitated by our withdrawal from Sherpur and by inflated reports of their fellow countrymen's victories. There were no complications anywhere, and preparations were underway for Sir Donald Stewart's forces in southern Afghanistan to head towards Ghazni, in anticipation of implementing a comprehensive plan for stabilizing the country and an early exit from northern Afghanistan. However, no withdrawal would be feasible until solid foundations had been established for the long-term safety of the Indian frontier, and dependable assurances had been made for the continued good conduct of Afghanistan’s neighbors.

Two Important Questions The two questions, therefore, which chiefly exercised the minds of people in authority, both in England and in India, with regard to Afghan affairs were, What was to be done with Afghanistan now we had got it? and, Who could be set up as Ruler with any chance of being able to hold his own?

Two Key Questions The two questions that mainly concerned those in power, both in England and in India, about Afghan issues were, What should we do with Afghanistan now that we've taken control? and, Who can we appoint as Ruler who actually stands a chance of being able to maintain control?

The second question depended a good deal on the decision which might be arrived at with regard to the first, for the selection of a Ruler could hardly be considered until it had been determined whether the several provinces of Afghanistan were to be again formed into one kingdom, or whether the political scheme for the future government of the country should be based on the separation of the several States.

The second question relied heavily on the choice made about the first, as picking a Ruler couldn't really be considered until it was decided whether the different provinces of Afghanistan would once again be united into a single kingdom or if the future political structure of the country would be based on the separation of the individual States.

I myself had come to the conclusion, after much deliberation and anxious thought, that the latter course was the least dangerous for us to adopt. Disintegration had been the normal condition of Afghanistan, except for a short period which ended as far back as 1818. Dost Mahomed was the first since that time to attempt its unification, and it took him (the strongest Amir of the century) eight years after his restoration to establish his supremacy over Afghan-Turkestan, fourteen years before Kandahar acknowledged his authority, and twenty-one years ere he got possession of Herat, a consummation which was achieved only just before his death. His successor, Sher Ali, was five years making himself master of Afghanistan, and he could never have attained that position but for the material assistance he received from us. I felt it would be in the future as it had been in the past, and that there would always be the danger of a Ruler, made supreme by the aid of our money and our arms, turning against us for some supposed grievance, or at the instigation of a foreign Power, as had happened with[Page 458] Sher Ali. A strong, united Afghanistan was very desirable, no doubt, could we be certain that its interests and ours would always remain identical; but, in addition to the chance of its strength and unity being used against us, there was the certainty that, even if the man we might choose as Amir were to remain perfectly loyal, at his death Afghan history would repeat itself; the succession to the throne would be disputed, and the unification would have to begin all over again. For these reasons I had no hesitation in giving it as my opinion that Afghanistan should be disintegrated, and that we should not again attempt to place the whole country under any one Sovereign.

I had come to the conclusion, after a lot of thought and consideration, that the latter option was the least risky for us to take. Disintegration had been the normal state of Afghanistan, except for a brief period that ended around 1818. Dost Mahomed was the first since then to try to unify it, and it took him (the strongest Amir of the century) eight years after his restoration to establish his control over Afghan-Turkestan, fourteen years before Kandahar recognized his authority, and twenty-one years to take possession of Herat, which he only achieved shortly before his death. His successor, Sher Ali, took five years to dominate Afghanistan, and he could never have reached that position without our significant support. I believed it would be the same in the future as it had been in the past, with the constant risk of a ruler, made powerful through our resources and weapons, turning against us due to some perceived injustice or at the encouragement of a foreign power, as had happened with Sher Ali. A strong, united Afghanistan would definitely be desirable if we could be sure that its interests would always align with ours; however, in addition to the risk of its strength being used against us, there was the certainty that even if the person we chose as Amir remained loyal, once he died, Afghan history would repeat itself. The succession to the throne would be contested, and the unification process would have to start over again. For these reasons, I confidently stated my belief that Afghanistan should remain disintegrated, and that we shouldn’t try to place the entire country under one ruler again.

My views must have commended themselves to the Government of India, for in their despatch to the Secretary of State, dated 7th January, 1880, they indicated them as the line of policy they proposed to adopt in pursuance of the object they had at heart, viz., the safety of the Indian Empire and the tranquillity of its northern frontier; and in the communication to myself, conveying their idea of the general principles upon which the permanent settlement of Afghanistan should be based, the Foreign Secretary wrote that all arrangements for the establishment of a durable Government at Kabul depended on the selection of a suitable Ruler for that province; and that, as it was essential to clear away any apprehension that the British Government contemplated territorial annexation, which might be caused by a prolonged interregnum, it would be very advantageous if one of the principal Sirdars, qualified by his family connexions, his local influence, and his personal following, could be selected as the Ruler of the Kabul State.

My views must have resonated with the Government of India, because in their message to the Secretary of State, dated January 7, 1880, they indicated that those views represented the policy they intended to pursue in order to achieve their goal, which was the safety of the Indian Empire and the stability of its northern border. In the message to me, outlining their thoughts on the general principles for a lasting settlement in Afghanistan, the Foreign Secretary mentioned that all plans for establishing a stable government in Kabul relied on choosing an appropriate ruler for that region. He pointed out that it was crucial to dispel any fears that the British Government was considering territorial annexation, which might arise from a lengthy power vacuum; thus, it would be beneficial to select one of the main Sirdars, who was qualified by his family connections, local influence, and personal support, as the ruler of the Kabul State.

A Ruler Required There was another very strong reason why the Government of India should wish to find some one to whom the administration of the country could safely be made over. The first warning notes of a General Election were heard in India early in January. Afghan affairs were being made a party question, and the policy of the Beaconsfield Government with regard to them was being severely and adversely criticized. Lord Lytton was, therefore, most anxious that a definite conclusion should be arrived at as to the administration of Afghanistan, and a period put to our occupation of the northern province before the meeting of Parliament should take place.

A Leader Needed There was another compelling reason why the Government of India wanted to find someone to whom they could safely hand over the administration of the country. The first signs of a General Election were emerging in India early in January. Afghan affairs were becoming a political issue, and the approach of the Beaconsfield Government towards them was being heavily criticized. Lord Lytton was, therefore, very eager to reach a clear decision regarding the administration of Afghanistan and to end our occupation of the northern province before Parliament met.

The difficulty was to find the right man. Abdur Rahman, who I had reason to believe would be acceptable to the army, was far away, I could not find out where, and I could think of no one else at all suitable. Under the circumstances, I deemed it advisable to open negotiations with the several leaders of the late combination against us, who were congregated at Ghazni, and had with them the young Heir-apparent, Musa Khan. In the middle of January I had received two communications from these people, one ostensibly written by Musa Khan himself, the other signed by seventy of the most influential[Page 459] chiefs; the tenor of both was the same; they demanded Yakub Khan's restoration, and asserted his innocence as to the massacre of the Embassy. I replied that Yakub Khan's return was impossible, and that they must consider his abdication final, as he himself had declared that he wished it to be,2 and a few days later I deputed the Mustaufi3 to visit Ghazni, in the hope that he might be able to induce the leaders to make some more feasible suggestion for the government of the country.

The challenge was finding the right person. Abdur Rahman, whom I believed would be acceptable to the army, was far away, and I couldn't determine his location. I couldn't think of anyone else who would be suitable. Given the situation, I decided it was best to start talks with the various leaders of the recent alliance against us, who were gathered in Ghazni along with the young Heir-apparent, Musa Khan. In mid-January, I received two messages from these individuals, one apparently written by Musa Khan himself and the other signed by seventy of the most influential chiefs. Both messages had the same request: they demanded Yakub Khan's return and claimed he was innocent regarding the massacre of the Embassy. I responded that Yakub Khan's return was impossible and that they had to accept his abdication as final, as he himself had stated he wanted it to be. A few days later, I sent the Mustaufi to visit Ghazni, hoping he could persuade the leaders to propose a more feasible plan for governing the country.

The Mustaufi had scarcely started, before what seemed to be a reliable report reached me that Abdur Rahman was at Kanduz, on his way to Badakhshan, and I immediately communicated this news to Lord Lytton.

The Mustaufi had barely begun when I received what appeared to be a trustworthy report that Abdur Rahman was in Kanduz, heading to Badakhshan, and I quickly shared this news with Lord Lytton.

News of Abdur Rahman Khan A fortnight later Abdur Rahman's mother, who resided at Kandahar, informed Sir Donald Stewart that Ayub Khan had received a letter from her son, in answer to an offer from Ayub to join him at Balkh and march with him against the British. In this letter Abdur Rahman had replied that he would have nothing to do with any of Sher Ali's family, who had deceived him and dealt with him in the same treacherous manner that characterized Sher Ali's dealings with the British; further, that he had no intention of opposing the British, knowing full well he was not strong enough to do so; that he could not leave Russian territory without the permission of the Russians, whose pensioner he was; and that, even if he got that permission, he could not come either into Turkestan or Kabul without an invitation from us, but that, if he received such an invitation, he would obey it [Page 460] as an order. He concluded by advising Ayub Khan to make his submission to the British, as opposition was useless. Sir Donald Stewart telegraphed the substance of this communication to the Foreign Secretary, adding that Abdur Rahman's family were well disposed towards us, and that there would be no difficulty in communicating with the Sirdar through them.

News about Abdur Rahman Khan Two weeks later, Abdur Rahman's mother, who lived in Kandahar, told Sir Donald Stewart that Ayub Khan had received a letter from her son in response to an offer from Ayub to join him at Balkh and march against the British. In this letter, Abdur Rahman stated that he wanted nothing to do with any of Sher Ali's family, who had betrayed him and treated him in the same treacherous way that characterized Sher Ali's dealings with the British. He further noted that he had no intention of opposing the British, fully aware he was not strong enough to do so; that he could not leave Russian territory without the permission of the Russians, who were paying his pension; and that even if he did get that permission, he couldn't enter either Turkestan or Kabul without an invitation from us. However, if he received such an invitation, he would treat it as a command and comply [Page 460]. He ended by recommending that Ayub Khan submit to the British, as opposing them was pointless. Sir Donald Stewart telegraphed the essence of this message to the Foreign Secretary, adding that Abdur Rahman's family had a favorable view of us and that it would be easy to communicate with the Sirdar through them.

In the meantime, I had been careful to acquaint the Government of India with my failure to come to any conclusion with the Ghazni faction as to the future government of the country, and the hopelessness of finding anyone of sufficient strength of character to set up as Ruler of Kabul; and I had suggested, failing a really strong man, the alternative of letting the Afghans choose for themselves some Ruler, other than Yakub Khan, and thus leave us free to evacuate the country.

In the meantime, I made sure to inform the Government of India about my inability to reach any agreement with the Ghazni faction regarding the future leadership of the country, and the lack of anyone with enough strength of character to be established as the Ruler of Kabul. I suggested that if we couldn't find a truly strong leader, we might consider allowing the Afghans to choose their own Ruler, aside from Yakub Khan, which would enable us to withdraw from the country.

About this time Mr. Lyall, the Foreign Secretary, came to Kabul on a visit to me, and Captain West Ridgeway4 took the place of my Political Secretary, Mr. Durand, who left me to join the Foreign Office at Simla, Mr. (now Sir) Lepel Griffin, Secretary to the Punjab Government, being appointed Chief of the political staff at Kabul.

About this time, Mr. Lyall, the Foreign Secretary, visited me in Kabul, and Captain West Ridgeway4 filled in for my Political Secretary, Mr. Durand, who left to join the Foreign Office in Simla. Mr. (now Sir) Lepel Griffin, Secretary to the Punjab Government, was appointed Chief of the political staff in Kabul.

Lyall told me that the Indian Government fully appreciated the difficulty I was in about finding a Ruler for the province, and that, unless Abdur Rahman could be brought within negotiable distance, the alternative I had suggested would have to be acted upon.

Lyall told me that the Indian Government completely understood the challenge I was facing in finding a Ruler for the province, and that, unless Abdur Rahman could be brought to a point where negotiations were possible, the alternative I had proposed would need to be pursued.

Lord Lytton, however, was very sanguine about Abdur Rahman, and he warned Mr. Griffin, before he started for Kabul, that the Sirdar's letter to Ayub Khan indicated possibilities that might have the most important bearing on the solution of the difficult problem to be dealt with in northern Afghanistan. It was Lord Lytton's wish to place Abdur Rahman on the throne of Kabul, or, at least, to afford him the best opportunity of winning his own way to that position. The difficulty was to get at him, in the first instance, and, in the second, to convince him of our wish and power to help him; while a not unnatural hesitation on the Sirdar's part to enter Afghanistan without Russia's permission had to be considered.

Lord Lytton, however, was very optimistic about Abdur Rahman, and he warned Mr. Griffin, before he left for Kabul, that the Sirdar's letter to Ayub Khan suggested possibilities that could significantly impact the resolution of the challenging situation in northern Afghanistan. Lord Lytton wanted to see Abdur Rahman take the throne of Kabul or at least give him the best chance to achieve that goal. The challenge was to reach him at first, and then to persuade him of our intent and ability to assist him; also, the Sirdar's understandable reluctance to enter Afghanistan without Russia's consent had to be taken into account.

Lord Lytton impressed upon Mr. Griffin the necessity for overcoming these difficulties in time to enable us to withdraw from northern Afghanistan in the early autumn at latest; and he desired Sir Oliver St. John (Sir Donald Stewart's political officer, who was at that time in Calcutta), immediately on his return to Kandahar, to communicate with Abdur Rahman, through his mother, the Viceroy's willingness to make him Ruler of Kabul and Turkestan, if he would accept the terms offered to him without delay.

Lord Lytton stressed to Mr. Griffin the need to overcome these challenges in order to allow us to leave northern Afghanistan by early autumn at the latest. He asked Sir Oliver St. John (Sir Donald Stewart's political officer, who was in Calcutta at the time) to get in touch with Abdur Rahman through his mother as soon as he returned to Kandahar, to let him know that the Viceroy was ready to make him the Ruler of Kabul and Turkestan if he accepted the terms offered to him promptly.

The Viceroy communicated his views to the Secretary of State in[Page 461] the following telegram:

The Viceroy shared his thoughts with the Secretary of State in[Page 461] the following telegram:

'Necessary to find without delay some Native authority to which we can restore northern Afghanistan without risk of immediate anarchy on our evacuation of Kabul not later than next autumn, and if possible earlier. No prospect of finding in the country any man strong enough for this purpose. I therefore advocate early public recognition of Abdur Rahman as legitimate heir of Dost Mahomed, and open deputation of Sirdars with British concurrence to offer him throne of Afghanistan as sole means of saving the country from anarchy. Do you approve?'

'We need to quickly find a local authority we can hand over northern Afghanistan to, so we don’t face immediate chaos when we evacuate Kabul, ideally by next autumn or even sooner. There’s no chance of finding someone strong enough in the country for this job. Therefore, I suggest we publicly recognize Abdur Rahman as the legitimate heir of Dost Mahomed and send a delegation of Sirdars with British support to offer him the throne of Afghanistan as the only way to prevent the country from falling into anarchy. Do you agree?'

Lord Cranbrook's reply was as follows:

Lord Cranbrook's response was as follows:

'Assuming that Abdur Rahman is acceptable to the country, and that he would be content with northern Afghanistan, it is desirable to support him at Kabul; the more spontaneous any advances to him on the part of the Sirdars, and the less appearance of British influence, the better. But where is he? And how do you propose to learn his wishes and intentions? If invited by Chiefs, every inducement to bring him to Kabul should be then held out. Public recognition should not precede, but follow, his adoption by Sirdars, and his acceptance of the position.'

'If Abdur Rahman is accepted by the country and would be happy in northern Afghanistan, it makes sense to support him in Kabul. The more natural the Sirdars' advances to him and the less British influence is visible, the better. But where is he? And how do you plan to find out what he wants and intends? If the Chiefs invite him, every possible incentive to bring him to Kabul should then be offered. Public recognition should come after his acceptance by the Sirdars and his agreement to take on the role, not before.'

Abdur Rahman in Afghan-Turkestan By the end of March authentic intelligence was received that Abdur Rahman had made himself master of Afghan-Turkestan, and was corresponding with the representative Sirdars at Kabul. It seemed, therefore, that the time had arrived when distinct overtures might be made to Abdur Rahman; accordingly, on the 1st April Mr. Griffin addressed to him the following letter:

Abdur Rahman in Afghanistan-Turkey By the end of March, reliable information was received that Abdur Rahman had taken control of Afghan-Turkestan and was in contact with the Sirdars in Kabul. It therefore seemed that the moment had come to make clear proposals to Abdur Rahman; accordingly, on April 1st, Mr. Griffin sent him the following letter:

Outreach made to Abdur Rahman

'It has become known that you have entered Afghanistan, and consequently this letter is sent you by a confidential messenger, in order that you may submit to the British officers at Kabul any representations that you may desire to make to the British Government with regard to your object in entering Afghanistan.'

'It has come to our attention that you have entered Afghanistan, and as a result, this letter is being sent to you by a trusted messenger so that you can present any messages or concerns you may have for the British officers in Kabul regarding your purpose for entering Afghanistan.'

Abdur Rahman, in his friendly but guarded reply,5 expressed in general terms his hope of being recognized as Amir. He greatly desired, he wrote, the friendship of the British, and their assistance in restoring peace and order to Afghanistan; but at the same time, he hinted that his obligations to the Russian Government for the hospitality they had extended to him placed him in some doubt as to the terms upon which our friendship might be accorded to him, and while he expressed a desire for the permanent establishment of Afghanistan, with our assistance and sympathy, he let it be understood that he wished to consider himself under the protection of Russia as well as of Great Britain.

Abdur Rahman, in his friendly yet cautious reply,5 expressed, in broad terms, his hope of being acknowledged as Amir. He really wanted, he wrote, the British to be his friends and to help restore peace and order in Afghanistan; however, he also suggested that his commitments to the Russian Government for the hospitality they had shown him made him uncertain about the conditions under which our friendship might be offered. While he showed a desire for a stable Afghanistan, with our aid and support, he implied that he wanted to see himself under the protection of both Russia and Great Britain.

In a verbal message, however, he added that he was ready to cross the Hindu Kush to discuss matters with our officers, and he begged that he might be furnished with information as to the 'nature of our friendship' and 'its conditions.'

In a verbal message, however, he added that he was ready to cross the Hindu Kush to discuss matters with our officers, and he requested to be given information about the 'nature of our friendship' and 'its conditions.'

In answer, Mr. Griffin was directed to inform Abdur Rahman that[Page 462] the relations of Afghanistan to the British and Russian Empires was a subject the Government of India must decline to discuss with him, and to explain that their declared determination had been the exclusion of foreign influence and interference from Afghanistan, a cardinal condition 'which had at all times and under all circumstances been deemed essential for the permanent security of Her Majesty's Indian Empire,' a condition, moreover, which had always been accepted by the Government of the Czar, which had repeatedly renewed those assurances, solemnly given to Her Majesty's Ministers, that 'Russia considered Afghanistan as entirely beyond the sphere of her influence.'6

In response, Mr. Griffin was asked to let Abdur Rahman know that[Page 462] the relationship between Afghanistan and the British and Russian Empires was a topic the Government of India could not discuss with him. He was to explain that their clear stance had been to keep foreign influence and interference out of Afghanistan, which was a key condition that had always been considered essential for the lasting security of Her Majesty's Indian Empire. This condition had also been recognized by the Government of the Czar, which had repeatedly reaffirmed its promises to Her Majesty's Ministers that ‘Russia saw Afghanistan as completely outside her influence.’6

Early in April the Mustaufi (whom, it will be remembered, I had sent to Ghazni to communicate with the Chiefs, and ascertain their ideas and desires as to the future government of Kabul) returned without having achieved much success. He had persuaded some of the leading men to accompany him as far as Maidan, whence a few representatives came on to Kabul as bearers of a document signed by Mahomed Jan, twelve other Sirdars, and 189 influential tribesmen, setting forth their views and wishes; but as these were all based upon the restoration of Yakub Khan, their proposals could not be entertained.

Early in April, the Mustaufi (whom I had sent to Ghazni to talk to the Chiefs and find out their thoughts and wishes regarding the future government of Kabul) returned without much success. He managed to convince some of the leading figures to travel with him as far as Maidan, from where a few representatives came to Kabul with a document signed by Mahomed Jan, twelve other Sirdars, and 189 influential tribesmen, outlining their views and desires. However, since all these were centered on the restoration of Yakub Khan, their proposals couldn’t be considered.

On the 13th April I held a durbar, at which I received this deputation; all the Sirdars, Chiefs, and maliks of Kabul and many Hazaras being present. Mr. Griffin, on the part of the Government, told them that Yakub Khan could not be allowed to return to Afghanistan, but that the names of any Sirdars, approved of by a large proportion of the people for the Amirship, would be laid before the Viceroy; that there was no intention of annexing Afghanistan, and that there would be no occupation of any places except such as were necessary for the safety of our Indian frontier. They were further informed that the British army would be withdrawn as soon as the country had settled down peacefully and an Amir, amicably disposed towards us, had been selected; but that Kandahar would not again be united to Kabul.

On April 13th, I held a gathering where I received a delegation; all the Sirdars, Chiefs, and maliks of Kabul were present, along with many Hazaras. Mr. Griffin, representing the Government, informed them that Yakub Khan would not be allowed to return to Afghanistan. He also mentioned that any Sirdars nominated by a significant number of the people for the position of Amir would be submitted to the Viceroy. There was no plan to annex Afghanistan, and there would be no occupation of any locations except those necessary for the safety of our Indian border. They were also told that the British army would leave once the country was peaceful and a friendly Amir had been chosen; however, Kandahar would not be reunited with Kabul.

The effect produced was good. The deputation was greatly disappointed that Yakub Khan was not to be permitted to return, but all present felt that they had received a definite reply.

The effect was positive. The delegation was really disappointed that Yakub Khan wouldn't be allowed to come back, but everyone there felt they had gotten a clear answer.






CHAPTER LIX.

1880

Sir Donald Stewart's division, which, I have mentioned, it had been decided should be sent to Kabul to take part in the pacification of northern Afghanistan, left Kandahar1 on the 30th March, and was [Page 463] expected to arrive at Ghazni about the 21st April. On the 16th I received a letter from Sir Donald, dated six days before, asking me to send supplies to meet him. I, therefore, that same day despatched a small column, under the command of Major General Ross, C.B., with the articles of food required; and as I thought it likely that my object in sending this force might be misunderstood, the deputation which attended the durbar was told to explain matters to the Chiefs at Maidan, and assure them that the advance would be peaceful unless hostilities should be provoked by their own action. Notwithstanding this precaution, I thought it quite possible the column would be opposed, for the news concerning Abdur Rahman's advent was causing considerable excitement; and whilst the soldiers and a proportion of the tribesmen were disposed to welcome him as a deliverer, those from Wardak and Logar resented his appearance on the scene as putting an end to their hopes of having Yakub Khan reinstated.

Sir Donald Stewart's division, which I mentioned was set to go to Kabul to help pacify northern Afghanistan, left Kandahar1 on March 30th and was expected to reach Ghazni around April 21st. On the 16th, I got a letter from Sir Donald, dated six days earlier, asking me to send supplies to meet up with him. So, that same day, I sent a small group, led by Major General Ross, C.B., with the necessary food items. Since I thought my reason for sending this force might be misunderstood, I instructed the delegation at the durbar to explain things to the Chiefs at Maidan and reassure them that the advance would be peaceful unless they provoked hostilities. Despite this precaution, I believed it was quite possible the column would face opposition, as news about Abdur Rahman's arrival was generating a lot of excitement. While the soldiers and some tribesmen were inclined to welcome him as a savior, those from Wardak and Logar were unhappy about his presence, as it dashed their hopes for Yakub Khan's return to power.

With a view, therefore, to prevent the Logaris from joining any attack which might be made on General Ross, I sent a party, 1,200 strong, under Colonel Jenkins, in the direction of Charasia.

With the goal of keeping the Logaris from participating in any attack on General Ross, I sent a group of 1,200 soldiers, led by Colonel Jenkins, toward Charasia.

On the 22nd April Ross reached Sar-i-top, forty-one miles from Ghazni; Sir Donald Stewart having arrived that same day at the latter place, heliographic communication was at once opened with him, and the welcome news was signalled that Sir Donald had fought an engagement at Ahmedkhel on the 19th, and had been entirely successful. On receipt of this intelligence I ordered a Royal salute to be fired in honour of the victory, the announcement of which I hoped might have a quieting effect on the excitement which prevailed around Kabul.

On April 22, Ross arrived at Sar-i-top, forty-one miles from Ghazni. Sir Donald Stewart had reached Ghazni that same day, and we immediately established heliographic communication with him. The great news was sent that Sir Donald had fought a battle at Ahmedkhel on the 19th and had been completely successful. Upon receiving this information, I ordered a Royal salute to be fired in honor of the victory, hoping that the announcement would help calm the excitement surrounding Kabul.

Jenkins attacked near Charasia In this I was disappointed. On the evening of the 24th, Jenkins, who was encamped at Charasia, heard that he was about to be attacked by the Logaris, under Mahomed Hasan Khan. At once striking his tents, and collecting his baggage in a sheltered spot, he ordered a party of Cavalry to reconnoitre up the Logar valley, strengthened his piquets, and sent off an express messenger to inform me of the situation.

Jenkins attacked near Charasia. I was let down by this. On the evening of the 24th, Jenkins, who was set up at Charasia, learned that he was about to be attacked by the Logaris, led by Mahomed Hasan Khan. He quickly took down his tents and gathered his supplies in a safe place, ordered a group of cavalry to scout the Logar valley, reinforced his pickets, and sent a messenger to update me on the situation.

I immediately despatched Brigadier-General Macpherson to Jenkins's assistance. By 9 a.m. he had started, with four Mountain guns and 962 Infantry, followed later by two more guns and a troop of the 3rd Punjab Cavalry; and as a support to Macpherson, Brigadier-General Hugh Gough, with the Cavalry brigade and four Horse Artillery guns, was ordered to take up a position half-way between Kabul and Charasia.

I quickly sent Brigadier-General Macpherson to help Jenkins. By 9 a.m., he had set out with four Mountain guns and 962 Infantry, later joined by two more guns and a troop from the 3rd Punjab Cavalry. To support Macpherson, Brigadier-General Hugh Gough was instructed to position the Cavalry brigade and four Horse Artillery guns halfway between Kabul and Charasia.

At 1 p.m. on the 25th Macpherson arrived on the high ground beyond the sang-i-nawishta gorge, whence he obtained a good view of Jenkins's position; and seeing that the enemy formed a complete semicircle round it, he pushed on. Jenkins had stood on the defensive from the early morning, and the Afghans, who had advanced to within[Page 464] a couple of hundred yards, were only kept at bay by the steadiness of his fire.

At 1 p.m. on the 25th, Macpherson reached the high ground beyond the sang-i-nawishta gorge, where he could see Jenkins's position clearly. Noticing that the enemy had surrounded it in a complete semicircle, he decided to move forward. Jenkins had been on the defensive since early morning, and the Afghans, who had moved within a couple of hundred yards, were only held back by the consistency of his fire.

Macpherson first sent back the baggage to Sherpur, so as to free all hands for action, and then proceeded to attack the left horn of the semicircle. The enemy broke, fell back, and were completely scattered by a well-directed Artillery fire; the surrounding hills were speedily cleared, and the Cavalry and Horse Artillery pursued for four miles. By four o'clock not a single living Afghan was to be seen; more than 200 had been killed, while our casualties were only four killed and thirty-four wounded.

Macpherson first sent the luggage back to Sherpur to free everyone for action, and then he went to attack the left side of the semicircle. The enemy retreated and was completely scattered by precise artillery fire; the nearby hills were quickly cleared, and the cavalry and horse artillery chased them for four miles. By four o'clock, not a single Afghan was visible; over 200 had been killed, while our losses were just four dead and thirty-four wounded.

I came up just as the fight was over; and being sure from the decisive character of the defeat that a retirement could not be misunderstood, I ordered the troops to return to Kabul.

I arrived right as the fight ended; and knowing from the clear outcome of the defeat that a withdrawal couldn't be misinterpreted, I instructed the troops to head back to Kabul.

In anticipation of Sir Donald Stewart's arrival, and the consequent necessity for my making over to him, as my senior, the supreme command of the Kabul Field Force, I prepared a report2 for his information, which explained the general military situation in northern Afghanistan, and contained a statement of economic details which I thought would be of use to the Government, and concerning which an experience of eighteen months in the field enabled me to give an opinion with some confidence.

In preparation for Sir Donald Stewart's arrival, and the need for me to hand over the top command of the Kabul Field Force to him as my superior, I put together a report2 to inform him. This report outlined the overall military situation in northern Afghanistan and included economic details that I believed would be useful to the Government, based on my eighteen months of field experience that allowed me to offer my insights with some confidence.

The strength of the Kabul Field Force at the end of April amounted to nearly 14,000 men and thirty-eight guns, with 12,500 followers;3 besides 15,000 men and thirty guns on the Khyber line, under the immediate command of Major-General Bright.

The Kabul Field Force had nearly 14,000 troops and thirty-eight guns at the end of April, along with 12,500 followers;3 in addition to 15,000 troops and thirty guns on the Khyber line, under the direct command of Major-General Bright.

Sir Donald Stewart reaches Kabul Sir Donald reached Kabul on the 5th May. On the same day we heard that the Beaconsfield Administration had come to an end; that a new Ministry had been formed under Mr. Gladstone; that Lord Lytton had resigned, and was to be succeeded by the Marquis of Ripon; and that the Marquis of Hartington had become Secretary of State for India.

Sir Donald Stewart arrives in Kabul Sir Donald arrived in Kabul on May 5th. On that same day, we learned that the Beaconsfield Administration had concluded; a new government had been established under Mr. Gladstone; Lord Lytton had resigned and would be replaced by the Marquis of Ripon; and the Marquis of Hartington had taken on the role of Secretary of State for India.

Notwithstanding the pleasure of meeting an old friend in my new Commander, that 5th of May was altogether not a happy day for me. Lord Lytton's approaching departure was a source of real sorrow. Personally, I felt that I was deeply indebted to him for the confidence he had reposed in me, and for the warm support he had invariably accorded me. I had hoped that he would have had the gratification of seeing, while in office, the campaign in which he was so much interested satisfactorily concluded, and with the prospect of permanent[Page 465] results; and I dreaded that a change of Government might mean a reversal of the policy which I believed to be the best for the security of our position in India. Moreover, it was not in human nature to feel absolute satisfaction in yielding up the supreme command I had so greatly delighted in, into the hands of another, even though that other was one for whom I had so great a personal regard, and under whom I had already served in the field.

Despite the joy of reconnecting with an old friend in my new Commander, that 5th of May was definitely not a happy day for me. Lord Lytton's upcoming departure filled me with genuine sorrow. I personally felt deeply grateful to him for the trust he had placed in me and for the unwavering support he had always given me. I had hoped he would have the satisfaction of witnessing the successful conclusion of the campaign he cared about so much while still in office, with the promise of lasting results. I feared that a change in Government could mean a shift in the policy I believed was best for securing our position in India. Besides, it’s only human to feel a bit uneasy about giving up the supreme command I had enjoyed so much, even if it was going to someone I respected greatly and under whom I had already served on the battlefield.

The amalgamated troops were now styled the Northern Afghanistan Field Force, and I retained the command of the two divisions at Kabul, with Major-General John Ross as second in command; while Major-General Hills was given the brigades from Kandahar, which now became the third division of the Force.

The combined troops were now called the Northern Afghanistan Field Force, and I kept command of the two divisions in Kabul, with Major-General John Ross as my second-in-command; while Major-General Hills took charge of the brigades from Kandahar, which now became the third division of the Force.

The idea in bringing Stewart away from Kandahar was that he should occupy Ghazni and Kabul; that my divisions should operate in Kohistan and in the direction of Bamian; that General Bright should move against the Ghilzais; and that a column from Kuram should march over the Shutargardan to Kabul. It was hoped that these operations would have the effect of quieting the country, and, by the time they had been carried out, it would be possible to evacuate northern Afghanistan.

The plan for moving Stewart from Kandahar was to have him take control of Ghazni and Kabul; my divisions would work in Kohistan and head towards Bamian; General Bright would advance against the Ghilzais; and a force from Kuram would march over the Shutargardan to Kabul. We hoped that these actions would help stabilize the region, and by the time they were completed, we could evacuate northern Afghanistan.

With a view to having my divisions thoroughly efficient and mobile for the service they were expected to perform, I had largely replenished the numbers of my transport animals, which had suffered greatly from the strain put upon them in supplying the troops with food and other necessaries during the winter months; they had been continuously at work in the most inclement weather, numbers had died, and those that remained required to be carefully looked after and given complete rest to render them fit for the contemplated operations. Major Mark Heathcote, who had taken, at my particular request, the arduous charge of this department, wished to revert to regimental duty, so I applied for, and obtained, the services of Lieutenant Colonel B. Low4 as Director of Transport, under whose energetic and intelligent management the transport service was rendered as perfect as it was possible to make it. In the end, circumstances prevented the concerted movements for which these preparations were made being carried out, but I reaped the benefit of them when later in the year I was required to undertake a rapid march to Kandahar, which could not possibly have been successfully accomplished had my transport not been in such admirable condition.

To ensure my divisions were efficient and agile for the tasks they needed to perform, I significantly increased the number of my transport animals, which had suffered a lot from the strain of supplying the troops with food and other essentials during the winter months. They had been working continuously in terrible weather, many had died, and those that remained needed careful attention and complete rest to prepare them for the planned operations. Major Mark Heathcote, who had taken on this tough job at my request, wanted to return to regimental duty, so I requested and received the assistance of Lieutenant Colonel B. Low4 as Director of Transport. Under his energetic and knowledgeable management, the transport service was made as perfect as possible. Ultimately, circumstances prevented the coordinated movements for which these preparations were made, but I benefited from them later in the year when I had to make a rapid march to Kandahar, which would not have been successful without my transport being in such excellent condition.

In order to relieve the great pressure put upon the Commissariat Department by having to provide for the increased number of troops at Kabul, and with a view to opening up the roads upon which traffic had been more or less impeded for some months, it was considered[Page 466] desirable to send a strong brigade towards Maidan, which I accompanied, and remained away from Kabul for some weeks. On my return, I found a considerable change had taken place in the political situation. The Mustaufi had been deported to India; the correspondence between Abdur Rahman and Mr. Griffin had taken rather an unsatisfactory turn, and the Sirdar's dealings with the leading Chiefs and tribesmen had given cause to fear that, if he came to Kabul during our occupation, it might be as an enemy rather than a friend.

To ease the heavy burden on the Commissariat Department, which was responsible for supporting the increased troop presence in Kabul, and to reopen the roads that had faced disruptions for several months, it was deemed necessary to send a strong brigade toward Maidan, which I joined, remaining away from Kabul for several weeks. Upon my return, I discovered that a significant change had occurred in the political situation. The Mustaufi had been deported to India; the correspondence between Abdur Rahman and Mr. Griffin had taken a rather unsatisfactory turn, and the Sirdar's interactions with the prominent Chiefs and tribesmen raised concerns that, if he came to Kabul during our occupation, it might be as an enemy rather than a friend.

The Mustaufi was a firm adherent of the Sher Ali faction, and, finding there was no hope of Yakub Khan being reinstated, and that we were negotiating with Abdur Rahman, he had espoused the cause of Yakub's younger brother, Ayub Khan, and had been proved guilty of inciting the Sirdars and Chiefs to oppose us. For this he was very properly sent out of Afghanistan; nevertheless, I looked upon his removal as a misfortune, for it broke up the only party that could possibly be formed to counterbalance Abdur Rahman, who was astute enough to see that the weaker our position became, the more chance there was of his being able to get his own terms from us.

The Mustaufi strongly supported the Sher Ali faction, and realizing there was no chance of Yakub Khan being brought back, and knowing we were in talks with Abdur Rahman, he backed Yakub's younger brother, Ayub Khan. He was found guilty of encouraging the Sirdars and Chiefs to oppose us. Because of this, he was rightly expelled from Afghanistan; however, I considered his departure unfortunate, as it disbanded the only group that could have balanced out Abdur Rahman, who was clever enough to recognize that the weaker our position became, the more likely he was to negotiate favorable terms with us.

Difficulties with Abdur Rahman From the letters he had written to his friends and relations in northern Afghanistan (the majority of which had fallen into our hands), it was evident that he was doing all he could to strengthen himself, even at our expense, and that he greatly disliked the idea of Kandahar being separated from the kingdom of Kabul. Indeed, in one of his communications to Mr. Griffin he had made it clear that he expected the whole inheritance of his grandfather, Dost Mahomed Khan, to be made over to him.

Problems with Abdur Rahman From the letters he wrote to his friends and family in northern Afghanistan (most of which we obtained), it was clear that he was doing everything possible to bolster his own power, even at our expense, and that he really didn’t like the idea of Kandahar being cut off from the kingdom of Kabul. In fact, in one of his messages to Mr. Griffin, he made it obvious that he expected to inherit everything from his grandfather, Dost Mahomed Khan.

The uncertainty as to the result of the correspondence with Abdur Rahman, the rumours in circulation regarding his real disposition and plans, and the general excitement throughout the country, suggested such grave doubts of the Sirdar's good faith that, in some quarters, the question was seriously discussed whether it might not be necessary to break off negotiations with him, and reinstate Yakub Khan, or else set up his brother, Ayub Khan, as Amir.

The uncertainty about the outcome of the communication with Abdur Rahman, the rumors going around about his true intentions and plans, and the overall excitement in the country raised serious concerns about the Sirdar's reliability. In some areas, people even debated whether it might be necessary to end negotiations with him and bring back Yakub Khan, or instead appoint his brother, Ayub Khan, as Amir.

I myself was altogether opposed to Yakub Khan's restoration, and as to Ayub Khan, we were in total ignorance of his character and proclivities, even if he had been near enough to treat with. It appeared to me, moreover, that we had gone too far with Abdur Rahman to throw him over because, in conformity with Afghan character and tradition, he was not running quite straight. I, therefore, gave it as my opinion that we should not change our tactics unless it was found impossible to come to terms with him, or unless it was made evident on his nearer approach to Kabul that the majority of his countrymen were averse to have him as their Ruler.

I was completely against restoring Yakub Khan, and as for Ayub Khan, we had no idea about his character or tendencies, even if he had been close enough to negotiate with. It seemed to me that we had invested too much in Abdur Rahman to abandon him just because, in line with Afghan character and tradition, he wasn't fully upright. Therefore, I expressed my opinion that we shouldn't change our strategy unless it became clear that reaching an agreement with him was impossible, or if it became obvious as he got closer to Kabul that most of his fellow countrymen did not want him as their ruler.

Soon after this the situation began to improve, and early in July[Page 467] Mr. Griffin was able to inform the Government of India that 'the probabilities of a settlement with Abdur Rahman appear far more favourable than they did last week....' 'Abdur Rahman has seen that we have been fully informed of the game he has been playing, that trickery and treachery would not be tolerated, and that, if he intends coming to a settlement with us at all, he must be prepared to accept our terms rather than dictate his own.'

Soon after this, the situation started to get better, and by early July[Page 467] Mr. Griffin was able to tell the Government of India that 'the chances of reaching a settlement with Abdur Rahman look much more promising than they did last week....' 'Abdur Rahman has realized that we are fully aware of the game he’s been playing, that we won't tolerate trickery or betrayal, and that if he wants to settle with us at all, he must be ready to accept our terms instead of trying to impose his own.'

A few days later a letter was received from Abdur Rahman, announcing his arrival in Kohistan. His near approach, and the report that he was willing to accept our terms, excited a keen and hopeful interest throughout the country, for the Afghans had at length become convinced that the only chance of getting rid of us was by agreeing to any form of settled government we might establish, and they had grown heartily tired of perpetual fighting and of having to maintain bands of ghazis to oppose us, who were eating them out of house and home. With the exception of the Sher Ali faction, therefore, whose interests were directly opposed to his, Abdur Rahman's advent was welcomed by the people, and several of the most influential amongst them went to meet him.

A few days later, a letter came from Abdur Rahman, announcing his arrival in Kohistan. His close approach and the news that he was willing to accept our terms sparked a strong and hopeful interest across the country. The Afghans had finally realized that their only chance to get rid of us was by agreeing to whatever form of established government we might create, and they had grown really tired of constant fighting and having to support groups of ghazis who were draining their resources. So, with the exception of the Sher Ali faction, whose interests were directly against his, Abdur Rahman's arrival was welcomed by the people, and several of the most influential among them went to meet him.

Towards the end of July Sir Donald Stewart was empowered to conclude all political and military arrangements preparatory to withdrawing from northern Afghanistan. Abdur Rahman was to be recognized as 'Amir of Kabul'; he was to be provided with a sufficient number of guns to strengthen effectively his occupation of the city, and he was to be given as much money (within a maximum of ten lakhs) as was thought necessary to meet his present wants. It was to be clearly explained to Abdur Rahman that the Government of India would not engage to give him a regular subsidy, or a continuous supply of arms or money, and that after he had taken possession of his capital he would have to rely upon his own resources for holding it. There was to be no treaty, and all questions of reciprocal engagements between the two Governments were to be postponed until some settled and responsible administration had been consolidated.

Towards the end of July, Sir Donald Stewart was authorized to finalize all political and military plans for withdrawing from northern Afghanistan. Abdur Rahman was to be recognized as the 'Amir of Kabul'; he would receive enough firearms to effectively secure his control over the city, and he would be given as much money (up to a maximum of ten lakhs) as deemed necessary for his immediate needs. It was to be made clear to Abdur Rahman that the Government of India would not commit to providing him with a regular subsidy or a continuous supply of arms or money, and that after he took control of his capital, he would need to depend on his own resources to maintain it. There would be no treaty, and all matters concerning mutual agreements between the two governments would be postponed until a stable and responsible administration was established.

General Stewart was directed to make the best arrangements he could with Abdur Rahman for the protection of the tribes and individuals who had assisted us, and the Sirdar was to be informed that, if he desired our goodwill, he could give no better proof of his friendly disposition than by his behaviour towards those of his own nation in whom the British Government were interested.

General Stewart was instructed to make the best arrangements possible with Abdur Rahman for the protection of the tribes and individuals who helped us. The Sirdar was to be informed that if he wanted our goodwill, there was no better way to show his friendly intentions than by how he treated those in his own nation that the British Government cared about.

Abdur Rahman proclaimed Amir Sir Donald Stewart considered that the best way of giving effect to these instructions was to publicly proclaim Abdur Rahman as Amir of Kabul; for this purpose he held a durbar on the 22nd July, at which the Sirdar's representatives were received. Sir Donald, in a few words, gave his reasons for summoning them to meet him, and Mr. Griffin then explained more fully the motives by which the Government[Page 468] of India were actuated in acknowledging the claims of Abdur Rahman. Immediately after the durbar orders were issued for an early retirement.

Abdur Rahman became Amir Sir Donald Stewart thought the best way to carry out these instructions was to officially announce Abdur Rahman as Amir of Kabul. To do this, he held a durbar on July 22nd, where the Sirdar's representatives were welcomed. Sir Donald briefly explained his reasons for bringing them together, and Mr. Griffin then elaborated on the motivations behind the Government[Page 468] of India recognizing Abdur Rahman's claims. Right after the durbar, orders were issued for an early retirement.

I was to withdraw my column by the Kuram route; but being anxious to see something of the Khyber line while I had the opportunity, I started off the following day to ride through the Jagdalak Pass to Gandamak, where I was entertained by General Bright and his staff. The next day I went on to Jalalabad, and was greatly interested in wandering over the place where Sir Robert Sale in some measure redeemed the lamentable failures of the first Afghan war.

I was supposed to take my column along the Kuram route, but wanting to see some of the Khyber line while I had the chance, I set off the next day to ride through the Jagdalak Pass to Gandamak, where General Bright and his staff hosted me. The following day I continued on to Jalalabad, and I found it fascinating to explore the site where Sir Robert Sale somewhat made up for the sad failures of the first Afghan war.

My intention, when I left Kabul, was to ride as far as the Khyber Pass, but suddenly a presentiment, which I have never been able to explain to myself, made me retrace my steps and hurry back towards Kabul—a presentiment of coming trouble which I can only characterize as instinctive.

My intention when I left Kabul was to travel all the way to the Khyber Pass, but suddenly I had a feeling I can't explain that made me turn back and rush toward Kabul—a gut feeling of impending trouble that I can only describe as instinctive.

The feeling was justified when, about half-way between Butkhak and Kabul, I was met by Sir Donald Stewart and my Chief of the Staff,5 who brought me the astounding news of the total defeat by Ayub Khan of Brigadier-General Burrows's brigade at Maiwand, and of Lieutenant-General Primrose,6 with the remainder of his force, being besieged at Kandahar.

The feeling was confirmed when, about halfway between Butkhak and Kabul, I was met by Sir Donald Stewart and my Chief of the Staff,5 who brought me the shocking news of the complete defeat of Brigadier-General Burrows's brigade by Ayub Khan at Maiwand, and that Lieutenant-General Primrose,6 along with the rest of his force, was under siege in Kandahar.






CHAPTER LX.

1880


Affairs at Kandahar
For more than six months rumours had been afloat of Ayub Khan's determination to advance on Kandahar; but little attention was paid to them by the authorities at that place until towards the end of May, when a Sirdar, named Sher Ali,1 who had been a few days before formally installed as Wali, or Ruler, of Kandahar, informed the political officer, Lieutenant-Colonel St. John, that the British occupation of Kabul had had the effect of bringing about a reconciliation between the various chiefs at Herat, who had placed themselves under the leadership of Ayub Khan and induced him to proclaim a jahad. Sher Ali, who evidently considered this news authentic, declared his belief that his own troops,2 who were then engaged in collecting revenue in Zamindawar, would desert to Ayub Khan as he approached Kandahar,[Page 469] and he begged that a brigade of British soldiers might be sent to Girishk to support him.

Kandahar Affairs For over six months, rumors had circulated about Ayub Khan's plan to move on Kandahar, but the local authorities largely ignored them until late May. At that time, a Sirdar named Sher Ali, who had recently been officially appointed as the Wali, or Ruler, of Kandahar, informed the political officer, Lieutenant-Colonel St. John, that the British presence in Kabul had resulted in a reconciliation among the various chiefs in Herat. These chiefs had united under Ayub Khan's leadership and urged him to declare a jahad. Sher Ali, who clearly believed this information to be true, expressed his concern that his own troops, who were currently busy collecting taxes in Zamindawar, would defect to Ayub Khan as he drew near Kandahar, and he requested that a brigade of British soldiers be dispatched to Girishk to support him.

On General Primrose communicating this information to the Commander-in-Chief in India, he recommended to the Government that the Bombay reserve division, located at Jacobabad, Hyderabad, and Karachi, should be mobilized so soon as it became certain that Ayub Khan really contemplated this move, as in his opinion the garrison at Kandahar would be left dangerously weak after a brigade had been detached for Girishk.

On General Primrose sharing this information with the Commander-in-Chief in India, he suggested to the Government that the Bombay reserve division, based in Jacobabad, Hyderabad, and Karachi, should be mobilized as soon as it became clear that Ayub Khan was seriously considering this move. He believed that the garrison at Kandahar would be left alarmingly weak after a brigade had been sent to Girishk.

Ayub Khan's movements, however, were not ascertained until the 27th June, when he had advanced halfway to the Helmand; it was too late then to mobilize troops so far off as Jacobabad, Hyderabad, and Karachi with any chance of their being in time to check his onward march. The news of his approach spread rapidly, and had the most disturbing effect in Kandahar and its neighbourhood. The Governor's authority daily diminished, and many of the inhabitants left the city.

Ayub Khan's movements were only confirmed on June 27th, when he had advanced halfway to the Helmand; by then, it was too late to mobilize troops from places as far away as Jacobabad, Hyderabad, and Karachi in time to stop his advance. News of his approach spread quickly, causing significant unrest in Kandahar and the surrounding areas. The Governor's authority weakened daily, and many residents began to leave the city.

Ayub Khan had with him, when he started from Herat on the 15th June, 7,500 men and ten guns as the nucleus of an army, which he calculated, as he moved forward, would be strongly reinforced by tribesmen, levies, and ghazis.

Ayub Khan set out from Herat on June 15th with 7,500 soldiers and ten cannons as the core of his army. He expected that as he advanced, he would be significantly backed by local tribesmen, militia, and ghazis.

On the 4th July a brigade, under the command of Brigadier-General Burrows, started from Kandahar, and reached the Helmand on the 11th, encamping on the near bank of the river opposite Girishk. On the further bank Sirdar Sher Ali's troops were located, having with them six guns. Two days afterwards these troops deserted in a body to the enemy, but did not succeed in taking their Artillery with them, as Burrows, on perceiving their intention, crossed the river and captured the guns.

On July 4th, a brigade led by Brigadier-General Burrows set out from Kandahar and reached the Helmand on the 11th, setting up camp on the near bank of the river across from Girishk. On the opposite bank, Sirdar Sher Ali's troops were stationed, bringing with them six guns. Two days later, those troops deserted to the enemy, but they weren't able to take their artillery since Burrows, noticing their plan, crossed the river and seized the guns.

Brigadier-General Burrows's position had now entirely changed; instead of there being a loyal force under the Wali, with which to co-operate and prevent Ayub Khan crossing the Helmand, he found himself with an inadequate number of troops, the Wali's men gone over to the enemy, and the Wali himself a fugitive in the British camp. The Helmand was fordable everywhere at that season, making it easy for Ayub to cut off Burrows's retreat; the first twenty-five of the eighty miles by which he was separated from Kandahar was a desert, and no supplies were forthcoming owing to the hostile attitude of the people. Burrows therefore determined to retire to Khushk-i-Nakhud, an important position half-way to Kandahar, covering the road from Girishk, and where supplies and water were plentiful.

Brigadier-General Burrows's situation had completely changed; instead of having a loyal force under the Wali to work with and stop Ayub Khan from crossing the Helmand, he found himself with too few troops, the Wali's men had defected to the enemy, and the Wali himself was a fugitive in the British camp. The Helmand was shallow enough to cross everywhere at that time of year, making it easy for Ayub to cut off Burrows's escape route; the first twenty-five of the eighty miles that separated him from Kandahar was a desert, and no supplies were available due to the locals' hostile attitude. Burrows therefore decided to retreat to Khushk-i-Nakhud, an important location halfway to Kandahar, which protected the road from Girishk and where supplies and water were abundant.

Burrows reached Khushk-i-Nakhud on the 16th July. On the 22nd the Commander-in-Chief in India, who had been inquiring from General Primrose whether there were 'any routes from the Helmand passing by the north to Ghazni, by which Ayub Khan might move with his guns,' telegraphed to Primrose: 'You will understand that you[Page 470] have full liberty to attack Ayub, if you consider you are strong enough to do so. Government consider it of the highest political importance that his force should be dispersed, and prevented by all possible means from passing on to Ghazni.'

Burrows arrived at Khushk-i-Nakhud on July 16th. On the 22nd, the Commander-in-Chief in India, who had been asking General Primrose if there were "any routes from the Helmand heading north to Ghazni that Ayub Khan could use with his artillery," sent a telegram to Primrose: "You should know that you[Page 470] have the full authority to attack Ayub if you believe you are strong enough. The government considers it extremely important politically that his forces be scattered and prevented by all means from reaching Ghazni."

On the afternoon of the 26th information was received by Brigadier-General Burrows that 2,000 of the enemy's Cavalry and a large body of ghazis had arrived at Maiwand, eleven miles off, and that Ayub Khan was about to follow with the main body of his army.

On the afternoon of the 26th, Brigadier-General Burrows received word that 2,000 enemy cavalry and a large group of ghazis had arrived at Maiwand, eleven miles away, and that Ayub Khan was about to come with the main part of his army.

To prevent Ayub Khan getting to Ghazni, General Burrows had to do one of two things, either await him at Khushk-i-Nakhud, or intercept him at Maiwand. After consulting with Colonel St. John, he determined to adopt the latter course, as he hoped thus to be able to deal with the ghazis before they were joined by Ayub Khan.

To stop Ayub Khan from reaching Ghazni, General Burrows had to do one of two things: either wait for him at Khushk-i-Nakhud or intercept him at Maiwand. After talking with Colonel St. John, he decided to take the second option, hoping to deal with the ghazis before they teamed up with Ayub Khan.

The brigade started soon after 6 a.m. on the 27th. It was encumbered by a large number of baggage animals, which Burrows considered could not be left behind because of the hostile state of the country, and the impossibility of detaching any part of his already too small force for their protection.

The brigade began shortly after 6 a.m. on the 27th. It was weighed down by a lot of baggage animals, which Burrows thought couldn’t be left behind due to the dangerous situation in the area and the inability to spare any part of his already too small force for their safety.

The Maiwand Disaster At 10 a.m., when about half-way to Maiwand, a spy brought in information that Ayub Khan had arrived at that place, and was occupying it in force; General Burrows, however, considered it then too late to turn back, and decided to advance. At a quarter to twelve the forces came into collision, and the fight lasted until past three o'clock. The Afghans, who, Burrows reported, numbered 25,000, soon outflanked the British. Our Artillery expended their ammunition, and the Native portion of the brigade got out of hand, and pressed back on the few British Infantry, who were unable to hold their own against the overwhelming numbers of the enemy. Our troops were completely routed, and had to thank the apathy of the Afghans in not following them up for escaping total annihilation.

The Maiwand Tragedy At 10 a.m., when we were about halfway to Maiwand, a spy brought news that Ayub Khan had reached that location and was heavily fortified there. However, General Burrows thought it was too late to retreat and chose to move forward. At a quarter to twelve, the forces clashed, and the battle continued until after three o'clock. The Afghans, who Burrows reported numbered 25,000, quickly outflanked the British. Our artillery ran out of ammunition, and the native troops lost control, pushing back against the few British infantry, who were unable to stand their ground against the overwhelming enemy forces. Our troops were completely defeated, and they only avoided total destruction thanks to the Afghans' lack of pursuit.

Of the 2,476 men engaged at Maiwand, 934 were killed and 175 were wounded and missing;3 the remnant struggled on throughout the night to Kandahar, where the first of the fugitives arrived early on[Page 471] the morning of the 28th. Brigadier-General Burrows, who had two horses shot under him during the engagement, was amongst the last to reach Kandahar.

Of the 2,476 men involved at Maiwand, 934 were killed and 175 were wounded and missing;3 the survivors pushed on through the night to Kandahar, where the first of the escapees arrived early on[Page 471] the morning of the 28th. Brigadier-General Burrows, who had two horses shot out from under him during the battle, was among the last to reach Kandahar.

This lamentable story imparted to me by Stewart almost took my breath away, and we eagerly discussed the situation as we rode back together to Sherpur. It was impossible to predict how the news would affect the recent arrangements entered into with Abdur Rahman, or what the attitude of the tribesmen would be; but we agreed that, whatever might happen in our immediate neighbourhood, the only means of affording speedy relief to the Kandahar garrison was by sending a force from Kabul.

This tragic story shared with me by Stewart nearly left me speechless, and we eagerly talked about the situation as we rode back together to Sherpur. It was impossible to know how the news would impact the recent agreements made with Abdur Rahman, or what the reaction of the tribesmen would be; but we both agreed that, no matter what might happen in our immediate area, the only way to provide quick relief to the Kandahar garrison was by sending a force from Kabul.

It soon, however, became apparent, by telegrams received from Simla, that the Government were in doubt as to the best course to pursue, and looked to Quetta rather than Kabul as the place from which Kandahar could be most conveniently and rapidly succoured. This was not altogether surprising, for the authorities naturally hesitated to weaken Kabul until matters had been finally settled with Abdur Rahman, and it was only to be expected that, after what had occurred at Maiwand, they should be alarmed at the idea of a force being cut off from all communication with India during the four weeks, or thereabouts, it would take to reach Kandahar. But there was really no alternative, for, as Major-General Phayre4 (commanding in Baluchistan) reported,5 the troops available for Field Service were but few in number, it would require at least fifteen days to equip them, and there was no organized transport at hand, the animals having been sent to distant grazing grounds on account of the scarcity of water and forage.

It soon became clear, through telegrams from Simla, that the Government was unsure about the best course of action and preferred Quetta over Kabul as the base from which Kandahar could be most easily and quickly supported. This wasn’t entirely surprising, as the authorities were understandably reluctant to reduce their presence in Kabul until the situation with Abdur Rahman was resolved. Given what had happened at Maiwand, it was natural for them to be worried about the prospect of a force being cut off from all communication with India during the four weeks, or so, it would take to reach Kandahar. However, there really wasn’t any other option, because, as Major-General Phayre4 (commanding in Baluchistan) reported5, the troops available for Field Service were few, it would take at least fifteen days to get them ready, and there was no organized transport available since the animals had been sent to distant grazing areas due to the lack of water and forage.

I knew nothing as to the actual condition of the troops in Baluchistan, except that, as belonging to the Bombay Presidency, they could not be composed of the best fighting races, and I had a strong feeling that it would be extremely unwise to make use of any but the most proved Native soldiers against Ayub Khan's superior numbers, elated as his men must be with their victory at Maiwand.

I had no idea about the actual situation of the troops in Baluchistan, except that since they were part of the Bombay Presidency, they probably weren't made up of the best fighting forces. I felt strongly that it would be very unwise to use anything but the most reliable Native soldiers against Ayub Khan's larger forces, especially since his men would be boosted by their victory at Maiwand.

The disaster to our arms caused, as was to be expected, considerable excitement all along the border; indeed, throughout India the announcement produced a certain feeling of uneasiness—a mere surface ripple—but enough to make those who remembered the days[Page 472] of the Mutiny anxious for better news from the north.

The disaster to our forces stirred up, as expected, a lot of excitement along the border; in fact, all over India the news created some uneasiness—a slight disturbance—but enough to make those who remembered the days[Page 472] of the Mutiny anxious for better updates from the north.

To me it seemed of such supreme importance that Kandahar should be relieved without delay, and the reverse to our arms retrieved, that I made up my mind to communicate my views to the Viceroy through the Commander-in-Chief, in the hope that, when he realized that a thoroughly efficient force was ready and willing to start from Kabul, he would no longer hesitate as to what was best to do.

To me, it seemed extremely important that Kandahar should be relieved immediately, and that we should make up for our defeat, so I decided to share my thoughts with the Viceroy through the Commander-in-Chief. I hoped that, once he saw that a fully capable force was ready and willing to move out from Kabul, he would no longer hesitate about the best course of action.

On the 30th July, I dined with Stewart, and, leaving his mess-tent at an early hour, I retired to my own quarters, and wrote out the following telegram in cipher, but, before despatching it, I showed it to Stewart, for, although I knew that his views were in accord with mine, I could not with propriety have sent it without his knowledge:

On July 30th, I had dinner with Stewart, and after leaving his mess tent early, I went back to my own quarters and wrote the following telegram in code. Before sending it, I showed it to Stewart because, even though I knew his views matched mine, it wouldn't have been proper to send it without his knowledge:

Relief from Kabul suggested 'To Major-General Greaves,6 Adjutant-General in India, Simla.

Kabul relief suggested 'To Major-General Greaves,6 Adjutant-General in India, Simla.

'Kabul,                    
'30th July, 1880.

Kabul,
July 30, 1880.

'Personal and secret. I strongly recommend that a force be sent from this to Kandahar. Stewart has organized a very complete one consisting of nine regiments of Infantry, three of Cavalry, and three Mountain batteries. This will suffice to overcome all opposition en route; it will have the best possible effect on the country, and will be ready to go anywhere on reaching Kandahar, being fully equipped in all respects. He proposes sending me in command.

'Personal and secret. I strongly advise that a force be sent from this to Kandahar. Stewart has put together a very complete one made up of nine infantry regiments, three cavalry regiments, and three mountain batteries. This will be enough to deal with any opposition en route; it will have the best possible impact on the region and will be ready to go anywhere upon arriving in Kandahar, fully equipped in every way. He suggests putting me in charge.'

'I am sure that but few Bombay regiments are able to cope with Afghans, and once the Kabul Field Force leaves this country, the chance of sending a thoroughly reliable and well-equipped column will be lost. The movement of the remainder of the Kabul troops towards India should be simultaneous with the advance of my division towards Kandahar, it being most desirable to limit the area of our responsibilities as soon as possible; at the same time, it is imperative that we should now show our strength throughout Afghanistan. The withdrawal, under existing circumstances, of the whole force from Kabul to India would certainly be misunderstood, both in Afghanistan and elsewhere. You need have no fears about my division. It can take care of itself, and will reach Kandahar under the month. I will answer for the loyalty and good feeling of the Native portion, and would propose to inform them that, as soon as matters have been satisfactorily settled at Kandahar, they will be sent straight back to India. Show this to Lyall.'

'I’m sure that only a few Bombay regiments can handle the Afghans, and once the Kabul Field Force leaves the country, we’ll lose the chance to send a reliable and well-equipped unit. The movement of the remaining Kabul troops towards India should happen at the same time as my division moves towards Kandahar; it’s really important to limit our responsibilities as soon as we can. At the same time, we must demonstrate our strength across Afghanistan. Pulling the entire force from Kabul to India under the current circumstances would definitely be misunderstood, both in Afghanistan and beyond. You don’t have to worry about my division. It can handle itself and will reach Kandahar within the month. I can vouch for the loyalty and goodwill of the Native troops, and I’d suggest letting them know that once things are settled in Kandahar, they will be sent straight back to India. Please show this to Lyall.'

Exaggerated reports of the Maiwand affair being rife in the Kabul bazaars, which were daily becoming crowded with armed Afghans from Abdur Rahman's camp, and the prospect of troops having to leave at once for Kandahar, made it more than ever necessary to bring the negotiations with the new Amir to a speedy conclusion. It was accordingly arranged that Mr. Griffin should meet him at Zimma, about sixteen miles from Kabul. This interview had the happiest results, and must have been extremely gratifying to Mr. Griffin, whom we all heartily congratulated on the successful ending to the very delicate and difficult negotiations which he had carried on with so[Page 473] much skill and patience.

Exaggerated stories about the Maiwand incident were spreading in the Kabul bazaars, which were becoming busier every day with armed Afghans from Abdur Rahman's camp. The possibility of troops needing to leave immediately for Kandahar made it even more urgent to wrap up negotiations with the new Amir quickly. It was therefore arranged for Mr. Griffin to meet him at Zimma, about sixteen miles from Kabul. This meeting had very positive results and must have been incredibly satisfying for Mr. Griffin, whom we all warmly congratulated on the successful conclusion of the delicate and challenging negotiations he had handled with so[Page 473] much skill and patience.

In taking leave of His Highness, Mr. Griffin invited him to come to the British camp the following day to be received by Sir Donald Stewart. Abdur Rahman himself was quite willing to come, and some of his supporters were in favour of his doing so, but others vehemently opposed the idea, and 'swore by their faith they would leave him if he persisted.' After a stormy meeting with his Chiefs, the Amir wrote to Mr. Griffin as follows: 'If you really wish me to come to you, irrespective of the opinion of the people, I am quite ready to do so. Please write and let me know your wishes. I am in the hands of ignorant fools, who do not know their own interests, good or bad. What can I do? I am most anxious to meet you.'

In saying goodbye to His Highness, Mr. Griffin invited him to visit the British camp the next day to be welcomed by Sir Donald Stewart. Abdur Rahman was open to the idea, and some of his supporters encouraged him to go, but others strongly opposed it and threatened to abandon him if he went through with it. After a heated meeting with his Chiefs, the Amir wrote to Mr. Griffin: "If you truly want me to come to you, regardless of what the people think, I'm more than willing. Please write and let me know what you want. I'm surrounded by ignorant fools who don't understand their own interests, good or bad. What can I do? I'm very eager to meet you."

Upon receipt of this note Stewart decided that it would be impolitic to press for an interview, for instead of strengthening the Amir, as had been the intention, it was evident it would have the opposite effect, so the meeting was given up.

Upon receiving this note, Stewart decided that it would be inappropriate to push for an interview, as instead of reinforcing the Amir, which had been the goal, it was clear it would have the opposite effect. So, the meeting was canceled.

A force ordered from Kabul On the morning of the 3rd August the telegram arrived from Lord Ripon, which I had been so anxiously expecting, authorizing the despatch of a force to Kandahar, and directing that I should be placed in command.

A unit deployed from Kabul On the morning of August 3rd, the telegram from Lord Ripon arrived, which I had been eagerly waiting for, giving the go-ahead to send a force to Kandahar, and stating that I would be in charge.

I heard afterwards that my message to the Adjutant-General was received at Simla at a most opportune moment. Lyall took it without delay to Lord Ripon, who from the first had been in favour of a force being sent from Kabul, but had refrained from ordering the movement in deference to the views held by some members of his Council, whose longer experience of India, His Excellency considered, entitled their opinions to be treated with respect.

I later heard that my message to the Adjutant-General arrived in Simla at just the right time. Lyall took it straight to Lord Ripon, who had always supported sending a force from Kabul but had held off on making the order out of respect for the opinions of some Council members. His Excellency believed their greater experience in India made their views worth considering.

I set to work at once to organize the column which I was to have the great honour of commanding. In this most congenial duty I received every possible assistance and encouragement from Stewart; he gave me carte-blanche, and I should only have had myself to blame if every unit had not been as efficiently equipped as circumstances would admit.

I immediately got to work organizing the column that I was honored to command. In this enjoyable task, I received all the help and support from Stewart; he gave me complete freedom, and I would only have had myself to blame if every unit hadn't been equipped as well as possible given the circumstances.

I wished that the force should be composed, as far as possible, of those who had served with me throughout the campaign; but as some of the regiments (more especially Native corps) had been away from their homes for two years, and had had more than their share of fighting, besides having suffered heavy losses in action and through sickness, I considered it right to consult their commanders before detailing the troops. With the exception of three, who thought that their regiments had been long enough away from India, all, to my great delight, eagerly responded to my call, and I took upon myself to promise the men that they should not be left to garrison Kandahar, but should be sent back to India as soon as the fighting ceased.

I wanted the force to be made up, as much as possible, of those who had served with me during the whole campaign. However, since some of the regiments, especially the Native troops, had been away from their homes for two years and had experienced more than their fair share of fighting, along with heavy losses from both battles and illness, I thought it was important to consult their commanders before assigning the troops. With the exception of three commanders who felt their regiments had been away from India long enough, everyone else, to my great relief, responded positively to my request. I took it upon myself to assure the soldiers that they wouldn’t be left to garrison Kandahar but would be sent back to India as soon as the fighting was over.

When the several regiments were decided upon, every man not[Page 474] likely to stand the strain of prolonged forced marches was weeded out, and the scale of baggage, tents, and impedimenta was reduced to a minimum.7

When the various regiments were chosen, everyone who was unlikely to handle the stress of long, forced marches was eliminated, and the amount of baggage, tents, and supplies was cut down to a minimum.7

I had no fear as to the officers and men ably and cheerfully performing their part of the task; we had been long enough together to enable us thoroughly to understand and trust each other, and I felt that I could depend upon each and all to respond heartily to whatever call I might make upon them.

I wasn't worried about the officers and men confidently and happily doing their part of the job; we had been together long enough to really understand and trust each other, and I felt I could count on each of them to wholeheartedly respond to any request I might make.

The question of supplies was my greatest anxiety, and I had many consultations with my experienced Commissariat officer, Major Badcock, before I could feel satisfied in this respect.

The issue of supplies was my biggest worry, and I had several discussions with my experienced Commissariat officer, Major Badcock, before I felt assured in this regard.

The transport, as I have already recorded, was in good order; it was fortunate that the soldiers had been practised in loading, leading, and tending the animals, for the Afghan drivers deserted to a man a march or two from Kabul, and the Hazaras followed their example on reaching their own country. Sir Donald Stewart's account of the troubles he had encountered during his march from Kandahar was not very encouraging, and I should have been glad if I could have taken a larger amount of supplies;8 but on this point I had to be guided by the number of animals that could be allotted to the column, which[Page 475] was necessarily limited, as carriage had to be provided simultaneously for the withdrawal of the rest of the army of occupation.

The transport was, as I’ve mentioned, in good shape; it was a relief that the soldiers were skilled in loading, leading, and caring for the animals, since the Afghan drivers deserted us just a couple of marches from Kabul, and the Hazaras did the same once they got back to their home country. Sir Donald Stewart’s account of the challenges he faced during his march from Kandahar wasn’t very reassuring, and I would have preferred to bring a larger amount of supplies;8 but I had to consider the number of animals that could be assigned to the column, which[Page 475] was necessarily limited, as we also needed to arrange transport for the rest of the army of occupation.

The strength of the force placed at my disposal consisted of 9,986 men of all ranks and eighteen guns, divided into three brigades of Infantry, one brigade of Cavalry, and three batteries of Mountain Artillery. There were, besides, over 8,000 followers9 and 2,300 horses and gun-mules.

The strength of the force at my disposal was made up of 9,986 personnel of all ranks and eighteen cannons, organized into three brigades of infantry, one brigade of cavalry, and three batteries of mountain artillery. Additionally, there were over 8,000 followers9 and 2,300 horses and mules for the guns.

The Kabul-Kandahar Field Force It was designated the Kabul-Kandahar Field Force.

The Kabul-Kandahar Task Force It was called the Kabul-Kandahar Field Force.

Major-General J. Ross, C.B., was given the command of the Infantry division, his three Brigadier-Generals being Herbert Macpherson, T.D. Baker, and Charles Macgregor. Brigadier-General Hugh Gough commanded the Cavalry brigade; Colonel Alured Johnson the Artillery; while Colonel Æ. Perkins held the position of Commanding Royal Engineer; Deputy-Surgeon-General J. Hanbury that of Principal Medical Officer; and Lieutenant-Colonel E.F. Chapman, Chief of the Staff.

Major-General J. Ross, C.B., was put in charge of the Infantry division, with his three Brigadier-Generals being Herbert Macpherson, T.D. Baker, and Charles Macgregor. Brigadier-General Hugh Gough led the Cavalry brigade; Colonel Alured Johnson oversaw the Artillery; Colonel Æ. Perkins was the Commanding Royal Engineer; Deputy-Surgeon-General J. Hanbury served as the Principal Medical Officer; and Lieutenant-Colonel E.F. Chapman was the Chief of the Staff.

From the detail of the force given below,10 it will be seen that there was no wheeled Artillery, and that the number of guns was not in proportion [Page 476] to the strength of the other branches. This was my own doing; I was pressed to take more and heavier guns, but, after due consideration, I decided that I would only have Mountain batteries. We could not tell how long the Kandahar garrison would be able to hold out, so that our first object must be to reach that place with the least possible delay, and wheeled Artillery would, in a country where[Page 477] there were practically no roads, have only prevented our moving as rapidly as we might otherwise have done.

From the details of the force given below,10 it’s clear that there were no wheeled artillery pieces, and the number of guns didn't match the strength of the other branches. This was my decision; I was urged to take more and heavier guns, but after careful thought, I chose to only use mountain batteries. We couldn’t predict how long the Kandahar garrison would be able to hold out, so our main objective had to be to reach that location as quickly as possible, and wheeled artillery would have only slowed us down in an area where[Page 476] there were practically no roads.

For the equipment of the force, inclusive of carriage for footsore soldiers11 and followers, and allowing ten per cent. spare, more than 8,00012 animals were required.

For the team’s equipment, including transport for tired soldiers and followers, and allowing for an extra ten percent, more than 8,000 animals were needed.

Fortunately, it turned out that a fair amount of Indian corn in the ear was almost everywhere procurable, which was so nutritious that a large majority of the Cavalry horses and transport animals reached Kandahar in excellent condition.

Fortunately, it turned out that a good amount of Indian corn on the cob was almost everywhere available, which was so nutritious that most of the Cavalry horses and transport animals arrived in Kandahar in great condition.

Commissariat and Transport Throughout the march great difficulties were experienced in procuring food, but they were always overcome, with the able assistance of Major Hastings and his political staff,13 and by means of the admirable arrangements made by the Commissariat14 and Transport15 officers, who were quite untiring, and after the longest march, and with the prospect of having to start again at an early hour the following morning, had often to work far into the night.

Logistics and Transport Throughout the march, we faced many challenges in finding food, but we always managed to overcome them, thanks to the excellent support from Major Hastings and his political staff,13 and the outstanding plans set up by the Commissariat14 and Transport15 officers, who worked tirelessly. After the longest marches, with the expectation of having to set out again early the next morning, they often had to labor deep into the night.

The want of fuel was our chief drawback. We had on many occasions to purchase houses and pull them to pieces for the sake of the wood to be got out of them, and frequently there was nothing to cook with save tiny roots of southernwood, which had to be dug out and [Page 478] collected after a long day's march before the men could prepare their food and satisfy their hunger.

The lack of fuel was our main issue. We often had to buy houses and tear them down just for the wood. Usually, there was nothing to cook with except for small roots of southernwood, which had to be dug up and [Page 478] gathered after a long day of marching before the men could make their meals and satisfy their hunger.

One day's corn was carried by each animal in addition to the ordinary load, and as far as Ghazni grain was tolerably plentiful; beyond that we had to depend for forage on the crops still standing. At the end of the day's march, certain fields were told off to the several brigades; from these all that was required was cut and carried away, the fields were then measured and assessed, and compensation was awarded by the political officers, who also adjusted all claims on account of wrecked houses, and fruit, vegetables, etc., brought in for the troops.

One day's worth of corn was carried by each animal on top of the usual load, and grain was fairly plentiful up to Ghazni; beyond that, we had to rely on the standing crops for forage. At the end of each day's march, specific fields were designated for the various brigades; from these, everything needed was cut and taken away. The fields were then measured and evaluated, and compensation was given by the political officers, who also settled all claims related to damaged houses, as well as fruit, vegetables, and other supplies brought in for the troops.

On Sunday, the 8th August, the force moved into camp by brigades, my Head-Quarters being with the first and third Infantry brigades at Beni Hissar, on the way to the Logar valley, which route I had chosen instead of the slightly shorter line by Maidan, on account of the greater facility it afforded for supplies.

On Sunday, August 8th, the troops set up camp by brigades, with my headquarters located with the first and third Infantry brigades at Beni Hissar, en route to the Logar valley. I chose this path over the slightly shorter route through Maidan because it provided better access to supplies.

Sir Donald Stewart paid us a farewell visit in the afternoon, and at 6 a.m. the following morning we began the march to Kandahar.

Sir Donald Stewart came to say goodbye in the afternoon, and at 6 a.m. the next morning, we started our march to Kandahar.






CHAPTER LXI.

1880

Before daybreak on the 11th August, as I was starting from camp, I received my last communication from the outside world in the shape of a telegram from my wife, sent off from a little village in Somersetshire, congratulating me and the force, and wishing us all God's speed. She had taken our children to England a few months before, thinking that the war in Afghanistan was over, and that I would soon be able to follow.

Before dawn on August 11th, as I was leaving camp, I got my last message from the outside world in the form of a telegram from my wife, sent from a small village in Somersetshire. She congratulated me and the team and wished us all good luck. A few months earlier, she had taken our kids to England, thinking the war in Afghanistan was over and that I would be able to join them soon.

Four days brought us to the end of the Logar valley, a distance of forty-six miles. So far the country was easy and supplies plentiful. I thought it wise, however, not to attempt long distances at first, that both men and animals might become gradually hardened before entering on the difficult and scantily cultivated ground between Ghazni and Kelat-i-Ghilzai, where I knew that forced marches were inevitable, and that their powers of endurance would be sorely taxed. Moreover, it was necessary to begin quietly, and organize some system by which confusion in the crowded camping-grounds might be avoided, and the physical strain upon everyone lightened as much as possible.

Four days took us to the end of the Logar Valley, a distance of forty-six miles. Up to this point, the terrain was easy and supplies were plentiful. However, I thought it was wise not to push for long distances right away, so that both the men and the animals could gradually build up their endurance before we faced the tough and sparsely cultivated land between Ghazni and Kelat-i-Ghilzai, where I knew we would have to make forced marches and our stamina would be seriously tested. Additionally, it was important to start off calmly and set up a system to avoid confusion in the crowded camping areas, while also minimizing the physical strain on everyone as much as possible.

When it is remembered that the daily supply for over 18,000 men and 11,000 animals had to be drawn from the country after arrival in camp, that food had to be distributed to every individual, that the fuel with which it was cooked had often to be brought from long distances,[Page 479] and that a very limited time was available for the preparation of meals and for rest, it will readily be understood how essential it was that even the stupidest follower should be able to find his place in camp speedily, and that everyone should know exactly what to do and how to set about doing it.

When you consider that every day, supplies for over 18,000 soldiers and 11,000 animals had to be sourced from the surrounding area after reaching the camp, that food needed to be distributed to each person, that the fuel for cooking sometimes had to be transported from far away,[Page 479] and that there was very little time for preparing meals and resting, it becomes clear how important it was for even the least capable follower to quickly find their place in camp, and for everyone to know exactly what to do and how to go about doing it.

On the march and in the formation of the camps the same principles were, as far as possible, applied each day. The 'rouse' sounded at 2.45 a.m., and by four o'clock tents had been struck, baggage loaded up, and everything was ready for a start.

On the march and in setting up the camps, the same principles were applied every day as much as possible. The ‘wake-up’ call sounded at 2:45 a.m., and by four o'clock, tents had been taken down, luggage packed up, and everything was ready to go.

The order of marching As a general rule, the Cavalry covered the movement at a distance of about five miles, two of the four regiments being in front, with the other two on either flank. Two of the Infantry brigades came next, each accompanied by a Mountain battery; then followed the field hospitals, Ordnance and Engineer parks, treasure, and the baggage, massed according to the order in which the brigades were moving. The third Infantry brigade with its Mountain battery and one or two troops of Cavalry formed the rear guard.

Marching order As a general rule, the Cavalry covered the movement from about five miles away, with two of the four regiments in front and the other two on each side. Next came two of the Infantry brigades, each with a Mountain battery; then the field hospitals, Ordnance and Engineer parks, treasure, and the baggage, all grouped according to the order in which the brigades were moving. The third Infantry brigade with its Mountain battery and one or two troops of Cavalry made up the rear guard.

A halt of ten minutes was made at the end of each hour, which at eight o'clock was prolonged to twenty minutes to give time for a hasty breakfast. Being able to sleep on the shortest notice, I usually took advantage of these intervals to get a nap, awaking greatly refreshed after a few minutes' sound sleep.

A ten-minute break was taken at the end of each hour, which at eight o'clock was extended to twenty minutes to allow time for a quick breakfast. Since I could fall asleep at a moment's notice, I typically used these breaks to grab a nap, waking up feeling much more refreshed after a few minutes of deep sleep.

On arrival at the resting-place for the night, the front face of the camp was told off to the brigade on rear guard, and this became the leading brigade of the column on the next day's march. Thus every brigade had its turn of rear guard duty, which was very arduous, more particularly after leaving Ghazni, the troops so employed seldom reaching the halting-ground before six or seven o'clock in the evening, and sometimes even later.

On arriving at the overnight stop, the front of the camp was assigned to the brigade serving as the rear guard, which became the leading brigade for the next day’s march. This way, every brigade took its turn doing rear guard duty, which was quite challenging, especially after leaving Ghazni, with those troops rarely reaching the stopping point before six or seven in the evening, and sometimes even later.

One of the most troublesome duties of the rear guard was to prevent the followers from lagging behind, for it was certain death for anyone who strayed from the shelter of the column; numbers of Afghans always hovered about on the look-out for plunder, or in the hope of being able to send a Kafir, or an almost equally-detested Hindu, to eternal perdition. Towards the end of the march particularly, this duty became most irksome, for the wretched followers were so weary and footsore that they hid themselves in ravines, making up their minds to die, and entreating, when discovered and urged to make an effort, to be left where they were. Every baggage animal that could possibly be spared was used to carry the worn-out followers; but notwithstanding this and the care taken by officers and men that none should be left behind, twenty of these poor creatures were lost, besides four Native soldiers.

One of the most challenging responsibilities of the rear guard was keeping the followers from falling behind because straying from the safety of the column was essentially a death sentence. Groups of Afghans would often linger nearby, looking for loot or hoping to send a non-believer, or an equally disliked Hindu, to their doom. Towards the end of the journey, this task became especially frustrating, as the exhausted followers were so tired and sore that they would hide in gullies, resigned to dying and begging to be left alone when they were found and urged to keep going. Every pack animal that could be spared was used to carry the exhausted followers, but despite this and the efforts of the officers and soldiers to ensure no one was left behind, twenty of these unfortunate people were lost, along with four Native soldiers.



CROSSING THE ZAMBURAK KOTAL.

CROSSING THE ZAMBURAK KOTAL.

From a painting by the Chevalier Desanges.

CROSSING THE ZAMBURAK KOTAL.

CROSSING THE ZAMBURAK KOTAL.

From a painting by Chevalier Desanges.



The variation of temperature (at times as much as eighty degrees between day and night) was most trying to the troops, who had to[Page 480] carry the same clothes whether the thermometer was at freezing-point at dawn or at 110° Fahr. at mid-day. Scarcity of water, too, was a great trouble to them, while constant sand-storms, and the suffocating dust raised by the column in its progress, added greatly to their discomfort.

The temperature changes (sometimes as much as eighty degrees between day and night) were extremely challenging for the troops, who had to[Page 480] wear the same clothes whether the temperature was freezing at dawn or 110°F at midday. A lack of water was also a big issue for them, while constant sandstorms and the choking dust kicked up by the column as it moved made their situation even more uncomfortable.

Daily reports regarding the health of the troops, followers, and transport animals were brought to me each evening, and I made it my business to ascertain how many men had fallen out during the day, and what had been the number of casualties amongst the animals.

Daily reports on the health of the troops, followers, and transport animals were delivered to me each evening, and I made it a point to find out how many men had dropped out during the day and the number of casualties among the animals.

On the 12th August the Head-Quarters and main body of the force halted to allow the Cavalry and the second Infantry brigade to push on and get clear over the Zamburak Kotal (8,100 feet high) before the rest of the column attempted its ascent. This kotal presented a serious obstacle to our rapid progress, the gradient being in many places one in four, and most difficult for the baggage animals; but by posting staff officers at intervals to control the flow of traffic, and by opening out fresh paths to relieve the pressure, we got over it much more quickly than I had expected.

On August 12th, the headquarters and main group of the force stopped to let the cavalry and the second infantry brigade move ahead and clear the Zamburak Kotal (8,100 feet high) before the rest of the column tried to ascend it. This kotal was a significant obstacle to our quick progress, with steep grades of one in four in many places, making it very challenging for the baggage animals. However, by assigning staff officers at intervals to manage the flow of traffic and by opening up new paths to ease the congestion, we crossed it much faster than I had anticipated.

On the 15th we reached Ghazni, ninety-eight miles from Kabul, a place of peculiar interest to me from the fact that it was for his share in its capture, forty-one years before, that my father was given the C.B.

On the 15th, we arrived in Ghazni, ninety-eight miles from Kabul, a place that held special significance for me because my father was awarded the C.B. for his role in its capture, forty-one years earlier.

I was met by the Governor, who handed me the keys of the fortress, and I placed my own guards and sentries in and around the city to prevent collisions between the inhabitants and our troops, and also to make sure that our demands for supplies were complied with. Up to this point we had been fairly well off for food, forage, and water.

I was greeted by the Governor, who gave me the keys to the fortress, and I assigned my own guards and sentries in and around the city to avoid conflicts between the locals and our troops, and also to ensure that our requests for supplies were met. Until now, we had managed to secure enough food, forage, and water.

Our next march was across a barren, inhospitable track for twenty miles to a place called Yarghati. On the way we passed Ahmedkhel, where Sir Donald Stewart won his victory; the name had been changed by the Natives to 'the Resting-place of Martyrs,' and the numerous freshly-covered-in graves testified to the ghazis' heavy losses. The remains of the few British soldiers, who had been buried where they had fallen, had been desecrated, and the bones were exposed to view and scattered about.

Our next march was across a desolate, unwelcoming stretch for twenty miles to a place called Yarghati. On the way, we passed Ahmedkhel, where Sir Donald Stewart achieved his victory; the locals had renamed it 'the Resting-place of Martyrs,' and the many freshly covered graves showed the heavy losses of the ghazis. The remains of the few British soldiers who had been buried where they fell had been disturbed, leaving their bones visible and scattered.

At Chardeh, our next halting-place, a communication from Colonel Tanner, Commanding at Kelat-i-Ghilzai, was brought to me by a Native messenger; it was dated the 12th August, and informed me that Kandahar was closely invested, but that the garrison had supplies for two months and forage for fifteen days.

At Chardeh, our next stopping point, a message from Colonel Tanner, who was in charge at Kelat-i-Ghilzai, was delivered to me by a local messenger. It was dated August 12th and informed me that Kandahar was under tight siege, but the garrison had enough supplies for two months and forage for fifteen days.

On the 21st we arrived at a point thirty miles from Kelat-i-Ghilzai, whence we opened heliograph communication with that place, and were told of an unsuccessful sortie made from Kandahar five days before, in which General Brooke and eight other British officers had[Page 481] been killed.

On the 21st, we got to a spot thirty miles from Kelat-i-Ghilzai, where we set up heliograph communication with that location and learned about an unsuccessful attack from Kandahar five days earlier, in which General Brooke and eight other British officers had[Page 481] been killed.

Ghazni and Kelat-i-Ghilzai On the 23rd Kelat-i-Ghilzai was reached. The garrison1 had been well taken care of by Colonel Tanner,2 and a large quantity of food for man and beast had been collected; but I thought it unadvisable at present to continue to hold the place, and have to keep open communication between it and Kandahar, and as I could see no compensating advantage in doing so, I determined to withdraw the troops and take them along with me.

Ghazni and Kelat-i-Ghilzai On the 23rd, we arrived at Kelat-i-Ghilzai. The garrison1 had been well looked after by Colonel Tanner,2 and a large supply of food for both people and animals had been gathered; however, I felt it was unwise to continue holding the location and maintain communication between it and Kandahar. Since I saw no significant benefit in doing so, I decided to withdraw the troops and take them with me.

Colonel Tanner's report satisfied me there was no immediate danger to be apprehended at Kandahar, so I decided to halt for one day; both men and animals greatly needed rest after a continuous march of 225 miles.

Colonel Tanner's report confirmed that there was no immediate danger in Kandahar, so I decided to take a break for one day; both the men and the animals really needed rest after a non-stop journey of 225 miles.

I had endeavoured to keep the Government of India informed of my progress by a message from Ghazni, and one from Oba Karez on the 18th August, but neither reached its destination. I now despatched a message which was more successful, and was delivered at Simla on the 30th August. It was as follows:

I had tried to keep the Government of India updated on my progress with a message from Ghazni and another from Oba Karez on August 18th, but neither got through. I then sent another message that was successful and delivered to Simla on August 30th. It read as follows:

'KELAT-I-GHILZAI,          
'23rd August, 1880.

KELAT-I-GHILZAI,
23rd August, 1880.

'The force under my command arrived here this morning. The authorities at Kandahar having stated on the 17th instant that they have abundant supplies and can make forage last until 1st September, I halt to-morrow to rest the troops, and more especially the transport animals and camp-followers. The force left Ghazni on the 16th, and has marched 136 miles during the last eight days; the troops are in good health and spirits. From this I purpose moving by regular-stages, so that the men may arrive fresh at Kandahar. I hope to be in heliographic communication with Kandahar from Robat, distant twenty miles, on the 29th. If General Phayre reaches Takht-i-Pul, I should also hope to communicate with him and arrange a combined movement on Kandahar. I am taking the Kelat-i-Ghilzai garrison with me, making the Fort over to Mahomed Sadik Khan, a Toki Chief, who had charge of the place when we arrived in 1879; the present Governor, Sirdar Sherindil Khan, refuses to remain. We have met with no opposition during the march, and have been able to make satisfactory arrangements for supplies, especially forage, which at this season is plentiful. The Cavalry horses and Artillery mules are in excellent order; our casualties to date are, one soldier 72nd Highlanders, one sepoy 23rd Pioneers, one 2nd Sikhs, two sepoys 3rd Sikhs dead; one sepoy 4th Gurkhas, two sepoys 24th Punjab Native Infantry, one Duffadar 3rd Punjab Cavalry missing; six camp-followers dead, five missing. The missing men have, I fear, been murdered. I telegraphed from Ghazni on the 15th, and from Oba Karez on the 18th August.'

'The force under my command arrived here this morning. The authorities in Kandahar reported on the 17th that they have plenty of supplies and can keep the forage going until September 1st, so I’ll stop tomorrow to rest the troops, especially the transport animals and camp-followers. The force left Ghazni on the 16th and has marched 136 miles over the last eight days; the troops are in good health and spirits. From here, I plan to move in regular stages, so the men can arrive fresh in Kandahar. I hope to be able to communicate with Kandahar using heliographs from Robat, which is twenty miles away, on the 29th. If General Phayre reaches Takht-i-Pul, I also hope to connect with him and arrange a joint operation on Kandahar. I'm bringing the Kelat-i-Ghilzai garrison with me and handing over the Fort to Mahomed Sadik Khan, a Toki Chief who was in charge when we arrived in 1879; the current Governor, Sirdar Sherindil Khan, refuses to stay. We haven’t faced any opposition during the march, and we've been able to make good arrangements for supplies, especially forage, which is plentiful at this time of year. The Cavalry horses and Artillery mules are in excellent shape; our casualties so far include one soldier from the 72nd Highlanders, one sepoy from the 23rd Pioneers, one from the 2nd Sikhs, and two sepoys from the 3rd Sikhs who are dead; one sepoy from the 4th Gurkhas, two sepoys from the 24th Punjab Native Infantry, and one Duffadar from the 3rd Punjab Cavalry are missing; six camp-followers are dead, and five are missing. I'm afraid the missing men have been murdered. I sent a telegram from Ghazni on the 15th and from Oba Karez on August 18th.'

I wrote also to Major-General Phayre, telling him of the date on which I expected to reach Kandahar, and that if I heard of his being anywhere near I would arrange my movements to suit his, in order[Page 482] that the two forces might make a combined attack on Ayub Khan's position.

I also wrote to Major-General Phayre, letting him know when I expected to arrive in Kandahar. I mentioned that if I found out he was nearby, I would adjust my plans to coordinate with his so that our two forces could launch a joint attack on Ayub Khan's position.[Page 482]

Food required daily for the force As I was afraid the supplies at Kandahar would be insufficient for the additional troops about to be collected there, I sent General Phayre a memorandum3 of the amount of food required daily by my force, and begged him to get pushed up from the rear such articles as were more particularly wanted. I pointed out that we were badly off for boots, and that the 92nd Highlanders had only one hundred greatcoats fit for wear, which were used by the men on night duties.

Daily food required for the troops I was worried that the supplies in Kandahar would be inadequate for the extra troops that were about to be assembled there, so I sent General Phayre a memo3 detailing how much food my force would need each day, and I asked him to send up from the rear the items that were especially needed. I noted that we were short on boots, and that the 92nd Highlanders had only one hundred greatcoats that were usable, which the men wore during night duty.

On the 25th we marched to Jaldak, seventeen miles, and the same distance the next day to Tirandaz, where I received a letter from Lieutenant-General Primrose, informing me that Ayub Khan had raised the siege on the 23rd, and was entrenching himself at Mazra, beyond the Baba Wali Kotal, in the valley of the Arghandab.

On the 25th, we marched to Jaldak, seventeen miles, and then the same distance the next day to Tirandaz, where I got a letter from Lieutenant-General Primrose. He informed me that Ayub Khan had lifted the siege on the 23rd and was setting up defenses at Mazra, beyond the Baba Wali Kotal, in the Arghandab valley.

I awoke on the morning of the 27th feeling very unwell, and soon found I was in for an attack of fever. The heat during the day was becoming more and more overpowering as we proceeded south, and I had lately been feeling somewhat knocked up by it and by exposure to the sun. I had now to give in for the time being, and was compelled to perform the march in a doolie, a most ignominious mode of conveyance for a General on service; but there was no help for it, for I could not sit a horse.

I woke up on the morning of the 27th feeling really sick, and I quickly realized I was coming down with a fever. The heat during the day was getting more and more intense as we moved south, and I had recently been feeling kind of worn out from it and from being out in the sun. I had to give in for now and was forced to travel in a doolie, which is a pretty embarrassing way for a General on duty to get around; but there was no choice, since I couldn't ride a horse.

That day the 3rd Bengal and 3rd Punjab Cavalry marched thirty-four[Page 483] miles to Robat, in order to establish direct heliographic communication with Kandahar. The main body halted about half-way, when I again reported progress as follows:

That day the 3rd Bengal and 3rd Punjab Cavalry marched thirty-four[Page 483] miles to Robat to set up direct heliographic communication with Kandahar. The main group stopped about halfway, and I reported progress again as follows:

SHAHR-I-SAFA,          
'27th August, 1880.

SHAHR-I-SAFA,
'August 27, 1880.

'My force arrived here to-day. I received a letter yesterday, dated 25th, from Colonel St. John. He writes: "The rumours of the approach of your force have been sufficient to relieve the city from investment. On Monday night the villages on the east and south were abandoned by their mixed garrisons of ghazis and regulars. Yesterday morning Ayub struck his camp, and marched to a position on the Arghandab, between Baba Wali and Sheikh Chela, due north of the city, and separated from it by a range of rocky hills. He has about 4,000 Infantry regulars, six 12-pounders and two 9-pounders rifled, four 6-pounder smooth-bore batteries, and one 4-pounder battery, 2,000 sowars, and perhaps twice that number of ghazis, of whom a third have firearms. The Kizilbashes and Kohistanis in his army, about 1,200 Infantry and 300 Cavalry, offered to desert and join us directly we made a show of attack. They are at last aware of Abdur Rahman's succession, but I think Ayub will remain unmolested until the arrival of the Kabul force, provided he waits, which is unlikely. He will, I expect, strike away north into Khakrez, on which line a vigorous pursuit will give us his guns. Maclaine, Royal Horse Artillery, is still a prisoner; I am making every effort to obtain his release, but I am not very hopeful of success. This morning, the 25th, I went to the field of the unlucky sortie of the 16th, and found the bodies of the poor fellows who fell there, some forty in number; they will be buried this afternoon. All the wounded are doing well. No signs or tidings of Phayre." General Gough, with two regiments of Cavalry, is at Robat; they are in heliographic communication with Kandahar. General Primrose heliographs that Ayub Khan has entrenched his camp at Baba Wali. The force marches for Robat to-morrow, seventeen miles distant from Kandahar.'

'My troops arrived here today. I got a letter yesterday, dated the 25th, from Colonel St. John. He writes: "The rumors about your troops approaching have been enough to lift the city’s siege. On Monday night, the villages to the east and south were abandoned by their mixed forces of ghazis and regulars. Yesterday morning, Ayub packed up his camp and moved to a position on the Arghandab, between Baba Wali and Sheikh Chela, directly north of the city, separated from it by a range of rocky hills. He has about 4,000 regular infantry, six 12-pounder cannons and two 9-pounder rifled guns, four 6-pounder smooth-bore batteries, one 4-pounder battery, 2,000 cavalrymen, and maybe twice that many ghazis, a third of whom have firearms. The Kizilbashes and Kohistanis in his army, around 1,200 infantry and 300 cavalry, offered to desert and join us as soon as we made a show of attack. They are finally aware of Abdur Rahman's succession, but I think Ayub will stay safe until the Kabul force arrives, assuming he waits, which is doubtful. I expect he will push north into Khakrez, where a strong pursuit will allow us to capture his artillery. Maclaine, from the Royal Horse Artillery, is still a prisoner; I’m doing everything I can to get him released, but I’m not very optimistic about it. This morning, the 25th, I visited the site of the unfortunate attack on the 16th and found the bodies of the fallen, around forty in total; they will be buried this afternoon. All the wounded are recovering well. No signs or news of Phayre." General Gough, with two cavalry regiments, is at Robat; they are in heliographic contact with Kandahar. General Primrose sends a heliograph saying that Ayub Khan has fortified his camp at Baba Wali. The force is marching to Robat tomorrow, which is seventeen miles from Kandahar.'

The following day the column joined the two Cavalry regiments at Robat, where I was met by Lieutenant-Colonel St. John, from whom I heard that Ayub Khan was likely to make a stand. I thought it prudent, therefore, to halt on Sunday, the 29th, and divide the last twenty miles into two short marches, in order that the men and animals might arrive as fresh as possible, and fit for any work which might be required of them; for should Ayub Khan retire towards Herat, he would have to be followed up, and his army attacked and defeated wherever we might overtake him.

The next day, the column joined the two cavalry regiments at Robat, where I was greeted by Lieutenant-Colonel St. John. He informed me that Ayub Khan was likely to make a stand. I decided it would be wise to stop on Sunday, the 29th, and split the last twenty miles into two shorter marches, so that the men and animals could arrive as refreshed as possible and be ready for any tasks that might come up. If Ayub Khan retreated toward Herat, we would need to pursue him and attack his army wherever we caught up.

A Letter from General Phayre Before leaving Robat, a letter arrived from General Phayre, which put an end to all hope of his force being able to co-operate with mine, for his leading brigade, he wrote, had only just got to the Kohjak Pass. This was to be regretted, but it was unavoidable. I was well aware of the strenuous efforts the gallant Commander had made to relieve the beleaguered garrison, and I knew if co-operation had been possible it would have been effected.

A Letter from General Phayre Before leaving Robat, I received a letter from General Phayre that put an end to any hope of his troops being able to join mine. He mentioned that his leading brigade had just reached the Kohjak Pass. It was unfortunate, but there was no way around it. I recognized the hard work the brave Commander had put in to help the surrounded garrison, and I understood that if joining forces had been feasible, it would have happened.



Click map to enlarge
SKETCH OF THE ROUTE TAKEN ON THE MARCH FROM KABUL TO KANDAHAR. AUGUST. 1880.

SKETCH OF THE ROUTE TAKEN ON THE MARCH FROM KABUL TO KANDAHAR. AUGUST. 1880.

Click map to zoom in
SKETCH OF THE ROUTE TAKEN ON THE MARCH FROM KABUL TO KANDAHAR. AUGUST. 1880.

SKETCH OF THE ROUTE TAKEN ON THE MARCH FROM KABUL TO KANDAHAR. AUGUST. 1880.



We encamped at Momund on the 30th, whence I sent the following[Page 484] telegram to Simla:

We set up camp at Momund on the 30th, from where I sent the following[Page 484]telegram to Simla:

'My force arrived here to-day; we march to Kandahar to-morrow. General Primrose heliographs that a letter from Ayub's camp brings information that the mother of the late Heir-Apparent, Abdulla Jan, with other ladies, has been sent to Zamindawar. Arrival of the young Musa Jan in Ayub's camp is confirmed. Hashim Khan is also there. The position is being strengthened, especially on the Pir Paimal side, where two guns have been placed with two regiments. From further information, I learn that the Baba Wali Kotal is occupied by three regiments and two guns. The Kotal-i-Murcha is held by the Kabul regiments, and Ayub's own camp is at Mazra, where it is said that the majority of his guns are parked. I propose to encamp the Infantry to the west of Kandahar immediately under the walls, and the Cavalry under the walls to the south. Should I hear that Ayub contemplates flight, I shall attack without delay. If, on the contrary, he intends to resist, I shall take my own time. The country he is occupying is, from description and map, extremely difficult and easily defensible, and each separate advance will require careful study and reconnaissance to prevent unnecessary loss of life.'

'My troops arrived here today; we’re marching to Kandahar tomorrow. General Primrose signaled that a letter from Ayub's camp says the mother of the late Heir-Apparent, Abdulla Jan, along with other ladies, has been sent to Zamindawar. The arrival of the young Musa Jan in Ayub's camp is confirmed. Hashim Khan is also there. They are strengthening their position, especially on the Pir Paimal side, where two artillery pieces have been placed with two regiments. From additional information, I learn that the Baba Wali Kotal is held by three regiments and two artillery pieces. The Kotal-i-Murcha is occupied by the Kabul regiments, and Ayub's main camp is at Mazra, where most of his artillery is said to be stationed. I plan to camp the Infantry to the west of Kandahar right under the walls, and the Cavalry under the walls to the south. If I hear that Ayub is considering retreating, I will attack without delay. On the other hand, if he plans to resist, I will take my time. The area he occupies is, based on descriptions and maps, extremely challenging and easily defensible, and each advance will require careful planning and reconnaissance to avoid unnecessary loss of life.'

Kandahar On the morning of the 31st we marched into Kandahar, just over 313 miles from Kabul. The fever, which had attacked me rather sharply, had left me extremely weak, and I was unable to ride the whole way. I got on my horse, however, some distance from Kandahar to meet Generals Primrose, Burrows, and Nuttall, who came out to receive the column. As we approached the city, the whole garrison turned out and gave us a hearty welcome; officers and men, Native and British, crowded round us, loud in their expressions of gratitude for our having come so quickly to their assistance. We, on our side, were all anxiety to learn the particulars about Maiwand, how they had fared while invested, and all they could tell us of Ayub Khan, his position, strength of his army, etc.

Kandahar On the morning of the 31st, we marched into Kandahar, just over 313 miles from Kabul. The fever that had hit me pretty hard had left me really weak, and I couldn't ride the whole way. However, I got on my horse some distance from Kandahar to meet Generals Primrose, Burrows, and Nuttall, who came out to greet the column. As we got closer to the city, the entire garrison came out and gave us a warm welcome; both officers and soldiers, Native and British, gathered around us, loudly expressing their gratitude for our swift arrival to help them. We were all eager to learn the details about Maiwand, how they had managed while under siege, and everything they could tell us about Ayub Khan, his position, the strength of his army, and so on.

I confess to being very greatly surprised, not to use a stronger expression, at the demoralized condition of the greater part of the garrison;4 there were notable exceptions,5 but the general bearing of the troops reminded me of the people at Agra in 1857. They seemed to consider themselves hopelessly defeated, and were utterly despondent; they never even hoisted the Union Jack until the relieving force was close at hand. The same excuses could not, however, be made for them, who were all soldiers by profession, as we had felt inclined to make for the residents at Agra, a great majority of whom were women, children, and civilians. The walls6 which completely surrounded Kandahar were so high and thick as to render the city [Page 485] absolutely impregnable to any army not equipped with a regular siege-train. Scaling-ladders had been prepared by the enemy, and there was an idea that an assault would be attempted; but for British soldiers to have contemplated the possibility of Kandahar being taken by an Afghan army showed what a miserable state of depression and demoralization they were in.

I have to say, I was really shocked—let’s just say surprised—at how demoralized most of the garrison was;4 there were some notable exceptions,5 but the overall attitude of the troops reminded me of the people in Agra in 1857. They seemed to believe they were completely defeated and were totally hopeless; they didn’t even raise the Union Jack until the rescue team was almost there. However, we couldn’t use the same excuses for them, being all professional soldiers, as we were inclined to for the residents of Agra, the majority of whom were women, children, and civilians. The walls6 that completely surrounded Kandahar were so high and thick that the city was [Page 485] practically impossible to capture without a regular siege setup. The enemy had prepared scaling-ladders, and there was talk of an assault being attempted; but for British soldiers to even think that an Afghan army could take Kandahar showed just how deeply depressed and demoralized they were.

I halted the column for two hours outside the south wall of the city, where it was sheltered from the enemy's fire, Ayub Khan's position being within long range directly north of Kandahar. While the men rested and breakfasted, and the baggage animals were being unloaded, fed, and watered, I went into the citadel to talk matters over with General Primrose and Colonel St. John, and inquire whether there was sufficient accommodation for the sick men of my force, numbering 940, who needed to be taken into hospital. The thermometer now registered 105° Fahr. in tents during the day, but the nights were still bitterly cold, and the sudden changes of temperature were extremely trying to people in bad health.

I stopped the group for two hours outside the south wall of the city, where we were protected from enemy fire; Ayub Khan's position was within long range directly north of Kandahar. While the men rested and had breakfast, and the baggage animals were being unloaded, fed, and given water, I went into the citadel to discuss things with General Primrose and Colonel St. John and to check if there was enough accommodation for the sick men in my force, which numbered 940 and needed to be taken into the hospital. The thermometer now read 105° Fahrenheit in the tents during the day, but the nights were still freezing cold, and the sudden changes in temperature were extremely tough for people in poor health.

On the advice of Lieutenant-Colonel Chapman, whose intimate acquaintance with the neighbourhood of Kandahar, gained while serving on Sir Donald Stewart's staff, was now most valuable to me, I determined to take up a position to the west of the city, with my right on the cantonment and my left touching Old Kandahar. This enabled me to cover the city, gave me command of a good supply of water, and placed me within striking distance of Ayub Khan's camp.

On the advice of Lieutenant-Colonel Chapman, who was very familiar with the area around Kandahar from his time on Sir Donald Stewart's staff, I decided to set up a position to the west of the city, with my right side facing the cantonment and my left next to Old Kandahar. This allowed me to cover the city, gave me access to a good water supply, and put me within reach of Ayub Khan's camp.

At 10 a.m. the first and third brigades moved off and occupied Piquet Hill, Karez Hill, and the north-east spur of the hill above Old Kandahar. A few shots were fired at the advance guard from distant orchards, and the ground proved to be within range of some of the enemy's Field-pieces on the Baba Wali Kotal, but it was a case of Hobson's choice, as water was not to be found anywhere else at a come-at-able distance.

At 10 a.m., the first and third brigades set off and took positions on Piquet Hill, Karez Hill, and the northeast slope of the hill above Old Kandahar. A few shots were fired at the advance guard from far-off orchards, and the area turned out to be within range of some of the enemy's artillery on the Baba Wali Kotal, but it was a matter of Hobson's choice since there was no water to be found anywhere else within a reasonable distance.

Large numbers of men were to be seen crowning the Baba Wali Kotal, and constructing shelter-trenches along the crest of the low black ridge, which jutted out in a south-easterly direction from the more lofty range on which the kotal is situated. Piquets were immediately sent to occupy the northern spur of the Kohkeran Hill commanding the road to Gundigan, the village of Abbasabad, the Karez Hill, the village of Chihal Dukhtaran, the greater and lesser Piquet Hills, and the village of Kalachi, all of which were found to be deserted.

Large groups of men were seen forming at Baba Wali Kotal, building shelter trenches along the top of the low black ridge that extended southeast from the taller mountain range where the kotal is located. Patrols were quickly sent to secure the northern end of Kohkeran Hill, overseeing the road to Gundigan, the village of Abbasabad, Karez Hill, the village of Chihal Dukhtaran, the greater and lesser Piquet Hills, and the village of Kalachi, all of which were found to be abandoned.

From a cursory examination of the ground, I satisfied myself that any attempt to carry the Baba Wali Kotal by direct attack must result in very severe loss, and I determined to turn it. But before I could decide how this could best be done, it was necessary to ascertain the strength and precise extent of the Afghan position. I therefore [Page 486] detailed a small party,7 under the command of Brigadier-General Hugh Gough, to make as complete a reconnaissance as time would allow. In the meantime I despatched the following telegram to the authorities at Simla:

From a quick look at the ground, I was convinced that trying to take the Baba Wali Kotal by direct attack would lead to significant losses, so I decided to outflank it. But before I could figure out the best way to do that, I needed to determine the strength and exact layout of the Afghan position. Therefore, I [Page 486] assigned a small party,7 led by Brigadier-General Hugh Gough, to conduct a thorough reconnaissance as time permitted. In the meantime, I sent the following telegram to the authorities in Simla:

'KANDAHAR,          
31st August, 1880.

KANDAHAR,
August 31, 1880.

'The force under my command arrived here this morning without opposition. Enemy are said to be in considerable strength at Mazra, but the ridge of hills which divides Kandahar from the Arghandab completely covers their position, and at present I have only been able to ascertain that the Baba Wali Kotal and one or two other points on this ridge are held in great strength, and that the enemy are busily engaged in defensive works. Reconnaissances are now being conducted, and I shall soon, I hope, be sufficiently acquainted with affairs generally to enable me to arrange for an attack. The Kandahar garrison are in good health; the horses and transport animals appear to be in good condition. Major Vandeleur, 7th Fusiliers, has died of his wounds; the remainder of the wounded, both officers and men, are generally doing well. The troops from Kabul are in famous health and spirits. The assurance of the safety of this garrison enabled comparatively short marches to be made from Kelat-i-Ghilzai, which much benefited both men and animals. The Cavalry horses and Artillery mules are in excellent condition, and the transport animals are, as a rule, in very fair order. General Primrose has arranged for the sick of the force from Kabul being accommodated inside the city; many of the cases are sore feet; none are serious. To-morrow the telegraph line towards India will commence to be re-constructed, and as General Phayre is probably on this side of the Kohjak to-day, through communication should soon be restored.'

'The troops I command arrived here this morning without any resistance. The enemy is said to be quite strong at Mazra, but the hills separating Kandahar from the Arghandab completely shield their position. So far, I've only been able to confirm that the Baba Wali Kotal and a couple of other spots on this ridge are heavily defended, and that the enemy is actively working on their defenses. Reconnaissance missions are currently underway, and I hope to soon have enough information about the overall situation to plan an attack. The Kandahar garrison is in good health; the horses and transport animals seem to be in good shape. Major Vandeleur of the 7th Fusiliers has died from his wounds; the rest of the injured, both officers and soldiers, are generally recovering well. The troops from Kabul are in great health and high spirits. Knowing that this garrison is safe allowed us to make relatively short marches from Kelat-i-Ghilzai, which has greatly benefited both the men and the animals. The cavalry horses and artillery mules are in excellent condition, and the transport animals are generally in fair shape. General Primrose has arranged for the sick from the Kabul force to be accommodated in the city; many of them have sore feet, but none are serious. Tomorrow, work will begin on reconstructing the telegraph line towards India, and since General Phayre is likely on this side of the Kohjak today, communication should be restored soon.'

Reconnoitring the enemy's position The reconnaissance, which started at 1 p.m., proceeded towards the high ground immediately above the villages of Gundigan and Murghan. Here the Infantry and guns were halted, while the Cavalry advanced between two or three miles, avoiding the numerous orchards and enclosures, and coming out in front of Pir Paimal, which was found to be strongly entrenched.

Scouting the enemy's position The reconnaissance, which began at 1 p.m., moved towards the higher ground right above the villages of Gundigan and Murghan. The Infantry and guns were stopped here, while the Cavalry moved forward between two and three miles, steering clear of the many orchards and enclosures, and reaching a spot in front of Pir Paimal, which turned out to be heavily fortified.

As soon as the enemy's fire along this line had been drawn, the 3rd Bengal Cavalry fell back, admirably handled by their Commandant, Lieutenant-Colonel A. Mackenzie. In the meantime, two guns of No. 11 Battery 9th Brigade were brought into action, partly to test the range, and partly to check the enemy, who were passing rapidly into the gardens near Gundigan. The Infantry and Artillery then retired within the line of piquets, and the moment they began to fall back the Afghans came after them in great strength; they were so persistent that I ordered the whole of the 3rd Brigade and part of the 1st Brigade under arms. The enemy, however, were unable to come to close quarters owing to the bold front shown by the 15th Sikhs, under the command of Lieutenant-Colonel Hennessy, and before dark the troops[Page 487] were all back in camp, with a loss of five men killed and fifteen wounded.

As soon as enemy fire along this line stopped, the 3rd Bengal Cavalry fell back, skillfully managed by their commander, Lieutenant-Colonel A. Mackenzie. Meanwhile, two guns from No. 11 Battery 9th Brigade were brought into action, both to test the range and to hold back the enemy, who were quickly moving into the gardens near Gundigan. The Infantry and Artillery then pulled back behind the line of pickets, and as soon as they started retreating, the Afghans pursued them in large numbers. They were so relentless that I ordered the entire 3rd Brigade and part of the 1st Brigade to get ready. However, the enemy couldn't get close due to the strong defense put up by the 15th Sikhs, led by Lieutenant-Colonel Hennessy, and before dark, all the troops[Page 487] were back in camp, with a loss of five men killed and fifteen wounded.

A Turning Movement From the information obtained by this reconnaissance, I found that it was quite practicable to turn the Afghan right, and thus place myself in rear of the Baba Wali range; I decided, therefore, to attack the position the following morning. It was too close to our camp to risk delay. Moreover, I knew that the retrograde movement of Gough's small body would be construed into a defeat by the enemy, who, if we did not move at once, would assuredly think that we were afraid to take the initiative, and would become correspondingly bold.

A Transformative Movement From the information gathered during this reconnaissance, I realized it was entirely possible to flank the Afghan right and position myself behind the Baba Wali range. Therefore, I decided to launch the attack the following morning. It was too close to our camp to risk any delays. Additionally, I knew that Gough's small group's retreat would be seen as a defeat by the enemy, who would definitely think that if we didn't act immediately, we were afraid to take the initiative and would become more aggressive.

I accordingly issued orders for the troops to breakfast at 7 a.m., and for one day's cooked rations to be carried by the Infantry and two days by the Cavalry and Horse Artillery. Brigades were to be in position by eight o'clock, tents being previously struck and the baggage stored in a walled enclosure.

I gave orders for the troops to have breakfast at 7 a.m., and for the Infantry to carry one day's worth of cooked rations while the Cavalry and Horse Artillery would carry two days' worth. Brigades were to be in position by eight o'clock, with tents taken down beforehand and the baggage stored in a walled enclosure.

The night passed quietly except for occasional bursts of musketry along the line of piquets to the west, showing that the Afghans were holding the villages they had occupied the previous evening.

The night went by quietly, except for some occasional gunfire from the picket line to the west, indicating that the Afghans were still in control of the villages they had taken the night before.






CHAPTER LXII.

1880

The next morning, the 1st September, in accordance with instructions from Simla, I assumed command of the army in southern Afghanistan. There was no return to show the strength or composition of General Phayre's column, but the troops at Kandahar all told now amounted in round numbers to 3,800 British and 11,000 Native soldiers, with 36 guns.

The next morning, September 1st, following directions from Simla, I took command of the army in southern Afghanistan. There was no update on the strength or makeup of General Phayre's column, but the troops in Kandahar now totaled around 3,800 British soldiers and 11,000 native soldiers, along with 36 guns.

An hour before daybreak the whole of the troops were under arms, and at 6 a.m. I explained to Generals Primrose and Ross and the officers commanding brigades the plan of operations. Briefly, it was to threaten the enemy's left (the Baba Wali Kotal), and to attack in force by the village of Pir Paimal.

An hour before sunrise, all the troops were ready, and at 6 a.m., I shared the plan of operations with Generals Primrose and Ross and the brigade commanders. In short, we aimed to threaten the enemy's left (the Baba Wali Kotal) and launch a strong attack near the village of Pir Paimal.

The Infantry belonging to the Kabul column, upon whom devolved the duty of carrying the enemy's position, were formed up in rear of the low hills which covered the front of our camp, their right being at Piquet Hill and their left resting on Chitral Zina. The Cavalry of the Kabul column were drawn up in rear of the left, ready to operate by Gundigan towards the head of the Arghandab, so as to threaten the rear of Ayub Khan's camp and his line of retreat in the direction of Girishk. Four guns of E Battery Royal Horse Artillery, two companies of the 2-7th Fusiliers, and four companies of the 28th Bombay Infantry, were placed at the disposal of Brigadier-General Hugh Gough, whose orders were to occupy with these troops the position above Gundigan,[Page 488] which had been so useful during the previous day's reconnaissance, and to push his Cavalry on to the Arghandab.

The infantry from the Kabul column, tasked with taking the enemy's position, were lined up behind the low hills in front of our camp, with their right side at Piquet Hill and their left at Chitral Zina. The cavalry of the Kabul column was positioned behind the left, ready to move towards Gundigan to threaten the rear of Ayub Khan's camp and his escape route toward Girishk. Four guns from E Battery Royal Horse Artillery, two companies from the 2-7th Fusiliers, and four companies from the 28th Bombay Infantry were assigned to Brigadier-General Hugh Gough, who was ordered to position these troops above Gundigan,[Page 488] which had been useful during the reconnaissance the day before, and to advance his cavalry to the Arghandab.

Guards having been detailed for the protection of the city, the remainder of Lieutenant-General Primrose's troops were ordered to be disposed as follows: Brigadier-General Daubeny's brigade to occupy the ground between Piquet Hill and Chitral Zina as soon as the Infantry of the Kabul-Kandahar Field Force advanced to the attack. The remnant of Brigadier-General Burrows's brigade, with No. 5 Battery, 11th Brigade Royal Artillery, under Captain Hornsby, and the Cavalry under Brigadier-General Nuttall, to take up a position north of the cantonment, from which the 40-pounders could be brought to bear on the Baba Wali Kotal, while the Cavalry could watch the pass, called Kotal-i-Murcha, and cover the city.

With guards assigned to protect the city, the rest of Lieutenant-General Primrose's troops were ordered to be positioned as follows: Brigadier-General Daubeny's brigade was to occupy the area between Piquet Hill and Chitral Zina as soon as the Infantry of the Kabul-Kandahar Field Force moved to attack. The remainder of Brigadier-General Burrows's brigade, along with No. 5 Battery, 11th Brigade Royal Artillery, under Captain Hornsby, and the Cavalry under Brigadier-General Nuttall, were to set up a position north of the cantonment. From there, the 40-pounders could target the Baba Wali Kotal, while the Cavalry could monitor the Kotal-i-Murcha pass and cover the city.

From an early hour it was clear that the enemy contemplated an offensive movement; the villages of Gundigan and Gundi Mulla Sahibdab were being held in strength, and a desultory fire was brought to bear on the British front from the orchards connecting these two villages and from the Baba Wali Kotal.

From early in the morning, it was obvious that the enemy was planning an attack; the villages of Gundigan and Gundi Mulla Sahibdab were strongly defended, and sporadic gunfire was directed at the British front from the orchards linking these two villages and from the Baba Wali Kotal.

Commencement of the fight The Bombay Cavalry moved out at 7.30 a.m., and Daubeny's brigade at eight o'clock. Burrows's troops followed, and shortly after 9 a.m., their disposition being completed, Captain Hornsby opened fire upon the kotal, which was one mass of ghazis.

Start of the fight The Bombay Cavalry left at 7:30 a.m., and Daubeny's brigade moved out at eight o'clock. Burrows's troops came next, and shortly after 9 a.m., once their positions were set, Captain Hornsby started firing at the kotal, which was packed with ghazis.

This feint, made by General Primrose's troops, having had the effect I had hoped, of attracting the enemy's attention, I gave the order for Major-General Ross to make the real attack with the 1st and 2nd Brigades of his division. The 3rd Brigade, under Brigadier-General Macgregor, I placed in front of the village of Abbasabad, with the double object of being a reserve to the 1st and 2nd Brigades and of meeting a possible counter-attack from the Baba Wali Kotal.

This maneuver, executed by General Primrose's troops, achieved the desired effect of drawing the enemy's attention. I ordered Major-General Ross to launch the main attack using the 1st and 2nd Brigades from his division. I positioned the 3rd Brigade, led by Brigadier-General Macgregor, in front of the village of Abbasabad, serving both as a reserve for the 1st and 2nd Brigades and to counter any potential attack from the Baba Wali Kotal.

Ross's orders were to advance against Gundi Mulla Sahibdad, capture the village, and then drive the enemy from the enclosures which lay between it and the low spur of Pir Paimal hill. This duty he entrusted to Brigadier-General Macpherson, and he directed Brigadier-General Baker to advance to the west, to keep touch with the 1st Brigade, and to clear the gardens and orchards in his immediate front.

Ross's orders were to move forward against Gundi Mulla Sahibdad, take the village, and then push the enemy out of the areas between it and the lower part of Pir Paimal hill. He handed this task over to Brigadier-General Macpherson and instructed Brigadier-General Baker to head west, stay in contact with the 1st Brigade, and clear the gardens and orchards in front of him.

Greig's 9-pounder and Robinson's 7-pounder (screw gun) batteries covered the attack on Gundi Mulla Sahibdad, which was made by the 2nd Gurkhas, under Lieutenant-Colonel Arthur Battye, and the 92nd Highlanders, under Lieutenant-Colonel G. Parker, supported by the 23rd Pioneers, under Lieutenant-Colonel H. Collett, and the 24th Punjab Infantry, under Colonel F. Norman. The village was carried with the utmost gallantry, Highlanders and Gurkhas, always friendly rivals in the race for glory, by turns outstripping each other in their efforts to be first within its walls. The enemy sullenly and slowly[Page 489] withdrew, a goodly number of ghazis remaining to the very last to receive a bayonet charge of the 92nd. Meanwhile, Baker's troops had been threading their way through the narrow lanes and loop-holed enclosures which lay in the line of their spirited attack; the resistance they encountered was most stubborn, and it was during this advance that the 72nd lost their dashing Commander, Lieutenant-Colonel F. Brownlow,1 Captain Frome, and Lance-Sergeant Cameron, the latter a grand specimen of a Highland soldier.

Greig's 9-pounder and Robinson's 7-pounder (screw gun) batteries supported the attack on Gundi Mulla Sahibdad, led by the 2nd Gurkhas under Lieutenant-Colonel Arthur Battye and the 92nd Highlanders under Lieutenant-Colonel G. Parker, with assistance from the 23rd Pioneers under Lieutenant-Colonel H. Collett and the 24th Punjab Infantry under Colonel F. Norman. The village was captured with incredible bravery, as the Highlanders and Gurkhas, who were friendly rivals in their quest for glory, took turns surpassing each other to be the first inside. The enemy withdrew slowly and reluctantly, with a good number of ghazis staying until the end to face a bayonet charge from the 92nd. Meanwhile, Baker's troops maneuvered through the narrow lanes and fortified enclosures along their spirited assault; they encountered fierce resistance, and it was during this advance that the 72nd lost their brave Commander, Lieutenant-Colonel F. Brownlow, along with Captain Frome and Lance-Sergeant Cameron, who was a remarkable example of a Highland soldier.

72nd Highlanders and 2nd Sikhs In the 2nd Brigade, the 72nd Highlanders and the 2nd Sikhs bore the brunt of the fighting; they were the leading battalions, and frequently had to fix bayonets to carry different positions or to check the desperate rushes of the Afghans.

72nd Highlanders and 2nd Sikhs In the 2nd Brigade, the 72nd Highlanders and the 2nd Sikhs faced the toughest battles; they were the front-line units and often had to attach bayonets to take over various positions or to stop the frantic charges of the Afghans.

After continued and severe fighting, both leading brigades emerged at the point of the hill close to Pir Paimal, and, wheeling to their right, they pressed rapidly on, sweeping the enemy through the thickly-wooded gardens which covered the western slopes, until noon, when the whole of Pir Paimal was in our possession.2

After ongoing and intense battles, both leading brigades reached the hill near Pir Paimal. Turning to their right, they quickly advanced, pushing the enemy through the dense gardens that covered the western slopes, until noon when we had complete control of Pir Paimal. possession.2

During the early part of the advance the Afghans collected in great strength on the low hills beneath the Baba Wan Kotal, evidently preparing for a rush on our guns; their leaders could be seen urging them on, and a portion of them came down the hill, but the main body apparently refused to follow, and remained on the crest until the position was turned, when they at once retreated.

During the initial stages of the advance, the Afghans gathered in large numbers on the low hills beneath the Baba Wan Kotal, clearly getting ready to charge our guns. Their leaders were seen encouraging them, and some of them came down the hill, but the majority seemed to hesitate and stayed on the ridge until the position was flanked, at which point they immediately withdrew.

Having become assured of General Ross's complete success, and seeing that there was now no necessity for detaining Macgregor's (the 3rd) brigade to meet a counter-attack, I pushed on with it to join Ross, who, however, knowing how thoroughly he could depend upon his troops, without waiting to be reinforced, followed up the retreating foe, until he reached an entrenched position at the other side of the[Page 490] Baba Wali Kotal, where the Afghans made another most determined stand. Ghazis in large numbers flocked to this spot from the rear, while the guns on the kotal were turned round and brought to bear on our men, already exposed to a heavy Artillery fire from behind the entrenched camp.

Having become confident in General Ross's total success, and realizing there was no longer a need to hold back Macgregor's (the 3rd) brigade for a counter-attack, I moved forward to join Ross. However, knowing he could fully rely on his troops, he pursued the retreating enemy without waiting for reinforcements, until he reached a fortified position on the other side of the[Page 490] Baba Wali Kotal, where the Afghans made another very determined stand. Large numbers of Ghazis gathered at this location from the rear, while the guns on the kotal were turned around and aimed at our men, who were already under heavy artillery fire from behind the entrenched camp.

92nd Highlanders and 2nd Gurkhas It now became necessary to take this position by storm, and recognizing the fact with true soldierly instinct, Major White, who was leading the advanced companies of the 92nd, called upon the men for just one charge more 'to close the business.' The battery of screw guns had been shelling the position, and, under cover of its fire and supported by a portion of the 2nd Gurkhas and 23rd Pioneers, the Highlanders, responding with alacrity to their leader's call, dashed forward and drove the enemy from their entrenchments at the point of the bayonet.3

92nd Highlanders and 2nd Gurkhas It became necessary to take this position by storm, and understanding this with true soldierly instinct, Major White, who was leading the advanced companies of the 92nd, urged the men for just one more charge 'to finish things off.' The battery of screw guns had been shelling the position, and, backed by its fire and supported by some of the 2nd Gurkhas and 23rd Pioneers, the Highlanders, responding quickly to their leader's call, rushed forward and forced the enemy out of their entrenchments at the point of the bayonet.3

Major White was the first to reach the guns, being closely followed by Sepoy Inderbir Lama, who, placing his rifle upon one of them, exclaimed, 'Captured in the name of the 2nd (Prince of Wales' Own) Gurkhas!'

Major White was the first to get to the guns, closely followed by Sepoy Inderbir Lama, who, placing his rifle on one of them, shouted, 'Captured in the name of the 2nd (Prince of Wales' Own) Gurkhas!'

Whilst the 1st Brigade was advancing towards the last position, a half-battalion of the 3rd Sikhs (belonging to the 2nd Brigade), under Lieutenant-Colonel G. Money, charged a body of Afghans and captured three guns.

While the 1st Brigade was moving toward the final position, a half-battalion of the 3rd Sikhs (part of the 2nd Brigade), led by Lieutenant-Colonel G. Money, attacked a group of Afghans and took three guns.

Ayub Khan's Camp The enemy were now absolutely routed, but, owing to the nature of the ground, it was impossible for General Ross to realize how complete had been his victory, and he fully expected that the enemy would take up a fresh position further on; he therefore ordered the 1st and 2nd Brigades to halt while they replenished their ammunition, and then proceeded for about a mile, when they suddenly came in sight of Ayub Khan's enormous camp. It was entirely deserted, and apparently stood as it had been left in the morning when the Afghans moved out to the attack. With his camp was captured the whole of Ayub Khan's Artillery, thirty-two pieces, including our two Horse Artillery guns4 which had been taken at Maiwand on the 27th July.

Ayub Khan's Camp The enemy was completely defeated, but because of the terrain, General Ross couldn’t see how total his victory had been, and he fully expected the enemy to regroup a little further ahead; therefore, he ordered the 1st and 2nd Brigades to stop and restock their ammunition. They moved forward about a mile until they suddenly spotted Ayub Khan's massive camp. It was entirely abandoned and seemed to be just as it had been left that morning when the Afghans went out to attack. Along with the camp, they captured all of Ayub Khan's artillery, thirty-two pieces in total, including our two Horse Artillery guns4 that had been lost at Maiwand on July 27th.

Further pursuit by the Infantry being valueless, the 1st and 2nd[Page 491] Brigades halted on the far side of Mazra, where I with the 3rd Brigade shortly afterwards joined them.

Further pursuit by the Infantry being pointless, the 1st and 2nd[Page 491] Brigades stopped on the far side of Mazra, where I soon joined them with the 3rd Brigade.

Brigadier-General Hugh Gough, having satisfied himself as to the security of our left flank, scouted as far as Kohkeran, and then proceeded with the Cavalry of the Kabul-Kandahar Field Force to execute the extended movement entrusted to him. He crossed the Arghandab, and pushed round to get in front of the line of the enemy's retreat towards Khakrez. Some ghazis and Irregular Afghan troops were overtaken, but no Regular regiments were met with, the soldiers having, as is their custom, quickly divested themselves of their uniform and assumed the garb of harmless agriculturists.

Brigadier-General Hugh Gough, ensuring the security of our left flank, scouted as far as Kohkeran, and then continued with the Cavalry of the Kabul-Kandahar Field Force to carry out the extended movement assigned to him. He crossed the Arghandab and maneuvered to get ahead of the enemy's retreat toward Khakrez. Some ghazis and irregular Afghan troops were caught up with, but no regular regiments were encountered, as the soldiers had, as usual, quickly stripped off their uniforms and taken on the appearance of harmless farmers.

Ayub Khan himself had fled early in the day with his principal Sirdars.

Ayub Khan had escaped early in the day along with his main leaders.

As I rode into the abandoned camp, I was horrified to hear that the body of Maclaine, the Horse Artillery officer who had been taken prisoner at Maiwand, was lying with the throat cut about forty yards from Ayub Khan's own tent. From what I could learn, the latter had not actually ordered the murder, but as a word from him would have prevented it, he must be held responsible for the assassination of an officer who had fallen into his hands as a prisoner of war.

As I rode into the deserted camp, I was shocked to hear that the body of Maclaine, the Horse Artillery officer who had been captured at Maiwand, was found with his throat cut about forty yards from Ayub Khan's own tent. From what I gathered, Khan hadn't directly ordered the murder, but since he could have stopped it with a single word, he must be held accountable for the assassination of an officer who had become his prisoner of war.

Our losses during the day comprised: killed, 3 British officers,5 1 Native officer, and 36 men; wounded, 11 British officers, 4 Native officers, and 195 men, 18 of whom succumbed to their wounds. It was difficult to estimate the loss of the enemy, but it must have been heavy, as between Kandahar and the village of Pir Paimal alone 600 bodies were buried by us.

Our losses during the day included: 3 British officers, 1 Native officer, and 36 soldiers killed; and 11 British officers, 4 Native officers, and 195 soldiers wounded, with 18 of them later dying from their injuries. It was hard to determine the enemy's casualties, but they were likely significant, as we buried 600 bodies ourselves between Kandahar and the village of Pir Paimal.

With the exception of the 1st Brigade, which remained at Mazra for the night to protect the captured guns and stores, the troops all returned to camp before 9 p.m.6

With the exception of the 1st Brigade, which stayed at Mazra for the night to guard the captured guns and supplies, the troops all returned to camp before 9 p.m.6



Click map to enlarge
Sketch of the Kandahar BattleField

PEN AND INK SKETCH OF BATTLEFIELD OF KANDAHAR

1st September, 1880
From HILLS overlooking GUNDIGAN

Click map to zoom in
Sketch of the Kandahar BattleField

PEN AND INK SKETCH OF BATTLEFIELD OF KANDAHAR

September 1, 1880
From the hills above Gundigan



Utterly exhausted as I was from the hard day's work and the weakening effects of my late illness, the cheers with which I was greeted by the troops as I rode into Ayub Khan's camp and viewed the[Page 492] dead bodies of my gallant soldiers nearly unmanned me, and it was with a very big lump in my throat that I managed to say a few words of thanks to each corps in turn. When I returned to Kandahar, and threw myself on the bed in the little room prepared for me, I was dead-beat and quite unequal to the effort of reporting our success to the Queen or to the Viceroy. After an hour's rest, however, knowing how anxiously news from Kandahar was looked for both in England and India, I managed to pull myself together sufficiently to write out and despatch the following telegram:

Utterly exhausted from a long day of work and the lingering effects of my recent illness, the cheers I received from the troops as I entered Ayub Khan's camp and saw the[Page 492] fallen soldiers almost overwhelmed me. It was with a huge lump in my throat that I managed to express a few words of thanks to each corps. When I got back to Kandahar and collapsed onto the bed in the small room set up for me, I was completely spent and unable to gather the strength to report our success to the Queen or the Viceroy. After resting for about an hour, though, knowing how eagerly news from Kandahar was anticipated both in England and India, I pulled myself together enough to write and send the following telegram:

'KANDAHAR,          
'1st September, 1880 (6 p.m.).

'KANDAHAR,
'September 1, 1880 (6 p.m.).

'Ayub Khan's army was to-day defeated and completely dispersed with, I hope, comparatively slight loss on our side; his camp was captured, the two lost guns of E Battery, B Brigade Royal Horse Artillery were recovered, and several wheeled guns of various calibre fell to the splendid Infantry of this force; the Cavalry are still in pursuit. Our casualties are: 22nd Foot, Captain Straton, killed; 72nd Highlanders, Lieutenant-Colonel Brownlow, Captain Frome, killed, Captain Murray and Lieutenant Monro, wounded, 7 men killed, 18 wounded; 92nd Highlanders, Lieutenants Menzies and Donald Stewart wounded, 11 men killed and 39 wounded; 2nd Gurkhas, Lieutenant-Colonel Battye, and 2nd Sikhs, Major Slater wounded. It is at present impossible to ascertain the casualties amongst the Native troops, but I have no reason to believe they are excessive; full details will be telegraphed to-morrow. The quite recently murdered remains of Lieutenant Maclaine, Royal Horse Artillery, were found on the arrival of the British troops in Ayub Khan's camp. Ayub Khan is supposed to have fled towards Herat.'

Ayub Khan's army was defeated and completely scattered today, with, I hope, relatively few losses on our side; his camp was taken, the two lost guns of E Battery, B Brigade Royal Horse Artillery were recovered, and several wheeled guns of various calibers were captured by the amazing Infantry of this force; the Cavalry is still chasing them. Our casualties include: 22nd Foot, Captain Straton, killed; 72nd Highlanders, Lieutenant-Colonel Brownlow, Captain Frome, killed; Captain Murray and Lieutenant Monro, wounded; 7 men killed, 18 wounded; 92nd Highlanders, Lieutenants Menzies and Donald Stewart wounded; 11 men killed and 39 wounded; 2nd Gurkhas, Lieutenant-Colonel Battye, and 2nd Sikhs, Major Slater wounded. It's currently impossible to determine the casualties among the Native troops, but I have no reason to believe they are high; full details will be telegraphed tomorrow. The recently murdered remains of Lieutenant Maclaine, Royal Horse Artillery, were discovered upon the arrival of the British troops in Ayub Khan's camp. Ayub Khan is believed to have fled towards Herat.

It can easily be imagined with what an intense sense of relief I awoke on the morning of the 2nd September—the march had ended, Kandahar had been relieved, Ayub Khan's army had been beaten and dispersed, and there was an adequate force in southern Afghanistan to prevent further disturbances.

It’s easy to picture the overwhelming relief I felt when I woke up on the morning of September 2nd—the march was over, Kandahar had been saved, Ayub Khan's army had been defeated and scattered, and there was a strong enough force in southern Afghanistan to stop any more unrest.

Amongst the innumerable questions of detail which now confronted me was the all-important one, and that which caused me greatest anxiety, of how the large body of troops hastily concentrated at Kandahar, and for which the produce of the country was quite inadequate, were to be fed.

Among the countless details I was now facing, the most crucial and what worried me the most was how the large number of troops quickly assembled at Kandahar, for which the local resources were totally insufficient, were going to be fed.

Difficulties about Supplies No supplies and very little forage were procurable between Quetta and Kandahar, and in the neighbourhood of the latter place there was now hardly anything in the shape of food for man or beast to be had for love or money, the resources of this part of the country having been quite exhausted. Relief could only be obtained by reducing the number of mouths to be fed, and with this object I scattered the troops in different directions, to posts as far distant from each other as possible, consistent with safety; and in accordance with my promise to the Kabul-Kandahar Field Force, that they should not be required to garrison Kandahar when the fighting was at an end, I arranged to[Page 493] despatch without delay to India the corps which had come with me from northern Afghanistan.

Supply Issues There were no supplies and very little forage available between Quetta and Kandahar, and around Kandahar, there was barely any food for people or animals, available for any price, as the resources in this area had been completely depleted. The only way to manage was to cut down on the number of people to feed, so I spread the troops out in different directions, to positions as far apart as possible while still ensuring safety; and in line with my commitment to the Kabul-Kandahar Field Force that they wouldn’t have to defend Kandahar once the fighting stopped, I made plans to[Page 493] send back to India without delay the troops that traveled with me from northern Afghanistan.

One column proceeded to Maiwand to inter the bodies of our soldiers who fell on the 27th July. The Cavalry brigade moved with a number of sick men and transport animals to Kohkeran. Macgregor's brigade started for Quetta on the 8th, and was followed soon after by Baker's and Macpherson's brigades. I accompanied Macgregor in the hope that the change to Quetta (where I remained about a month) would pick me up, and enable me to meet Lord Ripon's wish that I should retain the command in southern Afghanistan until some satisfactory settlement could be arrived at.

One group went to Maiwand to bury the bodies of our soldiers who fell on July 27th. The Cavalry brigade moved with several sick men and transport animals to Kohkeran. Macgregor's brigade left for Quetta on the 8th, followed shortly by Baker's and Macpherson's brigades. I went with Macgregor, hoping that the change to Quetta (where I stayed for about a month) would help me recover and allow me to fulfill Lord Ripon's request for me to keep the command in southern Afghanistan until a satisfactory settlement could be reached.

Before leaving Kandahar I issued an order thanking all ranks of the Kabul-Kandahar Field Force for the work they had so nobly performed, and I had the gratification of acknowledging, on their behalf and my own, congratulatory messages from the Queen, the Duke of Cambridge, the Marquis of Ripon, and many others. On the way to Quetta I had the further gratification of being informed by the Viceroy that Her Majesty had been graciously pleased to make me a G.C.B., and to appoint me Commander-in-Chief of the Madras Army.

Before leaving Kandahar, I issued an order thanking everyone in the Kabul-Kandahar Field Force for their outstanding work. I was pleased to receive congratulatory messages on their behalf as well as my own from the Queen, the Duke of Cambridge, the Marquis of Ripon, and many others. On the way to Quetta, I was even more pleased to hear from the Viceroy that Her Majesty had graciously decided to make me a G.C.B. and appoint me Commander-in-Chief of the Madras Army.

I now heard that Abdur Rahman had been finally nominated Amir of Kabul on the 10th August, and that immediately after the ceremony of installation Sir Donald Stewart had marched the whole British force of 6,678 men of all arms out of Kabul on their return to India. Sir Donald left Peshawar to take up his appointment of Military Member of Council at Simla on the 31st August, and by the 7th September the last of his troops had arrived at the former place, except one brigade left as a temporary measure in the Khyber Pass.

I heard that Abdur Rahman was officially appointed Amir of Kabul on August 10th, and right after the installation ceremony, Sir Donald Stewart led the entire British force of 6,678 troops out of Kabul on their way back to India. Sir Donald left Peshawar to start his role as Military Member of Council in Simla on August 31st, and by September 7th, the last of his troops had reached Peshawar, except for one brigade that was temporarily stationed in the Khyber Pass.

At Quetta I stayed with Sir Robert Sandeman, the capable Resident, who by his great personal influence had done much to allay excitement amongst the tribes, and to prevent serious trouble in Baluchistan and along the border. I had never before been to that part of the frontier, and I was greatly impressed by the hold Sandeman had obtained over the country; he was intimately acquainted with every leading man, and there was not a village, however out of the way, which he had not visited. 'Sinniman sahib,' as the Natives called him, had gained the confidence of the lawless Baluchis in a very remarkable manner, and it was mainly owing to his power over them that I was able to arrange with camel contractors to transport to Quetta and Kandahar the huge stocks of winter clothing, medical comforts, grain, and the various requirements of an army in the field, which had been brought by rail to Sibi, and had there remained for want of transport to take them further on.

At Quetta, I stayed with Sir Robert Sandeman, the skilled Resident, who, through his strong personal influence, had done a lot to ease tensions among the tribes and prevent serious issues in Baluchistan and along the border. I had never visited that part of the frontier before, and I was really impressed by the control Sandeman had over the region; he was well acquainted with every key figure, and there wasn't a village, no matter how remote, that he hadn't visited. 'Sinniman sahib', as the locals called him, had earned the trust of the unruly Baluchis in a truly remarkable way, and it was largely due to his influence that I was able to coordinate with camel contractors to transport the large amounts of winter clothing, medical supplies, grain, and various necessities for an army in the field, which had been brought by rail to Sibi and had been stuck there waiting for transport to move them further.

As the change to Quetta did not benefit me, and as I found that, owing to indifferent health, I was unable to carry on my duty with satisfaction to myself, I applied to be relieved. My request was acceded[Page 494] to, and I started on the 12th October for India.

As the move to Quetta didn't help me, and since I realized that due to my poor health, I couldn't perform my duties satisfactorily, I asked to be relieved. My request was granted[Page 494], and I left for India on October 12th.

Parting with the Troops Riding through the Bolan Pass I overtook most of the regiments of the Kabul-Kandahar Field Force marching towards Sibi, thence to disperse to their respective destinations. As I parted with each corps in turn its band played 'Auld Lang Syne,' and I have never since heard that memory-stirring air without its bringing before my mind's eye the last view I had of the Kabul-Kandahar Field Force. I fancy myself crossing and re-crossing the river which winds through the pass; I hear the martial beat of drums and plaintive music of the pipes; and I see Riflemen and Gurkhas, Highlanders and Sikhs, guns and horses, camels and mules, with the endless following of an Indian army, winding through the narrow gorges, or over the interminable boulders which made the passage of the Bolan so difficult and wearisome to man and beast.

Saying goodbye to the Troops As I rode through the Bolan Pass, I caught up with most of the regiments of the Kabul-Kandahar Field Force marching toward Sibi, and then they would disperse to their respective destinations. As I said goodbye to each corps, their band played 'Auld Lang Syne,' and ever since, I haven't heard that nostalgic song without picturing my last view of the Kabul-Kandahar Field Force. I can almost see myself crossing and re-crossing the river that winds through the pass; I hear the rhythmic beat of the drums and the soulful notes of the pipes; and I see Riflemen and Gurkhas, Highlanders and Sikhs, cannons and horses, camels and mules, with the endless procession of an Indian army, threading through the narrow gorges or over the endless boulders that made the Bolan so challenging and exhausting for both people and animals.

A Pleasing Memory I shall never forget the feeling of sadness with which I said good-bye to the men who had done so much for me. I looked upon them all, Native as well as British, as my valued friends. And well I might, for never had a Commander been better served. From first to last a grand spirit of camaraderie7 pervaded all ranks. At the Peiwar Kotal, at Charasia, and during the fighting round Kabul, all were eager to close with the enemy, no matter how great the odds against them. Throughout the march from Kabul all seemed to be animated with but one desire, to effect, cost what it might in personal risk, fatigue, or discomfort, the speedy release of their beleaguered fellow-soldiers in Kandahar; and the unflagging energy and perseverance of my splendid troops seemed to reach their full height, when they realized they were about to put forth their strength against a hitherto successful enemy. Their exemplary conduct, too, under circumstances often of the most trying nature, cannot be praised in terms too strong or too full. Notwithstanding the provocation caused by the cruel murder of any stragglers who fell into the hands of the Afghans, not one act infringing the rules of civilized warfare was committed by my troops. The persons and property of [Page 495] the Natives were respected, and full compensation for supplies was everywhere given. In short, the inhabitants of the district through which we passed could not have been treated with greater consideration nor with a lighter hand, had they proved themselves friendly allies, and the conduct of the troops will ever be to me as pleasing a memory as are the results which they achieved.

A Nice Memory I will never forget the sadness I felt when saying goodbye to the men who had done so much for me. I regarded them all, both Native and British, as my valued friends. And rightly so, because never had a Commander been better served. From start to finish, a great spirit of camaraderie7 ran through all ranks. At the Peiwar Kotal, at Charasia, and during the fighting around Kabul, everyone was eager to confront the enemy, no matter how overwhelming the odds against them. Throughout the march from Kabul, everyone seemed driven by one desire: to achieve, no matter the personal risk, fatigue, or discomfort, the swift rescue of their trapped fellow-soldiers in Kandahar; and the relentless energy and determination of my incredible troops seemed to peak when they realized they were about to challenge a successful enemy. Their commendable behavior, even in the most trying circumstances, deserves the highest praise. Despite the provocation caused by the brutal murder of stragglers who fell into the hands of the Afghans, not a single act that violated the rules of civilized warfare was committed by my troops. The safety and property of [Page 495] the Natives were respected, and fair compensation for supplies was provided everywhere. In short, the people in the areas we passed through could not have been treated with more consideration or less heavy-handedness, even if they had been friendly allies, and the conduct of the troops will always remain a cherished memory for me, just like the results they achieved.






CHAPTER LXIII.

1880

On the 15th October I handed over my command to Major-General Phayre, and started for England, making, by the desire of the Viceroy, a diversion to Simla, where Lord Ripon received me most kindly, and, to my great pride and pleasure, delivered to me a letter from the Queen-Empress, written by Her Majesty's own hand, which conveyed in the most gracious terms the Queen's satisfaction at the manner in which the service entrusted to me had been performed, thanks to 'the brave officers and men under my command,' sorrow 'for those of her gallant soldiers who fell for Queen and country,' and anxiety for the wounded. Her Majesty also wrote of 'the thrill of horror' with which the news of the fate of Lieutenant Maclaine had been received, and concluded with words of hope that my own health and that of the troops would remain good, and that success might attend us 'till the blessings of peace are restored.'

On October 15th, I handed over my command to Major-General Phayre and headed back to England, making a stop in Simla at the request of the Viceroy. There, Lord Ripon welcomed me warmly and, to my great pride and joy, presented me with a letter from the Queen-Empress, written in her own hand. The letter expressed Her Majesty's happiness with how the service I was in charge of was conducted, crediting 'the brave officers and men under my command,' along with her sadness 'for those of her gallant soldiers who fell for Queen and country,' and her concern for the wounded. Her Majesty also mentioned the 'thrill of horror' with which the news of Lieutenant Maclaine's fate had been received and concluded with hopeful wishes for my health and that of the troops, along with a desire for success 'until the blessings of peace are restored.'

A gracious letter, truly! And to me a deeply appreciated reward for what I had been able to do.

A kind letter, really! And for me, a genuinely valued reward for what I was able to accomplish.

Reception in England I landed at Dover on the 17th November. The reception I met with from my countrymen was as enthusiastic as it was unexpected and gratifying. After an absence of twelve years there must almost always be more or less of sadness mingled with the pleasure of the home-coming, and two vacant places in my family circle—those of my father and sister—cast a deep shadow upon what would otherwise have been a most joyous return, for my mother was alive to welcome me, and I found my children flourishing and my wife well, notwithstanding all the anxiety she had undergone.

Welcome in England I arrived in Dover on November 17th. The welcome I received from my fellow countrymen was just as enthusiastic as it was unexpected and touching. After being away for twelve years, there’s usually some sadness mixed with the joy of returning home, and the two empty spots in my family—those of my father and sister—cast a deep shadow over what would have otherwise been a very happy return. However, my mother was there to greet me, and I found my children thriving and my wife in good health, despite all the stress she had gone through.

I was fêted and feasted to almost an alarming extent, considering that for nearly two years I had been restricted to campaigning diet; but it surprised me very much to find that the kind people, by whom I was so greatly honoured, invariably appeared to think the march from Kabul to Kandahar was a much greater performance than the advance on Kabul the previous autumn, while, to my mind, the latter operation was in every particular more difficult, more dangerous, and placed upon me as the Commander infinitely more responsibility. The force with which I started from Kuram to avenge the massacre of our[Page 496] fellow-countrymen was little more than half the strength of that with which I marched to Kandahar. Immediately on crossing the Shutargardan I found myself in the midst of a hostile and warlike people, entirely dependent on the country for supplies, heavily handicapped by want of transport, and practically as completely cut off from communication with India as I was a year later on the march to Kandahar. The Afghans' fanatical hatred of Europeans had been augmented by their defeats the year before, and by the occurrences at Kabul, and they looked upon my small column as a certain prey delivered into their hands by a sympathizing and all-powerful Allah.

I was celebrated and treated to a feast to an almost overwhelming degree, especially considering that for nearly two years I had been on a strict campaign diet. However, I was quite surprised to see that the kind people who honored me seemed to believe that the march from Kabul to Kandahar was a greater achievement than the advance on Kabul the previous autumn. In my opinion, the latter was much more challenging, more dangerous, and placed significantly more responsibility on me as the Commander. The force I took from Kuram to seek revenge for the massacre of our fellow countrymen was just over half the size of the one I marched to Kandahar with. As soon as I crossed the Shutargardan, I found myself among a hostile and warlike people, entirely reliant on the local resources for supplies, severely limited by a lack of transport, and practically cut off from communication with India, much like I would be a year later on the march to Kandahar. The Afghans’ intense hatred of Europeans had increased due to their defeats the year before and the events at Kabul, and they viewed my small column as an easy target, delivered into their hands by a sympathetic and all-powerful Allah.

Before me was Kabul, with its large and well-equipped arsenal, defended by an army better organized and more highly trained than that possessed by any former Ruler of Afghanistan. On all sides of me were tribesmen hurrying up to defend the approaches to their capital, and had there been on our part the smallest hesitation or delay, we should have found ourselves opposed by as formidable a combination as we had to deal with two months later at Sherpur. Nothing could then have saved the force, not one man of which I firmly believe would have ever returned to tell the tale in India. Worse than all, I had in my own camp a traitor, in the form of the Amir, posing as a friend to the British Government and a refugee seeking our protection, while he was at heart our bitterest enemy, and was doing everything in his power to make my task more difficult and ensure our defeat.

Before me was Kabul, with its large and well-equipped arsenal, defended by an army that was better organized and more highly trained than any previous ruler of Afghanistan had. All around me were tribesmen rushing in to defend their capital, and if we had shown even the slightest hesitation or delay, we would have faced a formidable alliance similar to what we encountered two months later at Sherpur. Nothing could have saved the force then; not a single man would have returned to tell the story in India. Worse still, I had a traitor in my own camp, the Amir, who pretended to be a friend of the British Government and a refugee seeking our protection, while he was in reality our fiercest enemy, doing everything he could to make my task harder and ensure our defeat.

The march to Kandahar was certainly much longer, the country was equally unfriendly, and the feeding of so large a number of men and animals was a continual source of anxiety. But I had a force capable of holding its own against any Afghan army that could possibly be opposed to it, and good and sufficient transport to admit of its being kept together, with the definite object in view of rescuing our besieged countrymen and defeating Ayub Khan; instead of, as at Kabul, having to begin to unravel a difficult political problem after accomplishing the defeat of the tribesmen and the Afghan army.

The march to Kandahar was definitely much longer, the terrain was just as hostile, and feeding such a large group of men and animals was a constant worry. However, I had a force strong enough to stand up to any Afghan army that might confront us, along with reliable transportation to keep everything together, all with the clear goal of rescuing our besieged countrymen and defeating Ayub Khan; unlike in Kabul, where we had to start untangling a complicated political issue after defeating the tribesmen and the Afghan army.

I could only account to myself for the greater amount of interest displayed in the march to Kandahar, and the larger amount of credit given to me for that undertaking, by the glamour of romance thrown around an army of 10,000 men lost to view, as it were, for nearly a month, about the fate of which uninformed speculation was rife and pessimistic rumours were spread, until the tension became extreme, and the corresponding relief proportionably great when that army reappeared to dispose at once of Ayub and his hitherto victorious troops.

I could only explain to myself why there was so much interest in the march to Kandahar and why I received so much credit for it. It was likely due to the romantic allure surrounding an army of 10,000 men who seemed to vanish for nearly a month. During that time, there was a lot of uninformed speculation and pessimistic rumors circulating. The tension grew intense, and the relief was equally immense when that army finally reappeared to deal with Ayub and his previously victorious troops.

1881
A Fruitless Journey
I did not return to India until the end of 1881, six weeks out of these precious months of leave having been spent in a wild-goose chase to the Cape of Good Hope and back, upon my being nominated by Mr. Gladstone's Government Governor of Natal and Commander[Page 497] of the Forces in South Africa, on the death of Sir George Colley and the receipt of the news of the disaster at Majuba Hill. While I was on my way out to take up my command, peace was made with the Boers in the most marvellously rapid and unexpected manner, A peace, alas! 'without honour,' to which may be attributed the recent regrettable state of affairs in the Transvaal—a state of affairs which was foreseen and predicted by many at the time. My stay at Cape Town was limited to twenty-four hours, the Government being apparently as anxious to get me away from Africa as they had been to hurry me out there.

1881A Useless Journey I didn’t return to India until the end of 1881, having spent six weeks of my precious leave on a pointless trip to the Cape of Good Hope and back. This was after I was appointed by Mr. Gladstone's Government as Governor of Natal and Commander[Page 497] of the Forces in South Africa, following the death of Sir George Colley and the news of the disaster at Majuba Hill. While I was en route to take up my position, peace was astonishingly and unexpectedly made with the Boers—a peace, sadly, 'without honour,' which has contributed to the unfortunate situation in the Transvaal—a situation that many had predicted at the time. My stay in Cape Town was limited to twenty-four hours, as the Government seemed just as eager to send me away from Africa as they had been to get me there.

In August I spent three very enjoyable and instructive weeks as the guest of His Imperial Majesty the Emperor of Germany, while the manœuvres at Hanover and Schleswig-Holstein were taking place.

In August, I spent three very enjoyable and informative weeks as the guest of His Imperial Majesty the Emperor of Germany, while the maneuvers were happening in Hanover and Schleswig-Holstein.

Shortly before leaving England for Madras, I was asked by Mr. Childers, the then Secretary of State for War, whether I would accept the appointment of Quartermaster-General at the Horse Guards, in succession to Sir Garnet Wolseley. The offer, in some ways, was rather a temptation to me, for I had a great wish to take part in the administration of our army; and had it been made sooner, before my arrangements for going to Madras had been completed, I think I should have accepted it at once; as it was, I begged to be allowed to join my new command, and leave the question of the Quartermaster-Generalship in abeyance until it was about to become vacant. This was agreed to, and I started for Madras, taking my wife and two little daughters with me, the boy being left at school in England.

Shortly before I left England for Madras, Mr. Childers, who was the Secretary of State for War at the time, asked me if I would take the position of Quartermaster-General at the Horse Guards, following Sir Garnet Wolseley. The offer was pretty tempting since I really wanted to be involved in the administration of our army; had it been made earlier, before I finalized my plans to go to Madras, I think I would have accepted it right away. As it was, I requested to start my new role and put the Quartermaster-General position on hold until it was about to be open. They agreed, and I set off for Madras with my wife and two little daughters, leaving my son at school in England.

Andaman Isles and Burma On arriving in Madras, on the 27th November, I had the pleasure to find myself associated as a colleague in Council with Mr. Grant-Duff,1 who had recently been appointed Governor of the Presidency. We spent a few pleasant days with him and Mrs. Grant-Duff at Government House, before proceeding to deposit our children at Ootacamund, that Queen of Indian Hill-stations, which was to be our home for four years. We spent Christmas there, and then went to Burma, visiting the Andaman Islands on the way. We had on board our ship some prisoners destined for that convict settlement, amongst whom cholera unfortunately broke out a few hours after we left Madras. They were accommodated just outside my wife's cabin, and their cries and groans were most distressing. Very little could be done for them on board, for the Native Doctor accompanying us possessed no remedy but castor oil! and as the disease was spreading rapidly, I took upon myself to have the party landed at Vizagapatam.

Andaman Islands and Myanmar When I arrived in Madras on November 27th, I was pleased to become a colleague in Council with Mr. Grant-Duff, who had just been appointed Governor of the Presidency. We spent a few enjoyable days with him and Mrs. Grant-Duff at Government House before moving on to drop our children off at Ootacamund, the Queen of Indian Hill-stations, which would be our home for the next four years. We spent Christmas there, then traveled to Burma, stopping at the Andaman Islands along the way. On our ship, we had some prisoners who were headed for that convict settlement, and unfortunately, cholera broke out among them just hours after we left Madras. They were placed just outside my wife's cabin, and their cries and groans were extremely distressing. There wasn’t much we could do for them on board because the Native Doctor with us had nothing but castor oil as a remedy! As the disease was spreading quickly, I made the decision to have the group disembark at Vizagapatam.

The cholera patients were put into tents on the sea-shore, under the[Page 498] charge of a medical officer, and every arrangement possible for their comfort and relief was made before we proceeded on our journey.

The cholera patients were placed in tents by the beach, under the[Page 498] supervision of a medical officer, and every possible effort was made to ensure their comfort and care before we continued on our journey.

1882 During our stay at Port Blair, the Head-Quarters of the Andaman Administration, we were the guests of the hospitable Superintendent, Lieutenant-Colonel Protheroe, who had been one of the political officers on my staff in Afghanistan. The group of islands forming the settlement are extremely beautiful, but it is tropical beauty, and one pays the penalty for the luxuriant vegetation in the climate, which is very much like a Turkish bath, hot and damp. While going through the prisons, I came across some of the sepoys of the 29th Punjab Infantry who deserted during the advance on the Peiwar Kotal. I was told that they were behaving well, and might in time be allowed some remission of their sentences.

1882 During our time in Port Blair, the headquarters of the Andaman Administration, we were hosted by the welcoming Superintendent, Lieutenant-Colonel Protheroe, who had previously served as one of the political officers on my team in Afghanistan. The islands that make up the settlement are incredibly beautiful, but it’s a tropical kind of beauty, and one has to deal with the downside of the lush vegetation in the climate, which feels a lot like a Turkish bath—hot and humid. While touring the prisons, I came across some of the sepoys from the 29th Punjab Infantry who had deserted during the advance on the Peiwar Kotal. I was informed that they were behaving well and might eventually receive some reduction in their sentences.

A voyage of thirty-six hours brought us to Rangoon, where we had the pleasure of meeting and being entertained by our old friends, Mr. Bernard,2 the Chief Commissioner of Burma, and his wife.

A thirty-six-hour journey took us to Rangoon, where we enjoyed meeting and being hosted by our old friends, Mr. Bernard, the Chief Commissioner of Burma, and his wife.

In 1882 Thyetmyo and Tonghu were the two frontier stations of Burma, and I had been asked to consider the question of the defence of the proposed railway termini at these places. I accordingly visited them both, and as I thought I foresaw that the lines of railway could not end as then contemplated, I recommended that the absolutely necessary works only should be attempted, and that these should be as inexpensive as possible. Ere many years had passed, the line, as I anticipated, was completed to Mandalay.

In 1882, Thyetmyo and Tonghu were the two border stations in Burma, and I was asked to look into the defense of the proposed railway terminals at these locations. So, I visited both of them, and since I believed I could foresee that the railway lines couldn't end as planned, I recommended that only the essential construction should be done, and that it should be as cost-effective as possible. Before long, as I expected, the line was completed to Mandalay.

The defences of Rangoon had also to be arranged for. An examination of the approaches, however, satisfied me that no elaborate system of fortification was necessary, and that Rangoon's best security lay in her winding, dangerous river; so I gave it as my opinion that, with two small batteries at Monkey Point and King's Point, and a couple of torpedo-boats, Rangoon would be reasonably safe against attack.

The defenses of Rangoon also needed to be set up. However, after looking at the approaches, I realized that an extensive fortification system wasn't needed, and that Rangoon's greatest protection came from its winding, treacherous river. So, I suggested that with two small batteries at Monkey Point and King's Point, and a few torpedo boats, Rangoon would be fairly safe from attack.

Before leaving Burma I received letters from H.R.H. the Duke of Cambridge and Mr. Childers, in which were repeated the offer of the Quartermaster-Generalship at the Horse Guards. But I had by this time begun to like my new work, and had no desire to leave Madras; I therefore definitely declined the appointment.

Before leaving Burma, I received letters from H.R.H. the Duke of Cambridge and Mr. Childers, in which they reiterated the offer of the Quartermaster-General position at the Horse Guards. However, by that time, I had started to enjoy my new job and had no desire to leave Madras; so I ultimately turned down the appointment.

From Burma we returned to Ootacamund, viâ Calcutta, where we spent a few days with Lord and Lady Ripon and Sir Donald and Lady Stewart.

From Burma, we returned to Ootacamund via Calcutta, where we spent a few days with Lord and Lady Ripon and Sir Donald and Lady Stewart.

Life at 'Ooty' was very pleasant; such peace and repose I had never before experienced; I thoroughly enjoyed the rest after the turmoil of the preceding years, and I quite recovered my health, which had been somewhat shattered. Unlike other hill-stations, Ootacamund rests on an undulating tableland, 7,400 feet above the[Page 499] sea, with plenty of room in the neighbourhood for riding, driving, and hunting; and, although the scenery is nothing like as grand as in the Himalayas, there are exquisite views to be had, and it is more restful and homelike. We made many warm friends and agreeable acquaintances, who when our time in Madras came to an end presented my wife with a very beautiful clock 'as a token of esteem and affection'; we were very sorry to bid farewell to our friends and to our Nilgiri home.

Life in Ooty was really enjoyable; I'd never felt such peace and relaxation before. I truly appreciated the break after the chaos of the past few years, and I fully regained my health, which had been a bit battered. Unlike other hill stations, Ootacamund sits on a rolling plateau, 7,400 feet above the[Page 499] sea, with plenty of space nearby for riding, driving, and hunting; and while the views aren’t as spectacular as in the Himalayas, they’re beautiful, and the atmosphere is more calming and homey. We made many close friends and pleasant acquaintances, who, when our time in Madras came to an end, gifted my wife a lovely clock 'as a token of esteem and affection'; we were sad to say goodbye to our friends and to our home in the Nilgiris.

The Madras Army Each cold season I made long tours in order to acquaint myself with the needs and capabilities of the men of the Madras Army. I tried hard to discover in them those fighting qualities which had distinguished their forefathers during the wars of the last and the beginning of the present century. But long years of peace, and the security and prosperity attending it, had evidently had upon them, as they always seem to have on Asiatics, a softening and deteriorating effect; and I was forced to the conclusion that the ancient military spirit had died in them, as it had died in the ordinary Hindustani of Bengal and the Mahratta of Bombay, and that they could no longer with safety be pitted against warlike races, or employed outside the limits of southern India.

The Chennai Army Every winter, I took long trips to understand the needs and abilities of the men in the Madras Army. I worked hard to find the fighting spirit that had marked their ancestors during the wars of the late and early centuries. However, many years of peace, along with the security and prosperity that came with it, had clearly softened them, as it often does to people in Asia. I had to conclude that the ancient military spirit had faded away in them, just as it had in the ordinary Hindustani of Bengal and the Mahratta of Bombay, and that they could no longer safely face more aggressive races or be used outside the boundaries of southern India.

It was with extreme reluctance that I formed this opinion with regard to the successors of the old Coast Army, for which I had always entertained a great admiration. For the sake of the British officers belonging to the Madras Army, too, I was very loath to be convinced of its inferiority, for many of them were devoted to their regiments, and were justly proud of their traditions.

It was with great reluctance that I came to this opinion about the successors of the old Coast Army, which I had always admired. For the sake of the British officers in the Madras Army as well, I was very unwilling to accept its inferiority, as many of them were dedicated to their regiments and justly proud of their traditions.

However, there was the army, and it was my business as its Commander-in-Chief to do all that I possibly could towards rendering it an efficient part of the war establishment of India.

However, there was the army, and it was my job as its Commander-in-Chief to do everything I could to make it an effective part of the war effort in India.

Measures for improving the Madras Army Madrassies, as a rule, are more intelligent and better educated than the fighting races of northern India, and I therefore thought it could not be difficult to teach them the value of musketry, and make them excel in it. To this end, I encouraged rifle meetings and endeavoured to get General Officers to take an interest in musketry inspections, and to make those inspections instructive and entertaining to the men. I took to rifle-shooting myself, as did the officers on my personal staff,3 who were all good shots, and our team held its own in many exciting matches at the different rifle meetings.

Steps to enhance the Madras Army Generally, Madrassies are more intelligent and better educated than the warrior communities of northern India, so I believed it would be easy to teach them the importance of marksmanship and help them excel at it. To achieve this, I promoted rifle competitions and tried to get General Officers to engage in musketry inspections and make those inspections both educational and entertaining for the soldiers. I took up rifle shooting myself, along with the officers on my personal staff,3 who were all skilled marksmen, and our team performed well in many thrilling matches at various rifle competitions.



THE THREE COMMANDERS-IN-CHIEF IN INDIA-GENERAL SIR FREDERICK SLEIGH ROBERTS, GENERAL SIR ARTHUR E. HARDINGE, GENERAL SIR DONALD MARTIN STEWART

THE THREE COMMANDERS-IN-CHIEF IN INDIA

GENERAL SIR FREDERICK SLEIGH ROBERTS.
GENERAL SIR ARTHUR E. HARDINGE. GENERAL SIR DONALD MARTIN STEWART.


THE THREE COMMANDERS-IN-CHIEF IN INDIA-GENERAL SIR FREDERICK SLEIGH ROBERTS, GENERAL SIR ARTHUR E. HARDINGE, GENERAL SIR DONALD MARTIN STEWART

THE THREE COMMANDERS-IN-CHIEF IN INDIA

GENERAL SIR FREDERICK SLEIGH ROBERTS.
GENERAL SIR ARTHUR E. HARDINGE. GENERAL SIR DONALD MARTIN STEWART.




At that time the importance of musketry training was not so generally recognized as it is now, especially by the senior officers, who had all entered the service in the days of 'Brown Bess.' Some of[Page 500] them had failed to note the remarkable alteration which the change from the musket to the rifle necessitated in the system of musketry instruction, or to study the very different conditions under which we could hope to win battles in the present day, compared with those under which some of our most celebrated victories had been won. It required time and patience to inspire officers with a belief in the wonderful shooting power of the Martini-Henry rifle, and it was even more difficult to make them realize that the better the weapon, the greater the necessity for its being intelligently used.

At that time, the importance of musket training wasn't as widely acknowledged as it is today, especially by the senior officers, who had all joined the service during the era of 'Brown Bess.' Some of[Page 500] them failed to notice the significant changes that transitioning from the musket to the rifle required in the training system, or to evaluate the very different circumstances under which we could expect to win battles now, compared to when some of our most famous victories were achieved. It took time and effort to convince officers of the incredible firing power of the Martini-Henry rifle, and it was even harder to make them understand that the better the weapon, the more essential it was for it to be used intelligently.

I had great faith in the value of Camps of Exercise, and notwithstanding the difficulty of obtaining an annual grant to defray their cost, I managed each year, by taking advantage of the movement of troops in course of relief, to form small camps at the more important stations, and on one occasion was able to collect 9,000 men together in the neighbourhood of Bangalore, where the Commanders-in-Chief in India and of Bombay (Sir Donald Stewart and the Hon. Arthur Hardinge) were present—the first and last time that the 'three Chiefs' in India met together at a Camp of Exercise. The Sappers and Miners were a brilliant exception to the rest of the Madras Army, being indeed a most useful, efficient body of men, but as no increase to that branch was considered necessary, I obtained permission to convert two Infantry regiments into Pioneers on the model of the Pioneer Corps of the Bengal Army, which had always proved themselves so useful on service. Promotion amongst the British officers was accelerated, recruits were not allowed to marry, or, if married, to have their wives with them, and many other minor changes were made which did much towards improving the efficiency of the Native portion of the Madras Army; and I hope I was able to increase the comfort and well-being of the British portion also by relaxing irksome and useless restrictions, and by impressing upon commanding officers the advisability of not punishing young soldiers with the extreme severity which had hitherto been considered necessary.

I had a strong belief in the benefits of Camps of Exercise, and even though it was tough to get an annual budget to cover their expenses, I managed each year to set up small camps at key locations by taking advantage of troop movements during relief efforts. One time, I gathered 9,000 men near Bangalore, where the Commanders-in-Chief in India and Bombay (Sir Donald Stewart and the Hon. Arthur Hardinge) attended—the first and only time the 'three Chiefs' in India gathered at a Camp of Exercise. The Sappers and Miners stood out as an exceptional part of the Madras Army, being truly a highly effective and valuable group. However, since no expansion of that branch was seen as necessary, I got permission to change two Infantry regiments into Pioneers based on the model of the Pioneer Corps of the Bengal Army, which had always proven so helpful in the field. Advancement among British officers was sped up, recruits weren't allowed to marry or, if they were married, to have their wives with them, and many other small changes were made that significantly improved the performance of the Native part of the Madras Army. I hoped I could also enhance the comfort and well-being of the British side by easing unnecessary and burdensome restrictions and encouraging commanding officers to avoid punishing young soldiers with the extreme severity that had previously been deemed necessary.

I had been unpleasantly struck by the frequent Courts-Martial on the younger soldiers, and by the disproportionate number of these lads to be met with in the military prisons. Even when the prisoners happened to be of some length of service, I usually found that they had undergone previous imprisonments, and had been severely punished within a short time of their enlistment. I urged that, in the first two or three years of a soldier's service, every allowance should be made for youth and inexperience, and that during that time faults should, whenever practicable, be dealt with summarily, and not visited with the heavier punishment which a Court-Martial sentence necessarily carries with it, and I pointed out that this procedure might receive a wider application, and become a guiding principle in the treatment of soldiers generally. I suggested that all men in possession[Page 501] of a good-conduct badge, or who had had no entry in their company defaulter sheets for one year, should be granted certain privileges, such as receiving the fullest indulgence in the grant of passes, consistent with the requirements of health, duty, and discipline, and being excused attendance at all roll-calls (including meals), except perhaps at tattoo. I had often remarked that those corps in which indulgences were most freely given contained the largest number of well-behaved men, and I had been assured that such indulgences were seldom abused, and that, while they were greatly appreciated by those who received them, they acted as an incentive to less well conducted men to try and redeem their characters.

I was really struck by how often younger soldiers faced Courts-Martial and how many of them ended up in military prisons. Even when the prisoners had served for a while, I often found they had been imprisoned before and had faced harsh punishments shortly after joining. I argued that in the first couple of years of a soldier's service, we should take their youth and inexperience into account, and that during this time, faults should be handled quickly when possible, rather than met with the heavy penalties that come with a Court-Martial sentence. I pointed out that this approach could be broadened and become a general guideline for treating soldiers. I proposed that all soldiers with a good-conduct badge or no entries in their company defaulter sheets for a year should get certain privileges, like more freedom with passes in line with health, duty, and discipline requirements, and being excused from roll-calls (including meals), except maybe at tattoo. I often noticed that the units that offered the most leniency had the highest number of well-behaved men, and I was told that these freedoms were rarely misused and were greatly valued by those who received them. They also encouraged less disciplined soldiers to try to improve their behavior.

1884 The reports of commanding officers, on the results of these small ameliorations, after a six months' trial, were so favourable that I was able to authorize still further concessions as a premium on good behaviour.

1884 The reports from commanding officers about the results of these minor improvements, after a six-month trial, were so positive that I could approve additional concessions as a reward for good behavior.

Memories of Madras The Madras Presidency abounds in places of interest connected with our earlier struggles in India, and it was possible to combine pleasure with duty in a very delightful manner while travelling about the country. My wife frequently accompanied me in my tours, and enjoyed as much as I did our visits to many famous and beautiful places. Madras itself recalled the struggles for supremacy between the English and French in the middle of the eighteenth century. Arcot reminded one that it was in the brilliant capture and still more brilliant defence of the fort at that place that Clive's soldierly genius first became conspicuous. Trichinopoly and Wandewash made one think of Stringer Lawrence's and Eyre Coote's splendid services, and while standing on the breach at Seringapatam, one was reminded of Wellington's early life in India, and marvelled how heavily-armed men could have ventured to cross the single plank which alone spanned the deep, broad ditch of the inner defences.

Memories of Chennai The Madras Presidency is full of interesting places linked to our past struggles in India, and it was easy to mix enjoyment with responsibility while traveling around the country. My wife often joined me on my trips, and she enjoyed our visits to many famous and beautiful spots just as much as I did. Madras itself brought back memories of the battles for dominance between the English and French in the mid-eighteenth century. Arcot reminded us that it was during the impressive capture and even more impressive defense of the fort there that Clive's military talent first stood out. Trichinopoly and Wandewash made us think of Stringer Lawrence's and Eyre Coote's remarkable contributions, and while standing on the breach at Seringapatam, we were reminded of Wellington's early years in India, marveling at how heavily armed men managed to cross the single plank that was the only way over the deep, wide ditch of the inner defenses.

I should like to dwell on the architectural wonders of Tanjore and the Caves of Ellora; the magnificent entertainments and Princely hospitality accorded to us by the Nizam of Hyderabad, the late Maharajas of Mysore and Travancore, the Maharaja of Vizianagram, the Raja of Cochin, and many other Rulers of Native States; the delights of a trip along the west coast by the beautiful 'back-water,' and the return journey through the glorious forests of Cannara and Mysore; the pleasure of visiting the lovely 'White Lady'4 and the wonderful Kaveri falls; but to give my readers any idea of their marvels would be to put too great a strain upon their patience, which I fear has already been severely taxed.

I want to talk about the amazing architecture of Tanjore and the Caves of Ellora; the incredible entertainment and royal hospitality we experienced from the Nizam of Hyderabad, the former Maharajas of Mysore and Travancore, the Maharaja of Vizianagram, the Raja of Cochin, and many other rulers of Native States; the joys of traveling along the west coast by the beautiful backwaters, and the return trip through the stunning forests of Cannara and Mysore; the delight of visiting the gorgeous White Lady4 and the incredible Kaveri falls; but to give my readers a sense of their wonders would be too much to ask of their patience, which I fear has already been pushed to its limits.

The late Maharaja of Travancore was an unusually enlightened Native. He spoke and wrote English fluently; his appearance was[Page 502] distinguished, and his manners those of a well-bred, courteous English gentleman of the old school. His speech on proposing the Queen's health was a model of fine feeling and fine expression, and yet this man was steeped in superstition. His Highness sat, slightly retired from the table, between my wife and myself while dinner was going on; he partook of no food or wine, but his close contact with us (he led my wife in to dinner and took her out on his arm) necessitated his undergoing a severe course of purification at the hands of the Brahmins as soon as the entertainment was over; he dared not do anything without the sanction of the priests, and he spent enormous sums in propitiating them.

The late Maharaja of Travancore was an unusually progressive Native. He spoke and wrote English fluently; his appearance was[Page 502] distinguished, and his manners reflected those of a polite, courteous English gentleman from the old days. His speech proposing the Queen's health was a perfect example of heartfelt sentiment and eloquent expression, and yet this man was deeply superstitious. His Highness sat slightly away from the table, between my wife and me during dinner; he ate no food or wine, but his close proximity to us (he escorted my wife in to dinner and took her out on his arm) required him to undergo a rigorous purification process by the Brahmins as soon as the dinner concluded; he didn’t dare act without the priests' approval, and he spent huge amounts of money to appease them.

Notwithstanding the high civilization, luxury, and refinement to be found in these Native States, my visits to them strengthened my opinion that, however capable and enlightened the Ruler, he could have no chance of holding his country if deprived of the guiding hand of the British Government as embodied in the Resident. It is just that control, so light in ordinary times as to be hardly perceptible, but firm enough when occasion demands, which saves the State from being rent by factions and internal intrigue, or swallowed up by a more powerful neighbour, for, owing to the influence of the Brahmins and the practical seclusion which caste prejudices entail, involving ignorance of what is taking place immediately outside their own palaces, the Native Princes of the less warlike peoples would have no chance amidst the anarchy and confusion that would follow the withdrawal of British influence.

Despite the advanced civilization, luxury, and sophistication found in these Native States, my visits only reinforced my belief that, no matter how capable and enlightened the ruler is, they wouldn’t stand a chance of maintaining control over their country without the support of the British Government as represented by the Resident. It’s that kind of oversight, so light in normal times that it’s almost unnoticeable, but strong enough when needed, that prevents the State from being torn apart by factions and internal conflicts or being overtaken by a more powerful neighbor. Because of the influence of the Brahmins and the practical isolation caused by caste biases, which leads to ignorance of what’s happening just outside their own palaces, the Native Princes of the less warlike peoples would be helpless amidst the chaos that would ensue after the loss of British influence.

An allegory A remark made to me by the late Sir Madhava Rao, ex-Minister of the Baroda State, which exemplifies my meaning, comes back to me at this moment. Sir Madhava was one of the most astute Hindu gentlemen in India, and when discussing with him the excitement produced by the 'Ilbert Bill,' he said: 'Why do you English raise these unnecessary questions? It is your doing, not ours. We have heard of the cry, "India for the Indians," which some of your philanthropists have raised in England; but you have only to go to the Zoological Gardens and open the doors of the cages, and you will very soon see what would be the result of putting that theory into practice. There would be a terrific fight amongst the animals, which would end in the tiger walking proudly over the dead bodies of the rest.' 'Whom,' I inquired, 'do you consider to be the tiger?' 'The Mahomedan from the North,' was his reply.

A metaphorical story A comment made to me by the late Sir Madhava Rao, former Minister of the Baroda State, comes to mind right now, perfectly illustrating my point. Sir Madhava was one of the sharpest Hindu leaders in India, and during a discussion about the uproar caused by the 'Ilbert Bill,' he said: 'Why do you English bring up these unnecessary issues? It's your fault, not ours. We’ve heard the slogan, "India for the Indians," raised by some of your well-meaning folks in England; but if you just go to the Zoological Gardens and open the cages, you'll quickly see what would happen if that idea were put into action. There would be a fierce fight among the animals, ending with the tiger strutting over the lifeless bodies of the others.' 'Who,' I asked, 'do you see as the tiger?' 'The Muslim from the North,' was his answer.



THE MARQUIS OF DUFFERIN, K.P., G.C.B., G.C.M.G., G.M.S.I., G.M.I.E., VICEROY OF INDIA.

THE MARQUIS OF DUFFERIN, K.P., G.C.B., G.C.M.G., G.M.S.I., G.M.I.E.
VICEROY OF INDIA.


From
an engraving by the Fine Art Society of a portrait by the late Frank Holl, R. A.

THE MARQUIS OF DUFFERIN, K.P., G.C.B., G.C.M.G., G.M.S.I., G.M.I.E., VICEROY OF INDIA.

THE MARQUIS OF DUFFERIN, K.P., G.C.B., G.C.M.G., G.M.S.I., G.M.I.E.
Viceroy of India.


From
an engraving by the Fine Art Society of a portrait by the late Frank Holl, R.A.








CHAPTER LXIV.

1885

In March, 1885, we again visited Calcutta. The Marquis of Ripon had departed, and the Earl of Dufferin reigned in his stead.

In March 1885, we visited Calcutta again. The Marquis of Ripon had left, and the Earl of Dufferin was in charge in his place.

Affairs on our north-west and south-east frontiers were at this time in a very unsettled state. Indeed, the political outlook altogether had assumed rather a gloomy aspect. Our relations with the French had become somewhat strained in consequence of their interference with Upper Burma and our occupation of Egypt; while Russia's activity in the valley of the Oxus necessitated our looking after our interests in Afghanistan. These considerations rendered it advisable to increase the army in India by 11,000 British and 12,000 Native troops, bringing the strength of the former up to nearly 70,000, with 414 guns, and that of the latter to 128,636.

Affairs on our northwest and southeast borders were pretty unstable at this time. Overall, the political situation looked quite bleak. Our relationship with the French had become somewhat tense due to their interference in Upper Burma and our presence in Egypt. Meanwhile, Russia's activities in the Oxus Valley prompted us to pay closer attention to our interests in Afghanistan. These factors made it necessary to boost the army in India by 11,000 British and 12,000 local troops, raising the British strength to nearly 70,000, with 414 guns, and the local troops to 128,636.

Disturbing Action of Russia Russia's movements could not be regarded with indifference, for, while we had retreated from our dominating position at Kandahar, she had approached considerably nearer to Afghanistan, and in a direction infinitely more advantageous than before for a further onward move. Up to 1881 a Russian army advancing on Afghanistan would have had to solve the difficult problem of the formidable Hindu Kush barrier, or if it took the Herat line it must have faced the deserts of Khiva and Bokhara. But all this was changed by Skobeloff's victories over the Tekke Turkomans, which gave Merv and Sarakhs to Russia, and enabled her to transfer her base from Orenburg to the Caspian—by far the most important step ever made by Russia in her advance towards India. I had some years before pointed out to the Government of India how immeasurably Russia would gain, if by the conquest of Merv—a conquest which I then looked upon as certain to be accomplished in the near future—she should be able to make this transfer. My words were unheeded or ridiculed at the time, and I, like others who thought as I did, was supposed to be suffering from a disease diagnosed by a distinguished politician as 'Mervousness.' But a little later those words were verified. Merv had become a Russian possession, and Turkestan was in direct communication by rail and steamer with St. Petersburg. And can it be denied that this fact, which would have enabled the army in the Caucasus to be rapidly transported to the scene of operations, made it possible for General Komaroff practically to dictate terms to the Boundary Commission which was sent to define the northern limits of Afghanistan, and to forcibly eject an Afghan garrison from Panjdeh under the eyes of British officers?

Russia's Disturbing Actions Russia's movements couldn't be ignored, especially since we had pulled back from our dominant position in Kandahar, while she was getting much closer to Afghanistan, and in a direction that was far more advantageous for further advances. Until 1881, a Russian army looking to move into Afghanistan would have had to deal with the formidable Hindu Kush mountains, or if it took the Herat route, it would have faced the deserts of Khiva and Bokhara. But everything changed with Skobeloff's victories over the Tekke Turkomans, which gave Merv and Sarakhs to Russia, allowing her to shift her base from Orenburg to the Caspian—this was by far the most significant step Russia made in her push towards India. Years earlier, I had pointed out to the Government of India just how much Russia would benefit from conquering Merv—a conquest I believed was inevitable in the near future—enabling this shift. My warnings were ignored or laughed at, and I, like others who thought the same, was labeled as suffering from a condition termed 'Mervousness' by a prominent politician. But soon after, my predictions came true. Merv had become a Russian territory, and Turkestan was now in direct contact via rail and steamer with St. Petersburg. Can anyone deny that this fact, which allowed the army in the Caucasus to be quickly moved to where the action was, enabled General Komaroff to essentially dictate terms to the Boundary Commission sent to establish the northern borders of Afghanistan, and to forcefully remove an Afghan garrison from Panjdeh right in front of British officers?

Lord Dufferin took up the reins of the Government of India at a time when things had come to such a pass that a personal conference with the Amir was considered necessary to arrange for the defence and demarcation of His Highness's frontier, the strengthening of Herat, the extension of the Sakkur-Sibi railway to Quetta, and the[Page 504] discussion of the general situation. Abdur Rahman was therefore invited to meet the Viceroy at Rawal Pindi, where a large standing camp was prepared, and my wife and I were bidden amongst a numerous company, including Their Royal Highnesses the Duke and Duchess of Connaught, the Ruling Punjab Chiefs, and the high officers of Government from various parts of India, to be the guests of His Excellency and Lady Dufferin on the interesting occasion.

Lord Dufferin took over the Government of India at a time when it was necessary to have a personal meeting with the Amir to discuss the defense and boundaries of His Highness's territory, the strengthening of Herat, the extension of the Sakkur-Sibi railway to Quetta, and the overall situation. Abdur Rahman was invited to meet the Viceroy at Rawal Pindi, where a large camp was set up, and my wife and I were invited among a large group, including Their Royal Highnesses the Duke and Duchess of Connaught, the ruling Punjab chiefs, and high-ranking government officials from various parts of India, to be guests of His Excellency and Lady Dufferin on this significant occasion.

The meeting was fixed for the end of March, and as there was scarcely time for us to return to Madras and get back again before then, we proceeded leisurely up country, visiting different places and one or two old friends on the way.

The meeting was scheduled for the end of March, and since there was hardly enough time for us to return to Madras and come back before then, we took our time traveling up country, stopping at different places and visiting a couple of old friends along the way.

At Multan I received a cipher telegram from Sir Donald Stewart informing me that it had been decided to mobilize two Army Corps, and that I was to have command of the first. This was exciting news, and we lost no time in making our way to Rawal Pindi, where we should be in direct communication with Head-Quarters, and hoped to hear what had taken place since we left Calcutta to make it necessary to prepare for war.

At Multan, I got a coded message from Sir Donald Stewart saying that they decided to mobilize two Army Corps, and I was to lead the first one. This was thrilling news, and we wasted no time heading to Rawal Pindi, where we would be in direct contact with headquarters and hoped to learn what had happened since we left Calcutta that made it necessary to get ready for war.

I soon found out that this action on the part of the Government was forced on them by the representatives of Russia on the Boundary Commission, who were persistent in their attempts to encroach on Afghan territory, in order that they might be in a position to control the approaches to Herat, a Russian occupation of which fortress we could not permit.

I soon discovered that this action taken by the Government was pushed by the Russian representatives on the Boundary Commission, who were determined to encroach on Afghan territory so they could control the routes to Herat, a fortress whose Russian occupation we could not allow.

Abdur Rahman arrived at Rawal Pindi on the last day of March; he was about forty-five years of age, and although he required a stick to walk with, being a martyr to rheumatism, and very stout, his appearance was decidedly dignified and imposing. He had a manly, clever, and rather handsome face, marred only by the cruel expression of the mouth, and his manner was sufficiently courteous though somewhat abrupt.

Abdur Rahman arrived in Rawal Pindi on the last day of March; he was about forty-five years old, and even though he needed a stick to walk due to rheumatism and was quite heavyset, he had a distinctly dignified and impressive presence. He had a manly, intelligent, and somewhat attractive face, though it was slightly spoiled by a harsh expression around his mouth, and his demeanor was polite but a bit blunt.

Several semi-private meetings took place between the Viceroy and the Amir, at the first of which His Highness, after expressing his appreciation of the flattering and cordial reception he had met with, reminded Lord Dufferin that he had consistently warned the British Government of the approach of the Russians towards Afghanistan and of the unsettling effect their advance was producing on the minds of his countrymen; and he advocated the necessity for timely action. No attention, he said, had been paid to his warnings, owing, probably, to the strife of parties in England, and to the excessive caution of the British Government.

Several private meetings occurred between the Viceroy and the Amir. At the first meeting, His Highness expressed his gratitude for the warm and friendly welcome he received. He reminded Lord Dufferin that he had continually warned the British Government about the Russians moving toward Afghanistan and the troubling impact their advance was having on his people. He emphasized the need for prompt action. He mentioned that his warnings had been ignored, likely due to the political conflicts in England and the British Government's excessive caution.



HIS HIGHNESS ABDUR RAHMAN, AMIR OF AFGHANISTAN.

HIS HIGHNESS
ABDUR RAHMAN, AMIR OF AFGHANISTAN.


HIS HIGHNESS ABDUR RAHMAN, AMIR OF AFGHANISTAN.

His Majesty
ABDUR RAHMAN, AMIR OF AFGHANISTAN.




Lord Dufferin, in reply, pointed out that the Amir had been advised to strengthen northern Afghanistan, and that the services of Engineer officers had been offered to him for the purpose of putting Herat into a satisfactory state of defence. His Excellency declared that England [Page 505] was resolved that a Russian advance on Herat should be met by a declaration of war; that preparations were then being made to give effect to that resolve; and that it was now absolutely necessary for His Highness to make up his mind which of his two powerful neighbours he would elect to choose as his ally.

Lord Dufferin responded by highlighting that the Amir had been advised to strengthen northern Afghanistan and that Engineer officers had been proposed to help make Herat defensible. His Excellency stated that England [Page 505] was determined to respond to a Russian advance on Herat with a declaration of war. He mentioned that preparations were underway to implement that decision and that it was essential for His Highness to decide which of his two powerful neighbors he would choose as an ally.

Abdur Rahman thanked the Viceroy for his offer of help, but showed plainly that he had no intention of availing himself of the services of our Engineers. He vowed that his own personal wishes were entirely in favour of a close and practical alliance with the British, but that his subjects did not share his feelings towards us. They were 'rude, uneducated, and suspicious.' He hoped that in time they might become more disposed to be friendly, but at present he could not pretend to rely upon them. He then disclosed the real reason for his ready response to the Viceroy's invitation by saying that he would gratefully receive the assistance of the British Government in the shape of money, arms, and munitions of war.

Abdur Rahman thanked the Viceroy for his offer of help but clearly indicated that he had no intention of using the services of our Engineers. He insisted that his personal wishes were completely in favor of a close and practical alliance with the British, but his subjects did not share his feelings toward us. They were 'rude, uneducated, and suspicious.' He hoped that over time they might become more inclined to be friendly, but for now, he could not pretend to rely on them. He then revealed the real reason for his quick response to the Viceroy's invitation by saying that he would gratefully accept assistance from the British Government in the form of money, arms, and ammunition.

At a later visit the conversation turned upon the difficulty of the position in which the British members of the Boundary Commission were placed, and the impossibility of the Afghan posts being able to hold their own in the face of a Russian advance was explained to the Amir. A map was produced, on which the country to the north of Herat was carefully examined, and Russia's claims were made known to him. Abdur Rahman's ideas of topography were not very accurate, but he displayed considerable intelligence in his questions and perception of the meaning of the answers, and eventually expressed his willingness to leave the question of the delimitation of his northern frontier in the hands of the British Government.

During a later visit, the conversation shifted to the tough situation the British members of the Boundary Commission were facing, and it was explained to the Amir that the Afghan posts wouldn't be able to defend themselves against a Russian advance. A map was brought out, and the area north of Herat was examined closely, revealing Russia's claims. Abdur Rahman's understanding of geography wasn't very precise, but he showed a lot of intelligence in his questions and grasp of the answers. Eventually, he stated that he was willing to let the British Government handle the issue of defining his northern border.

On the 6th April there was a parade of the troops, 17,000 in number, and that evening the Amir was present at a state banquet, at which, after the usual loyal toasts, the Viceroy proposed the Amir's health. His Highness, in reply, expressed a fervent hope that the prosperity of the British Empire might long endure, as with it the welfare of Afghanistan was bound up. He had watched, he said, the progress of India under British rule, and he hoped that Afghanistan might flourish in like manner; and he ended with a prayer that the Almighty would preserve Her Majesty's troops in safety, honour, and efficiency.

On April 6th, there was a parade of the troops, numbering 17,000, and that evening the Amir attended a state banquet. After the usual loyal toasts, the Viceroy proposed a toast to the Amir's health. In response, His Highness expressed a heartfelt hope that the prosperity of the British Empire would last, as it was closely tied to the welfare of Afghanistan. He mentioned that he had watched India progress under British rule and hoped that Afghanistan could thrive in a similar way. He concluded with a prayer for the Almighty to keep Her Majesty's troops safe, honorable, and efficient.

The Rawal Pindi Durbar Two days later the Amir was publicly received in durbar by the Viceroy, on whose right hand he was placed, while the Duke of Connaught occupied the seat on his left. After a few words had been exchanged, Abdur Rahman rose, and spoke as follows: 'I am deeply sensible of the kindness which I have received from His Excellency the Viceroy, and of the favour shown me by Her Majesty the Queen-Empress. In return for this kindness and favour, I am ready with my army and people to render any services that may be required of me or of the Afghan nation. As the British Government has declared that it[Page 506] will assist me in repelling any foreign enemy, so it is right and proper that Afghanistan should unite in the firmest manner, and side by side by the British Government.'

The Rawalpindi Durbar Two days later, the Amir was publicly received in durbar by the Viceroy, who sat on his right, while the Duke of Connaught took the seat on his left. After exchanging a few words, Abdur Rahman stood up and said: 'I am truly grateful for the kindness I have received from His Excellency the Viceroy, and for the favor shown to me by Her Majesty the Queen-Empress. In return for this kindness and favor, I am prepared, along with my army and my people, to offer any services that might be needed from me or the Afghan nation. As the British Government has stated that it will support me in defending against any foreign threats, it is both right and important for Afghanistan to unite strongly and stand alongside the British Government.'

On being presented, amongst other gifts, with a sword of honour, he said in a loud and determined voice: 'With this sword I hope to smite any enemy of the British Government.'

On receiving a sword of honor among other gifts, he declared in a loud and confident voice: 'With this sword, I hope to strike down any enemy of the British Government.'

That same evening the Viceroy received news of the Russian attack on Panjdeh, and communicated it to the Amir, who heard it with extraordinary equanimity, not appearing to attach any great importance to the matter, and attributing the defeat of his troops to the inferiority of their weapons. He observed that the excuse given by the Russians, that the Afghans intended to attack them, was a frivolous pretext, and declared all that his men had done was very properly to make preparations to defend themselves.

That same evening, the Viceroy got word of the Russian attack on Panjdeh and shared it with the Amir, who reacted with unusual calmness, seeming not to think much of it and blaming his troops' defeat on their inferior weapons. He noted that the Russian claim that the Afghans were planning to attack them was just a flimsy excuse, asserting that all his soldiers did was responsibly prepare to defend themselves.

Abdur Rahman had expressed a desire for a British decoration, so shortly before his departure from India he was invested, informally, with the G.C.S.I. As the train was moving off, he said to the British officers assembled on the platform: 'I wish you all farewell, and commend you to the care of God. May your Government endure and your honour increase. I have been greatly pleased and gratified by the sight of the British Army. I hope and am certain that the friendship now existing between us will last for ever.'

Abdur Rahman had expressed a wish for a British honor, so shortly before leaving India, he was informally given the G.C.S.I. As the train was departing, he told the British officers gathered on the platform: 'I wish you all goodbye and place you in God's care. May your government thrive and your honor grow. I have been very pleased and satisfied by the sight of the British Army. I hope and am confident that the friendship we have now will last forever.'

Abdur Rahman had, indeed, every reason to be satisfied with the result of his visit, for not only was Lord Ripon's promise that England would defend his kingdom against foreign aggression ratified by Lord Dufferin, but the Amir was given, in addition to the large sums of money and the considerable amount of munitions of war already received by him, ten lakhs of rupees, 20,000 breech-loading rifles, a Heavy battery of four guns and two howitzers, a Mountain battery, and a liberal supply of ammunition for both guns and rifles.

Abdur Rahman had every reason to be pleased with the outcome of his visit because not only was Lord Ripon's promise that England would protect his kingdom from foreign attacks confirmed by Lord Dufferin, but the Amir also received, in addition to the large sums of money and significant amounts of military supplies already provided to him, ten lakhs of rupees, 20,000 breech-loading rifles, a heavy battery of four guns and two howitzers, a mountain battery, and a generous supply of ammunition for both guns and rifles.

On the Amir's departure the great camp was broken up, and the troops returned to their respective stations, all prepared to move towards the Quetta frontier at a moment's notice. The Native Chiefs, in taking their leave of the Viceroy, were profuse in their offers and promises of help should a recourse to arms be found necessary; and Lord and Lady Dufferin's numerous guests, who, like my wife and myself, had for more than a fortnight been recipients of the most profuse hospitality, wished their generous host and hostess a hearty good-bye.

On the Amir's departure, the large camp was dismantled, and the troops returned to their respective posts, all ready to head to the Quetta frontier at a moment's notice. The Native Chiefs, as they said their farewells to the Viceroy, were very enthusiastic in offering their help and support if the situation called for armed conflict. Lord and Lady Dufferin's many guests, who, like my wife and me, had enjoyed their generous hospitality for over two weeks, warmly wished their kind hosts a heartfelt goodbye.



Click map to enlarge

Map of the Russian Frontiers in Central Asia.

MAP of THE RUSSIAN FRONTIERS in CENTRAL ASIA.

Map of the Russian Frontiers in Central Asia.

MAP of THE RUSSIAN FRONTIERS in CENTRAL ASIA.



Unmistakable Loyalty of the Natives Interesting as the whole proceeding had been, by far the most gratifying result of the gathering was the unmistakable loyalty displayed by the Native Rulers who were present, as well as by those in distant parts of India, on hearing of the unprovoked attack made by the Russians on the Afghan troops at Panjdeh, and our consequent preparations for war. The greatest enthusiasm prevailed, and the[Page 507] various military camps at Rawal Pindi were crowded with men desirous of joining the ranks of our army. I was literally besieged by old soldiers, begging that they might be allowed to return to the colours and fight once more for the Sirkar; and one Native officer, who had been with me in Afghanistan, came to me and said: 'I am afraid, sahib, I am too old and infirm to do more work myself; but you must take my two sons with you—they are ready to die for the Angrese.'1

Unquestionable Loyalty of the Natives Although the entire event was fascinating, the most rewarding outcome was the clear loyalty shown by the Native Rulers who attended, as well as those from remote areas of India, upon learning about the unprovoked attack by the Russians on the Afghan troops at Panjdeh and our subsequent preparations for war. There was immense enthusiasm, and the [Page 507] various military camps in Rawal Pindi were filled with individuals eager to join our army. I was practically overwhelmed by old soldiers asking to be allowed to return to service and fight once again for the Sirkar; one Native officer, who had served with me in Afghanistan, approached me and said: 'I’m afraid, sahib, I’m too old and frail to fight myself; but you must take my two sons with you—they’re ready to die for the Angrese.'1

We hastened back to Madras, and reached Ootacamund after seven consecutive nights in the train, with a thermometer at 104° in the daytime, the only pause in our journey being at Poona, where we spent a few hours with our friend General Sir John Ross.

We rushed back to Madras and arrived in Ootacamund after seven straight nights on the train, with the temperature reaching 104°F during the day. The only break in our journey was in Poona, where we spent a few hours with our friend General Sir John Ross.

I left my horses at Lahore, and for some weeks lived in daily expectation of being ordered back to the Punjab to take command of the 1st Army Corps. A change of Government, however, took place just in time to prevent the war. Lord Salisbury's determined attitude convinced Russia that no further encroachments on the Afghan frontier would be permitted; she ceased the 'game of brag' she had been allowed to play, and the Boundary Commission were enabled to proceed with the work of delimitation.

I left my horses in Lahore and lived for several weeks expecting to be sent back to the Punjab to take command of the 1st Army Corps. However, a change in government happened just in time to prevent the war. Lord Salisbury's firm stance convinced Russia that no more encroachments on the Afghan frontier would be tolerated; they stopped the 'game of brag' they had been playing, and the Boundary Commission was able to continue with the work of defining the borders.






CHAPTER LXV.

1885

We only remained three months at 'Ooty,' for on the 8th July a telegram arrived from Lord Dufferin announcing the Queen's approval of my being appointed to succeed Sir Donald Stewart as Commander-in-Chief in India, and granting me leave to visit England before taking up the appointment.

We only stayed at 'Ooty' for three months, because on July 8th, I received a telegram from Lord Dufferin announcing the Queen's approval of my appointment to succeed Sir Donald Stewart as Commander-in-Chief in India, and granting me leave to visit England before starting the role.

At the end of a fortnight all our preparations for departure had been made, and on the 18th August we left Bombay, in the teeth of the monsoon.

At the end of two weeks, we had finished all our preparation for departure, and on August 18th, we left Bombay, right in the middle of the monsoon.

Our boy, whose holidays had just commenced, met us at Venice, and we loitered in Italy and Switzerland on our way home. I spent but six weeks in England, returning to the East at the end of November, to join my new command. I met Lord Dufferin at Agra, and accompanied him to Gwalior, whither his Excellency went for the purpose of formally restoring to the Maharaja Sindhia the much coveted fortress of Gwalior, which had been occupied by us since 1858—an act of sound policy, enabling us to withdraw a brigade which could be far more usefully employed elsewhere.

Our son, whose vacation had just started, met us in Venice, and we took our time traveling through Italy and Switzerland on our way home. I spent only six weeks in England, returning to the East at the end of November to take up my new position. I met Lord Dufferin in Agra and accompanied him to Gwalior, where his Excellency went to officially return the highly sought-after fortress of Gwalior to Maharaja Sindhia, which we had occupied since 1858—this was a smart move, allowing us to pull back a brigade that could be much better utilized elsewhere.

The Burma Expedition At Gwalior we received the news of the capture of Mandalay, and I sent a telegram to Lieutenant-General Prendergast,1 to congratulate[Page 508] him on the successful conduct of the Burma Expedition.

The Myanmar Expedition At Gwalior, we got the news that Mandalay had been captured, and I sent a message to Lieutenant-General Prendergast,1 to congratulate[Page 508] him on successfully leading the Burma Expedition.

Affairs in Burma had been going from bad to worse from the time King Thebaw came to the throne in 1878. Wholesale murders were of constant occurrence within the precincts of the palace; dacoity was rife throughout the country, and British officers were insulted to such an extent that the Resident had to be withdrawn. In 1883 a special Mission was sent by the King of Burma to Paris, with a view to making such a treaty with the French Government as would enable him to appeal to France for assistance, in the event of his being involved in difficulties with England. The Mission remained eighteen months in Paris, and succeeded in ratifying what the French called a 'Commercial Convention,' under the terms of which a French Consul was located at Mandalay, who soon gained sufficient ascendancy over King Thebaw to enable him to arrange for the construction of a railway between Mandalay and Tonghu, and the establishment of a French bank at Mandalay, by means of which France would speedily have gained full control over the principal sources of Burmese revenue, and power to exclude British trade from the valley of the Irrawaddy. In furtherance of these designs, the King picked a quarrel with a British trading company, threatened to cancel their leases for cutting timber, and demanded a fine of ten lakhs of rupees.

Affairs in Burma had been deteriorating since King Thebaw took the throne in 1878. Brutal murders were happening regularly within the palace grounds; robbery was widespread across the country, and British officers faced such severe insults that the Resident had to be pulled out. In 1883, the King of Burma sent a special Mission to Paris to negotiate a treaty with the French Government that would allow him to seek France’s help if he got into trouble with England. The Mission spent eighteen months in Paris and managed to finalize what the French referred to as a 'Commercial Convention.' This agreement led to a French Consul being stationed in Mandalay, who quickly gained enough influence over King Thebaw to facilitate the building of a railway between Mandalay and Tonghu, as well as the establishment of a French bank in Mandalay. Through this, France would have soon secured control over the main sources of Burmese revenue and the ability to block British trade in the Irrawaddy Valley. To support these plans, the King started a conflict with a British trading company, threatened to revoke their timber cutting leases, and demanded a fine of ten lakhs of rupees.

The Chief Commissioner proposed arbitration, but this was declined, and the King refusing to modify his action with regard to the trading company, the Viceroy proposed to the Secretary of State for India that an ultimatum2 should be sent to King Thebaw.

The Chief Commissioner suggested arbitration, but it was turned down, and with the King refusing to change his stance on the trading company, the Viceroy recommended to the Secretary of State for India that an ultimatum2 be sent to King Thebaw.

In approving of the ultimatum, Lord Randolph Churchill expressed his opinion that its despatch should be concurrent with the movement of troops and ships to Rangoon, that an answer should be demanded within a specified time, and that if the ultimatum were rejected, an immediate advance on Mandalay should be made.

In supporting the ultimatum, Lord Randolph Churchill stated that it should be sent out at the same time as troops and ships were moving to Rangoon, that a response should be required within a set timeframe, and that if the ultimatum was rejected, there should be an immediate push toward Mandalay.

A force3 of nearly 10,000 men and 77 guns, under the command of Lieutenant-General Prendergast, was accordingly ordered to be in readiness at Thyetmyo by the 14th November, and as the reply of the Burmese Government was tantamount to a refusal, Prendergast was[Page 509] instructed to advance on Mandalay, with the result which it was my pleasant duty to congratulate him upon in my capacity of Commander-in-Chief of the Army in India.

A force3 of nearly 10,000 men and 77 guns, led by Lieutenant-General Prendergast, was ordered to be ready at Thyetmyo by November 14th. Since the response from the Burmese Government was basically a refusal, Prendergast was[Page 509] instructed to move forward to Mandalay, and I was pleased to congratulate him on the outcome in my role as Commander-in-Chief of the Army in India.

The Camp of Exercise at Delhi From Gwalior I went to Delhi to prepare for a Camp of Exercise on a much larger scale than had ever before been held. Many weak points in the Commissariat and Transport Department having become only too apparent when the mobilization of the two Army Corps had been imminent the previous spring, it was considered necessary to test our readiness for war, and orders for the strength and composition of the force to be manœuvred had been issued before Sir Donald Stewart left India.

The Training Camp in Delhi From Gwalior, I traveled to Delhi to prepare for a large-scale Camp of Exercise, larger than any that had been held before. Many weaknesses in the Commissariat and Transport Department had become glaringly obvious when the mobilization of the two Army Corps had been near the previous spring, so it was deemed essential to test our readiness for war. Orders regarding the size and makeup of the force to be maneuvered had been issued before Sir Donald Stewart left India.

The troops were divided into two Army Corps. The northern assembled at Umballa, and the southern at Gurgaon, 25 miles from Delhi, the points of concentration being 150 miles apart.

The troops were split into two Army Corps. The northern group gathered at Umballa, and the southern one met at Gurgaon, 25 miles from Delhi, with their concentration points being 150 miles apart.

1886 After a fortnight passed in brigade and divisional movements, the opposing forces advanced, and on the 7th January they came into contact on the historic battlefield of Panipat.4

1886 After two weeks of troop maneuvers and movements, the opposing forces moved forward, and on January 7th, they met on the historic battlefield of Panipat.4

Lord Dufferin, whose interest in the efficiency of the army induced him to come all the way from Calcutta to witness the last two days' manœuvres, was present—with the twelve 'foreign officers'5 from the principal armies of Europe and America, who had been invited to attend the camp—at a march-past of the whole force of 35,000 men on the 18th. It was a fine sight, though marred by a heavy thunderstorm and a perfect deluge of rain, and was really a greater test of what the troops could do than if we had had the perfect weather we had hoped for. The 'foreign officers' were, apparently, somewhat surprised at the fine physique and efficiency of our Native soldiers, but they all remarked on the paucity of British officers with the Indian regiments, which I could not but acknowledge was, as it still is, a weak point in our military organization.

Lord Dufferin, who was interested in the army's effectiveness, traveled all the way from Calcutta to see the last two days of maneuvers. He was there, along with the twelve 'foreign officers'5 from the main armies of Europe and America, who were invited to the camp, for a march-past of the entire force of 35,000 men on the 18th. It was an impressive sight, even though it was disrupted by a heavy thunderstorm and a torrential downpour; in fact, it provided a better test of the troops’ capabilities than the perfect weather we had hoped for. The 'foreign officers' seemed surprised by the strong physique and effectiveness of our Native soldiers, but they all noted the lack of British officers in the Indian regiments, which I had to agree was, and still is, a weak point in our military organization.

When the camp was broken up, I accompanied the Viceroy to Burma, where we arrived early in February, 1886. Lord Dufferin must, I think, have been pleased at the reception he met with at Rangoon. The people generally tried in every possible way to show their gratitude to the Viceroy, under whose auspices the annexation of[Page 510] Upper Burma had been carried out, and each nationality had erected a triumphal arch in its own particular quarter of the town.

When the camp was disbanded, I traveled with the Viceroy to Burma, arriving there in early February 1886. I believe Lord Dufferin must have been happy with the welcome he received in Rangoon. The locals made every effort to express their appreciation for the Viceroy, who oversaw the annexation of[Page 510] Upper Burma, and each community built a triumphant arch in its own section of the town.

From Rangoon we went to Mandalay, where Lord Dufferin formally announced the annexation by England of all that part of Upper Burma over which King Thebaw had held sway. We then proceeded to Madras, where I parted from the Viceregal party and travelled to Bombay to meet my wife. Leaving her at Simla to arrange our house, which had been considerably altered and added to, I proceeded to the North-West Frontier, for the question of its defence was one which interested me very deeply, and I hoped that, from the position I now held as a member of the Government of India, I should be able to get my ideas on this, to India, all-important subject listened to, if not altogether carried out.

From Rangoon, we went to Mandalay, where Lord Dufferin officially announced that England had annexed all the parts of Upper Burma that King Thebaw had controlled. We then traveled to Madras, where I said goodbye to the Viceregal party and headed to Bombay to meet my wife. I left her in Simla to organize our house, which had undergone significant changes and additions, and then I went to the North-West Frontier because I was very interested in its defense. I hoped that, given my position as a member of the Government of India, I could get my ideas on this crucial issue heard, if not fully implemented.

Defence of the North-West Frontier The defence of the frontier had been considered under the orders of my predecessor by a Committee, the members of which had recorded their several opinions as to the means which should be adopted to make India secure. But Sir Donald Stewart relinquished his command before anything could be done to give effect to the measures they advised.

Defense of the North-West Frontier The protection of the frontier was reviewed under the direction of my predecessor by a Committee, whose members shared their views on how to ensure India's security. However, Sir Donald Stewart stepped down from his command before any actions could be taken to implement their recommended measures.

The matter had therefore to be taken up afresh by me, and I carefully studied the recommendations of the 'Defence Committee' before visiting the frontier to refresh my memory by personal inspection as to the points to be defended.

The issue had to be reexamined by me, and I carefully reviewed the suggestions from the 'Defense Committee' before heading to the border to refresh my memory through a personal inspection of the areas that needed to be defended.

It seemed to me that none of the members, with the exception of Sir Charles Macgregor and the secretary, Major W.G. Nicholson, at all appreciated the great change which had taken place in our position since the near approach of Russia, and our consequent promise to the Amir to preserve the integrity of his kingdom, had widened the limit of our responsibilities from the southern to the northern boundary of Afghanistan.

It appeared to me that none of the members, except for Sir Charles Macgregor and the secretary, Major W.G. Nicholson, truly understood the significant change in our situation since Russia got closer. Our promise to the Amir to protect the integrity of his kingdom expanded our responsibilities from the southern to the northern border of Afghanistan.

Less than a year before we had been on the point of declaring war with Russia because of her active interference with 'the authority of a sovereign—our protected ally—who had committed no offence6;' and even now it was not certain that peace could be preserved, by reason of the outrageous demands made by the Russian members of the Boundary Commission as to the direction which the line of delimitation between Russian and Afghan territory should take.

Less than a year ago, we were on the verge of declaring war on Russia because of its direct interference with the authority of a sovereign—our protected ally—who had done nothing wrong; and even now, it wasn't clear that peace could be maintained due to the outrageous demands made by the Russian members of the Boundary Commission regarding the direction the boundary line between Russian and Afghan territory should follow.

It was this widening of our responsibilities which prevented me from agreeing with the recommendations of the Defence Committee, for the majority of the members laid greater stress on the necessity for constructing numerous fortifications, than upon lines of communication, which I conceived to be of infinitely greater importance, as affording the means of bringing all the strategical points on the[Page 511] frontier into direct communication with the railway system of India, and enabling us to mass our troops rapidly, should we be called upon to aid Afghanistan in repelling attack from a foreign Power.

It was the expansion of our responsibilities that made it difficult for me to agree with the Defence Committee's recommendations. Most of the members focused more on the need to build many fortifications rather than on communication routes, which I believed were far more important. These routes would allow us to connect all the strategic points on the[Page 511] frontier directly to India's railway system, enabling us to quickly assemble our troops if we needed to assist Afghanistan in defending against an attack from a foreign power.

Fortifications, of the nature of entrenched positions, were no doubt, to some extent, necessary, not to guard against our immediate neighbours, for experience had taught us that without outside assistance they are incapable of a combined movement, but for the protection of such depots and storehouses as would have to be constructed, and as a support to the army in the field.

Fortifications, like entrenched positions, were definitely necessary to some extent, not to protect against our immediate neighbors, since experience had shown us that without outside help they can't coordinate their actions, but for the protection of depots and supply stores that would need to be built, and to support the army in the field.

The line chosen at that time for an advance was by Quetta and Kandahar. In the first instance, therefore, I wended my way to Baluchistan, where I met and consulted with the Governor-General's Agent, Sir Robert Sandeman, and the Chief Engineer of the Sind-Pishin Railway, Brigadier-General Browne.7

The route selected back then for the advance was through Quetta and Kandahar. So, I headed to Baluchistan, where I met and spoke with the Governor-General's Agent, Sir Robert Sandeman, and the Chief Engineer of the Sind-Pishin Railway, Brigadier-General Browne.7

We together inspected the Kwaja-Amran range, through which the Kohjak tunnel now runs, and I decided that the best position for an entrenched camp was to the rear of that range, in the space between the Takatu and Mashalik mountains. This open ground was less than four miles broad; nature had made its flanks perfectly secure, and in front was a network of ravines capable of being made quite impassable by simply flooding them. It was unfortunate that the railway had been marked out in front instead of in rear of the Takatu range, and that its construction was too far advanced before the question of defence came to be considered to admit of its being altered, otherwise this position would have been a complete protection for the line of rail also.

We inspected the Kwaja-Amran range, through which the Kohjak tunnel now runs, and I decided that the best spot for a fortified camp was at the back of that range, in the area between the Takatu and Mashalik mountains. This open ground was less than four miles wide; nature had secured its sides perfectly, and in front was a web of ravines that could easily be made impassable by simply flooding them. It was unfortunate that the railway had been planned in front instead of behind the Takatu range, and that its construction was too advanced before the issue of defense was considered to make any changes possible; otherwise, this position would have completely protected the railway line as well.

Quetta and Peshawar Having come to a definite conclusion as to the measures to be taken for meeting the offensive and defensive requirements of Quetta and the Bolan Pass, I turned my attention to Peshawar and the Khyber Pass, which were infinitely more difficult to deal with, because of the political considerations involved.

Quetta & Peshawar After reaching a clear decision on how to address the offensive and defensive needs of Quetta and the Bolan Pass, I shifted my focus to Peshawar and the Khyber Pass, which were much more challenging due to the political factors at play.

Over the whole of Baluchistan we had entire control, so that in the event of an army moving in that direction we could depend upon the resources of the country being at our disposal, and the people remaining, at least, neutral. But on the Peshawar side the circumstances were altogether different: the tribes were hostile to a degree, and no European's life was safe across the frontier. Except in the Khyber itself (where the policy of establishing friendly relations with the Afridis, and utilizing them to keep open the pass, had been most successfully practised by the political officer, Lieutenant-Colonel Warburton), we could not depend on the tribesmen remaining passive, much less helping us if we advanced into Afghanistan. While, should[Page 512] an army attempt to invade India from that direction, we should to a certainty have every man of the 200,000 warlike people who inhabit the mountainous district from Chitral to Baluchistan combining against us, and pouring into India from every outlet.

Throughout Baluchistan, we had full control, so if an army moved in that direction, we could rely on the country's resources being available to us, and the people at least remaining neutral. However, the situation on the Peshawar side was completely different: the tribes were extremely hostile, and no European could feel safe across the border. Except in the Khyber itself (where the approach of building friendly relations with the Afridis, and using them to keep the pass open, had been very successfully executed by the political officer, Lieutenant-Colonel Warburton), we couldn’t count on the tribesmen staying passive, let alone assisting us if we advanced into Afghanistan. Moreover, if an army tried to invade India from that direction, we would definitely have every single one of the 200,000 warlike individuals inhabiting the mountainous area from Chitral to Baluchistan uniting against us and flooding into India from every escape route.

For these reasons I recorded a strong opinion in opposition to the proposals of the Defence Committee, which were in favour of the construction of a large magazine at Peshawar and extensive entrenched works at the mouth of the Khyber. I pointed out the extreme danger of a position communication with which could be cut off, and which could be more or less easily turned, for it was clear to me that until we had succeeded in inducing the border tribes to be on friendly terms with us, and to believe that their interests were identical with ours, the Peshawar valley would become untenable should any general disturbance take place; and that, instead of entrenchments close to the Khyber Pass, we required a position upon which the garrisons of Peshawar and Nowshera could fall back and await the arrival of reinforcements.

For these reasons, I expressed a strong disagreement with the Defence Committee's proposals, which supported building a large supply depot at Peshawar and extensive fortifications at the entrance of the Khyber. I highlighted the significant risk of a position where communication could be easily cut off and flanked. It was evident to me that until we managed to get the border tribes to be friendly toward us and to understand that our interests were aligned, the Peshawar valley would become unsustainable if any widespread unrest occurred. Instead of fortifications close to the Khyber Pass, we needed a strategic position where the garrisons of Peshawar and Nowshera could retreat and wait for reinforcements.

For this position I selected a spot on the right bank of the Kabul river, between Khairabad and the Indus; it commanded the passage of the latter river, and could easily be strengthened by defensive works outside the old fort of Attock.

For this position, I chose a spot on the right bank of the Kabul River, between Khairabad and the Indus; it controlled the crossing of the Indus River and could easily be fortified with defensive structures outside the old fort of Attock.

It will be readily understood by those of my readers who have any knowledge of our North-West Frontier, or are interested in the question of the defence of India, that other routes exist between the Bolan and the Khyber Passes which might be made use of either by an army invading India, or by a force sent from India to the assistance of Afghanistan; and by such it will probably be asked, as was the case when my recommendations were being discussed, why I did not advise these lines to be similarly guarded. My reply was, and is, that there are no arsenals or depots near these passes to be protected, as at Quetta and Rawul Pindi; that we should not be likely to use them for an army moving into Afghanistan; that, although small parties of the enemy might come by them, the main body of a force operating towards India is bound to advance by the Khyber, for the reason that it would debouch directly on highly cultivated country and good roads leading to all the great cities of the Punjab; and finally that, even if our finances would admit of the construction of such a long line of forts, it would be impossible for our limited army to supply the garrisons for them.

It will be easily understood by those of my readers who have any knowledge of our North-West Frontier, or who are interested in the defense of India, that there are other routes between the Bolan and Khyber Passes that could be used either by an army invading India or by a force sent from India to help Afghanistan. They might wonder, as was the case when my recommendations were discussed, why I didn’t suggest that these routes be similarly protected. My answer is that there are no arsenals or depots near these passes that need protection, like those at Quetta and Rawul Pindi; that we likely wouldn’t use them for an army moving into Afghanistan; that while small groups of the enemy might come through these routes, the main force moving towards India will inevitably go through the Khyber, because it opens directly onto fertile land and good roads leading to the major cities of Punjab; and finally, even if our budget allowed for building such a long line of forts, it would be impossible for our limited army to support the garrisons for them.

Communications versus fortifications Having completed my inspection of the frontier, I returned to Simla and drew up a memorandum declaring the conviction I had arrived at after careful deliberation, that the improvement of our communications was of far greater importance than the immediate construction of forts and entrenchments, and that, while I would not spare money in strengthening well-defined positions, the strategical value of which was[Page 513] unmistakable, I would not trouble about those places the primary importance of fortifying which was open to argument, and which might never be required to be defended; these, I contended, might be left alone, except so far as to make a careful study of their localities and determine how they could best be taken advantage of should occasion require. My note ended with the following words: 'Meanwhile I would push on our communications with all possible speed; we must have roads, and we must have railways; they cannot be made on short notice, and every rupee spent upon them now will repay us tenfold hereafter. Nothing will tend to secure the safety of the frontier so much as the power of rapidly concentrating troops on any threatened point, and nothing will strengthen our military position more than to open out the country and improve our relations with the frontier tribes. There are no better civilizers than roads and railways; and although some of those recommended to be made may never be required for military purposes, they will be of the greatest assistance to the civil power in the administration of the country.'

Communications vs. fortifications After finishing my inspection of the border, I returned to Simla and wrote a memo stating my belief, after careful thought, that improving our communications was much more important than just building forts and trenches. While I would invest in strengthening clear strategic positions, the importance of which was [Page 513] obvious, I wouldn't worry about reinforcing places whose necessity for fortification was debatable and might never need to be defended. I argued that these could be left alone, except for studying their locations carefully to figure out how to best utilize them if needed. My note concluded with these words: 'In the meantime, I would push forward our communications as quickly as possible; we need roads, and we need railways; they can't be built overnight, and every rupee spent on them now will pay us back tenfold later. Nothing will enhance the safety of the border as much as being able to quickly concentrate troops at any threatened spot, and nothing will boost our military position more than opening up the country and improving our relations with the tribes along the border. There are no better civilizers than roads and railways; and while some of those proposed projects might never be necessary for military use, they will greatly help the civil administration of the country.'

Accompanying this paper was a statement of the defensive works which, in my opinion, should be taken in hand without delay; also of the positions which required careful study, and the roads and railways which should be constructed, to make the scheme of defence complete.

Accompanying this paper was a statement of the defense projects that, in my opinion, should be tackled immediately; also, a list of the locations that needed careful examination, along with the roads and railways that should be built to make the defense plan complete.

Seven years later, when I gave up my command of the Army in India, I had the supreme satisfaction of knowing that I left our North-West Frontier secure, so far as it was possible to make it so, hampered as we were by want of money. The necessary fortifications had been completed, schemes for the defence of the various less important positions had been prepared, and the roads and railways, in my estimation of such vast importance, had either been finished or were well advanced.

Seven years later, when I stepped down from my command of the Army in India, I felt a deep sense of satisfaction knowing that I was leaving our North-West Frontier secure, as secure as we could make it despite our financial limitations. The essential fortifications were complete, plans for defending the various less critical positions were in place, and the roads and railways, which I considered extremely important, were either finished or well underway.

Moreover, our position with regard to the border tribes had gradually come to be better understood, and it had been realized that they would be a powerful support to whichever side might be able to count upon their aid; the policy of keeping them at arm's length had been abandoned, and the advantages of reciprocal communication were becoming more appreciated by them and by us.

Moreover, our stance on the border tribes was gradually being better understood, and it was recognized that they would be a strong support for whichever side could rely on their help; the strategy of keeping them at a distance had been dropped, and the benefits of mutual communication were becoming more valued by both them and us.

It was not to be expected that these results could be achieved without a considerable amount of opposition, owing partly to the majority of our countrymen (even amongst those who had spent the greater part of their lives in India) failing to recognize the change that had taken place in the relative positions of Great Britain and Russia in Asia, and to their disbelief in the steady advance of Russia towards Afghanistan being in any way connected with India, or in Russia's wish or power to threaten our Eastern Empire.8 The idea was very common, too,[Page 514] amongst people who had not deeply considered the subject, that all proposals for gaining control over our troublesome neighbours on the border, or for facilitating the massing of troops, meant an aggressive policy, and were made with the idea of annexing more territory, instead of for the purpose of securing the safety of India, and enabling us to fulfil our engagements.

It wasn't surprising that these results came with a significant amount of resistance, partly because most of our fellow countrymen (including those who had lived in India for many years) failed to see the shift in the balance of power between Great Britain and Russia in Asia. They also didn't believe that Russia's steady progress toward Afghanistan had anything to do with India or that Russia had the desire or ability to threaten our Eastern Empire.8 A common misconception among those who hadn't thought deeply about it was that any plans to manage our troublesome neighbors on the border or to assemble troops were seen as aggressive moves aimed at taking more territory, rather than strategies to ensure the safety of India and meet our obligations.

Sir George Chesney Happily, the Viceroys who governed India while I was Commander-in-Chief were not amongst those who held these opinions; and while they had no expectation of India being invaded in the near future, they realized that we could not unconcernedly look on while a great Power was, step by step, creeping closer to our possessions. It was a fortunate circumstance, too, that, for the first five years I was at the head of the Army in India, I had as my military colleague in Council the late General Sir George Chesney, a man of unquestionable talent and sound judgment, to whose cordial support, not only in frontier affairs, but in all my efforts to promote the efficiency and welfare of the soldier, I was very greatly indebted.

Sir George Chesney Fortunately, the Viceroys who were in charge of India while I was Commander-in-Chief did not share these views. They didn’t expect India to be invaded anytime soon, but they understood that we couldn't just sit back and watch as a major power gradually moved closer to our territories. It was also lucky that for the first five years I led the Army in India, I had the late General Sir George Chesney as my military colleague on the Council. He was a man of undeniable skill and good judgment, and I was greatly thankful for his strong support, not only in frontier issues but in all my efforts to improve the effectiveness and well-being of our soldiers.






CHAPTER LXVI.

1886


Nursing for the Soldier
Many interesting and important questions had to be dealt with during this my first year as a member of the Viceroy's Council, and it was pleasant to me to be able to bring before the Government of India a scheme which my wife had had very much at heart for many years—for supplying skilled nursing to the military hospitals in India. That our sick soldiers (officers and men) should be entirely dependent for nursing, even in times of the most dangerous illness, on the tender mercies of 'the orderly on duty,' who, whether kind-hearted or the reverse, was necessarily utterly untrained and ignorant of the requirements of sickness, was a source of unhappiness to her, and had been felt as a cruel want by many; but whenever she had discussed the subject with those who might have helped her, she was told that proposals for supplying this want had already been made, that the Government could not, nor would they ever be able to, act on such proposals, on account of the prohibitory expense, so she felt there was no use in making any appeal until I might be in a position to see that any suggestions made by her would be certain to receive the careful consideration of Government. This time had now arrived, and almost[Page 515] directly Lady Roberts returned to India in 1886 she drew up a scheme for supplying lady nurses to the military hospitals throughout India, and set to work to try and get the support of some of the principal Medical officers. To her great joy, her recommendations were accepted by Lord Dufferin and his Council, and her note upon the subject was sent home to the Secretary of State, strongly backed up by the Government of India. Lord Cross happily viewed the matter in a favourable light, and consented, not only to a certain number of nurses being sent out the following year as an experiment, but to the whole of the cost of the movement being borne by the State, with the exception of the provision of 'Homes in the Hills' for the nursing sisters as health resorts, and to prevent the expense to Government of their having to be sent home on sick-leave when worn out by their trying work in the plains. The Secretary of State, however, declared these Homes to be 'an important part' of the nursing scheme, 'and indispensable to its practical working,' but considered that they should be provided by private subscription, a condition my wife undertook to carry out. She appealed to the Army in India to help her, and with scarcely an exception every regiment and battery generously responded—even the private soldiers subscribed largely in proportion to their small means—so that by the beginning of the following year my wife was able to set about purchasing and building suitable houses.

Nursing for Soldiers During my first year as a member of the Viceroy's Council, I faced many interesting and important questions, and I was pleased to present a plan to the Government of India that my wife had passionately advocated for many years—providing skilled nursing for military hospitals in India. The fact that our sick soldiers (both officers and enlisted men) had to rely entirely on the 'orderly on duty' for nursing, whether that orderly was kind or not, and who was inevitably untrained and unaware of proper care for the ill, troubled her deeply and felt like a cruel shortage to many. Yet, whenever she discussed this issue with those who might have been able to assist, she was told that similar proposals had been made before, but that the Government couldn't, and wouldn't ever be able to, act on them due to the high costs. She felt it was pointless to push for her ideas until I could ensure that any suggestions she made would receive serious attention from the Government. That time had finally come, and soon after Lady Roberts returned to India in 1886, she drafted a plan to provide female nurses for military hospitals across India and sought the support of key medical officers. To her delight, her recommendations were accepted by Lord Dufferin and his Council, and her correspondence on the matter was sent to the Secretary of State, strongly endorsed by the Government of India. Lord Cross viewed the proposal positively and agreed not only to send a certain number of nurses out the following year as a trial but also to have the entire expense covered by the State, except for the establishment of 'Homes in the Hills' for the nursing sisters to serve as health retreats and to avoid the cost of sending them home on sick leave when exhausted from their demanding work in the plains. The Secretary of State, however, insisted that these Homes were 'an important part' of the nursing plan, 'and essential for its practical implementation,' but felt they should be funded by private donations, a condition my wife committed to fulfill. She reached out to the Army in India for support, and with few exceptions, every regiment and battery generously contributed—even the enlisted soldiers donated significantly, considering their limited resources—so that by the start of the following year, my wife was able to begin purchasing and building suitable houses.



LADY ROBERTS OF KANDAHAR.

LADY ROBERTS OF KANDAHAR.

From
a photograph by Messrs. Johnson and Hoffmann.

LADY ROBERTS OF KANDAHAR.

LADY ROBERTS OF KANDAHAR.

From a photograph by Johnson and Hoffmann.



'Homes' were established at Murree, Kasauli and Quetta, in Bengal, and at Wellington1 in Madras, and by making a further appeal to the officers of the army, and with the assistance of kind and liberal friends in England and India, and the proceeds of various entertainments, Lady Roberts was able to supply, in connexion with the 'Homes' at Murree and Kasauli, wards for the reception of sick officers, with a staff of nurses2 in attendance, whose salaries, passages, etc., are all paid out of 'Lady Roberts's Fund.' My wife was induced to do this from having known many young officers succumb owing to want of care and improper food at hotels or clubs on being sent to the Hills after a hard fight for life in the plains, if they were not fortunate enough to have personal friends to look after them. Although it is anticipating events, I may as well say here that the nursing experiment proved a complete success, and now every large military hospital in India has its staff of nurses, and there are altogether 4 superintendents, 9 deputy superintendents, and 39 nursing sisters, in India. There are[Page 516] many more wanted in the smaller stations, where there is often great loss of life from lack of proper nursing, and surely, as my wife pointed out in her first appeal, 'when one considers what an expensive article the British soldier is, costing, as he does, £100 before landing in India, it seems certain that on the score of economy alone, altogether setting aside the humane aspect of the question, it is well worth the State's while to provide him with the skilled nursing care' which has up to now saved so many lives.

'Homes' were set up in Murree, Kasauli, and Quetta, in Bengal, and at Wellington1 in Madras. By further reaching out to army officers, along with help from generous friends in England and India, and the proceeds from various events, Lady Roberts was able to provide, in connection with the 'Homes' at Murree and Kasauli, areas for sick officers, staffed with nurses2 on duty. Their salaries, travel costs, and other expenses are all covered by 'Lady Roberts's Fund.' My wife felt compelled to take action after witnessing many young officers suffer due to inadequate care and poor food at hotels or clubs when they were sent to the Hills following grueling battles in the plains, especially if they didn’t have friends to support them. Even though it jumps ahead a bit, I should mention now that the nursing initiative turned out to be a complete success. Today, every major military hospital in India has its own nursing staff, totaling 4 superintendents, 9 deputy superintendents, and 39 nursing sisters across the country. There are[Page 516] still many more needed in smaller locations, where a lack of proper nursing often results in significant loss of life. As my wife pointed out in her first appeal, 'considering how expensive the British soldier is, costing about £100 before arriving in India, it seems clear that purely from an economic standpoint, not to mention the humanitarian side of things, it’s definitely worthwhile for the State to provide him with the skilled nursing care that has already saved so many lives.'

That officers as well as men might benefit by the devotion of the 'nursing sister,' I was able to arrange in all the large hospitals for some room, or rooms, used until then for other purposes, to be appropriated for an officers' ward or wards, and these have proved a great boon to the younger officers whose income does not admit of their obtaining the expensive care of a nurse from one of the large civil hospitals in the Presidency towns.

That both officers and soldiers could benefit from the dedication of the 'nursing sister,' I managed to set aside some rooms in all the large hospitals, which had previously been used for other purposes, to create an officers' ward or wards. These have turned out to be a huge help for the younger officers whose income doesn't allow them to afford the high-cost care of a nurse from one of the big civil hospitals in the major towns of the Presidency.

Pacification of Burma considered The next most interesting question, and also the most pressing, which had to be considered by the Viceroy's Council during the summer of 1886, was the pacification of Upper Burma. People in England had expressed surprise at this being so long delayed. It is extremely easy, however, to sit at home and talk of what should be done, but very difficult to say how to do it, and more difficult still to carry it out. To establish law and order in a country nearly as large as France, in which dacoity is looked upon as an honourable profession, would be no light task even in Europe: but when the country to be settled has a deadly climate for several months in the year, is covered to a great extent with jungle, and is without a vestige of a road, the task assumes gigantic proportions. In Upper Burma the garrison was only sufficient to keep open communication along the line of the Irrawaddy, and, to add to the embarrassment of the situation, disaffection had spread to Lower Burma, and disturbances had broken out in the almost unknown district between Upper Burma and Assam.

Pacification of Myanmar considered The next most interesting and urgent question that the Viceroy's Council had to tackle during the summer of 1886 was the pacification of Upper Burma. People in England were surprised that this had taken so long. It’s easy to sit at home and discuss what should be done, but it’s much harder to figure out how to do it, and even harder to actually execute the plans. Establishing law and order in a country almost the size of France, where robbery is seen as an honorable profession, would be a significant challenge even in Europe. But when the area has a deadly climate for several months of the year, is largely covered in jungle, and has no real roads, the task becomes monumental. In Upper Burma, the military presence was only enough to maintain communication along the Irrawaddy River, and to complicate matters further, discontent had spread to Lower Burma, sparking disturbances in the largely unexplored region between Upper Burma and Assam.

It was arranged to send strong reinforcements to Burma so soon as the unhealthy season should be over and it would be safe for the troops to go there, and Lieutenant-General Sir Herbert Macpherson (who had succeeded me as Commander-in-Chief in Madras) was directed to proceed thither.

It was decided to send additional troops to Burma as soon as the unhealthy season was over and it was safe for them to go there, and Lieutenant-General Sir Herbert Macpherson (who had taken over as Commander-in-Chief in Madras) was instructed to head there.

In October my wife and I, with some of my staff, started from Simla on a trip across the Hills, with the object of inspecting the stations of Dhurmsala and Dalhousie before it was cool enough to begin my winter tour in the plains. We crossed the Jalaurie Pass, between 11,000 and 12,000 feet high, and travelling through the beautiful Kulu valley and over the Bubbu mountain, we finally arrived at Palampur, the centre of the tea industry in the Kangra valley. Having been cut off from telegraphic communication for some time, we went straight to the telegraph-office for news, and found at the moment a message[Page 517] being deciphered which brought me the terribly sad information that General Macpherson had died of fever in Burma. In him the country had lost a good soldier, and I a friend and comrade for whom I had a great regard and admiration. We were discussing his untimely end, and I was considering who should replace him, when a second message arrived. This was from Lord Dufferin, telling me that he wished me to transfer my Head-Quarters to Burma, and arrange to remain there until 'the neck of the business was broken.'

In October, my wife and I, along with some of my staff, set out from Simla on a trip across the Hills to check out the stations of Dhurmsala and Dalhousie before it got cool enough to start my winter tour in the plains. We crossed the Jalaurie Pass, which is between 11,000 and 12,000 feet high, and traveled through the beautiful Kulu valley and over the Bubbu mountain until we finally reached Palampur, the hub of the tea industry in the Kangra valley. After being cut off from telegrams for a while, we went straight to the telegraph office for news and found a message[Page 517] being decoded that brought me the tragic news that General Macpherson had died of fever in Burma. The country had lost a good soldier, and I lost a friend and fellow officer whom I greatly respected and admired. We were discussing his premature death, and I was thinking about who should take his place when a second message arrived. This was from Lord Dufferin, letting me know that he wanted me to move my Headquarters to Burma and stay there until "the neck of the business was broken."

I hurried to Calcutta, embarked in the first mail-steamer, and landed at Rangoon on the 9th November.

I rushed to Calcutta, boarded the first mail steamer, and arrived in Rangoon on November 9th.

Sir Charles Bernard (the Chief Commissioner) and General White had done well under very difficult circumstances; but owing partly to large districts being impassable from months of heavy rain, and partly to the change in Commanders, unavoidable inaction had been forced upon our troops, and the dacoits had in consequence made head against us.

Sir Charles Bernard (the Chief Commissioner) and General White had performed admirably under challenging conditions; however, due in part to vast areas being inaccessible from months of heavy rain and partly due to the change in Commanders, our troops were unfortunately unable to take action, allowing the dacoits to regroup against us.

Having been in constant correspondence with General White, I had been kept informed of his plans, and, as his responsible Chief, I had approved of them; I therefore had the somewhat complicated military situation at my fingers' ends, and did not need to lose a single day in arranging for a series of combined movements being carried on all over the country.

Having been in regular communication with General White, I was kept up to date on his plans, and as his accountable Chief, I had approved of them; thus, I had a good grasp of the somewhat complicated military situation and didn't need to waste a single day organizing a series of coordinated movements happening all over the country.

It was hoped that the recently arrived reinforcements would be sufficient for all requirements, but it soon became apparent that the difficulties connected with the pacification of Burma had been under-rated, and that, in addition to more troops, an efficient civil administration would have to be provided, to take the place of military authority so soon as anything like organized resistance had been crushed; for to deal with ordinary robbers I conceived to be work more suited to police than to soldiers. Upwards of thirty years' experience had proved that the Burmese could not be relied upon for this kind of service; I therefore recommended that a large body of police should be raised in India without delay, and given a semi-military organization, and in the meantime I asked for, and was given, five additional regiments.

It was hoped that the recently arrived reinforcements would be enough to meet all needs, but it quickly became clear that the challenges of pacifying Burma had been underestimated. Besides needing more troops, an effective civil administration would need to be established to replace military rule as soon as organized resistance was quelled. I thought that dealing with common thieves was more suited for police than soldiers. Over thirty years of experience had shown that the Burmese could not be counted on for this kind of work; therefore, I suggested that a large police force be quickly formed in India, organized in a semi-military way. In the meantime, I requested and was granted five additional regiments.

Measures recommended I felt very confident of success, for I had taken great care in the selection of the brigade commanders and staff officers, and I knew the troops could be depended upon in any emergency that was likely to arise. Nevertheless, as the work they would have to perform was of rather an unusual character, irksome as well as difficult, I thought it advisable to issue some general instructions for the guidance of the officers in command of the different columns.3 These instructions 1887 were carried out so intelligently, and the troops did such good service, especially a very fine body of Mounted Infantry raised and organized [Page 518] by Major Symons, of the South Wales Borderers, that before I returned to India in February, 1887, I was able to report that the country was gradually becoming quiet and the Burmese reconciled to our rule. Most of the principal dacoit leaders had been killed or captured, and villages which had been in their hands for months were being reoccupied by their legitimate inhabitants; caravans were coming into Mandalay almost daily from districts on the Chinese borders; contracts for making roads were readily taken up, and there was no difficulty in obtaining labour for the railway then being constructed between Lower Burma and Mandalay, the first sod of which was turned within a month of my arrival at that place.

Suggested Actions I felt very confident we would succeed because I had carefully chosen the brigade commanders and staff officers, and I knew the troops could be relied upon in any likely emergency. However, since the work they were about to perform was somewhat unusual, both tedious and challenging, I thought it would be wise to issue some general instructions for the officers in charge of the different columns.3 These instructions 1887 were followed intelligently, and the troops performed remarkably well, especially a strong unit of Mounted Infantry that was raised and organized [Page 518] by Major Symons of the South Wales Borderers. By the time I returned to India in February 1887, I was pleased to report that the country was slowly getting calm, and the Burmese were becoming more accepting of our rule. Most of the main dacoit leaders had been killed or captured, and villages that had been under their control for months were being reoccupied by their rightful residents. Caravans were arriving in Mandalay almost daily from areas near the Chinese borders; contracts for road construction were being taken up eagerly, and there were no issues in finding labor for the railway that was then being built between Lower Burma and Mandalay, with the first sod being turned within a month of my arrival there.

The Buddhist priesthood In achieving these satisfactory results I was materially aided by the hearty co-operation of Sir Charles Bernard and the civil officers serving under him; while the entire absence of fanaticism amongst the Burmese, and their cheerful, happy natures, facilitated our intercourse with them. I received, besides, most valuable assistance from the Buddhist Poonghies, or monks, with many of whom I made friends. From the fact that education, secular and religious, is imparted by these monks, and that every male, from the King to the humblest peasant, was obliged to enter a monastery and wear the saffron garb of a monk for a certain period, the priesthood had enormous influence with the Burmese. There are no hereditary Chiefs or Nobles in Burma, the Poonghies being the advisers of the people and the centre round which Native society revolves.

Buddhist clergy In achieving these satisfactory results, I was greatly helped by the enthusiastic cooperation of Sir Charles Bernard and the civil officers working under him. The complete lack of fanaticism among the Burmese and their cheerful, happy nature made our interactions much easier. Additionally, I received invaluable support from the Buddhist Poonghies, or monks, many of whom became my friends. Education, both secular and religious, is provided by these monks, and every male, from the King to the least peasant, is required to enter a monastery and wear the saffron robes of a monk for a certain period. Because of this, the priesthood holds significant influence in Burmese society. There are no hereditary chiefs or nobles in Burma; the Poonghies serve as the advisers to the people and are the focal point around which local society revolves.

Our occupation of Upper Burma was necessarily a great blow to the Buddhist priesthood, for many of the monasteries4 were kept up entirely by the King, Queen, and Ministers of State; and, as it was most advisable to have the influence of the monks in our favour, I recommended that a monthly stipend should be paid to the Archbishop and two senior Bishops of Mandalay. They showed their gratitude by doing all they could to help me, and when I was leaving the country the old Thathanabain (Archbishop) accompanied me as far as Rangoon. We corresponded till his death, and I still hear occasionally from one or other of my Poonghie friends.

Our takeover of Upper Burma was a significant setback for the Buddhist priesthood, as many of the monasteries4 were financially supported entirely by the King, Queen, and Ministers of State. To gain the monks' support, I suggested that we provide a monthly stipend to the Archbishop and two senior Bishops of Mandalay. They expressed their appreciation by doing everything they could to assist me, and when I was leaving the country, the elderly Thathanabain (Archbishop) traveled with me as far as Rangoon. We kept in touch until his passing, and I still occasionally hear from one of my Poonghie friends.

I remained only a short time in Calcutta on my return to India, and then started off again for the North-West Frontier, in company with General Chesney, who had previously expressed his general concurrence in my defence proposals, but was anxious to see the several positions and judge for himself, from an Engineer's point of view, of their suitability to be treated as I suggested. It was a great source of contentment to me to find that the sites chosen and the style of entrenchments I had advocated commended themselves to my expert companion.

I stayed in Calcutta for a brief period after returning to India, and then set off again for the North-West Frontier with General Chesney. He had previously shown support for my defense proposals but wanted to see the different locations and evaluate their suitability from an Engineer's perspective, based on my suggestions. It was very satisfying for me to find that the sites I had chosen and the type of fortifications I had recommended appealed to my knowledgeable companion.

Simla was more than usually gay during the summer of 1887, in consequence of the numerous entertainments given in celebration of Her Majesty's Jubilee. We had just added a ballroom to 'Snowdon,' and we inaugurated its opening by a fancy ball on the 21st June, in honour of the auspicious anniversary.

Simla was especially lively during the summer of 1887 because of the many events held to celebrate Her Majesty's Jubilee. We had just added a ballroom to 'Snowdon,' and we kicked off its opening with a fancy ball on June 21st, in honor of the significant anniversary.

The Regimental Institute My name appeared in the Jubilee Gazette as having been given the Grand Cross of the Indian Empire, but what I valued still more was the acceptance by the Government of India of my strong recommendation for the establishment of a Club or Institute in every British regiment and battery in India. In urging that this measure should be favourably considered, I had said that the British Army in India could have no better or more generally beneficial memorial of the Queen's Jubilee than the abolition of that relic of barbarism, the canteen, and its supersession by an Institute, in which the soldier would have under the same roof a reading-room, recreation room, and a decently-managed refreshment-room.

The Regimental Center My name appeared in the Jubilee Gazette as having been awarded the Grand Cross of the Indian Empire, but what I valued even more was the acceptance by the Government of India of my strong recommendation for establishing a Club or Institute in every British regiment and battery in India. In pushing for this initiative to be positively considered, I stated that the British Army in India could have no better or more beneficial tribute to the Queen's Jubilee than to eliminate that remnant of barbarism, the canteen, and replace it with an Institute, where soldiers could have a reading room, a recreation room, and a well-managed refreshment area all under one roof.

Lord Dufferin's Government met my views in the most liberal spirit, and with the sanction of Lord Cross 'The Regimental Institute' became a recognized establishment, a fact which my colleagues in Council referred to as a second Jubilee honour for me!

Lord Dufferin's Government was very supportive of my ideas, and with Lord Cross's approval, 'The Regimental Institute' was officially recognized as an establishment, something my fellow Council members called a second Jubilee honor for me!

At a time when nearly every soldier could read and write, and when we hoped to attract to the army men of a better stamp and more respectable antecedents than those of which it was composed in 'the good old days,' it appeared to me a humiliating anachronism that the degrading system of the canteen should still prevail, and that it was impossible for any man to retain his self-respect if he were driven to take his glass of beer under the rules by which regimental canteens were governed. I believed, too, that the more the status of the rank and file could be raised, and the greater the efforts made to provide them with rational recreation and occupation in their leisure hours, the less there would be of drunkenness, and consequently of crime, the less immorality and the greater the number of efficient soldiers in the army. Funds having been granted, a scheme was drawn up for the erection of buildings and for the management of the Institutes. Canteens were reduced in size, and such attractions as musical instruments were removed to the recreation-rooms; the name 'liquor bar' was substituted for that of 'canteen,' and, that there should be no excuse for frequenting the 'liquor bar,' I authorized a moderate and limited amount of beer to be served, if required, with the men's suppers in the refreshment-room—an arrangement which has been followed by the happiest results.

At a time when almost every soldier could read and write, and when we wanted to recruit men of a higher quality and more respectable backgrounds than those in "the good old days," it seemed to me a shameful throwback that the degrading system of the canteen was still in place. It was impossible for any man to keep his self-respect if he had to have his beer under the rules governing regimental canteens. I also believed that if we raised the status of the rank and file, and made more efforts to provide them with reasonable recreation and activities during their free time, there would be less drunkenness, and therefore less crime, less immorality, and a greater number of effective soldiers in the army. With funds granted, we developed a plan for building and managing the Institutes. Canteens were made smaller, and things like musical instruments were moved to the recreation rooms; the term 'liquor bar' replaced 'canteen,' and to minimize visits to the 'liquor bar,' I allowed a moderate and limited amount of beer to be served, if needed, with the men's suppers in the refreshment room—an arrangement that has led to very positive results.

At first it was thought that these changes would cause a great falling off in regimental funds, but experience has proved the reverse. With good management, the profits from the coffee-shop and the soda-water[Page 520] manufactory far exceed those to be derived from the canteen, and this without permitting anyone outside the regiment to purchase from the coffee-shop and without interfering at all with local tradesmen.

At first, people thought these changes would lead to a significant drop in the regiment's funds, but experience showed the opposite. With good management, the profits from the coffee shop and the soda-water[Page 520] factory far surpass what can be made from the canteen, all while keeping the coffee shop exclusive to the regiment and without disrupting local businesses.

The Army Temperance Association Another measure which I succeeded in carrying through the same year was the amalgamation of the various sectarian societies that existed in India for the prevention of drunkenness in the army into one undenominational society, under the name of the Army Temperance Association, which I hoped would admit of more united action and a more advantageous use of funds, besides making it easier for the Government to assist the movement. The different religious and 'total abstinence' associations had no doubt done much towards the object they had in view, but their work was necessarily spasmodic, and being carried on independently of regimental authority, it was not always looked upon with favour by officers.

The Army Alcohol-Free Association Another initiative I successfully implemented that year was the merging of the various religious organizations in India focused on preventing drunkenness in the army into a single non-denominational group, named the Army Temperance Association. I hoped this would allow for more coordinated action and a better use of resources, as well as make it easier for the government to support the movement. While the different religious and 'total abstinence' organizations had certainly contributed to their cause, their efforts tended to be inconsistent and were conducted independently of regimental authority, which sometimes led to a lack of support from the officers.

There was of necessity at first a good deal of opposition on the part of the promoters of the older societies, but those who were loudest in denouncing my proposals soon came to understand that there was nothing in the constitution of the Army Temperance Association which could in any way interfere with total abstinence, and that the only difference between their systems and mine consisted in mine being regimental in its character, and including men for whom it was not necessary or expedient to forego stimulants altogether, but who earnestly desired to lead temperate lives, and to be strengthened in their resolve by being allowed to share in the advantages of the new Institution.

Initially, there was quite a bit of resistance from the supporters of the older societies. However, those who were the most vocal in opposing my proposals eventually realized that there was nothing in the constitution of the Army Temperance Association that would interfere with total abstinence. The only difference between their systems and mine was that mine was focused on a regimental approach and included men who didn't need to give up stimulants entirely but genuinely wanted to live temperate lives and be supported in their commitment by participating in the benefits of the new institution.

To make the movement a complete success, it was above all things important to secure the active co-operation of the ministers of the various religions. To this end I addressed the heads of the different churches, explaining my reasons and the results I hoped to attain in establishing the amalgamated association, and I invited them to testify their approval of the scheme by becoming patrons of it. With two exceptions, the dignitaries to whom I appealed accepted my invitation, and expressed sympathy with my aims and efforts, an encouragement I had hardly dared to hope for, and a proof of liberal-mindedness on the part of the prelates which was extremely refreshing.

To make the movement a complete success, it was crucial to secure the active cooperation of the ministers from different religions. To achieve this, I reached out to the leaders of various churches, explaining my reasons and the goals I hoped to accomplish by establishing the combined association. I invited them to show their support for the initiative by becoming its patrons. With two exceptions, the officials I contacted accepted my invitation and expressed their sympathy with my aims and efforts—an encouragement I hardly dared to hope for and a refreshing display of open-mindedness from the leaders.

The Government of India were good enough to sanction the allotment of a separate room in each soldiers' Institute for the exclusive use of the Association, where alcohol in any shape was not admitted, and to the grant of this room I attribute, in a great measure, the success of the undertaking. The success was proved by the fact that, when I left India, nearly one third of the 70,000 British soldiers in that country were members or honorary members of the Army Temperance Association.

The Government of India kindly approved the allocation of a separate room in each soldiers' Institute for the exclusive use of the Association, where no alcohol in any form was allowed. I credit the success of the initiative largely to the existence of this room. This success was evident from the fact that when I left India, nearly one third of the 70,000 British soldiers in the country were members or honorary members of the Army Temperance Association.






CHAPTER LXVII.

1887

In December I made a prolonged tour along the North-West Frontier, accompanied by my wife, who was greatly delighted at being able at last to see many places and meet many people of whom she had often heard me speak. Part of this trip was made in company with the Viceroy and Lady Dufferin, who visited all the principal stations on the frontier, including Quetta. I rode with Lord Dufferin through the Khyber Pass, and to the top of the Kwaja Amran range, our visit to this latter point resulting, as I earnestly hoped it would, in His Excellency being convinced by personal inspection of the advantage to be gained by making the Kohjak tunnel, and of the necessity for our endeavouring to cultivate more friendly relations with the border tribes. We ended this very enjoyable tour at Rawal Pindi in order to be present at the winding-up of a Cavalry Camp of Exercise in the neighbourhood. There were assembled together under the direction of Major-General Luck one regiment of British and eight regiments of Native Cavalry, with two batteries of Royal Horse Artillery, and it was a pretty sight, their advance at full gallop, and the halt, as of one man, of that long line of Cavalry within a few yards of the Viceroy, for the Royal salute. The spectators were much impressed with Lord Dufferin's nerve in being able to remain perfectly calm and still on his horse in the face of such an onslaught, and it certainly did seem rather close quarters; but General Luck knew his regiments, and had confidence in his men, and we knew General Luck.

In December, I took an extensive trip along the North-West Frontier with my wife, who was really excited to finally see many places and meet people I had often talked about. Part of this journey was with the Viceroy and Lady Dufferin, who visited all the main stations on the frontier, including Quetta. I rode with Lord Dufferin through the Khyber Pass and up to the top of the Kwaja Amran range. Our visit there, which I hoped would convince His Excellency through firsthand experience, resulted in him recognizing the benefits of building the Kohjak tunnel and the need for us to foster better relations with the border tribes. We wrapped up this enjoyable tour in Rawal Pindi to attend the closing ceremony of a Cavalry Camp of Exercise nearby. Under the leadership of Major-General Luck, one British regiment and eight regiments of Native Cavalry, along with two batteries of Royal Horse Artillery, assembled. It was a striking sight to see them advancing at full gallop and halting in unison just a few yards from the Viceroy for the Royal salute. The crowd was quite impressed with Lord Dufferin's composure, managing to stay calm and still on his horse amidst such an intense situation, which did feel pretty close; but General Luck knew his regiments well, had faith in his men, and we trusted General Luck.

1888 In the early part of 1888 I visited all the chief military stations in the Bengal Presidency, and attended Camps of Exercise for all arms, held at Rawal Pindi, Umballa, Meerut, and Lucknow, before going to Calcutta for the usual discussion on the Budget; after which the Government generally breaks up for the hot weather, and assembles in Simla two or three weeks later.

1888 In early 1888, I visited all the main military stations in the Bengal Presidency and attended training camps for all branches at Rawal Pindi, Umballa, Meerut, and Lucknow, before heading to Calcutta for the usual budget discussions; after that, the government typically disperses for the hot weather and gathers in Simla two or three weeks later.

Defence and Mobilization Committees During 1887 and 1888 much useful work was got through by the Defence Committee, and by another Committee which was assembled for the consideration of all questions bearing upon the mobilization of the army. As Commander-in-Chief I presided over both, and was fortunate in being able to secure as my secretaries two officers of exceptional ability, Lieutenant-Colonel W. Nicholson, R.E., for defence, and Lieutenant-Colonel E. Elles, R.A., for mobilisation. It was in a great measure due to Colonel Nicholson's clear-sighted judgment on the many knotty questions which came before us, and to his technical knowledge, that the schemes for the defence of the frontier, and for the ports of Bombay, Karachi, Calcutta, Rangoon and Madras, were carried out so rapidly, thoroughly and economically as they were;1 and with regard to measures for rendering the army mobile, Colonel[Page 522] Elles proved himself equally capable and practical. The Secretary to Government in the Military Department, Major-General Edwin Collen, was a particularly helpful member of the Committees2 from his intimate acquaintance with the various subjects which had to be discussed.

Defense and Mobilization Teams In 1887 and 1888, the Defense Committee and another Committee focused on army mobilization got a lot of important work done. As the Commander-in-Chief, I led both committees and was lucky to have two exceptionally skilled officers as my secretaries: Lieutenant-Colonel W. Nicholson, R.E., for defense, and Lieutenant-Colonel E. Elles, R.A., for mobilization. Much of the success in rapidly and effectively implementing the defense plans for the frontier and the ports of Bombay, Karachi, Calcutta, Rangoon, and Madras can be credited to Colonel Nicholson's insightful judgment and technical expertise. Similarly, Colonel Elles demonstrated his competence and practicality regarding measures to make the army more mobile. Major-General Edwin Collen, the Secretary to Government in the Military Department, was also a particularly valuable member of the Committees2 due to his deep knowledge of the various topics we needed to discuss.

If my readers have had the patience to follow in detail the several campaigns in which I took part, they will have grasped the fact that our greatest difficulties on all occasions arose from the want of a properly organized Transport Department, and they will understand that I was able to make this very apparent when the necessity for mobilizing rapidly only one Army Corps came to be seriously considered. We were able to demonstrate conclusively the impossibility of putting a force into the field, sufficiently strong to cope with a European enemy, without a considerable increase to the existing number of transport animals, and without some description of light cart strong enough to stand the rough work of a campaign in a country without roads; for it is no exaggeration to say that in the autumn of 1880, when I left Kandahar, it would have been possible to have picked out the road thence to Quetta, and onward to Sibi, a distance of 250 miles, with no other guide than that of the line of dead animals and broken-down carts left behind by the several columns and convoys that had marched into Afghanistan by that route.

If my readers have been patient enough to closely follow the various campaigns I participated in, they will have realized that our biggest challenges always came from not having a well-organized Transport Department. They will also understand that I was able to clearly highlight this issue when the urgent need to mobilize a single Army Corps was seriously considered. We were able to demonstrate beyond doubt that it was impossible to deploy a strong enough force to tackle a European enemy without significantly increasing the number of transport animals and without some type of light cart durable enough to handle the tough conditions of a campaign in an area without proper roads. It’s no exaggeration to say that in the autumn of 1880, when I left Kandahar, it would have been possible to trace the route from there to Quetta, and then to Sibi, a distance of 250 miles, using only the line of dead animals and broken carts left behind by the various columns and convoys that had marched into Afghanistan via that path.

Soon after I took over the command of the Army in India, while voyaging to Burma, I had brought this most pressing question of transport to the notice of Lord Dufferin, who, with his usual quick appreciation of a situation, at once fully recognized its urgency, and promised to give me all possible help in my endeavour to render the army mobile—a promise which he amply fulfilled by taking a keen personal interest in the proceedings of the Committee, and giving his hearty support to our various recommendations.3

Soon after I took command of the Army in India and was traveling to Burma, I raised the urgent issue of transport with Lord Dufferin. He quickly understood the situation's urgency and promised to provide me with all the support I needed to make the army more mobile—a promise he fulfilled by taking a personal interest in the Committee's work and enthusiastically supporting our various recommendations.3

The Transport Department Our labours resulted in several thousand good pack animals (chiefly mules) being purchased, and information collected and recorded as to the districts where others could be rapidly procured in case of emergency. A transport service was established, for which officers had to go through a regular course of instruction, and pass an examination in the loading[Page 523] and general management of the animals. A prize was offered for a strong, useful light cart; and when the most suitable had been selected, large numbers were made up of the same pattern.4 The constitution of two Army Corps, to be in readiness for taking the field on short notice, was decided upon, and the units to form the several divisions and brigades were told off and provided with the necessary equipment. A railway time-table was prepared, giving the hours at which the troops should leave their stations so as to avoid any block en route. Special platforms were constructed for training and detraining Cavalry and Artillery, and storehouses were erected and stocked at those stations where road marching would probably commence. Finally the conclusions we had arrived at were embodied in a manual entitled 'General Regulations for Mobilization.' It was extremely gratifying to me to learn from India that this manual, with such additions and alterations as our subsequent experience in Burma and various frontier expeditions proved would be advantageous, was the guide by which the Chitral relieving force was last year so expeditiously and completely equipped and despatched.

The Transportation Department Our efforts led to the purchase of several thousand good pack animals (mainly mules), and we gathered and recorded information about the areas where more could be quickly sourced in case of an emergency. A transport service was set up, requiring officers to complete a regular training course and pass an exam on loading[Page 523] and general animal management. A prize was offered for a strong, functional light cart, and once the best option was chosen, many were produced in the same pattern.4 It was decided to create two Army Corps to be ready for deployment at short notice, and the units for various divisions and brigades were assigned and provided with the necessary gear. A railway schedule was developed, detailing the times troops should leave their stations to prevent any blockages en route. Special platforms were built for loading and unloading Cavalry and Artillery, and warehouses were constructed and stocked at stations where road marches were likely to begin. Finally, our conclusions were compiled into a manual called 'General Regulations for Mobilization.' I was extremely pleased to learn from India that this manual, along with any updates and changes made from our later experiences in Burma and various frontier missions, served as the guide that enabled the Chitral relieving force to be efficiently and thoroughly equipped and dispatched last year.

Utilization of Native States' armies Of the many subjects discussed and measures adopted during this the last year of Lord Dufferin's Viceroyalty, I think the scheme for utilizing the armies of Native States, as an auxiliary force for the service of the Empire, was the most important both from a political and military point of view.

Use of Native States' armies Of all the topics talked about and decisions made during the last year of Lord Dufferin's time as Viceroy, I believe the plan to use the armies of Native States as a support force for the Empire was the most significant from both a political and military perspective.

The idea was, in the first instance, propounded by Lord Lytton, who appointed a committee to consider the pros and cons of the question. I was a member of that committee, but at that time I, in common with many others, was doubtful as to the wisdom of encouraging a high state of efficiency amongst the troops of independent States; the excellent work, however, done by the Native Contingent I had with me in Kuram, and the genuine desire of all ranks to be allowed to serve side by side with our own soldiers, together with the unmistakable spirit of loyalty displayed by Native Rulers when war with Russia was imminent[Page 524] in 1885, convinced me that the time had arrived for us to prove to the people of India that we had faith in their loyalty, and in their recognition of the fact that their concern in the defence of the Empire was at least as great as ours, and that we looked to them to take their part in strengthening our rule and in keeping out all intruders. I believed, too, that we had now little to fear from internal trouble so long as our Government continued just and sympathetic, but that, on the other hand, we could not expect to remain free from outside interference, and that it would be wise to prepare ourselves for a struggle which, as my readers must be aware, I consider to be inevitable in the end. We have done much, and may still do more, to delay it, but when that struggle comes it will be incumbent upon us, both for political and military reasons, to make use of all the troops and war material that the Native States can place at our disposal, and it is therefore to our advantage to render both as efficient and useful as possible.

The idea was originally put forward by Lord Lytton, who set up a committee to weigh the pros and cons of the issue. I was a member of that committee, but at the time, like many others, I was unsure about the wisdom of promoting a high level of efficiency among the troops of independent states. However, the outstanding work done by the Native Contingent I had with me in Kuram, along with the genuine desire of all ranks to serve alongside our soldiers, and the clear spirit of loyalty shown by Native Rulers when war with Russia seemed likely in 1885, convinced me that the time had come to show the people of India that we trusted their loyalty and acknowledged that their role in defending the Empire was at least as significant as ours. We needed to count on them to help strengthen our rule and keep out all intruders. I also believed that we had little to fear from internal issues as long as our Government remained fair and compassionate, but on the other hand, we couldn't expect to be free from outside interference, and it would be smart to prepare ourselves for a struggle that, as my readers must realize, I believe is ultimately unavoidable. We have accomplished a lot and can still do more to delay it, but when that struggle arises, it will be crucial for us, both politically and militarily, to utilize all the troops and war materials that the Native States can provide. Therefore, it's in our best interest to make both as capable and effective as possible.

The subject was, of course, most delicate and complex, and had to be treated with the greatest caution, for not only was the measure adapted to materially strengthen our military position in India, but I was convinced it was politically sound, and likely to be generally acceptable to the Native Rulers, provided we studied their wishes, and were careful not to offend their prejudices and susceptibilities by unnecessary interference.

The topic was definitely sensitive and complicated, and needed to be handled very carefully. Not only would the measure significantly boost our military strength in India, but I also believed it was a smart political move and would probably be well-received by the local rulers, as long as we respected their wishes and avoided offending their beliefs and sensitivities through unnecessary interference.

It was very satisfactory to find how cordially the Chiefs responded to Lord Dufferin's proposals, and extremely interesting to watch the steady improvement in their armies under the guidance of carefully selected British officers. Substantial results have been already obtained, valuable help having been afforded to the Chitral expedition by the transport trains organized by the Maharajas of Gwalior and Jaipur, and by the gallantry of the Imperial Service Troops belonging to His Highness the Maharaja of Kashmir at Hunza-Naga and during the siege and relief of Chitral.

It was quite satisfying to see how enthusiastically the Chiefs reacted to Lord Dufferin's proposals, and really interesting to observe the consistent improvement in their armies under the direction of carefully chosen British officers. Tangible results have already been achieved, with significant support provided to the Chitral expedition by the transport trains organized by the Maharajas of Gwalior and Jaipur, as well as the bravery of the Imperial Service Troops under His Highness the Maharaja of Kashmir at Hunza-Naga and during the siege and relief of Chitral.

Two minor expeditions took place this year: one against the Thibetans in retaliation for their having invaded the territory of our ally, the Raja of Sikim; the other to punish the Black Mountain tribes for the murder of two British officers. Both were a success from a military point of view, but in the Black Mountain the determination of the Punjab Government to limit the sphere of action of the troops, and to hurry out of the country, prevented our reaping any political advantage. We lost a grand opportunity for gaining control over this lawless and troublesome district; no survey was made, no roads opened out, the tribesmen were not made to feel our power, and, consequently, very soon another costly expedition had to be undertaken.

Two minor expeditions happened this year: one against the Tibetans in response to their invasion of our ally's territory, the Raja of Sikkim; the other to punish the Black Mountain tribes for the murder of two British officers. Both were successful from a military standpoint, but in the Black Mountain, the Punjab Government's decision to limit the troops' operations and quickly withdraw from the country meant we couldn't gain any political advantage. We missed a great chance to establish control over this unruly and troublesome area; no survey was conducted, no roads were built, the tribesmen weren't made to recognize our power, and as a result, another costly expedition had to be launched soon after.



THE MARQUESS OF LANSDOWNE, K.G., G.C.M.G., G.M.S.I., G.M.I.E., VICEROY OF INDIA.

THE MARQUESS OF LANSDOWNE, K.G., G.C.M.G., G.M.S.I., G.M.I.E.
VICEROY OF INDIA.


From
a photograph by Cowell, Simla.

THE MARQUESS OF LANSDOWNE, K.G., G.C.M.G., G.M.S.I., G.M.I.E., VICEROY OF INDIA.

THE MARQUESS OF LANSDOWNE, K.G., G.C.M.G., G.M.S.I., G.M.I.E.
Governor General of India.


From a photo by Cowell, Simla.



Marquis of Lansdowne becomes Viceroy In November, 1888, Lord Dufferin left India amidst a storm of regret from all classes of Her Majesty's subjects. He was succeeded by Lord Lansdowne, one of whose earliest communications to me [Page 525] rejoiced my heart, for in it His Excellency inquired whether anything could be done towards improving our relations with the frontier tribes. This augured well for the abandonment of the traditional, selfish, and, to my mind, short-sighted policy of keeping aloof, and I hoped that endeavours would at last be made to turn the tribesmen into friendly neighbours, to their advantage and ours, instead of being obliged to have recourse to useless blockades or constant and expensive expeditions for their punishment, or else to induce them to refrain from troubling us by the payment of a heavy blackmail.

Marquis of Lansdowne is Viceroy In November 1888, Lord Dufferin left India amid a wave of sadness from all segments of Her Majesty's subjects. He was replaced by Lord Lansdowne, one of whose first messages to me [Page 525] truly delighted me, as His Excellency asked if anything could be done to improve our relations with the frontier tribes. This suggested a promising shift away from the traditional, self-centered, and, in my opinion, shortsighted approach of remaining distant. I hoped that efforts would finally be made to turn the tribesmen into friendly neighbors, benefiting both them and us, rather than relying on ineffective blockades or ongoing, costly military campaigns for their punishment, or having to pay them off to prevent trouble.

After a visit to the frontier in the autumn to see how the defences were advancing, I attended a Cavalry Camp of Exercise at Delhi, and an Artillery Practice Camp at Gurgaon, and then went to Meerut to be present at the first meeting of the Bengal Presidency Rifle Association, which was most interesting and successful. We spent Christmas in camp—the first Christmas we had all been together for ten years. Our boy, having left Eton, came out in the early part of the year with a tutor, to be with us for eighteen months before entering Sandhurst.

After a trip to the border in the fall to check on the progress of the defenses, I went to a Cavalry Training Camp in Delhi and an Artillery Practice Camp in Gurgaon. Then I headed to Meerut for the first meeting of the Bengal Presidency Rifle Association, which was really interesting and a big success. We spent Christmas in camp—the first time we had all been together for ten years. Our son, having finished at Eton, joined us earlier in the year with a tutor, and he’ll stay with us for eighteen months before starting at Sandhurst.

1889 At the end of December I proceeded to Calcutta rather earlier than usual, to pay my respects to the new Viceroy, and in January of the following year, accompanied by my wife and daughter, I started off on a long tour to inspect the local regiments in Central India and Rajputana, and to ascertain what progress had been made in organizing the Imperial Service Troops in that part of India.

1889 At the end of December, I went to Calcutta a bit earlier than usual to visit the new Viceroy. In January of the following year, along with my wife and daughter, I set out on a lengthy tour to check on the local regiments in Central India and Rajputana, and to see how much progress had been made in organizing the Imperial Service Troops in that region of India.

Did space permit, I should like to tell my readers of the beauties of Udaipur and the magnificent hospitality accorded to us there, as well as at Bhopal, Jodhpur, Jaipur, and Ulwar, but, if I once began, it would be difficult to stop, and I feel I have already made an unconscionably heavy demand on the interest of the public in things Indian, and must soon cease my 'labour of love.' I must therefore confine myself to those subjects which I am desirous should be better understood in England than they generally are.

If I had the space, I would love to share with my readers the beauty of Udaipur and the incredible hospitality we received there, as well as in Bhopal, Jodhpur, Jaipur, and Ulwar. However, if I started, it would be hard to stop, and I feel I've already asked a lot from the public's interest in things Indian. So, I must limit myself to the topics that I wish were better understood in England than they usually are.

Upon seeing the troops of the Begum of Bhopal and the Maharana of Udaipur, I recommended that Their Highnesses should be invited to allow their share of Imperial defence to take the form of paying for the services of an increased number of officers with their respective local corps,5 for I did not think it would be possible to make any useful addition to our strength out of the material of which their small armies were composed. The men were relics of a past age, fit only for[Page 526] police purposes, and it would have been a waste of time and money to give them any special training. My recommendation, however, was not accepted, and neither of these States takes any part in the defence scheme.

Upon seeing the troops of the Begum of Bhopal and the Maharana of Udaipur, I suggested that Their Highnesses should be invited to contribute to Imperial defense by financing a larger number of officers for their respective local corps,5 because I didn’t think it would be feasible to enhance our strength with the composition of their small armies. The soldiers were remnants of a bygone era, suitable only for[Page 526] police duties, and investing time and resources in special training for them would have been pointless. However, my recommendation was not accepted, and neither of these States participates in the defense plan.

At Jodhpur, on the contrary, there was splendid material, and a most useful force was being organized by the Maharaja's brother, Lieutenant-Colonel Sir Pertap Sing, himself a Rajput, and of the bluest blood of India. The Cavalry were specially fine. The gallant Rajput horsemen of Jodhpur had always been famous for their chivalrous bravery, unswerving fidelity, and fearless self-devotion in their wars with the Mahrattas and the armies of the Mogul Emperors, and I felt, as the superbly mounted squadrons passed before me, that they had lost none of their characteristics, and that blood and breeding must tell, and would, if put to the test, achieve the same results now as of old. There could be but one opinion as to the value of the 'Sirdar Rissala,'6 so named after the Maharaja's son and heir, Sirdar Sing, a lad of only nine years old, who led the little army past the saluting flag mounted on a beautiful thorough-bred Arab.

At Jodhpur, on the other hand, there was impressive material, and a very effective force was being organized by the Maharaja's brother, Lieutenant-Colonel Sir Pertap Sing, who was himself a Rajput from one of India’s most prestigious lineages. The Cavalry was particularly outstanding. The brave Rajput horsemen of Jodhpur had always been renowned for their honorable bravery, unwavering loyalty, and fearless dedication in their battles against the Mahrattas and the armies of the Mughal Emperors. As the magnificently mounted troops passed before me, I felt that they had not lost any of their qualities, and that heritage and lineage would indeed show their strength, achieving the same successes now as in the past. There could only be one opinion regarding the worth of the 'Sirdar Rissala,' 6 named after the Maharaja's son and heir, Sirdar Sing, a boy of just nine years old, who led the small army past the saluting flag mounted on a stunning thoroughbred Arab.

The Jaipur troops were much on a par with those of Bhopal and Udaipur. I was glad, therefore, that in lieu of troops, the Maharaja had agreed to organize, as his contribution to the Imperial service, a transport corps of 1,000 fully-equipped animals.

The Jaipur troops were pretty much on the same level as those from Bhopal and Udaipur. So, I was glad that instead of sending troops, the Maharaja had agreed to set up a transport corps of 1,000 fully-equipped animals as his contribution to the Imperial service.

At Ulwar I found the 600 Cavalry and 1,000 Infantry (all Rajputs) well advanced in their drill and training; this was evidently owing to the personal interest taken in them by the Maharaja, who seldom allowed a day to pass without visiting the parade grounds.

At Ulwar, I found the 600 cavalry and 1,000 infantry (all Rajputs) well-progressed in their drills and training. This was clearly due to the personal interest of the Maharaja, who rarely let a day go by without visiting the parade grounds.

Rajputana and Kashmir By the end of March I had finished my tour in Central India and Rajputana, and as the heat was every day becoming more intense, I was not sorry to turn my steps northwards towards Kashmir, the army of which State still remained to be inspected, and the measures most suitable for its re-organization determined upon.

Rajputana and Kashmir By the end of March, I had wrapped up my trip in Central India and Rajputana, and since the heat was getting more intense every day, I was glad to head north towards Kashmir. I still needed to inspect the army of that state and figure out the best measures for its reorganization.

Our whole family party re-assembled at Murree early in April, and we all went into the 'Happy Valley' together, where between business and pleasure we spent a most delightful six weeks. The Maharaja personally superintended the arrangements for our comfort. Our travelling was made easy—indeed luxurious—and everything that the greatest care and forethought and the most lavish hospitality could accomplish to make our visit happy was done by the Maharaja and by the popular Resident, Colonel Nisbet.

Our entire family gathering came together in Murree at the beginning of April, and we all headed into the 'Happy Valley' as a group, where, balancing work and leisure, we had an incredibly enjoyable six weeks. The Maharaja personally oversaw the arrangements for our comfort. Our journey was made easy—actually luxurious—and everything that the highest level of care, planning, and generous hospitality could do to ensure our visit was pleasant was taken care of by the Maharaja and the well-liked Resident, Colonel Nisbet.

The Kashmir army was much larger than any of those belonging to the Native States I had lately visited; it consisted of 18,000 men and 66 guns—more than was needed, even with the Gilgit frontier to guard. Some of the regiments were composed of excellent material, chiefly[Page 527] Dogras; but as the cost of such a force was a heavy drain upon the State, and as many of the men were old and decrepit, I recommended that the Maharaja should be invited to get rid of all who were physically unfit, and to reduce his army to a total of 10,000 thoroughly reliable men and 30 guns. I knew this would be a very difficult, and perhaps distasteful, task for the Commander-in-Chief (who was also the Maharaja's brother), Raja Ram Sing, to perform, so I recommended that a British officer should be appointed military adviser to the Kashmir Government, under whose supervision the work of reformation should be carried out.

The Kashmir army was much larger than any I had seen in the Native States I had recently visited; it had 18,000 men and 66 guns—more than necessary, even with the need to guard the Gilgit frontier. Some of the regiments had excellent soldiers, mainly Dogras; however, since maintaining such a force was a significant burden on the State, and many of the soldiers were old and unfit, I suggested that the Maharaja should be encouraged to dismiss all those who were physically unfit and reduce the army to a total of 10,000 reliable men and 30 guns. I realized this would be a very challenging and possibly undesirable task for the Commander-in-Chief (who was also the Maharaja's brother), Raja Ram Sing, so I proposed that a British officer be appointed as a military advisor to the Kashmir Government, overseeing the necessary reforms.

At that time we had none of our own troops in the neighbourhood of Gilgit, and as I thought it advisable, in case of disturbance, that the Kashmir troops should be speedily put into such a state of efficiency as would enable us to depend upon them to hold the passes until help could arrive from India, I urged that the military adviser should be given three British officers to assist him in carrying out his difficult and troublesome duty; and at the same time I pointed out that it was absolutely essential to construct at an early date a serviceable road between Kashmir and Gilgit, as the sole approach to that strategic position was not only difficult, but very dangerous.

At that time, we didn’t have any of our own troops near Gilgit. I thought it would be wise, in case of any trouble, to quickly get the Kashmir troops into a state of readiness so we could rely on them to hold the passes until help could come from India. I insisted that the military adviser should be given three British officers to help him manage his challenging and demanding responsibilities. I also pointed out that it was crucial to build a usable road between Kashmir and Gilgit as soon as possible, since the only way to that strategic location was not only difficult but also very dangerous.

All these proposals commended themselves to, and were acted upon by, the Viceroy.

All these proposals were approved by the Viceroy and put into action.

Lieutenant-Colonel Neville Chamberlain—a persona grata to the Kashmir authorities—was appointed Military Secretary to the Kashmir State, and by his ability, tact, and happy way of dealing with Natives, quickly overcame all obstacles. The Maharaja and his two brothers, Rajas Ram Sing and Amar Sing, entered heartily into the scheme; the army was remodelled and rendered fit for service; and an excellent road was made to Gilgit.

Lieutenant-Colonel Neville Chamberlain—a respected figure to the Kashmir authorities—was appointed Military Secretary to the Kashmir State. Through his skill, diplomacy, and positive interaction with the locals, he quickly navigated all challenges. The Maharaja and his two brothers, Rajas Ram Sing and Amar Sing, enthusiastically embraced the initiative; the army was reorganized and made ready for service; and a great road was built to Gilgit.

Musketry instruction During the summer of 1889 I was able to introduce several much needed reforms in the annual course of musketry for the Native Army. The necessity for these reforms had not been overlooked by my distinguished predecessors, nor by the able officers who served under them in the Musketry Department, but it had not been possible to do much with a system which dated from a period when fire discipline was not thought of, and when the whole object of the course was to make soldiers individually good shots. After the Delhi Camp of Exercise in 1885-86, when the want of fire control was almost the only point unfavourably criticized by the foreign officers, the Army in India made a great advance in this important branch of musketry training; nevertheless, I felt that further progress was possible, and that the course of instruction was not altogether as practical as it might be. I therefore gave over the work of improvement in this respect to an enthusiast in the matter of rifle-shooting and an officer of exceptional energy and intelligence, Lieutenant-Colonel Ian Hamilton, and directed [Page 528] him, as Assistant Adjutant-General of Musketry, to arrange a course of instruction, in which the conditions should resemble as nearly as possible those of field service, and in which fire discipline should be developed to the utmost extent. He was most successful in carrying out my wishes, and the results from the first year's trial of the new system were infinitely better than even I had anticipated.

Firearms training During the summer of 1889, I was able to implement several much-needed reforms in the annual musketry course for the Native Army. My distinguished predecessors and the capable officers who worked with them in the Musketry Department acknowledged the need for these reforms, but it hadn't been feasible to make significant changes to a system rooted in a time when fire discipline wasn’t considered, and when the main goal of the course was to make soldiers proficient shooters. After the Delhi Camp of Exercise in 1885-86, where the lack of fire control was almost the only aspect criticized by foreign officers, the Army in India made significant strides in this important area of musketry training; however, I believed that further improvement was possible and that the instruction could be more practical. I entrusted the task of enhancing this aspect to an avid rifle-shooter and an exceptionally energetic and intelligent officer, Lieutenant-Colonel Ian Hamilton, and instructed [Page 528] him, as Assistant Adjutant-General of Musketry, to set up a course of instruction that would closely mimic field service conditions and fully develop fire discipline. He was highly successful in executing my vision, and the outcomes from the first year's trial of the new system were far better than I had even expected.

Simultaneously with the improvement in musketry, a great advance was made in gunnery. Artillery, like Infantry officers, had failed to realize the value of the new weapon, and it required the teaching of a man who himself thoroughly believed in and understood the breech-loading gun to arouse Artillerymen to a sense of the tremendous power placed in their hands, and to the importance of devoting much more care and attention to practice than had hitherto been thought necessary. Such a man was Major-General Nairne, and I was happily able to induce the Government to revive in him the appointment of Inspector-General of Artillery.

At the same time that musketry improved, there were significant advancements in gunnery. Artillery officers, like their Infantry counterparts, failed to see the potential of the new weapon. It took someone who truly believed in and understood the breech-loading gun to inspire Artillerymen to recognize the incredible power they had and to emphasize the need for much more care and attention in practice than was previously considered necessary. That person was Major-General Nairne, and I was fortunate enough to persuade the Government to restore his position as Inspector-General of Artillery.

Artillery and Cavalry Training Under the unwearying supervision of this officer, there was quite as remarkable an improvement in Artillery shooting as Colonel Hamilton had effected in musketry. Practice camps were annually formed at convenient localities, and all ranks began to take as much pride in belonging to the 'best shooting battery' as they had hitherto taken in belonging to the 'smartest,' the 'best-horsed,' or the 'best-turned-out' battery. I impressed upon officers and men that the two things were quite compatible; that, according to my experience, the smartest and best turned-out men made the best soldiers; and while I urged every detail being most carefully attended to which could enable them to become proficient gunners and take their proper place on a field of battle, I expressed my earnest hope that the Royal Artillery would always maintain its hitherto high reputation for turn-out and smartness. The improvement in the Cavalry was equally apparent. For this arm of the service also the Government consented to an Inspector-General being appointed, and I was fortunate enough to be able to secure for the post the services of Major-General Luck, an officer as eminently fitted for this position as was General Nairne for his.

Artillery and Cavalry Training Under the tireless supervision of this officer, there was just as significant an improvement in artillery shooting as Colonel Hamilton had achieved in musketry. Annual practice camps were set up at convenient locations, and all personnel began to take just as much pride in being part of the 'best shooting battery' as they had previously taken in being part of the 'smartest,' 'best-horsed,' or 'best-turned-out' battery. I stressed to both officers and troops that these two aspects were fully compatible; from my experience, the smartest and best-presented personnel made the best soldiers. While I encouraged meticulous attention to every detail that would help them become skilled gunners and take their rightful place on the battlefield, I sincerely hoped that the Royal Artillery would always uphold its well-deserved reputation for presentation and smartness. The improvement in the Cavalry was equally noticeable. For this branch of the service, the government also agreed to appoint an Inspector-General, and I was fortunate enough to secure the services of Major-General Luck for this position, an officer as well-suited for the role as General Nairne was for his.

Just at first the British officers belonging to Native Cavalry were apprehensive that their sowars would be turned into dragoons, but they soon found that there was no intention of changing any of their traditional characteristics, and that the only object of giving them an Inspector-General was to make them even better in their own way than they had been before, the finest Irregular Cavalry in the world, as I have not the slightest doubt they will always prove themselves to be. Towards the end of the Simla season of 1889, Lord Lansdowne, to my great satisfaction, announced his intention of visiting the frontier, and asked me to accompany him.

At first, the British officers in the Native Cavalry worried that their sowars would be turned into dragoons. However, they quickly realized that there was no plan to change any of their traditional traits. The only goal of assigning them an Inspector-General was to enhance their existing strengths, ensuring they remained the finest Irregular Cavalry in the world, as I’m completely confident they will always demonstrate. Towards the end of the Simla season in 1889, Lord Lansdowne, to my great pleasure, announced that he intended to visit the frontier and asked me to join him.

We rode through the Khyber and Gomal Passes, visited Peshawar,[Page 529] Kohat, Bannu, Dera Ismail Khan, and Quetta, looked into the Kohjak tunnel, and attended some interesting manœuvres, carried out with a view of testing, in as practical a manner as possible, the defensive power of the recently-finished Takatu-Mashalik entrenchment. The principal works were fired upon by Artillery and Infantry, and, notwithstanding the excellent practice made, infinitesimal damage was done, which proved the suitability of the particular design adopted for the defences.

We traveled through the Khyber and Gomal Passes, visited Peshawar,[Page 529] Kohat, Bannu, Dera Ismail Khan, and Quetta, checked out the Kohjak tunnel, and attended some interesting drills aimed at practically testing the defensive strength of the newly completed Takatu-Mashalik entrenchment. The main structures were targeted by Artillery and Infantry, and despite the impressive accuracy, only minimal damage was done, which confirmed the effectiveness of the design used for the defenses.

Lord Lansdowne expressed himself greatly interested, and much impressed by all he saw of the frontier; and he was confirmed in his opinion as to the desirability of establishing British influence amongst the border tribes. With this object in view, His Excellency authorized Sir Robert Sandeman (the Governor-General's Agent at Quetta) to establish a series of police posts in the Gomal Pass, and encourage intercourse between the people of the Zhob district and ourselves.

Lord Lansdowne said he was very interested and impressed by everything he observed at the frontier. He became convinced that establishing British influence among the border tribes was important. With that goal in mind, His Excellency gave permission to Sir Robert Sandeman (the Governor-General's Agent in Quetta) to set up a series of police posts in the Gomal Pass and promote interaction between the people of the Zhob district and us.

It was high time that something should be done in this direction, for the Amir's attitude towards us was becoming day by day more unaccountably antagonistic. He was gradually encroaching on territory and occupying places altogether outside the limits of Afghan control; and every movement of ours—made quite as much in His Highness's interest as in our own—for strengthening the frontier and improving the communications, evidently aroused in him distrust and suspicion as to our motives.

It was long overdue for action to be taken in this regard, as the Amir's attitude toward us was becoming more inexplicably hostile with each passing day. He was increasingly invading territory and taking over areas well beyond Afghan control. Every step we took—beneficial both to His Highness and to us—aimed at strengthening the border and enhancing communication, clearly sparked distrust and suspicion about our intentions in him.






CHAPTER LXVIII.

1890

New Year's Day, 1890, found me in Calcutta, where I went to meet Prince Albert Victor on his arrival in India. On my way thither I received a letter from Mr. Edward Stanhope, Secretary of State for War, telling me that he had heard from Lord Cross, the Secretary of State for India, that there was a proposal to ask me to retain my appointment of Commander-in-Chief in India for some time after the expiration of the usual term of office; but that, while such an arrangement would have his hearty approval, he thought the question should be considered from another point of view, and that it would be extremely agreeable to himself, and he felt to the Duke of Cambridge also, if he could secure me for the post of Adjutant-General in succession to Lord Wolseley. Mr. Stanhope went on to say he would like to know whether I would be willing to accept the appointment, or whatever position Lord Wolseley's successor would fill, should the report of Lord Hartington's Commission cause a change to be made in the staff at the Horse Guards.

New Year's Day, 1890, found me in Calcutta, where I went to meet Prince Albert Victor on his arrival in India. On my way there, I received a letter from Mr. Edward Stanhope, Secretary of State for War, telling me that he had heard from Lord Cross, the Secretary of State for India, that there was a proposal to ask me to keep my position as Commander-in-Chief in India for a while after the usual term ended; however, while he fully supported this arrangement, he believed the situation should be viewed from another angle. He mentioned that it would be very pleasing to him, and he thought to the Duke of Cambridge as well, if he could secure me for the position of Adjutant-General after Lord Wolseley. Mr. Stanhope went on to ask if I would be open to accepting this appointment or whatever role Lord Wolseley's successor would take, should the report from Lord Hartington's Commission lead to changes in the staff at the Horse Guards.

I was pleased, though somewhat surprised, at this communication, and I replied to the Right Honourable gentleman that I would gladly[Page 530] accept the offer, and that I could arrange to join on the 1st October, when the appointment would become vacant, but that, as Lord Lansdowne had expressed a wish that I should remain in India over the next cold season, I hoped, if it were possible, some arrangement might be made to admit of my doing so. The idea of employment in England, now that I allowed myself to dwell upon it, was very attractive, for dearly as I loved my Indian command, and bitterly as I knew I should grieve at leaving the country, the peoples, and the grand army, which were all sources of such intense interest to me, I felt that the evil day at longest could only be postponed for a few years, and that there is a limit to the time that even the strongest European can with impunity live in an eastern climate, while I was glad to think I should still be in a position to work for my country and for the benefit of the army.

I was pleased, though a bit surprised, to receive this message, and I told the Right Honourable gentleman that I would happily[Page 530] accept the offer and could join on October 1st, when the position would become available. However, since Lord Lansdowne had expressed a desire for me to stay in India during the upcoming cold season, I hoped there could be some arrangement to allow me to do that. The thought of working in England, now that I allowed myself to consider it, was very appealing. Despite my deep love for my command in India and the painful grief I knew I would feel leaving this land, its people, and the amazing army—all of which were sources of great interest for me—I realized that I could only delay this inevitable goodbye for a few more years. There’s a limit to how long even the strongest European can live in an eastern climate without issues. Still, I was happy to think I could continue to serve my country and benefit the army.

From Calcutta I travelled north to Muridki, where a large force of Horse Artillery and Cavalry was assembled for practice, and where we had a standing camp, at which Prince Albert Victor did us the honour of being our guest for the final manœuvres. I think His Royal Highness enjoyed the novelty of camp life, and was greatly attracted by the picturesque and soldier-like appearance of the Native troops. The Native officers were very proud at being presented to the grandson of their Empress, and at His Royal Highness being appointed Honorary Colonel of the 1st Punjab Cavalry.

From Calcutta, I traveled north to Muridki, where a large group of Horse Artillery and Cavalry was gathered for practice, and where we had a permanent camp. Prince Albert Victor honored us by being our guest for the final maneuvers. I think His Royal Highness enjoyed the novelty of camp life and was really drawn to the striking and soldierly look of the Native troops. The Native officers were very proud to be introduced to the grandson of their Empress and thrilled that His Royal Highness was appointed Honorary Colonel of the 1st Punjab Cavalry.

Extension of Command Towards the end of April I returned to Simla for what I thought was to be our last season in that place; and shortly after I got up there, a telegram from Mr. Stanhope informed me that my appointment had been accepted by the Cabinet, and that my presence in England was strongly desired in the autumn. It was therefore with very great surprise that I received a second telegram three weeks later from the Secretary of State, telling me that, as it was then found to be impossible to choose my successor, and as the exigencies of the public service urgently required my presence in India, the Cabinet, with the approval of Her Majesty and the concurrence of the Duke of Cambridge, had decided to ask me to retain my command for two more years.

Command Extension Towards the end of April, I returned to Simla, thinking it would be our last season there. Shortly after I arrived, I received a telegram from Mr. Stanhope saying that the Cabinet had accepted my appointment and that my presence in England was strongly requested in the autumn. So I was very surprised when, three weeks later, I got a second telegram from the Secretary of State. It informed me that since it was impossible to find my successor and the needs of public service urgently required my presence in India, the Cabinet, with Her Majesty's approval and the agreement of the Duke of Cambridge, had decided to ask me to keep my command for two more years.

I felt it my duty to obey the wishes of the Queen, Her Majesty's Government, and the Commander-in-Chief; but I fully realized that in doing so I was forfeiting my chance of employment in England, and that a long and irksome term of enforced idleness would in all probability follow on my return home, and I did not attempt to conceal from Mr. Stanhope that I was disappointed.

I felt it was my responsibility to follow the wishes of the Queen, the government, and the Commander-in-Chief; however, I fully understood that by doing this I was giving up my chances of getting a job in England, and that a long and frustrating period of forced inactivity would most likely come after I returned home. I didn't try to hide from Mr. Stanhope that I was disappointed.



FIELD-MARSHAL LORD ROBERTS ON HIS ARAB CHARGER 'VONOLEL.'

FIELD-MARSHAL LORD ROBERTS ON HIS ARAB CHARGER 'VONOLEL.'

From an oil-painting by Charles Furze.

FIELD-MARSHAL LORD ROBERTS ON HIS ARAB CHARGER 'VONOLEL.'

FIELD-MARSHAL LORD ROBERTS ON HIS ARAB CHARGER 'VONOLEL.'

From an oil painting by Charles Furze.



1891 At the latter end of this year, and in the early part of 1891, it was found necessary to undertake three small expeditions: one to Zhob, under the leadership of Sir George White, for the protection of our newly-acquired subjects in that valley; one on the Kohat border,[Page 531] commanded by Sir William Lockhart, to punish the people of the Miranzai valley for repeated acts of hostility; and the third, under Major-General Elles,1 against the Black Mountain tribes, who, quite unsubdued by the fruitless expedition of 1888, had given trouble almost immediately afterwards. All these were as completely successful in their political results as in their military conduct. The columns were not withdrawn until the tribesmen had become convinced that they were powerless to sustain a hostile attitude towards us, and that it was their interest, as it was our wish, that they should henceforth be on amicable terms with us.

1891 Towards the end of this year and in early 1891, it became necessary to carry out three small expeditions: one to Zhob, led by Sir George White, to protect our newly-acquired subjects in that valley; another on the Kohat border,[Page 531] commanded by Sir William Lockhart, to punish the people of the Miranzai valley for repeated acts of aggression; and the third, led by Major-General Elles,1 against the Black Mountain tribes, who, having remained unrestrained by the unsuccessful expedition of 1888, caused trouble almost immediately afterward. All these efforts were just as successful in their political outcomes as they were in their military execution. The forces were not withdrawn until the tribesmen were convinced that they couldn't maintain a hostile stance against us and that it was in their best interest, as well as ours, to be on friendly terms moving forward.

While a considerable number of troops were thus employed, a fourth expedition had to be hurriedly equipped and despatched in quite the opposite direction to punish the Raja of Manipur, a petty State on the confines of Assam, for the treacherous murder of Mr. Quinton, the Chief Commissioner of Assam, and four other British officers.

While a lot of troops were busy with that, a fourth expedition had to be quickly set up and sent out in the opposite direction to punish the Raja of Manipur, a small state on the edge of Assam, for the treacherous murder of Mr. Quinton, the Chief Commissioner of Assam, and four other British officers.

Notwithstanding its inaccessibility, two columns, one from Burma, the other from Cachar, quickly and simultaneously reached Manipur, our countrymen were avenged, and the administration of the State was taken over for a time by the Government of India.2

Notwithstanding its inaccessibility, two columns, one from Burma and the other from Cachar, quickly and simultaneously reached Manipur. Our fellow countrymen were avenged, and the administration of the State was temporarily taken over by the Government of India.2

Towards the end of January the Cesarewitch came to Calcutta, where I had the honour of being introduced to our august visitor, who expressed himself as pleased with what he had seen of the country and the arrangements made for His Imperial Highness's somewhat hurried journey through India.

Towards the end of January, the Cesarewitch arrived in Calcutta, where I had the honor of being introduced to our esteemed visitor, who said he was pleased with what he had seen of the country and the arrangements made for His Imperial Highness's somewhat rushed journey through India.

In April my military colleague in the Viceroy's Council for five years, and my personal friend, General Sir George Chesney, left India, to my great regret. We had worked together most harmoniously, and, as he wrote in his farewell letter, there was scarcely a point in regard to the Army in India about which he and I did not agree.

In April, my military colleague in the Viceroy's Council for five years and my personal friend, General Sir George Chesney, left India, which I greatly regretted. We had worked together very harmoniously, and as he mentioned in his farewell letter, there was hardly an issue regarding the Army in India that we didn’t see eye to eye on.

Sir George was succeeded by Lieutenant-General Brackenbury, who had been Director of Military Intelligence at the War Office. I was relieved to find that, although in some particulars my new coadjutor's views differed from mine, we were in accord upon all essential points, particularly as to the value of the Indian Army and the necessity for its being maintained in a state of preparedness for war.

Sir George was succeeded by Lieutenant-General Brackenbury, who had been the Director of Military Intelligence at the War Office. I was relieved to find that, although in some respects my new colleague's views differed from mine, we agreed on all the essential points, especially regarding the importance of the Indian Army and the need to keep it ready for war.

Efficiency of the Native Army From the time I became Commander-in-Chief in Madras until I left India the question of how to render the army in that country as perfect a fighting machine as it was possible to make it, was the one which caused me the most anxious thought, and to its solution my most earnest efforts had been at all times directed.

Effectiveness of the Native Army From the time I became Commander-in-Chief in Madras until I left India, the question of how to make the army in that country as effective a fighting force as possible was what occupied my mind the most, and I dedicated my most serious efforts to finding its solution at all times.

The first step to be taken towards this end was, it seemed to me, to substitute men of the more warlike and hardy races for the Hindustani[Page 532] sepoys of Bengal, the Tamils and Telagus of Madras, and the so-called Mahrattas of Bombay; but I found it difficult to get my views accepted, because of the theory which prevailed that it was necessary to maintain an equilibrium between the armies of the three Presidencies, and because of the ignorance that was only too universal with respect to the characteristics of the different races, which encouraged the erroneous belief that one Native was as good as another for purposes of war.

The first step I thought should be taken towards this goal was to replace the Hindustani sepoys from Bengal, the Tamils and Telagus from Madras, and the so-called Mahrattas from Bombay with soldiers from more warlike and resilient races. However, I found it hard to get my ideas accepted because of the prevailing theory that we needed to keep a balance between the armies of the three Presidencies. There was also a widespread ignorance about the characteristics of the different races, which led to the mistaken belief that one Native was just as good as another for military purposes.

In former days, when the Native Army in India was so much stronger in point of numbers than the British Army, and there existed no means of rapid communication, it was only prudent to guard against a predominance of soldiers of any one creed or nationality; but with British troops nearly doubled and the Native Army reduced by more than one-third, with all the forts and arsenals protected, and nearly the whole of the Artillery manned by British soldiers, with railway and telegraph communication from one end of India to the other, with the risk of internal trouble greatly diminished, and the possibility of external complications becoming daily more apparent, circumstances and our requirements were completely altered, and it had become essential to have in the ranks of our Native Army men who might confidently be trusted to take their share of fighting against a European foe.

In the past, when the Native Army in India outnumbered the British Army significantly and there were no fast communication methods, it was wise to prevent any one group of soldiers from being dominant in numbers or nationality. However, with the British troops nearly doubled and the Native Army reduced by over a third, all forts and arsenals secured, and most of the artillery staffed by British soldiers, along with rail and telegraph lines connecting all of India, the risk of internal unrest significantly decreased. At the same time, the likelihood of external conflicts became increasingly clear. These changes meant that our situation and needs were completely transformed, making it essential to include men in our Native Army who could be trusted to actively fight against a European adversary.

In the British Army the superiority of one regiment over another is mainly a matter of training; the same courage and military instinct are inherent in English, Scotch, and Irish alike, but no comparison can be made between the martial value of a regiment recruited amongst the Gurkhas of Nepal or the warlike races of northern India, and of one recruited from the effeminate peoples of the south.

In the British Army, the advantage of one regiment over another primarily comes down to training; the same bravery and military instincts are present in the English, Scottish, and Irish alike, but you can't compare the combat effectiveness of a regiment made up of Gurkhas from Nepal or the warrior tribes of northern India to one made up of the softer populations from the south.

How little this was understood, even by those who had spent a great part of their service in India, was a marvel to me; but, then, I had had peculiar opportunities of judging of the relative fighting qualities of Natives, and I was in despair at not being able to get people to see the matter with my eyes, for I knew that nothing was more sure to lead to disaster than to imagine that the whole Indian Army, as it was then constituted, could be relied on in time of war.

How little this was understood, even by those who had spent a lot of their time in India, shocked me; but then, I had unique opportunities to assess the actual fighting abilities of the locals, and I was frustrated that I couldn't get others to see things the way I did. I knew that nothing was more certain to lead to disaster than believing that the entire Indian Army, as it was at that time, could be depended on in a war.

General Chesney fortunately shared my opinions, and as Lords Dufferin and Lansdowne trusted us, we were able to do a great deal towards increasing the efficiency of the Native Army and improving the status and prospects of the Native soldier. Several companies and regiments composed of doubtful material were disbanded, and men of well-known fighting castes entertained instead. Class regiments were formed, as being more congenial to the men and more conducive to esprit de corps; recruiting was made the business of carefully selected officers who understood Native character, and whose duty it was to become acquainted with the various tribes inhabiting the districts[Page 533] from which the recruits for their own regiments were drawn; and special arrangements were made with the Nepalese Government by which a sufficient number of the best class of men could be obtained for our thirteen Gurkha regiments.

General Chesney thankfully agreed with me, and since Lords Dufferin and Lansdowne had faith in us, we were able to significantly improve the effectiveness of the Native Army and enhance the status and future of the Native soldier. Several companies and regiments made up of questionable personnel were disbanded, and men from reputable fighting backgrounds were recruited instead. Class regiments were formed, as they were more fitting for the men and encouraged a stronger sense of esprit de corps; recruitment became the responsibility of carefully chosen officers who understood Native culture and were tasked with getting to know the various tribes in the regions[Page 533] from which their regiments' recruits came; and special agreements were made with the Nepalese Government to ensure we could obtain enough of the highest quality men for our thirteen Gurkha regiments.

Concessions to the Native Army The pay of Cavalry soldiers was improved, and it was pointed out to the Government that an increase to the Infantry soldiers' pay could not be long deferred;3 the issue of good-conduct pay was accelerated; jagirs,4 were sanctioned annually for a limited number of specially distinguished Native officers; full pay was authorized for recruits from date of enlistment instead of from the date of joining their regiments; field batta,5 was sanctioned whenever troops should be employed beyond sea or on service; pensions were granted after a shorter period of service than heretofore; medals for meritorious service and good conduct were given in commemoration of Her Majesty's Jubilee; bronze war medals were sanctioned for all authorized Government followers; a reserve, which it was arranged should undergo an annual course of training, was formed for the Artillery and Infantry; and a system of linked battalions was organized, three battalions being grouped together, and the men being interchangeable during war-time.

Concessions to the Indigenous Army The pay for Cavalry soldiers was improved, and the Government was reminded that an increase to the pay for Infantry soldiers couldn't be delayed much longer; the issue of good-conduct pay was expedited; jagirs,4 were approved annually for a limited number of especially distinguished Native officers; full pay was granted for recruits starting from their enlistment date instead of when they joined their regiments; field batta,5 was authorized whenever troops were deployed overseas or on active service; pensions were granted after a shorter service period than before; medals for outstanding service and good conduct were awarded in celebration of Her Majesty's Jubilee; bronze war medals were approved for all authorized Government followers; a reserve was established that would undergo annual training for the Artillery and Infantry; and a system of linked battalions was created, grouping three battalions together, allowing for interchangeable personnel during wartime.

While the tendency of these alterations and concessions was to make all ranks happy and contented, their training was carefully attended to, and, as I have before mentioned, musketry particularly reached a very high standard.

While these changes and compromises aimed to make everyone at all levels happy and satisfied, their training was closely monitored, and, as I mentioned earlier, marksmanship especially reached an impressive standard.

Officering of the Native Army The one thing left undone, and which I should like to have been able to accomplish before leaving India, was to induce the Government to arrange for more British officers to be given to the Native regiments in time of war. Nine to a Cavalry and eight to an Infantry corps may be sufficient in time of peace, but that number is quite too small to stand the strain of war. Indian soldiers, like soldiers of every nationality, require to be led; and history and experience teach us that eastern races (fortunately for us), however brave and accustomed to war, do not possess the qualities that go to make leaders of men, and that Native officers in this respect can never take the place of British officers. I have known many Natives whose gallantry and devotion could not be surpassed, but I have never known one who would not have looked to the youngest British officer for support in time of difficulty and danger. It is therefore most unwise to allow Native regiments to enter upon a war with so much smaller a proportion of British officers than is considered necessary for[Page 534] European regiments. I have no doubt whatever of the fighting powers of our best Indian troops; I have a thorough belief in, and admiration for, Gurkhas, Sikhs, Dogras, Rajputs, Jats, and selected Mahomedans; I thoroughly appreciate their soldierly qualities; brigaded with British troops, I would be proud to lead them against any European enemy; but we cannot expect them to do with less leading than our own soldiers require, and it is, I maintain, trying them too highly to send them into action with the present establishment of British officers.6

Leadership of the Native Army The one thing I wished I could have done before leaving India was to persuade the Government to provide more British officers to the Native regiments during wartime. Nine for a Cavalry and eight for an Infantry corps might be enough in peacetime, but that's far too few to handle the pressures of war. Indian soldiers, like soldiers from any nationality, need leadership; and history and experience show us that, thankfully for us, Eastern races, no matter how brave and experienced they are with combat, lack the qualities that make great leaders, meaning Native officers can never fully replace British officers in this regard. I’ve known many Natives whose courage and dedication were unmatched, but I've never met one who wouldn’t look to the youngest British officer for support in tough and dangerous situations. Therefore, it’s very unwise to let Native regiments go into war with such a smaller proportion of British officers compared to what’s deemed necessary for [Page 534] European regiments. I have complete confidence in the fighting ability of our best Indian troops; I thoroughly believe in and admire the Gurkhas, Sikhs, Dogras, Rajputs, Jats, and select Mahomedans; I truly appreciate their military qualities. When brigaded with British troops, I would be proud to lead them against any European adversary; but we can’t expect them to manage with less guidance than our own soldiers need, and I believe it’s unreasonable to send them into action with the current number of British officers.

In the late autumn of 1891 our latest acquisition, the Zhob Valley, was included in my frontier tour, which I had the pleasure of making, for the greater part of the way, in the company of General Brackenbury. He was prevented from getting as far as Quetta by an accident which laid him up for some time, but not, as he told me, before he had seen enough of the frontier to satisfy him that the tribes were a factor in our system of defence which could not be ignored, and that I had not exaggerated the importance of having them on our side.

In the late autumn of 1891, our newest acquisition, the Zhob Valley, was part of my tour of the frontier, which I was fortunate to take mostly with General Brackenbury. An accident kept him from reaching Quetta for a while, but, as he mentioned to me, he had seen enough of the frontier to confirm that the tribes were a crucial part of our defense system that we couldn’t overlook, and that I hadn’t overstated the importance of having them on our side.

The Hunza-Naga Campaign During this winter the brilliant little Hunza-Naga campaign took place, which has been so graphically described in Mr. Knight's 'Where [Page 535] Three Empires Meet.' It was brought about by Russia's intrigues with the Rulers of the petty States on the northern boundary of Kashmir; and our attention was first roused to the necessity for action by two British officers, who were journeying to India by way of the Pamirs and Gilgit, being forced by Russian soldiers to leave what the leader of the party called 'newly-acquired Russian territory'7—territory to which Russia had not the shadow of a claim.

The Hunza-Naga Campaign During this winter, the remarkable Hunza-Naga campaign unfolded, which has been vividly described in Mr. Knight's 'Where [Page 535] Three Empires Meet.' It was sparked by Russia's plots with the rulers of the small states along the northern border of Kashmir; our awareness of the need for action was first raised by two British officers traveling to India through the Pamirs and Gilgit, who were forced by Russian soldiers to leave what the leader of the group referred to as 'newly-acquired Russian territory'7—territory to which Russia had no legitimate claim.

In addition to this unjustifiable treatment of Captain Younghusband and Lieutenant Davison, Colonel Yanoff crossed the Hindu Kush with his Cossacks by the Korabhut Pass, and, after reconnoitring the country on the borders of Kashmir, re-crossed the range by the Baroghil Pass. As this was a distinct breach of the promises made by the Russian Government, and an infringement of the boundary line as agreed to between England and Russia in 1873, it was necessary to take steps to prevent any recurrence of such interference, and a small force was accordingly sent against the Chief of Hunza, who had openly declared himself in favour of Russia. He made a desperate stand, but was eventually driven from his almost inaccessible position by the determined gallantry of our Indian troops, assisted by a Contingent from Kashmir. Three Victoria Crosses were given for this business, and many more were earned, but of necessity there must be a limit to the disposal of decorations; and in an affair of this kind, in which all proved themselves heroes, each individual must have felt himself honoured by the small force being awarded such a large number of the coveted reward, in proportion to its size.

In addition to the unfair treatment of Captain Younghusband and Lieutenant Davison, Colonel Yanoff crossed the Hindu Kush with his Cossacks via the Korabhut Pass. After scouting the area near the Kashmir border, he re-crossed the range using the Baroghil Pass. This was a clear violation of the promises made by the Russian Government and a breach of the border agreement established between England and Russia in 1873. Therefore, it was essential to take action to prevent any further interference, and a small force was sent against the Chief of Hunza, who had openly sided with Russia. He put up a fierce resistance but was eventually driven from his nearly inaccessible position by the brave determination of our Indian troops, with assistance from a Contingent from Kashmir. Three Victoria Crosses were awarded for this operation, and many more were earned, but there had to be a limit on how many decorations could be given out. In an event like this, where everyone showed great bravery, each individual must have felt honored that such a small force received a significant number of the coveted awards relative to its size.

We reaped the benefit of having taken this district under our own control when Chitral required to be relieved, and the Hunza-Naga people afforded Colonel Kelly such valuable help.

We benefited from taking control of this district when Chitral needed assistance, and the Hunza-Naga people provided Colonel Kelly with invaluable support.

1892 On the 1st January, 1892, I received an intimation that Her Majesty had been graciously pleased to bestow a peerage upon me, and the same day the Secretary of State for India offered me a further extension of my appointment as Commander-in-Chief—an offer I would gladly have accepted, as I knew it had been made with the concurrence of the Viceroy, if I could have taken even a few months' leave to England. But during a quarter of a century I had only been able to spend eighteen months out of India, and I felt the need of change of climate and a little rest after so many years of continued hard work. Under the existing regulations a Commander-in-Chief could have no leave. Lord Cross had tried to remedy this hard rule by bringing in the 'Officers' Leave Bill'; but as he informed Lord Lansdowne it was impossible to get it through the House of Commons that session, I was obliged very reluctantly to beg to be allowed to resign my command in[Page 536] the spring of 1893.

1892 On January 1, 1892, I received notice that Her Majesty had kindly decided to grant me a peerage. On the same day, the Secretary of State for India proposed an extension of my appointment as Commander-in-Chief—an offer I would have happily accepted, since I knew it had been made with the Viceroy's agreement, if only I could take even a few months off to go to England. However, in a quarter of a century, I had only been able to spend eighteen months outside of India, and I felt the need for a change of climate and a bit of rest after so many years of constant hard work. According to the current regulations, a Commander-in-Chief was not allowed any leave. Lord Cross had attempted to address this strict rule by introducing the 'Officers' Leave Bill,' but as he informed Lord Lansdowne, it was impossible to get it passed in the House of Commons that session, so I was very reluctantly forced to request permission to resign my command in[Page 536] the spring of 1893.

Visit to Nepal Before returning to Simla for really the last time, my wife and I made another trip to Burma as far as Mandalay, and after this was over we paid a most interesting visit to Nepal, having received the very unusual honour of an invitation to Khatmandu from Maharaja Bir Shumsher Jung Rana Bahadur.

Trip to Nepal Before going back to Simla for what would truly be the last time, my wife and I took another trip to Burma, reaching as far as Mandalay. After that, we had a fascinating visit to Nepal, as we received the rare honor of an invitation to Kathmandu from Maharaja Bir Shumsher Jung Rana Bahadur.

Khatmandu is about a hundred miles from our frontier station of Segowli, by a very rough road over a succession of steep, high hills and along deep, narrow valleys, which would have been quite impossible for a lady to travel by but for the excellent arrangements made by the Nepalese officials; the last descent was the worst of all; we literally dropped from one rock to the next in some places. But on reaching the base of the mountain all was changed. A beautifully cultivated valley spread itself out before us; comfortable tents were prepared for our reception, where we were met by some of the State officials; and a perfectly appointed carriage-and-four was waiting to carry us on to Khatmandu, where we were received by the Resident, Lieutenant-Colonel Wylie, and his wife, old friends of ours. That afternoon the Maharaja paid me a private visit.

Khatmandu is about a hundred miles from our border station in Segowli, accessible by a very rough road that goes over a series of steep hills and through deep, narrow valleys. It would have been really difficult for a woman to travel there if it weren't for the excellent arrangements made by the Nepalese officials. The final descent was the worst; we literally dropped from one rock to the next in some spots. But once we reached the base of the mountain, everything changed. A beautifully cultivated valley opened up before us; comfortable tents were set up for our arrival, where we were greeted by some of the State officials; and a perfectly appointed carriage-and-four was waiting to take us to Khatmandu, where we were welcomed by the Resident, Lieutenant-Colonel Wylie, and his wife, who were old friends of ours. That afternoon, the Maharaja paid me a private visit.

The next morning the official call was made, which I returned soon afterwards; and in the evening the Maharaja, accompanied by his eldest son and eight of his brothers, all high officers of state, were present at Mrs. Wylie's reception, wearing military frock-coats and forage-caps. They all spoke English fluently; their manners were those of well-bred gentlemen, easy and quiet, as free from awkwardness as from forwardness; each, coming up in turn, talked very pleasantly to Lady Roberts for a time, and then made way for someone else. The Maharaja is extremely musical, and has several well-trained bands, taught by an English bandmaster; three of them were in attendance, and were directed to play selections from our favourite operas, and then a number of the beautiful plaintive Nepalese airs. Altogether, we passed a most agreeable evening.

The next morning, the official call was made, which I answered shortly after; and in the evening, the Maharaja, along with his eldest son and eight of his brothers, all high-ranking officials, attended Mrs. Wylie's reception, dressed in military frock coats and forage caps. They all spoke English fluently; their demeanor was that of well-mannered gentlemen, relaxed and composed, free from awkwardness and pushiness. Each one approached Lady Roberts in turn, chatted pleasantly for a while, and then made way for someone else. The Maharaja has a great love for music and has several well-trained bands, taught by an English bandmaster; three of them were there and played selections from our favorite operas, followed by some beautiful, melodious Nepalese tunes. Overall, we had a lovely evening.

The following day a review of all the troops (18,000 men and 78 guns),8 was held on a ground one mile in length by half a mile in breadth, perfectly level and well turfed. It would be considered a fine parade-ground for the plains of India, and must have entailed a considerable expenditure of time, labour, and money to make in such a hilly place as Khatmandu.

The next day, a review of all the troops (18,000 men and 78 guns),8 took place on a flat, well-kept field that was a mile long and half a mile wide. It would be seen as a great parade ground for the plains of India, and it must have taken a significant amount of time, effort, and money to create it in such a hilly location as Khatmandu.

On reaching the ground, I was received by the Maharaja and Deb Shamsher Jung, the eldest of his many brothers, and the nominal[Page 537] Commander-in-Chief of the army; we rode along the line together, and the march past then began. Everything was done with the utmost precision; there was no fuss or talking, and from first to last not a single bugle sound was heard, showing how carefully officers and men had been drilled. I was told that the executive Commander-in-Chief, the third brother, by name Chandra Shamsher, had almost lived on the parade-ground for weeks before my arrival. The Maharaja's sons and brothers, who all knew their work, and were evidently fond of soldiering, commanded the several divisions and brigades.

On reaching the ground, I was greeted by the Maharaja and Deb Shamsher Jung, the eldest of his many brothers, and the nominal[Page 537] Commander-in-Chief of the army; we rode along the line together, and the march past then began. Everything was done with the utmost precision; there was no fuss or talking, and from start to finish not a single bugle sound was heard, showing how carefully the officers and men had been trained. I was told that the actual Commander-in-Chief, the third brother, named Chandra Shamsher, had spent almost all his time on the parade ground for weeks before my arrival. The Maharaja's sons and brothers, who all knew their roles and clearly enjoyed soldiering, commanded the various divisions and brigades.

The troops were not, perhaps, turned out quite so smartly as those in our service, and several of the officers were old and feeble; but these were the only faults perceptible, and I came to the conclusion that the great majority of the 18,000 men were quite as good as the Gurkhas we enlist; and I could not help thinking that they would be a valuable addition to our strength in the event of war.

The troops might not have been as sharp as those in our service, and a few of the officers were older and weaker; but those were the only noticeable issues. I concluded that most of the 18,000 men were just as capable as the Gurkhas we recruit, and I couldn't shake the thought that they would be a valuable boost to our strength if war broke out.

General Chandra Shamsher is a very red-hot soldier. He said to my wife: 'Lady Roberts, when are the Russians coming? I wish they would make haste. We have 40,000 soldiers in Nepal ready for war, and there is no one to fight!'

General Chandra Shamsher is a very passionate soldier. He said to my wife: 'Lady Roberts, when are the Russians coming? I wish they would hurry up. We have 40,000 soldiers in Nepal ready for battle, and there’s no one to fight!'

The next day a grand durbar was held, at which the King (the Maharaja Dhiraj, as he is called) presided; he was an unusually handsome lad of about eighteen years of age, fairer than most Nepalese, and very refined looking. As on all previous occasions, everyone wore uniform except the King, who had on a perfectly plain dress of spotless white. Great deference is outwardly paid to the Dhiraj, but he has no power, and is never consulted in matters of State, being considered too sacred to be troubled with mundane affairs. Although a mere boy, he had four wives, two of them daughters of the Maharaja Bir Shamsher Jung.

The next day, a grand durbar was held, with the King (known as the Maharaja Dhiraj) presiding. He was an exceptionally handsome young man of about eighteen, fairer than most Nepalese, and very refined in appearance. As on all previous occasions, everyone wore a uniform except for the King, who donned a perfectly plain outfit of spotless white. While everyone shows great respect towards the Dhiraj, he holds no real power and is never consulted on state matters, as he is seen as too sacred to deal with everyday issues. Despite being just a boy, he had four wives, two of whom were daughters of Maharaja Bir Shamsher Jung.

After the durbar, I was shown over the principal school and hospital; both appeared to be well conducted, and evidently no expense was spared upon them. I was then taken to a magazine, in which were a number of guns of various calibre and any amount of ammunition. I was told there were several other magazines, which I had not time to see, and a few miles from Khatmandu extensive workshops, where all kinds of munitions of war were manufactured.

After the gathering, I was given a tour of the main school and hospital; both seemed well-run, and it was clear that no expense was spared on them. I was then taken to an armory, which had a variety of guns and plenty of ammunition. I was informed there were several other armories that I didn't have time to visit, and a few miles from Kathmandu, there were large workshops where all kinds of weapons were produced.

A Nepalese entertainment That evening, accompanied by Colonel and Mrs. Wylie, we attended a reception at the Maharaja's palace. The durbar hall, which was filled with men in uniform, was of beautiful proportions, and very handsomely decorated and furnished. After the usual introductions and some conversation with the chief officers, we were invited to visit the Maharani in her own apartments, and having ascended a flight of steps and passed through numerous corridors and luxuriously furnished rooms, we were shown into a spacious apartment, the prevailing colour of which was rose, lighted by lamps of the same colour. The Maharani[Page 538] was sitting on a sofa at the further end of the room, gorgeously apparelled in rose-coloured gauze dotted over with golden spangles; her skirts were very voluminous, and she wore magnificent jewels on her head and about her person. Two Maids of Honour stood behind her, holding fans, and dressed in the same colour as their mistress, but without jewels. On each side of her, forming a semicircle, were grouped the ladies of the Court, all arrayed in artistically contrasting colours; they were more or less pretty and refined looking, and the Maharani herself was extremely handsome. My wife was placed by her side on the sofa, and carried on a long conversation with her through one of the ladies who spoke Hindustani and acted as Interpreter. The Maharani presented Lady Roberts with a beautiful little Chinese pug-dog, and the Maharaja gave me a gold-mounted kookri (Gurkha knife). After this little ceremony there was a grand display of fireworks, and we took our leave.

A Nepali entertainment That evening, along with Colonel and Mrs. Wylie, we went to a reception at the Maharaja's palace. The durbar hall was filled with men in uniform and had beautiful proportions, elegantly decorated and furnished. After the usual introductions and some conversation with the chief officers, we were invited to meet the Maharani in her private rooms. We climbed a flight of steps and walked through several corridors and lavishly furnished rooms until we entered a spacious room, predominantly rose-colored and lit by lamps of the same hue. The Maharani[Page 538] was seated on a sofa at the far end of the room, dressed splendidly in rose-colored gauze speckled with golden sequins; her skirts were very full, and she adorned herself with stunning jewels on her head and throughout her attire. Two Maids of Honour stood behind her, holding fans and dressed in the same color as their mistress but without jewels. On either side of her, forming a semicircle, were the ladies of the Court, all dressed in artistically contrasting colors; they were varying degrees of pretty and refined, and the Maharani herself was very beautiful. My wife sat beside her on the sofa, engaging in a lengthy conversation with her through one of the ladies who spoke Hindustani and acted as an interpreter. The Maharani gifted Lady Roberts a lovely little Chinese pug dog, and the Maharaja presented me with a gold-mounted kookri (Gurkha knife). After this small ceremony, there was an impressive display of fireworks, and we took our leave.

Nothing could exceed the kindness we met with during our stay in Nepal. The Maharaja endeavoured in every way to make our visit enjoyable, and his brothers vied with each other in their efforts to do us honour. It was impressed upon me that the Nepalese army was at the disposal of the Queen-Empress, and hopes were repeatedly expressed that we would make use of it in the event of war.

Nothing could surpass the kindness we experienced during our time in Nepal. The Maharaja did everything possible to ensure our visit was enjoyable, and his brothers competed with each other to honor us. I was made aware that the Nepalese army was available to the Queen-Empress, and there were frequent hopes expressed that we would utilize it in the event of war.

Notwithstanding the occasional differences which have occurred between our Government and the Nepal Durbar, I believe that, ever since 1817, when the Nepal war was brought to a successful conclusion by Sir David Ochterlony, the Gurkhas have had a great respect and liking for us: but they are in perpetual dread of our taking their country, and they think the only way to prevent this is not to allow anyone to enter it except by invitation, and to insist upon the few thus favoured travelling by the difficult route that we traversed. Nepal can never be required by us for defensive purposes, and as we get our best class of Native soldiers thence, everything should, I think, be done to show our confidence in the Nepalese alliance, and convince them that we have no ulterior designs on the independence of their kingdom.

Despite the occasional disagreements between our government and the Nepal Durbar, I believe that since 1817, when Sir David Ochterlony successfully ended the Nepal war, the Gurkhas have held a strong respect and affection for us. However, they are constantly worried that we might take their country, and they think the best way to prevent this is to only allow people to enter by invitation and to require those few privileged individuals to travel the challenging route we took. We will never need Nepal for our defense, and since we recruit our best Native soldiers from there, I think we should do everything possible to demonstrate our confidence in the Nepalese alliance and reassure them that we have no hidden intentions regarding the independence of their kingdom.

On leaving Nepal we made a short tour in the Punjab, and then went to Simla for the season.

On leaving Nepal, we took a quick trip through Punjab and then headed to Simla for the season.

One of the subjects which chiefly occupied the attention of the Government at this time was the unfriendly attitude of the Ruler of Afghanistan towards us. Abdur Rahman Khan appeared to have entirely forgotten that he owed everything to us, and that, but for our support and lavish aid in money and munitions of war, he could neither have gained nor held the throne of Kabul. We refused to Sher Ali much that we could have gracefully granted and that would have made him a firm friend, but in our dealings with Abdur Rahman we rushed into the other extreme, and showered favours upon him; in fact, we made too much of him, and allowed him to get out of hand.[Page 539] The result was that he mistook the patience and forbearance with which we bore his fits of temper for weakness, and was encouraged in an overweening and altogether unjustifiable idea of his own importance; he considered that he ought to be treated as the equal of the Shah of Persia, and keenly resented not being allowed to communicate direct with Her Majesty's Ministers.

One of the main issues the Government focused on at this time was the unfriendly stance of the Ruler of Afghanistan towards us. Abdur Rahman Khan seemed to have completely forgotten that he owed his position to us and that without our support and generous financial and military assistance, he wouldn't have been able to gain or keep the throne of Kabul. We denied Sher Ali many things that we could have easily granted, which would have made him a solid ally, but in our dealings with Abdur Rahman, we went to the opposite extreme and showered him with favors; in fact, we made too much of him and let him get out of control. The result was that he misinterpreted our patience and tolerance during his tantrums as weakness and developed a completely unreasonable sense of his own importance; he believed he should be treated as an equal to the Shah of Persia and was deeply offended that he wasn't allowed to communicate directly with Her Majesty's Ministers.[Page 539]

Proposed Mission to the Amir In the hope of being able to establish more satisfactory relations with the Amir, Lord Lansdowne invited him to come to India, and, on His Highness pleading that his country was in too disturbed a condition to admit of his leaving it, the Viceroy expressed his willingness to meet him on the frontier, but Abdur Rahman evaded this arrangement also under one pretext or another. It was at last proposed to send me with a Mission as far as Jalalabad, a proposal I gladly accepted, for I was sanguine enough to hope that, by personal explanation, I should be able to remove the suspicions which the Amir evidently entertained as to the motives for our action on the frontier, and to convince him that our help in the time of his need must depend upon our mutually agreeing in what manner that help should be given, and on arrangements being completed beforehand to enable our troops to be rapidly transported to the threatened points.

Proposed Mission to the Emir In hopes of establishing better relations with the Amir, Lord Lansdowne invited him to India. When His Highness claimed that his country was too unstable for him to leave, the Viceroy offered to meet him at the border. However, Abdur Rahman avoided this arrangement for various reasons. Eventually, it was suggested that I go with a Mission to Jalalabad, a proposal I eagerly accepted, as I was optimistic that through personal discussion, I could alleviate the Amir's suspicions about our intentions on the frontier. I aimed to convince him that our support during his time of need would depend on us mutually agreeing on how that support should be provided and on making arrangements in advance to ensure our troops could be quickly deployed to the threatened areas.

Abdur Rahman agreed to receive me in the autumn, and expressed pleasure at the prospect of meeting me, but eventually he apparently became alarmed at the size of the escort by which the Government thought it necessary that I, as Commander-in-Chief, should be accompanied; and, as the time approached for the Mission to start, he informed Lord Lansdowne that his health would not permit of his undertaking the journey to Jalalabad.

Abdur Rahman agreed to meet me in the autumn and was happy about the opportunity, but eventually he seemed to get worried about the size of the escort that the Government felt I needed as Commander-in-Chief. As the start of the Mission got closer, he told Lord Lansdowne that his health wouldn’t allow him to make the trip to Jalalabad.

Thus the opportunity was lost to which I had looked forward as a chance for settling many vexed questions, and I am afraid that there has been very little improvement in our relations with Abdur Rahman since then, and that we are no nearer the completion of our plans for the defence of his kingdom than we were four years ago9—a defence which (and this cannot be too strongly impressed upon the Amir) it would be impossible for us to aid him to carry through unless Kabul and Kandahar are brought into connexion with the railway system of India.

Thus, the opportunity I had been looking forward to as a chance to settle many frustrating issues has been lost, and I'm afraid there has been very little improvement in our relations with Abdur Rahman since then. We are no closer to completing our plans for the defense of his kingdom than we were four years ago9—a defense which (and this cannot be emphasized enough to the Amir) we would be unable to help him with unless Kabul and Kandahar are connected to the railway system of India.

In the autumn, just before we left Simla, our friends bestowed upon my wife a farewell gift in the shape of a very beautiful diamond bracelet and a sum of money for her fund for 'Homes in the Hills, and Officers' Hospitals,' made doubly acceptable by the kind words with which Lord Lansdowne, on behalf of the donors, presented it. Shortly afterwards we bade a regretful adieu to our happy home of so many[Page 540] years, and made our way to the Punjab for a final visit.

In the fall, just before we left Simla, our friends gave my wife a farewell gift: a stunning diamond bracelet and some money for her 'Homes in the Hills, and Officers' Hospitals' fund. This was made even more special by the thoughtful words that Lord Lansdowne shared, speaking on behalf of the donors. Shortly after that, we reluctantly said goodbye to our happy home of so many[Page 540] years and headed to the Punjab for one last visit.

A Last Tour We spent a few days at Peshawar, and then went to Rawal Pindi to be present at a Camp of Exercise, and see how the works under construction for the protection of the arsenal were progressing. These works had been put in hand in 1890, when, according to my recommendation, it had been decided not to fortify Multan. No place in the Punjab appeared to my mind to possess the same military value as Rawal Pindi, its strategical importance with regard to the right flank of the frontier line being hardly inferior to that of Quetta in relation to the left flank; but of late the advisability of completing the works had been questioned by my colleagues in Council, greatly to my concern, for I felt that it would be unwise to leave the elaboration of the defences of such a position until war should be imminent.10

Final Tour We spent a few days in Peshawar, then headed to Rawalpindi to attend a military exercise and check on the progress of the construction work meant to protect the arsenal. This work had started back in 1890 when, based on my suggestion, it was decided not to fortify Multan. In my opinion, no place in Punjab had the same military significance as Rawalpindi, as its strategic importance for the right flank of the frontier was nearly as crucial as Quetta's for the left flank. However, recently, my fellow Council members had raised doubts about the need to complete these works, which worried me a lot, because I believed it would be unwise to hold off on developing defenses for such a key position until war was imminent.10

1893
Farewell Entertainments
In January, 1893, a series of farewell entertainments were organized for me at Lahore by the people of the Punjab, as touching as they were highly appreciated, and intensely gratifying. Amongst the crowds assembled in the Town Hall to bid me good-bye, I was greatly pleased to see, besides the Maharaja of Kashmir, Chiefs and men from beyond our frontier, from Kuram, from the confines of Baluchistan, even from the wilds of Waziristan; for their presence on this occasion I felt to be, not only a proof of their kindly feeling towards me personally, and of their approval of the measures for their safety and welfare that I had always advocated, but a very distinct sign of the much to be desired change that was taking place in the sentiments of the border tribes towards us as a nation.

1893 Goodbye Celebrations In January 1893, the people of Punjab organized a series of farewell events for me in Lahore, which were both touching and deeply appreciated, and they made me feel very gratified. Among the many people gathered in the Town Hall to say goodbye, I was thrilled to see, in addition to the Maharaja of Kashmir, chiefs and individuals from beyond our borders, from Kuram, the edges of Baluchistan, and even from the remote areas of Waziristan. Their presence on this occasion felt not only like a sign of their warm feelings towards me personally and their endorsement of the measures I had always supported for their safety and welfare but also a clear indication of the much-needed change in the attitudes of the border tribes towards us as a nation.

Four addresses were presented to me, from the Sikh*, Hindu*, Mahomedan*, and European* communities of the Punjab, respectively, which I will venture to give in the Appendix, as I feel sure that the spirit of loyalty which pervades them will be a revelation to many, and[Page 541] a source of satisfaction to all who are interested in the country to which we owe so much of our present greatness, and which I conceive to be the brightest jewel in England's crown.

Four addresses were presented to me from the Sikh*, Hindu*, Muslim*, and European* communities of Punjab, which I will include in the Appendix. I believe the spirit of loyalty expressed in them will reveal much to many and[Page 541] provide satisfaction to all who care about the country that has contributed so significantly to our current greatness, which I consider to be the brightest jewel in England's crown.

Note*: See Appendices XII, XIII, XIVand XV.

Note*: See Appendices __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_2__ and __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_3__.

It was a wonderful and moving scene upon which we looked from the platform of the Town Hall on this memorable occasion, made up as it was of such different elements, each race and creed easily recognizable from their different costumes and characteristics, but all united by the same kindly desire to do honour to their departing friend, or comrade, for there were a great number of old soldiers present.

It was a beautiful and touching scene we saw from the platform of the Town Hall on this memorable occasion, made up of so many different groups, with each race and belief easily identifiable by their unique outfits and traits, but all coming together with the same warm wish to honor their departing friend or comrade, as there were many old soldiers in attendance.

At each place that we visited on our way to Calcutta there was the same display of kindly regret at our departure; friends assembled to see us off at the railway-stations, bands played 'Auld lang syne,' and hearty cheers speeded us on our way.

At every location we passed on our way to Calcutta, there was the same warm sense of regret at our leaving; friends gathered to send us off at the train stations, bands played 'Auld Lang Syne,' and enthusiastic cheers propelled us along our journey.

In February we went to Lucknow for a few days, when the Talukdars of Oudh gave my wife and me an entertainment on a very splendid scale in the Wingfield Park, and presented me with an address11 and a sword of honour.

In February, we visited Lucknow for a few days, where the Talukdars of Oudh hosted a grand event for my wife and me in Wingfield Park and presented me with an address11 and a sword of honor.

On our return to Calcutta, just before we left for England, the European community entertained me at a dinner, at which more than two hundred were present, presided over by Sir James Mackay, K.C.I.E., Chairman of the Calcutta Chamber of Commerce. Sir James was far too kind and eulogistic in speaking of my services, but for his appreciative allusion to my wife I could only feel deeply gratified and thankful. After dinner a reception was given to Lady Roberts and myself, at which the Viceroy and Lady Lansdowne and all the principal Native and European residents of Calcutta were assembled. An address12 was presented to me on this never-to be-forgotten occasion, in which, to my supreme satisfaction, the Native noblemen and gentlemen expressed their hearty approval of what had been done during my tenure of office as Commander-in-Chief to strengthen the defences of the frontier and render the army in India efficient, and declared that 'we cheerfully bear our share of the cost, as in possession of these protections against aggressions from without we believe all who dwell within the borders of the land will find their best guarantee for peace, and in peace the best safeguard they and their children can possess to enable them to pass their lives in happiness and prosperity, and escape the misery and ruin which follow war and invasion.'

On our return to Calcutta, just before we left for England, the European community hosted a dinner in my honor, attended by over two hundred people, and led by Sir James Mackay, K.C.I.E., Chairman of the Calcutta Chamber of Commerce. Sir James was overly kind and flattering in his remarks about my contributions, but I felt truly grateful and touched by his kind mention of my wife. After dinner, a reception was held for Lady Roberts and me, attended by the Viceroy, Lady Lansdowne, and all the key Native and European residents of Calcutta. An address12 was presented to me on this unforgettable occasion, where, to my great satisfaction, the Native noblemen and gentlemen expressed their strong approval of my efforts during my time as Commander-in-Chief to strengthen the frontier defenses and make the Indian army more effective. They stated that 'we willingly share the costs, as having these protections against outside threats gives everyone living within the borders the best guarantee for peace, and in peace lies the greatest security for them and their children, allowing them to live their lives in happiness and prosperity, and to avoid the misery and destruction that come with war and invasion.'

Last Days in India We travelled to Bombay viâ Jeypur and Jodhpur. At both places we were royally entertained by the Rulers of those states, and my staff and I were given excellent sport amongst the wild boar, which was much enjoyed by all, particularly by my son, who, having joined the King's Royal Rifles at Rawal Pindi, was attached to me as A.D.C. during my last six months in India, and had not before had an opportunity[Page 542] of tasting the joys of pig-sticking.

Final Days in India We traveled to Bombay via Jeypur and Jodhpur. At both places, we were treated like royalty by the rulers of those states, and my team and I had a fantastic time hunting wild boar, which everyone enjoyed, especially my son. He had joined the King's Royal Rifles in Rawal Pindi and served as my aide-de-camp during my last six months in India, and this was his first chance to experience the excitement of pig-sticking.

At Jodhpur my friend the Maharaja Sir Pertap Sing gave us a signal proof that the ancient valour of the Rajputs had not deteriorated in the present day. I had wounded a fine boar, and on his making for some rocky ground, where I could hardly have followed him on horseback, I shouted to Sir Pertap to get between him and the rocks, and turn him in my direction. The Maharaja promptly responded, but just as he came face-to-face with the boar, his horse put his foot into a hole and fell; the infuriated animal rushed on the fallen rider, and, before the latter could extricate himself, gave him a severe wound in the leg with his formidable tushes. On going to his assistance, I found Sir Pertap bleeding profusely, but standing erect, facing the boar and holding the creature (who was upright on his hind-legs) at arms' length by his mouth. The spear without the impetus given by the horse at full speed is not a very effective weapon against the tough hide of a boar's back, and on realizing that mine did not make much impression, Pertap Sing, letting go his hold of the boar's mouth, quickly seized his hind-legs, and turned him over on his back, crying: 'Maro, sahib, maro!' ('Strike, sir, strike!') which I instantly did, and killed him. Anyone who is able to realize the strength and weight of a wild boar will appreciate the pluck and presence of mind of Sir Pertap Sing in this performance. Fortunately, my wife and daughter, who had been following the pig-stickers in a light cart, were close at hand, and we were able to drive my friend home at once. The wound was found to be rather a bad one, but it did not prevent Sir Pertap from attending some tent-pegging and other amusements in the afternoon, though he had to be carried to the scene.

At Jodhpur, my friend, Maharaja Sir Pertap Sing, showed us that the ancient bravery of the Rajputs was still alive today. I had shot a fine boar, and as it headed toward some rocky ground where I couldn't follow on horseback, I called out to Sir Pertap to get between the boar and the rocks to direct it my way. The Maharaja quickly jumped into action, but just as he came face-to-face with the boar, his horse stepped into a hole and fell; the furious animal charged at the fallen rider and, before he could get free, gave him a serious wound in the leg with its sharp tusks. When I rushed to help him, I found Sir Pertap bleeding heavily but standing tall, facing the boar and holding the creature (who was standing on its hind legs) at arm's length by its mouth. A spear isn’t very effective against the tough hide of a boar without the momentum of a galloping horse, and realizing my weapon wasn't making much impact, Pertap let go of the boar’s mouth, quickly grabbed its hind legs, and flipped it onto its back, yelling, 'Maro, sahib, maro!' ('Strike, sir, strike!'), which I immediately did, killing it. Anyone who understands the strength and weight of a wild boar will recognize the courage and quick thinking of Sir Pertap Sing in that moment. Luckily, my wife and daughter, who had been following the hunters in a light cart, were nearby, and we were able to take my friend home right away. The wound turned out to be quite serious, but it didn’t stop Sir Pertap from attending some tent-pegging and other activities in the afternoon, although he had to be carried to the event.

A few months after my return to England the boar's head arrived, set up, and with a silver plate attached to it, on which was an inscription commemorating the adventure.

A few months after I got back to England, the boar's head arrived, set up, and had a silver plate attached to it that had an inscription commemorating the adventure.

At Ahmedabad, where the train stopped while we lunched, I was presented with an address by the President and members of the Municipality, who, 'with loyal devotion to Her Imperial Majesty the Queen and Empress of India, to whose glorious reign we sincerely wish a continuance of brilliant prosperity,' expressed their hope that Lady Roberts and I would have 'a happy voyage home and enjoyment of perfect health and prosperity in future.'

At Ahmedabad, where the train stopped for our lunch, I was given a speech by the President and members of the Municipality, who, "with loyal devotion to Her Imperial Majesty the Queen and Empress of India, to whose glorious reign we sincerely wish a continuation of great prosperity," expressed their hope that Lady Roberts and I would have "a happy journey home and enjoy perfect health and success in the future."

The day before we left Bombay for England, the members of the Byculla Club gave me a parting dinner. It was with great difficulty I could get through my speech in response to the toast of my health on that occasion, for, pleased and grateful as I was at this last mark of friendship and approval from my countrymen, I could not help feeling inexpressibly sad and deeply depressed at the thought uppermost in my mind, that the time had come to separate myself from India and my [Page 543] gallant comrades and friends, British and Native.

The day before we left Bombay for England, the members of the Byculla Club threw me a farewell dinner. I struggled to get through my speech in response to the toast of my health that evening because, while I was happy and grateful for this final sign of friendship and approval from my fellow countrymen, I couldn't shake the overwhelming sadness and deep sense of loss that filled my mind, knowing that the time had come to part ways with India and my [Page 543] brave comrades and friends, both British and Native.

In dwelling on the long list of farewell addresses and entertainments with which I was honoured on leaving India, I feel that I may be laying myself open to the charge of egotism; but in writing of one's own experiences it is difficult to avoid being egotistical, and distasteful as it is to me to think that I may be considered so, I would rather that, than that those who treated me so kindly and generously should deem me unmindful or ungrateful.

In reflecting on the many farewell speeches and gatherings I received when leaving India, I know I might come off as self-centered. However, when sharing personal experiences, it's hard not to sound that way. Although the idea of being seen as egotistical bothers me, I’d rather be perceived that way than for those who were so kind and generous to think I am ungrateful or forgetful.

Thus ended forty-one years in India. No one can, I think, wonder that I left the country with heartfelt regret. The greater number of my most valued friendships had been formed there; from almost everyone with whom I had been associated, whether European or Native, civilian or soldier, I had experienced unfailing kindness, sympathy, and support; and to the discipline, bravery, and devotion to duty of the Army in India, in peace and war, I felt that I owed whatever success it was my good fortune to achieve.

Thus ended forty-one years in India. I don’t think anyone can blame me for leaving the country with deep regret. Most of my valued friendships were formed there; from nearly everyone I had interacted with, whether European or local, civilian or soldier, I experienced constant kindness, support, and understanding. I believed that whatever success I was fortunate enough to achieve was thanks to the discipline, bravery, and dedication to duty of the Army in India, both in times of peace and in war.






APPENDIX



APPENDIX I.

(See p. 97)
1857

The 9th Native Infantry, to which Captain Donald Stewart belonged, was divided between Aligarh, Mainpuri, Bulandshahr, and Etawa, Stewart being with the Head-Quarters of the regiment at Aligarh.

The 9th Native Infantry, which Captain Donald Stewart was part of, was split between Aligarh, Mainpuri, Bulandshahr, and Etawa, with Stewart being at the regiment's headquarters in Aligarh.

The news from Meerut and Delhi had caused a certain amount of alarm amongst the residents at Aligarh, and arrangements had been made for sending away the ladies and children, but, owing to the confidence placed in the men of the 9th, none of them had left the station. Happen what might in other regiments, the officers were certain that the 9th could never be faithless to their salt! The Native officers and men were profuse in their expressions of loyalty, and as a proof of their sincerity they arrested and disarmed several rebel sepoys, who were making for their homes in Oudh and the adjoining districts. As a further proof, they gave up the regimental pandit for endeavouring to persuade them to mutiny. He was tried by a Court-Martial composed of European and Native officers, found guilty, and sentenced to be hanged. The sentence was carried out that same afternoon. It was intended that the regiment should witness the execution, but it did not reach the gaol in time; the men were therefore marched back to their lines, and Stewart, in his capacity of Interpreter, was ordered to explain to them the purpose for which they had been paraded. While he was speaking a man of his own company shouted out something. Stewart did not hear the words, and no one would repeat them. The parade was then dismissed, when the same man, tearing off his uniform, called upon his comrades not to serve a Government which had hanged a Brahmin. A general uproar ensued. The Commanding Officer ordered the few Sikhs in the regiment to seize the ringleader; they did so, but not being supported by the rest they released him. The Subadar Major was then told to arrest the mutineer, but he took no notice whatever of the order. This Native officer had been upwards of forty years in the regiment and was entitled to his full pension. He had been a member of the Court-Martial which tried the pandit, and, though a Brahmin himself, had given his vote in favour of the prisoner being hanged; moreover he was a personal friend of all the officers. Stewart, who had been for many years Adjutant, knew him intimately, and believed implicitly in his loyalty. The man had constantly discussed the situation with Stewart and others, and had been mainly instrumental in disarming the sepoys who had passed through Aligarh; and yet when the hour of trial came he failed as completely as the last-joined recruit.

The news from Meerut and Delhi had caused quite a bit of concern among the residents of Aligarh, and plans were made to send the ladies and children away. However, because everyone trusted the men of the 9th, none of them had left the station. No matter what happened with other regiments, the officers were confident that the 9th would never betray their loyalty! The Native officers and men showed their loyalty by arresting and disarming several rebel sepoys who were trying to return home to Oudh and nearby areas. To demonstrate their commitment, they turned over the regimental pandit for trying to incite them to mutiny. He faced a Court-Martial made up of European and Native officers, was found guilty, and was sentenced to hang. The sentence was carried out that same afternoon. The plan was for the regiment to witness the execution, but they didn't arrive at the jail in time; therefore, the men were marched back to their lines, and Stewart, serving as Interpreter, was asked to explain why they had been assembled. While he was speaking, a man from his own company shouted something out. Stewart didn't catch what was said, and no one would repeat it. After the parade was dismissed, that same man ripped off his uniform and urged his fellow soldiers not to serve a government that had hanged a Brahmin. This sparked a general uproar. The Commanding Officer ordered the few Sikhs in the regiment to apprehend the instigator; they did, but without backup from the others, they let him go. The Subadar Major was then commanded to detain the mutineer, but he ignored the order completely. This Native officer had been in the regiment for over forty years and was entitled to his full pension. He had been part of the Court-Martial that tried the pandit and, despite being a Brahmin himself, had voted for the sentence to hang him; plus, he was friends with all the officers. Stewart, who had been Adjutant for many years, knew him well and trusted him completely. The man had often talked about the situation with Stewart and others and had played a significant role in disarming the sepoys who passed through Aligarh; yet when the moment of truth arrived, he proved to be as unreliable as the newest recruit.

The British officers went amongst their men and tried to keep order, but the excitement rapidly spread; some of the young soldiers began to load, and the older ones warned the officers that it was time for them to be off. The[Page 545] sepoys then plundered the treasury, broke open the gaol doors, released the prisoners, and marched in a body towards Delhi.1

The British officers moved through their ranks, trying to maintain order, but the excitement quickly escalated; some of the younger soldiers started to load their weapons, while the older ones advised the officers that it was time for them to leave. The[Page 545] sepoys then raided the treasury, broke open the jail doors, set the prisoners free, and marched together towards Delhi.1

Stewart, being thus left without a regiment, attached himself to the magistrate of the district, and took command of a small body of volunteers sent from Agra by the Lieutenant-Governor of the North-West Provinces, to aid the civil authorities in restoring order. Not caring for this work, and thinking he might be more usefully employed, Stewart made up his mind to find his way to Delhi; his idea was to try and get there viâ Meerut, but before deciding on the route, he went to Agra, where he had been invited by the Lieutenant-Governor. At the interview, Mr. Colvin advised Stewart to travel viâ Muttra, as the safer of the two routes, and told him that despatches had been received from the Government in Calcutta for the Commander-in-Chief, then understood to be with the army before Delhi. At the same time the Lieutenant-Governor impressed upon Stewart that he was not giving him any order to go, and that if he undertook to carry the despatches it must be a voluntary act on his part, entailing no responsibility on the Government of the North-West Provinces.

Stewart, left without a regiment, joined the district magistrate and took charge of a small group of volunteers sent from Agra by the Lieutenant-Governor of the North-West Provinces to help restore order. Not interested in this work and believing he could be more effective elsewhere, Stewart decided he wanted to get to Delhi. He initially thought about going via Meerut, but before finalizing his route, he visited Agra, where the Lieutenant-Governor had invited him. During their meeting, Mr. Colvin suggested that Stewart take the route through Muttra, which was safer, and mentioned that despatches had arrived from the Government in Calcutta for the Commander-in-Chief, who was thought to be with the army in front of Delhi. The Lieutenant-Governor also made it clear to Stewart that he wasn’t giving him an order to go and that if he chose to carry the despatches, it would be entirely his decision, with no responsibilities resting on the Government of the North-West Provinces.

Stewart accepted the duty, and took his leave of Mr. Colvin as the sun was setting on the 18th June, delighted at the chance of being able to join the army before Delhi. He reached Muttra, thirty-five miles distant, without mishap. The streets of this city were crowded with men, all carrying arms of some sort; they showed no signs of hostility, however, and even pointed out to Stewart the house of which he was in search. The owner of this house, to whose care he had been commended by the Agra authorities, was a Brahmin holding an official position in the town. This Native gentleman behaved with civility, but did not attempt to conceal his embarrassment at the presence of a British officer, or his relief when Stewart announced his intention of resuming his journey an hour or so before daybreak.

Stewart accepted the responsibility and said goodbye to Mr. Colvin as the sun set on June 18th, excited about the opportunity to join the army before Delhi. He arrived in Muttra, thirty-five miles away, without any problems. The streets of the city were filled with men, all carrying some kind of weapon; however, they showed no signs of aggression and even pointed Stewart in the direction of the house he was looking for. The owner of this house, to whom he had been entrusted by the Agra authorities, was a Brahmin in a government role in the town. This local gentleman was polite but didn’t hide his discomfort at having a British officer around, nor did he hide his relief when Stewart said he planned to continue his journey an hour or so before dawn.

The Brahmin provided him with two sowars belonging to the Raja of Bhartpur with orders to accompany him as far as Kosi. They were cut-throat-looking individuals, and Stewart felt rather inclined to dispense with their services, but, thinking it unwise to show any signs of distrust, he accepted them with the best grace he could.

The Brahmin gave him two soldiers from the Raja of Bhartpur and instructed them to accompany him to Kosi. They looked pretty dangerous, and Stewart felt tempted to get rid of them, but figuring it wasn’t wise to show any signs of distrust, he accepted their company as gracefully as possible.

After riding fifteen or sixteen miles, Stewart's horse fell from exhaustion, on which his so-called escort laughed uproariously, and galloped off, leaving our poor traveller to his own devices.

After riding fifteen or sixteen miles, Stewart's horse collapsed from exhaustion, and his so-called escort burst out laughing and took off, leaving our poor traveler to fend for himself.

Believing the horse could not recover, Stewart took off the saddle and bridle and tramped to the nearest village, where he hoped to be able to buy or hire an animal of some kind on which to continue his journey. No one, however, would help him, and he was forced to seize a donkey which he found grazing in a field hard by. About sunset he reached Kosi, thirty-seven miles from Muttra. The tehsildar2 received him courteously, and gave him some bread and milk, but would not hear of his staying for the night. He told him that his appearance in the town was causing considerable excitement, and that he could not be responsible for his safety. Stewart was much exhausted after his hot ride, but as the tehsildar stood firm there was nothing for him to do but to continue his journey, and he consented to start if he were provided with a horse. The tehsildar promptly offered his own pony, and as soon as it was dark Stewart set out for the Jaipur camp. His progress during the night[Page 546] was slow, and it was not until eight o'clock the next morning that he reached his destination, where he was hospitably received by the Political Agent, Major Eden, who introduced him to the Maharaja's Wazir. This official at first promised to give Stewart a small escort as far as Delhi, but on various pretexts he put him off from day to day. At the end of a week Stewart saw that the Wazir either could not or would not give him an escort, and thinking it useless to delay any longer, he made up his mind to start without one.

Believing the horse couldn't recover, Stewart took off the saddle and bridle and walked to the nearest village, hoping to buy or rent some kind of animal to continue his journey. No one, however, would help him, and he was forced to grab a donkey he found grazing in a nearby field. Around sunset, he reached Kosi, thirty-seven miles from Muttra. The tehsildar2 welcomed him politely and offered him some bread and milk, but wouldn't let him stay the night. He told Stewart that his presence in town was causing quite a stir and that he couldn’t assure his safety. Stewart was quite worn out after his hot ride, but since the tehsildar was adamant, he had no choice but to continue his journey, agreeing to set off if he was provided with a horse. The tehsildar quickly offered his own pony, and as soon as it got dark, Stewart left for the Jaipur camp. His progress that night was slow, and it wasn't until eight o'clock the next morning that he reached his destination, where he was warmly welcomed by the Political Agent, Major Eden, who introduced him to the Maharaja's Wazir. This official initially promised to give Stewart a small escort to Delhi, but for various reasons, he kept putting him off day after day. By the end of the week, Stewart realized that the Wazir either couldn’t or wouldn’t provide him with an escort, and figuring it was pointless to wait any longer, he decided to leave without one.

There were several refugees in the camp, and one of them, Mr. Ford, collector and magistrate of Gurgaon, offered to join Stewart in his venture.

There were several refugees in the camp, and one of them, Mr. Ford, a collector and magistrate from Gurgaon, offered to team up with Stewart in his venture.

Stewart and his companion left the Jaipur camp on the afternoon of the 27th June, and reached Palwal soon after dark. Ford sent for the kotwal,3 who was one of his own district officials, and asked him for food. This was produced, but the kotwal besought the sahibs to move on without delay, telling them that their lives were in imminent danger, as there was a rebel regiment in the town, and he was quite unable to protect them. So they continued their journey, and, escaping from one or two threatened attacks by robbers, reached Badshahpur in the morning. Here they rested during the heat of the day, being kindly treated by the villagers, who were mostly Hindus.

Stewart and his companion left the Jaipur camp on the afternoon of June 27 and arrived in Palwal soon after dark. Ford called for the kotwal,3 who was one of his own district officials, and asked him for food. It was provided, but the kotwal urged the sahibs to leave quickly, warning them that their lives were in serious danger because there was a rebel regiment in town, and he couldn’t protect them. They continued their journey and, after dodging a few attempted robberies, reached Badshahpur in the morning. There, they rested during the heat of the day, receiving kind treatment from the villagers, who were mostly Hindus.

The travellers were now not far from Delhi, but could hardly proceed further without a guide, and the people of Badshahpur declined to provide one. They pleaded that they were men of peace, and could not possibly leave their village in such evil times. Suddenly a man from the crowd, offered his services. His appearance was against him, and the villagers declared that he was a notorious cattle-lifter, who was strongly suspected of having set fire to the collector's (Mr. Ford's) office at Gurgaon, in order that the evidences of his offences might be destroyed. Not a pleasant compagnon de voyage, but there was nothing for it but to accept his offer.

The travelers were now not far from Delhi, but could hardly go any further without a guide, and the people of Badshahpur refused to provide one. They claimed they were peaceful people and couldn’t possibly leave their village in such dangerous times. Suddenly, a man from the crowd offered to help. His appearance didn’t help his case, and the villagers said he was a well-known cattle thief who was strongly suspected of burning down the collector's (Mr. Ford's) office in Gurgaon to destroy evidence of his crimes. Not the most pleasant traveling companion, but they had no choice but to accept his offer.

As soon as it was dark a start was made, and at daybreak on the 29th the minarets of Delhi rose out of the morning mist, while an occasional shell might be seen bursting near the city.

As soon as it got dark, they set off, and by dawn on the 29th, the minarets of Delhi emerged from the morning mist, with an occasional shell visible exploding near the city.

On reaching the Hansi road, the guide, by name Jumna Das, who, in spite of appearances, had proved true to his word, stopped and said he could go no further. He would not take any reward that it was then in the power of Stewart or Ford to offer him, but he expressed a hope that, when the country became settled, the slight service he had performed would not be forgotten. They gratefully assured him on this point, and thanked him cordially, giving him at the same time a letter testifying to his valuable service. Stewart then went to the nearest village, and for a small reward found a man who undertook to conduct them safely to one of our piquets.

On reaching the Hansi road, the guide, named Jumna Das, who, despite appearances, had kept his word, stopped and said he could go no further. He wouldn’t accept any reward that Stewart or Ford could offer him at that moment, but he hoped that when the country was settled, his small service wouldn’t be forgotten. They thanked him sincerely and assured him on this point, giving him a letter that acknowledged his valuable service. Stewart then headed to the nearest village and found a man willing to safely guide them to one of our piquets for a small fee.

One curious circumstance remarked by Stewart throughout the ride was that the peasants and villagers, though not generally hostile to him, had evidently made up their minds that the British raj was at an end, and were busily engaged in rendering their villages defensible, to meet the troubles and disturbances which they considered would surely follow on the resumption of Native rule.

One interesting thing Stewart noticed during the ride was that the peasants and villagers, while not really hostile towards him, clearly believed that British rule was over. They were actively working on making their villages defensible, preparing for the problems and unrest they thought would definitely come with the return of local governance.

It is difficult to over-estimate the pluck and enterprise displayed by Stewart during this most adventurous ride. It was a marvel that he ever reached Delhi. His coming there turned out to be the best thing that ever happened to him, for the qualities which prompted him to undertake and carried him through his dangerous journey, marked him as a man worthy of advancement and likely to do well.

It’s hard to underestimate the bravery and initiative shown by Stewart on this incredibly adventurous ride. It’s amazing that he actually made it to Delhi. His arrival there turned out to be the best thing that ever happened to him because the qualities that motivated him to take on and complete his risky journey made him stand out as someone deserving of promotion and likely to succeed.

[Footnote 1: While the regiment was in the act of mutinying one of the sepoys left the parade-ground, and running round to all the civilians' houses, told the occupants what had happened, and warned them to make their escape. He asked for no reward, and was never seen again.]

[Footnote 1: While the regiment was in the process of mutiny, one of the sepoys left the parade ground, ran to all the civilians' homes, informed the residents about what was happening, and urged them to flee. He didn't ask for anything in return and was never seen again.

[Footnote 2: Native magistrate.]

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Local magistrate.]

[Footnote 3: City magistrate.]

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ City judge.]

[Return to p. 97]

[Return to __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__]






APPENDIX II.

1857

(These two memoranda are referred to in the note on page 196.)

(These two memoranda are mentioned in the note on page 196.)

Memorandum by Lieutenant McLeod Innes.

Memo by Lieutenant McLeod Innes.

'1. Sir H. Lawrence joined at Lucknow about the end of March, 1857, succeeding Mr. Coverley Jackson in the Chief Commissionership.

'1. Sir H. Lawrence arrived in Lucknow around the end of March, 1857, taking over from Mr. Coverley Jackson as the Chief Commissioner.'

'2. On his arrival he found himself in the midst of troubles, of which the most important were these:

'2. When he arrived, he found himself in the middle of problems, the most significant of which were these:

I. A general agitation of the empire, from the discontent of the soldiery.

I. A general unrest in the empire, stemming from the dissatisfaction of the soldiers.

II. A weak European force at Oudh, with all the military arrangements defective.

II. A weak European force in Oudh, with all the military arrangements flawed.

III. Grievous discontent among several classes of the population of Oudh, viz., the nobility of Lucknow and the members and retainers of the Royal Family, the official classes, the old soldiery, and the entire country population, noble and peasant alike.

III. Serious dissatisfaction among various groups of people in Oudh, including the nobility of Lucknow, the members and supporters of the Royal Family, government officials, the old soldiers, and the entire rural population, both nobles and peasants.

'3. This third was due to disobedience of, or departure from, the instructions laid down by Government at the annexation, as very clearly shown in Lord Stanley's letter of October 13, 1858. The promised pensions had either been entirely withheld or very sparingly doled out; the old officials were entirely without employment; three-quarters of the army the same; while the country Barons had, by forced interpretation of rules, been deprived of the mass of their estates, which had been parcelled out among their followers, who, for clannish reasons, were more indignant at the spoliation and loss of power and place of their Chiefs than they were glad for their own individual acquisitions.

'3. This third reason was due to the disobedience or deviation from the instructions set by the Government during the annexation, as clearly outlined in Lord Stanley's letter from October 13, 1858. The promised pensions were either completely withheld or given out very sparingly; the old officials had no jobs at all; three-quarters of the army was in the same situation; meanwhile, the local Barons had been deprived of most of their estates through a forced interpretation of the rules, which were redistributed among their supporters. For clannish reasons, these supporters were more upset about the loss of their Chiefs' power and status than they were happy about their own individual gains.'

'4. The weakness of the European force could not be helped; it was deemed politic to show the country that the annexation did not require force.

'4. The weakness of the European force couldn’t be helped; it was seen as politically wise to demonstrate to the country that the annexation didn’t need military action.'

'5. But the inefficiency of the military arrangements arose from mere want of skill, and was serious, under the threatening aspect of the political horizon.

'5. But the military setup was inefficient because of a lack of skill, and this was serious given the troubling political situation.'

'6. The discontent of the province, and the coming general storm, had already found vent in the brigandage of Fuzl Ali, and the seditions of the Fyzabad Moulvie.

'6. The unrest in the province, along with the approaching turmoil, had already expressed itself through the banditry of Fuzl Ali and the rebellions led by the Fyzabad Moulvie.'

'7. And with all these Sir H. Lawrence had to grapple immediately on his arrival.

'7. And with all of this, Sir H. Lawrence had to deal with right away upon his arrival.

'8. But I may safely say that ten days saw the mass of them disappear. The Fyzabad Moulvie had been seized and imprisoned. Fuzl Ali had been surrounded and slain. The promised pensions had been paid, by Sir H. Lawrence's peremptory orders, to the members and retainers of the Royal Family. A recognition had been published of the fair rights of the old Oudh officials to employment in preference to immigrants from our old provinces, and instructions had been issued for giving it effect. The disbanded soldiers of the Royal Army of Oudh were promised preference in enlistment in the local corps and the police, and a reorganization and increase to the latter, which were almost immediately sanctioned, gave instant opportunities for the fulfilment of the first instalment of these promises. While last, but not least, durbars were held, in which Sir Henry Lawrence was able to proclaim his views and policy, by which the landholders should be reinstated in the possessions which they held at the annexation, the basis on which the instructions had been originally issued, which had been hitherto practically ignored, but to which he pledged himself to give effect.

8. But I can confidently say that within ten days, most of them were gone. The Fyzabad Moulvie had been captured and imprisoned. Fuzl Ali had been surrounded and killed. The promised pensions were paid out, following Sir H. Lawrence's strict orders, to the members and supporters of the Royal Family. A recognition was published acknowledging the rightful claims of the old Oudh officials to jobs over newcomers from our old provinces, and guidelines were issued to implement this. Disbanded soldiers from the Royal Army of Oudh were promised priority for enlistment in local units and the police, and a reorganization and increase of the latter, which were quickly approved, provided immediate opportunities to fulfill the first part of these promises. Lastly, but by no means least, durbars were held, where Sir Henry Lawrence was able to communicate his views and policy, stating that landowners should be restored to the properties they held at the time of the annexation, based on the original instructions, which had largely been ignored until then, but to which he committed himself to adhere.

'9. To strengthen his military position, he placed Artillery with the European Infantry; he distributed his Irregular Cavalry; he examined the city, decided on taking possession of the Muchee Bawn and garrisoning it as a fort; and summoned in Colonel Fisher and Captain George Hardinge;[Page 548]
and with them, Brigadier Handscombe and Major Anderson, consulted and arranged for future plans against the storms which he saw to be impending.

'9. To solidify his military position, he positioned artillery alongside the European infantry; he organized his irregular cavalry; he assessed the city, decided to take control of the Muchee Bawn and establish it as a fort; and he called in Colonel Fisher and Captain George Hardinge;[Page 548]
along with Brigadier Handscombe and Major Anderson, strategized and coordinated plans for the challenges he anticipated ahead.'

'10. Much of this, and his policy for remaining in Oudh, and the conduct of the defence of Lucknow, I know from recollections of what he occasionally let drop to me in his confidential conversations while inspecting the Muchee Bawn. He told me that nearly the whole army would go; that he did not think the Sikhs would go; that in every regiment there were men that, with proper management, would remain entirely on our side; and that, therefore, he meant to segregate from the rest of the troops the Sikhs and selected men, and to do his best to keep them faithful allies when the rest should go; that, if Cawnpore should hold out, we would not be attacked; but that if it should fall, we would be invested, and more or less closely besieged; that no troops could come to our relief before the middle of August; that the besieging forces would, he thought, be confined to the sepoys, for the people of the country had always liked our European officers, whom they had frequently had to bless for the safety of their lives and the honour of their families; and the whole Hindu population had a lively recollection of our friendly line of conduct in the late quarrel with the Mussulmans regarding the Hunnooman Gurhee; that to hold out where we were was necessary, for the slightest appearance of yielding, or of not showing a bold front, would result in annihilation; that to hold out we must get provisions; that to got provisions and prepare for an efficient defence we must keep open our communication with the country, and keep the city quiet; that to the former end the retention of the cantonment was necessary, and of the Muchee Bawn to the latter, while the site of the permanent defences, in case of the need of concentration, should be the Residency.

'10. I know a lot of this, along with his plan for staying in Oudh and the way he handled the defense of Lucknow, from memories of what he occasionally mentioned to me during our private chats while inspecting the Muchee Bawn. He told me that almost the entire army would leave; that he didn't believe the Sikhs would leave; that in every regiment there were men who, with the right approach, would stay completely on our side; and that, therefore, he intended to separate the Sikhs and chosen men from the rest of the troops and do his best to keep them as loyal allies when the others left; that if Cawnpore held out, we wouldn't face an attack; but if it fell, we would be surrounded and more or less besieged; that no troops could reach us before mid-August; that he thought the besieging forces would mainly be made up of sepoys, since the local people had always appreciated our European officers, whom they often thanked for their safety and honor; and the entire Hindu population had a vivid memory of our friendly actions during the recent conflict with the Mussulmans over the Hunnooman Gurhee; that it was crucial to hold our position, as even the slightest sign of giving in or not presenting a strong front would lead to our destruction; that to endure, we needed supplies; that to acquire supplies and prepare for an effective defense, we had to maintain our communication with the countryside and keep the city calm; that to achieve this, holding onto the cantonment was essential, and keeping the Muchee Bawn was important for maintaining order, while the site for permanent defenses, in case we needed to concentrate, would be the Residency.'

'11. All this I know, as before said, from Sir Henry Lawrence's own casual and hurried remarks to me. Whether they are officially recorded anywhere I do not know; but they must have been written in letters to various persons, and repeated to others of his subordinates at Lucknow. I mention these matters thus early, as although the facts on which they bear did not immediately occur, still, Sir Henry Lawrence had prescience of them, and had decided on his line of policy.

'11. I know all this, as I mentioned before, from Sir Henry Lawrence's casual and quick comments to me. I'm not sure if they are officially documented anywhere; however, he must have included them in letters to different people and shared them with others under his command at Lucknow. I bring these points up this early because, even though the events they relate to didn't happen right away, Sir Henry Lawrence had a sense of them and had already determined his approach to policy.'

'12. I understand, further, but not on authentic grounds, that Sir Henry wrote at a very early stage to Sir H. Wheeler, urging him to construct entrenchments at the magazine at Cawnpore, and to ensure his command of the boats, whatever might happen; that he wrote early to the Government, entreating them to divert one of the European regiments in the course of relief, and divide it between Cawnpore and Allahabad; and that subsequently he urged on Government to employ the troops of the Persian expedition in Bengal, and to stop the Chinese force for the same end, and to subsidize some of the Nepal troops for the protection of our older provinces east of Oudh.

'12. I also understand, though not based on solid evidence, that Sir Henry wrote very early on to Sir H. Wheeler, encouraging him to build fortifications at the magazine in Cawnpore and to secure control of the boats, regardless of what might happen; that he reached out to the Government early on, pleading with them to send one of the European regiments during the relief effort and to split it between Cawnpore and Allahabad; and that later he pressed the Government to use the troops from the Persian expedition in Bengal, to hold back the Chinese forces for the same purpose, and to provide financial support to some of the Nepalese troops for the defense of our older provinces east of Oudh.'

'13. To revert to the narrative, the measures already mentioned so entirely pacified the province, that, in spite of the previous discontent, the previous troubles, the proverbial turbulence of its inhabitants, and the increasing agitation throughout the empire, there was no difficulty experienced in collecting the revenue by the close of April. And the subsequent disturbances were, as will be shown, entirely due to the soldiery, and, till long after Sir Henry's death, participated in only by them, by the city ruffians, and by a few of the Mussulman families of the country population. The mass of the city people and the entire Hindu population held aloof, and would have nothing to say to the outbreak; and, with one single exception, every Talookdar, to whom the chance offered itself, aided, more or less actively, in the protection of European fugitives. This phase in the[Page 549] character of the disturbances in Oudh is not generally known; but it is nevertheless true, and is due emphatically and solely, under Divine Providence, to the benignant personal character and the popular policy of Sir Henry Lawrence.

'13. To get back to the story, the measures already mentioned calmed the province so completely that, despite past discontent, previous troubles, the typical unrest of its people, and the growing agitation across the empire, there were no issues collecting the revenue by the end of April. The later disturbances were, as will be shown, entirely caused by the soldiers, and for a long time after Sir Henry's death, were only supported by them, city troublemakers, and a few Muslim families from the rural population. The majority of the city residents and the entire Hindu community stayed away and didn’t get involved in the uprising; and, with one exception, every Talookdar, when given the chance, helped in varying degrees to protect European fugitives. This aspect of the situation in Oudh isn’t well-known, but it is nonetheless true and is significantly and solely, through Divine Providence, attributed to the kind personal character and the popular policies of Sir Henry Lawrence.'

'14. The 1st of May saw our disturbances commence with the mutiny of the 7th Oudh Irregular Infantry. This, its suppression, and the durbar in which he distributed rewards and delivered a speech on the aspect of affairs, have been fully described elsewhere, and need not be repeated by me.

'14. On May 1st, our troubles began with the mutiny of the 7th Oudh Irregular Infantry. The suppression of this mutiny, along with the durbar where he handed out rewards and gave a speech about the situation, has been thoroughly covered elsewhere, so I don’t need to repeat it here.'

'15. The durbar was held on the twelfth. I am not aware whether he had any intelligence at that time of the Meerut outbreak. The telegrams, when they did arrive, were vague; but he indubitably kept on his guard immediately on receiving them. The Cavalry were piqueted between the cantonments and the Residency, and the Infantry and Artillery were kept prepared for movement. His plans were evidently already decided; but they were to be effected simultaneously and not successively, and the movements of the Europeans were somewhat dependent on the arrangements of the Quarter-master-General's Department. It was not until the sixteenth that the tents required for the 32nd were ready; and the morning of the 17th May saw an entirely new and effective disposition of the troops. Half the Europeans were at the Residency, commanding the Iron Bridge; half, with the Artillery, were at the south end of the cantonments; the bridge of boats was moved and under control, while the Muchee Bawn, not yet sufficiently cleansed from its old conglomeration of filth, was garrisoned by a selected body of Native troops. The whole of these dispositions could not have been effected at an earlier date, and Sir Henry would not do them piecemeal or successively. Simultaneous, they were effective, and tended to paralyze any seditious plots that may have been hatching. Successive and piecemeal, they would have incited the sepoys to mutiny and the turbulent to insurrection.'

'15. The durbar took place on the twelfth. I’m not sure if he knew about the Meerut uprising at that time. When the telegrams finally arrived, they were unclear; however, he definitely stayed alert as soon as he got them. The Cavalry was stationed between the cantonments and the Residency, and the Infantry and Artillery were ready to move. His plans were clearly already in place; they just needed to be executed all at once rather than one after the other, and the movements of the Europeans were somewhat reliant on the Quarter-master-General's Department’s arrangements. It wasn’t until the sixteenth that the tents needed for the 32nd were set up; and on the morning of May 17th, there was a completely new and effective setup of the troops. Half of the Europeans were at the Residency, overseeing the Iron Bridge; the other half, along with the Artillery, were at the south end of the cantonments; the bridge of boats was relocated and under control, while the Muchee Bawn, still not completely cleared of its old mess, was garrisoned by a chosen group of Native troops. All of these arrangements couldn’t have been made any earlier, and Sir Henry wouldn’t do them piece by piece or one at a time. As a whole, they were effective and helped to disrupt any rebellious plans that might have been forming. If done one after another or in pieces, it would have provoked the sepoys to mutiny and the restless to rebel.'


Memorandum, 18th May, inserted in Sir Henry's own hand in his ledger book.

Memo, May 18th, written in Sir Henry's own hand in his ledger.

'Time is everything just now. Time, firmness, promptness, conciliation, and prudence; every officer, each individual European, high and low, may at this crisis prove most useful, or even dangerous. A firm and cheerful aspect must be maintained—there must be no bustle, no appearance of alarm, still less of panic; but, at the same time, there must be the utmost watchfulness and promptness; everywhere the first germ of insurrection must be put down instantly. Ten men may in an hour quell a row which, after a day's delay, may take weeks to put down. I wish this point to be well understood. In preserving internal tranquillity, the Chiefs and people of substance may be most usefully employed at this juncture; many of them have as much to lose as we have. Their property, at least, is at stake. Many of them have armed retainers—some few are good shots and have double-barrelled guns. For instance [name illegible], can hit a bottle at 100 yards. He is with the ordinary soldiers. I want a dozen such men, European or Native, to arm their own people and to make thannahs of their own houses, or some near position, and preserve tranquillity within a circuit around them.'

'Right now, time is everything. Time, decisiveness, quick action, diplomacy, and caution; every officer, every European, no matter their rank, can either be incredibly helpful or potentially dangerous during this critical moment. We need to maintain a strong and positive demeanor—there should be no chaos, no signs of fear, and especially no panic; however, at the same time, we must be extremely vigilant and ready to act immediately; any initial signs of rebellion must be dealt with right away. Ten people can handle a disturbance in an hour that might take weeks to control if we delay for a day. I want to emphasize this point. To maintain peace, the leaders and influential individuals can be extremely valuable right now; many stand to lose as much as we do. Their assets are at risk. Many of them have armed followers—some are skilled shooters and possess double-barreled shotguns. For example, [name illegible] can hit a bottle from 100 yards away. He's with the regular soldiers. I need a dozen such individuals, whether European or local, to arm their own people and create **thannahs** in their own homes or nearby places, ensuring peace within a surrounding area.'

[Return to p. 196]

[Return to __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__]






APPENDIX III.

(Referred to at p. 351.)

(Referred to at __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__)

The column was composed as follows:

The column was made up like this:

   Men. Guns.
F Battery, A Brigade, R.H.A., commanded by Colonel W.Sterling   135    6
One squadron 10th Hussars, commanded by Major Bulkeley   102  
G Battery, 3rd Brigade, R.A., commanded by Major Sydney Parry     83    3
2nd Battalion 8th Foot, commanded by Colonel Barry Drew   620  
Wing 72nd Highlanders, commanded by Lieutenant-Colonel F. Brownlow   405  
  ——–   —
Total British troops 1,345    9


12th Bengal Cavalry, commanded by Colonel Hugh Gough, V.C.   337  
No. 1 Mountain Battery, commanded by Captain Kelso   136    4
7th Company Bengal Sappers and Miners   113  
2nd (Punjab Frontier Force) Infantry, commanded by Lieutenant-Colonel Tyndall   647  
5th (Punjab Frontier Force) Infantry, commanded by Major McQueen   502  
5th (Punjab Frontier Force) Gurkhas, commanded by Major Fitz-Hugh   438  
21st Punjab Infantry, commanded by Major Collis   496  
23rd Pioneers, commanded by Colonel Currie   650  
29th Punjab Infantry, commanded by Colonel J.J. Gordon   671  
  ——–   —
Total Natives 3,990    4
  ——–   —
Grand total 5,335   13

Lieutenant-Colonel Alexander Lindsay commanded the Artillery, Colonel Æneas Perkins was Commanding Royal Engineer. Colonel Hugh Gough commanded the Cavalry, Brigadier-Generals Cobbe (17th Foot) and Thelwall (21st Punjab Infantry) the two Infantry brigades. Major W. Galbraith (85th Foot) was Assistant-Adjutant-General; Major H. Collett, Assistant, and Captains 'Dick' Kennedy and F. Carr, Deputy-Assistant-Quartermasters-General. Captains G. de C. Morton and A. Scott, V.C, Brigade-Majors. Captain A. Badcock, Chief Commissariat officer; Captain J. Colquhoun, R.A., Commissary of Ordnance; Major Moriarty, Captain Goad, and Lieutenant F. Maisey, Transport officers; Captain A. Wynne (51st Foot), Superintendent of Field Telegraphs; Captain R. Woodthorpe, R.E., Superintendent of Surveys; Deputy-Surgeon-General F. Allen, Principal Medical officer; Rev. J. W. Adams, Chaplain.]

Lieutenant-Colonel Alexander Lindsay led the Artillery, Colonel Æneas Perkins was the Commanding Royal Engineer. Colonel Hugh Gough was in charge of the Cavalry, while Brigadier-Generals Cobbe (17th Foot) and Thelwall (21st Punjab Infantry) managed the two Infantry brigades. Major W. Galbraith (85th Foot) served as the Assistant-Adjutant-General; Major H. Collett was the Assistant, and Captains 'Dick' Kennedy and F. Carr were the Deputy-Assistant-Quartermasters-General. Captains G. de C. Morton and A. Scott, V.C., were Brigade-Majors. Captain A. Badcock was the Chief Commissariat officer; Captain J. Colquhoun, R.A., was the Commissary of Ordnance; Major Moriarty, Captain Goad, and Lieutenant F. Maisey were Transport officers; Captain A. Wynne (51st Foot) was the Superintendent of Field Telegraphs; Captain R. Woodthorpe, R.E., was the Superintendent of Surveys; Deputy-Surgeon-General F. Allen was the Principal Medical officer; and Rev. J. W. Adams served as the Chaplain.

[Return to p. 351]

[Return to __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__]






APPENDIX IV.

1879

(Referred to at p. 391.)

(Referred to at __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__)

Translation of a letter from MAJOR-GENERAL SIR FREDERICK ROBERTS
to His Highness THE AMIR OF KABUL.

Translation of a letter from MAJOR-GENERAL SIR FREDERICK ROBERTS
to His Highness THE AMIR OF KABUL.

ALIKHEL, 18th September, 1879.

ALIKHEL, September 18, 1879.

(After the usual compliments.) Your Highness's letter of the 28th Ramazan, with the enclosures from Herat and Turkestan, reached me last night. I have acquainted myself with the contents. I am glad to find your Highness is in good health, but sorry to hear of the unfortunate disturbances in your Highness's dominions. Your Highness's letter, in original, has been sent with enclosures to His Excellency the Viceroy. I have already informed your Highness of the wishes of His Excellency the Viceroy, and the reasons for the movements of the British troops, and I have requested your Highness to send a confidential representative to my camp. I am awaiting a reply to that letter, and the arrival of your Highness's confidential representative.

(After the usual compliments.) I received your Highness's letter from the 28th of Ramazan, along with the enclosures from Herat and Turkestan, last night. I’ve reviewed the details. I’m pleased to hear your Highness is in good health, but I’m sorry to learn about the unfortunate issues in your Highness’s territories. Your Highness’s original letter has been sent along with the enclosures to His Excellency the Viceroy. I have already updated your Highness about the wishes of His Excellency the Viceroy and the reasons for the movements of the British troops, and I have asked your Highness to send a trusted representative to my camp. I’m waiting for a response to that letter and for the arrival of your Highness’s representative.

In the meantime I have sent a Proclamation to the tribes, and letters to some of the Logar maliks, your Highness's subjects, to assure those not concerned in the hateful massacre, and asking them for assistance in carriage and supplies on payment. As it appears to me proper I should inform your Highness of what I have done, I enclose copies of the Proclamation to the tribes and of my letter to the Logar maliks, and hope that your Highness may also issue necessary orders for the furtherance of our plans. Rest assured of the support of the Government of India.

In the meantime, I've sent a Proclamation to the tribes and letters to some of the Logar maliks, your Highness's subjects, to reassure those who weren't involved in the terrible massacre and to request their help with transportation and supplies for payment. Since I think it's important to keep your Highness informed about my actions, I'm including copies of the Proclamation to the tribes and my letter to the Logar maliks. I hope your Highness will also issue the necessary orders to support our plans. You can count on the support of the Government of India.

[Return to p. 391]

[Return to __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__]





APPENDIX V.

(Referred to at p. 391.)

(Referred to at __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__)

Notes of an interview between GENERAL SIR FREDERICK ROBERTS and the AMIR'S AGENTS, MUSTAUFI HABIBULLA KHAN and WAZIR SHAH MAHOMED KHAN.
Dated ALIKHEL, 23rd September, 1879.

Notes from an interview between GENERAL SIR FREDERICK ROBERTS and the AMIR'S AGENTS, MUSTAUFI HABIBULLA KHAN and WAZIR SHAH MAHOMED KHAN.
Dated ALIKHEL, September 23rd, 1879.

After compliments, General Roberts intimated to the Agents that at their desire he had granted them a second interview. He now requested them to be good enough to speak freely all that they wished him to know.

After exchanging compliments, General Roberts hinted to the Agents that at their request, he had arranged a second meeting with them. He now asked them to feel free to share anything they wanted him to know.

The MUSTAUFI then spoke in the following sense: The interests of England and Afghanistan are the same, and the Amir and his officials are deeply grieved at the late occurrences in Kabul. Moreover, the Amir is anxious to do whatever the British Government wishes, and most desirous that the dignity of the British Government should be maintained by any means which may seem proper to the Viceroy. But His Highness cannot conceal from himself that the mutinous troops and his people in general, ryots as well as soldiers, are in fear of an indiscriminate revenge, which will fall alike upon innocent and guilty. He hopes, therefore, that measures will be taken to guard against the possibility of a general rising consequent on fear.

The MUSTAUFI then expressed the following: The interests of England and Afghanistan are aligned, and the Amir and his officials are profoundly saddened by the recent events in Kabul. Additionally, the Amir is eager to comply with the wishes of the British Government and is very keen on maintaining the dignity of the British Government by any means the Viceroy deems appropriate. However, His Highness cannot ignore that both the mutinous troops and his people, including farmers and soldiers, are afraid of widespread retaliation that could impact both the innocent and the guilty. He therefore hopes that actions will be taken to prevent the possibility of a general uprising due to fear.

The Mustaufi was here reminded of the tenor of General Roberts's Proclamation on 15th September. He answered that the people were too ignorant to be acted upon by a Proclamation, and then went on as follows:

The Mustaufi was reminded here of the gist of General Roberts's Proclamation on September 15th. He replied that the people were too uninformed to be influenced by a Proclamation, and then continued as follows:

Of course, it is possible that no such combination may take place. The Afghans are selfish, and divided against themselves. Still, lest he should be[Page 552] blamed if it should occur, the Amir thinks it right to express his opinion, and give the British Government all the information in his power. On the whole, his advice, as an earnest friend, is that the advance of a British force on Kabul should be delayed for a short time ('Panjroz'). In the interval he will endeavour to disarm the Regular troops, raise new levies, and, by the aid of the latter, punish all concerned in the late abominable outrage. His idea is to get rid of Sher Ali's soldiery—always a source of danger—and keep only 15,000 men for the future. It would be very desirable to delay the advance until he could establish his power. The Amir does not mean to imply that any Afghan army, were it 50,000 strong, could resist the British. The mutinous troops have neither organization nor leaders. But the mutinous troops are of all tribes; and if the British army destroys them, as it would undoubtedly do in case of resistance, the whole country may combine against the British and the Amir. It is for this reason that he advises delay, and that the punishment of the guilty be left to him. The Viceroy may rest assured that he will show no mercy. He will make an example which will be conspicuous in the eyes of the world as the sun at noonday. Already everyone in Kabul regards the Amir as an infidel, because of the way in which he and his have thrown in their lot with the British Government.

Of course, it’s possible that no such combination will happen. The Afghans are selfish and divided. Still, to avoid blame if it does happen, the Amir thinks it's right to share his thoughts and provide the British Government with all the information he has. Overall, his advice, as a sincere friend, is that the British force's advance on Kabul should be postponed for a short time ('Panjroz'). In the meantime, he plans to disarm the regular troops, recruit new forces, and use them to punish everyone involved in the recent terrible incident. His goal is to eliminate Sher Ali's soldiers—always a source of risk—and retain only 15,000 men for the future. It would be very advantageous to delay the advance until he can strengthen his position. The Amir doesn't mean to suggest that any Afghan army, even if it numbered 50,000, could withstand the British. The mutinous troops lack organization and leadership. But these mutinous troops come from all tribes; and if the British army crushes them, which it would undoubtedly do in case of resistance, the entire country might unite against both the British and the Amir. This is why he advises delaying and leaving the punishment of the guilty to him. The Viceroy can be assured that he will show no mercy. He will set an example that will be as evident to the world as the sun at midday. Already, everyone in Kabul views the Amir as an infidel because of how he and his people have allied with the British Government.

Notwithstanding all that has been said, however, things might go right if the mutinous troops would keep together and attempt a stand. But the Amir fears they will not do so. They are more likely to scatter here and there, and raise the country. In that case there will be constant attacks on the communications of the force, and the gathering of supplies will be difficult. They would come chiefly from the direction of Ghazni, partly also from Logar. If the tribes rise it would be hard to collect them. Only one month remains before the setting in of winter. Of course, it is impossible to say what may happen. There may be no opposition, and the Amir is in any case ready to do what the British Government desires. But he feels it is his duty to express his strong opinion that the present season is unsuited for a forward movement.

Despite everything that has been said, things might go well if the rebellious troops would stick together and make a stand. But the Amir fears they won't. They're more likely to scatter and cause chaos across the country. If that happens, there will be ongoing attacks on the force's supply lines, making it hard to gather supplies. Most of these would come from the Ghazni area, with some from Logar. If the tribes rise up, collecting supplies would be challenging. Only one month is left before winter sets in. Of course, it's impossible to predict what will happen. There might be no opposition at all, and the Amir is prepared to do what the British Government wants. But he feels it's his responsibility to strongly express that this time of year isn't suitable for a forward movement.

General Roberts replied that on behalf of the Viceroy he thanked the Amir for his kind advice, which he was confident was the advice of a friend. He said the matter was important, and required careful consideration, and asked whether the Agents had anything more to bring forward.

General Roberts replied that he thanked the Amir for his kind advice on behalf of the Viceroy, confident that it came from a friend. He mentioned that the issue was significant and needed careful thought, and he asked whether the Agents had anything else to add.

The Mustaufi then spoke as follows: The Amir's advice to delay the advance is that of a sincere friend, and it is the best he can give. But if the British Army is to march on Kabul, there is one thing more which I am desired to say: let it march in such strength as to crush all hopes of mischief, and put down all rebellion throughout the country. You cannot wait for reinforcements. If you come, you must come in full strength—in sufficient strength to put down all opposition. There may be no opposition, but you cannot count on this.

The Mustaufi then said the following: The Amir's suggestion to hold off on advancing comes from a true friend, and it’s the best advice he can offer. However, if the British Army is set to march on Kabul, there’s one more thing I need to emphasize: they should march with enough force to completely eliminate any chance of trouble and suppress all rebellion across the country. You can’t wait for reinforcements. If you come, you need to come with full force—strong enough to overcome any opposition. There might not be any opposition, but you can’t rely on that.

General Roberts replied: The Amir's advice is of great importance, and must be carefully considered. When His Highness first wrote, announcing the outbreak at Kabul and asking for help, the first desire of the Viceroy was to send British forces without delay. I was ordered to Kuram at once to lead the force here. Simultaneously the Kandahar force was ordered by telegram to return to Kandahar, which it was then leaving, and to advance towards Kelat-i-Ghilzai, and instructions were issued to collect a third force at Peshawar; all this was to help the Amir. The Viceroy from the first contemplated the possibility of such a general rising as the Amir now fears, and the several armies were, therefore, by His Excellency's order, made up to such strength that all Afghanistan combined could not stand against them for a moment. The Kandahar troops were ready in a very short time, and are now[Page 553] beyond Kandahar, on the road to Kabul.1 The Peshawar force was rapidly collected and pushed on; and the Amir may rest assured that the British army is advancing in ample strength. I will think over the Amir's advice, nevertheless, for it is important. But His Highness must remember that the late occurrences at Kabul do not affect only the English officers and the fifty or sixty men who were treacherously killed—the honour of the English Government is concerned; and so long as the bodies of these officers and men remain unburied or uncared for in Kabul, I do not believe the English people will ever be satisfied. They will require the advance of a British force, and the adequate punishment of the crime. Still, the Amir's advice, which I am convinced is that of a friend, must be carefully considered, and I will think over it and give an answer later.

General Roberts replied: The Amir's advice is really important and needs to be taken seriously. When His Highness first wrote to announce the situation in Kabul and ask for help, the Viceroy's first instinct was to send British forces right away. I was ordered to Kuram immediately to lead the troops here. At the same time, the Kandahar force was instructed by telegram to return to Kandahar, which they were just leaving, and to move towards Kelat-i-Ghilzai, while arrangements were made to gather a third force at Peshawar; all of this was aimed at assisting the Amir. From the start, the Viceroy considered the possibility of a general uprising, which the Amir now fears, so the various armies were strengthened by His Excellency's orders to ensure that all of Afghanistan combined wouldn't stand a chance against them. The Kandahar troops were ready very quickly and are now[Page 553] beyond Kandahar, heading towards Kabul.1 The Peshawar force was rapidly assembled and sent forward; the Amir can be assured that the British army is moving out with enough strength. However, I will consider the Amir's advice because it is significant. But His Highness must keep in mind that the recent events in Kabul don't just concern the English officers and the fifty or sixty men who were treacherously killed—the honor of the English Government is at stake; and as long as the bodies of these officers and men remain unburied or unacknowledged in Kabul, I don't believe the English people will ever be satisfied. They will demand the advance of a British force and proper punishment for the crime. Still, the Amir's advice, which I genuinely believe comes from a friend, must be carefully thought over, and I will reflect on it and provide an answer later.

The MUSTAUFI then said: We quite understand what has been said about the strength of the British army. Doubtless it is sufficient, and all Afghanistan could not stand against it. But the Amir asked us to mention, what I have hitherto forgotten, that there are in Turkestan 24 regiments of Infantry, 6 of Cavalry, and 56 guns. These troops were the first to show a disaffected spirit at Mazar-i-Sharif; and putting aside external enemies, there are Abdur Rahman and the sons of Azim Khan waiting their chance. Herat again is doubtful; when the troops there hear what has occurred at Kabul, there is no saying what they may do. If Abdur Rahman ingratiates himself with these people, Herat and Turkestan will be permanently severed from the Afghan dominions. This is another reason why the advance of the British force should be delayed, in order that the Amir may have time to gain over the Herat and Turkestan troops.

The MUSTAUFI then said: We totally get what’s been said about the British army's strength. It’s definitely powerful enough, and all of Afghanistan couldn’t stand against it. But the Amir asked us to mention, which I forgot to say earlier, that there are 24 infantry regiments, 6 cavalry regiments, and 56 guns in Turkestan. These troops were the first to show a rebellious attitude at Mazar-i-Sharif; and besides outside enemies, there are Abdur Rahman and the sons of Azim Khan looking for their opportunity. Herat is uncertain again; when the troops there find out what’s happened in Kabul, who knows what they might do. If Abdur Rahman wins over these people, Herat and Turkestan could be permanently cut off from Afghan control. This is another reason why we should delay the British advance, so the Amir has time to win over the Herat and Turkestan troops.

GENERAL ROBERTS replied: All these reasons will have full consideration. The Viceroy's first order was to push on at once to help the Amir; but I am sure His Highness's advice is friendly, and that in any case he will do his utmost to co-operate with the British Government. Therefore every consideration will be given to what His Highness has desired you to say.

GENERAL ROBERTS replied: All these reasons will be taken into account. The Viceroy's first order was to move forward immediately to assist the Amir; however, I believe His Highness's advice is well-intentioned, and in any case, he will do his best to work alongside the British Government. Therefore, we will fully consider what His Highness has asked you to convey.

The MUSTAUFI: The Viceroy may be sure the Amir will do what he pleases.

The MUSTAUFI: The Viceroy can be sure the Amir will act as he wants.

The WAZIR: When the Amir learnt from General Roberts's letter that the Viceroy had given General Roberts power to deal with the whole matter, he was very pleased, knowing General Roberts's character as a soldier and his kindness of heart.

The WAZIR: When the Amir found out from General Roberts's letter that the Viceroy had given General Roberts the authority to handle the entire situation, he was very pleased, knowing General Roberts's reputation as a soldier and his kind nature.

GENERAL ROBERTS replied that he would carefully consider the proposals brought forward, and give an answer later on. Meanwhile, he must request the Agents to stay a day or two in camp until he should have thoroughly weighed the Amir's advice, which was of the utmost importance to both the British and Afghan Governments.

GENERAL ROBERTS replied that he would take the time to think about the proposals presented and provide a response later. In the meantime, he needed to ask the Agents to stay in camp for a day or two until he had fully considered the Amir's advice, which was extremely important for both the British and Afghan Governments.

The interview then came to an end.

The interview ended.

(Signed)          H. M. DURAND,
Political Secretary to General Roberts, K.C.B., V.C.,
Commanding Kabul Field Force.            

(Signed)          H. M. DURAND,
Political Secretary to General Roberts, K.C.B., V.C.,
Commanding Kabul Field Force.

[Footnote 1: The Agents here seemed surprised and anxious.—H.M.D.]

[Footnote 1: The agents here looked surprised and worried.—H.M.D.]

[Return to p. 391]

[Return to __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__]






APPENDIX VI.

1879

(Referred to at p. 421.)

(Referred to at __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__)

From LIEUTENANT-GENERAL SIR F. ROBERTS, K.C.B., V.C., Commanding Kabul Field Force, to A.C. LYALL, ESQ., C.B., Secretary to the Government of India, Foreign Department.

From LIEUTENANT-GENERAL SIR F. ROBERTS, K.C.B., V.C., Commanding Kabul Field Force, to A.C. LYALL, ESQ., C.B., Secretary to the Government of India, Foreign Department.

KABUL, 22nd November, 1879.

Kabul, November 22, 1879.

1. I Have the honour to submit a brief account of an interview which took place between the Amir Yakub Khan and myself on the 22nd October. The interview was a private and informal one; but recent events have lent some interest to what passed on the occasion, and I have, therefore, thought it desirable that a report should be prepared for the information of the Governor-General in Council.

1. I have the honor to share a brief account of a meeting that took place between Amir Yakub Khan and me on October 22nd. The meeting was private and informal, but recent events have made what happened during it more significant, so I thought it would be useful to prepare a report for the Governor-General in Council.

2. After some conversation upon matters of no special importance, the Amir introduced his father's name, and thus gave me the opportunity I had often wished to have of leading him on to speak naturally and unconstrainedly about Sher Ali Khan's feelings and policy during the last ten years. I was most careful to avoid any expression of my own views upon the subject in order that I might, if possible, obtain from the Amir a perfectly spontaneous and truthful account of the circumstances which led, in his opinion, to Sher Ali's estrangement from ourselves and rapprochement to Russia. In this I think I succeeded. Yakub Khan spoke readily and freely of all that had passed, and needed no question or suggestion from me to declare his conviction regarding the cause of his father's unfriendly attitude towards us during the past few years.

2. After chatting about things that weren’t particularly important, the Amir brought up his father's name, which gave me the chance I had often hoped for to encourage him to talk openly and naturally about Sher Ali Khan's feelings and policies over the last ten years. I was very careful not to share my own opinions on the topic so that I could, if possible, get a completely spontaneous and honest account from the Amir about what he believed led to Sher Ali's distance from us and closer ties with Russia. I think I succeeded in this. Yakub Khan spoke easily and freely about everything that had happened, and he didn’t need any questions or prompts from me to express his belief regarding the reason for his father's unfriendly behavior towards us in recent years.

3. The substance of the Amir's statement was as follows:

3. The main point of the Amir's statement was:

'In 1869 my father was fully prepared to throw in his lot with you. He had suffered many reverses before making himself secure on the throne of Afghanistan; and he had come to the conclusion that his best chance of holding what he had won lay in an alliance with the British Government. He did not receive from Lord Mayo as large a supply of arms and ammunition as he had hoped, but, nevertheless, he returned to Kabul fairly satisfied, and so he remained until the visit of Saiyad Nur Muhammud to India in 1873. This visit brought matters to a head. The diaries received from Saiyad Nur Mahomed during his stay in India, and the report which he brought back on his return, convinced my father that he could no longer hope to obtain from the British Government all the aid that he wanted; and from that time he began to turn his attention to the thoughts of a Russian alliance. You know how this ended.

In 1869, my father was ready to ally with you. He had faced many setbacks before securing his position on the throne of Afghanistan, and he believed that his best chance of keeping what he had gained was to partner with the British Government. Although he didn’t receive as many arms and ammunition from Lord Mayo as he expected, he returned to Kabul fairly content, and he remained that way until Saiyad Nur Muhammud's visit to India in 1873. This visit changed everything. The diaries he received from Saiyad Nur Mahomed during his time in India, along with the report he brought back, convinced my father that he could no longer rely on the British Government for the support he needed. From that point on, he began considering an alliance with Russia. You know how that turned out.

'When my father received from the Government of India the letter informing him that a British Mission was about to proceed to Kabul, he read it out in durbar. The members of the Russian Embassy were present. After the reading was finished, Colonel Stolietoff rose, saluted the Amir and asked permission to leave Kabul. If permitted, he would, he said, travel without delay to Tashkent, and report the state of affairs to General Kauffmann, who would inform the Czar, and thus bring pressure to bear on England. He promised to return in six weeks or two months, and urged the Amir to do everything in his power meanwhile to prevent the British Mission from reaching Kabul.

'When my father got the letter from the Government of India informing him that a British Mission was about to head to Kabul, he read it out in durbar. The members of the Russian Embassy were there. Once he finished reading, Colonel Stolietoff stood up, saluted the Amir, and asked for permission to leave Kabul. If allowed, he said he would travel immediately to Tashkent to update General Kauffmann, who would inform the Czar and put pressure on England. He promised to come back in six weeks or two months and urged the Amir to do everything he could in the meantime to stop the British Mission from getting to Kabul.'

'Colonel Stolietoff never returned to Kabul. He lost no time in reaching Tashkent, where he remained for a few weeks, and he then started for Russia.

'Colonel Stolietoff never went back to Kabul. He quickly made his way to Tashkent, where he stayed for a few weeks, and then he headed to Russia.'

'The Afghan official, Mirza Mahomed Hassan Khan, generally known as the "Dabir-ul-Mulk," who had travelled with Colonel Stolietoff from the[Page 555] Oxus to Kabul, accompanied him on his return journey to Tashkent. Here the Mirza was detained under pretence that orders would shortly be received from the Emperor, until the news of my father's flight from Kabul reached General Kauffmann. He was then permitted to leave. Two Aides-de-Camp were sent with him, one a European, the other a Native of Bokhara.

The Afghan official, Mirza Mahomed Hassan Khan, commonly called the "Dabir-ul-Mulk," who traveled with Colonel Stolietoff from the[Page 555] Oxus to Kabul, joined him on his return trip to Tashkent. There, the Mirza was held under the pretense that they were waiting for orders from the Emperor, until news of my father's escape from Kabul reached General Kauffmann. He was then allowed to leave. Two Aides-de-Camp were sent with him, one a European and the other a native of Bokhara.

'My father was strongly urged by General Kauffmann not to leave Kabul. At the same time the members of the Embassy were ordered to return to Tashkent, the Doctor being permitted to remain with my father if his services were required.

'My father was strongly advised by General Kauffmann not to leave Kabul. At the same time, the members of the Embassy were instructed to return to Tashkent, with the Doctor allowed to stay with my father if his services were needed.'

'Throughout, the Russian Embassy was treated with great honour, and at all stations between Mazar-i-Shariff and Kabul, orders were given for the troops to turn out, and for a salute to be fired on their arrival and departure.'

'Throughout, the Russian Embassy was treated with great honor, and at all stops between Mazar-i-Shariff and Kabul, orders were issued for the troops to come out and for a salute to be fired upon their arrival and departure.'

4. I cannot, of course, vouch for the exact words used by Yakub Khan, but I am confident that the foregoing paragraph, which is written from notes taken at the time, contains a substantially accurate record of the conversation.

4. I can't, of course, confirm the exact words used by Yakub Khan, but I'm sure that the paragraph above, which is based on notes taken at the time, provides a mostly accurate account of the conversation.

5. It would be superfluous for me to advance any proof of the fact that for one reason or another Sher Ali did during the latter part of his reign fall away from us and incline towards an alliance with Russia. But I think the closeness of the connection between Russia and Kabul, and the extent of the Amir's hostility towards ourselves, has not hitherto been fully recognized. Yakub Khan's statements throw some light upon this question, and they are confirmed by various circumstances which have lately come to my knowledge. The prevalence of Russian coin and wares in Kabul, and the extensive military preparations made by Sher Ali of late years, appear to me to afford an instructive comment upon Yakub Khan's assertions. Our recent rupture with Sher Ali has, in fact, been the means of unmasking and checking a very serious conspiracy against the peace and security of our Indian Empire.

5. It would be unnecessary for me to provide any proof that, for one reason or another, Sher Ali, during the later part of his reign, distanced himself from us and leaned towards an alliance with Russia. However, I believe the closeness of the relationship between Russia and Kabul, as well as the extent of the Amir's hostility towards us, has not yet been fully acknowledged. Yakub Khan's statements shed some light on this issue, which is backed by various circumstances that have recently come to my attention. The prevalence of Russian currency and goods in Kabul, along with the significant military preparations made by Sher Ali in recent years, seem to support Yakub Khan's claims. Our recent break with Sher Ali has, in fact, revealed and thwarted a serious conspiracy against the peace and security of our Indian Empire.

6. The magnitude of Sher Ali's military preparations is, in my opinion, a fact of peculiar significance. I have already touched upon this point in a former letter, but I shall perhaps be excused for noticing it again. Before the outbreak of hostilities last year the Amir had raised and equipped with arms of precision 68 regiments of Infantry and 16 of Cavalry. The Afghan Artillery amounted to nearly 300 guns. Numbers of skilled artizans were constantly employed in the manufacture of rifled cannon and breach-loading small arms. More than a million pounds of powder, and I believe several million rounds of home-made Snider ammunition, were in the Bala Hissar at the time of the late explosion. Swords, helmets, uniforms, and other articles of military equipment were stored in proportionate quantities. Finally, Sher Ali had expended upon the construction of the Sherpur cantonments an astonishing amount of labour and money. The extent and cost of this work may be judged of from the fact that the whole of the troops under my command will find cover during the winter within the cantonment, and the bulk of them in the main line of rampart itself, which extends to a length of nearly two miles under the southern and western slopes of the Bimaru hills. Sher Ali's original design was apparently to carry the wall entirely round the hills, a distance of nearly five miles, and the foundations were already laid for a considerable portion of this length. All these military preparations were quite unnecessary except as a provision for contemplated hostilities with ourselves, and it is difficult to understand how their entire cost could have been met from the Afghan treasury, the gross revenue of the country amounting only to about eighty lakhs of rupees per annum.

6. The scale of Sher Ali's military preparations is, in my view, quite significant. I've mentioned this in a previous letter, but I hope it's okay to bring it up again. Before the fighting started last year, the Amir had raised and equipped 68 infantry regiments and 16 cavalry regiments with modern weaponry. The Afghan artillery consisted of nearly 300 guns. Many skilled craftsmen were continually engaged in making rifled cannons and breach-loading firearms. At the time of the recent explosion, more than a million pounds of gunpowder, along with several million rounds of locally made Snider ammunition, were stored in the Bala Hissar. Swords, helmets, uniforms, and other military gear were stockpiled in similar amounts. Ultimately, Sher Ali invested an incredible amount of labor and money into building the Sherpur cantonments. The size and expense of this project can be gauged by the fact that all the troops under my command will find shelter there during the winter, with most of them in the main rampart itself, which stretches nearly two miles along the southern and western slopes of the Bimaru hills. Sher Ali's original plan seemed to be to extend the wall all the way around the hills, nearly five miles, and foundations were already laid for a significant part of this. All these military preparations were quite unnecessary unless they were intended for potential conflict with us, and it’s hard to see how their entire cost could have been covered by the Afghan treasury, which only has a gross revenue of about eighty lakhs of rupees a year.

7. I have referred to the prevalence of Russian coin and wares in Kabul as evidence of the growing connexion between Russia and Afghanistan. I am unable to find proof that the Czar's coin was introduced in any other way than by the usual channels of trade. It is quite possible that the bulk of it,[Page 556] if not the whole, came in gradually by this means, the accumulation of foreign gold in particular being considerable in this country, where little gold is coined. Nevertheless, it seems to me a curious fact that the amount of Russian money in circulation should be so large. No less than 13,000 gold pieces were found among the Amir's treasure alone; similar coins are exceedingly common in the city bazaar; and great numbers of them are known to be in possession of the Sirdars. Of course English goods of all kinds are plentiful here—that is inevitable, particularly with a considerable body of Hindu merchants settled in the city, but Russian goods also abound. Glass, crockery, silks, tea, and many other things which would seem to be far more easily procurable from India than from Russian territory, are to be found in great quantities. A habit, too, seems to have been growing up among the Sirdars and others of wearing uniforms of Russian cut, Russian buttons, Russian boots, and the like. Russian goods and Russian ways seem, in fact, to have become the fashion in Afghanistan.

7. I have pointed out the common presence of Russian coins and products in Kabul as evidence of the increasing connection between Russia and Afghanistan. I can't find any proof that the Czar's coins came into the country by any means other than the usual trade routes. It’s very likely that most, if not all, of these coins arrived gradually this way, especially since there's a significant amount of foreign gold in this country where little gold is minted. Still, it strikes me as interesting that there should be such a large amount of Russian currency in circulation. No fewer than 13,000 gold pieces were found among the Amir's treasure alone; similar coins are extremely common in the city bazaar, and many are known to be held by the Sirdars. Naturally, English goods of all kinds are abundant here—that’s expected, especially with a sizable number of Hindu merchants established in the city—but Russian goods are also everywhere. Things like glass, crockery, silks, tea, and many other items that would seem to be much easier to get from India than from Russia can be found in large quantities. It also appears that the Sirdars and others have developed a tendency to wear uniforms styled like Russian ones, complete with Russian buttons, boots, and so on. Russian goods and Russian styles seem to have become the trend in Afghanistan.

[Return to p. 421]

[Return to __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__]





APPENDIX VII.

(Referred to at p. 421.)

(Referred to at __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__)

Translations of letters from GENERAL-ADJUTANT VON KAUFFMANN, Governor-General of Turkestan, to the address of the AMIR OF AFGHANISTAN, received on 10th, Shaban, 1295, through GENERAL STOLIETOFF, 9th August, 1878.

Translations of letters from GENERAL-ADJUTANT VON KAUFFMANN, Governor-General of Turkestan, to the address of the AMIR OF AFGHANISTAN, received on the 10th of Shaban, 1295, through GENERAL STOLIETOFF, on August 9th, 1878.

Be it known to you that in these days the relations between the British Government and ours with regard to your kingdom require deep consideration. As I am unable to communicate my opinion verbally to you, I have deputed my agent, Major-General Stolietoff. This gentleman is a near friend of mine, and performed excellent services in the Russo-Turkish war, by which he earned favour of the Emperor. The Emperor has always had a regard for him. He will inform you of all that is hidden in my mind. I hope you will pay great attention to what he says, and believe him as you would myself, and, after due consideration, you will give him your reply. Meanwhile, be it known to you that your union and friendship with the Russian Government will be beneficial to the latter, and still more so to you. The advantages of a close alliance with the Russian Government will be permanently evident.

Be aware that the current relationship between the British Government and ours regarding your kingdom needs careful thought. Since I can't share my thoughts with you directly, I've sent my representative, Major-General Stolietoff. He’s a close friend of mine and did an outstanding job in the Russo-Turkish war, earning the Emperor's favor. The Emperor has always respected him. He will share everything that’s on my mind. I hope you will listen closely to what he says and trust him as you would trust me. After considering his words, I ask you to provide your response. In the meantime, know that your partnership and friendship with the Russian Government will benefit both parties, but it will benefit you even more. The advantages of a strong alliance with the Russian Government will be clear and lasting.

This friendly letter is written by the Governor-General of Turkestan and Adjutant-General to the Emperor, Von Kauffmann, Tashkent, Jamadial Akbar, 1295 ( = June, 1878).

This friendly letter is written by the Governor-General of Turkestan and Adjutant-General to the Emperor, Von Kauffmann, Tashkent, Jamadial Akbar, 1295 ( = June, 1878).



To the AMIR of the whole of Afghanistan, SHER ALI KHAN.

To the Amir of all of Afghanistan, Sher Ali Khan.

(After compliments.) Be it known to you that our relations with the British Government are of great importance to Afghanistan and its dependencies. As I am unable to see you, I have deputed my trustworthy (official) General Stolietoff to you. The General is an old friend of mine, and during the late Russo-Turkish war earned the favour of the Emperor by his spirit and bravery. He has become well known to the Emperor. This trustworthy person will communicate to you what he thinks best. I hope you will pay attention to what he says, and repose as much confidence in his words as if they were my own; and that you will give your answer in this matter through him. In the meantime, be it known to you that if a friendly treaty will be[Page 557] of benefit to us, it will be of far greater benefit to yourself.

(After compliments.) Please note that our relationship with the British Government is very important for Afghanistan and its territories. Since I can't meet you in person, I've sent my trusted official, General Stolietoff, to speak with you. The General is an old friend of mine and earned the Emperor's favor during the recent Russo-Turkish war due to his courage and spirit. He is well known to the Emperor. This reliable person will share his thoughts on what would be best. I hope you will listen to him and trust his words as if they were mine. Please respond to him regarding this matter. In the meantime, understand that if a friendly treaty would benefit us, it would benefit you even more.



GENERAL STOLIETOFF sent the following letter, on his return to Tashkent from Kabul, to the address of the Foreign Minister, WAZIR SHAH MAHOMED KHAN, dated 23rd of the holy month of Ramazan, 1295 ( = 21st September, 1878).

GENERAL STOLIETOFF sent the following letter upon his return to Tashkent from Kabul to the Foreign Minister, WAZIR SHAH MAHOMED KHAN, dated the 23rd of the holy month of Ramazan, 1295 (= September 21, 1878).

Thank God, I reached Tashkent safely, and at an auspicious moment paid my respects to the Viceroy (Yaroni Padishah means 'half king'). I am trying day and night to gain our objects, and hope I shall be successful. I am starting to see the Emperor to-day, in order to inform His Majesty personally of our affairs. If God pleases, everything that is necessary will be done and affirmed. I hope that those who want to enter the gate of Kabul from the east will see that the door is closed; then, please God, they will tremble. I hope you will give my respects to His Highness the Amir. May God make his life long and increase his wealth! May you remain in good health, and know that the protection of God will arrange our affairs!

Thank God, I arrived safely in Tashkent, and at a good time, I paid my respects to the Viceroy (Yaroni Padishah means 'half king'). I'm working tirelessly to achieve our goals and hope to be successful. I’m meeting with the Emperor today to personally update His Majesty on our situation. If God wills, everything necessary will be taken care of and confirmed. I hope that those wanting to enter Kabul from the east will find the door shut; then, God willing, they will be afraid. Please send my regards to His Highness the Amir. May God grant him a long life and increase his wealth! Wishing you good health, and remember that with God's protection, our matters will be resolved!

(Signed)          GENERAL STOLIETOFF.

(Signed)          GENERAL STOLIETOFF.



From GENERAL KAUFFMANN to the AMIR, dated Tashkent, 8th Zekada,
1295 ( = 22nd October, 1878).

From GENERAL KAUFFMANN to the AMIR, dated Tashkent, October 22, 1878.

(After compliments.) Be it known to you that your letter, dated 12th Shawal, reached me at Tashkent on the 16th October, i.e., 3rd Zekada, and I understood its contents. I have telegraphed an abstract of your letter to the address of the Emperor, and have sent the letter itself, as also that addressed to General Stolietoff, by post to Livadia, where the Emperor now is. I am informed on good authority that the English want to come to terms with you; and, as a friend, I advise you to make peace with them if they offer it.

(After compliments.) I want you to know that your letter, dated 12th Shawal, reached me in Tashkent on October 16th, i.e., 3rd Zekada, and I understood its contents. I have telegraphed a summary of your letter to the Emperor, and I’ve sent the letter itself, as well as the one addressed to General Stolietoff, by mail to Livadia, where the Emperor is currently located. I’ve been informed from a reliable source that the English are looking to negotiate with you; as a friend, I recommend you consider making peace with them if they extend an offer.



From GENERAL STOLIETOFF to WAZIR SHAH MAHOMED KHAN, dated
8th October 1878.

From GENERAL STOLIETOFF to WAZIR SHAH MAHOMED KHAN, dated
8th October 1878.

First of all, I hope you will be kind enough to give my respects to the Amir. May God make his life long and increase his wealth! I shall always remember his royal hospitality. I am busy day and night in his affairs, and, thank God, my labours have not been without result. The great Emperor is a true friend of the Amir's and of Afghanistan, and His Majesty will do whatever he may think necessary. Of course, you have not forgotten what I told you, that the affairs of kingdoms are like a country which has many mountains, valleys, and rivers. One who sits on a high mountain can see things well. By the power and order of God, there is no empire equal to that of our great Emperor. May God make his life long! Therefore, whatever our Government advises you, you should give ear to it. I tell you the truth that our Government is wise as a serpent and harmless as a dove. There are many things which you cannot understand, but our Government understands them well. It often happens that a thing which is unpleasant at first is regarded as a blessing afterwards. Now, my kind friend, I inform you that the enemy of your famous religion wants to make peace with you through the Kaisar (Sultan) of Turkey. Therefore you should look to your brothers who live on the other side of the river. If God stirs them up, and gives the sword of fight into their hands, then go on, in the name of God (Bismilla), otherwise you should be as a serpent; make peace openly, and in secret prepare for war, and when God reveals His order to you, declare yourself. It will be well, when the Envoy of your enemy wants to enter the country, if you send an able emissary, possessing the tongue of a serpent and full of deceit, to the enemy's country, so that he may with sweet words perplex the enemy's mind,[Page 558] and induce him to give up the intention of fighting with you.

First of all, I hope you'll be kind enough to send my regards to the Amir. May God bless him with a long life and increase his wealth! I will always remember his royal hospitality. I'm busy day and night with his matters, and, thankfully, my efforts haven't been in vain. The great Emperor is a true friend of the Amir and of Afghanistan, and His Majesty will do whatever he thinks is necessary. Of course, you haven't forgotten what I mentioned, that the affairs of kingdoms are like a land with many mountains, valleys, and rivers. Someone on a high mountain has a clear view. By the grace and order of God, no empire compares to our great Emperor's. May God bless him with a long life! Therefore, whatever our Government advises you, you should listen to it. I'm telling you the truth that our Government is as wise as a serpent and as harmless as a dove. There are many things you may not understand, but our Government understands them well. It often happens that something unpleasant at first is seen as a blessing later on. Now, my dear friend, I want to inform you that the enemy of your well-known religion wants to make peace with you through the Kaisar (Sultan) of Turkey. So, you should pay attention to your brothers who live across the river. If God inspires them and arms them for battle, then proceed, in the name of God (Bismillah); otherwise, you should be like a serpent—make peace openly, and secretly prepare for war, and when God reveals His will to you, make your move. It would be wise to send a clever emissary, someone with the gift of persuasion and full of cunning, to the enemy's territory, so he can use sweet words to confuse the enemy's mind and persuade them to abandon their plans to fight you.[Page 558]

My kind friend, I entrust you to the protection of God. May God be the protector of the Amir's kingdom, and may trembling fall upon the limbs of your enemies! Amen.

My dear friend, I leave you in God's care. May God protect the Amir's kingdom, and may fear grip the hearts of your enemies! Amen.

Write to me soon, and send the letter to the capital. Please write in Arabic characters, so that I may be able to read your letter.

Write to me soon, and send the letter to the capital. Please use Arabic characters, so that I can read your letter.



From, GENERAL KAUFFMANN to the AMIR OF AFGHANISTAN, dated 30th
Zekada (=26th November,
1878).

From, GENERAL KAUFFMANN to the AMIR OF AFGHANISTAN, dated 30th
Zekada (=26th November,
1878).

(After compliments.) I was much pleased to receive your letter, dated 24th Zekada, 1295 (=18th November, 1878), and to hear of your good health. I have also received a copy of the letter which you sent to the Governor-General. May God be pleased with you. The British Ministers have given a pledge to our Ambassador in London that they will not interfere with the independence of Afghanistan. I am directed by His Majesty the Emperor to communicate this news to you, and then, after forming friendship, to go to His Majesty. I intend to go to the Russian capital after I have arranged the affairs of this country (Turkestan). As I do not consider it advisable to keep your trusted officials, whom you are in want of, here any more, I send Mahomed Hassan Khan, Kamuah (Deputy-Governor), and Gholam Haidar Khan, with two officers, back to you. I hope you will consider me a well-wisher of your kingdom, and write to me now and then. I have given instructions that, until my return, every letter of yours which they receive at Turkestan should be forwarded to the capital. Your good fortune is a cause of happiness to me, and if any troubles come upon you, I also shall be grieved. Some presents have been sent by me through Mirza Mahomed Hassan, Kamuah; perhaps they may be accepted.

(After compliments.) I was very pleased to receive your letter, dated 24th Zekada, 1295 (=18th November, 1878), and to hear that you are in good health. I have also received a copy of the letter you sent to the Governor-General. May God bless you. The British Ministers have assured our Ambassador in London that they will not interfere with Afghanistan's independence. I have been instructed by His Majesty the Emperor to share this news with you, and then, after establishing our friendship, to go to His Majesty. I plan to head to the Russian capital after I take care of affairs in this region (Turkestan). Since I don't think it's wise to keep your trusted officials, whom you need, here any longer, I’m sending Mahomed Hassan Khan, Kamuah (Deputy-Governor), and Gholam Haidar Khan, along with two officers, back to you. I hope you see me as a friend of your kingdom and that you'll write to me from time to time. I've given orders that, until my return, every letter you send to Turkestan should be forwarded to the capital. Your good fortune brings me joy, and if you face any difficulties, I will also feel saddened. I've sent some gifts through Mirza Mahomed Hassan, Kamuah; hopefully, they will be accepted.



[Page 559] Translation of a letter from, GENERAL KAUFFMANN to GENERAL VOZGONOFF,
dated Zel Hijja, 1295 (=December, 1878).

[Page 559] Translation of a letter from, GENERAL KAUFFMANN to GENERAL VOZGONOFF,
dated Zel Hijja, 1295 (=December, 1878).

The Amir knows perfectly well that it is impossible for me to assist him with troops in winter. Therefore it is necessary that war should not be commenced at this unseasonable time. If the English, in spite of the Amir's exertions to avoid the war, commence it, you must then take leave of the Amir and start for Tashkent, because your presence in Afghanistan in winter is useless. Moreover, at such a juncture as the commencement of war in Afghanistan, you ought to come here and explain the whole thing to me, so that I may communicate it to the Emperor. This will be of great benefit to Afghanistan and to Russia.

The Amir knows very well that I can't help him with troops in winter. So, it’s crucial that war doesn’t start at this bad time. If the English, despite the Amir's efforts to prevent it, go ahead and start the war, you should say goodbye to the Amir and head to Tashkent, because your presence in Afghanistan in winter is pointless. Also, when war breaks out in Afghanistan, you need to come here and explain everything to me, so I can relay it to the Emperor. This will greatly benefit both Afghanistan and Russia.



From GENERAL KAUFFMANN to the AMIR OF AFGHANISTAN, dated 25th December, 1878 (Russian, 13th Muharram, 1296).

From GENERAL KAUFFMANN to the AMIR OF AFGHANISTAN, dated 25th December, 1878 (Russian, 13th Muharram, 1296).

Your letter, dated 27th Zel Hijja (=20th November), 1878, has reached me. I was pleased to hear tidings of your good health. The Emperor has caused the British Government to agree to the continuance of Afghan independence. The English Ministers have promised this. I earnestly request you not to leave your kingdom. As far as possible, consider your own interests, and do not lose your independence. For the present come to terms with the British Government. If you do not want to go back to Kabul for this purpose, you can write to your son, Mahomed Yakub Khan, to make peace with the English as you may direct him. Do not leave the soil of Afghanistan at this time, because it will be of benefit to you. My words are not without truth, because your arrival in Russian territory will make things worse.

Your letter, dated November 20th, 1878, has reached me. I'm glad to hear you're in good health. The Emperor has gotten the British Government to agree to keep Afghanistan independent. The English Ministers have promised this. I strongly urge you not to leave your kingdom. Please prioritize your own interests and maintain your independence. For now, settle things with the British Government. If you don't want to return to Kabul for this, you can ask your son, Mahomed Yakub Khan, to negotiate peace with the English as you direct him. Don’t leave Afghan territory right now; it will benefit you. My words are sincere because your presence in Russian territory will only make things worse.



From GENERAL KAUFFMANN to the AMIR OF AFGHANISTAN, received at Mazir-i-Sharif
on the 17th January, 1879
.

From GENERAL KAUFFMANN to the AMIR OF AFGHANISTAN, received at Mazir-i-Sharif
on the 17th January, 1879
.

I have received your friendly letter, dated 13th Zel Hijja (=8th December, 1878). In that letter you asked me to send you as many troops as could be got ready. I have written to you a letter to the effect that the Emperor, on account of your troubles, had communicated with the British Government, and that the Russian Ambassador at London had obtained a promise from the British Ministers to the effect that they would not injure the independence of Afghanistan. Perhaps you sent your letter before you got mine. Now, I have heard that you have appointed your son, Mahomed Yakub, as your Regent, and have come out of Kabul with some troops. I have received an order from the Emperor to the effect that it is impossible to assist you with troops now. I hope you will be fortunate. It all depends on the decree of God. Believe me, that the friendship which I made with you will be perpetual. It is necessary to send back General Vozgonoff and his companions. You can keep Dr. Yuralski with you if you please. No doubt the doctor will be of use to you and to your dependents. I hope our friendship will continue to be strengthened, and that intercourse will be carried on between us.

I got your friendly letter from December 8, 1878. In it, you asked me to send as many troops as possible. I wrote back to let you know that the Emperor, concerned about your situation, has been in touch with the British Government, and the Russian Ambassador in London has secured a promise from the British Ministers that they won’t interfere with Afghanistan’s independence. Perhaps you sent your letter before you received mine. I've now heard that you’ve named your son, Mahomed Yakub, as your Regent and have left Kabul with some troops. I’ve received an order from the Emperor stating that it's impossible to send troops right now. I hope you find success; everything depends on God's will. Rest assured, the friendship we established will last forever. It’s necessary to send General Vozgonoff and his companions back. You can keep Dr. Yuralski with you if you’d like; I’m sure the doctor will be helpful to you and your people. I hope our friendship continues to grow, and that we can keep in touch.



From GENERAL KAUFFMANN to the AMIR SHER ALI, dated 29th December,
1878 (=17th Muharram, 1296)
.

From GENERAL KAUFFMANN to the AMIR SHER ALI, dated December 29,
1878 (=17th Muharram, 1296)
.

(After compliments.) The Foreign Minister, General Gortchakoff, has informed me by telegraph that the Emperor has directed me to trouble you to come to Tashkent for the present. I therefore communicate this news to you with great pleasure; at the same time, I may mention that I have received no instructions about your journey to St. Petersburg. My personal interview with you will increase our friendship greatly.

(After compliments.) The Foreign Minister, General Gortchakoff, has notified me via telegram that the Emperor has asked me to request your presence in Tashkent for now. I’m pleased to share this information with you; however, I should mention that I have not received any instructions regarding your trip to St. Petersburg. Having a personal meeting with you will greatly strengthen our friendship.



Translation of a letter from MAJOR-GENERAL IVANOFF, Governor of Zarafshan,
to the Heir-Apparent,
MAHOMED MUSA KHAN, and others.

Translation of a letter from MAJOR-GENERAL IVANOFF, Governor of Zarafshan,
to the Heir-Apparent,
MAHOMED MUSA KHAN, and others.

On the 26th of Rabi-ul-Awul, at an auspicious moment, I received your letter which you sent me, and understood its contents. I was very much pleased, and at once communicated it to General Kauffmann, the Governor-General. With regard to what you wrote about the friendly relations between the Russian and Afghan Governments, and your own desire for friendship, I have the honour to state that we are also desirous of being friends. The friendship between the two Governments existed in the time of the late Amir, and I hope that it will be increased and strengthened by Amir Mahomed Yakub Khan.

On the 26th of Rabi-ul-Awul, at a fortunate time, I received your letter and understood what you wrote. I was very pleased and immediately shared it with General Kauffmann, the Governor-General. Regarding your comments about the friendly relations between the Russian and Afghan Governments, as well as your wish for friendship, I want to say that we also want to be friends. The friendship between our two Governments was present during the time of the late Amir, and I hope it will grow and become stronger under Amir Mahomed Yakub Khan.

May God change the wars in your country to happiness; may peace reign in it; and may your Government be strengthened! I have been forwarding all your letters to the Governor-General, General Kauffmann. May God keep you safe!

May God turn the wars in your country into happiness; may peace prevail there; and may your government grow stronger! I have been sending all your letters to the Governor-General, General Kauffmann. May God keep you safe!

The Zarafshan Province Governor,          
MAJOR-GENERAL IVANOFF.

The Governor of Zarafshan Province, MAJOR-GENERAL IVANOFF.

Written and sealed by the General.
Written on 29th Mart (March), 1879 (=5th Rabi-ul-Saui, 1296).

Written and sealed by the General.
Written on March 29, 1879 (=5th Rabi-ul-Saui, 1296).



Treaty between the RUSSIAN GOVERNMENT and AMIR SHER ALI KHAN;
written from memory by MIRZA MAHOMED NABBI.

Treaty between the RUSSIAN GOVERNMENT and AMIR SHER ALI KHAN;
written from memory by MIRZA MAHOMED NABBI.

1. The Russian Government engages that the friendship of the Russian Government with the Government of Amir Sher Ali Khan, Amir of all Afghanistan, will be a permanent and perpetual one.

1. The Russian Government commits to maintaining a lasting and enduring friendship with the Government of Amir Sher Ali Khan, Amir of all Afghanistan.

2. The Russian Government engages that, as Sirdar Abdulla Khan, son of the Amir, is dead, the friendship of the Russian Government with any person [Page 560] whom the Amir may appoint Heir-Apparent to the throne of Afghanistan, and with the heir of the Heir-Apparent, will remain firm and perpetual.

2. The Russian Government agrees that, since Sirdar Abdulla Khan, son of the Amir, has passed away, its friendship with anyone the Amir chooses to appoint as Heir-Apparent to the throne of Afghanistan, as well as with the heir of the Heir-Apparent, will remain strong and lasting.

3. The Russian Government engages that if any foreign enemy attacks Afghanistan, and the Amir is unable to drive him out, and asks the assistance of the Russian Government, the Russian Government will repel the enemy, either by means of advice, or by such other means as it may consider proper.

3. The Russian Government agrees that if any foreign enemy attacks Afghanistan, and the Amir is unable to remove them, and requests help from the Russian Government, the Russian Government will defend against the enemy, either by offering advice or by other means it sees fit.

4. The Amir of Afghanistan will not wage war with any foreign power without consulting the Russian Government, and without its permission.

4. The Amir of Afghanistan will not go to war with any foreign power without consulting the Russian Government and getting its approval.

5. The Amir of Afghanistan engages that he will always report in a friendly manner to the Russian Government what goes on in his kingdom.

5. The Amir of Afghanistan agrees that he will always inform the Russian Government in a friendly way about what happens in his kingdom.

6. The Amir of Afghanistan will communicate every wish and important affair of his to General Kauffmann, Governor-General of Turkestan, and the Governor-General will be authorized by the Russian Government to fulfil the wishes of the Amir.

6. The Amir of Afghanistan will share all his wishes and important matters with General Kauffmann, the Governor-General of Turkestan, and the Governor-General will be given the authority by the Russian Government to carry out the Amir's requests.

7. The Russian Government engages that the Afghan merchants who may trade and sojourn in Russian territory will be safe from wrong, and that they will be allowed to carry away their profits.

7. The Russian Government ensures that Afghan merchants who trade and stay in Russian territory will be safe from harm and will be allowed to take their profits with them.

8. The Amir of Afghanistan will have the power to send his servants to Russia to learn arts and trades, and the Russian officers will treat them with consideration and respect as men of rank.

8. The Amir of Afghanistan will have the authority to send his servants to Russia to learn skills and trades, and the Russian officers will treat them with respect and consideration as individuals of status.

9. (Does not remember.)

9. (Doesn't remember.)

10. I, Major-General Stolietoff Nicholas, being a trusted Agent of the Russian Government, have made the above-mentioned Articles between the Russian Government and the Government of Amir Sher Ali Khan, and have put my seal to them.

10. I, Major-General Stolietoff Nicholas, being a trusted agent of the Russian Government, have created the Articles mentioned above between the Russian Government and the government of Amir Sher Ali Khan, and have affixed my seal to them.

[Return to p. 421]

[Return to __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__]







APPENDIX VIII.

1880

(Referred to at p. 461.)

(Referred to at __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__)

Letter from SIRDAR ABDUR RAHMAN KHAN to LEPEL GRIFFIN, ESQ.,
dated 15th April, 1880.

Letter from SIRDAR ABDUR RAHMAN KHAN to LEPEL GRIFFIN, ESQ.,
dated April 15, 1880.

Whereas at this happy time I have received your kind letter. In a spirit of justice and friendship you wrote to inquire what I wished in Afghanistan. My honoured friend, the servants of the great [British] Government know well that, throughout these twelve years of exile in the territories of the Emperor of Russia, night and day I have cherished the hope of revisiting my native land. When the late Amir Sher Ali Khan died, and there was no one to rule our tribes, I proposed to return to Afghanistan, but it was not fated [that I should do so]; then I went to Tashkent. Consequently, Amir Mahomed Yakub Khan, having come to terms and made peace with the British Government, was appointed Amir of Afghanistan; but since, after he had left you, he listened to the advice of every interested [dishonest] person, and raised fools to power, until the ignorant men directed the affairs of Afghanistan, which during the reign of my grandfather, who had eighteen able sons, was so managed that night was bright like day, Afghanistan was, in consequence, disgraced before all States, and ruined. Now, therefore, that you seek to learn my hopes and wishes, they are these: that as long as your Empire and that of Russia exist, my countrymen, the tribes of Afghanistan, should live quietly in ease and peace; that these two States should find us true and faithful, and that we should rest at peace between them [England and Russia], for my tribesmen are unable to struggle with Empires, and are ruined[Page 561] by want of commerce; and we hope of your friendship that, sympathizing with and assisting the people of Afghanistan, you will place them under the honourable protection of the two Powers. This would redound to the credit of both, would give peace to Afghanistan, and quiet and comfort to God's people. This is my wish; for the rest, it is yours to decide.

I’ve received your kind letter during this happy time. You reached out with a genuine concern for what I wish for Afghanistan. My dear friend, the officials of the great [British] Government know that throughout these twelve years of exile in the territories of the Emperor of Russia, I’ve held on to the hope of returning to my homeland. When the late Amir Sher Ali Khan passed away and there was no one to lead our tribes, I considered going back to Afghanistan, but it wasn't meant to be; so I went to Tashkent instead. As a result, Amir Mahomed Yakub Khan, after making peace with the British Government, became the Amir of Afghanistan. However, after leaving you, he took advice from every self-serving individual and put unqualified people in power, leading to the point where ignorant men were running the affairs of Afghanistan. During my grandfather's reign, with his eighteen capable sons, it was managed so well that night was as bright as day. Now, Afghanistan is discredited among all nations and has fallen into ruin. Therefore, since you want to know my hopes and wishes, they are this: as long as your Empire and that of Russia exist, my fellow countrymen, the tribes of Afghanistan, should live peacefully and comfortably. I wish these two States would see us as true and faithful allies and that we can maintain peace between them [England and Russia], as my tribesmen cannot compete against Empires and suffer due to a lack of trade. We hope for your friendship; by showing sympathy and support to the people of Afghanistan, you would place them under the honorable protection of both Powers. This would reflect well on both and would bring peace to Afghanistan, as well as comfort and security to God's people. This is my wish; for everything else, it’s up to you to decide.

[Return to p. 461]

[Return to __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__]







APPENDIX IX.

1880

(Referred to at p. 462.)

(Referred to at __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.)

Letter from A. C. LYALL, ESQ., C.B., Secretary to the Government of India, Foreign Department, to LEPEL H. GRIFFIN, Esq., C.S.I., Chief Political Officer, Kabul, dated Simla, April, 1880.

Letter from A. C. LYALL, ESQ., C.B., Secretary to the Government of India, Foreign Department, to LEPEL H. GRIFFIN, Esq., C.S.I., Chief Political Officer, Kabul, dated Simla, April, 1880.

I have the honour to inform you that the Governor-General has received and considered in council your telegrams of the 22nd and 23rd instant, forwarding the translation of a letter received by you from Sirdar Abdur Rahman on the 21st instant, together with a summary of certain oral explanations which accompanied that letter, and a statement of the recommendations suggested by it to Lieutenaut-General Sir Frederick Roberts and yourself.

I’m pleased to inform you that the Governor-General has received and reviewed your telegrams from the 22nd and 23rd of this month. These telegrams included the translation of a letter you received from Sirdar Abdur Rahman on the 21st, along with a summary of some verbal explanations that came with that letter, and a list of recommendations that were proposed to Lieutenant-General Sir Frederick Roberts and you.

In conveying to you its instructions on the subject of this important communication, the Government of India considers it expedient to recapitulate the principles on which it has hitherto been acting in northern Afghanistan, and clearly to define the point of view from which it contemplates the present situation of affairs in that country. The single object to which, as you are well aware, the Afghan policy of this Government has at all times been directed and limited, is the security of the North-West frontier of India. The Government of India has, however, no less invariably held and acted on the conviction that the security of this frontier is incompatible with the intrusion of any foreign influence into the great border State of Afghanistan. To exclude or eject such influence the Government of India has frequently subsidized and otherwise assisted the Amirs of Kabul. It has also, more than once, taken up arms against them. But it has never interfered, for any other purpose, in the affairs of their kingdom. Regulating on this principle and limiting to this object the conduct of our relations with the rulers of Kabul, it was our long-continued endeavour to find in their friendship and their strength the requisite guarantees for the security of our own frontier. Failing in that endeavour, we were compelled to seek the attainment of the object to which our Afghan policy was, and is still, exclusively directed, by rendering the permanent security of our frontier as much as possible independent of such conditions.

In delivering its instructions regarding this important communication, the Government of India finds it necessary to summarize the principles that have guided its actions in northern Afghanistan and to clearly outline its perspective on the current situation in that country. The main goal of the Afghan policy of this Government, as you are well aware, has always been focused on securing the North-West frontier of India. Furthermore, the Government of India has consistently believed that the safety of this frontier cannot coexist with any foreign influence in the significant border State of Afghanistan. To prevent or remove such influence, the Government of India has often supported and assisted the Amirs of Kabul financially and in other ways. It has also, at times, taken military action against them. However, it has never intervened in their kingdom for any other reason. By adhering to this principle and concentrating on this goal, we have consistently sought to find in their friendship and strength the necessary assurances for the safety of our frontier. When that effort failed, we had to pursue our goal, to ensure the permanent security of our frontier, as independently as possible from those circumstances.

This obligation was not accepted without reluctance. Not even when forced into hostilities by the late Amir Sher Ali Khan's espousal of a Russian alliance, proposed by Russia in contemplation of a rupture with the British Government, did we relinquish our desire for the renewal of relations with a strong and friendly Afghan Power, and, when the son of Sher Ali subsequently sought our alliance and protection, they were at once accorded to him, on conditions of which His Highness professed to appreciate the generosity. The crime, however, which dissolved the Treaty of Gandamak, and the disclosures which followed that event, finally convinced the Government of India that the interests committed to its care could not but be gravely imperilled by[Page 562] further adhesion to a policy dependent for its fruition on the gratitude, the good faith, the assumed self-interest, or the personal character of any Afghan Prince.

This obligation wasn’t accepted easily. Not even when we were forced into conflict by the late Amir Sher Ali Khan's support of a Russian alliance, which Russia proposed anticipating a break with the British Government, did we give up our desire to renew relations with a strong and friendly Afghan Power. When Sher Ali’s son later sought our alliance and protection, we granted it to him immediately, under conditions that His Highness claimed to appreciate as generous. However, the actions that ended the Treaty of Gandamak and the revelations that followed made it clear to the Government of India that the interests under its care could be severely threatened by[Page 562] continuing a policy reliant on the gratitude, good faith, assumed self-interest, or personal character of any Afghan Prince.

When, therefore, Her Majesty's troops re-entered Afghanistan in September last, it was with two well-defined and plainly-avowed objects. The first was to avenge the treacherous massacre of the British Mission at Kabul; the second was to maintain the safeguards sought through the Treaty of Gandamak, by providing for their maintenance guarantees of a more substantial and less precarious character.

When Her Majesty's troops re-entered Afghanistan in September last year, they had two clear and openly stated goals. The first was to take revenge for the treacherous massacre of the British Mission in Kabul; the second was to ensure the protections outlined in the Treaty of Gandamak by providing more solid and reliable guarantees for their maintenance.

These two objects have been maintained: the first by the capture of Kabul and the punishment of the crime committed there, the second by the severance of Kandahar from the Kabul power.

These two goals have been upheld: the first through capturing Kabul and punishing the crime committed there, and the second by separating Kandahar from Kabul's control.

Satisfied with their attainment, the Government of India has no longer any motive or desire to enter into fresh treaty engagements with the Rulers of Kabul. The arrangements and exchange of friendly assurances with the Amir Sher Ali, though supplemented on the part of the Government of India by subsidies and favours of various kinds, wholly failed to secure the object of them, which was, nevertheless, a thoroughly friendly one, and no less conducive to the security and advantage of the Afghan than to those of the British Power. The treaty with Yakub Khan, which secured to him our friendship and material support, was equally ineffectual. Moreover, recent events and arrangements have fundamentally changed the situation to which our correspondence and engagements with the Amir of Afghanistan formally applied. Our advance frontier positions at Kandahar and Kuram have materially diminished the political importance of Kabul in relation to India, and although we shall always appreciate the friendship of its Ruler, our relations with him are now of so little importance to the paramount objects of our policy that we no longer require to maintain British agents in any part of his dominions.

Satisfied with what they’ve achieved, the Government of India no longer has any motive or desire to enter into new treaty agreements with the rulers of Kabul. The arrangements and the exchange of friendly assurances with Amir Sher Ali, although supported by subsidies and various favors from the Government of India, completely failed to achieve their intended goals, which were genuinely friendly and aimed at benefiting both the Afghans and the British. The treaty with Yakub Khan, which secured his friendship and our material support, was also ineffective. Additionally, recent events and arrangements have fundamentally altered the situation that our correspondence and agreements with the Amir of Afghanistan were based on. Our advanced positions at Kandahar and Kuram have significantly reduced the political importance of Kabul in relation to India, and while we will always value the friendship of its ruler, our relations with him are now of such little consequence to our primary objectives that we no longer need to keep British agents in any part of his territory.

Our only reasons, therefore, for not immediately withdrawing our forces from northern Afghanistan have hitherto been—first, the excited and unsettled condition of the country round Kabul, with the attitude of hostility assumed by some leaders of armed gatherings near Ghazni; and, secondly, the inability of the Kabul Sirdars to agree among themselves on the selection of a Ruler strong enough to maintain order after our evacuation of the country.

Our only reasons for not pulling our troops out of northern Afghanistan right away have been—first, the tense and unstable situation in the area around Kabul, with some leaders of armed groups near Ghazni showing hostility; and, secondly, the inability of the Kabul leaders to come to an agreement on choosing a strong enough Ruler to keep order after we leave the country.

The first-named of these reasons has now ceased to exist. In a minute dated the 30th ultimo the Viceroy and Governor-General stated that 'the Government is anxious to withdraw as soon as possible the troops from Kabul and from all points beyond those to be occupied under the Treaty of Gandamak, except Kandahar. In order that this may be done, it is desirable to find a Ruler for Kabul, which will be separated from Kandahar. Steps,' continued His Excellency, 'are being taken for this purpose. Meanwhile, it is essential that we should make such a display of strength in Afghanistan as will show that we are masters of the situation, and will overawe disaffection.'... 'All that is necessary, from a political point of view, is for General Stewart to march to Ghazni, break up any opposition he may find there or in the neighbourhood, and open up direct communication with General Sir Frederick Roberts at Kabul.' The military operations thus defined have been accomplished by General Stewart's successful action before Ghazni.

The first of these reasons no longer applies. In a letter dated the 30th of last month, the Viceroy and Governor-General said that "the Government is eager to withdraw troops from Kabul and all areas beyond those to be held under the Treaty of Gandamak, except for Kandahar. To make this happen, it’s important to find a ruler for Kabul, which will be separate from Kandahar. Steps," His Excellency continued, "are being taken for this purpose. Meanwhile, we need to project enough strength in Afghanistan to show that we are in control of the situation and will discourage any dissent."... "From a political standpoint, all that’s needed is for General Stewart to march to Ghazni, deal with any opposition he encounters there or nearby, and establish direct communication with General Sir Frederick Roberts in Kabul." The military operations outlined have been successfully carried out by General Stewart's actions before Ghazni.

With regard to the second reason mentioned for the retention of our troops in northern Afghanistan, the appearance of Abdur Rahman as a candidate for the throne of Kabul, whose claims the Government of India has no cause to oppose, and who seems to be approved, and likely to be supported, by at least a majority of the population, affords fair ground for anticipating that our wishes in regard to the restoration, before our departure, of order in that part[Page 563] of the country will now be fulfilled.

Concerning the second reason given for keeping our troops in northern Afghanistan, the emergence of Abdur Rahman as a candidate for the throne of Kabul is something that the Government of India has no reason to contest. He appears to have the approval and probable support of at least most of the population, which gives us a reasonable basis for believing that our goal of restoring order in that region before we leave will now be achieved.

The Governor-General in Council has consequently decided that the evacuation of Kabul shall be effected not later than October next, and it is with special reference to this decision that the letter and message addressed to you by Sirdar Abdur Rahman have been carefully considered by His Excellency in Council.

The Governor-General in Council has therefore decided that the evacuation of Kabul will take place no later than next October. His Excellency has carefully considered the letter and message sent to you by Sirdar Abdur Rahman in light of this decision.

What first claims notice in the consideration of that letter is the desire that it expresses for the permanent establishment of Afghanistan with our assistance and sympathy under the joint protection of the British and Russian Empires. This suggestion, which is more fully developed in the Sirdar's unwritten message, cannot be entertained or discussed.

What stands out first in considering that letter is the wish it shows for the lasting establishment of Afghanistan with our help and support under the combined protection of the British and Russian Empires. This idea, which is elaborated on in the Sirdar's unwritten message, cannot be considered or discussed.

As already stated, the primary object and declared determination of the Government of India have been the exclusion of foreign influence or interference from Afghanistan. This cardinal condition of amicable relations with Afghanistan has, at all times and in all circumstances, been deemed essential for the permanent security of Her Majesty's Indian Empire. As such, it has hitherto been firmly maintained by successive Governors-General of India under the explicit instructions of Her Majesty's Government. Nor has it ever been ignored, or officially contested, by the Russian Government. That Government, on the contrary, has repeatedly, and under every recent change of circumstances in Afghanistan, renewed the assurances solemnly given to the British Government that 'Russia considers Afghanistan as entirely beyond the sphere of her influence.'

As mentioned before, the main goal and clear commitment of the Government of India has been to keep foreign influence or interference out of Afghanistan. This fundamental requirement for friendly relations with Afghanistan has always been seen as crucial for the lasting security of Her Majesty's Indian Empire. Therefore, it has consistently been upheld by successive Governors-General of India under direct orders from Her Majesty's Government. The Russian Government has never ignored or officially disputed this position. On the contrary, it has repeatedly reaffirmed, even with changing circumstances in Afghanistan, its commitment to the British Government that 'Russia sees Afghanistan as completely outside of its sphere of influence.'

It is true that negotiations at one time passed between the two Governments with a view to the mutual recognition of certain territories as constituting a neutral zone between their respective spheres of legitimate influence and action, and that at one time it was proposed by Russia to treat Afghanistan itself as a neutral territory. Those negotiations, however, having proved fruitless, the northern frontier of Afghanistan was finally determined by mutual agreement, and in 1876 the Russian Government formally reiterated its adherence to the conclusion that, 'while maintaining on either side the arrangement come to as regards the limits of Afghanistan, which is to remain outside the sphere of Russian action, the two Cabinets should regard as terminated the discussions relative to the intermediate zone, which promised no practical result.'

It’s true that there were negotiations at one point between the two governments to mutually recognize certain areas as a neutral zone between their respective spheres of influence and actions, and at one point, Russia proposed to treat Afghanistan itself as neutral territory. However, those negotiations were ultimately unproductive, and the northern border of Afghanistan was finally established by mutual agreement. In 1876, the Russian government officially reaffirmed its stance that, while respecting the agreed-upon limits of Afghanistan, which would remain outside Russian activities, the two sides considered the discussions about the intermediate zone closed since they offered no practical outcomes.

The position of Afghanistan as defined and settled by these engagements was again distinctly affirmed on behalf of the Queen's Government by the Marquis of Salisbury in 1879, and the Government of India unreservedly maintains it in the fullest conviction of its essential necessity for the peaceable protection of Her Majesty's Indian dominions. It is therefore desirable that you should take occasion to inform Abdur Rahman that the relations of Afghanistan to the British and Russian Empires are matters which the Government of India must decline to bring into discussion with the Sirdar. The Afghan states and tribes are too contiguous with India, whose North-Western frontier they surround, for the Government of India ever willingly to accept partnership with any other Power in the exercise of its legitimate and recognized influence over those tribes and States.

The position of Afghanistan, as established through these agreements, was strongly reaffirmed on behalf of the Queen's Government by the Marquis of Salisbury in 1879, and the Government of India fully supports this stance, believing it is essential for the peaceful protection of Her Majesty's Indian territories. Therefore, it is important for you to inform Abdur Rahman that the relationships of Afghanistan with the British and Russian Empires are topics that the Government of India will not discuss with the Sirdar. The Afghan states and tribes are too close to India, whose North-Western frontier they border, for the Government of India to willingly share authority with any other power regarding its legitimate and recognized influence over those tribes and states.

The Governor-General in Council is, nevertheless, most anxious that the Sirdar should not misunderstand the light in which his personal sentiments and obligations towards Russia are regarded by the Government of India. So long as the Rulers of Kabul were amenable to its advice, this Government has never ceased to impress on them the international duty of scrupulously respecting all the recognized rights and interests of their Russian neighbour, refraining from every act calculated to afford the Russian authorities in Central Asia any just cause of umbrage or complaint. The intelligence and[Page 564] good sense which are conspicuous in the Sirdar's letter and messages to you will enable him to appreciate the difference between conduct regulated on these principles and that which cost Sher Ali the loss of his throne. This Government does not desire, nor has it ever desired, to impose on any Ruler of Kabul conditions incompatible with that behaviour which Russia, as a powerful and neighbouring Empire, is entitled to expect from him; least of all can we desire to impose such conditions on a Prince who has received hospitality and protection in Russian territory. I am therefore to observe that, in the natural repugnance expressed by Abdur Rahman to conditions which 'might make him appear ungrateful' to those 'whose salt he has eaten,' the Governor-General in Council recognizes a sentiment altogether honourable to the Sirdar, and perfectly consistent with the sincerity of his professed goodwill towards ourselves.

The Governor-General in Council is very concerned that the Sirdar doesn’t misunderstand how the Government of India views his personal feelings and responsibilities towards Russia. As long as the rulers of Kabul were open to its advice, this government has consistently urged them to respect all the recognized rights and interests of their Russian neighbor, avoiding any actions that might upset or offend the Russian authorities in Central Asia. The intelligence and[Page 564] common sense evident in the Sirdar’s letters and messages to you will help him understand the difference between actions based on these principles and the conduct that led Sher Ali to lose his throne. This government does not want, and has never wanted, to impose conditions on any ruler of Kabul that are incompatible with the behavior that Russia, as a powerful and neighboring empire, has the right to expect from him; we especially do not wish to impose such conditions on a prince who has been given hospitality and protection in Russian territory. Therefore, I want to note that in Abdur Rahman’s natural reluctance towards conditions that might make him seem ungrateful to those "whose salt he has eaten," the Governor-General in Council recognizes a sentiment that is entirely honorable for the Sirdar and is completely consistent with the sincerity of his declared goodwill towards us.

These observations will furnish you with a sufficient answer to the question asked by Abdur Rahman as to the 'nature of our friendship' and 'its conditions.'

These observations will provide you with a clear answer to the question raised by Abdur Rahman about the 'nature of our friendship' and 'its conditions.'

The frankness with which he has explained his position entitles him to receive from us a no less unreserved statement of our own. The Government of India cordially shares the wish expressed by Abdur Rahman that, between the British and Russian Empires, his 'tribes and countrymen may live quietly in ease and peace.' We do not desire to place them in a position of unfriendliness towards a Power which is pledged to us to regard their country as 'entirely beyond the sphere of its action.' The injury to Afghan commerce caused by the present condition of Afghanistan, to which the Sirdar has alluded, is fully appreciated by the Government of India, and on the restoration of peace between the two countries the revival and development of trade intercourse need present no difficulty. As regards our own friendship, it will, if sincerely sought, be freely given, and fully continued so long as it is loyally reciprocated. But we attach to it no other condition. We have no concessions to ask or make, and the Sirdar will therefore perceive that there is really no matter for negotiation or bargain between him and us.

The honesty with which he has laid out his viewpoint gives him the right to expect an equally straightforward response from us. The Government of India wholeheartedly agrees with Abdur Rahman’s desire for his "tribes and countrymen to live in comfort and peace" between the British and Russian Empires. We do not want to put them in a position of hostility toward a power that is committed to viewing their country as "completely outside its area of influence." The damage to Afghan trade caused by the current situation in Afghanistan, which the Sirdar mentioned, is fully recognized by the Government of India. Once peace is restored between the two countries, reviving and enhancing trade relations should pose no issues. Regarding our friendship, it will be readily offered if genuinely sought and will continue as long as it is loyally returned. However, we do not attach any other conditions to it. We are not asking for or offering any concessions, so the Sirdar will understand that there is really nothing to negotiate or bargain about between us.

On this point your reply to Abdur Rahman cannot be too explicit. Previous to the Sirdar's arrival in Turkestan, the hostility and treachery of those whose misconduct he admits and deplores had compelled the Government of India to make territorial arrangements of a material and permanent character for the better protection of our frontier. The maintenance of these arrangements is in no wise dependent on the assent or dissent, on the good will or ill-will, of any Chief at Kabul. The character of them has been so fully explained by you to all the other Kabul Sirdars that it is probably well known to Abdur Rahman. But in order that our present intercourse and future relations with the Sirdar may be perfectly clear of doubt on a point affecting the position he aspires to fill, the Governor-General in Council authorizes you, if necessary, to make him plainly understand that neither the district assigned to us by the Treaty of Gandamak, nor any part of the province of Kandahar, will ever be restored to the Kabul Power.

On this matter, your response to Abdur Rahman needs to be very clear. Before the Sirdar arrived in Turkestan, the hostility and betrayal from those whose actions he acknowledges and regrets forced the Government of India to make long-term territorial arrangements to better protect our border. These arrangements are not in any way dependent on the agreement or disagreement, or the goodwill or bad faith, of any Chief in Kabul. You have clearly explained their nature to all the other Kabul Sirdars, so Abdur Rahman probably knows about them. However, to ensure that our current communication and future dealings with the Sirdar are completely clear regarding his desired position, the Governor-General in Council empowers you, if needed, to make him clearly understand that neither the area assigned to us by the Treaty of Gandamak nor any part of the Kandahar province will ever be returned to the Kabul Power.

As regards this last-mentioned province, the Government of India has been authorized by that of Her Majesty to give to Sher Ali Khan, the present Wali of Kandahar, a distinct assurance that he will be not only recognized, but maintained, by the British Government as the Ruler of that province. Sher Ali Khan is one of the Native nobles of Kandahar. He is administering the province with ability, good sense, and complete loyalty to the British Government, which has promised him the support of a British garrison so long as he requires such support. The Governor-General in Council cannot doubt that Sirdar Abdur Rahman will readily recognize the obligation incumbent on the honour of the British Government to keep faith with all[Page 565] who, whether at Kandahar or elsewhere, have proved themselves true and loyal adherents. Yakub Khan forfeited our alliance, and with it his throne, by mistrusting the assurances we gave him, and falsifying those which he had given to us. If, misled by his example, Yakub Khan's successor attempts to injure or oppress the friends of the British Government, its power will again be put forth to protect or avenge them. Similarly, if the next Kabul Ruler reintroduces into his Court or country foreign influences adverse to our own, the Government of India will again take such steps as it may deem expedient to deal with such a case. These contingencies, however, cannot occur if the sentiments of Abdur Rahman are such as he represents them to be. Meanwhile, the territorial and administrative arrangements already completed by us for the permanent protection of our own interests are not susceptible of negotiation or discussion with Abdur Rahman or any other claimant to the throne of Kabul.

Regarding this last-mentioned province, the Government of India has been authorized by Her Majesty's government to assure Sher Ali Khan, the current Wali of Kandahar, that he will not only be recognized but also supported by the British Government as the Ruler of that province. Sher Ali Khan is one of the local nobles of Kandahar. He is managing the province with skill, common sense, and complete loyalty to the British Government, which has promised him the backing of a British garrison as long as he needs that support. The Governor-General in Council believes that Sirdar Abdur Rahman will readily acknowledge the British Government's obligation to stay true to all who, whether in Kandahar or elsewhere, have shown themselves to be loyal supporters. Yakub Khan lost our alliance, and his throne, by doubting the assurances we provided him and breaking the promises he made to us. If, misled by his example, Yakub Khan's successor tries to harm or oppress the friends of the British Government, our power will once again be used to protect or retaliate against them. Similarly, if the next ruler of Kabul brings foreign influences into his court or country that are against our interests, the Government of India will take appropriate steps to address that situation. However, these situations shouldn't arise if Abdur Rahman's feelings are as he claims. In the meantime, the territorial and administrative arrangements we have already established for the ongoing protection of our interests are not open for negotiation or discussion with Abdur Rahman or any other contender for the throne of Kabul.

To the settlement of Herat, which is not included in these completed arrangements, the Governor-General in Council cannot authorize you to make or invite any reference in your reply to Abdur Rahman. The settlement of the future administration of Herat has been undertaken by Her Majesty's Government; with those present views in regard to this important question, the Government of India is not yet acquainted.

To the settlement of Herat, which is not part of these finalized arrangements, the Governor-General in Council cannot allow you to make or suggest any mention in your reply to Abdur Rahman. The future administration of Herat has been taken on by Her Majesty's Government; regarding this important issue, the Government of India is not yet informed.

Nor can our evacuation of Kabul constitute any subject for proposals in your correspondence with the Sirdar. This measure was determined on by the Government of India long before the appearance of Abdur Rahman as a candidate for the government of the country we are about to evacuate. It has not been caused by the hostility, and is not, therefore, conditional on the goodwill, of any Afghan Power.

Nor can our withdrawal from Kabul be a topic for discussion in your correspondence with the Sirdar. This decision was made by the Government of India long before Abdur Rahman emerged as a candidate for the leadership of the country we are about to leave. It was not prompted by any hostility, and is not dependent on the goodwill of any Afghan authority.

The Government of India is, however, very willing to carry out the evacuation of Kabul in the manner most conducive to the personal advantage of Abdur Rahman, whose interests we believe to be, more than those of any other Sirdar, in accordance with the general interests of the Afghan people. For this reason it is desirable that you should inform Abdur Rahman of our intention to evacuate Kabul, and our desire to take that opportunity of unconditionally transferring to his authority the whole of the country from which our troops will be withdrawn. You are authorized to add that our military and political officers at Kabul will be empowered to facilitate any practical arrangement suggested by the Sirdar for promptly and peaceably effecting, in co-operation with him, the transfer thus contemplated on his behalf. Such arrangement must, however, be consistent with our obligations towards those who have served and aided the British Government during our occupation of those territories.

The Government of India is very willing to evacuate Kabul in a way that benefits Abdur Rahman personally, as we believe his interests align more closely with those of the Afghan people than those of any other leader. Therefore, it’s important that you inform Abdur Rahman of our plan to evacuate Kabul and express our intention to transfer control of the entire country from which our troops will withdraw directly to him. You are authorized to add that our military and political officers in Kabul will work with him to facilitate any practical arrangements for a quick and peaceful transfer. However, any such arrangement must also respect our obligations to those who served and assisted the British Government during our time in those territories.

For this purpose, it appears to the Governor-General in Council desirable that the Sirdar should lose no time in proceeding to Kabul, and there settling, in conference with General Stewart and yourself, such preliminary arrangements as may best promote the undisturbed establishment of his future government.

For this reason, the Governor-General in Council believes that the Sirdar should quickly go to Kabul and, in discussion with General Stewart and you, make the necessary preliminary arrangements to ensure the smooth establishment of his future government.

The Governor-General in Council has, however, no desire to press this suggestion, should it appear to the Sirdar that his presence at Kabul, previous to the withdrawal of our troops for the purpose of personal conference with the British authorities, might have the effect of weakening his popularity, or compromising his position in the eyes of his future subjects.

The Governor-General in Council, however, doesn't want to push this suggestion if the Sirdar feels that being in Kabul before our troops are withdrawn for a personal meeting with the British authorities could hurt his popularity or compromise his position with his future subjects.

The point is one which must be left entirely to the Sirdar's own judgment and inclination.

The decision is something that should be completely left to the Sirdar's own judgment and preferences.

But Abdur Rahman is doubtless aware that there are at present, in and around Kabul, personages not destitute of influence, who themselves aspire to the sovereignty he seeks, and that the family of Yakub has still numerous [Page 566] personal adherents, who may possibly take advantage of the withdrawal of our troops to oppose the Sirdar's authority if he is not personally present to assert it.

But Abdur Rahman is surely aware that there are currently, in and around Kabul, influential individuals who also aspire to the power he seeks, and that Yakub's family still has many [Page 566] loyal supporters, who might take the opportunity of our troop withdrawal to challenge the Sirdar's authority if he is not there to enforce it.

It should on both sides he remembered and understood that it is not the policy of this Government to impose upon the Afghan people an unpopular Ruler or to interfere uninvited in the administration of a friendly one. If Abdur Rahman proves able and disposed to conciliate the confidence of his countrymen, without forfeiting the good understanding which he seeks with us, he will assuredly find his best support in our political appreciation of that fact. Our reason for unconditionally transferring to him the government of the country, from which our forces will in any case be withdrawn a few months hence, is that, on the whole, he appears to be the Chief best able to restore order in that country, and also best entitled to undertake such a task. In his performance of it he will receive, if he requires it, our assistance. But we neither need nor wish to hamper, by preliminary stipulations or provisoes, his independent exercise of a sovereignty which he declares himself anxious to maintain on a footing of peace and friendship with the British Government.

Both sides should remember and understand that it is not this Government's policy to impose an unpopular ruler on the Afghan people or to interfere uninvited in the administration of a friendly one. If Abdur Rahman can gain the confidence of his fellow countrymen without losing the good relationship he seeks with us, he will definitely find his best support in our recognition of that fact. Our reason for unconditionally handing over the government of the country to him, from which our forces will withdraw in a few months anyway, is that he seems to be the leader most capable of restoring order and is also best qualified to take on that responsibility. He will receive our assistance if he needs it. However, we neither need nor want to restrict his independent exercise of sovereignty with preliminary conditions or stipulations, as he has expressed his desire to maintain a relationship of peace and friendship with the British Government.

The present statement of the views and intentions of His Excellency the Governor-General in Council respecting Abdur Rahman will enable you to represent them with adequate accuracy in your reply to the Sirdar's friendly overtures, and it will now be your duty to convey to Abdur Rahman, without any avoidable delay, the answer of the Government of India to the letter and message received from him. His Excellency feels assured that you will give full expression to the spirit of candour and goodwill in which these communications have been received and are reciprocated.

The current statement of the views and intentions of His Excellency the Governor-General in Council regarding Abdur Rahman will allow you to accurately convey them in your response to the Sirdar's friendly outreach. It's now your responsibility to relay to Abdur Rahman, without unnecessary delay, the Government of India's response to his letter and message. His Excellency is confident that you will fully embody the spirit of openness and goodwill in which these communications have been received and returned.

But I am to impress on your attention the importance of avoiding any expression which might appear to suggest or admit matter for negotiation or discussion in reference to the relative positions of the Sirdar and the Government of India.

But I need to emphasize the importance of avoiding any language that could imply or allow for negotiation or discussion about the relative positions of the Sirdar and the Government of India.

In conclusion, I am to request that on receipt of this letter you will be so good as to lose no time in submitting its contents to General Sir Donald Stewart, should he then have reached Kabul. In any case, you will, of course, communicate them to General Roberts, and act upon them in consultation with the chief military authority on the spot.

In conclusion, I kindly ask that as soon as you receive this letter, you quickly share its contents with General Sir Donald Stewart, if he has arrived in Kabul by then. Regardless, please ensure that you also inform General Roberts and take action based on them in consultation with the main military authority on the ground.

[Return to p. 462]

[Return to __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__]







APPENDIX X.

1880

(Referred to at p. 464.)

(Referred to at __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.)

Extract from a Report by LIEUTENANT-GENERAL SIR FREDERICK ROBERTS, V.C., K.C.B., to the QUARTERMASTER-GENERAL IN INDIA, dated Kabul, 17th April, 1880.

Extract from a Report by LIEUTENANT-GENERAL SIR FREDERICK ROBERTS, V.C., K.C.B., to the QUARTERMASTER-GENERAL IN INDIA, dated Kabul, 17th April, 1880.

25. I think I have now dealt with all the points of military importance connected with the military position in northern Afghanistan, but there are a few questions of more general interest which I desire to bring to the notice of His Excellency the Commander-in-Chief and the Government of India.

25. I believe I have now covered all the key military aspects related to the military situation in northern Afghanistan, but there are a few broader issues that I want to bring to the attention of His Excellency the Commander-in-Chief and the Government of India.

26. First with regard to rations. The daily scale of issue to Native troops[Page 567] is given in the margin.

26. First, let's talk about rations. The daily amount provided to Native troops[Page 567] is listed in the margin.

Daily ration of
Native soldiers:
Atta1 - - -
Dall3 - - -
Ghi4 - - -
Salt - - -
Meat - - -
Rum - - -
12 chittacks 2
2 chittacks
1 chittack
13 chittack
1 lb. bi-weekly
1 dram   "

It has been found throughout the campaign, even when the men were employed upon hard work, that '12 chittacks' of 'atta' daily are amply sufficient for the Native troops, supplemented, as of late, through the liberality of Government, by a bi-weekly issue of 1 lb. of meat. In a climate like Afghanistan, where the inhabitants are all meat-eaters, this liberality has been most wise. Every endeavour was made, before this sanction was granted, to supply the Native portion of the force with meat on payment, and I attribute to this in great measure the sound health and excellent stamina which they now exhibit.

It has been observed throughout the campaign, even when the men were doing hard work, that '12 chittacks' of 'atta' a day are more than enough for the Native troops, especially since the Government has recently been generous by providing a bi-weekly distribution of 1 lb. of meat. In a climate like Afghanistan, where everyone eats meat, this generosity has been very wise. Before this approval was given, every effort was made to provide the Native part of the force with meat for a fee, and I believe this has greatly contributed to their strong health and excellent endurance that they show now.

With regard to the issue of rum, I would suggest that it should not be issued free to Native troops, except under exceptional circumstances of fatigue and weather, but that the Commissariat Department should be authorized to have in store a sufficiency of rum to admit of a bi-weekly issue to such troops as drink the spirit, on payment, and then only on the recommendation of the Medical Officer, and under the sanction of the General Officer commanding. On all occasions when rum is sanctioned, either free or on payment, those who do not partake of spirits should he allowed a ration of tea and sugar under similar conditions.

Regarding the issue of rum, I suggest that it should not be given out for free to Native troops, except in exceptional cases of exhaustion and bad weather. The Commissariat Department should be authorized to keep enough rum in stock to allow for a bi-weekly distribution to those troops that consume it, for payment, and only with the recommendation of the Medical Officer and the approval of the General Officer in command. Whenever rum is approved, whether free or for payment, those who do not drink spirits should be allowed to receive a ration of tea and sugar under the same conditions.

27. The scale of rations for Native followers requires no alteration.

27. The ration scale for Native followers doesn't need any changes.

28. The European rations now under issue in Kabul are as per margin, and with reference to them I would make the following remarks:

28. The European rations currently being distributed in Kabul are as per margin, and in relation to them, I would like to make the following comments:

Daily ration of
European soldiers:
Meat - - -
Bread - -
Vegetables - - -
Rice - - -
Salt - - -
Tea - - -
Sugar - - -
Rum - - -
1¼ lb.
1¼ lb.
1¼ lb.
  4 oz.
 23 oz.
 ¾ oz.
  3 oz.
  1 dr.

The increase of ¼ lb. in bread and meat is, in my opinion, very desirable, for not only is the meat, as a rule, on service inferior to that served in cantonments, but the extras which can be procured from the coffee-shop are not here forthcoming. When the vegetable ration consists of potatoes, 1 lb. is sufficient, but when it is made of mixed vegetables 1¼ lb. is necessary. The substitution of dall for any portion of the vegetable ration I consider undesirable.

The increase of ¼ lb. in bread and meat is, in my view, very beneficial. Not only is the meat generally inferior to what is served in camp, but the extras available from the coffee shop are not offered here. When the vegetable ration consists of potatoes, 1 lb. is enough, but when it includes mixed vegetables, 1¼ lb. is needed. I believe replacing any part of the vegetable ration with dall is not a good idea.

Tinned soups and meats and biscuits are most valuable, and should be liberally supplied to every force in the field. They are portable and liked by the men, to whom they furnish a very welcome change of diet. I would very strongly recommend that a much larger issue of these articles than has hitherto been sanctioned should be provided.

Tinned soups, meats, and biscuits are extremely valuable and should be generously provided to every unit in the field. They're easy to carry and popular with the troops, offering a much-appreciated change in their diet. I strongly recommend that we supply a significantly larger amount of these items than what has been approved so far.

29. A question which has arisen during this campaign, and which may
Firewood.     

crop up again, has been the provision of firewood for cooking to Native troops and followers. Throughout the winter firewood could not be purchased at Kabul, and it was absolutely necessary to issue it to these men. This was done at the rate of one seer5 per man, but this amount is not arbitrary, and might, under certain circumstances, be diminished. Since roads were re-opened and markets re-established the issue of wood has been discontinued. In framing any future rules for the guidance of a force in the field, the question of providing firewood through the Commissariat Department for Native troops and followers, free or on payment, should be vested in the General Officers commanding.

29. A question that came up during this campaign, and that might come up again, has been the supply of firewood for cooking to Native troops and their supporters. Throughout the winter, firewood couldn’t be bought in Kabul, and it was crucial to provide it to these men. This was done at the rate of one seer5 per man, but this amount isn’t fixed and could be reduced under certain conditions. Since the roads have reopened and markets have been restored, the distribution of wood has stopped. When creating any future regulations for guiding a force in the field, the responsibility for providing firewood through the Commissariat Department for Native troops and their supporters, whether free or for payment, should be assigned to the General Officers in command.

30. The scale of clothing authorized by Government for Native troops and[Page 568] followers was found, even in the rigorous climate of Afghanistan, to be most liberal, except that during the very coldest weather a second blanket was required. This want I was able to meet from stock in hand, and as the weather became milder these extra blankets were withdrawn and returned into store. Warm stockings, too, are very necessary in a climate where frostbite is not uncommon; fortunately, some thousands were procured locally
Shoes.     

and issued to followers. The ordinary Native shoe of India, as provided by the Commissariat Department, is utterly unfitted for a country such as Afghanistan. Major Badcock will send to Peshawar (where they can easily be made up) a pattern Kabali shoe, which I am convinced would be found admirably suited for Native troops and followers crossing the frontier. We are now almost entirely dependent on the local market for our shoes.

30. The amount of clothing approved by the Government for Native troops and[Page 568] supporters was considered quite generous, even in the harsh climate of Afghanistan, except that during the coldest weather, a second blanket was necessary. I was able to provide this extra blanket from our supplies, and as the weather warmed up, these blankets were returned to storage. Warm socks are also really important in a place where frostbite isn’t rare; thankfully, a few thousand were sourced locally
Sneakers.     

and distributed to the supporters. The standard Native shoe from India, supplied by the Commissariat Department, is totally unsuitable for a country like Afghanistan. Major Badcock will send a design for a Kabali shoe to Peshawar (where they can easily be made), which I believe would be perfect for Native troops and supporters crossing the border. We are now mostly reliant on the local market for our shoes.

A large supply of English-made ammunition boots should always accompany
Ammunition boots.     

a force in the field, in order to allow those Natives who use them, and who are often crippled by wearing other descriptions of shoe, to obtain them on payment at the moderate rate now fixed, viz., Rs. 4 per pair.

A plentiful supply of English-made ammunition boots should always be with a force in the field so that Natives who wear them, often suffering from injuries caused by other types of shoes, can get them for the reasonable price of Rs. 4 per pair. Combat boots.

The country-made waterproof sheets, though slightly heavier, have proved
Waterproof sheets.     

themselves quite as serviceable, if not more so, than the English-made ones.

The locally made waterproof sheets, while a bit heavier, have turned out to be just as useful, if not more so, than the ones made in England. Waterproof fitted sheets.


At the close of the campaign, I would very strongly recommend that an intelligent committee should be required to go thoroughly into these questions of clothing for troops, British and Native, and for followers. I would also suggest that when a decision is arrived at, sealed patterns of every article approved should be deposited at all manufacturing centres and in all the large jails, so that when certain articles are required they need only be called for, and precious time (often wasted in reference and correspondence) saved.

At the end of the campaign, I highly recommend that a knowledgeable committee should thoroughly investigate the issues of clothing for troops, both British and Native, as well as for their support staff. I would also suggest that once a decision is made, sealed samples of every approved item should be kept at all manufacturing centers and in all major prisons, so that when specific items are needed, they can simply be requested, saving valuable time that is often wasted on references and correspondence.

31. The number of doolie-bearers with the two divisions of the Kabul
Doolie-bearers.     

Field Force now at Kabul is 3,536, with the very moderate sick report of 35, or 1 per cent. of strength.

31. The number of doolie-bearers with the two divisions of the Kabul Doolie carriers. Field Force currently in Kabul is 3,536, with a low sick report of 35, or 1 percent of the total strength.


Doolies and dandies are distributed as follows:

Doolies and dandies are distributed like this:

British troops {doolies,  3 per cent.
                    {dandies, 2 per cent.
Native troops {doolies,  2 per cent.
                    {dandies, 3 per cent.

British troops {doolies,  3 percent.
                    {dandies, 2 percent.
Native troops {doolies,  2 percent.
                    {dandies, 3 percent.

—a percentage which I consider sufficient for field-service, as, in the event of any unusual number of casualties, transport animals could and would be made use of, and it is most undesirable to increase the number of followers.

—a percentage that I think is enough for field service, since if there are an unusually high number of casualties, transport animals could and would be used, and it's not ideal to increase the number of followers.



The Lushai dandy.     

The Lushai dandy for this sort of warfare is much preferable to the carpet or dhurrie dandy, as it can be made into a bed, and men are not so liable to fall out of it.

The stylish Lushai. The Lushai dandy for this kind of fighting is way better than the carpet or dhurrie dandy, since it can be turned into a bed, and people are less likely to fall out of it.



Bourke's doolie.     

Bourke's doolie is very good, but liable to get out of order, and difficult to repair when broken; the ordinary kind is fairly good and serviceable.

Bourke's doolie. Bourke's doolie is great, but it can easily break down and is hard to fix when it does; the regular kind is pretty good and reliable.


32. I would urge that in future all field-service tents should be made after
Field-service tents.     

the pattern of the Mountain Battery tent, single fly for Natives, double for Europeans, and that the poles should be constructed on the telescopic principle: that is, that no thinning of the wood where it enters the socket should be allowed either on uprights or ridge-pole, and that the old system of paring away should be abandoned. Instead, the upper section should sit flat on the lower. Doubtless the sockets will have to be longer and stronger than those now in use, but this is the only means by which tents can be adapted to mule and pony[Page 569] carriage, which will no doubt in future wars be our chief means of transport.

32. I recommend that in the future, all field-service tents should be made following the design of the Mountain Battery tent, with a single fly for Natives and a double fly for Europeans. The poles should be designed with a telescopic system: this means no thinning of the wood should occur where it fits into the socket for both uprights and the ridge-pole, and we should move away from the old practice of shaving it down. Instead, the top section should rest flat on the bottom one. The sockets will likely need to be longer and sturdier than the ones we currently have, but this is the only way to adapt tents for transport by mules and ponies, which will likely be our main means of transport in future wars.

33. The Waler horses of the Cavalry and Artillery have stood the strain
Waler horses.     

remarkably well, considering the hard work and great exposure they have had to bear, and also that for a considerable time they were entirely deprived of green food. I feel sure this information will be most satisfactory, seeing that, for the future, the Artillery and Cavalry in India must mainly depend upon the Australian market for their remounts.

33. The Waler horses of the Cavalry and Artillery have handled the pressure remarkably well, given the tough work and significant exposure they've had to endure, and also that for a substantial time they were completely without fresh grass. I'm confident this information will be very reassuring, as moving forward, the Artillery and Cavalry in India will primarily rely on the Australian market for their remounts. Waler horses.

34. As there are some minor points of detail which might advantageously
Committee to record     
suggestions on
equipment.


be considered by those who have had the experience of recent service, I have convened a committee, with Colonel MacGregor, C.B., as President, which will take suggestions and record opinions regarding packing transport animals, equipment, kit, dress, etc., of both officers and men of the several branches of the service. From the constitution of the committee, I feel certain that their recommendations cannot but be valuable, and I hope to have the honour of submitting them shortly for the consideration of His Excellency the Commander-in-Chief.

34. Since there are a few minor details that could be beneficial to consider based on recent service experience, I have put together a committee, led by Colonel MacGregor, C.B. This committee will gather suggestions and record opinions about packing transport animals, equipment, uniforms, and other gear for both officers and enlisted personnel across various branches of the service. Given the makeup of the committee, I’m confident their recommendations will be valuable, and I look forward to presenting them to His Excellency the Commander-in-Chief soon.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Flour.

[Footnote 2: A chittack = 2 ounces.]

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ A chittack = 2 oz.

[Footnote 3: A kind of pea.]

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ A type of pea.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Clarified butter.

[Footnote 5: A seer = 2 lb.]

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ A seer = 2 lbs.

[Return to p. 464]

[Return to __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__]






APPENDIX XI.

1886

(Referred to at p. 517.)

(Referred to at __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__)

INSTRUCTIONS FOR THE GUIDANCE OF GENERAL AND OTHER OFFICERS COMMANDING COLUMNS IN BURMA.

INSTRUCTIONS FOR THE GUIDANCE OF GENERAL AND OTHER OFFICERS COMMANDING COLUMNS IN BURMA.

MANDALAY,          
20th. November, 1886.

MANDALAY,
November 20, 1886.

The following general instructions for the guidance of Brigadier-Generals and Officers in command of columns are published by order of His Excellency the Commander-in-Chief in India:

The following general instructions for the guidance of Brigadier Generals and Officers in charge of columns are published by order of His Excellency the Commander-in-Chief in India:

1st.—Columns sent out for the pacification of a district, or in pursuit of a particular gang of dacoits, must be amply provided and able to keep the field for ten days at least. To enable this to be done without employing an undue number of transport animals, it is necessary that every endeavour be made to obtain grain for Cavalry horses and Transport ponies from the villages passed through; careful inquiry must be made as to where supplies can be obtained locally, and the line of advance determined accordingly. Arrangements must be made for replenishing the supply when necessary from depots which must be formed at convenient centres when the nature of the operations may necessitate it. These depots should be pushed forward from time to time as the troops advance. The work of a column obliged to return to its base of supply before it has had an opportunity of completing the object of the expedition must be more harmful than beneficial, as its failure emboldens the enemy and weakens the confidence of the people in our power to protect them and to reach the offenders.

1st.Units deployed to stabilize an area or to target a specific group of bandits must be well-equipped and capable of staying in the field for at least ten days. To achieve this without relying excessively on transport animals, efforts should be made to gather feed for cavalry horses and transport ponies from the villages along the route. Careful inquiries should be conducted to identify local sources of supplies, and the path of advancement should be planned accordingly. Arrangements need to be made for replenishing supplies when necessary from depots, which should be established at convenient locations whenever the situation requires it. These depots should be moved forward periodically as the troops progress. A unit that has to return to its supply base before accomplishing its mission is likely to cause more harm than good, as such failures encourage the enemy and diminish the community's confidence in our ability to protect them and pursue the wrongdoers.

2nd.—Where two or more columns are acting in concert, the details of time and place of movement should be settled beforehand with the greatest nicety, and the commanding officers of all such columns should be provided with the same maps, or tracings from them, so [Page 570] that subsequent changes of plan, rendered necessary by later information, may be understood and conformed to by all. Officers commanding columns must do their utmost to get into, and keep up, communication with one another. This can be effected by:

2nd—When two or more columns are working together, the timing and location of their movements should be arranged in advance with great precision, and the commanding officers of all these columns should have the same maps, or copies of them, so [Page 570] that any changes to the plan, required by new information, can be recognized and followed by everyone. Officers leading columns must make every effort to establish and maintain communication with each other. This can be achieved by:

Visual signalling,
Spies and scouts,
Patrolling.

Visual signaling,
Spies and scouts,
Patrolling.

3rd.—Movements to be executed in concert with the troops in other brigades or commands, or likely to tell directly or indirectly on the districts commanded by other officers, will be fully communicated to those officers, both beforehand and when in progress.

3rd.Any movements that need to be carried out along with the troops in other brigades or commands, or that might directly or indirectly affect the areas managed by other officers, will be thoroughly communicated to those officers, both in advance and while they are happening.

4th.—Brigadier-Generals are empowered to give very liberal remuneration for the effective service of guides and for information involving danger to those who give it. They may delegate this power to selected officers in detached commands, but a close watch must be kept on expenditure under this head. Opportunities should be afforded to timid informers who are afraid to compromise themselves by entering camp to interview officers at some distance out and in secrecy.

4th.—Brigadier Generals have the authority to provide generous rewards for the valuable services of guides and for information that puts the informers at risk. They can pass on this authority to certain officers in separate commands, but they need to closely monitor spending in this area. There should be options available for cautious informers who are hesitant to put themselves at risk by coming into camp to talk to officers from a distance and in private.

5th.—Cavalry horses and Mounted Infantry ponies must be saved as much as is compatible with occasional forced and rapid marches. On ordinary occasions the riders should dismount, from time to time, and march alongside of their horses or ponies.

5th.Cavalry horses and Mounted Infantry ponies should be preserved as much as possible during occasional forced and rapid marches. Under typical circumstances, riders should get off their mounts from time to time and walk beside their horses or ponies.

6th.—The special attention of all officers is called to the careful treatment of pack-animals, and officers in command of columns and parties will be held strictly responsible that the animals are properly loaded for the march, saved as much as possible during it, and carefully attended to and fed after it. Officers in command will ascertain by daily personal supervision and inspection that these orders are carried out.

6th.The attention of all officers is focused on the proper care of pack animals. Officers leading columns and groups will be held fully accountable for ensuring that the animals are loaded correctly for the march, protected as much as possible during it, and well cared for and fed afterward. Officers in charge must verify through daily personal checks and inspections that these orders are followed.

7th.—It must be remembered that the chief object of traversing the country with columns is to cultivate friendly relations with the inhabitants, and at the same time to put before them evidences of our power, thus gaining their good-will and their confidence. It is therefore the bounden duty of commanding officers to ascertain that the troops under their command are not permitted to injure the property of the people or to wound their susceptibilities.

7th.It should be kept in mind that the main goal of moving through the country with troops is to build friendly relationships with the locals, while also demonstrating our strength, thereby earning their goodwill and trust. Therefore, it is the responsibility of commanding officers to ensure that the troops under their command do not damage the people's property or hurt their feelings.

8th.—The most injurious accounts of our intentions have been circulated amongst, and believed by, the people, and too much pains cannot be taken to eradicate this impression, and to assure the people both by act and word of our good-will towards the law-abiding. Chief men of districts should he treated with consideration and distinction. The success of the present operations will much depend on the tact with which the inhabitants are treated.

8th.There have been harmful rumors about our intentions spread among the people, and many have come to believe them. We need to do everything possible to clear up this misconception and reassure the public through both actions and words of our goodwill towards those who follow the law. Community leaders should be treated with respect and recognition. The success of our current efforts will largely depend on how skillfully we treat the locals.

9th.—When there is an enemy in arms against British rule, all arrangements must be made not only to drive him from his position, but also to surround the position so as to inflict the heaviest loss possible. Resistance overcome without inflicting punishment on the enemy only emboldens him to repeat the game, and thus, by protracting operations, costs more lives than a severe lesson promptly administered, even though that lesson may cause some casualties on our side. Arrangements should be made to surround villages and jungle retreats with Cavalry, and afterwards to hunt them closely with Infantry. In the pursuit the broadest margin possible will be drawn between leaders of rebellion and the professional dacoit[Page 571] on the one part, and the villagers who have been forced into combinations against us. Bohs and leaders will generally be found heading the column of fugitives, and a portion of the Cavalry should be directed to pursue them without wasting time over the rank and file of the enemy.

9th.When there’s an enemy fighting against British rule, we need to plan not just to push them out of their position, but also to surround it to inflict the maximum losses possible. Overcoming resistance without punishing the enemy just gives them the confidence to try again, and dragging out operations results in more casualties than a swift and tough lesson, even if that lesson causes some losses on our side. We should organize Cavalry to surround villages and hidden spots in the jungle, and then follow up closely with Infantry. In this pursuit, we should clearly distinguish between the rebel leaders and professional criminals on one side, and the villagers who have been forced into taking sides against us. Generally, the main troublemakers and leaders will be at the front of the fleeing group, and some of the Cavalry should focus on chasing them without wasting time on the rest of the enemy ranks.

10th.—Unless otherwise ordered, columns of occupation should move in short marches, halting at the principal towns and villages. This will give civil officers opportunities for becoming thoroughly acquainted with their districts, and give military officers time to reconnoitre and sketch the country.

10th.Unless stated otherwise, groups assigned to a task should move in short distances, stopping at the main towns and villages. This will allow civil officers to get to know their areas well and give military officers a chance to explore and map the terrain.

11th.—Where troops are likely to be quartered for some time, bamboo platforms should be erected to keep the men off the ground. Tents, if afterwards provided, can be pitched on the platforms.

11th.Where troops are likely to be stationed for a while, bamboo platforms should be set up to keep the soldiers off the ground. Tents, if provided later, can be set up on the platforms.

12th.—The greatest latitude will be allowed to Brigadier-Generals and officers in local command in ordering and carrying out movements for the pacification of their districts. They will, however, report as fully as possible all movements intended and in progress, through the regular channel, for the information of His Excellency the Commander-in-Chief.

12th. Brigadier Generals and local commanding officers will have a lot of flexibility in planning and executing operations to stabilize their areas. However, they must report as thoroughly as possible on all planned and ongoing movements through the usual channels to keep His Excellency the Commander-in-Chief informed.

13th.—Civil officers will be detailed under the orders of the Chief Commissioner to accompany columns. As they are in a position to reward loyalty and good service, they will be able to obtain more reliable guides and intelligence than the military officers can hope to get. The Chief Commissioner has authorized selected Burmans, men of position who may look for official appointments, being employed as scouts by the civil officers of districts and being attached to columns. These scouts should wear some distinguishing and conspicuous mark or badge to prevent them being fired on by the troops. They should not be called upon to take the front when approaching an unbroken enemy, or where ambuscades may be expected, but their services will be most valuable in gaining information, and later in hunting down the individuals of a broken-up gang.

13th.Civil officers will be assigned under the Chief Commissioner's orders to accompany military columns. Since they can reward loyalty and good service, they'll be able to gather more trustworthy guides and information than military officers can. The Chief Commissioner has approved the use of selected Burmans, individuals of standing who may seek official roles, to serve as scouts for the district's civil officers and attach to columns. These scouts should wear a clear and noticeable mark or badge to avoid being shot by troops. They should not be sent to the front when facing an unbroken enemy or where ambushes might occur, but their support will be extremely useful for gathering intelligence and later tracking down members of a disrupted group.

14th.—Absolute secrecy must be maintained regarding movements against the enemy and every device resorted to to mislead him.

14th.—Complete secrecy must be kept about actions taken against the enemy and every tactic used to deceive him.

15th.—When civil officers accompany columns, all prisoners will be handed over to them for disposal. When no civil officer is present, the officer commanding the column will, ex officio, have magisterial powers to inflict punishment up to two years' imprisonment, or 30 lashes. Offenders deserving heavier punishment must be reserved for disposal by the civil officers.

15th.When civil officers are with the troops, all prisoners will be turned over to them for handling. If no civil officer is available, the officer in charge of the troops will automatically have the authority to impose punishment up to two years in prison or 30 lashes. Those who deserve a harsher punishment must be kept for the civil officers to deal with.

16th.—Officers commanding columns will be held responsible that the troops are not kept in unhealthy districts, and that, when a locality has proved itself unhealthy, the troops are removed at the earliest possible opportunity. Military officers are responsible for the location of the troops. The requisitions of civil officers will be complied with, whenever practicable, but military officers are to judge in all matters involving the military or sanitary suitability of a position.

16th.Commanding officers of units will be held accountable for ensuring that troops are not stationed in unhealthy areas and that, when a location has been identified as unhealthy, the troops are moved at the earliest opportunity. Military officers are responsible for troop locations. Civil officers' requests will be fulfilled whenever possible, but military officers will make the final call on any issues related to the military or health suitability of a position.

17th.—In the class of warfare in which we are now engaged, where night surprises and ambuscades are the only formidable tactics of the enemy, the greatest care must be taken to ensure the safety of the camp at night. To meet ambuscades, which usually take the form of a volley followed by flight, and which, in very dense jungle, it may be impossible to discover or guard against by means[Page 572] of flankers, His Excellency the Commander-in-Chief would wish the following plan to be tried: Supposing, for instance, the fire of the enemy to be delivered from the right, a portion of the force in front should be ready to dash along the road for 100 yards, or so, or until some opening in the jungle offers itself. The party should then turn to the right and sweep round with a view to intercepting the enemy in his flight. A party in rear should similarly enter the jungle to their right with the same object. The centre of the column would hold the ground and protect the baggage or any wounded men. The different parties must be previously told off, put under the command of selected leaders, and must act with promptitude and dash. Each party must be kept in compact order, and individual firing must be prohibited, except when there is a clear prospect. Past experience suggests the adoption of some such plan as the above, but in guerilla warfare officers must suit their tactics to the peculiar and ever-varying circumstances in which they may find themselves engaged.

17th.In the type of warfare we're currently involved in, where nighttime surprises and ambushes are the main tactics of the enemy, we must be very careful to protect the camp at night. To counter ambushes, which usually come as a burst of gunfire followed by a retreat, and which can be hard to detect or defend against in thick jungle, His Excellency the Commander-in-Chief proposes the following plan: For example, if enemy fire comes from the right, part of the force in front should be ready to sprint down the road for about 100 yards or until there’s an opening in the jungle. The team should then turn right and move to intercept the enemy as they flee. A group behind should also enter the jungle to their right with the same goal. The center of the column would hold the position and protect the baggage or any injured personnel. The different teams must be assigned beforehand, put under the command of chosen leaders, and must act quickly and decisively. Each group must stay close together, and individual firing must be restricted, unless there’s a clear opportunity. Previous experiences suggest a plan like this, but in guerrilla warfare, officers must adapt their strategies to the unique and constantly changing situations they find themselves in.

18th.—The Government have ordered a general disarmament of the country, as soon as the large bands of rebels and dacoits are dispersed. The orders for this disarmament direct that all firearms are to be taken from the people, but that a moderate number may be returned to responsible villagers who are loyal and are able to defend themselves. No firearms will be returned save under registered licenses; and licenses will be given only for villages which can produce a certain number (5 to 10) guns, and are either stockaded or fenced against sudden attack. The duty of disarming lies on civil officers and the police; but as it is desirable that the disarmament should be effected as quickly as possible, officers commanding posts and columns will give such assistance as may be in their power in carrying it out.

18th.The Government has ordered a countrywide disarmament, which will take place once the large groups of rebels and bandits are dealt with. The disarmament orders state that all firearms must be collected from the public, though a reasonable number may be returned to responsible villagers who are loyal and capable of defending themselves. No firearms will be returned without registered licenses; these licenses will only be issued to villages that can provide a certain number (5 to 10) of guns and are either protected by walls or fenced off against sudden attacks. The responsibility for disarming falls to civil officers and the police; however, to ensure the process is done quickly, officers in charge of posts and units will assist as much as they can in carrying it out.

[Return to p. 517]

[Return to __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__]






APPENDIX XII.

1892

(Referred to at p. 540.)

(Referred to at __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__)

To His EXCELLENCY THE RIGHT HONOURABLE FREDERICK BARON ROBERTS OF KANDAHAR AND WATERFORD, BART., V.C., G.C.B., G.C.I.E., R.A., Commander-in-Chief of Her Majesty's Forces in India.

To His Excellency the Right Honourable Frederick Baron Roberts of Kandahar and Waterford, Bart., V.C., G.C.B., G.C.I.E., R.A., Commander-in-Chief of Her Majesty's Forces in India.

MAY IT PLEASE YOUR EXCELLENCY,

If it pleases you, Your Excellency,

We, the undersigned, representing the Sikhs of the Punjab, most respectfully beg to approach Your Excellency with this humble address of farewell on Your Lordship's approaching departure from this country. We cannot give adequate expression to the various ideas which are agitating our minds at this juncture, relating as they do to the past, present, and future, making us feel, at one and the same time, grateful, happy, and sorrowful. The success which Your Excellency has achieved in Asia is such as makes India and England proud of it. The history of the British Empire in India has not, at least for the last thirty years, produced a hero like Your Lordship, whose soldier-like qualities are fully known to the world. The country which had been the cradle of Indian invasions came to realize the extent of your power and recognized your generalship. The victories gained by Sale, Nott, and Pollock in the plains of Afghanistan have been shadowed by those gained[Page 573] by Your Excellency. The occupation of Kabul and the glorious battle of Kandahar are among the brightest jewels in the diadem of Your Lordship's Baronage. Your Excellency's achievements checked the aggressive advance of the Great Northern Bear, whose ambitious progress received a check from the roar of a lion in the person of Your Lordship; and a zone of neutral ground has now been fixed, and a line of peace marked by the Boundary Commission. The strong defences which Your Excellency has provided on the frontier add another bright stone to the building of your fame, and constitute in themselves a lasting memorial of Your Excellency's martial skill. Never had any British General to face more arduous tasks, and none has proved more completely successful in overcoming them than Your Lordship. The result is that India has been rendered safe from the fear of invasion from without. Your Excellency is not only adorned with heroic qualifications, but the love and affection with which the people of India regard Your Lordship show what admirable qualities are exhibited in the person of Your Excellency. Terrible in war and merciful in peace, Your Excellency's name has become a dread to the enemies of England and lovely to your friends. The interest which Your Lordship has always taken in the welfare of those with whom you have worked in India is well known to everybody. The Sikhs in particular are, more than any other community in India, indebted to Your Lordship. We find in Your Excellency a true friend of the Sikh community—a community which is always devoted heart and soul to the service of Her Most Gracious Majesty the Empress of India. No one understands better than Your Excellency the value of a Sikh soldier, and we feel very grateful that the military authorities recognize the necessity of requiring every Sikh recruit to be baptized according to the Sikh religion before admission to the Army—a practice which makes the Sikhs more true and faithful, and which preserves the existence of a very useful community. The Sikhs are said to be born soldiers, but they undoubtedly make very good citizens in time of peace also. Unfortunately, however, they have had no opportunity of fully developing their mental powers, so as to enable them to advance with the spirit of the age. We thank God that Your Excellency was among those who most desired to see the Sikhs refined and educated by establishing a Central College in the Punjab for the use of the Sikh people, and we confidently hope that the Sikhs, of whom a large portion is under Your Excellency's command, will give their mite in support of this national seminary. The subscriptions given by Your Lordship, His Excellency the Viceroy, and His Honour the late Lieutenant-Governor, were very valuable to the Institution, and the Sikhs are highly gratified by the honour Your Excellency has lately given to the Khalsa Diwan by becoming its honorary patron. In conclusion, we beg only to repeat that it is quite beyond our power to state how much we are indebted to Your Excellency, and how much we are affected by the news that Your Lordship will shortly leave this land. The very idea of our separation from the direct contact of so strong and affectionate a leader, as Your Excellency undoubtedly is, makes us feel very sorrowful; but as our hearts and prayers will always be with you and Lady Roberts, we shall be consoled if Your Excellency would only keep us in your memory, and on arrival in England assure Her Most Gracious Majesty, the Mother-Empress, that all Sikhs, whether high or low, strong or weak, old or young, are heartily devoted to her Crown and her representatives in this country. Before retiring, we thank Your Excellency for the very great honour that has been done to the people of Lahore by Your Lordship's visit to this city.

We, the undersigned, representing the Sikhs of Punjab, respectfully approach Your Excellency with this humble farewell address as Your Lordship prepares to leave the country. We find it difficult to express the many thoughts that are on our minds at this moment, relating to the past, present, and future, making us feel grateful, happy, and sad all at once. Your Excellency’s success in Asia is something that makes both India and England proud. In the last thirty years, the history of the British Empire in India has not seen a hero like Your Lordship, whose military qualities are well recognized. The country that was once the source of invasions for India has come to acknowledge your strength and recognize your leadership. The victories achieved by Sale, Nott, and Pollock in Afghanistan are overshadowed by those accomplished by Your Excellency. The capture of Kabul and the glorious battle of Kandahar are some of the brightest achievements in the distinguished career of Your Lordship. Your Excellency's accomplishments have halted the aggressive expansion of the Great Northern Bear, whose ambitions were held in check by the roaring lion that is Your Lordship, and a neutral zone has now been established, with the Boundary Commission marking a line of peace. The robust defenses Your Excellency has put in place on the frontier add another gleaming stone to your reputation and stand as a lasting tribute to Your Excellency’s military skill. No British General has faced more challenging tasks, and none has been as successful in overcoming them as Your Lordship. As a result, India has found safety from external invasion. Your Excellency is not only decorated with heroic traits, but the love and respect the people of India have for Your Lordship highlight the admirable qualities you embody. Fearsome in war and compassionate in peace, Your Excellency’s name has become a terror to England's enemies and a beloved name to your friends. Your Lordship’s continuous interest in the welfare of those you have worked with in India is well-known. In particular, the Sikhs owe more to Your Lordship than any other community in India. We see in Your Excellency a true friend of the Sikh community, a group that remains devoted to Her Most Gracious Majesty, the Empress of India. No one understands better than Your Excellency the value of a Sikh soldier, and we are very grateful that military authorities recognize the need for every Sikh recruit to be baptized into the Sikh faith before joining the Army—this practice fosters loyalty and preserves the existence of this valuable community. Sikhs are known as natural soldiers, but they also prove to be excellent citizens in times of peace. Unfortunately, they have not had the opportunity to fully develop their intellectual abilities to keep pace with the modern age. We thank God that Your Excellency was among those who wished to see the Sikhs refined and educated by establishing a Central College in Punjab for the benefit of the Sikh people, and we hope that the Sikhs, a significant portion of whom serve under Your Excellency, will contribute to this national institution. The financial contributions made by Your Lordship, His Excellency the Viceroy, and His Honour the late Lieutenant-Governor have greatly benefited the College, and the Sikhs are very appreciative of the honor Your Excellency has recently given to the Khalsa Diwan by becoming its honorary patron. In conclusion, we can only repeat that it is beyond our ability to express how indebted we are to Your Excellency and how much we feel affected by the news of Your Lordship's impending departure from this land. The very thought of separating from such a strong and caring leader as Your Excellency makes us feel very sad; however, our hearts and prayers will always be with you and Lady Roberts, and we will find comfort knowing that Your Excellency will keep us in your thoughts and, upon your arrival in England, assure Her Most Gracious Majesty, the Mother-Empress, that all Sikhs—of every status, strength, and age—are wholeheartedly devoted to her Crown and her representatives in this country. Before we conclude, we thank Your Excellency for the immense honor your visit to the city has brought to the people of Lahore.

[Return to p. 540]

[Return to __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__]






APPENDIX XIII.

1892

(Referred to at p. 540.)

(Referred to at __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__)

To HIS EXCELLENCY GENERAL THE RIGHT HONOURABLE FREDERICK BARON ROBERTS OF KANDAHAR AND WATERFORD, BART., V.C., G.C.B., G.C.I.E., R.A., Commander-in-Chief of Her Majesty's Forces in India.

To HIS EXCELLENCY GENERAL THE RIGHT HONOURABLE FREDERICK BARON ROBERTS OF KANDAHAR AND WATERFORD, BART., V.C., G.C.B., G.C.I.E., R.A., Commander-in-Chief of Her Majesty's Forces in India.

MAY IT PLEASE YOUR EXCELLENCY,

Dear Your Excellency,

We are proud to stand in Your Lordship's presence to-day on behalf of the Hindus of the Punjab, the loyal subjects of the Queen-Empress, who appreciate the countless blessings which British Rule has conferred upon this country, to give expression to the feelings of gratitude which are uppermost in their hearts. We feel it really an honour that we are able to show our appreciation of British Rule in the presence of the eminent soldier and statesman who has taken an important part in making the India of to-day what it is—contented within and strengthened against aggression from abroad. The Punjab is the province where the military strength of the Empire is being concentrated, and the bravery of the warlike races inhabiting it, which furnish the flower of Her Gracious Majesty's forces of the Army in India, has been conspicuously displayed on several occasions during the last thirty years. We Hindus have availed ourselves the most of the facilities which British Rule has provided for the progress of the people in commercial enterprise, educational advance, and political progress. We are, therefore, all the more proud that we have been allowed to-day to greet in person the mighty soldier, the sympathetic Commander, and the sagacious Statesman, the record of whose distinguished career in the East is virtually the history of nearly half a century of glorious victories—victories both of peace and war—achieved by the British Power in Asia, to show how intense is our gratitude towards the Queen-Empress and one of her eminent representatives in India, who have striven to do their duty by the people of this country, and done it to the satisfaction of the people and of their Gracious Sovereign. The interests of India and England are identical, and the Hindus of the Punjab regard British Rule as a Providential gift to this country—an agency sent to raise the people in the scale of civilization. Anything that is done to guarantee the continuance of the present profoundly peaceful condition of the country is highly appreciated by us, and we are, therefore, all the more grateful to Your Lordship for all that your courage, foresight, sagacity, and high statesmanship have been able to achieve. At a time when all the races and communities inhabiting this frontier province, which has been truly described as the sword-hand in India, are vying with each other in showing their high appreciation of the good work done by Your Excellency, of which not the least significant proof lies in the arrangement for the defence of the country at all vulnerable points of the frontier, the Hindus are anxious to show that they yield to none in the enthusiasm which marks the demonstrations held in your honour. But Your Excellency commands our esteem and regard on other grounds also. The deep interest that you have throughout your career felt in the welfare of the sepoy, and the closest ties of genuine friendship which you have established with many a notable of our community, have laid us under deep obligations to Your Excellency. The encouragement that you have given to the organization of the Imperial Service Troops of the Native States is also gratefully appreciated by us; and only the other day we were gratified to learn the high opinion Your Excellency entertained of the appearance and military equipment of the Imperial Service Troops of Jammu and Kashmir,[Page 575] the most important Hindu State in this part of India. We should be wanting in duty, we feel, did we not on this occasion give expression to the great regret which the news of your approaching departure from India has caused among the Hindus of the Punjab, who feel that they are parting from a kind friend and a sympathetic Ruler. At the same time, we feel that the country will not lose the benefit of your mature experience and wise counsel for long; for we are hopeful that you may some day be called upon to guide the helm of the State in India, a work for which you are so specially fitted. In conclusion, we have only to pray to the Father of All Good that He may shower His choicest blessings upon you and your consort—that noble lady who has, in addition to cheering you in your hard and onerous work in India, herself done a great deal for the comfort of the soldier and the sepoy, and that He may grant you many years of happy life—a life which has done so much for the Queen-Empress's dominions, and which may yet do much more.

We are proud to stand in Your Lordship's presence today on behalf of the Hindus of Punjab, the loyal subjects of the Queen-Empress, who appreciate the countless blessings that British Rule has brought to this country. We want to express the gratitude that fills our hearts. It is truly an honor to show our appreciation of British Rule in the company of the distinguished soldier and statesman who has played an important role in shaping present-day India—content and secure against foreign threats. The Punjab is where the military strength of the Empire is concentrated, and the bravery of its warrior races, who make up the core of Her Gracious Majesty's forces in India, has been clearly demonstrated on multiple occasions over the past thirty years. We Hindus have benefited greatly from the opportunities that British Rule has offered for progress in business, education, and politics. Therefore, we are even prouder to greet today the mighty soldier, the understanding Commander, and the wise Statesman, whose remarkable record in the East is essentially the history of nearly fifty years of glorious achievements—victories both in peace and war—brought about by British Power in Asia. We want to show how deeply grateful we are to the Queen-Empress and one of her prominent representatives in India, who have worked hard to fulfill their duty to the people of this country, to the satisfaction of both the people and Their Gracious Sovereign. The interests of India and England are the same, and the Hindus of Punjab view British Rule as a blessing for this country—an opportunity to elevate the people on the path of civilization. We greatly appreciate anything done to ensure the continued peaceful condition in our country, and we are even more thankful to Your Lordship for everything your courage, foresight, wisdom, and great statesmanship have achieved. At a time when all races and communities in this frontier province, rightly described as India's sword-hand, are competing to show their appreciation of Your Excellency's good work, with no less significant proof being the arrangements for the defense of the country at all vulnerable points along the frontier, the Hindus want to demonstrate that they are equally enthusiastic in celebrating your honor. However, Your Excellency commands our respect and admiration for other reasons as well. The deep concern you have always shown for the welfare of the sepoy, and the genuine friendships you have developed with many notable figures in our community, have created a sense of obligation toward you. We are also grateful for the support you've given to the organization of the Imperial Service Troops of the Native States; just the other day, we were pleased to learn of Your Excellency's high opinion of the appearance and military readiness of the Imperial Service Troops of Jammu and Kashmir, the most significant Hindu State in this part of India. We believe it would be neglectful not to express our deep regret about the news of your upcoming departure from India, as the Hindus of Punjab feel they are parting from a kind friend and understanding Ruler. At the same time, we feel that the country will not be without your experienced guidance and wise counsel for long; we are hopeful that you may one day be called upon to manage the affairs of State in India, a task for which you are particularly qualified. In conclusion, we can only pray to the Father of All Good to shower His choicest blessings upon you and your consort—that noble lady who has, in addition to supporting you in your difficult work in India, also done so much for the comfort of the soldier and the sepoy. May He grant you many happy years—a life that has contributed so much to the Queen-Empress's dominions and may yet contribute much more.

[Return to p. 540]

[Return to __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__]






APPENDIX XIV.

1892

(Referred to at p. 540.)

(Referred to at __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__)

To HIS EXCELLENCY GENERAL THE RIGHT HONOURABLE FREDERICK BARON ROBERTS OF KANDAHAR AND WATERFORD, BART., V.C., G.C.B., G.C.I.E., R.A., Commander-in-Chief of Her Majesty's Forces in India.

To HIS EXCELLENCY GENERAL THE RIGHT HONOURABLE FREDERICK BARON ROBERTS OF KANDAHAR AND WATERFORD, BART., V.C., G.C.B., G.C.I.E., R.A., Commander-in-Chief of Her Majesty's Forces in India.

MAY IT PLEASE YOUR EXCELLENCY,

Dear Your Excellency,

We, the Mahomedans of the Punjab, have dared to approach Your Excellency with this address with eyes tear-bedimmed, but a face smiling. The departure of a noble and well-beloved General like yourself from our country is in itself a fact that naturally fills our eyes with tears. What could be more sorrowful than this, our farewell to an old officer and patron of ours, who has passed the prominent portion of his life in our country, developed our young progeny to bravery and regular soldiery, decorated them with honours, and created them to high titles? Your Excellency's separation is the harder to bear for the men of the Punjab because it is our Punjab that is proud of the fact that about forty years ago the foundation stone of all your famous and noble achievements, which not only India, but England, rightly boasts of, was laid down in one of its frontier cities, and that the greater part of your indomitable energies was spent in the Punjab frontier defence. If, therefore, we are sad at separating from Your Excellency, it will not in any way be looked upon as strange. But these feelings of sorrow are mixed with joy when we see that the useful officer whom in 1852 we had welcomed at Peshawar, when the star of his merits was beginning to rise, departs from us in splendour and glory in the capacity of the Commander-in-Chief of the Armies of a vast Empire like India, and is an example of the highest type to all soldiers. This address is too brief for a detail of all the meritorious services rendered by your Excellency in the Punjab, India and other foreign countries from that early epoch to this date. Your zeal in the Mutiny of 1857, your heroic achievements in the Abyssinian and Afghan wars, your repeated victories of Kandahar, and your statesmanlike conduct of the Burma wars—all these are facts which deserve to be written in golden characters in the annals of Indian history. Your appointment as legislative and executive member of the Supreme Council of the Government of India for a considerable period has proved a source of blessings to the whole of India,[Page 576] and Your Excellency deserves an ample share of the credit due to the Council for all its useful regulations and reforms. The great liking that men of noble birth in India have been showing for some time towards military service is a clear demonstration of the excellent treatment received at your hands by military officers, as in the reforms made by you in the military pay and pension and other regulations. Another boon for which the Natives of India will always remember your name with gratitude, is that you have fully relied upon, and placed your confidence in, the Natives, thus uniting them the more firmly to the British Crown, making them more loyal, and establishing the good relations between the Rulers and the ruled on a firmer footing to their mutual good. Especially as Mussalmans of the Punjab are we proud that before Your Excellency's departure you have had the opportunity of reviewing the Imperial Service Troops of the Mahomedan State of Bhawalpur, one of the leading Native States of the Punjab, whose Ruler's efforts to make his troops worthy to take their place by the side of British troops for the defence of India is only one instance of the spirit of active loyalty which we are glad to say animates the entire Mussalman community of the Punjab. Disturbances arising from foreign intrusions are not unknown to us, and we have not sufficient words to thank your Lordship for the admirable management of the frontier defence work carried on to protect our country from all possible encroachments. The greatest pleasure and satisfaction, however, that we Mahomedans feel in presenting this address to Your Lordship emanates from the idea that you go on your way home to your native country with a high and favourable opinion of the Mahomedans of India, true and loyal subjects to Her Majesty the Queen-Empress, whose number exceeds six crores, and who are rapidly growing. During the Mutiny of 1857 the Chieftains and soldiers of our nation spared neither money nor arms in the reduction and submission of the rebels. Your Lordship is also aware what loyalty was displayed by the Mahomedans of India during the Afghan and Egyptian wars, waged against their own co-religionists, and the cheerfulness shown by them in following your Lordship in all your victories. Frontier services, such as the Kabul Embassy and the Delimitation Commission, rendered by the officers of our creed are also well known to you. We are therefore sanguine that Your Lordship's own observation will enable all the members of the Ruling race in India to form an opinion of the relations that exist between us and the British Crown. The Mahomedans of India and the Punjab are proud of being the devoted subjects of the Queen-Empress. In so acting we perform our religious duties, for our sacred religion enjoins upon us faithfulness and obedience towards our Ruling monarch, and teaches us to regard the Christians as our own brethren. The regard and esteem which we should have, therefore, for a Christian Government, as that of our kind mother the Queen-Empress, needs no demonstration. Although, for certain reasons which we need not detail here, our nation has been deficient in education, and we have been left much behind in obtaining civil employment, we hope that your long experience of our service will prove a good testimonial in favour of the warlike spirit, military genius, and loyalty of our nation, and if the circle of civil employment has become too straitened for us, the military line will be generously opened to us. We do not want to encroach upon Your Lordship's valuable time any further. We therefore finish our address, offering our heartfelt thanks to your Lordship for all those kindnesses you have been wont to show during your time towards India and Indians in general, and the Punjab and Punjabis in particular, and take leave of Your Lordship with the following prayer: 'May God bless thee wherever thou mayest be, and may thy generosities continue to prevail upon us for a long time.' While actuated by these feelings, we are not the less aware that[Page 577] our country owes a great deal to Lady Roberts, to whom we beg that Your Excellency will convey our heartfelt thanks for her lively interest in the welfare of Indian soldiers in particular and the people generally. In conclusion, we wish Your Excellencies God-speed and a pleasant and safe voyage. That Your Excellencies may have long, happy, and prosperous lives, and achieve ever so many more distinctions and honours, and return to us very shortly in a still higher position, to confer upon the Empire the blessings of a beneficent Rule, is our heartfelt and most sincere prayer.

We, the Muslims of Punjab, have come to Your Excellency with this message, our eyes filled with tears, yet our faces smiling. The leaving of a noble and beloved General like you from our land naturally brings tears to our eyes. What could be more sorrowful than bidding farewell to an old officer and supporter like yourself, who has dedicated a significant part of his life to our region, developed our young people into brave soldiers, honored them, and elevated them to high ranks? Your departure is especially hard for the people of Punjab because we take pride in knowing that about forty years ago, the foundation for many of your renowned accomplishments—achievements that not only India, but also England rightly boasts about—was laid in one of our frontier cities, and that much of your relentless energy was spent on defending the Punjab frontier. So, it won't be surprising that we feel sad about parting from Your Excellency. Yet, this sadness is mixed with joy as we see the capable officer we welcomed in 1852 at Peshawar, when his talents were just beginning to shine, leaving us in splendor and glory as the Commander-in-Chief of the Armies of a vast Empire like India—a true example for all soldiers. This message is too brief to fully detail all the commendable services you've rendered in Punjab, India, and beyond, from that early time until now. Your dedication during the Mutiny of 1857, your heroic feats in the Abyssinian and Afghan wars, your repeated victories in Kandahar, and your statesmanlike handling of the Burma wars—all deserve to be recorded in golden letters in the history of India. Your tenure as a member of the Supreme Council of the Government of India has been a source of blessings for all of India, and you deserve significant credit for all the beneficial regulations and reforms the Council implemented. The growing interest among noble families in India in military service is a clear sign of the excellent treatment received from military officers, thanks to your reforms on pay, pensions, and other regulations. Another gift for which the people of India will always be grateful is your full trust in the Natives, thus strengthening their bond with the British Crown, fostering loyalty, and enhancing the relationship between rulers and the ruled for mutual benefit. As Muslims of the Punjab, we take pride that before your departure, you had the chance to review the Imperial Service Troops of the Muslim State of Bahawalpur, one of the leading Native States in Punjab, whose ruler's efforts to prepare his troops to stand alongside British forces for India's defense exemplify the spirit of loyalty that prevails throughout the entire Muslim community in Punjab. We are all too familiar with disturbances caused by foreign intrusions, and we can't thank you enough for the outstanding management of frontier defense aimed at protecting our land from possible incursions. However, the greatest sense of joy and satisfaction we feel in presenting this address to you arises from the belief that you are heading home with a positive impression of the Muslims of India, true and loyal subjects of Her Majesty the Queen-Empress, of whom there are over six million, and who are rapidly increasing. During the Mutiny of 1857, our chiefs and soldiers spared neither resource nor effort in quelling the rebellion. You are also aware of the loyalty demonstrated by the Muslims of India during the Afghan and Egyptian wars, fought against their co-religionists, and the enthusiasm with which they supported you in all your victories. The contributions made by our officers in frontier services, such as the Kabul Embassy and the Delimitation Commission, are also known to you. Therefore, we are optimistic that your observations will help the members of the ruling class in India form an opinion about our relationship with the British Crown. The Muslims of India and Punjab are proud to be devoted subjects of the Queen-Empress. In doing so, we fulfill our religious obligations, as our sacred faith commands loyalty and obedience to our ruling monarch, teaching us to view Christians as our brethren. The respect and esteem we hold for a Christian government, like that of our kind mother the Queen-Empress, needs no further emphasis. Although, for specific reasons we won't elaborate on here, our community has lagged in education and has not gained much ground in civil employment, we hope that your extensive experience with us will serve as a strong testament to our nation’s military spirit, prowess, and loyalty. If the arena of civil employment has become too restricted for us, we hope the military path will be opened generously to us. We do not wish to take up any more of Your Lordship's valuable time. Thus, we conclude our address by offering our heartfelt thanks for the kindness you have shown towards India and Indians in general, and the Punjab and Punjabis in particular, and we take our leave with this prayer: 'May God bless you wherever you go, and may your generosity continue to benefit us for a long time.' While we hold these sentiments, we are also mindful that our country owes a great deal to Lady Roberts; we kindly request that you convey our sincere gratitude to her for her genuine interest in the welfare of Indian soldiers in particular and the people in general. In conclusion, we wish Your Excellencies safe travels and a pleasant journey home. We pray for your long, happy, and prosperous lives, and for you to attain many more honors and distinctions, returning to us soon in an even higher position to provide the Empire with the benefits of a benevolent rule.

[Return to p. 540]

[Return to __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__]






APPENDIX XV.

1892

(Referred to at p. 540.)

(Referred to at __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__)

To His EXCELLENCY GENERAL THE RIGHT HONOURABLE FREDERICK BARON ROBERTS OF KANDAHAR AND WATERFORD, BART., V.C., G.C.B., G.C.I.E., R.A., Commander-in-Chief of Her Majesty's Forces in India.

To His Excellency General the Right Honourable Frederick Baron Roberts of Kandahar and Waterford, Bart., V.C., G.C.B., G.C.I.E., R.A., Commander-in-Chief of Her Majesty's Forces in India.

MAY IT PLEASE YOUR EXCELLENCY,

Dear Your Excellency,

We, the representatives of the European community in the Punjab, are the prouder to-day of our British blood, in that it links us in close kinship, to one who has so bravely maintained the honour of the British Empire alike in the years of peace and storm that India has seen during the last three decades. During the Mutiny Your Excellency performed feats of gallantry that are historic. Since then your career has been one of brilliant success and growing military renown. Whenever, in the histories of war, men speak of famous marches, that from Kabul to Kandahar comes straightway to the lips. When our mind turns to military administration, we remember the unqualified success of Your Excellency's career as Quartermaster-General and as Commander-in-Chief of Her Majesty's Forces in India, in both of which high offices you have added honour and glory to your great name, which will never be forgotten in India. When the private soldier, rightly or wrongly, thinks he has a grievance, his desire is only that somehow it may be brought to the notice of Your Excellency, from whom, through experience, he expects full justice and generous sympathy. When we look towards our frontier and see the strategic railways and roads, and the strong places of arms that threaten the invader, we know that for those safeguards the Empire is in no small degree indebted to the resolute wisdom of Your Excellency as military adviser to the Government of India. Last, but not least, as a Statesman, Your Excellency ranks second to none in the Empire in the opinion of your countrymen in this North-West frontier province; and we should gladly welcome the day, if it might ever arrive, when Your Excellency returned to India. It is here that we see most clearly the passage of events beyond our borders and mark the signs of brooding trouble; and our hope has always been that, when that trouble should break forth, yours might be the hand to guide England's flag to victory again. The Punjab is the sword of India, and Your Excellency has had the courage to lean most strongly upon that sword. It is here that the pulse of the army beats in India; it is hence that the enemies of our country shall feel the downright blow; and it is here that the greatest grief is felt in parting from so true a soldier and so far-seeing a Statesman as Your Excellency. It is meet, therefore, that here we should assemble upon this occasion of farewell to express the great sorrow which we, the representatives of the Europeans in the Punjab, feel at the prospect of[Page 578] losing so soon the clear brain and strong hand that Your Excellency has always brought to the control of the Army in India and to the solution of all questions of political or military moment. In doing so, we mourn for the loss of one of the best statesmen, the best general, and the best friend to the soldier in India. We say nothing of the kindly relations Your Excellency has always been able to establish with the other races in India; our fellow-subjects here will doubtless do so in their turn. We say nothing of Your Excellency's and Lady Roberts' charming social qualities, nor Her Ladyship's philanthropic work in India. We are here only to express our grief at parting with one whom we value so highly for the sake of our common country, and our hope that as your past has been full of glory to the Empire and honour to yourself, so may your future be; and that you may be spared for many years to wield the sword and guide the counsels of our country.

We, the representatives of the European community in Punjab, take pride today in our British heritage, which connects us closely to someone who has bravely upheld the honor of the British Empire during both peaceful and turbulent times in India over the last thirty years. During the Mutiny, Your Excellency performed heroic acts that are now part of history. Since then, your career has been marked by brilliant success and growing military fame. When histories of war are discussed, the march from Kabul to Kandahar is often mentioned first. When we think of military administration, we remember the undeniable success of Your Excellency as Quartermaster-General and as Commander-in-Chief of Her Majesty's Forces in India, where you have brought honor and distinction to your esteemed name, one that will always be remembered in India. When a private soldier thinks he has a grievance, his only wish is that it somehow reaches Your Excellency, from whom he expects justice and understanding based on experience. Looking at our frontier, we see the strategic railways and roads, and the strongholds that deter invaders, knowing that these safeguards owe a significant debt to your decisive wisdom as a military adviser to the Government of India. Furthermore, as a statesman, Your Excellency is regarded as second to none in the Empire by your fellow countrymen in this North-West frontier province; we would gladly welcome the day when you might return to India. Here, we can clearly see events unfolding beyond our borders and recognize the signs of emerging trouble; we have always hoped that should such trouble arise, it would be your hand guiding England's flag to victory once more. The Punjab is the sword of India, and Your Excellency has had the courage to rely heavily on that sword. It is here that the army's pulse beats in India; it is from here that the enemies of our nation will receive a decisive blow; and it is here that we feel the greatest sorrow in parting from such a true soldier and insightful statesman as Your Excellency. Therefore, it is fitting for us to gather on this farewell occasion to express the deep sorrow that we, the representatives of Europeans in the Punjab, feel at the prospect of losing so soon the clear mind and strong leadership that Your Excellency has consistently brought to the management of the Army in India and to the resolution of all significant political or military matters. In doing so, we mourn the loss of one of the finest statesmen, the best general, and the greatest friend to the soldier in India. We won't speak of the kind relationships Your Excellency has built with other communities in India; our fellow citizens here will surely address that in their own time. We also won’t mention Your Excellency's and Lady Roberts' wonderful social skills, nor her philanthropic efforts in India. We are here solely to express our sorrow at parting with someone we hold in such high esteem for the sake of our shared country, and we hope that just as your past has been filled with glory for the Empire and honor for yourself, so may your future be; and that you may be granted many years to lead and guide our nation's affairs.

[Return to p. 540]

[Return to __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__]






APPENDIX XVI.

1892

(Referred to at p. 541)

(Referred to at __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__)

To His EXCELLENCY GENERAL THE RIGHT HONOURABLE FREDERICK BARON ROBERTS OF KANDAHAR AND WATERFORD, BART., V.C., G.C.B., G.C.I.E., R.A., Commander-in-Chief of Her Imperial Majesty's Army in India.

To His Excellency General the Right Honorable Frederick Baron Roberts of Kandahar and Waterford, Bart., V.C., G.C.B., G.C.I.E., R.A., Commander-in-Chief of Her Imperial Majesty's Army in India.

MAY IT PLEASE YOUR EXCELLENCY,

Dear Your Excellency,

We, the Talukdars of Oudh, as loyal and faithful subjects of the Empress of India, avail ourselves of the present opportunity of offering Your Excellency a most cordial and respectful welcome to the Capital of Oudh.

We, the Talukdars of Oudh, as loyal and devoted subjects of the Empress of India, take this opportunity to extend to Your Excellency a warm and respectful welcome to the Capital of Oudh.

The long and valuable services rendered by Your Excellency to the Crown and the country are well known to, and are deeply appreciated by, us. Your Excellency's wise and vigorous administration of Her Majesty's Army in India has won for you our respectful admiration; while your prowess in the battlefield, and your wisdom in Council during the eventful period of your supreme command of Her Majesty's Indian Forces, have inspired us with confidence in your great military talents and your single-minded and earnest devotion to duty. In many a battle you have led the British Army to victory, and the brilliant success which has invariably attended the British Arms under Your Excellency's command has added to the glory of the British Empire.

The long and valuable services you've provided to the Crown and the country are well known to us and deeply appreciated. Your wise and effective leadership of Her Majesty's Army in India has earned our respect; your skill on the battlefield and your wisdom in decision-making during your time in charge of Her Majesty's Indian Forces have given us confidence in your impressive military abilities and your dedicated commitment to duty. In many battles, you've led the British Army to victory, and the remarkable success that has consistently followed the British forces under your command has enhanced the glory of the British Empire.

But the pride and pleasure we feel at being honoured by Your Excellency's presence in our capital town give place to sorrow and regret at the approaching retirement of Your Excellency from the great service of which you are an ornament.

But the pride and pleasure we feel at being honored by Your Excellency's presence in our capital town give way to sadness and regret at the impending retirement of Your Excellency from the wonderful service of which you are a shining example.

In grateful acknowledgment of the most important services rendered by Your Excellency to our Empress and our country, we beg to be allowed the privilege of presenting you with a Sword of Indian manufacture, which will, we hope, from time to time, remind you of us and of Oudh.

In appreciation of the significant contributions you've made to our Empress and our country, we would like to honor you with a Sword made in India, which we hope will remind you of us and Oudh from time to time.

Wishing Your Lordship a safe and pleasant voyage home, and a long and happy life,

Wishing you a safe and enjoyable trip home, and a long and happy life,

We subscribe ourselves,
Your Lordship's most humble
and obedient servants,
THE TALUKDARS OF OUDH.

We are still here,
Your Lordship's most humble
and obedient helpers,
THE TALUKDARS OF OUDH.

[Return to p. 541]

[Return to __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__]






APPENDIX XVII.

1893

(Referred to at p. 541.)

(Referred to at __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__)

To His EXCELLENCY GENERAL THE RIGHT HONOURABLE SIR FREDERICK SLEIGH, BARON ROBERTS OF KANDAHAR AND WATERFORD, BART., V.C., G.C.B., G.C.I.E., D.C.L., LL.D., R.A., Commander-in-Chief in India.

To His Excellency General The Right Honourable Sir Frederick Sleigh, Baron Roberts of Kandahar and Waterford, Bart., V.C., G.C.B., G.C.I.E., D.C.L., LL.D., R.A., Commander-in-Chief in India.

YOUR EXCELLENCY,

YOUR HONOR,

Viewing with concern and regret your approaching departure from India, we beg—in bidding you farewell—to express our admiration of your life and work as Commander-in-Chief of the Imperial Forces in India, and to request you to permit your portrait to be placed in the Town Hall of Calcutta, in token for the present generation of their high appreciation of your eminent services, and in witness to a future generation of the esteem in which you were held by your contemporaries.

Viewing with concern and regret your upcoming departure from India, we would like to express our admiration for your life and work as Commander-in-Chief of the Imperial Forces in India as we say farewell. We ask you to allow your portrait to be displayed in the Town Hall of Calcutta, as a token of appreciation from the current generation for your outstanding services, and as a testament for future generations of the respect you earned from your peers.

With foresight denoting wise statesmanship, Governments which you have served have initiated and maintained a policy of Frontier Defence, and encouraged the increased efficiency of the Forces.

With foresight showing smart leadership, the governments you've worked with have started and continued a policy of protecting the borders and have supported the improved effectiveness of the armed forces.

In the furtherance of these objects we recognize the salient points of your career and character whilst holding the high rank of Commander-in-Chief.

In pursuing these goals, we acknowledge the key aspects of your career and character while serving in the esteemed position of Commander-in-Chief.

In your continued efforts to ameliorate the condition of the private soldier we recognize broad humanity. In the increasing efficiency of the Army, which, in our belief, characterizes your tenure of command, we recognize high soldierly qualities. In the state of strength which the Frontier Defences have attained, mainly due, we believe, to you, we recognize practical sagacity, conspicuous ability in discernment of requirements, and in pursuit of your aims an unwearying industry, a resolute persistence, and a determination that no difficulty can turn, in which a noble example for all true workers may be found.

In your ongoing efforts to improve the situation of the enlisted soldiers, we see a deep sense of humanity. In the growing effectiveness of the Army, which we believe reflects your time in command, we see strong leadership qualities. In the level of strength that the Frontier Defences have reached, largely due to your efforts, we recognize practical wisdom, exceptional ability to identify needs, and in the pursuit of your goals, relentless hard work, steadfast determination, and a commitment that no challenge can deter, providing a great example for all true workers.

In a word, your life and work are to us identified with Frontier Defence and Efficient Forces. We cheerfully bear our share of the cost, as in possession of these protections against aggression from without, we believe all who dwell within the borders of the land will find their best guarantee for peace, and in peace the best safeguard they and their children can possess to enable them to pass their lives in happiness and prosperity, and escape the misery and ruin which follow war and invasion. For all that you have done to give them such security, we feel you deserve, and we freely give, our heartfelt thanks.

In short, your life and work are closely tied to Frontier Defense and Efficient Forces. We gladly share the cost because we believe that with these protections against outside threats, everyone living within our borders will find the best assurance of peace. In peace, they can enjoy the greatest protection for themselves and their children, allowing them to live happily and prosperously, while avoiding the misery and destruction that come with war and invasion. For everything you have done to provide them with this security, we genuinely feel you deserve our heartfelt thanks, which we freely offer.

Within the limitations of a farewell address, we hardly feel justified in personal allusions trenching on your private life, but we cannot refrain from noticing with responsive sympathy the feeling of personal attachment to yourself which is widespread throughout India, and assuring you that we share in it to the fullest extent that private feeling can be affected by public services. We endorse our assurance with an expression of the wish that, in whatever part of the British Empire your future life may be spent, it may be attended, as in the past, with honour, and, by the blessing of God, with health and happiness for yourself and all those you hold dear.

Within the limits of a farewell speech, we can’t justify referring too much to your personal life, but we can’t help but acknowledge the strong feelings of attachment many people in India have for you. We want to assure you that we share in those feelings as much as public services can connect us. We express our hope that, wherever you spend your future within the British Empire, you will experience the same honor as in the past, and, with God’s blessing, may you have health and happiness for yourself and all your loved ones.

It is the prerogative of the Crown alone to bestow honours on those who have served their country well, and none have been better merited than those which you enjoy, and to which, we trust, additions may be made. It is the privilege of a community to make public profession of merit in a fellow-citizen where they consider it is due, and in availing ourselves of the privilege[Page 580] to make this public recognition of the great services which, in our opinion, you have rendered to India, we beg with all sincerity to add a hearty God-speed and a regretful Farewell.

It’s solely the Crown’s right to grant honors to those who have served their country well, and none are more deserving than the ones you currently hold, with hopes that more may come your way. It’s a community’s privilege to publicly acknowledge the merit of a fellow citizen when it’s deemed appropriate, and as we take this opportunity to recognize the outstanding contributions you’ve made to India, we sincerely wish you all the best and bid you a heartfelt farewell.

We have the honour to be,
Your Excellency,
Your obedient servants.

We’re honored to be,
Your Honor,
Your loyal servants.

CALCUTTA,
11th March, 1893.

CALCUTTA,
March 11, 1893.

[Return to p. 541]

[Return to __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__]



INDEX

PERSONS


A | B | C | D | E | F | G | H | I | J | K | L | M | N | O | P | Q | R | S | T | U | V | W | Y | Z

(Note: The Page number is the link to the reference.
Pagex indicates that the reference is (only) in the Footnote).

A | B | C | D | E | F | G | H | I | J | K | L | M | N | O | P | Q | R | S | T | U | V | W | Y | Z

(Note: The Page number is the link to the reference.
Pagex indicates that the reference is (only) in the Footnote).




  • Cambridge, H.R.H. the Duke of, 2171, 301, 302, 493, 498, 529, 530
  • Cameron, Captain, 298
    • Lance-Sergeant, 489
  • Campbell, Colonel (Bays), 226, 227
  • Campbell, Colonel, 63, 64, 67, 73, 118, 124, 127, 128, 129, 131
  • Campbell, Lady, 263
  • Canning, Lady, 255, 257, 259, 262, 263, 264, 267, 271, 272, 273, 274, 275
  • Canning, Viscount, Governor-General and Viceroy,
    • succeeds Lord Dalhousie, 30;
    • condemns action of Meerut authorities, 45;
    • praises General Wilson and the Army of Delhi, 140;
    • advised by Sir Henry Lawrence, 195, 196;
    • not in accord with Sir Colin Campbell, 215;
    • insists on employment of Nepalese troops, 216;
    • proposals regarding native recruits, 243;
    • Viceregal progress, 255-267;
    • passes the income tax against much opposition, 268, 269;
    • marches through Central India, 271-273;
    • durbar at Jubbulpore, 272;
    • durbar at Lucknow, 273;
    • durbar at Allahabad, 274;
    • third durbar at Lucknow, 274;
    • loses his wife, 275;
    • leaves India, 277;
    • unjustly criticized, 277;
    • his character, 277;
    • 42, 44, 51, 57, 125, 157, 195, 196, 215, 216, 217, 243, 254, 271, 272, 276, 331
  • Carey, Captain, 159, 160
  • Carmichael, Sergeant, 126
  • Carr, Captain, 355, 550 [Page 583]
  • Case, Major, 189
  • Cavagnari, Lieutenant-Colonel Sir Louis, K.C.B., C.S.I., 341, 343, 344, 345, 369, 373, 376, 377, 378, 380, 381, 383, 386, 388, 389, 401, 420, 425, 4592
  • Cavagnari, Lady, 381
  • Cesarewitch, H.I.H. the, 531
  • Chalmers, Major Henry, 155
  • Chamberlain, General Crawford, C.S.I., 9, 70, 71, 72, 103
  • Chamberlain, General Sir Neville, 93, 35, 36, 38, 395, 62, 63, 64, 67, 68, 73, 97, 103, 105, 106, 1124, 117, 118, 131, 134, 137, 138, 276, 280, 282, 283, 284, 285, 343, 344, 345, 350
  • Chamberlain, Colonel Neville, 350, 4237, 438, 4993, 527
  • Chamberlain, Mrs., 9
  • Chandra Shamsher, 537
  • Channer, Major-General, V.C., C.B., 361
  • Chapman, Lieutenant-Colonel, 4685, 475, 485, 4867
  • Chelmsford, General Lord, G.C.B., 3251
  • Chesney, Sir George, 514, 518, 531, 532
  • Chester, Colonel, 547, 73, 86
  • Childers, The Right Hon. Hugh, 497, 498
  • Chisholme, Captain, 443
  • Christie, Mr., 3842
  • Churchill, Lord Randolph, 508
  • Clarendon, The Earl of, 340
  • Clarke, Lieutenant-Colonel, 405, 444, 445
  • Cleland, Lieutenant-Colonel, 3843, 434, 435, 436, 43714
  • Clerk, Sir George, 246
  • Clive, Lord, 56, 94, 1321, 1943, 309, 501
  • Clyde, Lord (Sir Colin Campbell),
    • lays out cantonment of Peshawar, 11, 12;
    • substituted helmets for cocked hats, 104;
    • orders to his men at the Alma, 115;
    • appointed Commander-in-Chief in India, 142;
    • starts for relief of Lucknow, 164;
    • takes command of relieving force, 166;
    • plans and preparations for the relief, 168-170;
    • his personal attention to details, 170;
    • fixes his Head-Quarters in the Martinière, 173;
    • makes a feint, 174;
    • orders more ammunition, 175, 176;
    • wounded, 179;
    • selects point for breach, 180;
    • orders assault of Sikandarbagh, 180;
    • leads the 93rd to the attack, 184;
    • his aide-de-camp wounded, 185;
    • quartered in the Shah Najaf, 186;
    • his prudence, 187;
    • orders second assault, 187;
    • orders colours to be planted on mess-house, 187;
    • meeting with Havelock and Outram, 188;
    • his soldierly instincts, 189;
    • evacuation of the Residency, 190-193;
    • thanks the troops for their services, 199;
    • march to Cawnpore, 200-203;
    • defeats Nana Sahib and Tantia Topi at Cawnpore, 204-207;
    • high opinion of Hope Grant, 209;
    • favoured Highlanders unduly, 213;
    • action at Khudaganj, 213-215;
    • invidious selection of commanders, 217;
    • prepares for siege of Lucknow, 217;
    • adopts Napier's plan of attack, 221;
    • interview with Jung Bahadur, 224;
    • makes an error of judgment, 226, 227;
    • his good use of artillery, 229;
    • kindness of heart, 264, 265;
    • accompanies Lord Canning to Peshawar, 267;
    • succeeded by Sir Hugh Rose, 269;
    • 171, 177, 178, 18119, 197, 208, 210, 211, 212, 216, 217, 220, 222, 230, 255, 256, 257, 259, 263, 266, 267, 279
  • Cobbe, Brigadier, 357, 360, 362, 550
  • Cochin, Raja of, 501
  • Coke, General Sir John, G.C.B., 62, 68, 100, 101, 110, 111, 114, 130, 1396
  • Collen, Major-General Sir Edwin, K.C.I.E., 298, 522
  • Collett, Colonel, 350, 355, 356, 388, 488, 550
  • Colley, Major-General Sir George, K.C.B., 377, 497
  • Collis, Major, 550
  • Colquhoun, Captain, 550
  • Colvin, Mr., 156, 157, 545
  • Combe, Major-General, C.B., 386
  • Congreve, Colonel, 108
  • Connaught, H.R.H. the Duchess of, 504
  • Connaught, H.R.H. the Duke of, 504, 505
  • Conolly, Captain, 383, 384, 387
  • Cook, Major, 378-3793, 404, 431, 438, 439
  • Cooper, Lieutenant, 181
    • Sir George, 324
  • Coote, Sir Eyre, 501 [Page 584]
  • Corbett, Brigadier, 65, 66, 67, 68
  • Cosserat, Captain, 175, 228, 229
  • Cotton, Captain, 405
  • Courtney, Mr., 111
  • Cowie, Rev. W.G., 287
  • Cracklow, Lieutenant, 144
  • Cranbrook, Earl of, 347, 348, 3512, 4174, 458, 461
  • Craster, Major, 454
  • Cross, The Viscount, 515, 519, 529, 535
  • Crosse, Captain, 127
  • Crutchley, Captain, 203
  • Cunnyngham, Lieutenant Dick, 442
  • Currie, Colonel, 361, 3843, 550


  • Earle, Captain, 113
  • Eden, Major, 546
    • Sir Ashley, 382
  • Edgar, Sir John, K.C.S.I., 311, 318
  • Edwardes, Sir Herbert, Commissioner of Peshawar, 11;
    • his remarkable character, 27;
    • advocates friendly relations with Kabul, 27;
    • strongly supported by Lord Dalhousie, 28;
    • his magnanimity, 29;
    • Lawrence's counsellor, 58;
    • John Nicholson's dearest friend, 138;
    • 11, 17, 18, 35, 36, 37, 395, 60, 61, 125, 138, 246
  • Egerton, Lieutenant, 447
  • Elgin, The Earl of, Viceroy of India, 112, 277, 280, 285
  • Eli Bux, 4533
  • Eliot, Captain, 47715
  • Ellenborough, Lord, 259
  • Elles, Lieutenant-Colonel E., 521, 522
    • Lieutenant-General Sir W.K., K.C.B., 531
  • Elphinstone, General, 419, 449
  • Elverson, Lieutenant, 47715
  • English, Colonel, 218
  • Ewart, General Sir John, K.C.B., 174, 180, 181, 203












  • Obed Ulla Khan, Sirdar, 3433
  • Ochterlony, Sir David, 538
  • Oldfield, Lieutenant, 18322
  • Olpherts, General Sir William, V.C., K.C.B., 189
  • Omar Pasha, 239
  • Onslow, Captain, 3433
  • Oudh, Begum of, 164
  • Outram, General Sir James, G.C.B.,
    • the Bayard of the East, 167;
    • his military acumen, 168;
    • his courage and chivalry, 188;
    • differs with Sir Colin Campbell, 190;
    • interview with the author, 192;
    • commands an Infantry division at siege of Lucknow, 2171;
    • preparation for the siege, 220;
    • maintains his high reputation, 221;
    • captures the Chakar Kothi, 223;
    • accomplished all that was expected of him, 225;
    • overruled by Sir Colin Campbell, 226;
    • completes the occupation of Lucknow, 227;
    • his views on the administration of Oudh, 235, 259;
    • leaves India on account of failing health, 268;
    • 111, 28, 160, 163, 164, 169, 173, 176, 17811, 187, 188, 191, 194, 195, 197, 198, 199, 200, 2094, 216, 222, 224, 225, 246
  • Ouvry, Major, 1411, 144, 147
  • Owen, Dr., 455
  • Oxley, Captain, 405



  • Ragobir Nagarkoti, Subadar, 3793
  • Ram Sing, Raja, 527
  • Rampur, Nawab of, 260, 274
  • Rao, Sir Madhava, 502
  • Rassam, Mr., 298
  • Rawlinson, Sir Henry, 306, 307
  • Reade, Mr., 155, 157
  • Reed, General, 27, 31, 35, 36, 37, 395, 64, 70, 102, 105, 108, 109, 112
  • Reegan, Private, 114
  • Reid, General Sir Charles, G.C.B., 90, 93, 95, 105, 120, 124, 127, 129, 131, 326, 327
  • Remmington, Captain, 1411, 151, 172, 173, 191, 2042, 2228
  • Rennick, Captain, 365
  • Rewa, Maharaja of, 259, 2605
  • Rich, Captain, 303
  • Ricketts, George, C.B., 78, 79, 80
  • Ridgeway, Colonel Sir West K.C.B., 460, 47713
  • Rind, Captain, 47714
  • Ripon, The Marchioness of, 498
  • Ripon, The Marquis of, 464, 472, 473, 492, 493, 495, 498, 503, 506
  • Roberts, General Sir Abraham, 2, 5, 6, 7, 9, 10, 11, 12, 13, 16, 17, 24, 252, 264, 295, 325, 397, 480, 495
  • Roberts, Hon. Frederick Hugh Sherston, 315, 319-20, 497, 507, 525, 541
  • Roberts, Lady (widow of Sir Abraham), 252, 295, 495
  • Roberts, The Hon. Aileen Mary, 268, 271, 273, 309, 497, 542
  • Roberts, The Hon. Ada Edwina, 326, 497
  • Roberts, Miss, 252, 295, 495
  • Roberts, Lady, 252, 253, 254, 255, 256, 257, 259, 262, 263, 264, 267, 268, 269, 271, 272, 273, 274, 276, 277, 278, 292, 293, 294, 295, 298, 302, 303, 308, 309, 318, 319, 320, 323, 324, 326, 331, 336, 337, 375, 381, 382, 383, 387, 478, 495, 497, 499, 501, 502, 504, 506, 510, 514, 515, 516, 521, 525, 536, 537, 538, 539, 541, 542, 575, 577, 578
  • Roberts, Field-Marshal Lord, V.C., K.P., G.C.B., G.C.S.I., G.C.I.E.,
    • leaves England, 1;
    • arrives in India, 2;
    • life in Calcutta, 3-6;
    • journey to Peshawar, 6-9;
    • at Peshawar, 9-19;
    • visits Kashmir, 19-22;
    • joins Horse Artillery, 22;
    • at Umballa, 22, 23;
    • revisits Kashmir, 23;
    • first visit to Simla, 23, 24;
    • returns to Peshawar, 24;
    • at Mian Mir, 24;
    • first Staff appointment, 25;
    • studies native languages, 25;
    • passes examination, 26;
    • rides a hundred miles in one day, 27;
    • tour with General Reed, 27;
    • witnesses meeting between Dost Mahomed and Sir John Lawrence, 30;
    • second Staff appointment, 31;[Page 591]
    • second tour with General Reed, 31, 32;
    • refuses appointment in P.W.D., 32;
    • reports on sanatorium of Cherat, 32;
    • first meeting with Nicholson, 33;
    • returns to Peshawar, 33;
    • hears first tidings of Mutiny, 34;
    • at a Council of War, 36;
    • Staff Officer to Brigadier Chamberlain, 38;
    • at the mercy of a sentry, 40;
    • starts for Rawal Pindi, 40;
    • with Sir John Lawrence at Rawal Pindi, 58, 59;
    • joins Movable Column at Wazirabad, 63;
    • en route to Delhi, 62-82;
    • at Lahore, 65-69;
    • arrives at Delhi, 82;
    • before Delhi, 96-136;
    • appointed D.A.Q.M.G. with Artillery, 97;
    • first under fire, 98;
    • fidelity of his servants, 104;
    • wounded, 106;
    • intimacy with Nicholson, 118;
    • knocked over by a round shot, 121;
    • last sight of Nicholson, 130;
    • charger killed, 132;
    • takes part in storming of the palace, 136;
    • leaves Delhi with Greathed's column for Cawnpore, 142;
    • in action at Bulandshahr, 143;
    • narrow escape, 144;
    • in fight at Aligarh, 147;
    • in fight at Agra, 150-152;
    • first sight of Taj Mahal, 154;
    • leaves Agra, 158;
    • arrives at Cawnpore, 161;
    • meets Sir Colin Campbell, 169;
    • marches to Lucknow, 170-172;
    • meets with a night adventure, 175-178;
    • in the storming of the Sikandarbagh, 181, 182;
    • in the attack on the Shah Najaf, 184, 185;
    • plants the colours on the mess-house, 187;
    • accompanies Outram and Havelock to the Residency, 188;
    • meets the 'hero of the Redan', 201;
    • in fight at Cawnpore, 205-208;
    • in fight at Khudaganj, 213, 214;
    • wins the V.C., 215;
    • at the siege of Lucknow, 220-226;
    • with Outram at capture of the Chakar Kothi, 223;
    • meets Jung Bahadur, 224;
    • complimented by the Commander-in-Chief, 230;
    • his views on the Mutiny, 231-244;
    • on our present position in India, 246-251;
    • takes furlough, 251;
    • marries, 252;
    • receives the V.C. from the hands of the Queen, 252
    • returns to India, 253;
    • refuses post in Revenue Survey, 254;
    • accompanies Lord Canning on his Viceregal progress, 255-267;
    • loses chance of service in China, 264;
    • visits Simla, 268, 269;
    • accompanies Lord Canning through Central India, 271-273;
    • returns to Simla, 273;
    • ordered to Allahabad, 274;
    • accompanies Commander-in-Chief on tour, 275, 276;
    • returns to Simla, 277;
    • again on tour with Commander-in-Chief, 278, 279;
    • has a sunstroke, 279;
    • made A.Q.M.G., 280;
    • serves with Umbeyla expedition, 280-293;
    • too junior to be a Lieutenant-Colonel, 293;
    • voyage round the Cape, 294;
    • at home again, 295;
    • returns to India, 295;
    • serves with Abyssinian Expedition, 295-301;
    • bearer of the Abyssinian despatches, 301;
    • first A.Q.M.G., 302;
    • birth of daughter, 302;
    • returns to India, 303;
    • serves with Lushai Expedition, 310-318;
    • receives the C.B., 320;
    • officiating Q.M.G., 326;
    • with the Prince of Wales at Delhi, 327;
    • first meeting with Lord Lytton, 328;
    • takes part in the Imperial Assemblage at Delhi, 332-335;
    • accepts command of Punjab Frontier Force, 336;
    • assumes command of Kuram Field Force, 348;
    • shortcomings of his column, 348, 349;
    • his able staff, 350;
    • advances into the Kuram valley, 352-355;
    • takes the Peiwar Kotal, 355-364;
    • devotion of his orderlies, 361;
    • congratulated by the Queen, 365;
    • hampered by want of transport, 368
    • punishment of treachery, 368;
    • action at Khost, 371;
    • misrepresented in the House of Commons, 3726;
    • dismisses a war correspondent, 374;
    • holds a Queen's birthday parade, 378;
    • farewell to Cavagnari, 380, 381;
    • serves on the Army Commission, 382;
    • his recommendations gradually carried out, 382;
    • appointed Commander of Kabul Field Force, 384;
    • starts for Kabul, 387;
    • correspondence with Yakub Khan, 388;
    • issues a Proclamation to the people of Kabul, 390;
    • meeting with Yakub Khan, 395;
    • issues a Proclamation and an order, 397;
    • takes the Shutargardan, 399;
    • defeats the Afghans at Charasia, 403-406;
    • advances on Kabul, 407-410;
    • instructions from the Government of India, 411, 412;
    • inspects the Embassy and the Bala Hissar, 412, 413;[Page 592]
    • receives abdication of Yakub Khan, 414;
    • issues a Proclamation, 415, 416;
    • makes a formal entry into Kabul, 416;
    • adopts measures for carrying on administration, 417;
    • misrepresented in House of Commons, 417;
    • congratulated by the Queen and the Viceroy, 418;
    • wintering at Kabul, 418-427;
    • attacked by the tribesmen on all sides, 428-440;
    • life saved by Mazr Ali, 436;
    • storming of the Takht-i-Shah, 441, 442;
    • further attacks, 444-447;
    • concentrates his forces at Sherpur, 448, 449;
    • strengthens his defences, 449, 450;
    • arrests Daud Shah, 451;
    • defeats and disperses the tribesmen, 453, 454;
    • reopens communication with India, 455;
    • issues a Proclamation, 455;
    • fortifies Sherpur, 456;
    • negotiations at Kabul, 456-462;
    • holds a durbar, 462;
    • hands over supreme command to Sir Donald Stewart, 465;
    • visits Jalalabad, 468;
    • hears news of Maiwand, 468;
    • telegram to Adjutant-General, 472;
    • appointed Commander of Kabul-Kandahar Field Force, 473;
    • preparations for the march, 473, 474;
    • details of the Force, 475, 476;
    • commissariat and transport, 477, 478;
    • starts for Kandahar, 478;
    • order of marching, 479;
    • reaches Ghazni, 480;
    • reaches Kelat-i-Ghilzai, 481;
    • telegraphs progress to Government, 481;
    • food required daily for the force, 482;
    • down with fever, 482;
    • reports progress, 483;
    • letter from General Phayre, 483;
    • telegraphs to Simla, 484;
    • reaches Kandahar, 484;
    • demoralized condition of the garrison, 484;
    • encamps to the west of the city, 485;
    • reconnoitres the enemy's position, 486;
    • assumes command of the Army of Southern Afghanistan, 487;
    • defeats Ayub Khan, 488-491;
    • and captures his camp, 491;
    • telegraphs the news, 492;
    • difficulties about supplies, 492;
    • congratulated by the Queen and the Duke of Cambridge, 493;
    • made G.C.B., 493;
    • appointed Commander-in-Chief of the Madras Army, 493;
    • proceeds to Quetta, 493;
    • parting with the troops, 494;
    • pleasant memories, 494;
    • receives autograph letter from the Queen, 495;
    • reception in England, 495;
    • appointed Governor of Natal and Commander of the Forces in South Africa, 497;
    • witnesses the manœuvres of the German Army, 497;
    • offered the Quartermaster-Generalship, 497;
    • proceeds to Madras, 497;
    • visits the Andaman Islands, 497;
    • proceeds to Burma, 498;
    • declines the Quartermaster-Generalship, 498;
    • measures for improving the Madras Army, 499-501;
    • memories of Madras, 501, 502;
    • visits Calcutta, 503;
    • meeting with Abdur Rahman at Rawal Pindi, 504-506;
    • returns to Madras, 507;
    • appointed Commander-in-Chief in India, 507;
    • brief visit to England, 507;
    • accompanies Lord Dufferin to Gwalior, 507;
    • proceeds to Delhi, 509;
    • Camp of Exercise at Delhi, 509;
    • accompanies Lord Dufferin to Burma, 509, 510;
    • proceeds to the North-West Frontier, 510;
    • makes a tour of inspection, 510-512;
    • draws up a memorandum on frontier defence, 512, 513;
    • Lady Roberts's Homes, 514, 515;
    • sends reinforcements to Burma, 516;
    • lands at Rangoon, 517;
    • measures for pacification of Upper Burma, 518;
    • inspects North-West Frontier with General Chesney, 518;
    • receives Grand Cross of the Indian Empire, 519;
    • establishes 'Regimental Institutes', 519;
    • establishes the Army Temperance Association, 520;
    • makes a tour with Lord Dufferin along the North-West Frontier, 521;
    • official inspections, 521;
    • presides over Defence and Mobilization Committees, 522-524;
    • supports Lord Dufferin's scheme for the utilization of Native States' armies, 524;
    • visits the frontier, 525;
    • spends Christmas in camp, 525;
    • visits Calcutta, 525;
    • makes a tour of inspection in Central India and Rajputana, 525-527;
    • and in Kashmir, 527;
    • remodels the system of musketry instruction for the Native Army, 527;
    • improvements in Artillery and Cavalry, 528;
    • visits the frontier with Lord Lansdowne, 529;
    • offered the post of Adjutant-General, 529;
    • meets Prince Albert Victor in Calcutta, 529;
    • entertains the Prince at Muridki, 530;[Page 593]
    • extension of command, 530;
    • meets the Cesarewitch in Calcutta, 531;
    • views on the Native Army, 532;
    • steps taken to increase its efficiency, 532, 533;
    • concession to the Native Army, 533;
    • unable to remedy the under-officering of Native regiments, 533;
    • inspects the Zhob valley with General Brackenbury, 534;
    • raised to the peerage, 535;
    • visits Burma, 536;
    • visits Nepal, 536;
    • review of the Maharaja's troops, 537;
    • a grand durbar, 537;
    • an evening reception at the palace, 537, 538;
    • a short tour in the Punjab, 538;
    • proposed Mission to the Amir, 539;
    • the Mission abandoned, 539;
    • adieu to Simla, 540;
    • final tour in the Punjab, 540;
    • farewell entertainments at Lahore, 540;
      • at Lucknow, 541;
      • and at Calcutta, 541;
    • pig-sticking at Jaipur and Jodhpur, 542;
    • address from the municipality of Ahmedabad, 542
    • parting dinner at the Byculla Club, 542;
    • the end of forty-one years in India, 543;
    • letter to Yakub Khan, 551;
    • interview with Yakub Khan's agents, 551-553;
    • official report on interview with Yakub Khan, 554-556;
    • extract from Report on Commissariat, 566-569;
    • instructions to officers commanding Column in Burma, 569-572;
    • farewell address from Sikhs of the Punjab, 572-573;
      • from Hindus of the Punjab, 574-575;
      • from Mahomedans of the Punjab, 575-577;
      • from the European community of the Punjab, 577-578;
      • from the Talukdars of Oudh, 578;
      • from the citizens of Calcutta, 579-580
  • Robertson, Lieutenant, 47715
  • Robinson, Lieutenant, 488
  • Romanofski, General, 304
  • Rose, Sir Hugh. See Strathnairn
  • Ross, General Sir John, G.C.B., 4561, 463, 465, 475, 487, 488, 489, 490, 507
  • Ross, Lieutenant-Colonel, 3843
  • Rothney, Captain, 62, 79
  • Runjit Sing, 20, 267
  • Russell, Brigadier D., 1691, 173, 178, 186, 190, 191
  • Russell, General Sir Edward Lechmere, K.C.S.I., 298, 301
  • Russell, Lieutenant, 522
  • Russia, Czar of, 369, 462, 554, 555, 556, 557, 558
  • Ruttun Sing, Subadar, 1396










INDEX

CHIEF PUBLIC EVENTS.


A | B | C | D | E | F | G | H | I | J | K | L | M | O | P | R | S | T | U | Z

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ | __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__ | __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_2__ | __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_3__ | __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_4__ | __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_5__ | __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_6__ | __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_7__ | __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_8__ | __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_9__ | __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_10__ | __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_11__ | __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_12__ | __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_13__ | __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_14__ | __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_15__ | __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_16__ | __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_17__ | __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_18__ | __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_19__


  • Abdul Rahman proclaimed Amir, 467
  • Abolition of offices of Commanders-in-Chief, Bombay and Madras, 382
  • Abyssinian Expedition, 295-302
  • Afghan War, first, 241
  • Agra, Fight at, 150-153
  • Ahmedkhel, Battle of, 463, 480
  • Aligarh, Fight at, 147
  • Alipur, Attack on, 100, 101
  • Army Commission, 379, 382
    • Temperance Association, Establishment of, 520
  • Assassination of Colonel Mackeson, 15
    • of Lord Mayo, 318
  • Assaye, Battle of, 1943



  • Delhi, Camp of Exercise at, 509
    • Siege of, 82-140;
    • the first victory, 83;
    • enthusiasm of the troops, 84;
    • Barnard's success, 85;
    • the Flagstaff Tower, 87;
    • attacking force placed in position, 88;
    • the weak point of our defence, 88;
    • defences, 89;
    • death of Quintin Battye, 90;
    • the besiegers besieged, 93;
    • hard fighting, 94, 95;
    • arrival of reinforcements, 98;
    • death of Barnard, 101;
    • Reed takes command, 102;
    • treachery in camp, 105;
    • more hard fighting, 106;
    • sufferings of sick and wounded, 107;
    • Wilson takes command, 108;
    • Nicholson and the Movable Column arrive, 114;
    • Baird-Smith plans attack, 117;
    • breaching batteries at work, 119;
    • the assault, 125-128;
    • Nicholson wounded, 129;
    • storming of the palace, 136;
    • Hodson captures the King, 137;
    • Hodson shoots the Princes, 137;
    • Nicholson dies, 138;
    • the siege ended, 138
  • Dost Mahomed, Treaty with, 27-31




  • Homes in the Hills, Establishment of, 515
  • Hunza-Naga Campaign, 534, 535
  • Hurdwar Fair, closing of, 2471



  • Kabul, Cavagnari's Mission to, 380, 381, 383, 384
    • Expedition, 384-468
    • Massacre of Embassy at, 383
    • Repulse of British Mission to, 343-345
    • Russian Mission to, 341, 342
  • Kandahar, Defeat of Ayub Khan at, 487-491
    • March to, 473-485
  • Khost, Action at, 370, 371
  • Khudaganj, Fight at, 213-215
  • Kohat, Expedition near, 530
  • Kuram Expedition, 348-375

  • Lucknow, Relief of, 170-189;
    • Sir Colin's preparations, 170;
    • the advance begun, 170;
    • reinforcements arrive, 171;
    • attack by the enemy, 173;[Page 597]
      • ammunition wanting, 175;
      • the advance, 178;
      • Sir Colin wounded, 179;
      • attack on the Sikandarbagh, 180-182;
      • the Shah Najaf, 184, 185;
      • the relief effected, 187
      • meeting of the Generals, 188;
      • the evacuation, 192
    • Siege of, 220-226;
      • Napier's plan adopted, 221;
      • capture of the Chakar Kothi, 223;
      • capture of the iron bridge, 223, 224;
      • visit from Jung Bahadur, 224;
      • Hodson mortally wounded, 225;
      • Sir Colin's mistake, 226;
      • the city taken, 229
  • Lushai Expedition, 310-319

  • Maiwand, Disaster at, 470-471
  • Majuba Hill, Disaster at, 497
  • Mandalay, Capture of, 507
  • Manipur Expedition, 531
  • Meerut, Mutiny at, 44-50
  • Merv, Russian Occupation of, 503
  • Mianganj, Taking of, 217, 218
  • Mian Mir, Disarmament at, 66-67
  • Multan, Disarmament at, 70-72
  • Mutiny, The, of 1857-1858, 34-251;
    • Causes of, 231-244;
    • Chances of its recurrence, 245-251;
    • First tidings of, 34-40;
    • New light on, 241;
    • Predicted by Sir Henry Lawrence, 194;
    • and by Sir John Malcolm, 236


  • Panipat, Three Battles of, 509
  • Panjdeh, Incident at, 503
  • Peiwar Kotal, Taking of, 355-364
  • Persia, War with, 30, 238
  • Plassy, Battle of, 1943, 242
    • Centenary of, 94, 95
  • Prince Albert Victor visits India, 529, 530
  • Prince of Wales visits India, 326-328


  • Sheorajpur, Fight at, 209
  • Sher Ali, Death of, 375
  • Shutargardan, Attack on the, 399
  • Sikandarbagh, Attack on the, 178-182
  • Sikim Expedition, 524
  • Staff-Corps, Introduction of the, 270, 271






THE END.

THE END.













FOOTNOTES, CHAPTER I

[Footnote 1: In the fifty-seven years preceding the Mutiny the annual rate of mortality amongst the European troops in India was sixty-nine per thousand, and in some stations it was even more appalling. The Royal Commission appointed in 1864 to inquire into the sanitary condition of the army in India expressed the hope that, by taking proper precautions, the mortality might be reduced to the rate of twenty per thousand per annum. I am glad to say that this hope has been more than realized, the annual death-rate since 1882 having never risen to seventeen per thousand.]

[Footnote 1: In the fifty-seven years leading up to the Mutiny, the annual death rate among European troops in India was sixty-nine out of every thousand, and in some locations, it was even worse. The Royal Commission that was set up in 1864 to investigate the health conditions of the army in India expressed hope that with the right measures, the death rate could be reduced to twenty per thousand each year. I’m happy to say that this hope has been greatly surpassed, as the annual death rate since 1882 has never gone above seventeen per thousand.



FOOTNOTES, CHAPTER II

[Footnote 1: A Native woman-servant.]

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ A Native female servant.

[Footnote 2: Now Field Marshal Sir Donald Stewart, Bart., G.C.B., G.C.S.I.]

[Footnote 2: Now Field Marshal Sir Donald Stewart, Baronet, G.C.B., G.C.S.I.

[Footnote 3: Now General Crawford Chamberlain, C.S.I., a brother of General Sir Neville Chamberlain.]

[Footnote 3: Now General Crawford Chamberlain, C.S.I., a sibling of General Sir Neville Chamberlain.



FOOTNOTES, CHAPTER III

[Footnote 1: Shortly before my father left Peshawar he received the following letter from Colonel Outram, dated Calcutta, the 23rd October, 1853: 'As I know that your views as to the policy that should be pursued towards Dost Mahomed must be in accordance with those of the Governor-General, I accordingly showed your letter to Grant, Courtney, and Colonel Low, all of whom were glad to learn that you entertained such sound views, opposed though they be with the general clamour for war with the Kabulese which appears to be the cry of the army. This, together with the wise forethought you displayed before the Kabul insurrection (which, though at the time it found no favour at Head-Quarters, was subsequently so mournfully established by the Kabul massacre, which would have been prevented had your warnings been attended to), shows how well you would combine the military and political control of the country beyond the Indus.']

[Footnote 1: Just before my father left Peshawar, he received the following letter from Colonel Outram, dated Calcutta, October 23, 1853: 'Knowing that your views on the policy toward Dost Mahomed align with those of the Governor-General, I shared your letter with Grant, Courtney, and Colonel Low, all of whom were pleased to see that you hold such reasonable views, even if they go against the general demand for war with the Kabulese, which seems to be the army's rallying cry. This, along with the insight you showed before the Kabul uprising (which, though it didn't receive support at Head-Quarters at the time, was tragically confirmed by the Kabul massacre that could have been avoided had your warnings been heeded), demonstrates how well you would manage both the military and political aspects of the region beyond the Indus.']

[Footnote 2: The late General Sir Sydney Cotton, G.C.B.]

[Footnote 2: The late General Sir Sydney Cotton, G.C.B.

[Footnote 3: Now General Sir Henry Norman, G.C.B., G.C.M.G., lately Governor of Queensland.]

[Footnote 3: Now General Sir Henry Norman, G.C.B., G.C.M.G., former Governor of Queensland.

[Footnote 4: Now General Sir Peter Lumsden, G.C.B.]

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Now General Sir Peter Lumsden, G.C.B.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ 1881.

'HERE LIES THE BODY
OF
FREDERICK MACKESON,
LIEUTENANT-COLONEL IN THE BENGAL ARMY, COMPANION OF
THE BATH, AND COMMISSIONER OF PESHAWAR,
WHO WAS BORN SEPTEMBER 2ND, 1807,
AND DIED SEPTEMBER 14TH, 1853,
OF A WOUND INFLICTED BY A RELIGIOUS FANATIC.

'HERE LIES THE BODY
OF
FREDERICK MACKESON,
LIEUTENANT-COLONEL IN THE BENGAL ARMY, COMPANION OF
THE BATH, AND COMMISSIONER OF PESHAWAR,
WHO WAS BORN ON SEPTEMBER 2ND, 1807,
AND DIED ON SEPTEMBER 14TH, 1853,
FROM A WOUND CAUSED BY A RELIGIOUS FANATIC.

He was the beau-ideal of a soldier—cool to conceive, brave to dare, and strong to do. The Indian Army was proud of his noble presence in its ranks—not without cause. On the dark page of the Afghan war the name of "Mackeson" shines brightly out; the frontier was his post, and the future his field. The defiles of the Khyber and the peaks of the Black Mountain alike witness his exploits. Death still found him in front. Unconquered enemies felt safer when he fell. His own Government thus mourn the fall.

He was the perfect example of a soldier—calm in thought, courageous in action, and strong in deeds. The Indian Army took pride in having him in its ranks—and with good reason. During the dark times of the Afghan war, the name "Mackeson" stands out brightly; the frontier was his station, and the future his arena. The narrow paths of the Khyber and the heights of the Black Mountain bear witness to his achievements. Death always confronted him head-on. Unconquered enemies felt more at ease when he fell. His own Government mourned his loss.

'The reputation of Lieutenant-Colonel Mackeson as a soldier is known to and honoured by all. His value as a political servant of the State is known to none better than to the Governor-General himself, who in a difficult and eventful time had cause to mark his great ability, and the admirable prudence, discretion, and temper, which added tenfold value to the high soldierly qualities of his public character.

The reputation of Lieutenant-Colonel Mackeson as a soldier is recognized and respected by everyone. His worth as a political servant of the State is understood best by the Governor-General himself, who during a challenging and eventful period had reason to appreciate his exceptional skills, as well as the remarkable prudence, discretion, and temperament that greatly enhanced the already significant soldierly qualities of his public persona.

'The loss of Colonel Mackeson's life would have dimmed a victory; to lose him thus, by the hand of a foul assassin, is a misfortune of the heaviest gloom for the Government, which counted him amongst its bravest and best.

'The loss of Colonel Mackeson's life would have overshadowed a victory; to lose him like this, at the hands of a vile assassin, is a heavy blow for the Government, which considered him one of its bravest and finest.'

'General orders of the Marquis Dalhousie, Governor-General of India, 3rd October, 1853.

'General orders of the Marquis Dalhousie, Governor-General of India, 3rd October, 1853.'

'This monument was erected by his friends.']

'This monument was built by his friends.'

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Head men.



FOOTNOTES, CHAPTER IV

[Footnote 1: Now a retired Major-General.]

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Now a retired Major General.

[Footnote 2: Now General Sir James Abbott, K.C.B.]

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Now General Sir James Abbott, K.C.B.

[Footnote 3: Men who carry the guns, and point out the most likely places for game, etc.]

[Footnote 3: Men who carry the guns and show the best spots for hunting, etc.

[Footnote 4: 26,000 feet above the sea-level.]

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ 26,000 feet above sea level.

[Footnote 5: Three miles east of Islamabad.]

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Three miles east of Islamabad.

[Footnote 6: Now General Sir John Watson, V.C., K.C.B.]

[Footnote 6: Now General Sir John Watson, V.C., K.C.B.

[Footnote 7: The late Field-Marshal Sir Patrick Grant, G.C.B., G.C.S.I.]

[Footnote 7: The late Field-Marshal Sir Patrick Grant, G.C.B., G.C.S.I.

[Footnote 8: The late General Sir Harry Lumsden, K.C.S.I., C.B.]

[Footnote 8: The late General Sir Harry Lumsden, K.C.S.I., C.B.

[Footnote 9: Bastard florican.]

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Bastard florican.

[Footnote 10: This officer arrived in India as a Cornet in the 24th Light Dragoons in the year 1810, and although, when he reached Peshawar with his regiment—the 22nd Foot—in 1853, he had been forty-three years in the army, and was sixty-one years of age, he had not even succeeded to the command of a battalion. He was an officer of unusual energy and activity, a fine rider, a pattern drill, and a thorough soldier all round. He was not fortunate enough to see much active service, but it must have been a source of consolation to him to feel, when ending his days as Governor of the Royal Hospital at Chelsea, that it was in a great measure owing to his foresight and decision that there was no serious disturbance at Peshawar during the eventful summer of 1857.]

[Footnote 10: This officer arrived in India as a Cornet in the 24th Light Dragoons in 1810. Even though he had spent forty-three years in the army and was sixty-one when he got to Peshawar with his regiment—the 22nd Foot—in 1853, he still hadn't been promoted to command a battalion. He was a highly energetic and active officer, a great rider, an exemplary drill master, and a well-rounded soldier. Although he wasn’t lucky enough to see much active service, he must have found some comfort in knowing that when he finished his career as Governor of the Royal Hospital at Chelsea, it was largely due to his foresight and determination that there were no significant disturbances in Peshawar during the tumultuous summer of 1857.

[Footnote 11: Instructor in Oriental languages.]

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Instructor in Asian languages.



FOOTNOTES, CHAPTER V

[Footnote 1: See 'Memorials of the Life and Letters of Major-General Sir Herbert Edwardes.']

[Footnote 1: See 'Memorials of the Life and Letters of Major-General Sir Herbert Edwardes.'

[Footnote 2: 'Memorials of Major-General Sir Herbert Edwardes.']

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ 'Memorials of Major-General Sir Herbert Edwardes.'

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Same source.]



FOOTNOTES, CHAPTER VI

[Footnote 1: Place where the arms and accoutrements of Native regiments were kept.]

[Footnote 1: Place where the weapons and gear of Native regiments were stored.]

[Footnote 2: This name was the origin of the sepoys generally being called Pandies.]

[Footnote 2: This name was why sepoys were commonly referred to as Pandies.

[Footnote 3: At Meerut, Delhi, and Rurki, and in the Punjab there were:

[Footnote 3: At Meerut, Delhi, and Rurki, and in Punjab, there were:



British Troops.
  MEN. GUNS.
2 Regiments of Cavalry   1,410  
12 Regiments of Infantry 12,624  
9 Troops of Horse Artillery   1,017   54
5 Light Field Batteries      415   30
10 Companies of Foot Artillerymen      837  
  ———   —
Total 16,303   84


Native Troops.
  MEN. GUNS.
7 Regiments of Light Cavalry   3,514  
14 Regiments of Irregular Cavalry and
Guides Cavalry
  8,519  
31 Regiments of Regular Infantry
15 Regiments of Irregular Infantry and
Guides Infantry

50,188
 
3 Troops of Horse Artillery      411   18
6 Light Field Batteries      930   30 (3 batteries had only 4 guns each)
2 Mountain Batteries      192   14 (1 battery had 8, the other 6 guns)
3 Companies of Foot Artillery      330  
Head-Quarters and 12 Companies of
Sappers and Miners
  1,394  
———   —
Total 65,478   62

The above figures show the troops at full strength. There were probably not more than 15,000 British soldiers in the Punjab available for duty in May, 1857.]

The above figures show the troops at full strength. There were likely no more than 15,000 British soldiers in the Punjab available for duty in May 1857.

[Footnote 4: The original proposal was that the Movable Column should be formed at Jhelum, and composed of the 24th Foot from Rawal Pindi, the 27th Foot from Nowshera, a troop of Horse Artillery from Peshawar, a Native Field Battery from Jhelum, the Guides from Murdan, the 16th Irregular Cavalry from Rawal Pindi, the Kumaon battalion from Murree, the 1st Punjab Infantry from Bannu, and a wing of the 2nd Punjab Cavalry from Kohat. But events developed so rapidly that before the column was formed every one of these troops was otherwise employed. It was thought unwise to unduly weaken the Peshawar valley; the troop of Horse Artillery, therefore, stood fast, the 27th Foot was halted at Attock, and the 24th Foot and Kumaon battalion were kept at their stations ready to move towards the frontier. The Guides, 2nd Punjab Cavalry, and 1st Punjab Infantry were ordered to Delhi, and the 16th Irregular Cavalry and the Native Field Battery were not considered sufficiently loyal to be employed on such a duty. Eventually, the column was formed of one troop of Horse Artillery, one Field Battery, and one Infantry regiment, all British and all from Sialkot.]

[Footnote 4: The original plan was for the Movable Column to be established in Jhelum, consisting of the 24th Foot from Rawal Pindi, the 27th Foot from Nowshera, a troop of Horse Artillery from Peshawar, a Native Field Battery from Jhelum, the Guides from Murdan, the 16th Irregular Cavalry from Rawal Pindi, the Kumaon battalion from Murree, the 1st Punjab Infantry from Bannu, and a wing of the 2nd Punjab Cavalry from Kohat. However, things changed so quickly that by the time the column was formed, all of these troops were already assigned to other tasks. It was deemed unwise to weaken the Peshawar valley too much, so the Horse Artillery troop stayed put, the 27th Foot was held at Attock, and the 24th Foot and Kumaon battalion remained at their posts ready to head towards the frontier. The Guides, 2nd Punjab Cavalry, and 1st Punjab Infantry were sent to Delhi, while the 16th Irregular Cavalry and the Native Field Battery were not considered loyal enough to be used for such a mission. In the end, the column consisted of one troop of Horse Artillery, one Field Battery, and one Infantry regiment, all British and all from Sialkot.

[Footnote 5: The full text of the message was as follows:

[Footnote 5: The complete text of the message was as follows:

'From General Reed, Peshawar.

From General Reed, Peshawar.

'To Sir John Lawrence, Rawal Pindi, the Commander-in-Chief, Simla, and officers commanding all stations in the Punjab respectively; to be forwarded by the assistant in charge of the telegraph office, or post, as the case may be.

'To Sir John Lawrence, Rawal Pindi, the Commander-in-Chief, Simla, and officers commanding all stations in the Punjab respectively; to be sent by the assistant responsible for the telegraph office, or post, as applicable.

'The senior military officer in the Punjab, Major-General Reed, having this morning received news of the disarming of the troops at Mian Mir, a council of war was held, consisting of General Reed, Brigadier Cotton, Brigadier Neville Chamberlain, Colonel Edwardes, and Colonel Nicholson, and the following measures were decided on, subject to the confirmation of the Commander-in-Chief. General Reed assumes the chief military command in the Punjab; his Head-Quarters will be the Head-Quarters of the Punjab Civil Government, and a Movable Column will be formed at Jhelum at once, consisting of [the troops were here detailed]. The necessary orders for this column have been issued. The column will move on every point in the Punjab where open mutiny requires to be put down by force, and officers commanding at all stations in the Punjab will co-operate with the column.']

'The senior military officer in the Punjab, Major-General Reed, received news this morning about the disarming of the troops at Mian Mir. A council of war was held, consisting of General Reed, Brigadier Cotton, Brigadier Neville Chamberlain, Colonel Edwardes, and Colonel Nicholson. They decided on the following measures, pending approval from the Commander-in-Chief. General Reed will take charge of military operations in the Punjab; his headquarters will be the headquarters of the Punjab Civil Government. A Movable Column will be set up at Jhelum immediately, made up of [the troops were here detailed]. The necessary orders for this column have already been issued. The column will be deployed to address any instances of open mutiny in the Punjab that need to be suppressed by force, and all commanding officers at different stations in the Punjab will work together with the column.'



FOOTNOTES, CHAPTER VII

[Footnote 1: A metal drinking vessel, which the Hindu religiously guards against defilement, and to which he clings as a cherished possession when he has nothing else belonging to him in the world.]

[Footnote 1: A metal drinking cup, which a Hindu carefully protects from contamination, and to which he holds on tightly as a beloved possession when he has nothing else that belongs to him in the world.]

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ European officers.]

[Footnote 3: Each Hindustani regiment had a European sergeant-major and quartermaster-sergeant.]

[Footnote 3: Each Hindustani regiment had a European sergeant major and quartermaster sergeant.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Rule.

[Footnote 5: British Government.]

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ UK Government.]

[Footnote 6: Now Lieutenant-General Sir Hugh Gough, V.C., G.C.B.]

[Footnote 6: Now Lieutenant-General Sir Hugh Gough, V.C., G.C.B.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Conflict.]



FOOTNOTES, CHAPTER VIII

[Footnote 1: 'I am not so much surprised,' wrote General Anson to Lord Canning on the 23rd March, 'at their objections to the cartridges, having seen them. I had no idea they contained, or, rather, are smeared with, such a quantity of grease, which looks exactly like fat. After ramming down the ball, the muzzle of the musket is covered with it. This, however, will, I imagine, not be the case with those prepared according to the late instructions. But there are now misgivings about the paper, and I think it so desirable that they should be assured that no animal grease is used in its manufacture, that I have ordered a special report to be made to me on that head from Meerut, and until I receive an answer, and am satisfied that no objectionable material is used, no firing at the depots by the sepoys will take place. It would be easy to dismiss the detachments to their regiments without any practice, on the ground that the hot weather is so advanced, and that very little progress could be made, but I do not think that would be admissible. The question, having been raised, must be settled. It would only be deferred till another year, and I trust that the measures taken by the Government when the objection was first made, and the example of the punishment of the 19th Native Infantry and of the other delinquents of the 70th, now being tried by a General Court-Martial, will have the effect we desire.'—KAYE, vol. i., p. 558.]

[Footnote 1: 'I'm not really surprised,' General Anson wrote to Lord Canning on March 23rd, 'about their objections to the cartridges, having seen them. I had no idea they contained, or rather, are coated with, such a large amount of grease that looks just like fat. After pushing down the ball, the muzzle of the musket is covered with it. However, I assume this won't be the case with those made according to the recent instructions. There are now concerns about the paper, and I think it’s important to assure them that no animal grease is used in its production. I've requested a special report on that matter from Meerut, and until I receive an answer and am satisfied that no objectionable material is used, the sepoys will not fire at the depots. It would be easy to send the detachments back to their regiments without any practice, claiming that the hot weather is already advanced and that very little progress could be made, but I don't think that would be acceptable. Since the issue has come up, it needs to be resolved. It would only be postponed until next year, and I trust that the actions taken by the Government when the objection was first raised, along with the punishment of the 19th Native Infantry and the other offenders from the 70th, who are now being tried by a General Court-Martial, will achieve the outcome we want.'—KAYE, vol. i., p. 558.]

[Footnote 2: Surely those whom God has a mind to destroy, He first deprives of their senses; for not only were the magazines at Delhi and Cawnpore allowed to fall into the enemy's hands, but the great arsenal at Allahabad narrowly escaped the same fate. Up till May, 1857, this fort was garrisoned only by Native soldiers. Early in that month sixty worn-out European pensioners were brought to Allahabad from Chunar, with whose assistance, and that of a few hastily raised Volunteers, Lieutenants Russell and Tod Brown, of the Bengal Artillery, were able to overawe and disarm the Native guard on the very night on which the regiments to which they belonged mutinied in the adjoining cantonment. These two gallant officers had taken the precaution to fill the cellars below the armoury (which contained some 50,000 or 60,000 stands of arms) with barrels of powder, their intention being to blow up the whole place in the event of the sepoys getting the upper hand. This determination was known to all in the fort, and no doubt had something to say to the guard submitting to be disarmed.]

[Footnote 2: Surely those whom God intends to destroy, He first takes away their senses; not only were the depots at Delhi and Cawnpore allowed to fall into enemy hands, but the major arsenal at Allahabad almost faced the same fate. Up until May 1857, this fort was only manned by Native soldiers. Early that month, sixty exhausted European pensioners were brought to Allahabad from Chunar. With their help, along with a few quickly assembled Volunteers, Lieutenants Russell and Tod Brown of the Bengal Artillery were able to intimidate and disarm the Native guard on the very night the regiments they belonged to mutinied in the nearby cantonment. These two brave officers had taken the precaution of filling the cellars below the armory (which held around 50,000 to 60,000 weapons) with barrels of gunpowder, planning to blow up the whole place if the sepoys gained the upper hand. This plan was known to everyone in the fort, and it likely influenced the guard's decision to submit to being disarmed.

[Footnote 3: He has been accused of dilatoriness and want of decision after hearing the news.]

[Footnote 3: He has been accused of being slow and indecisive after hearing the news.]

[Footnote 4: Places at the foot of the Himalayas.]

[Footnote 4: Places at the base of the Himalayas.]

[Footnote 5: Now the Marquis of Tweeddale.]

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Now the Marquis of Tweeddale.

[Footnote 6: A small hill state near Simla.]

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ A small hill town near Shimla.

[Footnote 7: It is a remarkable fact that the five senior officers at this conference were all dead in less than seven weeks. General Anson, Brigadier Hallifax, commanding the Umballa station, and Colonel Mowatt, commanding the Artillery, died within ten days; Colonel Chester, Adjutant-General of the Army, was killed at Badli-ki-Serai on the 8th June, and Sir Henry Barnard died at Delhi on the 5th July.]

[Footnote 7: It's an astonishing fact that all five senior officers at this conference were dead in under seven weeks. General Anson, Brigadier Hallifax, who was in charge of the Umballa station, and Colonel Mowatt, who led the Artillery, all passed away within ten days; Colonel Chester, the Adjutant-General of the Army, was killed at Badli-ki-Serai on June 8th, and Sir Henry Barnard died in Delhi on July 5th.

[Footnote 8: See Kaye's 'History of the Indian Mutiny,' vol. ii., p. 120.]

[Footnote 8: See Kaye's 'History of the Indian Mutiny,' vol. ii., p. 120.]

[Footnote 9: The late Sir Douglas Forsyth, K.C.S.I.]

The late Sir Douglas Forsyth, K.C.S.I.

[Footnote 10: See 'The Life of Sir Douglas Forsyth.']

[Footnote 10: See 'The Life of Sir Douglas Forsyth.']



FOOTNOTES, CHAPTER IX

[Footnote 1: The Head-Quarters of this regiment had been sent to Mardan in place of the Guides.]

[Footnote 1: The headquarters of this regiment had been sent to Mardan instead of the Guides.

[Footnote 2: Now the 1st Bengal Infantry.]

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Now the 1st Bengal Infantry.



FOOTNOTES, CHAPTER X

[Footnote 1: The late General Sir Henry Daly, G.C.B.]

[Footnote 1: The late General Sir Henry Daly, G.C.B.

[Footnote 2: Now General Sir John Coke, G.C.B.]

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Now General Sir John Coke, G.C.B.

[Footnote 3: Afterwards commanded by Lieutenant, now General, Sir Dighton Probyn, V.C., G.C.V.O., K.C.B.]

[Footnote 3: Later commanded by Lieutenant, now General, Sir Dighton Probyn, V.C., G.C.V.O., K.C.B.

[Footnote 4: The late Major-General Sir George Green, K.C.B.]

[Footnote 4: The late Major-General Sir George Green, K.C.B.

[Footnote 5: The late Lieutenant-General Sir Alfred Wilde, K.C.B., K.C.S.I.]

[Footnote 5: The late Lieutenant-General Sir Alfred Wilde, K.C.B., K.C.S.I.

[Footnote 6: The late General James Walker, C.B., sometime Surveyor-General in India.]

[Footnote 6: The late General James Walker, C.B., former Surveyor-General in India.

[Footnote 7: Now General Sir George Bourchier, K.C.B.]

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Now General Sir George Bourchier, K.C.B.

[Footnote 8: Now, except for one short interval, every officer who has joined the Indian Army since 1861 must, in the first instance, have belonged or been attached to one of Her Majesty's British regiments: the great majority have been educated at Sandhurst or Woolwich, and all feel that they are members of the same army.]

[Footnote 8: Now, with one brief exception, every officer who has joined the Indian Army since 1861 must have originally belonged to or been attached to one of Her Majesty's British regiments: most have been trained at Sandhurst or Woolwich, and they all recognize that they are part of the same army.

[Footnote 9: The late Sir Robert Montgomery, G.C.B.]

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ The late Sir Robert Montgomery, G.C.B.

[Footnote 10: During the operations in the Kohat Pass in February, 1850, within twelve months of the corps being raised, several of the men were killed and wounded. Among the latter was a Pathan named Mahomed Gul. He was shot through the body in two places, and as Coke sat by him while he was dying, he said, with a smile on his face: 'Sahib, I am happy; but promise me one thing—don't let my old mother want. I leave her to your care.']

[Footnote 10: During the operations in the Kohat Pass in February 1850, just a year after the corps was formed, several men were killed and injured. One of the injured was a Pathan named Mahomed Gul. He was shot in two places, and as Coke sat by him while he was dying, he smiled and said, 'Sahib, I am happy; but promise me one thing—don't let my old mother suffer. I leave her in your care.'

[Footnote 11: Awe-inspiring certainly, but probably the most humane, as being a sure and instantaneous mode of execution.]

[Footnote 11: Awe-inspiring for sure, but likely the most humane, since it’s a certain and instant way to execute.



FOOTNOTES, CHAPTER XI

[Footnote 1: One Cavalry and two Infantry.]

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ One Cavalry and two Infantry.

[Footnote 2: Native Adjutant.]

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Native Assistant.

[Footnote 3: A name applied by the Hindus to any Rajput who has, or whose ancestors have, been converted to Islam. There were several Rangars in the 1st Irregulars. One day in June, Shaidad Khan, a Resaidar of this class, came to Chamberlain, and said: 'There was a rumour that he (Chamberlain) had not as much confidence in Rangars as in other classes of the regiment, and he came to be comforted'! Chamberlain asked him to sit down, and sent to the banker of the regiment for a very valuable sword which he had given him for safe custody. It had belonged to one of the Amirs of Sindh, was taken in battle, and given to Chamberlain by Major Fitzgerald, of the Sindh Horse. On the sword being brought, Chamberlain handed it over to Shaidad Khan and his sect for safety, to be returned when the Mutiny was over. The tears rose to the Native officer's eyes, he touched Chamberlain's knees, and swore that death alone would sever the bond of fidelity of which the sword was the token. He took his leave, thoroughly satisfied.]

[Footnote 3: A term used by Hindus for any Rajput who has, or whose ancestors have, converted to Islam. There were several Rangars in the 1st Irregulars. One day in June, Shaidad Khan, a Resaidar from this group, approached Chamberlain and said, 'There’s a rumor that you (Chamberlain) don't trust Rangars as much as other groups in the regiment, and I came to seek reassurance!' Chamberlain invited him to sit down and called for the regiment's banker to bring a very valuable sword that he had entrusted for safekeeping. This sword belonged to one of the Amirs of Sindh, was captured in battle, and was given to Chamberlain by Major Fitzgerald of the Sindh Horse. When the sword arrived, Chamberlain handed it over to Shaidad Khan and his group for safekeeping, to be returned after the Mutiny was over. Tears filled the Native officer's eyes; he touched Chamberlain's knees and vowed that only death would break the bond of loyalty represented by the sword. He then left, completely satisfied.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Throne.

[Footnote 5: A station since abandoned for Rajanpur.]

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ A station now abandoned for Rajanpur.]

[Footnote 6: Now General Sir W.T. Hughes, K.C.B.]

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Now General Sir W.T. Hughes, K.C.B.

[Footnote 7: The two disarmed regiments remained quietly at Multan for more than a year, when, with unaccountable inconsistency, a sudden spirit of revolt seized them, and in August, 1858, they broke out, tried to get possession of the guns, murdered the Adjutant of the Bombay Fusiliers, and then fled from the station. But order by that time had been quite restored, our position in the Punjab was secure, and nearly all the sepoys were killed or captured by the country people.]

[Footnote 7: The two disarmed regiments stayed quietly in Multan for over a year, but suddenly, in August 1858, they inexplicably revolted. They attempted to seize the artillery, killed the Adjutant of the Bombay Fusiliers, and then fled the station. By that time, order had been fully restored, our position in the Punjab was secure, and almost all of the sepoys were either killed or captured by the local people.

[Footnote 8: No Native, in Native dress, keeps his shoes on when he enters a room, unless he intends disrespect.]

[Footnote 8: No Native, in Native dress, keeps their shoes on when they enter a room, unless they mean to show disrespect.]

[Footnote 9: The late Field Marshal Lord Strathnairn, G.C.B., G.C.S.I.]

[Footnote 9: The late Field Marshal Lord Strathnairn, G.C.B., G.C.S.I.

[Footnote 10: A kind of light cart.]

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ A type of light cart.

[Footnote 11: A four-walled enclosure for the accommodation of travellers.]

A room for housing travelers.

[Footnote 12: It will be remembered that this was the regiment in which two men had been found with loaded muskets, and blown away from guns at Lahore.]

[Footnote 12: It will be remembered that this was the regiment where two men had been found with loaded guns and were shot away from cannons at Lahore.



FOOTNOTES, CHAPTER XII

[Footnote 1: George Ricketts, Esq., C.B., afterwards a member of the Board of Revenue of the North-West Provinces.]

[Footnote 1: George Ricketts, Esq., C.B., who later became a member of the Board of Revenue for the North-West Provinces.]

[Footnote 2: Thomas Thornton, Esq., C.S.I., afterwards Secretary to the Government of India in the Foreign Department.]

[Footnote 2: Thomas Thornton, Esq., C.S.I., later the Secretary to the Government of India in the Foreign Department.]



FOOTNOTES, CHAPTER XIII

[Footnote 1: The late Major-General Sir Harry Tombs, V.C., K.C.B.]

[Footnote 1: The late Major-General Sir Harry Tombs, V.C., K.C.B.

[Footnote 2: The Chaplain's Narrative of the siege of Delhi.]

[Footnote 2: The Chaplain's account of the siege of Delhi.

[Footnote 3: Now the 1st Battalion, 2nd Gurkhas.]

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Now the 1st Battalion, 2nd Gurkhas.

[Footnote 4: 'Siege of Delhi; by an Officer who served there.']

[Footnote 4: 'Siege of Delhi; by an Officer who served there.']

[Footnote 5: The late General Sir Hope Grant, G.C.B.]

[Footnote 5: The late General Sir Hope Grant, G.C.B.

[Footnote 6: 75th and 1st Bengal Fusiliers.]

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ 75th and 1st Bengal Fusiliers.

[Footnote 7: 1st Battalion 60th Rifles, 2nd Bengal Fusiliers, and Sirmur battalion.]

[Footnote 7: 1st Battalion 60th Rifles, 2nd Bengal Fusiliers, and Sirmur battalion.]

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Swampy ground.]

[Footnote 9: 'The Indian Mutiny,' by George W. Forrest.]

[Footnote 9: 'The Indian Mutiny,' by George W. Forrest.]

[Footnote 10: The bastions were small, each mounting from ten to fourteen pieces of Artillery; they were provided with masonry parapets about 12 feet in thickness, and were about 16 feet high. The curtain consisted of a simple masonry wall or rampart 16 feet in height, 11 feet thick at top, and 14 or 15 feet at bottom. This main wall carried a parapet loopholed for musketry 8 feet in height and 3 feet in thickness. The whole of the land front was covered by a faussebraye of varying thickness, ranging from 16 to 30 feet, and having a vertical scarp wall 8 feet high; exterior to this was a dry ditch about 25 feet in width. The counterscarp was simply an earthen slope, easy to descend. The glacis was very narrow, extending only 50 or 60 yards from the counterscarp, and covering barely one-half of the walls from the besiegers' view. These walls were about seven miles in circumference, and included an area of about three square miles (see Colonel Baird-Smith's report, dated September 17, 1857).]

[Footnote 10: The bastions were small, each holding between ten and fourteen pieces of artillery; they had masonry parapets about 12 feet thick and stood around 16 feet high. The curtain was a simple masonry wall or rampart 16 feet tall, 11 feet thick at the top, and 14 or 15 feet thick at the bottom. This main wall had a parapet with musket loopholes that was 8 feet high and 3 feet thick. The entire land front was covered by a faussebraye of variable thickness, ranging from 16 to 30 feet, featuring a vertical scarp wall 8 feet high; outside of this was a dry ditch about 25 feet wide. The counterscarp was just an earthen slope that was easy to descend. The glacis was very narrow, extending only 50 or 60 yards from the counterscarp and covering barely half of the walls from the view of the besiegers. These walls were about seven miles around, enclosing an area of about three square miles (see Colonel Baird-Smith's report, dated September 17, 1857).

[Footnote 11: The late Field Marshal Lord Napier of Magdala, G.C.B., G.C.S.I.]

[Footnote 11: The late Field Marshal Lord Napier of Magdala, G.C.B., G.C.S.I.

[Footnote 12: So badly off were we for ammunition for the heavy guns at this time, that it was found necessary to use the shot fired at us by the enemy, and a reward was offered for every 24-pounder shot brought into the Artillery Park.]

[Footnote 12: At this time, we were in such dire need of ammunition for the heavy guns that we had to use the rounds fired at us by the enemy, and a reward was offered for every 24-pounder round collected in the Artillery Park.

[Footnote 13: Now General Sir Charles Reid, G.C.B.]

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Now General Sir Charles Reid, G.C.B.

[Footnote 14: Forrest's 'Indian Mutiny' and Norman's 'Narrative of the Siege of Delhi,' two interesting accounts from which I shall often quote.]

[Footnote 14: Forrest's 'Indian Mutiny' and Norman's 'Narrative of the Siege of Delhi' are two compelling accounts that I will frequently reference.

[Footnote 15: A Mahomedan place of worship and sacrifice.]

[Footnote 15: A Muslim place of worship and sacrifice.]

[Footnote 16: 'Siege of Delhi; by an Officer who served there.']

[Footnote 16: 'Siege of Delhi; by an Officer who served there.'

[Footnote 17: Forrest's 'The Indian Mutiny.']

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Forrest's 'The Indian Rebellion.'

[Footnote 18: Reid's own report.]

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Reid's report.



FOOTNOTES, CHAPTER XIV

[Footnote 1: Now Lieutenant-General Sir James Hills-Johnes, V.C., G.C.B.]

[Footnote 1: Now Lieutenant-General Sir James Hills-Johnes, V.C., G.C.B.

[Footnote 2: The late General Sir Edwin Johnson, G.C.B.]

[Footnote 2: The late General Sir Edwin Johnson, G.C.B.

[Footnote 3: Chamberlain had been given the rank of Brigadier-General on his arrival at Delhi.]

[Footnote 3: Chamberlain was promoted to Brigadier-General upon his arrival in Delhi.

[Footnote 4: The account of this adventurous ride is given in the Appendix.*

[Footnote 4: The story of this exciting journey is detailed in the Appendix.*

*See __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__*



FOOTNOTES, CHAPTER XV

[Footnote 1: See Kaye's 'History of the Indian Mutiny.']

[Footnote 1: Check out Kaye's 'History of the Indian Mutiny.'

[Footnote 2: Now General Sir Alexander Taylor, G.C.B.]

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Now General Sir Alexander Taylor, G.C.B.

[Footnote 3: Mahomedans of good family are so styled in northern India.]

[Footnote 3: Muslims of a good family are referred to this way in northern India.

[Footnote 4: Tombs and Hills both received the Victoria Cross for their gallantry.]

[Footnote 4: Tombs and Hills both received the Victoria Cross for their bravery.

[Footnote 5: 'Adjutants,' never seen in ordinary times further north than Bengal, appeared in hundreds, and were really useful scavengers.]

[Footnote 5: 'Adjutants,' usually not spotted in normal times any further north than Bengal, showed up in hundreds and were quite effective as scavengers.



FOOTNOTES, CHAPTER XVI

[Footnote 1: According to the religion of Islam, Ishmail, not Isaac, was to have been offered up by Abraham.]

[Footnote 1: According to the Islamic faith, Ishmael, not Isaac, was meant to be offered by Abraham.

[Footnote 2: Forrest's 'The Indian Mutiny.']

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Forrest's 'The Indian Rebellion.'

[Footnote 3: Since writing the above it has been brought to my notice that the promptitude with which the troops were diverted to India was due in a great measure to the foresight of Sir George Grey, the Governor of the Cape, who, on hearing of the serious state of affairs in India, immediately ordered all transports which touched at the Cape on their way to take part in the China Expeditionary Force, to proceed directly to Calcutta instead of to Singapore. He also despatched as many of the Cape garrison as he could spare, with stores, etc., to India. It is right, therefore, that he should share with Lord Elgin the credit of having so quickly grasped the magnitude of the crisis through which India was passing.]

[Footnote 3: Since writing the above, I’ve been made aware that the swift relocation of troops to India was largely because of the foresight of Sir George Grey, the Governor of the Cape. When he learned about the serious situation in India, he immediately ordered all transports that stopped at the Cape on their way to the China Expeditionary Force to go directly to Calcutta instead of Singapore. He also sent as many of the Cape garrison as he could spare, along with supplies, to India. It’s only fair that he shares with Lord Elgin the credit for quickly understanding the severity of the crisis in India.

[Footnote 4: Owing to Brigadier-General Chamberlain having been placed hors de combat by the severe wound he received the previous day, Norman was carrying on the duties of Adjutant-General.]

[Footnote 4: Due to Brigadier-General Chamberlain being incapacitated by the serious wound he received the day before, Norman was handling the responsibilities of Adjutant-General.

[Footnote 5: There were besides in camp at this time 1,535 sick and wounded, notwithstanding that several hundred men had been sent away.]

[Footnote 5: At that time there were 1,535 sick and wounded in camp, even though several hundred men had already been sent away.



FOOTNOTES, CHAPTER XVII

[Footnote 1: Punjab Administration Report, 1857-58.].

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Punjab Admin Report, 1857-58.

[Footnote 2: The tract of country between the Sutlej and Ravi rivers.].

[Footnote 2: The area of land between the Sutlej and Ravi rivers.].

[Footnote 3: Norman's narrative.].

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Norman's story.].

[Footnote 4: The late General Sir James Brind, G.C.B.].

[Footnote 4: The late General Sir James Brind, G.C.B.].

[Footnote 5: 'The Indian Mutiny,' by Forrest.].

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ 'The Indian Rebellion,' by Forrest.].

[Footnote 6: When his Royal Highness the Prince of Wales was coming to India in 1875, I obtained permission from Lord Napier of Magdala, who was then Commander-in-Chief, to erect miniature embrasures to mark the gun of direction of each of the breaching batteries; and on these embrasures are recorded the number, armament, and object of the batteries.].

[Footnote 6: When his Royal Highness the Prince of Wales was coming to India in 1875, I got permission from Lord Napier of Magdala, who was the Commander-in-Chief at the time, to build small openings to indicate the aiming points for each of the breaching batteries; and these openings include details about the number, armament, and purpose of the batteries.].

[Footnote 7: Colonel Arthur Lang is the only one of the four now alive.].

[Footnote 7: Colonel Arthur Lang is the only one of the four still alive now.

[Footnote 8: Nearly every man was on duty. The daily state of the several corps must have been very similar to the following one of the 75th Foot.

[Footnote 8: Almost every man was on duty. The daily condition of the various regiments must have been very similar to that of the 75th Foot.



FOOTNOTES, CHAPTER XVIII

[Footnote 1: The house belonged to the Skinner family, and was originally built by James Skinner, a Eurasian, who served the Moghul Emperor with great distinction towards the end of the last century. When Lord Lake broke up that Mahomedan Prince's power, Skinner entered the service of the East India Company and rose to the rank of Major. He was also a C.B. He raised the famous Skinner's Horse, now the 1st Bengal Cavalry. His father was an officer in one of His Majesty's regiments of Foot, and after one of Lord Clive's battles married a Rajput lady of good family, who with her father and mother had been taken prisoners. Skinner himself married a Mahomedan, so that he had an interest in the three religions, Christian, Hindu, and Mahomedan, and on one occasion, when left on the ground severely wounded, he made a vow that if his life were spared he would build three places of worship—a church, a temple, and a mosque. He fulfilled his vow, and a few years later he built the church at Delhi, and the temple and mosque which are in close proximity to it.]

[Footnote 1: The house belonged to the Skinner family and was originally built by James Skinner, a Eurasian who served the Moghul Emperor with great success toward the end of the last century. When Lord Lake dismantled the power of that Mahomedan Prince, Skinner joined the East India Company and rose to the rank of Major. He was also a C.B. He established the famous Skinner's Horse, now the 1st Bengal Cavalry. His father was an officer in one of His Majesty's regiments of Foot, and after one of Lord Clive's battles, he married a Rajput lady from a respectable family, who, along with her parents, had been captured. Skinner himself married a Mahomedan, giving him connections in Christianity, Hinduism, and Islam. On one occasion, after being left severely wounded, he vowed that if he survived, he would build three places of worship—a church, a temple, and a mosque. He kept his vow, and a few years later, he built the church in Delhi, as well as the temple and mosque nearby.



FOOTNOTES, CHAPTER XIX

[Footnote 1: A report was circulated that a large number of our men had fallen into the trap laid for them by the Native shopkeepers, and were disgracefully drunk. I heard that a few men, overcome by heat and hard work, had given way to temptation, but I did not see a single drunken man throughout the day of the assault, although, as I have related, I visited every position held by our troops within the walls of the city.]

[Footnote 1: A report was spread that a lot of our men had fallen into the trap set for them by the local shopkeepers and were embarrassingly drunk. I heard that a few men, exhausted from the heat and hard work, had given in to temptation, but I didn’t see a single drunken man all day during the assault, even though, as I mentioned, I checked every position held by our troops inside the city walls.

[Footnote 3: 'Silver Bazaar,' the main street of Delhi, in which were, and still are, situated all the principal jewellers' and cloth-Merchants' shops.]

[Footnote 3: 'Silver Bazaar,' the main street of Delhi, where all the major jewellers' and fabric merchants' shops are located, and still are.

[Footnote 4: Now Lieutenant-General Sir John McQueen, K.C.B.]

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Currently Lieutenant-General Sir John McQueen, K.C.B.

[Footnote 5: The Gurkhas became such friends with the men of the 1st Battalion 60th Rifles during the siege—the admiration of brave men for brave men—that they made a special request to be allowed to wear the same uniform as their 'brothers' in the Rifles. This was acceded to, and the 2nd Gurkhas are very proud of the little red line on their facings.]

[Footnote 5: The Gurkhas formed a close bond with the soldiers of the 1st Battalion 60th Rifles during the siege—sharing a mutual respect for each other's courage—that they asked for permission to wear the same uniform as their 'brothers' in the Rifles. This was granted, and the 2nd Gurkhas take great pride in the small red line on their facings.

[Footnote 6: Amongst the Native officers killed was Subadar Ruttun Sing, who fell mortally wounded in the glacis. He was a Patiala Sikh, and had been invalided from the service. As the 1st Punjab Infantry neared Delhi, Major Coke saw the old man standing in the road with two swords on. He begged to be taken back into the service, and when Coke demurred he said: 'What! my old corps going to fight at Delhi without me! I hope you will let me lead my old Sikh company into action again. I will break these two swords in your cause.' Coke acceded to the old man's wish, and throughout the siege of Delhi he displayed the most splendid courage. At the great attack on the 'Sammy House' on the 1st and 2nd August, when Lieutenant Travers of his regiment was killed, Ruttun Sing, amidst a shower of bullets, jumped on to the parapet and shouted to the enemy, who were storming the piquet: 'If any man wants to fight, let him come here, and not stand firing like a coward! I am Ruttun Sing, of Patiala.' He then sprang down among the enemy, followed by the men of his company, and drove them off with heavy loss.

[Footnote 6: Among the Native officers killed was Subadar Ruttun Sing, who was fatally wounded on the glacis. He was a Patiala Sikh and had been discharged from the service due to injury. As the 1st Punjab Infantry approached Delhi, Major Coke spotted the old man standing in the road with two swords. He pleaded to be reinstated, and when Coke hesitated, he exclaimed, "What! My old regiment going to fight at Delhi without me! I hope you’ll let me lead my old Sikh company into action again. I’ll break these two swords for your cause." Coke agreed to the old man's request, and throughout the siege of Delhi, he showed remarkable bravery. During the major assault on the 'Sammy House' on August 1st and 2nd, when Lieutenant Travers from his regiment was killed, Ruttun Sing, amidst a hail of bullets, jumped onto the parapet and shouted to the enemy, who were attacking the picket: "If anyone wants to fight, come here and stop firing like a coward! I am Ruttun Sing from Patiala." He then jumped down among the enemy, followed by his company, and drove them off with significant losses.

On the morning of the assault the regiment had marched down to the rendezvous at Ludlow Castle, 'left in front.' While waiting for the Artillery to fire a few final rounds at the breaches, the men sat down, and, falling in again, were doing so 'right in front.' Ruttun Sing came up to Lieutenant Charles Nicholson, who was commanding the regiment, and said: 'We ought to fall in "left in front," thereby making his own company the leading one in the assault. In a few minutes more Ruttun Sing was mortally wounded, and Dal Sing, the Jemadar of his company, a man of as great courage as Ruttun Sing, but not of the same excitable nature, was killed outright.]

On the morning of the attack, the regiment had marched down to the meeting point at Ludlow Castle, 'left in front.' While waiting for the Artillery to fire a few final rounds at the breaches, the men sat down and then re-formed, doing so 'right in front.' Ruttun Sing approached Lieutenant Charles Nicholson, who was in charge of the regiment, and said, 'We should fall in "left in front," making his own company the lead one in the assault.' A few minutes later, Ruttun Sing was mortally wounded, and Dal Sing, the Jemadar of his company—who was just as brave as Ruttun Sing but not as excitable—was killed instantly.



FOOTNOTES, CHAPTER XX

[Footnote 1: Two troops of Horse Artillery, with four guns and one howitzer each, commanded respectively by Captains Remmington and Blunt. One Field Battery, with six guns, commanded by Captain Bourchier. One British Cavalry regiment, the 9th Lancers, reduced to 300 men, commanded by Major Ouvry. Two British Infantry regiments (the 8th and 75th Foot), commanded respectively by Major Hinde and Captain Gordon, which could only number between them 450 men. Detachments of three Punjab Cavalry regiments, the 1st, 2nd and 5th, commanded by Lieutenants John Watson, Dighton Probyn and George Younghusband, numbering in all 320 men. A detachment of Hodson's Horse, commanded by Lieutenant Hugh Gough, and consisting of 180 men. Two Punjab Infantry regiments, commanded by Captains Green and Wilde, each about 600 men; and 200 Sappers and Miners, with whom were Lieutenants Home and Lang.]

[Footnote 1: Two troops of Horse Artillery, each with four guns and one howitzer, led by Captains Remmington and Blunt. One Field Battery with six guns, led by Captain Bourchier. One British Cavalry regiment, the 9th Lancers, reduced to 300 men and led by Major Ouvry. Two British Infantry regiments (the 8th and 75th Foot), led by Major Hinde and Captain Gordon, numbering around 450 men in total. Detachments from three Punjab Cavalry regiments, the 1st, 2nd, and 5th, commanded by Lieutenants John Watson, Dighton Probyn, and George Younghusband, totaling 320 men. A detachment of Hodson's Horse, led by Lieutenant Hugh Gough, consisting of 180 men. Two Punjab Infantry regiments, commanded by Captains Green and Wilde, each roughly 600 men strong; and 200 Sappers and Miners, with Lieutenants Home and Lang among them.

[Footnote 2: Afterwards Sir Alfred Lyall, G.C.I.E., K.C.B., Lieutenant-Governor of the North-West Provinces, and now a member of the Indian Council.]

[Footnote 2: Afterwards Sir Alfred Lyall, G.C.I.E., K.C.B., Lieutenant Governor of the North-West Provinces, and now a member of the Indian Council.

[Footnote 3: Now General Sir William Drysdale, K.C.B.]

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Now General Sir William Drysdale, K.C.B.

[Footnote 4: The horse, although badly hurt, was not killed, and eventually did me good service.]

[Footnote 4: The horse, even though it was seriously injured, survived and eventually proved to be helpful to me.

[Footnote 5: This was the Engineer officer who had such a miraculous escape when he blew in the Kashmir gate at Delhi, for which act of gallantry he had been promised the Victoria Cross.]

[Footnote 5: This was the engineer officer who had an incredible escape when he blew open the Kashmir Gate in Delhi, and for this act of bravery, he had been promised the Victoria Cross.

[Footnote 6: A few years afterwards she communicated with the civil authorities of the district, and made out such a pitiful story of ill-treatment by her Mahomedan husband, that she was sent to Calcutta, where some ladies were good enough to look after her.]

[Footnote 6: A few years later, she reached out to the local authorities and shared a heartbreaking account of abuse from her Muslim husband, which led her to be sent to Calcutta, where some kind women offered to take care of her.

[Footnote 7: Men in charge of the elephants.]

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Men managing the elephants.]

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Turban.

[Footnote 9: Native kettle-drum.]

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Bass drum.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Pearl Mosque.]



FOOTNOTES, CHAPTER XXI

[Footnote 1: 'They regarded the Mutiny as a military revolt; the rural disturbances as the work of the mobs. The mass of the people they considered as thoroughly loyal, attached to our rule as well from gratitude as from self-interest, being thoroughly conscious of the benefits it had conferred upon them. Holding these opinions, they did not comprehend either the nature or the magnitude of the crisis. To their inability to do so, many lives and much treasure were needlessly sacrificed.'—'The Indian Mutiny,' Thornhill.]

[Footnote 1: 'They viewed the Mutiny as a military uprising and the rural unrest as the actions of the crowds. They believed that the majority of people were completely loyal, attached to our rule out of both gratitude and self-interest, fully aware of the benefits it provided them. With these beliefs, they failed to understand the nature and extent of the crisis. Their inability to grasp this led to the unnecessary sacrifice of many lives and resources.'—'The Indian Mutiny,' Thornhill.]

[Footnote 2: The Gwalior Contingent was raised in 1844, after the battles of Punniar and Maharajpore, to replace the troops of Maharaja Scindia ordered to be reduced. It consisted of five batteries of Artillery, two regiments of Cavalry, and seven regiments of Infantry, officered by British officers belonging to the Indian Army, and paid for out of the revenues of districts transferred to British management.]

[Footnote 2: The Gwalior Contingent was formed in 1844, following the battles of Punniar and Maharajpore, to replace the troops of Maharaja Scindia that were ordered to be reduced. It included five artillery batteries, two cavalry regiments, and seven infantry regiments, all led by British officers from the Indian Army, and funded by the revenues from districts that were turned over to British administration.

[Footnote 3: 'The Indian Mutiny,' Thornhill.]

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ 'The Indian Rebellion,' Thornhill.]

[Footnote 4: Throughout the campaign the Commissariat Department never failed: the troops were invariably well supplied, and, even during the longest marches, fresh bread was issued almost daily.]

[Footnote 4: Throughout the campaign, the Commissariat Department never fell short: the troops were consistently well supplied, and even during the longest marches, fresh bread was distributed almost daily.

[Footnote 5: 'The Indian Mutiny,' Thornhill.]

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ 'The Indian Rebellion,' Thornhill.]

[Footnote 6: 'The Indian Mutiny,' Thornhill.]

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ 'The Indian Rebellion,' Thornhill.]

[Footnote 7: It consisted of the 3rd European Regiment, 568 strong, a battery of Field Artillery, with Native drivers and a few European Artillerymen, and about 100 mounted Militia and Volunteers, composed of officers, civilians and others who had taken refuge in Agra.]

[Footnote 7: It was made up of the 3rd European Regiment, with 568 soldiers, a battery of Field Artillery operated by Native drivers and a few European gunners, along with around 100 mounted Militia and Volunteers, which included officers, civilians, and others who had sought refuge in Agra.

[Footnote 8: The police were suspected of having invited the insurgents who defeated Polwhele to Agra.]

[Footnote 8: The police were suspected of inviting the insurgents who defeated Polwhele to Agra.

[Footnote 9: Known as the Doab.]

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Also known as the Doab.

[Footnote 10: Colonel Fraser died within nine months of our leaving Agra.]

[Footnote 10: Colonel Fraser passed away less than nine months after we left Agra.]



FOOTNOTES, CHAPTER XXII

[Footnote 1: No account of the quantity and description of supplies stored in the Residency had been kept, or, if kept, it was destroyed when the Mutiny broke out. Captain James, the energetic Commissariat officer, on receiving Sir Henry Lawrence's order to provision the Residency, spent his time riding about the country buying supplies of all descriptions, which were stored wherever room could be found for them. James was very severely wounded at the fight at Chinhut, and was incapacitated the greater part of the siege. It was only by degrees that some of the supplies were discovered; no one knew how much had been collected, and no record of the quantities issued from day to day could be kept. When Outram joined hands with Inglis, his first question was, 'How much food is there?' Thanks to Sir Henry Lawrence's foresight, there was an ample supply, not only for the original garrison, but for the numbers by which it was augmented on the arrival of the relieving force. Of this, however, Outram must have been ignorant when he despatched the little note to which I have alluded in the text.]

[Footnote 1: There was no record of the amount and type of supplies stored in the Residency, or if there had been one, it was lost when the Mutiny started. Captain James, the dedicated Commissariat officer, got Sir Henry Lawrence's order to stock the Residency and spent his days traveling around the area purchasing various supplies, storing them wherever he could find space. James was badly injured during the battle at Chinhut and was unable to help for most of the siege. It took time to find some of the supplies; no one knew how much had been gathered, and no records were kept of the quantities distributed each day. When Outram teamed up with Inglis, his first question was, 'How much food do we have?' Thanks to Sir Henry Lawrence's foresight, there was more than enough supply, not only for the original garrison but also for the extra people who arrived with the relieving force. However, Outram must have been unaware of this when he sent the brief note I mentioned earlier.

[Footnote 2: On the 25th June, after twenty-one days of intense suffering—with his numbers so reduced as to render further defence scarcely possible, with starvation staring him in the face, and with no hope of succour—Sir Hugh Wheeler most reluctantly consented to capitulate. The first overtures were made by the Nana, who, despairing of being able to capture the position, and with disaffection in his own camp, sent the following message to the General: 'All those who are in no way connected with the acts of Lord Dalhousie, and are willing to lay down their arms, shall receive a safe passage to Allahabad.' This missive, which was without signature, was in the handwriting of Azimula Khan, a Mahomedan who had been employed by the Nana as his Agent in England, and was addressed, 'To the subjects of Her Most Gracious Majesty Queen Victoria.' General Wheeler agreed to give up the fortification, the treasure, and the Artillery, on condition that each man should be allowed to carry his arms and sixty rounds of ammunition, that carriages should be provided for the conveyance of the wounded, the women, and the children, and that boats, with a sufficiency of flour, should be ready at the neighbouring ghat (landing-place). The Nana accepted these conditions, and three officers of the garrison were deputed to go to the river and see that the boats were properly prepared. They found about forty boats moored, and apparently ready for departure, and in their presence a show of putting supplies on board was made.]

[Footnote 2: On June 25th, after twenty-one days of intense suffering—with his forces so diminished that further defense seemed nearly impossible, facing starvation, and with no hope of rescue—Sir Hugh Wheeler reluctantly agreed to surrender. The first proposals came from the Nana, who, realizing he wouldn’t be able to take the position and facing discontent in his own camp, sent this message to the General: 'Anyone unrelated to the actions of Lord Dalhousie who is willing to lay down their arms will be granted safe passage to Allahabad.' This message, unsigned, was penned by Azimula Khan, a Muslim who had worked for the Nana as his representative in England, and was addressed to 'the subjects of Her Most Gracious Majesty Queen Victoria.' General Wheeler agreed to surrender the fortification, the treasure, and the artillery provided that each man could carry his weapon and sixty rounds of ammunition, that carriages would be arranged for the wounded, women, and children, and that boats, stocked with enough flour, would be ready at the nearby ghat (landing-place). The Nana accepted these terms, and three officers from the garrison were sent to the river to ensure the boats were adequately prepared. They found about forty boats moored and seemingly ready for departure, and they witnessed a pretense of loading supplies onto them.

[Footnote 3: The Nana never intended that one of the garrison should leave Cawnpore alive, and during the night of the 26th June he arranged with Tantia Topi to have soldiers and guns concealed at the Sati-Choura Ghat to open fire upon the Europeans he had been unable to conquer as soon as the embarkation had been effected and they could no longer defend themselves and their helpless companions in misery. The river was low and the boats were aground, having been purposely drawn close to the shore. When the last man had stepped on board, at a given signal the boatmen jumped into the water and waded to the bank. They had contrived to secrete burning charcoal in the thatch of most of the boats; this soon blazed up, and as the flames rose and the dry wood crackled, the troops in ambush on the shore opened fire. Officers and men tried in vain to push off the boats; three only floated, and of these two drifted to the opposite side, where sepoys were waiting to murder the passengers. The third boat floated down the stream, and of the number on board four eventually escaped—Lieutenants Thomson and Delafosse, both of the 53rd Native Infantry, Private Murphy of the 84th Foot, and Gunner Sullivan, of the Bengal Artillery. The rest of the officers and men were killed or drowned, and the women and children who escaped were carried off as prisoners.]

[Footnote 3: The Nana never meant for any of the garrison to leave Cawnpore alive. On the night of June 26th, he coordinated with Tantia Topi to hide soldiers and guns at Sati-Choura Ghat, ready to fire on the Europeans he couldn’t defeat as soon as they embarked and lost the ability to protect themselves and their vulnerable companions. The river was low, and the boats were stuck because they had been intentionally pulled close to shore. When the last person boarded, at a set signal, the boatmen jumped into the water and waded to the bank. They had hidden burning charcoal in the thatch of most of the boats, which caught fire quickly. As the flames rose and the dry wood crackled, the troops hiding on the shore opened fire. Officers and men struggled unsuccessfully to push the boats off; only three floated, and two drifted to the opposite side where sepoys were waiting to kill the passengers. The third boat floated downstream, and of the people on board, four ultimately escaped—Lieutenants Thomson and Delafosse, both from the 53rd Native Infantry, Private Murphy from the 84th Foot, and Gunner Sullivan from the Bengal Artillery. The rest of the officers and men were killed or drowned, while the women and children who managed to survive were taken as prisoners.

[Footnote 4: Permanent occupiers of the land, either of the landlord class, as in Bengal, Oudh, and the North-West Provinces, or of the yeoman class, as in the Punjab.]

[Footnote 4: Permanent occupants of the land, whether from the landlord class, like in Bengal, Oudh, and the North-West Provinces, or from the farming class, like in the Punjab.

[Footnote 5: Afterwards General Lord Sandhurst, G.C.B., G.C.S.I.]

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Afterwards General Lord Sandhurst, G.C.B., G.C.S.I.

[Footnote 6: The Dilkusha house was built at the beginning of the century by a king of Oudh as a hunting-box and country residence, and close to it he cleared away the jungle and laid out a large park, which he stocked with herds of deer and other game.]

[Footnote 6: The Dilkusha house was built at the start of the century by a king of Oudh as a hunting lodge and countryside home. Nearby, he cleared the forest and created a large park, which he filled with herds of deer and other game.

[Footnote 7: The Martinière was built by Claude Martin, a French soldier of fortune, who came out to India, under Count de Lally, in the stirring days of 1757. In 1761 he was taken prisoner by the English at Pondicherry and sent to Bengal. After the conclusion of the war he enlisted in the English Army, and on attaining the rank of Captain he got permission to attach himself to the Court of the King of Oudh, where he soon obtained supreme influence, and became to all practical purposes Prime Minister. He remained an officer of the East India Company's Service, and at the time of his death held the rank of Major-General. He amassed a large fortune, and by his will founded colleges at Lucknow, Calcutta, and Lyons, the place of his birth. His directions that his house at the former place should never be sold, but should 'serve as a college for educating children and men in the English language and religion,' were carried out by the British Government, and Martin lies buried in its vault.]

[Footnote 7: The Martinière was built by Claude Martin, a French adventurer who arrived in India under Count de Lally during the exciting times of 1757. In 1761, he was captured by the English in Pondicherry and sent to Bengal. After the war ended, he joined the English Army, and upon reaching the rank of Captain, he got permission to join the Court of the King of Oudh, where he quickly gained significant influence and effectively became the Prime Minister. He served as an officer in the East India Company, and at the time of his death, he held the rank of Major-General. He built up a considerable fortune, and through his will, he established colleges in Lucknow, Calcutta, and Lyons, his birthplace. His instructions that his house in Lucknow should never be sold and should 'serve as a college for educating children and men in the English language and religion' were fulfilled by the British Government, and Martin is buried in its vault.



FOOTNOTES, CHAPTER XXIII

[Footnote 1: Besides the troops from Delhi, the force consisted of Peel's Naval Brigade, with eight heavy guns and howitzers; Middleton's Field Battery of Royal Artillery (the first that had ever served in India), and two companies of garrison Royal Artillery, under Travers and Longden, equipped with heavy guns and mortars; a company of Royal Engineers under Lieutenant Lennox, V.C.;* a few Bengal, and two newly-raised companies of Punjab Sappers; the 93rd Highlanders, Head-Quarters and wing of the 23rd Royal Welsh Fusiliers, and of the 53rd Foot; part of the 82nd Foot, and detachments of the 5th Fusiliers, 64th, 78th, 84th, and 90th Foot, and Madras Fusiliers, regiments which had gone into the Residency with Outram and Havelock. The Infantry was brigaded as follows:

[Footnote 1: In addition to the troops from Delhi, the force included Peel's Naval Brigade, which had eight heavy guns and howitzers; Middleton's Field Battery of Royal Artillery (the first to serve in India); and two companies of garrison Royal Artillery, led by Travers and Longden, equipped with heavy guns and mortars. There was also a company of Royal Engineers under Lieutenant Lennox, V.C.; a few Bengal troops; and two newly-formed companies of Punjab Sappers. The 93rd Highlanders, along with the headquarters and one wing of the 23rd Royal Welsh Fusiliers and the 53rd Foot, were part of the force, as well as portions of the 82nd Foot, and detachments from the 5th Fusiliers, 64th, 78th, 84th, and 90th Foot, as well as the Madras Fusiliers, which had entered the Residency with Outram and Havelock. The Infantry was organized into the following brigades:

Wing 53rd Foot
93rd Highlanders
Battalion of detachments
4th Punjab Infantry


Commanded by Brigadier the Hon.
Adrian Hope, 93rd Highlanders.
8th Foot
Battalion of detachments
2nd Punjab Infantry


Commanded by Brigadier Greathed,
8th Foot.
Wing 23rd Fusiliers
Two companies 82nd Foot
Commanded by Brigadier D.
Russell, 84th Foot.]

[*: Afterwards General Sir Wilbraham Lennox, V.C, K.C.B.]

[*: Afterwards General Sir Wilbraham Lennox, V.C, K.C.B.]

[Footnote 2: Sir Colin Campbell had served throughout the Punjab Campaign and on the Peshawar frontier.]

[Footnote 2: Sir Colin Campbell had served throughout the Punjab Campaign and on the Peshawar border.

[Footnote 3: Now the 14th (Sikhs) Bengal Infantry.]

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Now the 14th Sikh Bengal Infantry.

[Footnote 4: During one of Watson's many reconnaissances he received a cut on the face from a sabre. One of the 2nd Punjab Cavalrymen, seeing what had happened, rushed to Probyn, and said: 'Watson sahib has got a wound which is worth a lakh of rupees!']

[Footnote 4: During one of Watson's many reconnaissance missions, he got a cut on his face from a saber. One of the 2nd Punjab Cavalry soldiers, noticing what happened, hurried to Probyn and said, "Watson sahib has a wound that's worth a lakh of rupees!"

[Footnote 5: Built by a king of Oudh for the ladies of his harem. It takes its name from the gilt umbrella (Chatta) with which it is adorned. Now the Lucknow Club.]

[Footnote 5: Built by a king of Oudh for the women of his harem. It gets its name from the golden umbrella (Chatta) that decorates it. Now the Lucknow Club.

[Footnote 6: Now General Sir John Ewart, K.C.B.]

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Now General Sir John Ewart, KCB

[Footnote 7: It was a Native saddle, such as Irregular Cavalry used in those days, made of felt without a tree.]

[Footnote 7: It was a Native saddle, like the ones Irregular Cavalry used back then, made of felt and without a frame.

[Footnote 8: On one occasion, when I was telling this story to General Sir Samuel Browne, V.C., he said that something similar happened at the battle of Sadulapur on December 2, 1848. He (Browne) was Adjutant of his regiment (the 46th Native Infantry), which was drawn up in line, with a troop of Horse Artillery, commanded by Major Kinleside, on its right flank. Seeing that something unusual had occurred, Browne rode up to the troop, and found that one of the men had had his saddle carried away from under him by a small round shot. The man, who happened at the moment to be standing up in his stirrups, escaped with a bruise, as did the horse.]

[Footnote 8: On one occasion, when I was sharing this story with General Sir Samuel Browne, V.C., he mentioned that something similar occurred at the battle of Sadulapur on December 2, 1848. He (Browne) was the Adjutant of his regiment (the 46th Native Infantry), which was lined up alongside a troop of Horse Artillery, led by Major Kinleside, on its right flank. Noticing that something unusual had happened, Browne rode up to the troop and discovered that one of the soldiers had his saddle knocked away from under him by a small round shot. The soldier, who happened to be standing up in his stirrups at the time, escaped with just a bruise, as did the horse.

[Footnote 9: A kind of more or less responsible servant or messenger, so called from wearing a chuprass, or badge of office.]

[Footnote 9: A type of somewhat responsible servant or messenger, named for wearing a chuprass, or badge of office.]

[Footnote 10: It consisted of Blunt's troop of Horse Artillery, the wing of the 53rd Foot, and Gough's squadron of Hodson's Horse.]

[Footnote 10: It consisted of Blunt's troop of Horse Artillery, the wing of the 53rd Foot, and Gough's squadron of Hodson's Horse.

[Footnote 11: We had not, however, gone far, when a body of rebel Infantry, about 2,000 strong, managing to elude Greathed's brigade, crossed the canal, and, creeping quietly up, rushed the Martinière. Sir Colin had left Lieutenant Patrick Stewart, an unusually promising officer of the Bengal Engineers, on the top of the Martinière to keep Outram informed of our movements by means of the semaphore, and while Stewart was sending a message he and Watson (who was with him) observed the enemy close up to the building. They flew down the staircase, jumped on their horses, and, joining Watson's squadron and the two Madras Native Horse Artillery guns, rode to the city side of the Martinière to try and cut off the enemy, who, finding no one inside the building, and seeing their line of retreat threatened, made the best of their way back to the city. Several were killed by the Horse Artillery, which opened upon them with grape, and by Watson's sowars.]

[Footnote 11: We hadn’t gone very far when a group of about 2,000 rebel infantry managed to get past Greathed's brigade, crossed the canal, and quietly approached the Martinière. Sir Colin had left Lieutenant Patrick Stewart, a particularly promising officer of the Bengal Engineers, on top of the Martinière to keep Outram updated on our movements using the semaphore. While Stewart was sending a message, he and Watson (who was with him) noticed the enemy getting close to the building. They raced down the staircase, jumped on their horses, and joined Watson's squadron along with two Madras Native Horse Artillery guns to head to the city side of the Martinière to try to cut off the enemy. When the rebels discovered no one was inside the building and saw their escape route being threatened, they quickly retreated back to the city. Several of them were killed by the Horse Artillery, which fired on them with grapeshot, along with Watson's sowars.

[Footnote 12: This wall has long since been built up, and the whole place is so overgrown with jungle that it was with difficulty I could trace the actual site of the breach when I last visited Lucknow in 1893.]

[Footnote 12: This wall has been built up for a long time, and the entire area is so covered in jungle that it was hard for me to find the exact location of the breach when I visited Lucknow last in 1893.

[Footnote 13: Blunt's troop, when it left Umballa in May, 1857, consisted of 93 Europeans and 20 Native Gun Lascars. It suffered so severely at Delhi that only five guns could be manned when it marched from there in September, and after the fight at Agra its total loss amounted to 12 killed and 25 wounded. Four guns could then with difficulty be manned. When Blunt left the troop in January, 1858, to take command of Bourchier's Field Battery, 69 out of the 113 men with whom he had commenced the campaign had been killed or wounded! The troop would have been unserviceable, had men not volunteered for it from other corps, and drivers been posted to it from the Royal Artillery. At the commencement of the Mutiny Blunt was a subaltern, and in ten months he found himself a Lieutenant-Colonel and a C.B. Quick promotion and great rewards indeed, but nothing more than he richly deserved; for seldom, if ever, has a battery and its commander had a grander record to show.]

[Footnote 13: Blunt's troop, when it left Umballa in May 1857, had 93 Europeans and 20 Native Gun Lascars. It faced heavy losses at Delhi, leaving only five guns operable when it marched from there in September, and after the battle at Agra, it had lost a total of 12 killed and 25 wounded. At that point, they could barely man four guns. When Blunt left the troop in January 1858 to take command of Bourchier's Field Battery, 69 out of the 113 men he had started the campaign with had been killed or injured! The troop would have been non-operational if men hadn't volunteered from other corps and drivers hadn't been reassigned from the Royal Artillery. At the start of the Mutiny, Blunt was a junior officer, and in ten months, he rose to Lieutenant-Colonel and received a C.B. Rapid promotion and significant rewards, but nothing less than he truly earned; for rarely, if ever, has a battery and its commander had a more impressive record.

[Footnote 14: Captain Walton was the senior officer of the regiment present, and took a conspicuous part in leading it, but as in Sir Colin Campbell's opinion he was too junior to be in command, Lieutenant-Colonel Gordon was appointed as a temporary measure.]

[Footnote 14: Captain Walton was the highest-ranking officer in the regiment there and played a significant role in leading it, but since Sir Colin Campbell believed he was too inexperienced to be in command, Lieutenant-Colonel Gordon was assigned to the position on a temporary basis.

[Footnote 15: The word 'Dogra' was originally applied to the Rajput clans in the hills and sub-montane tracts to the north of the Ravi. In later years it included hill Rajputs south of the Ravi, and in military parlance all these Rajputs who enlisted in our ranks came to be called Dogras.]

[Footnote 15: The term 'Dogra' was initially used to refer to the Rajput clans in the hilly areas and foothills north of the Ravi River. Over time, it also came to include hill Rajputs south of the Ravi, and in military terms, all these Rajputs who joined our forces were referred to as Dogras.

[Footnote 16: In consequence of the behaviour of the 4th Punjab Infantry on this occasion, and in other engagements in which they served with the 93rd Highlanders, the officers and men of the latter corps took a great liking to the former regiment, and some years after the Mutiny two officers of the 93rd, who were candidates for the Staff Corps, specially applied to be posted to the 4th Punjab Infantry.]

[Footnote 17: Attached as Interpreter to the 93rd Highlanders.]

[Footnote 17: Attached as Interpreter to the 93rd Highlanders.]

[Footnote 18: It was here Captain Walton, of the 53rd, was severely wounded.]

[Footnote 18: It was here that Captain Walton, of the 53rd, was seriously injured.

[Footnote 19: Subadar Gokal Sing was mentioned by the Commander-in-Chief in despatches for his conduct on this occasion.]

[Footnote 19: Subadar Gokal Sing was recognized by the Commander-in-Chief in reports for his actions during this event.

[Footnote 20: For this act of heroism Mukarrab Khan was given the Order of Merit, the Indian equivalent to the Victoria Cross, but carrying with it an increase of pay. At the end of the campaign Mukarrab Khan left the service, but when his old Commanding officer, Colonel Wilde, went to the Umbeyla expedition in 1863, Mukarrab Khan turned up and insisted on serving with him as an orderly.]

[Footnote 20: For this act of bravery, Mukarrab Khan was awarded the Order of Merit, which is India's version of the Victoria Cross, along with a pay raise. After the campaign, Mukarrab Khan left the military, but when his former commanding officer, Colonel Wilde, participated in the Umbeyla expedition in 1863, Mukarrab Khan showed up and insisted on serving with him as a personal attendant.

[Footnote 21: One of the principal thoroughfares of Lucknow.]

[Footnote 21: One of the main streets in Lucknow.

[Footnote 22: Lieutenant Paul, the Commandant, was killed. Lieutenant Oldfield mortally, and Lieutenant McQueen severely, wounded. Lieutenant Willoughby, who brought the regiment out of action, was quite a lad, and was killed at Ruhiya the following April. Both he and McQueen were recommended for the V.C. for their gallantry on this occasion. After the fight was over, one of the Native officers, bemoaning the loss of the British officers, asked me who would be sent to replace them. He added: 'Sahib, ham log larai men bahut tez hain, magar jang ka bandobast nahin jante' ('Sir, we can fight well, but we do not understand military arrangements'). What the old soldier intended to convey to me was his sense of the inability of himself and his comrades to do without the leadership and general management of the British officers.

[Footnote 22: Lieutenant Paul, the Commandant, was killed. Lieutenant Oldfield was mortally wounded, and Lieutenant McQueen was severely injured. Lieutenant Willoughby, who got the regiment out of action, was just a young guy and was killed at Ruhiya the following April. Both he and McQueen were recommended for the V.C. for their bravery during this time. After the fight ended, one of the Native officers, mourning the loss of the British officers, asked me who would replace them. He added: 'Sahib, ham log larai men bahut tez hain, magar jang ka bandobast nahin jante' ('Sir, we can fight well, but we do not understand military arrangements'). What the old soldier meant to express was his realization of how much he and his comrades relied on the leadership and overall management of the British officers.



FOOTNOTES, CHAPTER XXIV

[Footnote 1: Shah Najaf is the tomb of Ghazi-ud-din Haidar, first King of Oudh, built by himself. It derives its name from Najaf, the hill on which is built the tomb of Ali, the son-in-law of Mahomed, and of which tomb this is said to be a copy.]

[Footnote 1: Shah Najaf is the tomb of Ghazi-ud-din Haidar, the first King of Oudh, constructed by him. It gets its name from Najaf, the hill where the tomb of Ali, the son-in-law of Muhammad, is located, and this tomb is said to be a replica of that.

[Footnote 2: The Kadam Rasul, or Prophet's footprint, a Mahomedan place of worship, which contained a stone bearing the impress of the foot of the Prophet, brought from Arabia by a pilgrim. During the Mutiny the holy stone was carried off.]

[Footnote 2: The Kadam Rasul, or the Prophet's footprint, is a Muslim place of worship that has a stone with the imprint of the Prophet's foot, brought from Arabia by a pilgrim. During the Mutiny, the sacred stone was taken away.

[Footnote 3: Lieutenant Salmon, R.N. (now Admiral Sir Nowell Salmon, K.C.B.), climbed up a tree overhanging this wall, in order to see what was going on behind it; he succeeded in obtaining useful information, but on being perceived, was fired at and badly wounded. He received the V.C.]

[Footnote 3: Lieutenant Salmon, R.N. (now Admiral Sir Nowell Salmon, K.C.B.), climbed up a tree that was hanging over this wall to see what was happening behind it; he managed to gather valuable information, but when someone spotted him, he was shot at and seriously injured. He was awarded the V.C.

[Footnote 4: Marked D on the map.]

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Marked D on the map.]

[Footnote 5: Now Major-General Keen, C.B. It was an extremely responsible charge for so young an officer with such a small party, as it was very isolated and exposed to attack.]

[Footnote 5: Now Major-General Keen, C.B. It was a highly responsible role for such a young officer with such a small team, as it was quite isolated and vulnerable to attack.

[Footnote 6: Now Field-Marshal Viscount Wolseley, K.P., Commander-in-Chief.]

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Now Field Marshal Viscount Wolseley, K.P., Commander-in-Chief.

[Footnote 7: Called the Pearl Palace from the fancied resemblance of one of its domes (since destroyed) to the curve of a pearl.]

[Footnote 7: Called the Pearl Palace because one of its domes (now destroyed) was thought to look like the shape of a pearl.

[Footnote 8: A slab let into the south-west corner of the wall marks the spot.]

[Footnote 8: A slab set into the southwest corner of the wall marks the spot.

[Footnote 9: Now General Sir William Olpherts, V.C., K.C.B.]

[Footnote 9: Now General Sir William Olpherts, V.C., K.C.B.



FOOTNOTES, CHAPTER XXV

[Footnote 1: Colonel Napier was Chief of the Staff to Sir James Outram.]

[Footnote 1: Colonel Napier was the Chief of Staff to Sir James Outram.

[Footnote 2: Now Lieutenant-General McLeod Innes, V.C.]

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Now Lieutenant-General McLeod Innes, V.C.

[Footnote 3: Calcutta Review, 1843. After commenting on the habitual carelessness of Government and its disregard of ordinary military precautions and preparations, Henry Lawrence had shown how possible it was that a hostile party might seize Delhi, and, if the outbreak were not speedily suppressed, what grave consequences might ensue. 'Let this happen,' he said, 'on June 2, and does any sane man doubt that twenty-four hours would swell the hundreds of rebels into thousands, and in a week every ploughshare in the Delhi States would be turned into a sword? And when a sufficient force had been mustered, which could not be effected within a month, should we not then have a more difficult game to play than Clive at Plassy or Wellington at Assaye? We should then be literally striking for our existence at the most inclement season of the year, with the prestige of our name tarnished.' Going on to suggest that Meerut, Umballa, and Agra might say that they had no troops to spare from their own necessities, or that they had no carriage, 'Should we not, then,' he wrote, 'have to strike anew for our Indian Empire?]

[Footnote 3: Calcutta Review, 1843. After discussing the government’s habitual carelessness and its neglect of basic military precautions and preparations, Henry Lawrence pointed out how likely it was that a hostile group could take Delhi, and if the uprising wasn’t quickly controlled, it could lead to severe consequences. "If this happens," he said, "on June 2, can any sane person doubt that in just twenty-four hours the hundreds of rebels would turn into thousands, and within a week, every plowshare in the Delhi States would become a sword? And when a sufficient force is finally gathered, which could take over a month, wouldn’t we face a situation tougher than Clive at Plassy or Wellington at Assaye? We would literally be fighting for our survival during the harshest time of the year, with our reputation damaged." He went on to suggest that Meerut, Umballa, and Agra might claim they couldn’t spare any troops due to their own needs, or that they lacked the means to transport them. "Should we not, then," he wrote, "have to fight again for our Indian Empire?"

[Footnote 4: Prestige, or, rather, good luck.]

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Prestige, or, more like luck.]

[Footnote 5: 'Life of Sir Henry Lawrence.']

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ 'The Life of Sir Henry Lawrence.'

[Footnote 6: In Sir Henry Lawrence's 'Life' two memoranda* appear, one by Lieutenant (now Lieutenant-General) McLeod Innes, Assistant Engineer at Lucknow in 1857, the other by Sir Henry Lawrence himself. They are worthy of perusal, and will give the reader some insight into Lawrence's character; they will also exemplify how necessary it is for anyone placed in a position of authority in India to study the peculiarities of the people and gain their confidence by kindness and sympathy, to which they readily respond, and, above all, to be firm and decided in his dealings with them. Firmness and decision are qualities which are appreciated more than all others by Natives; they expect them in their Rulers, and without them no European can have any power over them, or ever hope to gain their respect and esteem.

[Footnote 6: In Sir Henry Lawrence's 'Life,' there are two notes* worth reading: one from Lieutenant (now Lieutenant-General) McLeod Innes, who was an Assistant Engineer in Lucknow in 1857, and the other from Sir Henry Lawrence himself. These notes provide valuable insight into Lawrence's character and highlight how important it is for anyone in a position of authority in India to understand the unique traits of the local people and to earn their trust through kindness and empathy, which they respond to readily. Above all, it’s crucial to be firm and decisive in interactions with them. Natives value firmness and decisiveness more than any other traits in their leaders; they expect these qualities from their rulers, and without them, no European can exert any influence or hope to earn their respect and admiration.

*See __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__]



FOOTNOTES, CHAPTER XXVI

[Footnote 1: Our force consisted of the troops which Sir Colin had reviewed on the Alambagh plain on the 11th instant, with the exception of the 75th Foot, which was transferred to Outram's division. We had, however, in their place, the survivors of the 32nd Foot, and of the Native regiments who had behaved so loyally during the siege. These latter were formed into one battalion, called the Regiment of Lucknow—the present 16th Bengal Infantry. The 32nd Foot, which was not up to full strength (1,067) when the Mutiny broke out, had in 1857-58 no less than 610 men killed and wounded, exclusive of 169 who died from disease. We had also with us, and to them was given an honoured place, 'the remnant of the few faithful pensioners who had alone, of many thousands in Oudh, responded to the call of Sir Henry Lawrence to come in to aid the cause of those whose salt they had eaten.'—Lecture on the Relief of Lucknow, by Colonel H.W. Norman.]

[Footnote 1: Our force included the troops that Sir Colin had reviewed on the Alambagh plain on the 11th of this month, except for the 75th Foot, which was moved to Outram's division. In their place, we had the survivors from the 32nd Foot and the Native regiments who had remained loyal throughout the siege. The latter were organized into one battalion, known as the Regiment of Lucknow—the current 16th Bengal Infantry. The 32nd Foot, which was not at full strength (1,067) when the Mutiny started, suffered 610 casualties in 1857-58, not counting the 169 who died from illness. We also had with us the few faithful pensioners who, of many thousands in Oudh, answered Sir Henry Lawrence's call to support those whose salt they had eaten. —Lecture on the Relief of Lucknow, by Colonel H.W. Norman.



FOOTNOTES, CHAPTER XXVII

[Footnote 1: Greathed's brigade consisted of the 8th and 64th Foot and 2nd Punjab Infantry. Adrian Hope's brigade consisted of the 53rd Foot, 42nd and 93rd Highlanders, and 4th Punjab Infantry. Inglis's brigade consisted of the 23rd Fusiliers, 32nd and 82nd Foot. Walpole's brigade consisted of the 2nd and 3rd Battalions Rifle Brigade and a detachment of the 38th Foot.]

[Footnote 1: Greathed's brigade included the 8th and 64th Foot and the 2nd Punjab Infantry. Adrian Hope's brigade included the 53rd Foot, 42nd and 93rd Highlanders, and the 4th Punjab Infantry. Inglis's brigade included the 23rd Fusiliers, 32nd, and 82nd Foot. Walpole's brigade included the 2nd and 3rd Battalions Rifle Brigade and a detachment of the 38th Foot.]

[Footnote 2: The Artillery consisted of Peel's Naval Brigade, Blunt's, Bridge's and Remmington's troops of Horse Artillery, Bourchier's, Middleton's, and Smith's Field batteries, and Longden's Heavy battery.]

[Footnote 2: The Artillery included Peel's Naval Brigade, Blunt's, Bridge's, and Remmington's Horse Artillery units, Bourchier's, Middleton's, and Smith's Field batteries, and Longden's Heavy battery.

[Footnote 3: Mansfield was given the two Rifle Brigade battalions, the 93rd Highlanders, Longden's Heavy, and Middleton's Field battery.]

[Footnote 3: Mansfield was assigned the two Rifle Brigade battalions, the 93rd Highlanders, Longden's Heavy, and Middleton's Field battery.

[Footnote 4: Unjur Tiwari's career was a very remarkable one. A sepoy in the 1st Bengal Native Infantry, he was at Banda when the Mutiny broke out, and during the disturbances at that place he aided a European clerk and his wife to escape, and showed his disinterestedness by refusing to take a gold ring, the only reward they had to offer him. He then joined Havelock's force, and rendered excellent service as a spy; and although taken prisoner more than once, and on one occasion tortured, he never wavered in his loyalty to us. Accompanying Outram to Lucknow, he volunteered to carry a letter to Cawnpore, and after falling into the hands of the rebels, and being cruelly ill-treated by them, he effected his escape, and safely delivered Outram's message to Sir Colin Campbell. He then worked for me most faithfully, procuring information which I could always thoroughly rely upon; and I was much gratified when he was rewarded by a grant of Rs. 3,000, presented with a sword of honour, and invested with the Order of British India, with the title of Sirdar Bahadur. I was proportionately distressed some years later to find that, owing to misrepresentations of enemies when he was serving in the Oudh Military Police, Unjur Tiwari had been deprived of his rewards, and learning he was paralyzed and in want, I begged Lord Napier to interest himself in the matter, the result being that the brave old man was given a yearly pension of Rs. 1,200 for his life. He was alive when I left India, and although he resided some distance from the railway he always had himself carried to see me whenever I travelled in his direction.]

[Footnote 4: Unjur Tiwari had a truly remarkable career. As a sepoy in the 1st Bengal Native Infantry, he was in Banda when the Mutiny started. During the chaos there, he helped a European clerk and his wife escape, demonstrating his selflessness by refusing a gold ring, the only reward they could offer him. He then joined Havelock's forces and provided excellent service as a spy. Even though he was captured multiple times and tortured once, he never wavered in his loyalty to us. After accompanying Outram to Lucknow, he volunteered to deliver a letter to Cawnpore. Unfortunately, he fell into the hands of the rebels and faced brutal treatment, but he managed to escape and successfully delivered Outram's message to Sir Colin Campbell. He then worked diligently for me, gathering reliable information, and I was very pleased when he was rewarded with a grant of Rs. 3,000, a sword of honor, and the Order of British India, along with the title of Sirdar Bahadur. I was equally distressed some years later to discover that, due to false accusations from enemies while he was with the Oudh Military Police, Unjur Tiwari had lost his rewards. When I learned he was paralyzed and in need, I asked Lord Napier to take an interest in his situation, resulting in the brave old man receiving a yearly pension of Rs. 1,200 for life. He was still alive when I left India, and although he lived some distance from the railway, he always had himself transported to see me whenever I traveled in his direction.

[Footnote 5: The garrison left at Cawnpore consisted of:

The garrison left at Cawnpore included:

Four companies of the 64th Foot, and small
detachments of other regiments

450 men.
Sailors   47 men.
  ——–—
Total 497

With a hastily organized bullock battery of four field guns, manned partly by Europeans and partly by Sikhs.]

With a quickly put-together bullock battery of four field guns, staffed partly by Europeans and partly by Sikhs.

[Footnote 6: The force was composed of the 34th Foot, and portions of the 82nd and 88th Foot, and 2nd Battalion Rifle Brigade; with four 9-pounders, manned partly by Royal and Bengal gunners and partly by Sikhs; and four 6-pounders, manned by Madras Native gunners.]

[Footnote 6: The force consisted of the 34th Foot, along with sections of the 82nd and 88th Foot, and the 2nd Battalion Rifle Brigade; along with four 9-pounders, operated partly by Royal and Bengal gunners and partly by Sikhs; and four 6-pounders, operated by Madras Native gunners.



FOOTNOTES, CHAPTER XXVIII

[Footnote 1: The late General Sir William Payn, K.C.B.]

[Footnote 1: The late General Sir William Payn, K.C.B.

[Footnote 2: Tyrrell Ross was well known as a skilful surgeon, and much esteemed as a staunch friend. He had just returned from England, and had that very morning been placed in medical charge of the Cavalry Brigade. When the order to mount was given, Ross asked the General where he wished him to be, pointing out that he would not be of much use in the rear if there were a pursuit across country. Hope Grant replied: 'Quite so; I have heard that you are a good rider and can use your sword. Ride on my left, and help to look after my third squadron.' This Ross did as well as any Cavalry officer could have done.]

[Footnote 2: Tyrrell Ross was well-known as a skilled surgeon and highly regarded as a loyal friend. He had just returned from England and had been assigned to oversee the medical care of the Cavalry Brigade that very morning. When the order to mount was given, Ross asked the General where he wanted him, noting that he wouldn’t be much help in the rear if there was a pursuit across the country. Hope Grant replied, "Exactly; I’ve heard you’re a good rider and know how to handle a sword. Ride on my left and help take care of my third squadron." Ross did this as well as any Cavalry officer could have.

[Footnote 3: For these two acts I was awarded the Victoria Cross.]

[Footnote 3: Because of these two actions, I received the Victoria Cross.

[Footnote 4: Younghusband met with an extraordinary accident during the fight at Agra. While pursuing one of the Gwalior rebels, he fell with his horse into a disused well, fifty feet deep, and was followed by two of his men, also mounted. Ropes were brought, and the bodies were hauled up, when, to the astonishment of everyone, Younghusband was found to be alive, and, beyond being badly bruised, uninjured. He had fallen to the bottom in a sitting position, his back resting against the side of the well, and his legs stretched out in front of him, while his horse fell standing and across him. He was thus protected from the weight of the other two horses and their riders, who were all killed.

[Footnote 4: Younghusband experienced a shocking accident during the battle at Agra. While chasing one of the Gwalior rebels, he and his horse fell into an abandoned well that was fifty feet deep, and two of his men on horseback followed him in. Ropes were brought to rescue them, and when everyone was pulled up, they were astonished to find Younghusband alive and, aside from being badly bruised, unhurt. He had landed at the bottom in a sitting position, with his back against the side of the well and his legs stretched out in front of him, while his horse had fallen on top of him in a standing position. This shielded him from the weight of the other two horses and their riders, who all tragically perished.

[Footnote 5: Now Major-General H.L. Bruce, C.B.]

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Now Major-General H.L. Bruce, C.B.



FOOTNOTES, CHAPTER XXIX

[Footnote 1: The Infantry portion of the army was divided into three divisions, commanded respectively by Outram, Lugard, and Walpole. This was exclusive of Franks's column, which joined at Lucknow and made a fourth division. The Artillery was placed under Archdale Wilson, and the Engineers under Robert Napier. Sir Colin's selection of Commanders caused considerable heart-burnings, especially amongst the senior officers who had been sent out from England for the purpose of being employed in the field. But, as the Chief explained to the Duke of Cambridge, the selection had been made with the greatest care, it having been found that 'an officer unexperienced in war in India cannot act for himself ... it is quite impossible for him to be able to weigh the value of intelligence ... he cannot judge what are the resources of the country, and he is totally unable to make an estimate for himself of the resistance the enemy opposed to him is likely to offer.' Sir Colin wound up his letter as follows: 'I do not wish to undervalue the merits of General or other officers lately arrived from England, but merely to indicate to your Royal Highness the difficulties against which they have to contend. What is more, the state of things at present does not permit of trusting anything to chance, or allowing new-comers to learn, except under the command of others.'—Shadwell's 'Life of Lord Clyde.']

[Footnote 1: The infantry part of the army was split into three divisions, led by Outram, Lugard, and Walpole. This didn’t include Franks's column, which joined at Lucknow to form a fourth division. The artillery was under Archdale Wilson, while the engineers were led by Robert Napier. Sir Colin’s choice of commanders caused quite a bit of frustration, especially among the senior officers who had come from England with the intention of serving in the field. However, as the Chief explained to the Duke of Cambridge, the selection was made very carefully. It had become clear that 'an officer who is inexperienced in warfare in India cannot act independently... it's impossible for him to evaluate intelligence... he can't assess the resources of the country, and he is completely unable to gauge the resistance the enemy might put up against him.' Sir Colin concluded his letter with: 'I don’t want to downplay the abilities of the generals or other officers who have recently arrived from England, but I simply want to point out the challenges they face. Moreover, the current situation does not allow for taking risks or letting newcomers learn except under the guidance of others.'—Shadwell's 'Life of Lord Clyde.'

[Footnote 2: The late Captain Oliver Jones, who published his experiences under that title.]

[Footnote 2: The late Captain Oliver Jones, who shared his experiences under that title.

[Footnote 3: Literally 'blue cow,' one of the bovine antelopes.]

[Footnote 3: Literally 'blue cow,' one of the bovine antelopes.]

[Footnote 4: A few days afterwards, when we were some miles from the scene of our adventure, I was awakened one morning by the greyhound licking my face; she had cleverly found me out in the midst of a large crowded camp.]

[Footnote 4: A few days later, when we were a few miles away from where our adventure took place, I was awakened one morning by the greyhound licking my face; she had cleverly discovered me in the middle of a large crowded camp.

[Footnote 5: Peel had changed his 24-pounders for the more powerful 64-pounders belonging to H.M.S. Shannon.]

[Footnote 5: Peel had swapped his 24-pound cannons for the stronger 64-pounders from H.M.S. Shannon.

Naval Brigade      431
Artillery   1,745
Engineers      865
Cavalry   3,169
Infantry 12,498
Franks's Division   2,880
Nepalese Contingent   9,000
  ——––
  30,588    ]

[Footnote 7: Kaye, in his 'History of the Indian Mutiny,' gives the credit for originating this movement to the Commander-in-Chief himself; but the present Lord Napier of Magdala has letters in his possession which clearly prove that the idea was his father's, and there is a passage in General Porter's 'History of the Royal Engineers,' vol. ii., p. 476, written after he had read Napier's letters to Sir Colin Campbell, which leaves no room for doubt as to my version being the correct one.]

[Footnote 7: Kaye, in his 'History of the Indian Mutiny,' credits the Commander-in-Chief with starting this movement; however, the current Lord Napier of Magdala has letters proving that the idea actually came from his father. Additionally, there's a section in General Porter's 'History of the Royal Engineers,' vol. ii., p. 476, written after he reviewed Napier's letters to Sir Colin Campbell, which clearly supports my version as the accurate one.

[Footnote 8: Outram's division consisted of the 23rd Royal Welsh Fusiliers, 79th Highlanders, 2nd and 3rd battalions of the Rifle Brigade, 1st Bengal Fusiliers, 2nd Punjab Infantry, D'Aguilar's, Remmington's and Mackinnon's troops of Horse Artillery, Gibbon's and Middleton's Field Batteries, and some Heavy guns, 2nd Dragoon Guards, 9th Lancers, 2nd Punjab Cavalry, and Watson's and Sandford's squadrons of the 1st and 5th Punjab Cavalry.]

[Footnote 8: Outram's division included the 23rd Royal Welsh Fusiliers, 79th Highlanders, 2nd and 3rd battalions of the Rifle Brigade, 1st Bengal Fusiliers, 2nd Punjab Infantry, D'Aguilar's, Remmington's, and Mackinnon's troops of Horse Artillery, Gibbon's and Middleton's Field Batteries, along with some heavy guns, the 2nd Dragoon Guards, 9th Lancers, 2nd Punjab Cavalry, and Watson's and Sandford's squadrons of the 1st and 5th Punjab Cavalry.

[Footnote 9: The late Lieutenant-General Sir Lothian Nicholson, K.C.B.]

[Footnote 9: The late Lieutenant-General Sir Lothian Nicholson, K.C.B.

[Footnote 10: Now Colonel Thomas Butler, V.C.]

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Now Colonel Thomas Butler, V.C.

[Footnote 11: Now General the Right Hon. Sir Edward Lugard, G.C.B.]

[Footnote 11: Now General the Right Hon. Sir Edward Lugard, G.C.B.

[Footnote 12: It was current in camp, and the story has often been repeated, that Hodson was killed in the act of looting. This certainly was not the case. Hodson was sitting with Donald Stewart in the Head-Quarters camp, when the signal-gun announced that the attack on the Begum Kothi was about to take place. Hodson immediately mounted his horse, and rode off in the direction of the city. Stewart, who had been ordered by the Commander-in-Chief to accompany the troops, and send an early report to his Excellency of the result of the assault, had his horse ready, and followed Hodson so closely that he kept him in sight until within a short distance of the fighting, when Stewart stopped to speak to the officer in charge of Peel's guns, which had been covering the advance of the troops. This delayed Stewart for a few minutes only, and as he rode into the court-yard of the palace a Highland soldier handed him a pistol, saying, 'This is your pistol, sir; but I thought you were carried away mortally wounded a short time ago?' Stewart at once conjectured that the man had mistaken him for Hodson. In face they were not much alike, but both were tall, well made and fair, and Native soldiers had frequently saluted one for the other. It is clear from this account that Hodson could not have been looting, as he was wounded almost as soon as he reached the palace.]

[Footnote 12: It was a commonly told story in camp, and often repeated, that Hodson was killed while looting. This was definitely not true. Hodson was sitting with Donald Stewart in the headquarters camp when the signal gun went off, indicating that the attack on the Begum Kothi was about to start. Hodson quickly mounted his horse and rode toward the city. Stewart, who had been ordered by the Commander-in-Chief to accompany the troops and send an early report to his Excellency about the outcome of the assault, had his horse ready and followed Hodson closely enough to keep him in sight until they were near the fighting. Then Stewart stopped to talk to the officer in charge of Peel's guns, which had been supporting the troop's advance. This delayed Stewart for only a few minutes, and as he rode into the palace courtyard, a Highland soldier handed him a pistol, saying, 'This is your pistol, sir; but I thought you were severely wounded a short time ago?' Stewart immediately realized that the man had confused him with Hodson. Although they didn’t look much alike, both were tall, well-built, and fair, and native soldiers had often mistaken one for the other. This account clearly shows that Hodson couldn't have been looting, as he was wounded almost as soon as he arrived at the palace.

[Footnote 13: In the month of May, 1858, alone, not less than a thousand British soldiers died of sunstroke, fatigue and disease, and about a hundred were killed in action.]

[Footnote 13: In May 1858, alone, at least a thousand British soldiers died from sunstroke, exhaustion, and illness, and around a hundred were killed in combat.

[Footnote 14: Consisting of the 23rd Fusiliers, 79th Highlanders, and 1st Bengal Fusiliers.]

[Footnote 14: Made up of the 23rd Fusiliers, 79th Highlanders, and 1st Bengal Fusiliers.]

[Footnote 15: Captain Wale, a gallant officer who commanded a newly raised corps of Sikh Cavalry, lost his life on this occasion. He persuaded Campbell to let him follow up the enemy, and was shot dead in a charge. His men behaved extremely well, and one of them, by name Ganda Sing, saved the life of the late Sir Robert Sandeman, who was a subaltern in the regiment. The same man, two years later, saved the late Sir Charles Macgregor's life during the China war, and when I was Commander-in-Chief in India I had the pleasure of appointing him to be my Native Aide-de-Camp. Granda Sing, who has now the rank of Captain and the title of Sirdar Bahadur, retired last year with a handsome pension and a small grant of land.]

[Footnote 15: Captain Wale, a brave officer who led a newly formed Sikh Cavalry unit, lost his life during this event. He convinced Campbell to allow him to chase after the enemy and was killed in action during the charge. His men performed exceptionally well, and one of them, named Ganda Sing, saved the life of the late Sir Robert Sandeman, who was a junior officer in the regiment. Two years later, this same man saved the life of the late Sir Charles Macgregor during the China war, and when I was Commander-in-Chief in India, I had the pleasure of appointing him as my Native Aide-de-Camp. Ganda Sing, who has since been promoted to Captain and awarded the title of Sirdar Bahadur, retired last year with a generous pension and a small plot of land.

[Footnote 16: A Mahomedan Priest.]

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ A Muslim Priest.

[Footnote 17: Now General Cockburn Hood, C.B.]

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Currently General Cockburn Hood, C.B.

[Footnote 18: Now General Sir Samuel Browne, V.C., G.C.B. This popular and gallant officer, well known to every Native in Upper India as 'Sām Brūn Sahib,' and to the officers of the whole of Her Majesty's army as the inventor of the sword-belt universally adopted on service, distinguished himself greatly in the autumn of 1858. With 230 sabres of his own regiment and 350 Native Infantry, he attacked a party of rebels who had taken up a position at Nuria, a village at the edge of the Terai, about ten miles from Pilibhit. Browne managed to get to the rear of the enemy without being discovered; a hand-to-hand light then ensued, in which he got two severe wounds—one on the knee, from which he nearly bled to death, the other on the left shoulder, cutting right through the arm. The enemy were completely routed, and fled, leaving their four guns and 300 dead on the ground. Browne was deservedly rewarded with the V.C.]

[Footnote 18: Now General Sir Samuel Browne, V.C., G.C.B. This well-liked and brave officer, known to every local in Upper India as 'Sām Brūn Sahib,' and recognized by officers of Her Majesty's entire army as the creator of the sword-belt that's now standard issue, achieved remarkable feats in the fall of 1858. With 230 sabers from his own regiment and 350 Native Infantry, he attacked a group of rebels who had taken a position at Nuria, a village near the Terai, about ten miles from Pilibhit. Browne was able to sneak around to the back of the enemy without being noticed; a close combat then took place, resulting in him receiving two serious wounds—one on his knee, from which he almost bled to death, and another on his left shoulder that cut through his arm. The enemy was completely defeated and fled, leaving behind their four cannons and 300 dead. Browne was rightfully awarded the V.C.

[Footnote 19: The present 13th Bengal Lancers.]

The 13th Bengal Lancers.



FOOTNOTES, CHAPTER XXX

[Footnote 1: In this matter it seems to me that Lord Dalhousie's policy has been unfairly criticized. The doctrine of lapse was no new-fangled theory of the Governor-General, but had been recognized and acted upon for many years by the Native dynasties which preceded the East India Company. Under the Company's rule the Court of Directors had investigated the subject, and in a series of despatches from 1834 to 1846 had laid down that, in certain cases, the selection and adoption of an heir by a Native Ruler was an incontestable right, subject only to the formal sanction of the suzerain Power, while in other cases such a procedure was optional, and could only be permitted as a special favour. Lord Dalhousie concurred in the view that each case should be considered and decided on its merits. His words were: 'The Government is bound in duty, as well as in policy, to act on every such occasion with the purest integrity, and in the most scrupulous observance of good faith. Where even a shadow of doubt can be shown, the claim should at once be abandoned. But where the right to territory by lapse is clear, the Government is bound to take that which is justly and legally its due, and to extend to that territory the benefits of our sovereignty, present and prospective.']

[Footnote 1: In this situation, I believe Lord Dalhousie's policy has been unfairly criticized. The doctrine of lapse wasn't a new idea from the Governor-General; it had been recognized and implemented for many years by the Native dynasties that came before the East India Company. Under the Company's rule, the Court of Directors looked into the matter and, in a series of letters from 1834 to 1846, established that in certain cases, the choice and adoption of an heir by a Native Ruler was an undeniable right, only needing the formal approval of the suzerain Power. In other instances, this process was optional and could only be allowed as a special favor. Lord Dalhousie agreed that each case should be evaluated and decided on its own merits. He stated: "The Government is obligated by duty, as well as policy, to act on every such occasion with the utmost integrity and in the most careful adherence to good faith. If there's even a hint of doubt, the claim should be dropped immediately. However, when the right to territory by lapse is clear, the Government must take what is justly and legally owed and extend the advantages of our sovereignty over that territory, now and in the future."

[Footnote 2: In those days £120,000.]

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ In those days £120,000.

'Benares,             
'April 4, 1857.

Benares, April 4, 1857.

'MON CHER AZIMULA KHAN,

Dear Azimula Khan,

'Je suis parti de Cawnpore le premier du mois et suis arrivé ici ce matin, je partirai ce soir et serai à Chandernagore le 7 au matin, dans la journée je ferai une visite au Gouverneur et le lendemain irai à Calcutta, je verrai notre Consul General. Ecrivez-moi et adressez-moi vos lettres, No. 123, Dhurumtollah. Je voudrais que vous puissiez m'envoyer des fonds au moins 5 ou 600 Rs. sans retard, car je ne resterai à Calcutta que le temps nécessaire pour tout arranger et le bien arranger. Je suppose 48 heures à Calcutta et deux ou trois jours au plus à Chandernagore, ne perdez pas de temps mais répondez de suite. Pour toutes les principales choses les réponses seraient satisfaisantes, soyez-en assuré.

'I've left Cawnpore on the first of the month and arrived here this morning. I'll be leaving tonight and will be in Chandernagore on the morning of the 7th. During the day, I’ll pay a visit to the Governor, and the next day I’ll head to Calcutta to see our Consul General. Write to me and send your letters to No. 123, Dhurumtollah. I would like you to send me funds, at least 5 or 600 Rs., without delay, as I will only be in Calcutta long enough to get everything sorted out and sorted out well. I’m planning on spending 48 hours in Calcutta and a maximum of two or three days in Chandernagore, so don’t waste any time and respond right away. For all the main matters, the answers would be satisfactory, rest assured.'

'Faites en sorte de me répondre sans délai afin que je ne sois pas retenu à Calcutta.

'Make sure to reply to me without delay so that I’m not stuck in Calcutta.'

'Présentez mes compliments respectueux.

Please convey my respectful compliments.

'Rappelez-moi au souvenir de Baba Sahib, et croyez moi,

'Remind me of Baba Sahib, and believe me,

'Votre bien dévoué        
'A. LAFONT.

Your devoted servant
A. LAFONT.

'Mon adresse à Chandernagore, "Care of Mesdames Albert."

'My address in Chandernagore, "Care of Mesdames Albert."

'N.B.—Mais écrivez-moi à Calcutta, car je serai chaque jour là, en chemin de fer, je fais le trajet en 20 minutes. Si vous avez quelque chose de pressé à me communiquer vous le pouvez faire par télégraph en Anglais seulement.

'N.B.—But write to me at Calcutta, because I will be there every day, by train, it takes me 20 minutes. If you have something urgent to tell me, you can do it by telegram in English only.'

'A.L.'

'A.L.'

'Chandernagore,     'April 9, 1857.

Chandernagore, April 9, 1857.

'MON CHER AZIMULA KHAN,

'MY DEAR AZIMULA KHAN,

'J'ai tout arrangé, j'apporterai une lettre, et elle sera satisfaisante cette lettre me sera donnée le 14 et le 15 je partirai pour Cawnpore. Mes respects à son Altesse.

'I've got everything sorted out, I'll bring a letter, and it will be satisfactory. This letter will be given to me on the 14th and on the 15th I'll leave for Cawnpore. My respects to His Highness.'

'Votre tout dévoué    
'A. LAFONT.']

'Your devoted    
'A. LAFONT.']



[Footnote 4: Flogging was re-introduced in 1845.]

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Flogging was brought back in 1845.]

[Footnote 5: This does not include the bodies of armed and trained police, nor the lascars attached to the Artillery as fighting men. These amounted to many thousands.]

[Footnote 5: This does not include the armed and trained police forces, nor the lascars assigned to the Artillery as combatants. These groups totaled many thousands.

[Footnote 6: In a letter to Lord Canning, which Sir Henry Lawrence wrote on the 9th May, 1857, he gave an interesting account of a conversation he had had with a Brahmin Native officer of the Oudh Artillery, who was most persistent in his belief that the Government was determined to make the people of India Christians. He alluded especially to the new order about enlistment, our object being, he said, to make the sepoys go across the sea in order that they might be obliged to eat what we liked; and he argued that, as we had made our way through India, had won Bhartpur, Lahore, etc., by fraud, so it might be possible that we would mix bone-dust with grain sold to Hindus. Sir Henry Lawrence was quite unable to convince the Native officer; he would give us credit for nothing, and although he would not say that he himself did or did not believe, he kept repeating, 'I tell you Natives are all like sheep; the leading one tumbles, and down all the rest roll over him.']

[Footnote 6: In a letter to Lord Canning, written on May 9, 1857, Sir Henry Lawrence shared an intriguing account of a conversation he had with a Brahmin Native officer from the Oudh Artillery. This officer was adamant in his belief that the Government intended to convert the people of India to Christianity. He specifically mentioned the new enlistment order, arguing that our goal was to send the sepoys overseas so they would have to eat what we wanted them to. He claimed that just as we had advanced through India and conquered places like Bhartpur and Lahore through deceit, it was conceivable that we would mix bone dust with the grain sold to Hindus. Sir Henry Lawrence struggled to convince the Native officer otherwise; the officer credited us with nothing, and while he wouldn’t say whether he personally believed or didn’t believe, he kept insisting, 'I tell you Natives are all like sheep; if one falls, all the others tumble down after him.'

[Footnote 7: It is curious to note how nearly every military officer who held a command or high position on the staff in Bengal when the Mutiny broke out, disappeared from the scene within the first few weeks, and was never heard of officially again. Some were killed, some died of disease, but the great majority failed completely to fulfil the duties of the positions they held, and were consequently considered unfit for further employment. Two Generals of divisions were removed from their commands, seven Brigadiers were found wanting in the hour of need, and out of the seventy-three regiments of Regular Cavalry and Infantry which mutinied, only four Commanding officers were given other commands, younger officers being selected to raise and command the new regiments.]

[Footnote 7: It is interesting to observe how almost every military officer who held a command or a high position on the staff in Bengal when the Mutiny began disappeared from the scene within the first few weeks and was never officially heard from again. Some were killed, some died of illness, but the vast majority completely failed to meet the responsibilities of their positions and were thus considered unfit for further service. Two Generals of divisions were removed from their commands, seven Brigadiers were found lacking in the moment of crisis, and out of the seventy-three regiments of Regular Cavalry and Infantry that mutinied, only four Commanding Officers were assigned to new commands, with younger officers chosen to raise and lead the new regiments.



FOOTNOTES, CHAPTER XXXI

[Footnote 1: Few acts have been more keenly resented than the closing of the great Hurdwar Fair in the autumn of 1892, on account of a serious outbreak of cholera. It was looked upon by the Natives as a direct blow aimed at their religion, and as a distinct departure from the religious tolerance promised in Her Majesty's proclamation of 1858. The mysterious mud marks on mango-trees in Behar have been attributed by some to a self-interested motive on the part of certain priests to draw the attention of Hindus to the sanctity of some temple outside the limits of British jurisdiction, where the devotees would be at liberty to assemble in any numbers without being troubled by officious inspectors, and where they could remain as long as they pleased, irrespective of the victims daily claimed by cholera, that unfailing avenger of the neglect of sanitary laws in the east.]

[Footnote 1: Few actions have been more strongly opposed than the closure of the major Hurdwar Fair in the fall of 1892 due to a serious cholera outbreak. The locals saw it as a direct attack on their faith and a clear violation of the religious freedom promised in Her Majesty's proclamation of 1858. Some people have suggested that the strange mud marks on mango trees in Behar were created by certain priests for their own gain, aiming to draw attention to the sanctity of a temple beyond British control, where Hindus could gather freely without interference from overzealous inspectors and could stay as long as they wanted, despite the daily toll taken by cholera, that relentless enforcer of the disregard for sanitation laws in the east.

[Footnote 2: The proposal would seem to be quite a practical one, for I read in the Times of the 28th November, 1894, that the Government of New Zealand invited applications for Consols in connexion with the scheme for granting loans at a reasonable rate of interest to farmers on the security of their holdings.]

[Footnote 2: The proposal seems to be very practical, as I read in the Times on November 28, 1894, that the Government of New Zealand invited applications for Consols related to the plan for offering loans at a fair interest rate to farmers based on their holdings.

[Footnote 3: I allude to the Parsis, who came from Persia, and whose religion and customs are as distinct from those of the Natives of India as are our own.]

[Footnote 3: I refer to the Parsis, who came from Persia, and whose religion and customs are as different from those of the Native Indians as our own.



FOOTNOTES, CHAPTER XXXII

[Footnote 1: The depository for jewels and other valuables kept for presentation to Native Chiefs at durbars.]

[Footnote 1: The storage place for jewels and other valuables saved for presentation to Native Chiefs at durbars.]

[Footnote 2: The following details will give some idea of the magnitude of the arrangements required for the Viceroy's camp alone. Besides those above mentioned there were 500 camels, 500 bullocks and 100 bullock carts for transport of camp equipage, 40 sowari (riding) elephants, 527 coolies to carry the glass windows belonging to the larger tents, 100 bhisties, and 40 sweepers for watering and keeping the centre street clean. These were in addition to the private baggage animals, servants, and numberless riding and driving horses, for all of which space and shelter had to be provided.]

[Footnote 2: The following details will give some idea of the scale of the arrangements needed for the Viceroy's camp alone. In addition to what’s already mentioned, there were 500 camels, 500 oxen, and 100 ox carts for transporting camp supplies, 40 riding elephants, 527 laborers to carry the glass windows belonging to the larger tents, 100 water carriers, and 40 cleaners to keep the main street watered and tidy. This was on top of the private baggage animals, servants, and countless riding and driving horses, all of which needed space and shelter.

[Footnote 3: Servants of the Lord of the Country, or Governor-General.]

[Footnote 3: Servants of the Lord of the Country, or Governor-General.

[Footnote 4: A few drops of attar of roses are given to each person, and a small packet of pan, which is composed of slices of betel-nut smeared with lime and wrapped in a leaf of the betel-tree.]

[Footnote 4: A few drops of rose perfume are given to each person, along with a small packet of pan, made of slices of betel nut covered in lime and wrapped in a betel leaf.

[Footnote 5: The question of Native Rulers having the right to adopt heirs was first brought to Lord Canning's notice by the three Phulkian chiefs—Patiala, Jhind and Nabha—who jointly requested in 1858 that the right of adoption might be accorded to them as a reward for the services they had rendered during the Mutiny. The request was refused at the time on the ground that it had never been the custom of the country, though it had occasionally been done. Since then, however, Lord Canning had come to see that the uncertainty which prevailed as to the rights of succession was harassing to the owners of land, and undesirable in many ways, and he urged upon the Secretary of State that some distinct rule on the subject might with advantage be laid down. He wrote as follows: 'The crown of England stands forth the unquestioned Ruler and paramount Power in all India, and is now for the first time brought face to face with its feudatories. There is a reality in the suzerainty of the Sovereign of England which has never existed before, which is not only felt, but eagerly acknowledged by the Chiefs. A great convulsion has been followed by such a manifestation of our strength as India has never seen; and if this in its turn be followed by an act of general and substantial grace, over and above the special rewards which have already been given to those whose services deserve them, the measure will be seasonable and appreciated.' Lord Canning's proposals met with the cordial approval of Her Majesty's Government, and his announcement at Cawnpore rejoiced the hearts of the Chiefs, one of whom, the Maharaja of Rewa, was a leper and had no son. He said, on hearing the Viceroy's words, 'They dispel an evil wind which has long been blowing upon me.']

[Footnote 5: The question of whether Native Rulers could adopt heirs first came to Lord Canning's attention from the three Phulkian chiefs—Patiala, Jhind, and Nabha—in 1858. They collectively requested the right to adopt heirs as recognition for their services during the Mutiny. At that time, their request was declined because it was said to be against the country’s customs, even though there had been instances of it happening. However, Lord Canning later recognized that the uncertainty surrounding succession rights was troubling for landowners and undesirable in various ways. He urged the Secretary of State to establish a clear rule on the matter. He wrote: 'The crown of England stands as the unquestioned Ruler and paramount Power in all India, and is now for the first time confronted with its feudatories. There is a reality in the suzerainty of the Sovereign of England that has never existed before, which is not only felt but eagerly acknowledged by the Chiefs. A significant upheaval has resulted in a demonstration of our strength that India has never witnessed; and if this is followed by an act of general and substantial grace, in addition to the specific rewards already given to those whose services merit them, it will be timely and appreciated.' Lord Canning's proposals received enthusiastic support from Her Majesty's Government, and his announcement in Cawnpore brought joy to the Chiefs, one of whom, the Maharaja of Rewa, was a leper and had no son. He said, upon hearing the Viceroy's words, 'They dispel an evil wind that has long been blowing upon me.'

[Footnote 6: These Rajput Chiefs, however, accepted Lord Lytton's invitation to attend the Imperial Assemblage at Delhi on the 1st January, 1877, and having once given their allegiance to the 'Empress of India,' they have since been the most devotedly loyal of Her Majesty's feudatory Princes.]

[Footnote 6: These Rajput chiefs, however, accepted Lord Lytton's invitation to attend the Imperial Assemblage in Delhi on January 1, 1877, and once they pledged their loyalty to the 'Empress of India,' they have been the most devotedly loyal of Her Majesty's feudal princes.



FOOTNOTES, CHAPTER XXXIII



FOOTNOTES, CHAPTER XXXIV

[Footnote 1: Under the Regular system, which was modelled on the Royal Army organization, each regiment of Native Cavalry had 22, and each regiment of Native Infantry 25 British officers, who rose to the higher grades by seniority. From this establishment officers were taken, without being seconded, for the multifarious extra-regimental duties on which the Indian Army was, and is still, employed, viz., Staff, Civil, Political, Commissariat, Pay, Public Works, Stud, and Survey. With the Irregular system this was no longer possible, although the number of British officers with each corps was (after the Mutiny) increased from 3 to 9 with a Cavalry, and 3 to 8 with an Infantry regiment.]

[Footnote 1: Under the Regular system, based on the Royal Army structure, each Native Cavalry regiment had 22 British officers, and each Native Infantry regiment had 25, who advanced to higher ranks based on seniority. Officers were selected from this group without being seconded for various extra-regimental duties that the Indian Army was and still is involved in, including Staff, Civil, Political, Commissariat, Pay, Public Works, Stud, and Survey. However, with the Irregular system, this was no longer possible, even though the number of British officers assigned to each corps increased (after the Mutiny) from 3 to 9 in Cavalry, and from 3 to 8 in Infantry regiments.

[Footnote 2: Captain after twelve years,* Major after twenty years, and Lieutenant-Colonel after twenty-six years.]

[Footnote 2: Captain after twelve years,* Major after twenty years, and Lieutenant-Colonel after twenty-six years.]

[Note*: Since reduced to eleven years.]

[Note*: Since reduced to eleven years.]

[Footnote 3: The late Sir Bartle Frere, Bart, G.C.B., G.C.S.I.]

[Footnote 3: The late Sir Bartle Frere, Bart, G.C.B., G.C.S.I.

[Footnote 4: The fever-giving tract of country at the foot of the Himalayas.]

[Footnote 4: The swampy area at the base of the Himalayas.

[Footnote 5: Native string bed.]

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Native string bed.

[Footnote 6: 'Your force of Artillery will enable us to dispose of Delhi with certainty. I therefore beg that you will detach one European Infantry regiment and a small force of European Cavalry to the south of Delhi, without keeping them for operations there, so that Aligarh may be recovered and Cawnpore relieved immediately.']

[Footnote 6: 'Your artillery will help us take Delhi for sure. I kindly ask that you send one European infantry regiment and a small group of European cavalry to the south of Delhi, without keeping them for operations there, so we can recover Aligarh and relieve Cawnpore right away.'

[Footnote 7: After the capture of Kalpi in May, 1858, Sir Hugh Rose, worn out with fatigue and successive sunstrokes, was advised by his medical officer to return at once to Bombay; his leave had been granted, and his successor (Brigadier-General Napier) had been appointed, when intelligence reached him to the effect that the rebel army, under Tantia Topi and the Rani of Jhansi, had been joined by the whole of Sindhia's troops and were in possession of the fort of Gwalior with its well-supplied arsenal. Sir Hugh Rose at once cancelled his leave, pushed on to Gwalior, and by the 30th of June had re-captured all Sindhia's guns and placed him again in possession of his capital.]

[Footnote 7: After the capture of Kalpi in May 1858, Sir Hugh Rose, exhausted from fatigue and several sunstrokes, was advised by his medical officer to immediately return to Bombay. His leave had been approved, and his successor, Brigadier-General Napier, had been appointed when he received news that the rebel army, led by Tantia Topi and the Rani of Jhansi, had joined forces with all of Sindhia's troops and had taken control of the fort of Gwalior, along with its well-stocked arsenal. Sir Hugh Rose quickly canceled his leave, moved towards Gwalior, and by June 30 had recaptured all of Sindhia's guns and restored him to control of his capital.

[Footnote 8: The late General Sir Edmund Haythorne, K.C.B.]

[Footnote 8: The late General Sir Edmund Haythorne, K.C.B.



FOOTNOTES, CHAPTER XXXV

[Footnote 1: In 1825 a religious adventurer from Bareilly made his appearance on the Yusafzai frontier with about forty Hindustani followers, and gave out that he was a man of superior sanctity, and had a divine command to wage a war of extermination, with the aid of all true believers, against the infidel. After studying Arabic at Delhi, he proceeded to Mecca by way of Calcutta, and during this journey his doctrines had obtained so great an ascendency over the minds of the Mahomedans of Bengal that they have ever since supplied the colony which Syad Ahmed Shah founded in Yusafzai with money and recruits. The Syad was eventually slain fighting against the Sikhs, but his followers established themselves at Sitana, and in the neighbourhood of that place they continue to flourish, notwithstanding that we have destroyed their settlements more than once during the last forty years.]

[Footnote 1: In 1825, a religious adventurer from Bareilly arrived at the Yusafzai frontier with around forty followers from Hindustan. He claimed to be a highly sanctified man, sent by divine command to lead a mission of extermination, rallying all true believers against the infidels. After studying Arabic in Delhi, he traveled to Mecca via Calcutta, and during this journey, his teachings gained such influence over the Muslims of Bengal that they have since supported the colony founded by Syad Ahmed Shah in Yusafzai with both funding and recruits. The Syad was ultimately killed while fighting the Sikhs, but his followers settled in Sitana, and in that area, they continue to thrive, even though we have destroyed their settlements multiple times over the last forty years.

[Footnote 2: The Akhund of Swat was a man of seventy years of age at the time of the Umbeyla expedition; he had led a holy life, and had gained such an influence over the minds of Mahomedans in general, that they believed he was supplied by supernatural means with the necessaries of life, and that every morning, on rising from his prayers, a sum of money sufficient for the day's expenditure was found under his praying carpet.]

[Footnote 2: The Akhund of Swat was seventy years old during the Umbeyla expedition; he had lived a pious life and had such a strong influence over the Muslim community that they believed he received the essentials for living through supernatural means. They thought that every morning, after finishing his prayers, he found enough money for the day's expenses under his prayer rug.

[Footnote 3: The Peshawar column consisted of half of 19th Company Royal Artillery, No. 3 Punjab Light Field Battery, the Peshawar and Hazara Mountain Batteries, the 71st and 101st Foot, the Guides, one troop 11th Bengal Lancers, one company Bengal Sappers and Miners, 14th Sikhs, 20th Punjab Infantry, 32nd Pioneers, 1st, 3rd, 5th and 6th Punjab Infantry, and 4th and 5th Gurkhas. The Hazara column consisted of a wing of the 51st Foot, 300 Native Cavalry, a regiment of Native Infantry and eight guns, holding Darband, Torbela, and Topi on the Indus.]

[Footnote 3: The Peshawar column included half of the 19th Company Royal Artillery, No. 3 Punjab Light Field Battery, the Peshawar and Hazara Mountain Batteries, the 71st and 101st Foot, the Guides, one troop of the 11th Bengal Lancers, one company of Bengal Sappers and Miners, the 14th Sikhs, the 20th Punjab Infantry, the 32nd Pioneers, and the 1st, 3rd, 5th, and 6th Punjab Infantry, along with the 4th and 5th Gurkhas. The Hazara column was made up of a wing of the 51st Foot, 300 Native Cavalry, a regiment of Native Infantry, and eight guns, stationed at Darband, Torbela, and Topi on the Indus.

[Footnote 4: The highest point of a pass crossing a mountain range.]

[Footnote 4: The highest point of a pass over a mountain range.

[Footnote 5: Now General Sir Charles Brownlow, G.C.B.]

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Now General Sir Charles Brownlow, G.C.B.

[Footnote 6: The late Sir Henry Marion Durand, K.C.S.I., C.B., afterwards Lieutenant-Governor of the Punjab.]

[Footnote 6: The late Sir Henry Marion Durand, K.C.S.I., C.B., who later served as Lieutenant-Governor of the Punjab.

[Footnote 7: 7th Royal Fusiliers, 23rd Pioneers, and 24th Punjab Native Infantry.]

[Footnote 7: 7th Royal Fusiliers, 23rd Pioneers, and 24th Punjab Native Infantry.]

[Footnote 8: Reynell Taylor remained with the force as political officer.]

[Footnote 8: Reynell Taylor stayed with the team as the political officer.

[Footnote 9: General Sir John Adye, G.C.B.]

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Gen. Sir John Adye, G.C.B.

[Footnote 10: The expedition was an admirable school for training men in outpost duty. The Pathans and Gurkhas were quite at home at such work, and not only able to take care of themselves, but when stalked by the enemy were equal to a counter-stalk, often most successful. The enemy used to joke with Brownlow's and Keyes's men on these occasions, and say, 'We don't want you. Where are the lal pagriwalas? [as the 14th Sikhs were called from their lal pagris (red turbans)] or the goralog [the Europeans]? They are better shikar [sport]!' The tribesmen soon discovered that the Sikhs and Europeans, though full of fight, were very helpless on the hill-side, and could not keep their heads under cover.

[Footnote 10: The expedition was an excellent training ground for teaching men how to handle outpost duty. The Pathans and Gurkhas were completely comfortable with this kind of work, not only able to take care of themselves but also capable of counter-stalking the enemy when pursued, often with great success. The enemy would tease Brownlow's and Keyes's troops during these times, saying, 'We don’t need you. Where are the lal pagriwalas? [referring to the 14th Sikhs because of their lal pagris (red turbans)] or the goralog [the Europeans]? They’re better at shikar [sport]!' The tribesmen quickly realized that while the Sikhs and Europeans were eager to fight, they were quite vulnerable on the hillside and had difficulty staying hidden.

[Footnote 11: Colonel Reynell Taylor, whilst bearing like testimony to the good conduct of the Pathan soldiery, said the personal influence of officers will always be found to be the only stand-by for the Government interests when the religious cry is raised, and the fidelity of our troops is being tampered with. Pay, pensions, and orders of merit may, and would, be cast to the winds when the honour of the faith was in the scale; but to snap the associations of years, and to turn in his hour of need against the man whom he has proved to be just and worthy, whom he has noted in the hour of danger, and praised as a hero to his family, is just what a Pathan will not do—to his honour be it said. The fact was that the officers in camp had been so long and kindly associated with their soldiers that the latter were willing to set them before their great religious teacher, the Akhund of Swat ('Records of Expeditions against the North-West Frontier Tribes').]

[Footnote 11: Colonel Reynell Taylor, while also highlighting the good behavior of the Pathan soldiers, stated that the personal influence of officers will always be the primary support for government interests when religious issues arise and our troops' loyalty is questioned. Pay, pensions, and awards might be disregarded when the honor of their faith is at stake; however, a Pathan would never sever the bonds of years or turn against someone he knows to be just and honorable, someone he recognizes as a hero during tough times and speaks highly of to his family. This is something a Pathan will never do—let's give him that credit. The reality was that the officers in the camp had built such a long and positive relationship with their soldiers that the latter were willing to prioritize them over their revered religious leader, the Akhund of Swat ('Records of Expeditions against the North-West Frontier Tribes').

[Footnote 12: The late General Sir Charles Keyes, G.C.B.]

[Footnote 12: The late General Sir Charles Keyes, G.C.B.

[Footnote 13: The late Major-General T. E. Hughes, C.B., Royal Artillery.]

[Footnote 13: The late Major-General T. E. Hughes, C.B., Royal Artillery.

[Footnote 14: The late General Sir John Garvock, G.C.B.]

[Footnote 14: The late General Sir John Garvock, G.C.B.

[Footnote 15: Now Bishop of Auckland and Primate of New Zealand.]

[Footnote 15: Now Bishop of Auckland and Primate of New Zealand.

[Footnote 16: The late Brigadier-General Sir W. W. Turner, K.C.B.]

[Footnote 16: The late Brigadier-General Sir W. W. Turner, K.C.B.

[Footnote 17: General Sir T. L. Vaughan, K.C.B.]

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ General Sir T. L. Vaughan, K.C.B.

[Footnote 18: Stone breastworks.]

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Stone barricades.]



FOOTNOTES, CHAPTER XXXVI

[Footnote 1: The average strength of the regiments was as follows: 10th and 12th Bengal Cavalry, each 9 British officers, 13 Native officers, 450 non-commissioned officers and men, 3 Native doctors, 489 horses, 322 mules, 590 followers. 21st and 23rd Punjab Infantry, each 9 British officers, 16 Native officers, 736 non-commissioned officers and men, 3 Native doctors, 10 horses, 350 mules, 400 followers. I found that six ships were required for the conveyance of a Cavalry and four for that of an Infantry regiment; for the Mountain battery three ships were necessary, and for the coolie corps (1,550 strong) four; in all twenty-seven ships, besides nine tugs. In selecting ships, care was taken to secure those intended for Artillery or Cavalry as high 'tween-decks as possible; a sufficient number of these were procurable at Calcutta, either iron clippers from Liverpool or large North American built traders, with decks varying from 7 feet 6 inches to 8 feet 2 inches high. I gave the preference to wooden ships, as being cooler and more easily ventilated. The vessels taken up were each from 1,000 to 1,400 tons, averaging in length from 150 to 200 feet, with a beam varying from 30 to 35 feet, and usually they had a clear upper deck, where from forty to fifty animals were accommodated.]

[Footnote 1: The average strength of the regiments was as follows: 10th and 12th Bengal Cavalry, each with 9 British officers, 13 Native officers, 450 non-commissioned officers and soldiers, 3 Native doctors, 489 horses, 322 mules, and 590 supporters. 21st and 23rd Punjab Infantry, each with 9 British officers, 16 Native officers, 736 non-commissioned officers and soldiers, 3 Native doctors, 10 horses, 350 mules, and 400 supporters. I found that six ships were needed to transport a Cavalry regiment and four for an Infantry regiment; for the Mountain battery, three ships were required, and for the coolie corps (1,550 strong), four; in total, twenty-seven ships, plus nine tugs. When selecting ships, care was taken to choose those meant for Artillery or Cavalry with as high 'tween-decks as possible; a sufficient number of these were available in Calcutta, either iron clippers from Liverpool or large North American built traders, with decks ranging from 7 feet 6 inches to 8 feet 2 inches high. I preferred wooden ships, as they were cooler and easier to ventilate. The vessels procured ranged from 1,000 to 1,400 tons, averaging in length from 150 to 200 feet, with a beam of 30 to 35 feet, and they usually had a clear upper deck, where forty to fifty animals could be accommodated.

[Footnote 2: Now Major-General Sir Edwin Collen, K.C.I.E., Military Member of the Governor-General's Council.]

[Footnote 2: Now Major-General Sir Edwin Collen, K.C.I.E., Military Member of the Governor-General's Council.

[Footnote 3: Now General Sir Edward Lechmere Russell, K.C.S.I.]

[Footnote 3: Now General Sir Edward Lechmere Russell, K.C.S.I.



FOOTNOTES, CHAPTER XXXVII

[Footnote 1: The numbers actually despatched from India were 13,548, of whom 3,786 were Europeans. In addition, a company of Royal Engineers was sent from England.]

[Footnote 1: The total number sent from India was 13,548, including 3,786 Europeans. Additionally, a company of Royal Engineers was dispatched from England.

[Footnote 2: At first it was thought that 10,000 mules, with a coolie corps 3,000 strong, would suffice, but before the expedition was over, it was found necessary to purchase 18,000 mules, 1,500 ponies, 1,800 donkeys, 12,000 camels, and 8,400 bullocks.]

[Footnote 2: Initially it was believed that 10,000 mules, along with a crew of 3,000 workers, would be enough, but by the end of the expedition, it became necessary to acquire 18,000 mules, 1,500 ponies, 1,800 donkeys, 12,000 camels, and 8,400 oxen.

[Footnote 3: Fresh water was obtained by condensing the sea-water; there were few condensors, and no means of aerating the water.]

[Footnote 3: Fresh water was created by evaporating seawater; there were only a few condensers, and no way to oxygenate the water.

[Footnote 4: The late Admiral Sir George Tryon, K.C.B.]

[Footnote 4: The late Admiral Sir George Tryon, K.C.B.

[Footnote 5: Now Admiral Sir Leonid Heath, K.C.B.]

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Currently Admiral Sir Leonid Heath, K.C.B.

[Footnote 6: He is said to have killed in one month, or burnt alive, more than 3,000 people. He pillaged and burnt the churches at Gondur, and had many priests and young girls cast alive into the flames.]

[Footnote 6: He is reported to have killed or burned alive over 3,000 people in a single month. He looted and set fire to the churches in Gondur, and had many priests and young girls thrown alive into the flames.



FOOTNOTES, CHAPTER XXXVIII

[Footnote 1: I should have mentioned that Sir John Lawrence was not the only instance of a Bengal civilian rising to the position of Governor-General, as a predecessor of his, Sir John Shore, afterwards Lord Teignmouth, was appointed Governor-General in 1792, and held that office until 1798.]

[Footnote 1: I should have mentioned that Sir John Lawrence wasn't the only Bengal civilian to become Governor-General; his predecessor, Sir John Shore, who later became Lord Teignmouth, was appointed Governor-General in 1792 and held the position until 1798.

[Footnote 2: Dost Mahomed had several sons. Mahomed Akbar and Ghulam Haidar, the two heirs-designate in succession, died before their father. Sixteen other sons were alive in 1863, of whom the following were the eldest:

[Footnote 2: Dost Mahomed had multiple sons. Mahomed Akbar and Ghulam Haidar, the two designated heirs, passed away before their father. In 1863, there were sixteen other sons living, with the following being the oldest:

1. Mahomed Afzal Khan aged 52 years By a wife not of Royal blood.
2. Mahomed Azim Khan   " 45   "  "   "   "     "    "     "        "
3. Sher Ali Khan   " 40   " By a favourite Popalzai wife.
4. Mahomed Amir Khan   " 34   "  "   "       "           "         "
5. Mahomed Sharif Khan   " 30   "  "   "       "           "         "
6. Wali Mahomed Khan   " 33   " By a third wife.
7. Faiz Mahomed Khan   " 25   "  "   "   "      "

Afzal Khan had a son Abdur Rahman Khan, the present Amir of Afghanistan, and Sher Ali had five sons—Ali Khan, Yakub Khan, Ibrahim Khan, Ayub Khan, and Abdulla Jan.]

Afzal Khan had a son, Abdur Rahman Khan, who is the current Amir of Afghanistan, and Sher Ali had five sons—Ali Khan, Yakub Khan, Ibrahim Khan, Ayub Khan, and Abdulla Jan.

[Footnote 3: The headmen of villages in Afghanistan are styled maliks.]

[Footnote 3: The leaders of villages in Afghanistan are called maliks.

[Footnote 4: Azim Khan behaved well towards the Lumsden Mission, and it was reported that he encouraged his father, Dost Mahomed Khan, not to disturb the Peshawar frontier during the Mutiny.]

[Footnote 4: Azim Khan treated the Lumsden Mission well, and it was said that he urged his father, Dost Mahomed Khan, not to disrupt the Peshawar frontier during the Mutiny.

[Footnote 5: Dated 4th January, 1869.]

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Date January 4, 1869.

[Footnote 6: Besides the remainder of the aggregate sum of twelve lakhs, 6,500 more rifles were forwarded to the frontier for transmission to the Amir, and in addition four 18-pounder smooth-bore guns, two 8-inch howitzers, and a Mountain battery of six 3-pounders complete, with due proportion of ammunition and stores, together with draught bullocks and nine elephants.]

[Footnote 6: Additionally to the remaining total of twelve lakhs, 6,500 more rifles were sent to the border for delivery to the Amir, along with four 18-pounder smooth-bore guns, two 8-inch howitzers, and a mountain battery of six 3-pounders, fully equipped with the appropriate amount of ammunition and supplies, plus draft bullocks and nine elephants.



FOOTNOTES, CHAPTER XXXIX

[Footnote 1: The Cachar column consisted of half of the Peshawar Mountain battery, one company of Bengal Sappers and Miners, the 22nd Punjab Infantry, 42nd and 44th Assam Light Infantry. The Chittagong column consisted of the other half of the Mountain battery, the 27th Punjab Infantry, and the 2nd and 4th Gurkhas. Each regiment was 500 strong, and each column was accompanied by 100 armed police.]

[Footnote 1: The Cachar column was made up of half of the Peshawar Mountain battery, one company of Bengal Sappers and Miners, the 22nd Punjab Infantry, and the 42nd and 44th Assam Light Infantry. The Chittagong column had the other half of the Mountain battery, the 27th Punjab Infantry, and the 2nd and 4th Gurkhas. Each regiment had 500 soldiers, and each column was supported by 100 armed police.

[Footnote 2: Now Sir John Edgar, K.C.S.I.]

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Now Sir John Edgar, K.C.S.I.

[Footnote 3: Major Blackwood, who was killed at Maiwand, in command of E Battery, R.H.A.]

[Footnote 3: Major Blackwood, who was killed at Maiwand, in command of E Battery, R.H.A.

[Footnote 4: Latitude 23° 26' 32", longitude (approximately) 93° 25'; within a short distance of Fort White, lately built in the Chin Hills.]

[Footnote 4: Latitude 23° 26' 32", longitude (around) 93° 25'; not far from Fort White, which was recently constructed in the Chin Hills.



FOOTNOTES, CHAPTER XL

[Footnote 1: We lived in this house whenever we were in Simla, till we left it in 1892. It has since been bought by Government for the Commander-in-Chief's residence.]

[Footnote 1: We lived in this house whenever we were in Simla, until we left it in 1892. It has since been purchased by the government for the Commander-in-Chief's residence.

[Footnote 2: General Sir Frederick Goldsmid, K.C.M.G.]

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ General Sir Frederick Goldsmid, K.C.M.G.

[Footnote 3: Major-General Sir Frederick Pollock, K.C.S.I.]

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Major-General Sir Frederick Pollock, K.C.S.I.

[Footnote 4: Sir Donald Macnabb, K.C.S.I., then Commissioner of Peshawar.]

[Footnote 4: Sir Donald Macnabb, K.C.S.I., was the Commissioner of Peshawar at that time.



FOOTNOTES, CHAPTER XLI

[Footnote 1: Now General Lord Chelmsford, G.C.B.]

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Now General Lord Chelmsford, G.C.B.

[Footnote 2: 60th Rifles, 2nd Gurkhas, and 1st Punjab Infantry.]

[Footnote 2: 60th Rifles, 2nd Gurkhas, and 1st Punjab Infantry.]

[Footnote 3: Lumsden returned to Head-Quarters as Adjutant-General on Edwin Johnson being appointed a member of the Indian Council in London.]

[Footnote 3: Lumsden returned to Headquarters as Adjutant-General after Edwin Johnson was appointed to the Indian Council in London.



FOOTNOTES, CHAPTER XLII

[Footnote 1: The Amir's eldest son, who had rebelled on his younger brother, Abdulla Jan, being nominated heir to the throne.]

[Footnote 1: The Amir's oldest son, who had revolted against his younger brother, Abdulla Jan, was named the heir to the throne.

[Footnote 2: Before Lord Northbrook left India he sent Major Sandeman on a Mission to Khelat to re-open the Bolan Pass, and endeavour to settle the differences between the Khan and the Baluchistan tribes, and between the tribes themselves, who were all at loggerheads.]

[Footnote 2: Before Lord Northbrook left India, he sent Major Sandeman on a mission to Khelat to reopen the Bolan Pass and try to resolve the conflicts between the Khan and the Baluchistan tribes, as well as the disputes among the tribes themselves, who were all at odds.

[Footnote 3: Presents given by the British Government to the Mir of Wakhan in recognition of his hospitable reception of the members of the Forsyth Mission on their return from Yarkund.]

[Footnote 3: Gifts given by the British Government to the Mir of Wakhan in recognition of his warm welcome of the members of the Forsyth Mission on their return from Yarkund.

[Footnote 4: 'Besides the sixty-three Ruling Chiefs, there were nearly three hundred titular Chiefs and persons of distinction collected at the Imperial Assemblage, besides those included in the suites of Ruling Chiefs.—J. Talboys Wheeler, 'History of the Delhi Assemblage.']

[Footnote 4: 'Additionally to the sixty-three Ruling Chiefs, there were almost three hundred titular Chiefs and notable individuals gathered at the Imperial Assemblage, along with those in the entourages of the Ruling Chiefs.—J. Talboys Wheeler, 'History of the Delhi Assemblage.']

[Footnote 5: These gold medals were also presented to the Governors, Lieutenant-Governors, and other high officials, and to the members of the Imperial Assemblage Committee.]

[Footnote 5: These gold medals were also given to the Governors, Lieutenant-Governors, and other high officials, as well as to the members of the Imperial Assemblage Committee.

[Footnote 6: In endeavouring to describe this historical event, I have freely refreshed my memory from Talboys Wheeler's 'History of the Imperial Assemblage,' in which is given a detailed account of the proceedings.]

[Footnote 6: In trying to describe this historical event, I have easily recalled from Talboys Wheeler's 'History of the Imperial Assemblage,' which provides a detailed account of what happened.



FOOTNOTES, CHAPTER XLIII

[Footnote 1: It is instructive to note how remarkably similar were the circumstances which brought about the first and second Afghan wars, viz., the presence of Russian officers at Kabul.]

[Footnote 1: It's interesting to see how similar the situations were that led to the first and second Afghan wars, specifically, the presence of Russian officers in Kabul.



FOOTNOTES, CHAPTER XLIV

[Footnote 1: On the 13th June, the day on which the Berlin Congress held its first sitting, the news of the approach of General Stolietoff's Mission reached Kabul. The Russians hoped that the Mission might influence the decision of the Berlin Congress, and although its despatch was repudiated by the Imperial Government at St. Petersburg, it was subsequently ascertained on excellent authority that the project of sending a Mission to Kabul was discussed three times at the Council of Ministers, and, according to a statement in the Journal de St. Petersbourg, orders were sent in April, 1878, to General Kauffmann regarding its despatch. About the same time, the Russian Minister of War proposed that the Army of the Caucasus should be transferred bodily across the Caspian to Astrabad, whence the troops would march in two columns on Herat; while three columns, amounting in the aggregate to 14,000 men, were to move direct upon the Oxus from Turkestan. The main part of this scheme was never carried into effect, probably from its being found too great an undertaking at a time when Russia had scarcely obtained a footing beyond the Caspian, but the minor movement was partially carried out. The largest of the three columns, under Kauffmann's own command, moved from Tashkent, through Samarkand, to Jam, the most southern point of the Russian possessions at that time, and within ten marches of Kilif, the main ferry over the Oxus. There it remained for some weeks, when it returned to Tashkent, the Afghan expedition being abandoned in consequence of the Treaty of Berlin having been signed.

[Footnote 1: On June 13th, the day the Berlin Congress had its first meeting, news arrived in Kabul about the impending arrival of General Stolietoff's Mission. The Russians hoped that this Mission could sway the Berlin Congress's decision, and although the Imperial Government in St. Petersburg denied it, it was later confirmed from reliable sources that the idea of sending a mission to Kabul was discussed three times at the Council of Ministers. According to a report in the Journal de St. Petersbourg, orders were sent in April 1878 to General Kauffmann regarding its dispatch. Around the same time, the Russian Minister of War suggested moving the Army of the Caucasus across the Caspian Sea to Astrabad, from where the troops would march in two columns toward Herat; meanwhile, three columns totaling about 14,000 men were to advance directly on the Oxus from Turkestan. The main part of this plan was never fully executed, likely because it was deemed too ambitious at a time when Russia had just begun to establish its presence beyond the Caspian. However, the smaller operation was partially carried out. The largest of the three columns, under Kauffmann's command, moved from Tashkent through Samarkand to Jam, which was the southernmost point of Russian territory at that time and just ten marches from Kilif, the main ferry over the Oxus. It stayed there for a few weeks before returning to Tashkent, as the Afghan expedition was called off following the signing of the Treaty of Berlin.

'SIMLA,                             
'14th August, 1878.

'SIMLA,                             
'14th August, 1878.

'The authentic intelligence which I have lately received of the course of recent events at Kabul and in the countries bordering on Afghanistan has rendered it necessary that I should communicate fully and without reserve with your Highness upon matters of importance which concern the interests of India and of Afghanistan. For this reason, I have considered it expedient to depute a special and confidential British Envoy of high rank, who is known to your Highness—his Excellency General Sir Neville Bowles Chamberlain, Knight Grand Cross of the Most Honourable Order of the Bath, Knight Grand Commander of the Most Exalted Order of the Star of India, Commander-in-Chief of the Madras Army—to visit your Highness immediately at Kabul, in order that he may converse personally with your Highness regarding these urgent affairs. It appears certain that they can best be arranged for the welfare and tranquillity of both States, and for the preservation of friendship between the two Governments, by a full and frank statement of the present position. This letter is therefore sent in advance to your Highness by the hand of Nawab Gholam Hussein Khan, C.S.I., a faithful and honoured Sirdar of my Government, who will explain all necessary details as to the time and manner of the Envoy's visit. It is asked that your Highness may be pleased to issue commands to your Sirdars, and to all other authorities in Afghanistan, upon the route between Peshawar and Kabul, that they shall make, without any delay, whatever arrangements are necessary and proper for effectively securing to my Envoy, the representative of a friendly Power, due safe conduct and suitable accommodation according to his dignity, while passing with his retinue through the dominions of your Highness.

'The recent updates I’ve received about events in Kabul and the countries around Afghanistan require me to communicate openly with your Highness about important matters affecting both India and Afghanistan. Therefore, I’ve decided to send a special and confidential British Envoy of high rank, who is known to your Highness—His Excellency General Sir Neville Bowles Chamberlain, Knight Grand Cross of the Most Honourable Order of the Bath, Knight Grand Commander of the Most Exalted Order of the Star of India, and Commander-in-Chief of the Madras Army—to visit you right away in Kabul. He will discuss these urgent issues personally with you. It seems clear that these matters can be best resolved for the benefit and peace of both States, and for maintaining good relations between our two Governments, through a complete and honest explanation of the current situation. This letter is being sent ahead to your Highness via Nawab Gholam Hussein Khan, C.S.I., a loyal and respected Sirdar of my Government, who will provide all necessary details about the timing and manner of the Envoy's visit. I kindly request that your Highness instruct your Sirdars and all other officials in Afghanistan along the route between Peshawar and Kabul to quickly make the necessary arrangements to ensure that my Envoy, representing a friendly Power, receives safe passage and appropriate accommodation befitting his status while traveling through your territory.'

'I beg to express the high consideration I entertain for your Highness, and to subscribe myself.']

'I want to express my deep respect for Your Highness and sign off.'

[Footnote 3: The Mission was composed of General Sir Neville Chamberlain, G.C.B., G.C.S.I.; Major Cavagnari, C.S.I.; Surgeon-Major Bellew, C.S.I.; Major O. St. John, R.E.; Captain St. V. Hammick, 43rd Foot; Captain F. Onslow, Madras Cavalry; Lieutenant Neville Chamberlain, Central India Horse; Maharaj Pertap Sing of Jodhpur; and Sirdar Obed Ulla Khan, of Tonk. Lieutenant-Colonel F. Jenkins and Captain W. Battye were with the escort.]

[Footnote 3: The Mission included General Sir Neville Chamberlain, G.C.B., G.C.S.I.; Major Cavagnari, C.S.I.; Surgeon-Major Bellew, C.S.I.; Major O. St. John, R.E.; Captain St. V. Hammick, 43rd Foot; Captain F. Onslow, Madras Cavalry; Lieutenant Neville Chamberlain, Central India Horse; Maharaj Pertap Sing of Jodhpur; and Sirdar Obed Ulla Khan, of Tonk. Lieutenant-Colonel F. Jenkins and Captain W. Battye were with the escort.

'PESHAWAR,                             
'15th September, 1878.

PESHAWAR,
15th September, 1878.

(After compliments.) 'I write to inform you that, by command of His Excellency the Viceroy and Governor-General of India, a friendly Mission of British officers, with a suitable escort, is about to proceed to Kabul through the Khyber Pass, and intimation of the despatch of this Mission has been duly communicated to His Highness the Amir by the hand of the Nawab Ghulam Hussein Khan.

(After compliments.) 'I’m writing to let you know that, by order of His Excellency the Viceroy and Governor-General of India, a friendly mission of British officers, along with an appropriate escort, is set to head to Kabul through the Khyber Pass. This mission's dispatch has been officially communicated to His Highness the Amir by Nawab Ghulam Hussein Khan.

'I hear that an official from Kabul has recently visited you at Ali Masjid, and he has doubtless instructed you in accordance with His Highness the Amir's commands. As, however, information has now been received that you have summoned from Peshawar the Khyber headmen with whom we were making arrangements for the safe conduct of the British Mission through the Khyber Pass, I therefore write to inquire from you whether, in accordance with the instructions you have received, you are prepared to guarantee the safety of the British Mission to Daka or not; and I request that a clear reply to this inquiry may be speedily communicated by the hand of the bearer of this letter, as I cannot delay my departure from Peshawar. It is well known that the Khyber tribes are in receipt of allowances from the Kabul Government, and also, like other independent tribes on this frontier, have relations with the British Government. It may be well to let you know that when the present negotiations were opened with the Khyber tribes, it was solely with the object of arranging with them for the safe conduct of the British Mission through the Khyber Pass, in the same manner as was done in regard to the despatch of our Agent, the Nawab Ghulam Hussein Khan; and the tribes were given clearly to understand that these negotiations were in no way intended to prejudice their relations with His Highness the Amir, as it was well known that the object of the British Mission was altogether of a friendly character to His Highness the Amir and the people of Afghanistan.

'I hear that an official from Kabul recently visited you at Ali Masjid, and he surely instructed you according to His Highness the Amir's commands. However, I've received information that you have summoned the Khyber headmen from Peshawar, with whom we were arranging for the safe passage of the British Mission through the Khyber Pass. Therefore, I'm writing to ask whether, according to the instructions you’ve received, you are prepared to guarantee the safety of the British Mission to Daka or not; and I request that you send a clear response to this inquiry quickly with the bearer of this letter, as I cannot delay my departure from Peshawar. It is well known that the Khyber tribes receive allowances from the Kabul Government and, like other independent tribes on this frontier, have relations with the British Government. It might be good to inform you that when we started negotiations with the Khyber tribes, it was solely to arrange for the safe passage of the British Mission through the Khyber Pass, similar to what was done regarding our Agent, Nawab Ghulam Hussein Khan; and the tribes were made to understand that these negotiations were not meant to affect their relations with His Highness the Amir, as it was well known that the British Mission's objective was entirely friendly towards His Highness the Amir and the people of Afghanistan.'

'I trust that, in accordance with the instructions you have received from His Highness the Amir, your reply to this letter will be satisfactory, and that it will contain the required assurances that the Mission will be safely conducted to Daka. I shall expect to receive your reply to this letter not later than the 18th instant, so please understand that the matter is most urgent.

'I trust that, following the instructions you've received from His Highness the Amir, your response to this letter will be satisfactory and will include the necessary assurances that the Mission will be safely conducted to Daka. I expect to receive your reply by the 18th of this month, so please understand that this matter is very urgent.'

'But at the same time, it is my duty to inform you, in a frank and friendly manner, that if your answer is not what I trust it will be, or if you delay to send an early reply, I shall have no alternative but to make whatever arrangements may seem to me best for carrying out the instructions I have received from my own Government.']

'But at the same time, I need to let you know, in an honest and friendly way, that if your answer isn't what I hope it will be, or if you take too long to respond, I’ll have no choice but to make whatever plans seem best to me for following the instructions I’ve received from my government.'

[Footnote 5: In a letter to Lord Lytton reporting the rebuff the Mission had encountered, General Chamberlain wrote: 'No man was ever more anxious than I to preserve peace and secure friendly solution, and it was only when I plainly saw the Amir's fixed intention to drive us into a corner that I told you we must either sink into a position of merely obeying his behests on all points or stand on our rights and risk rupture. Nothing could have been more distinct, nothing more humiliating to the dignity of the British Crown and nation; and I believe that but for the decision and tact of Cavagnari at one period of the interview, the lives of the British officers and the Native following were in considerable danger.']

[Footnote 5: In a letter to Lord Lytton about the setbacks the Mission faced, General Chamberlain wrote: 'No one was more eager than I to maintain peace and find a friendly resolution, but it was only when I clearly saw the Amir's determination to corner us that I told you we had to either accept his demands completely or stand up for our rights and risk a break. Nothing could have been clearer, nothing more degrading to the dignity of the British Crown and nation; and I believe that if it weren't for Cavagnari's decision and tact at one point during the meeting, the lives of the British officers and the local followers were in serious danger.'

[Footnote 6: The approximate strength of the three columns was as follows:

[Footnote 6: The estimated strength of the three columns was as follows:

    Officers.   Men. Guns.
I. The Kandahar Field Force  265 12,599   78
II. The Kuram Field Force  116   6,549   18
III. The Peshawar Valley Field Force  325 15,854   48
    ——– ——–– ——
     706 35,002  144     ]

'KABUL,                             
'6th October, 1878.

'Kabul,
6th October 1878.

(After compliments.) 'Your Excellency's despatch regarding the sending of a friendly Mission has been received through Nawab Gholam Hussein Khan; I understand its purport, but the Nawab had not yet an audience, nor had your Excellency's letters been seen by me when a communication was received to the address of my servant, Mirza Habibulla Khan, from the Commissioner of Peshawar, and was read. I am astonished and dismayed by this letter, written threateningly to a well-intentioned friend, replete with contentions, and yet nominally regarding a friendly Mission. Coming thus by force, what result, or profit, or fruit, could come of it? Following this, three other letters from above-mentioned source, in the very same strain, addressed to my officials, have been perused by me. Thus, during a period of a few days several letters from that quarter have all been before me, and none of them have been free from harsh expressions and hard words, repugnant to courtesy and politeness, and in tone contrary to the ways of friendship and intercourse. Looking to the fact that I am at this time assaulted by affliction and grief at the hand of fate, and that great trouble has possessed my soul, in the officials of the British Government patience and silence would have been specially becoming. Let your Excellency take into consideration this harsh and breathless haste with which the desired object and place of conference have been seized upon, and how the officials of the Government have been led into discussion and subjection to reproach. There is some difference between this and the pure road of friendship and goodwill. In alluding to those writings of the officials of the opposite Government which have emanated from them, and are at this time in the possession of my own officials, the latter have in no respect desired to show enmity or opposition towards the British Government, nor, indeed, do they with any other Power desire enmity or strife; but when any other Power, without cause or reason, shows animosity towards this Government, the matter is left in the hands of God, and to His will. The esteemed Nawab Gholam Hussein Khan, the bearer of this despatch, has, in accordance with written instructions received from the British Government, asked for permission to retire, and it has been granted.']

(After compliments.) 'I have received Your Excellency's message about sending a friendly mission through Nawab Gholam Hussein Khan; I understand its meaning, but the Nawab hadn't had an audience yet, nor had I seen Your Excellency's letters when a communication addressed to my servant, Mirza Habibulla Khan, came in from the Commissioner of Peshawar and was read. I am shocked and upset by this letter, which threatens a well-meaning friend, filled with arguments, yet seemingly regarding a friendly mission. Coming this way, what outcome or benefit could result from it? Following this, I have also read three other letters from the same source, addressed to my officials, in the same tone. Over just a few days, several letters from that direction have come to my attention, none of which were free from harsh words and rudeness, completely against courtesy and politeness, and in a tone contrary to friendship and communication. Considering that I am currently dealing with grief and hardship, it would have been especially appropriate for the British Government officials to show patience and silence. Your Excellency should take into account the harsh and hurried way in which the desired objective and venue for discussion have been claimed, leading the Government officials into discussions and blame. There is a distinction between this approach and the genuine path of friendship and goodwill. In referring to the writings from the other Government officials in possession of my own officials, they have in no way expressed enmity or opposition toward the British Government, nor do they seek conflict with any other power; however, when another power, without cause, shows hostility toward this Government, we leave it to God’s will. The respected Nawab Gholam Hussein Khan, who is carrying this message, has asked for permission to leave in accordance with written instructions received from the British Government, and this has been granted.'

[Footnote 8: 25th October.]

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ October 25th.



FOOTNOTES, CHAPTER XLV



FOOTNOTES, CHAPTER XLVI

[Footnote 1: The details of the column are given in the Appendix*.

[Footnote 1: The specifics of the column are included in the Appendix *.

*See __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__*

[Footnote 2: On the 30th November a subordinate officer of the Kabul Government reached Sir Samuel Browne's camp at Daka, and delivered the following letter from the Amir to the address of the Viceroy:

[Footnote 2: On November 30th, a lower-ranking officer from the Kabul Government arrived at Sir Samuel Browne's camp in Daka and handed over the following letter from the Amir to the Viceroy:

'FROM HIS HIGHNESS THE AMIR OF KABUL TO THE VICEROY OF INDIA.

'FROM HIS HIGHNESS THE AMIR OF KABUL TO THE VICEROY OF INDIA.'

'KABUL, 19th November, 1878.

Kabul, November 19, 1878.

'Be it known to your Excellency that I have received, and read from beginning to end, the friendly letter which your Excellency has sent, in reply to the letter I despatched by Nawab Ghulam Hussein Khan. With regard to the expressions used by your Excellency in the beginning of your letter, referring to the friendly character of the Mission and the goodwill of the British Government, I leave it to your Excellency, whose wisdom and justice are universally admitted, to decide whether any reliance can be placed upon goodwill, if it be evidenced by words only. But if, on the other hand, goodwill really consists of deeds and actions, then it has not been manifested by the various wishes that have been expressed, and the proposals that have been made by British officials during the last few years to officials of this God-granted Government—proposals which, from their nature, it was impossible for them to comply with.

'Please be informed, Your Excellency, that I have received and read your friendly letter, which you sent in response to the one I sent through Nawab Ghulam Hussein Khan. Regarding the remarks your Excellency made at the beginning of your letter about the friendly nature of the Mission and the goodwill of the British Government, I leave it to your Excellency, whose wisdom and fairness are widely recognized, to determine whether any trust can be placed in goodwill if it's only shown through words. However, if goodwill truly means actions and deeds, then it hasn't been demonstrated by the various wishes expressed and the proposals made by British officials over the past few years to officials of this God-granted Government—proposals that, by their nature, were impossible to fulfill.'

'One of these proposals referred to my dutiful son, the ill-starred wretch, Mahomed Yakub Khan, and was contained in a letter addressed by the officials of the British Government to the British Agent then residing in Kabul. It was written in that letter that, "if the said Yakub Khan be released and set at liberty, our friendship with the Afghan Government will be firmly cemented, but that otherwise it will not."

'One of these proposals concerned my dutiful son, the unfortunate wretch, Mahomed Yakub Khan, and was included in a letter sent by the officials of the British Government to the British Agent living in Kabul at the time. The letter stated that, "if Yakub Khan is released and set free, our friendship with the Afghan Government will be firmly established, otherwise it will not."'

'There are several other grounds of complaint of similar nature, which contain no evidence of goodwill, but which, on the contrary, were effective in increasing the aversion and apprehension already entertained by the subjects of this God-granted Government.

'There are several other complaints of a similar nature that show no signs of goodwill, but instead only intensified the dislike and fear already felt by the people under this divinely granted Government.'

'With regard to my refusal to receive the British Mission, your Excellency has stated that it would appear from my conduct that I was actuated by feelings of direct hostility towards the British Government.

'Regarding my refusal to meet with the British Mission, your Excellency has indicated that my actions suggest I am motivated by direct hostility towards the British Government.'

'I assure your Excellency that, on the contrary, the officials of this God-granted Government, in repulsing the Mission, were not influenced by any hostile or inimical feelings towards the British Government, nor did they intend that any insult or affront should be offered. But they were afraid that the independence of this Government might be affected by the arrival of the Mission, and that the friendship which has now existed between the two Governments for several years might be annihilated.

'I assure your Excellency that, on the contrary, the officials of this God-given Government, in turning down the Mission, were not driven by any hostile or unfriendly feelings towards the British Government, nor did they intend for any insult or offense to be given. However, they were concerned that the arrival of the Mission could threaten the independence of this Government and that the friendship that has existed between the two Governments for several years might be destroyed.'

'A paragraph in your Excellency's letter corroborates the statement which they have made to this Government. The feelings of apprehension which were aroused in the minds of the people of Afghanistan by the mere announcement of the intention of the British Government to send a Mission to Kabul, before the Mission itself had actually started or arrived at Peshawar, have subsequently been fully justified by the statement in your Excellency's letter, that I should be held responsible for any injury that might befall the tribes who acted as guides to the Mission, and that I should be called upon to pay compensation to them for any loss they might have suffered; and that if, at any time, these tribes should meet with ill-treatment at my hands, the British Government would at once take steps to protect them.

A paragraph in your Excellency's letter supports what they have told this Government. The concerns that arose in the minds of the Afghan people just from the announcement of the British Government's intention to send a Mission to Kabul—even before the Mission had actually started or arrived in Peshawar—have now been fully confirmed by your Excellency's statement. It indicates that I would be held responsible for any harm that might happen to the tribes who served as guides for the Mission, and that I would have to compensate them for any losses they might incur. Additionally, if these tribes were ever mistreated by me, the British Government would take immediate action to protect them.

'Had these apprehensions proved groundless, and had the object of the Mission been really friendly, and no force or threats of violence used, the Mission would, as a matter of course, have been allowed a free passage, as such Missions are customary and of frequent occurrence between allied States. I am now sincerely stating my own feelings when I say that this Government has maintained, and always will maintain, the former friendship which existed between the two Governments, and cherishes no feelings of hostility and opposition towards the British Government.

'Had these concerns turned out to be unfounded, and had the Mission's purpose truly been friendly, without any force or threats involved, the Mission would naturally have been granted safe passage, as such Missions are normal and often occur between allied countries. I genuinely express my feelings when I say that this Government has upheld, and will always uphold, the previous friendship between the two Governments, and holds no animosity or opposition towards the British Government.'

'It is also incumbent upon the officials of the British Government that, out of respect and consideration for the greatness and eminence of their own Government, they should not consent to inflict any injury upon their well-disposed neighbours, and to impose the burden of grievous troubles upon the shoulders of their sincere friends. But, on the contrary, they should exert themselves to maintain the friendly feelings which have hitherto existed towards this God-granted Government, in order that the relations between the two Governments may remain on the same footing as before; and if, in accordance with the custom of allied States, the British Government should desire to send a purely friendly and temporary Mission to this country, with a small escort, not exceeding twenty or thirty men, similar to that which attended the Russian Mission, this servant of God will not oppose its progress.'

'It is also the responsibility of the British Government officials that, out of respect for the greatness and distinction of their own Government, they should not agree to harm their friendly neighbors or burden their sincere friends with serious troubles. Instead, they should work to maintain the friendly feelings that have previously existed towards this God-given Government, so that the relations between the two Governments can remain as they have been. If, following the practices of allied nations, the British Government wishes to send a purely friendly and temporary mission to this country, with a small escort of no more than twenty or thirty men, like the one that accompanied the Russian Mission, this servant of God will not oppose its arrival.'

It was ascertained that this messenger had come to Basawal on the 22nd November, when, hearing of the capture of Ali Masjid by British troops, he immediately returned to Kabul. The Amir's letter, though dated the 19th November, was believed to have been re-written at Kabul after the news of the fall of Ali Masjid. The text of this letter was telegraphed to the Secretary of State on the 7th December; in reply Lord Cranbrook pointed out that the letter evaded all the requirements specified in the Viceroy's ultimatum, and could not have been accepted even if it had reached him before the 20th November.]

It was confirmed that this messenger arrived in Basawal on November 22nd and, upon hearing about the British troops capturing Ali Masjid, he returned immediately to Kabul. The Amir's letter, although dated November 19th, was thought to have been rewritten in Kabul after the news of Ali Masjid's fall. The contents of this letter were sent via telegram to the Secretary of State on December 7th; in response, Lord Cranbrook noted that the letter failed to meet all the conditions outlined in the Viceroy's ultimatum and could not have been accepted even if it had arrived before November 20th.

[Footnote 3: Now General J. Gordon, C.B., Assistant Military Secretary, Horse Guards.]

[Footnote 3: Now General J. Gordon, C.B., Assistant Military Secretary, Horse Guards.

[Footnote 4: The Native officer was Subadar-Major Aziz Khan, a fine old soldier who had seen hard work with his regiment during the Mutiny, and in many a frontier expedition. He twice obtained the Order of Merit for bravery in the field, and for his marked gallantry on one occasion he had received a sword of honour and a khilat (a dress of honour or other present bestowed as a mark of distinction). Aziz Khan was shot through the knee, and after a few days the wound became so bad the Doctors told him that, unless he submitted to amputation, or consented to take some stimulants in the shape of wine, he would die of mortification. Aziz Khan, who was a strict and orthodox Mahomedan, replied that, as both remedies were contrary to the precepts of the religion by which he had guided his life, he would accept death rather than disobey them. He died accordingly.]

[Footnote 4: The Native officer was Subadar-Major Aziz Khan, a distinguished old soldier who had experienced challenging times with his regiment during the Mutiny and many frontier missions. He earned the Order of Merit for bravery in the field twice, and for his exceptional gallantry on one occasion, he received a sword of honor and a khilat (a special outfit or other gift given as a mark of distinction). Aziz Khan was shot in the knee, and after a few days, the wound got so bad that the doctors told him that unless he agreed to amputation or allowed himself to take some stimulants like wine, he would die from infection. Aziz Khan, who was a devout and traditional Muslim, responded that since both treatments went against the principles of his faith, he would choose death over disobedience. He passed away accordingly.

[Footnote 5: Now General Sir Æneas Perkins, K.C.B.]

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Now General Sir Aeneas Perkins, K.C.B.

[Footnote 6: The strength of this battalion had now dwindled down to 348 men.]

[Footnote 6: The strength of this battalion had now decreased to 348 men.

[Footnote 7: Now Major-General Channer, V.C., C.B.]

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Now Major General Channer, V.C., C.B.

[Footnote 8: I had six orderlies attached to me—two Sikhs, two Gurkhas, and two Pathans. The Sikhs and Gurkhas never left me for a day during the two years I was in Afghanistan. The Pathans behaved equally well, but they fell sick, and had to be changed more than once. Whenever I emerged from my tent, two or more of the orderlies appeared and kept close by me. They had always good information as to what was going on, and I could generally tell whether there was likely to be trouble or not by the number in attendance; they put themselves on duty, and decided how many were required. One of the Gurkhas is since dead, but the other and the two Sikhs served with me afterwards in Burma, and all three now hold the high position of Subadar in their respective regiments.]

[Footnote 8: I had six aides working with me—two Sikhs, two Gurkhas, and two Pathans. The Sikhs and Gurkhas never left my side for a day during the two years I was in Afghanistan. The Pathans were just as reliable, but they got sick and had to be replaced more than once. Whenever I stepped out of my tent, two or more of my aides would show up and stay close. They always had up-to-date info on what was happening, and I could usually gauge if there was going to be trouble based on how many were with me; they took it upon themselves to decide how many I needed. One of the Gurkhas has since passed away, but the other Gurkha and the two Sikhs continued serving with me later in Burma, and all three now hold the rank of Subadar in their respective regiments.

[Footnote 9: Now Major-General Sir Arthur Palmer, K.C.B.]

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Now Major-General Sir Arthur Palmer, K.C.B.



FOOTNOTES, CHAPTER XLVII

'FROM THE VICEROY, LAHORE, TO GENERAL ROBERTS.

'FROM THE VICEROY, LAHORE, TO GENERAL ROBERTS.'

'6th December, 1878.   

'December 6, 1878.'

'I have much pleasure in communicating to you and the force under your command the following telegram just received from Her Majesty, and desire at the same time to add my warm congratulations on the success achieved. Message begins: "I have received the news of the decisive victory of General Roberts, and the splendid behaviour of my brave soldiers, with pride and satisfaction, though I must ever deplore the unavoidable loss of life. Pray inquire after the wounded in my name. May we continue to receive good news."']

'I am very pleased to share with you and your team the following message just received from Her Majesty, and I would also like to express my heartfelt congratulations on the success accomplished. Message begins: "I have received the news of General Roberts' decisive victory and the outstanding conduct of my brave soldiers with pride and satisfaction, although I will always mourn the unavoidable loss of life. Please check on the wounded in my name. May we continue to receive good news."'

[Footnote 2: Both officers died of their wounds soon afterwards.]

Both officers died of their wounds soon afterwards.]

'FROM AMIR SHER ALI KHAN TO THE OFFICERS OF THE BRITISH GOVERNMENT.

'FROM AMIR SHER ALI KHAN TO THE OFFICERS OF THE BRITISH GOVERNMENT.'

'Be it known to the officers of the British Government that this suppliant before God never supposed, nor wished, that the matters [in dispute] between you and myself should come to this issue [literally, "should come out from the curtain"], or that the veil of friendship and amity, which has for many years been upheld between two neighbours and adjoining States, should, without any cause, be thus drawn aside.

'Let it be known to the officers of the British Government that this petitioner before God never believed nor wanted the issues between you and me to reach this point, or that the curtain of friendship and goodwill, which has been maintained for many years between two neighboring and adjacent States, should, without any reason, be pulled aside like this.'

'And since you have begun the quarrel and hostilities, and have advanced on Afghan territory, this suppliant before God, with the unanimous consent and advice of all the nobles, grandees, and of the army in Afghanistan, having abandoned his troops, his realm, and all the possessions of his crown, has departed with expedition, accompanied by a few attendants, to St. Petersburg, the capital of the Czar of Russia, where, before a congress, the whole history of the transactions between myself and yourselves will be submitted to all the Powers [of Europe], If you have anything in dispute with me regarding State affairs in Afghanistan, you should institute and establish your case at St. Petersburg, and state and explain what you desire, so that the questions in dispute between us may be made known and clear to all the Powers. And surely the side of right will not be overlooked. If your intentions are otherwise, and you entertain hostile and vindictive feelings towards the people of Afghanistan, God alone is their Protector and real Preserver. Upon the course of action here above stated this suppliant before God has resolved and decided.']

'Since you started the conflict and advanced into Afghan territory, I, a humble servant before God, with the full agreement and guidance of all the nobles, dignitaries, and the army in Afghanistan, have left my troops, my kingdom, and all my royal possessions. I have hurried to St. Petersburg, the capital of the Czar of Russia, where I will present the entire history of the dealings between us to a congress of all the Powers of Europe. If you have any disagreements with me regarding state matters in Afghanistan, you should present your case in St. Petersburg and explain what you want so that the issues between us are clear to all the Powers. Surely, justice will not be ignored. If your intentions are different and you bear hostile and vengeful feelings towards the people of Afghanistan, only God is their true Protector and Preserver. Based on the course of action mentioned above, I have made my decision.'

[Footnote 4: The late Lieutenant-General Sir John Hudson, K.C.B., who died as Commander-in-Chief of the Bombay Army.]

[Footnote 4: The late Lieutenant-General Sir John Hudson, K.C.B., who passed away while serving as Commander-in-Chief of the Bombay Army.

[Footnote 5: No doubt friends of the prisoners, who had come to help them to escape.]

[Footnote 5: Definitely friends of the prisoners, who had come to help them escape.

[Footnote 6: This occurrence was made great capital of by the anti-war party at home. A member of the House of Commons, in commenting upon it, said that 'some ninety prisoners, who had been taken, had been tied together with ropes'; that 'on their making some attempt to escape they were set upon, and many of them slaughtered in their bonds'; and that 'the dead, the living, the dying, and the wounded were left tied together, and lying in one confused mass of bodies.']

[Footnote 6: This incident was heavily highlighted by the anti-war party back home. A member of the House of Commons remarked that "about ninety prisoners who had been captured were tied together with ropes"; that "when they tried to escape, they were attacked, and many of them were killed while still bound"; and that "the dead, the living, the dying, and the wounded were left tied together, all in a tangled mass of bodies."



FOOTNOTES, CHAPTER XLVIII

[Footnote 1: The late Major-General Sir George Colley, K.C.B.]

[Footnote 1: The late Major-General Sir George Colley, K.C.B.

[Footnote 2: Kabul was expressly selected by Yakub Khan as the place where he wished the Embassy to reside.]

[Footnote 2: Kabul was specifically chosen by Yakub Khan as the location where he wanted the Embassy to be based.

[Footnote 3: At this parade I had the great pleasure of decorating Captain Cook with the Victoria Cross, and Subadar Ragobir Nagarkoti, Jemadar Pursoo Khatri, Native Doctor Sankar Dass, and five riflemen of the 5th Gurkhas, with the Order of Merit, for their gallant conduct in the attack on the Spingawi Kotal, and during the passage of the Mangior defile. It was a happy circumstance that Major Galbraith, who owed his life to Captain Cook's intrepidity, and Major Fitz-Hugh, whose life was saved by Jemadar (then Havildar) Pursoo Khatri, should both have been present on the parade.]

[Footnote 3: At this parade, I had the great honor of awarding Captain Cook the Victoria Cross, and Subadar Ragobir Nagarkoti, Jemadar Pursoo Khatri, Native Doctor Sankar Dass, and five riflemen of the 5th Gurkhas the Order of Merit for their bravery during the attack on the Spingawi Kotal and the passage through the Mangior defile. It was a fortunate coincidence that Major Galbraith, who owed his life to Captain Cook's bravery, and Major Fitz-Hugh, whose life was saved by Jemadar (then Havildar) Pursoo Khatri, were both present at the parade.

[Footnote 4: Lieutenant-Governor of Bengal.]

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Lieutenant-Governor of Bengal.]



FOOTNOTES, CHAPTER XLIX

[Footnote 1: There are no such things as bells or knockers in India.]

[Footnote 1: There are no such things as bells or knockers in India.

[Footnote 2: 'Lose no time and spare no money to obtain reliable information of what is going on in Kabul, and keep me constantly informed by urgent telegrams. I am in hopes that Jelaladin's report will turn out to be greatly exaggerated, if not untrue. As, however, his intelligence is sure to spread and cause a certain amount of excitement, warn General Massy and Mr. Christie (the Political Officer in Kuram) to be on the alert.']

[Footnote 2: 'Don't waste any time or money getting trustworthy updates on what’s happening in Kabul, and keep me updated with urgent telegrams. I hope Jelaladin's report is largely exaggerated, if not false. However, since his news is likely to spread and stir up some excitement, alert General Massy and Mr. Christie (the Political Officer in Kuram) to be vigilant.'

[Footnote 3: The Kabul Field Force was composed as follows:

[Footnote 3: The Kabul Field Force was made up of the following:

ARTILLERY.

Cannon.

Lieutenant-Colonel B.L. Gordon, commanding.
Captain J.W. Inge, Adjutant.
F/A, Royal Horse Artillery, Major J.C. Smyth-Windham.
G/3, Royal Artillery, Major Sydney Parry.
No. 1 (Kohat) Mountain Battery (four guns), Captain Morgan.
No. 2 (Derajât) Mountain Battery (four guns), Captain Swinley.
Two Gatling guns, Captain Broadfoot.

Lieutenant-Colonel B.L. Gordon, in charge.
Captain J.W. Inge, Assistant.
F/A, Royal Horse Artillery, Major J.C. Smyth-Windham.
G/3, Royal Artillery, Major Sydney Parry.
No. 1 (Kohat) Mountain Battery (four guns), Captain Morgan.
No. 2 (Derajât) Mountain Battery (four guns), Captain Swinley.
Two Gatling guns, Captain Broadfoot.

ENGINEERS.

Engineers.

Lieutenant-Colonel Æ. Perkins, C.B., commanding.
Lieutenant F. Spratt, Adjutant.
Captain Woodthorpe, R.E., in charge of surveying.
Captain Stratton, 22nd Regiment, in charge of signalling.
Lieutenant F. Burn-Murdoch, R.E., Royal Engineer Park.

Lieutenant-Colonel Æ. Perkins, C.B., in command.
Lieutenant F. Spratt, Adjutant.
Captain Woodthorpe, R.E., responsible for surveying.
Captain Stratton, 22nd Regiment, responsible for signaling.
Lieutenant F. Burn-Murdoch, R.E., Royal Engineer Park.

CAVALRY.

Cavalry.

Brigadier-General W.D. Massy, commanding.
Lieutenant J.P. Brabazon, 10th Hussars, Brigade-Major.
9th Lancers, Lieutenant-Colonel R.S. Cleland.
5th Punjab Cavalry, Major B. Williams.
12th Bengal Cavalry, Major Green.
14th Bengal Lancers, Lieutenant-Colonel Ross.

Brigadier-General W.D. Massy, in charge.
Lieutenant J.P. Brabazon, 10th Hussars, Brigade Major.
9th Lancers, Lieutenant Colonel R.S. Cleland.
5th Punjab Cavalry, Major B. Williams.
12th Bengal Cavalry, Major Green.
14th Bengal Lancers, Lieutenant Colonel Ross.

1ST INFANTRY BRIGADE.

1st Infantry Brigade.

Brigadier-General H. Macpherson, C.B., V.C., commanding.
Captain G. de C. Morton, 6th Foot, Brigade-Major.
67th Foot, Lieutenant-Colonel C.B. Knowles.
92nd Highlanders, Lieutenant-Colonel G.H. Parker.
28th Punjab Infantry, Lieutenant-Colonel J. Hudson.

Brigadier-General H. Macpherson, C.B., V.C., in charge.
Captain G. de C. Morton, 6th Foot, Brigade Major.
67th Foot, Lieutenant Colonel C.B. Knowles.
92nd Highlanders, Lieutenant Colonel G.H. Parker.
28th Punjab Infantry, Lieutenant Colonel J. Hudson.

2ND INFANTRY BRIGADE.

2nd Infantry Brigade.

Brigadier-General T.D. Baker, C.B., 18th Foot, commanding.
Captain W.C. Farwell, 26th Punjab Infantry, Brigade-Major.
72nd Highlanders, Lieutenant-Colonel Brownlow.
5th Gurkhas, Lieutenant-Colonel Fitz-Hugh.
5th Punjab Infantry, Lieutenant-Colonel J. Macqueen.
3rd Sikhs, Lieutenant-Colonel G.N. Money.
23rd Pioneers, Lieutenant-Colonel Currie.]

Brigadier-General T.D. Baker, C.B., 18th Foot, in charge.
Captain W.C. Farwell, 26th Punjab Infantry, Brigade-Major.
72nd Highlanders, Lieutenant-Colonel Brownlow.
5th Gurkhas, Lieutenant-Colonel Fitz-Hugh.
5th Punjab Infantry, Lieutenant-Colonel J. Macqueen.
3rd Sikhs, Lieutenant-Colonel G.N. Money.
23rd Pioneers, Lieutenant-Colonel Currie.

Return to CHAPTER XLIX.3

Return to __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__

[Footnote 4: The late Lieutenant-General Sir Herbert Macpherson, V.C., K.C.B., who died as Commander-in-Chief of Madras.]

[Footnote 4: The late Lieutenant-General Sir Herbert Macpherson, V.C., K.C.B., who passed away while serving as Commander-in-Chief of Madras.]

[Footnote 5: The late Sir Thomas Baker, K.C.B., who died as Quartermaster-General at the Horse Guards.]

[Footnote 5: The late Sir Thomas Baker, K.C.B., who passed away as Quartermaster-General at the Horse Guards.

[Footnote 6: The late Sir Charles MacGregor, K.C.B.]

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ The late Sir Charles MacGregor, K.C.B.

[Footnote 7: Now Major-General Combe, C.B.]

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Currently Major-General Combe, C.B.

[Footnote 8: This promising young officer greatly distinguished himself at Kabul, and died a few years afterwards of cholera.]

[Footnote 8: This promising young officer made a name for himself in Kabul and died a few years later from cholera.

[Footnote 9: Now Sir Mortimer Durand, K.C.S.I., K.C.I.E., British Minister at Teheran.]

[Footnote 9: Now Sir Mortimer Durand, K.C.S.I., K.C.I.E., British Minister in Tehran.

[Footnote 10: TELEGRAM DATED 6TH SEPTEMBER, 1879.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ TELEGRAM DATED SEPTEMBER 6, 1879.

From CAPTAIN CONOLLY, ALIKHEL.

From Captain Conolly, Alikhel.

To FOREIGN SECRETARY, SIMLA.

To Foreign Secretary, Simla.

'Clear the Line.—Sirkai Khan, bearer of the Amir's first letter, confirms previous reports of disaster, and describes how Badshah Khan visited the spot, and saw the dead bodies of the Envoy, staff, and escort. Of the latter, some nine sowars are said to have been out getting grass that day, and were not killed with the rest; defence was very stubborn, and the loss of the Kabulis heavy, put down at one hundred, or more. Finding they could not storm the place, the mutineers set fire to the doorway below, and, when that gave way, swarmed in and up to the upper story, overwhelmed the defenders, and sacked the place.

Clear the Line.—Sirkai Khan, who carried the Amir's first letter, confirms earlier reports of disaster and describes how Badshah Khan visited the site and saw the dead bodies of the Envoy, staff, and escort. Among the latter, about nine sowars were out gathering grass that day and weren’t killed with the others; the defense was very fierce, and the Kabulis suffered heavy losses, estimated at a hundred or more. Realizing they couldn't storm the place, the mutineers set fire to the doorway below, and when that collapsed, they swarmed in and up to the upper floor, overwhelming the defenders and plundering the place.

'The second letter was brought by another messenger, servant of the Embassy Mehmandar, whose story in all but a few unimportant details is the same as that first received.

'The second letter was delivered by another messenger, a servant of the Embassy Mehmandar, whose story is almost identical to the first one received, except for a few minor details.'

'If an advance on Kabul is decided on to revenge massacre of Embassy, and also to quiet surrounding tribes, whom any (?) action would tempt to break out, it appears to me all-important to secure safe passage of the Shutargardan, and with this object to subsidize Badshah Khan handsomely.

'If a decision is made to advance on Kabul to avenge the massacre at the Embassy and also to calm the surrounding tribes, which could be provoked into action, I believe it's crucial to secure safe passage through Shutargardan and to generously support Badshah Khan for this purpose.'

'I have detained the Kabul messengers pending receipt of instructions as to the line of policy to follow, and what to communicate to the Amir or Badshah Khan. The former invokes our aid; the latter expresses himself, through his messenger, anxious to serve us. Once in Logar valley, where they have had a bumper harvest, we could live on the country.']

'I have held up the Kabul messengers while waiting for guidance on the policy to follow and what to tell the Amir or Badshah Khan. The former is asking for our help; the latter is showing, through his messenger, his eagerness to assist us. Once we're in the Logar valley, where they've had a great harvest, we could sustain ourselves with the resources from the area.'

[Footnote 11: TRANSLATION OF A LETTER FROM THE AMIR OF KABUL TO GENERAL ROBERTS, DATED KABUL, 8 A.M., THE 3RD SEPTEMBER, 1879.

[Footnote 11: TRANSLATION OF A LETTER FROM THE AMIR OF KABUL TO GENERAL ROBERTS, DATED KABUL, 8 A.M., THE 3RD SEPTEMBER, 1879.

(After compliments.) The troops who had assembled for pay at the Bala Hissar suddenly broke out and stoned their officers, and then all rushed to the Residency and stoned it, receiving in return a hail of bullets. Confusion and disturbance reached such a height that it was impossible to quiet it. People from Sherpur and country around the Bala Hissar, and city people of all classes, poured into the Bala Hissar and began destroying workshops, Artillery park, and magazine; and all the troops and people attacked the Residency. Meanwhile, I sent Daud Shah* to help the Envoy. On reaching the Residency, he was unhorsed by stones and spears, and is now dying. I then sent Sirdar Yahia Khan and my own son, the heir-apparent, with the Koran to the troops; but no use. I then sent well-known Syads and Mullahs of each class, but of no avail; up till now, evening, the disturbance continues. It will be seen how it ends. I am grieved with this confusing state of things. It is almost beyond conception. (Here follow the date and the Amir's seal.)]

(After compliments.) The soldiers gathered for pay at the Bala Hissar suddenly turned against their officers and started throwing stones at them, then they all rushed to the Residency and stoned it, only to be met with a barrage of bullets in return. The chaos and unrest escalated to the point where it was impossible to calm things down. People from Sherpur and the surrounding areas, along with residents of the city from all walks of life, flooded into the Bala Hissar and began destroying workshops, the artillery park, and the magazine; all the troops and civilians attacked the Residency. In the meantime, I sent Daud Shah* to assist the Envoy. Upon arriving at the Residency, he was thrown off his horse by stones and spears, and he is now dying. I then sent Sirdar Yahia Khan and my own son, the heir-apparent, with the Koran to the troops; but it was of no use. I also sent well-known Syads and Mullahs of various classes, but to no avail; as of now, in the evening, the unrest continues. We will see how it ends. I am deeply troubled by this chaotic situation. It is almost unimaginable. (Here follow the date and the Amir's seal.)

     [Note *: The Commander-in-Chief of the Afghan army.]

[Note *: The Commander-in-Chief of the Afghan army.]

SECOND LETTER FROM THE AMIR, DATED KABUL, THE 4TH SEPTEMBER, 1879.

SECOND LETTER FROM THE AMIR, DATED KABUL, THE 4TH SEPTEMBER, 1879.

Yesterday, from 8 a.m. till evening, thousands assembled to destroy the Embassy. There has been much loss of life on both sides. At evening they set fire to the Residency. All yesterday and up till now, I with five attendants have been besieged. I have no certain news of the Envoy, whether he and his people have been killed in their quarters, or been seized and brought out. Afghanistan is ruined; the troops, city, and surrounding country have thrown off their yoke of allegiance. Daud Shah is not expected to recover; all his attendants were killed. The workshops and magazine are totally gutted—in fact, my kingdom is ruined. After God, I look to the Government for aid and advice. My true friendship and honesty of purpose will be proved as clear as daylight. By this misfortune I have lost my friend, the Envoy, and also my kingdom. I am terribly grieved and perplexed. (Here follow the date and the Amir's seal.)

Yesterday, from 8 a.m. until evening, thousands gathered to attack the Embassy. There has been a significant loss of life on both sides. In the evening, they set fire to the Residency. All yesterday and until now, I, along with five attendants, have been under siege. I have no reliable information about the Envoy—whether he and his staff have been killed in their quarters or captured and taken out. Afghanistan is in ruins; the troops, city, and surrounding areas have broken free from their allegiance. Daud Shah is not expected to recover; all of his attendants were killed. The workshops and supply depot are completely destroyed—in fact, my kingdom is in shambles. After God, I look to the Government for help and guidance. My true friendship and honest intentions will be as clear as day. Because of this disaster, I have lost my friend, the Envoy, and my kingdom as well. I am deeply saddened and confused. (Here follow the date and the Amir's seal.)

[Footnote 12: The Nawab was on his way from Kandahar to Kabul, but on hearing of the massacre he came to Alikhel.]

[Footnote 12: The Nawab was traveling from Kandahar to Kabul, but upon hearing about the massacre, he headed to Alikhel.

[Footnote 13: TRANSLATION OF A PROCLAMATION ISSUED BY MAJOR-GENERAL SIR FREDERICK ROBERTS.

[Footnote 13: TRANSLATION OF A PROCLAMATION ISSUED BY MAJOR-GENERAL SIR FREDERICK ROBERTS.

Alikhel, 16th September, 1879.

Alikhel, September 16, 1879.

Be it known to all the Chiefs and the people of the country of Kabul and its dependencies that, in accordance with the Treaty concluded in May, 1879, corresponding to Jamdi-ul-Akhir 1296 Hijri, between the two great Governments, and to the terms of which His Highness the Amir expressed his assent, and agreed to the location of an Envoy of Her Imperial Majesty the Empress, a British Envoy was, at the special request of His Highness the Amir, located at the Kabul Court, and the Amir guaranteed that he should be treated honourably and protected.

Be it known to all the leaders and people of Kabul and its surrounding areas that, in line with the Treaty signed in May 1879, corresponding to Jamdi-ul-Akhir 1296 Hijri, between the two great governments, and which His Highness the Amir agreed to, an envoy from Her Imperial Majesty the Empress was appointed, at the special request of His Highness the Amir, to the Kabul Court. The Amir guaranteed that he would be treated with honor and protected.

Within six weeks after the said Envoy was received at and entered Kabul the whole Embassy was besieged and massacred in the very citadel of His Highness the Amir, who could not save or protect them from the hands of the soldiers and the people. From this, the lack of power of the Amir and the weakness of his authority in his capital itself are quite apparent and manifest. For this reason the British troops are advancing for the purpose of taking a public vengeance on behalf of the deceased as well as of obtaining satisfaction (lit., consolidation) of the terms entered into in the Treaty concluded. The British troops are entering Afghanistan for the purpose of strengthening the royal authority of His Highness the Amir on condition that His Highness loyally uses those powers for the maintenance of friendship and of amicable relations with the British Government. This is the only course by which the Amir's kingdom can remain intact, and (by which) also the friendly sentiments and sincerity expressed in his letter of the 4th September, 1879, after the occurrence of the (said) event can be proved.

Within six weeks after the Envoy arrived in Kabul, the entire Embassy was besieged and killed in the very citadel of His Highness the Amir, who was unable to save or protect them from the soldiers and the crowd. This clearly shows the Amir's lack of power and the weakness of his authority in his own capital. As a result, British troops are advancing to seek public revenge for the deceased and to ensure the fulfillment of the terms outlined in the Treaty. The British troops are entering Afghanistan to strengthen the royal authority of His Highness the Amir, on the condition that he faithfully uses that power to maintain friendship and good relations with the British Government. This is the only way for the Amir's kingdom to remain intact, and it will also demonstrate the friendly feelings and sincerity expressed in his letter of September 4, 1879, after the incident occurred.

For the purpose of removing any doubt about the concord of the two Governments, the Amir has been addressed to depute a confidential agent to my camp. The British force will not punish or injure anyone except the persons who have taken part or joined in the massacre of the Embassy unless they offer opposition. All the rest, the small and great, who are unconcerned (therein) may rest assured of this. Carriage and supplies of every description should be brought into the British camp. Full price and hire shall be paid for everything that may be taken. Whereas mercy and humanity are the characteristics of this great Government, this proclamation is issued beforehand for the information of the people at large.]

To clear up any doubt about the agreement between the two governments, the Amir has been asked to send a trusted representative to my camp. The British troops will not punish or harm anyone except those involved in the massacre of the Embassy, unless they resist. Everyone else, whether small or big, who had nothing to do with it can be assured of this. All types of transportation and supplies should be brought to the British camp. A fair price will be paid for everything taken. While mercy and compassion are values of this great government, this announcement is made in advance for the public’s information.

[Footnote 14: TRANSLATION OF A LETTER FROM MAJOR-GENERAL SIR FREDERICK ROBERTS TO CERTAIN maliks OF THE LOGAR VALLEY.

[Footnote 14: TRANSLATION OF A LETTER FROM MAJOR-GENERAL SIR FREDERICK ROBERTS TO CERTAIN maliks OF THE LOGAR VALLEY.

From the Proclamation already issued by me, you will have learnt the reasons for the march of the British troops to Kabul. Her Majesty's Government, by the movement of troops, intends to exact retribution for the massacre of the Embassy and to aid His Highness the Amir in restoring order.

From the Proclamation I already issued, you will have learned the reasons for the British troops marching to Kabul. Her Majesty's Government intends to seek justice for the massacre of the Embassy and to help His Highness the Amir restore order by moving troops.

Let all those not concerned in the massacre rest assured, provided no opposition is shown, His Highness the Amir, in communications received by me, expresses his friendship, and wishes to continue amicable relations. As the British troops under my command will shortly enter the Logar valley I write to reassure you, and expect that you will inform all the residents of the valley not concerned in the late hateful massacre the purport of the Proclamation, and give every assistance in providing carriage and supplies required for the troops for which adequate hire and payment will be made. I hope that after the above assurance all the headmen will come to meet me in my camp where I shall be glad to see them.]

Let everyone who wasn’t involved in the massacre be assured that, as long as there’s no opposition, His Highness the Amir, in messages I’ve received, conveys his friendship and wishes to maintain good relations. Since the British troops under my command will soon be entering the Logar valley, I’m writing to reassure you and expect that you will inform all the residents of the valley who weren’t involved in the recent terrible massacre about the purpose of the Proclamation, and provide any help needed with transportation and supplies for the troops, for which fair payment will be made. I hope that with this reassurance, all the local leaders will come to meet me in my camp, where I’ll be happy to see them.

[Footnote 15: This letter is given in full in the Appendix.]

[Footnote 15: This letter is included in its entirety in the Appendix.]



FOOTNOTES, CHAPTER L

[Footnote 1: Macdonald, having subsequently further distinguished himself, was given a commission, and is now commanding a regiment in the Egyptian Army. Sher Mahomed was rewarded with the Order of Merit.]

[Footnote 1: Macdonald, after proving himself even more, was given a commission and is now leading a regiment in the Egyptian Army. Sher Mahomed received the Order of Merit as a reward.

[Footnote 2: FROM THE AMIR OF KABUL, DATED KUSHI, 27TH SEPTEMBER, 1879.

[Footnote 2: FROM THE AMIR OF KABUL, DATED KUSHI, 27TH SEPTEMBER, 1879.

(After compliments.) Your friendly letter has reached me just at this moment, 8 p.m., the 10th Shawal (27th September), and opened the doors of joy and happiness on the face of my heart marked with affection. I feel perfectly certain and confident that the movements of Her Imperial Majesty's victorious troops are merely for the purpose of consolidating the foundation of my kingdom and strengthening the basis of my government.

(After compliments.) Your friendly letter has just arrived, 8 p.m., the 10th Shawal (27th September), and it has filled my heart with joy and happiness. I am completely sure that the actions of Her Imperial Majesty's victorious troops are only meant to solidify the foundation of my kingdom and strengthen my government.

In truth, the sympathy of friends with friends is fitting and proper, and the indulgence and kindness of a great Government to a sincere and faithful friend are agreeable and pleasing. I am exceedingly gratified with, and thankful to, the representatives of the illustrious British Government for their expression of sympathy and their support of my cause. Your friendly and wise suggestion that none of the ignorant tribes of Afghanistan should oppose the British troops, so that the officers of the British Government should be the better able to support and protect me, is very acceptable and reasonable. Before I received your letter, I had sent orders repeatedly to the Governors of Jalalabad and Lalpura not to let anyone oppose or resist the British troops, and stringent orders have again been issued to the Governor of Jalalabad to use his utmost endeavours and efforts in this respect. The order in question to the address of the Governor of Jalalabad will be shown you to-morrow, and sent by an express courier.]

In reality, it's only right for friends to support each other, and it’s reassuring and satisfying when a great government shows compassion and kindness to a loyal and trustworthy friend. I am truly grateful to the representatives of the distinguished British Government for their kind expression of sympathy and their support for my cause. I really appreciate your thoughtful suggestion that none of the uninformed tribes of Afghanistan should resist the British troops, which would allow the officials of the British Government to better support and protect me. Before I received your letter, I had already ordered the Governors of Jalalabad and Lalpura to prevent anyone from opposing or resisting the British troops, and I have issued strong orders again to the Governor of Jalalabad to do his utmost in this regard. The order sent to the Governor of Jalalabad will be shown to you tomorrow and will be sent by an express courier.

[Footnote 3: It was a matter of intense gratification to me that the whole time we remained in Afghanistan, nearly two years, not a single complaint was made by an Afghan of any soldier in my force having interfered with the women of the country.]

[Footnote 3: It was incredibly satisfying for me that during our nearly two years in Afghanistan, not a single Afghan complained about any soldier in my unit interfering with the women of the country.

[Footnote 4: The force was made up as follows:

The team consisted of the following:

  British
Officers
Other Ranks
British Native
Divisional, Brigade, and Departmental Staff
F/A, R.H.A.
G/3, R.A.
No. 2 Mountain Battery
Two Gatling guns
9th Lancers (one squadron)
5th Punjab Cavalry
12th Bengal Cavalry
14th Bengal Lancers
67th Foot
72nd Highlanders
92nd Highlanders
5th Punjab Infantry
5th Gurkhas
23rd Pioneers
28th Punjab Infantry
7th Company Bengal Sappers and Miners
60  
7  
7  
3  
1  
4  
7  
6  
7  
18  
23  
17  
8  
7  
6  
8  
3  

118  
137  

34  
118  



686  
746  
717  




2  



223  


325  
328  
407  



610  
574  
671  
636  
93  
  192   2,558   3,867  

[Footnote 5: Known as the sang-i-nawishta (inscribed stone).]

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Known as the sang-i-nawishta (engraved stone).

[Footnote 6: Shortly after I was settled at Kabul, the following letter, written by Nek Mahomed on the evening of the day he had been with the Amir, to some person whom he wished to acquaint with the state of affairs, was brought to me:

[Footnote 6: Soon after I got settled in Kabul, I received the following letter, written by Nek Mahomed on the evening of the day he had met with the Amir, intended for someone he wanted to inform about the situation:

'MY KIND FRIEND,—The truth is that to-day, at sunrise, I went to the camp, the Amir having summoned me. When I arrived, Mulla Shah Mahomed [the Wazir] first said to me, "Go back and tell the people to raise a holy war." I did not feel certain about what he said [or was not satisfied with this], [but] the Amir afterwards told me to go back that very hour and rouse the people to a ghaza. I got back to Kabul about 7 o'clock, and am collecting the people. Salaam.'

'MY KIND FRIEND,—The truth is that today, at sunrise, I went to the camp because the Amir called for me. When I arrived, Mulla Shah Mahomed [the Wazir] first told me, "Go back and tell the people to start a holy war." I wasn't sure about what he meant [or I didn’t feel good about it], [but] the Amir then instructed me to return right away and rally the people for a ghaza. I got back to Kabul around 7 o'clock, and I'm gathering the people. Salaam.'

The letter was not addressed, but it was sealed with Nek Mahomed's seal, and there was no reason to doubt its authenticity.]

The letter wasn't addressed, but it was sealed with Nek Mahomed's seal, and there was no reason to doubt its authenticity.



FOOTNOTES, CHAPTER LI

[Footnote 1: Twenty sabres, 9th Lancers, one squadron 5th Punjab Cavalry, two guns, No. 2 Mountain battery, 284 rifles, 92nd Highlanders, and 450 rifles, 23rd Pioneers.]

[Footnote 1: Twenty sabres, 9th Lancers, one squadron of the 5th Punjab Cavalry, two guns from No. 2 Mountain Battery, 284 rifles from the 92nd Highlanders, and 450 rifles from the 23rd Pioneers.]

[Footnote 2: Two guns, No. 2 Mountain battery, two Gatling guns, detachment 12th Bengal Cavalry, 72nd Highlanders, 5th Gurkhas (300 rifles), 5th Punjab Infantry (200 rifles), No. 7 Company Sappers and Miners.]

[Footnote 2: Two guns, No. 2 Mountain battery, two Gatling guns, detachment of the 12th Bengal Cavalry, 72nd Highlanders, 5th Gurkhas (300 rifles), 5th Punjab Infantry (200 rifles), No. 7 Company Sappers and Miners.

[Footnote 3: During the fight the Infantry expended 41,090 rounds, of which over 20,000 were fired by the 72nd Highlanders. The half-battery G/3 R.A. fired 6 common shell (percussion fuses) and 71 shrapnel (time fuses); total, 77 rounds. No. 2 Mountain Battery fired 10 common shell and 94 shrapnel, total, 104 rounds. The two Gatlings fired 150 rounds.

[Footnote 3: During the fight, the Infantry used 41,090 rounds, with more than 20,000 of those fired by the 72nd Highlanders. The half-battery G/3 R.A. fired 6 common shells (percussion fuses) and 71 shrapnel (time fuses), for a total of 77 rounds. No. 2 Mountain Battery fired 10 common shells and 94 shrapnel, totaling 104 rounds. The two Gatlings fired 150 rounds.

At the tenth round one of the Gatlings jammed, and had to be taken to pieces. This was the first occasion on which Gatling guns were used in action. They were not of the present improved make, and, being found unsatisfactory, were made but little use of.]

At the tenth round, one of the Gatling guns jammed and had to be taken apart. This was the first time Gatling guns were used in combat. They weren't the improved versions we have today, and since they were found to be unsatisfactory, they weren't used much.

[Footnote 4: The troops available for this purpose were: One squadron 9th Lancers, 5th Punjab Cavalry, 12th Bengal Cavalry, and 14th Bengal Lancers; total, 720 of all ranks.]

[Footnote 4: The troops available for this purpose were: One squadron of the 9th Lancers, 5th Punjab Cavalry, 12th Bengal Cavalry, and 14th Bengal Lancers; total, 720 personnel across all ranks.]

[Footnote 5: The guns included four English 18-pounders, one English 8-inch howitzer and two Afghan imitations of this weapon, and forty-two bronze Mountain guns.]

[Footnote 5: The artillery consisted of four English 18-pounders, one English 8-inch howitzer, two Afghan copies of this weapon, and forty-two bronze Mountain guns.

[Footnote 6: The Asmai heights.]

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ The Asmai heights.

[Footnote 7: The Deh-i-Mazang gorge.]

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ The Deh-i-Mazang gorge.



FOOTNOTES, CHAPTER LII

[Footnote 1: Yahia Khan was Yakub Khan's father-in-law.]

[Footnote 1: Yahia Khan was the father-in-law of Yakub Khan.]

[Footnote 2: At an interview which Major Hastings, the Political Officer, and Mr. Durand, my Political Secretary, had with His Highness at my request on the 23rd October, he said, referring to the subject of the Amirship: 'I call God and the Koran to witness, and everything a Mussulman holds sacred, that my only desire is to be set free, and end my days in liberty. I have conceived an utter aversion for these people. I always treated them well, and you see how they have rewarded me. So long as I was fighting in one place or another, they liked me well enough. Directly I became Amir, and consulted their own good by making peace with you, they turned on me. Now I detest them all, and long to be out of Afghanistan for ever. It is not that I am unable to hold the country; I have held it before and could hold it again, but I have no further wish to rule such a people, and I beg of you to let me go. If the British Government wish me to stay, I will stay, as their servant or as the Amir, if you like to call me so, until my son is of an age to succeed me, or even without that condition; but it will be wholly against my own inclination, and I earnestly beg to be set free.']

[Footnote 2: At an interview that Major Hastings, the Political Officer, and Mr. Durand, my Political Secretary, had with His Highness at my request on October 23rd, he said, referring to the Amirship: 'I swear by God and the Koran, and everything a Muslim holds holy, that my only wish is to be free and live the rest of my days in liberty. I have developed a strong dislike for these people. I always treated them well, and look at how they've repaid me. As long as I was fighting somewhere, they liked me just fine. As soon as I became Amir and tried to do right by them by making peace with you, they turned against me. Now I can't stand any of them and I long to leave Afghanistan for good. It's not that I can't hold the country; I have managed it before and could do it again, but I have no desire to rule over such a people, and I ask you to let me go. If the British Government wants me to stay, I will stay, either as their servant or as the Amir, if you want to call me that, until my son is old enough to take over, or even without that condition; but it will be entirely against my will, and I sincerely ask to be set free.']

[Footnote 3: Dr. Bellew was with the brothers Lumsden at Kandahar in 1857.]

[Footnote 3: Dr. Bellew was with the Lumsden brothers in Kandahar in 1857.

[Footnote 4: My action in endorsing the proceedings of this court, and my treatment of Afghans generally, were so adversely and severely criticized by party newspapers and periodicals, and by members of the Opposition in the House of Commons, that I was called upon for an explanation of my conduct, which was submitted and read in both Houses of Parliament by the Secretary of State for India, Viscount Cranbrook, and the Under-Secretary of State for India, the Hon. E. Stanhope. In the Parliamentary records of February, 1880, can be seen my reply to the accusations, as well as an abstract statement of the executions carried out at Kabul in accordance with the findings of the military Court.]

[Footnote 4: My support for the actions of this court and my overall treatment of Afghans faced harsh criticism from party newspapers and magazines, as well as from opposition members in the House of Commons. As a result, I had to provide an explanation for my actions, which was presented and read in both Houses of Parliament by the Secretary of State for India, Viscount Cranbrook, and the Under-Secretary of State for India, the Hon. E. Stanhope. You can find my response to these accusations, along with a summary of the executions that took place in Kabul based on the military Court's findings, in the parliamentary records from February 1880.

[Footnote 5: Afterwards General Sir Robert Bright, G.C.B.]

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Later General Sir Robert Bright, G.C.B.



FOOTNOTES, CHAPTER LIII

[Footnote 1: In Pushtu the word tarbur signifies a cousin to any degree, and is not unfrequently used as 'enemy,' the inference being that in Afghanistan a cousin is necessarily an enemy.]

[Footnote 1: In Pushtu, the word tarbur refers to a cousin of any degree and is often used to mean 'enemy,' implying that in Afghanistan, a cousin is essentially considered an enemy.

[Footnote 2: As I reported at the time, the magnitude of Sher Ali's military preparations was, in my opinion, a fact of peculiar significance. He had raised and equipped with arms of precision sixteen regiments of Cavalry and sixty-eight of Infantry, while his Artillery amounted to nearly 300 guns. Numbers of skilled artisans were constantly employed in the manufacture of rifled cannon and breech-loading small arms. Swords, helmets, uniforms, and other articles of military equipment, were stored in proportionate quantities. Upon the construction of the Sherpur cantonment Sher Ali had expended an astonishing amount of labour and money. The size and cost of this work may be judged from the fact that the main line of rampart, with barrack accommodation, extended to a length of nearly two miles under the western and southern slopes of the Bimaru hills, while the original design was to carry the wall entirely round the hills, a distance of four and a half miles, and the foundations were laid for a considerable portion of this length. All these military preparations must have been going on for some years, and were quite unnecessary, except as a provision for contemplated hostilities with ourselves. Sher Ali had refused during this time to accept the subsidy we had agreed to pay him, and it is difficult to understand how their entire cost could have been met from the Afghan treasury, the annual gross revenue of the country at that time amounting only to about 80 lakhs of rupees.]

[Footnote 2: As I reported at the time, the scale of Sher Ali's military preparations was, in my view, notably significant. He had raised and equipped sixteen regiments of Cavalry and sixty-eight of Infantry with modern weaponry, while his Artillery totaled nearly 300 guns. Many skilled artisans were continuously working on manufacturing rifled cannons and breech-loading firearms. Swords, helmets, uniforms, and other military gear were stored in sufficient quantities. Sher Ali had invested an impressive amount of labor and money in building the Sherpur cantonment. The size and expense of this project can be understood by the fact that the main rampart, along with barrack facilities, extended nearly two miles along the western and southern slopes of the Bimaru hills. The initial plan was to extend the wall fully around the hills, covering a distance of four and a half miles, and foundations were already laid for a significant portion of this length. All these military preparations must have been underway for several years and seemed entirely unnecessary, except as a precaution for expected hostilities with us. During this time, Sher Ali had continually declined the subsidy we had agreed to pay him, and it’s hard to see how the total cost could have been covered by the Afghan treasury, which had an annual gross revenue of only about 80 lakhs of rupees at that time.

[Footnote 3: These letters, as well as my report to the Secretary to the Government of India in the Foreign Department, with an account of my conversation with Yakub Khan, are given in the Appendix.

[Footnote 3: These letters, along with my report to the Secretary of the Government of India in the Foreign Department, which includes a summary of my conversation with Yakub Khan, are included in the Appendix.

(See Appendices VI, VII,]

(See Appendices __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__,)

[Footnote 4: Sirdar Ayub Khan was Governor of Herat in 1879.]

[Footnote 4: Sirdar Ayub Khan was the Governor of Herat in 1879.

[Footnote 5: There were present at the interview, besides myself, Colonel Macgregor, Major Hastings, Surgeon-Major Bellew, Nawab Sir Ghulam Hussein Khan, and Mr. H.M. Durand.]

[Footnote 5: There were at the interview, in addition to me, Colonel Macgregor, Major Hastings, Surgeon-Major Bellew, Nawab Sir Ghulam Hussein Khan, and Mr. H.M. Durand.

[Footnote 6: A kind of mantle worn by Afghans.]

[Footnote 6: A type of cloak worn by Afghans.]

[Footnote 7: As Yakub Khan refused under one pretext or another to deliver up any money, Major Moriarty, the officer in charge of the Kabul Field Force treasure-chest, and Lieutenant Neville Chamberlain, accompanied by an escort, searched a house in the city in which a portion of Yakub Khan's money was said to be concealed. Upwards of eight and a half lakhs of rupees, and a certain amount of jewellery and gold coins, tillas and Russian five-rouble pieces, in all amounting to nine and a half lakhs, were found. This sum was subsequently refunded to the Afghan Government.]

[Footnote 7: As Yakub Khan kept making excuses to avoid handing over any money, Major Moriarty, the officer overseeing the Kabul Field Force treasure, and Lieutenant Neville Chamberlain, along with an escort, searched a house in the city where some of Yakub Khan's money was reportedly hidden. They discovered over eight and a half lakhs of rupees, along with some jewelry and gold coins, including tillas and Russian five-rouble pieces, totaling nine and a half lakhs. This amount was later returned to the Afghan Government.

[Footnote 8: The Nawab had been made a K.C.S.I.]

[Footnote 8: The Nawab had been made a K.C.S.I.



FOOTNOTES, CHAPTER LIV

[Footnote 1: A most thrilling account of Elphinstone's retreat through this pass is given in Kaye's 'History of the War in Afghanistan,' vol. ii., p. 229.]

[Footnote 1: A thrilling account of Elphinstone's retreat through this pass can be found in Kaye's 'History of the War in Afghanistan,' vol. ii., p. 229.]

[Footnote 2: The amnesty Proclamation ran as follows:

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ The amnesty statement ran as follows:

'KABUL,                               
'12th November, 1879.

'KABUL,
'November 12, 1879.

'To all whom it may concern. On the 12th October a Proclamation was issued in which I offered a reward for the surrender of any person who had fought against the British troops since the 3rd September, and had thereby become a rebel against the Amir Yakub Khan. I have now received information which tends to show that some, at least, of those who shared in the opposition encountered by the British troops during their advance on Kabul, were led to do so by the belief that the Amir was a prisoner in my camp, and had called upon the soldiery and people of Kabul to rise on his behalf. Such persons, although enemies to the British Government, were not rebels against their own Sovereign, and the great British Government does not seek for vengeance against enemies who no longer resist. It may be that few only of those who took up arms were thus led away by the statements of evil-minded men, but rather than punish the innocent with the guilty, I am willing to believe that all were alike deceived. On behalf of the British Government, therefore, I proclaim a free and complete amnesty to all persons who have fought against the British troops since the 3rd September, provided that they now give up any arms in their possession and return to their homes. The offer of a reward for the surrender of such persons is now withdrawn, and they will not for the future be molested in any way on account of their opposition to the British advance; but it must be clearly understood that the benefits of this amnesty do not extend to anyone, whether soldier or civilian, who was concerned directly or indirectly in the attack upon the Residency, or who may hereafter be found in possession of any property belonging to members of the Embassy. To such persons no mercy will be shown. Further, I hold out no promise of pardon to those who, well knowing the Amir's position in the British camp, instigated the troops and people of Kabul to take up arms against the British troops. They have been guilty of wilful rebellion against the Amir's authority, and they will be considered and treated as rebels wherever found.']

To whom it may concern. On October 12th, a Proclamation was issued in which I offered a reward for the surrender of anyone who had fought against the British troops since September 3rd, and had thus become a rebel against Amir Yakub Khan. I have now received information indicating that some of those who resisted the British troops during their advance on Kabul were led to believe that the Amir was a prisoner in my camp and had called on the soldiers and people of Kabul to rise in his support. While these individuals were enemies of the British Government, they were not rebels against their own Sovereign, and the British Government does not seek revenge against enemies who have ceased to resist. It may be that only a few of those who took up arms were misled by the statements of ill-intentioned individuals, but rather than punish the innocent along with the guilty, I prefer to believe that all were deceived. On behalf of the British Government, I hereby proclaim a full and complete amnesty to all individuals who have fought against the British troops since September 3rd, provided they now relinquish any arms in their possession and return to their homes. The offer of a reward for the surrender of such individuals is now withdrawn, and they will not be further molested in any way regarding their opposition to the British advance; however, it must be clearly understood that the benefits of this amnesty do not extend to anyone, whether soldier or civilian, who was directly or indirectly involved in the attack on the Residency, or who may be found in possession of any property belonging to members of the Embassy. No mercy will be shown to such individuals. Furthermore, I make no promises of pardon to those who, fully aware of the Amir's situation in the British camp, incited the troops and people of Kabul to rise against the British troops. They have committed willful rebellion against the Amir's authority and will be treated as rebels wherever found.

[Footnote 3: There was a slight fall of snow on the 11th November, followed by severe frost, and the elephants were beginning to suffer from the cold. Three of them succumbed on the Lataband Kotal, much to the annoyance of the olfactory nerves of all passers-by. It was impossible to bury the huge carcasses, as the ground was all rock, and there was not wood enough to burn them. So intense was the cold that the ink froze in my pen, and I was obliged to keep my inkstand under my pillow at night.]

[Footnote 3: There was a light snowfall on November 11th, followed by harsh frost, and the elephants were starting to feel the cold. Three of them died on the Lataband Kotal, much to the dismay of everyone's noses as they passed by. It was impossible to bury the massive bodies since the ground was all rock, and there wasn't enough wood to burn them. The cold was so severe that the ink in my pen froze, and I had to keep my inkstand under my pillow at night.

[Footnote 4: This party marched towards India on the 14th November, followed by a second convoy of sickly men on the 27th idem. On this latter date the strength of the 1st and 2nd Divisions, Kabul Field Force, and the Reserve at Peshawar was as follows:

[Footnote 4: This group moved towards India on November 14th, followed by a second convoy of unwell men on the 27th of the same month. On that date, the strength of the 1st and 2nd Divisions, Kabul Field Force, and the Reserve in Peshawar was as follows:

  British Force Native Force Total
Officers Rank &
File
British
Officers
Troops
1st Division, at and around Kabul

2nd Division, on the Khyber line


Reserve at Peshawar

   100

     90
  2,783

  2,385
     71

   118
  5,060

  8,590
  8,014

11,183
   190

     55
  5,168

  1,952
   189

     49
13,650

  4,654
19,197

  6,710
   245   7,120    238 18,304 25,907

Total:—                483 British officers.
                          7,120 British troops.
                        18,304 Native troops.
Grand total:— 25,907 with 60 guns, 24 with 1st Division, and 36 with 2nd Division and the Reserve.]

Total:— 483 British officers.
7,120 British troops.
18,304 Native troops.
Grand total:— 25,907 with 60 guns, 24 with 1st Division, and 36 with 2nd Division and the Reserve.]



FOOTNOTES, CHAPTER LV

[Footnote 1: Fragrance of the universe.]

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Scent of the universe.

[Footnote 2: Viz., Logar, Zurmat, the Mangal and Jadran districts, and the intervening Ghilzai country.]

[Footnote 2: For example, Logar, Zurmat, the Mangal and Jadran districts, and the area in between known as Ghilzai country.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Kohistan.

[Footnote 4: Maidan and Ghazni.]

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Maidan and Ghazni.

[Footnote 5: Macpherson had with him the following troops: 4 guns R.H.A.; 4 guns Mountain battery; 1 squadron 9th Lancers; 2 squadrons 14th Bengal Lancers; 401 rifles 67th Foot; 509 rifles 3rd Sikhs; 393 rifles 5th Ghurkas.]

[Footnote 5: Macpherson had the following troops with him: 4 R.H.A. guns; 4 Mountain battery guns; 1 squadron of the 9th Lancers; 2 squadrons of the 14th Bengal Lancers; 401 rifles from the 67th Foot; 509 rifles from the 3rd Sikhs; and 393 rifles from the 5th Ghurkas.

[Footnote 6: Baker's column consisted of: 4 guns Mountain battery; 3 troops 5th Punjab Cavalry; 25 Sappers and Miners; 450 rifles 92nd Highlanders; 450 rifles 5th Punjab Infantry.]

[Footnote 6: Baker's column included: 4 guns from a mountain battery; 3 troops from the 5th Punjab Cavalry; 25 Sappers and Miners; 450 rifles from the 92nd Highlanders; 450 rifles from the 5th Punjab Infantry.

[Footnote 7: Now Lieutenant-General Sir William Lockhart, K.C.B., K.C.S.I.]

[Footnote 7: Now Lieutenant-General Sir William Lockhart, K.C.B., K.C.S.I.

[Footnote 8: On the 11th December, the troops at and around Kabul amounted to 6,352 men and 20 guns, which were thus disposed:

[Footnote 8: On December 11th, the troops in and around Kabul totaled 6,352 soldiers and 20 artillery pieces, organized as follows:

  Men. Guns.
Baker's column 1,325      4
Macpherson's column 1,492      4
Massy's column    351      4
At Sherpur 3,184      8
  ——–    —
  6,352    20
There were besides at Butkhak and Lataband 1,343      2
And the Guides Corps, which reached Sherpur}    
on the evening of the 11th December                 }    679  
  ——–    —
Total 8,374    22    ]

[Footnote 9: The memorandum was as follows:

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ The memo was as follows:

'Brigadier-General Massy will start at eight a.m. to-morrow with a squadron of Cavalry, join the Cavalry and Horse Artillery now out under Colonel Gordon, taking command thereof, and operating towards Arghandeh in conjunction with Brigadier-General Macpherson. The troops to return in the evening.' ]

'Brigadier-General Massy will leave at 8 a.m. tomorrow with a squad of cavalry, join the cavalry and horse artillery currently under Colonel Gordon, take command, and work towards Arghandeh alongside Brigadier-General Macpherson. The troops will return in the evening.'

[Footnote 10: Kizilbashes are Persians by nationality and Shiah Mahomedans by religion. They formed the vanguard of Nadir Shah's invading army, and after his death a number of them settled in Kabul where they exercise considerable influence.]

[Footnote 10: Kizilbashes are Persians by nationality and Shia Muslims by religion. They were at the forefront of Nadir Shah's invading army, and after his death, many of them settled in Kabul, where they hold significant influence.

[Footnote 11: Stewart-Mackenzie's horse was shot, and fell on him, and he was extricated with the greatest difficulty.]

[Footnote 11: Stewart-Mackenzie's horse was shot and fell on him, and he was freed with a lot of effort.

[Footnote 12: Mazr Ali was given the order of merit for his brave action, and is now a Native officer in the regiment.]

[Footnote 12: Mazr Ali received the order of merit for his courageous actions and is now a Native officer in the regiment.

[Footnote 13: Our Chaplain (Adams), who had accompanied me throughout the day, behaved in this particular place with conspicuous gallantry. Seeing a wounded man of the 9th Lancers staggering towards him, Adams dismounted, and tried to lift the man on to his own charger. Unfortunately, the mare, a very valuable animal, broke loose, and was never seen again. Adams, however, managed to support the Lancer until he was able to make him over to some of his own comrades.

[Footnote 13: Our Chaplain (Adams), who had been with me all day, displayed notable bravery in this situation. When he saw a wounded soldier from the 9th Lancers stumbling towards him, Adams got off his horse and attempted to lift the soldier onto his mount. Unfortunately, the mare, a very valuable horse, broke free and was never seen again. However, Adams was able to support the Lancer until he could hand him over to some fellow soldiers.

Adams rejoined me in time to assist two more of the 9th who were struggling under their horses at the bottom of the ditch. Without a moment's hesitation, Adams jumped into the ditch. He was an unusually powerful man, and by sheer strength dragged the Lancers clear of their horses. The Afghans meanwhile had reached Bhagwana, and were so close to the ditch that I thought my friend the padre could not possibly escape. I called out to him to look after himself, but he paid no attention to my warnings until he had pulled the almost exhausted Lancers to the top of the slippery bank. Adams received the Victoria Cross for his conduct on this occasion.]

Adams joined me just in time to help two more members of the 9th who were struggling under their horses at the bottom of the ditch. Without a second thought, Adams jumped into the ditch. He was an exceptionally strong guy, and with sheer strength, he pulled the Lancers free from their horses. Meanwhile, the Afghans had reached Bhagwana and were so close to the ditch that I thought my friend the padre would surely get caught. I shouted to him to take care of himself, but he ignored my warnings until he managed to pull the almost exhausted Lancers to the top of the slippery bank. Adams was awarded the Victoria Cross for his actions on this occasion.

[Footnote 14: These men were much impeded by their long boots and their swords dangling between their legs; the sight, indeed, of Cavalry soldiers trying to defend themselves on foot without a firearm confirmed the opinion I had formed during the Mutiny, as to the desirability for the carbine being slung on the man's back when going into action. Lieutenant-Colonel Bushman (Colonel Cleland's successor) curiously enough had brought with him from England a sling which admitted of this being done, and also of the carbine being carried in the bucket on all ordinary occasions. This pattern was adopted, and during the remainder of the campaign the men of the 9th Lancers placed their carbines on their backs whenever the enemy were reported to be in sight. At the same time I authorized the adoption of an arrangement—also brought to my notice by Colonel Bushman—by which the sword was fastened to the saddle instead of round the man's body. This mode of wearing the sword was for some time strenuously opposed in this country, but its utility could not fail to be recognized, and in 1891 an order was issued sanctioning its adoption by all mounted troops.]

[Footnote 14: These men were greatly hindered by their long boots and their swords hanging between their legs; the sight of cavalry soldiers trying to defend themselves on foot without a firearm really confirmed the opinion I had formed during the Mutiny about the need for a carbine to be slung on a man’s back when going into action. Lieutenant-Colonel Bushman (Colonel Cleland's successor) had interestingly brought with him from England a sling that allowed this to happen, enabling the carbine to be carried in the bucket during normal situations. This design was adopted, and throughout the remainder of the campaign, the men of the 9th Lancers slung their carbines on their backs whenever the enemy was spotted. At the same time, I approved the use of a system—also suggested by Colonel Bushman—where the sword was secured to the saddle instead of being worn around the man's body. This way of carrying the sword faced considerable opposition in this country for some time, but its usefulness could not be denied, and in 1891, an order was issued allowing all mounted troops to adopt it.



FOOTNOTES, CHAPTER LVI

[Footnote 1: His force consisted of 4 guns, Field Artillery; 4 Mountain guns; 1 squadron 9th Lancers; 5th Punjab Cavalry; 6 companies 92nd Highlanders; 7 companies Guides; and 300 3rd Sikhs; and subsequently it was strengthened by 150 of the 5th Punjab Infantry.]

[Footnote 1: His force included 4 Field Artillery guns, 4 Mountain guns, 1 squadron of the 9th Lancers, the 5th Punjab Cavalry, 6 companies of the 92nd Highlanders, 7 companies of Guides, and 300 from the 3rd Sikhs; it was later reinforced by 150 from the 5th Punjab Infantry.

[Footnote 2: Dick Cunyngham received the Victoria Cross for conspicuous gallantry and coolness on this occasion.]

[Footnote 2: Dick Cunyngham was awarded the Victoria Cross for outstanding bravery and composure in this situation.

[Footnote 3: This gallant non-commissioned officer was killed the following day.]

[Footnote 3: This brave sergeant was killed the next day.

[Footnote 4: Notwithstanding that his wound was most severe, Captain Chisholme remained in the saddle, and brought the regiment out of action.]

[Footnote 4: Despite his serious injury, Captain Chisholme stayed in the saddle and led the regiment out of action.

[Footnote 5: Clarke never recovered the loss of this post. He and I had been cadets together at Sandhurst, and I often visited him while he was in hospital at Sherpur. He was apparently suffering from no disease, but gradually faded away, and died not long after he reached India.]

[Footnote 5: Clarke never got over losing this position. He and I were cadets together at Sandhurst, and I frequently visited him when he was in the hospital at Sherpur. He didn't seem to have any illness, but he slowly weakened and passed away shortly after arriving in India.

[Footnote 6: General Baker, in his despatch, stated that 'No blame for the loss of these guns is in any way to be attached to the officers and men of No. 2 Mountain Battery.... Every credit is due to Captain Swinley, the late Lieutenant Montanaro, and Lieutenant Liddell, and the several Native officers, non-commissioned officers and men composing the gun detachments, for the gallant manner in which they stood to their guns to the last, and it was only on the sudden rush of this overwhelming force of the enemy that they had to retire with the loss of two guns.'

[Footnote 6: General Baker, in his report, said that 'No blame for the loss of these weapons should be placed on the officers and men of No. 2 Mountain Battery.... All credit goes to Captain Swinley, the late Lieutenant Montanaro, Lieutenant Liddell, and the various Native officers, non-commissioned officers, and men in the gun detachments, for the courageous way they operated their guns until the end. It was only due to the sudden onslaught of this overwhelming enemy force that they had to pull back, resulting in the loss of two guns.'

Of the men composing the gun detachments, one was killed and six wounded, and Surgeon-Major Joshua Duke was specially mentioned for his attention to the wounded under heavy fire.]

Of the men in the gun detachments, one was killed and six were injured, and Surgeon-Major Joshua Duke was specifically mentioned for his assistance to the wounded under heavy fire.

[Footnote 7: The same officer who so gallantly met his death during the recent Chitral campaign, while commanding the regiment of which he was so justly proud, and in which two brave brothers had been killed before him—Quinton at Delhi, and Wigram during the first phase of the Afghan war.]

[Footnote 7: The same officer who met his end heroically during the recent Chitral campaign, while leading the regiment he was so justly proud of, and in which two brave brothers had already lost their lives before him—Quinton at Delhi, and Wigram during the initial phase of the Afghan war.



FOOTNOTES, CHAPTER LVII

[Footnote 1: Four and a half miles.]

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ 4.5 miles.

[Footnote 2: The committee consisted of Brigadier-General T. D. Baker, Lieutenant Colonel Æ. Perkins, commanding Royal Engineers, and Lieutenant-Colonel B. Gordon, commanding Royal Artillery.]

[Footnote 2: The committee was made up of Brigadier-General T. D. Baker, Lieutenant Colonel Æ. Perkins, head of the Royal Engineers, and Lieutenant-Colonel B. Gordon, in charge of the Royal Artillery.

[Footnote 3: A curious exemplification of the passive courage and indifference to danger of some Natives was the behaviour of an old Mahomedan servant of mine. At this juncture, just at the time when the fight was hottest, and I was receiving reports every few seconds from the officers commanding the several posts, Eli Bux (a brother of the man who had been with me throughout the Mutiny) whispered in my ear that my bath was ready. He was quite unmoved by the din and shots, and was carrying on his ordinary duties as if nothing at all unusual was occurring.]

[Footnote 3: A curious example of the calmness and indifference to danger shown by some locals was the behavior of an old Muslim servant of mine. At that moment, right when the fighting was at its peak, and I was getting updates every few seconds from the officers in charge of various posts, Eli Bux (a brother of the man who had been with me throughout the Mutiny) leaned in and said that my bath was ready. He was completely unaffected by the noise and gunfire, going about his usual tasks as if nothing unusual was happening.

[Footnote 4: This hospital was admirably managed, and was attended by a large number of patients, half of whom were women. The disease moat prevalent in Kabul waa ophthalmia, caused by dust, dirt, and exposure, while cataract and other affections of the eye were very common. Dr. Owen, amongst his other many qualifications, excelled as an oculist, and his marvellous cures attracted sufferers from all parts of Afghanistan.]

[Footnote 4: This hospital was impressively run and had a large number of patients, half of whom were women. The most common illness in Kabul was ophthalmia, caused by dust, dirt, and exposure, while cataracts and other eye issues were also very frequent. Dr. Owen, in addition to his many qualifications, was exceptional as an eye doctor, and his amazing cures drew patients from all over Afghanistan.



FOOTNOTES, CHAPTER LVIII

[Footnote 1: In reply to a reference made to me on the subject, I represented that, before operations could be undertaken on so extensive a scale as was proposed, it would be necessary to reinforce the Kabul garrison and the several posts on the Kyber line by:

[Footnote 1: In response to a mention of me regarding this topic, I stated that, before carrying out operations on such a large scale as suggested, it would be essential to strengthen the Kabul garrison and the various posts along the Kyber line by:

One battery of Horse or Field Artillery.
One Heavy battery.
One Mountain battery.
A detachment of Garrison Artillery.
A brigade of Cavalry.
Three companies of Sappers and Miners.
Two regiments of British Infantry.
Six regiments of Native Infantry.
Drafts sufficient to raise each Infantry regiment at
Kabul to 800 men.

One battery of Horse or Field Artillery.
One Heavy battery.
One Mountain battery.
A detachment of Garrison Artillery.
A brigade of Cavalry.
Three companies of Sappers and Miners.
Two regiments of British Infantry.
Six regiments of Native Infantry.
Drafts sufficient to raise each Infantry regiment at
Kabul to 800 men.

This was agreed to; the reinforcements were sent up by degrees, and a second division was formed at Kabul, to the command of which Major-General J. Ross,[*] C.B., was appointed.]

This was agreed upon; the reinforcements were sent gradually, and a second division was established in Kabul, with Major-General J. Ross,[*] C.B., appointed to command it.

[Note *: Now General Sir John Ross, G.C.B.]

[Note *: Now General Sir John Ross, G.C.B.]

[Footnote 2: As the deportation of Yakub Khan was believed to be one of the chief causes of recent disturbances, and as a powerful party in the country still looked forward to having him back as their Ruler, I was directed to make it clear to his adherents that the ex-Amir would never be allowed to return to Afghanistan, and that his abdication must be, as he himself at the time wished it to be, considered irrevocable. In support of this decision, I was informed that the unanimous verdict of guilty of murder, recorded against Yakub Khan by Colonel Macgregor's Commission, was substantially endorsed by the Chief Justice of Calcutta and the Advocate-General; and that, although other authorities who had considered the evidence did not quite go so far as these two high legal functionaries, the general conclusion come to was that, if the Amir did not connive at the massacre of the Mission, he made no attempt whatever to interpose on its behalf, and that his whole conduct on that occasion betrayed a culpable indifference to the fate of Sir Louis Cavagnari and his companions, and a total disregard of the solemn obligation which he had contracted with the British Government.]

[Footnote 2: As the deportation of Yakub Khan was seen as one of the main reasons for the recent unrest, and since a strong faction in the country still hoped to see him return as their ruler, I was instructed to make it clear to his supporters that the former Amir would never be allowed to come back to Afghanistan, and that his abdication must be, as he himself once wished, considered final. To back up this decision, I was told that the unanimous guilty verdict for murder against Yakub Khan by Colonel Macgregor's Commission was strongly supported by the Chief Justice of Calcutta and the Advocate-General; and that, while other officials who reviewed the evidence didn’t fully agree with these two high-ranking legal authorities, the general consensus was that if the Amir didn’t actively participate in the massacre of the Mission, he certainly didn’t do anything to stop it, and his behavior during that time showed a shocking disregard for the fate of Sir Louis Cavagnari and his associates, as well as a complete neglect of the serious obligation he had made with the British Government.

[Footnote 3: I had released the Mustaufi from confinement when the general amnesty was published on the 26th December, and he had subsequently been usefully employed assisting the political officers in revenue matters. I did not suppose that he had any great love for the British, but he was anxious to see us out of the country, and was wise enough to know that no armed opposition could effect his purpose, and that it could only be accomplished by the establishment of a stable government, under a Ruler that we could accept.]

[Footnote 3: I had released the Mustaufi from imprisonment when the general amnesty was announced on December 26th, and he had since been actively helping the political officers with revenue issues. I didn't think he had any strong feelings for the British, but he wanted us to leave the country and was smart enough to realize that no armed resistance would achieve his goal; it could only be done by creating a stable government under a leader we could agree upon.

[Footnote 4: Now Colonel Sir West Ridgeway, K.C.B.]

Now Colonel Sir West Ridgeway, K.C.B.

[Footnote 5: Abdur Rahman's letter is given in the Appendix*.

[Footnote 5: Abdur Rahman's letter can be found in the Appendix*.

See __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__]

[Footnote 6: This letter from the Foreign Secretary to Mr. Griffin is given in full in the Appendix*.

[Footnote 6: This letter from the Foreign Secretary to Mr. Griffin is included in its entirety in the Appendix*.

See __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__]



FOOTNOTES, CHAPTER LIX

[Footnote 1: Sir Donald Stewart's division was replaced at Kandahar by troops from Bombay.]

[Footnote 1: Sir Donald Stewart's division was substituted at Kandahar by soldiers from Bombay.]

[Footnote 2: The part of the report which deals with economic details is given in the Appendix*; the military portion is omitted, as it was only intended for Sir Donald Stewart's information at the time.]

[Footnote 2: The section of the report that covers economic details is included in the Appendix*; the military part is left out, as it was only meant for Sir Donald Stewart's awareness at the time.]

See __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__]

[Footnote 3: Of these, more than 3,000 were doolie-bearers, and nearly 8,000 were saices of Native Cavalry regiments, and men belonging to the Transport and other Departments.]

[Footnote 3: Of these, over 3,000 were doolie-bearers, and almost 8,000 were saices from Native Cavalry regiments, along with men from the Transport and other Departments.]

[Footnote 4: Now Major-General Sir Robert Low, G.C.B.]

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Now Major-General Sir Robert Low, G.C.B.

[Footnote 5: Colonel Macgregor and Lieutenant-Colonel Chapman had changed places, the former joining Sir Donald Stewart as Chief of the Staff, and the latter taking up the same position with me.]

[Footnote 5: Colonel Macgregor and Lieutenant-Colonel Chapman switched roles, with Macgregor becoming Chief of Staff for Sir Donald Stewart, while Chapman assumed the same role with me.

[Footnote 6: Lieutenant-General Primrose succeeded Sir Donald Stewart in command of the troops at Kandahar.]

[Footnote 6: Lieutenant-General Primrose took over from Sir Donald Stewart in leading the troops at Kandahar.]



FOOTNOTES, CHAPTER LX

[Footnote 1: Sirdar Sher Ali had been appointed Governor of Kandahar by the Amir Yakub Khan after the treaty of Gandamak, and had since assisted Sir Donald Stewart in the civil administration of the province.]

[Footnote 1: Sirdar Sher Ali was appointed Governor of Kandahar by Amir Yakub Khan after the Gandamak treaty and had since helped Sir Donald Stewart with the civil administration of the province.

[Footnote 2: Local Native levies.]

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Local Native taxes.

  Killed Wounded and
Missing
British officers      20        9
British troops    290      48
Native troops    624    118
     —–    —–
     934    175
         Total, 1,109

Of the regimental followers 331 were killed and 7 were missing; 455 transport followers and drivers were reported as killed or missing, but a number of these, being Afghans, probably joined the enemy.

Of the regimental followers, 331 were killed and 7 were missing; 455 transport followers and drivers were reported as killed or missing, but many of them, being Afghans, probably joined the enemy.

A large quantity of arms and ammunition was lost, including over 1,000 rifles and carbines, and 600 or 700 swords and bayonets.

A lot of weapons and ammo were lost, including more than 1,000 rifles and carbines, and 600 or 700 swords and bayonets.

201 horses were killed, and 1,676 camels, 355 ponies, 24 mules, 291 donkeys, and 79 bullocks, were not forthcoming.]

201 horses were killed, and 1,676 camels, 355 ponies, 24 mules, 291 donkeys, and 79 bullocks were not available.

[Footnote 4: Afterwards General Sir Robert Phayre, G.C.B.]

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Later General Sir Robert Phayre, G.C.B.

[Footnote 5: General Phayre reported on the 28th July that there were only seven Native regiments in Baluchistan, three of which were required for the lines of communication, leaving only four available for Field Service; and that a battalion of British Infantry and a battery of Field Artillery required for his column were a long way off, being still in Sind.]

[Footnote 5: General Phayre reported on July 28th that there were only seven native regiments in Baluchistan, three of which were needed for the lines of communication, leaving just four available for field service; and that a battalion of British Infantry and a battery of field artillery needed for his unit were far away, still in Sind.

[Footnote 6: Now General Sir George Greaves, G.C.B., G.C.M.C.]

[Footnote 6: Now General Sir George Greaves, G.C.B., G.C.M.C.

Each British soldier was allowed for kit and camp-equipage,
including great-coat and waterproof sheet
30 lbs.
Each Native soldier 20  "
Each public and private follower 10  "
Each European officer   1 mule.
Every eight officers for mess   1  "
Each staff-officer for office purposes 80 lbs.
Each Native officer 30  "

[Footnote 8: The amount of supplies taken with the force was as follows:

[Footnote 8: The amount of supplies taken with the force was as follows:

FOR BRITISH TROOPS.  
Bread-stuff   5 days.
Preserved vegetables 15  "
Tea, sugar, salt, and rum 30  "


FOR NATIVE TROOPS
AND FOLLOWERS.
 
Flour   5 days
Dal and salt 30  "
Rum for spirit-drinking men   8  "

Sheep, ten days' supply for British troops and four issues for Native troops, with 20 per cent. spare. Nearly 5,000 sheep were purchased on the march. N.B.—There are no horned cattle in Afghanistan, except those used for the plough or transport.

Sheep, enough to supply British troops for ten days and four issues for Native troops, with a 20 percent surplus. Almost 5,000 sheep were bought during the march. N.B.—There are no horned cattle in Afghanistan, except for those used for plowing or transport.

In addition to the above, a small reserve of lime-juice, pea-soup, and tinned meat was taken; these proved most useful, and might have been increased with advantage had carriage been available.

In addition to the above, a small supply of lime juice, pea soup, and canned meat was included; these items were very useful and could have been increased beneficially if transportation had been available.

I gave strict orders that the reserve of bread-stuff, flour, and sheep was never to be used without my sanction, and that wherever possible food for the day's consumption was to be purchased. We had occasionally to trench upon the reserve, but we nearly made it up at other places, and we arrived at Kandahar with three days' supplies in hand.]

I gave clear instructions that the supply of bread, flour, and sheep should never be used without my approval, and that, whenever possible, food for daily needs should be bought. We sometimes had to dip into the reserves, but we mostly made up for it elsewhere, and we got to Kandahar with three days' worth of supplies on hand.

[Footnote 9: The followers consisted of:

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ The followers included:

Doolie-bearers 2,192
Transport and other departments 4,698
Private servants, and saices of Native Cavalry regiments 1,244
  ——
Total 8,134
DETAIL OF FORCE.

1ST INFANTRY BRIGADE.

  British. Native.
92nd Highlanders   651   —
23rd Pioneers   —   701
24th Punjab Native Infantry   —   575
2nd Gurkhas   —   501
   —–  ——
Total   651 1,777


2ND INFANTRY BRIGADE.

  British. Native.
72nd Highlanders   787   —
2nd Sikh Infantry   —   612
3rd Sikh Infantry   —   570
5th Gurkhas   —   561
   —– ——
Total   787 1,743


3RD INFANTRY BRIGADE.

  British Native.
60th Rifles, 2nd Battalion   616   —
15th Sikhs   —   650
25th Punjab Native Infantry   —   629
4th Gurkhas   —   637
   —–  —–
Total   616 1,916


CAVALRY BRIGADE.

  British Native.
9th Queen's Royal Lancers   318   —
3rd Bengal Cavalry   —   394
3rd Punjab Cavalry   —   408
Central India Horse   —   495
   —–  ——
Total   318 1,297


ARTILLERY DIVISION.

  British. Native. Guns.
6-8th Royal Artillery—screw guns     95   139      6
11-9th Royal Artillery     95   139      6
No. 2 Mountain Battery    —   140      6
    —–  —–     —
Total   190   418     18


TOTAL OF FORCE.

British troops 2,562
Native     " 7,151
British officers   273
Guns     18
Cavalry horses 1,779
Artillery mules   450

Two hundred rounds of ammunition were taken for each Infantry soldier: seventy rounds were carried by each man, thirty rounds were in reserve with the regiment, and a hundred rounds in the Field Park.

Two hundred rounds of ammo were allocated for each infantry soldier: seventy rounds were carried by each person, thirty rounds were kept in reserve with the regiment, and a hundred rounds were stored in the Field Park.

Each Mountain battery had:

Each Mountain battery had:

Common shell   264
Double shell     60
Shrapnel shell   144
Star shell     24
Case shot     48
  —–
Total   540 rounds.

And thirty rounds per gun in the Field Park.]

And thirty rounds for each gun in the Field Park.]

[Footnote 11: British troops were allowed ponies at the rate of 2 per cent, of strength. Native troops were allowed ponies at the rate of 2½ per cent. of strength. Followers were allowed ponies at the rate of 1½ per cent. of strength.]

[Footnote 11: British troops were permitted ponies at a rate of 2% of their strength. Native troops were permitted ponies at a rate of 2.5% of their strength. Followers were permitted ponies at a rate of 1.5% of their strength.

  Yabus,
or
Afghan
ponies.
Mules. Indian
ponies.
Donkeys. Camels.
Number of animals
that left Kabul
Purchased during
the march°
Number of animals
that
reached Kandahar
Casualties during
the march

  1,589

       35


  1,179

     445

  4,510

         1


  4,293

     218

  1,244

     —


  1,138

     106

     912

     208


  1,078

       42
         6*

     171


     177
 

[Note*: With hospital equipment.]

[Note*: With hospital gear.]

[Note°: Only twice had animals to be taken against the will of the owners, and on both occasions the matter was amicably settled in the end.]

[Note°: Animals were only taken against their owners' will twice, and in both cases, the situation was resolved amicably in the end.]

[Footnote 13: Major E. Hastings, Captain West Ridgeway, Major Euan Smith, C.S.I., and Major M. Prothero.]

[Footnote 13: Major E. Hastings, Captain West Ridgeway, Major Euan Smith, C.S.I., and Major M. Prothero.

[Footnote 14: Major A. Badcock, Captain A. Rind, and Lieutenants C. Fitzgerald, H. Hawkes, and H. Lyons Montgomery, all of the Bengal Staff Corps.]

[Footnote 14: Major A. Badcock, Captain A. Rind, and Lieutenants C. Fitzgerald, H. Hawkes, and H. Lyons Montgomery, all from the Bengal Staff Corps.]

[Footnote 15: Lieutenant-Colonel R. Low, Bengal Staff Corps; Captain W. Wynter, 33rd Foot; Captains G. H. Eliot and C. R. Macgregor, Bengal Staff Corps; Lieutenants L. Booth, 33rd Foot, H. Elverson, 2nd Foot, R. Fisher, 10th Hussars, R. Wilson, 10th Hussars, and C. Robertson, 8th Foot.]

[Footnote 15: Lieutenant-Colonel R. Low, Bengal Staff Corps; Captain W. Wynter, 33rd Foot; Captains G. H. Eliot and C. R. Macgregor, Bengal Staff Corps; Lieutenants L. Booth, 33rd Foot, H. Elverson, 2nd Foot, R. Fisher, 10th Hussars, R. Wilson, 10th Hussars, and C. Robertson, 8th Foot.]



FOOTNOTES, CHAPTER LXI

[Footnote 1: The garrison consisted of 2 guns of C/2, Royal Artillery, 145 rifles of the 66th Foot, 100 of the 3nd Sind Horse, and the 2nd Baluch Regiment, 639 strong.]

[Footnote 1: The garrison had 2 guns from C/2, Royal Artillery, 145 rifles from the 66th Foot, 100 from the 3rd Sind Horse, and the 2nd Baluch Regiment, totaling 639 personnel.

[Footnote 2: Now Lieutenant-General Sir Oriel Tanner, K.C.B.]

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Now Lieutenant-General Sir Oriel Tanner, K.C.B.

[Footnote 3: Estimate of daily requirements for the Kabul-Kandahar Field Force and the Kelat-i-Ghilzai garrison:

[Footnote 3: Estimate of daily needs for the Kabul-Kandahar Field Force and the Kelat-i-Ghilzai garrison:

Europeans 3,200
Native troops 8,000
Followers 8,500
Horses 2,300

Transport—yabus 1,592, mules and ponies 5,926, camels 400, donkeys 400.

Transport—yabus 1,592, mules and ponies 5,926, camels 400, donkeys 400.

Meat 4,000 lbs.
Bread-stuff      40 maunds.*
Vegetables 4,000 lbs.
Rice    800  "
Salt    133  "
Sugar    600  "
Tea    150  "
Rum, 25 per cent.      80 gallons.
Atta    320 maunds.
Dall      51½  "
Ghee      19¼  "
Salt        8½  "
Grain    700  "

A. R. BADCOCK, Major,               
Deputy Commissary-General. KELAT-I-GHILZAI,
     24th August, 1880.

A. R. BADCOCK, Major,               
Deputy Commissary-General. KELAT-I-GHILZAI,
     August 24, 1880.



Note *: A maund is equivalent to 80 lbs.     ]

Note *: A maund equals 80 lbs.     ]

[Footnote 4: The effective garrison consisted of 1,000 British soldiers, 3,000 Native soldiers, and fifteen Field guns.]

[Footnote 4: The effective garrison included 1,000 British soldiers, 3,000 Native soldiers, and fifteen field guns.

[Footnote 5: One and all bore testimony to the unfailing good behaviour and creditable bearing of the Royal Artillery and the Bombay Sappers and Miners, not only during the investment, but in the very trying time of the retreat from Maiwand.]

[Footnote 5: One and everyone testified to the consistently good conduct and respectable demeanor of the Royal Artillery and the Bombay Sappers and Miners, not just during the siege, but also during the challenging time of the retreat from Maiwand.

[Footnote 6: The walls had an average height of 30 feet, and breadth of 15 feet on the north and east fronts.]

[Footnote 6: The walls were about 30 feet tall and 15 feet wide on the north and east sides.

[Footnote 7: Two Royal Artillery guns, 3rd Bengal Cavalry, and 15th Sikhs. Lieutenant-Colonel Chapman accompanied the party, and was of great assistance to Brigadier-General Gough.]

[Footnote 7: Two Royal Artillery guns, 3rd Bengal Cavalry, and 15th Sikhs. Lieutenant-Colonel Chapman joined the group and provided valuable support to Brigadier-General Gough.



FOOTNOTES, CHAPTER LXII

[Footnote 1: Brownlow's death was a great loss, for throughout the war he had frequently distinguished himself as a leader—at the Peiwar Kotal, during the operations round Kabul, and notably on the 14th December, when he won the admiration of the whole force by his brilliant conduct in the attack on the Asmai heights.]

[Footnote 1: Brownlow's death was a huge loss because he had consistently proven himself as a leader throughout the war—at the Peiwar Kotal, during the operations around Kabul, and especially on December 14th, when he earned the admiration of the entire force with his exceptional performance in the attack on the Asmai heights.

[Footnote 2: The following Native officers, British and Native non-commissioned officers, and Native soldiers were brought forward as having been very conspicuous during this part of the fight:

[Footnote 2: The following Native officers, British and Native non-commissioned officers, and Native soldiers were highlighted for their noticeable contributions during this part of the fight:

Colour-Sergeant G. Jacobs 72nd Highlanders.
Colour-Sergeant R. Lauder    "            "
Lance-Corporal J. Gordon    "            "
Subadar-Major Gurbaj Sing 2nd Sikhs.
Jemadar Alla Sing    "      "
Naick Dir Sing    "      "
Sepoy Hakim    "      "
Sepoy Taj Sing    "      "
Sepoy Pertap Sing    "      "
Sepoy Bir Sing    "      "

[Footnote 3: During this engagement the following officers and men were specially remarked for their gallantry:

[Footnote 3: During this engagement, the following officers and men were specifically noted for their bravery:

Major G. White 92nd Highlanders.
Lieutenant C. Douglas    "            "
Corporal William McGillvray    "            "
Private Peter Grieve    "            "
Private D. Grey    "            "
Major Sullivan Becher 2nd Gurkhas.
Havildar Gopal Borah    "        "
Sepoy Inderbir Lama    "        "
Sepoy Tikaram Kwas    "        "          ]

[Footnote 4: These guns were presented to me by the Indian Government, and are now at the Royal Hospital Dublin.]

[Footnote 4: These guns were given to me by the Indian Government, and are now at the Royal Hospital Dublin.]

[Footnote 5: The third British officer killed was Captain Straton, 22nd Foot, Superintendent of Army Signalling, a most accomplished officer, under whose direction signalling as applied to Field Service reached a wonderful pitch of perfection. His energy knew no difficulties, and his enthusiasm was beyond praise.]

[Footnote 5: The third British officer killed was Captain Straton, 22nd Foot, Superintendent of Army Signalling, a highly skilled officer, under whose leadership signalling in Field Service achieved an impressive level of perfection. His energy faced no challenges, and his enthusiasm was remarkable.

[Footnote 6: The ammunition expended by the Kabul-Kandahar Field Force on the 31st August and 1st September was:

[Footnote 6: The ammunition used by the Kabul-Kandahar Field Force on August 31st and September 1st was:

  Rounds.

   
Gun 102 Shrapnel shell 78
 

 

Common     "

24

Rifle 57,705 Martini-Henry 15,129
    Snider 42,576

and in addition 313 rounds were fired by the Artillery, and 4,971 rounds by the Infantry of the Kandahar Garrison.]

and in addition, 313 rounds were fired by the artillery, and 4,971 rounds by the infantry of the Kandahar garrison.]

[Footnote 7: The 72nd Highlanders and 5th Gurkhas were brigaded together throughout the campaign, and at their return to India the latter regiment presented the former with a shield bearing the following inscription:

[Footnote 7: The 72nd Highlanders and 5th Gurkhas were grouped together throughout the campaign, and upon their return to India, the Gurkhas gifted the Highlanders a shield with the following inscription:

FROM THE
MEN OF THE 5TH GURKHAS
TO THE
MEN OF THE 72ND (DUKE OF ALBANY'S OWN) HIGHLANDERS,
IN REMEMBRANCE OF
THE AFGHAN CAMPAIGN, 1878 TO 1880.

FROM THE
MEN OF THE 5TH GURKHAS
TO THE
MEN OF THE 72ND (DUKE OF ALBANY'S OWN) HIGHLANDERS,
IN REMEMBRANCE OF
THE AFGHAN CAMPAIGN, 1878 TO 1880.

The gift was entirely spontaneous, and was subscribed for by the Native officers, non-commissioned officers, and men.

The gift was completely spontaneous and was contributed by the Native officers, non-commissioned officers, and soldiers.

In return, the non-commissioned officers and men of the 72nd gave the 5th Gurkhas a very handsome ebony, silver-mounted Drum-Major's staff.]

In exchange, the non-commissioned officers and soldiers of the 72nd gave the 5th Gurkhas a beautiful ebony Drum-Major's staff with silver fittings.



FOOTNOTES, CHAPTER LXIII

[Footnote 1: Now Sir Mount-Stuart Grant-Duff, G.C.S.I.]

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Now Sir Mount-Stuart Grant-Duff, G.C.S.I.

[Footnote 2: Now Sir Charles Bernard, K.C.S.I.]

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Now Sir Charles Bernard, K.C.S.I.

[Footnote 3: Lieutenant-Colonel G.T. Pretyman, R.A., was Assistant Military Secretary until 1884, when he was succeeded by Lieutenant-Colonel R. Pole-Carew, Coldstream Guards. Lieutenant Neville Chamberlain, Central India Horse, and Captain Ian Hamilton, the Gordon Highlanders, were Aides-de-camp.]

[Footnote 3: Lieutenant-Colonel G.T. Pretyman, R.A., served as the Assistant Military Secretary until 1884, when he was followed by Lieutenant-Colonel R. Pole-Carew from the Coldstream Guards. Lieutenant Neville Chamberlain from the Central India Horse and Captain Ian Hamilton from the Gordon Highlanders were Aides-de-camp.

[Footnote 4: The finest of the Gassapa falls.]

The best of the Gassapa falls.



FOOTNOTES, CHAPTER LXIV

[Footnote 1: A Native corruption of the word 'English.']

[Footnote 1: A local twist on the word 'English.'



FOOTNOTES, CHAPTER LXV

[Footnote 1: Now General Sir Harry Prendergast, V.C., K.C.B.]

[Footnote 1: Now General Sir Harry Prendergast, V.C., K.C.B.

[Footnote 2: The ultimatum informed King Thebaw that the British Government insisted upon an Envoy being received at Mandalay, with free access to the King, without having to submit to any humiliating ceremony; that proceedings against the trading company would not be permitted; that a British Agent, with a suitable guard of honour and steamer for his personal protection, must be permanently stationed at the Burmese capital; that the Burmese Government must regulate their external relations in accordance with British advice; and that proper facilities must be granted for the opening up of British trade with China viâ Bhamo.]

[Footnote 2: The ultimatum told King Thebaw that the British Government insisted on having an Envoy welcomed in Mandalay, with unrestricted access to the King, without needing to go through any degrading ceremony; that no actions against the trading company would be allowed; that a British Agent, with appropriate security and a steamer for his personal safety, must be permanently stationed in the Burmese capital; that the Burmese Government must manage their foreign relations based on British advice; and that proper arrangements must be made to facilitate British trade with China via Bhamo.

[Footnote 3: The force consisted of 364 seamen and 69 Marines formed into a Naval Brigade, with 49 guns, including 27 machine guns, and 3,029 British and 6,005 Native soldiers, with 28 guns.]

[Footnote 3: The force was made up of 364 sailors and 69 Marines arranged into a Naval Brigade, equipped with 49 guns, including 27 machine guns, along with 3,029 British and 6,005 local soldiers, carrying 28 guns.

[Footnote 4: Panipat is famous for three great battles fought in its immediate neighbourhood: one in 1526, by the Emperor Baber against Sultan Ibrahim, which resulted in the establishment of the Mogul dynasty; the second in 1556, when the Emperor Akbar beat the Hindu General of the Afghan usurper, and re-established the Moguls in power; and the third in 1761, when Ahmed Shah Durani defeated the Mahrattas.]

[Footnote 4: Panipat is known for three significant battles that took place nearby: the first in 1526, where Emperor Baber fought against Sultan Ibrahim, leading to the rise of the Mogul dynasty; the second in 1556, when Emperor Akbar defeated the Hindu general of the Afghan usurper and reinstated the Moguls' control; and the third in 1761, when Ahmed Shah Durani triumphed over the Mahrattas.

[Footnote 5: I was much gratified at receiving subsequently from His Imperial Majesty the Emperor William I. and from the Crown Princess of Prussia autograph letters of acknowledgment of, and thanks for, the reception accorded and the attention paid to Majors von Huene and von Hagenau, the two representatives of the German army who attended these manœuvres.]

[Footnote 5: I was very pleased to receive afterwards autograph letters of appreciation and thanks from His Imperial Majesty Emperor William I and the Crown Princess of Prussia, acknowledging the reception and attention given to Majors von Huene and von Hagenau, the two representatives of the German army who attended these maneuvers.

[Footnote 6: Words used by Mr. Gladstone when asking for a vote of credit for £6,500,000 for special preparations in connection with the Afghan difficulty.]

[Footnote 6: Words used by Mr. Gladstone when requesting a credit vote of £6,500,000 for special preparations related to the Afghan situation.]

[Footnote 7: The late Major-General Sir James Browne, K.C.S.I., C.B., who, like Sir Robert Sandeman, died while holding the important and responsible position of Governor-General's Agent in Baluchistan.]

[Footnote 7: The late Major-General Sir James Browne, K.C.S.I., C.B., who, like Sir Robert Sandeman, passed away while serving in the crucial and demanding role of Governor-General's Agent in Baluchistan.

[Footnote 8: A Statesman of high reputation in England was so strong in his disbelief of the necessity for making any preparations in India, that he publicly stated that if the only barrier between Russia in Asia and Britain in Asia were a mountain ridge, or a stream, or a fence, there would be no difficulty in preserving peace between Russia and the United Kingdom.—Speech delivered by the Right Hon. John Bright, M.P., at Birmingham on the 16th April, 1879.]

[Footnote 8: A A well-respected politician in England was so convinced that no preparations were needed in India that he openly declared that if the only thing separating Russia in Asia from Britain in Asia was a mountain range, a river, or a fence, there would be no issue in maintaining peace between Russia and the United Kingdom.—Speech delivered by the Right Hon. John Bright, M.P., at Birmingham on the 16th April, 1879.]



FOOTNOTES, CHAPTER LXVI

[Footnote 1: The homes at Quetta and Wellington were eventually taken over by Government, and Lady Roberts' nurses, who worked in the military hospitals at these stations, were replaced by Government nurses when the increase to the Army Nursing Service admitted of this being done.

[Footnote 1: The homes at Quetta and Wellington were eventually taken over by the government, and Lady Roberts' nurses, who worked in the military hospitals at these locations, were replaced by government nurses when the Army Nursing Service was able to accommodate this change.

[Footnote 2: When the 'Homes in the Hills' are closed during the cold months, these nurses attend sick officers in their own houses in the plains, free of charge except travelling expenses.]

[Footnote 2: When the 'Homes in the Hills' close for the winter, these nurses care for sick officers in their own homes in the plains, at no cost except for travel expenses.

[Footnote 3: These instructions are given in the Appendix.*

[Footnote 3: These instructions are found in the Appendix.*

(See Appendix XI.)]

(See __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__)

[Footnote 4: Monasteries in Burma are not merely dwelling-places for the monks, but are the schools where all education is carried on.]

[Footnote 4: Monasteries in Burma are not just homes for the monks; they are the schools where all education takes place.



FOOTNOTES, CHAPTER LXVII

[Footnote 1: The total coat of the coast and frontier defences amounted to the very moderate sum of five crores of rupees, or about three and a half millions sterling.]

[Footnote 1: The total cost of the coast and border defenses reached a modest sum of five crores of rupees, which is around three and a half million pounds sterling.

[Footnote 2: The Committees consisted, besides the Military Member of Council and myself, of the heads of Departments with the Government of India and at Army Head-Quarters.]

[Footnote 2: The Committees included, in addition to the Military Member of Council and me, the heads of Departments within the Government of India and at Army Headquarters.

[Footnote 3: When the report of the Mobilization Committee was submitted to the Viceroy, he recorded a minute expressing his 'warm admiration of the manner in which the arduous duty had been conducted,' and 'his belief that no scheme of a similar description had ever been worked out with greater thoroughness, in more detail, and with clearer apprehension of the ends to be accomplished.' He concluded by conveying to the members an expression of his great satisfaction at what had been done, and recording that 'the result of the Committee's labours is a magnificent monument of industry and professional ability.']

[Footnote 3: When the Mobilization Committee submitted their report to the Viceroy, he wrote a note expressing his 'strong admiration for the way the challenging task was handled' and 'his belief that no similar project has ever been carried out with such thoroughness, in greater detail, and with a clearer understanding of the goals to be achieved.' He ended by sharing his deep satisfaction with what had been accomplished and noting that 'the outcome of the Committee's efforts stands as a magnificent testament to hard work and professional skill.'

[Footnote 4: Statement of transport carriage maintained in India in the years 1878 and 1893 for military purposes, exclusive of animals registered by the civil authorities on the latter date, and liable to be requisitioned in time of war:

[Footnote 4: Statement of transport vehicles kept in India in the years 1878 and 1893 for military use, not including animals listed by civil authorities on the latter date, and subject to requisition during wartime:

Date Elephants. Camels. Mules. Ponies. Bullocks. Donkeys. Army
Transport
Carts.
Field
Ambulance
Carts.
September, 1878      733   6,353   1,536      ...   1,424      ...      ...      ...
April, 1893      359   3,175 16,825     782   7,211      31   5,316     799

[Footnote 5: According to treaty, the Bhopal State pays nearly two lakhs of rupees a year towards the cost of the local battalion maintained by the British Government for the purpose of keeping order within the State itself. The battalion, however, has only four, instead of eight, British officers, and it appeared to me only reasonable that the Begum should be invited to pay the additional amount necessary to make the battalion as efficient as the rest of the Native army, as a 'premium of insurance' for the peace and prosperity which Her Highness's State enjoys under our protection, and as her quota towards the general scheme for the defence of the Empire.]

[Footnote 5: According to the treaty, the Bhopal State pays nearly two lakhs of rupees a year for the cost of the local battalion maintained by the British Government to keep order within the State. However, the battalion has only four, instead of eight, British officers, and it seemed reasonable to me that the Begum should be asked to pay the extra amount needed to make the battalion as effective as the rest of the Native army, as a 'premium for insurance' for the peace and prosperity Her Highness's State enjoys under our protection, and as her contribution to the overall defense of the Empire.

[Footnote 6: Rissala is a body of Cavalry.]

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Rissala is a cavalry unit.



FOOTNOTES, CHAPTER LXVIII

[Footnote 1: The late Lieutenant-General Sir W.K. Elles, K.C.B.]

[Footnote 1: The late Lieutenant-General Sir W.K. Elles, K.C.B.

[Footnote 2: A detachment of the Calcutta Volunteer Rifles, at the particular request of the regiment, took part in the expedition, and did good service.]

[Footnote 2: A unit of the Calcutta Volunteer Rifles, at the specific request of the regiment, joined the expedition and performed admirably.

[Footnote 3: The pay of the Native Infantry has been suitably increased since I left India.]

[Footnote 3: The pay for the Native Infantry has been properly raised since I left India.

[Footnote 4: Jagirs are grants of land.]

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Jagirs are land grants.

[Footnote 5: Batta, extra allowances given to Native soldiers when proceeding on field service.]

[Footnote 5: Batta, additional pay provided to Native soldiers when going on field duty.]

[Footnote 6: During the Mutiny the casualties amongst the British officers with the six Punjab regiments which saw the most fighting amounted to 60 per cent.! Luckily, these were able to be replaced by officers belonging to corps which had mutinied. This supply, however, has long since been used up, and it behoves the Government either to provide an adequate reserve of officers, or to arrange for a sufficient number being sent out from England whenever India is likely to be engaged in a serious war.

[Footnote 6: During the Mutiny, the casualties among the British officers in the six Punjab regiments that fought the hardest reached 60%. Fortunately, they were replaced by officers from units that had mutinied. However, this replacement has long been exhausted, and it is essential for the Government to either ensure an adequate reserve of officers or arrange to send enough from England whenever India is expected to be involved in a serious war.

CORPS. Number of
Officers
who did
Duty with
each Corps.
CASUALTIES.
Killed in
Action.
Died of
Wounds.
Died of
Disease.
Wounded. Invalided.
1st Punjab Cavalry
(1 squadron)

2nd Punjab Cavalry

5th Punjab Cavalry
(1 squadron)

1st Punjab Infantry

2nd Punjab Infantry

4th Punjab Infantry


     12

     20


       7

     15

     22

     24

       1

       1


       1

       3

       3

       2

      ...

      ...


       1

      ...

      ...

       3


      ...

      ...


      ...

      ...

      ...

       2

       6

       5


      ...

       6

       4

       8

       7

       4


      ...

      ...

       3

      ...
Total    100      11        4        2      29      14

[Footnote 7: Captain Younghushand was at Bozai-Gumbaz, and Lieutenant Davison on the Alichur Pamirs, both places being south of the Aksu branch of the Oxus, flowing from the Little Pamir Lake.]

[Footnote 7: Captain Younghushand was at Bozai-Gumbaz, and Lieutenant Davison on the Alichur Pamirs, both locations being south of the Aksu branch of the Oxus, which flows from the Little Pamir Lake.

[Footnote 8: The Infantry comprised twenty-four battalions drawn up in line of quarter columns. The Artillery consisted of one battery (six 7-pounders) carried on elephants, six batteries (six guns each, 5-pounders and 7-pounders) dragged by soldiers, and six batteries (six guns each, 3-pounders and 5-pounders) carried by Bhutia coolies.]

[Footnote 8: The Infantry included twenty-four battalions arranged in quarter column formation. The Artillery was made up of one battery (six 7-pounders) transported by elephants, six batteries (six guns each, 5-pounders and 7-pounders) pulled by soldiers, and six batteries (six guns each, 3-pounders and 5-pounders) carried by Bhutia laborers.

[Footnote 9: I am not unmindful of the visit which Sir Mortimer Durand paid to Kabul after I had left India, but on that occasion, I believe, the question of the defence of Afghanistan was not discussed.]

[Footnote 9: I am aware of the visit that Sir Mortimer Durand made to Kabul after I left India, but I think the topic of Afghanistan's defense wasn’t talked about during that time.

[Footnote 10: The works were stopped after I left India, but not, I was glad to think, before the redoubts had been finished, with the communications thereto. The reasons given were that a change of plans was necessary for economy's sake, and that the construction of fortifications might induce the Natives to think we were doubtful of the continuance of our supremacy. As regarded the first, I explained that the total outlay for works and armaments was estimated at only £332,274—considerably less than one half the cost of a British line-of-battle ship; and as to the second, I urged that an argument of this sort against frontier defences would hardly bear examination; that the possibility of external attack was freely discussed in every newspaper; that Russian movements and frontier difficulties were known and commented on in every bazaar; that the construction of fortifications in support of the Ruling Power had been an Oriental practice from time immemorial; that our action in this respect was at least as likely to instil the idea that we meant to retain our eastern possessions at any cost, as to give an impression of weakness; that the progressive re-organization and mobilization of our army were well known to have reference to service beyond the frontier; and that we had extended our confidence in this respect to Native Princes by encouraging them to train their own troops and fit them to take their place in line with ours.]

[Footnote 10: The projects were put on hold after I left India, but thankfully not before the fortifications were completed, along with their connections. The reasons given were that a plan change was needed for the sake of saving money, and that building fortifications might lead the locals to think we were unsure about our dominance. Regarding the first point, I explained that the total cost for the projects and armaments was estimated at just £332,274—significantly less than half the cost of a British battleship. As for the second point, I argued that such reasoning against border defenses didn’t hold up under scrutiny; the possibility of an external attack was widely discussed in every newspaper; Russian movements and border issues were known and talked about in every market; building fortifications to support the ruling power had been a long-standing practice in Eastern traditions; our actions in this regard were just as likely to convey that we intended to keep our eastern territories at all costs, rather than imply weakness; it was well known that the ongoing reorganization and mobilization of our army were related to services beyond the border; and we had shown our trust in this matter to Native Princes by encouraging them to train their own troops and prepare them to stand alongside ours.

[Footnote 11: Given in the Appendix*.

See Appendix XVI.]

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Given in the Appendix__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__.

See __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_2__]

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Same source__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__.

See __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_2__]




        
        
    
Download ePUB

If you like this ebook, consider a donation!